Beruflich Dokumente
Kultur Dokumente
"W-^,
f*>
*
i!w44.
'3>; >
t tfve fta%% ft
t**
PRINCETON, N. J.
Section .
Shelf.. . Number
s
/
DR. WILLIAM SMITHS
PROFESSOR H. B. HACKETT, D. D.
VOLUME I.
NEW YORK:
PUBLISHED BY HURD AND HOUGHTON.
€amimt»fle: l&fbersf&e caress.
1871.
Entered according to Act of Congress, in the year 1868, by
Hurd and Houghton,
in the Clerk's Office of the District Court for the Southern District of New York,
RIVERSIDE, CAMBRIDGE:
STEREOTYPED AND PRINTED BY
H. O. HOUGHTON AND COMPANY.
PREFACE TO THE AMERICAN EDITION.
The reputation of Dr. William Smith's " Dictionary of the Bible " is now too
well established to need any special commendation. It contains, by universal con-
sent, the fruit of the ripest Biblical scholarship of England, and constitutes a library
of itself (superseding the use of many books otherwise necessary) for the study and
illustration of the Scriptures. As a whole, it is unquestionably superior to any simi-
lar Lexicon in our language, and cannot fail to maintain this rank for a long period
to come. In this American edition, the Publishers reprint the entire work, without
abridgment or change, excej>t the correction of typographical errors, or an occa-
sional verbal inaccuracy, and of mistakes in quotation and reference.
At same time, the reprinting of this Dictionary, after the lapse, of several
the
years since its first publication, and of a still longer time since the preparation of
many of the articles, affords an opportunity to give to it some new featmes, required
by the progressive nature of Biblical science, and adapting it more perfectly to the
wants of students of the Bible in our own country. Among the characteristics in
which the American edition differs from the English, are the following :
—
1. The contents of the Appendix, embracing one hundred and sixteen pages, and
treating of subjects overlooked or imperfectly handled in the first volume, have been
inserted in their proper places in the body of the work.
2. The numerous Scripture references, on the accuracy of which ;he value of a
Bible Dictionary so much depends, have all been verified anew. The corrections
found necessary in these references, and silently made, amount to more than a thou-
sand. Many other mistakes in quotation and reference have been corrected during
the revision of the work.
The system of cross-references from one article to another, so indispensable for
3.
enabling us toknow what the Dictionary contains on related but separated subjects,
has been carried much further in this edition than in the English.
4. The signification of the Hebrew and, to some extent, of the Greek names of
persons and places has been given in English, according to the best authorities
(Simonis, Gesenius, Dietrich, Fiirst, Pape) on this intricate subject. We
have such
definitions occasionally in the original work, buton no consistent plan. The Scrip-
ture names reveal to us a striking peculiarity of the oriental mind, and often throw
light on the personal history and the geography of the Bible.
5. The accentuation of proper names has required adjustment. Dr. Smith's
" Concise Dictionary of the Bible " differs here widely from the larger work and in ;
both, forms perfectly analogous are differently accented, in many instances, without
apparent reason. In the present edition, this subject has received careful attention ;
name, professes to give "the corresponding forms in the Hebrew, Greek, and Vul-
gate, together with the variations in the two great manuscripts of the Septuagint,
which are often curious and worthy of notice." But this plan has been very imper-
fectly carried out so far as relates to the forms in the Septuagint and Vulgate,
especially in the first volume. The readings of the Vatican manuscript are very
(iii)
iv PREFACE TO THE AMERICAN EDITION.
rarely given where they differ from those of the Roman edition of 1587, a case —
which frequently occurs, though this edition is, to a great extent, founded on that
manuscript and those of the Alexandrine manuscript are often ignored.
; The
present edition of the Dictionary seeks to supply these defects and not only have
;
the readings of the Roman text (as given by Tischendorf) been carefully noted,
with the variations of t!ie Vatican and Alexandrine manuscripts as edited by Mai
and Baber, but also those of the two other leading editions of the Septuagint, the
Complutensian and the Aldine, and of the Codex Sinalticus, Avhenever the forms given
in them accord more nearly with the Hebrew, or on other accounts seem worthy of
notice. To these last two editions, in the Apocrypha especially, we must often look
for the explanation of the peculiar spelling of many proper names in the common
English version. Many deviations of the later editions of this version from the first
plan, new articles have been inserted in the American edition, with additions to others
which seem not fully to represent our present knowledge or the state of critical opin-
ion on the subjects discussed. The have been greatly
bibliographical references
increased, and care has been taken mention the new works of value, or new
to
editions of works in geography, philology, history, and exegesis, in our own or other
languages, which have appeared since the original articles were written. Further,
all the new wood-cuts in the Abridged English edition, illustrating some of the most
important subjects in geography and archaeology, but not contained in the Una-
bridged edition, are inserted in the present work. Many additional views of
Scripture scenes and places have been introduced from other more recent publica-
tions, or engraved from photographs.
10. Fuller recognition has been made of the names and works of American schol-
ars, both as an act of justice to them as co-workers with those of other lands in this
The present work is designed to render the same service in the study of the Bible
as the Dictionaries of Greek and Roman Antiquities, Biography, and Geography
have done in Within the last few
the study of the classical writers of antiquity.
years Biblical studies have received a fresh impulse and the researches of modern
;
scholars, as well as the discoveries of modern travellers, have thrown new and unex-
pected light upon the history and geography of the East. It has, therefore, been
thought that a new Dictionary of the Bible, founded on a fresh examination of the
original documents, and embodying the results of the most recent researches and dis-
coveries, would prove a valuable addition to the literature of the country. It has
been the aim of the Editor and Contributors to present the information in such a
form as to meet the wants, not only of theological students, but also of that larger
class of persons who, without pursuing theology as a profession, are anxious to study
the Bible with the aid of the latest investigations of the best scholars. Accordingly,
while the requirements of the learned have always been kept in view, quotations
from the ancient languages have been sparingly introduced, and generally in paren-
theses, so as not to interrupt the continuous perusal of the work. It is confidently
believed that the articles will be found both intelligible and interesting even to those
who have no knowledge of the learned languages and that such persons will expe-
;
divinity. It has seemed, however, necessary in a " Dictionary of the Bible," to give
a full account of the Book, both as a whole and in its separate parts. Accordingly,
articles are inserted not only upon the general subject, such as " Bible," " Apocry-
pha," and " Canon," and upon the chief ancient versions, as " Septuagint " and
" Vulgate," hut also upon ea-h of the separate books. These articles are natu-
rally some of the most important in the work, and occupy considerable space, as
will be seen by referring to " Genesis," " Isaiah," and " Job."
The Editor believes that the work will be found, upon examination, to be far
more complete in the subjects which it professes to treat than any of its predeces-
sors. No other dictionary has yet attempted to give a complete list of the proper
names occurring in the Old and New Testaments, to say nothing of those in the
Apocrypha. The present work is intended to contain every name, and, in the case
of minor names, references to every passage in the Bible in which each occurs. It
is true that many of the names are those of comparatively obscure persons and
places ;
but this is no reason for their omission. On the contrary, it is precisely for
such articles that a dictionary is most needed. An account of the more important
persons and places occupies a prominent position in historical and geographical
works but of the less conspicuous names no information can be obtained in ordinary
;
books of reference. Accordingly many names, which have been either entirely
omitted or cursorily treated in other dictionaries, have had considerable space de-
voted to them the result, being that much curious and sometimes important knowl-
;
(v)
vi PREFACE TO THE ENGLISH EDITION.
edge has been elicited respecting subjects of which little or nothing was previously
known. Instances may be seen by referring to the articles " Ishmael, son of Netha-
niah," " Jareb," " Jedidiah," " Jehosheba."
In the alphabetical arrangement the orthography of the Authorized Version has
been invariably followed. Indeed the work might be described as a Dictionary of
the Bible, according to the Authorized Version. But at the commencement of each
article devoted to a proper name, the corresponding forms in the Hebrew, Greek,
and Vulgate are given, together with the variations in the two great manuscripts of
the Septuagint, which are often curious and well worthy of notice. All inaccura-
cies in the Authorized Version are likewise carefully noted.
In the composition and distribution of the articles three points have been espe-
cially kept in view —
the insertion of copious references to the ancient writers and
to the best modern authorities, as much brevity as was consistent with the proper
elucidation of the subjects, and facility of reference. To attain the latter object an
explanation is some repetition, under every word to which
given, even at the risk of
a reader is one of the great drawbacks in the use of a
likely to refer, since it is
which occur in each subject, and to explain all allusions to it by the aid of modern
science.
In a work written by various persons, each responsible for his own contributions,
differences of opinion must naturally occur. Such differences, however, are both
fewer and of less importance than might have been expected from the nature of the
subject and in some difficult questions
;
—
such, for instance, as that of the " Brethren
of our Lord " —
the Editor, instead of endeavoring to obtain uniformity, has consid-
ered it an advantage to the reader to have the arguments stated from different
points of view.
Anattempt has been made to insure, as far as practicable, uniformity of reference
to the most important books. In the case of two works of constant occurrence in
the geographical articles, it may be convenient to mention that all references to Dr.
Robinson's " Biblical Researches " and to Professor Stanley's " Sinai and Palestine,"
have been uniformly made to the second edition of the former work (London, 1856,
3 vols.), and to the fourth edition of the latter (London, 1857).
The Editor cannot conclude this brief explanation without expressing his obliga-
tions to the writers of the various articles. Their names are a sufficient guarantee
for the value of their contributions but the warm interest they have taken in the
;
book, and the unwearied pains they have bestowed upon their separate departments,
demand from the Editor his grateful thanks. There is, however, one writer to
whom he owes a more special acknowledgment. Mr. George Grove of Sydenham,
besides contributing the articles to which his initial is attached, has rendered the
Editor important assistance in writing the majority of the articles on the more ob-
PREFACE TO THE ENGLISH EDITION. vii
scure names in the volume, in the correction of the proofs, and in the revision
first
Queen.
G. E. L. C. Right Rev. George Edward Lynch Cotton, D. D., late Lord Bishop
of Calcutta and Metropolitan of India.
J. LI. D. Rev. John Llewelyn Dayies, M. A., Rector of Christ Church,
Marylebone late Fellow of Trinity College, Cambridge.
;
DOTIALS.
F. G.
F. W. G.
G.
LIST OF WRITERS.
bridge.
H. J. R. Rev. Henry John Rose, B. D., Rural Dean, and Rector of Houghton
Conquest, Bedfordshire.
W. S. Rev. William Selwyn, D. D., Chaplain in Ordinary to the Queen;
Lady Margaret's Professor of Divinity, Cambridge Canon of Ely. :
INITIALS. NAMES.
Cambridge, Mass.
G. E. P. Rev. George E. Post, M. D., Tripoli, Syria.
* * The new portions in the present edition are indicated by a star (*), the edi-
#
torial additions being distinguished by the initials H. and A. Whatever is enclosed
in brackets is also, with unimportant exceptions, editorial. This remark, however,
does not apply to the cross-references in brackets, most of which belong to the origi-
nal work, though a large number have been added to this edition.
ABBREVIATIONS.
AARON
A'ALAR. [Addan.]
speak Kis words to them. Aaron only approaches
AA'RON flTTTJ?? [perh. = pin, moun- with Nadab, and Abiliu, and the seventy elders of
Israel, by special command, near enough to see
taineer, Ges. ; or from "1HM, enlightened, Fiirst] a :
the Levite," it would seem as if he had been warded by seeing a " feast of the Lord " (Ex. xxxii.
already to some extent a leader in his tribe. All 5) degraded to the lowest form of heathenish sen-
that is definitely recorded of him at this time is, suality, and knowing, from Moses' words and deeds,
that, in the same passage, he is described as one that the covenant with the Lord was utterly broken.
"who could speak well." Judging from the acts There can hardly be a stronger contrast with this
of his life, we should suppose him to have been, weakness, and the self-convicted shame of his excuse,
like many eloquent men, a man of impulsive and than the burning indignation of Moses, and his
comparatively unstable character, leaning almost stern measures of vengeance; although
decisive
wholly on his brother; incapable of that endurance beneath these there lay an ardent affection, which
of loneliness and temptation, which is an element of went almost to the verge cf presumption in prayer
real greatness; but at the same time earnest in his for the people (Ex. xxxii. 19-34), and gained for-
devotion to God and man, and therefore capable of giveness for Aaron himself (Deut. ix. 20).
sacrifice and of by trial.
discipline It is not a little remarkable, that immediately
His first was to be the " Prophet," i. e.
office after this great sin, and almost as though it had
(according to the proper meaning of the word), the not occurred, God's fore-ordained purposes were
interpreter and " Mouth " (Ex. iv. 16) of his broth- carried out in Aaron's consecration to the new office
er, who was "slow of speech; " and accordingly of the high-priesthood. Probably the fall and the
he was ncit only the organ of communication with repentance from it may have made him one " who
the Israelites and with Pharaoh (Ex. iv. 30, vii. 2), could have compassion on the ignorant, and them
but also the actual instrument of working most who are out of the way, as being himself also com-
of the miracles of the Exodus. (See Ex. vii. passed with infirmity." The order of God for the
19, &c.) Thuson the way to Mount Sinai.
also consecration is found in Ex. xxix., and the record
during the battle with Amalek. Aaron is mentioned of its execution in Lev. viii. ; and the delegated char-
with Hut, as staying up the weary hands of Moses, acter of the Aaronic priesthood is clearly seen by
when they were lifted up for the victory of Israel the fact, that, in this its inauguration, the priestly
(not in prayer, as is sometimes explaiued, but) to office is borne by Moses, as God's truer representa-
bear the rod of God (see Ex. xvii. 9). Through tive (see Heb. vii.).
all this period, he is only mentioned as dependent
The form of consecration resembled other sacri-
upon his brother, and deriving all his authority ficialceremonies in containing, first, a sin-offering,
from him. The contrast between them is even the form of cleansing from sin and reconciliation
more strongly marked on the arrival at Sinai. [SlN-OFFEKDTQ] ; a burnt-offering, the symbol of
Moses at once acts as the mediator (Gal. iii. 19) for entire devotion to Cod of the nature so purified
the people r to come near to God for them, and to [Bubnt-offering] and a meat-offering, the
;
" * Dietrich suggests (Ges. Heb. Hanclwb. 6te Aufl.) thankful acknowledgment and sanctifying of God's
natural blessings [Meat-oki-i:i:ix<;]. It had, how-
nch, or fluent, like "TDTR H. ever, besides these, the solemn assumption of the
2 AARON ABANA
sacred robes (the garb of righteousness), the anoint- itfrom Abiathar, and restored it to Zadok (of the
ing (the symbol of God's grace), and the offering of house of Eleazar), so Mfilling the prophecy of 1
the ram of consecration, the blood of which was Sam. ii. 30. A. B.
sprinkled on Aaron and his sons, as upon the altar
N. B. In 1 Chr. xxvii. 17, « Aaron " (flllM)
and vessels of the ministry, in order to sanctify
them for the service of God. The former ceremonies is counted as one of the " tribes of laraeL"
represented the blessings and duties of the man, the AARONITES, THE (pHN
f, >Aap<iv :
latter the special consecration of the priest." stirjjs Aaron, Aaronitce). Descendants of Aaron,
The solemnity of the office, and its entire de- and therefore priests, who, to the
number of 3700
pendence for sanctity on the ordinances of God, fighting men, with
Jehoiada the father of Benaiah
were vindicated by the death of Nadab and Abihu,
at their head, joined David at Hebron (1 Chr.
for " offering strange fire " on the altar, and appa-
xii. 27). Later on in the history (1 Chr. xxvii. 17)
rently (see Lev. x. 9, 10) for doing so in drunken
we find their chief was Zadok, who in the earlier
recklessness. Aaron's checking his sorrow, so as at narrative was distinguished
as " a young man
least to refrain from all outward signs of it, would
mighty of valor." They must have been an im-
be a severe trial to an impulsive and weak character, portant family in the
reign of David to be reckoned
and a proof of his being lifted above himself by the among the tribes of Israel. W. A. W.
officewhich he held.
From this time the history of Aaron is almost AB (3S, father), an element in the composi-
entirely that of the priesthood, and its chief feature tion of many proper names, of which Abba is a
is the great rebellion of Korah and the Levites Chaldaic form, the syllable affixed giving the em-
against his sacerdotal dignity, united with that of phatic force of the definite article. Applied to God
Dathan and Abiram and the Reubenites against the by Jesus Christ (Mark xiv. 30), and by St. Paul
temporal authority of Moses [Korah]. The true (Bom. viii. 15 Gal. iv. 6.)
; [Abba.] R. W. B.
vindication of the reality of Aaron's priesthood was AB. [Months.]
not so much the death of Korah by the fire of the AB'ACUC, 2 Esdr. i. 40. [Habakkuk.]
Lord, as the efficacy of his offering of incense to
stay the plague, by which he was seen to be accepted
ABAD'DON, Rev. ix. 11. [Afollyox.]
as an intercessor for the people. The blooming of ABADIAS ('A|8aS«os: [Aid. BaSias:] Ab-
his rod, which followed, was a miraculous sign, dias). Obadiah, the son of Jehiel (1 Esdr. viii.
acter is seen, is one of presumption, prompted, as one of the seven eunuchs in the Persian court of
before, chiefly by another, and, as before, speedily Ahasuerus (Esth. i. 10). In theLXX. the names
repented of. The murmuring of Aaron and Miriam of these eunuchs are different. The word contains
against Moses clearly proceeded from their trust, we in the Persian names
the same root which find
the one in his priesthood, the other in her prophetic Bh/tha (Esth. Bigthan (Esth. ii. 21), Big-
i. 10),
inspiration, as equal commissions from God (Num. llniiiii (Esth. vi. 2), and Bagoas. Bohlen explains
xii. 2). It seems to have vanished at once before
it from the Sanscrit bagadata, " given by fortune,"
the declaration of Moses' exaltation above all proph-
from baga, fortune, the sun.
ecy and priesthood, except that of One who was
to come and, if we may judge from the direction
;
AB'ANA (H32S.: & 'A0cu>d; [Vat. H. (Vat.'-2
of the punishment, to have originated mainly with Mai) Apfrava- Alex. NaefSava; Comp. 'Afj-avd'-]
Miriam. On all other occasions he is spoken of as
Abana), one of the " rivers (rYl""in2) of Damas-
acting with Moses in the guidance of the people.
cus " (2 K. v. 12). The Barada (Xpvaopp6a.s of
Leaning as he seems to have done wholly on him, it
is not strange that he should have shared his sin at
the Greeks) and the Awaj are now the chief streams
of Damascus, and there can be little doubt that the
Meribah, and its punishment [Moses] (Num. xx.
former of these represents the Abana and the latter
10 - 12). As that punishment seems to have purged
out from Moses the tendency to self-confidence,
the Pharpar of the text. As far back as the days
of Pliny and Strabo the Barada was, as it now is,
which tainted his character, so in Aaron it may
the chief river of the city (Rob. iii. 446), flowing
have destroyed that idolatry of a stronger mind, into
through it, and supplying most of its dwellings
which a weaker one, once conquered, is apt to fall.
with water. The Awaj is further from Damascus,
Aaron's death seems to have followed very speedily.
and a native of the place, if speaking of the two to-
It took place on Mount Hor, after the transference
gether, would certainly, with Naaman, name the
of his robes and office to Eleazar, who alone with
Moses was present at his death, and performed his
Barada first (Porter, i. 276). To this may be ad-
ded the fact that in the Arabic version of the pas-
burial (Num. xx. 28). This mount is still called
the " Mountain of Aaron." [Hor.]
sage —
the date of which has been fixed by Rodiger
not the most distant head, as the origin of a follows for the sake ofGreek readers. See Winer's
river. We meet with other instances of the same KpUt. ad Galat. p. 96. Abba, as the vernacular
mistake in the case of the Jordan and the Orontes term (a vox solennis from childhood), was of course
[Am] it is to Dr. Robinson that we are indebted
;
more expressive than any foreign word could be,
for its discovery in the present case (Rob. iii. 477). and came, as it were, first to the lips as the writer
After flowing through Damascus the Barada runs or speaker thought of God in the filial relation,
across the plain, leaving the remarkable Assyrian which the word designated with such fullness of
ruin Tell es-Saiahiyeh on its left bank, till it loses meaning. See Usteri's Com. iiber d. Brief an die
the lake or marsh Bahret el-Kibliyeh.
itself in Mr. Galat. p. 148. Tholuck (on Rom. viii. 15) reminds
Porter calculates that 14 villages and 150,000 souls us that Luther preferred to translate irar-hp lieber
are dependent on this important river. For the Voter rather than Voter merely, as the more nat-
course of the Barada see Porter, vol. i. chap, v., ural dictate of his childlike feeling toward God.
Journ. of S. Lit. N. S. viii., Rob. iii. 446, 7. Light- Some others think that Abba passed over from the
foot (Cent Chor. iv.) and Gesenius (Tkes. 116) Aramaean Christians to the Greek-speaking Chris-
tians as a sort of proper name, and had merely
quote the name ^VE"")p as applied in the Lexicon
that force as combined with 6 irarrip. To main-
Aruch to the Amana. G. tain this view, Meyer has to say (on Gal. iv. 6)
* Gesenius ( Thes. p. 116) supposes Abana to be a that in Mark xiv. 36 the Evangelist puts "Abba"
commutation for Amana by an interchange of the into the mouth of Jesus as he prayed in the garden
in anticipation of a usage which began to exist at a
labials 3 and ^2 : it may be a dialectic or a provin-
later period. H.
cial difference. See also Keil's BB. der Kimige, p.
368. Amana or Abana means " perennial " (comp. ABT)A (K^Ett? [servant, a Chaldee form]:
1«S3 as said of water in Is. xxxiii. 16 and Jer. AvScov [Vat. T.<ppa; Alex. A/8Sa>; Comp. 'A/3-
;
flowing stream. The only biblical allusion to the (Neh. xi. 17), called Obadiah in 1 Chr. ix. 16.
name is Xaaman's scornful interrogation in
that in
2 Kings v. 12: "Are not Abana and Pharpar, ABT)EEL (bbjffin? [om. Aid. Rom. Alex. :
rivers of Damascus, better than all the waters of FA.; Comp. 'A/38e7jA:] Abdeel), father of Shele-
Israel?" There may be something more than miah (Jer. xxxvi. 26). [A. V. ed. 1611 reads Ab-
pride of country in this; for the waters of Abana diel.]
\Barada), especially after the confluence of the
AB1>I (^2!!? [my servant] 'Apat [Vat. :
j
stream from Fi/eh, its most copious fountain, are
Alac- A/35j: Abdi). 1. A Merarite [Mi:-
remarkably fresh and sparkling, and at the present A£5ei;]
raki], and ancestor of Ethan the singer (1 Chr.
day proverbially salubrious, while those of the Jor-
dan are mixed with clay and tepid, though not vi. 44).
unfit for drinking (Richter's
2. 0A)35i.) The father of Kish, a Merarite Le-
Wallfahrttn, p. 157;
vite in the reign of Hezekiah (2 Chr. xxix. 12).
Rob. Phys. Geog. p. 165). H.
From a comparison of this passage with 1 Chr.
AB'ARIM (so Milton accents the word), the
44 it would appear either that ancestral names
vi.
•• mount," or " mountains of " (always with the def.
were repeated in Levitical families, or that they e- 1
article, D^'OlJn "IH, or ^J^, rb opos rb 'A/3- came themselves the names of families, and not of
api/x, [etc.] or iv rw irepav rov 'lopSdvou, the = individuals.
3. {'AfiSia ; FA. AjSSeia.) One of the Bene-
mountains of the further parts, or possibly of the
Elam [sons of Elam] in the time of Ezra, who had
fords), a mountain or range of highlands on the east
married a foreign wife (Ezr. x. 20). W. A. W.
of the Jordan, in the land of Moab (Deut. xxxii.
49), facing Jericho, and forming the eastern wall ABDI'AS (Abdias). The prophet Obadiah
of the Jordan valley at that part. Its most ele- (2 Esdr. i. 39). W. A. W.
vated spot was " the Mount Nebo, head of the ABT>IEL (bS^aV
'
' ' '
{servant of God]: 'A&-
Pisgah," from which Moses viewed the Prom- Abdiel), son of Guni
5rf)\; [Vat. Aj38€7jA:] (1
ised Land before his death. There is nothing to Chr. v. 15).
prove that the Abarim were a range or tract of any
* The casual notice here is all that is known to
length, unless the Ije- Abarim ("heaps of A.")
us of this Abdiel from the Bible. The celebrity
named in Num. xxxiii. 44, and which were on the
which the name has acquired arises chiefly from
south frontier of Moab, are to be taken as belong-
Milton's use of it as applied to that only one
ing to them. But it must be remembered that a
among the hosts of Satan, of whom he could say :
—
word derived from the same root as Abarim, namely,
" Among the faithless, faithful only he ;
"
"Q^?) is commonly applied to the whole
tie term
o * For a concise statement of the somewhat per-
of the country on the east of the Jordan.
plexed relation of Abarim, Nebo, and Pisgah to each
These mountains are mentioned in Nut., xxvii. 1
(London, 1865), p. 297. H. saved by the exercise on the part of one of its in-
ABDON (fTCjlE [servile]: 'A/35eSi>; [in
habitants of that sagacity for which it was proverb-
ial (18). In verses 14 and 18 it is simply Abel,
Judg., Alex. AajS5a>jii, Aa&Sw-] Abdon). 1. A
and in 14 Abel is apparently distinguished from
judge of Israel (Judg. xii. 13, 15), perhaps the
lieth-maachah/' If the derivation of Gesenius be
same person as Bedan in 1 Sam. xii. 11.
the correct one, the situation of Abel was probably
2. [Vat. A/8o5o)j/.] Son of Shashak (1 Chr.
in the Ard el-Huleh, the marshy meadow country
viii. 23).
which drains into the Sea of Merom, whether at
3. r'irst-born son of Jehiel, son of Gibeon [rath-
er,father of Gibeon, i. e. the city or people of
AMI (Robinson, iii. 372), or more to the south
(Stanley, S. and P. p. 390, note). Eusebius and
Gibeon] (1 Chr. viii. 30, ix. 35, 36).
Jerome place it between Paneas and Damascus;
4. ['A/38oV; Vat. A05o8o/x Alex. A/35coi/.] ;
this has not been identified.
Son of Micah, a contemporary of Josiah (2 Chr. but
xxxiv. 20), called Achbor in 2 Kings xxii. 12. 2. A'bel-ma'im (D^Q ''5^ 'A/8eA/*a'iV : :
ABT30N Cp^n^ [servile']: 'A&Mv, Aaj8- Abelmaim), 2 Chr. xvi. 4. [Abel, 1.]
fiwv, "PafidiQ), a city in the tribe of Asber, given 3. A'hel-mizka'im (Miterairn), CH!JE S*, ac-
to the Gersbonites (Josh. xxi. 30; 1 Chr. vi. 74).
cording to the etymology of the text, the mourning
No place of this name appears in the list of the
towns of Asher (Josh. xix. 24-31); but instead we
"f I'V'JPU -rrevdos Alyvirrov [Planet'us jEijypti],
(this meaning, however, requires a different point-
fold (28) T^y, " Hebron," a which is the same
ing, 7l&? for 72S) : the name given by the Ca-
"1
word, with the change frequent in Hebrew of naanites to the floor of Atad, at which Joseph, his
brothers, and the Egyptians made their mourning
for Indeed many MSS. have Abdon in Josh.
1.
xix. 28 (Ges. p. 080; Winer, s. v.); but, on the for
Jacob (Gen. 1. 11). It was beyond (~Q_7 =
other band, all the ancient versions retain the 1!, on the east of ) Jordan, though placed by Jerome
except the Vatican LXX. which has 'EA.ySaii' (Alex. at Beth-Hogla (now Ain-Hajla), near the river,
'Axpdv [&n& so Comp. 17 MSS. have E/Spwi']). on its west bank. e
;
[Atad.]
ABEDNEGO (TXT"!^ :
'
ApSevaydb : Ab- 4. A'bel-shit'tim (with the article vDS
demago), servant of Nego, h perhaps the same as
i. e. 2^t3tE>n: Alex. BeAaarrt/j. Comp.
[BfAcro ; ;
1. A'bel-beth-ma'achah (i"T317£ i"P3 S 1, § 1). The town and the palms have disappeared
t-: - t N ••
[house of oppression: 2 S. 'A$e\ iced Bed/xaxa or but the acacia-groves, denoted by the name Shit-
Abela Bethmaacha tim, still remain, " marking with a line of verdure
$epfj.axu (Alex. BnOfiaxa) : et :
therefore in the northern part of the Jordan valley The Oriental Gnosticism of the Sabseans made
(Eus. iv t<£ av\a>vi). The routed Bedouin host fled Abel an incarnate ALon, and the Gnostic or Mani-
from Gideon (Judg. vii. 22) to "the border (the chseaii sect of «,he Abelita? in North Africa in the
'Up' or 'brink') of Abel-meholah," and to Beth- time of Augustine (de Hceres. 86, 87), so called
shittah (the "house of the acacia"), both places themselves from a tradition that Abel, though
being evidently down in the Jordan valley. Here married, lived in continence. In order to avoid
Elisha was found at his plough by Elijah returning perpetuating original sin, they followed his example,
up the valley from Horeb (1 K. xix. 16-19). In but ii» order to keep up their sect, each married
Jerome's time the name had dwindled to 'A/3eAyU.ea. pair adopted a male and female child, who iu their
6. A'bel-cera'mim (D^EPS) S : ['E.@eXx a P~ turn vowed to niarry under the same conditions.
R. W. B.
Alex. A/3eA a/u.Tre\oovoou Abel qua est vine&s
/xlfj.;
:
consita]), in the A. V. rendered " the plain \marg. A'BEZ (V3£, in pause V^N :
'p € #€s; [Aid.
'Abel'] of the vineyards," a place eastward of Alex. 'Ae/*e; Comp. Ae/3v}s0 Abes), a town in
Jordan, beyond Aroer; named as the point to the possession of Issachar, named between Kishion
which Jephthah's pursuit of the Bene- Amnion [sons and Renieth, in Josh. xix. 20, only. Gesenius
of A.] extended (Judg. xi. 33). A
Kii/xr) a/Mre- mentions as a possible derivation of the name, that
another, oivotp6pos /coAou/xeVrj, more to the north, it may be from ^3S, and hence height.] Pos-
12 miles east from Gadara. below the Hieromax.
Ruins bearing the name of Abila are still found in sibly, however, the word is a corruption of
V*5D>
the same position (Ritter, Syria, 1(158). There Thebez [which see], now Tubas, a town situated
were at least three places with the name of Aroer not far from Engannim and Shunem, (both towns
on the further side of the Jordan. [Aroer.] of Issachar), and which otherwise has entirely es-
7. " The great ' Abel \_marg. '
or stone,'] caped mention in the list in Joshua. 6
' G.
in the field of Joshua the Bethshemite" (1 Sam.
A'BI OllS [father =
progenitor] "h$ov\ :
seem that, J has been here exchanged for V, and king Hezekiah (2 K. xviii. 2). The name is writ-
that for 7^S should be read )3H = stone. So ten Abijah (H*3S) in 2 Chr. xxix. 1. Her fa-
the LXX. and
the Chaldee Targum. Our trans- ther's name was Zechariah, who was, perhaps, the
lators, by the insertion of " stone of," take a middle Zechanah mentioned by Isaiah (viii. 2). R. W. B.
course. See, however, Lengerke (358) and Herx-
heimer (1 Sam. vi. 18), who hold by Abel as being ABI'A, ABI'AH, or ABIJAH (n»2^i =
the name subsequently given to the spot in refer- ^rTQ^i [whose father is Jehovah]: 'AfStd [in 1
;
ence to the "mourning" (^vBSrT) Chr. vii. 8, Rom. 'AjSiovS, Alex. Afiiov, Comp.
there, ver. 19.
In this case compare Gen. 1. 11. G. Aid. 'A/iid:] Alia). 1. Son of Becher. the son
Dei, xv. 1). St. ,'hrvsostom observes that Abel He is the same as Abijah 4.
<
W. A. \V.
offered the best of his flock —
Cain that which was For other persons of this name see Abijah.
most readily procured Gen. xviii. 5).
(Horn, in ABI-AL'BON. [Abiei..]
Jesus Christ spoke of him as the first martyr
ABFASAPH,
otherwise written EBI'A-
(Matt, xxiii. 35); so did the early church subse-
quently. For Christian traditions see Iren. v. 67 SAPH
(^DS^S, Ex. vi. 24, and 1 ^2S,
Chrysost. Horn, in Gen, xix.; Cedren. Hist. 8. Chr. vi. 8, 2Y[(IIeb.), 23, 37 (E. V.)]Tix.l9:
For those of the Rabbins and Mohammedans, Eison- 'Afiidcrap, 'A0t<rdcp, 'Afitdo-a<p: Abiasaph; ac-
cording to Shnonis, " cujus patrem abstulit Bens,"
a *Or, it may be from the mother's impression of
the brevity and frailty of human life, which she had b *Mr. Porter (Handbook, ii. 647) puts Abez iu his
now begun to understand and in that case the child list of Scripture places not yet identified.
;
Kuobel
sould have been so named at his birth. H. and Kcil also regard the name as now lost. II.
6 ABIATHAR ABIATHAR
with reference to the death of Korah, as related in added in xxiii. 6, that when he did so " he came
Num. xvi. but according to Fiirst and Gesenius, down with an ephod in his hand," and was thus
;
father of gathering, i. e. the gatherer ; compare enabled to inquire of the Lord for David (1 Sam.
xxiii. 9, xxx. 7; 2 Sam. ii. 1, v. 19, &c). The
?PS, Asaph, 1 Chr. vi. 39). He was the head fact of David having been the unwilling cause of
of one of the families of the Korhites (a house of
the death of all Abiathar"s kindred, coupled with
the Kohathites), but his precise genealogy is some- his gratitude
to his father Ahimelech for his kind-
what uncertain. In Ex. vi. 24, he appears at first ness to him, made him a firm and steadfast friend
sight to be represented as one of the sons of Korah,
to Abiathar all his life. Abiathar on his part was
and as the brother of Assir and Elkanah. But in firmly attached to David. He adhered to him in
1 Chr. vi. he appears as the son of Elkanah, the son
his wanderings while pursued by Saul; he was
of Assir, the son of Korah. The natural inference with him while he reigned in Hebron
(2 Sam. ii.
from this would be that in Ex. vi. 24 the expres-
1-3), the city of the house of Aaron (Josh. xxi.
sion "the sons of Korah" merely means the fam-
10-13); he carried the ark before him when David
ilies into which the house of the Korhites was sub-
brought it up to Jerusalem (1 Chr. xv. 11 ; IK.
divided. But if so, the verse in Exodus must be ii.
20); he continued faithful to him in Absalom's
a later insertion than the time of Moses, as in rebellion
(2 Sam. xv. 24, 29, 35, 36, xvii. 15-17,
Moses' lifetime the great-grandson of Korah could
xix. 11); and "was afflicted in all wherein David
not have been the head of a family. And it is re- was afflicted." He was also one of David's chief
markable that the verse is quite out of its place, counsellors Whej*, however,
(1 Chr. xxvii. 34).
and appears improperly to separate ver. 25 and ver. Adonijah set himself up for David's successor on
23, which both relate to the house of Aaron. If,
the throne in opposition to Solomon, Abiathar,
however, this inference is not correct, then the Ebi-
either persuaded by Joab, or in rivalry to Zadok,
asaph of 1 Chr. vi. is a different person from the or under some influence which cannot
now be dis-
Abiasaph of Ex. vi., namely, his great-nephew. covered, sided with him, and was one of his chief
But this does not seem probable. It appears from partisans, while Zadok was on Solomon's side.
1 Chr. ix. 19, that that branch of the descendants
For this Abiathar was banished to his native vil-
of Abiasaph of which Shallum was chief were por-
lage, Anathoth, in the tribe of Benjamin (Josh. xxi.
ters, " keepers of the gates of the tabernacle " ; and
18), and narrowly escaped with his life, which was
from ver. 31 that Mattithiah, " the first-born of spared by Solomon only on the strength of his long
Shallum the Korahite, had the set office over the and faithful service to David his father. He was
things that were made in the pans," apparently in
no longer permitted to perform the functions or
the time of David. From Neh. xii. 25 we learn enjoy the prerogatives of the higii-priesthood. For
that Abiasaph's family was not extinct in the days
we are distinctly told that " Solomon thrust out
of Nehemiah for the family of Meshullam (which Abiathar from being priest to the Lord; " and that
;
is the same as Shallum), with Talmon and Akkub, " Zadok the priest did the king put in the room of
still filled the office of porters, " keeping the ward
Abiathar" (1 K. ii. 27, 35). So that it is difficult
at the threshold of the gate." Other remarkable to understand the assertion in 1 K. iv.
4, that in
descendants of Abiasaph, according to the text of Solomon's reign " Zadok and Abiathar were the
1 Chr. vi. 33-37, were Samuel the prophet and
priests; " and still more difficult in connection with
Elkanah his father (1 Sam. i. 1), and Heman the ver.
2, which tells us that "Azariah the son of
singer; but Ebiasaph seems to be improperly in-
Zadok " was "the priest: " a declaration confirmed
serted in ver. 37.° The possessions of those Ko- by 1 Chr. vi. 10. It is probable that Abiathar did
hathites who were not descended from Aaron, con-
not long survive David. He is not mentioned
sisting of ten cities, lay in the tribe of Ephraim,
again, and he must have been far advanced in years
the half-tribe of Manasseh, and the tribe of Dan
at Solomon's accession to the throne.
(Josh. xxi. 20-26; 1 Chr. vi. 61). The family of There are one or two other difficulties connected
Elkanah the Kohathite resided in Mount Ephraim with
Abiathar, to which a brief reference must be
(1 Sam. i. 1). A. C. H. made before we conclude this article. (1.) In 2
ABFATHAR (Tp$3£ = 'Afaddap : Abi- Sam. viii. 17, and in the duplicate passage 1 Chr.
xviii. 16, and in 1 Chr. xxiv. 3, 6, 31, we have
athar ; but the version of Santes Pagninus has Ebi-
Ahimelech substituted for Abiathar, and Ahimelech
athar, according to the Hebrew points. In Mark ii.
the son of Abiathar, instead of Abiathar the son of
26, it is 'A&iddap. According to Simonis, the name
Ahimelech. Whereas in 2 Sam. xx. 25, and in every
means " (cujus) pater mperstes mansit, mortua
other passage in the O. T., we are uniformly told
scil. matre; " but according to Fiirst and Gese-
that it was Abiathar who was priest with Zadok
nius. father of excellence, or abundance). Abia-
in David's reign, and that he was the son of Ahim-
thar was that one of all the sons of Ahimelech the
elech, and that Ahimelech was the son of Ahitub.
high -priest who escaped the slaughter inflicted
The difficulty is increased by finding Abiathar
upon his father's house by Saul, at the instigation
spoken of as the high-priest in whose time David
of Doeg the Edomite (see title to Ps. Hi., and the
ate the shew-bread, in Mark ii. 26. (See Alford,
psalm itself), in revenge for his having inquired of
ad he.) However, the evidence in favor of David's
the Lord for David, and given him the shew-bread
friend being Abiathar the son of Ahimelech pre-
to eat, and the sword of Goliath the Philistine, as
so strongly, and the impossibility of any
is related in 1 Sam. xxii. We are there told that ponderates
rational reconciliation is so clear, that one can only
when Doeg slew in Nob on ihat day fourscore and
suppose, with Procopius of Gaza, that the error
five persons that did wear a linen ephod, " one of
was a clerical one originally, and was propagated
the sons of Ahimelech the son of Ahitub, named
from one passage to another. 6 The mention of Abi-
Abiathar, escaped and fled after David; " and it is
athar by our I^)rd, in Mark ii. 26, might perhaps
a See The Genealogies of our Lord and Saviour be accounted for, if Abiathar was the person who
Jesus C/irisl, by Lord Arthur Hervey, p. 210, and p.
211. note. b * See addition, infra. II.
ABIATHAR ABIEZER 7
persuaded his father to allow David to have the time of this transaction with David, and that the
bread, and if, as is probable, the loaves were Abi- citation in Mark follows a tradition of that fact,
athar's (Lev. xxiv. !)), and given by him with his not transmitted in the O. T. history. We have
own hand to David. It may also be remarked other instances of a similar recognition of events
that our Lord doubtless spoke of Abiathar as or opinions not recorded in the 0. T., to which the
N. T. writers refer as apparently well known among
177371, " the priest," the designation applied to
the Jews; such as e. g. Abraham's first call in Ur
Ahimelech throughout 1 Sam. xxi., and equally of the Chaldees (Acts vii. 3, compared with Gen.
applicable to Abiathar. The expression apx^e- xii. 1); the tomb of the patriarchs at Sychem,
pevs is the Greek translation of our Lord's words. (Acts vii. 10); the giving of the law by the agency
(2.) Another difficulty concerning Abiathar is to of angels (Gal. iii. ID, Heb. ii. 2), and others.
determine his position relatively to Zadok, and to Lange's note on Mark ii. 20 (Blbelwerk, ii. 28),
accoimt for the double high-priesthood, and for the deserves to be read. For some very just and
advancement of the line of Ithamar over that of thoughtful remarks on the proper mode of dealing
Eleazar. A theory has been invented that Abia- with such apparent contradictions of Scripture, see
thar was David's, and Zadok Saul's high-priest, Commentary on Mark (p. 53), by Dr. J. A. Alex-
but it seems to rest on noground. The facts
solid ander. H.
of the case are these: —
Ahimelech, the son of A'BIB. [Months.]
Ahitub, the son of Phinehas, the son of Eli, was
high-priest in the reign of Saul. On his death his ABFDAHand ABFDA" (SH^N [father
son Abiathar became high-priest. The first men- of knowledge, i. e. wise] : 'A/3ei5<x, ['A/3i8ct; Alex.
tion of Zadok is in 1 Chr. xii. 28, where he is de- Afitpa, A/3i8a:] Ablda), a son of Midian [and
scribed as " a young man mighty of valor," and grandson of Abraham through his wife or concubine
is said to have joined David while he reigned in
KeturahJ (Gen. xxv. 4; 1 Chi-, i. 33).
Hebron, in company with Jehoiada, "the leader of E. S. P.
the Aaronites." From this time we read, both in
the books of Samuel and Chronicles, of " Zadok and
AB'IDAN O^W [father of the judge,
Ges. ; or Ab, i. e. God, is judge, Fiirst] 'AfiiSdv, :
Abiathar the priests," Zadok being always named [Alex, twice AfietSaV-] Abldan), chief of the tribe
first. And yet we are told that Solomon on his of Benjamin at the time of the Exodus (Num. i.
accession put Zadok in the room of Abiathar. Per-
11, ii. 22, vii. 60, 65, x. 24).
haps the true state of the case was, that Abiathar
was the first, and Zadok the second priest; but A'BIEL [as a Christian name in English com-
that from the superior strength of the house of monly pronounced Abi'el] (/N'OSl [father of
Eleazar (of which Zadok was head), which en-
strength, i. e. strong] : 'AjSt^A. Abiel).
: 1. The
abled it to furnish 16 out of the 24 courses (1 Chr.
father of Kish, and consequently grandfather of
xxiv.), Zadok acquired considerable influence with
Saul (1 Sam. ix. 1), as well as of Abner, Saul's
David and that this, added to his being the heir
;
commander-in-chief (1 Sam. xiv. 51). In the gen-
of the elder line, and perhaps also to some of the
ealogy in 1 Chr. viii. 33, ix. 39, Ner is made the
passages being written after the line of Zadok were
father of Kish, and the name of Abiel is omitted,
established in the high-priesthood, led to the pre-
We
but the correct genealogy according to Samuel is :
—
cedence given him over Abiathar. have al-
ready suggested the possibility of jealousy of Zadok
being one of the motives which inclined Abiathar
to join Adonijah's faction. It is most remarkable
Kish Ner
how, first, Saul's cruel slaughter of the priests at
Nob, and then the political error of the wise Abi- Saul Abner
athar, led to the fulfillment of God's denunciation 2. One of David's 30 "mighty men" (1 Chr.
against the house of Eli, as the writer of 1 K. ii. xi. 32); called in 2 Sam. xxiii. 31, Abi-albon,. a
27 leads us to observe when he says that " Solomon name which has the same meaning. K. W. B.
thrust out Abiathar from being priest unto the
Lord, that he might fulfill the word of the Lord
ABIE'ZER
("IT^ "OS, father of help: 'Afa-
J
which He spake concerning the house of Eli in 4(ep, leQ, [Alex, in Josh., Ax««C6 P Abiezer,] :
Shiloh." See also Joseph. Ant. viii. 1, §§ 3, 4. dumus Abiezer). 1. Eldest son of Gilead, and de-
A. C. H. scendant of Machir and Manasseh, and apparently
* Some adhere to the text, without resorting to at one time the leading family of the tribe (Josh,
the supposition of a clerical error. It is deemed xvii. 2, Num. xxvi. 30, where the name is given in
possible that Ahimelech and Abiathar were heredi- the contracted form of ""ITl^N, Jeezer). In the
tary names in the family, and hence, that the
genealogies of Chronicles, Abiezer is, in the present
father and the son could have borne these names
state of the text, said to have sprung from the
respectively. It would thus be accounted for that
sister of Gilead (1 Chr. vii. 18). Originally, there-
Abiathar is called the son of Ahimelech in 1 Sam.
fore, the family was with the rest of the house of
xxii. 20, and that Ahimelech is called the son of
Gilead on the east of Jordan; but when first met
Abiathar in 2 Sam. viii. 17. The same person
with in the history, some part at least of it had
consequently could be meant in Mark ii. 2G, whether
crossed the Jordan and established itself at Ophrah,
the one name was applied to him or the other and ;
help] rod 'EaSpi in Judg. vi.; 'A/8i er] b 'ApiovS; [Comp. in Num. hi. and 1 Chr.
: ttuttip 'EaSpi :
in Judg. viii.; Alex. irar^p Afliefyt, it. rov U(pi, xxiv. 'Af$tov'-] Abiu), the second son (Num. iii.
k. Afiiefyet'- pater j'amiliw Ezri, familia Ezri). 2) of Aaron by Elisheba (Ex. vi. 23), who with his
[Joash, the lather of Gibeon, is so termed], a de- father and his elder brother Nadab and 70 elders
scendant of Abiezer, or Jeezer, the son of Gilead of Israel accompanied Moses to the summit of Sinai
(Judg. vi. 11, 24, viii. 32), and thence also called (Ex. xxiv. 1). Behig together with Nadab guilty
Jeezerite (Num. xxvi. 30). The Peshito-Syriac of offering strange fire (Lev. x. 1) to the Lord, i. e.
and Targurn both regard the first part of the word not the holy which burnt continually upon the
fire
" Abi " as an appellative, " father of," as also the altar of burnt-offering (Lev. vi. 9, 12); they were
LXX. and Vulgate. A. W. W. both consumed by fire from heaven, and Aaron and
* " Abiezrites " (A. V.) and viii.
in Judg. vi. 24, his surviving sons were forbidden to mourn for
32, stands for the collective " Abiezrite," which them. [Occurs also Ex. xxiv. 9, xxviii. 1 Num. ;
does not occur as plural hi the Hebrew. H. iii. 4, xxvi. GO, 61 1 Chr. vi. 3, xxiv. 1, 2.]
;
It. W. B.
ABIGAIL [3 syl., Heb. Abigail], (V^S^,
ABI'HUD (TfiT2t?. [whose father is Ju-
or 72P3W [father of exultation, or, whose father
dah; or, is reiwirn]: A/3iov8'- Abitid), son of Bela
rejoices]: 'Afityala'- Abigail). 1. The beautiful
and grandson of Benjamin (1 Chr. viii. 3).
wife of Nabal, a wealthy owner of goats and sheep
in Carmel. When David's messengers were slighted ABIJAH or ABI'JAM. 1. (rP2S,
by Nabal, Abigail took the blame upon herself,
D*3S, JirPSS, will of Jehovah : 'A0ia, 'Afaov,
supplied David and his followers with provisions,
and succeeded in appeasing his anger. Ten days
LXX.: 'Afiius, Joseph.: Abiam, Abia), the sun
and successor of Rehoboam on the throne of Judah
after this Nabal died, and David sent for Abigail
K. xiv. 31; 2 Chr. xii. 10). He is called Abijah
and made her his wife (1 Sam. xxv. 14, seq.), (1
By her he had a son, called Chileab hi 2 Sam. iii. in Chronicles, Abijam in Kinjfs: the latter name
being probably an error in the MSS., since the
3; but Daniel, in 1 Chr. iii. 1. For Daniel The-
LXX. have nothing corresponding to it, and their
nius proposes to read ^' ,
v"-T, suggested to him by form, 'A&iov, seems taken from Abijahn, which
the LXX. AaKovia (Then. Exey. Handb. ad foe. occurs 2 Chr. xiii. 20, 21. Indeed Gesenius says
I.
2. A sister of David, married to Jether the Ish- that some MSS. read Abijah in 1 K. xiv. 31. The
maelite, and mother, by him, of Amasa (1 Chr. ii. supposition, therefore, of Lightfoot (Harm. 0. T.
17). In 2 Sam. xvii. 25, she is described as the p. 209, Pitman's edition), that the writer in Kinus.
daughter of Nahash, sister to Zeruiah, Joab's who takes a much worse view of Abijah's character
mother, and as marrying Ithra (another form ot than we find in Chronicles, altered the last syllable
Jether) an Israelite. to avoid introducing the holy Jah into the name
The statement in Samuel that the mother of of a bad man. is unnecessary. But it is not fanci-
Amasa a was an Israelite is doubtless a transcrib- ful or absurd, for changes of the kind were not un-
er's eiTor. There could be no reason for recording usual: for example, after the Samaritan schism,
this circumstance; but the circumstance of David's the Jews altered the name of Shechem into Sychar
sister marrying a heathen Ishmaelite deserved men- (drunken), as we have it in John iv. 5; and Hosea
tion (Thenius, Exeg. Handb. Sam. 1. c). (iv. 15) changes Bethel, house of God, into Beth-
for the sons of Aaron and the Levites. He was § 10, xix. 5, § 1, xx. 7, § 1; B. J. ii. 11, § 5).
successful in battle against Jeroboam, and took the Its name probably arose from the green luxuriance
cities of Bethel, Jeshanah, and Ephrain, with their of its situation, "Abel" perhaps denoting "a
dependent villages. It is also said that his army grassy meadow." [See p. 4, a.] The name thus
consisted of 400,000 men, and Jeroboam's of 800,- derived is quite sufficient to account for the tradi-
000, of whom 500,000 fell in the action but Ken- tions of the death of Abel, which are associated
:
nicott (The Hebrew Text of Testament with the spot, and which are localized by the tomb
the Old
Considered, p. 532) shows that our MSS. are fre- called Nebi Habil, on a height above the ruins of
quently incorrect as to numbers, and gives reasons the city. The position of the city is very clearly
for reducing these to 40,000, 80,000, and 50,000, designated by the Itineraries as 18 miles from Da-
as we actually find in the Vulgate printed at Ven- mascus, and 38 (or 32) miles from Heliopolis or
ice In 1480, and in the old Latin version of Jose- Baalbec (Itin. Ant. and Tab. Pent.).
phus; while there is perhaps some reasbn to think It is impossible to fix the limits of the Abilene
that the smaller numbers were in his original Greek which is mentioned by St. Luke as the tetrarchy
text also. Nothing is said by the writer in Chron- of Lysanias. [Lysanias.] Like other districts
icles of the sins of Abijah, but we are told that of the East, it doubtless underwent many changes
after his victory he " waxed mighty, and married both of masters and of extent, before it was finally
fourteen wives," whence we may well infer that he absorbed in the province of Syria. Josephus asso-
was elated with prosperity, and like his grandfather ciates this neighborhood with the name of Lysanias
Solomon, fell, during the last two years of his life, both before and after the time referred to by the
into wickedness, as described in Kings. Both rec- evangelist. For the later notices see the passages
ords inform us that he reigned three years. His just cited. We there find " Abila of Lysanias,"
mother was called either Maachah or Michaiah, and "the tetrarchy of Lysanias," distinctly men
which are mere variations of the same name, and tioned in the reigns of Claudius and Caligula. We
in some places (1 K. xv. 2; 2 Chr. xi. 20) she is find also the phrase 'Afi'iAa. Auaaviov in Ptolemy
said to be the daughter of Absalom or Abishalom (v. 15, § 22). The natural conclusion appears to
(again the same name in one (2 Chr. xiii. 2) of I be that this was the Lysanias of St. Luke. It is
Uriel of Gibeah. But it is so common for the true that a chieftain bearing the same name is
mentioned by Josephus in the time of Antony and
word i"13, daughter, to be used in the sense of
Cleopatra, as ruling in the same neighborhood
granddaughter or descendant, that we need not (Ant. xiv. 3, § 3, xv. 4, § 1 ; B. ./. 1, 13, § 1; also
hesitate to assume that Uriel married Absalom's Dion Cass. xlix. 32): and from the close connection
daughter, and that thus Maachah was daughter of of this man's father with Lebanon and Damascus
Uriel and granddaughter of Absalom. Abijah (Ant. xiii. 16, § 3, xiv. 7, § 4; B. J. i. 9, § 2) it is
therefore was descended from David, both on his probable that Abilene was part of his territory, and
father's and mother's side. According to Ewald's that the Lysanias of St. Luke was the son or grand-
chronology the date of Abijah's accession was b. c. son of the former. Even if we assume (as many
968; Clinton places it in b. c. 959. The 18th writers too readily assume) that the tetrarch men-
year of Jeroboam coincides with the 1st and 2d of tioned in the time of Claudius and Caligula is to
Abijah. be identified, not with the Lysanias of St. Luke
2. The second son of Samuel, called Abiah hi but with the earlier Lysanias (never called tetrarch
our version ('A/3ia, LXX.). [Abia, Abiah, and never positively connected with Abila) in the
No. 3.] times of Antony and Cleopatra, there is no diffi-
must not be confounded with Abila in Peraea, and in the Journal of Sacred Literature for July,
other Syrian cities of the same name, but was sit- 1853, and especially his Damascus, i. 201-273;
uated on the eastern slope of Antilibanus, in a dis- and Robinson, Later Bib. Res. pp. 478-484.)
trict fertilized by the river Barada. It is distinctly J. S. H.
10 ABIiyiAEL ABISEI
ABIMAEL C?SD\a$ [father of MatX]: should be said to have died by a woman, he bid his
armor-bearer slay him. Thus God avenged the
'Afii/xatA; [Alex. Afit/AeriA:] Abimael), a descend- murder of his brethren, and fulfilled the curse of
ant of Joktan (Gen. x. 28 1 Chr. i. 22), and prob- Jotham.
;
ably [as tbe name implies] the progenitor of an 4. ['Axi/ueAex; FA. A X et^^X^ Aid.
Arab tribe. Bochart (Ptialeg, ii. 24) conjectures cAex'- Achimelech.] Son of Abiathar the high-
A^-
that his name is preserved in that of MaAi, a place priest in the time of David
(1 Chr. xviii. 16),
in Arabia Aromatifera, mentioned by Theophrastus called Ahimelech in 2 Sam. viii. 17.
[Ahime-
(Hist. Plant, ix. 4), and thinks that the Malitae lech.] R. W. B.
are the same as Ptolemy's Manitae (vi. 7, p. 154), * The reading Ahimelech in 1 Chr. is supported
and that they were a people of the Minaeans (for by about 12 MSS., and by the principal ancient
whom see Arabia). The name in Arabic would versions, including the Syriac and Chaldee as well
as the Sept. and Vulgate. See De Rossi, Var.
probably be written JoLo «jf. E. S. P. Led. iv. 182. A.
* 5. Ps. xxxiv. title. [Ahimelech 2.] A.
ABIMELECH [ Hebrew Abimelech ]
ABIN'ADAB (^^SM [a father noble or
(Tf^tt'ON, father of the king, or father-king : princely]: 'A/Aivatidfi; [Comp. often 'Af3ivaSdf3:]
'
account is given of Abraham's conduct on this oc- times 'Afitvoe/x:] Abinvem), the father of Barak
casion, to that of his behavior towards Pharaoh (Judg. iv. 6, 12; v. R. W. B.
1, 12).
[Abraham].
2. Another king of Gerar in the time of Isaac,
ABIRAM (nn"OSi [father exalted]: 'A£-
of whom a similar narrative isapdiv Abiron). 1. A Reubenite, son of Eliab,
recorded in relation '•
to Rebekah (Gen. xxvi. 1, seq.). wiio with Dathan and On, men of the same tribe,
3. Son of the judge Gideon by his Shechemite and Korah a Levite, organized a conspiracy against
concubine (Judg. viii. 31). After his father's death Moses and Aaron (Num. xvi.). [For details, see
he murdered all his brethren, 70 in number, with Korah.]
the exception of Jotham, the youngest, who con- 2. ['Afitpc&V, Alex. Afieipaiv: Abiram.] Eld-
cealed himself; and he then persuaded the She- est son of Hiel, the Bethelite, who died when his
chemites, through the influence of his mother's father laid the foundations of Jericho (1 K. xvi.
brethren, to elect him king. It is evident from 34), and thus accomplished the first part of the
this narrative that Shechem now became an inde- curse of Joshua (Josh. vi. 26). R. W. B.
pendent state, and threw
off the yoke of the con- ABFRON ('Afictpcei/ • Abiron). Abiram
quering (Ewald, Gesch. ii. 444).
Israelites When (Ecclus. xlv. 18). W. A. W.
Jotham heard that Abimelech was made king, he ABISE'I (Abisei). Abishua, the son of
addressed to the Shechemites his fable of the trees Phinehas (2 Esdr. i. 2). W. A. W.
choosing a king (Judg. ix. 1, seq. ; cf. Joseph. Ant.
v. 7, § 2), which may be compared with the well- but this view is now regarded hy the hest scholars as
known fable of Menenius Agrippa (Liv. erroneous. In early English, as in Anglo-Saxon, to
ii. 32).
was in common use as an intensive prefix to verbs and
After he had reigned three years, the citizens of
verbal nouns, somewhat like be in modern English,
Shechem rebelled. He was absent at the time,
but stronger. Thus,
but he returned and quelled the insurrection.
"He to-brac the ston, and ther flowiden watris."
Shortly after he stormed and took Thebez, but was Wychffe, Ps. civ. 41.
struck on the head by a woman with the fragment " Mote wicked necke be to-broke ! "
thi
of a mill-stone a (comp. 2 Sam. xi. 21); and lest he Chaucer, Cant. Tales, 5859.
We have it in Shakespeare's " to-pinch the unclean
a * The expression used in relation to this in A. V. knight " (Merry Wives, iv. 4), and perhaps the latest
(ed. 1611), as in the Bishops' Bible, is "all to brake his example in Milton's "all to-ruffled" (Comus, 380).
scull," i. "broke completely," or "all to pieces."
e. " All " is often used to strengthen the expression, but
In many later editions " brake " has been changed to is not essential. See Boucher's Glossary, art. All,
" break," giving the false meaning " and all this in and Taylor's note the Glossary to Forshall and Mad-
:
order to break." "All to" has been explained and den's ed. of Wyeliffe's Bible Eastwood and Wright's
;
written by some as a compound adverb, " all-to " = Bible Word-Book, pp. 21, 22 and especially Corson's
;
" altogether " (see Robinson in Bibl. Sacra, vi. 608), Thesaurus of Archaic English, art. TO-. A.
ABISHAG ABNER 11
being apparently in disgrace for the slaughter of
ABTSHAG (Jtt^SN [father i. e. author
Absalom (2 Sam. xx. 0, 10). — The last act of ser-
hence said of man or wom-
»f error, misdeed, and vice which is recorded of Abishai is his timely res-
an;"] 'Afitffay'- Abisag), a beautiful Shnnammite, cue of David from the hands of a gigantic Philis-
taken into David's harem to comfort him in his tine, Ishbi-benob (2 Sam. xxi. 17). His personal
extreme old age (1 K. i. 1-4). After David's prowess on this, as on another occasion, when he
death Adonijah induced Bathsheba, the queen- fought single-handed against three hundred, won
mother, to ask Solomon to give him Abishag in for him a place as captain of the second three of
marriage; but this imprudent petition cost Adoni- David's mighty men (2 Sam. xxiii. 18 1 Chr. xi. ;
jah his life (1 K. ii. 13, seq.). [Adcxnijah.] 20). But in all probability this act of daring was
P. W. B. achieved while he was the companion of David's
ABISHAI » [3 syl.] [and Ott^ wanderings ^2N,
as an outlaw among the Philistines.
sons of Zeruiah, David's sister, and brother to Joab ch;ih, who was the wife of Rehoboam, and mother
and Asahel (1 Chr. ii. 16). It may be owing to of Abijah (1 K. xv. 2, 10). He is called Absalom
his seniority of birth that Abishai, first of the three
brothers, appears as the devoted follower of David.
(Dl^rnS) in 2 Chr. xi. 20, 21. This person
Long before Joab appears on the stage Abishai had must be David's son (see LXX., 2 Sam. xiv. 27).
attached himself to the fortunes of David. He was The daughter of Absalom was doubtless called Ma-
his companion in the desperate night expedition to achah after her grandmother (2 Sam. iii. 3).
the camp of Saul, and would at once have avenged
ABISHU'A (V *W*2$ : fAjSeffoW, 'A,8«r-
and terminated his uncle's quarrel by stabbing the
ove,\ 'Afiiffov'- According to Simonis,
Abisue.
sleeping king with his own spear. But David in-
patris sahii ; i. q. SaxrnraTpos, and ~2.unra.Tpos.
dignantly restrained him, and the adventurous war-
According to Fiirst, father or lord of happiness.
riors left the camp as stealthily as they had come,
Pater salutis, Gesen.). 1. Son of Bela, of the
carrying with them Saul's spear and the cruse of
tribe ©f Benjamin (1 Chr. viii. 4).
water which stood at his head (1 Sam. xxvi. G-9).
2. Son of Phinehas, the son of Eleazar, and the
During David's outlaw life among the Philistines,
father of Bukki, hi the genealogy of the high-
Abishai was probably by his side, though nothing
priests (1 Chr. vi. 4,5,50,51; Ezr. vii. 4, 5).
more is heard of him till he appears with Joab and
According to Josephus {Ant. he execu-viii. 1, § 3)
Asahel in hot pursuit of Abner, who was beaten in
ted the office of high-priest after his father Phine-
the bloody fight by the pool of Gibeon. Asahel
has, and was succeeded by Eli; his descendants,
fell by Abner' s hand: at sunset the survivors re-
till Zadok, falling into the rank of private persons
turned, buried their brother by night in the sepul-
(iSiaiTevo-avTes)- His name is corrupted into
chre of their father at Bethlehem, and with revenge
'Icearinos- Nothing is known of him.
in their hearts inarched on to Hebron by break of
day
A. C. H.
(2 Sam. ii. 18, 24, 32). In the prosecution
of their vengeance, though Joab's hand struck the AB'ISHTJR ("fl2J'»3M [father of the wall
deadly blow, Abishai was associated with him in or upright] 'A/3«roup: Abisur), son of Shammai
the treachery, and " Joab and Abishai killed Ab- (1 Chr. ii. 28).
ner " (2 Sam. iii. 30). [Abner.] In the war AB'ISUM ('Afiurai; Alex. A/3icrovai. [Aid. ;
against Hanun, undertaken by David as a punish-
'A/Hio-ov/a] Abisue). Abishua, the son of Phin-
:
the siege (2 Sam. x. 10, 14; 1 Chr. xix. 11, 15). (2 Sam. iii. 4; 1 Chr. iii. 3).
The defeat of the Edomites in the valley of salt
(1 Chr. xviii. 12), which brought them to a state
ABITUB
[father of goodness] U^DN
'AfiiTcoA; [Alex. A/3n-<u>/3] Abitub), son of Shaha- :
of vassalage, was due to Abishai, acting perhaps
raim by Hushim (1 Chr. viii. 11).
under the immediate orders of the king (see 2 Sam.
viii. 13), or of Joab (Ps. lx. title). On the out- ABI'UD ('AjSiovS: Abivd). Descendant of
break of Absalom s rebellion and the consequent Zorobabel, in the genealogy of Jesus Christ (Matt.
flight of David, Abishai remained true to the king; i. 13). Lord A. Hervey identities him with Ho-
and the old warrior showed a gleam of his ancient daiah (1 Chr. iii. 24) and JuDA (Luke iii. 26),
spirit, as fierce and camp of and supposes him to have been the grandson of
relentless as in the
Saul, when he avenge the taunts of Zerubbabel through his daughter Shelomith.
offered to
Shimei, and urged his subsequent execution (2 W. A. W.
Sam. xvi. 9; xix. 21). —
In the battle in the wood ABLUTION.
[Puiufi cation.]
of Ephraim Abishai commanded a third part of the
armv Sam.
ABNER
("02K, once ~1.^2_S, father of
(2 xviii. 2, 5, 12), and in the absence
of Amasa was summoned to assemble the troops in
light A&evvi)p [Alex, often Afievnp or A&aivrip]
: j
:
mediately after the disastrous battle of Mount Gil- xxxv. 19), but it is also plain that Abner only killed
boa, 1 >a\ id was proclaimed king of Judah in Hebron, the youth to save his own life.
'
This murder caused
the old capital of that tribe, but that the rest of the greatest sorrow and indignation to David; but
I
the country was altogether in the hands of the as the assassins were too powerful to be punished,
Philistines, and that five years passed before any he contented himself with showing every public to-
native prince ventured to oppose bis claims to then- ken of respect to Abner's memory, by following the
power. During that time the Israelites were grad- bier and pouring forth a simple dirge oxer the
ually recovering (heir territory, and at length Ab- slain, which is thus translated by Ewald (Dichltsr
ner proclaimed the weak and unfortunate Ishbo- (As Alien Btmdea, i. 99s
sheth, Saul's son, as king of Israel in Mahanaim, As a villain dies, ought Aimer to die ?
beyond Jordan — at first no doubt as a place of Thy hands, not fettered ;
security against the Philistines, though all serious Tin feet, not bound with chains ;
apprehension of danger from them must have soon As one falls before the malicious, fellest thou !
passed away —
and Ishbosheth was generally recog- — i. e. " Thou didst not fall as a prisoner taken in
nized except by Judah. This view of the order of battle, with hands and feet fettered, but by secret
events necessary to reconcile 2 Sam. ii. 10, where
is assassination, such as a villain meets at the
hands
Ishbosheth is said to have reigned over Israel for of villains" (2 Sam. iii. 33, 34). See also Lowth,
two which we read that Da- Lectures on Hebrew Poetry, xxii.
years, with ver. 11, in (J. E. I,, C.
vid was king of Judah for seven; and it is con- 2. Father of Jaasiel, chief of the Henjamites in
finned l>; vers. S, 6, 7, in which David's message David's reign (1 Chr. xxvii. 21): probably the same
of thanks to the men of Jabesh-gilead for burying as Ai'.nkk 1. \Y. A. W.
Saul and his suns implies that, no prince (if Saul's
house had as yet claimed the throne, but thai Da-
ABOMINATION OF DESOLATION
(to /38f\uyfia rrjs ipr]fi<bffeajs, Matt. xxiv. 15),
vid hoped that his title would be soon acknowl-
mentioned by our Saviour as a sign of the ap-
edged by all Israel; while the exhortation " to be
proaching destruction of Jerusalem, with reference
valiant " probably refers to the struggle with the
to Dan. ix. 27, xi. 31, xii. 11. The Hebrew
Philistines, who placed the only apparent impedi-
ment in the way of his recognition. War soon words in these passages are respectively, E^^jvir,
broke out between the two rival kings, and a "very
sore battle" was fought at Gibeon between the men
dlQttft?, DOfcfo VWU,
and UI2W V^K-; :
of Israel under Aimer, and the men of Judah under the LXX. translate the first word uniformly /35j'-
Joab, son of Zeruiah, David's sister (1 Chr. ii. 1G). Auy/xa, and the second iprifxwfftosv (ix- 27) and
When the army of Ishbosheth was defeated, Joab's fpriH&fffws (xi. 31, xii. 11): many MSS. however
voungest brother Asahel, who is said to have been have T)<pavifffitvov in xi. 31. The meaning of the
•'as light of foot aa a wild roe." pursued Aimer.
first of these words is clear: V^i^' expresses any
and in spite of warning refused to leave him, so
religions impurity, and in the plural number espe-
that Abner in self-defence was forced to kill him.
cially idols, Suidas defines /3S(\uyfj.a as used by
After this the war continued, success inclining more
the Jews irav tlBcuKoy k<x\ irav inrvwoofia av-
and more to the side of David, till at last the im-
Opwirov. It is important to observe that the ex-
prudence of Ishbosheth deprived him of the counsels
pression is not used of idolatry in the abstract, but
and generalship of the hero, who was in truth the
adopted by the Jews themselves (2 K.
only support of his tottering throne. Abner had of idolatry
xxi. 2-7, xxiii. 13). Hence we must look for the
married Kizpah, Saul's concubine, and this, accord-
fulfillment of the prophecy in some act of apostasy
ing to the views of Oriental courts, might be so
on their part; and so the Jews themselves appear
interpreted as to imply a design upon the throne.
to have understood it, according to the traditional
Thus we read of a certain Armais, who, while left
feeling referred to by Josephus (B. ./. iv. fi, § 3),
viceroy of Egypt in the absence of the king his
that the temple would be destroyed iav x e *P es
brother, '-used violence to the queen and concu-
oiKe'iai irpoixtavaxri rb re/xevos. W ith regard to
bines, and put on the diadem, and set up to oppose
his brother " (Manetho, quoted by Joseph, c. ApUM, the second word CT2t£?, which has been variously
i. 15). f. also 2 Sam. xvi. 21, XX. 3, 1 K. ii. 13- the desoltUor, that /i*/<m-
(
translated desolation, of of
25, and the case of the Pseudo-Smerdis, Herod, iii.
isketh (Marginal transl. xi. 31, xii. 11), it is a par-
68. [Absalom; Adonijah.] Rightly or wrongly, ticiple used substantively and placed in immediate
Ishbosheth so understood it, though Abner might apposition with the previous noun, qualifying it
seem to have given sufficient proof of his loyalty, and with an adjective sense astonishing, horribh (< iesen.
he even ventured to reproach him with it. Abner,
s. v. EDI?), and thus the whole expression signi-
incensed at his ingratitude, after an indignant reply,
opened negotiations with David, by whom lie was fies a horrible abomination. What the olject re-
most favorably received at Hebron. He then un- ferred to was, is a matter of doubt: it should be
dertook to procure his recognition throughout Is- observed, however, that in the passages in Daniel
rael; but after leaving his court for the purpose was the setting up of the abomination was to be conse-
enticed back by Joab, and treacherously murdered quent upon the cessation of the sacrifice. The
by him and his brother Abishai, at the gate of the Jews considered the prophecy as fulfilled in the
city, partly no doubt, as Joab showed afterwards in profanation of the Temple under Antiochus Epiph-
the ease of AMASA, from fear lest so distinguished anes, when the Israelites themselves erected an
a convert to their cause should gain too high a place idolatrous altar (I3w(x6s, Joseph. Ant. xii. 5, § 4)
in David's favor (Joseph. Ant. vii. I, § 5), but os- upon the sacred altar, and offered sacrifice thereon:
tensibly in retaliation for the death of Asahel. For this altar is described as pStKvyfxa ttjs iprifubaews
ABRAHAM ABRAHAM 13
(1 Mace. i. 54, vi. 7). The prophecy, however,
daean race, disdaining the settled life of the more
re-
ferred ultimately (as Josephus himself perceived, luxurious Canaanites, and fit to be hired by plun-
Ant. x. 11, § 7) to the destruction of Jerusalem by der as a protector against the invaders of the North
the Romans, and consequently the /3b~f\vy/Aa must (see Gen. xiv. 21-23). Nor is it unlikely, though
describesome occurrence connected with that event. we have no historical evidence of it, that his pas-
But it not easy to find one which meets all the sage into Canaan may have been a sign or a cause
is
requirements of the case: the introduction of the of a greater migration from Haran, and that he
Roman standards into the Temple would not be a may have been looked upon (e. y. by Abimelech,
fSSeAvy/jLa, properly speaking, unless it could be Gen. 22-32) as one who, from his position as
xxi.
shown that the Jews themselves participated in the well as his high character, would be able to guide
worship of them; moreover, this event, as well as such a migration for evil or for good (Ewald, Gesch.
several others which have been proposed, such as i. 409-413).
the erection of the statue of Hadrian, tail in regard The traditions which Josephus adds to the Scrip-
to the time of their occurrence, being subsequent to tural narrative, are merely such as, after his man-
the destruction of the city. It appears most prob- ner and in accordance with the aim of his writings,
able that the profanities of the Zealots constituted exalt the knowledge and wisdom of Abraham, mak-
the abomination which was the sign of impending ing him the teacher of monotheism to the Chal-
ruin." (Joseph. B. J. iv. 3, § 7.) W. L. B. deans, and of astronomy and mathematics to the
Egyptians. He quotes however Nicolaus of Da-
A'BRAHAM (Cnn^S. father of a multi-
mascus,'' as ascribing to him the conquest and gov-
tude :
'Afipadfi : Abraham : originally ABRAM, ernment of Damascus on his way to Canaan, and
D~QS, father of elevation : "APpa/u.: Abram), stating that the tradition of his habitation was still
the son of Terah, and brother of Nahor and Haran preserved there (Joseph. Ant. i. c. 7, § 2; see Gen.
and the progenitor, not only of the Hebrew nation, xv. 2).
but of several cognate tribes. His history is re- The Arab traditions are partly ante-Mohamme-
corded to us with much detail in Scripture, as the dan, relating mainly to the Kaabah (or sacred
very type of a true patriarchal life a life, that is, ;
house) of Mecca, which Abraham and his son " Is-
in which all authority is paternal, derived ulti- mail " are said to have rebuilt for the fourth time
mately from God the Father of all, and religion, over the sacred black stone. But in great meas-
imperfect as yet in revelation and ritual, is based ure they are taken from the Koran, which has it-
entirely on that same Fatherly relation of God to self borrowed from the O. T. and from the Rab-
man. The natural tendency of such a religion is binical traditions. Of the latter the most remark-
to the worship of tutelary gods of the family or of able is the story of his having destroyed the idols
the tribe; traces of such a tendency on the part of (see Jud. v. 0-8) which Terah not only woi'shipped
the patriarchs are found in the Scriptural History (as declared in Josh. xxiv. 2), but also manufac-
itself; and the declaration of God to Moses (in Ex. tured, and having been east by Nimrod into a fiery
vi. 3) plainly teaches that the full sense of the unity furnace, which turned into a pleasant meadow.
and eternity of Jehovah was not yet unfolded to The legend is generally traced to the word Ur
them. But yet the revelation of the Lord, as the ("ft""), Abraham's birth-place, which has also the
" Almighty God " (Gen. xvii. 1, xxviii. 3, xxxv.
sense of "light" or "fire." But the name of
•
11), and " the Judge of all the earth " (Gen. xviii.
Abraham appears to be commonly remembered in
25), the knowledge of His intercourse with kings
tradition through a very large portion of Asia, and
of other tribes (Gen. xx. 3-7), and His judgment
the title " el-Khalil," "the Friend" (of God) (see
on Sodom and Gomorrah (to say nothing of the 2 Chr. xx. 7; Is. xli. 8; Jam. ii. 23) is that by
promise which extended to "all nations") must
which he is usually spoken of by the Arabs.
. have raised the patriarchal religion far above this The Scriptural history of Abraham is divided
narrow idea of God, and given it the germs, at least,
into various periods, by the various and progressive
of future exaltation. The character of Abraham is
revelations of God, which he received —
that which is formed by such a religion, and by the
(1.) With his father Terah, his wife Sarai, and
influence of a nomad pastoral life ; free, simple, and
nephew Lot, Abram left Ur for Haran (Charran),
manly; full of hospitality and family affection;
in obedience to a call of God (alluded to in Acts vii.
truthful to all such as were bound to hiin by their 2-4). Haran, apparently the eldest brother —
since
ties, though not untainted with Eastern craft to
Nahor, and probably also Abram, c married his
those considered as aliens ready for war, but not a
;
daughter —
was dead already; and Nahor remained
professed warrior, or one who lived by plunder free ;
behind (Gen. xi. 31). In Haran Terah died; and
and childlike in religion, and gradually educated Abram, now the head of the family, received a
by God's hand to a continually deepening sense of second call, and with it the promise.'' His promise
its all-absorbing claims. It stands remarkably
contrasted with those of Isaac and Jacob. b Nicolaus was a contemporary and favorite of Herod
The Scriptural history of Abraham is mainly the Great and Augustus. The quotation is probably
limited, as usual, to the evolution of the Great Cov- from an Universal History, said to hive contained 114
enant in his life; it^is the history of. the man him- books.
c « Isoah '• (in Gen. xi. 29) is generally supposed to
self rather than of the external events of his life;
be the same person as Sarai. That Abram calls her
and. except in one or two instances (Gen. xii. 10-
his '' sister " is not conclusive against it for see. xiv. ;
20, xiv., xx., xxi. 22-34) it does not refer to his re-
16, where Lot is called his
ct
brother."
lation with the rest of the world. To them he may d It is expressly stated in the Acts (vii. 4) that
only have appeared as a chief of the hardier Chal- Abram quitted Haran after his father's death. This
is supposed to be inconsistent with the statements that
« * Lange's note (Bibelwerk, i. 342), especially as Terah was 70 years old at the birth of Abram (Gen.
enlarged by Dr. Schaft (Com. on Matt. p. 424), enu- xi. 26) that he died at the age of 205 (Gen. xi. 32
;
merates the principal explanations of this difficult ex- and that Abram was 75 years old when he left ll.nan :
of the earth be blessed" (Gen. xii. 2). it), preserved and sanctioned by Moses. The inva-
Abram appears to have entered Canaan, as Jao ih sion was clearly another northern immigration or
afterwards did, along the valley of the Jabbok; for foray, for the chiefs or kings were of Shinar (Baby-
he crossed at once into the rich plain of Moreh, Ionia), Ellasar (Assyria?), Elam (Persia), &C.; that
near Siehem, and under Ebal and Gerizim. There, it was not the first, is evident from the vassalage
in one of the most fertile spots of the land, he re- of the kings of the cities of the plain and it ex-
;
ceived the first distinct promise of his future inher- tended (see Gen. xiv. 5-7) far to the south over a
itance (Gen. xii. 7), and built his first altar to wide tract of country. Abram appears here as the
God " The Canaanite " (it is noticed) " was then head of a small confederacy of chief's, powerful
in the land,'' and probably would view the strangers enough to venture on a long pursuit to the head of
of the warlike north with no friendly eyes. Ac- the valley of the Jordan, to attack with sin >
cordingly Abram made his second resting-place in large force, and not only to rescue Lot, but to roll
the strong mountain country, the key of the various back for a time the stream of northern immigra-
passes, between Bethel and Ai. There he woidd tion. His high position is seen in the gratitude
dwell securely, till famine drove him into the richer of the people, and the dignity with wdiich,he refuses
and more cultivated land of Egypt. the character of a hireling; that it did not elate
That his history is no ideal or heroic legend, is him above measure, is evident from his reverecce
very clearly shown, not merely by the record of his to Melehizedek, in whom he recognized one whose
deceit as to Sarai, practiced in Egypt and repeated call was equal and consecrated rank superior to his
afterwards, but much more by the clear description own [Melchizkdkk].
of its utter failure, and the humiliating position in (II.) The second period of Abram's life is marked
which it placed him in comparison with l'haraoh, by the fresh revelation, which, without further
and still more with Abimelech. That he should unfolding the spiritual promise, completes the tem-
have felt afraid of such a civilized and imposing poral one. already in course of fulfillment. It first
power as Egypt even at that time evidently was. announced to him that a child of his own should
is consistent enough with the Arab nature as it is inherit the promise, and that his seed should be as
now; that he shoidd have sought to guard himself the " stars of heaven." This promise, unlike the
by deceit, especially of that kind which is true in other, appeared at his age contrary to nature, and
word and false in effect, is unfortunately not at all therefore it is on this occasion that his faith is
incompatible with a generally religious character: specially noted, as accepted and "counted for right-
but that such a story should have been framed in eousness." Accordingly, he now passed into a new-
an ideal description of a saint or hero is inconceiv- position, for not only is a fuller revelation given as
able. to the captivity of his seed in Egypt, the time of
The period of his stay in Egypt is not recorded, their deliverance, and their conquest of the land,
but it is from this time that his wealth and power " when the iniquity of the Amorites was full." but
appear to have begun (Gen. xiii. 2). If the domin- after his solemn burnt-offering the visible appear-
ion of the Ilyksos in Memphis is to be referred to ance of God in fire is vouchsafed to him as a sign,
this epoch, as seems not improbable [Egypt], then, and he enter* into covenant with the Lord (Gen.
since they were akin to the Hebrews, it is not im- xv. 18). This covenant, like the earlier one with
possible that Abram may have taken part in their Noah (Gen. ix. 9-17), is one of free promise from
war of conquest, and so have had another recom- God, faith only in that promise being required from
mendation to the favor of Pharaoh. man.
On his return, the very fact of this growing The immediate consequence was the taking of
wealth and importance caused the separation of Lot Hagar, Sarai's maid, to be a concubine of Abram
and his portion of the tribe from Abram. Lot's as a means for the fulfillment of the promise of
i
departure to the rich country of Sodom implied a seed), and the conception of Ishmael.
wish to quit the nomadic life and settle at once; (III.) For fourteen years after, no more is re-
Abram, on the contrary, was content still to •• dwell corded of Abram, who seems during all that period
in tents" and wait for the promised time (Heb. to have dwelt at Mamre. After that time, in
xi. 9). Probably till now he had looked on Lot as Abram's 99th year, the last step in the revelation
his heir, and his separation from him was a Prov- of the promise is made, by the declaration that it
idential preparation for the future. From this time should be given to a son of Sarai; and at the same
he took up his third resting-place at Mamre, or time the temporal and spiritual elements are dis-
Hebron, the future capital of Judah, situated in tinguished Ishmael can share only the one, Isaac
;
the direct line of communication with Egypt, and is to enjoy the other. The covenant, which before
opening down to the wilderness and pasture land was only for temporal inheritance (Gen. xv. 18), is
of Beersheba. This very position, so different from now made "everlasting," and sealed by circum-
the mountain-fastness of Ai, marks the change in cision. This' new state is marked by the change
the numbers and powers of his tribe. of Abram's name to "Abraham," and Sarai's to
The history of his attack on Chedorlaomer, which " Sarah," b and it was one of far greater acquaint-
from Haran in his father's lifetime. Various explan- a '0 jrepaTrjs, LXX. If this sense of the word be
ations have been given of this difficulty ;the most taken, it strengthens the supposition noticed. In any
probable is, that the statement in Gen. xi. 26, that case, the name is that applied to the Israelites by for-
Terah was 70 years old when he begat his three chil- eigners, or used by them of themselves only in speak-
dren, applies only to the oldest, Haran, and that the ing to foreigners see Hebrew.
:
Strangely unworthy of this exalted position as faith which our Lord refers, that God had
to
the "Friend" and intercessor with God, is the promised to be the " God of Isaac " (Gen. xvii. 19),
repetition of the falsehood as to Sarah in the land and that he was not " a God of the dead, but of
It was the first time the living." *
of the Philistines (Gen. xx.).
he had come in contact with that tribe or collection remarkable that, in the blessing given to
It is
of tribes, which stretched along the coast plmost to him now, the original spiritual promise is repeated
the borders of Egypt; a race apparently of lords for the first time since his earliest call, and in the
ruling over a conquered population, and another same words then used. But the promise that " in
example of that series of immigrations which ap- his seed all nations should be blessed " would be
pear to have taken place at this time. It seems, now understood very differently, and lelt to be far
from Abraham's excuse for his deceit on this occa- above the temporal promise, in which, perhaps, at
sion, as if there had 'been the idea in his mind that first it seemed to be absorbed. It can hardly be
all arms may be used against unbelievers, who, it wrong to refer preeminently to this epoch the de-
is assumed, have no "fear of God," or sense of claration, that Abraham " saw the day of Christ
tight. If so, the rebuke of Abimelech, by its dig- and was glad " (John viii. 56).
nity and its clear recognition of a God of justice, The history of Abraham is now all but over,
must have put him to manifest shame, and taught though his life was prolonged for nearly 50 years.
him that others also were servants of the Lord. The only other incidents are the death and burial
This period again, like that of the sojourn in of Sarah, the marriage of Isaac with Kebekah, and
Egypt, was one of growth in power and wealth, as that of Abraham with Keturah.
the respect of Abimelech and his alarm for the The deathof Sarah took place at Kirjath Arba,
future, so natural in the chief of a race of conquer- i. Hebron, so that Abraham must have returned
e.
ing invaders, very clearly shows. Abram's settle- from Beersheba to his old and more peacefid home.
ment at Beersheba, on the borders of the desert, In the history of her burial, the most notable
near the Amalekite plunderers, shows both that he points are the respect, paid to the power and char-
needed room, and was able to protect himself and acter of Abraham, as a mighty prince, and the
his flocks. exceeding modesty and courtesy of his demeanor.
The and It is sufficiently striking that the only inheritance
birth of Isaac crowns his happiness,
fulfills the first and the ex- of his family in the land of promise should be a
great promise of God ;
pulsion of Ishmael, painful as it was to him, and tomb. The sepulchral cave of Machpelah is now
vindictive as it seems to have been on Sarah's part, said to be concealed under the Mosque of Hebron
was yet a step in the education which was to teach (see Stanley, S. cf- P. .p. 101). [Hebron.]
him to give up all for the one great object. The The marriage of Isaac, so far as Abraham is
symbolical meaning of the act (drawn out in Gal. concerned, marks his utter refusal to ally his son
with the polluted and condemned blood of the Ca-
tion and meaning. Gesenius renders it " nobility," naanites.
from the same root as " Sarah " Ewald by " quarrel-
;
The marriage with Keturah is the strangest and
most unexpected event recorded in his life, Abra-
some " (from the root mtI7. in sense of " to fight ").
ham having long ago been spoken of as an old man ;
The name Sarah, n~lW. is certainly "princess.'' but his youth having been restored before the birth
him. and Isaac's
a Tradition still points out the supposed site of this of Isaac, must have remained to
appearance of the Lord to Abraham. About a mile
ft The scene of the sacrifice is, according to our
from Hebron is a beautiful and massive oak, which
present text, and to Josephus, the land of « Moriah,"
still bears Abraham's name. The residence of the
patriarch was called tr the oaks of Mamre,'' errone- or ns ~V)E, chosen by Jehovah, Ges. (romp, the name
ously translated in A. V. '' the plain " of Mamre (Gen. « Jehovah-Jireh "). The Samaritan Pentateuch has
xiii. 18, xviii. 1); but it is doubtful whether this is
' Moreh," iTVlO the L.XX. render the word here by
the exact spot, since the tradition in the time of Jo- ;
still called "Abraham's House." A fair was held " Moreh " also. The fact of the three days' journey
beneath it in the time of Constantine, and it remained from Beersheb.i suits Moreh better (see Stanley's S. £
to the time of Theodosius. (Robinson, ii. 81, ed. P. p. 251) other considerations seem in favor of Mo-
;
to lay him in the cave of Machpelah by the side Maachah, daughter of Talmai king of Geshur, a
of Sarah. Syrian district adjoining the in nth-eastern frontier
His descendants were (1) the Israelites; (2) a of the Holy Land near the Lake of Murom. He is
branch of the Arab tribes through Ishrnael; (3) scarcely mentioned till after David had committed
the " children of the East," of whom the Midian- the great crime which by its consequences embit-
ites were the chief; (4) perhaps (as cognate tribes), tered his old age, and then appears as the instru-
the nations of Amnion and Moab (see these names); ment by wiiorn was fulfilled God's threat against the
and through their various branches his name is sinful king, that " evil shouldbe raised up against
known all over Asia. A. B. him out of his own
house, and that Lis neighl or
* On Abraham, see particularly Ewald, Gesch. should he with his wives in the sight of the sun."
i. 409-439, 2e Aufl. Kurtz, Gesch. des A. Bundes,
; In the latter part of David's reign, polygamy bore its
2e Aufl.. i. 160-215; and Stanley, Led. on the ordinary fruits. Not only is his sin in the ease of
Bist. of the Jewish Church, Part I., Lect. i., ii. Bathsheba traceable to it, since it naturally su_
The Jewish legends respecting him have been col- the unlimited indulgence of the passions, but it also
lected by Beer, Libtr Abrahams nach Auffasswng brought about the punishment of that sin, by rais-
dec fiidisclien Sage, Leipz. 1859 ing up jealousies and conflicting claims between the
see also Eisen-
;
ABRAHAMS BOSOM. During the Ro- with a separate house and establishment (2 Sam.
man occupation of Judaea, at least, the practice of xiii. 8, xiv. 24; cf. 1 K. vii. 8, &c). Absalom
reclining on couches at meals was customary among had a sister Tamar. who was violated by her half-
the .lews. As each guest leaned upon his left brother Amnon, David's eldest sen by Ahinoam.
arm. his neighbor next below him would naturally the Jezreelitess. The king, though indignant at so
be described as lying in his bosom; and such a po- great a crime, would not punish Amnon because he
sition with respect to the master of the house was was his first-born, as we learn from the words kcu
'
one of especial honor, and only occupied by his ovk iAvirriae to Trvevfia hjxu&iv tov v'lov avrou, '
nearest friends (John i. 18, xiii. 23). oti r)yd.Tra avr6v, bri irpwrOTOKos abrov 9 v, which
To lie in t
Abraham's bosom, then, was a metaphor in use are found in the LXX. (2 Sam. xiii. 21), though
among the Jews to denote a condition after death wanting in the Hebrew. The natural avenger of
of perfect happiness and rest, and a position of such an outrage would be Tamar's lull brother Ab-
friendship and nearness to the great founder of salom, just as the sons of Jacob took bloody ven-
their race, when they shall he down on his right geance for their sister Dinah (Gen. xxxiv.). He
hand at the banquet of Paradise, "with Abraham, brooded over the wrong for two years, and then in-
and Isaac, and Jacob, in the kingdom of heaven" vited all the princes to a sheep-shearing feast at his
(Matt. viii. 11). That the expression was in use estate in Baal-hazor, possibly an old ('anaanitish
among the Jews is shown by Lightfoot {Hoc. Heb. sanctuary (as we infer from the prefix Baal), on the
in J. in-, xvi. 22), who quotes a passage from the
borders of Ephraim and Benjamin. Here he or-
Talmud (Kiddushin, fol. 72), which, according to dered his servants to murder Amnon, and then fled
bis interpretation, represents Levi as saying in
for safety to his father-in-law's court at Geshur,
reference to the death of Kabbi Judah, "to-day ha where he remained tin- three years. David was over-
dwelleth in Abraham's bosom." The future bless- whelmed by this accumulation of family sorrows,
edness of the just was represented under the figure thus completed by separation from his favorite
son, whom he thought it impossible to pardon or
of a banquet, " the banquet of the garden of Eden
or Paradise." See Schoettgen, Hoc. Heb. in Matt recall. But he was brought back by an artifice of
viii. 11. [Lazarus.] W. A. W". Joab, who sent a woman of Tekoah (afterwards
known as the birthplace of the prophet Amos to en-
A'BRAM. [Abraham.] treat the king's interference in a supposititious
I
ABRO'NAS ('A/Spai/as; [Comp. 'Ap&wvai; triumph was only half complete, and that his ex-
Aid. 'Apfiovai: Mambre]), a torrent (xel/iaopos), clusion from court interfered with the ambitious
apparently near Cilicia [Judg. ii. 24 compared with schemes which he was forming, fancying too that
25]: if so, it may possibly be the Xnhr Abraim, sufficient exertions were not made in his favor, the
or Ibrahim, the ancient Adonis, which rises in the impetuous young man sent bis servants to burn a
Lel>anon at Afka, and falls into the sea at Jebett field of corn near his own. belonging to Joab, thus
(Byblos). It has, however, been conjectured (Mo- doing as Samson had done (Judg. xv. 4). There-
ABSALOM ABSALOM 17
upon Joab, probably dreading some further outrage lem (xix. 10), and lingering there far longer than was
froui his violence, brought him to his father, from expedient, Absalom crossed the .Ionian to attack his
whom he received the kiss of reconciliation. Ab- father, who by this time had rallied round him a
salom now began at once to prepare for rebellion, considerable force, whereas had Ahithophel's advice
urged to it partly by his own restless wickedness, been followed, he would probably have been crushed
partly perhaps by the fear lest Bathsheba's child at once. A decisive battle was fought in Gilead,
should supplant him in the succession, to which he in the wood of Ephraim, so called, according to
would feel himself entitled as of royal birth on his Gerlach (Comm. in loco), from the great defeat of
mother's side as well as his father's, and as being the Ephraimites (Judg. xii. 4, or perhaps from
now David's eldest surviving son, since we may in- the coimection of Ephraim with the trans-Jordanic
fer that the second son Chilean was dead, from no half-tribe of Manasseh (Stanley, 8. and J', p.
mention being made of him after 2 Sam. iii. 3. It 323). Here Absalom's forces were totally defeated,
is harder to account for his temporary success, and and as he himself was escaping, his long hair was
the imminent danger which befell so powerful a gov- entangled in the branches of a terebinth, where he
ernment as his father's. The sin with Uathsheba was left hanging while the mule on which he was
had probably weakened David's moral and religious riding ran away from under him. Here he was
hold upon the people and as he grew older he may dispatched by Joab, in spite of the prohibition of
;
have become less attentive to individual complaints, David, who, loving him to the last, had desired that
and that personal administration of justice which his life might be spared, and when he heard of his
was one of an eastern king's chief duties. For Ab- death, lamented over him in the pathetic words,
salom tried to supplant his father by courting pop- my son Absalom! would God 1 had died for
ularity, standing in the gate, conversing with every thee! Absalom, my son, my son! He was
suitor, lamenting the difficulty which he would find buried in a great pit in the forest, and the con-
in getting a hearing, " putting forth his hand and querors threw stones over his grave, an old proof
kissing; any man who came nigh to do him obei- of bitter hostility (Josh. vii. 20)." The sacred
sance." He also maintained a splendid retinue historian contrasts this dishonored burial with the
(xv. 1), and was admired for his personal beauty tomb which Absalom had raised in the King's dal
and the luxuriant growth of his hair, on grounds (comp. Gen. xiv. 17) for the three sons whom he
similar to those which had made Saul acceptable had lost (comp. 2 Sam. xviii. 18, with xiv. 27), and
(1 Sam. x. 23). It is probable, too, that the great where he probably had intended that his own re-
tribe of Judah had taken some offense at David's mains should be laid. Josephus (Ant. vii. 10, § 3)
government, perhaps from finding themselves com- mentions the pillar of Absalom as situate 2 stadia
pletely merged in one united Israel ; and that they from Jerusalem. An existing monument in the
hoped secretly for preeminence under the less wise valley of Jehoshaphat just outside Jerusalem bears
and liberal ride of his son. Thus Absalom selects the name of the Tom!) of Absalom but the Ionic
;
Hebron, the old capital of Judah (now supplanted pillars which surround its base show that it belongs
by Jerusalem), as the scene of the outbreak Ainasa
; to a much later period, even if it be a tomb at all.
name of the " great primitive Hamite race who in- Selene, to the Syrian monarchy under her rule it :
habited Babylonia from the earliest time,'' who was besieged and taken by Tigranes (Joseph. Ant.
originated the arts and sciences, and whose language xiii. 12, § 2; 13, § 2; 16, § 4). Ultimately it
was " the great parent stock from which the trunk passed into the hands of the Romans, who con-
stream of the Semitic tongues sprang." " In the structed a military road along the coast, from
inscriptions of Sargon the name of Akkad is ap- Berytus to Sepphoris, passing through it, and ele-
plied to the Armenian mountains instead of the vated it to the rank of a colony, with the title
vernacular title of Ararat." (Rawlinson, in Herod- Colouia Claudii Cassaris (Plin. v. 17). The only
otus, i. 319, note.) The name of the city is be- notice of it in the N. T. is in connection with St.
lieved to have been discovered in the inscriptions Paul's passage from Tyre to Ca?sarea (Acts xxi. 7).
under the form Kinzi Akkad (ibid. p. 447). G. Few remains of antiquity are to be found in the
modern town. The original name has alone sur-
AC'CARON. [Ekkon.]
vived the changes to which the place has been
all
ACCHO OVSV, hot sand (?): *A/c a>, "A/crj,
X exposed. W. L. B.
Strabo the Ptolemais of the Maccabees and N.
;
AC'COS ('AKK<bs; [Alex. A/c X a>s, Field:] Ja-
T.),now called Acca, or more usually by Europeans, cob), father of John and grandfather of Eupolemus
Saint Jean d'Acre, the most important sea-port
the ambassador from Judas Maccabasus to Borne (1
town on the Syrian coast, about 30 miles S. of
Mace. viii. 17).
Tyre. It was situated on a slightly projecting
headland, at the northern extremity of that spacious AC'COZ. [Koz.]
bay —
the only inlet of any importance along the ACEI/DAMA
('A/ceASa^cl: I^chm. [and
ACELDAMA ACELDAMA ]
Tisch.] ([Sin.] B) 'AKeKSap-dx '• Haceldama); X u- saders in 1218 for their Campo Santo at Pisa, and
by the Empress Helena for that atHome (Rob. i.
oiov dl/iaros, "the field of blood;" (Chald. *?)2C7
355; Raumer, p. 270). Besides the charnel-house
WD" !),
7
the name given by the Jews of Jerusalem above mentioned, there are several large hollows in
to a "field" (-^wpiov) near Jerusalem purchased the ground in this immediate neighborhood which
by Judas with the money which he received for the may have been caused by such excavations. The
betrayal of Christ, and so called from his violent formation of the hill is cretaceous, and it is well
death therein (Acts i. 19). This is at variance known that chalk is always favorable to the rapid
with the account of St. Matthew (xxvii. 8), accord- decay of animal matter. The assertion (Krafft, p.
ing to which the "field of blood " (aypbs a'tfiaros) 193; Ritter, Pal. p. 463) that a pottery still exists
was purchased by the Priests with the 30 pieces of near this spot does not seem to be borne out by
silver after they had been east down by Judas, as a other testimony. G.
burial-place for strangers, the locality being well
* There are other views on some of the points
known at the time as "the field of the Potter," " embraced in this article, which deserve to be men-
(rbv aypbv too Kepa/xews)- See Alford's notes to tioned. The contradiction said to exist between
Acts i. 19. And accordingly ecclesiastical tradition Matt, xxvii. 8 and Acts i. 19 is justly qualified
appears from the earliest times to have pointed out in the Concise Dictionary as "apparent," and
two distinct (though not unvarying) spots as re- hence not necessarily actual. The difficulty turns
ferred to in the two accounts. In Jerome's time wholly upon a single word, namely, e/cr7;craTo,
(Onom. Acheldama) the "ager sanguinis" was in Acts i. 18 and that being susceptible of a two-
;
shown " ad australem 6 plagam ruontis Sion." Ar- fold sense, we are at liberty certainly to choose
culfus (p. 4) saw the "large Jig-tree where Judas the one which agrees with Matthew's statement,
hanged himself," certainly in a different place from instead of the one conflicting with it. Many un-
that of the "small field (Aceldama) where the derstand iKT^ffaro in Acts as having a Hiphil or
bodies of pilgrims were buried" (p. 5). Saewulf causative sense, as Greek verbs, especially in the
name to a street. Sir John Maundeville (p. 175) in saying that the priests purchased the field, since
found the "e&fer-tree" of Judas "fast by" the they did with the money furnished to them by
it
"image of Absalom; " but the Aceldama "on the the traitor. In like manner we read in the Gos-
other side of Mount Sion towards the south." pels that Jesus when crucified was put to death by
MaundrelTs account (p. 408-9) agrees with this, the Roman soldiers but in Acts v. 30, Peter says
;
and so does the large map of Schultz, on which to the members of the Jewish Council " Whom : —
both sites are marked. The Aceldama still retains (Jesus) ye slew, hanging on a tree":'' which all
its ancient position, but the tree of Judas has been accept as meaning that the Jewish rulers were the
transferred to the " Hill of Evil Counsel " (Stanley, means of procuring the Saviour's death. For other
8. f P. pp. 105, 186 and Barclay's Map, 1857,
;
examples of this causative sense of verbs, comp.
and "City;' &c. pp. 75, 208). Matt. ii. 16, xxvii. 60; John iv. 1; Acts vii. 21,
"
The field of blood is now shown on the steep
" xvi. 23 ; 1 Cor. vii. 10 1 Tim. iv. 16, etc. As ;
southern face of the valley or ravine of Hinnom, explaining, perhaps, why Peter chose this concise
near its eastern end; on a narrow plateau (Salz- mode of expression, Fritzsche's remark may be
mann, Etude, p. 22), more than half way up the quoted: —
The man (a sort of acerba irrisio)
hill-side. Its modern name is Hak ed-dam/m. It thought to enrich himself by his crime, but only
is separated by no enclosure; a few venerable olive- got by it a field where blood was paid for blood
trees (see Salzmann's photograph, " Champ clu (Evan;/. Matt. p. 799). Many of the best critics,
tang ") occupy part of it, and the rest is covered by as Kuinoel, Olshausen, Tholuck (MS. notes),
a ruined square edifice —
half built, half excavated Ebrard ( Wissensch. Kritik, p. 543), Baumgarten,
— which, perhaps originally a church (Pauli, in (Apostdgesch. p. 31), Lange (Bibelwerk, i. 409),
Ritter, Pal. p. 404), was in MaundrelTs time (p. Lechler (Der Apost. Gesch. p. 14), Kobiuson (Har-
468) in use as a charnel-house, and which the latest mony, p. 227), Andrews (Life of our Lord, \\.
conjectures (Schultz, Williams, and Barclay, p. 207) 511), and others, adopt this explanation.
propose to identify with the tomb of Ananus (Joseph. It does not affect the accuracy of Matthew or
B. J. v. 12, § 2). It was believed in the middle Luke whether "the field of blood" which they
ages that the soil of this place had the power of very mention was the present Aceldama or not; for they
rapidly consuming bodies buried in it (Sandys, p. affirm nothing as to its position beyond implying
187), and in consequence either of this or of the that it was a "potter's field" near Jerusalem.
sanctity of the spot, great quantities of the earth
were taken away ; amongst others by the Pisan Cru- c * KrafiVs statement is (
Topograp/iir Jerusali ms, p.
193) that he saw people cutting or digging up clay
there (Errle s'ec/ten), and not that they worked it, up
« The prophecy referred to by St. Matthew, Zecha- on the ground. Schultz, the Prussian consul {Jerusa-
riah (not Jeremiah) xi. 12, 13, does not in the present lem, eine Voriesum;, p. 39), and Porter ( Giant Cities, p.
state of the Hebrew text agree with the quotation of 147), speak of a bed of clay in that place. See, also.
the Evangelist. The Syriac Version omits the name Williams's Ho!// City, ii. 4'J5. There is a pottery at
altogether. Jerusalem at present, for which the clay is obtained
6 Eusebius, from whom Jerome translated, has here from the hill over the valley of Hinnom. II.
iv popeiois. This may be a clerical error, or it may d *The A. V. strangely misrepresents the Greek
add another to the many instances existing of the here, as if the putting to death of Jesus was prior to
ihange of a traditional site to meet circumstances. the crucifixion. IX.
20 ACELDAMA ACHAN
Nor does the existence of traditions which point however, to illustrate rather than solve the diffi-
out different spots as "the field," prove that the culty, see Dr. Schaff's edition of Lange's Commen-
firstChristians recognized two different accounts, i. tary, i. 505. H.
e.a contradiction in the statements of Matthew and
Luke; for the variant traditions are not old enough ACHA'IA ('Axato) signifies in the N. T. a
(that of Areulf a.d. 700) to he traced to any such
Roman province, which included the whole of the
Peloponnesus and the greater part of Hellas proper,
source. Vet it is not impossible that the potter's
with the adjacent islands. This province, with
field which tlic .lews purchased may actually be the
that of Macedonia, comprehended the whole of
present Aceldama, which overlooks the valley of
Greece hence Achaia and Macedonia are frequently
:
Hinnom. The receptacles for the dead which ap-
mentioned together in the N. T. to indicate ail
pear in the rocks in that quarter show that the
Greece (Acts xviii. 12, 27, six. 21 Rom. xv. 26, ;
ancient Jews were accustomed to bury there.
xvi. 5 [T. R., but here 'Acias is the true reading]
It is usually assumed that .Judas came to his
1 Cor. xvi. 15; 2 Cor. i. 1, ix. 2, xi. 10; 1 Thess.
miserable end on the very field which had been
bought with his 30 pieces of silver. It was for a
i. 7, 8). A narrow slip of country upon the
northern coast of Peloponnesus was originally called
twofold reason, says Lightfoot (//or. Hebr. p. 090),
Achaia, the cities of which were confederated in
that the field was called Aceldama; first, because,
an ancient League, which was renewed in B.C. 280
as stated in .Matt, xxvii. 7, it had been bought with
for the purpose of resisting the Macedonians. This
the price of blood; and, secondly, because it was
League subsequently included several of- the other
sprinkled with the man's blood who took that price.
Grecian states, and became the most powerful po-
Such congruities often mark the retributions of
litical body in Greece; and hence it was natural for
guilt. Yet it should he noted that Luke does not
the Romans to apply the name of Achaia to the
say in so many words that Judas "fell headlong
Peloponnesus and the south of Greece, when they
and burst asunder" on the field purchased with his
took orinth and destroyed the League in B.C. 140.
(
• reward of iniquity "; but may mean that the field
(KaAoCct Se ovk 'EAAaSos aAA' 'A^a'ia? rjyefiSva
was celled Aceldama because the fact of the trai-
tor's bloody cud, whether it occurred in one place
ol 'PaifxaTot, 1>i6tl ix fl P c^°' avT0 "EAATjj/as Si'
or another, was so notorious (yi>w<TTbv lytvtro
'Axaiciv t6t( tov 'EAAtj^ikoD 7rpoe<rr»}K'<rra>j',
• •
think Sia rov Trpcxp-qrov may be' the true reading, ACHA'ICUS ('AxaiK6s), name of a Chris-
but certainly against the external testimony. The tian (1 Cor. xvi. 17, subscription No. 25).
view of Hengstenberg is that though Zechariah's
prophecy was directly Messianic and that of Jere-
ACHAN (1D37, trembler; written ""057 in 1
miah ante-Messianie and national, yet they both Chr. 7: "'Ax*" or "Axap- Ackan or Achar), an
ii.
really prophesy one truth (namely, that the people Israelite of the tribe of Judah, who, when Jericho
who spurn God's mercies, be they his prophets and and all that it contained were accursed and devoted
their warnings or Christ and his Gospel, shall be to destruction, secreted a portion of the spoil in his
themselves spumed) ; and hence Matthew in effect tent. Jehovah punished Israel by
For this sin
quotes them both, but names Jeremiah only because upon Ai. When Achan
their defeat in their attack
he was better known, and because Zechariah incor- confessed his guilt, and the booty was discovered,
porates the older prophecy with his own so as to give he was stoned to death with his whole family by
to the latter the effect of a previous fulfillment as a the people, in a valley situated between Ai and
pledge for the future: the common truth taught Jericho, and their remains, together with his prop-
in the two passages, and the part of "the potter" erty, were burnt. From this event the valley re-
so conspicuous in them, being supposed sufficient to ceived the name of Achor (i. e. trouble) [Action].
admonish the reader of this relation of the proph- From the similarity of the name Achan to Achar,
ecies to each other. See his Christohgy of the. 0. Joshua said to Achan, " Why hast thou troubled
T. ii. 187 h°., § 9 (Keith's trans.). So free a critic us? the Lord shall trouble thee this day" (Josh,
as Grotius (Annott. <«l foe.) takes nearly the same vii.). In order to account for the terrible ven-
view :
" —
( inn autem hoc dictum Jeremise per geance executed upon the family of Achan, it is
Xach. repetitum hie recitat Matt., simul ostendit quite unnecessary to resort to the hypothesis that
taeitc. eas poenas imminere Judseis, quas iidem they were accomplices in his act of military insub-
prophetse olim sui temporis hominibus prsedix- ordination. The sanguinary severity of Oriental
erant." For other opinions, which may be thought, nations, from which the Jewish people were by no
ACHAR ACHSAH 21
•neans free, has in all ages involved the children in twice found a refuge with him when he fled from
the punishment of the father. R. W. B. Saul. On the first occasion, being Recognized by
* The name occurs Josh. vii. 1, 18, 19, 20, 24, the servants of Achish as one celebrated for his
xxii. 20. A. victories over the Philistines, he was alarmed for
and feigned madness (1 Sam. xxi. 10-
his safety,
A'CHAR ("133?: 'Axap : Achar). A varia-
13). [David.] From Achish he fled to the cave
tion of the name of Achan which seems to have
of Adullam. On the second occasion, David fled
arisen from the play upon it given in 1 Chr. ii. 7,
to Achish with 600 men (1 Sam. xxvii. 2), and
" Achar, the trouble?' (1D137 'ycer) of Israel." remained at Gath a year and four months.
W. A. W. Whether the Achish [son of Maachah] to whom
Shimei went in disobedience to the commands of
ACH'BOR ("1123V [mouse] 'AX o0<bp [also Solomon (1 K. ii. [39,] 40), be the same person is
:
Nineveh, in the Apocryphal story of Tobit (Tob. i. [<pdpay£ Ax&ip,] 'E/j-eKaxdp'i [Hos. tcoiAas
21, 22, ii. 10, xiv. 10). He was nephew to Tobit, Ax^p: vallis] Achor) =
valley of trouble, ac-
being the son of his brother Anael, and supported cording to the etymology of the text; the spot at
him in his blindness till he left Nineveh. From which Achan, the "troubler of Israel," was stoned
the occurrence of the name of Aman in xiv. 10, it (Josh. vii. 24, 26). On the N. boundary of Judah
has been conjectured that Achiacharus is but the (xv. 7; also Is. lxv. 10; Hos. ii. 15). It was
Jewish name for Mordecai, whose history suggested known in the time of Jerome ( Onorn. s. v. ), who
some points which the author of the book of Tobit describes it as north of Jericho but this is at vari- ;
worked up into his narrative; but there is no rea- ance with the course of the boundary in Joshua
son to have recourse to such a supposition, as the (Rett's Joshu-t, p. 131). G.
discrepancies are much more strongly marked than *No trace of the name is found any longer.
the resemblances. W. A. W. Yet Achor " was situated at all events near Gilgal
and the West-Jordan heights" (Ivnobel, Josua, p.
ACHFAS (Achlas). Son of Phinees; high-
116). It is a valley " that runs up from Gilgal to-
priest and progenitor of Esdras (2 Esdr. i. 2), but
ward Bethel " (Thomson's Land and Book, ii.
omitted both in the genealogies of Ezra and 1 Es-
dras. He is probably confounded with Ahijah, the 185). The prophet's allusion in Hos. ii. 15 is not
so much to the place as to the meaning of the
son of Ahitub and grandson of Eli. W. A. W.
name. " And I will give her the valley of
A'CHIM ('Axelfi, Matt. i. 14), son of Sadoc, Achor for a door of hope," i. e. through " trouble,"
and father of Eliud, in our Lord's genealogy; the through affliction and discipline, God will prepare
fifth in succession before Joseph the husband of
His people for greater blessings than they would
Mary. The Hebrew form, of the name would be otherwise be fitted to have bestowed on them. H.
pD^, Jachin (Gen. xlvi. 10; 1 Chr. xxiv. 17), ACHSA (HD312 : A<rX a; Alex. A x <ra;
which in the latter place the LXX. render 'Axijx, [Comp. Daughter of Caleb, or
'O|c£0 Achsa).
[Rom. ed.], or 'Axelft [Vat.; Alex, laxeiv, Comp. Chelubai, the son of Hezron
(1 Chr. ii. 49)."
'IoxeiM> &&• Ax"*]- I* is a short form of Je- [Caleb.] W. A. W.
hoiachin, the Lord will establish. The name, per-
haps, indicates him as successor to Jehoiachin's ACH'SAH (nosy [anklet]: Aer X a; [Alex.
throne, and expresses his parents' faith that God Comp. in Josh., Ax<ro: Axa), daughter of Caleb,
would, in due time, establish the kingdom of Da^ the son of Jephunneh, the Kenezite. Her father
vid, according to the promise in Is. ix. 7 (6 in the promised her in marriage to whoever should take
Heb. Bib.) and elsewhere. A. C. H. Debir, the ancient name of which (according to the
analogy of Kirjath-Arba, the ancient name of
A'CHIOR CA X t<ip, i. e. "i'^TIS, the
Hebron) was Kirjath-Sepher (or as in Josh. xv. 49,
brother of light; comp. Num. xxxiv. 27: Achior
Kirjath-Saxna), the city of the book. Othniel,
confounded with 'Axidxapos, Tob. xi. 18), a gen- her father's younger brother, took the city, and ac-
eral of the Ammonites in the army of Holofemes,
cordingly received the hand of Achsah as his re-
who is afterwards represented as becoming a prose- ward. Caleb at his daughter's request added to
lyte to Judaism (Jud. v., vi., xiv.). B. F. W. her dowry the upper and lower springs, which she
A'CHISH (W?3fl: 'Ayxovs [Alex, in 1 K. had pleaded for as peculiarly suitable to her inher-
i
now es-Zib, on the sea-shore at the mouth of the good time, is accomplished. But none of the ex- '
Nahr HerdavM, 2 h. 20 in. X. of Akka (EoMnson, i*th;_' twelve Apostles were, humanly speaking,
iii. G28; and comp. Maundrell, p. 427). After the
fitted to preach the Gospel to the cultivated Gen-
return from Babylon, Achzib was considered by the
tile world. To be by divine grace the spiritual
Jews as the northernmost limit of the Holy Land. conqueror of Asia and Europe, God raised up an- '
(Sevrepos \6yos) by the author of the third Gos- pel, is now generally and very properly treated as
pel, traditionally known as Lucas or Luke (which erroneous. Such a view has become celebrated in
see). The identity of the writer of both books is modern times, as held by Baur : —
that the purpose
Strongly shown by their great similarity in style of the writer was to compare the two great Apostles,
and idiom, and the usage of particular words and to show that St. Paid did not depart from the prin-
compound forms. The theories which assign the ciples which regulated St. Peter, and to exalt him
book to other authors, or divide it among several, at every opportunity by comparison with St. Peter.
ACTS OF THE APOSTLES ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 23
The reader need hardly be reminded how little any f various readings more so than any other book
i ;
such purpose is home out by the contents of the of the N. T. To this several reasons may have
hook itself; nay, how naturally they would follow contributed. In the many backward references to
their present sequence, without any such thought Gospel history, and the many anticipations of state-
having been in the writer's mind. Doubtless many ments and expressions occurring in the Epistles,
ends are answered and many results brought out temptations abounded for a corrector to try his
by the book as its narrative proceeds as e. y. the hand at assimilating, and, as he thought, reconcil-
:
rejection of the Gospel by the Jewish people every- ing the various accounts. In places where ecclesi-
where, and its gradual transference to the (Jentiles; astical order or usage was in question, insertions or
and others which might be easily gathered up, and omissions were made to suit the habits and views
made by Ingenious hypothesizers, such as Baur, to of the Church in aftertimes. Where the. narrative
appear as if the writer were bent on each one in its simply related facts, any act or word apparently
turn as the chief object of his work. unworthy of the apostolic agent was modified for
As to the time when and place at which the the sake of decorum. Where St. Paul repeats to
book was written, we are left to gather them en- different audiences, or the writer himself narrates
tirely from indirect notices. It seems most proba- the details of his miraculous conversion, the one
ble that the place of writing was Rome, and the passage was pieced from the other, so as to produce
time about two years from the data of St. Paul's verbal accordance. There are in this book an un-
arrival there, as related in ch. xxviii., sub Jin. usual number of .those remarkable interpolations of
Had any considerable alteration in the Apostle's considerable length, which are found in the Codex
circumstances taken place before the publication, Bezoe (D) and its cognates. critic of some em- A
there can be no reason why it should not have been inence, Borneiuann, believes that the text of the
noticed. And on other accounts also, this time Acts originally contained them all, and has been
was by far the most likely for the publication of the abbreviated by correctors and he has published an ;
book. The arrival in Rome was an important edition in which they are inserted in full. But,
period in the Apostle's life: the quiet which suc- while some of them bear an appearance of genuine-
ceeded it seemed to promise no immediate deter- ness (as e. g. that in ch. xii. 10, where, after
mination of his cause. A
large amount of historic i£e\96vres, is added Kari^-naav robs eirra fia.8-
material had been collected in Judaea, and during /iiovs, Kal) the greater part are unmeaning and ab-
the various missionary journeys or, taking another surd (e. g. that in ch. xvi. 39, where we read after
;
undergo that change for the worse which disgraced on icrre avSpes Si'/coioc Kal i^ayayovres irape-
the latter portion of his reign: none could tell how KaKtcrav avrovs Aeyovrts 'Ek ttjs irSAe&s ravr-ns
soon the whole outward repose of Roman society i^eAdare pA]iroTe ira\iv awcrrpdcpcoaiv tj/xiV ern-
might be shaken, and the tacit toleration which Kpd&VTes Kaff vp.a>v).
the Christians enjoyed be exchanged for bitter per- The most remarkable exegetical works and mon-
secution. If such terrors were imminent, there ographs on the Acts, beside commentaries on the
would surely be in the Roman Church prophets whole N. T. [Alford, Wordsworth, DeWette, Meyer,
and teachers who might tell them of the storm Lechler in Range's Bibelwerk], are Baumgarten,
which was gathering, and warn them that the Apostehjeschichte, oder der Entwickelungsgnng der
records lying ready for publication must be given Kirche von Jerusalem bis Rom, Halle, 1852 [2d
to the faithful Wore its outbreak or event. ed. 1859, Eng. trans. Edinb. 1854; Zeller, Die
Such a priori considerations would, it is true, ApXiStelgeschichte nach ihrem Inhalt u. Unsprung
weigh but little against presumptive evidence fur- krit. untersucht, Stuttg. 1854, first publ. in the
nished by the book itself; but arrayed, as they are, Theol. Jakrb. 1849-51; and] Lekebusch, Die Com-
in aid of such evidence, they carry some weight, position and Entstehwtg der Apostelgeschichte von
when we find that the time naturally and fairly in- Neiiem imtermcht, Gotha, 1854.
dicated in the book itself for its publication is that The former of these work is a very complete
one of all others when we should conceive that pub- treatise on the Christian-historical development of
lication most likely. the Church as related in the book the latter is of :
This would give us for the publication the year more value as a critical examination of the various
63 a. d., according to the most probable assign- theories as to its composition and authorship. [Zel-
ment of the date of the arrival of St. Paul at Rome. ler's is the ablest attack on its genuineness and au-
The genuineness of the Acts of the Apostles has thenticity.]
ever been recognized in the Church. It is men- Valuable running historical comments on the
tioned by Eusebius (//. E. iii. 25) among the Acts are also found in Neander's Pjlmr.uny u.
6fioAoyovfj.ei>ai delai ypacpal. It is first directly Leitung der ChrutHchen Kin-lie dwrch die Apostel,
quoted in the epistle of the churches of Lynns and 4th ed., Hamburg, 1847 [Eng. trans, by Ryland
Vienne to those of Asia and Phrygia (a. i>. 177); in Bonn's Stand. Library, 1851, revised and cor-
then repeatedly and expressly by Irenseus, Clement rected by E. G. Robinson, N. Y. 18G5]; Cony-
of Alexandria, Tertullian, and so onwards. It was beare and Howson's Life and Epistles of St. Paid,
rejected by the Marcionites (cent, iii.) and Mani- 2d ed., Ix>nd. 1850. Professed commentaries have
chaeans (cent, iv.) as contradicting some of their been published by Mr. Humphry, Lond. 1847,
notions. In modern Germany, Baur and some [2d ed. 1854], and Professor Hackett, Boston, U.
others have attempted to throw discredit on and
1852 [enlarged ed. 1858, and Dr. J. A. Alex-
it, S.
publication in the second century, mainly by
fix its New York, 1857].
ander, H. A.
assuming the hypothesis impugned above, that it •Add to the collateral helps Paley's fiord Patd-
is an apology for St. Paul. But the view has nce; Biscoe, The History of the Arts <>f the Apos-
found no favor, and would, ere this, have teen for- tles confirmed, etc., Lond. 1742. new ed. Oxf.
gotten, had it not been for the ability and subtlety 1841; Meyer, J. A. G., Vertuch enter Vertheidig-
jf its chief supporter. ii/ii/ d. tii scii. Jisn a. il. Apostel attein out griech.
The text of the Acts of the Apostles is very mil u. rom. Profiuisrribenttn, 1805; Meijier, Diss, de
24 ACTS OF THE APOSTLES ACTS OF THE APOSTLES
Lucce a|ioTri(TTia in scribendo Actt. Apost. Libra, nied to be genuine by Baur. There is no reason-
Hag. Com. 1827 Bottger's Beitrage zur Einl. in able doubt of their genuineness.
;
die Pauliniscjien Briefe, 1837-38; Birks's Hence 2. Paul's account of his conference with the
Apostolical ; Lewin's -Life awl Epistles of / t. Paul, Apostles at Jerusalem (Gal. ii. 1 seq.) the pas- —
2 vol., Lond. 1851 ; Dr. Howson on the CI aracter sage on which Baur chiefly relies for the establish-
of St. Paul (Hulsean Lectures for 1862); Lange, ment of his thesis —
really overthrows it. The
Apost ZeitaUer, 1853-5-1; Dr. Schaff's History "false brethren" (ver. 4) were not Apostles, but
of the Apostolic Church, N. Y. 1854, p. 191 ff. the faction of Judaizers. Of the Apostles Peter,
Lechler, Has apostol. u. d. nachapostol. ZeitaUer, James, and John, he saj's (ver. 9) when they " per-
2d 1857; Pressense\ Histoire des trois premiers
ed., ceived the grace that was given unto me, they gave
circles de V Eylise Chretierine, Paris, 1858, i. 348 to me and Barnabas the right hand of fellowship."
ff. Ewald, Gesch. d. apost. Zeitalters, Gcitt. 1858
; The sincerity of this act of fellowship is proved, if
(Bd. vi. of his Gesch. <L Vulkes Israel); an art. inproof were needed, by the arrangement made for
the Christian Examiner 1881, on the the contribution for the poor, to be gathered by
for July,
" Origin and Composition of the Acts of the Paul from the Gentile Churches (ver. 10). The
Apostles"; the Abbe Vidal, Saint Paul, sa vie et controversy with Peter (ver. 11 seq.) was not about
ses osurres, 2 vol., Paris, 1863; Yaughan, C. A., a principle, but was occasioned by the circumstance
The Chinch of the First Hays, 3 vol., Lond. that the latter did "not walk uprightly," or was
1864-65 Smith, James, Voyage and Shipicreck false to his convictions.
; The circumcision of Tim-
of St. Paul, 3d ed., Lond. 1866"; and Kloster- othy, as recorded in Acts, is not rendered improb-
mann, Vindicice Lucance, seu de Itinerarii in Libro able by the refusal of Paul (Gal. ii. 3) to circum-
Actt. asservato Auctore, Gotting. 1866. cise Titus, since Titus was a heathen by birth, and
On the chronology, see particularly Anger, De Timothy was circumcised, not to comply with a
Temporum in Actis Ajiost. Rat'wne, Lips. 1833,demand of Judaizers, but to conciliate Jews. In
and Wieseler, Chronologie des apostol. Zeitalters, the latter case, no principle was sacrificed see 1 ;
Gctt. 1848. H. and A. Cor. ix. 20. The right interpretation of Gal. ii.
* Some additional remarks will here be made removes
the objections brought to the credibility of
upon the theory of the Tubingen school respecting the narrative, in Acts xv., of the Apostolic conven-
the authorship of the book of Acts. This theory tion. In the light of this interpretation, the prin-
proceeds upon the assumption that Peter and the cipal objections of the Tubingen school to the cred-
rest of the original disciples of Christ were Judaiz- ibility of the book of Acts, as a whole, vanish.
ers; i. e., that they insisted upon the circumcision But some of the positive proofs of the genuineness
of the Gentile converts to Christianity, as an indis- of this book may be here briefly stated.
pensable condition of fellowship. Consequently, 1. The testimony of the author, especially when
according to Dr. Baur, Peter and Paul and the two we consider the form in which it is given. It is
branches of the church of which they were respec- generally conceded that the third Gospel and Acti
tively the leaders were placed in a relation of hos- are by the same author. This author declares
tility to one another. After the death of these (Luke i. 2) that he derived his information from
Apostles, various attempts were made to produce a eye-witnesses and contemporaries. The passages in
reconciliation between the opposing parties. The Acts (xvi. 11, xx. 5-15, xxi. 1-18, xxvii. 1, xxviii.
book of Acts, it is claimed, is the product of one 17) in which the writer speaks in the first person
of these irenical or compromising efforts. A
Paul- plural —
the so-called "we" passages prove him —
ine Christian in the earlier part of the second cen- to have been a companion of Paul. The theory
tury composes a half-fictitious history, with the de- that Acts is a compilation of documents being un-
sign to present Paul in a favorable light to the Ju- tenable, we are obliged to suppose either that the
daizers, and Peter in an equally favorable light to writer was a participant in the events recorded, or
the adherents of Paul. Paul is represented as hav- that he has introduced a document, retaining the
ing circumcised Timothy, and as having in other pronominal peculiarity on purpose to deceive the
points conformed to the Judaizing principles whilst n ader.
; This last hypothesis is advocated by Zel-
Peter, on the other hand, in the affair of Cornelius ler. Bleek's theory that a document from Timo-
and on other occasions, and the Jerusalem Church thy is artlessly introduced without any notice to
(in the narrative of Apostolic convention, for exam- the reader, is refuted by the circumstance that, in
ple), are made out to agree almost with the tenets language and style, the passages in question cor-
of Paul. One feature of Dr. Baur's system was respond with the rest of the book.
the rejection of the genuineness of all the Pauline 2. The moral spirit of the book is inconsistent
Epistles, save the two Epistles to the Corinthians, with the ascription of it to forgery and intentional
the Epistle to the Romans and that to the Gala- deception. See, for example, the narrative of Ana-
tians. The following remarks form the heads nias and Sapphira.
of a conclusive argument against the Tubingen 3. The relation of Acts to the Pauline Epistles
5 seq. In the last passage (ver. 9) he styles him- will show the untenable character of the Tubingen
self "the least of the Apostles." When both hypothesis. See, for example, Acts i. 21, 22, where
Epistles were written, he was engaged in collecting another Apostle is chosen to fill vp the number of
a contribution for "the saints" at Jerusalem. the twelve, —
a passage which an author such as
The last two chapters of the Epistle to the Romans, Baur describes would never have written. See
which show the friendship of Paul for the Jewish also Acts xxi. 15 seq., especially vers. 20, 21,
Christians, are, on quite insufficient grounds, de- where the believing Jews who are zealous for the
ACUA ADAM 25
law are declared to be " many thousands " (pupi- 6. ('AScua; Alex. AScuas; FA. ASeia.u: Adaias.)
dSes)- See also Paul's denunciation of the Jews, The descendant of another Bani, who had also
Acts xxviii. 25 serp taken a foreign wife (Ezr. x. 39.)
The historical discrepancies which the critics 7. (Alex. Axaia; [Vat.] FA. AaAea: Adaia.)
find in Acts are such as, if they were made out to A man of Judai of the line of Pharez (Neh. xi. 5).
exist, prove no "tendency" or partisan purpose
8. (*npS
'A5io; [Vat. 'Afco, 2. m. a8-
:
A Benjaminite, son of Shimhi (1 Chr. viii. 21), the second to give an account of paradise, the orig-
who is apparently the same as Shema in ver. 13. inal sin of man and the immediate posterity of
4. (Alex. 2a5iaj, ASaia'- Adalas, Adaia.) A Adam; the third contains mainly the history of
priest, sou of Jeroham (1 Chr. ix. 12; Neh. xi. 12), Noah, would seem, to Adam and his
referring, it
who returned with 242 of his brethren from Baby- descendants, principally in relation to that patri-
lon. arch.
('ASoios: Adaia.)
5. One of the descendants The Mosaic accounts furnish us with very few
sf Bani, who had married a foreign wife after the materials from which to form any adequate concep-
return from Babylon (Ezr. x. 29). He is called tion of the firstman. He is said to have been
Jedeus in 1 Esdr. ix. 30. created in the image and likeness of God, and thin
26 ADAM ADAM
is commonly interpreted to mean some upon him, and took one of his ribs from him,
super-ex- fall
cellent and divine condition which was lost at the which He fashioned into a woman and brought her
Fall apparently, however, without sufficient reason, to the man.
: Prof. S. Lee supposed the narrative
as the continuance of this condition is implied in of the creation of Eve to have been revealed to
the time of Noah, subsequent to the flood (Gen. ix. Adam in his deep sleep (Lee's Job, Introd. p. 16).
6), and is asserted as a fact by St. James (iii. 9), This is agreeable with the analogy of similar pas-
and by St. Paul (1 Cor. xi. 7). It more probably sages, as Acts x. 10, xi. 5, xxii. 17. At this time
points to the Divine pattern and archetype after they are both described as being naked without the
which man's intelligent nature was fashioned rea- consciousness of shame.
;
son, understanding, imagination, volition, &c. being Such is the Scripture account of Adam prior to
attributes of God and man alone of the animals the Fall. There is no narrative of any condition
;
of the earth being possessed of a spiritual nature superhuman or contrary to the ordinary laws of
which resembled God's nature. Man, in short, was humanity. The first man is a true man, with the
a spirit created to reflect God's righteousness and powers of a man and the innocence of a child.
truth and love, and capable of holding direct inter- He is moreover spoken of by St. Paul as being
course and communion with Him. As long as his "the figure, twos, of Him that was to come,"
will moved in harmony with God's will, he fulfilled the second Adam, Christ Jesus (Rom. v. 14). His
the purpose of his Creator. When he refused sub- human excellence, therefore, caimot have been
mission to God, he broke the law of his existence superior to Son of Mary, who was
that of the
and fell, introducing confusion and disorder into the Himself the Pattern and Perfect Man. By the '
economy of his nature. As much as this we may subtlety of the serpent, the woman who was given
learn from what St. Paul says of " the new man to be with Adam, was beguiled into a violation of
being renewed in knowledge after the image of Him the one command which had been imposed upon
that created him " (Col. iii. 10), the restoration to them. She took of the fruit of the forbidden tree
such a condition being the very work of the Holy and gave it to her husband. The propriety of its
Spirit of God. The name Adam was not confined name was immediately shown in the results which
to the father of the human race, but like homo was followed self-consciousness was the first fruits of
:
applicable to woman as well as man, so that we find sin; their eyes were opened and they knew that
it is said in Gen. v. 1, 2, " This
is the book of the they were naked. a The subsequent conduct of
' history ' of Adam day that God created
in the Adam would seem to militate against the notion
'Adam,' in the likeness of God made He him, male that he was in himself the perfection of moral ex-
and female created He them, and called their name cellence. His cowardly attempt to clear himself by
Adam in the day when they were created." the inculpation of his helpless wife bears no marks
The man Adam was placed in a garden which of a high moral nature even though fallen it was ;
the Lord God had planted "eastward in Eden," conduct unworthy of his sons, and such as many
for the purpose of dressing it and keeping it. It of them would have scorned to adopt. 6 Though
is of course hopeless to attempt to identify the sit- the curse of Adam's rebellion of necessity fell upon
uation of Eden with that of any district familiar him, yet the very prohibition to eat of the tree of
to modern geography. There seems good ground life after his transgression, was probably a manifes-
for supposing it to have been an actual locality. tation of Divine mercy, because the greatest male-
It was probably near the source of a river which diction of all would have been to have the gift of
subsequently divided into four streams. These indestructible life superadded to a state of wretch-
are mentioned by name: Pison is supposed by edness and sin. When moreover we find in Prov.
some Indus, Gihon is taken for the iii. 18, that wisdom is declared to be a tree of life
to be the
Nile, Hiddekel is called by the LXX. here, and at to them that lay hold upon her, and in Rev. ii. 7,
Dan. x. 4, Tigris, and the fourth is Euphrates; xxii. 2, 14, that the same expression is applied to
but how they should have been originally united is the grace of Christ, we are led to conclude that this
unintelligible. Adam was permitted to eat of the was merely a temporary prohibition imposed till
fruit of every tree in the garden but one, which was the Gospel dispensation should be brought in.
called the " tree of the knowledge of good and Upon this supposition the condition of Christians
evil." What this was it is also impossible to say. now is as favorable as that of Adam before the
Its name would seem to indicate that it had the Fall, and their spiritual state the same, with the
power of bestowing the consciousness of the differ-
erence between good and evil in the ignorance of
;
a * For an analysis of this first sin of the race, the
which man's innocence and happiness consisted. nature of the temptation, and its effects on the mind
of Adam, the reader will find Auberlen's remarks in-
The prohibition to taste the fruit of this tree was
structive (Die gottliche Offeribarwng, i. 154 ff., trans-
(nforced by the menace of death. There was also
lated in the Bibl. Sacra, xxii. 430 ff.). H.
another tree which was called "the tree of life." 6 * The better view of interpreters is that Adam
Some suppose it to have acted as a kind of med- meant to cast the blame of his sin not so much on
icine, and that by the continual use of it our first Eve as on his Maker for having given to him a woman
parents, not created immortal, were preserved from whose example had led him into transgression. And
death. (Abp. Whately.) While Adam was in the in that disposition certainly he manifested only a trait
garden of Eden the beasts of the field and the of human character that has ever distinguished his
fowls of the air were brought to him to be named, descendants, namely, a proneness to find the cause of
and whatsoever he called every living creature own hearts, but in God's relations to
sin not in their
as having ordained the circumstances in which
them
that was the name thereof. Thus the power of
they act, and given to them the moral nature which
fitly designating objects of sense was possessed by
they possess. In that remonstrance of the Apostle
the first man, a faculty which is generally considered
James (i. 13-15) against this self-exculpatory spirit,
as indicating mature and extensive intellectual re- " Let no man say when he is tempted, I am tempted of
sources. Upon the failure of a companion suitable God," &c, we simply hear again the echo of Adam's
for Adam among the creatures thus brought to him defense in the garden, " The woman whom thou gavest
to be named, the Lord God caused a deep sleep to to be with me " (Gen. iii. 12). H.
ADAM ADAMANT 27
31'ngle exception of the consciousness of sin and the adamas '•). The word Shdmir occurs as a common
knowledge of good and evil. noun eleven times in the O. T-. In eight of these
a recent period it has been generally believed
Till passages it evidently stands for some prickly plant,
that the Scriptural narrative supposes the whole and accordingly it is rendered " briers " by the <-'
human race to have sprung from one pair. It is A. V. In the three remaining passages (Jer. xvii.
maintained that the 0. T. assumes it in the reason 1; Ez. iii. !); Zech. vii. 12) it is the representative
assigned for the name which Adam gave his wife of some stone of excessive hardness, and is used
after the Fall,namely, Eve, or Chavvah, i. e. a liv- in each of these last instances metaphorically. In
ing woman, " because
she was the mother of all Jer. xvii. 1, Shdmir = " diamond" in the text of
living; " and that St. Paul assumes it in his sermon the A. V. " The sin of Judah is written with a
at Athens when he declares that God hath made pen of iron and with the point of a diamond,"
of one blood all nations of men; and in the Epistle *. e. the people's idolatry is indelibly fixed in their
to the Romans, and first Epistle to the Corinthians, affections, engraved as
it were on the tablets of
when he opposes Christ as the representative of re- their hearts. In Ez. iii. 9, Shdmir "adamant." =
deemed humanity, to Adam as the representative " As an adamant harder than flint have I made
of natural, fallen, and sinful humanity. But the thy forehead, fear them not." Here the word is
full consideration of this important subject will intended to signify that firmness of purpose with
come more appropriately under the article Man. which tlie prophet should resist the sin of the re-
In the middle ages discussions were raised as to bellious house of Israel. In Zech. vii. 12, the
the period which Adam remained in Paradise in a Hebrew word " adamant-stone " " Yea, they = —
sinless state. To these Dante refers in the Paradiso, made their hearts as an adamant^stone, lest they
xxvi. 139-142: — should hear the law," —
and is used to express the
" Nel monte, eke si leva piu dall' ornla, hardness of the hearts of the Jews in resisting
Fu' io, con vita pura e disonesta, truth.
I.i. 1 11a prim' ora a quella ch' e seconda, The LXX. afford us but little clue whereby to
Come il Sol muta quadra, all' ora sesta." identify the mineral here spoken iii. 9 of, for in Ez.
Dante therefore did not suppose Adam to have and 12 they have not rendered the
in Zech. vii.
been more than seven hours in the earthly paradise. Hebrew word at tJl, while the whole passage in
Adam is stated to have lived 930 years so it would :
Jer. xvii. 1-5 is altogether omitted in the Vatican
seem that the death which resulted from his sin MS. the Alexandrine MS., however has the pas-
;
was the spiritual death of alienation from God. sage, and reads, with the versions of Aquila, Theo-
" In the day that thou eatest thereof thou shalt dotion, and Symmachus, " with a nail of ada-
surely die and accordingly we find that this
: '
'
mant." <' " Adamant" occurs in the Apocrypha,
spiritual death began to work immediately. The in Ecclus. xvi. 16.
sons of Adam mentioned in Scripture are Cain, Our English " Adamant " derived from the is
Abel and Seth. It is implied, however, that he Greek, 6 and " the
unconquerable," in
signifies
had others. S. L. allusion, perhaps, to the hard nature of the sub-
stance, or, according to Pliny (xxxvii. 15), because
AD'AM (ni't*= earth:" [Comp. Aid. A5- it was supposed to be indestructible by fire./ The
a/j.l-'] Adorn), a city on the Jordan "beside (~T!£tt) Greek writers, o generally apply the word to some
very hard metal, perhaps steel, though they do also
'Zarthan,' " in the time of Joshua (Josh. in. 16).
use it for a mineral. Pliny, in the chapter referred
It isnot elsewhere mentioned, nor is there any ref-
to above, enumerates six varieties of Adamas.
erence to it in Josephus. The LXX. (both MSS.)
[both in the Rom. ed. and the Alex. MS.] has eus
Dana (Syst. Mineral, art. Diamond) says that the
word " Adamas was applied by the ancients to sev-
fjitpous KapiaOiapifi [Vat. KadiaipeLv], a curious
eral minerals differing much in then- physical
variation, in which it has been suggested (Stanley,
<S. (f\ P. App. § 80, note) that a trace of Adam
properties. A
few of these are quartz, specular
iron ore, emery, and other substances of rather
appears in aptfi, being changed to R accordingD
high degrees of hardness, which cannot now be
to the frequent custom of the LXX.
Note. —
The A. V. here follows the Ken, which, identified." Nor does the English language attach
any one definite meaning to Adamant ; sometimes
for C~TS2 = " by Adam," the reading in the He- indeed we understand the diamond *> by it, but it is
brew text or Chetib, has H'lSP " from Adam," = often used vaguely to express any substance of im-
which we have good reason for identifying with the The word Shamir occurs in the 0. T. three
Shamir or Adamant of the Bible. times as a proper name once as the name of a —
That some hard cutting stone is intended can man A (1 Chr. xxiv. 24), and twice as the name of
be shown from the passage in Jeremiah quoted a town. The name of the town may have reference
above. Moreover the Hebrew root b (Skamar, " to to the rocky nature of the situation, or to briers
cut," " to pierce "), from which the word is derived, and thorns abundant in the neighborhood.* '
talcose rock, or in granular limestone, associated Mace. vii. 40, 45). In the Onomasticon it is men-
with oxide of iron; the color is smoke-gray or tioned as near Guphna [the Roman Gophna and
bluish-gray; fracture imperfect. The best kinds present Jufna, 2 J miles north-west of Bethel. See
are those which have a blue tint; but many sub- Ophni.]
stances now sold under the name of emery contain AD'BEEL (bS?7S No0Ma; : [in 1 Chr.,
no corundum." The Greek name for the emery
<-'
vj, miracle" a
1
peare, Mid. Night Dr. Act ii. sc. 2, and Trod, and of God,' from Gesen. s. v.)
Cress. Act iii. sc. 2 ; Bacon's Essay on Travel.
son of Ishmael (Gen. xxv. 13; 1 Chr. i. 29), and
b Fiirst's Concordantiee, ~)72W, incidere, impingere.
probably the progenitor of an Arab tribe. No sat-
But Gesenius, Tkes. sub voc. "1X21Z7,' i. q. 112'D, isfactory identification of this name with that of
- T
G> - any people or place mentioned by the Greek geog-
raphers, or by the Arabs themselves, has yet been
discovered. The latter have lost most of the names
"an Egyptian thorn " (see Forskal, Fl. JEg. Ar. exxiii. of Ishinael's descendants between that patriarch
S > .- and Adnan (who is said to be of the 21st genera-
and vyoLw, adamas. See Freytag, Lex. Arab.
tion before Mohammed), and this could scarcely
176),
have been the case if tribes, or places named after
s. v.
them, existed in the times of Arabian historians or
c Dana
says that the method of polishing diamonds
relators of traditions: it is therefore unlikely that
was discovered iu 1456 by Louis Bergnen, a cit-
first
izen of Bruges, previous to which time the diamond
was only known in its native uncut state. It is quite statements are correct the one refers to the powder,
;
clear that Shamir cannot mean diamond, for if it did the other to the stone. The German Smirgel, or
the word would be mentioned with precious stones Schmirgel, is evidently allied to the Hebrew or Greek
but this is not the case. words. Bohlen considers the Hebrew word to be of
Indian origin, comparing asmira, a stone which eats
d 1!2Zp ptn. That "12, though may some-
it
away iron. Doubtless all these words have a common
times be applied to t; rock " generally, yet sometimes origin.
= flint, or some other variety of quartz, seems clear a This is probably the same stone which Herodotus
from Ex. iv. 25 : —
" Then Zipporah took a sharp stone " 69) says the ^Ethiopians in the army of Xerxes
(vii.
used instead of iron to point their arrows with, and
(~Vi), TsOr. That flint knives were in common use
by means of which they engraved seals.
amongst Eastern nations known. Compare is well
that very interesting verse of the LXX., Josh. xxiv. h In the Keri. The Chethib has ~W2tT, Siiamiir.
T '
E. S.P.
may be identical in name and reality with the ani-
Jo^t. mal signified by the Hebrew Acshiib.
ADDAN ("J^S [strong]'. 'H8di>, LXX.;
'AaAap [Vat. AWap, Alex. AAap], Apocr. 1 Esdr.
Adon, VuJg.), one of the places from which some of
the captivity returned with Zerubbabel to Judaea
who could not show their pedigree as Israelites
(Ezr. ii. 59). In the parallel lists of Nehemiah (vii.
Gl) and Esdras the name is Addon and Aalak.
G.
* Perhaps the name Aalar in 1 Esdr. v. 36 cor-
responds to Immer in Ezra and Nehemiah. It
appears in Esdras as the name of a man. See
Charaathauar. A.
6 W^D.^V. AccabXsh.
30 ABLER ADDER
opinion of the Arabs. Erpenius] and Saadias have " the homed snake ;" c
Is this a relic of the Bnsl-
Uskan fable ? This creature was so called from a and so the Vulg. Cerastes. The LXX., like the
mark on its head, supposed to resemble a kingly Samaritan, must have connected the Hebrew term
crown. Several serpents, however, have peculiar with a word which expresses the idea of " sitting
markings on the head —
the varieties of the Spec- in ambush." The original word comes from a
tacle-Cobras of India, for example —
so that iden- root which signifies "to prick," "pierce," or
tification is impossible. As the LXX. make use "bite." rf
of the word Basilisk (Ps. xc. 13; xci. 13, A. V.) The habit of the ShepiMphon, alluded to in Ja-
it was thought desirable to say this much on the cob's prophecy, namely, that of lurking in tWe sand
comp. IJoohaxt). 5 Let this he compared with what Addus among the children of Solo-
are enumerated
Bruce says: "The Cerastes moves with great ra- mon's servants who returned with Zorobabel (1
pidity and in all directions, forwards, backwards, Esdr. v. 34) but the name does not occur in the
;
sideways ; when he inclines to surprise any one who parallel lists of Ezra or Nehemiah.
is too far from him, he creeps with his side
towards 2. [Vat. IaSSous;] Alex. loSSovs;
('laSSov;
the person," &c, &c. The words of Ibn Sina, or [Aid. 'ASSous:] Addin.) A
priest whose descend-
Avicenna, are to the same effect- It is right, how- ants, according to 1 Esdr., were unable to establish
ever, to state that nothing unusual has been ob- their genealogy in the time of Ezra, and were re-
served in the mode of progression of the Cerastes moved from their priesthood (1 Esdr. v. 38). He
now in the gardens of the Zoological Society but is said to have married Augia, the daughter of
;
of course negative evidence in the instance of a Berzelus or Barzillai. In Ezra and Nehemiah he
specimen not in a state of nature does not inval- is called by his adopted name Barzillai, and it is
idate the statement of so accurate an observer as not clear whether Addus represents his original
Bruce. name or is a mere corruption. W. A. W.
ADER ("H?? ["• pause Tlffi, « flock]:
J
[Vat. ClS-nSi] Alex. "O.Sep- Heder).
ESep; A
Benjamite, son of Beriah, chief of the inhabitants
of Aijalon (1 Chr. viii. 15). The name is, more
correctly, EdePv. W. A. W.
AD'IDA ('ASiSa; [Sin. ASeiSa, ASetua or
-voi;] Joseph. v AS5i8a: Addus, Adiada), a town
on an eminence (Ant. xiii. 6, § 4) overlooking the
low country of Judah ('A. iv rfj ~2,t<priKa), forti-
fied by Simon Maccaboeus in his wars with Try-
phon (1 Mace. xii. 38, xiii. 13). Alexander was
here defeated by Aretas (Ant. xiii. 15, § 2); and
The Horned Cerastes. (From specimen in British Vespasian used it as one of his outposts in the
Museum.) siege of Jerusalem (B. J. iv. 9, § 1). Probably
The Cerastes extremely venomous; Bruce identical with Hadid and Adithaim (which see).
is
ter name in 1 Chr. vi. 41 (26 in Heb. Bib.) is ren- viii. 6). Ancestor of a family who returned with
dered in the [Roman edition of the] Septuagint Zerubbabel to the number of 454 (Ezr. ii. 15 [1
'ASo'i, which is very close to Addi. A. C. H. Esdr. v. 12] ), or 055, according to the parallel list
2. ('A85i; [Vat. ASSeii/:] Addin.) This name in Neh. vii. 20. Fifty-one more [251 according to
occurs in a very corrupt verse (1 Esdr. ix. 31), ap- 1 Esdr. Viii. 32] accompanied Ezra in the second
parently for AdnA (Ezra x. 30). W. A. W. caravan from Babylon (Ezr. viii. 0). They joined
AD DO ('A85ti; [Vat. E55en/:] Addin). with Nehemiah in a covenant to separate themselves
Iddo, the grandfather of the prophet Zechariah (1 from the heathen (Neh. x. 10). W. A. W.
Esdr. vi. 1). W. A. W. ADINA (S3 N 137 [pliant]: 'A5jj/<£; [Comp.
am (2 Chr. xi. 9), in Judah " (Jos. Ant. viii. 10, for that purpose it was the formal mode of re-
;
§ 1), apparently in or near the Shefelah, since, al- ceiving visitors (Gen. xviii. 2), of doing obeisance
though omitted from the lists in Josh. xv. it is by to one of superior station (2 Sam. xiv. 4), and of
Josephus (Ant. xiii. 9, § 1, 15, B. J. i. 2, § 6,
§ 4; showing respect to equals (1 K. ii. 19). Occa-
i. 8, § 4) almost uniformly coupled with Mareshah, sionally it was repeated three times (1 Sam. xx.
which was certainly situated there. For the dual 41), and even seven times (Gen. xxxiii. 3). It was
termination compare Adithaim, Gederothaim, etc. accompanied by such acts as a kiss (Ex. xviii. 7),
By Josephus it is given as 'AScupa, 'Adwpeos and ;
laying hold of the knees or feet of the person to
in Ant. xiii. 6, § 5, he calls it a " city of Idumsea," whom the adoration was paid (Matt, xxviii. 9 ), and
under which name were included, in the later times kissing the ground on which he stood (Ps. lxxii. 9
of Jewish history, the southern parts of Judaea it- Similar adoration was paid to idols
Mic. vii. 17 ).
self (Reland, p. 48; Robinson, ii. 69). Adoraim is sometimes, however, prostration was
(1 K. xix. 18 ;
probably the same place with "A5o>pa (1 Mace. xiii. omitted, and the act consisted simply in kissing the
20), unless that be Dor, on the sea-coast below Car- hand to the object of reverence (Job xxxi. 27) in
mel. Robinson identifies it with Dura, a "large vil- the manner practiced by the Romans (Pliny xxviii.
lage " on a rising ground west of Hebron (ii. 215). 5: see Diet, of Ant. art. Adoratio), in kissing
G.the statue itself (Hos. xiii. 2). The same cus-
* Dura " is one of the largest villages in the dis-toms prevailed at the time of our Saviour's min-
trict of Hebron, and is properly the chief place" istry, as appears not only from the numerous
occasions on which they were put in practice to-
(Rob. ii. 214). The name (from "HW, to be great)
wards Himself, but also from the parable of the
intimates that Adoraim had a similar importance; unmerciful servant (Matt, xviii.
26), and from Cor-
and the dual (Fiirst, i. 22) implies that there was an nelius's reverence to St. Peter (Acts x. 25), in
upper and lower town, as there might so easily be, which case it was objected to by the Apostle, as
since the top of the hill overlooks the present Dura implying a higher degree of superiority than he was
on its slope. H. entitled to, especially as coming from a Roman to
ADO'RAM. [Adoniram.] whom prostration was not usual. W. L. B.
ADORATION. The acts and postures by ADRAM'MELECH \_Heb. Adramme'lech]
which the Hebrews expressed adoration bear a great
("T^T!*?: 'ASpayueAe'x; [Alex. ASpa/xeAe/c :]
similarity to those still in use among Oriental na-
of Adramelech].
worshipped 1. The name an idol
tions. To up and suddenly prostrate the body,
rise
by the colonists introduced into Samaria from Se-
was the most simple method but generally speak-
;
(irpoffKWi'iv, LXX.) complete prostration. The the opening of which is the island of Lesbos [Mi-
a Even without this statement of Josephus, it is none of the towns named are necessarily in the limits
plain that " Judah and Berrjamin," in 2 Chr. xi. 10, of Benjamin proper.
ADRIA ADULLAM 35
this place (Acts xxvii. 2). The reason is given in
culty, erroneously translates ^"T7 " brought up,"
,,
tines, through whom they forced their way for that cable jealousy to which Orientals appear prone, but
purpose, were encamped at the time near Beth- which was not consistent with the laxity of the
lehem (2 Sam. xxiii. 13, 14), we must infer that nuptial tie prevalent in the period of the New Tes-
the cave itself was near Bethlehem, and not so far tament. The ancient strictness of that tie gave
off as the border of the plain of Thilistia. a H. room for a more intense feeling, and in that inten-
sity probably arose this strange custom, which no
ADUL'LAMITE OeVr? [see Adul-
doubt Moses found prevailing and deeply seated
lam] : 'OSoAAa/AiTTis Alex.' O5o\\a/u.firr]s
; :
and which is said to be paralleled by a form of
Odollamites). A native of Adullam: applied to ordeal called the " red water " in Western Africa
Hirah, the friend (or "shepherd" as the Vulgate
(Kitto, Cyclqp. s. v.). The forms of Hebrew jus-
has it. reading -lrtljjn for -ln^^l) of Judah (Gen. tice all tended to limit the application of this test.
xxxviii. 1, 12, 20). W. A. W. 1. By prescribing certain facts presumptive of
guilt, to be established on oath by two witnesses,
ADULTERY. The parties to this crime were
or a preponderating but not conclusive testimony
a married woman and a man who was not her hus-
to the fact of the woman's adultery. 2. By tech-
band. The toleration of polygamy, indeed, renders
nical rules of evidence which made proof of those
it nearly impossible to make criminal a similar
presumptive facts difficult (Sotah, vi. 2-5). 3. By
offence committed by a married man with a woman
exempting certain large classes of women '(all in-
not his wife. In the patriarchal period the sanc-
deed, except a pure Israelitess married to a pure
tity of marriage is noticeable from the history of
Israelite, and some even of them) from the liability.
Abraham, who fears, not that his wife will be se-
4. By providing that the trial could only be before
duced from him, but that he may be killed for her
the great Sanhedrim (Sotah, i. 4). 5. By invest-
sake, and especially from the scruples ascribed to
ing it with a ceremonial at once humiliating and
Pharaoh and Abimelech (Gen. xii., xx.). The
intimidating, yet which still harmonized with the
woman's punishment was, as commonly amongst
spirit of the whole ordeal as recorded in Num. v.
eastern nations, no doubt capital, and probably, as
but 6. Above all, by the conventional and even
in the case of Tamar's unchastity, death by fire
mercenary light in which the nuptial contract was
(xxxviii. 24). The Mosaic penalty was that both
latterly regarded.
the guilty parties should be stoned, and it applied
"When adultery ceased to be capital, as no doubt
as well to the betrothed as to the married woman,
provided she were free (I)eut. xxii. 22-24). A it did, and divorce became a matter of mere conve-
nience, it would be absurd to suppose that this trial
bondwoman so offending was to be scourged, and
was continued. And when adultery became com-
the man was to make a trespass offering (Lev. xix.
mon, as the Jews themselves confess, it would have
20-22).
been impious to expect the miracle which it sup-
The system of inheritances, on which the polity
posed. If ever the Sanhedrim were driven by
of Moses was based, was threatened with confusion
force of circumstances to adopt this trial, no doubt
by the doubtful offspring caused by this crime, and
every effort was used, nay, was prescribed {Sotah,
this secured popular sympathy on the side of moral-
i. 5, 6) to overawe the culprit and induce confes-
ity until a far advanced stage of corruption was
sion. Nay, even if she submitted to the trial and
reached. Yet from stoning being made the penalty
was really guilty, some rabbis held that the effect
we may suppose that the exclusion of private re-
on her might be suspended for years through the
venge was intended. It is probable that, when
that territorial basis of polity passed away — as
merit of some good deed (Sotah, iii. 4-6).
it
Be-
did, after the captivity — and when, owing however, the intimidation of the woman, the
to Gen-
sides,
man was
likely to feel the public exposure of his
tile example, the marriage tie became a looser bond
suspicions odious and repulsive. Divorce was a
of union, public feeling in regard to adultery
ready and quiet remedy; and the only question
changed, and the penalty of death was seldom or
was, whether the divorce should carry the dowry,
never inflicted. Thus in the case of the woman
and the property which she had brought; which
brought under our Lord's notice (John viii.), it
was decided by the slight or grave character of the
is likely that no one then thought of stoning
suspicions against her (Sotah, vi. 1; Gcmara Che-
her in fact, but there remained the written law-
thvboth, vii. G; Ugol. U.ror Ilcb. c. vii.). If the
ready for the purpose of the caviller. It is likely,
husband were incapable through derangement, im-
also, that a divorce in which the adulteress lost her
prisonment, &c, of acting on his own behalf in the
dower and rights of maintenance, &c. (Gcmara
matter, the Sanhedrim proceeded in his name as
Ckethvboth, cap. vii. 6), was the usual* remedy
concerned the dowry, but not as concerned the trial
suggested by a wish to avoid scandal and the ex-
by the water of jealousy (Sotah, iv. 6). H. H.
citement of commiseration for crime. The word
[Seiy/xaritraL Lachm., Tisch., " the going ur to " or " of "
ADUM'MIM,
Trapa8eiyfxaT't<rai
Treg.] (Matt. i. 19), probably means to bring the
(D^EHN i"H3?tt: Trp6o-pao-is 'ASa/xfifo, [avd-
case before the local Sanhedrim, which was the
Alex. Trpocrava,fSa.o~is ASo/xfit,
usual course, but which Joseph did not propose to liacns
Alda.fj.fo;
take, preferring repudiation (Buxtorf, de fi^ons. et avafi. E5cO|iui/:] asctnsio or ascensus Adummim) =
the "pass of the red;" one of the landmarks of
Divort. iii. 1-4), because that could be managed
the boundary of Benjamin, a rising ground or pass
(privately (\ddpa)-
"over against Gilgal," and "on the south side
Concerning the famous trial by the waters of
of the 'torrent' " (Josh. xv. 7, xviii. 17), which is
jealousy (Num. v. 11-29), it has been questioned
a * Since writing the above note, we find that Dr. Dictionary (§ ii. 3), and in his Lectures on the Jewish
Stanley either not consistent with himself or has
is Church (ii. 69), he speaks without hesitation of the
changed his opinion. In his article on David in this cave near Khiireitun as David's cave of Adullam. II.
AEDIAS AGABUS 37
the position still occupied by the road leading up * The later observations tend to narrow the
from Jericho and the Jordan valley to Jerusalem limits of the question they indicate at least the
:
(Rob. i. 558°), on the south face of the gorge of region if they do not fix the site of iEnon. Je-
the Wady Kelt. Jerome ( Onom. Adommin) as- rome's testimony (Reland's Palcestina, p. 480) that
cribes the name to the blood shed there by the rob- it was 8 miles south of Scythopolis (still shown
bers who infested the pass in his day, as they still there in his day, "ostenditur usque nunc") agrees
(Stanley, pp. 314, 424; Martineau, p. 481; Stewart) with the ascertained condition of that neighbor-
continue to infest it, as they did in the middle hood. Dr. Thomson (Land and Book, ii. 170),
ages, when the order of Knights Templars arose who visitedBeisdn (Scythopolis) and the neighbor-
out of an association for the guarding of this road, hood, represents the valley there as abounding in
and as they did in the days of our Lord, of whose fountains and brooks, which make it one of the
parable of the Good Samaritan this is the scene. most fertile places in Palestine. Though find-
But the name is doubtless of a date and significance ing no traces of the names still current, he says
far more remote, and is probably derived from some that iEnon and Salim were no doubt in this
tribe of "red men " of the earliest inhabitants of tjhor Beisdn. Dr. Robinson's Salim lies too far
the country (.Stanley, p. 424, note). The sugges- inward to agree with the "juxta Jordanem" of
tion of Keil that it refers to the " rothlichen Farbe Eusebius and Jerome; indeed, he gives up that po-
des Felsen," is the conjecture of a man who has sition and fixes on a different one. The name
never, been on the spot, the whole pass being of the merely of Salim would not be decisive, as it seems
whitest limestone. [Fiirst derives the name in to have been, and is still, not uncommon in Pales-
the first instance from the color (rtd-broien) of the tine. [Salim.] We have the more reason for
earth in the hills.] G. adhering to the traditionary site, that Mr. Van de
AEDFAS ('AiSlas; [Vat. ATjSeiay; Aid. Alex.
Velde reports his finding a Mussulman oratory
Htlius), 1 Esdr. ix. 27. Probably a ( Wely) called
Sheyhh Salim near a heap of ruins,
'ArjS/as:]
corruption of Eliah. about six English miles south of l!<Jsan, and two
west of the Jordan (Syr. and Pal. ii. 340). Bleek
^E'GYPT. [Egypt.]
(Brief an die Hebr. vol. ii. pt. 2. p. 285 ff. main- )
.<E'NEAS [so, correctly, A. V. ed. 1611, etc. tains that this Salim was not only the one where
Eneas, later eds.] (Alveas- ^Eneas), a paralytic at John baptized, but of which Melehizedek was king
Lydda, healed by St. Peter (Acts ix. 33, 34). (Gen. xiv. 18). As to iEnon, which is descriptive
* The name shows that he was either a Greek or rather than local, the existence itself of fountains,
a Hellenistic Jew. It is uncertain whether he was "deep waters" (uSara iroAAa), is all the identifi-
a believer or not (avdpomov riva) but it was usual
\ cation that the term requires. H.
to require faith of those who received such benefits.
iEBA. [Chronology.]
H.
.^E'NON (Alp&v- sEnnon), a place "near to
ETHIOPIA.
[Ethiopia.]
Salim," at which John baptized (John iii. 23). It *^ETHIOPIC VERSION. [Versions,
was evidently west of the Jordan (comp. iii. 22 Ancient.]
with 2G, and with i. 28), and abounded in water. AFFINITY. [Marriage.]
This is indicated by the name, which is merely a AG' CAKKa&d ABA
[Vat. marg. Ayya^a; ;
has been found by him to the east of and close to (irpocpriTris) and residence (oltto 'IepocroAu/xcoi', omh
Ndbtdus, where there are two very copious springs ttjs 'lovSaias), are -the same in both instances.
(ii.279; iii. This position agrees with the
298). He (Acts xi. 28) that a famine would
predicted
requirements of Gen. xxxiii. 18. [Salem.] In take place in the reign of Claudius " throughout all
favor of its distance from the Jordan is the consid- the world" (e'^>' o\r)v tV
oiKovfiivriv)- This ex-
eration that, if close by the river, the Evangelist pression may take a narrower or a wider sense,
would hardly have drawn attention to the " much which confirms the prediction. As Greek
either of
water" there. and Roman writers used f) oiKovfxivn of the Creek
The latest writer on Jerusalem, Dr. Barclay and the Roman world, so a Jewish writer could use
(1858), reports the discovery of /Enon at Wady it naturally of the Jewish world or Palestine. Jo-
Furah, a secluded valley about 5 miles to the N. E. sephus certainly so uses it (Ant. viii. 13, § 4) when
of Jerusalem, running into the great Wady Fowar speaking of the efforts of Ahab to discover the
immediately above Jericho. The grounds of this prophet Elijah, he says that the king sought him
novel identification are the very copious springs and Kara, iracrav r^v olKovf/.evrii', »• 6. throughout
pools in which W. Fa/rah abounds, and also the Palestine and its borders. (See Auger, De Tempo-
presence of the name Selam or Seleim, the appel- rum in Actis App. ratione, p. 42.) Ancient writers
lation of another Wady close by. But it requires give no account of any universal famine in the
more examination than it has yet received. (Bar- reign of Claudius, but they speak of several local
clay, City of the Great. King, pp. 553-570.) See famines which were severe in particular countries.
the curious speculations of Lightfoot Chorog. In- Josephus (Ant. xx. 2, § 6; ib. 5, § 2) mentions one
(
quiry, oh. iii. §§ 1, 2, 3, 4). G. which prevailed at that time in Judrea, and swept
away many of the inhabitants. Helena, queen of
« Robinson's words, " On the south side Adiabene, a Jewish proselyte who was then at Je-
above," are the more remarkable, because the identity
sf the place with the Maaleh-Aduinmim does not seem 6 * This article (not accredited in the English edi-
to have occurred to him. tion) has been re- written here by the author. H.
38 AGAG AGATE
rusalem. imported provisions from Egypt and Cy- 7, and another in 1 Sam. xv. 8, 9, 20, 32. The
prus, which she distributed among the people to latter was the king of the Amalekites, whom Saul
save them from starvation. This, in all probability, spared together with the best of the spoil, although
18 the famine to which Agabus refers in Acts xi. it was the well-known will of Jehovah that the
28. The chronology admits of this supposition. Amalekites should be extirpated (Ex. xvii. 14;
According to Josephus, the famine which he de- Deut. xxv. 17). For this act of disobedience Sam-
scribes took place when Cuspius Fadus and Tiberius uel was commissioned to declare to Saul his rejec-
Alexander were procurators i. e. as Lardner com- ; tion, and he himself sent for Agag and cut him in
putes the time {Credibility, P. I. b. i. ch. xi.), it pieces. [Samuel.]
may have begun about the close of A. d. 44, and Hainan is called the Agagite in Esther (Bov-
lasted three or four years. Fadus was sent into yciios, iii. 1, 10, viii.
[MaiceSciiv, ix. 21] ).
3, 5,
Judaea on the death of Agrippa, which occurred The Jews Haman
a descendant of Agag,
consider
in August of the year a.d. 44; and it was about the the Amalekite, and hence account for the hatred
time of the death of Agrippa (Acts xii. 1) that Paul with which he pursued their race (Joseph. Ant. xi.
and Barnabas carried the alms of the Christians at 6, § 5; Targ. Esth.). K. W. B.
Antioch to Jerusalem. If we attach the wider
A'GAGITE. [Agag.]
sense to otKovfxivr)v, the prediction may import
that a famine should take place throughout the
A'GAR. [Hagar.]
Roman empire during the reign of Claudius (the AGARE'NES {viol "Ayap : filii Agar), Bar.
year is not specified), and not that it should prevail iii. 23. [Hagarekes.]
in all parts at the same time. We find mention AGATE (120, shebd; 13*13,' cadedd:
of three other famines during the reign of Claud-
axaT-ns- achates) is mentioned four times in the
ius: one in Greece (Euseb. Chron. i. 79), and two
text of the A. V. viz. in Ex. xxviii. 19, xxxix.
;
iii Rome (Dion Cass. lx. 11; Tac. Ann. xii. 43). In the two former
12; Is. liv. 12; Ez. xxvii. 10.
For the facts concerning these famines, see Walch,
passages, where it is represented by the Hebrew
1), Agabo rule Dissertt. ml Acta Apost. ii. 131 ft'.).
|
Instances of such symbolism, though rare in the and zoology, is by no means a matter of surprise
N. T., are frequent in the Old. See 1 K. xxii. 11; when we consider how often there is no collateral
Is. xx. 1 ft'.; Jer. xiii. 1 ft.; Ezek. iv. 1 ft'., etc. evidence of any kind that might possibly help us,
The name Agabus is variously derived: by Dru- and that the derivations of the Hebrew words have
generally ami necessarily a very extensive significa-
sius, from 23n,
T T
a '
locust ;
>
by
J Grotius, Witsius, tion; identification, therefore, in many cases be-
and Wolf, from 3327, he lord. See Wolf 's Curie comes a difficult and uncertain matter.
Walch supra) adopts Various definitions of the Hebrew word shebd
Philobgicee, ii. 1167. {id
the latter derivation, and compares the name with have been given by the learned, but nothing defi-
the Greek Agape, Agapetus, Agapius, and the like. nite can be deduced from any one of them. Gese-
Walch, in his I )is.« rtntiu, treats ('() of the name nius places the word under the root shabahf " to
take prisoner," but allows that*EOthing at all can
of Agabus; {b) of his office as prophet; (<) of his
be learned from such an etymology, Fiirst'' with
prophecies; and (d) of their fulfillment. He
illustrates these topics fully, but adds nothing
more probability assigns to the name an Arabic
the The origin, shdba, "to glitter."
important to results stated in this article.
incidents in which Agabus appears are noticed at
Again, we find curiously enough an interpreta-
tion which derives it from another Arabic root,
length in Baumgarten's Aposlelgesckichte, i. 270
tf. and ii. 113 ft. H. B. H. which has precisely the opposite meaning, viz. "to
be dull and obscure." e Another derivation traces
A'GAG (22W, from an Arabic root "to burn," the word to the proper name Sheba, whence pre-
Gesen.: 'A7a-y and Twy- Agag), possibly the title cious stones were exported for the Tyrian mer-
of the kings of Anialek, like Pharaoh of Egypt. chants. Of these derivations, it is difficult to see
One king of this name is mentioned in Num. xxiv. any meaning at all in the first,'' while a contrary
b See " Translators' Preface to the Reader," which "Qti* ; cf. Freytag, Arab. Lex. XjuCwwT (&&•
it is to be regretted is never now printed in editions
of the Bible.
for a dull-looking stone is surely out of place under Moses the main qualification of those who
amongBt the glittering gems which adorned the sa- acted as the representatives of the people in all
cerdotal breastplate. The derivation adopted by matters of difficulty and deliberation. The old
Fiirst is perhaps the most probable, yet there is men or Elders thus became a class, and the title
nothing even in it which will indicate the stone in- gradually ceased to convey the notion of age, and
tended. That shebd, however, does stand tor some was used in an official sense, like Patres, Senatores,
variety of agate seems generally agreed upon by and other similar terms. [Eldeks.] Still it
commentators, for, as Rosenmuller" has observed would be but natural that such an office was gen-
(Schol. in Exod. xxxviii. 19), there is a wonderful erally held by men of advanced age (1 K. xii. 8).
mens are often found on the sea-shore, and in the imus. Paul is supposed to have been, at the time of
beds of streams, the rocks in which they had been writing to Philemon (converted about 36 a. d., at
imbedded having been decomposed by the elements, the age of 30, and at Pome 02-4 a. d.), about 60
when tiie agates have dropped out. Some of the vears old. According to Hippocrates, a man was
principal varieties are called chalcedony, from Chal- called irpecrfivT-ns from 49 to 56, and after that was
cedon in Asia Minor, where it is found, cornelian, called yepwv. But there was another estimate
chrysoprase, an apple-green variety colored by ox- amonsc the Greeks which fixed the later period
ide of nickel, Mocha-stones, oi moss agate, which) (yrjpas) at 69. Coray treats of this question in
owe their dendritic or tree-like markings to the his SiWkStuxos 'Upa.Tii<6s, p- 167 (Paris, 1831).^
imperfect crystallization of the coloring salts of Our most impressive image of old age in the N".
manganese or iron, onyx-stones, bloodstones, &c, T., as represented by its appropriate word, is that,
&c. Beautiful specimens of the art of engraving on which occurs in the Saviour's touching description
cnaicedomj are still found among the tombs of of what was to befall the energetic Peter in his last
Egypt, Assyria, Etruria, &c. c W. H. days (orav yt)pa.o~ris)- See John xxi. 18. The
AGE, OLD. In early stages of civilization, term applied to Zacharias (Luke i. 18) is irpeo~-
when experience is the only source of practical fSvT-r\s- The patriarch Jacob's characterization of
back upon it from the verge
knowledge, old age has its special value, and con- a long life, as he looked
sequently its special honors. The Spartans, the of the grave, has hardly its parallel for truthfulness
Athenians, and the Romans were particular in ami pathos in all extant literature. See Gen. xlvii.
showing respect to the aged, and the Egyptians 8, 9. H.
had a regulation which has its exact parallel in the A'GEE [dissyl.] (S2S [fugitive-] : "Atra ;
12W " esse achatem, satis probabile est, quum an engraver and a cunning workman ;
" and ch. xxxix.
minis iu hoc lapide interpretum sit consensus." Vid. 8 : " And he made the breastplate of cunning work."
Braun. de Vest. !<acerd. Hebrmor. II. c. xv. iii. * Occasional specimens of agate occur along the
KaAbj Se A.i'0osxal 6 a\a.Ti)<; 6 an-b rov 'A^oltov coast north of Tortosa, and it is very abundant near
—
TTOTafioii tou iv Si/ceAia, KaX irtaKeiTai. TiV'OS. Theoph. Antioch (Antakia), Rob. Pkys. Geozr. p. 376. H.
Fr. ii. 31, ed. Schneider, and Plin. xxxvii. 54 Lithoir-
;
d * On the single word " aged " iu Philem. ver. 9,
raphie 9uiHenne, Naples, 1777, p. 16. the celebrated Lavater preached two of his 39 sermons
e Compare with this Ex. xxxviii. 23 :
''
And with on the Epistle to Philemon (Predigten iiber d. Brit/
him was Aholiab, son of Ahisamach, of the tribe of Dau, an d. Philemon, St. Gallen, 1785-6). H.
40 AGRICULTURE AGRICULTURE
a much more advanced agricultural state than xix. 21; comp. Gen. xxii. 3, 6, 7). AH this indi-
Jacob had left it in (Deut. viii. 8), resulting prob- cates a non-abundance of timber.
ably from the severe experience of famines, and the Its plenty of water from natural sources made
example of Egypt, to which its people were thus Canaan a contrast to rainless Egypt (Deut. viii. 7,
led. The pastoral life was the means of keeping xi. 8-12). Nor was the peculiar Egyptian method
the sacred race, whilst yet a family, distinct from alluded to in Deut. xi. 10 unknown, though less
mixture and locally unattached, especially whilst prevalent in Palestine. That peculiarity seems to
in Egypt. "When, grown into a nation, they con- have consisted in making in the fields square shal-
quered their future seats, agriculture supplied a low beds, like our salt-pans, surrounded by a raised
similar check on the foreign intercourse and speedy border of earth to keep in the water, which was
demoralization, especially as regards idolatry, which then turned from one square to another by pushing
commerce would have caused. Thus agriculture aside the mud to open one and close the next with
became the basis of the Mosaic commonwealth the foot. A
very similar method is apparently de-
(Michaelis, xxxvii.-xli.). It tended to check also scribed by Robinson as used, especially for garden
the freebooting and nomad bfe, and made a numer- vegetables, in Palestine. There irrigation (includ-
ous offspring profitable, as it was already honorable ing under the term all appliances for making the
by natural sentiment and by law. Thus, too, it water available) was as essential as drainage in our
indirectly discouraged slavery, or, where it existed, region ; and for this the large extent of rocky sin-
made the slave somewhat like a son, though it face, easily excavated for cisterns and ducts, was
made the son also somewhat of a slave. Taken in most useful. Even the plain of Jericho is watered
connection with the inalienable character of inher- not by canals from the Jordan, since the river lies
itances, it gave each man and each family a stake below the land, but by rills converging from the
in the soil and nurtured a hardy patriotism. mountains. In these features of the country lay
"The land is Mine" (Lev. xxv. 23) was a dictum its expansive resources to meet the wants of a mul-
which made agriculture likewise the basis of the tiplying population. The lightness of agricultural
theocratic relation. Thus every family felt its own labor in the plains set free an abundance of hands
life with intense keenness, and had its divine ten- for the task of terracing and watering; and the
ure which it was to guard from alienation. The result gave the highest stimulus to industry.
prohibition of culture in the sabbatical year formed, The cereal crops of constant mention are wheat
under this aspect, a kind of rent reserved by the and barley, and more rarely rye and millet (?).
Divine Owner. Landmarks were deemed sacred Of the two former, together with the vine, olive,
(Deut. xix. 14), and the inalienability of the heri- and fig, the use of irrigation, the plough and the
tage was ensured by its reversion to the owner in harrow, mention is found in the book of Job (xxxi.
the year of jubilee ; so that only so many years of 40, xv. 33, xxiv. 0, xxix. 9, xxxix. 10). Two
occupancy could be sold (Lev. xxv. 8-16, 23-35). kinds of cummin (the black variety called "fitches,"
The prophet Isaiah (v. 8) denounces the contempt Is. xxviii. 27), and such podded plants as beans
of such restrictions by wealthy grandees who sought and lentiles, may be named among the staple prod-
to "add field to field," erasing families and depop- uce. To these later writers add a great variety
ulating districts. of garden plants, e. </., kidney-beans, peas, lettuce,
A change in the climate of Palestine, caused by endive, leek, garlic, onion, melon, cucumber, cab-
increase of population and the clearance of trees, bage, &c. (Mishna, Celaim, 1. 1, 2). The produce
must have taken place before the period of the N. which formed Jacob's present was of such kinds as
T. Afurther change caused by the decrease of would keep, and had kept during the famine (den.
skilled agricultural labor, e. g., in irrigation and xliii. 11).
terrace-making, has since ensued. Not only this, The Jewish calendar, as fixed by the three great
bat the great variety of elevation and local charac- festivals, turned on the 'seasons of green, ripe, and
ter in so small a compass of country necessitates a fully-gathered produce. .Hence, if the season was
partial and guarded application of general remarks backward, or, owing to the imperfections of a non-
(Hobinson, i. 507, 553, 554, iii. 595; Stanley, S. astronomical reckoning, seemed to be so, a month
cf P. pp. 119, 124-6). Yet wherever industry is was intercalated. This rude system was fondly re-
secure, the soil still asserts its old fertility. The tained long after mental progress and foreign inter-
Hauran (Peraea) is as fertile as Damascus, and its course placed a correct calendar within their power
bread enjoys the highest reputation. The black so that notice of a Veadar, i. e., second or inter-
and fat, but light, soil about Gaza is said to hold calated Adar, on account of the lambs being not
so much moisture as to be very fertile with little yet of paschal size, and the barley not forward
rain. Here, as in the neighborhood of Beyrut, is enough for the Abib (green sheaf), was sent to the
a vast olive-ground, and the very sand of the shore Jews of Babylon and Egypt (Ugol. de lie Bust. v.
is said to be fertile if watered. The Israelites 22) early in the season.
probably found in Canaan a fair proportion of The year ordinarily consisting of 12 months was
woodland, which their necessities, owing to the dis- divided into 6 agricultural periods as follows ( To-
couragement of commerce, must have led them to saphta Taanith, ch. 1): —
reduce (Josh. xvii. 18). But even in early times
I. Sowing Time.
timber seems to have been far less used
for building
material than among western nations the Israel- / beginning about
; ]
ites were not skillful hewers, and imported both Tisri, latter half 5 autumnal
( equinox L Early rair due.
the timber and the workmen (1 K. v. 6, 8). No
Marchesvan
....
|
[VeadaxJ
Nisan, former half
f ing apparently all cereal plants, HVD^p (quicquid
J in sUiquk nascitwr, Buxt. Lex.), nearly equivalent
IV. Harvest Time.
to the Latin legumen, and O^^"")? or ^12?""!Y
{Beginning about
vernal equinox. 713^2, semina hortensia, (since the former word
Barley green.
alone was used also generically for all seed, includ-
Passover.
ing all else which was liable to tithe, for which
Ijar purpose the distinction seems to have existed. The
Sivan, former half .... ]
(
_ .
Pentecost.
plough probably was like the Egyptian, and the
process of ploughing mostly very light, like that
V. Sdmmer. called scarificatio by the Romans (" Syria teuui
Sivan, latter half. sulco arat," Plin. xviii. 47), one yoke of oxen
Xamuz. mostly sufficing to draw it. Such is still used in
Ab, former half. Asia Minor, and its parts are shown in the accom-
VI. Sultry Season. panying drawing a is the pole to which the cross
:
Ab, latter half. beam with yokes, b, is attached c, the share d, the
; ;
Fig. 2. — Egyptian ploughing and sowing. — (Wilkinson, Tombs of the Kings. — Thebes.)
the gleaning was over, lest the poor should suffer able of the sower, being scattered
j broadcast and
(Penh, v. 3); and such sowing often took place
ploughed in afterwards, the roots of the late crop
]
Fig. 3. — Goats treading in the grain, when sown in the field, after the water has subsided. -
-(Wilkinson,
Tombs, near the Pyramids.)
lows, Asia Minor, p. 72). The soil was then gathered to seed sown was often vast a hundred- ;
brushed over with a light harrow, often of thorn fold is mentioned, but in such a way as to signify
bushes. In highly irrigated spots the seed was that it was a limit rarely attained (Gen. xxvi. 12,
trampled in by cattle (Is. xxxii. 20), as in Egypt by Matt. xiii. 8).
goats (Wilkinson, i. 39, 2d Ser.). Sometimes, The rotation of crops, familiar to the Egyptians
however, the sowing was by patches only in well
Fig. 16. - Treading out the grain by oxen, and winnowing. 1. Raking up the ears to the centre, 2. The
driver. 3. Winnowing, with wooden shovels. (Wilkinson, Tkebes.) —
The "shovel" and "fan" (i"irn and rHTE, a fixed moneyed rent (Cant. viii. 11) — in which
Is. xxx. 24, but their precise difference is very case he was called ""Oltt?, and was compellable to
doubtful) indicate the process of winnowing a — keep the ground in good order for a stipulated share
conspicuous part of ancient husbandry (Ps. xxxv. of the fruits (2 Sam. ix. 10; Matt. xxi. 34), often
5; Job. xxi. 18; Is. xvii. 13), and important owing a half or a third but local custom was the only
;
the shaking in a sieve, 7T[Q!p, cribrum, to sep- claim on the soil for support. Eor his benefit, too,
a sheaf forgotten hi carrying to the floor was to be
arate dirt and refuse (Am. ix. 9). [See Luke xxii.
left; so also with regard to the vineyard and the
31.]
olive-grove (Lev. xix. 9, 10; Deut. xxiv. 19).°
i ields and floors were not commonly enclosed
vineyards mostly were, with a tower and other a * The beautiful custom has survived to the present
buildings (Num. xxii. 24; Ps. lxxx. 13; Is. v. 5; time (Thomson's Land and Book, ii. 323, 511) On
Matt. xxi. 33; comp.Judg.vi.il). Banks of mud several topics in this article (as climate, seasons, fertil-
from ditches were also used. ity, productions) further information will be found
With regard to occupancy a tenant might pay under Palestine. U.
AGRIPPA AHAB 45
Besides there seems a probability that every third obedience to her wishes, Ahab
caused a temple to
year a second tithe, besides the priests', was paid be built to Baal in Samaria itself, and an oracular
for the poor (Deut. xiv. 28, xxvi. 12; Am. iv. 4; grove to be consecrated to Astarte. With a fixed
Tob. i. 7; Joseph. Ant. iv. 8). On this doubtful determination to extirpate the true religion, Jezebel
hunted down and put to death God's prophets,
point of the poor man's tithe 033? 1W2T2) see a
some of whom were concealed in eaves by Obadiah,
learned note by Surenhusius, ad Peak, viii. 2. the governor of Ahab's house; while the
Phoenician
These rights, in case two poor men were partners rites were carried on with such splendor that we
in occupancy, might be conveyed by each to the read of 450 prophets of Baal, and 400 of Asherah.
other for half the field, and thus retained between (See 1 K. xviii.
19, where our version follows the
them (Maimon. ad Peak, v. 5). Sometimes a char- LXX. in erroneously substituting " the groves
itable owner declared his ground common, when for the proper name Asherah, as again in 2
K.
its fruits, as those of the sabbatical year, went to [Asherah.] How the worship
xxi. 7, xxiii. 6.)
the poor. For three years the fruit of newly-
of God was restored, and the idolatrous priests slain,
planted trees was deemed uncircumcised and for- in consequence of "a sore famine in Samaria," will
bidden in the 4th it was holy, as first-fruits ; in be more properly related under the article Elijah.
;
the 5th it might be ordinarily eaten (Mis/ma, Or- But heathenism and persecution were not the only
liih, passim). For the various classical analogies, crimes into which Jezebel led her yielding husband.
see Diet, of Gr. and Rom. Antiq. s. v. H. H. One of his chief tastes was for splendid architect-
AGRIPPA. [Herod.] ure, which he showed by building an ivory house
A'GUP* ("fliM [collector] : Congregans). The and and also by ordering the restora-
several cities,
tion and fortification of Jericho, which seems to
son of Jakeh, an unknown Hebrew sage, who ut-
have belonged to Israel, and not to Judah, as it is
tered or collected the sayings of wisdom recorded
said to have been rebuilt in the days of Ahab,
in Prov. xxx. Ewald attributes to him the author-
rather than in those of the contemporary king of
ship of Prov. xxx. 1-xxxi. 9, in consequence of the
Judah, Jehoshaphat (1 K. xvi. 34). But the place
similarity of style exhibited in the three sections
in which he chiefly indulged this passion was the
therein contained and assigns as his date a period
;
beautiful city of Jezreel (now Zerin), in the plain
not earlier than the end of the 7th or beginning of
of Esdraelon, which he adorned with a palace and
the 0th cent. b. c. The Rabbins, according to
park for his own residence, though Samaria re-
Bashi, and Jerome after them, interpreted the name
mained the capital of his kingdom, Jezreel standing
symbolically of Solomon, who "collected under-
in the same relation to it as the Versailles of the
standing" (from ")3S agar, he gathered), and is old French monarchy to Paris (Stanley, S. <f P.
elsewhere called " Koheleth." Bunsen (Bibelwerk, i. p. 244). Desiring to add to his pleasure-grounds
p. clxxviii.) contends that Agur was an inhabitant there the vineyard of his neighbor Naboth, he pro-
of Massa, and probably- a descendant of one of the posed to buy it or give land in exchange for it and ;
500 Simeonites, who, in the reign of Hezekiah, when this was refused by Naboth, in accordance
drove out the Amalekites from Mount Seir. Hit- with the Mosaic law, on the ground that the vine-
zig goes further, and makes him the son of the yard was " the inheritance of his fathers " (Lev.
queen of Massa and brother of. Lemuel (Die Sprilche xxv. 23), a false accusation of blasphemy was
Sal. p. 311, ed. 1858). [Massa.] In Castell's brought against him, and not only was he himself
stoned to death, bi.t his sons also, as we learn from
Lex. Ileptag. we find the Syriac word J'^^J, 2 K. ix 26. Elijah, already the great vindicator
agiiri\ defined as signifying " one who applies him- of religion, now appeared as the assertor of morality,
self to the studies of wisdom." There is no au- and declared that the entire extirpation of Ahab's
thority given for this but the Lexicon of Bar Bahlul, house was the penalty appointed for his long course
and' it may have been derived from some tradi- of wickedness, now crowned by this atrocious
tional interpretation of the proper name Agur. crime. The execution, however, of this sentence
W. A. W. was delayed in consequence of Ahab's deep repent-
ance. The remaining part of the first book of
A'HAB (3Hn« [father's brother]: 'Axaa/3; Kings is occupied by an account of the Syrian
Achab), son of Omri, seventh king of the separate wars, which originally seems to have been contained
kingdom of Israel, and second of his dynasty. The in the last two chapters. It is much more natural
great lesson which we learn from his life is the depth to place the 20th chapter after the 21st, and so
of wickedness into which a weak man may fall, bring the whole history of these wars together, than
even though not devoid of good feelings and amiable to interrupt the narrative by interposing the story
impulses, when he abandons himself to the guidance of Naboth between the 20th and 22c}, especially as
of another person, resolute, unscrupulous and de- the beginning of the 22d seems to follow naturally
praved. The cause of his ruin was his marriage from the end of the 20th. And this arrangement
with .Jezebel, daughter of Ethbaal, or Eithobal, king is actually found in the LXX. and confirmed by
of Tyre, who had been priest of Astarte, but had the narrative of Josephus. We read of three cam-
usurped the throne of his brother Fhalles (compare paigns which Ahab undertook against Benhadad
Joseph. Ant. viii. 13, 2, with c. Apion. i. 18). If II. king of Damascus, two defensive and one offen-
she resembles the Lady Macbeth of our great sive. In the first, Benhadad laid siege to Sama-
dramatist, Ahab has hardly Macbeth's energy and ria, and Ahab, encouraged by the patriotic counsels
determination, though he was probably by nature a of God's prophets, who, next to the true religion,
better man. We have a comparatively full account valued most deeply the independence of His chosen
of Ahab's reign, because it was distinguished by people, made a sudden attack on him whilst in the
the ministry of the great prophet Elijah, who was plentitude of arrogant confidence he was banquet-
brought into direct collision with Jezebel, when she ing in his tent with his 32 vassal kings. The
ventured to introduce into Israel the impure wor- Syrians were totally routed, and fled to Damas-
ship of Baal and her father's goddess Astarte. In cus.
46 AHARAH AHASUERUS
Next year Benhadad, believing that liis failure "Hur the firstborn of Miriam" (1 Chr. iv. 8).
was owing to some peculiar power which the God
of Israel exercised over the hills, invaded Israel by
The LXX. appear to have read SPH ^PS,
"brother of Reehab," or according to the Complu-
way of Aphek, on the E. of Jordan (Stanley, 8.
$ P. App. § 6). Yet Ahab's victory was so com- tensian edition 7J~R ^PS, "brother of Rachel."
plete that Benhadad himself fell into his hands; W. A. W.
but was released (contrary to the will of God as
announced by a prophet) on condition of restoring AHASAI [3 syl.] (^PIS [=Ahaziah]: om.
all the cities of Israel which he held, and making in LXX. [but Comp. 2a/cx"*s] Ahazi). : A priest,
"streets " for Ahab in Damascus; that is, admit- ancestor of Maasiai or Amashai (Neh. xi. 13).
ting into his capital permanent Hebrew commis- He is called Jahzekah in 1 Chr. ix. 12.
sioners, in an independent position, with special W. A. W.
dwellings for themselves and their retinues, to watch
AHASBAI [3 syl.] OSDPl^ : 6 'AvP'ltvs
over the commercial and political interests of Ahab
[Vat. -fiei-]; Alex, o AiToue [Comp. 'Axa<r/3ai:]
;
and his subjects. This was apparently in retali-
Aasbai). The father of Eliphelet, one of David's
ation for a similar privilege exacted by Benhadad's
thirty-seven captains (2 Sam. xxiii. 34). In the
predecessor from Omri in respect to Samaria.
corrupt list in 1 Chr. xi. 35, Eliphelet appears as
After this great success Ahab enjoyed peace for
" Eliphal the son of Ur." The LXX. regarded the
three years, and it is difficult to account exactly for
name Ahasbai as denoting not the father but the
the third outbreak of hostilities, which in Kings is
family of Eliphelet. [According to Gesenius the
briefly attributed to an attack made by Ahab on
name signifies / have taken refuge in Jthovah."]
Ramoth in Gilead on the east of Jordan, in eon-
W. A. W.
junction with Jehoshaphat king of Judah, which
town he claimed as belonging to Israel. But if
* AHASHVE'ROSH. Ezra iv. 6 Noted in
in the margin of the A. V. as the Hebrew form of
Ramoth was one of the cities which Benhadad
agreed to restore, why did Ahab wait for three years
Ahasuebus. A.
to enforce the fulfillment of the treaty? From AHASUERUS"
(EVHItf? PIN 'Aaaovvpos, :
this difficulty,and the extreme bitterness shown by [Vat. Ao-dypos,] LXX. [in Ezra iv.
6] but 'Acrurj- ;
Benhadad against Ahab personally (1 K. xxii. 31), pos, [Alex. AcrovT)pos, Comp. Aid. Acraov-qpos,] '
it seems probable that this was not the case (or at Tob. xiv. 15: Assuerzts, A. V. [in
Tob.], Vulg.),
all events that the Syrians did not so understand the
the name of one Median and two Persian kings
treaty), but that Ahab, now strengthened by Jehosh- 'mentioned in the Old Testament. It may be de-
aphat, who must have felt keenly the paramount sirable to prefix to this article a chronological table
importance of crippling the power of Syria, origin- of the Medo-Persian kings from Cyaxares to Ar-
ated the war by assaulting Ramoth without any im- taxerxes Longimanus, according to their ordinary
mediate provocation. In any case, God's blessing classical names. The Scriptural names conjectured
did not rest on the expedition, and Ahab was told by to correspond to them in this article and Abta-
the prophet Micaiah that it would fail, and that the xekxes are added in italics.
prophets who advised it were hurrying him to his 1. Cyaxares, king of Media, son of Phraortes,
ruin. For giving this warning Micaiah was im- grandson of Deioces and conqueror of Nineveh,
prisoned but Ahab was
;
so far roused by it as to began to reign b. c. 634. Ahasuerus.
take the precaution of disguising himself, so as not 2. Astyages his son, last king of Media. B. 0.
to offer a conspicuous mark to the archers of Ben- 594. Darius the J\h<le.
hadad. But he was slain by a " certain man who 3. Cyrus, son of his daughter Mandane and
drew a bow at a venture " and though staid up Cambyses, a Persian noble, first king of Persia, 559.
;
not of royal race, and therefore it is very likely that 15), or a river (~in3) (viii. 21, 31), on the banks
he also assumed the kingly name or title of Axares of which Ezra collected the second expedition which
or Cyaxares which had been borne by his most illus- returned with him from Babylon to Jerusalem.
trious ancestor. Various have been the conjectures' as to its locality
3. The third is the Ahasuerus of the book of Abeh or
e. (j. Adiaba (Le Clerc and Mannert) ;
Now from the extent assigned to the Persian em- king of Judah, son of Jotham, ascended the throne
pire (Esth. i. 1), " from India even unto Ethiopia," in the 20th year of his age, according to 2 K. xvi. 2.
it is proved that Darius Hystaspis is the earliest But this must be a transcriber's error for the 25th,
possible king to whom this history can apply, and it which number is found in one Hebrew MS., the
is hardly worth while to consider the claims of any LXX., the Peshito, and Arabic version of 2 Chr.
after Artaxerxes Longimanus. But Ahasuerus xxviii. 1 ; for otherwise, his son Hezekiah was born
cannot be identical with Darius, whose wives were when he was eleven years old (so Clinton, Fasti
the daughters of Cyrus and Otanes, and who in Hell, vol. i. p. 318). At the time of his accession,
name and character equally differs from that foolish Rezin king of Damascus and Pekah king of Israel
tyrant. Neither can he be Artaxerxes Longimanus, had recently formed a league against Judah, and
although as Artaxerxes is a compound of Xerxes, they proceeded to lay siege to Jerusalem, intending
there is less difficulty here as to the name. But in to place on the throne Ben Tabeal, who was not a
the first place the character of Artaxerxes, as given prince of the royal family of Judah, but probably
by Plutarch and by Diodorus (xi. 71), is also very a Syrian noble. Upon this the great prophet
unlike that of Ahasuerus. Besides this, in Ezra Isaiah, full of zeal for God and patriotic loyalty to
vii. 1-7, 11-26, Artaxerxes, in the seventh year of the house of David, hastened to give advice and
his reign, issues a decree very favorable to the Jews, encouragement to Ahaz, and it was probably owing
and it is unlikely, therefore, that in the twelfth to the spirit of energy and religious devotion which
(Esth. iii. 7) Haman could speak to him of them he poured into his counsels, that the allies failed
as ifhe knew nothing about them, and persuade hi their attack on Jerusalem. Thus much, together
him them to an indiscriminate mas- with anticipations of danger from the Assyrians,
to sentence
sacre. We are therefore reduced to the belief that and a general picture of weakness and unfaithful-
Ahasuerus is Xerxes (the names being, as we have ness both in the king and the people, we find in
48 AHAZIAH AHAZIAH
the famous prophecies of the 7th, 8th, and 9th Azariah, 2 Chr. xxii. 6, probably by a copyist's error,
chapters of Isaiah, in which he seels to animate and Jehoahaz, 2 Chr. xxi. 17. Ewald (Geschichte
and support them by the promise of the Messiah. des Volkes Israel, hi. 525) thinks that his name
From 2 K. xvi. and 2 Chr. xxviii. we learn that was changed to Ahaziah on his accession, but the
the allies took a vast number of crptives, who, LXX. read 'Oxofias for Jehoahaz, and with this
however, were restored in virtue of the remon- agree the Peshito, Chald.. and Arab. So too, while
strances of the prophet Oded; and that they also 26 we read that he was 22 years okl
in 2 K. viii.
inflicted a most severe injury on Jidah by the we find in 2 Chr. xxii. 2, that his
at his accession,
capture of Elath, a flourishing port on he lied Sea, age at that time was 42.
I The former number is
in which, after expelling the Jews, they reestab- certainly right, as hi 2 Chr. xxi. 5, 20, we see that
lished the Edomites (according to the true reading his father Jehoram was 40 when he died, which
would make him younger than his own son, so that
of 2 K. xvi. 6, D^'TTS for C^'-PS), who
attacked and wasted the E. part of Judah, while a transcriber must have confounded (22) and DD
the Philistines invaded the W.
and S. The weak-
3Q (42). Ahaziah was an idolater, "walking in
minded and helpless Ahaz sought deliverance from
these numerous troubles by appealing to Tiglath- allthe ways of the house of Ahab," and he allied
pileser king of Assyria, who freed him from his himself with his uncle Jehoram king of Israel,
most formidable enemies by invading Syria, taking brother and successor of the preceding Ahaziah,
Damascus, killing Rezin, and depriving Israel of its against Hazael, the new king of Syria. The two
Northern and Transjordanic districts. But Ahaz kings were, however, defeated at Bamoth, where
had to purchase this help at a costly price. He Jehoram was so severely wounded that he retired to
became tributary to Tiglath-pileser, sent him all the his mother's palace at Jezreel to be healed. The
treasures of the Temple and his own palace, and union between the uncle and nephew was so close
even appeared before him in Damascus as a vassal. that there was great danger lest heathenism should
He also ventured to seek for safety in heathen cere- entirely overspread both the Hebrew kingdoms, but
monies; making his son pass through the fire to this was prevented by the great revolution carried
Moloch, consulting wizards and necromancers (Is. out in Israel by Jehu under the guidance of Elisha,
viii.19), sacrificing to the Syrian gods, introducing
which involved the house of David in calamities
a foreign altar from Damascus, and probably the only less severe than those which exterminated the
worship of the heavenly bodies from Assyria and house of Omri. It broke out while Ahaziah was
Babylon, as he would seem to have set up the visiting his uncle at Jezreel. As Jehu approached
horses of the sun mentioned in 2 K. xxiii. 11 (cf. the town, Jehoram and Ahaziah went out to meet
Tac. Ann. xii. 13); and " the altars on the top (or him, either from not suspecting his designs, or to
roof) of the upper chamber of Ahaz " (2 K. xxiii. prevent them. The former was shot through the
12) were connected with the adoration of the stars. heart by Jehu; Ahaziah was pursued as far as the
"We see another and blameless result of this inter- pass of Gur, near the city of Ibleam, and there
course with an astronomical people in the " sundial mortally wounded. He died when he reached Me-
ofAhaz," Is. xxxviii. 8.« He died after a reign of giddo. But in 2 Chr. xxii. 9, it is said that Aha-
16 years, lasting b. c. 740-724. G. E. L. C. ziah was found hidden in Samaria after the death of
2. (Altitz.) A
son of Mieah, the grandson of Jehoram, brought to Jehu, and killed by his orders.
Jonathan through Meribbaal or Mephibosheth (1 Attempts to reconcile these accounts may be found
Chr. viii. 35, 36, ix. 42). W. A. W. in Pole's Synapsis, in Lightfoot's Harm, of Old
Tift, (in loc), and in Davidson's Text of the Old
AHAZIAH (rPTHS. VPTHS, u-hom Je-
Testament, part ii. book ii. ch. xiv. Ahaziah
hovah sustains: 'Oxo(ias [Vat. -(er] Ochozias.) '
reigned one year, b. c. 884, called the 12th of Je-
1. Son of xVhab and Jezebel, and eighth king of horam, king of Israel, 2 K. viii. 25, the 11th, 2 K.
Israel. After the battle of Bamoth in Gilead ix. 29. His father therefore must have died before
[Ahab] the Syrians had the command of the coun- the 11th [vear] of Jehoram was concluded (Clinton,
try along the east of Jordan, and they cut off all Fasti Hell, i. 324). G. E. L. C.
communication between the Israelites and Moab-
* It being
possible that the two accounts, taken
ites, so that the vassal king of Moab refused his
yearly tribute of 100,000 lambs and 100,000 rams singly, are fragmentary, they may supplement each
with their wool (conip. Is. xvi. 1). Befi re Ahaziah other. Ahaziah escaping " by the way of the
could take measures for enforcing his claim, he was garden house," Jehu ordered his men to pursue and
seriously injured by a fall through a lattice in his slay him in his chariot (2 K. ix. 27) but being too
;
palace at Samaria. In his health he had worshipped swift for his pursuers, he reached Samaria and there
his mother's gods, and now he sent to inquire of the concealed himself for a time, till Jehu, " executing
oracle of Baalzebub in the Philistine city of Ekron judgment upon the house of Ahab," sought him
whether he should recover his health. But Elijah, out, and had him put to death (2 Chr. xxii. 8, 9).
For the fuller circumstances of the death we turn
who now for the last time exercised the prophetic
rebuked him for this impiety, and announced
office,
again to 2 K. ix. 27. Jehu ordered his captive to
to him his approaching death. He reigned two be taken (perhaps under some pretense of a friendly
years (b. c. 896, 895). The only other recorded object) to "the going up (ascent) to Gur near
transaction of his reign, his endeavor to join the Ibleam," and there he was slain in his chariot (i. e.
king of Judah in trading to Ophir, is more fitly re- received the deadly blow there, though he escaped
nephew of the preceding Ahaziah. He is called stead of being decoyed to Gur for execution, may
have been overtaken there as he fled in his chariot,
« * For the " sun dial " of Ahaz, see Dial. H. and put to death as before stated. It is worth
AHBAN AHIJAH 49
noticing (see the Hebrew text and the italics in the 'Ax">^5 Ahiud), chieftain of the tribe of Benja-
:
l
min (1 Chr. viii. 7). Ii. W. B.
A. V.: "And they did so") that the slaying of
Ahaziah at Gur (2 K. ix. 27) stands loosely related AHIJAH, or AHI'AH (n»nS and
to what precedes, as if his being slain then- was the
final execution ofJehu's order after various delays ^n^FIS [friend of Jehovah] 'Ax<a : [Vat. -x«i-] :
had intervened. See Keil. Comm. ill), die Biicher Achias). Son of Ahitub, Ichabod's brother, the
1.
der Konige, p. 402; and Zeller'a Biol. Wbrterb. son of Phinehas, the son of Eli Sam. xiv. 3, 18). ( I
Aep, H. Aep; Comp. 'A%ep ] Aher). Ancestor quired not at the ark in the days of Saul, if we un-
:
of Hushim, or rather "the Hushim," derstand the latter expression in the strictest sense.
as the plural
form seems than an in-
to indicate a family rather This difficulty seems to have led to the reading
dividual. The name occurs in an obscure passage in the Vatican copy of the LXX., of to i<povS, in
in the genealogy of Benjamin (1 Chr. vii. 12). 1 Sam. xiv. 18, instead of tt\v KifSuirSv, or rather
Some translators consider it as not a proper name perhaps "H£M,
of instead of JTV, in the He-
at and render it literally '•another," because,
all.
brew codex from which that version was made.
as Eashi says. Ezra, who compiled the genealogy,
was uncertain whether the families belonged to the Others avoid the difficulty by interpreting ^*HM
tribe of Benjamin or not. It is not improbable to meana chest for carrying about the ephod in.
that Aher and Ahiram (Num. xxvi. 38) are the But all difficulty will disappear if we apply the ex-
same; unless the former belonged to the tribe of pression only to all the latter years of the reign of
Dan, whose genealogy is omitted in 1 Chr. vii. Said, when we know that the priestly establishment
Hushim being a Danite as well as a Benjamite was at Nob, and not at Kirjath-jearim, or Baale of
name. W. A. W. Judah, where the ark was. But the narrative in 1
Sam. xiv. is entirely favorable to the mention of the
A'HI OnS, brother: abeXtpov- fratres). 1.
ark. For it appears that Saul was at the time in
A Gadite, chief of a family who lived in Gilead in
Gibeah of Benjamin, and Gibeah of Benjamin
Bashan (1 Chr. v. 15), in the days of Jotham, king
seems to have been the place where the house of
of Judah. By the LXX. and Vulgate the word
Abinadab was situated (2 Sam. vi. 3), being prob-
was not considered a proper name. [But for Bov£
ably the Benjamite quarter of Kirjath-jearim,
aSe\(pov of the Koman edition, Vat. M. has Za-
which lay on the very borders of Judah and Ben-
fiovxan (H. Za.frovXa.fi.), and Alex, with 7 other jamin. Whether
MSS. Axi0ov£. A.] — (See Josh,
was the encroachments of the
xviii. 14, 28.)
Philistines, or an in-
it
2. ('Ax'': [Vat- M. Axtovia, H. Ax'ouiA:] AM.) cipient schism between the tribes of Benjamin and
A descendant of Shamer, of the tribe of Asher (1 Judah, or any other cause, which led to the disuse
Chr. vii. 34). The name, according to Gesenius, of the ark during the latter years of Saul's reign,
is a contraction of Ahijah. is difficult to say. But probably the Last time that
AHI'AH. [Ahijah.] Ahijah inquired of the Lord before the ark was on
the occasion related 1 Sam. xiv. 30, when Saul
AHI'AM (CS^nS. for SS^PSI [father's
marred his victory over the Philistines by his rash
brother], Gesen. : [in 2 S.] 'Afxvav; [Aid. 'A^iay; oath, which nearly cost Jonathan his life. For we
Comp. 'Ax«*M' in 1 Chr. 'Ax'V : ^ at - A X e 'M! there read that when Saul proposed a ni<;ht-pursuit
Comp. Alex. 'Ax»a/*0 Ahiam), son of Sharar the of the Philistines, the priest, Ahijah, said, " Let us
Hararite (or of Sacar, 1 Chr. xi. 35), one of David's draw near hither unto God," for the. purpose,
30 mighty men (2 Sam. xxiii. 33). namely, of asking counsel of God. But God re-
seems, of
AHI'AN ?T!N 'Atfi', ( : [Vat. Alex. turned no answer, in consequence, as it
laaifx;
Saul's rash curse. If, as is commonly thought, and
A Manassite of
Afiv'.] Akin). the family of She-
as seems most likely, Ahijah is the same person as
mida (1 Chr. vii. 19). W. A, W.
Ahimelech the son of Ahitub, this failure to obtain
AHIE'ZER ("l^rK an answer from the priest, followed as it was by a
: [brother of help, or
God is help] 'Axie'C6 P Ahiezer). 1. Son of Am- rising of the people to save Jonathan out of Saul's
: :
mishaddai, hereditary chieftain of the tribe of Dan hands, may have led to an estrangement
between
under the administration of Moses (Num. i. 12, ii. the king and the high-priest, ajid predisposed him
25, vii. 66, [71. x. 25]). to suspect Ahimelech's loyalty, and to take that
for' his favor to David.
2. The Benjamite chief of a body of archers at terrible revenge upon him
the time of David (1 Chr. xii. 3). R. W. B. Such changes of name as Ahi-melech and Ahi-jah
are not uncommon. (See <n neologies, p. 115-
AHI'HUD =
(l^rPPS [brother friend, of 118.) a However, it is not impossible that, as Ge-
the Jews, or of renown] 'Axidp: [Alex. Ax«W3 ] senius supposes, Ahimelech may have been brother
: :
2. ("TnTlS [brother = friend, of union]: 'Ia- a Where we have the further error of Ahimelech for
in David's reign, who was over the treasures of the The father of Baana, one of Solomon's twelve com-
house of God, and over the treasures of the dedi- missariat officers (1 K. iv. 12). It is uncertain
cated things (1 Chr. xxvi. 20). whether he is the same as the foregoing.
6. [vl/«rt.] One of Solomon's princes, brother W. A. W.
of Elihoreph, and son of Shisha (1 K. iv. 3).
7. [Ahias.] A
prophet of Shiloh (1 K. xiv. 2),
AHIM'AAZ
[TIeb. Ahima'az] (VVPTlSI
[brother of anger, i. e. irascible] Ax'/""1 *'
hence called the Shilonite (xi. 29) hi the days of :
in 1 K. xi. 31-39, addressed to Jeroboam, announ- 2.[Vat. Axetvaas, etc.] Son of Zadok, the
cing the rending of the ten tribes from Solomon, hi priest in David's reign. When David fled from
punishment of his idolatries, and the transfer of the Jerusalem on account of Absalom's rebellion, Za-
kingdom Jeroboam: a prophecy which, though
to dok and Abiathar, accompanied by their sons Ahini-
delivered privately, became known to Solomon, and aaz and Jonathan, and the Levites, carried the ark
excited his wrath against Jeroboam, who fled for his of God forth, intending to accompany the king.
life into Egypt, to Shishak, and remained there till But at his bidding they returned to the city, as
Solomon's death. The other prophecy, in 1 K. did likewise Hushai the Archite. It was then ar-
xiv. 6-16, was delivered in the prophet's extreme ranged that Hushai should feign himself to be a
old age to Jeroboam's wife, in which he foretold friend of Absalom, and should tell Zadok and Abi-
the death of Abijah, the king's son, who was sick, athar whatever intelligence he could obtain in the
and to inquire concerning whom the queen was palace. They, on their parts, were to forward the
come in disguise, and then went on to denounce intelligence through Ahimaaz and Jonathan. Ac-
the destruction of Jeroboam's house on account of cordingly Jonathan and Ahimaaz stayed outside
the images which he had set up, and to foretell the the walls of 'the city at En-Rogel, on the road
captivity of Israel " beyond the river " Euphrates. towards the plain. A
message soon came to them
These prophecies give us a high idea of the faith- from Zadok and Abiathar through the maid-servant,
fulness and boldness of Ahijah, and of the eminent to say that Ahithophel had counselled an immediate
rank which he attained as a prophet. Jeroboam's attack against David and his followers, and that,
speech concerning him (1 K. xiv. 2, 3) shows the consequently, the king must cross the Jordan with-
estimation in which he held his truth and prophetic out the least delay. They started at once on their
powers. In 2 Chr. ix. 29 reference is made to a errand, but not without being suspected, for a lad
record of the events of Solomon's reign contained seeing the wench speak to them, and seeing them
in the "prophecy of Ahijah the Shilonite." If immediately run off quickly —
and Ahimaaz, we
there were a larger work of Ahijah's, the passage know, was a practiced runner —
went and told Ab-
in 1 K. xi. is doubtless an extract from it. salom, who ordered a hot pursuit. In the mean
8. [AAias.~\ Father of Baasha, king of Israel, time, however, they had got as far as Bahurim, the
the contemporary of Asa, king of Judah. He was very place where Shimei cursed David (2 Sam. xvi.
of the tribe of Issachar (1 K. xv. 27, 33). [Occurs 5), to the house of a steadfast partizan of David's.
also 1 K. xxi. 22 ; 2 K. ix. 9.] A. C. H. Here the woman of the house effectually hid them
in a well in the court- yard, and covered the well's
9. (Ala; [Vat. Apa-] Echaia.) One of the
mouth with ground or bruised corn. Absalom's
heads of the people who sealed the covenant with
servants coming up searched for them in vain and ;
Nehemiah (Neh. x. 26). W. A. W. as soon as they were gone, and returned on the road
AHI'KAM (Dp^nH [brother of the enemy]: to Jerusalem, Ahimaaz and Jonathan hasted on to
David, and told him Ahithophel's counsel, and
Ax""*/* [Vat. -X61-]
: AMcam),
a son of Shaphan
David with his whole company crossed the Jordan
the scribe, an influential officer at the court of Jo-
that very night. Ahithophel was so mortified at
siah (2 K. xxii. 12), and of Jehoiakim his son (Jer.
seeing the failure of his scheme, through the un-
xxvi. 24). When Shaphan brought the book of the
wise delay in executing it, that he went home and
law to Josiah, wh'ch Hilkiah the high priest had
hanged himself. This signal service rendered to
found in the temple, Ahikam was sent by the king,
David, at the hazard of his life, by Ahimaaz, must
together with four other delegates, to consult IIul-
dah the prophetess on the subject. In the reign of
have tended to ingratiate him with the king. Wo
have a proof how highly he was esteemed by him,
Jehoiakim, when the priests and prophets arraigned
as well as an honorable testimony to his character,
Jeremiah before the princes of Judah on account of
in the saying of David recorded 2 Sam. xviii. 27.
his bold denunciations of the national sins, Ahikam
For when the watchman announced the approach
successfully used his influence to protect the prophet.
of a messenger, and added, that his running was
His son Gedaliah was made governor of Judah by
like the running of Ahimaaz, the son of Zadok,
Nebuchadnezzar, the Chaldrean king, and to his
the king said, "He is a good man, and conieth
charge Jeremiah was entrusted when released from
with good tidings."
prison (Jer. xxxix. 14, xl. 5). R. W. B.
The same transaction gives us a very curious
AHFLUD (l^b^nS [brother of one born,
specimen of the manners of the times, and a singu-
Ges. or Ach, i. e. God, who originates, Furst:
; lar instance of oriental or Jewish craft in Ahimaaz.
Rom.] 'Ax'AovS; AxiAovfl [Vat. -x«-] in 2 Sam. For we learn, first, that Ahimaaz was a professed
xx. 24; [Vat. Axeta in 2 Sam. viii. 16 and 1 Chr.; runner —
and a very swift one too —
which one
in 1 K. iv. 3, Vat. M. AxftMaS, H. AxfiAaS;] would hardly have expected in the son of the high-
Alex. AxiM«*«X 2 Sam. viii 1(i AX'M" * ^. iv. -
>
priest. It belongs, however, to a simple state of
AHIMAAZ AHINADAB 51
society that bodily powers of any kind should be for one month in the year. He was probably of
highly valued, and exercised by the possessor of the tribe of Naphtali, and was the king's son-in-
them in the most natural way. Ahimaaz was law, having married his daughter Basmath (1 K.
probably naturally swift, and so became famous for iv. 7, 15). A. C. H.
his running (2 Sam. xviii. 27). So we are told of
Asahel, Joab's brother, that " he was as light of
(l^ON AHIMAN
[brother of a gift, Ges.]
quick running was not deemed inconsistent with Ax^vaaf, Alex. AxiKafj., Ax^a-a/x'-] Ackiman,
[Amman]). 1. One of the three giant Anakim
the utmost dignity and gravity of character appears
from what we read of Elijah the Tishbite, that " he who inhabited Mount Hebron (Num. xiii. 22, 33;
girded up his loins and ran before Ahab (who was [Josh. xv. 14]), seen by Caleb and the spies. The
in his chariot) to the entrance of Jezreel" (1 K. whole race were cut off by Joshua (Josh. xi. 21),
xviii. 46). The kings of Israel had running foot- and the three brothers were slain by the tribe of
men to precede them when they went in their char- Judah (Judg. i. 10). R. W. B.
iots (2 Sam. xv. 1; 1 K. i. 5), and [Vat. M. Atfi.au,
their guards 2. A'M«M! Akl
(Ai/mdv, H -
it appears from the latter passage that in the time [Vat. -yet- and -/3ei-; Alex. A/8m-, Axi/U-
A/xifi.-,
of Xerxes the service was performed with mules and
6A.6X' Axi/ueXe/c:] Achimeleck, [AMmelecK]). 1.
camels. The Greek name, borrowed from the Per- Son of Ahitub Sam.
and high-priest at
(1 xxii. 11),
sian, was uyyapoi- As regards Ahimaaz's crafti- Nob in the days of David the show-
Saul. He gave
ness we read that when Absalom was killed by Joab bread to eat, and the sword of Goliath and for so ;
and his armor-bearers Ahimaaz was very urgent doing was, upon the accusation of Doeg the Edom-
with Joab to be employed as the messenger to run ite, put to death with his whole house by Saul's
and carry the tidings to David. The politic Joab, order. Eighty-five priests wearing an ephod were
well knowing the king's fond partiality for Absalom, thus cruelly slaughtered; Abiathar alone escaped.
and that the news of his death would be anything [Abiathar.] The LXX. read three hundred
but good news to him, and, apparently, having a and five men, thus affording another instance of
friendly feeling towards Ahimaaz, would not allow the frequent clerical errors in transcribing numbers,
him to be the bearer of such tidings, but em- of which Ezr. ii. compared with Neh. vii. is a re-
ployed Cushi instead. But after Cushi had started,
Ahimaaz was so urgent with Joab to be allowed to markable example. The interchange of Lj^tttt?,
run too that at length he extorted his consent. or rnbtt', with D^btt? and Wbw, is very
Taking a shorter or an easier way by the plain he
managed to outrun Cushi before he got in sight of common. For the question of Ahimelech's iden-
the watch-tower, and, arriving first, he reported to tity with Ahijah, see Ahijah. For the singular
the king the good news of the victory, suppressing confusion [or apparent confusion] between Ahime-
lech and Abiathar in the 1st Book of Chronicles,
his knowledge of Absalom's death, and leaving to
Cushi the task of announcing it. He had thus the see Abiathar. [The name occurs 1 Sam. xxi. 1,
merit of bringing good tidings without the alloy of 2, 8, xxii. 9, 11, 14, 16, 20, xxiii. 6, xxx. 7; 2
the disaster of the death of the king's son. This Sam. viii. 17; 1 Chr. xxiv. 3, 6, 31; Ps. Iii. title.]
Judging only from 1 K. iv. 2, compared with 1 to be a corrupt reading for H3 ^l!?P tT'OW.
Chr. vi. 10, we should conclude that Ahimaaz died See 1 Sam. xxi. 13 (12, in A. Y.)~. A. C H.
before his father Zadok, and that Zadok was suc-
ceeded by his grandson Azariah. Josephus's state-
AHFMOTH (fYlDTTN [brother of death]:
ment that Zadok was the first high-priest of Solo- 'Ax(.«u>0; [Vat. A\eipw0:] Ackimath), a Levite
mon's temple, seeing the temple was not finished of the house of the Korhites, of the family of the
till the eleventh year of his reign, is a highly im- Kohathites, apparently in the time of David (1
probable one in itself. The statement of the Seder Chr. vi. 25). In ver. 35, for Ahimoth we find Ma-
(jlnui, which makes Ahimaaz high-priest in Reho-
hath (HrTO), Madd, as in Luke iii. 26. For a
boam's reign, is still more so. It is safer, there-
correction of these genealogies, see Genealogies 'if
fore, to follow the indications of the Scripture nar-
our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ, p. 214, note.
rative, though somewhat obscured by the appa-
A. C. H.
rently corrupted passages, 1 K. iv. 4, and 1 Chr.
vi. !). 10, and conclude that Ahimaaz died before AHIN'ADAB (STpnS [nd>h brother'].
he attained the high-priesthood, leaving as his heir [Vat. Axeivaafi; Alex. AiVaSa/S :]
'AxJi"*5a/3;
his son Azarias.
Ahinadab), son of Iddo, one of Solomon's twelve,
3. Solomon's officer in Naphtali, charged with commissaries who supplied provisions for the royal
providing victuals for the king and his household household. The district entrusted to Ahinadab
52 AHINOAM AHITUB
was that of Mahanaim, situated on the east of the or upright]: 'Axiffap; [Vat. Ax«i ] Ahisar), the :
2. (VPN [brotherly]'. a8eA<pbs avrov; Alex. being to send intelligence to David, and give to
him time to collect his forces for a decisive engage-
oi aSeAtpot avrov'- Ahio.) A
Benjamite, one of
ment. When Ahithophel saw that Hushai's advice
the sons of Beriah, who drove out the inhabitants
prevailed, he despaired of success, and returning
of Gath (1 Chr. viii. 14). According to the Yat.
to his own home " put his household in order and
MS. the LXX. must have read VPN, according hung himself" (xvii. 1-23). (See Joseph. Ant.
vii. 9, § 8; Niemeyer, Charakt. iv. 454; Ewald,
to the Alex. MS. VPN.
T V Geschich. ii. 652.) R. W.B.
3. A Benjamite, son of Jehiel, father or founder
* Ahithophel is certainly a very singular name
of Gibeon (1 Chr. viii. 31, ix. 37). In the last
for a man who had such a reputation for sagacity
quoted passage the Vatican MS. [as also Sin.] has
and it is very possible it was derisively applied to
aSeArpos and the Alex. afeAcpoi- W. A. W. him after his death in memory of his infamous ad-
AHI'RA (3TTTTM [brother of erofj: 'a X v« vice to Absalom, which the result showed to "be so
foolish, while it was utterly disastrous to himself.
[Vat. generally -^e i-] Ahira), chief of the tribe
:
From it came the famous John, son of Levi, the (Komm. ub. d. Gen. p. 493), Knobel (
Genes, p. 258),
leader in the siege of Jerusalem (Jos. lit. § 10; and others, we must regard as a list of names of
B. J. ii. 21, § 1), and it had a legendary celebrity places and not of persons, as indeed is expressly
as the birthplace of the parents of no less a person said at the close of it: " These are the chiefs (heads
than the Apostle Paul (Jerome, quoted by Reland, of tribes) of Esau, according to their settlements
p. 813). G. in the land of their possession." The district
which received the name of Esau's wife, or perhaps
AH'LAI [2 syl.] O^nS [0 that, a wish]:
rather from which she received her married name,
AaSai [Vat. Axai], 'Axai'cS; Alex. Aadai, OAt; was no doubt (as the name itself indicates ) situated
[Comp. OuAaf, 'AAof; Aid. AaSai, 'OoAt':] Okolai, in the heights of the mountains of Edom, probably
Oholi). Daughter of Sheshan, whom he gave in
therefore in the neighborhood of Mount Hor and
marriage to his Egyptian slave Jarha (1 Chr. ii. 31,
Petra, though Knobel places it south of Petra,
35). In consequence of the failure of male issue,
having been misled by Burckhardt's name Hesma,
Ahlai became the foundress of an important branch
which, however, according to Robinson (ii. 155), is
of the family of the Jerahmeelites, and from her " a sandy tract with mountains around it
were descended Zabad, one of David's mighty men
but not itself a mountain, as reported by P.urck-
(1 'hr. xi. 41), and Azariah, one of the captains
<
hardt." It seems not unlikely that the three tribes
of hundreds in the reign of Joash (2 Chr. xxiii. 1
descended from Aholibamah, or at least two of
comp. 1 Chr. ii. 38). W. A. W. them, possessed this district, since there are enumer-
AHO'AH (n'lnS, probably another form of ated only eleven districts, whereas the number of
tribes is thirteen, exclusive of that of Koran, whose
rPnSl [friend of Jehovah] :
'Ax'<* i
[Comp.
name occurs twice, and which we may further con-
'A<£5:] Ahoe), son of Bela, the son of Benjamin (1 jecture emigrated (in part at least) from the dis-
Chr. viii. 4). The patronymic Ahohite (TIPS) trict of Aholibamah, and became associated with
the tribes descended from Eliphaz, Esau's first-born
is found in 2 Sam. xxiii. 9, 28; 1 Chr. xi. 12, 29,
son.
rxvii. 4). [Em.]
It is to be observed that each of the wives of Esau
AHO'HITE. [Ahoah.]
mentioned by a different name in the genealogi-
is
AHOLAH (n^nK [her tent] 'OoAii cal table from that which occurs in the history.
:
[Vat. OoAAa, OoAa; Alex. OAAa:] Oolla),a, har- This is noticed under Bashemath. With respect
f>4 AHUMAI AIJALON
to the name and race of the father of Aholibamah,
(H-TV) in 1 Chr. vii. 28, are corruptions of Ai.
Bee Axah and Beeiu. F. W. G.
[Avim; Azzah.]
AHU MAI [3 /
syl.]
X O^PN :
2. ( V
'A tfMii ; [Vat. S
Tai and [Alex. FA.] Kat [Vat. omits:] :
again took possession of their towns, " Michmash, xiv. 31) as in Judah and Benjamin.
Aija and Bethel, with their 'daughters,'" are The name is most familiar to us from its men-
among the places named (Neh. xi. 31). [Aija.] tion in the celebrated speech of Joshua during his
Eusebius remarks (Onom. 'A770»') that though pursuit of the Canaanites (Josh. x. 12, " valley
Bethel remained, Ai was a t6ttos tpTn/xos, avrbs (pE9) There
of Aijalon; " see Stanley, p. 210).
fi6vov Se'iKi/vrai'- but even that cannot now be said,
no doubt that the town has been discovered by
is
and no attempt has yet succeeded in fixing the site
Dr. Kobinson in the modern Ya!o, c a little to the
of the city which Joshua doomed to be a " heap
N. of the Jaffa road, about 14 miles out of Jerusa-
and a desolation forever." Stanley (S. <$• P. p.
lem. It stands on the side of a long hill which
202) places it at the head of the Wculy Harith ;
forms the southern boundary of a fine valley of
Williams and Van de Velde (S. cf- P. p. 204,
corn-fields, which valley now bears the name of the
note) apparently at the same spot as Bobinson (i.
Merj Ibn Omeir, but which there seems no rea-
443, 575; and Kiepert's map, 1856), north of
son for doubting was the valley of Aijalon which
Mukhmas, and between it and Lhir Duivan. For
witnessed the defeat of the Canaanites (Rob. ii.
KrafFt's identification with Kirbei el-Haiyeh, see
253, iii. 145).
Rob. iii. 288. It is the opinion of some that the
2. [AiAxfyi; Aid. Alex. AiKeifx.] place in A
words Avim (E^V) m Josh, xviii. 23, and Gaza Zebulun, mentioned as the burial-place of Elon
far off the valley of Zebohn (hyaenas). See Stanley, d Tt will be observed that the two words differ only
p. 162, note. in their vowel-points.
AIJELETH AIN 55
* maj have been also his birth-place, and pos- under the figure of " the hind of the morning."
It
sibly took its name from him. [Elo>\] Van de He speaks of himself as of a hind pursued even
Velde {Mem. p. 283) reports his finding a J(dim, a from the first dawn of the morning (Tholuck on
place of ruins, in northern Galilee, inland from the Ps. in loco).
Akbi, which (if this be reliable) might answer well The weight of authority predominates, however,
enough to the Aijalon in Zebulun. in favor of the interpretation which assigns to
The Aijalon mentioned as lying in the tribe of ~int£?n i""H*K the sole purpose of describing to
Benjamin (2 Chr. xi. 10), one of "the fenced cities"
the musician the melody to which the psalm was
fortified by llehoboam, some regard as a third town
to be played, and which does not in any way con-
of this name. But it was probably the Danite
nect " Ayeleth Hasshachar " with the arguments of
Aijalon (Josh. xix. 42), which, after the Danites
the psalm itself. To Aben-Ezra this interpreta-
had extended their territory further north (Judg.
tion evidently owes its origin, and his view has
xviii. 1 ff.), was assigned to Benjamin, and hence at
been received by the majority of grammarians and
different times was held by different tribes. See
lexicographers, as well as by those commentators
Uertheau's note on 2 Chr. xi. 10 {Exeg. Hundbuch,
whose object has been to arrive at a grammatical
xv. 3U8). H.
exposition of the text. Amongst the number,
AIJELETH [3 syl.] SHA'HAR, more Buxtorf, Bochart, Gesenius, Rosenmiiller, and M.
(in Zunz's Bible), deserve especial mention.
correctly Ayeleth Has-shachar G""H s.S Sachs
According to the opinion, then, of this trustworthy
"inti?n, the hind of the morning dawn), found
band of scholars, "int^H i~P*S described a lyr-
once only in the Bible, in connection with Ps. xxii.,'
ical composition no longer extant but in the age ;
S
ity, renders ""intt?n H7:. .N "the power of the the introductory verse,
" A Psalm of David, ad-
dressed to the music master who presides over the
continual morning sacrifice," implying that this
Band called the Morning Hind." D. W. M.
term conveyed to the chief musician a direction
respecting the time when the 22d psalm was to be A'lN0")V), " an eye," and also, in the simple
chanted. In adopting such a translation, n^5*K but imagery of the East, a spring or nat-
vivid
ural burst of living water, always contradistin-
must be received as synonymous with iTlv s S guished from the well or tank of artificial formation,
{strength, force) in the 20th ver. (A. V. 19th ver.)
which latter is designated by the words Beer
of the same psalm. (IS?), Bor ("1S3 and "113). Ain still retains
According to a third opinion, the " hind of the
morning " expresses allegorically the argument of .^v£.
its ancient and double meaning in Arabic,
the 22d psalm. That this was by no means an
uncommon view is evident from the commentaries Such abound in Palestine even more
living springs
of Rashi and Kimchi; for the latter regards the than in other mountainous districts, and apart from
"Hind of the Morning" as an allegorical appella- their natural value in a hot climate, form one of the
tion of the house of Judah, whose captivity in Baby- most remarkable features of the country. Professor
lon is, agreeably to his exegesis, the general burden Stanley (S. $ P. pp. 147, 509) has called atten-
of the psalm. Tholuck, who imagines the 22d tion to the accurate and persistent use of the word
psalm to treat primarily of David, and of the Mes- in the original text of the Bible, and has well ex-
siah secondarily, makes David allude to himself pressed the inconvenience arising from the confusion
56 AIN AIR
iu the A. V. of words and things so radically distinct the Lord thy God bringeth
thee into a good land, a
as Ain and Beer. " The importance of distin- land of brooks of water, of fountains and depths
guishing between the two is illustrated by Ex. xv. that spring out of valleys and hills " (Deut. viii. 7).
27, in which the word Ainoth (translated wells ' ' The English explorer, Mr. Tristram, in his Land
is used for the springs of fresh water at Elim, al- of Israel^ has given special attention to this im-
though the rocky soil of that place excludes the portant branch of sacred geography ; and Dr. Sepp
supposition of dug wells." [Fountain.] has done the same in his two volumes {Jerusalem
Ain oftenest occurs in combination with other a. das Ihilige Land, 1863). The subject recurs
words, forming the names of definite localities. again under Fountains. H.
These will be found under En, as En-gedi, En-gan- * AIR the N. T. ar)p, also ovpav6s)- The
nim, &c. It occurs alone in two cases :
— (in
Greeks generally used the word bA\p to denote the
1. (With the def. article, I^H.) One of the lower portion of the atmosphere, the region of
vapors, clouds and mist, in opposition to alB-fip, the
landmarks on the eastern -boundary of Palestine as
pure upper air or ether, though the former term
described by Moses (Num. xxxiv. 11), and appar-
also included the whole space between the earth
ently mentioned, if the rendering of the A. V. is
and the nearest of the heavenly bodies. The
accurate, to define the position of Kiblah, namely,
•on the east side of 'the spring'" (LXX. eVl Romans borrowed the words and adopted the con-
ceptions connected with them. It appears to have
irnyas)- By Jerome, in the Vulgate, it is rendered
been a common opinion, both among the Jews and
contra fontem Daplmin, meaning the spring which
heathens, that the air was filled with spiritual be-
rose in the celebrated grove of Daphne dedicated to
ings, good and evU, the region nearest the earth
Apollo and Diana at Antioch." But Kiblah hav-
being regarded as, in particular, the abode of the
ing been lately, with much probability, identified
latter class. Thus Pythagoras taught, according
tKob. iii. 542-6; Porter, ii. 335) with a place of
to Diogenes Laertius (viii. 32), "that the whole
the same name on the N. E. slopes of the Hermon
air was full of souls," namely, daemons and heroes;
range, " the spring " of the text must in the
Plutarch says that " the air beneath the ether and
present state of our knowledge be taken to lie 'Ain
the heaven, rhv vrrcudpov aipa nal rhv inrovpaviov,
•1-Ar.ij, the main source of the Orontes, a spring
is full of gods and dremons" (Qwest. Rom. c. 40,
remarkable, even among the springs of Palestine,
The objections p. 274 b); and he ascribes to Xenocrates the doc-
l'ir its force and magnitude. to this
identification are the distance from Ribleh about — trine " that there are beings in the region surround-
(see 1,'ob. iii. 534; Porter, ii. 335-6, 358). [Rib- and malignant" (De Is. et Osir. c. 26, p. 361
b). Varro, in a curious passage preserved by
i.ah; Hamath.]
Augustine (De Civ. Dei, vii. 6), represents the
2. ['A<ra, etc.; Alex. AtV, etc.: Ae'n, Ain.]
the moon and the lower part of our
One of the southernmost cities of Judah (Josh. xv. space between
atmosphere as full of "heroes, lares, and genii,"
32), afterwards allotted to Simeon (Josh. jrix. 7
aeriaz atiima, that is, souls inhabiting the aer in
1 Chr. iv. 32 b ) and given to the priests (Josh. xxi.
distinction from the aether. Philo says that " an-
16). In the list of priests' cities in 1 Chr. vi.
gels, which the philosophers call daemons, are souls
Ashan (JWJ)) takes the place of Ain. [Ashan.] flying about in the air," ^u^ol Kara rhv aipa. imo-
In Neh. xi. 29, Ain is joined to the name which /xevai (De Gigant. c. 2. Opp. i. 263 ed. Mang.);
in the other passages usually follows it, and appeal's and similar passages repeatedly occur in his writ-
as En-rimmon. So the LXX., in the two earliest ings (De Plant. Noe, c. 4, p. 331; De Conf. Ling.
of the passages in Joshua, give the name as 'Epo>- c. 34, p. 431; De Somn. i. 22, p. 641). In .a
fxcod and 'Epefj.pwi'. [En-rimmon.] (See Rob. Rabbinical commentary on Pirke Avoth, fol. 83, 2,
ii. 204.) G. it is said that " from the earth upward the whole
* The reader should not overlook, under this space is filled with beings divided into bands with
head, Dr. Robinson's admirable account of the Ayins rulers and that below [i. e. in the lower region of
;
or Fountains of Palestine in his Physical Geog- the air] there are many creatures employed in in-
raphy (pp. 238-264). He enumerates and de- juring and accusing." (See Drusius on Eph. vi.
scribes the principal of them under the classes of 12, or Koppe on Eph. ii. 2.) The Test. XII.
(a), those of the western plain along the Mediter- Patriarch., Benj. c. 3, speaks of Beliar or Belial
ranean; (b) those of the hill-country west of the as aepiov irvevfn.a, a " spirit of the air." (Fabric.
Jordan; (c) those in the Ghor or valley of the Cod.pseudep. V. T. p. 729.) These passages may
Jordan; (d) those of the hill-country east of the serve to illustrate Eph. ii. 2, where Satan is desig-
Jordan; and (e) the warm and mineral fountains. nated as 6 &px<M T7)S ££ovo~ias tov aepos, «• e.
In the comparative frequency of such living springs " the ruler of the powers of the air," i^ouaia being
of water, he finds the characteristic difference be- used in a collective sense for i^ovaiai (comp. Eph.
tween Palestine and Egypt, and a perfect justifica- vi. 12, Col. ii. 15), as we say "force" for "forces,"
tion of the language of Moses in his description of and denoting the evil spirits which make the air
the Promised Land to the children of Israel " For :
,
'Ayenutha, HITD^, Jerus.]. cities " (^"137). Considering the strict distinction so
(Sm*l3 '37) [or
access to men, are all shadowed forth in assigning 2. ('Akov/x in 1 Chr., 'Akov(S; Alex. A/cou/3 in
them an aerial abode " (p. 144). 1 Chr., Akov/x in Ezr. and Neh. [Vat. Akov/j. in ;
The Greek ovpav6s, "heaven," is the word 1 Cbr. and Ezr., Akov in Neh. vii.]) One of the
rendered "air" in the expression "the birds" or porters er doorkeepers at the east gate of the Temple.
office, and appear
"fowls of the air," Matt. vi. 26, viii. 20, etc., and His descendants succeeded to his
"sky" in Matt. xvi. 2, 3, "the sky is red and among those who returned from Babylon (1 Chr.
lowering," and not unfrequently denotes the lower ix. 17; Ezr. ii. 42; Neh. vii. 45, xi. 19,
xii. 25).
heaven, the region cf clouds and storms. (See Also called Dacobi (1 Esdr. v. 28).
the X. T. Lexicons.) In accordance with this use 3. ('AkoujS; [Vat. A/ca/3co0.]) - One of the
this line of cliffs crosses the GhOr 6 or 8 miles south of and the Vulgate understand the passage in a very dif-
the Dead Sea. The Akrabbim (scorpion cliff's) would be ferent way.
" Et procerioribus sua gratia est elenchos appel-
b :
suppose them to have received their name from the " Miipou xpvo-eia. dKafiao-Tpa. non sunt vasa unguentaria
fact that the Hebrews crossed them from the south in ex alabastrite lapide eaque auro ornata, sed simpli-
coming out of Egypt. H. citer vasa unguentaria ex auro facta. Cf. Schleusn.
a airakefyia rqv 'IepovcraAT);oi Kadios anaXe i'4><:Tai 6 Lex. N. T. s. v. aAd/3aorpcn'." (Kiessling, ad Theoor.
aAa/3aorpos ajraAei<f>6|uei'OS, (tat KaTOcrrpe'ipeTai cwi 1. c.)
irpoixttiTrov avrov, LXX. The Oomplutensian version d xP v<r °v Vo~Krnj.cva 7repiTTO>s.
ALAMETH ALEXANDER III. 59
was a manufactory of vases and vessels for holding Soter obtained the kingdom of Syria he paid court
perfumes, Ac.
"' H. to that monarch, who confirmed him in his office,
•
* Layard found vases of white alabaster among and through his general Bacchides [BACCHIDES]
the ruins at Nineveh, which were used for holding established him at Jerusalem. His cruelty, how-
ointments or cosmetics (Babylon and Nineveh^ p. ever, was so great that, in spite of the force left in
197). The alabasters often had a long, narrow his command, he was unable to withstand the op-
neck, and it not only accords best with the Greek position which he provoked, and he again fled to
(crvvTptyaaa.) to suppose that the womiyi broke Demetrius, who immediately took measures for his
this in two, but makes the act more expressive. restoration. The first expedition under Nicanor
She would reserve nothing for herself, but devote proved unsuccessful; but upon this Bacchides
the whole to her Lord. See Meyer and Lange on marched a second time against Jerusalem with a
Mark xiv. 3. H. large army, routed Judas, who fell in the battle
(161 b. c), and reinstated Alcimus. After his res-
ALA'METH (H^b^ [covering]: 'EXne- toration, Alcimus seems to have attempted to mod-
[Vat. Aid.] Alex. 'E\/j.e6ifx;
jte'0; TefxeeO; ify the ancient worship, and as he was engaged in
[Comp. 'AAafitbe--] Almath). Properly Ale- pulling down " the wall of the inner court of the
meth; one of the sons of Becher, the son of Ben- sanctuary " (i. e., which separated the court of the
jamin (1 Chr. vii. 8). W. A. W. Gentiles from it; yet see Grimm, 1 Mace. ix. 54) he
ALAM'MELECH [Hebrew Alammelech] was "plagued" (by paralysis), and "died at that
(1j7SvM = A»»gf'« time," 160 b. c. (Joseph. Ant. xii. 9, 5, xii. 10; 1
oak; 'E\i/i€\e'x; [Vat. -Aei-:
Mace, 2 Mace,
vii., ix. ; cf. xiv., xv. Ewald, Gesch.
Aid. AAijueAe'x ] : Elmelech), a place within the B. F. W.
'
des Volkes Isr. iv. 365 ff.)
limits of Asher, named between Achshaph and
Amad (Josh. xix. 26, only). It has not yet been
AL'EMA
(ev 'AAe/j-ois; [Alex, ev AXaixois']
in Alimis), a large and strong city in Gilead in the
identified; but Schwarz (191) suggests a connec-
time of the Maccabees (1 Mace. v. 26). Its name
tion with the Nahr el-Melik, which falls into the
G. does not occur again, nor have we yet any means
Kishon near Haifa.
of identifying it. [Grimm (in be.) conjectures
AL'AMOTH (rnaV!? Ps. xlvi., title; 1 that it may represent Beer-elim (Is. xv. 8, comp.
:
Chr. xv. 20), a word of exceedingly doubtful mean- Num. xxi'. 16). —A.] G.
ing, and with respect to which various conjectures
prevail. Some critics are of opinion that it is a
ALE'METH (H^V \.
coveri < l'J~\- SoAat-
TaXefj.ee; Alex. TaXe/xae, [-/xed; Aid. TaXe-
kind of lute brought originally from Elam (Per- fj.a.0,
and that on this account it was called mO^V, TaXefj.de; [Alex. TaXvfj.ee ]
Ahnath), the form
under which Almon, the name of a city of the
from D^y, to conceal. Lafage speaks of fTltt ;3)
priests in Benjamin, appears in 1 Chr. vi. 60 [45].
as " chant superieur ou chant a l'octave." Some
Under the very similar form of 'Almit or Almuth,
German commentators, having discovered that the
it has been apparently identified in the present day
lays of the mediaeval minstrels were chanted' to a
at about a mile N..E. of Anata, the site of Ana-
meiody called " die Jungfrauenweise," have trans-
thoth; first by Schwarz (128) and then by Mr.
ferred that notion to the Psalms; and Tholuck, for
Finn (Rob. iii. 287). Among the genealogies of
instance, translates DIE ^57 by the above German Benjamin the name occurs in connection with Az-
maveth, also the name of a town of that tribe (1 Chr.
term. According to this notion niQ73? would [Al-
viii. 36, ix. 42; compared with Ezr. ii. 24).
not be a musical instrument, but a mqlody. (See mon.] In the Targum of Jonathan on 2 Sam.
Mendelssohn's Introduction to his Version of the xvi. 5, Bahurim is rendered Alemath. G.
Psalms; Forkel, Geschichte der Musi/:; Lafage,
Hist. Gen. de la Musique ; and Gesenius on ALEXANDER
III., king of Macedon, sur-
1
named The Great (' AXe^avSpos, the helper of
rra ??.)
- '
d. w. m. men: Alexander: Arab, the two-homed, Golii Lex.
t :
AL'CIMUS ("AKKi/xoi, valiant, a Greek name, Arab. 1896), "the son of Philip" b.(1 Mace. vi. 2)
On
c. 356.
assumed, according to the prevailing fashion, as and Olympias, was born at
Pella
his mother's side he claimed descent from Achilles
representing D^pvfc?, 'EXtaKei/j., God hath set and the Homeric legends were not without influence
up), called also Jaceimus (6 /col 'laKei/tos all. upon his life. At an early age he was placed under
the care of Aristotle and while still a youth he
'Iwdicetfxos, Joseph. Ant. xii. 9, 5, ». e. Cp^,
;
cf.
turned the fortune of the day at Cha;roneia (338
Jud. iv. ii, oarr. lectt.), a Jewish priest (1 Mace. vii.
E. c). On the murder of Philip (b. c. 336) Alex-
12) who was attached to the Hellenizing party (2
ander put down with resolute energy the disaffec-
Mace. xiv. 3). a On the death of Menelau3 he was
tion and hostility by which his throne was men-
appointed to the high-priesthood by the influence of
aced and in two years he crossed the Hellespont
;
Lysias, though not of the pontifical family (Joseph.
(b. C. 334) to carry out the plans of his father, and
I. c. xx. 9 1 Mace. vii. 14), to the exclusion of
;
the mission of Greece to the civilized world.
:
The battle of the Granicuswas followed by the sub- the tradition as given by Josephus, there are several
jugation of western Asia and in the following year points which confirm the truth of the main fact.
;
the fate of the East was decided at Issus (b. c. Justin says that " many kings of the East came to
333). Tyre and Gaza were the only cities in meet Alexander wearing fillets" (lib. xi. 10); and
Western Syria which offered Alexander any resist- after the capture of Tyre " Alexander himself visited
ance, and these were reduced and treated with un- some of the cities which still refused to submit to
usual severity (b. c. 332). Egypt next submitted him" (Curt. iv. 5, 13). Even at a later time, ac-
to him; and in B. c. 331 he founded Alexandria, cording to Curtius, he executed vengeance person-
which remains to the present day the most charac- ally on the Samaritans for the murder of his gov-
teristic monument of his life and work. In the ernor Andromachus (Curt. iv. 8, 10). Besides this,
same year he finally defeated Darius at Gaugamela Jewish soldiers were enlisted in his army (Hecat.
and in b. c. 330 his unhappy rival was murdered ap. Joseph, e. Apion. i. 22); and Jews formed an
by Bessus, satrap of Bactria. The next two years important element in the population of the city
were occupied by Alexander in the consolidation of which he founded shortly after the supposed visit.
his Persian conquests, and the reduction of Bactria. Above all, the privileges which he is said to have
In b. c. 327 he crossed the Indus, penetrated to conferred upon the Jews, including the remission
the Hydaspes, and was there forced by the discon- of tribute every sabbatical year, existed in later
tent of his army to turn westward. He reached times, and imply some such relation between the
Susa b. c. 325, and proceeded to Babylon b. c. Jews and the great conqueror as Josephus describes.
324, which he chose as the capital of his empire. Internal evidence is decidedly in favor of the story,
In the next year he died there (b. c. 323 in the even in its picturesque fullness.
) From policy or
midst of his gigantic plans and those who inherited conviction Alexander delighted to represent him-
;
his conquests left his designs unachieved and unat- self as chosen by destiny for the great act which he
tempted (cf. Dan. vii. 6, viii. 5, xi. 3). achieved. The siege of Tyre arose professedly from
The famous tradition of the visit of Alexander to a religious motive. The battle of Issus was pre-
Jerusalem during his Phoenician campaign (Joseph. ceded by the visit to Gordium; the invasion of Per-
Ant. xi. 8, 1 ff.) has been a fruitful source of con- sia by the pilgrimage to the temple of Amnion.
troversy. The Jews, it is said, had provoked his And if it be impossible to determine the exact cir-
anger by refusing to transfer their allegiance to cumstances of the meeting of Alexander and the
him when summoned to do so during the siege of Jewish envoys, the silence of the classical historians,
Tyre, and after the reduction of Tyre and Gaza who notoriously disregarded (e. g. the Maccabees)
(Joseph. 1. c.) he turned towards Jerusalem. Jad- and misrepresented (Tac. Hist. v. 8) the fortunes
dua (Jaddus) the high-priest (Nell. xii. 11, 22), of the Jews, cannot be held to be conclusive against
who had been warned in a dream how to avert the the occurrence of an event which must have ap-
king's anger, calmly awaited his approach; and peared to them trivial or unintelligible (Jahn, Ar-
chmol. 300 ff. Ste. Croix, Examen critique, &c,
iii. ;
erful influences thus brought to bear upon the de Alex. Or. 1, § 6) that when Aristotle urged
East, and most able to support them. In the ar- him to treat the Greeks as freemen and the Orien-
rangement of the Greek conquests which followed tals as slaves, he found the true answer to this
the battle of Ipsus, b. c. 301, Judrea was made counsel in the recognition of his "divine mission
the frontier land of the rival empires of Syria and to unite and reconcile the world" (koivos tjkeiv
Egypt, and though it was necessarily subjected to de66eu apfiocrr^s Kal StaWaKT^s t&v oXuiv vofr
the constant vicissitudes of war, it was able to make Ifyv)-
advantageous terms with the state to which it owed In the prophetic visions of Daniel the influence
allegiance, from the important advantages which it of Alexander is necessarily combined
with that of
offered for attack or defense [Antiochus, ii.-vii.]. his successors." They represented with partial ex-
Internally also the people were prepared to with- aggeration the several phases of his character; and
stand the the revolution which the Greek to the Jews nationally the policy of the Syrian
effects of
dominion The constitution of Ezra had kings was of greater importance than the original
effected.
obtained its full development. A
powerful hierar- conquest of Asia. But some traits of " the first
chy had succeeded in substituting the idea of a mighty king" (Dan. viii. 21, xi. 3) are given with
church a state: and the Jew was now vigorous distinctness.
for that of The emblem by which he
able to wander over the world and yet remain
is typified ("'''P^, « he-goat, fr. "1SS he leapt,
faithful to the God of his fathers [The Disper-
Ges. Thes. s. v.) suggests the notions of strength
sion]. The same change had
constitutional
and speed; b and the universal extent (Dan. viii. 5,
strengthened the intellectual and religious position
from the west on the face of the whok earth ),
of the people. A
rigid "fence" of ritualism pro-
. . .
it.
with the occasion and the power. But at the same xiv. p. 751, tov BaAai/ 'AKe^avSpoV, Just. xxxv.
time the example of Greece fostered personal as 1, Subornant pro eo Bulam
quendam . . . et
well as popular independence. Judaism was . . . nomen ei Alexandri inditur. Balas possibly
represents the Aram. H727S, lord: he likewise
ably with truth, the existence of a conspiracy 14, as having done him many mischiefs. It is
against his life (Joseph. 1. c. cf. Diod. ap. Muller. quite uncertain where this person resided but from ;
Fragm. ii. 16). Alexander, who had been forced the caution to Timotheus to beware of him, prob-
to leave Antioch (Joseph. 1. c.), was in Cilicia when ably at Ephesus. H. A.
he heard of Ptolemy's defection (1 Mace. xi. 14). ALEXANDRIA [Or. -dri'a] (f, ]AX^dv-
He hastened to meet him, but was defeated (1 Sp€ia, 3 Mace. iii. 1; Mod., El-Iskendereeyeh ;
Mace. xi. 15; Just. xxxv. 2), and fled to Abas in Ethn., 'AA.e|aj/5peus, 3 Mace. ii. 30, iii. 21; Acts
Arabia (Diod. I. c), where he was murdered B. c. xviii. 24, vi. 9), the Hellenic Roman and Christian
146 (Diod. 1. c. 1 Mace. xi. 17 differs as to the capital of Egypt, was founded by Alexander the
;
manner and Euseb. Chron. Arm. i. 349 represents Great b. c. 332, who traced himself the ground-
;
him to have been slain in the battle). The narra- plan of the city which he designed to make the
tive in 1 Mace, and Josephus shows clearly the metropolis of his western empire (Plut. Alex.
26).
partiality which the Jews entertained for Alexan- The work thus begun was continued after the death
der " as the first that entreated of true peace with of Alexander by the Ptolemies; and the beauty
them " (1 Mace. x. 47); and the same feeling was (Athen. i. p. 3) of Alexandria became proverbial.
exhibited afterwards in the zeal with which they Every natural advantage contributed to its prosper-
supported the claims of his son Antiochus. [An- ity. The climate and site were singularly healthy
tiochus VI.] B. F. W. (Strab. 793). The harbors formed by the island
p.
of Pharos and the headland Lochias, were safe and
commodious, alike for commerce and for war and ;
received the full Macedonian franchise (Joseph. Ant. drine Church was independent of the Sanhedrim at
xii. 1; cf. c. Ap. i. 22), as men of known and Jerusalem but respect survived submission. ;
tried fidelity (Joseph, c. Ap. ii. 4). Already on a There were, however, other causes which tended
former occasion the Jews had sought a home in the to produce at Alexandria a distinct form of the
land of their bondage. More than two centuries Jewish character and faith. The religion and phi-
and a half before the foundation of Alexandria a losophy of that restless city produced an effect upon
large body of them had taken refuge in Egypt, the people more powerful than the influence of pol-
after the murder of Gedaliah; but these, after a itics or commerce. Alexander himself symbolized
general apostasy, were carried captive to Babylon the spirit with which he wished to animate his new
by Nebuchadnezzar (2 K. xxv. 2G Jer. xliv. Jo- capital by founding a temple of Isis side by side
; ;
seph. Ant. x. 9, 7). with the temples of the Grecian gods (Arr. iii. 1).
The fate of the later colony was far different. The creeds of the East and West were to coexist in
The numbers and importance of the Egyptian Jews friendly union and in after-times the mixed wor- ;
were rapidly increased under the Ptolemies by fresh ship of Serapis (comp. Gibbon, c. xxviii. Diet, of ;
immigrations and untiring industry. Philo esti- Geogr. i. p. 98) was characteristic of the Greek
mates them in his time at little less than 1,000,000 kingdom of Egypt (August. De, Civ. Dei, xviii. 5
(In Flacc. § 6, p. 971); and adds that two of the S. maximus yEgypticrum Dais). This catholicity
five districts of Alexandria were called " Jewish dis- of worship was further combined with the spread of
tricts; " and that many Jews lived scattered in the universal learning. The same monarchs who fa-
remaining three (id. § 8, p. 973). Julius Cajsar vored the worship of Serapis (Clem. Al. Protr. iv.
(Joseph. Ant. xiv. 10, § 1) and Augustus confirmed § 48) founded and embellished the Museum and
tothem the privileges which they had enjoyed before, Library ; and part of the Library was deposited in
and they retained them with various interruptions, the Serapeum. The new faith and the new litera-
of which the most important, a. d. 39, is described ture led to a common issue and the Egyptian Jews
;
by Philo (I. c), during the tumults and persecu- necessarily imbibed the spirit which prevailed
tions of later reigns (Joseph, c. Ap. ii. 4; B. J. around them.
xii. 3, 2). They were represented, at least for The Jews were, indeed, peculiarly susceptible of
some time (from the time of Cleopatra to the the influences to which they were exposed. They
reign of Claudius; Jost, Gesch. d. Judenth. i. 353) presented from the first a capacity for Eastern or
by their own (idi/dpxv^, Strab. ap. Joseph.
officer Western development. To the faith and conserva-
Ant. xiv. 7, 2; aA.ajSapx'JS, Joseph. Ant. xviii. 7, tism of the Oriental they united the activity and
3; 9, 1;. xix. 5, 1; cf. Kup. ad Juv. Sat. i. 130; energy of the Greek. The mere presence of Hel-
yevdpxys, Philo, In Flacc. § 10, p. 975), and Au- lenic culture could not fail to call into play their
gustus appointed a council (yepovala, i- e- Sanhe- powers of speculation, which were hardly repressed
drin: Philo I. c.) " to superintend the affairs of the by the traditional legalism of Palestine (comp.
Jews," according to their own laws. The estab- Jost, Gesch. d. Jiidenth. i. 293 ff.); and the un-
lishment of Christianity altered the civil position changing element of divine revelation which they
of the Jews, but they maintained their relative always retained, enabled them to harmonize new
prosperity; and when Alexandria was taken by thought with old belief. But while the intercourse
Amrou 40,000 tributary Jews were reckoned among of the Jew and Greek would have produced the
the marvels of the city (Gibbon, cli.). same general consequences in any case, Alexandria
For some time the Jewish Church in Alexandria was peculiarly adapted to insure their full effect.
was in close dependence on that of Jerusalem. The result of the contact of Judaism with the
Both were subject to the civil power of the first many creeds which were current there must have
Ptolemies, and both acknowledged the high-priest been speedy and powerful. The earliest Greek
as their religious head. The persecution of Ptol- fragment of Jewish writing which has been pre-
emy Phibpator (217 b. c.) occasioned the first served (about 160 B.C.) [Aristohulus] contains
political separation between the two bodies. From large Orphic quotations, which had been already
that time the Jews of Palestine attached themselves moulded into a Jewish form (comp. Jost, Gesch. d.
to the fortunes of Syria [Antiochus the Great] Judenth. i. 370); and the attempt thus made to
and the same policy which alienated the Palestin- connect the most ancient Hellenic traditions with
ian party gave unity and decision to the Jews of the Law, was often repeated afterwards. Nor was
Alexandria. The Septuagint translation which this done in the spirit of bold forgery. Orpheus,
strengthened the barrier of language between Pal- Musffius, and the Sibyls appeared to stand, in some
a Polybius (xxxiv. 14 ; ap. Strab. p. 797) speaks of receive the title of " mercenaries," from the service
the population as consisting of " three races (rpia yivr\), which they originally rendered to Alexander (Joseph
the native Egyptian the mercenary
. . . and the . . . B. J. ii. 18, 7) and the first Ptolemies (Joseph, c. Ap.
Alexandrine ... of Greek descent." The Jews might ; ii. 4)
64 ALEXANDRIA ALEXANDRIA
remote period anterior to the corruptions of poly- Supreme Being ( T h &v, 6 &v) from immediate con-
theism, as the witnesses of a primeval revelation tact with the material world and to apply the nar-
;
and of the teaching of nature, and thus it seemed ratives of the Bible to the phenomena of the soul.
excusable to attribute to them a knowledge of the It is impossible to determine the process by which
Mosaic doctrines. The third book of the Sibyllines these results were embodied; but. as in parallel
(c. b. c. 150) is the most valuable relic of this cases, they seem to have been shaped gradually in
pseudo-Hellenic literature, and shows how far the the minds of the mass, and not fashioned at once
conception of Judaism was enlarged to meet the by one great teacher. Even in the LXX. there
wider view of the religious condition of heathen- are traces of an endeavor to interpret the anthro-
dom which was opened by a more ultimate knowl- pomorphic imagery of the Hebrew text [Septua-
edge of Greek thought; though the later Apoca- gixt] and there can be no doubt that, the Com-
;
lypse of Ezra [Esdkas ii.] exhibits a marked mentaries of Aristobulus gave some form and
reaction towards the extreme exclusiveness of former consistency to the allegoric system. In the time
times. of Philo (B. c. 20 —
A. D. 50) the theological and
But the indirect influence of Greek literature and interpretative systems were evidently fixed, even in
philosophy produced still greater effects upon the many of their details, and he appears in both cases
Alexandrine Jews than the open conflict and com- only to have collected and expressed the popular
bination of religious dogmas. The literary school opinions of his countrymen.
of Alexandria was essentially critical and not cre- In each of these great forms of speculation the —
ative. For the first time men labored to collect, theological and the exegetical Alexandrianism has —
revise, and classify all the records of the past. an important bearing upon the Apostolic writings.
Poets trusted to their learning rather than to their But the doctrines which are characteristic of the
i m agination. Language became a study; and the Alexandrine school were by no means peculiar to
legends of early mythology are transformed into it. The same causes which led to the formation of
philosophic mysteries. The Jews took a vigorous wider views of Judaism in Egypt, acting under
share in these new studies. The caution against greater restraint, produced corresponding results in
writing, which became a settled law in Palestine, Palestine. A doctrine of the Word (Memra), and
found no favor in Egypt. Numerous authors a system of mystical interpretation grew up within
adapted the history of the Patriarchs, of Moses, the Rabbinic schools, which bear a closer analogy
and of the Kings, to classical models (Euseb. Prop. to the language of St. John and to the "allegories"
Ev. ix. 17-39) [as] Eupolemus, Artapanus (? ), De- of St. Paul than the speculations of Philo.
metrius, Aristaeus, Cleodemus or Malchas, "a But while the importance of this Rabbinic ele-
prophet." A poem which bears the name of ment in connection with the expression of Apostolic
Phocylides, gives in verse various precepts of Le- truth is often overlooked, there can be no doubt
viticus [Daniel sec.LXX. Ajwlog. p. 512 f. Romte, that the Alexandrine teaching was more powerful
1772 ) and several large fragments of a " tragedy "
: in furthering its reception. Yet even when the
in which Ezekiel (c B. C. 110) dramatized the Ex- function of Alexandrianism with regard to Chris-
odus, have been preserved by Eusebius (/. c), who thus limited, it is needful to avoid exag-
tianity is
also quotes numerous passages in heroic verse from The preparation which it made was indi-
geration.
the elder l'hilo and Theodotus. This classiealismrect and not immediate. Philo's doctrine of the
of style was a symptom and a cause of classiealism Word (Logos) led men to accept the teaching of
of thought. The same Aristobulus who gave cur- St. John, but not to anticipate it; just as his
rency to the Juda?o-( )rphic verses, endeavored to method of allegorizing fitted them to enter into the
show that the Pentateuch was the real source of arguments of the Epistle to the Hebrews, though
Greek philosophy (Euseb. Prop. Ev. xiii. 12; Clem. they could not have foreseen their application.
Al. Strom, vi. 98). The first thing, indeed, which must strike the
The proposition thus enunciated was thorou^hly reader of Philo in relation to St. John, is the sim-
congenial to the Alexandrine character; and hence- ilarity of phrase without a similarity of idea. His
forth it was the chief object of Jewish speculation treatment of the Logos is vague and inconsistent.
to trace out the subtle analogies which were sup- He argues about the term and not about the real-
posed to exist between the writings of Moses and ity, and seems to delight in the ambiguity which it
the teaching of the schools. The circumstances involves. At one time he represents the I^ogos as
under which philosophical studies first gained a the reason of God in which the archetypal ideas of
footing at Alexandria favored the attempt. For things exist (\6yos eVSiafleros), at another time as
some time the practical sciences reigned supreme the Word of God by which he makes himself known
and the issue of these was skepticism (Matter. Hist. to the outward world (\6yos nrpo<popiK6s)\ but he
de l'i,coh eVAlex. iii. 162 flf.). Then at length nowhere realizes the notion of One who is at once
the clear analysis and practical morality of the Revealer and the Revelation, which is the essence
Peripatetics found ready followers; and in the of St. John's teaching. The idea of the active
strength of the reaction men
eagerly trusted to Logos is suggested to him by the necessity of with-
those splendid ventures with which Plato taught drawing the Infinite from the finite, God from man,
them to be content till they could gain a surer and not by the desire to bring God to man. Not
knowledge [Phced. p. 85). To the Jew this surer only is it impossible to conceive that Philo could
knowledge seemed to be already given and the be- have written as St. John writes, but even to sup
;
lief in the existence of a spiritual meaning under- pose that he could have admitted the possibility of
lying the letter of Scripture was the great principle the Incarnation of the Logos, or of the personal
on which all his investigations rested. The facts unity of the Logos and the Messiah. But while
were supposed to be essentially symbolic the lan- it is right to state in its full breadth the opposition
:
guage the veil (or sometimes the mask) which between the teaching of Philo and St. John," it is
partly disguised from common -sight the truths
which it enwrapped. In this way a twofold object a The closest analogy to the teaching of Philo on
was gained. It became possible to withdraw the the Logos occurs in the Epistle to the Hebrews, which
ALEXANDRIA ALGUM 05
impossible not to feel the important
which Christians at Alexandria must have been very large,
office
the mystic theosophy, of which Philo is the repre- and the great leaders of Gnosticism who arose there
sentative, fulfilled in preparing for the apprehension (Basilides, Yalentinus) exhibit an exaggeration of
of the highest Christian truth. Without any dis- the tendency of the Church. But the later forms
tinct conception of the personality of the Logos, the of Alexandrine speculation, the strange varieties of
tendency of l'hilo*s writings was to lead men to Gnosticism, the progress of the catechetical school,
regard the Logos, at least in some of the senses of the development of Neo-Platonism, the various
the term, as a person; and while he maintained phases of the Arian controversy, belong to the
with devout earnestness the indivisibility of the di- history of the Church and to the history of philos-
vine nature, he described the Logos as divine. In ophy. To the last Alexandria fulfilled its mis-
this manner, however unconsciously, he prepared sion and we still owe much to the spirit of its
;
the way for the recognition of a twofold personality great teachers, which in later ages struggled, not
in the Godhead, and performed a work without without success, against the sterner systems of the
which it may well appear that the language of West.
Christianity would have been unintelligible (comp. The following works embody what is valuable in
Dorner, Die Lehre von der Person Christi, i. 23 the earlier literature on the subject, with copious
tf.). references to it: Matter, Histoire de VEcole <t
The allegoric method stands in the same relation Alexandrie, 2d ed., Paris, 1810. Diihne, A. !•"..
to the spiritual interpretation of Scripture as the Geschichtliche Darstellung der jiidisch-alexawlrin-
mystic doctrine of the Word to the teaching of St. ischen Religionsphilosophie, Halle, 1834. Gfrorer.
John. It was a preparation and not an anticipation A. F., Philo, und die jiuli.«:h- xltixomdrimscke The-
of it. Unless men had been familiarized in some osophie, Stuttgart, 1835. To these may be added,
such way with the existence of an inner meaning in Ewald, H., Gesch. des Volkes Israel, Gijttingen.
the Law and the Prophets, it is difficult to under- 1852, iv. 250 ff., 393 ff. Jost, J. M., Gesch. de*
stand how an Apollos " mighty in the Scriptures " Judenthums, Leipzig, 1857, i. 344 ff., 388 ff. Ne-
(Acts xviii. 24-28) could have convinced many, or ander, A., History of Christian Church, i. 66 ff..
how the infant Church could have seen almost un- Eng. Tr. 1847 [i. 49 ff., Amer. ed.]. Prof. Jowett,
moved the ritual of the Old Covenant swept away, Philo and St. Paul. St. Paul's Epistles to the Thes-
strong in the conscious possession of its spiritual salonians, $c, London, 1855, i. 363 ff. [Vacherot,
antitypes. But that which is found in Philo in Hist. crit. de VEcole d Alexandrie, 3 vol., Paris,
isolated fragments combines in the New Testament 1846-51.] And for the later Christian history:
to form one great whole. In the former the truth Guerike, H. F., Be Schola Alexandrind Catechet-
is affirmed in casual details, in the latter it is laid ica, Halis, 1824-25." B. F. W.
down in broad principles which admit of infinite
its
ALEXANDRIANS, THE (ol 'AAe|aj/-
application; and a comparison of patristic inter-
Spei's). 1. The Greek inhabitants of Alexandria
pretations with those of Philo will show how pow-
(3 Mace. ii. 30. iii. 21).
erful an influence the Apostolic example exercised 2. (Ah'xundrini.) The Jewish colonists of that
in curbing the imagination of later writers. Nor city, who were admitted to the privileges of citizen-
is this all. While Philo regarded that which was ship, and had a synagogue at Jerusalem (Acts vi. 9).
positive in Judaism as the mere symbol of abstract
[Alexandria, p. 63 a.] W. A. W.
truths, in the Epistle to the Hebrews it appears as
the shadow of blessings realized (Hebr. ix. 11, ya/o- ALGUM or ALMUG TREES (D^^S,
pevaiv [so Lachm.] ) in the presence of a personal
Saviour. History in the one case is the enunciation
algummim; D^SP^^ almuggim: |uAa a7reAc-
of a riddle; in the other it is the record of a life. ktjto, Alex., |. ireAe/cTjTa, Vat., in 1 K. x. 11, 12:
The speculative doctrines which thus worked for |. TrevKiva- ligna thyina, ligna pinea). There
the general reception of Christian doctrine were also can be no question that these words are identical,
embodied form of society which was afterwards
in a although, according to Celsius {Hierob. i. 173).
transferred to the Christian Church. Numerous some doubted it. The same author enumerates no
bodies of ascetics (Therapeutm), especially on the fewer than fifteen different trees, each one of which
borders of I^ake Mareotis, devoted themselves to a has been supposed to have a claim to represent tin
life of ceaseless discipline and study. Unlike the algum or almng-tree of Scripture. Mention of the
Essenes, who present the corresponding phase in ahmig is made in 1 K. x. 11, 12, 2 Chr. ix. 10, 11,
Palestinian life, they abjured society and labor, and as having been brought in great plenty from Ophir.
often forgot, as it is said, the simplest wants of na- together with gold and precious stones, by the fleet
ture in the contemplation of the hidden wisdom of of Hiram, for Solomon's Temple and house, and for
the Scriptures (Philo, De lit. Contempt through- the construction of musical instruments. " The
out). The description which Philo gives of their king made of the almug-trees pillars for the house
occupation and character seemed to Eusebius to of the Lord, and for the king's house, harps also
present so clear an image of Christian virtues that and psalteries for singers; there came no such
he claimed them as Christians; and there can be almug-trees, nor were seen unto this day." In 2
no doubt that some of the forms of monasticigm Chr. ii. 8, Solomon is represented as desiring Hiram
were shaped upon the model of the Therapeutae to send him " cedar-trees, fir-trees, and algum-trees
(Euseb. //. E. ii. 16). (marg. almuggim) out of Lebanon." From the
According to the common legend (Euseb. I. c.) passage in Kings, it seems clear almug-trees came
St. Mark first " preached the Gospel in Egypt, and from Ophir; and as it is improbable that Lebanon
founded the first Church in Alexandria." At the should also have been a locality for them, the pas-
beginning of the second century the number of sage which appears to ascribe the growth of the
is throughout Hellenistic rather than Rabbinic. Com- a Alexandria occurs in the Vulgate by an error for
pare Heb. iv. 12 with Philo, Quis rerum tliv. hares, Xo-Ammon [Xo-Ammo.n], Jer. xlvi. 25 Ez. xxx. 14, ;
muller (Bibl. Bot. p. 245, Morren's translation), that the red sandal-wood (Pterocarpus santalinus)
who suggests that the wood had been brought from may be the kind denoted by the Hebrew word.
Ophir to Tyre, and that Solomon's instructions to But this, after all, is mere conjecture. " I have
Hiram were to send on to Jerusalem (via Joppa, often," says Dr. Hooker, " heard the subject of the
perhaps) the timber imported from Ophir that was almug-tree discussed, but never to any purpose.
lying at the port of Tyre, with the cedars which The Pterocarpus santalinus has occurred to me;
had been cut in Mount Lebanon (see Lee's Heb. but it is not found in large pieces, nor is it, I be-
Lex. s. v. "Almuggim"). No information can lieve, now used for musical purposes."
be deduced from the readings of the LXX., who This tree, which belongs to the natural order
explain the Hebrew word by " hewn wood " (IK. Leguminosoz, and sub-order Papitionacece, is a na-
x. 11, Vat.), "unhewn wood" (ibid. Alex.), and tive of India and Ceylon. The wood is very heavy,
"pine-wood" (2 Chr. ii. 8, and ix. 10, 11). The hard, and fine-grained, and of a beautiful garnet
Vulg. in the passages of Kings and 2 Chr. ix. reads color, as any one may see who has observed the
ligna thyina ; but in 2 Chr. ii. 8 follows the LXX., medicinal preparation, the compound tincture of
and has ligna pinea. Interpreters are greatly per- lavender, which is colored by the wood of the red
plexed as to what kind of tree is denoted by the sandal-tree. Dr. Lee (Lex. Heb. s. v. "Algum-
words algummiin and almuggim. The Arabic and mim") identifying Ophir with some seaport of
the Chaldee interpretations, with Munster, A. Mon- Ceylon, following Bochart (Chanaan, i. 4G) herein,
tanus, Deodatus, Noldius, Tigurinns, retain the thinks that there can be no doubt that the wood in
original word, as does the A. V. in all the three question must be either the Kalanji Fid of Ceylon
passages. The attempts at identification made by or the sandal-wood (Pterocarpus sant. ?) of India.
modern writers have not been happy. (1.) Some The Kalanji iid, which apparently is some species
maintain that the thyina" wood ( Thuya articulata) of Pterocarpus, was particularly esteemed and
is signified by algum. This wood, as is well known, sought after for the manufacture of lyres and mu-
was highly prized by the Komans, who used it for sical instruments, as Dr. Lee has proved by quota-
doors of temples, tables, and a variety of purposes tions from Arabic and Persian works. In fact he
for the citron-wood of the ancients appears to be says that the Eastern lyre is termed the fid, perhaps
identical with the thuya. (The word occurs in because made of this sort of wood. As to the de-
Kev. xviii. 12.) Its value to the Romans accounts rivation of the word nothing certain can be learnt.
for the reading of the Vulgate in the passages Hiller (Hierophyt. p. i. 106) derives it from two
quoted above. But the Thuya articulata is indig- words meaning "drops of gum," ri as if some res-
enous to the north of Africa, and is not found in inous wood was intended. There is no objection
Asia and few geographers will be found to identify
; to this derivation. The various kinds of pines are
the ancient Ophir with any port on the N. African for the most part trees of a resinous nature; but
coast. [Ophik.] (2.) Not more happy the value of the timber for building is great.
is the Nor
opinion of Dr. Kitto, that the deodar is the tree would this derivation be unsuitable to the Ptero-
probably designated by the term almug (Pict. Bibl., carpida generally, several species of which emit
note on 2 Chr. ). On this subject Dr. Hooker, in resins when the stem is wounded. Josephus (Ant.
a letter to the writer, says, " The deodar is out of viii. 7, § 1) makes special mention of a tree not un-
the question. It is no better than cedar, and never like pine, but which he is careful to warn us not to
could have been exported from Himalaya." (3.) confuse with the pine-trees known to the merchants
The late Dr. Royle, with more reason, is inclined of his time. " Those we are speaking of," he says,
to decide on the white sandal-wood (Santahm al- " were in appearance like the wood of the fig-tree,
bum ; art. "Algum.")
see Cycl. Bib. Lit. but were whiter and more shining."
This This descrip-
tion is too vague to allow us even to conjecture what
tree is a native of India, and the mountainous parts
he means. And it is quite impossible to arrive at
of the coast of Malabar, and deliciously fragrant in
the parts near to the root. It is much used in the any certain conclusion in the attempt to identify
manufacture of work-boxes, cabinets, and other or- the algum or almug-tree. The arguments, how-
6 understand a wood ever, are more in favor of the red sandal-wood than
naments. (4.) The rabbins
commonly called brasil, in Arabic albaccam, of a of any" other tree. W. H.
deep red color, used in dyeing. This appears to ALI'AH. [Alvah.]
be the bukkum ( Gesalpinia sappan), a tree allied to
ALI'AN. [Alvan.]
the Brazil-wood of modern commerce, and found
in India and many of the Jewish doctors under-
;
speaking, an example of a metaphor. trade in horses and other products of that country
The distinction between the parable and the (1 K. x. 28, 29). After the division of the king-
allegory is laid down by Dean Trench (On the dom, the alliances were of an offensive and defen-
Parables, chap, i.) as one of form rather than of sive nature. They had their origin partly in the
essence. " In the allegory," he says, " there is an internal disputes of the kingdoms of Judah and
interpretation of the thing signifying and the thing Israel, and partly in the position which these
signified, the qualities and properties of the first countries held relatively to Egypt on the one side,
being attributed to the last, and the two thus and the great eastern monarchies of Assyria and
blended together, instead of being kept quite dis- Babylonia on the other. The scantiness of the
tinct and placed side by side, as is the case in the historical records at our command makes it prob-
parable." According to this, there is no such able that the key to mauy of the events that oc-
thing as pure allegory as above defined. curred is to be found in the alliances and counter-
W. A. W. alliances formed between these peoples, of which no
ance was renewed by Jonathan (1 Mace. xii. 1 ; Ant. 1. Allon, more accurately Elok Cp7S
and by Simon Mace. xv. 17; Ant.
xiii. 5, § 8),
4, § 10, xiii. 5, § 8). The Roman alliance was tribe frequenting the spot. Such a tribe were the
again renewed by Hyrcanus, it. c. 128 (Ant. xiii. Kenites, and in connection with them the place is
again named in Judg. iv. ll, c with the additional
9, § 2), after his defeat by Antiochus Sidetes, and
a * Though this usage happens to be mentioned religious memorial or as the sign of a covenant between
only in the transaction between Jacob and Laban (Gen. God and man (e. g. by Jacob at Bethel, Gen. xxviii.
xxxi. 52). it was evidently not uncommon among the 18) was a similar proceeding, but not altogether anal-
eastern races. Sir Henry C. Rawlinson mentions the ogous. H.
interesting and illustrative fact that he has found in
6 1*1 vS, Allon, is the reading of V. d. Hooght, and
the Assyrian inscriptions frequent examples of this
same practice of raising a tumulus for the purpose of of Walton's Polyglott but most MSS. have as above ;
commemorating and ratifying a compact. See Atli- (Davidson's Hebr. Text, p. 46).
ctUBum, April 19, 1862. The erection of a stone as a c It must be remarked that the Targum Jonathan
ALMODAD ALMOND 69
definition of " Here, how- 7, § 24), a people of the interior of Arabia Felix,
by Kedesh (Naphtali)."
sver, tbe A. V., following the Vulgate, renders the near the sources of the river Lar [Arabia],
words " the plain of Zaanaim." [Elon.] (See E. S. P.
Stanley, p. 340, note.)
AL'MON (XK^TB Vdddeny. rdfxaKa; [Alex.
2. Al'lon-ba'chuth (.TC2 }'*lvN « = oak A\/xaif, Comp. 'EA/j.(&i>; Aid. 'AA.;Uw:] Ahum), a
of weeping; and so fidAavos irevdovs'- quercus city within the tribe of Benjamin, with " suburbs"
ftetus), the tree under which Rebekah's nurse, Deb- given to the priests (Josh. xxi. 18). Its name does
orah, was buried (Gen. xxxv. 8). Ewald (Gesch. not occur in the list of the towns of Benjamin in
iii.29) believes the "oak of Tabor" (1 Sam. x. 3, xviii. In the parallel list in 1 Chr. vi. it is
Josh,
A. V. "plain of T.") to be the same as, or the found as Alemeth probably a later form, and that —
successor of, this tree, "Tabor" being possibly a by which it would appear to have descended to us.
merely dialectical change from "Deborah," and he [Alemeth.] G.
would further identify it with the " palm-tree of
Deborah " (Judg. iv. 5). See also Stanley, pp.
AL'MON-DIBLATH AIM
(accurately Dib-
genitor, Fiirst] : Elmodad), the first, with Beth-diblathaim, a Moabite city mentioned by
"EAjittoScio":
Jeremiah (xlviii. 22) in company with both Dibon
in order, of the descendants of Joktan (Gen. x. 26
and Nebo, and that its traces will be discovered on
1 Chr. i. 20), and the progenitor of an Arab tribe.
further exploration. [For the etymology see Dm-
His settlements must be looked for, in common with
those of the other descendants of Joktan, in the
LATHAIM.J G.
Arabian peninsula; and his name appears to be ALMOND ("TftttJj shdked (ttb) : a ^Sa-
preserved in that of Mudad (or El-Mudad, the Kov, K&pvov, Kapvivos, Kapuoord: Ctmygdahts,
word being one of those proper names that admits amygdala, in nucis modum, instar nucis, virga
of the article being prefixed), a famous personage vigilans). This word is found in. Gen. xliii. 11;
in Arabian history, the reputed father of Ishmael's Ex. xxv. 33, 34, xxxvii. 19, 20; Num. xvii. 8;
Arab wife (Mir-dt ez-Zemdn, &c), and the chief Eccles. xii. 5; Jer. i. 11, in the text of the A. V.
of the Joktanite tribe Jurhum (not to be confounded It is invariably represented by the same Hebrew
with the older, or first, Jurhum), that, coming from word (shdked), which sometimes stands for the
the Yemen, settled in the neighborhood of Mek- whole tree, sometimes for the fruit or nut for in- ;
keh, and intermarried with the Ishmaelites. The stance, in Gen. xliii. 11, Jacob commands his sons
name of Mudad was peculiar to Jurhum, and to take as a present to Joseph " a little honey,
borne by several of its chiefs (Caussin de Perceval, spices and myrrh, nuts and almonds;" here the
Essai sur I Hist, des Arabes avant V Islamisme, cfc, fruit is clearly meant. In the passages out of the
i. 33 ff, 168, and 194 ff.). Gesenius (Lex. ed. book of Exodus the " bowls made like unto al-
Tregelles, in he.) says, "If there were an ancient monds," which were to adorn the golden candle-
error in reading (for "THIOvS), we might com- stick, seem to allude to the nut also. rf Aaron's rod,
that so miraculously budded, yielded almond nuts.
pare Morad, 4>|w/0 or tMyO —O, the name of a In the two passages from Ecclesiastes and Jere-
miah, shdked is translated almond tree, which from
tribe living in a mountainous region of Arabia
the context it certainly represents. It is clearly
Felix, near Zabid." (For this tribe see Abulfedae
then a mistake to suppose, with some writers, that
Hist. Anteislamica, ed. Fleischer, p. 190.) Others
shdked stands exclusively for " almond-nuts," and
that luz signifies the "tree." e Rosenmiiller con-
have suggested w^a/0, but the well-known tribes jectures that the latter word designates the iriitf,
of this stock are of Ishmaelite descent. Bochart the former the cultivated tree. This may be so,
tree, con-
(Phaleg, ii. 16) thinks that Almodad may be traced but it appears more probable that this
was early flowering and useful
in the name of the 'AWovfiaiwrai of Ptolemy (vi. spicuous as it for its
has miscalled the tree intended in one of the passages nificat arborem et fructum." Michaelis (Suppl. s. v.
by the Jews of old as a welcome harbinger of V. is retained, then the allusion to the almond-tree
spring, reminding them that the winter was pass- is intended to refer to the hastening of old age in
ing away —
that the flowers would soon appear on the case of him who remembereth not " his Creator
the earth —
and that the time of the singing of in the days of his youth." As the almond-tree
birds and the voice of the turtle would soon be ushers in spring, so do the signs mentioned in the
heard in the land (Song of Sol. ii. 11, 12). The context foretell the approach of old age and death.
word shdki'd, therefore, or the tree which hastened It has always been regarded by the Jews with rev-
to put forth its blossoms, was a very beautiful and erence, and even to this day the English Jews on
fitting synonym for the luz, or almond-tree, in the their great feast-days carry a bough of flowering
language of a people so fond of imagery and poetry almond to the synagogue, just as in old time they
as were the Jews. We have in our own language used to present palm-branches in the Temple, to
instances of plants being named from the season of remind them perhaps, as Lady Callcott has observed
the year when they are flowering may for haw- — (Script. Herb. p. 10), that in the great famine in
thorn ; pasque flower for anemone ; lent lily for the time of Joseph the almond did not fail them,
daffodil; winter cress for hedge mustard. But and that, as it " failed not to their patriarchs in the
perhaps the best and most exact illustration of days of dearth, it cometh to their hand in this day
the Hebrew shdked is to be found in the English of worse and more bitter privation, as a token that
word apricot, or apricock, as it was formerly and God forgetteth not his people in their distress, nor
more correctly called, which is derived from the Latin the children of Israel, though scattered in a foreign
prescoqua, pnecocia ; this tree was so called by the Land, though their home is the prey of the spoiler,
Romans, who considered it a kind of peach which and their temple is become an high place for the
ripened earlier than the common one; hence its heathen."
name, the precocious tree (comp. Plin. xv. 11 Mar- ; A modern traveller in Palestine records that, at
tial, xiii. 46). Shdked, therefore, was in all prob- the the Jews prepare a compound of
passover,
ability only another name with the Jews for luz. almonds and apples in the form of a brick, and
Shdked is derived from a root which signifies having the appearance of lime or mortar to remind
"to be wakeful," "to hasten,"" for the almond- the people of their hard service in the land of
tree blossoms very early in the season, the flowers Egypt and house of bondage (Anderson's Wander-
appearing before the leaves. Two species of Amyg- ings in the Land of Israel, p. 250).
dalus —
A. persica, the peach-tree, and A. com- The almond-tree, whose scientific name is Amyg-
munis, the shdked —
appear to be common in Pal- dalus communis, belongs to the natural order Rosa-
estine. They are both, according to Dr. Kitto cea, and sub-order Arnyr/dalce. This order is a
(Phys. Hist. Palest, p. 211), in blossom in every large and important one, for it contains more than
part of Palestine in January. The almond-tree 1000 species, many of which produce excellent
has been noticed in flower as early as the 9th of fruit. Apricots, peaches, nectarines, plums, cher-
that month the 19th, 23d, and 25th are also re-
: ries, apples, pears, strawberries, &c, &c, are all in-
corded dates. The knowledge of this interesting cluded under this order. It should be remembered,
fact will explain that otherwise unintelligible pas- however, that the seeds, flowers, bark, and leaves,
sage in Jeremiah (i. 11, 12), " The word of the of many plants in the order Bosacem contain a
Lord came unto me, saying, Jeremiah, what seest deadly poison, namely, prussic or hydrocyanic acid.
thou? And I said, I see the rod of an almond- The almond-tree is a native of Asia and North
tree (shdked). Then said the Lord unto me, Thou Africa, but it is cultivated in the milder parts of
hast well seen, for I will hasten (shdked) my word Europe. In England it is grown simply on ac-
to perform it." count of its beautiful venial flowers, for the fruit
In that well-known poetical representation of old scarcely ever comes to maturity. The height of
age in Eccles. xii. it is said, " the almond-tree shall the tree is about 12 or 14 feet; the flowers are
flourish." This expression is generally understood pink, and arranged for the most part in pairs the ;
as emblematic of the hoary locks of old age thinly leaves are long, ovate, with a serrated margin, and
scattered on the bald head, just as the white blos- an acute point. The covering of the fruit is downy
Syriac word is similar. (Eccles. xii. 3). For some other curious interpreta-
6 The general color of the almond blossom is pink, tions of this passage, see that of R. Salomon, quoted
but the flowers do vary from deep pink to nearly
by Santes Pagninus in his Thesaurus, sub voce ^^D,
white.
and Vatablus, Annotata ad Ecclesiasten, xii. 5 ( Orit.
c ^pt^ ,
VS3\ Gesenius makes the verb Sac. iii. 236).
ALMS ALOE3 71
and succulent, enclosing the hard which con- tivity there is no trace of permission of mendiuincyj
shell
tains the kernel. The bitter almond is only a but it was evidently allowed in later times (Matt.
xx. 30; Mark x. 40; Acts iii. 2).
After the Captivity, but at what time it cannot
be known certainly, a definite system of almsgiving
was introduced, and even enforced under penalties.
In every city there were three collectors. The col-
lections were of two kinds: (1.) Of money for the
poor of the city only, made by two collectors, re-
canonical books of O. T., but it occurs repeatedly Acts xx. 35; Gal. ii. 10.) Every Christian was
in N. T., and in the Apocryphal books of Tobit exhorted to lay by on the Sunday in each week
some portion of his profits, to be applied to the
and Ecclesiasticus. The Heb. n|l*TlJ, righteous- wants of the needy (Acts xi. 30 Rom. xv. 25-27 ;
ness, the usual equivalent for alms in 0. T., is ren- 1 Cor. xvi. 1-4). It was also considered a duty
dered by LXX. in Deut. xxiv. 13, Dan. iv. 24, and specidly incumbent on widows to devote them-
elsewhere, iAerinocrvvr], whilst some MSS., with selves to such ministrations (1 Tim. v. 10).
Vulg. and Rhem. Test., read in Matt. vi. 1, 5i- H. W. P.
KaioavvT). [This reading is adopted by Griesb., ALMUG-TREE. [Algum]
Lachm., Tisch., Tregelles, and Alford. A.] — AL'NATHAN
('AAvaedv, [Vat. EvaaraV,]
The duty of almsgiving, especially in kind, con-
Alex. E\va6av. Enaathan). Elnathan 2 (1
sisting chiefly in portions to be left designedly from
Esdr. viii. 44: comp. Ezr. viii. 16). W. A. W.
produce of the field, the vineyard, and the olive-
yard (Lev. xix. 9, 10, xxiii. 22; Deut. xv. 11, xxiv. ALOES, LIGN ALOES (D^H^, Ahdlim,
19, xxvi. 2-13 Ruth
; ii. 2), is strictly enjoined by
niTTlS: Ahaloth: aR-nvai (in Num. xxiv. 6),
the Law. After his entrance into the land of
promise, the Israelite was ordered to present 3'early ffTaitTT) (in Ps. xiv. 8); a\a>9, Aquila and Aid.
the first-fruits of the land before the Lord, in a aAa^; Comp. a\6d; Sym. dv/xiafjia (in Cant. iv.
manner significant of his own previously destitute 14) : tabernacula, gutta, aloe : in N. T. a\6r], aloe),
condftion. Every third year also (Deut. xiv. 28) name of some costly and sweet-smelling wood
the
each proprietor was directed to share the tithes of mentioned in Num. xxiv. 6, where Balaam com-
his produce with "the Levite, the stranger, the pares the condition of the Israelites to " trees of
fatherless, and the widow." The theological esti- lign-aloes which the Lord hath planted;" in Ps.
mate of almsgiving among the Jews is indicated by xiv. 8, "All thy garments smell of myrrh, and
the following passages : —
Job xxxi. 17 ; Prov. x. 2, aloes, and cassia;" in Prov. vii. 17, "I have per-
xi. 4; Esth. ix. 22; Ps. cxii. 9; Acts ix. 36, the fumed my bed with myrrh, aloes, and cinnamon."
case of Dorcas ; x. 2, of Cornelius to which may be In Cant. iv. 14, Solomon speaks of "myrrh and
:
added, Tob. iv. 10, 11, xiv. 10, 11; and Ecclus. iii. aloes, with all the chief spices." The word occurs
30, xl. 24. And the Talmudists went so far as to once in the N. T. (John xix. 39), where mention
interpret righteousness by almsgiving in such pas- is made of Nicodemus bringing " a mixture of
sages as Gen. xviii. 19 Is. liv. 14 Ps. xvii. 15.
; ; myrrh and aloes, about an hundred pound weight,"
In the women's court of the Temple there were for the purpose of anointing the body of our Lord.
13 receptacles for voluntary offerings (Mark xii. Writers generally, following Celsius (Hierob. i.
41), one of which was devoted to alms for education 135), who devotes thirty-five pages to this subject,
of poor children of good family. Before the Cap- suppose that the Aquilaria agallochum is the tree
72 ALOES ALOES
in question. The trees which belong to the natu- light and soft. totally without smell ai d the
It is ;
ral order Aqullariacece, apetalous dicotyledonous leaves, bark, and flowers are equally inodorous
flowering plants, are for the most part natives of (Script. Herb. p. 238). The Exccecaria ayallo-
tropical Asia. The species Aq. agallochum, which chum, with which some writers have confused the
supplies the aloes-wood of commerce, is much valued Aq. ay all., is an entirely different plant, being a
in India on account of its aromatic qualities for small crooked tree, containing an acrid milky poi-
fumigations and incense. It was well known to son, in common with the rest of the Eyphorbiacea.
the Arabic physicians. Ibn Sina a (Avicenna), in Persons have lost their sight from this juice getting
the Latin translation, speaks of this wood under the into their eyes, whence the plant's generic name,
names of Ayallochum, Xylaloe, or Liynum-Aloes. Excascaria. It is difficult to account for the spe-
In the Arabic original a description is given of it cific name of this plant, for the ayallochum is cer-
under the names of Ayhlajoon, Ayhalookhi, 0od b tainly not the produce of it.
(Dr. Royle, in Cyc. Bib. Lit. s. v. " Ahalim "). Dr. It must be confessed, however, that, notwith-
Royle (lllust. of Himmalayan Botany, -p. 171) men- standing all that has been written to prove the
tions three varieties of this wood as being obtained identity of the AhaUm-trees with the aloes-wood of
in the bazaars of Northern India. commerce, and notwithstanding the apparent con-
The Aquilaria secundaria of China has the char- nection of the Hebrew word with the Arabic Ayhla-
acter of being the most highly scented. But it is joon and the Greek Agalhchon, the opinion is not
a singular fact that this fragrancy does not exist in clear of difficulties. In the first place the passage
any of this family of trees when in a healthy and in Num. xxiv. 6, " as the Ahalim which Jeho-
growing condition it is only when the tree is dis-
; vah hath planted, is an argument against the
eased that has this aromatic property.
it On this identification with the Aquilaria ayallochum. The
account the timber is often buried for a short time LXX. read o-K.r\vai and they are followed
(tents);
in the ground, which accelerates the decay, when by the Vulg., the Syriac, the Arabic, and some
the utter or fragrant oil, is secreted. The best other versions. If Ohdlim (tents) is not the true
aloe-wood is called calambac, and is the produce reading —
and the context is against it then if —
of Aquilaria ayallochum, a native of Silhet, in Ahalim =Aq. ayallochum, we must suppose that
Northern India. This is a magnificent tree, and Balaam is speaking of trees concerning which in
grows to the height of 120 feet, being 12 feet in their growing state he could have known nothing
girth " The bark of the trunk is smooth and ash-
: at all. Rosenmiiller (Schol. in V. T. ad Num.
xxiv. 6) allows that this tree is not found in Ara-
bia, but thinks that Balaam might have become
acquainted with it from the merchants. Perhaps
the prophet might have seen the wood. But the
passage in Numbers manifestly implies that he had
seen the Ahalim growing, and that in all probabil-
ity they were some kind of tree sufficiently known
to the Israelites to enablethem to understand the
But if the Ahalim
allusion in its full force. the =
Agallochum, then much of the illustration would
have been lost to the people who were the subject
of the prophecy for the Aq. agallochum is found
;
" Lignum Alo*s, Kam. Dj. Avic. Can. 1. ii. p. 231 conf. ;
> f-
Sprengel, Hist. Rei Herb. t. i. p. 271 (Freytag, Lex.
b ^ - U e- \ aydWoxov, Aquilaria ovata, Spren-
s. v.).
The Scriptural use of the Hebrew word applies summation the work which he has begun " the ;
both to the tree and to its produce; and although kingdoms of this world shall become the kingdom
some weight must be allowed to the opinion which of our Lord and of his Christ" (Rev. xi. 15). As
identifies the Ahdlim with the Ayalfoehum, sup- Hengstenberg remarks (on Rev. i. 8), " in this dec-
ported as it is by the authority of so eminent a laration the Omega is to be regarded as emphatic.
botanist as the late Dr. Royle, yet it must be con- It is equivalent to saying, As I am the Alpha, so
ceded that the matter is by no means proved. am I also the Omega. The beginning is surety
Hiller (Hieroplajt. i. 394) derives the word from a for the end." See also Bengel's note. Comp. 2
root which signifies "to shine," "to be splendid," Esdr. vi. 6; Rom. xi. 36. Joseph, c. Apion. ii.
and believes the tree to be some species of cedar 22, 6 9ebs ai/rbs eain-aJ Kal iruaiv aurdp-
. . .
probably, he says, the Cedrus magna, or Cedrelate. ktjs, apxh Ka\ fieaa Kal reAos iravrcov. Ant.
What the C. magna may be, modern botanical sci- viii. 11, § 2, apx^l Kal reAos rwv airavTwv.
ence would be at a loss to conjecture, but it is quite Plato, De Le<ig. iv. 7, p. 715 e, 6 6e6s, wa-rrep Kal
possible that some kind of odoriferous cedar may 6 TraAaibs \6yos, apxh" t* Kal reXevT7]y Kal fj.e-
be the tree denoted by the term Ahdlim or Ahdldth. aa T03V airavrcoi/ %x a"' K T ^- Praedicatio Petri
- -
A LOTH (rV\bv BaaKiid; [Alex. MaaA- apxyv irdvTcov iirolrio'ev, Kal TeAous Qovaiav
:
The expression " I am Alpha and Omega " is xxx. 1), Ta/Je'/c xxii. 24), and from I""Qt? (Gen.
illustrated by the usage in Rabbinical writers of says that although no reliable example appears in
Aleph and Tau, the first and last letters of the He- the LXX. of the hardening of J~f at the beginning
brew alphabet. Schoettgen (Hor. Hebr. i. 1086)
of a word, yet such are found, as in KiAtKi'a from
quotes from Jalkut Rvbeni, fol. 17, 4, "Adam
TJ vn. Whether the fact of this variety existing
transgressed the whole law from S to i"l," that is,
gives us a further right to identify Alphaeus with
from the beginning to the end. It is not neces-
the Cleopas of Luke xxiv. 18, can never be satisfac-
sary to inquire whether in the latter usage the
torily determined. If, as commonly, the ellipsis in
meaning is so full as in the Revelation that must :
Such was the altar built by Moses and called Jeho- should be explained. According to Mendelssohn
vah Nissi, as a sign that the Lord would have war they mean that these horns were of one piece with
with Anialek from generation to generation (Ex. the altar. So also Knobel (Comm. in loc). And
xvii. 15, 16). Such too was the altar which was this is probably right. By others they are under-
built by the Reubenites, Gadites, and half-tribe of stood to describe only the projection of the horns
Manasseh, " in the borders of Jordan," and which from the altar. These probably projected upwards
was erected " not for burnt-offering nor for sacri- and to them the victim was bound when about to
fice," but that it might be "a witness" between be sacrificed (Ps. cxviii. 27). On the occasion of
them and the rest of the tribes (Josh. xxii. 10-29). the consecration of the priests (Ex. xxix. 12) and
Altars were most probably originally made of earth. the offering of the sin-offering (Lev. iv. 7 ff.) the
The Law of Moses allowed them to be made either blood of the victim was sprinkled on the horns of
of earth or unhewn stones (Ex. xx. 26): any iron the altar. (See the symbolism explained by Baum-
toolwould have profaned the altar but this could — garten, Commentar zum Pentateuch, ii. 63.)
only refer to the body of the altar and that part on Round the altar midway between the top and bot-
which the victim was laid, as directions were given tom (or, as others suppose, at the top) ran a pro-
to make a casing of shittim-wood overlaid with
jecting ledge (33~13, A. V. "Compass") on
brass for the altar of burnt-offering. (See below).
which perhaps the priests stood when they officiated.
In later times they were frequently built on high
worship (Deut. To the outer edge of this, again, a grating or net-
places, especially in idolatrous xii.
2 ; for the pagan notions on this subject, see Tac. work of brass (nrn? nrtn nip^p n ??£)
Ann. xiii. 57). The altars so erected were them-
was affixed, and reached to the bottom of the altar,
selves sometimes called "high places" (HIDS, which thus presented the appearance of being larger
2 K. xxiii. 8; 2 Chr. xiv. 3, &c). By the Law of below than above." Others have supposed this
Moses all altars were forbidden except those first grating to adhere closely to the boards of which
a Knobel
(in loc) is of opinion that the object of The 23"^?, he thinks, was merely an ornament by
the net-work was to protect the altar from being in-
way of finish at the top of this.
jured by the feet and knees of the officiating priests,
ALTAR ALTAR 75
ohe altar was composed, or even to have been sub- broken ascent. But the biblical account is so brief
stituted for them half-way up from the bottom. that we are necessarily unable to determine the
At any rate there can be little doubt that the
grating was perpendicular, not horizontal as Jona-
than supposes (Targum on Ex. xxvii. 5). Accord-
ing to him it was intended to catch portions of the
sacrifice or coals which fell from the altar, and
which might thus be easily replaced. But it seems
improbable that a net work or grating should have
been constructed for such a purpose (cf. Joseph.
Ant. iii. 6, § 8). At the four comers of the net-
work were four brazen rings into which were in-
serted the staves by which the altar was carried.
These staves were of the same materials as the altar
itself. As the priests were forbidden to ascend the
altar by steps (Ex. xx. 26), it has been conjectured
that a slope of earth led gradually up to the
pot. (See 1 Sam. ii. 13, 14, where they are de- (Zerubbabel's) temple. Of this no description is
flFinD,
given in the Bible. We are only told (Ezr. iii. 2)
scribed as having three prongs.) (e)
that it was built before the foundations of the Tem-
fire-pans, or perhaps censers. These might either ple were laid. According to Josephus (Ant. xi. 4,
be used for taking coals from the fire on the altar
§ 1) it was placed on the same spot on which that
(Lev. xvi. 12), or for burning incense (Num. xvi. of Solomon had originally stood. It was con-
6, 7). There is no reason to give the word a dif- structed, as we may infer from 1 Mace. iv. 47, of
ferent meaning in Ex. xxv. 38, where our version, unhewn
stones 6\oKK^povs)- Antiochus
(\idovs
following the Vulgate, translates it " snuff-dishes."
Epiphanes desecrated it ((pKo56fj.-ncrav /38e\vy/j.a
All these utensils were of brass.
iprifxaxreoss iirl rb dutriaar-fipiov, 1 Mace. i. 54)
In Solomon's Temple the altar was consider-
(2.) and according to Josephus (Ant. xii. 5, § 4) re-
ably larger in its dimensions, as might have been
moved it altogether. In the restoration by Judas
expected from the much greater size of the building Maccaboeus a new altar was built of unhewn stone
in which it was placed. Like the former it was in conformity with the Mosaic Law (1 Mace. iv.
square; but the length and breadth were now 47).
twenty cubits, and the height ten (2 Chr. iv. 1). (4.) The altar erected by Herod which is thus
It differed, too, in the material of which it was described by Josephus (B. J. v. 5, § 6): "In front
made, being entirely of brass (1 K. viii. 64; 2 of the Temple stood the altar, 15 cubits in height,
Chr. vii. 7). It had no grating; and instead of a
and in breadth and length of equal dimensions, viz.
single gradual slope, the ascent to it was probably
50 cubits: it was built foursquare, with horn-like
made by three successive platforms, to each of which corners projecting from it : and on the south side a
it has been supposed that steps led (Surenhus.
up to Moreover it was made
gentle acclivity led it.
Mishna, vol. ii. p. 261, as in the figure annexed). without any iron tool, neither did iron ever touch
Against this may be urged the fact that the Law it at any time." Rufin. has 40 cubits square in-
of Moses positively forbade the use of steps (Ex. xx. stead of 50. The dimensions given in the Mishna
26) and the assertion of Jogephus that in Herod's are different. It is there said (Middoth, 3, 1) that
temple the ascent was by an inclined plane. On the altar was at the base 32 cubits square; at the
the other hand steps are introduced in the ideal, or
heio ht of a cubit from the grou nd 30 cubits square;
.
brook Kidron. Under the altar was a cavity into on which the incense was laid and lighted. Many,
which the drink-otiirinus pussed. It was covered following the interpretation of the Vulgate eniiic-
over with a slab of marble, and emptied from time vlam ejus, have supposed a kind of grating to be
to time. On the north side of the altar were a meant but for this there is no authority. Bound
;
to be kept burning on the altar. This, as Biihr volveretur." (Carpzov. Appar. Hist. Crit. Annot.
(Symbol, ii. 350) remarks, was the symbol and to- p. 273.) Below this were two golden rings which
ken of the perpetual worship of Jehovah. For in- were to be "for places for the staves to bear it
asmuch as the whole religion of Israel was concen withal." The staves were of acacia-wood overlaid
trated in the sacrifices which were offered, the ex with gold. Its appearance may be illustrated by
tinguishing of the fire would have looked like the the following figure :
—
extinguishing of the religion itself. It was there-
fore, as he observes, essentially different from the
perpetual fire of the Persians (Curt. iii. 3; Amm.
Marc, xxiii. 6; Hyde, Rel. Vet. Pers. viii. 148), or
the fire of Vesta to which it has been compared.
candlestick and the table of shew bread. In ap- Eosenmiiller suggests, however, that the allusion is
parent contradiction to this, the author of the to some Babylonish custom of burning incense on
Epistle to the Hebrews enumerates it among the bricks covered over with magic formulae or cunei-
objects which were within the second vail (fj.era to form inscriptions. This is also the view of Gesen-
Sevrepov KaraTreraafia), i- e. in the Holy of Holies. ins and Maurer.
It is true that by dv/j.iar'fipi.ov in this passage may (2.) An Altar to an Unknown God ('AytxixTTco
be meant " a censer," in accordance with the usage ©ey, Acts xvii. 23). What altar this was has been
of the LXX., but it is better understood of the much discussion. St. Paul merely
the subject of
Altar of Incense which by Philo and other Hel- mentions in his speech on the Areopagus that lie
lenists is called du/xiar^piov. It is remarkable also
had himself seen such an altar in Athens. His as-
that in 1 K. vi. 21, 22, this same altar is said to sertion, as it happens, is confirmed by other writers,
Pausanias says (i. § 4), ivravda iced @a>fj.ol Oeebu
belong to "the oracle" ("l^b ""IITS Tl^fpTl)
re 6vo/xa^ofi4ywv ayvcccrrcov Kal ripwoiv kcu irai-
or most Holy Place. This may perhaps be ac-
counted for by the great typical and symbolical
5W
twv Qr^ffews Kai 4>aAiijpou. And Philostratus
Vit. Apollon. vi. 3), (rw(ppovecrTepov to wepl
importance attached to this altar, so that it might (
izavraiv Qiuv e§ \iyeiv, Kal raura 'AQrjuriaiv,
be considered to belong to the Sevrepa cr/crjj'17.
oil Kal ayv>wv SaiyUoVajy Pu/nol 'iSpwrat. This,
(See Bleek on Heb. ix. 4, and Delitzsch in he.)
as Winer observes, need not be interpreted as if
(b.) The Altar in Solomon's Temple was similar
the several altars were dedicated to a number of
(1 K. vii. 48; 1 Chr. xxviii. 18), but was made
ayvwaroi 6eoi, but rather that each altar had the
of cedar overlaid with gold. The altar mentioned
inscription 'AyvwffTa> ©e<5. It is not at all prob-
in Is. vi. G, is clearly the Altar of Incense, not the
able that such inscription referred to the God
Altar of Burnt-offering. Prom this passage it
of the Jews, as One whose Name it was unlawful
would seem that heated stones (i"T9V"1)
x were laid to utter (as Wolf and others have supposed). As
T •'
:
upon the altar, by means of which the incense was to the origin of these altars, Eichhorn suggests that
kindled. Although it is the heavenly altar which they may have been built before the art of writing
is there described, we may presume that the earthly was known (Pcofxol and subsequently
av<&vvfj.oi),
corresponded to it. inscribed ayv. de<2. Neander's view, however, is
(c.) The Altar of Incense is mentioned as having probably more correct. He quotes Diog. Laertius,
been removed from the Tempie of Zerubbabel by who, in his Life of Epimenides, says that in the
Antiochus Epiphanes (1 Mace. i. 21). Judas time of a plague, when they knew not what God to
Maccabaeus restored it, together with the holy propitiate in order to avert it, he caused black and
vessels, &c. (1 Mace. iv. 49). On the arch of Titus white sheep to be let loose from the Areopagus,
no Altar of Incense appears. But that it existed and wherever they lay down to be offered to the
in the last Temple, and was richly overlaid, we learn respective divinities (t$ itpoo-r\KovTi def). "OQev,
from the Mishna (Chagiga, iii. 8). From the cir- adds Diogenes, en Kal vvv eanv evpelv Kara rovs
cumstance that the sweet incense was burnt upon Srifiovs t&v 'A6. $ai/Aobs avavvfxovs. On which
it every day, morning and evening (Ex. xxx. 7, 8), Neander remarks that on this or similar occasions
as well as that the blood of atonement was sprinkled altars might be dedicated to an Unknown God,
upon it (v. 10), this altar had a special importance since they knew not what God was offended and
attached to it. It is the only altar which appears required to be propitiated. J. J. S. P.
in the Heavenly Temple (Is. vi. 6; Rev. viii. 3, * If the import of the inscription
on the Athen-
4). ian altar (ayvcvaTw de<£) was simply that the wor-
(C.) Other Altars. (1.) Altars of brick. There shippers knew not any longer to what particular
seems to be an allusion to such in Is. lxv. 3. The heathen god the altars were originally dedicated, it
is not easy to see what proper point of connection
words are: D^^bn Vi7 E^^tt, "offering in-
the apostle could have found for his remark (Acts
xvii. 23) with such a relic of sheer idolatry. In
that case their ignorance related merely to the
identity of the god whom they should conciliate,
and implied no recognition of any power additional
to that of their heathen deities. A more satisfac-
tory view would seem to be that these altars had
their origin in the feeling of uncertainty, which was
inherent after all in the minds of the heathen,
pressions as the comprehensive address, — At o de- or turba hominum, Ges.], Sam. 12/ "ON : Al\ovs\
viiim quicquid in c<xlo regit (Horat. Epod. v. 1); [Yat. AiAeiyu.:] Alus), one of the stations of the Is-
the oft-used formula in the prayers of the Greeks raelites on their journey to Sinai, the last before
and liomans, Si deo, si dece ; aud the superstitious Eephidim (Num. xxxiii. 13, 14). No trace of it
dread, which they manifested in so many ways, of has yet been found. In the Seder Olam (Kitto,
omitting any deity in their invocations, prove the Cyc. s. v.) it is stated to have been 8 miles from
existence of the feeling to which reference has been Rephidim. G.
made. For ample proof of this more enlightened
consciousness among the heathen, see especially
(HTb^ AI/VAH
[wickedness, Hos. x. 9]
Ptaimer, Systemd Theologice Gentilis Purioris (Cap. Tco\d Alva), a duke of Edom (Gen. xxxvi. 40),
:
ii. and viii.). Out of this feeling, therefore,- these written Aliah (^73? [Bom. TaiAaSd; Yat. Alex.
altars may have sprung, because the supposition is
TaiXa\ Comp. Aid. 'AAovd'-]) in 1 Chr. i. 51.
so entirely consistent with the genius of polytheistic * The "duke" in this and other passages is
heathenism; because the many-sided religiousness
from the Vulg. "dux " in the Sept. riytjxsbv. Al-
;
concubine Tim-
opagus, be in fact not the famous platform from [Amalec]), son of Eliphaz by his
which the orators spoke, but a fSu)[j.6s, an altar of nah, grandson of Esau, and one of the chieftains
sacrifice, as many archaeologists now maintain," it
("dukes" A. V.) of Edom (Gen. xxxvi. 12, 16; 1
then was unquestionably one of the objects of re- Chr. i. 36). His mother came of the Horite race,
ligious veneration (to. 0-e^day.ara) which Paul so whose territory
the descendants of Esau had seized
Modern expositors, however, have generally adopted Sam. Arabian historians represent
xv. 7, xxvii. 8).
the view of Aben-Ezra (Comment, on Psalm lvii.), them as originally dwelling on the shores of the
agreeably to which " Al Tashcheth " is the begin- Persian Gulf, whence they were pressed westward by
ning of some song or poem to the tune of which the growth of the Assyrian empire, and spread over
those psalms were to be chanted. D. W. M. a portion of Arabia at a period antecedent to its
« * The question is argued with that result by E. to adopt this conclusion at present. Such Greek ar-
Curtius in his Attische Studien (Gbttiugen, 1862). He chaeologists at Athens as Rangabes and such Hellenists
had excavations made, under his personal supervision, as Finlay (as the writer has learned by correspondence)
around the « bema of the Pnyx," as it has been still adhere to the old opinion. H.
thought to be, and concludes that it must have been 6 * Knobel (Josua, p. 463) thinks that Haifa, the
not the bema r but an altar sacred to Jupiter, and, as claimant for so many biblical places (see Achshaph!
indicated by the style of the work, dating from the may be the present site. Keil (Josiia, p. 146) refutes
earliest Athenian antiquity."' It would be premature that opinion. H.
AMAM AMARIAH 79
occupation by the descendants of Joktan. This Na5a£:J Aman). Haman (Tob. xiv. 10; Esth.
account of their origin harmonizes with Gen. xiv. 7, x. 7, xii. 6, xiii. 3, 12, x.v. 17, xvi. 10, 17).
where the "country" ("princes"' according to the
reading adopted by the LXX.) of the Amalekites
AM'ANA
(HDDW [perennial]), apparently
is mentioned several generations before the birth
a mountain in or near Lebanon, " from the head —
of Amana " (Cant. iv. 8). It is commonly assumed
of the Edoroite Amalek: it throws light on the
that this is the mountain in which the river Abana
traces of a permanent occupation of central Pales-
(2 K. v. 12; Keri, Targum Jonathan, and margin
tine in their passage westward, as indicated by the
of A. V. "Amana") has its source, but in the
names Amalek and Mount of the Amalekites (Judg.
absence of further research in the Lebanon this is
v. 14, xii. 15 and it accounts for the silence of
) :
The kings or chieftains were perhaps distinguished AMARIAH (nnDN and -liT"!^ ;
'
Aju-
by the hereditary title Agag (Num. xxiv. 7; 1 apia and [Alex.] 'A/xaplas '• Amarias ; whom God
Sam. xv. 8). Two
important routes led through promised, Sim., Gesen.,
i. q. ©eo^pewros).
the Amalekite district, namely, from Palestine to Father of Ahitub, according to 1 Chr. vi. 7, 52,
Egypt by the Isthmus of Suez, and to southern and son of Meraioth, in the line of the high-priests.
Asia and Africa by the /Elanitic arm of the Red In Josephus's Hist. (Ant. viii. 1, § 3) he is trans-
Sea. It has been conjectured that the expedition formed into 'Apo</>cuos.
of the four kings (Gen. xiv.) had for its object the 2. The high-priest in the reign of Jehoshaphat
opening of the latter route and it is in connection
;
(2 Chr. xix. 11). He was the son of Azariah, and
with the former that the Amalekites first came in the fifth high-priest who succeeded Zadok (1 Chr.
contact with the Israelites, whose progress they at- vi. 11). Nothing is known of him beyond his
tempted to stop, adopting a guerilla style of war- name, but from the way in whieh Jehoshaphat
fare (Deut. xxv. 18), but were signally defeated at mentions him he seems to have seconded that pious
Rephidim (Ex. xvii.). In union with the Ca- king in his endeavors to work a reformation in Is-
naanites they again attacked the Israelites on the rael and Judah (see 2 Chr. xvii. xix.). Josephus,
borders of Palestine, and defeated them near Hor- who calls him 'Afiaffiav rbi> lepea, " Amaziah the
mah (Num. xiv. 45). Thenceforward we hear of priest," unaccountably says of him that he was of
them only as a secondary power, at one tune in the tribe of Judah, as well as Zebadiah, as the
league with the Moabites (Judg. iii. 13), when they text now stands. But if ktcaripovs is struck out,
were defeated by Ehud near Jericho; at another this absurd statement will disappear- (Ant. ix. 1,
time in league with the Midianites (Judg. vi. 3) It is not easy to recognize him in the won-
§ 1).
when they penetrated into the plain of Esdraelon, derfully corrupt list of high-priests given in the
and were defeated by Gideon. Saul undertook an Ant. x. 8, § 6. But he seems to be concealed un-
expedition against them, overrunning their whole der the strange form AEIflPAMOS, Axioramus.
district "from Havilah to Shur," and inflicting an The syllable AE is corrupted from A2, the termi-
immense loss upon them (1 Sam. xv.). Their nation of the preceding name, Azarias, which has
power was thenceforth broken, and they degenerated accidentally adhered to the beginning of Amariah,
into a horde of banditti, whose style of warfare as the final 2 has to the very same name in the
is well expressed in the Hebrew term l^il text of Nicephorus (ap. Seld. de Success, p. 103),
producing the form 2a/xopias. The remaining
(Gesen. Lex.) frequently applied to them in the
'lupa/uios is not far removed from 'Afiaplas. The
description of their contests with David in the
successor of Amariah in the high-priesthood must
neighborhood of Ziklag, when their destruction
have been Jehoiada. In Josephus <f>!8€as, which is
was completed (1 Sam. xxvii., xxx. ; comp. Num. a corruption of 'IwSe'as, follows Axioramus. There
xxiv. 20). W. L. B.
is not the slightest support in the sacred history
x^po)- a district
'A/j.aptla, Vat. Mopio; Alex. FA. Comp. Aid. to the north of Palestine, in which Jonathan Macca-
"
Afiapias- Aiiiaria.] Amariah in the time of Ezra bseus met the forces of Demetrius (1 Mace. xii. 25).
(Ezr. x. 42; Neh. xi. 4). From the context it is evidently Hamath. G.
6. ['Afiopias, Alex, -etas; Aid. 'Ajuapias.]
An ancestor of Zephaniah the prophet (Zeph. i. 1).
AMAZIAH (iT!?£S or 'TPSES, strength
of Jehovah:
'
(xx. 10), which he held concealed in his left hand. ter of his reign (cf. 2 K. xiv. 3, with 2 Chr. xxv.
2). In consequence of this he was overtaken by
Whether Amasa be identical with ''tPOS? ~ t -: who
is
misfortune. Having already offended the Hebrews
mentioned among David's commanders (1 Chr. xii. of the northern kingdom by sending back, in obedi-
18), is uncertain (Ewald, Gesch. Israel, ii. 544). ence to a prophet's direction, some mercenary
2. [Afiaaias; Vat. Ajxaaeias.] A
prince of troops whom he had hired from it, he had the fool-
Ephraim, son of Hadlai, in the reign of Ahaz (2 ish arrogance to challenge Joash king of Israel to
Chr. xxviii. 12). R. W. B. whose strength
battle, despising probably a sovereign
AMA'SAI [3 syl.] OtPEE, had been exhausted by Syrian wars, and who had
in pause ^WpV
not yet made himself respected by the great suc-
[burdensome]: 'A^etro-f, 'A/xaB'f, [Vat. Ayueiro-ei,
cesses recorded in 2 K. xiii. 25. But Judah was
AfjiaBeias;] Alex. Ajuay in 1 Chr. vi. 25: Amasai).
completely defeated, and Amaziah himself was
1. A Kohathite, father of Mahath and ancestor of
taken prisoner, and conveyed by Joash to Jerusa-
Samuel and Ethan the singer (1 Chr. vi. 25, 35).
lem, which, according to Josephus (Ant. ix. 9, 3),
2. FA. Ajua<re-) Chief of the cap- opened its gates to the conqueror under a
('Ajuaa-ai; threat
tains (LXX. "thirty") of Judah and Benjamin, that otherwise he would put Amaziah to death.
who deserted to David while an outlaw at Ziklag
We do not know the historian's authority for this
(1 Chr. xii. 18). Whether he was the same as statement, but it explains the tact that the city
Amasa, David's nephew, is uncertain. was taken apparently without resistance (2 K. xiv.
3. ('A/xao-of; FA. Afiaae-) One of the priests 13). A portion of the wall of Jerusalem on the
who blew trumpets before the Ark, when David side towards the Israelitish frontier was broken
brought it from the house of Obed-edom (1 Chr. down, and treasures and hostages were carried off
xv. 24). to Samaria. Amaziah lived 15 years after the
4. CAfiaai; [Vat. Macri.]) Another Kohath- death of Joash; and in the 29th year of his reign
ite, father of another Mahath, in the reign of Heze- was murdered by conspirators at Lachish, whither
The precept given Deut. xx. 10, seems to imply the Odyssey (iv. 73) it is mentioned as enriching
some such agency rather, however, that of a mere
;
Menelaus's palace, together with copper, gold, sil-
nuncio, often beai'iug a letter (2 K. v. 5, xix. 14) ver, and ivory. In Od. xv. 460, xviii. 29G, a neck-
than of a legate empowered to treat. The inviola- lace of gold is said to be fitted with electron.
bility of such an officer's person may perhaps be in- Pliny, in the chapter quoted above, understands
ferred from the only recorded infraction of it being the electron in Menelaus's palace to be the metal.
followed with unusual severities towards the van- But with respect to the golden necklace, it is worthy
quished, probably designed as a condign chastise- of note that amber necklaces have been long used,
ment of that offense (2 Sam. x. 2-5; cf. xii. 26- as they were deemed an amulet against throat dis-
31). The earliest examples of ambassadors em- eases. Beads of amber are frequently found in
ployed occur in the cases of Edom, Moab, and the British barrows with entire necklaces (Fosbr. Ah-
Amorites (Num. xx. 14, xxi. 21; Judg. xi. 17-19), tiq. i. 289). Theophrastus (ix. 18, § 2; and Ft:
afterwards in that of the fraudulent Gibeonites ii. 29, ed. Schneider), it is certain, uses the term
(Josh. ix. 4, &c. ), and in the instances of civil strife electron to denote amber, for he speaks of its at-
mentioned Judg. xi. 12, and xx. 12. (See Cunae- tracting properties. On the other hand, that elec-
us de Hep. Hebr. ii. 20, with notes by J. Nico- tron was understood by the Greeks to denote a
laus. Ugol. iii. 771-4.) They are mentioned metal composed of one part of silver to every four
more frequently during and after the contact of the of gold, we have the testimony of Pliny to show
great adjacent monarchies of Syria, Babylon, &c, but whether the early Greeks intended the metal or
with those of Judah and Israel, e. g. in the inva- the amber, or sometimes one and sometimes the
sion of Sennacherib. They were usually men of other, it is impossible to determine with certainty.
high rank as in that case the chief captain, the Passow believes that the metal was always denoted
;
chief cupbearer, and chief of the eunuchs were by electron in the writings of Homer and Hesiod,
deputed, and were met by delegates of similar dig- and that amber was not known till its introduction
nity from Hezekiah (2 K. xviii. 17, 18; see also by the Phoenicians; to which circumstance, as he
Is. xxx. 4). Ambassadors are found to have been thinks, Herodotus (iii. 115, who seems to speak of
employed, not only on occasions of hostile challenge the resin, and not the metal) refers. Others again,
or insolent menace (2 K. xiv. 8; 1 K. xx. 2, 6), with Buttmann (Mythol. ii. 337 ), maintain that the
but of friendly compliment, of request for alliance electron denoted amber, and they very reasonably
or other aid, of submissive deprecation, and of curi- refer to the ancient myth of the origin of amber.
ous inquiry (2 K. xiv. 8, xvi. 7, xviii. 14; 2 Chr. Pliny (77. N. xxxvii. cap. 2) ridicules the Greek
xxxii. 31). The dispatch of ambassadors with ur- writers for their credulity in the fabulous origin of
gent haste is introduced as a token of national gran- this substance; and especially finds fault with
deur in the obscure prophecy Is. xviii. 2. H. H. Sophocles, who, in some lost play, appears to have
believed in it.
AMBER (btttrn, chashmal; H^atm, From it will be seen that it
these considerations
chashmalah : rfXacrpov- electrvm) occurs only in is not possible to identify the chashmal by the help
Ez. i. 4, 27, viii. 2. In the first passage the of the LXX., or to say whether we are to under-
prophet compares it with the brightness in which stand the metal or the fossil resin by the word.
he beheld the heavenly apparition who gave him There is, however, one reason to lie adduced in
the divine commands. In the second, " the glory favor of the chashmal denoting the metal rather
of the God of Israel" is represented as having, than the resin, and this is to be sought in the ety-
" from the appearance of his loins even downward, mology of the Hebrew name, which, according to
fire; and from his loins even upward as the appear- Gesenius, seems to be compounded of two words
ance of brightness, as the color of amber." It is which together =
polished copper. Bochart (Hie-
by no means a matter of certainty, notwithstand- roz. iii. 885) conjectures that chashmal is- com-
ing Bochart's dissertation and the conclusion he pounded of two Chaldee winds meaning capper —
comes to (Hieroz. iii. 876, ed. Kosenmiill.), that gold-ore, to which he refers the awrickalcum. But
the Hebrew word chashmal denotes a metal, and awichalcum is in all probability only the Latin
not the fossil resin called amber, although perhaps form of the Greek orichalcon (mountain copper).
the probabilities are more in favor of the metal. (See Smith's LaL-Engl. Diet. s. v. "Orichalrcnm.")
Dr. Harris (Nat. Hist. Bib. art. "Amber") asserts Isidorus, however (Orig. xvi. 19), sanctions the
that the translators of the A. V. could not mean etymology which Bochart adopts. But the elect rim.
amber, "for that being a bituminous substance, according to Pliny, Pausanias (v. 12, § 6), and the
Iwcomes dim as soon as it feels the fire, and soon numerous authorities quoted by Bochart, was com-
dissolves and consumes." But this is founded on posed of gold and silver, not of gold awl copper.
6
82 AMEDATHA AMMAH
The Hebrew word may denote either the metal Hebrew word, an opinion which is abundantly sup-
electron or amber ; but it must still be left as a ported by the ancient versions. The Targum of
question which of the two substances is really in- Jerusalem indeed reads sma/ragdin (smaragdus);
tended. W. H. those of Jonathan and Onkelos have two words
* AMED'ATHA, Esth.A. V. ed. 1611, which signify "calf's-eye" {oculus vituli), which
iii. 1,
for Hammedatha. A. Braunius (de Vestit. Sacerd. Heb. ii. 711) conject-
ures may be identical with the Beli oculus of the
A'MEN 0|£N), literally, "firm, true;" and, Assyrians (Plin. //. N. xxxvii.
10), the Cat's eye.
used as a substantive, "that which is true," Chalcedony, according to Ajasson and Desfontaines
"truth" (Is. lxv. 10); a word used in strong as- but as Braunius has observed, the word achldmdh
severations, fixing as it were the stamp of truth according to the best and most ancient authorities
upon the assertion which it accompanied, and mak- signifies amethyst.
ing it binding as an oath (comp. Num. v. 22). Modern mineralogists by the term amethyst usu-
In the LXX. of 1 Chr. xvi. 36, Neh. v. 13, viii. 6, ally understand the amethystine variety of quartz,
the word appears in the form 'A/uiV, which is used which is crystalline and highly transparent: it is
throughout the N. T. In other passages the Heb. sometimes called Rose quartz, and contains alumina
is rendered by yevoiro, except in Is. lxv. 16. The and oxide of manganese. There is, however, an-
Vulgate adopts the Hebrew word in all cases ex- other mineral to which the name of Oriental ame-
cept in the Psalms, where it is translated jiai. In thyst is usually applied, and which is far more val-
Deut. xxvii. 15-26, the people were to say " Amen," uable than the quartz kind. This is a crystalline
as the Levites pronounced each of the curses upon variety of Corundum, being found more especially
Mount Ebal, signifying by this their assent to the in the E. and W. Indies. It is extremely hard and
conditions under which the curses would be in- bright, and generally of a purple color, which, how-
flicted. In accordance with this usage we find ever, it may readily be made to lose by subjecting
that, among the Rabbins, " Amen " involves the it to fire. In all probability the common Amethys-
ideas of swearing, acceptance, and truthfulness.
tine quartz is the mineral denoted by aehlamah
;
(A. V. " verily "), in which the assertions are made Oriental amethyst is inferior only to the diamond in
with the solemnity of an oath, and then strength- hardness, and is moreover a comparatively rare gem.
ened by the repetition of "Amen." "Amen" The Greek word ametkmtos, the origin of the
was the proper response of the person to whom an English amethyst, is usually derived from a, " not,"
oath was administered (Neh. v. 13, viii. 6 1 Chr. and fxtQvw, " to be intoxicated," this stone having
;
xvi. 36; Jer. xi. 5, marg.); and the Deity, to whom been believed to have the power of dispelling drunk-
appeal is made on such occasions, is called " the enness in those who wore it. (Dionys. Perieg.
God of Amen" (Is. lxv. 16), as being a witness to 1122; Antkol. Palat. 9, 752; Martini, Lxc.urs. 158.)
the sincerity of the implied compact. With a sim- Pliny, however (//. N. xxxvii. 9), says, " The name
ilar significance Christ is called " the Amen, the which these stones have is to be traced to their pe-
faithful and true witness" (Rev. iii. 14; comp. culiar tint, which, after approximating to the color
John i. 14, xiv. 6; 2 Cor. i. 20). It is matter of of wine shades off into a violet." Theophrastus
tradition that in the Temple the " Amen " was also alludes to its wine-like color. a \V. H.
not uttered by the people, but that, instead, at the
conclusion of the priest's prayers, they responded,
A'MI OOS
[architect, Furst] : 'Hyiie'i': Ami),
"Blessed be the name of the glory of his kingdom name of one of "Solomon's servants" (Ezr. ii. 57);
for ever and ever." >f this a trace is supposed to
called Amon (]")ftN
<
['H/xfyt; Vat. Alex. FA.
remain hi the concluding sentence of the Lord's
Hjuei/u; Comp. 'Afx&v. Amon]) in Neh. vii. 59.
Prayer (comp. Rom. xi. 36). But in the syna- Ami is probably a corrupted form of Amon.
gogues and private houses it was customary for the
people or members of the family who were present AMIN'ADAB
('Afxivao'dfi: Aminadab). Am-
to say " Amen " to the prayers which were offered MINADAB
1 (Matt. i. 4; Luke iii. 33).
AMETHYST (nnbr]S, achldmdh: jpt- an Aramaean and Talmudic usage] : 6 (tovvbs 'A/t-
fidf, [Alex. Comp.
'Afx/xd; Aid. 'E/Ujuar:] COUit
Bvcrros'- amethystus). Mention is made of this
aquce ductus), a hill " facing " Giah by the way of
precious stone, which formed the third in the third
the wilderness of Gibeon, named as the point to
row of the high-priest's breastplate, in Ex. xxviii.
which Joab's pursuit of Abner after the death of
19, xxxix. 12, " And the third row a ligure, an Asahel extended
(2 Sam. ii. 24). Josephus (Ant.
agate, and an amethyst." It occurs also in the N. vii. 1, § 3) r6iros tis, (comp.
hv 'A/xfidrav Ka\ov<ri
T. (Rev. xxi. 20) as the twelfth stone which gar-
nished the foundations of the wall of the heavenly
Jerusalem. Commentators generally are agreed " To 6" afiefrvo-ov oii'w7rbi' rfj xpoa- (Fr. ii- 31, ed.
that the amethyst is the stone indicated by the Schneid.)
AMMEDATHA AMMISHADDAI 83
Targ. Jon. KHPS). Both Syramachus (vdtrn), man of generosity, Fiirst, who ascribes to OV
and Theodotion (vSpaywy6s), agree with the Vul- the sense of " homo " as its primitive meaning.
gate in an allusion to some watercourse here. Can The passages, Ps. ex. 3, Cant. vi. 12, margin, seem
this point to the "excavated fountain," "under the however rather to suggest the sense my people is
high rock," described as near Gibeon (El^Jib) by willing). 1. Son of Kam or Aram, and father of
AM'MIDOI, in some copies [e. g. ed. 1611] one of the ancestors of Jesus Christ. Nothing
Ammid'ioi ("AfifiiSoi or 'A/j./iiSioi), named in 1 more is recorded of him but the marriage of his ;
Esdr. v. 20 among those who came up from Baby- daughter to Aaron may be marked as the earliest
lon with Zorobabel. The three names Pira, Cha- instance of alliance between the royal fine of Judah
dias, and A. are inserted between Beeroth and and the priestly line of Aaron. And the name of
Ramah, without any corresponding words in the his grandson Nadab may be noted as probably given
parallel lists of Ezra or Nehemiah. in honor of A i-nadab his grandfather. mm
* Fritzsche (in be.) identifies 'A/xpiSioi with the 2. The chief of the 112 sons of Uzziel, a junior
inhabitants of Hurntah, Josh. xv. 54. There ap- Levitical house of the family of the Kohathites
pears to be no authority for the form "A/x/juSot. (Ex. vi. 18), in the days of David, whom that kir.g
A. sent for, together with Uriel, Asaiah, Joel, Shem-
aiah, and Eliel, other chief fathers of Levitical
AM'MIEL (bbOa? I
people of God]: houses, and Zadok and Abiathar the priests, to
'A^it]A; [Vat. AjiteirjA.:] Ammiel). 1. The spy bring the ark of God to Jerusalem (1 Chr. xv. 10-
selected by Moses from the tribe of Dan (Num. 12), to the tent which he had pitched for it. The
xiii. 12). passage last quoted is instructive as to the mode of
2. (Alex. A/xi-np, Vulg. Ammihel in 2 Sam. naming the houses; for besides the sons of Kohath,
xvii. 27; [Vat. in 2 Sam. ix., Ajxar)p, A/usitjA].) 120, at v. 5, we have the sons of Elizaphan, 200,
The father of Machir of Lodebar (2 Sam. ix. 4, 5, at v. 8, of Hebron, 80, at v. 9, and of Uzziel, 112,
xvii. 27). at v. 10, all of them Kohathites (Num. iii. 27, 30).
3. The father of Bathshua, or Bathsheba, the 3. [Alex, lo-o-aap.] At 1 Chr. vi. 22 (7, Heb.
wife of David (1 Chi
-
, iii. 5), called En am in 2 B.) Izhar, the son of Kohath, and father of Korah,
Sam. 3 the Hebrew letters, which are the same
xi. :
is called Amminadab, and the Vatican LXX. has
in the two names, being transposed. He was the the same reading. (The Alexandrine has Izhar.)
son of Ahithophel, David's prime minister. But it is probably only a clerical error.
4. [Vat. A/uenjA.] The sixth son of Obed-edom 4. In Cant. vi. 12 it is uncertain whether we
(1 Chr. xxvi. 5), and one of the doorkeepers of the
ought to read ^I^Sl?, Amminadib, with the
Temple. W. A. W.
AMMFHUD ("nrPfty [people of Judah]: A. V., or S^'l^ "^V? m y willing people, as in
"E/j.wv8 in Num., 'A/xiovS [Vat. Afj.tovtib'] in 1 the margin. K Amminadib is a proper name, it
Chr. : 1. An
Ammiud). Ephraimite, father of is thought to be either the name of some one famous
Elishama, the chief of the tribe at the time of the
for his swift chariots, ni3!3"ip, or that there is
Exodus (Num. i. 10, ii. 18, vii. 48, 53, x. 22), and
through him ancestor of Joshua (1 Chr. vii. 26). an allusion to Abinadab, and to the new cart on
2. (XefMouS; Alex. EyUiouS.) Simeonite, A which they made to ride (^Q^S"^) the ark of
father of Shemuel, chief of the tribe at the time of God (2 Sam. vi. 3). But though per-
this last,
the division of Canaan (Num. xxxiv. 20). haps intended by the LXX. version of Cant., which
3. ClafxiovS; [Vat. BeviaueiovS;] Alex. A/xi- has 'A/jLivaddfi, is scarcely probable. In vii. 2 (1
ovS.) The father of Petlahel, chief of the tribe a'HpVn,
A. V.) the LXX. also render "oh!
of Naphtali at the same time (Num. xxxiv. 28).
by Ovyarep NaSa/3, and in the
prince's daughter,"
4. (-VKTSy, Ken l^^V : 'E/uoAt.) Cod. Alex, dvyarep 'A/xiyaSd0. A. C. H.
Ammihud, or " Ammichur," as the written text AMMINADIB (Cant. vi. 12). [Ammina-
has it, was the father of Talmai, king of Geshur
dab 4.]
(2 Sam. xiii. 37).
5. (2,apuov8; [Vat.
2a/tju<ou or -as;] Alex.
AMMISHADDAI [4 syl.] (^W^TpV
[people of the Almighty] 'AjUicraSai [Vat.
AjUiouS.) A descendant of Pharez, son of Judah
Num.
:
exe. in
(1 Chr. ix. 4). W. A. W. -^iej-,
Num
Num. ii. 25, Sa/jiio-aSai, and x. 25, Mio-aSar-
AMMINADAB fal^E? 'AfitvaSdp : Ainisadda'i, Ammisaddai). The father of Ahiezer.
[Vat. -fifty-] one of the people, i. e. chief of the tribe of Dan at the time of the Exodus
: Aminadab ;
family, of the prince {famulus principis), Gesen. (Num. i. 12, ii. 25, vii. 66, 71, x. 25). His name
84 AMMIZABAD AMMON
isone of the few which we find at this period com- Jud. vii. 11, 12) to their enemies, as well as a sus-
pounded with the ancient name of God, Shaddai picious discourtesy to their allies, which on one
Zurishaddai, and possibly Shedeur, are the only occasion (2 Sam. x. 1-5) brought all but extermi-
other instances, and both belong to this early time. nation on the tribe (xii. 31). Nor is the contrast
W. A. W. less observable between the one city of Ammon, the
fortified hold of Rabbah (2 Sam. xi. 1 Ez. xxv. 5
AMMIZABAD ("T^B? [people of the
Am. i. 13), and the " streets," the " house-tops,"
;
DREN of AMMON
« y9S!S (only twice),
was worshipped, not in a house or on a high
tribe
place, but in a booth or tent designated by the very
"•rto, D^?to: y\TSiV \3?: 'a^,
'A/i- word which most keenly expressed to the Israelites
'Pifxp-wV-, Joseph.
itce], Vulg.), a people descended from Ben-Ammi, ley, App. § 89.)
the son of Lot by his younger daughter (Gen. xix. On the west of Jordan they never obtained a
38; comp. Ps. lxxxiii. 7, 8), as Moab was by the footing. Among the confusions of the times of the
elder; and dating from the destruction of Sodom. Judges we find them twice passing over once with ;
The near relation between the two peoples indi- Moab and Amalek seizing Jericho, the " city of
cated in the story of their origin continued through- palm-trees
" (Judg. iii. 13), and a second time " to
out their existence: from their earliest mention fight against Judah and Benjamin, and the house
(Dent, to their disappearance from the biblical
ii.) of Ephraim ; '
but they quickly returned to the
'
history (Jud. v. 2), the brother-tribes are named freer pastures of Gilead, leaving but one trace of
together (comp. Judg. x. 10 2 Chr. xx. 1 Zeph.
; ;
their presence in the name of Chephar ha-Ammo-
&c). Indeed, so close was their union, and nai, " The hamlet of the Ammonites " (Josh, xviii.
ii. 8,
so near their identity, that each would appear to be 24), situated in the portion of Benjamin somewhere
occasionally spoken of under the name of the other. at the head of the passes which lead up from the
Thus the " land of the children of Amnion " is said Jordan-valley, and form the natural access to the
tal ili-land of the west country.
to have been given to the " children of Lot," i. e.
to both Ammon and Moab (Deut. ii. 19). They The hatred in which the Ammonites were held
are both said to have hired Balaam to curse Israel by Israel, and which possibly was connected with
(Deut. xxiii. 4), whereas the detailed narrative of the story of their incestuous origin, is stated to
that event omits mention of Ammon (Num. have arisen partly from their opposition, or, rather,
all
xxii., xxiii.). In the answer of Jephthah to the their want of assistance (Deut. xxiii. 4), to the Is-
king of Ammon the allusions are continually to raelites on their approach to Canaan. But it evi-
Moab (Judg. xi. 15, 18, 25), while Chemosh, the dently sprang mainly from their share in the affair
peculiar deity of Moab (Num. xxi. 29), is called of Balaam (Deut. xxiii. 4; Neh. xiii. 1). At the
"thy god" (24). The land from Arnon to Jab- period of Israel's first approach to the south of Pal-
bok, which the king of Ammon calls "my land" estine the feeling towards Ammon is one of regard.
(13), is elsewhere distinctly stated to have once be-
The command is then " distress not the Moabites
longed to a " king of Moab " (Num. xxi. 26). distress not the children of Ammon, nor
Unlike Moab the precise position of the territory meddle with them" (Deut. ii. 9, 19 and comp. ;
of the Ammonites is not ascertainable. In the ear- 37 ) and it is only from the subsequent transaction
;
liest mention of them (Deut. ii. 20) they are said that we can account for the fact that Edom, who
to have destroyed those Rephaim, whom they called had also refused passage through his land but had
the Zamzummim, and to have dwelt in their place, taken no part with Balaam, is punished with the
Jabbok being their border * (Num. xxi. 24 Deut. ban of exclusion from the congregation for three
;
iii. 16, ii. 37). "Land" or "country" is, how- generations, while Moab and Ammon is to be kept
ever, but rarely ascribed to them, nor there any out for ten generations (Deut. xxiii. 3), a sentence
is
reference to those habits and circumstances of civ- which acquires peculiar significance from its being
ilization —
the "plentiful fields," the " hay," the the same pronounced on
" bastards " in the preced-
L
summer-fruits," the " vineyards," the " presses,"
- ing verse, from its collocation amongst those pro-
and the " songs of the grape- treaders " which so — nounced in reference to the most loathsome physi-
constantly recur in the allusions to Moab (Is. xv., cal deformities, and also from the emphatic recapit-
xvi. ; Jer. xlviii.); but on the contrary we find ulation (ver. 6), " thou shalt not seek their peace or
everywhere traces of the fierce habits of marauders their prosperity all thy days forever."
in their incursions —
thrusting out the right eyes But whatever its origin it is certain that the an-
of whole cities (1 Sam. xi. 2), ripping up the imosity continued in force to the latest date. Sub-
women with child (Am. i. 13), and displaying a dued by Jephthah (Judg. xi. 33) and scattered
very high degree of crafty cruelty (Jer. xli. 6, 7; with great slaughter by Saul (1 Sam. xi. 11) —
and that not once only, for he " vexed " them
« The expression most commonly employed for this
nation is " Berfe-Ammon " next in frequency comes
;
employed the three terms, Children of Ammon, Am-
" Ammoni " or " Ammonim"; and least often "Am- monites, Ammon, indiscriminately.
mon." The translators of the Auth. Version have, as ft Josephus says in two places (Ant. i. 11, § 5, and
usual, neglected these minute differences, and have xi. 5, § 8), that Moab and Amnion were in Coele-Syria.
AMMON AMOMUM 85
'whithersoever he turned" (xiv. 47) they en- — they have been altered in transference to the He-
joj-ed under his successor a short respite, probably brew records.
the result of the connection of Moab with David
— Achior, 'Ax">>p, quasi ~HS ^nS, brother of
(1 Sam. xxii. 3) and David's town, Bethlehem
Jud. v. 5, <fec.
light,
where the memory of Ruth must have been still
fresh. But this was soon brought to a close by the Baalis, 0^273, joyful, Jer. xl. 14.
shameful treatment to which their king subjected
Hanun, 'j^n, pitiable, 2 Sam. x. 1, &c.
the friendly messengers of David (2 Sam. x. 1; 1
Chr. xix. 1), and for which he destroyed their city Molech, TJ7Z2, king.
and inflicted on them the severest blows (2 Sam.
xii.; 1 Chr. xx.). [Rabbah.] Naamah, nttl73> pleasant, 1 K. xiv. 21, &c.
In the days of Jehoshaphat they made an incur-
Nachash, 27113, serpent, 1 Sam. xi. 1, &c.
sion into Judah with the Moabites and the Maon-
ites, rt but were signally repulsed, and so many killed Shobi, "'Stt?, return, 2 Sam. xvii. 27.
that three days were occupied in spoiling the Timotheus, TtfxSdeos, 1 Mace. v. 6, &c.
bodies (2 Chr. xx. 1-25). In Uzziah's reign they
made incursions and committed atrocities in Gilead Tobijah, n*31&, good, Neh. ii. 10, &c.
(Am. i. 13); Jotham had wars with them, and ex- Zelek, pb^, scarb 2 Sam. xxiii. 37.
acted from them a heavy tribute of " silver (comp.
The name Zamzummim, applied by the Ammon-
"jewels," 2 Chr. xx. 25), wheat, and barley" (2
ites to the Rephaim whom they dispossessed, should
Chr. xxvii. 5). In the time of Jeremiah we find
not be omitted. G.
them in possession of the cities of Gad from which
the Jews had been removed by Tiglath-Pileser (Jer. AM'MONITESS
(fTtfa?!!: j, *A/*/«wwt«
xlix. 1-6); and other incursions are elsewhere al- in 1 K., % A/xfj.av7ris, 2 Chr. xii. 13, 6 Afxfxav-
luded to (Zeph. ii. 8, 9). At the time of the cap- iTTjs, 2 Chr. xxiv. 26; Alex. Afxaviris in 1 K.
tivity many -lews took refuge among the Ammon- [Vat. A/j./j.aveiTis, A/m/xavetTris'] Ammanitis).
77
ites from the Assyrians (Jer. xl. 11), but no better A woman of Ammonite race. Such were Naamah,
feeling appears to have arisen, and on the return the mother of Rehoboam, one of Solomon's foreign
from Babylon, Tobiah the Ammonite and Sanbal- wives (1 K. xiv. 21, 31; 2 Chr. xii. 13), and Shi-
lat a Moabite (of Choronaim, Jer. xlix.), were meath, whose son Zabad or Jozachar was one of
foremost among the opponents of Nehemiah's the murderers of king Joash (2 Chr. xxiv. 26).
restoration. For allusions to these mixed marriages see 1 K. xi.
Amongst the wives of Solomon's harem are in- 1, and Neh. xiii. 25. In the Hebrew the word has
cluded Ammonite women (1 K. xi. 1), one of always the definite article, and therefore in all
whom, Naamah, was the mother of Rehoboam (1 cases should be rendered "the Ammonitess."
K. xiv. 31; 2 Chr. xii. 13), and henceforward traces W. A. W.
of the presence of Ammonite women in Judah are
not wanting (2 Chr. xxiv. 26; Neh. xiii. 23; Ezr.
AM'NON
CpSES, once [faithful] fCEt?
ix. 1; see Geiger, Urschrijt, &c, pp. 47, 49, 299). 'Afiv&v, [Alex,
sometimes A/U/iap:] Amnori). 1.
The last appearances of the Ammonites in the Eldest son of David by Ahinoam the Jezreelitess,
biblical narrative are in the books of Judith (v., vi., born in Hebron while his father's royalty was only
vii.) and of the Maccabees (1 Mace. v. 6, 30-43), acknowledged in
Judah. He dishonored his half-
and it has been already remarked that their chief sister Tamar, and was in consequence murdered by
characteristics —
close alliance with Moab, hatred her brother (2 Sam. xiii. 1-29). [Absalom.]
of Israel and Running cruelty are maintained to — [See also 2 Sam. iii. 2, xiii. 32, 33, 39 ; 1 Chr. iii.
are spoken of as still numerous (vvv iroAv ttAtj- 2. Son of Shimon (1 Chr. iv. 20). G. E. L. C.
Oos); but, notwithstanding this they do not appear A'MOK (P^3? [deep or incomprehensible'] :
again.
'A/te/c; [Vat. om. ; Comp. 'A/j.ovk'-] Anwc). A
The tribe was governed by a king (Judg. xi. 12,
priest, whose family returned with Zerubbabel, and
&c. ; 1 Sam. xii. 12; 2 Sam. x. 1; Jer. xl. 14) and
were represented by Eber in the days of Joiakim
by "princes," "HQ7 (2 Sam. x. 3; 1 Chr. xix. 3). (Neh. xii. 7, 20). W. A. W.
It has been conjectured that Nahash (1 Sam. 1 xi. * AMOMUM (&/j.a>fiov: amomum). In the
2 Sam. x. 2) was the official title of the king, as description of the merchandise of Babylon (Rome)
Pharaoh was of the Egyptian monarchs; but this in Rev. xviii. 13, the best critical editions read
is without any clear foundation. Kivvifi.oifj.ov /cat ifxcofiov, ami "cinnamon
The was Molech, generally amomum," for the Kivafxcv/xov of the received text.
divinity of the tribe
named in the 0. T. under the altered form of Mil- Under the name &fxoifxov or amomum Dioscorides
corn —
" the abomination of the children of Am- and Pliny describe an aromatic plant growing in
nion;" and occasionally as Malcham. In more India, Armenia, Media, and Pontus, which modem
than one passage under the word rendered " then- botanists have found it difficult to identify with any
king " in the A. V., an allusion is intended to this known species. (See Dioscor. i. 14; Plin. //. X.
idol. [Molech.] xii. 13, xiii. 1. 2, xvi. 32; Theophr. Hist. Plant.
The Ammonite names preserved in the sacred ix. 7; Fr. iv. 32.) Fee (Flore de Virgile, pp. 16,
text are as follow. open to inquiry whether 17) supposes it to be the Amomum racemomm,
It is
these words have reached us in their original form Lam., Am. cardamomum, Lin.; Billerbeck (Flora
(certainly those in Greek have not), or whether Classica, p. 2) makes it the Amomum grana Par-
adisi; Sprengel (Hist. Rei Herb.'i. 140 flf., 247
« There can be no doubt that instead of " Ammon-
f.), Fraas, and others identify it with the Cisstis
ites " in 2 Chr. xx. 1. and xxvi. 8, we should read,
with the LXX., " Maouites " or " Mehunim." The
reasons for this will be given under Mehunim. b Compare the sobriquet of " Le Balafre."
36 AMON AMORITE
viliginea of Linnaeus. See also Salmasius, Homon. In the Great Oasis, and the famous one
with Baal.
Hyl. latr. c. 91; Plin. Exerc. i. 284 ff. From named after him, he was worshipped Hi the form of
the fruit of the amomum a precious oil or balsam the ram-headed god Num, and called either Amen,
was obtained, which was used in funeral rites (Pers. Amen-Ra, or Amen-Num, and thus the Greeks
Hi. 104; Ovid. Pont. i. 9, 51; see also Trist. Hi. came to suppose him to be always ram-headed,
,
3, 69, where we have amomi pulvis), and especially whereas this was the proper characteristic of Num
as a perfume for the hair (Ovid. Her. xxi. 166; (Wilkinson, Modern Egypt and Thebes, vol. H.
Lucan, x. 164 ff. Mart. v. 64, 3, viii. 77, 3 Sil.
; ; pp. 367, 375). The worship of Amen spread from
Ital. xi. 403). See Wetstein's note on Eev. xviii. the Oases along the north coast of Africa, and even
13. A. penetrated into Greece. The Greeks identified
Amen with Zeus, and he was therefore called Zeus
A'MON (flB£ :
'Anfit&V, [Sin.i in Nah.,
Amnion and Jupiter Amnion. R. S. P.
Apfxoov])- 1. An Egyptian divinity, whose name
A'MON ()172N [multitude, or architect] :
Anion is mentioned Hi Jer. xlvi. 25, but the A. V. Afx.fx.wv; Vat. 1 in 1 Chr. Ajxvow, Vat. in 2 Chr.
^ttS Ajuojs; Alex. Afx.fx.civ in 1 EL, elsewhere A/xces-]
is most probably correct in rendering SStt
Joseph. "Afitaaos Amon). 1. King of Judah, son
:
rite " is
given as the fourth son of Canaan, with
The god Amon. (Wilkinson.)
"Zidon, Heth [Hittite], the Jebusite," &c. The
cap with two high plumes, and Amen-Ra ka mut-ef, interpretation of the name as "mountaineers" or
• Amen-Ra, who is both male and female," repre- "Highlanders " due to Simonis (see his Onomas- —
sented as the generative principle. In the latter ticon), though commonly ascribed to Ewald is —
form he is accompanied by the figures of trees or quite in accordance with the notices of the text,
other vegetable products, like the " groves " men- which, except in a few instances, speak of the Am-
tioned Hi the Bible [Egypt], and is.thus connected orites as dwelHng on the elevated portions of the
AMORITE AMOS 87
country. In this respect they are contrasted with Some of these differences are as follows He- : —
the Canaanites. who were the dwellers in the low- bron is " Amorite " in Gen. xiii. 18, xiv. 13,
lands and the two thus formed the main broad though "Hittite" in xxiii. and "Canaanite" in
;
divisions of the Holy Land. " The Hittite, and Judg. i. 10. The " Ilivites " of Gen. xxxiv. 2, are
the Jebusite, and the Amorite, dwell in the moun- "Amorites" in xlviii. 22; and so also in Josh. ix.
tain [of Judah and Ephraim], and the Canaanite 7, xi. 19, as compared with 2 Sam. xxi. 2. Jeru-
dwells by the sea [the lowlands of Philistia and salem is " Amorite " in Josh. x. 5, 6," but in xv.
Sharon] and by the 'side' of Jordan" [in the 63, xviii. 28; Judg. i. 21, xix. 11; 2 Sam. v. 6,
valley of the Arabah], —
was the report of the &c, it is "Jebusite." The "Canaanites" of Num.
first Israelites who entered the country (Num. xiii. xiv. 45 (comp. Judg. i. 17), are "Amorites" in
29 and see Josh. v. 1, x. 6, xi. 3 Deut. i. 7, 20
; ; Deut. i. 44. Jarmuth, Lachish, and Eglon, were
" Mountain of the A.," ver. 44). This we shall find in the low country of the Shefelah (Josh. xv. 35,
borne out by other notices. In the very earliest 3D), but in Josh. x. 5, 6, they are "Amorites that
times (Gen. xiv. 7) they are occupying the barren dwell in the mountains; " and it would appear as
heights west of the Dead Sea, at the place which if the " Amorites " who forced the Danites into the
afterwards bore the name of En-gedi hills in whose ; mountain (Judg. i. 34, 35) must have themselves
fastnesses, the "rocks of the wild goats," David remained on the plain.
afterwards took refuge from the pursuit of Saul (1 Notwithstanding these few differences, however,
Sam. 29; xxiv. 2).
xxiii. [Hazezon-Tamar]. from a comparison of the passages previously quoted
From point they stretched west to Hebron,
this it appears plain that '• Amorite" was a local term,
where Abram was then dwelling under the " oak- and not the name of a distinct tribe. This is con-
grove" of the three brothers, Aner, Eshcol, and firmed by the following facts. (1.) The wide area
Mamie (Gen. xiv. 13; comp. xiii. 18). From this, over which the name was spread. (2.) The want
their ancient seat, they may have crossed the valley of connection between those on the east and those
of the Jordan, tempted by the high table-lands on on the west of Jordan — which is only oilce hinted
the east, for there we next meet them at the date at (Josh. ii. 10). (3.) The existence of kings like
of the invasion of the country. Sihon, their then Sihon and Og, whose territories were separate and
king, had taken the rich pasture-Land south of the independent, but who are yet called " the two kings
Jabbok, and had driven the Moabites, its former of the Amorites," a state of things quite at vari-
possessors, across the wide chasm of the Anion ance with the habits of Semitic tribes. (4.) Be-
(Num. xxi. 2G; 13), which thenceforward formed yond the three confederates of Abram, and these
the boundary between the two hostile peoples two kings, no individual Amorites appear in the
(Num. xxi.
13). The Israelites apparently ap- history (unless Araunah or Oman the Jebusite be
proached from the south-east, keeping " on the There are no traces of any peculiar gov-
one). (5.)
other side " ernment, worship, or customs, different from those
(that is, on the east) of the upper part
of the Arnon, which there bends southwards, so as of the other "nations of Canaan."
to form the eastern boundary of the country of One word of the "Amorite" language has sur
Moab. Their request to pass tlirough his land to vived —
the name Senir (not " Shenir ") for Mount
the fords of Jordan was refused by Sihon (Num. Hermon (Deut. iii. 9); but may not this be the
xxi. 21; Deut. ii. 20); he "went out" against Canaanite name as opposed to the Phoenician
them (xxi. 23; ii. 32), was killed with his sons and (Sirion) on the one side and the Hebrew on the
his people (ii. 33), and his land, cattle, and cities other ?
taken possession of by Israel (xxi. 24, 25, 31, ii. All mountaineers are warlike; and, from the
34-0). This rich tract, bounded by the Jabbok on three confederate brothers who at a moment's no-
the north, the Arnon on the south, Jordan on the tice accompanied "Abram the Hebrew" in his
west, and "the wilderness" on the east (Judg. xi. pursuit of the five lungs, down to those who, not
21, 22) —
in the words of Josephus " a land lying depressed by the slaughter inflicted by Joshua and
between three rivers after the manner of an island " the terror of the name of Israel, persisted in driv-
(Ant. iv. 5, § 2) —
was, perhaps, in the most special ing the children of Dan into the mountain, the
sense the "land of the Amorites " (Num. xxi. 31; Amorites fully maintained this character.
Josh. xii. 2, 3, xiii. 9 Judg. xi. 21, 22) but their
; After the conquest of Canaan nothing is heard
;
possessions are distinctly stated to have extended in the Bible of the Amorites, except the occasional
to the very feet of Hermon (Deut. mention of their name in the usual formula for
iii. 8, iv. 48),
embracing "all Gilead and all Bashan " (iii. 10), designating the early inhabitants of the country.
with the Jordan valley on the east of the river (iv. G.
49), and forming together the land of the "two
ATVIOS (Din^, a burden: 'A/xcis- Amos),
kings of the Amorites," Sihon and Og (Deut. xxxi.
a native of Tekoah in Judah, about six miles S.
4; Josh. ii. 10, ix. 10, xxiv. 12).
of Bethlehem, originally a shepherd and dresser of
After the passage of the Jordan we again meet
sycamore-trees, was called by God's Spirit to be a
with Amorites disputing, with Joshua the conquest
prophet, although not trained in any of the regular
of the west country. But although the name
generally denotes the mountain tribes of the centre
prophetic schools (i. 1, vii. 14, 15). He travelled
from Judah into the northern kingdom of Israel or
of the country, yet this definition is not always
Ephraim, and there exercised his ministry, appar-
strictlymaintained, varying probably with the au-
ently not for any long time. His date cannot be
thor of the particular part of the history, and the
later than the 15th year of Uzziah's reign (b. c.
time at which it was written. Nor ought we to ex-
808, according to Clinton, F. H. i. 325); for he
pect that the Israelites could have possessed very ac-
tells us that he prophesied " in the reigns of Uzziah
curate knowledge of a set of small tribes whom they
were called upon to exterminate —
with whom they
king of Judah, and Jeroboam the son of Joash
were forbidden to hold any intercourse and, more- —
king of Israel, two years before the earthquake."
over, of whose general similarity to each other we
have convincing proof in the confusion in question. a The LXX. has here twv 'Ie/3oujaiW.
88 AMOS AMPHIPOLIS
This earthquake (also mentioned Zech. xiv. 5) can- is quoted by St. Stephen in Acts vii.
42, and ix. 11
not have occurred after the 17th year of Uzziah, by St. James in Acts xv. 10. As the book is evi-
since Jeroboam II. died in the 15th of that king's dently not a series of detached
prophecies, but log-
reign, which therefore is the latest year fulfilling ically and artistically connected
in its several parts,
the three chronological indications furnished by it was probably written by Amos as we now have
the prophet himself. But his ministry probably it after his return to Tekoah from his mission to
took place at an earlier period of Jeroboam's reign, Bethel. (See Ewald, Propheten des Alten Bundes,
perhaps about the middle of it; for on the one hand i- 84 ff.) G. E. L. C.
Amos speaks of the conquests of this warlike king * Among the later commentators on Amos may
as completed (vi. 13, cf. 2 K. xiv. 25), on the be mentioned J. A. Theiner, Klein.
Prqpheten,
other the Assyrians, who towards the end of his 1828 Hitzig, Klein. Proph. erkldrt, 1838, 3e Aufl.
;
reign were approaching Palestine (Hos. x. 6, xi. 18G3; Maurer, Com. Gram. Hist. Crit. in Prqph.
5), do not seem as yet to have caused any alarm in Minores, 1840; Ewald, Proph. d. Alien Bundes,
the country. Amos predicts indeed that Israel and 1840; Umbreit, Prakt. Com. iiber die Proph. IV.
other neighboring nations will be punished by cer- i., 1844; Henderson, Minor Prophets, Lond. 1845,
tain wild conquerors from the North (i. 5, v. 27, Amer. ed. 18G0; Baur, Der Proph. A urns
erklart,
vi. 14), but does not name them, as if they were 1847; and Pusey, Minor Prophets, 1861. There
still unknown or unheeded. In this prophet's time is a rapid but graphic sketch of the contents of the
Israel was at the height of power, wealth, and prophecy, as well as of the career of the
prophet,
security, but infected by the crimes to which such by Stanley {Jewish Church, ii. 390 ff. Amer.
ed.).
a state is liable. The poor were oppressed (viii. 4), For a list of the older writers and their character-
the ordinances of religion thought burdensome istics, the reader is referred to Baur's Einleittmg
(viii. 5), and idleness, luxury, and extravagance to his commentary named above (pp. 149-102).
were general (iii. 15). The source of these evils H.
was idolatry, of course that, of the golden calves, 2. ('A/j.d>s: Amos.) Son of Naum, in the gen-
not of Baal, since Jehu's dynasty occupied the ealogy of Jesus Christ (Luke iii. 25). W. A. W.
throne, though it seems probable from 2 K. xiii. ti,
which passage must refer to Jeroboam's reign A'MOZ CpBM 'Aficis'- Amos), father of the
;
[Bexhadau III.], that the rites even of Astarte prophet Isaiah (2 K. xix. 2, 20, xx. 1 2 Chr. xxvi. ;
were tolerated in Samaria, though not encouraged. 22, xxxii. 20, 32; Is. i. 1, ii. 1, xiii. 1, xx. 2,
Calf-worship was specially practiced at Bethel, where [xxxvii. 2, 21, xxxviii. 1.]
was a principal temple and summer palace for the AMPHIP'OLIS ('A/AQ'nroAis: Amphipolis), a
king (vii. 13; ef. iii. 15), also at Gilgal, Dan, and city of Macedonia, through which Paul and Silas
Beersheba in Judah (iv. 4, v. 5, viii. 14), and was passed in their way from Philippi to Thessalonica
offensively united with the true worship of the Lord (Acts xvii. 1). It was distant 33 Roman miles from
(v. 14, 21-23; cf. 2 K. xvii. 33). Amos went to Philippi (Ilin. Anton, p. 320). It was called Am-
rebuke this at Bethel itself, but was compelled to phipolis, because the river Strymon flowed almost
return to Judah by the high-priest Amaziah, who round the town (Time. iv. 102). It stood upon an
procured from Jeroboam an order for his expulsion eminence on the left or eastern bank of this river,
from the northern kingdom." just below its egress from the lake Cercinitis, and
The book of the prophecies of Amos seems di- at the distance of about three miles from the sea.
vided into four principal portions closely connected It was a colony of the Athenians, and was memor-
together. (1) From i. 1 to ii. 3 he denounces the able in the Peloponnesian war for the battle fought
sins of the nations bordering on Israel and Judah, under its walls, in which both Brasidas and Cleon
as a preparation for (2), in which, from ii. 4 to vi. were killed (Thuc. v. 0-11). Its site is now occu-
14, he describes the state of those two kingdoms, pied by a village called Neokhorio, in Turkish Jerri-
especially the former. This is followed by (3), vii. Keui. or " New-Town."
1-ix. 10, in which, after reflecting on the previous * The reader will notice from the wood-cut (taken
prophecy, he relates his visit to Bethel, and sketches from Cousinery) the singular position of this apos-
the impending punishment of Israel which he pre- tolic place. Ncokhorki is the modern Greek Neo-
dicted to Amaziah. After this, in (4), he rises to Xicptov. Though the name is changed, the identi-
a loftier and more evangelical strain, looking for- fication is undoubted, since the position answers so
ward to the time when the hope of the Messiah's perfectly to the ancient name and to the notices
kingdom will be fulfilled, and His people forgiven of ancient writers (eV a/x^Tepa trepippeovTos rod
and established in the enjoyment of God's blessings ~2,Tpvn6pos Thuc. iv. 102). Cousinery inserts a
,
to all eternity. The chief peculiarity of the style plan of the ruins still found on the spot in his
consists in the number of allusions to natural ob- Voyage dans Afacedoine (i. 134), among which are
jects and agricultural occupations, as might be parts of the city wall, symbolic figures, inscriptions,
expected from the early life of the author. See i. tumuli, &c. See also Leake's Northern Greece, iii.
3, ii. 13, iii. 4, 5, iv. 2,7, 9, v. 8, 19, vi. 12, vii. 1, ix. 181 ff. At the point here where Paul crossed the
3, 9, 13, 14. The book presupposes a popular ac- Strymon on his mission of philanthropy (7/ <pi\av-
quaintance with the Pentateuch (see Hengstenberg, Opcoirta too auiTripos fi/j.cui' Beov, Tit. iii. 4), Xerxes,
Beitrage zur Einleittmg ins Alte Testament, i. on his invasion of Greece, " offered a sacrifice of
83-125), and implies that the ceremonies of religion, white horses to the river, and buried alive nine
except where corrupted by Jeroboam I., were in youths and maidens." See Herod, vii. 113, 114,
accordance with the law of Moses. The references and Rawlinson's note there. It was not till after
to it in the New Testament are two : v. 25, 26, 27 the great sacrifice on Golgotha that human sacri-
i * There was a later Jewish tradition, says Stanley, preacher would naturally invite and it would almost
;
" that he was beaten and wounded by the indignant seem as if faint allusions to it transpire in more than
hierarchy of Bethel and carried back half dead to his one place in the N. T." (comp. Hcb. xi. 35 Matt. xxi. ;
native place— the fate which such a rough, plain-spoken 35). See Jewish Church., ii. 400, Amer. ed. H.
AMPLIAS AMULETS 89
Amphipolis.
fices ceased generally, even among the Greeks and some have connected it with the Sanskrit amara-
Komans. See Lasaulx's interesting monograph en- pdla, " the guardian of the immortals." (Comp.
titled Svhnopfer der Griechen u. Romer u. ihr Rawlinson's Herodotus, i. 44G.) S. L.
Verhdltniss zu dem Einem auf Golgotha (tr. in the
Bibl. Sacra, 3G8-408). For the classical interest
i.
AMULETS
were ornaments, gems, scrolls,
&c, worn as preservatives against the power of en-
of Amphipolis, the reader is referred' to Grote's
chantments, and generally inscribed with mystic
History of Greece, vi. 625 fF., and Arnold's Thu-
forms or characters. The "ear-rings" in Gen.
cydides, ii. (at the end). [Apollonia.] H.
AM'PLIAS [Lachm. marg. Sin. xxxv. 4 (D^P^D
('A/jLirAtas,
iudorta'- inaures) were obvi- :
AmramUaB). A branch of the great Kohathite i. 48, 75), and a similar one is represented as worn
family of the tribe of Levi (Num. iii. 27 1 Chr. by the youthful deity Harpocrates (Wilkinson, An..
;
xxvi. 23); descended from Amram, the father of Egypt, in. 364). The Arabs hang round their
Moses. W. A. W. children's necks the figure of an open hand a cus- ;
physician prescribes for quartan ague 'AvwV, Alex. Avco.8'- [Av/i/j]), a town in the
"Mseoniae lliados quartum suppone timenti." mountains of Judah (Josh. xv. 50), named, with
Debir and Hebron, as once belonging to the Ana-
Charms "consisting of words written on folds
kim (Josh. xi. 21). It has retained its ancient
of papyrus tightly rolled up and sewed in linen,"
Dame [Wm'ih], and lies among the hills about 10
have been found at Thebes (Wilkinson, /. c), and
miles S. S. W. of Hebron, close to Shoco and
our English translators possibly intended something
Eshtemoa (Rob. i. 494). The conjecture of Ens.
of the kind when they rendered the curious phrase
and Jerome ( Onom. Anob, Anal) is evidently inad-
(in Is. iii.) tPCpH \P12 by "tablets." It was missible. G.
the danger of idolatrous practices arising from a AN'AEL ('A»/cd)A). The brother of Tobit
(Tob. i. 21).
producing mules, by coupling animals of different ror in the time of Moses (Num. xiii. 28; Deut. ix.
species. But this sense the Hebrew word will not 2), they were nevertheless dispossessed by Joshua,
bear. The explanation is evidently drawn from the and utterly driven from the land, except a small
connection merely, without any support from ety- remnant that found refuge in the Philistine cities,
mology. Equally baseless is the interpretation in Gaza, Gath, and Ashdod (Josh. xi. 21). Their
the Targ. of Onkelos, and the Samaritan Codex, chief city, Hebron, became the possession of Caleb,
who
taking U^P^ in the sense of giants (as if = is
sons of
said to have driven outfrom it the three
Anak mentioned above, that is, the three
23^S. Deut. ii. 11). families or tribes of the Anakim (Josh. xv. 14;
Another and probably older exegetical tradition, Judg. i. 20). After this time they vanish from
transmitted through Jerome and the Vulgate, ren- history fi F. W. G.
ders S^p^ by warm springs (Vulgate aquas cali- AN'AMIM (D^pa?: 'Eve/teref/t; [Alex, in
das). This has the support of etymology (Gesenius, Gen. Aiyefiertetfj., in 1 Chr. Auauieifi; Comp. in
1 Chr. Alvo/iifi; 7 MSS. 'Avafxi/x'-] Anamim), a
Thes., EV), as well as of the ancient tradition, Mizraite people or tribe, respecting the settlements
and corroborated by the frequent occurrence of
is is known (Gen. x. 13; 1
of which nothing certain
warm springs in the region referred to, as observed Chr. i. 11). Judging from the position of the
both by ancient writers and by modern travellers." other Mizraite peoples, as far as it has been deter-
T. J. C. mined, this one probably occupied some part of
ANAHA'RATH (rVVTCM [hollow way or Egypt, or of the adjoining region of Africa, or pos-
No name
sibly of the south-west of Palestine.
pass, Fiirst]: 'Avaxepe6< [Alex. Appaveo"- Ana-
bearing any strong resemblance to Anamim has
harath~\), a place within the border of Issachar,
been pointed out in the geographical lists of the
named with Shichon and Rabbith (Josh. xix. 19).
Egyptian monuments, or in classical or modern
Nothing is yet known of it. G.
[The name may be Egyptian and refer
* Some think it may be the present Araneh, near geography.
to the region of the tribe. Ges., Fiirst.] R. S. P.
the foot of Gilboa, about 2 miles east of Jenin (En-
gannim). See Zeller's Bibl. Worterb. p. GO, 2te ANAM'MELECH
[Hebrew Anammelech]
Aufl. Robinson mentions the place twice (ii. 316,
319), but does not suggest the identification. H.
'
C^P??
'AvryteAex? [ Alex A^/ieAex Aid. - i
M- Avavia'-~\ Ania). 1. Probably a priest; one from Sepharvaim (2 K. xvii. 31). He was wor-
of those who stood on Ezra's right hand as he read shipped with rites resembling those of Molech,
the Law to the people (Neh. viii. 4). He is called children being burnt in his honor, and is the com-
Ananias in 1 Esdr. ix. 43. panion-god to Adrammelech. As Adrammelech
2. ('Acafa: [Vat. Avavaia; Aid. is the male power of the sun, so Anammelech is
'Avavia'"]
Anaia.) One of the "heads" of the people, who the female power of the sun (Rawlinson's Herodo-
signed the covenant with Nehemiah (Neh. x. 22). tus, i. 611). The etymology of the word is un-
W. A. W. certain. Rawlinson connects it with the name
A'NAK. [Anakim.] Anunit. Gesenius derives the name from words
meaning idol and king, but Roland (de vet. ling.
ANAKIM (ti^3S : *E,W/t, [Vat. -msyt, Pers. ix.) deduces the first part of it from the
and so Alex, in Deut. :] Enacim), a race of giants (so Persian word for grief. Winer advocates a deriva-
tion connecting the idol with the constellation Ce-
a * It may have been from the discovery of these
Rprings. as Hengstenberg suggests, that Auah received
the other name which he
hore, namely, Beeri, " of b *The A. V. adds s to this name, and thus makes
wells," t. r. a man
concerned with them. See also it(Anakims) doubly plural, as in the case of Emitu,
Baurogarten {Pentateuch, i. 300). H. Cherubim, and similar terms. H.
92 ANAN ANATHEMA
pheus, some of the stars in which are called by the direct sentence of a similar death pronounced by
Arabs " the shepherd and the sheep." the same apostle upon his wife Sapphira a few hours
G. E. L. C. after. [Sapphira.] It is of course possible that
A'NAN (pV [a cloud]: Alex.
Ananias's death may have been an act of divine
•
'Hvd/i;
justice unlooked for by the apostle, as there is no
[Comp.] 'Hvdv'- Anan). 1. One "heads" mention
of the
of such an intended result in his speech
of the people, who signed the covenant with Nehe- but in
the case of the wife, such an ideais out of
niiah (Neh. x. 26).
the question. Niemeyer Charakteristik der Bibel,
2. ('Avdv, Alex. Avvav'. Anani.) Hanan 4 i.
(
ANANFAH (rP3317 [whom Jehovah pro- period of blindness and dejection which followed his
conversion, and announced to him his future com-
tects] ), a place, named between Nob and Hazor, in
mission as a preacher of the Gospel, conveying to
which the Benjamites lived after their return from
him at the same time, by the laying on of his
The LXX. [in most MSS.]
captivity (Neb., xi. 32).
hands, the restoration of sight, and commanding
omits all mention of this and the accompanying
him to arise, and be baptized, and wash away his
names [but Comp. has 'Avia, and FA. 3 Avavia]-
on the name of the Lord. Tradition
sins, calling
G.
makes him to have been afterwards bishop of
ANANFAS (n?32S, or i"P33n [Jehovah Damascus, and to have died by martyrdom (Afen-
is gracious]: 'Avavias)- 1- A high-priest in Acts ohg. Grmcorum, i. 79 f.). H. A.
xxiii. 2 ff. xxiv. 1, [before whom Paul attempted ANAN
FAS ('Avvis; [Vat. Awe is ;] Alex. Av-
to defend himself, in the Jewish Council at Jerusa- vias\] Aid. 'Avavias-] Ananias). 1. The sons of
lem, but was silenced with a blow on the mouth Ananias to the number of 101 (Vulg. 130) enu-
for asserting that he had always " lived in all good merated in 1 Esdr. v. 16 as having returned with
conscience before God." See, in regard to that Zorobabel. No such name exists in the parallel
incident, Paul]. He was the son of Nebedseus lists of Ezra and Nehemiah.
(Joseph. Ant. xx. 5, § 2), succeeded Joseph son of 2. (' Avavias- om. in Vulg.) Hanani 3 (1
Camydus (Ant. xx. 1, § 3, 5, § 2), and preceded Esdr. ix. 21; comp. Ezr. x. 20).
Ismael son of Phabi (Ant. xx. 8, §§ 8, 11). He 3. (Amanias.) Hananiah 9 (1 Esdr. ix. 29;
was nominated to the office by Herod king of Chal- comp. Ezr. x. 28).
cis, in a. d. 48 (Ant. xx. 5, § 2); and in a. d. 52 4. (Ananias.) Anaiah 1 (1 Esdr. ix. 43;
sent to Rome by the prefect Ummidius Quadratus comp. Neh. viii. 4).
to answer before the Emperor Claudius a charge of 5- ['Avavias; Vat. Awioj.] Hanan 5 (1
oppression brought by the Samaritans (Ant. xx. 6, Esdr. ix. 48; comp. Neh. viii. 7).
§ 2). He appears, however, not to have lost his 6. Father of Azarias, whose name was assumed
office, but to have resumed it on his return. This by the angel Raphael (Tob. v. 12, 13). In the
has been doubted but Wieseler ( Chronol. d. Apos- LXX. he appears to be the eldest brother of Tobit.
;
ishment. He was deposed from his office shortly 3 Ch. 66; 1 Mace. ii. 59). [Hananiah 7.]
before Felix left the province (Ant xx. 8, § 8 but . ;
W. A. W.
still had great power, which he used violently and
lawlessly (Ant. xx. 9, § 2). He was at last assas- ANANTEL ('Avavi7)\: Ananiel), forefather
of Tobias (Tob. i. 1).
sinated by the Sicarii (B. J. ii. 17, § 9) at the be-
ginning of the last Jewish war. A'NATH (H3P [answer, i. e. to pra3'er]:
2. A husband of Sapphira Aivdx, 'Aj/a0; [Vat. Aeiv.ax, AvaOev; Alex. Avad,
disciple at Jerusalem,
(Acts v. 1 ff.). Having sold his goods for the KevaQ:] Anath), father of Shamgar (Judg. iii. 31,
benefit of the church, he kept back a part of the v. 6).
bringing to the apostles the remainder, as if
price,
ANATH'EMA (avdOefia, in LXX., the equiv-
it were the whole, his wife also being privy to the
scheme. St. Peter, being enabled by the power of alent for DTir?> a thing or person devoted: in N.
the Spirit to see through the fraud, denounced him T. generally translated accursed. The more usual
as having lied to the Holy Ghost, i. e. having at- form with the sense of an
is avaB-nfjia (avariOrj/jit),
tempted to pass upon the Spirit resident in the offering suspended in a temple (Luke xxi. 5; 2
apostles an act of deliberate deceit. On hearing Mace. ix. 16). The Alexandrine writers preferred
this, Ananias fell down and expired. That thisthe short penultimate in this and other kindred
incident was no mere physical consequence of St. words (e. g. eiriOefia, avvBefxa); but occasionally
Peter's severity of tone, as some of the German both forms occur in the MSS., as in Jud. xvi. 19
writers have maintained, distinctly appears by the 2 Mace. xiii. 15 Luke xxi. 5 no distinction there-
; :
ANATHEMA ANATHOTH 93
fore existed originally in the meanings of the words,
period. (3) MHtttt?, rarely, if ever, used — com-
as has been supposed by many early writers. The
plete and irrevocable excommunication. 0~}n
Hebrew 0~?n is derived from a verb signifying
was occasionally used in a generic sense for any of
primarily to shut up, and hence to (1) consecrate or
the three (Carpzov. Appar. p. 557). Some expos-
(I vote, and (2) exterminate. Any object so de-
itors refer the terms bvuhi^nv Kal eK@a.A\av (Luke
voted to the Lord was irredeemable: if an inanimate
vi. 22) to the second species, but a comparison of
object, it was to be given to the priests (Num.
John ix. 22 with 34 shows that iK&d~A\eiv is synon-
xviii. 14); if a living creature or even a man, it
ymous with airocrwdyooyov Troiziv, and there ap-
was to be slain (Lev. xxvii. 28, 29); hence the
pears no reason for supposing the latter to be of a
idea of extermination as connected with devoting.
severe character.
Generally speaking, a vow of this description was
The word avddepa frequently occurs in St. Paul's
taken only with respect to the idolatrous nations
writings [five times], and many expositors have re-
who were marked out for destruction by the special
garded his use of it as a technical term for judicial
decree of Jehovah, as in Num. xxi. 2 Josh. vi. 17 ;
the terms a<popi(etv (Luke vi. 22) and anocrvvd- fill these conditions, being 10 miles distant from the
city, and nearer W.
But the real position
than N.
ywyos (John ix. 22) refer. (2) Q7]0> a more pub- has no doubt been by Robinson at
d.-eovered
licand formal sentence, accompanied with curses, 'An&ta, on a broad ridge 1 hour N.N.E. from
and involving severer restrictions for an indefinite Jerusalem. The cultivation of the priests survives
18); brother (whether elder or younger is uncer- tuary of Apollo and Artemis at Daphne. At the
tain) of Simon Feter (ibid.). He was of Beth- instigation of Menelaus, Andronicus induced Onias
saida, and had been a disciple of John the Baptist." to leave the sanctuary and immediately put him to
On hearing Jesus a second time designated by him death in prison (irape'/cAeio'ej', 2 Mace. iv. 34?).
as the Lamb of God, he left his former master, and This murder excited general indignation; and on
in company with another of John's disciples at- the return of Antiochus, Andronicus was publicly
tached himself to our Lord. By his means his degraded and executed (2 Mace. iv. 30-38). Jose-
brother Simon was brought to Jesus (John i. 41). phus places the death of Onias before the high-
The apparent discrepancy in Matt. iv. 18 ff. Mark priesthood of Jason (Ant. xii. 5, 1,) and omits all
iii. 16 ff., where the two appear to have been called
mention of Andronicus but there is not sufficient
;
together, is no real one, St. John relating the first reason to doubt the truthfulness of the narrative,
introduction of the brothers to Jesus, the other as Wernsdorf has done (De fide Ubr. Mace.
find Peter, James, John, and Andrew, inquiring comp. Grimm, 2 Mace. iv. 38). B. F. W.
privately of our Lord about His coming; and in
John xii. 22, when certain Greeks wished for an
ANDRONFCUS C AvSo6vikos Andronicus), :
's * It is Mark i. 29 that Andrew as well terval, they had removed to the neighboring Capernaum
evident from
as Peter lived at Capernaum at the time of Christ's from Bethsaida, their original home (John i. 44). H.
healing the mother-in-law of the latter. At that time b * The sense may be (as Meyer, Philippi, De Wette,
(according to the best scheme of harmony) a year or Stuart, prefer) that the two were so famous (eirt'oTj/aot)
more had elapsed since Jesus had called the brothers as to have become well known among the apostles. It
to he his disciples at Bethany beyond the Jordan (John is uncertain when or where they shared Paul's cap-
see Tholuek's striking remarks in his Glaubwiirdig- 18; Athen. iii. 94, 122; yEsch. Ag. 282, .Per*.
keii des evang. Gesch., p. 1-t'J n°. H. 217 (Dind.); Eath. viii. 14; Joseph. A. J. xiii. 2,
§ 3; Pliny, Ep. x. 14, 121, 122; Lightfoot, On
A'NBM (G3^ [ft» fountains] T AiVct;
:
V ,
Matt, v. 41; Chardin, Travels, p. 257; Plut. iM
Alex. Avafx- [Anem]), a city of Issachar, with
Alex. Mag. p. 326.) H. W. P.
"suburbs," belonging to the Gershonites, 1 Chr.
vi. 73 (Heb. 58). It is omitted in the lists in Josh, ('OH1??? l HyyeAof, often with
ANGELS :
A'NER ("1337 [perh. boy]: Awdv; [Comp. from the same source a brief description
in to derive
Gen. xiv. 24, 'Avep:] Aner), one of the three He- of their office towards man. It is to be noticed
bronite chiefs who aided Abraham in the pursuit that its scope is purely Biblical, and that, in con-
after the four invading kings (Gen. xiv. 13, 24). sequence, it does not enter into any extra-Scriptu-
ral speculations on this mysterious subject.
R. W. B.
I. In the first place, there are many passages
AN'ETHOTHITE, THE (Tin337n: which the expression the "angel of God," "the
6 in
'Avwd'iTTjs [Vat. -9ei-]; Alex, o AvaQcaBeiT-ns' de angel of Jehovah," is certainly used for a manifes-
Anathoth.) An inhabitant of Anathoth of the tribe tation of God himself. This is especially the case
of Benjamin (2 Sam. xxiii. 27). Called also An- in the earlier books of the Old Testament, and may
etotiiite and Antothite. W. A. W. be seen at once, by a comparison of Gen. xxii. 11
with 12, and of Ex. iii. 2 with 6, and 14; where
AN ETOTHITE, THE
(VTflJVn : [Vat. He, who is called the " angel of God " hi one verse,
om.] 6 e| 'Avadi&d: Anathothites). An inhab- called "God," and even "Jehovah" in those which
is
itant of Anathoth (1 Chr. xxvii. 12). Called also follow, and accepts the worship due to God alone.
Anethothite and Antothite. W. A. W. (Contrast Rev. xix. 10, xxi. 9.) See also Gen. xvi.
ANGARETJ'O (' Ayyapevof- Angaria, Vulg., 7, 13, xxxi. 11, 13, xlviii. 15, 16 ; Num. xxii. 22,
Matt. v. 41, Mark xv. 21), simply and comp. Is. lxiii. 9 with Ex. xxiii. 14,
translated 32, 35,
"compel" in the A. V., is a word of Persian, or &c, &c. The same expression (it seems) is used
rather of Tatar, origin, signifying to compel to by St. Paul, in speaking to heathens. See Acts
serve a,s an ayyapos or mounted courier. The xxvii. 23 comp. with xxiii. 11.
words ankarie or angnarie, in Tatar, mean com- It is to be observed also, that, side by side with
in their KafjavaS-ntpopla- This horse-post the Per- This being the case, since we know that " no
sians called ayyapii'iov- In order to effect the man hath seen God " (the Father) " at any time,"
object, license was given to the couriers by the gov- and that " the only-begotten Son, which is in the
ernment to press into the service men, horses, and bosom of the Father, He hath revealed Hini
even vessels. Hence tl.e word came to signify (John i. 18), the inevitable inference is that by the
" press," and ayyapela is explained by Suidas " Angel of the Lord " in such passages is meant
distinctly referred, as to a central truth, by which measure of the attributes of God, Truth, Purity, —
alone its nature and meaning can be understood. and Love, —
because always beholding His face
(See John i. 51, comparing it with Gen. xxviii. 11- (Matt, xviii. 10), and therefore being "made like
17, and especially with v. 13.) Him " (1 John iii. 2). This, of course, implies
Besides this, which is the highest application of finiteness, and therefore (in the strict sense) " im-
the word "angel," we find the phrase used of any perfection " of nature, and constant progress, both
messengers of God, such as the prophets (Is. xlii. moral and intellectual, through all eternity. Such
19; Hag. i. 13; Mai. iii. 1), the priests (Mai. ii. imperfection, contrasted with the infinity of God.
7), and the rulers of the Christian churches (Rev. is expressly ascribed to them in Job iv. 18 Matt, ;
i. 20); much as, even more remarkably, the word xxiv. 36 1 Pet. i. 12 and it is this which emphat-
; ;
" Elohim " is applied, in Ps. lxxxii. 6. to those who ically points them out to us as creatures, fellow-
judge in God's name. servants of man, and therefore incapable of usurp-
These usages of the word are not only interesting ing the place of gods.
in themselves, but will serve to throw light on the This finiteness of nature implies capacity of
nature and the method of the ministration of those temptation (see Butler's Anal, part i. ch. 5); and
whom we more especially term the angels."
" accordingly we hear of " fallen angels." Of the
II. In passing on to consider what is revealed nature of their temptation and the circumstances
in Scripture as to the angelic nature, we are led at of their fall, we know absolutely nothing. All
"
once to notice, that the Bible deals with this and that is certain is, that they " left their first estate
with kindred subjects exclusively in their practical (ttjv kavruiv &px7)j/); and that they are now "an-
bearings, only so far (that is) as they conduce to gels of the devil" (Matt. xxv. 41; Rev. xii. 7, 9),
our knowledge of God and of ourselves, and more partaking therefore of the falsehood, uncleanness,
particularly as they are connected with the one and hatred which are his peculiar characteristics
great subject of all Scripture, the Incarnation of (John viii. 44). All that can be conjectured must
the Son of God. Little therefore is said of the na- be based on the analogy of man's own temptation
ture of angels as distinct from their office. and fall.
They are termed " spirits " (as e. g. in Heb. i. On the other hand, the title especially assigned
14), although this word is more commonly, to the angels of God, that of the " holy ones " (see
applied
not so much to themselves, as to their power dwelling e. g. Dan. iv. 13, 23, viii. 13; Matt. xxv. 31), is
in man (e. g. 1 Sam. xviii. 10; Matt. viii. 16, &c, precisely the one which is given to those men who
&c). The word is the same as that used of the are renewed in Christ's image, but which belongs
soul of man, when separate from the body (e. g. to them in actuality and in perfection only here-
Matt. xiv. 26; Luke xxiv. 37, 39; 1 Pet. iii. 19); after. (Comp. Heb. ii. 10, v. 9, xii. 23.) Its use
but, since it properly expresses only that supersen- evidently implies that the angelic probation is over,
suous and rational element of man's nature, which and their crown of glory won.
is in him the image of God (see John iv. 24), and Thus much, then, is revealed of the angelic na-
by which he has communion with God (Rom. viii. ture as may make it to us an ideal of human good-
16); and since also we are told that there is a ness (Matt. vi. 10), or beacon of warning as to the
"spiritual body," as well as a "natural (^i^i/coV) tendency of sin. remark, that in
It is obvious to
body " (1 Cor. xv. 44), it does not assert that the such revelation found a partial satisfaction of
is
arfgelic nature is incorporeal. The contrary seems that craving for the knowledge of creatures, higher
expressly implied by the words in which our Lord than ourselves and yet fellow-servants with us of
declares that, after the Resurrection, men shall be God, which in its diseased form becomes Poly-
"like the angels" (jVa77fA.cn) (Luke xx. 36); be- theism.'' Its full satisfaction is to be sought in
cause (as is elsewhere said, Phil. iii. 21) their the Incarnation alone, and it is to be noticed, that
bodies, as well as their spirits, shall have been after the Revelation of God in the flesh, the angelic
made entirely like His. It may also be noticed ministrations recorded are indeed fewer, but the
that the glorious appearance ascribed to the angels references to the angels are far more frequent — as
in Scripture (as in Dan. x. 6) is the same as that though the danger of polytheistic idolatry had,
which shone out in our Lord's transfiguration, and comparatively speaking, passed away.
in which St. John saw Him clothed in heaven (Rev. III. The most important subject, and that on
i. 14-16); and moreover, that, whenever angels which we have the fullest revelation, is the office
have been made manifest to man, it has always of the angels.
been in human form (as e. g. in Gen. xviii., xix. Of their office in heaven, 'we have, of course,
Luke xxiv. 4; Acts i. 10, &c, &c). The very fact only vague prophetic glimpses (as in 1 K. xxii. 19
that the titles " sons of God " (Job. i. 6, xxxviii. 7 Is. vi. 1-3; Dan.vii. 9, 10; Rev. v. 11, &c), which
Dan. iii. 25 comp. with 28 a ), and " gods " (Ps. show us nothing but a never-ceasing adoration,
viii. proceeding from the vision of God, through the
5; xcvii. 7), applied to them, are also given to
men (see Luke iii. 38;
"perfect love, which casteth out fear."
Ps. lxxxii. 6, and comp. our
Lord's application of this last passage ig John x. Their office towards man is far more fully de-
34-37), points in the same way to a difference only scribed to us. They are represented as being, in
of degree, and an identity of kind, between the the widest sense, agents of God's Providence, nat-
human and the angelic nature. ural and supernatural, to the body and to the soul.
The angels are therefore revealed to us as beings, Thus the operations of nature are spoken of as
<* Gen. vi. 2, is omitted here and below, as being hastens to the conclusion that the
belief in angels is
a controverted passage although many MSS. of the a mere consequence of this craving, never (it would
;
LXX. have oi ay-yeAoi instead of oi viol here. seem) so entering into the analogy of God's provi-
b The inordinate subjectivity of German philosophy dence as to suppose it possible that this inward crav-
on this subject (see, e. g\, Winer's Realw.), of course, ing should correspond to some outward reality.
ANGELS ANGELS 97
under angelic guidance fulfilling the will of God. Moses and Joshua there no record of the appear-
is
Not only is this the case in poetical passages, such ance of created angels, and only obscure reference
as Ps. civ. 4 (commented upon in Heb. i. 7), where to angels at all. In the book of Judges angels ap-
the powers of air and fire are referred to them, but pear at once to rebuke idolatry (ii. 1-4), to call
in the simplest prose history, as where the pesti- Gideon (vi. 11, &c), and consecrate Samson (xiii.
lences which slew the firstborn (Ex. xii. 23; Heb. 3, Ac.) to the work of deliverance.
xi. 2$), the disobedient people in the wilderness (1 The prophetic office begins with Samuel, and
( or. x. 10), the Israelites in the days of David (2 immediately angelic guidance is withheld, except
Sam. xxiv. 16; 1 Chr. xxi. 16), and the army of when needed by the prophets themselves (1 K. xix.
Sennacherib (2 K. xix. 35), as also the plague 5; 2 K. vi. 17). During the prophetic and kingly
which cut off Herod (Acts xii. 23) are plainly period, angels are spoken of only (as noticed above)
spoken of as the work of the " Angel of the Lord." as ministers of God in the operations of nature.
Nor can the mysterious declarations of the Apoc- But in the captivity, when the Jews were in the
alypse, by far the most numerous of all, be resolved presence of foreign nations, each claiming its tute-
by honest interpretation into mere poetical imagery. lary deity, then to the prophets Daniel and Zech-
(See especially Rev. viii. and ix.) It is evident ariah angels are revealed in a fresh light, as watch-
that angelic agency, like that of man, does not ex- ing, not only over Jerusalem, but also over heathen
clude the action of secondary, or (what are called) kingdoms, under the Providence, and to work out
"natural" causes, or interfere with the directness the designs, of the Lord. (See Zec'n. passim, and
and universality of the Providence of God. The Dan. iv. 13, 23, x. 10, 13, 20, 21, &e.) In the
personifications of poetry and legends of my- whole period, they, as truly as the prophets and
thology are obscure witnesses of its truth, which, kings themselves, are seen as God's ministers,
however, can rest only on the revelations of Script- watching over the national life of the subjects of
ure itself. the Great King.
More particularly, however, angels are spoken of The Incarnation marks a new epoch of angelic
as ministers of what is commonly called the " su- ministration. "The Angel of Jehovah," the Lord
pernatural," or perhaps more correctly, the "spir- of all created angels, having now descended from
itual " Providence of God; as agents in the great heaven to earth, it was natural that His servants
scheme of the spiritual redemption and sanctifica- should continue to do Him service t'here. Whether
tion of man, of which the Bible is the record. The to predict and glorify His birth itself (Matt. i. 20
representations of them are different in different Luke i. ii.) to minister to Him after His tempta-
books of Scripture, in the Old Testament and in tion and agony (Matt. iv. 11; Luke xxii. 43), or to
the New; but the reasons of the differences are to declare His resurrection and triumphant ascension
be found in the differences of scope attributable to (Matt, xxviii. 2; John xx. 12; Acts i. 10, 11) —
the books themselves. As different parts of God's they seem now to be indeed " ascending and de-
Providence are brought out, so also arise different scending on the Son of Man," almost as though
views of His angelic ministers. transferring to earth the ministrations of heaven.
In the Book of Job, which deals with " Natural It is clearly seen, that whatever was done by them
Religion," they are spoken of but vaguely, as sur- for men in earlier days, was but typical of and
rounding God's throne above, and rejoicing in the flowing from their service to Him. (See Ps. xci.
completion of His creative work (Job i. 6, ii. 1, 11, comp. Matt. iv. 6.)
xxxviii. 7). No direct and visible appearance to The New Testament is the history of the Church
man is even hinted at. of Christ, every member of which is united to
In the book of Genesis, there is no notice of an- Him. Accordingly, the angels are revealed now as
gelic appearance till after the call of Abraham. " ministering spirits " to each individual member
Then, as the book is the history of the chosen fam- of Christ for his spiritual guidance and aid (Heb.
/(>/, so the angels mingle with and watch over its i. 14). The records of their visible appearance are
family life, entertained by Abraham and by Lot but unfrequent (Acts v. 19, viii. 26, x. 3, xii. 7,
(Gen. xviii., xix.), guiding Abraham's servant to xxvii. 23); but their presence and their aid are re-
Padan-Aram (xxiv. 7, 40), seen by the fugitive ferred to familiarly, almost as things of course, ever
Jacob at Bethel (xxvii. 12), and welcoming his after the Incarnation. They are spoken of as watch-
return at Mahauaim (xxxii. 1). Their ministry ing over Christ's little ones (Matt, xviii. 10), a as
hallows domestic life, in its trials and its blessings rejoicing over a penitent sinner (Luke xv. 10), as
alike, and is closer, more familiar, and less awful present in the worship of Christiana (1 Cor. xi.
than in after times. (Contrast Gen. xviii. with 10), 6 and (perhaps) bringing their prayers before
Judg. vi. 21, 22, xiii. 16, 22.) God (Rev. viii. 3, 4), and as bearing the souls of
In the subsequent history, that of a chosen na- the redeemed into Paradise (Luke xvi. 22). In one
tion, the angels are represented more as ministers word, they are Christ's ministers of grace now, as
of wrath and mercy, messengers of a King, rather they shall be of judgment hereafter (Matt. xiii. 3!),
than common children of the One Father. It is, 41, 49, xvi. 27, xxiv. 31, &».). By what method
moreover, to be observed, that the records of their they act we cannot know of ourselves, nor are we
appearance belong especially to two periods, that told, perhaps lest we should worship them, instead
of the Judges and that of the Captivity, which were of Him, whose servants they are (see Col. ii. 18;
transition periods in Israelitish history, the former Rev. xxii. 9); but of course their agency, like that
one destitute of direct revelation or prophetic guid- of human ministers, depends for its efficacy on the
ance, the latter one of special trial and unusual aid of the Holy Spirit.
contact with heathenism. During the lives of Such is the action of God's angels on earth, as
disclosed to us in the various stages of Revelation
a The uotion of special guardian angels,watching
over individuals, is consistent with this passage, but * The difficulty of the passage has led to its being
not necessarily deduced from it. The belief of it questioned, but the wording of the original and the
among the early Christians is shown by Acts xii. 15. usage of the N. T. seem almost decisive on the point.
98 ANGELS ANISE
that of the evil angels may be better spoken of 1859, i. 296 ff'; Hengstenberg's Christology, i. 165
elsewhere [Satan] here it is enough to say that
: ff (Keith's trans.); Noyes, G. R. in the Christ.
it isthe direct opposite of their true original office, Examiner for May and July 1836, xx. 207-240,
but permitted under God's overruling providence 329-342 (in opposition to Hengstenberg) Kurtz,
;
to go until the judgment day. Der Engel des Herrn, in Tholuck's Anzeiger, 1846,
That there are degrees of the angelic nature, Nos. 11-14, reproduced essentially in his Gesch.
fallen and unfallen, and special titles and agencies des Alten Bundes, i. 144-159; Trip, C. J., Die
belonging to each, is clearly declared by St. Paul Theophanieen in den Geschichtsb. des A. T., Leiden,
(Eph. i. 21; Rom. viii. 38), but what their general 1858, a prize essay.
nature is, it is needless for us to know, and there- On the literature of the whole subject, one may
fore useless to speculate. For what little is known consult Bretschneider, System. Enhrickelung, u. s.
of this special nature see Cherubim, Seraphim, w. 4e Aufl., 1841, §§ 81, 82, and Grasse's Bibli-
Michael, Gabriel. A. B. otheca magica et pneumatica, Leipz. 1843.
* On angels the most exhaustive work is Ode, A. and H.
Jac., Commentariits de Angelis, Traj. ad Rhen. ANGLIN.G. [Fishing.]
1739, a large quarto volume of more than 1100 ANFAM (E3T3N [sighing of the people]:
pages. See, further, Kritik iiber die Lehre von den
'AyiaV; [Vat. AAjaA.ei/u;] Alex. Aviag.: Allium).
Engeln, in Henke's Magazin, 1795, iii. 300-355,
and 1796, vi. 152-177 ; Beck, C. D., Comment n rii
A Manassite, son of Shemidah (1 Chr. vii. 19).
W. A. W.
historici, etc.1801, pp. 302-342; Schmidt,
Lips.
F., Historia Dogm. de Angelis tutelaribus, in Ill- ANIM (D'W [fountains]: A.Va>; [Alex.
gen's Denkschrift, u. s. w. No. 2, Leipz. 1817, Aveip; Comp. 'Avi/i:] Anim), a city in the moun-
(valuable); Gramberg, Unmds&ge einer EngeUehre tains of Judah. named with Eshtemoh (Es-Semveh
des Allen Winer's Zeitschr.f. wiss. TheoL,
Test., in Mid Goshen (Josh. xv. 50). Eusebius and Jerome
1827, ii. 157-210; De Wette, Bibl. Dogmatik, 3e (Onom. 'Aw>j/u, Anim) mention a place of this
Aufl., 1831, pp. 80 ff., 143 ff., 212 ff., 235 ff.; name in Daroma, 9 miles south of Hebron (comp.
Schulthess, EngelweU, u. s. w. Zurich, 1833; Von also Anea, s. v. Anab). G.
Colin, Bill. TheoL, 1836, i. 187 ff., 410 ff, ii. 66
Twesten, Dogmatik, 1837, ii. 305-383,
* Anim is a contraction for C^l?, and might
ff, 222 ff ;
decktes Judenthum, ii. 370-468; Allen, Modern anise and cummin." It is by no means a matter
Judaism, 2d ed., Lond. 1830, pp. 149-172; Gfrc- of certainty whether the anise (Pimpimlla ani-
rer, Jahrh. d. Neils,1838, i. 352-424; Nicolas, sum, Lin.), or the dill (Anethum graveolens) is
Doctrines religieuses des Juifs, etc., Paris, 1860, here intended, though the probability is certainly
pp. 216-265, and Kohut, Ue'ber die jddische An- more in favor of the latter plant. Both the dill
gehlogie u. Ddmonologie in Hirer Abhdngigkiit and the anise belong to the natural order Umbel-
vom Parsismus. I^ipz. 1866, in the Abhandll. f lifera-. and are much alike in external character;
d. Kuiule d. MorgenU I5d. iv. Xr. 3. the seeds of both, moreover, are and have been long
For the opinions of the Christian fathers, see employed in medicine and cookery, as condiments
Suicer, Thes. art. a77eA.es; Petavius, TheoL and carminatives. Celsius (Hierob. i. 494, ft'.
Dogm., Antv. 1700, fob, iii, 1-116; Cudworth's quotes several passages from ancient writers to show
Intel. System, ch. v. sect. iii. pp. 346-381
(vol. iii. that the dill was commonly so used. Pliny uses the
of Harrison's ed.), with Mosheim's notes; and term auisum, to express the Pimpinella anisuiu, and
Keil, Opuscida, ii. 531-618. anethum to represent the common dill. He enu-
On their representation in Christian art, see merates as many as sixty-one remedies [diseases?]
Piper, Mythol. u. Symbolik der Chiistl. Kunst, cure, and says that
that the anisum is able to
1847-51; Menzel, Christ!. Symbolik, sometimes called anicetuui."
1854, art. on this account it is
Engel; and Mrs. Jameson, Sacred anil Legendary The best anise, he adds, comes from Crete: and
Art, 3d ed., Lond. 1857, i. 41-131. next to it that of Egypt is preferred (Plin. H. N.,
On the " Angel of Jehovah," see J. P. Smith's xx. 17). Forskal (Descript. Plant, p. 154) includes
Scripture Testimony to the Messiah, 5th ed., Edin. the anise ( Yanisiin, Arabic ) in the Materia Medica
6
j
this it should be stated, that Forskal several timeslongs to the natural order Magnoliacece. In China
alludes to the Anetkum graveolens as growing both this is frequently used for seasoning dishes, Ac.
in a cultivated and a wild state in Egypt, and he but the species of this genus are not natives of the
uses the Arabic name for this plant, which is iden- Bible lands, and must not be confused with the
tical with the Hebrew word, namely, Sjoebet, or umbelliferous plants noticed in this article.
Schibt (Bescr. Plant. 65, 109). W. H.
Celsius remarks upon the difference of opinion
CCDj? (and as a proper name, Josh. xiii. 16); (Calmet, s. v. Periscelis and Bells). The Arabic
name " khulkhal " seems to be onomatopcean, and
unless such ornaments are included in n~T37!iS, Lane (Mod. Egypt. App.
A.) quotes from a song, in
.Num. xxxi. 50, which word etymologically would allusion to the pleasure caused by their sound, •• the
mean rather an anklet than a bracelet. Indeed, ringing of thine anklets has deprived me of rea-
the same word is used in Is. iii. 20 (without the son." Hence Mohammed forbade them in public:
Aleph prosthetic) for the " stepping-chains worn by " let them not make a noise with their feet, that
Oriental women, fastened to the ankle-band of each their ornaments which they hide may [thereby] be
leg, so that they were forced to walk elegantly with discovered " (Koran, xxiv. 31, quoted by Lane).
short steps" CGesen. s. v.). They were as com- No doubt Tertullian discountenances them for sim-
mon as bracelets and armlets, and made of much ilar reasons " Nescio an crus de periscelio in ner-
:
the same materials the pleasant jingling and tink- vum se patiatur arctari.
; Pedes doini figite et . . .
ling which they made as they knocked against each plus quam in auro placebunt" (Be cult.femin. ii.
other, was no doubt one of the reasons why they 13).
were admired (Is. iii. 16, 18, "the bravery of their They were sometimes of great value. Lane
speaks of thetii (although they are getting uncom-
a Dill, so called from the old Norse word, the mon) as " made of solid gold or silver " (Mod.
nurse's lullaby, to dill =
to soothe. Hence the name
of the carminative plant, the /fitting or soothing herb b avnOov napa to avw 8elv, Sia tt\v iv
: Ta^f » av£»jo-n'
(see W'edgw. Diet. Engl. Etymol.). (Etym. Mag. ed. Uaisford).
100 ANNA ANOINT
Egypt. c); but he says that the poorer village A coiTuption of Harim (1 Esdr. ix. 32 comp. Ezr.
1. ;
among the ancient Greeks and Eomans, Diet, of Amin), 1 Esdr. viii. 48. Probably a corruption of
Ant. art. " Periscelis." They do not, we believe,
occur in the Nineveh sculptures. the Hebrew IFlS (A. V. "with him") of Ezr.
Livingstone writes of the favorite wife of an viii. 19. The translator may have read 13N.
African chief, " she wore a profusion of iron rings
W. A. W.
on her ankles, to which were attached little pieces
of sheet iron to enable her to make a tinkling as ANOINT
(ntPO: xp ioo: ungo). Anointing
she walked in her mincing African style" (p. 273). in Holy Scripture is either (I.) Material, with oil
On the weight and inconvenience of the copper rings [Oil], or (II.) Spiritual, with the Holy Ghost.
worn by the chiefs themselves, and the odd walk it 1. Material. 1. Ordinary. Anointing the —
causes them to adopt, see id. p. 276. F. W. F. body or head with oil was a common practice with
the Jews, as with other Oriental nations (Deut.
AN'NA (i~T2n [grace or prayer] : "Avva'-
xxviii. 40; Ruth iii. 3; Mic. vi. 15). Abstinence
Anna). The name occurs in Punic as the sister
from it was a sign of mourning (2 Sam. xiv. 2;
of Dido. 1. The mother of Samuel (1 Sam. i. 2
Dan. x. 3; Matt. vi. 17). Anointing the head with
ft'.). [Hannah.]
oil or ointment seems also to have been a mark of
2. The wife of Tobit (Tob. i. 9 ff.).
respect sometimes paid by a host to his guests
3. The wife of Kaguel (Tob. vii. 2 ff.).«
(Luke vii. 46 and Ps. xxiii. 5), and was the ancient
4. A "prophetess" in Jerusalem at the time
Egyptian custom at feasts. Observe, however,
of our Lord's birth (Luke 30).
ii. B. F. W.
AN'NAAS (Zuvdas; [Vat. 2a/ua Aid. ;
Hebrew is .Fp^"^, "thou
that in Ps. xxiii. the
'
Avoids :] Anaas), 1 Esdr. v. 23. [Senaah.] hast made fat;" LXX., £\iiravas Vulg., im- ;
AN'NAS ("Avvas, in Josephus "Avavos), a pmguasU; and in Luke vii. aAe'upco is used as it is
in the similar passages (John xi. 2, xii. 3). The
Jewish high-priest. He was son of one Seth, and
word "anoint" (aXfiipw) also occurs in the sense
was appointed high-priest in his 37th year (a. d.
of preparing a body with spices and unguents for
7), after the battle of Actium, by Quirinus, the
burial (Mark xvi. 1. Also xiv. 8, fxvpi(a>). From
imperial governor of Syria (Joseph. Ant. xviii. 2, §
the custom of discontinuing the use of oil in times
1 but was obliged to give way to Ismael, son of
)
;
/. c). He remained till the passover, A. d. 37, and anointed, were types of the Anointed One (rP^^,
is mentioned in Luke iii. 2, as officiating high-priest, Xptcrr6s). («•) Prophets were occasionally anointed
but after Annas, who seems to have retained the to their office (1 K. xix. 16), and are called mes-
title, and somewhat also of the power of that office. siahs, or anointed (1 Chr. xvi. 22; Ps. cv. 15).
Our Lord's first hearing (John xviii. 13 ) was before (b.) Priests, at the first institution of the Levitical
Annas, who then sent him bound to Caiaphas. In priesthood, were anointed to their offices, the
all
Acts iv. 6, he is plainly called the high-priest, and sons of Aaron as well as Aaron himself (Ex. xl.
Caiaphas merely named with others of his family. 15; Num. iii. 3); but afterwards anointing seems
It is no easy matter to give an account of the not to have been repeated at tlie consecration of
seemingly capricious applications of this title. Wi- ordinary priests, but to have been especially reserved
ner supposes that Annas retained it from his former for the high-priest (Ex. xxix. 20; Lev. xvi. 32); so
enjoyment of the office but to this idea St. Luke's
;
that "the priest that is anointed" (Lev. iv. 3) is
expressions seem opposed, in which he clearly ap- generally thought to mean the high-priest, and is
pears as bearing the high-priest's dignity at the rendered by the LXX. 6 dp%(epei/s 6 icexpio'fievos
time then present in each case. Wieseler, in his
(rrtrjan inisrt). see also w. 5, ie, and c.
Chronology, and more recently in an article in
Herzog's Real^Encyhlopadie, maintains that the vi. 22 (vi. 15, Heb.). (c.) Kings. The Jews were
two, Annas and Caiaphas, were together at the familiar with the idea of making a king by
anoint-
head of the Jewish people, the latter as actual high- ing, before the establishment of their own mon-
priest, the former as president of the Sanhedrim archy
(Judg. ix. 8, 15). Anointing was the
principal and divinely-appointed ceremony in the
(S^tt^); and so also Selden, De Synedriis et prce- inauguration of their own kings
(1 Sam. ix. 16, x.
fecturis juridicis veterum Ebraiorum, 655 ex- 1; 1 K. i. 34, 39); indeed, so preeminently did
ii. :
cept that this latter supposes Caiaphas to have been it belong to the kingly office, that " the Lord's
the second prefect of the Sanhedrim. Some again anointed " was a common designation of the theo-
office of pD, or sub-
cratic king (1 Sam. xii. 3, 5; 2 Sam. i. 14, 16).
suppose that Annas held the
mentioned by the later
The rite was sometimes performed more than once.
stitute of the high-priest,
David was thrice anointed to be king: first, pri-
Talmudists. He lived to old age, having had five
vately by Samuel, before the death of Saul, by way
sons high-priests (Joseph. Ant. xx. 9, § 1).
of conferring on him a right to the throne (1 Sam.
H. A.
xvi. 1, 13); again over Judah at Hebron (2 Sam.
AN'NAS QAvdv, [Aid.] Alex. "Avvas: Nuas). ii. 4), and ifinally over the whole nation (2 Sam
a * Here the LXX. has "ESfa, and the A. V. Edna. v. 3). After the separation into two kingdoms,
A. the kings both of Judah and of Israel seem still
ANOS ANT 101
to have been anointed (2 K. ix. 3, xi. 12). So
late as the time of the Captivity the king is called
ANT (if^D, mem&lah : /j-vpuvt
'
formica).
•the anointed of the Lord" (Ps. lxxxix. 38, 51; This insect mentioned twice in the O. T. hi
is :
Lain. iv. 20). Some persons, however, think that, Prov. vi. 6, "Go to the ant, thou sluggard con-
after David, subsequent kings were not anointed sider her ways and be wise;" in Prov. xxx. 25.
except when, as in the cases of Solomon, Joash, " The ants are a people not strong, yet they pre-
and Jehu, the right of succession was disputed or pare their meat in the summer." In the former
transferred (Jahn, Arckmol. Bibl. § 223 ). Beside of these passages the diligence of this insect is in-
Jewish kings, we read that Hazael was to be stanced by the wise man as an example worthy of
anointed king over Syria (I Iv. xix. 15). Cyrus imitation; in the second passage the ant's wisdom
also is called the Lord's anointed, as having been isespecially alluded to, for these insects, " though
raised by God to the throne for the special purpose they be little on the
earth, are exceeding wise."
of delivering the Jews out of captivity (Is. xlv. 1 ). It is well known that the ancient Greeks and Ro-
(d) Inanimate objects also were anointed with oil hi mans believed that the ant stored up food, which it
token of their being set apart for religious service. collected in thesummer, ready for the winter's con-
Thus Jacob anointed a pillar at Bethel (Gen. xxxi. sumption. Bochart (Hieroz. iii. 478) has cited
13); and at the introduction of the Mosaic econ- numerous passages from Greek and Latin writers,
omy, the tabernacle and all its furniture were con- as well as from Arabian naturalists and Jewish
secrated by anointing (Ex. xxx. 26-28). The rabbis, in support of this opinion. Such wisdom
expression " anoint the shield " (Is. xxi. 5) was this little insect believed to possess, that, in
(.iroifidurare dvpeovs, LXX.; arripite clypeum, order to prevent the corn which it had stored from
Vulg.) refers to the custom of rubbing oil into the germinating, it took care to bite off the head of
hide, which, stretched upon a frame, formed the each grain accordingly some have sought for the
;
shield, in order to make it supple and fit for use. derivation of the Hebrew word for ant, nemdldh"
3. Ecclesiastic d. Anointing with oil in the fact. Nor is the belief in the
in this supposed
name of the Lord is prescribed by St. James to be ant's biting off the head of the grains unsupported
used together with prayer, by the elders of the by some modern writers. Addison, in the Guar-
church, for the recovery of the sick aA.euI/afTer dian (No. 156', 157), inserts the following letter "of
(James v. 11). Analogous to this is the anointing undoubted credit and authority," which was first
with oil practiced by the twelve (Mark ix. 13), and published by the French Academy " The corn :
our Lord's anointing the eyes of a blind man with which is laid up by ants wT ould shoot under
clay made from saliva, in restoring him miracu- ground if these insects did not take care to prevent
lously to sight (e7re'xp"re,John ix. G, 11). it. They therefore bite off all the germs before
Spiritual.
II. —
1. In the O. T. a Deliverer is they lay it up, and therefore the corn that has lain
promised under the title of Messiah, or Anointed in their cells will produce nothing. Any one may
(Ps. ii. 2; Dan. ix. 25, 20); and the nature of his make the experiment, and even see that there is no
anointing is described to be spiritual, with the Holy germ in their corn." N. Pluche, too (Nature
Ghost (Is. Lxi. 1; see Luke iv. 18). As anointing Displ. i. 128), says of these insects, "Their next
with oil betokened prosperity, and produced a cheer- passion is to amass a store of corn or other grain
ful aspect (Ps. civ. 15), so this spiritual miction is that will keep, and lest the humidity of the cells
figuratively described as anointing " with the oil of should make the corn shoot up, we are told for a
gladness" (Ps. xlv. 7; Heb. i. 9). In the N. T. certainty that they gnaw off the buds which grow
Jesus of Nazareth is shown to be the Messiah, or at the point of the grain."
Christ, or Anointed of the Old Testament (John It is difficult to see how this opinion originated,
i. 41; Acts ix. 22, xvii. 2, 3, xviii. 5, 28); and for it is entirely without foundation. Equally er-
the historical fact of his being anointed with the roneous appears to be the notion that ascribes to
Holy Ghost is recorded and asserted (John i. 32, the ant provident foresight in laying up a store of
S3; Acts iv. 27, x. 38). 2. Spiritual anointing corn for the winter's use; 6 though it is an easy
with the Holy Ghost is conferred also upon Chris- matter to trace it to its source. No recorded species
tians by God (2 Cor. i. 21), and they are described of ant is known to store up food of any kind for
as having an unction (xpiff/xa) from the Holy One, provision in the cold seasons, and certainly not
by which they know all things (1 John ii. 20, 27). grains of corn, which ants do not use for food.
To anoint the eyes with eye-salve is used figuratively The European species of ants are all dormant in
to denote the process of obtaining spiritual percep- the winter, and consequently require no food and ;
tion (Rev. iii. 18). T. T. P. although it is well still to bear in mind the careful
A'NOS ("Awm: Joitas), 1 Esdr. ix. 34. language of the authors of Introduction to Ento-
[Van-i.ui.] moh//y (ii. 46), who say, " till the manners of exotic
a From 7£?2, abscissus (Simon. Lex. Heb. ed. " to cut ") was given to the ant from its extreme ten-
Winer). The derivation of the word uity at the junction of the thorax and abdomen ? If
is uncertain. Ge-
the term insect is applicable to any one living creature
more than to another, it certainly is to the unt. iV ma-
wnius is inclined to derive it from the Arabic A. \
t lak is the exact equivalent to insect. [Since the above
" conscendit, pec. proreptando, arborem."Yid. Gol. was written it has been found that Parkhurst s. v. —
Arab. Lex. s. v. V. conj. " moti inter sese permistique
sunt formicarum reptantium more." Fiirst says, " For- ?72 (iv.) — gives a similar derivation.]
Bitan potius diminutivum est n. 33, unde v*^3 f.
6 « Parvula (nam exemplo est) magni formica laboris
Ore trahit quodcunque potest, afovie addit acervo
71^^32, sicut n s
Q3, ad bestiolam pusillam signifi- Quern struit, baud ignara ac uon incauta fu-
'.'nnl.im factum esse potest." Of. Michaelis, Sup. Lex. turi." Hor. Sal. i. 1, 33.
Heb. ii. 1644, and Rosenm'ull. not. ad Bochart. iii. 480.
Cf. also Ovid, Met. 624; Virg. Geor. i. 186, Mh.
vii.
Is it not probable that the name ncmalah (from vM iv. 402; Plin. xi. 30; .Elian, H. A. ii. 25, vi. 43, &c.
102 ANT ANTICHRIST
ants are more accurately explored, it would be rash ject remains to be considered, which is this Does :
to affirm that no ants have magazines of provis- Scripture assert that any species of ant stores up
ions for although during the cold of our winters food for future use ?
; It cannot, we think, be main-
in this country they remain in a state of torpidity, tained that the words of Solomon, in the only two
and have no need of food, yet in warmer regions passages where mention of this insect is made, nec-
during the rainy seasons, when they are probably essarily teach this doctrine; but at the same time
confined to their nests, a store of provisions may be it must be allowed, that the language used, and
necessary for them," — yet the observations of more especially the context of the passage in Prov.
modern naturalists who have paid considerable at- xxx. 25, do seem to imply that such an opinion was
tention to this disputed point, seem almost con- held with respect to the economy of this insect.
clusive that ants do not lay up food for future con- " There are four things which are little upon the
sumption. It is true that Col. Sykes has a paper, earth, but they are exceeding wise; the ants are a
vol. ii. of Transactions of Entomol. Soc. p. 103, on a people not strong, yet they prepare their meat in
species of Indian ant which he calls Atta providens, the summer." In what particular, it may be
so called from the fact of his having found a large asked, are these bisects so especially noted for their
store of grass-seeds in its nest ; but the amount of wisdom, unless some allusion is made to their sup-
that gentleman's observations merely goes to show posed provident foresight hi " preparing their meat
that this ant carries seeds underground, and brings in the summer." If the expression here used
them again to the surface after they have got wet merely has reference to the fact that ants are able
during the monsoons, apparently to dry. a " There to provide themselves with food, how is their wis-
is not," writes Mr. F. Smith, the author of the dom herein more excellent than the countless host
Catalogue of the Formicidce in the British Museum, of other minute insects whose natural instinct
in a letter to the author of this article, " any evi- prompts them to do the same? If this question
dence of the seeds having been stored for food;" is fairly weighed in connection with the acknowl-
he observes, Catalogue of Formicidie (1858), p. 180, edged fact, that from very early times the ancients
that the processionary ant of Brazil ( (Ecodoma attributed storing habits to the ant, it will appear
cephaloles) carries immense quantities of portions at least probable that the language of Solomon im-
of leaves into its underground nests, and that it plies a similar belief; and if such was the general
was supposed that these leaves were for food but opinion, is it a matter of surprise that the wise
;
that Mr. Bates quite satisfied himself that the leaves man should select the ant as an instance whereon
were for the purpose of fining the channels of the he might ground a lesson of prudence and fore-
nest, and not for food. Ants are carnivorous in thought ?
their habits of living, and although they are fond The teaching of the Bible is accommodated to
of saccharine matter, there is no evidence at all to the knowledge and opinions of those to whom its
prove that any portion of plants ever forms an article language is addressed, and the observations of nat-
of their diet. The fact is, that ants seem to de- uralists, which, as far as they go, do certainly tend
light in running away with almost any thing they to disprove the assertion that ants store up food for
find, — small portions of sticks, leaves, little stones, future use, are no more an argument against the
— as any one can testify who has cared to watch truth of the "Word of God than are the ascertained
the habits of this insect. This will explain the laws of astronomical science, or the facts in the
erroneous opinion which the ancients held with mysteries of life which the anatomist or physiolo-
respect to that part of the economy of the ant now gist has revealed.
under consideration nor is it, we think, necessary
; The Arabians held the wisdom of the ant in such
to conclude that the error originated in observers estimation, that they used to place one of these bi-
mistaking the cocoons for grains of corn, to which sects in the hands of a newly-born infant, repeat-
they bear much resemblance. It is scarcely cred- ing these words, " May the boy turn out clever and
ible that Aristotle, Virgil, Horace, &c, who all skillful." Hence in Arabic, with the noun nem-
speak of this insect storing up grains of com, should leh, "an ant," is connected the adjective nemil,
have been so far misled, or have been such bad "quick," "clever" (Bochart, Hieroz. lii. 494).
observers, as to have taken the cocoons for grams. The Talmudists, too, attributed great wisdom to
Ants do carry off grains of corn, just as they carry- this insect. It was, say they, from beholding the
off other things —not, however, as was stated, for wonderful ways of the ant that the following ex-
food, but for their nests. "They are great rob- pression originated " Thy justice,
: God, reaches
bers," says Dr. Thomson (Land and Book, p. 337), to the heavens " ( Chulin, 63).* Ants live together
" and plunder by night as well as by day, and the hi societies, having " no guide, overseer, or ruler."
farmer must keep a sharp eye to his floor, or they See Latreille's Histoire Naturelle des Fournii*,
will abstract a large quantity of grain in a single 1802; Huber's Traite des Mazurs des F.
Paris,
night." IivVkj.; Encijcl. Brit. 8th ed. art. "Ant;" Kirby
It is right to state that a well-known entomol- and Spence, Introd. to Entom. Ants belong to the
ogist, the Rev. F. W. Hope, in a paper " On some family Forrrdcida, and order ffymenoptera. There
doubts respecting the economy of Ants" (Trans. is not in the British Museum a single specimen of
Entom. Soc. ii. 211), is of opinion that Col. Sykes's an ant from Palestine. W. H.
observations do tend to show that there are species
of exotic ants which store up food for winter con- ANTICHRIST (6 kvTlxP^ros)- The word
sumption; but it must be remembered that Mr. Antichrist is used by St. John in his first and
Bates's investigations are subsequent to the publi- second Epistles, and by him alone. Elsewhere it
cation of that paper. does not occur in Scripture. Nevertheless, by an
of Seleucus, and son of Antiochus the Great for, ; in blasphemy against God (Rev. xiii. G). The
after Seleucus, he reigned eleven years in Syria, Little Horn wearsout the saints of the Most High
and possessed Judaea; and in his reign there oc- (Dan. vii. 25): the woman who rides on, i. e. di-
curred the persecution about the Law of God, and rects, the Apocalyptic Beast, is drunken with the
the wars of the Maccabees. But our people con- blood of saints (Rev. xvii. 6). The persecution of
sider all these things to be spoken of Antichrist, the Little Horn is to last a time and times and a
who is to come in the last time It is the dividing of times, i. e. three and a half times
custom of Holy Scripture to anticipate in types (Dan. vii. 25): power is given to the Apocalyptic
the reality of things to come. For in the same Beast for forty-two months, i. e. three and a half
way our Lord and Saviour is spoken of in the 72d times (Rev. xiii. 5). These and other parallelisms
Psalm, which is entitled a Psalm of Solomon, and cannot be accidental. Whatever was meant by
yet all that is there said cannot be applied to Sol- Daniel's Little Horn must be also meant by St.
omon. But in part, and as in a shadow and image John's Beast. Therefore St. John's Beast is not
of the truth, these things are foretold of Solomon, the Antichrist. It is not an individual like tl>e
to be more perfectly fulfilled in our Lord and Sa- Antichrist of St. John's and St. Paul's Epistles,
viour. As, then, in Solomon and other saints the but a polity like the Little Horn of Daniel.
Saviour has types of His coming, so Antichrist is But, though not identical, it is quite evident,
rightly believed to have for his type that wicked and it has been always recognized, that the Anti-
king Antiochus, who persecuted the saints and de- christ of the Epistles and the Beast of the Apoca-
filed the Temple." (S. Hieron. Op. torn. i. p. 523, lypse have some relation to each other. What is
Col. Agr. 1610 torn. iii. p. 1127, Paris, 1704).
; this relation? and in what relation to both does
V. The Little Horn of Daniel. Hitherto we — the second Apocalyptic Beast or False Prophet
have been dealing with a person, not a kingdom or stand : To answer this question we must examine
a polity. This is evident from St. John's words, the imagery of the Apocalypse. Shortly stated,
and still more evident from the Epistle to the Thes- it is, so far as concerns our present purpose, as
salonians. The words used by St. Paid could not follows. The church is represented (Rev. xii.) as
well have been more emphatic, had he studiously a woman bringing forth children to Christ, perse-
made use of them in order to exclude the idea of a cuted, by Satan, and compelled to fly from him into
polity. " The Man of Sin," " the Son of Perdi- the wilderness, where she remains for 1200 days,
tion," " the one who opposeth himself to God," " the or three and a half times. Satan, being unable to
one who exalteth himself above God," " the one destroy the woman, sets himself to make war with
who represents himself as God," "the wicked one her seed (xii. 17 ). At this time the Beast arises
who was to come with Satanic power and lying from the sea, and Satan gives to him his power,
wonders:" if words have a meaning, these words and his seat, and great authority. The length of
designate an individual. But when we come to time during which the Beast prevails is three and
Daniel's prophecy of the Little Horn this is all a half times, the same period as that during which
changed. We
there read of four beasts, which the sufferings of the woman last. During a cer-
are explained as four kings,by which expression is tain part of this three and a half times the Beast
meant kingdoms or empires. These kingdoms
four takes upon its back, as its guide and rider, a har-
represented by the four beasts are undoubtedly the lot, by whom, as it is explained, is figured " that
Assyrian empire, the Persian empire, the Grecian great city which reigneth over the kings of the
empire, and the Roman empire. The Roman Em- earth" (Rev. xvii. 18) from her seven hills (xvii.
pire is described as breaking up into ten kingdoms, 9). After a time Babylon the harlot-rider falls
amongst which there grows up another kingdom (ch. xviii.), but the Beast on whom she had ridden
which gets the mastery over nearly a third of them still survives, and is finally destroyed at the glori-
(three out* of ten). This kingdom, or polity, is ous coming of Christ (xix. 20).
the little horn of the fourth beast, before which Can we harmonize this picture with the predic-
three of the first ten horns are plucked up. the K tion of St. Paul, always recollecting that his Man
four "kings" (vii.17) represented by the four of Sin isan individual, and that the Apocalyptic
beasts are really empires,if the ten "kings" (vii. Beast a polity ?
is
24) are monarchies or nationalities, then the other As we have here reached that which constitutes
"king" who rises after them is, in like manner, tlie great difficulty in mastering the conception of
not an individual but a polity. It follows that the the Antichrist as revealed by the inspired writers.
"Little Horn " of Daniel cannot be identified with we shall now turn from the text of Scripture to
ANTICHRIST ANTICHRIST 105
the comments of annotators and essayists Carn. c. 25).
to see Origen describes him in Eastern
wliat assistance we can derive from them. We
phrase as the child of the Devil and the counterpart
shall then resume the consideration of the Script- of Christ. Hippolytus understands the Koman em-
ural passages at the point at which we now leave pire to be represented by the Apocalyptic Beast
them. We shall classify the opinions which have and the Antichrist by the False Prophet who would
been held on the Antichrist according as he is re- restore the wounded Beast by his craft and by the
garded as an individual, or as a polity, or as a wisdom of his laws. Cyprian sees him typified in
principle. The individualists, again, must be sub- Antiochus Epiphanes {Exhort, ad Mart. c. 11).
divided, according as they represent him as one to Victorinus, with severid others —
misunderstanding
come or as one already come. We have, therefore, St. Paul's expression that the mystery of iniquity
four classes of writers on the Antichrist: —
(1) was in his day working —
supposes that the Anti-
those who regard him as an individual yet future christ will he a revivified hero Lactantius that he
;
(2) those who regard him as a polity now present; will be a king of Syria, born of an evil spirit; Cyril
(3) those who regard him as an individual already that he will be a magician, who by his arts will get
past away; (4) those who consider that nothing is the mastery of the Roman empire. Jerome de-
meant beyond antiehristian and lawless principle, scribes him as the son of the Devil sitting in the
not embodied either in an individual or in a special Church as though he were the Son of God Chrys- ;
32); of Origen, a. d. 184 {Op. i. 6G7, Delarue, will arise an eleventh little king, who will subdue
1733); of his contemporary, Hippolytus {Be Anti- three of the ten kings, that is, the king of Egypt,
christo, 57, Fabricii, Hamburgi, 171G); of Cyprian, of Africa, and of Ethiopia, as we shall hereafter
a. d. 250 {Ep. 58; Op. 120, Oxon. 1682); of show. And on these having been slain, the seven
Victorinus, A. d. 270 {Bibl. Pair. Magna, iii. p. other kings will also submit. 'And behold,' he
136, Col. Agrip. 1618); of Lactantius, A. d. 300 says, in the ram were the eyes of a man.'
' This
(Die. Inst. vii. 17) of Cyril of Jerusalem, A. d. is that we may not suppose him to be a devil or a
315 {Catech. xv. 4); of Jerome, A. d. 330 {Op. demon, as some have thought, but a man in whom
iv.
pars i. 200, Parisiis, 1603); of Chrysostom, a. d. Satan will dwell utterly and bodily. And a mouth '
347 {Comm. in II. Thess.); of Hilary of Poictiers speaking great things,' for he is ' the man of sin,
a. d. 350 {Comm. in Matt.); of Augustine, a. d. the son of perdition, who sitteth in the temple
354 {Be Cicit. Dei, xx. 10); of Ambrose, A. d. of God, making himself as God " {Op. vol. iv. p.
'
380 ( Comm. in Luc. ).« The authors of the Sibyl- 511, Col. Agrip. 1616). In his Comment, on Dan.
line Oracles, a. d. 150, and of the Apostolical Con- xi., and in his reply to Algasia's eleventh question,
stitutions, Celsus (see Orig. c. Eph- he works out the same view in greater detail. The
Cels. lib. vi.),
rem Syrus, and a same line of interpretation continued. Andreas of
a. d. 370, Theodoret, a. d. 430,
few other writers seem to have regarded the Anti- Caesarea, a. d. 550, explains him to be a king act-
christ as the Devil himself rather than as bis min- uated by Satan, who will reunite the old Roman
ister or an emanation from him. But they may, empire and reign at Jerusalem {In Apoc. c. xiii.);
perhaps, have meant no more than to express the Aretas, a. d. 650, as a king of the Romans who
identity of his character and his power with that will reign over the Saracens in Bagdad {In Apoc.
of Satan. Each of the writers to whom we have c. xiii.); John Damascene, A. d. 800 [fl. 730],
referred gives his own judgment with respect to repeats the primitive belief {Orth. Fid. 1. iv. c. 26);
some particulars which may be expected in the An- Adso, A. d. 950 [080], says that a Frank king will
tichrist, whilst they all agree in representing him reunite the Roman empire, and that he will abdicate
as a person about to come shortly before the glori- on Mount Olivet, and that, on the dissolution of his
ous and final appearance of Christ, and to be de- kingdom, the Antichrist will be revealed. The
stroyed by His presence. Justin Martyr speaks of same writer supposes that he will be born in Baby-
him as the man of the apostasy, and dwells chiefly bn, that he will be educated at Bethsaida and Cho-
on the persecutions which he would cause. Irenseus razm, and that he will proclaim himself the Son
describes him as summing up the apostasy in him- of God at Jerusalem {Tract, in AiiticJir. apud Au-
self; as having his seat at Jerusalem; as identical gust. Opera, torn. ix. p. 454, Paris, 1637). The-
with the Apocalyptic Beast (c. 28); as foreshad- ophylact, a. d. 1070, speaks of him as a man who
owed by the unjust judge; as being the man who will carry Satan about with him. Albert the Great,
'• should come in his own name; "
and as belonging Cardinal Hugo, and Alexander de Hales repeat the
to the tribe of Dan (c 30). Tertullian identifies received tradition in the thirteenth century. So
him with the Beast, and supposes him to be about also Thomas Aquinas, a. d. 1260, who recurs to
to arise on the fall of the Koman Empire {Be Res. the tradition with regard to the birth of Antichrist
a *The dates here given in connection with the rome, Chrysostom, and Augustine, they denote the
names of many of the Christian fathers are likely to supposed time of their birth ; in the case of the others
mislead the reader. In the case of Justin Martyr, mentioned above and below, they represent the timn
Irenaeus, Tertullian, Origen, Cyril of Jerusalem, Je- when they flourished. A.
106 ANTICHRIST ANTICHRIST
at Babylon, saying that he will be instructed in may examples in the Franciscan enthusiasts
find
the Magian philosophy, and that his doctrine and Peter John of Olivi, Telesphorus, Ubertinus, and
miracles will be a parody of those of the Lamb. John of Paris, who saw a mystic Antichrist at
The received opinion of the twelfth century is Borne, and looked forward to a real Antichrist in
brought before us in a striking and dramatic man- the future; and again in such men as GrostOte,
ner at the interview between King Richard I. and whom we find asking, as in despair, whether the
the Abbot Joachim at Messina, as the king was on name of Antichrist has not been earned by the
his way to the Holy Land. " I thought," said the Pope (Matt. Par. in An. 1253, p. 875, 1040). Of
king, " that Antichrist would be born in Antioch the second class we may take Eberhard archbishop
or in Babylon, and of the tribe of Dan and would ; of Salzburg as a specimen, who denounces Hilde-
reign in the temple of the Lord in Jerusalem and ; brand as " having, in the name of religion, laid
would walk in that land in which Christ walked the foundation of the kingdom of Antichrist 170
and would reign in it for three years and a half; years before his time." He can even name the
and would dispute against Elijah and Enoch, and ten horns. They are the " Turks, Greeks, Egyp-
woidd kill them; and would afterwards die; and tians, Africans, Spaniards, French, English, Ger-
that after his death God would give sixty days of mans, Sicilians, and Italians, who now occui^y the
repentance, in which those might repent which provinces of Borne; and a horn has grown
little
should have erred from the way of truth, and have up with eyes and mouth, speaking great things,
been seduced by the preaching of Antichrist and which is reducing three of these kingdoms i. e. —
bis false prophets." This seems to have been the Sicily, Italy, and Germany — to subserviency, is
view defended by the archbishops of Bouen and persecuting the people of Christ and the saints of
Auxerre and by the bishop of Bayonne, who were God with intolerable opposition, is confounding
present at the interview; but it was not Joachim's things human and divine, and attempting things
opinion. He maintained the seven heads of the unutterable, execrable" (Avcntinus, Annul. Boi-
Beast to be Herod, Nero, Constantius, Mohammed, orum, p 651, Lips. 1710). The Waldenses eagerly
Melsemut, who were past; Saladin, who was then grasped at the same notion, and from that time it
living ;and Antichrist, who was shortly to come, has never been lost sight of. Thus we slide from
being already born in the city of Borne, and about the individualist view, which was held unanimously
to be elevated to the Apostolic See (Boger de Hove- in the Church for upwards of a thousand years, to
den in Richard I., anno 1190)." In his own work the notion of a polity, or a succession of rulers of
on the Apocalypse Joachim speaks of the second a polity, that polity being the Church of Borne.
Apocalyptic beast as being governed by "some The hitherto received opinion now vanishes, and
great prelate who will be like Simon Magus, and as does not appear again until the excesses and ex-
it were universal pontiff throughout the world, and travagances of the new opinion produced a reaction
be that very Antichrist of whom St. Baul speaks." against itself.
These are very noticeable words. Gregory I. had 2. The Waldenses also at first regarded the
long since (a. d. 590) declared that any man who Antichrist as an individual. The " Noble Lesson,"
held even the shadow of the power which the popes written in the 12th century, teaches the expecta-
of Lome soon after his time arrogated to themselves, tion of a future and personal Antichrist b but the
would be the precursor of Antichrist. Arnulphus Waldensian treatise of Antichrist in the 14th cent-
bishop of Orleans (or perhaps Gerbert), in an invec- ury identifies Antichrist, Babylon, the Fourth
tive against John XV. at the Council of Eheims, A. Beast, the Harlot, and the Man of Sin, with the
D. 991, had declared that if the Boman pontiff was system of Bopery. Wickhffites and Hussites held
destitute of charity and puffed up with knowledge, the same language. Lord Cobham declared at his
he was Antichrist —
if destitute both of charity and trial that the Bope was Antichrist's head (Bede's
of knowledge, that he was a lifeless stone (Mansi, Works, p. 38, Cambridge, 1849). Walter Brute,
torn. ix. p. 132, Ven. 1774); but Joachim is the brought before the Bishop's Court at Hereford at
first to suggest, not that such and such a pontiff the end of the 14th century, pronounced the Anti-
was Antichrist, but that the Antichrist would be a christ to be "the high Bishop of Borne calling him-
Universalis Ponlifex, and that he would occupy self God's servant and Christ's chief vicar in this
the Apostolic See. Still, however, we have no hint world " (Foxe, iii. 131, Lond. 1844). Thus we
of an order or succession of men being the Anti- reach the Beformation. Walter Brute (a. d.
christ. It is an actual, living, individual man that 1393), Bullinger (1504), Chytrasus (1571), Aretius
Joachim contemplates. (1573), Foxe (1586), Napier (1593), Mede (1632),
The master had said that a Pope would be the Jurieu (1685), Bp. Newton (1750), Cunninghame
Antichrist; his followers began to whisper that it (1813), Faber, (1814), Woodhouse (1828), Ha-
was the Pope. Amalric, professor of logic and bershon (1843), identify the False Prophet, or
theology at Paris at the end of the 12th century, Second Apocalyptic Beast, with Antichrist and with
appears to have been the first to have put forth the the Bapacy; Marlorat (a. d. 1574), King James I.
idea. was taken up by three different classes;
It (1603), Daubuz (1720), Galloway (1802), the
by the moralists, who were scandalized at the laxity First Apocalyptic Beast; Brightman (a. d. 1600),
of the Papal Court; by the Imperialists, in their Pareus (1615), Vitringa (1705), Gill (1776),
temporal struggle with the Papacy; and, perhaps Bachmair (1778), Fraser (1795), Croly (1828),
independently, by the Waldenses and their followers Fysh (1837), Elliott (1844), both the Beasts.
in their spiritual struggle. Of the first class we That the Pope and his system are Antichrist, was
a The Bollandists reject the story of this interview Car, segont l'escriptura, son ara fait moti Antexrist
as an invention. It has also been suggested (see Car Antexrist son tuit aquilh que coutrastan a Xrist."
M. Stuart) that Joachim's works have been inter- La Nobla Leyczon, 1. 457. See Raynouard's Choix
polated. desPoesits Originates des Troubadours, 100; App.
ii.
Queen Klizabeth (see Jewell, Letter to Bulling. May Simon Magus ( Works, vol. iii. p. 620, Lond. 1031);
•22, 1559, Zurich Letters, First Series, p. 33, Whitby in the Jews (Comm. vol. ii. p. 431, Lond.
(ami). 1842); and the theologians of the 17th 1760); Le Clerc in Simon, son of Giora, a leader
century did not repudiate it, though they less ami of the rebel Jews; Schiittgen in the Pharisees;
less dwelt upon it as their struggle came to be with Nijsselt and Krause in the Jewish zealots; Harduin
Puritanism in place of Popery. Bp. Andrewes in the High Priest Ananias; F. D. Maurice in
maintains it as a probable conclusion from the Yitellius ( On the Apocalypse, Camb. 1860).
Epistle to the Thessalonians (Jiesp. ad Bellarm. p. 4. The same spirit that refuses to regard Satan
304, Oxon. 1851); but he carefully explains that as an individual, naturally looks upon the Anti-
King James, whom he was defending, had expressed christ as an evil principle not embodied either in a
his private opinion, not the belief of the Church, person or in a polity. Thus Koppe, Storr, Nitzsch,
on the subject (ibid. p. 23). Bramhall introduces Pelt. (See Alford, Gk. Test. iii. 69.)
limitations and distinctions (Works, iii. 520, Oxf. We do not gain much by a review of the opin-
1845 ) significantly suggests that there are marks ions of the commentators. In the case of prophecy,
;
of Antichrist which apply to the General Assembly partially at least unfulfilled, little is to be expected.
of the Kirk of Scotland as much as to the Pope or Of the four opinions which we have exhibited, the
to the Turk (ib. iii. 287); and declines to make the last is in accordance neither with St. Paul nor St.
Church of England responsible for what individual John, for. St. Paul describes the Adversary as being
preachers or writers had said on the subject in distinctly a man; St. John speaks of the coming
moments of exasperation (ib. ii. 582). From this of Antichrist in terms similar to those used for the
time forward the Papal-Antichrist theory is not to coming of Christ, and describes Antichristianism
be found in any theologians of name in the Eng- as to tov avTixpicrrov, thereby showing that Anti-
lish Church, nor indeed in the sixteenth century christianism is Antichristianism because it is the
does it seem to have taken root in England. Hard spirit of the concrete Antichrist. The third opin-
names were bandied about, and the hardest of all ion is plaiidy refuted by the fact that the persons
being Antichrist, it was not neglected. But the fixed upon as the Antichrist have severally passed
idea of the Pope being the Antichrist was not the away, but Christ's glorious presence, which is im-
idea of the English Reformation, nor was it ever mediately to succeed the Antichrist, has not yet
applied to the Pope in his Patriarchal or Archi- been vouchsafed. The majority of those who
episcopal, but solely in his distinctively Papal char- maintain the second opinion are shown to be in
acter. But the more that the sober and learned the wrong because they represent as a polity what
divines of the seventeenth century gave up this St. Paul distinctly describes as a man. The ma-
application of the term, the more violently it was jority of those who hold the first opinion are in
insisted upon by men of little charity and con- like manner shown to be in the wrong, because they
tracted views. A string of writers followed each represent as an individual what the Apocalypse de-
other in succession, who added nothing to the inter- monstrably pictures as a polity. We are unable
pretation of prophecy, but found each the creation to follow any one interpreter or any one school of
of his own brain in the sacred book of the Rev- interpreters. The opinions of the two last schools,
elation, grouping history in any arbitrary manner we are able to see, are wholly false. The two first
that they chose around the central figure of the appear to contain the truth between them, but so
Papal Antichrist. divided as to be untrue in the mouth of almost any
3. A reaction followed. Some returned to the individual expositor who has entered into details.
ancient idea of a future individual Antichrist, as We return to Scripture.
Lacunza or Benezra (a. d. 1810), Burgh, Samuel St. Paid says that there are two things which
Maitland, Newman (Tracts for the Times, Xo. are to precede the Day of Christ, the oMotnao'ia.
33). Charles Maitland (Prophetic Interpretation). and the revelation of the Adversary; but he does
Others preferred looking upon him as long past, not say that these two things are contemporary.
and fixed upon one or another persecutor or heresi- On the contrary, though he does not directly ex-
arch as the man in whom the predictions as to press it, he implies that there was to be a succession
108 ANTICHRIST ANTICHRIST
of events. would seem, an unnamed and
First, it be allotted (Dan. vii. 12). It must blaspheme
to us unknown obstacle has to be removed then : against God, i. e. it must arrogate to itself or claim
was to follow the " Apostasy; " after this, the Ad- for creatures the honor due to God alone. 6 It
versary was to arise, and then was to come his de- must be an wonder and worship to the
object of
struction. We need hardly say that the word world (Eev. xiii. 6). It must put forward unblush-
"apostasy," as ordinarily used, does pot give the ing claims in behalf of itself, and be full of its
exact meaning of 7; airoffTaaia. The A. V. has own perfections (Rev. xiii. 5). At a certain period
most correctly rendered the original by " falling in its history it must put itself under the guid-
away," having only failed of entire exactness by ance of Rome (Rev. xviii. 3), and remain ridden
omitting to give the value of the article." An by her until the destruction of the latter (Rev.
open and unblushing denial and rejection of all be- xviii. 2); its own existence being still prolonged
lief, which is implied in our "apostasy," is not im- until the coming of Christ in glory (Rev. xix,. 20).
plied in knoaraaia. It means one of two things: To satisfy the requirements of St. Paul's descrip-
(1) Political defection (den. xiv. -1; 2 Chr. xiii. 6; tion, its essential features must be a falling away
Acts v. 37); (2) Religious defection (Acts xxi. 21; from the true faith (2 Thess. ii. 3 1 Tim. iv. 1 ;
),
1 Tim. iv. 1; Heb. iii. 12). The first is the com- and it must be further characterized by the specific
mon classical use of the word. The second is more qualities already transcribed from the Epistles to
usual in the N. T. Cyril of Jerusalem seems to Timothy.
understand the word rightly when he says in ref- The antitype may be found in the corrupted
erence to this passage: NOy oh iffrlv tj airocrraaia- Church of Christ, in so far as it was corrupted.
airtarriaav yap oi avdpuiroi rfjs 6p6?is iricrTtws The same body, in so far as it maintained the faith
. . aTtfaTfjffav yap oi avQpwwoi dnrb tT/s aAT]- and love, was the bride and the spouse, and, in so
.
jUt'AAei TrpocrSoKao-dat 6 exdpos (St. Cyril. Catech. raaia, just as Jerusalem of old was at once Sion
xv. 9, Up. p. 228, Paris, 1720). And St. Am- the beloved city and Sodom the bloody city the —
brose, " A vera religione plerique lapsi errore descis- Church of God and the Synagogue of Satan. Ac-
cent" {Coiiim. in Luc. xx. 20). This "falling cording to this view, the three and a half times of
away " implies persons who fall away, the airocrTa- the Beast's continuance (Rev. xiii. 5), and of the
cria consists of aw6o-Tarai. Supposing the exist- Bride's suffering in the wilderness (Rev. xii. 6),
ence of an organized religious body, some of whom would necessarily be conterminous, for the perse-
should fall away from the true faith, the persons so cuted and the persecutors would be the faithful and
falling away would be aTToVraTcu, though still the unfaithful members of the same body. These
formally unsevered from the religious body to which times would have commenced when the Church
they belonged, and the religious body itself, while lapsed from her purity and from her first love into
from one side and in respect to its faithful members unfaithfulness to God, exhibited especially in idol-
it would retain its character and name as a relig- atry and creature-worship. It is of the nature of
ous body, might yet from another side and in a religious defection to grow up by degrees. We
respect to its other members be designated an should not therefore be able to lay the finger on
awoffTaaia. It is such a corrupted religious body any special moment at which it commenced. St.
as this that St. Paul seems to mean by the cbroff- Cyril of Jerusalem considered that it was already
raaia which he foretells in the Epistle to flie Thes- existing in his time. "Now," he says, "is the
salonians. In the Epistles to Timothy he describes airoo-rao-lu, for men have fallen away (airearrio-av)
this religious defection by some of its peculiar from the right faith. This then is the aTvoffTaaia,
characteristics. These are, seducing spirits, doc- and we must begin to look out for the enemy already ;
trines of demons, hypocritical lying, a seared con- he has begun to send his forerunners, that the prey
science, a forbidding of marriage and of meats, a may be ready for him at his coming " (Catech. xv.
form of godliness without the power thereof (1 9). It was at the Second Council of Nice that the
Tim. iv. 1; 2 Tim. iii. 5). It has been usual, as Church formally committed itself for the first time
we have seen, to identify the Beast of the Apoc- (a. d. 787) by the voice of a General Council to
alypse with St. Paul's Man of Sin. It is impos- false doctrine and idolatrous practice. The after
sible, as we have said, to do so. But it is possible, acquiescence in the Hildebrandine theory of the
and more than possible, to identify the Beast and Papal supremacy would be typified by the Beast
the aKoarairia. Can we find any thing which taking the woman who represents the seven-hilled
will serve as the antitype of both ? In order to be city on its back as its guide and director. From
the antitype of St. John's Beast it must be a the twelfth to the sixteenth century, and partially
polity, arising, not immediately, but shortly, after to the present day, this Hildebrandine idea has
the dissolution of the Roman Empire, gaining reigned over and has been the governing spirit of
great influence in the world, and getting the mas- the Corrupted Church. The fall of Babylon, i. e.
tery over a certain number of those nationalities of Rome, would be as yet future, as well as the still
which grew out of that empire (Dan. vii.
like itself subsequent destruction of the Corrupted Church,
24). It must
three and a half times, i. e.
last on the day of the coming of Christ. The period of
nearly twice as long as the empire of Assyria, or the three and a half times would continue down to
Persia, or Grecia, to which only two times seem to the final moment that this destruction takes place.
« For the force of the article, see Bp. Middleton in x. 33). There was nothing in our Lord's words which
loc. (
Gk. Art. p. 382, Camb. 1833). the most bitter malignity could have called blasphe-
b The word « blasphemy " has come to bear a sec- mous in the later sense which the word has come to
ondary meaning, which it does not bear in Scripture. bear. It is of course in the Scriptural, not in the
Schleusner (in vac) rightly explains it, Dicere et facere modern, sense that St. John attributes blasphemy to
qitibi/s majestas Dei violator. The Jews accused our the Beast. (See Wordsworth, On the Apocalypse, p.
Lord of blasphemy because He claimed divine power 528.)
and the divine attributes (Matt. ix. 2, xxvi. 64 John ;
ANTICHRIST ANTICHRIST 109
VII. The Apocdyptic False Prophe t. — There horror of the reign of the Antichrist. Hence also
is a second Apocalyptic Beast the Beast from the
: the special sufferings of the faithful believers until
Earth (Rev. xiii. 11), or the False Prophet (Rev. Christ himself once again appeared to vindicate the
xix. 20). Can we identify this Beast either with cause of truth and liberty and religion.
the individual Antichrist of the Epistles or with The sum of Scripture teaching with regard to
the corrupt polity of the Apocalypse? We were the Antichrist, then, appears to be as follows. Al-
compelled to regard the First Beast as a polity by ready in the times of the Apostles there was the
its being identical with that which clearly is a pol- mystery of iniquity, t ho spirit of Antichrist, at
ity, the Little Horn of Daniel. There is no such work. It embodied itself in various shapes in the —
necessity here, and there is no reason for regarding Gnostic heretics of St. John's 'lays, in the Jewish
the Second Beast as a polity, beyond the fact of its impostors who preceded the fall of Jerusalem, in
being described under a similar figure to that by all heresiarchs and unbelievers, especially those
which a polity had been just previously described. whose heresies had a tendency to deny the incar-
This presumption is more than counterbalanced by nation of Christ, and in the great persecutors who
the individualizing title of the False Prophet which from time to time afflicted the Church. But this
he bears (Rev. xvi. 13, xix. 20). His character- Antichristian spirit was then, and is still, diffused.
istics are —(1) "doing great wonders, so that he Tt. had not, and it has not yet, gathered itself into
maketh fire to come down from heaven on the the one person in whom it will be one day com-
earth in the sight of men" (Rev. xiii. 13). This pletely and fully manifested. There was something
power of miracle-working, w e should note, is not
7
which prevented the open manifestation of the
attributed by St. John to the First Beast; but it is Antichrist in the Apostles' days which they spoke
one of the chief signs of St. Paul's Adversary, of by word of mouth, but were unwilling to name
"whose coming is with all power and signs and in letters. What this obstacle was, or is, we can-
lying wonders" (2 Thess. ii. 9). (2) "He de- not now know. The general opinion of the early
ceiveth them that dwell on the earth by the means writers and fathers is that it was the power of
of those miracles which he had power to do in the secular law existing in the Roman Empire. The
sight of the Beast " (Rev. xiii. 14). •' He wrought Roman Empire fell, and upon its fall, and in con-
miracles with which he deceived them that received sequence of its fall, there arose a secularization and
the mark of the Beast and worshipped the image corruption of the Church, which would not have
of the Beast " (Rev. xix. 20). In like manner, no been so secularized and corrupted had it been kept
special power of beguiling is attributed to the First in check by the jealousy of the imperial power.
Beast but the Adversary is possessed of " all de- The secularization and corruption increasing, the
:
ceivableness of unrighteousness in them that perish Church, which from one point of view and in re-
because they received not the love of the truth that spect to some of its members was considered as the
they might be saved" (2 Thess. ii. 10). (3) He Church of Christ, from another point of view and
has horns like a lamb, i. e. he bears an outward in respect to others of its members, came to he
resemblance to the Messiah (Rev. xiii. 11) and the regarded as no better than an anoffraaia.
; Time
Adversary sits in the temple of God showing him- passing on, the corrupt element, getting still more
self that 'he is God (2 Thess. ii. 4). (4) His title the mastery, took the Papacy on its back and gave
is The False Prophet, 6 "VivdoTrpo<pr)T7]s (Rev. xvi. itself up to be directed from Rome. So far we
13, xix. 20); and our Lord, whom Antichrist speak of the past. It would appear further that
counterfeits, is emphatically 6 TlpotprjTris. The there is to be evolved from the womb of the Cor-
\l/ev5oTrpo<priTai of Matt. xxiv. 24 are the forerun- rupt Church, whether after or before the fall of
ners of 6 Vev$oirpo(pr)Tris, as John the Baptist of Rome does not appear, an individual Antichrist,
the True Prophet. On the whole, it would seem who, being himself a scoffer and contemner of all
that if the Antichrist appears at all in the Book of religion, will yet act as the patron and defender of
the Revelation it is by this Second Beast or the the Corrupt Church, and compel men to submit to
False Prophet that he is represented. If this be her sway by the force of the secular arm and by
so, it follows that he is an individual person who means of bloody persecutions. He will unite the
will at some future time arise, who will ally himself old foes superstition and unbelief hi a combined
with the Corrupted Church, represent himself as attack on liberty and religion. He will have,
her minister and vindicator (Rev. xiii. 12), compel finally, a power of performing lying miracles and
men by violence to pay reverence to her (xiii. 14), beguiling souls, being the embodiment of Satanic
breathe a new life into her decaying frame by his as distinct from brutal wickedness. How lout; his
use of the secular arm in her behalf (xiii. 15), for- power will last we are wholly ignorant, as the three
bidding civil rights to those who renounce her au- and a half times do not refer to his reign (as is
thority and reject her symbols (xiii. 17), and putting usually imagined), but to the continuance of the
them to death by the sword (xiii. 15), while per- a-KocTTaaia. We
only know that his continuance
sonally he is an atheistical blasphemer (1 John ii. will be short. At last he will be destroyed to-
22) and sums up in himself the evil spirit of un- gether with the Corrupt Church, in so far as it is
belief which has been working in the world from corrupt, at the glorious appearance of Christ, which
St. Paul's days to his (2 Thess. ii. 7). That it is will usher in the millennial triumph of the faithful
possible lor a professed unbeliever and atheist to and hitherto persecuted members of the Church.
make himself the champion of a corrupt system of (B.) There are points which require further elu-
religion, and to become on political grounds as cidation :
—
violent a persecutor in its behalf as the The meaning of tin- mime Antichrist.
most 1. Mr.
fanatical bigot could be, has been proved by events Greswell argues at some length that the only cor-
which have already occurred, and which might rect reading of the word is Counterfeit-Christ or
again occur on a more gigantic and terrible scale. Pro-Christo, and denies that the idea of Adversary
The Antichrist would thus combine the forces, gen- to Christ is involved in the word. Mr. Greswell's
erally and happily antagonistic, of infidelity and authority is great; but he has been in this case too
superstition. In this would consist the special hastv in drawing his conclusion from the instances
110 ANTICHRIST ANTICHRIST
which he has cited. It is true that " avri is not that they were to rule forever in the world " (Bib.
synonymous with /caTa," but it is impossible tc re- Pair. Max. viii. 1018; see Wordsworth, On the
sist the evidence which any Greek Lexicon supplies Apocalypse, p. 343). It would appear then that
that the word avri, both in composition and by the obstacle was probably the Roman Empire, and
itself, will bear the sense of " opponent to." It is on its being taken out of the way there did occur
probable that both senses are combined in the word the "falling away." Zion the beloved city became
Antichrist, as in the word Antipope, which is very Sodom the bloody city —
still Zion though Sodom,
exact in its resemblance, but the primary notion still Sodom though Zion. According to the view
which it conveys would seem rather to be that of given above, this would be the description of the
antagonism than rivalry. See Greswell, Exposition Church in her present estate, and this will con-
of the Parables, vol. i. p. 372 ff. Wordsworth, ; tinue to be our estate, until the time, times and
On the Ajwcalypse, p. 512. half time, during which the evil element is allowed
2. The meaning of to kclt4xov. What is that to remain within her, shall have come to their end.
thing which withholdeth (2 Thess. ii. 6)? and 3. What is the Apocalyptic Babylon? There
why is it apparently described in the following verse is not a doubt that by Babylon is figured Rome.
as a person (6 kot4x^>v) ? There is a remarkable The " seven mountains on which the woman sit-
unanimity among the early Christian writers on teth" (Rev. xvii. 9), and the plain declaration,
this point. They explain the obstacle, known to " the woman which thou sawest is that great city
the Thessalonians but unknown to us, to be the which reigneth " (i. e. in St. John's days) " over
Roman Empire. Thus Tertullian, Be Resur. Cam., the kings of the earth " (Rev. xvii. 18), are too
c. 24, and Apol.,
32; St. Chrysostom and The- strong evidence to be gainsaid.
c. There is no com-
ophylact on 2 Thess. ii. Hippolytus, De Antichrist", mentator of note, ancient or modern, Romanist or
;
e. 49; St. Jerome on Dan. vii. St. Augustine, Protestant, who does not acknowledge so much.
;
Be Civ. Bei, xx. 19; St. Cyril of Jerusalem, But tchat Rome is it that is thus figured ? There
Catech. xv. 6 (see Dr. II. Mores Works, bk. ii. c. are four chief opinions: (1) Rome Pagan; (2)
19, p. 690; Mede, bk. iii. eh. xiii. p. 656; Alford, Rome Papal; (3) Rome having hereafter become
Gk. Test. iii. 57; Wordsworth, On the Apocalypse, infidel; (4) Rome as a type of the world. That
p. 520). Theodoret and Theodore of Mopsuestia it old Pagan Rome is the view ably contended
is
Herder and Eichhorn, the chief priest Ananus and (Bossuet): Ewald constructs "the Roman Cassar"
Jesus slain by the Zealots Moses Stuart, the sick
; in Hebrew, and Benary " the Caesar Nero " in the
and old who did not fly from Jerusalem on its cap- same language. Any one who wishes to know the
ture by the Romans; Maurice, the priest Jeshua many attempts that have been made to solve the
and the judge Zerubbabel as representing Law and difficulty —
attempts seldom even relieved by in-
Sacrifice; Lee understands by them the Law and genuity —
may consult Wolfius, Calmet, ClarUe,
the Gospel; Tichonius and Bede, the two Testa- Wrangham, Thorn [Thorn?]." Probably the prin-
ments; others the two Sacraments. All that we ciple on which the explanation goes is false. Men
are able to say is this The time of their witness-
: have looked for Antichrist among their foes, and
ing is 1200 days, or a time, times, and half a time. have tortured the name of the person fixed upon
This is the same period as that during which the into being of the value of 666. Hence Latiuus
airoffTaaia. and the power of the Beast continue. under the Roman Emperors, Mohammed at the time
They would seem therefore to represent all those of the Saracenic successes, Luther at the Reforma-
who in the midst of the faithless are found faithful tion, Bonaparte at the French Revolution. The
throughout this time. Their being described as name to be found is not that of Antichrist, but the
"candlesticks" woidd lead us to regard them per- name of the Beast, which, as we have argued, is
haps as Churches. The place of their temporary not the same as Antichrist. It is probable that a
death, " the great city, which spiritually is called sounder method of interpretation is adopted by Mr.
Sodom and Egypt, where also our Lord was cru- Isaac Williams, Dr. Wordsworth, and Mr. Maurice.
cified," would appear to be Jerusalem, as typifying There is clearly a symbolical meaning in the num-
the Corrupted Church. The Beast that kills them bers used in the Apocalypse; and they would ex-
is not Antichrist, but the faithless Church. plain the three sixes as a threefold declension from
5. The Number of the Beast. Nothing what- the holiness and perfection symbolized by the num-
ever is known about it. No conjecture that has ber seven. We
will add an ingenious suggestion
been made is worth mentioning on the ground of by an anonymous writer, and will leave the subject
its being likely in any the least degree to approx- in the same darkness in which it is probably des-
imate to the truth. The usual method of seeking tined to remain: "At his first appearance," he
the solution of the difficulty is to select the name writes, "he will be hailed with acclamations and
of an individual and to count the numerical values hosannahs as the redeemer of Israel, another Judas
of its constituent letters. The extravagant con- Maccabaeus: and either from the initials of his
clusions which have been made to result from this name, or from the initial letter of some scriptural
system have naturally brought it into disrepute, motto adopted by him, an artificial name will be
but it is certain that it was much more usual, formed, a cipher of his real name. And that ab-
at the time that St. John wrote, to make calcula- breviated name or cipher will be ostentatiously dis-
tions in this manner than most persons are now played as their badge, their watchword, their shib-
aware. On this principle Mercury or llnuth was boleth, their ' Maccabi,' by all his adherents.
invoked under the name of 1218, Jupiter under This artificial name, this mark or symbol of the
that of 717, the Sun of 008 or XII. Mr. Elliott realname, will be equal by Gematria to 666
quotes an enigma from the Sibylline verses in some {Jewish Missionary, p. 52, 1848).
way expressing the name of God, strikingly illus- (C.) Jewish and Mohammedan traditions re-
trative of the challenge put forth by St. John, and specting Antichrist. The name given by the Jews
perhaps formed in part on its model:
to Antichrist is (D^^P'IS) Armillus. There are
"Evvia ypannaT e\ia TerpatrvAAajSds eljui poet p\e.
• •
several Rabbinical books in which a circumstantial
Ai Tpeis at npiiraL Svo yp6.p.p.aT exovaiv eKaoTT), account is given of him, such as the " Book of
*H Aoi7T7j fie Ta Aoi7ra Kal e'uriv a<biova to. nevre. Zerubbabel," and others printed at Constantinople.
Tov TraPTO? 6"
dpidfxov eKarovrdSes el&i Sis 6kt<o Buxtorf gives an abridgment of their contents in
Kat Tpets Tpitro'eKaSes, uvv y enrd •
yvovs Si tis ei/ui, his Lexicon, under the head "Armillus," and in
Ovk afivr)TOS e<77) Sei'rjs Trap' ejuot ys cro<f>Cr)S.
the fiftieth chapter of his Sytiagoga Judaica
Sibyll. Orac p. 171, Paris, 1599.
(p. 717). The name is derived from Isaiah xi. 4,
supposed by Mr. Clarke to be &ebs awrrtp. The where the Targum gives " By the word of his
only conjecture with respect to the number of the mouth the wicked Armillus shall die," for "with
Beast, made on this principle, which is worthy of the breath of his lips shall he slay the wicked."
mention is one which dates as early as the time of There will, say the Jews, be twelve [ten] sii,'ns of
Irenaeus, and has held its ground down to the time the coming of the Messiah : —
1. The appearance
of Dean Alford and Canon Wordsworth. Trenails of three apostate kings who have fallen away from
suggests, though he does not adopt, the word the faith, but in the sight of men appear to be
Aaretvos. Dr. Wordsworth (1860) thinks it worshippers of the true God. 2. A terrible heat of
and Dean Alford (1861) has "the strong- the sun. 3. A dew of blood (Joel ii. 30). 4. A
possible,
no other can be found approach- healing dew for the pious. 5. A darkness will be
est persuasion that
ing so near to a complete solution." Of other cast upon the sun (Joel ii. 31) for thirty days (Is.
names the chief favorites have been Teirav xxiv. 22). 6. God will give universal power to
« * Dr. David Thom, of Liverpool, is the author of a 398), which may well be regarded as a curiosity of lit
work entitled « The Number and Names of the Apoca- erature. A.
lyptic Beasts, Part I." (Lond. 1848, 8vo, pp. xxxix..
112 ANTICHRIST ANTICHRIST
the Romans for nine months, during which time children's children shall be born to him, and then
the Roman chieftain will afflict the Israelites; at he shall die like other men, and his sons shall reign
the end of the nine months God will raise up the over Israel after him, as it is written, " He shall
Messiah Ben-Joseph, that is, the Messiah of the prolong his days" (Is. liii. 10), which Rambam
tribe of Joseph, named Nehemiah, who will defeat explains to mean " He shall live long, but he too
the Roman chieftain and slay him. 7. Then there shall die in great glory, and his son shall reign in
will arise Armillus, whom the Gentiles or Chris- his stead, and his son's sons in succession " (Bux-
tians call Antichrist. He will be born of a marble torfii Synagoga JudaiCa, p. 717, Basil. 1661 [and
statue in one of the churches in Rome. He will Eisenmenger, hntdecktes -I >«h allium, ii. 008-717]).
go to the Romans and will profess himself to be The Mohammedan traditions are an adaptation
their Messiah and their God. At once the Romans of Christian prophecy and Jewish legend without
will believe in him and accept him for their khigj any originality or any beauty of their own. They
and will love him and cling to him. Having made too have their signs which are to precede the final
the whole world subject to him, he will say to the consummation. They are divided into the greater
IdmnsSans (i. e. Christians), "Bring me the law and lesser signs. Of the greater signs the first is
which I have given you." They will bring it with the rising of the sun from the west (cf. Matt. xxiv.
their book of prayers ;and he will accept it as his 29). The next is the appearance of a Beast from
own, and will exhort them to persevere in their the earth, sixty cubits high, bearing the staff of
belief of him. Then he will send to Nehemiah, and Moses, and the seal of Solomon, with which he will
command the Jewish Law to be brought him, and inscribe the word "Believer" on the face of the
proof to be given from it that he is God. Nehe- faithful, and "Unbeliever" on all who haye not
miah will go before him, guarded by 30,000 war- accepted Islamism (comp. Rev. xiii.). The third
riors of the tribe of Ephraim, and will read, "lam sign is the capture of Constantinople, while the
the Lord thy God thou shalt have none other gods
: spoil of which is being divided, news will come of
but me." Armillus will say that there are no such the appearance of Antichrist (Al Dajjal), and every
words in the Law, and will command the Jews to man will return to his own home. Antichrist will
confess him to be God as the other nations had con- be blind of one eye and deaf of one ear, and will
fessed him. But Nehemiah will give orders to his have the name of Unbeliever written on his forehead
followers to seize and bind him. Then Armillus (Rev. xiii.). It is he that the Jews call Messiah
in rage and fury will gather all his people in a deep Ben-David, and say that he will come in the last
valley to fight with Israel, and in that battle the times and reign over sea and land, and restore to
Messiah Ben-Joseph will fall, and the angels will them the kingdom. He will continue forty days,
bear away his body and carry him to the resting- one of these days being equal to a year, another to
place of the Patriarchs. Then the Jews will be a month, another to a week, the rest being days of
east out by all nations, and suffer afflictions such ordinary length. He will devastate all other places,
as have not been from the beginning of the world, but will not be allowed to enter Mecca and Medina,
and the residue of them will fly into the desert, and which will be guarded by angels. Lastly, he will
will remain there forty and five days, during which be killed by Jesus at the gate of Lud. For when
time all the Israelites who are not worthy to see news is received of the appearance of Antichrist,
the Redemption shall die. 8. Then the great angel Jesus will come down to earth, alighting on the
Michael will rise and blow three mighty blasts of a white tower at the east of Damascus, and will slay
trumpet. At the first blast there shall appear the him: Jesus will then embrace the Mohammedan re-
true Messiah Ben-David and the prophet Elijah, ligion, marry a wife, and leave children after him,
and they will manifest themselves to the Jews in having reigned in perfect peace and security, after
the desert, and all the Jews throughout the world the death of Antichrist, for forty years. (See Po-
shall hear the sound of the trump, and those that cocke, Porta Mosis, p. 258, Oxon. 1655 and Sale, ;
have been carried captive into Assyria shall be Koran, Preliminary Discourse.)
gathered together; and with great gladness they Literature. — On the subject of the Antichrist
shall come to Jerusalem. Then Armillus will raise and of the Apocalyptic visions the following is a
a great army of Christians and lead them to Jeru- condensed of the writers most deserving of at-
list
salem to conquer the new king. But God shall say tention: —S. Cyril of Jerusalem, Catech. xv. 220,
to Messiah, " Sit thou on my right hand," ami to Paris; 1720. S. Jerome, Eseplan. in Daniel, v. 017,
the Israelites, " Stand still and see what God will Veron. 1734. These two writers are expounders
work for you to-day." Then God will pour down of the Patristic view. Andreas, < 'omm. in Apoc.
sulphur and fire from heaven (Ez. xxxviii. 22), and Bibl. Patr. Max. v. 590. Aretas, Comm. in Apoc.
the impious Armillus shall die, and the impious Bibl. Patr. Max. ix. 741. Abbas Joachim (founder
Iduma-ans (/'. e. Christians), who have destroyed the of the Antipapal school), Exp. Apoc. Ycnet. 1519.
house of our God and have led us away into cap- Ribeira (founder of the later school of Futurists),
tivity, shall perish in misery, and the Jews shall Coram, in Apoc. Salam. 1591. Alcasar (founder
avenge themselves upon them, as it is written: of the Prseterist school), Vestigatio Arcani Sens&s
" The house of Jacob shall be a fire, and the house in Apoc. Antv. 1614. Parens, Comm. in Apoc.
of Joseph a flame, and the house of Esau (i. e. the Heidelb. 1618. Cornelius a Lapide, Comm. in
Christians) for stubble, and they shall kindle in Apoc. Antv. 1027. Mede, Claws Apocalypt. Can-
them and devour them: there shall not be any re- tab. 1632. Bossuet, D
Apocalypse, a/vec time Expli-
maining of the house of Esau, for the Lord hath cation, (Euvres, vol.
xxiii. Vitringa, Anacrisis
spoken it" (Obad. 18.) 9. On the second blast of Apocalyps. Amst. 1719. Daubuz, Comm. on liec.
the trumpet the tombs shall be opened, and Messiah Loud. 1720. Hug, Kinh itmg in die Schrijlen des
Ben-David shall raise Messiah Ben-Joseph from the Neuen Test. Stuttg. 1821. Bengel, ErMarte Off-
dead. 10. The ten enbarung Johannis, Stuttg. 1834. Herder, Johan-
tribes shall be led to Paradise,
and shall celebrate the wedding-feast of the Messiah. ms Ojf'i n/jnr img, Werke, xii. Stuttg. 1827. Eich-
And the Messiah shall choose a bride amongst the horn, Comm. in Apoc. (Jotting. 1791. Ewald,
fairest of the daughters of Israel, and children and Comm. in Apoc. Lips. 1828. Liicke, Vollstdndige
ANTIOCH ANTIOCH 113
Einleitung in die Offenbarung und die apocalypt. tioch (ibid. xi. 19). It was from Jerusalem that
Literatur, Comm. iv., Bonn, 1832, [2e Aufl. 1852.] Agabus and the other prophets, who foretold the
Tracts for the Times, v. No. 83, Lond. 1839. famine, came to Antioch (ibid. xi. 27, 28); and
Greswell, Exposition of the Parables, vol. i. Oxf. Barnabas and Saul were consequently sent on a
1834. Moses Stuart, Comm. on the Apoc. [Ando- mission of charity from the latter city to the former
ver, 1845, repr.J Edinb. 1847. Wordsworth, On (ibid. xi. 30, xii. 25). It was from Jerusalem again
the Apocalypse. Lond. 1849 and Gk. Test. Lond. that the Judaizers came, who disturbed the church
;
18G0. Elliott Norm Lond. 1851. at Antioch (ibid. xv. 1); and it was at Antioch
Apocalyjrticce,
Clissold. Apocalyptical Interpretation (Swedenbor- that St. Paul rebuked St. Peter for conduct into
glan), Lond. 1845. C. Maitland, Prophetic Inter- which he had been betrayed through the influence
pretation, Loud. 1849. Williams, The Apocalypse, of emissaries from Jerusalem (Gal. ii. 11, 12).
Lond. 1852. Alford, Gk. Test. {Proleg. in Thess. The chief interest of Antioch, however, is con-»
et in Apoc), Lond. 1856 and 1861. Ellicott, nected with the progress of Christianity among the
Comm. in Thess. Lond. 1858. F. M. heathen. Here the first Gentile church was
* On this important topic the reader may con- founded (Acts xi. 20, 21); here the disciples of
sult also the following writers: Corrodi, Krit.Gesch. Jesus Christ were first called Christians (xi. 26);
des Chiliasmus, ii. 400-444, Frankf. u. Leipz. 178.1; here St. Paul exercised (so far as is distinctly re-
Neander, Pflanzung, u. s. w. i. 346, ii. 630, 640, corded) his first systematic ministerial -work (xi.
4te Aufl. Hamb. 1847, or pp. 200, 366, 372 of E. ±2-Hj; see xiv. 26-28; also xv. 35 and xviii. 23);
G. Robinson's revised ed. of Eyland's trans., N. Y. hence he started at the beginning of his first mis-
1865 also his Der erste Brief Johannis, on ch. ii. 18, sionary journey (xiii. 1-3), and hither he returned
;
22, 23, iv. 1-3, trans, by Mrs. Conant, N. Y. 1852; (xiv. 26). So again after the apostolic council (tha
Diisterdieek, Johan. Briefe, i. 308-332, Gott. 1852; decrees of which were specially addressed to the
Maurice, Unity of the N. T., Camb. 1854, pp. Gentile converts at Antioch, xv. 23), he began and
609-614; Lange in Herzog's Real-Encyklopadie i. ended his second missionary journey at this place
,
371 Lechler, Das apost. u. d. nachapost. Zeitnlter, (xv. 36, xviii. 22). This too was the starting-point
;
2e Aufl. Stuttg. 1857, pp. 132 ff., 227 ff., 267; of the third missionary journey (xviii. 23), which
Ewald, Sendschreiben des Apostels Paulus, pp. 25- was brought to a termination by the imprisonment
31, Gott. 1857; Luneniann on 2 Thess. ii. 1-12, at Jerusalem and Csesarea." Though St. Paul was
and Huther on 1 John ii. 18, in Meyer's Komm. never again, so far as we know, at Antioch, it did
iiber das N. T. ; Jowett, Excursus on " The Man not cease to be an important centre for Christian
of Sin," in his Epistles of St. Paul, i. 178-194, progress; but it does not belong to this place to
2d ed., Lond. 1859 B-oehmer, Ed., Zur Lehre vom trace its history as a patriarchate, and its connec-
;
The Apocalypse analyzed and explained, in the Antioch was founded in the year 300 b. c, by
Christian Examiner for May, 1860, lxviii. 325-357 Seleucus Nicator, with circumstances of consider-
Bleek, Einl. in das N. T., pp. 615-618, and Vor- able display, which were afterwards embellished by
lesungen iiber die Apokalypse, Berl. 1862; Ewald, fable. The situation was well chosen, both for mil-
Die johan. Schriften ubersezt u. erkliirt, Bd. ii., itary and commercial purposes. Jews were settled
Gott. 1862; Volkmar, Comm. zur Offenbarung there from the first in large numbers, were governed
Johannes, Zurich, 1862. H. and A. by their own ethnarch, and allowed to have the
toxeia). L In Syria. The same political privileges
AN'TIOCH (' Apt with the Greeks (Joseph.
capital of the Greek kings of Syria, and afterwards Ant. TJi. 3, § 1; c. Ap. ii. 4). Antioch grew under
the residence of the Roman governors of the prov- the successive Seleucid kings, till it became a city
ince which bore the same name. This metropolis of great extent and of remarkable beauty. Some
was situated where the chain of Lebanon, running of the most magnificent buildings were on the
northwards, and the chain of Taurus, running east- island. One feature, which seems to have been
wards, are brought an abrupt meeting. Here
to
—
a vast
characteristic of the great Syrian cities
the Orontes breaks through the mountains; and with colonnades, intersecting the whole from
street
whence the city was sometimes called Antioch by which we are concerned in the N. T. By Pompey
Daphne, to distinguish it from other cities of the it had been made a free city, and such it continued
same name. till the time of Antoninus Pius. The early Emper-
No city, after Jerusalem, is so intimately con- ors raised there some large and important struct-
nected with the history of the apostolic church. ures, such as aqueducts, amphitheatres, and baths.
Certain points of close association between these Herod the Great contributed a road and a colon-
two cities, as regards the progress of Christianity, nade (Joseph. Ant. xvi. 5, § 3; B. J., i. 21, § 11).
, may be noticed in the first place. One of the seven Here should be mentioned that the citizens of An-
deacons, or almoners appointed at Jerusalem, was tioch under the Empire were noted for scurrilous
'Nicolas, a proselyte of Antioch (Acts vi. 5). The wit and the invention of nicknames. This perhaps
Christians, who were dispersed from Jerusalem at was the origin of the name by which the disciples
the death of Stephen, preached the gospel at An- of Jesus Christ are designated, and which was
a *It illustrates signally the contrasts of history, now one of the foreign fields to which missionaries are
that the Antioch of the N. T. from which the first sent by the churches of America. H
missionaries to the heathen were sent forth, is itself
8
114 ANTIOCH ANTIOCH
Antioch.
probably given by Romans to the despised sect, clearly pointed out by Strabo in the following
and not by Christians to themselves. words (xii. 577): — "In the district of Phrygia
The great authority for all that is known of called Paroreia, a certain niountain-ridge,
there is
scribed in Chesney's account of the Euphrates Ex- latter (which has a Roman colony) is on a height."
pedition, where also is given a view of a gateway The relations of distance also between Antioch and
which still bears the name of St. Paul. One error, other towns are known by the Peutingerian table.
however, should be pointed out, which has found Its site, however, has only recently been ascertained.
its way into these volumes from Calmet, namely, It was formerly supposed to be Ak-sher, which is
Jerome's erroneous identification of Antioch with now known Philomelium on the north side of
to be
the Riblah of the Old Testament. the ridge. Even Winer (1847) gives this view,
the difficulties of which were seen by Leake, and
previously by Mannert. Mr. Arundell, the British
chaplain at Smyrna, undertook a journey in 1833
for the expresspurpose of identifying the Pisidian
Antioch, and he was perfectly successful (Arundell's
Asia Minor, ch. xii., xiii., xiv.). The ruins are
very considerable. This discovery was fully con-
firmed by Mr Hamilton (Res. in Asia Minor, vol.
i. ch. 27). Antioch corresponds to Valobatch,
which is distant from Ak-sher six hours over the
mountains.
This city, like the Syrian Antioch, was founded
by Seleucus Nicator. Under the Romans it became
a colonia, and was also called Caesarea, as we learn
from Pliny (v. 24). The former fact is confirmed
by the Latin inscriptions and other features of the
coins of the place the latter by inscriptions dis-
;
Mt. Taurus," and to pay in successive installments carry to Antiochus the price of his office, sup-
an enormous sum of money to defray the expenses planted Jason by offering the king a larger bribe,
of the war (15,000 Euboic talents: App. Syr. 38). and was himself appointed high priest, while Jason
This last condition led to his ignominious death. was obliged to take refuge among the Ammonites
In b. c. 187 he attacked a rich temple of Belus in (2 Mace. iv. 23-26). From these circumstances
Elymais, and was slain by the people who rose in its and from the marked honor with which Antiochus
defense (Strab. xvi. 744; Just, xxxii. 2). Thus was received at Jerusalem very early in his reign
" he stumbled and fell, and was not found " (Dan. (c. b. c. 173; 2 Mace. iv. 22), it appears that he
xi. 19). found no difficulty in regaining the border prov-
The policy of Antiochus towards the Jews was inces which had been given as the dower of his sis-
liberal and conciliatory. He not only assured to ter Cleopatra to Ptol. Epiphanes. But his ambition
them perfect freedom and protection in the exercise led him still further, and he undertook four cam-
of their worship, but according to Josephus (Ant. paigns against Egypt, b. c. 171, 170, 109, 168,
xii. 3, 3), in consideration of their great sufferings with greater success than had attended his prede-
and services in his behalf, he made splendid contri- cessor, and the complete conquest of the country
butions towards the support of the temple ritual, was prevented only by the interference of the Bo-
and gave various immunities to the priests and mans (Dan. xi. 24; 1 Mace. i. 16 ff; 2 Mace. v.
other inhabitants of Jerusalem. At the same time 11 ff). The course of Antiochus was everywhere
imitating the example of Alexander and Seleucus, marked by the same wild prodigality as had sig-
and appreciating the influence of their fidelity and nalized his occupation of the throne (Dan. I. c).
unity, he transported two thousand families of Jews The consequent exhaustion of his treasury, and the
from Mesopotamia to Lydia and Phrygia, to repress armed conflicts of the rival high priests whom he
the tendency to revolt which was manifested in had appointed, furnished the occasion for an assault
those provinces (Joseph. Ant. 1. c). upon Jerusalem on his return from his second
Two sons of Antiochus occupied the throne after Egyptian campaign (b. c. 170), which he had prob-
him, Seleucus Philopator, his immediate successor, ably planned in conjunction with Ptol. Philometor,
and Antiochus IV., who gained the kingdom upon who was at that time in his power (Dan. xi. 26).
the assassination of his brother. B. F. W. The temple was plundered, a terrible massacre took
place, and a Phrygian governor was left with
Menelaus in charge of the city (2 Mace. v.
1-22; 1 Mace. i. 20-28). Two years after-
wards, at the close of the fourth Egyptian
expedition (Polyb. xxix. 1, 11; App. Syr.
66 of. Dan. xi. 29, 30), Antiochus detached
;
™wi
:
. . ,. . '
„™t;„ n fifteenth dav Syrians! set up
»
In field, two monojnums. Apollo, ,, i. a
naked, seated ««
on cortina, J of Cisleu l[the J > K.
[Simon], who was commissioned by Jason to the last great crisis in the history of the Jews be-
1
ANTIOCHUS IV. ANTIOCHUS VI. 117
fore the coming of our Lord. The prominence xi. 38 ff.; Ewald, Gesch. des Volkes Isr. iv. 340).
which is given to it in the book of Daniel fitly Confronted with such a persecutor the Jew realized
accords with its typical and representative character the spiritual power of his faith. The evils of hea-
(Dan. vii. 8, 25, viii. 11 ff.). The conquest of thendom were seen concentrated in a personal
Alexander had introduced the forces of Greek shape. The outward forms of worship became in-
thought and life into the Jewish nation,
which was already prepared for their operation
[Alexander]. For more than a century
and a half these forces had acted powerfully
both upon the faith and upon the habits of
the people; and the time was come when an
outward struggle alone could decide whether
Judaism was to be merged in a rationalized
Paganism, or to rise not only victorious from
the conflict, but more vigorous and more pure.
There were many symptoms which betokened
the approaching struggle. The position which Tetradrachm (Attic talent) of Antiochus TV. Epiphanes.
Judaea occupied on the borders of the conflict-
ing empires of Syria and Egypt, exposed obv - Head of Kin S> to n Sht Rev
: BA5IAEn2 ANTI-
-
Tetradrachm (Attic talent) of Antiochus VI. Gr. iii. 51). His day in the Greek cal-
endar is April 11. W. A. W.
Obv. Head of King, radiate, to right. Rev.
: : BASIAEfiS AN-
TIoXoY EII[I*ANo]Y2 AIoNYSoY. In field, TPY* (Try- AN'TIPAS. [Herod.]
phon;, and date ©HP (169 Mr. Seleucid.).
ANTIP'ATER ('AvriiraTpos : An-
success [Alexander Balas],
occupying Ascalon tipater), son of Jason, ambassador from the Jews
and Gaza, and reducing the country as far as Da- to the Lacedaemonians (1 Mace. xii. 16, xiv. 22).
mascus (1 Mace. xi. 60-2). He afterwards defeated
the troops of Demetrius at Hazor (1 Mace. xi. 67)
ANTIP'ATRIS ('AvTiVoTpjy). Our means
of identifying this town are due, partly to the for-
near Cadesh (v. 73); and repulsed a second attempt
tunate circumstance that the old Semitic name of
which he made to regain Palestine (1 Mace. xii.
the place has lingered among the present Arabic
24 ff.). Tryphon having now gained the supreme
population, and partly to a journey specially under-
power in the name of Antiochus, no longer con-
Dr. Eli Smith, for the purpose of illus-
cealed his design of usurping the crown. As a taken by
trating the night march of the soldiers who con-
first step he took Jonathan by treachery and put
veyed St. Paul from Jerusalem to Caesarea (Acts
him to death, b. c. 143 (1 Mace. xii. 40 ff); and
xxiii. 31). Dr. Robinson was of opinion, when
afterwards murdered the young king, and ascended
he published his first edition, that the road which
the throne (1 Mace. xiii. 31; Joseph. Ant. xiii. 5,
the soldiers took on this occasion led from Jerusa-
6; App. Syr. 68. Livy (Epit, 55) says incorrectly
lem to Caesarea by the pass of Betk-IIoron, and by
decern annos admodum habens .... Diod. ap.
Lydda, or Diospolis. This is the route which was
Midler, Fragm. ii. 19. Just, xxxvi. 1).
followed by Cestius Gallus, as mentioned by Jo-
B. F. W-
sephus (B. J. ii. 19, § 1); and it appears to be
ANTFOCHUS VII. SIDETES
(2.8W, identical with that given in the Jerusalem Itiner-
of Side, in Pamphylia: not from *T*^, a hunter: ary, according to which Antipatris is 42 miles from
Jerusalem, and 26 from Caesarea. Even on this
Plut. Apophth. p. 34; called also EwrejS^s, the
supposition it would have been quite possible for
pious, Joseph. Ant. xiii. 8, 2 Euseb. Chron. Arm.
;
metrius I. When his brother, Demetrius Nicator, day, to reach Caesarea on the next, and to start
after a rest, to return to (it is not said that
was taken prisoner (c. 141 b. c.) by Mithridates I. thence
they arrived at) their quarters at Jerusalem before
(Arsaces VI., 1 Mace. xiv. 1) king of Parthia, he
married his wife Cleopatra (App. Syi: 68; Just,
nightfall. But the difficulty is entirely removed by
xxxvi. 1), and obtained possession of the throne
Dr. Smith's discovery of a much shorter road, lead-
ing by Gophna direct to Antipatris. On this route
(137 b. c), having expelled the usurper Tryphon
(1 Mace. xv. 1 ff. Strab. xiv. p. 668).
; At first he met the Eoman pavement again and again, and
indeed says " he does not remember observing any-
he made a very advantageous treaty with Simon,
remains of a Roman road."
who was now '• high-priest and prince of the Jews," where before so extensive
Bibl. Sacra, vol. i. pp. 478-498 Life and
but when he grew independent of his help, he with- (See
;
Drous resistance (Joseph. Ant. xiii. 8; yet comp. xiii. 15, § 1; B. J. i. 4, § 7). At a later period
Porphyr. ap. Euseb. Chron. Arm, i. 349, muros he mentions the place again in connection with a
vrbis dtmolitur atque electissimos ecrum trucidat). military movement of Vespasian from Caesarea to-
Antiochus next turned his arms against the Par- wards Jerusalem (B. J. ix. 8, §-1). No remains
thians, and Hyrcanus accompanied him in the cam- of ancient Antipatris have been found but the ;
paign. But, after some successes, he was entirely ground has not been
\
fully explored. J. S. H.
ANTONIA APES 119
ANTO'NIA, a fortress buil£ by Herod on the Although, however, Aristotle perhaps
panzee, &c.
site of the more ancient Baris, on the N. W. of the
used these terms respectively in a definite sense, it
Temple, and so named by him after his friend An- by no means follows that they are so employed by
tonius. [JERUSALEM.] The word nowhere occurs other writers. The name iridriKot, for instance,
in the Bible. [The fortress is referred to, however, seems to have been sometimes used to denote some
in Acts xxi. 31 ft'.] species of Cynocephaius (see a Fragment of Simon-
ides in Schneider's Aniwl. ad Arist. Hist, Anim.
ANTOTHI'JAH (fTjnh?? [answers of
iii.76). The LXX. use of the word was in all
Jehovah] : 'laBlf, [Vat. AvcuOaiO nai
'AvaOwO Kal probability used in an extended sense as the repre-
ladeiv\] Alex. Avadwdia'- Anatliothia). Ben- A sentative of the Hebrew word Kaph, to denote any
jamite, one of the sons of Shashak (1 Chr. viii. 24). species of Quadrumanous Mammalia; Lichtenstein
W. A. W. conjectures that the Hebrew word represents some
ANTOTHITE, THE (Virion : b 'Ami-
kind of Diana monkeys, perhaps, Cereopitkecua
Diana ; but as this species is an inhabitant of
0a>0i [Vat. -9ei; Comp. 6 'Avadwd'tT-ns'-] Ana- Guinea, and unknown in Eastern Africa, it is not
thothites, Anathotites). A native of Anathoth animal denoted.
at all probable that this is the
(1 Chr. xi. 28, xii. 3). W. A. W.
In the engraving which represents the Litho-
A'NUB (3r\yj [bound together]: 'Eea>/3 strotum Pra?nestinum (that curious mosaic pave-
[Vat. EvvW,] Alex. E7WJ8; [Comp. 'Ayco/3:] ment found at Prameste), in Shaw's Travels (ii.
Anob). Son of Coz, and descendant of Judah, 294, 8vo ed.), is to be seen the figure of some
through Ashur the father of Teicoa (1 Chr. iv. 8). animal in a tree, with the word KHII1EN over it.
W. A. W. Of this animal Dr. Shaw says (312), " It is a
beautiful little creature, with a shaggy neck like the
A'NUS ('Avviovd [Alex. Avvovs ; Aid. Cal/ithnx, and shaped
;
exactly like those monkeys
'Avovs'] Daiutus), a Levite (1 Esdr. ix. 48).
that are commonly called Marmosets. The KHIITEN
[Bam.]
may therefore be the Ethiopian monkey, called by
APA'ME ('Airojur;: Apeme), concubine of Da- the Hebrews Kvuph, and by the Greeks KHITOS,
rius [and daughter of Bartacus] (1 Esdr. iv. 29). KH*OS, or KEinOS, from whence the Latin
APEI/LES ('AireAArjs), a Christian saluted
by St. Paul in Rom.
xvi. 10, and honored by the
designation 56ki/.ws 4u Xptarai- Origen (in he.)
suggests that he may have been identical with
Apollos but there seems no ground for supposing
;
tatio phUoiogica de Simiarum quotquot vetenbtu the members of that group of Quadrumana are pe-
innotuerunt J'ormis (Ilamb. 1791); and Ed. Tyson's culiar to America. In all probability, as has been
Homo syhestrie, or the Anatomy of a Pigmie stated above, the koph of the Bible is not intended
(Lond. 169!)), to which he has added a Philosoph- to refer to any one particular species of ape. a
ical Essay concerning the Cynocephali, the Satyrs, Solomon was a naturalist, and collected every-
and Sphinges of the ancients. Aristotle [De Anim. thing that was curious and beautiful; and if, as
Hist. ii. ed. Schneider) appears to divide the Sir E. Tennent has very plausibly argued, the
•"),
Quadrumana order of Mammalia into three tribes, ancient Tarshish is identical with Pt. de Galle, or
which he characterizes by the names, irid-nKoi, some seaport of Ceylon, not improbable that
it is
Krjfioi, and Kvvr>K((pa\oi. The last-named family the kophim which the brought to Solomon
fleet
are no doubt identical with the animals that form were some of the monkeys from that country, which,
the African genus Cynocephaius of modern zool- according to Sir E. Tennent, are comprised, with
ogists. The k ?)0oi Aristotle distinguishes from the the exception of the graceful?//'"' I
Ofacacw pi-
irid-nKoi, by the fact of the former possessing a tail. leatus),under the Wanderer group of Quadrumana.
This name, perhaps, may stand for the whole tribe There can be little doubt but that the kophim were
of tailed monkeys, excluding the Cynocephali and brought from the same country which supplied
the Lemuridce, which Latter, since they belong to ivorv and peacocks; both of which are common in
the island of Madagascar, were probably wholly
unknown to the ancients. « The use of the word ape is generally now under-
The iriQi)Koi, therefore, would stand as the rep- stood in a restricted sense to apply to the tailless
resentative of the tailless apes, such as the Chim- Quadrumana..
120 APHARSATHCHITES APHEREMA
Ceylon; and Sir E. Tennent has drawn attention and apparently beyond Sidon, and which is identi-
to the fact that the Tamil names for apes, ivory, fied by Gesenius ( Thes. 140 a) with the Aphaca of
and peacocks are identical with the Hebrew." classical times, famous for its temple of Venus, and
Dr. Krapf {Trail, in E. Africa, p. 518), be- now Af/ca (Rob. iii. 606 Porter, ii. 295-6). Afka,
;
lieving Ophir to be on the E. African coast, thinks however, lies beyond the ridge of Lebanon, on the
Solomon wished to obtain specimens of the Guresa north-western slopes of the mountain, and conse-
(
Cohbus). quently much further up than the other towns of
It is very probable that some species of baboons Asher which have been identified. On the other
are signified by the term Satyrs, which occurs in hand it is hardly more to the north of the known
the A. V. in the prophet Isaiah. [Satyk.] The limits of the tribe, than Kadesh and other places
English versions of 1550 and 1574 [Bishops' Bible] named as in Judah were to the south and Aphek ;
read (Is. xiii. 21), where the A. V. has "satyrs shall may, like many other sanctuaries, have had a rep-
dance there," —
" apes shall daunce there." The utation at a very early date, sufficient hi the days
ancients were no doubt acquainted with many kinds of Joshua to cause its mention in company with
of Quadrumana, both of the tailed and tailless kinds the other northern sanctuary of Baal-gad.
(see Plin. vhi. c. 19, xi. 44; iElian. Nat. An. xvii.
3. (With the article, ,"?DSn), a place at which
25, 39; Strab. xvii. p. 827; Bochart, Hieroz. ii.
398); cf. Mart, Epig. iv. 12: — the Philistines encamped, while the Israelites pitched
in Eben-ezer, before the fatal battle in which the
" Si mini cauda foret cercopithecus ero."
sons of Eh were killed and the ark taken (1 Sam.
W. H. iv. 1). This would be somewhere to the N. W. of,
APHARSATHCHITES, APHAR'SI- and at no great distance from, Jerusalem. •
from which the Canaanites were not ejected (Judg. jua;] 'A<pepei/jid, Jos.), one of the three "govern-
'
•o Ppp appears to be a word of foreign origin, allied lish ape, the initial aspirate being dropped. Gesenius
*e the Sanskrit and Malabar kapi, which perhaps = illustrates this derivation by comparing the Latin
swift, nimble, whence the German afft and the Eng- amare from Sanskr. km.
APHERRA APOCRYPHA 121
omitted in the Vulgate. It is probably the same consider: —
I. The meaning and history of the
as Ephraim (Ophrah, Taiyibeh). word. II. The history and character of the collec-
a whole its relation to Jewish literature.
APHER'RA CA(peppd- Euro), one of the
tion as in
I. The primary meaning of ait6Kpv<pos. " hidden,
[sons of the] " servants of Solomon " [who returned
with Zerubbabel] (1 Esdr. v. 34). [His name is secret" (in which sense it is used in Hellenistic as
not found in the parallel lists of Ezra and Nehe- well as classical Greek, cf. Ecclus. xxiii. 19 Luke ;
viii. 17; Col. ii. 3), seems, towards the close of the
niiah.]
2d century, to have been associated with the sig-
APHI'AH GTS*? [refreshed] 'A4><='/c
:
; nification " spurious," and ultimately to have settled
[Alex. A<pix'-i Aphia), name of one of the fore- down into the latter. Tertullian (de Anim. c. 2)
fathers of King Saul (1 Sam. ix. 1). and Clement of Alexandria (Strom, i. 19, 69, iii.
A'PHIK (p^SM.: [Not; Vat. Nae<; Alex. 4, 29) apply it to the forged or spurious books
which the heretics of their time circulated as au-
Na<pe/<; Aid. Comp. 'A^>e'/c:] Aphec), a city of
thoritative. The first passage referred to from the
Asher from which the Canaanites were not driven
Stromata, however, may be taken as an instance of
out (Judg. i. 31). Probably the same place as
the- transition stage of the word.
-
The followers of
Aphek 2.
Prodicus, a Gnostic teacher, are said there to boast
APHRAH, the house of (<T?S»b rp2) that they have fii/3\ovs airoKpixpovs of Zoroaster.
[the fawn], a place mentioned in Mic. i. 10, and In Athanasius (Pp. Fest. vol. ii. p. 38; Synop-
supposed by some (Winer, 172) to be identical with sis Sac. Script, vol. ii. p. 154, ed. Colon. 1686),
Ophrah. But this can hardly be, inasmuch as all Augustine (c. Faust, xi. 2, de Civ. Dti, xv. 23),
the towns named in the context are in the low Jerome (Ep. ad I/etam, and Prol. Gal.) the word
country to the west of Judah, while Ophrah would is used uniformly with the bad meaning which had
appear to lie E. of Bethel [Ophrah]. The LXX. become attached to it. The writers of that period,
translate the word 4£ oXkov ko.t& yeKoora [Vulg. however, do not seem to have seen clearly how the
in domo pulveris]. G. word had acquired this secondary sense and hence ;
* According to the analogy of other similar com- we find conjectural explanations of its etymology.
pound names the translators of the A. V. might The remark of Athanasius (Synops. S. Script. 1. c.)
have written Beth Leaphrah for Aphrah. The u that such books are a.-KOKpv<prjs fiaKKov 3) avayvur
here is sign of the genitive. If the name be the (Tews &£ia is probably meant rather as a play upon
same as Ophrah (it may be different as there is the word than as giving its derivation. Augustine
some evidence of an Aphrah near Jerusalem) it is is more explicit: " Apocryphoe nuncupantur eo quod
earum occulta origo non claruit patribus " (de Civ.
written nH237 in Mic. i. 10, instead of rnSJV,
Dei, 1. a). " Apocryphi non quod habendi sunt in
so as more readily to suggest "123?, ashes, in con- aliqua auctoritate secreta sed quia nulla testifica-
rated in it. In Clement of Alexandria, Origen, Reformation to stamp the word Apocrypha with its
Athanasius, e. (/., we find citations from the books present signification. The two views which had
of the present Apocrypha, as " Scripture," " divine hitherto existed together, side by side, concerning
Scripture," " prophecy." They are very far from which the Church had pronounced no authoritative
a The books enumerated by Athanasius, besides archs, of Zechariah the fother of the Baptist, the
writings falsely ascribed to authors of canonical books, Prayer of Joseph, the Testament (Sia6riKri) and As-
as Zephaniah, Habakkuk, Ezekiel, and Daniel, included sumption of Moses, Abraham, Eldad and Modad, and
others which have the names of Enoch, of the Patri- Elijah.
APOCRYPHA APOCRYPHA 123
decision, stood out in sharper contrast. The Coun- themselves to the reader of the Apocrypha with
cil of Trent closed the question which had been left greater or less distinctness. In the midst of the
open, and deprived its theologians of the liberty diversities which we might naturally expect to find
thev had hitherto enjoyed — extending the Canon in books written by different authors, in different
of Scripture go a~ to include all the hitherto doubt- countries, and at considerable intervals of time, it
ful or deutero-canonical books, with the exception of is possible to discern some characteristics which be-
the two books of Esdras and the Prayer of Manas- long to the collection as a whole, and these may be
seh, the evidence against which seemed too strong noticed in the following order.
to be resisted Sets. IV. de Can. Script.). In ac- (1.) The absence of the prophetic element.
cordance with this decree, the editions of the Vul- From first to last the books bear testimony to the
gate published by authority contained the books assertion of Josephus (c. Ap. i. 8), that the aKpi^s
which the Council had pronounced canonical, as Stadoxh °f prophets had been broken after the close
standing on the same footing as those which had of the 0. T. canon. No one speaks because the
never been questioned, while the three which had word of the Lord had come to him. Sometimes
been rejected were printed commonly in smaller type there is a direct confession that the gift of prophecy
and stood after the New Testament. The Reform- had departed (1 Mace. ix. 27), or the utterance of
ers of Germany and England on the other hand, a hope that it might one day return (ibid. iv. 46,
influenced in part by the revival of the_ study of xiv. 41). Sometimes a teacher asserts in words
Hebrew and the consequent recognition of the au- the perpetuity of the gift (Wisd. vii. 27), and shows
thority of the Hebrew Canon, and subsequently by in the act of asserting it how different the illumina-
the reaction against this stretch of authority, main- tion which he had received was from that bestowed
tained the opinion of Jerome and pushed it to its on the prophets of the Canonical Books. When a
legitimate residts. The principle which had been writer simulates the prophetic character, he repeats
asserted by Carls tadt dogmatically in his •• De Ca- with slight modifications the Language of the older
nonicis Scripturis libellus " (1520) was acted on by prophets, as in Baruch, or makes a mere prediction
Luther. He spoke of individual books among those the text of a dissertation, as in the Epistle of Jer-
in question with a freedom as great as that of Je- emy, or plays arbitrarily with combinations of
rome, judging each on its own merits, praising Tobit dreams and symbols, as in 2 Esdras. Strange and
as a -pleasant comedy" and the Prayer of Manas- perplexing as the last-named book is, whatever there
seh as a •• good model for penitents,"' and rejecting is in it of genuine feeling indicates a mind not at -
the two books of Esdras as containing worthless ease with itself, distracted with its own sufferings
fables. The example of collecting the doubtful and with the problems of the universe, and it is
books in a separate group had been the Stras-
set in accordingly very far removed from the utterance of
bourg edition of the Septuagint, 1526. In Luther's a man who speaks as a messenger from God.
complete edition of the German Bible accordingly (2. ) Connected with this is the almost total dis-
(1534) the books (Judith. Wisdom, Tobias. Sirach. appearance of the power which had shown itself in
1 and 2 Maccabees, Additions to Esther and Daniel, the poetry of the Old Testament. The Song of
and the Prayer of Manasseh ) were grouped together the Three Children Lays claim to the character of a
under the general title of "Apocrvpha. e. Books
*'. Psalm, and is probably a translation from some
which are not of like worth with Holy Scripture, liturgical hymn but with this exception the form
:
yet are good and useful to be read." In the his- of poetry is altogether absent. So far as the writers
tory of the English Church, Wicliffe showed him- have come under the influence of Greek cultivation
self in this as in other points the forerunner of the they catch the taste for rhetorical ornament which
Reformation, and applied the term Apocrypha to characterized the literature of Alexandria. Fic-
all but the • Uctnty-Jive " Canonical Books of the titious speeches become almost indispensable addi-
Old Testament. The judgment of Jerome was and the story
tions to the narrative of a historian,
formally asserted in the sixth Article. The dis- not complete unless (as in the later
of a martyr is
puted books were collected and described in the Acta Martyrum of Christian traditions) the sufferer
game way in the printed English Bible of 1539 declaims in set terms against the persecutors.
(Cranmer's), and since then there has been no fluc- (Song of the Three Child., 3-22: 2 Mace. vi. vii.)
tuation as to the application of the word. The (3.) The appearance, as part of the current lit-
books to which the term is ascribed are in popular erature of the time, of works of fiction, resting or
speech not merely apocryphal, but the Apocrvpha. purporting to rest on a historical foundation. It
II. Whatever questions may be at issue as to the is possible that this development of the national
authority of these books, they have in any case an genius may have been in part the result of the
interest of which no controversy can deprive them Captivity. The Jewish exiles brought with them
as connected with the literature, and therefore with the reputation of excelling in minstrelsy, and were
the history, of the Jews. They represent the period called on to sing the •• songs of Zion " (Ps. exxxvii.).
of transition and decay which followed on the re- The trial of skill between the three young men in
turn from Babylon, when the prophets who were 1 Esdr. iii. iv. implies a traditional belief that those
then the teachers of the people had passed away who were promoted to places of honor under the
and the age of scribes succeeded. Uncertain as Persian kings were conspicuous for gifts of a some-
may be the dates .of individual books, few, if any, what similar character. The transition from this
can be thrown further back than the commence- to the practice of story telling was with the Jews,
ment of the 3d century b. c. The latest, the 2d as afterward; with the Arabs, easy and natural
Book of Esdras, is probably not later than 30 b. 1
that this is also another form of the tradition that dom from the Persians to the Macedonians (Esth.
Ezra dictated from a supernaturally inspired mem- xvi. 10) two contradictory statements are given in
;
ory the Sacred Books which, according to that tra- the same book of the death of Antiochus Epiphanes
dition, had been lost, and that both fables are exag- (2 Mace. i. 15-17, k. 5-29); Nabuchodonosor is
gerations of the part actually taken by him and by made to dwell at Nineve as the king of the Assyr-
" the men of the Great Synagogue " in the work ians (Judith i. 1).
of collecting and arranging them. So also the (8.) In their relation to the religious and ethical
rhetorical narrative of the Exodus in Wisd. xvi.-xix. development of Judaism during the period which
APOCRYPHA APOCRYPHA 125
these books embrace, we find (a.) The influences find Him" and the victims of
(xiii. 6), a darker
of the struggle against idolatry under Antiochus, as and more debasing idolatry. Here also the un-
shown partly in the revival of the old heroic spirit, known writer of the Wisdom of Solomon seems to
and in the record of the deeds which it called forth, prepare the way for the higher and wider teaching
as in Maccabees, partly again in the tendency of a of the New
Testament.
narrative like Judith, and the protests against idol- It does not fall within the scope of the present
worship in Baruch and Wisdom, (b.) The grow- article to speak of the controversies which have
ing hostility of the Jews towards the Samaritans is arisen within the Church of England, or in Luth-
shown by the Confession of the Son of Sirach eran or Reformed communities abroad, in connec-
(Ecclus. 1. 25, 26). (c.) The teaching of Tobit tion with the authority and use of these Books.
illustrates the prominence then and afterwards as- Those disputes raise questions of a very grave in-
signed to almsgiving among the duties of a holy terest to the student of Ecclesiastical History.
life (Tob. iv. 7-11, xii. 9). The classification of What has been aimed at here is to supply the Bib-
the three elements of such a life —
prayer, fasting, lical student with data which will prepare him to
alms — in xii. 8, illustrates the traditional ethical judge fairly and impartially. E. H. P.
teaching of the Scribes, which was at once recog- * On the Apocrypha in general see Rainolds,
nized and purified from the errors that had been John, Censura Librovum V. T. adv. Pontifcios,
connected with it in the Sermon on the Mount 2 vol. Oppenh. 1611, 4to, learned, but prolix and
(Matt. vi. 1-18). (d.) The same book indicates discursive Eichhorn, Einl. in die apokr. Schriflen
;
also the growing belief in the individual guardian- des A. T., Leipz. 1795; the Einleitungen of Ber-
ship of angels and the germs of a grotesque de- tholdt, De Wette, Scholz (Cath.), and Keil; Welte
monology, resting in part on the more mysterious (Cath.), Einl. in d. deuterokanon. Biicher des A.
phenomena of man's spiritual nature, like the T, Freib. 1844 (Bd. iv. of Herbst's Einl.); Pal-
cases of demoniac possession in the Gospels, but frey, Led. on the Jewish Scriptures, Bost. 1838-
associating itself only too easily with all the frauds 52, vol. iv. ; Davidson, Introd. to the Old Test.,
and superstitions of vagabond exorcists, (e.) The Lond. 1863, iii. 346-467 and Volkmar, Handb. d.
;
great Alexandrian book of the collection, the Wis- Einl. in did Apokryphen, Theil i. Abth. i. Judith,
dom we might expect, a
of Solomon, breathes, as 1860 Abth. ii. Das vierte Bach Esra, 1863. See
;
strain of higher mood; and though there is abso- also on the separate books the valuable articles of
lutely no ground for the patristic tradition that it Ginsburg, in the 3d ed. of Kitto's Cyclop, of Bibl.
was written by Philo, the conjecture that it might Literature.
have been was not without a plausibility which The relation of the Apoc. Books to the Canon,
might well commend itself to men like Basil and and their title to a secondary place in the Bible,
Jerome. The personification of Wisdom as the have been warmly discussed of late in Germany.
"
unspotted mirror of the power of God and the im- On what has been called the Purist side, see es-
age of his goodness" (vii. 26) as the universal pecially Keerl, Die Apokryphen des A. T., 1852, a
teacher of all " holy souls " in '• all ages " (vii. 27), prize essay, and Die Apokryphenfrage aufs New
as guiding and ruling God's people, approaches the beleuchtet, 1855. See also Stowe, C. E., The Apoc.
teaching of Philo and foreshadows that of St. John Books of the 0. T., and the Reasons for their Ex-
as to the manifestation of the Unseen God through clusion from the Canon, in the Bibl. Sacra for
the medium of the Logos and the office of that April, 1854, xi. 278-305, and Home's Introd. 10th
divine Word as the light that lighteth every man. ed. 1856, i. 469-511. On the other side, see Stier,
In relation again to the symbolic character of the Die Apokryphen, 1853; Letztes Wort iiber die
" Ajjokryphen, 1855, and especially Bleek, Ueber die
Temple as " a resemblance of the holy tabernacle
which God " has prepared from the beginning " (ix. Stellung der Apoc. des A. T. iia christl. Kanon,
8), the language of this book connects itself at once in the Thtol. Stud. u. Krit. 1853, pp. 267-354.
with that of Philo and with the teaching of St. The most recent separate ed. of the Greek text,
Paul or Apollos in the Epistle to the Hebrews. with a selection of various readings, is by H. A.
But that which is the great characteristic of the Apel, Libri V. T. Apoc. Grace, Lips. 1837. This
book, as of the school from which it emanated, is includes 3d and 4th Maccabees, and is the basis of
the writer's apprehension of God's kingdom and Wahl's excellent Clavis Librorum V. T. Apoc.
the blessings connected with it as eternal, and so, philologica, Lips. 1853.
as independent of men's conceptions of time. By far the most important exegetical help to the
Thus chs. i. ii. contain the strong protest of a study of the Apocrypha is the Kurzgefassles exeget.
righteous man against the materialism which then Handb. zu den Apokr. des A. T. by 0. F. Fritzsche
in the form of a sensual selfishness, as afterwards and C. L. W. Grimm, 6 Lieferungen, Leipz. 1851-
in the developed system of the Sadducees, was cor- 60, which also contains full critical introductions to
rupting the old faith of Israel. Against this he the several books. The German translation and
asserts that the "-souls of the righteous are in the notes of Hezel, 2 Theile, 1800-02, are not highly
hands of God" (iii. 1); that the blessings which esteemed. There is a more recent German trans-
the popular belief connected with length of days with notes, by a Jewish Rabbi, M. Gutmann,
lation,
were not to be measured by the duration of years, Die Ajx>kryphen des A. T., u. s. w. Altona, 1841.
seeing that " wisdom is the gray hair unto men, The principal commentary in English is by Richard
and an unspotted life is old age." (/.) In regard Arnald, Lond. 1744-52, fol., 2d ed. 1760, new ed.
to another truth also, this book was in advance of by Pitman, Lond. 1822, 4to. It was published as
the popular belief of the Jews of Palestine. In a continuation of Patrick and Lowth's Comm. on
the midst of its strong protests against idolatry, the Old Test., which it usually accompanies, as in
there is the fullest recognition of God's universal the Philadelphia ed. of 1846. There is a separate
love (xi. 23-26), of the truth that His power is ed. of the common English version by Charles
but the instrument of His righteousness (xii. 16), Wilson, The Books of the Apocrypha, with Crit.
of the difference between those who are the " less and Hist. Obsei-vations prefixed, Edin. 1801. A
to be blamed" as "seeking God and desirous to good English translation of the Apocrypha, with
126 APOLLONIA APOLLOS
suitable introductions and notes, is a desideratum. which are commonly referred to his emissary Heli-
The annotations of Grotius, Drusius, and others of odorus (De Mace. 4; cf. 2 Mace. iii. 7 ff).
the older commentators will be found in the L'ritici 2. An officer of Antiochus Epiphanes, governor
Sacri, vol. v. Calmet has also illustrated the Apoc- of Samaria (Joseph. Ant. xii. 5, § 5 7, § 1), who led
;
ryphal Books in his great Commentaire litteral. out a large force against Judas Maceaha?us, but was
On the theology and morality of the Apocrypha, defeated and slain b. c. 166 (1 Mace. iii. 10-12;
see Bretschneider, Syst. Darstelhing d. Dogmaiik Joseph. Ant. xii. 71). He is probably the same
u. Moral d. apocr. Schriften des A. T. Theil i. person who was chief commissioner of the revenue
Dogmatik, Leipz. 1805; Cramer, Syst. Darstellung of Judrea (&p^ojv <popo\oyias, 1 Mace. i. 29 cf. ;
d. Moral d. Apokr. des A. T., Leipz. 1815; De 2 Mace. v. 24), who spoiled Jerusalem, taking ad-
Wette, Bibl. Dogmatik ; Von Colin, Bibl. Theoh- vantage of the Sabbath (2 Mace. v. 24-26), and
gie, Bd. i. Nicolas, M., Doctrines relig. des Juifs
;
occupied a fortified position there (b. c. 168) (1
pendant les deux siecles anterieurs a Vere chnti- Mace. i. 30 ff).
enne, Paris, 1860. See also Frisch, Vergleichung 3. The son of Menestheus (possibly identical
zwischen den Ideen, welch* in den Apokr. des A. T. with the former), an envoy commissioned (b. c.
und d. Schriften des N. T. iiber Unsterblkhkeit, 173) by Antiochus Epiphanes to congratulate Ptol-
Auferstehung, Gericht u. Vergeltung hei-rschen, in emaeus Philometor on his being enthroned (2 Mace,
Eichhorn's Altgem. Bibl. 1792, iv. 653-718, and iv. 21). An ambassador of the same name was at
Bottcher, De Inferis, Dresd. 1846, pp. 248-263. the head of the embassy which Antiochus sent to
Hencke (1711), Jenichen (1786), Kuinoel (1794), Rome (Liv. xlii. 6).
and Beckhaus (1808), have collected illustrations 4. The son of Gennseus (& rov Tevyalov, it
of the phraseology of the N. T. from the Apocry- seems impossible that this can be des edlen Apoll.
pha. A. Sohn, Luth.), a Syrian general under Antiochus V.
Eupator c. b. c. 163 (2 Mace. xii. 2).
APOLLO'NIA CATToWcuvla: [Apollonia]), a 5. The Daiax (Ados, Joseph. Ant. xiii. 4, § 3,
city of Macedonia, through which Paul and Silas
i. e. one of the Daha? or Dai, a people of Sogdiana),
passed in their way from Philippi and Amphipolis
a governor of Coele-Syria (rov ovra iir\ k. 2. 1
to Thessalonica (Acts xvii. 1). It was in the dis-
Mace. x. 69) imder Alexander Balas, who embraced
trict of Mygdonia (Plin. iv. 10. s. 17), and accord-
the cause of his rival Demetrius Nieator, and was
ing to the Antonine Itinerary was distant 30 Roman appointed by him to a chief command (1 Mace.
miles from Amphipolis and 37 Roman miles from
I- c. Kar€o~Trjo-e, Vulg. constituit ducem). he K
Thessalonica. This city must not be confounded
were the same as the Apollonius whom Polybius
with the more celebrated Apollonia in Illyria.
mentions as foster-brother and confidant of Deme-
*The distances in the Itinerarium Antonini trius I. (probably a son of (3) Svo7v virapx&VTOiv
Augusli (ed. Parth. et Pind.) are: " From Philippi
to Amphipolis 32 miles from Amphipolis to Apol-
;
a.8e\<po?i>, MeKedypov /col M
e v € ad 4 a> s, Polyb.
xxxi. 21, § 2), his conduct is easily intelligible.
lonia 32 miles; from Apollonia to Thessalonica 36
Apollonius raised a large force and attacked Jona-
miles." Luke's record of Paul's journey through
than, the ally of Alexander, but was entirely de-
these places (Acts xvii. 1) almost reminds us of a
feated by him (b. c. 147) near Azotus (1 Mace. x.
leaf from a traveller's note-book. Paul spent a
70 ff). Josephus (Ant. xiii. 4, § 3 f.) represents
night probably at Apollonia as well as at Amphip-
Apollonius as the general of Alexander at the time
olis; for he was hastening to Thessalonica, and
of his defeat; but this statement, though it has
could make the journey between the places in a
found advocates (Wernsdorf, de fide libr. Mace. p.
single day. Pliny mentions Apollonia (Hist. Nat.
135, yet doubtfully), appears to be untenable on
iv. 10): "regio Mygdoniae subjacens, in qua re-
internal grounds. Cf. Grimm, 1 Mace. x. 69.
cedentes a mari Apollonia, Arethusa." At the B. F. W.
present day the site has not been ascertained with
certainty. There is known to be a little village, APOLLOPH'ANES ('
AiroXXoty oVtjs Apoh
:
Pollona, with ruins, just south of Lake Bechik lophanes), a Syrian, killed by Judas Maccabseus
(B6\fir), iEsch. Pers. 490) which' possibly perpet- (2 Mace. x. 37).
uates the ancient name. Both Cousiuery ( Voyage
APOL'LOS ('AiroWds, i- e. Air oKKdivws '
them." After this nothing is known of him. mythology, seems to point to a connection with
Tradition makes him bishop of Caesarea (Menolog. Apollyon, in his character as " the destroyer," or
tinea ii. b. 17). The exact part which Apollos the destroying angel. See also Wisd. xviii. 22, 25.
took in the missionary work of the apostolic age [Asmodeus.] W. A. W.
can never be ascertained and much fruitless con-
; APOSTLE
(airoVroAos, one sent forth), the
jecture has teen spent on the subject. After the official name, in the N.
T., originally of those
entire amity between St. Paul and him which Twelve of the disciples whom Jesus chose, to send
appears in the first Epistle to the Corinthians, it is forth first to preach the gospel, and to be with Him
hardly possible to imagine any important difference during the course of his ministry on earth. After-
in the doctrines which they taught. Certainly we wards it was extended to others who, though not
cannot accede to the hypothesis that the ao<pia of the number of the Twelve, yet were equal with
against which the apostle so often warns the Cor- them in office and dignity. The word also appears
inthians, was a characteristic of the teaching of to have been used in a non-official sense to desig-
Apollos. Thus much may safely be granted, that nate a much wider circle of Christian messengers
there may have been difference enough in the out- and teachers (see 2 Cor. viii. 23; Phil. ii. 25).
ward character and expression of the two to attract It is only of those who were officially designated
the lover of eloquence and philosophy rather to Apostles that we treat in this article."
Apollos, somewhat, perhaps, to the disparagement The original qualification of an apostle, as stated
of St. Paul. by St. Peter, on occasion of electing a successor to
Much ingenuity has been spent in Germany in the traitor Judas, was, that he should have been
denning the four parties in the church at Corinth, personally acquainted with the whole ministerial
supposed to be indicated 1 Cor. i. 12; and the course of our Lord, from the baptism of John till
Apollos party has been variously characterized. See the day when He was taken up into heaven. He
Neander, Pfcanz. u. Leitung, p. 378 ff. 4th ed. himself describes them as " they that had continued
Conybeare and Howson, Life and Epistles of St. with Him in his temptations " (Luke xxii. 28). By
Paul, vol. i. p. 52G, vol. ii. pp. 6-11, 2d ed.; Him they were
this close personal intercourse with
Winer refers to de Apollone doctore peculiarly fitted to give testimony to the facts of
Pfizer, Diss,
apostol., Altorf, 1718; Hopf, Comm. de Apollone redemption ; and we gather, from his own words in
pseudo-doctore, Hag. 1782 ; and especially to Hey- John xiv. 28, xv. 26, 27, xvi. 13, that an especial
mann, in the Saxon Exegetische Studien, 213 ii. bestowal of the Spirit's was granted
influence
ff. H. A. them, by which their memories were quickened,
* The conjecture of Luther, that Apollos was the and their power of reproducing that which they
author of the Epistle to the Hebrews, has been fa- had heard from Him increased above the ordinary
'
vored by many eminent scholars, among whom may measure of man. The Apostles were from the
be named Osiander, Beausobre, Le Clerc, Heu- lower ranks of life, simple and uneducated; some
mann, Ziegler, Semler, Dindorf, Bertholdt, Schott, of them were related to Jesus according in the
Bleek. Norton, Feilmoser (Cath.), Credner, Lutter- flesh; some had previously been disciples of John
beck (Cath.), De Wette (without confidence), Tho- the Baptist. Our Lord chose them early in his
luck, Keuss, Bunsen, Liinemann, and Afford. See public career, though it is uncertain precisely at
Bleek, Brief an die Hebr. i. 423-430 Norton in what time. Some of them had certainly partly
;
the Cltristi'in Examiner for July 1829, vi. 338- attached themselves to Him before; but after their
343; and Alford's Prolegomena to the Epistle, ch. call as apostles, they appear to have been continu-
i. sect. i. §§ 180-191. [Hebrews, Epistle to ously with Him, or in his service. They seem to
the.] A. have been all on an equality, both during and after
the ministry of Christ on earth. We find one
APOLL'YON 0A7ro\AiW: Apollyon), or, as indeed, St. Peter, from fervor of personal charac-
if is literally in the margin of the A. V. of Rev. ter,
usually prominent among them, and distin-
ix. 11, "a destroyer," is the rendering of the He-
guished by having the first place assigned him in
brew word Abaddon, " the angel of the bottom- founding the Jewish and Gentile churches [Peter]
;
less pit." The Vulgate adds, " Latine habens but we never find the slightest trace in Scripture
nomen Exterminans." The Hebrew term is really of any superiority or primacy being in consequence
abstract, and signifies "destruction," in which We also find that he and two
accorded to him.
sense it occurs in Job xxvi. 6, xxviii. 22 Prov. xv. others, James and John, the sons of Zebedee, are
;
11; and other passages. The angel Apollyon is admitted to the inner privacy of our Lord's acts
further described as the king of the locusts which
and sufferings on several occasions (Mark v. 37;
rose froni the smoke of the bottomless pit at the Matt. xvii. 1 ff, xxvi.
37); but this is no proof
sounding of the fifth trumpet. From the occur- of superiority in rank or office. Early in our
rence of the word in Ps. lxxxviii. 11, the Rabbins
Lord's ministry, He sent them out two and two to
have made Abaddon the nethermost of the two preach repentance, and perform miracles in his
regions into which they divided the under world.
name (Matt, x.; Luke ix.). This their mission
But that in Rev. ix. 11 Abaddon is the angel, and was of the nature of a solemn call to the children
not the abyss, is perfectly evident in the Greek.
of Israel, to whom it was confined (Matt. x. 5, 6).
There is no authority for connecting it with the There is, however, in his charge to the Apostles on
destroyer alluded to in 1 Cor. x. 10 and the ex-
this occasion, not a word of their proclaiming his
;
a * For a good discussion of this topic, see a disser- Prof. Lightfoot, St. Paul's Ep. to the Galatiaiu, pp.
tation on the " Name and Office of an Apostle," by 89-97. H.
128 APOSTLE APOTHECARIES
The Apostles were early warned by their Master in Acts ix. 32), the first period of the Apostles'
of the solemn nature and the danger of their call- agency, during which its centre is Jerusalem, and
ing (Matt. x. 17), but were not intrusted with any the prominent figure is that of St. Peter. Agree-
esoteric doctrines, of which indeed his teaching, ably to the promise of our Lord to him (Matt. xvi.
being eminently and entirely practical, did not ad- 18), which we conceive it impossible to understand
mit. They accompanied Him in his journeys of otherwise than in a personal sense, he among the
teaching and to the Jewish feasts, saw his wonder- twelve foundations (Rev. xxi. 14) was the stone on
ful works, heard his discourses addressed to the whom the Church was first built; and it was his
people (Matt. v. 1 fF., xxiii. 1 ff.; Luke iv. 13 S.) privilege first to open the doors of the kingdom of
or those which He held with learned Jews (Matt. heaven to Jews (Acts ii. 14, 42) and to Gentiles
six. 13 ff. Luke x. 25 ff.), made inquiries of Him (Acts x. 11). The centre of the second period of
;
on religious matters, sometimes concerning his the apostolic agency is Antioch, where a church
own sayings, sometimes of a general nature (Matt. soon was built up, consisting of Jews and Gentiles;
xiii. 10 ft"., xv. 15 ff., xviii. 1 ff; Luke viii. 9 ff, and the central figure of this and of the subsequent
xii. 41, xvii. 5; John ix. 2 ft*., xiv. 5, 22 al.): some- period is St. Paul, a convert not originally belong-
times they worked miracles (Mark vi. 13 Luke ix. ing to the number of the Twelve, but wonderfully
;
6), sometimes attempted to do so without success prepared and miraculously won for the high office
(Matt. xvii. 10). They recognized their Master as [Paul]. This period, whose history (all that we
the Christ of God (Matt. xvi. 16; Luke ix. 20), know of it) is related in Acts xi. 19-30, xiii. 1-5,
and ascribed to Him supernatural power (Luke was marked by the united working of Paul and the
ix. 54), but in the recognition of the spiritual other apostles, in the cooperation and intercourse
teaching and mission of Christ, they made very of the two churches of Antioch and Jerusalem.
slow progress, held back as they were by weakness From this time the third apostolic period opens,
of apprehension and by natural prejudices (Matt. marked by the almost entire disappearance of the
xv. 16, xvi. 22, xvii. 20 f.
; Luke ix. 54, xxiv. 25; Twelve from the sacred narrative, and the exclusive
John xvi. 12). They were compelled to ask of Him agency of St. Paul, the great apostle of the Gen-
the explanation of even his simplest parables (Mark tiles. The whole of the remaining narrative of the
viii. 14 Luke xii. 41 ff), and openly confessed Acts is occupied with his missionary journeys;
ft*. ;
their weakness of faith (Luke xvii. 5). Even at the and when we leave him at Rome, all the Gentile
removal of our Lord from the earth they were yet churches from Jerusalem round about unto Illyricum
weak in their knowledge (Luke xxiv. 21 John xvi. owe to him their foundation, and look to him for
;
12), though He had for so long been carefully pre- supervision. Of the missionary agency of the rest
paring and instructing them. And when that hap- of the Twelve, we know absolutely nothing from
• pened of which He had so often forewarned them, the sacred narrative. Some notices we have of
— his apprehension by the chief priests and Phari- their personal history, which will be found under
sees, — they all forsook Him and fled (Matt. xxvi. their respective names, together with the principal
56, &c). They left his burial to one who was not legends, trustworthy or untrustworthy, which have
of their number and to the women, and were only come down to us respecting them. See Peter,
convinced of his resurrection on the very plainest James, John especially. As regards the apostolic
proofs furnished by Himself. It was first when office, it seems to have been preeminently that of
this fact became undeniable that light seems to have founding the churches, and upholding them by
entered their minds, and not even then without his supernatural power specially bestowed for that pur-
own special aid, opening their understandings that pose. It ceased, as a matter of course, with its
they might understand the Scriptures. Even after first holders — all continuation of it, from the very
that, many of them returned to their common oc- conditions of its existence (cf. 1 Cor. ix. 1), being
cupations (John xxi. 3 ff), and it required a new impossible. The (TrtffKoiros of the ancient churches
direction from the Lord to recall them to their mis- coexisted with,and did not in any sense succeed,
sion and reunite them in Jerusalem (Acts i. 4). the Apostles; and when it is claimed for bishops or
Before the descent of the Holy Spirit on the Church, any church officers that they are their successors,
Peter, at least, seems to have been specially inspired it can be understood only chronologically, and not
APPA'IM (D^SIS [the nostrils]: 'Air<paiu; Appeal in Roman law under the emperors (for
[Vat. E<ppai/j.;] Alex. Acptpaip: Apphaim). Son this alone concerns us) proceeded on the principle
that the emperor was the supreme judge, and all
of Nadab, and descended from Jerahmeel, the
other judges, the provincial magistrates, for in-
founder of an important family of the tribe of Ju-
stance, his delegates. Such appeal from a decision
dah (1 Chr. ii. 30, 31). The Succession fell to him,
in a province, when allowed, was authenticated by
as his elder brother died without issue.
apostoli or literal dimissorue, which contained a
W. A. W.
notice of the appeal to the higher court, and were
APPEAL. The was recog-
principle of appeal accompanied by the necessary documents, evidence,
nized by the Mosaic law in the establishment of a etc. The appeal did not necessarily come before
central court under the presidency of the judge or the emperor in the first instance, but he delegated
ruler for the time being, before which all cases too the matter to subordinate persons, as to consular
difficult for the local courts were to be tried (Deut. men, to the praefect of the city, and particularly
xvii. 8-9). Winer, indeed, infers from Josephus to the praefect of the praetorium. Appeal was al-
(Ant. iv. 8, § 14, ava.Trtfj.iTirciia'av, sc. ol Sikckt- lowed in all sorts of cases, when a decision valid
rai) that this was not a proper court of appeal, the inform had been given by the inferior court.
local judges and not the litigants being, according Where the judgment was formally invalid, a que-
to the above language, the appellants: but these rela nullitaiis was necessary.
words, taken in connection with a former passage in The apostle Paul, a Roman citizen, was brought
the same chapter («? tis • • riva alriav irpcxpe- to trial before the procurator of Judaea on the charge
•
poi) may be regarded simply in the light of a gen- of having profaned the temple and of having been
eral direction. According to the above regulation, " a mover of sedition among all the Jews through-
the appeal lay in the time of the Judges to the judge out the world;" and to these offenses it was
(Judg. iv. 5), and under the monarchy to the king, sought to attach political importance (Acts xxv.
who appears to have deputed certain persons to 8). If he had consented, a trial might have been
inquire into the facts of the case, and record his held at Jerusalem before the procurator Festus.
decision thereon (2 Sam. Jehoshaphat dele-
xv. 3). But Paul, fearing that he would be sacrificed to
gated his judicial authority to a court permanently the malice of his enemies, if such a trial were held,
established for the purpose (2 Chr. xix. 8). These made an appeal to the emperor, and Festus, after
courts were reestablished by Ezra (Ezr. vii. 25). consulting with his consilium or assessores, allowed
After the institution of the Sanhedrim the final the appeal to take effect, glad, doubtless, to be freed
appeal lay to them, and the various stages through from the responsibility of either irritating the Jew-
which a case might pass are thus described by the ish leaders by acquitting Paul, or of pronouncing
Talinudists from the local consistory before which an innocent man guilty.
:
the cause was first tried, to the consistory that sat The peculiarity of this case consisted in this:
in the neighboring town ; thence to the courts at that an appeal was taken before any condemnatory
Jerusalem, commencing in the court of the 23 that decision had been made, whereas an appeal implied
sat in the gate of Shushan, proceeding to the court a verdict. It is not easy to explain this aspect of
that sat in the gate of Nicanor, and concluding Paul's trial, or to illustrate it by analogous in-
with the great council of the Sanhedrim that sat in stances. The emperors, however, " were wont, and
the room Gazith (Carpzov. Appar. p. 571). sometimes from the best motives, to prevent the
A Roman citizen under the republic had the initiation or the continuance of a judicial proceed-
right of appealing in criminal cases from the de ing " (Geib, Gesch. d. rbm. Crimincdprocess, p.
cision ofa magistrate to the people; and as the 424). And Walter in his Gesch. d. rbm. Jlechts,
emperor succeeded to the power of the people, there ii. 347, says that a case was " sometimes sent to
was an appeal to him in the last resort. (See Diet the emperor by the proconsul for his settlement of
of Ant. art. Appellatio). it without a previous verdict," in support of which
St. Paul, as a Roman citizen, exercised a right he cites Fronto, Epist. ad Mai-cum, ii. 15, but there
of appeal from the jurisdiction of the local court at is a mistake in the citation. The emperors' tribuni-
Jerusalem to the emperor (Acts xxv. 11). But cian power could easily involve such a kind of appeal,
as no decision had been given, there could be no which would be no stranger than to quash proceed-
appeal, properly speaking, in his case: the lan- ings before a verdict (see Geib, as above). For
guage used (Acts xxv. 9) implies the right on the appeal see the two writers referred to, and Rein in
part of the accused of electing either to be tried by Pauly's ReaUEncycl. s. v. Appellatio.
the provincial magistrate or by the emperor. Since T. D. W.
the procedure in the Jewish courts at that period
AP'PHIA CAir<pia, a Greek form of the Latin
was of a mixed and undefined character, the Roman Ajipia, written 'Air7rfa, Acts xxviii. 15 a ), a Christian
and the Jewish authorities coexisting and carrying woman addressed jointly with Philemon and Ar-
on the course of justice between them, Paul availed chippus in Philem. 2, apparently a member of the
himself of his undoubted privilege to be tried by
former's household, seeing that the letter is on a
the pure Roman Law. W. L. B. family matter, and that the church that is in her
* The appeal of Paul to Caesar (Acts xxv. 11) was
house is mentioned next to these two, and not im-
probably his wife (Chrys., Theodoret). Nothing
a * This is not strictly correct. 'Amr-ia does not more is said or known of her.* H. A.
occur in Acts xxviii. 15, or elsewhere In the N. T. In
the passage referred to by Alford we have 'Att-jtiov (see 6 * See, more on Philem. ver. 2, in
fully, Setoff's edi-
Appq Forum). A. tion of Lange's Commentary (N. Y. 1867). H.
9
180 APPHUS APPLE-TREE
AP'PHUS (' [Alex. S.a<p<povs
Air<pots ;
Sin. ,
The Arabians make especial allusion to the restora-
2<X7r</>ous :] Apphus), surname of Jonathan Macca- of this fruit; and Celsius (p. 261)
tive properties
bseus (1 Mace. ii. 5). quotes Abu'l Fadli in illustration of Cant. ii. 5,
" Comfort me with apples, for I am sick of love."
AP'PII FO'RUM {'Amrlov <p6pov, Acts
known station (as we
"Its scent," says the Arabic author, "cheers my
xxviii. 15) was a very well
learn from Hor. Sat. and Cic. ad Alt. ii. 10)
soul,renews my strength, and restores my breath."
i. 5,
Phylarchus (Histor. lib. vi.), Rabbi Salomon (in
on the Appian Way, the great road which led from
Rome to the neighborhood of the Bay of Naples. Cant. ii. 3), Pliny (//. N. xv. 11), who uses the
having landed at Puteoli (ver. 13) on his words odoris prastantissimi, bear similar testimony
St. Paul,
to the delicious fragrance of the quince. It is well
arrival from Malta, proceeded under the charge of
the centurion along the Appian Way towards Kome,
known that among the ancients the quince was sa-
cred to the goddess of lovewhence statues of Venus
and found at Appii Forum a group of Christians, ;
who had gone to meet him. The position of this sometimes represent her .with the fruit of this tree
in her hand, the quince being the ill-fated " apple
place is fixed by the ancient Itineraries at 43 miles
of discord " which Paris appropriately enough pre-
from Rome (Jtin. Ant. p. 107; Itin. Ilier. p. Oil).
sented to that deity. ft
up under the apple-tree there thy mother brought : sented on old Samaritan coins. " The rich color,
thee forth." Joel i. 12, where the apple-tree is fragrant odor, and handsome appearance of the tree,
named with the vine, the fig, the pomegranate, and whether in flower or in fruit, are," Dr. Royle asserts,
the palm-trees, as withering under the desolating " particularly suited to the passages of Scripture
effects of the locust, palmer- worm, <£c. The fruit mentioned above." Dr. Thomson (Land and Book,
of this tree is alluded to in Prov. xxv. 11: '-A word p. 545), on the other hand, is in favor of the trans-
fitly spoken is like apples of gold in pictures of sil- lation of the A. V., and has little doubt that apples
ver." In Cant. ii. 5: "Comfort me with apples, is the correct rendering of the Hebrew word. He
for I am sick of love; " vii. 8, " The smell of thy says, " The whole area (about Askelon) is especially
nose [shall be] like apples." celebrated for its apples, which are the largest and
It is a difficult matter to say with any degree of best I have ever seen in this country. When I was
certainty what is the specific tree denoted by the here in June, quite a caravan started for Jerusalem
Hebrew word tappuacli. The LXX. and Vulg. loaded with them, and they would not have dis-
afford no clue, as the terms pJ^Kov, malum, have a graced even an American orchard. . The Arabic . .
wide signification, being used by the Greeks and word for apple is almost the same as the Hebrew,
Romans to represent almost any kind of tree-fruit; and it is as perfectly definite, to say the least, as
at any rate, the use of the word is certainly gen- our English word as much as the word for grape, —
eric; —
but Celsius (Hierob. i. 255) asserts that the and just as well understood and so is that for cit- ;
quince-tree (Pynis cydonxa) was very often called ron but this is a comparatively rare fruit. Citrons :
by the Greek and Roman writers malvs, as being, are also very large, weighing several pounds each,
from the esteem in which it was held (" primaria and are so hard and indigestible, that they cannot
malorum species ") the mains, or firi\ov Kar' e£o- be used except when made into preserves. The tree
X'hv. Some therefore, with Celsius, have endeav- is small, slender, and must be propped up, or the
ored to show that the lappuach denotes the quince fruit will bend it down to the ground. Nobody
and certainly this opinion has some plausible argu- ever thinks of sitting under its shadow, for it is too
ments in its favor. The fragrance of the quince small and straggling to make a shade. I cannot
was held in high esteem by the ancients and the ; believe, therefore, that it is spoken of in the Canti-
fruit " was placed on the heads of those images in cles. It can scarcely be called a tree at all, much
the deeping apartments which were reckoned among less would it be singled out as among the choice
the household gods " (Rosenmiiller, Botany of Bible, trees of the wood. As to the smell and color, all
Bib. Cab. p. 314; Voss, On Yiryil. Ecky. ii. 51). the demands of the Biblical allusions are fully met
cient times and in royal gardens, their cultivation 18; Zech. ii. 8. The word is the representative
was far superior to what it is now, and the fruit of an entirely different name from that considered
larger and more fragrant. Let tappiiach therefore above the Hebrew word being i$hon, b " little man "
:
stand for apple, as our translation has it." — the exact equivalent to the English pupil, the
Neither the quince nor the citron nor the apple, Latin pupilla, the Greek ic6p-n- It is curious to
however, appears fully to answer to all the script- observe how common the image (" pupil of the
ural allusions. The tappiiach must denote some eye") is in the languages of different nations.
tree which is sweet to the taste, and which pos- Gesenius (Thes. p. 86) quotes from the Arabic, the
sesses some fragrant and restorative properties, in Syriac, the Ethiopic, the Coptic, the Persian, in
order to meet all the demands of the Biblical allu- all of which tongues an expression similar to the
sions. Both the quince and the citron may satisfy English " pupil of the eye " is found. It is a pity
the last-named requirement; but it can hardly lie that the same figure is not preserved in the A. V.,
said that either of these fruits are sweet to the taste. which invariably uses the expression " apple of the
Dr. Thomson, in the passage quoted above, says eye" (in allusion to its shape), instead of giving
that the citron is " too straggling to make a shade
" ; the literal translation from the Hebrew. W. H.
but in Cant. ii. 3 the tapp&ach appears to be asso-
ciated with other trees of the wood, and it would
* APPREHEND (as used in Phil. iii. 12, 13,
of the A. V.) meant formerly "to take in the hand,
do no violence to the passage to suppose that this or by the hand," (a Latin sense of the word).
tree was selected from amongst the rest under
Thus Jeremy Taylor (Holy Living, ii. 6) says:
which to recline, not on account of any extensive " There nothing but hath a double handle, or at
is
shade it afforded, but for the fragrance of its fruit. least we have two hands to apprehend it." Hence
The "under the shade" by no means
expression a more correct rendering now would be " If that I :
a Since the above was written Dr. Hooker has re- and knew a little of horticulture, who assured me they
were all Quinces, the apples being abominable."
turned from a tour in Palestine, and remarks in a letter
* In like manner Mr. Tristram says {Lantl of Israel,
to the author of this article —
"I procured a great saw the apple-tree in the
many plants, but very little information of service to p. 604) that he scarcely ever
Holy Land except on a few high situations in Lebanon
you, though I made every inquiry about the subject
Damascus. The question does
of your notes. Vou would hardly believe the diffi- and in the region of
not affect at all the accuracy of Scripture, but the
culty in getting reliable information about the simplest
subjects e. st. three, to all appearance unexceptionable meaning of n^2.FI which the A. V. renders « apple."
;
English resident authorities, including a consul and a Mr. Tristram concludes that it cannot be "the ap-
medical gentleman, assured me that the finest apples ple " that is intended, but is " the apricot." H.
in Syria grew at Joppa and Askelon. The fact ap-
peared so improbable that, though one authority had 6 fHtt'V, homuncitlus, "j^'H fP'^j homun
eaten them, I could not resist prosecuting the inquiry, cuius oculi, t. e. pupilla, in qua tanquam in speculo
and at last found a gentleman who had property there, hominis imagunculam conspicimus (Ges. Thes. s. v.).
132 AR ARAB
Priscilla and Aquila accompanied him to Ephesus from Jerome's Com. on Is. xv. 1, it appears that in
on his way to Syria. There they remained and ; that day the place was known as Areopolis c and
when Apollos came to Ephesus, knowing only the Rabbath-Moab, "id est, grandis Moab" (Reland,
baptism of John, they took him and taught him p. 577; Rob. ii. 166, note). rf The site is still
the way of the Lord more perfectly. At what called Rabba ; it lies about half-way between Kereh
time they became Christians is uncertain: had and the Wady Mojeb, 10 or 11 miles from each,
Aquila been converted before his first meeting with the Roman road passing through it. The remains
St. Paul, the word fxadnr^s would hardly have are not so important as might be imagined (Irby,
been omitted (see against this view Neander, Pfl. p. 140; Burckh. p. 377; De Saulcy, ii. 44-46, and
u. Leit. p. 333 f., and for it Herzog, Encykl. s. v.). map 8).
At the time of writing 1 Cor., Aquila and his wife In the books of Moses Ar appears to be used as a
were still in Ephesus (1 Cor. xvi. 19); but in Rom. representative name for the whole nation of Moab
xvi. 3 ff., we find them again at Rome, and their see Deut. ii. 9, 18, 29 and also Num. xxi. 15,
;
house a place of assembly for the Christians. They where it is coupled with a word rarely if ever used
are there described as having endangered their lives
in the same manner, i""Q?!\ " the dwelling of Ar."
for that of the apostle. In 2 Tim. iv. 19, they
are saluted as being with Timotheus, probably at In Num. xxii. 36 the almost identical words "1^
Ephesus. In both these latter places the form >
Prisca and not Priscilla is used. C are rendered " a city of Moab," following the
Nothing further is known of either of them. Sam. Vers., the LXX., and Vulgate. G.
The Menolnff. Grmcorum gives only a vague tradi- * Ritter's view (referred to in the note cl ) that Ai
tion that they were beheaded and the Martyrol. ;
was not the present Rabba, but was situated near
Rom. celebrates both on July 8. H. A. Aroer on the Arnon, is held also by Hengstenberg
* We must advert here to the question whether (Gesch. Bileams, p. 234 ft".), Keil (Pentateuch,
Luke mentions the Nazarite vow (Acts xviii. 18) iii. 146), and Kurtz (Gesch. des A. Bundes, ii.
of Aquila or the apostle Paul. The passage, gram- 448). Among the reasons on which they rely for
matically viewed, no doubt should be understood this opinion, are that Ar formed the northern
of Aquila and so much the more, it is urged, be-
;
boundary of Moab (Num. xxii. 36, comp. xxi. 15),
cause Luke places Priscilla' s name whereas Rabba is 3 or 4 hours further south in the
before Aquila's
as if for the very purpose of showing that Kttpdfi- interior of Moab, and that Ar was in the Wady of
(vos belongs to 'Akv\o.s, and not UavKos- So the Arnon (Deut. ii. 36; Josh. xiii. 9) whereas
Grotius, Kuinoel, Wieseler, Meyer, and others. Rabba is not in that valley, but 10 miles or more
On the contrary, Neander, Olshausen, Hemsen, De distant from it. Burckhardt (Syria, ii. 636) found
Wette, Winer, Wordsworth, Lechler (Lange's " a fine green pasture-land in which is a hill with
Bibelwerh, p. 261), with others, refer the vow to important ruins," near the confluence of Wady
the apostle, and not Aquila. Uav\os is the leading Lejum and Wady Mdjib (the Arnon) which may
subject, and the reader connects the remark spon- well be supposed to be the site of the ancient Ar.
taneously with him. It is only as an act of re- It is true, the name Areopolis, which was the Greek
flection, on perceiving that 'AkvAos stands nearer, name of Ar, was applied also to Rabba ; but there
that the other connection occurs to the mind as a is no proof that this was done till after the destruc-
possible one. The intervening words (koi ffbv tion of Ar by an earthquake in the 4th century
ai)T<j> .... 'Aicv\as) may separate /ceipa/tepos (Jer. ad Jes. xv. 1), and hence the name may have
and TlavXos from each other, because the clause is designated different places at different times. It is
so evidently parenthetic, and because 4£eir\et has possible, as Ritter argues, that after the overthrow
a tendency to draw its several subjects towards itself. of Ar, the capital of the region, the name was
That no stresscan be laid upon Luke's naming transferred to Rabba, which was the next
in rank
Priscilla before Aquila, is clear from Rom. xvi. 3 and became then the seat of the episcopate, which
and 2 Tim. iv. 19, where the names follow each had previously been at Ar. Dr. Robinson identifies
.other in the same manner. Some principle of as- Ar with Rabba, but without specially noticing the
sociation, as possibly that of the relative superiority objections to that view. The argument against
of Priscilla, seems to have made it customary to that identification, and for supposing Ar to have
speak of them in that order. Dr. Howson (Life been on the Arnon, is well stated in Zeller's Bibl.
and Epistles of St. Paul, i. 498) maintains that Worth, p. 95. Raumer held at first a different
Aquila assumed the vow; but in his Hulsean Lect- opinion, but changed it in view of Hengstenberg's
ures (p. 16, note) recedes from that opinion and arguments (Paldstina, p. 271, 4te Aufi.). Diet-
ascribes the act to Paul. H. rich also agrees with Ritter, and distinguishes Ar
from the present Rabba in Moab (Hebr. u. ChaM.
AR (~I5) and AR OF MOAB (UNTO ~V2, a Handw. p. 680). H.
Sam. Vers. ntmN [Num. xxi. 15] "Up; [Deut.
:
A'RA(S^S
'Apd: Ara). [perh. Ko»='HN]:
ii. 9, 18, Rom. Alex. 'Apoiftp, Vat. 2»?*ip; 29, One of the sons of Jether, the head of a family of
Rom. Vat. 'Apofy>, Alex. Apor)\, Cornp. "Ap :] Ar), Asherites (1 Chr. vii. 38). W. A. W.
one of the chief places of Moab (Is. xv. 1 Num. ;
« According to Gesenius (Jesaia, p. 515), an old, is noticed by Trench (English Past and Present, pp.
218, 220) as existing in language, to tamper with the
probably Moabite, form of the word H^ V, a " city." derivations of words. He gives another example of it
6 Samaritan Codex and Version, " as far as Moab," in " Hierosolyma," quasi iepos, "holy."
d Ritter (Syrien, p. 1212, 13) tries hard to make
reading IV for "137 ; and so also LXX. ecus M.
out that Areopolis and Ar-Moab were not identical,
c We have Jerome's testimony that Areopolis was
and that the latter was the " city in the midst of the
believed to be quasi "Aptos woAis, " the city of Ares "
wady " [Aroer] but he fails to establish his point.
;
records In the earlier books of the Bible, that the 2, xii. 3 and 2 K. xiv. 25, both the Dead Sea and
;
word has also a more special and local force. In the Sea of Cinneroth (Gennesareth ) are named in .
these cases it is found with the definite article close connection with the Arabah. The allusions
xviii. 18 2
(r"Q"^n, ha-Arabah). "the Arabah," and is also in Deut. xi. 30 Josh. viii. 14, xii. 1, ; ;
(Humboldt, Cosmos, i. 150, ed. Bohn; see also 301). and in the latter on the east side of the Jordan
Through the northern portion of this extraordinary the Arboth-Moab being always distinguished from
fissure the Jordan rushes through the lakes of the Sede-Moab —
the bare and burnt-up soil of the
Huleh and Gennesareth down its tortuous course to sunken valley, from the cultivated pasture or corn-
the deep chasm of the Dead Sea. This portion, fields of the downs on the upper level with all —
a The early commentators and translators seem to and 'ApajScofl ; but it is difficult to say whether this
have overlooked or neglected the fact, that the Jordan has been done intelligently, or whether it is an in-
valley and its continuation south of the Dead Sea had stance of the favorite habit of these translators of
a special name attached to them, and to them only. transferring a Hebrew word literally into Greek when
By Josephus the Jordan valley is always called the they were unable to comprehend its force. (See some
fie'ya ttcSiW but he applies the same name to the plain
;
curious examples of this —
to take one book only in —
of Esdraelon. Jerome, in the Onomaslican, states 2 K. ii. 14, <14>(J>w iii. 4, vu>\i)& iv. 39, apiuB v. 19
; ; ;
the name by which it was then known was Anion, (comp. Gen. xxxv. 16), 8e/3pa(ja vi. 8, ikp-uivi ix. 13,
; ;
he translates indiscriminately Mishor, Bekaa, Midbar, b By Abulfeda and Ibn Haukal the word el- Ghor is
Shefela, Jeshimon, equally unmindful of the special used to denote the valley from the Lake of Gennesareth
force attaching to several of these words. Even the to the Dead Sea (Ritter, Sinai, pp. 1059, 1060). Thus
accurate Aquila has failed in this, and uses his favorite each word was originally applied to the whole extent,
6fiaA>j indiscriminately. The Talmud, if we may and each has been since restricted to a portion only
7)
trust the single reference given by Keland (p. 365), (see Stanley, App. p. 487). The word Ghor is inter-
mentions the Jordan valley under. the name Bekaah, preted by Freytag to m<Sm "locus depressior inter
a word at that time of no special import. The Samar- montes."
itan Version and the Targums apparently confound all c See the mistakes of Michaelis, Marius, and others,
words for valley, plain, or low country, under the one who identified the Arabah with the Bekaa (i. e. tbe
term Mishor, which was originally confined strictly to plain of Coele-Syria, the modern el-B'ikia), or with
the high smooth downs east of Jordan on the upper the Mishor, the level down country on the east of
level [Mishor]. Jordan (Keil, pp. 205, 226).
In the LXX. we frequently find the words 'Apoj3d
134 ARABAH ARABAH
the precision which would naturally follow from the long horizontal fines of the limestone ranges of the
essential difference of the two spots. (See Num. Tih, " always faithful to their tabular outline and
xxii. 1, xxvi. 3, 63, xxxi. 12, xxxiii. 48, 49, 50, blanched desolation " (Stanley, pp. 7, 84; also MS.
xxxv. 1, xxxvi. 13; Deut. xxxiv. 1, 8; Josh. iv. Journal; and see Laborde, p. 262), mounting up
13, v. 10, xiii. 32; 2 Sam. xv. 28, xvii. 16; 2 K. from the valley by huge steps with level barren
xxv. 5; Jer. xxxix. 5, hi. 8.) tractson the top of each (Rob. ii. 125), and crowned
The word Arabah does not appear in the Bible by the vast plateau of the "Wilderness of the
until the book of Numbers. In the allusions to the Wanderings." This western wall ranges in height
valley of the Jordan in Gen. xiii. 10, &c. the curious from 1500 to 1800 feet above the floor of the Ara-
term Ciccar is employed. This word and the other bah (Rob. i. 162), and through it break in the
words used in reference to the Jordan valley, as wadies and passes from the desert above unimpor- —
well as the peculiarities and topography of that tant towards the south, but further north larger and
region —
in fact of the whole of the Ghor will — of more permanent character. The chief of these
be more appropriately considered under the word wadies is the W. el-Jernfeh, which emerges about
Jordan. At present our attention may be con- 60 miles from Akabah, and leads its waters, when
fined to the southern division, to that portion of any are flowing, into the W. el-Jeib (Rob. ii. 120,
this singular valley which has from the most remote 125), and through it to the marshy ground under
date borne, as it still continues to bear, the name the cliffs south of the Dead Sea.
of " Arabah." Two principal passes occur
ir. this range. First,
A deep interest will always attach to this re- the very steep and difficult ascent close to the Aka-
markable district, from the fact that it must have bah, by which the road of the Mecca pilgrims be-
been the scene of a large portion of the war.derings tween the Akabah and Suez mounts from the" valley
of the children of Israel after their repulse from the to the level of the plateau of the Tih. It bears
south of the Promised Land. "Wherever Kadesh apparently no other name than en-Nukb, " the
and Hormah may hereafter be found to he, we Pass" (Rob. i. 175). The second es-SuJ'ah — —
know with certainty, even in our present state of has a more direct connection with the Bible history,
ignorance, that they must have been at the nortli being probably that at which the Israelites were
of the Arabah; and therefore "the way of the Red repidsed by the Canaanites (Deut. i. 44 Num. xiv. ;
Sea," by which they journeyed "from Mount Hor 43-45). It is on the road from Petra to Hebron,
to compass the land of Edom," after the refusal of above Ain el- Weibeh, and is not like the former, from
the king of Edom to allow them a passage through the Arabah to the plateau, but from the plateau
his country, must have been southwards, down the itself to a higher level 1000 feet above it. See the
Arabah towards the head of the Gulf, till, as is descriptions of Robinson (ii. 178), Lmdsay (ii. 46),
nearly certain, they turned up one of the wadies on Stanley (p. 85).
the and so made their way by the back of the
left, The eastern wall is formed by the granite and
mountain of Seir to the land of Moab on the east basaltic (Schubert in Ritter, Sinai, p. 1013) moun-
of the Dead Sea. tains of Edom, which are in every respect a contrast
More accurate information will no doubt be ob- to the range opposite to them. " At the base are
tained before long of the whole of this interesting low hills of limestone and argillaceous rock like
country, but in the mean tune as short a jutting into the sea .... in some
summary promontories
as possibleis due of what can be collected from thickly strewed with blocks of porphyry;
places
the reports of the principal travellers who have then the lofty masses of dark porphyry constituting
visited it. the body of the mountain ; above these, sandstone
The direction of the Ghor is nearly due north broken into irregular ridges and grotesque groups
and south. The Arabah, however, slightly changes or cliffs, and further back and higher than all, long
its direction to about N. N. E. by S. S. W. (Kob. elevated ridges of limestone without precipices
i. 162, 3). But it preserves the straightness of its (Rob. ii. 123, 154; Laborde, pp. 209, 210, 262;
course, and the general character of the region is Lord Lindsay, ii. 43), rising to a height of 2000 to
not dissimilar from that of the Ghor (Ritter, Sinai, 2300 feet, and in Mount Hor reaching an elevation
p. 1132; Irby, p. 134) except that the soil is more of not less than 5000 feet (Ritter, Sinai, pp. 1139,
sandy, and that from the absence of the central 40). Unlike the sterile and desolate ranges of the
river and the absolutely desert character of the Tih, these mountains are covered with vegetation,
highland on its western side (owing to which the in many parts extensively cultivated and yielding
wadies bring down no fertilizing streams in sum- good crops abounding in " the fatness of the
;
mer, and nothing but raging torrents in winter), earth " and the " plenty of corn and wine " which
there are very few of tnose fines and " circles " of were promised to the forefather of the Arab race as
verdure which form so great a relief to the torrid a compensation for the loss of his birthright (Rob.
climate of the Ghor. ii.154; Laborde, pp. 203, 263). In these moun-
The whole length of the Arabah proper, from the tains there is a plateau of great elevation, from
cliffs south of the Dead Sea to the head of the Gulf which again rise the mountains —
or rather the
of Akabah, appears to be rather more than 100 downs (Stanley, p. 87) —
of Sherah. Though this
miles (Kiepert's Map, Rob. i.). In breadth it va- district is now deserted, yet the ruins of towns and
ries. North of Petra, that is, about 70 miles from villages with which it abounds show that at one
the Gulf of Akabah, it is at its widest, being per- time it must have been densely inhabited (Burckh.
haps from 14 to 16 miles across; but it contracts pp. 435, 436).
gradually to the south till at the gulf the opening The numerous wadies which at once drain and
to the sea is but 4, or, according to some travellers,
give access to the interior of these mountains are in
2 miles wide (Rob. i. 162; Martineau, p. 392). strong contrast with those on the west, partaking
The mountains which form the walls of this vast of the fertile character of the mountains from which
valley or trench are the legitimate successors of they descend. In almost all cases they contain
those which shut in the Ghor, only in every way streams which, although in the heat of summer
grander and more desert-like. On the west are the small and losing themselves in their own beds, or
ARABAH ARABAH 135
Arabah, " in a few paces " after springs of Ain el- Welbeh, maintained by Robinson
in the sand of the
they forsake the shadow of their native ravines to be Kadesh (Rob. ii. 175 but see Stanley, pp.
;
borde, p. 203; Rob. ii. 161); by it Laborde returned a lone shrub of the ghiidah, almost the only trace
from Petra, and there can be little doubt that it of vegetation." This was at the ascent from the
was the route by which the Israelites took their Wady el-Jeib to the floor of the great valley itself.
leave of the Arabah when they went to " compass Further south, near Ain ei-Wtibeh, it is a rolling
the land of Edom" (Num. xxi. 4). The second, gravelly desert with round naked hills of consid-
the IP. Abu Kusheibeh, is the most direct access erable elevation (ii. 173). At Wady Ghwundel
lrom the Arabah to Petra, and is that up which it " an expanse of shifting sands, broken by in-
is
Laborde" and Stanley appear to have gone to the numerable undulations and low hills " (Burckh.
city. Besides these are Wady Tubal, in which the p. 442), and " countersected by a hundred water-
traveller from the south gains his first glimpse of courses" (Stanley, p. 87). The southern portion
the red sandstone of Edom, and W. Uhurutulel, has a considerable general slope from east to west
not to be confounded with those of the same name quite apart from the undulations of the surface
north of Petra and west of Sinai.'' (Stanley, p. 85), a slope which extends as far north
To Dr. Robinson is due the credit of having first as Petra (Schubert, p. 1097). Nor is the heat less
ascertained the spot which forms at once the south- terrible than the desolation, and all travellers, almost
ern limit of the Ghor and the northern limit of the without exception, bear testimony to the difficulties
Arabah. This boundary is the line of chalk cliffs of journeying in a region where the sirocco appears to
which sweep across the valley at about 6 miles be- blow almost without intermission (Schub. p. 1016
low the S. W. corner of the Dead Sea. They are Burckh. p. 444; Mart. p. 394; Rob. ii. 123).c
from 50 to 150 feet in height; the Ghor ends with However, in spite of this heat and desolation,
the marshy ground at their feet, and level with their there is a certain amount of vegetation, even in
tops the Arabah begins (Rob. ii. 116, 118, 120). the open Arabah, in the driest parts of the year.
Thus the cliffs act as a retaining wall or buttress Schubert in March found the Arta (Calligonum
supporting the higher level of the Arabah, and the com.), the Anthia variegata, and the Coloquinta
whole forms what in geological language might be (Ritter, p. 1014), also tamarisk-bushes (tarfa) lying
called a " fault " in the floor of the great valley. thick in a torrent-bed d (p. 1016) ; and on Stanley's
Through this wall breaks in the embouchure of road " the shrubs at times had almost the appear-
the great main drain of the Arabah — the Wady ance of a jungle," though it is true that they were
el-Jeib —in itself a very large and deep water-course so thin as to disappear when the " waste of sand "
which collects and transmits to their outlet at this was overlooked from an elevation (85, and see Rob.
point the torrents which the numerous wadies from i. 163, 175).
both sides of the Arabah pour along it in the win- It is not surprising that after the discovery by
ter season (Rob. ii. 118, 120, 125). The furthest Burckhardt in 1812 « of the prolongation of the
point south to which this drainage is known to Jordan valley in the Arabah, it should have been
reach is the Wady Ghurundel (Rob. ii. 125), which assumed that this had in former times formed the
debouches from the eastern mountains about 40 outlet for the Jordan to the Red Sea./ Lately,
miles from the Akabah and 60 from the cliffs just however, the levels of the Jordan and the Dead Sea
spoken of. The Wady el-Jelb also forms the most have been taken, imperfectly, but still with suffi-
direct road for penetrating into the valley from the cient accuracy ff to disprove the possibility of such
north. On its west bank, and crossed by the road a theory; and in addition there is the universal
from Wady Musa (Petra) to Hebron, are the testimony of the Arabs that at least half of the dis-
o Hardly recognizable, though doubtless to be re- « See Burckhardt, pp. 441, 442. The sagacity of
cognized, under the Pabouchere of Laborde (p. 144), or Ritter had led him earlier than this to infer its exist-
the Abou Ghshebe of Lindsay. ence from the remarks of the ancient Mohammedan
b The various springs occurring both on the east historians (Rob. ii. 187).
and west sides of the Arabah are enumerated by Rob- / This theory appears to have been first announced
inson (iii. 184). Leake in the preface to Burckhardt's Travete
by Col.
c The wind in the Elanitic arm of the Red Sea is It was afterwards espoused and dilated
(see p. vi.).
very violent, constantly blowing down the Arabah on, amongst others, by Lord Lindsay (ii. 23), Dean
jom the North. The navigation of these waters is Milman (Hist, of Jews, Allen, p. 241), and Stephens
on that account almost proverbially dangerous and (Incidents of Trav. ii. 41).
difficult. (Sec the notice of this in the Edin. Rev. These observations will be stated in detail in the
vol. ciii. p. 248). account of the Jordan. Those of Lynch seem on the
d The bees whose hum so charmed him {p. 1017) whole the most reliable they give as the levels of
:
must from his description have been in a side wady, the Sea of Galilee and the Dead Sea below the Medi-
not in the Arabah itself. terranean respectively 652 and 1316-7 feet.
136 ARABATTINE ARABIA
trict drains northward to the Dead Sea a testi- —
xxv. 24; Ez. xxvii. 21); gent. n. *TVS[ (Is. xiii.
mony fully confirmed by all the recorded observa-
tions of the conformation of the ground. A series 20; Jer. iii. 2); and ^T)V (Neh. ii. 19); pL
of accurate levels from the Akabah to the Dead Sea, s
up the Arabah, are necessary before the question Q^Sl"!? (2 Chr. xxi. 16, xxii. 1), and D K\iri5
can be set at rest, but in the mean time the follow- (2 Chr. xvii. 11, xxvi. 7). (LXX. 'Apa/8ia, Ac.:
ing may be taken as an approximation to the real Vulg. Arabia, &c.) These seem to have the same
state of the case. geographical reference as the former names to the
1. The waters of the Red Sea and of the Medi- country and tribes east of the Jordan, and chiefly
terranean are very nearly at one level." north of the Arabian peninsula. In the N. T.
2. The depression of the surface of the Sea of 'ApafSia. cannot be held to have a more extended
Galilee is 652 feet, and of the Dead Sea 1316 feet, signification than the Hebrew equivalents in the
below the Mediterranean, and therefore
level of the
O. T.c TVS (Ex. xii. 38; Neh. xiii. 3) and
of the Red Therefore the waters of the Jor-
Sea.
dan can never in historical times have flowed into TV (1 K. x. 15; Jer. xxv. 20, 1. 37; Ez. xxx.
the Gulf of Akabah, even if the formation of the 5), rendered in the A. V. "a mixed multitude"
ground between the Dead Sea and the Gulf would
(Ex. xii. 38, here followed by T}), " the mixed
admit of it. But,
multitude," kings of "Arabia" (so in Yulg., and
3. All testimony goes to show that the drainage
in Heb. in corresponding passage in 2 Chr. ix. 14),
of the northern portion of the Arabah is towards
and (in the last two instances) " the mingled peo-
the Dead Sea, and therefore that the land rises
ple," have been thought to signify the' Arabs.
southward from the latter. Also that the south
portion drains to the gulf, and therefore that the
The people thus named dwelt in the deserts of
land rises northward from the gulf to some point
between and the Dead Sea. 6 The watershed is Petra. By the Arabs the country is called t> J\j
it
fixed as opposite the entrance to the Wady Talk, Arabs," and l^jwJU f x y -». (Jezeeret El-'Arab),
1 K.'iv. 30; Job i. 3; Is. xi. 14; Jer. xlix. 28; Geographical Divisions. Arabia was divided, —
Ez. xxv. 4). (Translated by the LXX. and in by the Greeks, into Arabia Felix (}] (vSai/j.wu
Vulg., and sometimes transcribed (KeSe'ju) by * n e 'Apa&ia), Arabia Deserta (^ epnpos 'Apa&ia),
former.) From these passages it appears that (Strab. xvi. p. 767; Plin. vi. 28, § 32; Diod. Sic. ii.
48 ft'.), and Arabia Petrata ($ nrtrpaia 'Apa/3ia,
D"T[7. \^M and C"7[7 ""S? indicate, primarily, Pt. v. 17,
§ 1). The first two divisions were those
the country east of Palestine, and the tribes de- of the earlier writers the third being introduced by ;
scended from Ishmael and from Keturah and that Ptolemy. ; According to this geographer's arrange-
this original signification may have become gradu- ment, they included, within doubtful limits, 1, the
ally extended to Arabia and its inhabitants gener- whole peninsula; 2, the Arabian desert north of
ally, though without any strict limitation. The the former; and, 3, the desert of Petra, and the
third and fourth passages above referred to, as Ge- peninsula of Sinai. It will be more convenient in
genius remarks (Lex. ed. Tregelles, in voc), relate this article to divide the country, agreeably to the
to Mesopotamia and Babylonia (comp. ^ avaroKri, natural divisions and the native nomenclature, into
Matt. ii. 1 it.). Winer considers Kedem, &c, Arabia Proper, or Jezeeret El-'Arab, containing
to signify Arabia and the Arabians generally (Real- the whole peninsula as far as the limits of the north-
wurterbuch, in voc); but a comparison of the pas- ern deserts; Northern Arabia, or El-Badiyeh,
sages on which his opinion is founded has led us bounded by the peninsula, the Euphrates. Syria,
to consider it doubtful. [Bene-Kedem.] 2. and the desert of Petra, constituting properly Ara-
water of the Gulf; 3d day, 1017 ft. 4th day, 2180 : c * See in Paul respecting his journey to Arabia
ft. Then, after leaving Petra, his halting-place ( ? in (Gal. i. 17). H.
ARABIA ARABIA 137
Arabia Proper-, or the Arabian peninsula, con- off the coasts bordering the Indian Ocean. Greek
sists of high table-land, declining towards the and Roman writers (Herod., Agatharch. op. Muller.
north ; most elevated portions being the chain
its Strab., Diod. Sic, Q. Curt., Dion. Perky., Heliod.
of mountains running nearly parallel to the Red ^Ethiop., and Plin.) mention most of the Biblical
Sea, and the territory east of the southern part of and modern products, and the animals, above enu-
this chain. The high land is encircled from the merated, with some others. (See the Dictionary
'Akabah to the head of the Persian Gulf by a belt of Geography.)
of low littoral country on the west and southwest
; Arabia Proper may be subdivided into five prin-
the mountains fall abruptly to this low region on ; cipal provinces : theYemen the districts of Hadra-
;
the opposite side of the peninsula the fall is gener- miiwt, Mahreh, and 'Oman, on the Indian Ocean
ally gradual. So far as the interior has been ex- and the entrance of the Persian Gulf; El-Bahreyn,
plored, it mountainous and desert tracts, towards the head of the Gulf just named; the great
consists of
relieved by large under cultivation, well- central country of Nejd and Yemameh; and the
districts
peopled, watered by wells and streams, and enjoy- Hijaz and Tihameh on the Red Sea. The Arabs
iag periodical rains. The water-shed, as the con- also have five divisions, according to the opinion
formation of the country indicates, stretches from most worthy of credit (Mardsid, ed. Juynboll, in
the high land of the Yemen to the Persian Gulf. voc. Hijaz; comp. Strabo), Tihameh, the Hijaz,
From this descend the torrents that irrigate the Nejd, El-'Arood (the provinces lying towards the
western provinces, while several considerable streams head of the Persian Gulf, including Yemameh),
— there are no navigable rivers —
reach the sea in and the Yemen (including 'Oman and the inter-
the opposite direction two of these traverse 'Oman
: vening tracts). They have, however, never agreed
and another, the principal river of the peninsula, either as to the limits or the number of the divis-
enters the Persian Gulf on the coast or El-Bahreyn, ions. It will be necessary to state in some detail
and is known to traverse the inland province called the positions of these provinces, in order to the
Yemameh. The geological formation is in part vol- right understanding of the identifications of Bib-
canic ; and the mountains are basalt, schist, granite, licalwith Arab names of places and tribes.
as well as limestone, &c. ; the volcanic action being The Yemen embraced originally the most fertile
especially observable about El-Medeeneh
the districts of Arabia, and the frankincense and spice
on
northwest, and in the districts bordering the In- country. Its name, signifying " the right hand
"
dian Ocean. The most fertile tracts are those on (and therefore " south," comp. Matt. xii. 42), is sup-
the southwest and south. The modern Yemen is posed to have given rise to the appellation evSaifiwu
especially productive, and at the same time, from (Felix), which the Greeks applied to a much more
its mountainous character, picturesque. The set- extensive region. At present, it is bounded by the
tled regions of the interior also appear to be more Hijaz on the north, and Hadramiiwt on the east,
fertile than is generally believed to be the case; with the sea-board of the Red Sea and the Indian
and the deserts afford pasturage after the rains. Ocean; but formerly, as Fresnel remarks (comp.
The principal products of the soil are date-palms, Sale, Prelim. Disc), it appears to have extended at
tamarind-trees, vines, fig-trees, tamarisks, acacias, least so as to include Hadramiiwt and Mahreh
the banana, &c., and a great variety of thorny (Ibn-El-Wardee MS.; Yakoot's Mushtitrak, ed.
shrubs, —
which, with others, afford pasture for the Wiistenfield, and Mardsid, passim). In this wider
camels, —
the chief kinds of pulse and cereals (ex- acceptation, it embraced the region of the first set-
cept oats), coffee, spices, drugs, gums and resins, tlements of the Joktanites. Its modern limits
cotton and sugar. Among the metallic and mineral include, on the north, the district of Khiiwlan (not,
products are lead, iron, silver (in small quantities), as Niebuhr supposes, two distinct districts), named
sulphur, the emerald, onyx, &c. The products after Khiiwlan (Kdmoos), the Joktanite (Mardsid,
mentioned in the Bible as coming from Arabia will in voc, and Caussin de Perceval, Essai gar VHist.
be found described under their respective heads. <les Arabes (Want I'Islamisme, i. 113); and that of
They seem to refer, in many mer- Nejnin, with the city of that name founded by
instances, to
chandise of Ethiopia and India, carried to Palestine Nejnin the Joktanite (Caussin, i. 60, and 113
by Arab and other traders. Gold, however, was ff.), which is, according to the soundest opinion,
perhaps found in small quantities in the beds of the Negra of ..Elius Gallus (Strab. xvi. 782; see
torrents (comp. Diod. Sic. ii. 93, iii. 45, 47); and Jomard, Etudes yeoyr. et hist, sur V Arable, ap-
the spices, incense, and precious stones, brought pended to Mengin, Hist, de VEyypte, &c., iii.
from Arabia (1 K. x. 2, 10, 15 2 Chr. ix. 1, 9, 385-6).
;
14; Is. Ix. 6; Jer. vi. 20; Ez. xxvii. 22), probably Hadramiiwt, on the coast east of the Yemen, is
were the products of the southern provinces, still a cultivated tract contiguous to the sandy deserts
celebrated for spices, frankincense, ambergris, &c., called El-Ahkaf, which are said to be the original
as well as for the onyx and other precious stones. seats of the tribe of 'A'd (Ibn-El-Wardee, and oth-
Among the more remarkable of the wild animals ers). It was celebrated for its frankincense, which
of Arabia, besides the usual domestic kinds, and of it still exports (El-Idreesee, ed. Jaubert, i. 54), and
course the camel and the horse, for both of which formerly it carried on a considerable trade, its prin-
it is famous, are the wild ass, the musk-deer, wild cipal port being Zafari, between Mirbat and RAs
goat, wild sheep, several varieties of the antelope, Sajir, which is now composed of a series of villages
the hare, monkeys (in the south, and especially in (Fresnel, 4 e Letlre, Journ. Asiat. iii<= Sene, v. 521).
the Yemen); the bear, leopard, wolf, jackal, hyena, To the east of Hadramiiwt are the districts of
fox; the eagle, vulture, several kinds of hawk, the Shihr, which exported ambergris (Mardsid, in voc),
pheasant, red-legged partridge (in the peninsula of and Mahreh (so called after a tribe of Kuda'ah
Sinai), sand-grouse (throughout the country), the (Id. in voc), and therefore Joktanite), extending
ostrich (abundantly in Central Arabia, where it is from Seyhoot to Karwan (Fresnel, 4 e Lettre,
hunted by Arab tribes); the tortoise, serpents, lo- p. 510). 'Oman forms the easternmost corner
custs, &c. Lions were formerly numerous, as the of the south coast, lying at the entrance of the
names of places testify. The sperm-whale is found Persian gulf. It presents the same natural charac-
138 ARABIA ARABIA
teristics as the preceding districts, being partly gerated. The Arabs find pasture for their flocks
desert with large fertile tracts. It also contains and herds after the rains, and in the more depressed
some considerable lead -mines. plains; and the desert generally produces prickly
The highest province on the Persian Gulf is El- shrubs, &c, on which the camels feed. The in-
Bahreyn, between 'Oman and the head of the Gulf, habitants were known to the ancients as aKnv'nai,
of which the chief town is Hejer (according to some, " dwellers in tents," or perhaps so called from their
the name of the province also) (Kdmoos, Mardskl, town al 2/cTjvai (Strab. xvi. 747, 767; Diod. Sic.
in voce. It contains the towns (and districts) of
) ii. 24; Amm. Marc, xxiii. 6; comp. Is. xiii. 20;
Kateef and El-Ahsa (El-Idreesee, i. 371; Mardsid, Jer. xlix. 31; Ezek. xxxviii. 11); and they extended
in voce. ; Muehtarak, in voc. El-Ahsa), the latter from Babylonia on the east (comp. Num. xxiii. 7
not being a province, as has been erroneously sup- 2 Chr. xxi. 16; Is. ii. 6, xiii. 20), to the borders
posed. The inhabitants of El-Bahreyn dwelling on of Egypt on the west (Strab. xvi. 748; Plin. v.
the coast are principally fishermen and pearl-divers. 12; Amm. Marc. xiv. 4, xxii. 15). These tribes,
The district ofEl-Ahsa abounds in wells, and pos- principally descended from Ishmael and from Ke-
sesses excellent pastures, which are frequented by turah, have always led a wandering and pastoral
tribes of other parts. life. Their predatory habits are several times men-
The great central province of Nejd, and that of tioned in the O. T. (2 Chr. xxi. 16 and 17, xxvi.
Yemameh, which bounds it on the south, are little 7; Job i. 15; Jer. hi. 2). They also conducted a
known from the accounts of travellers. Nejd sig- considerable trade of merchandise of Arabia and
nifies "high land," and hence its limits are very India from the shores of the Persian Gulf (Ezek.
doubtfully laid down by the Arabs themselves. It xxvii. 20-24), whence a chain of oases still forms
consists of cultivated table-land, with numerous caravan stations (Burckhardt, Arabia, Appendix
wells, and is celebrated for its pastures ; but it is vi. ) ; and they likewise traded from the western
intersected by extensive deserts. Yemameh appears portions of the peninsula. The latter traffic ap-
to be generally very similar to Nejd. On the south pears to be frequently mentioned in connection with
lies the great desert called Er-Ruba el-Khalee, unin- and other Arabian peoples
Ishmaelites, Keturahites,
habitable in the summer, but yielding pasturage in (Gen. xxxvii. 25, 28 1 K. x. 15, 25 ; 2 Chr. ix, ;
the winter after the rains. The camels of the 14, 24; Is. Ix. 6; Jer. vi. 20), and probably con
tribes inhabiting Nejd are highly esteemed in Ara- sisted of the products of southern Arabia and of the
bia, and the breed of horses is the most famous in opposite shores of Ethiopia; it seems, however, to
the world. In this province are said to be remains have been chiefly in the hands of the inhabitants
of very ancient structures, similar to those east of of Idumsea; but it is difficult to distinguish be-
the Jordan. tween the references to the latter people and to the
The Hijaz, and Tihameh (or El-Ght'r, the " low tribes of Northern Arabia in the passages relating
land "), are bounded by Nejd, the Yemen, the Red to this traffic. That certain of these tribes brought
Sea, and the desert of Petra, the northern limit of tribute to Jehoshaphat appears from 2 Chr. xvii.
the Hijaz being Eyleh (El-Makreezee's Khitat, in 11; and elsewhere there are indications of such
voc. Eyleh). The Hyiiz is the holy land of Ara- tribute (comp. passages referred to above).
bia, its chief cities being Mekkeh and El-Medeeneh Western Arabia includes the peninsula of Sinai
and it was also the first seat of the Ishmaelites in [Sinai], and the desert of Petra, corresponding
the peninsula. The northern portion is in general generally with the limits of Arabia Petrsea. The
sterile and rocky towards the south it gradually
;
latter name
probably derived from that of its
is
merges into the Yemen, or the district called El- chief city, not from its stony character. It was
'Aseer, which is but little noticed by either east- in the earliest times inhabited by a people whose
ern or western geographers (see Jomard, p. 245 ff.). genealogy is not mentioned in the Bible, the Ho-
The province of Tihameh extends between the rites or Horim (Gen. xiv. 6, xxxvi. 20, 21 ; Deut.
mountain-chain of the Hyaz, and the shore of the ii. 12, 22, xxxvi. 20-22). [Hoeites.] Its later
Red Sea; and is sometimes divided into Tihameh inhabitants were in part the same as those of the
of the Hijaz, and Tihameh of the Yemen. It is a preceding division of Arabia, as indeed the bound-
parched, sandy tract, with little rain, and fewer ary of the two countries is arbitrary and unsettled
pasturages and cultivated portions than the moun- but it was mostly peopled by descendants of Esau,
tainous country. and was generally known as the land of Edom, or
Idumsea [Edom], as well as by its older appella-
Northern Arabia, or the Arabian Desert
tion, the desert of Seir, or Mount Seir [Seib].
The common origin of the Idumaeans from Esau
(SjOLw!) is divided by the Arabs (who do
found in the marriage of the former
and Ishmael is
senting their country as originally inhabited by Ispahanensis, ap. Schultens, pp. 24-5; El-Mes-
races which became extinct at a very remote period. 'oodee, cited by De Sacy, Mem, de I'Acad., xlviii.
These were the tribes of 'A'd, Thamood, Umeiyim, p. 484 ; and Ibu Khaldoon in Caussin' s Es-
ft*.
'Abeel, Tasni, Jedees, 'Emleek (Amalek), Jurhum i at, i. 1G). 'A'dites (in conjunction with Cushites)
(the first of this name), and Webari. Some omit were probably the founders of this and similar
the fourth and the last two, but add Jasim. The structures, and were succeeded by a predominantly
majority of their historians derive these tribes from Joktanite people, the Biblical Sheba, whose name is
Shem; but some, from Ham, though not through preserved in the Arabian Seba, and in the Sulxei of
Cush. a Their earliest traditions that have any ob- the Greeks. It has been argued (Caussin, Essai, i.
vious relation to the Bible refer the origin of the 42 ff. ; Kenan, Langues Semiliques, i. 300) that
existing nation in the first instance to Kahtan, the 'A'dites were the Cushite Seba; but this hy-
whom they and most European scholars identify pothesis, which involves the question of the settle-
with Joktan and secondly to Ishmael, whom they ments of the eldest son of Cush, and that of the
;
assert to have married a descendant of Kahtan, descent of the 'A'dites, rests solely on the existence
though they only carry up their genealogies to of Cushite settlements in southern Arabia, and of
'Admin (said to be of the 21st generation before
Mohammed). They are silent respecting Cushite the name of Seba (Lu*) in the Yemen (by these
settlements in Arabia; but modern research, we
think, proves that Cushites were among its early writers inferentially identified with S2D; by the
inhabitants. Although Cush in the Bible usually Arabs, unanimously, with Sebii the Kahtanite, or
corresponds to Ethiopia, certain passages seem to
S.2U* the Hebrew shin being, in by far the greater
;
indicate Cushite peoples in Arabia; and the series
of the sons of Cush should, according to recent
number of instances, s in in Arabic) and it neces- ;
that of the inscriptions found on the ancient re- with any Semitic or
Hamitic people. They must,
mains just mentioned, is in so great a degree appar- in the present state of knowledge, be classed with
other peoples whose genealogies
ently African, as to be called by some scholars the Rephaim and
Cushite : while the settlements of Raamah and are not known to us. The only
one that can possibly
Scriptural name is Amalek,
those of his sons Sheba and Dedan are probably be identified with a
to be looked for towards the head of the Persian
whose supposed descent from the grandson of Esau
xiv. 7 and Num. xxiv.
Gulf, bordered on the north by the descendants of seems inconsistent with Gen.
Keturah, bearing the same names as the two latter. 20. [Amalek.]
In Babylonia also independent proofs of this im- The several nations that have inhabited the
migration of Cushites from Ethiopia have, it is country are divided, by the Arabs, into extinct and
thought, been lately obtained. The ancient cities existing tribes; and these are again distinguished as
and buildings of southern Arabia, in their archi- 1. El-'Arab el-'A'ribeh (or el-'Arba, or
tecture, the inscriptions they contain, and the na- el-'Aribeh), the Pure or Genuine Arabs; 2. El-
tive traditions respecting them, are of the utmost 'Arab el-Muta'arribeh, and 3. El-'Arab el-Mustaa-
value in aiding a student of this portion of primeval ribeh, the Insititious, or Naturalized, Arabs. Of
history. Indeed they are the only important archaic many conflicting opinions respecting these races,
raphers), is one of the most interesting of these the other two, as synonymous appellations, belong
sites. See Michaelis's Questions, No. 9-1, &c. in to the descendants of Ishmael. According to the
Niebuhr's Arabia.) It was founded, according to second, El-'Arab el-'A'ribeh denotes the extinct
the general agreement of tradition, by 'Abd-esh- tribes; El-'Arab el-Muta'arribeh, the unmixed de-
Shems Seba, grandson of Yaarub the Kahtanite scendants of Kahtan; and El-'Arab el-Mustaaribeh
(Hfuahtarak, in foe.; Abu-1-Fida, Hist, anteisl. ed. the descendants of Ishmael, by the daughter of
Fleischer, p. 114); and the Dyke of El-'Arim, Mudad the Joktanite. That the descendants of
which was situate near the city, and the rupture Joktan occupied the principal portions of the south
of which (a. d. 150-170 according to De Sacy; and southwest of the peninsula, with colonies in
120 according to Caussin de Perceval) formed an the interior, is attested by the Arabs and fully con-
era in Arabian history, is generally ascribed to Luk- firmed by historical and philological researches. It
man the Greater, the 'A'dite, who founded the dy- isalso asserted that they have been gradually ab-
materials for the latter are meagre, and almost purely isfactorily reconciling contradictory opinions ;
and his
traditional. The chronology is founded on geneal- identifications of these with other tribes are purely
ogies, and is too intricate and unsettled for discussion hypothetical.
in this article but it is necessary to observe that
; b Beba was the city of Ma-rib (Ibtshtaralc, in voc),
"son "should often be read '' descendant," and that or the country in the Yemen of whioh the city was
the Arabs ascribe great length of life to the ancient Ma-rib (Marasul, in voc). See also Sheba.
people. c El-'Arab el-'A'ribeh is conventionally applied by
<* This enumeration is from a comparison of Arab the lexicographers to all who spoke pure Arabic before
authors. Caussin de Perceval has entered into some its corruption began.
detail on the subject (Essai, i. 11-35), but without sat-
140 ARABIA ARABIA
sorbed into the Ishmaelite immigrants, though not
without leaving strong traces of their former ex- their names from Aafar (/•I), reddish.'
1
otherwise not worthy of credit. [Sheba.] The the Arabs (Ibn-Khaldoon, ap. Caussin, i. 135 ff.)
dominant family was apparently that of Himyer, and distinguished from the descendants of Yaarub,
son (or descendant) of Seba. A member of this an indication, as is remarked by Caussin (I. c), of
family founded the more modern kingdom of the their separate descent from Hazarmaveth [Hazar-
Himyerites. The testimony of the Bible, and of maveth]. The Greek geographers mention a
the classical writers, as well as native tradition, fourth people in conjunction with the Sabaei, Ho-
seems to prove that the latter appellation super- meritae, and Chatramotita;, the Mino-i (Strab. —
seded the former only shortly before the Christian xvi. 768; Ptol. v. 7, § 23; Plin. vi. 32; Diod.
era: i. e. after the foundation of the later king- Sic. iii. 42) who have not been identified with any
dom. " Himyerite," however, is now very vaguely Biblical or modern name. Some place them as
used. Himyer, it may be observed, high as Mekkeh, and derive their name from Mina
is perhaps
(the sacred valley N. E. of that city), or from the
"red" (wA+s»-j from 8j_fS>, or j^£>l), and goddess Mamih, worshipped in the district between
Mekkeh and El-Medeeneh. Fresnel, however, places
several places in Arabia whose soil is reddish derive them in the Wadu Do'an
in Hadramawt, arguing
ARABIA ARABIA 141
that the anciently included this tract, that
Yemen over those of Ishmael. They therefore cannot be
the Minau were probably the same as the Rhaban- certainly proved to have spread over the peninsula,
itae or Rhamanitre (Ptol. vi. 7, § 24; Strabo, xvi. notwithstanding the almost universal adoption of
the Hijaz. founded by Jurhum, the brother of and other considerations it becomes at the same
Yaarub, who left the Yemen and settled in the time highly probable that they now form the pre-
neighborhood of Mekkeh. The Arab lists of its dominant element of the Arab nation.
kings are inextricably confused but the name of
; Of the descendants of Keturah the Arabs say
their leader and that of two of his successors was little. They appear to have settled chiefly north
Mudad (or El-Mudad), who probably represents Al- of the peninsula in Desert Arabia, from Palestine
modad [Almodad]. Ishmael, according to the to the Persian Gulf; and the passages in the Bible
Arabs, married a daughter of the first Mudad, in which mention is made of Dedan (except those
whence sprang 'Admin the ancestor of Mohammed. relating to the Cushite Dedan, Gen. x. 7) refer
This kingdom, situate in a less fertile district than apparently to the tribe sprung from this race (Is.
the Yemen, and engaged in conflict with aboriginal xxi. 13; Jer. xxv. 23; Ez. xxvii. 20), perhaps with
tribes, never attained the importance of that of an admixture of the Cushite Dedan, who seems to
the south. It merged, by intermarriage and con- have passed up the western shores of the Persian
quest, into the tribes of Ishmael. (kutb-ed-Deen, Gulf. Some traces of Keturahites, indeed, are as-
ed. Wiistenfeld, pp. 35 and 39 comp. authori- serted to exist in the south of the peninsula, where
ff.;
ties quoted by Caussin.) Fresnel cites an Arab a king of Himyer is said to have been a Midianite
author who identifies Jurhum with Hadoram [Had- (El-Mes'oodee, cip. Schultens, pp. 158-9); and
oram]. where ons dialect is said to be of Midian, and an-
Although these were the principal Joktanite king- other of Jokshan son of Keturah (Moajam); but
doms, others were founded beyond the limits of the these traditions must be ascribed to the Rabbinical
peninsula. The most celebrated of these were that influence in Arab history. Native writers are al-
of El-Heereh in El-Irak, and that of Ghassan on most wholly silent on this subject and the dialects ;
the confines of Syria; both originated by emigrants mentioned above are not, so far as they are known
after the Hood of El-'Arim. El-Heereh soon be- to us, of the tribes of Ksturah. [Keturah, &c.]
came Ishmaelitic Ghassan long maintained its
; In Northern and Western Arabia are other
original stock. Among its rulers were many named peoples which, from their geographical position and
El-Harith. Respecting the presumed identity of mode of life, are sometimes classed with the
some of these with kings called by the Greeks and Arabs. Of these are Amalek, the descendants
Romans Aretas, and with the Aretas mentioned by of Esau, &c.
St. Paul (2 Cor. xi. 32), see Aretas. Relit/ion. —
The most ancient idolatry of the
The Ishmaelites appear to have entered the Arabs we must conclude to have been fetichism,
peninsula from the northwest. That they have of which there are striking proofs In the sacred
spread over the whole of it (with the exception of trees and stones of historical times, and in the
one or two districts on the south coast which are worship of the heavenly bodies, or Sabaeism. With
said to be still inhabited by unmixed Joktanite the latter were perhaps connected the temples (or
peoples), and that the modern nation is predom- palace-temples) of which there are either remains
inantly Ishmaelite, is asserted by the Arabs. They or traditions in the Himyerite kingdom such as ;
do not, however, carry up their genealogies higher Beyt Ghumdan in San'a, and those of Reydan,
than 'Adnan (as we have already said), and they Beynooneh, Ru'eyn, 'Eyneyn, and Riam. To the
have lost the names of most of Ishmael's immediate worship of the heavenly bodies we find allusions in
and near descendants. Such as have been identified Job (xxxi. 26-28) and to the belief in the influence
with existing names will be found under the sev- of the stars to give rain (xxxviii. 31), where the
eral articles bearing their names. [See also Ha- Pleiades give rain, and Orion withholds it; and
garenes.] They extended northwards from the again in Judges (v. 20, 21) where the stars fight
Hijaz into the Arabian desert, where they mixed against the host of Sisera. The names of the ob-
with Keturahites and other Abrahamic peoples and jects of the earlier fetichism, the stone-worship,
;
westwards to Idumaa, where they mixed with tree-worship, &c, of various tribes, are too num-
Edomites, &c. The tribes sprung from Ishmael erous to mention. One, that of Manah, the god-
have always been governed by petty chiefs or heads dess worshipped between Mekkeh and El-Medeeneh
of families (sheykhs and emeers); they have gen- has been compared with Meni (Is. bcv. 11), which
erally followed a patriarchal life), and have not is rendered in the A. V. "number" [Meni].
originated kingdoms, though they have in some Ma<;ianism, an importation from Chaldoea and
instances succeeded to those of Joktanites, the Persia, must be reckoned among the religions of
principal one of these being that of El-Heereh. the pagan Arabs but it never had very numerous
;
With reference to the Ishmaelites generally, we followers. Christianity was introduced in southern
may observe, in continuation of a former remark, Arabia towards the close of the 2d century, and
that although their first settlements in the Hijaz, about a century later it had made great progress.
and their spreading over a great part of the northern It flourished chiefly in the Yemen, where many
portions of the peninsula, are sufficiently proved, churches were built (see Philostorg. Hist. Kecks.
there is doubt as to the wide extension given to iii.; Sozomen, vi.; Evagr. vi.). It also rapidly
them by Arab tradition. Mohammed derived from advanced in other portions of Arabia, through the
the Jews whatever tradition he pleased, and silenced kingdom of Heereh and the contiguous countries,
any contrary, by the Kur-an or his own dicta. This Ghassan, and other parts. The persecutions of the
religious element, which does not directly affect the Christians, and more particularly of those of Nejnin
tribes of Joktan (whose settlements are otherwise by the Tubbaa Zu-n-Nuwas, brought about the fall
unquestionably identified), has a great influence of the Himyerite dynasty by the invasion of the
142 ARABIA ARABIA
Christian ruler of Abyssinia. Judaism was propa- lology. The division of the Ishmaelite language
gated in Arabia, principally by Karaites, at the into many dialects is to be attributed chiefly to the
captivity, but it was introduced before that time. separation of tribes by uninhabitable tracts of
It became very prevalent in the Yemen, and in the desert, and the subsequent amalgamation of those
Hijaz, especially at Kheybar and El-Medeeneh, dialects to the pilgrimage and the annual meetings
where there are said to be still tribes of Jewish ex- of 'Okaz, a fair in which literary contests took
traction. In the period immediately preceding the place,and where it was of the first importance that
birth of Mohammed another class had sprung up, the contending poets should deliver themselves in a
who, disbelieving the idolatry of the greater num- language perfectly intelligible to the mass of the
ber of their countrymen, and not yet believers in people congregated, in order that it might be crit-
Judaism, or in the corrupt Christianity with which ically judged by them ; for many of the meanest of
alone they were acquainted, looked to a revival of the Arabs, utterly ignorant of reading and writing,
what they called the " religion of Abraham " (see were of the highest of the authorities consulted by
Sprenger's Life of Mohammed, i., Calcutta, 1856). the lexicologists when the corruption of the language
The promulgation of the Mohammedan imposture had commenced, i. e. when the Arabs, as Moham-
overthrew paganism, but crushed while it assumed medans, had begun to spread among foreigners.
to lead the movement which had been one of the Respecting the Himyeritic," until lately little was
causes of its success, and almost wholly superseded known; but monuments bearing inscriptions in this
the religions of the Bible in Arabia. language have been discovered in the southern parts
Language. — Arabic, the language of Arabia, is of the peninsula, principally in Hadramiiwt and
the most developed and the richest of the Semitic the Yemen, and some of the inscriptions have been
languages, and the only one of which we have an published by Fresnel, Arnaud, "Wellsted, and Crut-
extensive literature: it is, therefore, of great im- tenden;* while Fresnel has found a dialect still
portance to the study of Hebrew. Of its early spoken in the district of Mahreh and westwards as
phases we know nothing; while we have archaic far as Kisheem, that of the neighborhood of Za-
monuments of the Himyeritic (the ancient language fari and Mirbat being the purest, and called " Ek-
of southern Arabia), though we cannot fix their hili;" and this is supposed with reason to be the
precise ages. Of the existence of Hebrew and modern phasis of the old Himyeritic (i* Lettre).
Chaldee (or Aramaic) in the tune of Jacob there is Fresnel' s alphabet has been accepted by the learned.
evidence in Gen. (xxxi. 47); and probably Jacob The dates found in the inscriptions range from 30
and Laban understood each other, the one speaking (on the dyke of Ma-rib) to 604 at Hisn Ghorab,
Hebrew and the other Chaldee. It seems also but what era these represent is uncertain. Ewald
(Judg. vii. 9-15) that Gideon, or Phurah, or both, ( Ueber die Himynrische Sprache, in Heefer's Zeil-
understood the conversation of the " Midianites, schrift, i. 2SJ5 ff.) thinks that they are years of
and the Amalekites, and all the children of the the Rupture of the Dyke, while acknowledging their
apparent high antiquity; but the difficulty of sup-
east" (21f7. \22). It is probable, therefore, that
posing such inscriptions on a ruined dyke, and the
in the 14th or 13th century b. c. the Semitic lan- fact that some of them would thus be brought later
guages differed much less than in after times. But than the time of Mohammed, make it probable that
it appears from 2 K. xviii. 26, that in the 8th they belong rather to an earlier era, perhaps that
century b. c. only the educated classes among the of the Himyerite empire, though what point marks
Jews understood Aramaic. With these evidences its commencement is not determined. The Him-
before us, and making a due distinction between yeritic in its earlier phasis probably represents the
the archaic and the known phases of the Aramaic first Semitic language spoken in Arabia.
and the Arabic, we think that the Himyeritic is to The manners and customs of the Arabs ,l are of
be regarded as a sister of the Hebrew, and the great value in illustrating the Bible but supposed ;
Aral jic (commonly so called ) as a sister of the He- parallels between the patriarchal life of the Script-
brew and the Aramaic, or, in its classical phasis, ures and the state of the modern Arabs must not
as a descendant of a sister of these two, but that be hastily drawn. It should be remembered that
the Himyeritic is mixed with an African language, this people are in a degraded condition; that they
and that the other dialects of Arabia are in like have been influenced by Jewish contact, especially
manner, though in a much less degree, mixed with by the adoption, by Mohammed, of parts of the
an African language. The inferred differences be- ceremonial law, and of rabbinical observances and ;
tween the older and later phases of the Aramaic, that they are not of the race of Israel. They must
and the presumed difference between those of the be regarded, 1st, as Bedawees, or people of the
Arabic, are amply confirmed by comparative phi- desert, and 2dly, as settled tribes or townspeople.
« By this term is to be understood the ancient lan- in the Zeitschr. der Deutschen Morgenl. GesfUschaft (x.
guage of southern Arabia generally, not that of the 17-73) had given evidence of his peculiar qualifica-
Himyerites only. tions for the task. The result of Dr. Osianders labors
b * On the pretended discovery of a key for reading has lately appeared as a posthumous publication in
the Himyeritic inscriptions by the English writer, Rev. the Zeitschr. d. D. M. Gesellschaft for 1865 and 1866,
Charles Forster, Professor Salisbury has a decisive ar- xix. 15.9-293 (with 35 plates), and xx. 205-287, with
ticle in the Bibl. Sacra, ii. 237-260. H. the title, Zur himjarischen Spruch- und Alter! hums-
c * In 1863 the Trustees of the British Museum pub- hunde von Dr. Ernst Osiander, aus seinem Nachlasse
lished a volume entitled " Inscriptions in the Himyar- herausg. von Prof. Dr. M. A. Levy. This is probably
itic character, discovered chiefly in Southern Arabia, the most important work at present existing on the
and now in the British Museum," with 18 lithographic subject. A.
plates containing forty-two inscriptions. A description d The Arabs have impressed their national charac-
of the monuments precedes the plates, but no com- teristics on every people whom they have conquered,
mentary is given, the preparation of that part of the except the Tartar races. "Arab life" is therefore
work having been assigned to Dr. Ernst Osiander. of generally understood in a very wide sense. The mod-
Goppingen, whose essay on the Himyaritic Antiquities, ern Egyptians are essentially an Arab people.
Zur kimjarischen Alterthumskunde, published in 1856
ARABIA ARABIA 143
The Bedawees acknowledge that their ancient Holiness to the Lord," and the saying of our Lord
excellence has greatly declined since the time of (John iii.33), "He . . . hath set to his seal that
Mohammed, and there cannot be a doubt that this God is true." As a mark of trust, this ring is
decline had commenced much earlier. Though given to another person (as in Gen. xli. 42). The
each tribe boasts of its unadulterated blood, and inkhorn worn in the girdle is also very ancient (Ez.
pure language, their learned men candidly admit ix. 2, 3,11), as well as the veil. (For these and
the depreciation of national character. Scriptural many other illustrations, see Lane's Modern Egypt-
customs still found among them must therefore be inns, index.) A
man has a right to claim his
generally regarded rather as indications of former cousin in marriage, and he relinquishes this right
practices, than as being identical with them. Fur- by taking off his shoe, as the kinsman of Ruth did
thermore, the Bible always draws a strong contrast to Boaz (Ruth iv. 7, 8; see Burckhardt's Notes on
between the character of the Israelites and that of the Bedouins and Wahnbys, i. 113).
the descendants of Ishmael, whom the Bedawees References in the Bible to the Arabs themselves
mostly represent. Yet they are, by comparison are more clearly illustrated by the manners of
still
with other nations, an essentially unchangeable the modern people in their predatory expeditions,
people, retaining a primitive, pastoral and many their mode of warfare, their caravan journeys, &c.
life,
customs strikingly illustrating the Bible. They To the interpretation of the book of Job, an ulti-
are not as much affected by their religion as might mate knowledge of thi3 people, and their language
be supposed. Many tribes disregard religious ob- and literature, is essential for many of the most ;
servances, and even retain some pagan rites. The obscure passages can only be explained by that
Wahhabees, or modern Arab reformers, found great knowledge.
difficulty insuppressing by persuasion, and even The commerce of Arabia especially connected
by force of arms, such rites and where they suc- with the Bible has been referred to in the sections
;
ceeded, the suppression was, in most cases, only on western and northern Arabia, and incidentally
temporary. Incest, sacrifices to sacred object?, &c.. inmentioning the products of the peninsula. Direct
were among these relics of paganism. (See Burck- mention of the commerce of the south does not
hardt's Notea on the Bedouins and Wakabys.) The appear to be made in the Bible, but it seems to
less changed a tribe, however, the more difficulty is have passed to Palestine principally through the
there in obtaining information respecting it. Such northern tribes. Passages relating to the fleets of
a one is very jealous of intercourse with strangers Solomon and to the maritime trade, however, bear
even of its own nation. In southern Arabia, for on this subject, which is a curious study for the his-
instance, is a tribe which will net allow a guest to torical inquirer. The Joktanite people of southern
stay within its encampments beyond the three days Arabia have always been, in contradistinction to
demanded by the laws of hospitality. This exclusion the Ishmaelite tribes, addicted to a seafaring life.
undoubtedly tends to preserve the language from The latter were caravan-merchants; the former,
corruption, and the people from foreign influence the chief traders of the Red Sea, carrying their
but. it probably does not improve the national char- commerce to the shores of India, as well as to the
acter. nearer coasts of Africa. Their own writers describe
To the settled Arabs, these remarks apply with these voyages — since
the Christian era especially,
the difference that the primitive mode of life is in as we might modern character of
expect from the
a great degree lost, and the Jewish practices are their literature. (See the curious Accounts of India
much more observable; while intermixture with and China by Two Mohammedan Travellers of the
foreigners, especially with Abyssinian and Negro Qth cent., trans, by Renaudot, and amply illustrated
concubines in the Yemen and the Hij;iz, has tended in Mr. Lane's notes to his translation of the
to destroy their purity of blood. ABedawee will Thousand and One Niyhts.) The classical writers
scarcely marry out of his tribe, and is not addicted also make frequent mention of the commerce of
to concubinage; he considers himself, and is, quite southern Arabia. (-See the Diet, of Gr. and Rom.
distinct from a townsman in habits, in mode of Geography.) It was evidently carried to Palestine
thought, and in national feeling. Again, a distinc- by the two great caravan routes from the head of
tion should be made between the people of northern the Red Sea and from that of the Persian Gulf;
and those of southern Arabia; the former being the former especially taking with it African pro-
chiefly of Ishmaelite, the latter of Joktaiute, de- duce; the latter, Indian. It should be observed
scent, and in other respects than settlement and that th& wandering propensities of the Arabs, of
intermarriage with foreigners, further removed from whatever descent, do not date from the promulga-
the patriarchal character. tion of El-Isl-.im. All testimony goes to show that
Regarded in the light we have indicated, Arab from the earliest ages the peoples of Arabia formed
manners and customs, whether those of the Bed- colonies in distant lands, and have not been actuated
awees or of the townspeople, afford valuable help only by either the desire of conquest or by religious
to the student of the Bible, and testimony to the impulse in their foreign expeditions but rather by ;
truth and vigor of the Scriptural narrative. No restlessness and commercial activity.
one can mix with this people without being con- The principal European authorities for the his-
stantly and forcibly reminded either of the early tory of Arabia are, Schultens' Hut. Imp. Vetus.
patriarchs or of the settled Israelites. We may Joctanidarum, Hard. Gel. 1786, containing ex-
instance their pastoral life, their hospitality (that tracts from various Arab authors; and his Monu-
most remarkable of desert virtues) [Hospitality], menta Vetustiora Ai'abiai, Lug. Bat. 1740 Eich- ;
their universal respect for age (comp. Lev. xix. 32), horn's Monumenta Antiquiss. Hist. Arabian, chiefly
their familiar deference (comp. 2 K. v. 13), their extracted from Ibn-Kuteybeh, with his notes, Goth.
superstitious regard for the beard. On the signet- 1775 Fresnel, Lettres sur V Hist, des Arabes avant
;
ring, which is worn on the little finger of the right I'Ishmisme, published in the Journal Asiatique,
hand, is usually inscribed a sentence expressive of 1838-53; Quatremere, Memoire sur Its Naba-
submission to God, or of his perfection, &c, ex- tke'ens; Caussin [de Perceval], Essai sur (Hist,
olaining Ex. xxxix. 30, " the engraving of a signet, des Arabes avant P Islamisme, Paris, 1847-8- for
144 ARABIAN ARAH
the geography, Niebuhr's Description de Dedan, Tema, and Buz (Jer. xxv. 24), and with
l' Arable,
Amst. 1774, [a trans, of his Beschreibung von Dedan and Kedar (Ez. xxvii. 21 ), all of which are
Arabien, Kopenh. 1772 see also his Reisebe- supposed to have occupied the northern part of the
;
schreib. nach Arabien, 2 vol. ibid. 1774-78;] peninsula later known as Arabia. During the pros-
Burckhardt's Travels in Arabia, Lond. 1829; perous reign of Jehoshaphat, the Arabians, in con-
Wellsted, Narrative of a Journey to the ruins junction with the Philistines, were tributary to
of Nakeb-al-Hajar, in Journ. of R. G. S., vii. Judah (2 Chr. xvii. 11), but in the reign of his
20; his copy of Inscription, in Journ. of Asiat. successor they revolted, ravaged the country, plun-
Soc. of Bengal, iii. 1834 and his Journal, Lon- dered the royal palace, slew all the king's sons with
;
don, 1838 Cruttenden, Narrative of a Journey the exception of the youngest, and carried off the
;
from Mokhd to San'd'; Jomard, Etudes geogr. et royal harem (2 Chr. xxi. 16, xxii. 1). The Ara-
hist, appended to Mengin, Hist, de VEgypte, vol. bians of Gur-baal were again subdued by Uzziah
iii. Paris, 1839 [Burton, K. F., Pilgrimage to EU (2 Chr. xxvi. 7). During the Captivity they appear
;
Medinah and Meccah, 3 vol., Lond. 1855-56; to have spread over the country of Palestine, for on
Palgrave, W. G., Journey through Central and the return from Babylon they were among the fore-
Eastern Arabia, 2d ed., 2 vol., Lond. 1865;] and most in hindering Nehemiah in his work of resto-
for Arabia Petrsea and Sinai, Kobinson's Biblical ration, and plotted with the Ammonites and others
Researches; Stanley's Sinai and Palestine ; Tuch's for that end (Neh. iv. 7). Geshem, or Gashmu,
Essay on the Sinaitic Inscriptions, in the Journal one of the leaders of the opposition, was of this
of the German Oriental Soc. xiv. 129 ff. Strabo, race (Neh. ii. 19, vii. 1). In later times the Ara-
Ptolemy, Diodorus Siculus, Pliny, and the minor bians served under Timotheus in his struggle with
geographers, should also be consulted. For the Judas Maccabaaus, but were defeated (1 Mace. v.
manners and customs of the Arabs, Burckhardt's 39; 2 Mace. xii. 10). The Zabadseans, an Arab
Notes on the Bedouins and Wahabys, 8vo, 1831; tribe, were routed by Jonathan, the brother and
and for Arab life in its widest sense, Mr. Lane's successor of Judas (1 Mace. xii. 31). The chieftain
Notes on the Thousand and One Nights, ed. 1838; or king of the Arabians bore the name of Aretas
and his Modern Egyptia7is, ed. 1842 [new ed. as far back as the time of Antiochus Epiphanes
1861]. and Jason the high-priest (2 Mace. v. 8; comp. 2
The most important native works are, with two Cor. xi. 32). Zabdiel, the assassin of Alexander
exceptions, still untranslated, and but few of them Balas (1 Mace. xi. 17), and Simalcue, who brought
are edited. Abu-1-Fida's Hist. Anteislamica has up Antiochus, the young son of Alexander (1 Mace.
been edited and translated by Fleischer, Lips. 1831 xi. 39), afterwards Antiochus VI., were both Ara-
and El-Idreesee's Geography translated by Jaubert, bians. In the time of the N. T. the term appears
and published in the Recueil de Voyages et de Me- to have been used in the same manner (Acts ii. 11).
nwires, by the Geogr. Soc. of Paris, 1836 of those [Arabia.] ; W. A. W.
which have been, or are in course of being edited, * ARABIC LANGUAGE.
Besides the
are Yakoot's Homonymous Geographical Diction- remarks under Arabia, p. 142, see Shemitic
ary, entitled ELMwhtarak Wactan, wa-l-Muf- Languages, §§ 20-24.
tarak Sak'an, ed. Wustenfeld, Got. 1845; the
Mardsid el-Ittilda, probably an abridgment by
* ARABIC VERSIONS. [Versions,
Ancient.]
an unknown hand of his larger geogr. diet, called
the Moajam, ed. Juynboll, Lug. Bat. 1852-4; the A'RAD
(~H?? [wild ass] -.'Cip^S; Alex. Apa>$;
Histories of Mekkeh, ed. Wustenfeld, and now [Vat.
Clptip; Comp. Aid. 'ApoSO Arod). A Ben-
publishing by the German Oriental Society; and jamite, son of Beriah, who drove out the inhab-
Ibn-Khaldoon's Prolegomena, ed. Quatremere, i. itants of Gath (1 Chr. viii. 15). W. A. W.
[-iii.] Paris, 1858 [in the Notices et Extraits des
Manuscrits, xvi. pt. 1, xvii. pt. 1, xviii. pt. 1; A'RAD ("T~^S [place of fugitives, Fiirst]:
trans, into French, with notes, by Slane, Parts 1, 'Apa5: [Arad; exc. in Josh., where we find] 'ASfp;
2, Paris, 1863-65.] Of those in MS., besides the [Vat. Atpa6 ftaffiKea ApaO; Comp. 'Apt'S: Heder]),
indispensable works of the Arab lexicographers, we a royal city of the Canaanites, named with Horman
would especially mention Ibn-Khaldoon's History and Libnah (Josh. xii. 14). The wilderness of
of the Arabs ; the Khareedet el-Ajd'ib of Ibn-El- Judah was to "the south of Arad " (Judg. i. 16).
Wardee; the Mir-dt ez-Zemdn of Ibn-El-Jozee It is also undoubtedly named in Num. xxi. 1 (comp.
xxvi. 5, compared with xxiii. 4, and Ps. lx. title). In 2 Chr. xxii. 5, the name is presented in a
Padan, or accurately Paddan, Aram (N "JIT^ shortened form as Ram, D^S^rl; comp. Job
"cultivated highland," from paddah, to plough, xxxii. 2.
Ges. p. 1092; Stanley, p. 129, note) was another 2. [Zvpoi' Syri.] Another Aram is named in
designation for the same region (Gen. xxv. 20. Gen. xxii. 21, as a son of Kemuel, and descendant
xxviii. 2; comp. Hos. xii. 12, where the word Sadeh, of Nahor. From its mention with Uz and Buz it
is probably identical with the tribe of Ram, to the
rTTtP, is, perhaps, equivalent to Paddan). [Sa-
"kindred " of which belonged "Elihu, the son of
deii ; Padan ai:a.m.] A tribe of Hittites
Barachel the Buzite," who was visiting Job in the
(Khatti) bearing the name of Patena is reported
land of Uz (Job xxxii. 2). It is also worthy of
to have been met with in the inscriptions of Shal-
notice that among the other descendants of Nahor
maneser, b. c. 900-860. They then occupied the
are named Tebach (comp. Tibhath, 1 Chr. xix. 18),
valley of the Orontes, and the country eastward as
and Maacah so that the tribe was possibly one of
;
[Rehob.] Aram-maachah
(x. 8). 3. (1 Chr.
ARAM-NAHARAIM (D?103 EHW
o The name Aram probably appears also in the Ho- 84). Comp. Strab. xvi, 785 ; Grote, History of Greece,
meric names 'ApiVoc (11. ii. 783) and 'Epenfioi (Od. iv, iii. 387.
10
146 ARAM-ZOBAH ARARAT
[Aram of the two rivers] : fj Me<ro7roTa/ita Zvpias i [Armenia.] In Gen. xi. 2 we have apparently
Mesopotamia Syrice). (Ps. k. title.) [Aram 1.] an indication of its position as eastward of Mesopo-
W. A. W. tamia (D7|?p, "from the east," A. V.), whence
A'RAM-ZOBAH (nn'lS D*1H: }, s.vpia.
Bohlen {Introd. to Gen. ii. 139) identifies Ararat
2o0aA.: Sobal). (Ps. k. [Aram 1 and
with Aryavarta, [a Sanskrit name ==] the " holy
title.)
Zobah.] W. A. W. land " in the north of Hindostan but the Hebrew ;
in the margin, as
A'RANQ^K [wild goat] Sam. ]~TN: 'Apdv, is more correctly translated
:
(I.) As the resting-place of the ark after the Deluge indigenous and an ancient name for a portion of
(Gen. viii. 4, " upon the mountains of Ararat," A. Armenia, appears from the statement of Moses of
V.; super monies Armenia, Vulg.): (2.) As the Chorene, who gives Araratia as the designation
asylum of the sons of Sennacherib (2 K. six. 37; of the central province, and connects the name with
Is. xxxvii. 38 the LXX. have eh Appeviav in the
; an historical event reputed to have occurred b. c.
latter, and the Vulg. in terrain Armeniorum in the 1750 (Histor. Aiinen. Whiston, p. 361 ).• Jerome
former passage; A. V. has in both "the land of identified with the plain of the Araxes.
it It
Armenia"): (3.) As the ally, and probably the would, however, be more correct to consider the
neighbor, of Miuni and Ashchenaz (Jer. li. 27). name in its Biblical sense as descriptive generally
region, which adapted it to become the cradle of parently insurmountable barrier on that side, hem-
the human race and the central spot whence, after ming in the valley of the Tigris with abrupt de-
the Deluge, the nations were to radiate to different clivities so closely that only during the summer
quarters of the world. It is, however, first neces- months is any passage afforded between the moun-
sary to notice briefly the opinions put forth as to tain and river (Ainsworth's Travels in the Track
the spot where the ark rested, as described in Gen. of the Ten Thousand, p. 154). Josephus also
viii. 4, although all such speculations, from the in- quotes Nicolaus Damascenus to the effect that a
definiteness of the account, cannot lead to any cer- mountain named Bans, beyond Minyas, was the
tain result. Berosus the Chaldaean, contemporary spot. This has been identified with Varaz, a
with Alexander the Great, fixes the spot on the mountain mentioned by St. Martin (Mem. sur
mountains of Kurdistan (irpbs t<5 tipet tuv Kop- t Armenie, i. 265) as rising to the N. of Lake Van ;
Svalwu, Joseph. Ant. i. 3, § 6), which form the but the only important mountain in the position
southern frontier of Armenia. His opinion is fol- indicated is described by recent travellers under the
lowed by the Syriac and Chaldee versions, which name Seiban Tagh, and we are therefore inclined
to accept the emendation of Schroeder, who pro-
give VI"^ as the equivalent for Ararat in Gen. poses to read Mdats, the indigenous name of Mount
viii. 4, and in a later age by the Koran. Tradition Ararat, for Bapis. That the scene of an °.vent so
still points to the Jebel Judi as the scene of the deeply interesting to mankind had even at that
ARARAT ARARAT 147
early age been transferred, as was natural, to the third by the Tigris and Euphrates, the latter of
loftiest and most imposing mountain in the district, which also serves as an outlet towards the countries
appears from the statement of Josephus (Ant. i. 3, on the Mediterranean coast. These seas were the
§ 5), that the spot where Noah left the ark had high roads of primitive colonization, and the plains
received a name descriptive of that event, which he watered by these rivers were the seats of the most
renders A.irof$a.Tripiov, and which seems identical powerful nations of antiquity, the Assyrians, the
'
with Nachdj'evan, on the banks of the Araxes. To Babylonians, the Medes, and the Colchians. Viewed
this neighborhood all the associations connected with reference to the dispersion of the nations,
with Noah are assigned by the native Armen-
now Armenia is the true 6f*.<pa\6s of the world; and
ians, and their opinion has been so far indorsed by it is a significant fact that at the present day Ararat
Europeans that they have given the name Ararat is the great boundary-stone between the empires
exclusively to themountain which is called Massts of Russia, Turkey, and Persia. (3.) Its physical
by the Armenians, Agri-Dagh, i. e. Steep Mountain, formation. The Armenian plateau is the result of
by the Turks, and Kuh-i-Nuh, i. e. Nook's Moun- volcanic agencies: the plains as well as the moun-
tain, by the Persians. It rises immediately out of tains supply evidence of this. Armenia, however,
the plain of the Araxes, and terminates in two differs materially from other regions of similar
conical peaks, named the Great and Less Ararat, geological formation, as, for instance, the neighbor-
about seven miles distant from each other, the ing range of Caucasus, inasmuch as it does not rise
former of which attains an elevation of 17,260 feet to a sharp, well-defined central crest, but expands
above the level of the sea and about 14,000 above into plains or steppes, separated by a graduated
the plain of the Araxes, while the latter is lower series of subordinate ranges. Wagner (Reise, p.
by 4000 feet. The summit of the higher is covered 263) attributes this peculiarity to the longer period
with eternal snow for about 3000 feet of perpen- during which the volcanic powers were at work,
dicular height. That it is of volcanic origin, is and the room afforded for the expansion of the
evidenced by the immense masses of lava, cinders, molten masses into the surrounding districts. The
and porphyry with which the middle region is result of this expansion is that Armenia is far more
covered. A
deep cleft on its northern side has been accessible, both from without and within its own
regarded as the site of its crater, and this cleft was limits, than other districts of similar elevation.
the scene of a terrible catastrophe which occurred The passes, though high, are comparatively easy,
July 2, 1840, when the village of Arguri and the and there is no district which is shut out from
Monastery of St. James were buried beneath the communication with its neighbors. The fall of
debris brought down from the upper heights by a the ground in the centre of the plateau is not de-
violent earthquake. Clouds of reddish smoke and cided in. any direction, as is demonstrated by the
a strong smell of sulphur, which pervaded the early courses of the rivers —
the Araxes, which
neighborhood after the earthquake, seem to indi- flows into the Caspian, rising westward of either
cate that the volcanic powers of the mountain are branch of the Euphrates, and taking at first a
not altogether dormant. The summit of Ararat northerly direction —the Euphrates, which flows to
was long deemed inaccessible, and the Armenians the S., rising northward of the Araxes, and taking
still cling to this belief. It was first ascended in a westerly direction. (4.) The climate is severe..
1829 by Parrot, who approached it from the N. W. Winter from October to May, and is suc-
lasts
He describes a secondary summit about 400 yards ceeded by a brief spring and a summer of intense
distant from the highest point, and on the gentle heat. The contrast between the plateau and the
depression which connects the two eminences he adjacent countries is striking. In April, when the
surmises that the ark rested (Journey to Ararat, Mesopotamian plains are scorched with heat, and
p. 179 ). The region immediately below the limits on the Euxine shore the azalea and rhododendron
of perpetual snow is barren and unvisited by beast are in bloom, the Armenian plains are still covered
or bird. Wagner (Reise, p. 185) describes the si- with snow and in the early part of September it
;
lence and solitude that reign there as quite over- freezes keenly at night. (5.) The vegetation is
powering. Aryuri, the only village known to have more varied and productive than the climate would
been built on its slopes, was the spot where, accord- lead us to expect. Trees are not found on the
ing to tradition, Noah planted his vineyard. Lower plateau itself, but grass grows luxuriantly, and
down, in the plain of Araxes, is Xachdjemn, where furnishes abundant pasture during the summer
the patriarch is reputed to have been buried. months to the flocks of the nomad Kurds. Wheat
Returning to the broader signification we have and barley ripen at far higher altitudes than on the
assigned to the term "the mountains of Ararat," Alps and the Pyrenees the volcanic nature of the
:
as coextensive with the Armenian plateau from the soil, the abundance of water, and the extreme heat
base of Ararat in the N. to the range of Kurdistan of the short summer bring the harvest to maturity
in the S., we notice the following characteristics of with wonderful speed. At Erz-riim, more than
that region as illustrating the Bible narrative :
— 6000 feet above the sea, the crops appear above
(1.) Its elevation. It rises as a rocky island out ground in the middle of June, and are ready for
of a sea of plain to a height of from 6000 to 7000 the sickle before the end of August (Wagner, p.
feet above the level of the sea, presenting a surface 255). The vine ripens at about 5000 feet, while in
of extensive plains, whence, as from a fresh base, Europe its limit, even south of the Alps, is about
spring important and lofty mountain-ranges, having 2650 feet.
a generally parallel direction from E. to W., and The general result of these observations as bear-
connected with each other by transverse ridges of ing upon the Biblical narrative would be to show
moderate height. (2.) Its geographical position. that, while the elevation of the Armenian plateau
The Armenian plateau stands equidistant from the constituted it the natural resting-place of the ark
Euxine and the Caspian seas on the N., and be- after the Deluge, its geographical position and its
tween the Persian Gulf and the Mediterranean on physical character secured an impartial distribution
the S. With the first it is connected by the of the families of mankind to the various quarters
Acampsis, with the second by the Araxes, with the of the world. The climate furnished a powerful
148 ARARATH ARBONAI
inducement more tempting regions on equally probable that the word is merely a corrup-
to seek the
all sides of it. At the same time the character of tion of AKpa^arlv-n, the province or toparchy '
the vegetation was remarkably adapted to the no- which lay between Neapolis and Jericho (Belaud,
mad state in which we may oonceive the early p. 192; Joseph. B. J. iii. 3, §§ 4, 5, &c). G.
generations of Noah's descendants to have lived. ARBE'LA (iv Apfi-qXois' in Arbtllis), men- '
(Ant. xii.
killed.
was at Arbela of Galilee,
11, § 1) this
Jebusite who sold his threshing-floor on Mount
iv 'Apfi^Kots ir6\ei rrjs Ta\i\aias, a place which
Moriah to David as a site for an altar to Jehovah,
he elsewhere states to be near Sepphoris, on the
together with his oxen, for 50 shekels of silver (2
lake of Gennesareth, and remarkable for certain
Sam. xxiv. 18-24), or (according to 1 Chr. xxi. 25) impregnable caves, the resort of robbers and insur-
for 600 shekels of gold by weight. From the gents, and the scene of more than one desperate en-
expression (2 Sam. xxiv. 23) "these things did
counter (comp. Ant. xiv. 15, §§ 4, 5; B. J. i. 16,
Araunah, the king, give unto the king," it has been
§§ 2, 3 ii. 20, § 6
; Vita, § 37). These topograph-
;
places:
*
n3~nSH
T — :t :
(2
n
Sam. xxiv. 16); rTO~!S
t; — the southeast side of the Wady Ilamdm, in a
small plain at the foot * of the hill of Kurun Ihtt-
(xxiv. 18); ]3~IS (1 Chr. xxi. 15 ff; 2 Chr. iii.
tiu. The caverns are in the opposite faoe of the
'
1). [Oknan.] B. W.
and bear the name of Kula'at Ibn MaanB. ravine,
398; Burckh. p. 331; Irby, p. 91). (Bob.
AR'BA (V2HM, hero of Baal, so Furst, for ii.
'Ap/3e':] Arbe), the progenitor of the Anakim, Ol- (yrjv 'Ioi/Sa), which they were approaching "by
sons of Anak, from whom their chief city Hebkon the way that leadeth to Galgala" (Gilgal)/' that is
received its name of Kirjath Arba (Josh. xiv. 15, by the valley of the Jordan in the direct line to
xv. 13, xxi. 11). [See also Akbah.] F. W. G. which Jrbid lies. 6 Ewald, however (Geschichte, iv.
370, note), insists, in opposition to Josephus, that
AR'BAH (3?2~>N [four]: rbireSlof. Arbee).
the engagements of this campaign were confined to
" The Arbah " is always rendered elsewhere Judaea proper, a theory which drives him to con-
city of
Hebron, or Kikjatii-Akba (Gen. xxxv. 27). The sider lalyala " as the JUjilia north of Gophna. (
LXX. appear to have read 713"! 37 'arabdh. But he admits that no trace of an [Gii.«;.vi..]
Arbela in that direction has yet come to light.
W. A. W.
*In Josh. xxi. 11 the A. V., ed. 1611, reads Arbela may be the Beth-arbel of Hos. x. 14,
"the citie of ArbaA," marg. " Kiriath-arbah but there is nothing to ensure it. G.
(K«.pia0apfi6K Vat. KapadupfioK
; Cariaiharbe). ARBI'TE, : de Arbi). Pa- THE Oa^WH :
In Josh. xv. 13 the A. \ translates " the city of arai the Arbite, was one of David's guard
(2 Sam.
.
Arb«," marg. " Kiriath-arba." A. xxiii. The word, according to Gesenius Thes. 35). (
« The Arbela of Alexander the Great d Some MSS. and the important version of the Sy-
is called Irbil
by the Arabic historians (Rob. ii. 399). which case the Arbela
The change riac Peshito read " Gilead ;" in
of I to d is not unfrequent. Moreover, the present beyond Jordan must be thought of. But it is hardly
Irbil is undoubtedly mentioned in the Talmud as likely that Josephus would be inaccurate in his topog-
Arbel (see Sehwarz, p. 189 Rcland, p. 358 Rob. iii. raphy of a part of the country which he knew so
; ;
that the ruins are on the brow overlooking the chasm tary point of view, as commanding the great north
of the wady. [Thomson (Land and Book, ii. 114) road, the Sea of Galilee, and the important springs in
»ays the same. II.] — the plain of Gennesareth, is not lost sight of by Wilson
c First suggested in the Munchener Gel. Anzeigen, (Lands of tlie Bible, in Ritter, Jordan, p. 328).
Nov. 1836, and eagerly laid hold of by Robinson.
ARCHELAUS ARCHITECTURE 149
jecture of Movers respecting this name. sup- He [Vat. Apxovo-f-] Erchwei, Vulg.) perhaps the in-
habitants of Erech, some of whom had been placed
,
poses iirl
x* l P&pi> 0V A./3pa)ya (the best supported
reading) to represent the Hebrew TTJiT^H.^S, as colonists in Samaria (Ezr. iv. 9). W. L. B.
" on the other side of the river," namely, the Eu- ARCHI C^n^n: Archi), Josh. xvi. 2.
[Archite.]
The final
"*
in ^.^l? being written long
ARCHIP'PUS CApxiTnros [master of the
like 1 was easily converted into 3, as in Jud. ii. 28
horse] Arcltippas), a Christian teacher in Colossae,
:
"13V, Accho, is represented by 'O/ciVo. The calledby St. Paul his ffvvo-rpariwTTis (Philem. 2).
" high " referred to he supposes to be Baby-
cities
As the epistle, which concerns a private matter, is
addressed to him jointly with Philemon and Ap-
lon, Seleucia, Ctesiphon, and others in their neigh-
phia, and as "the church in their house" is also
borhood, citing Eutropius viii. 3, and Dion Cassius
addressed, it seems necessary to infer that he was a
lxviii. 28, in accordance with his theory that the
§ 4), and,with his brother Antipas, brought up at iv. 17; and recently Wieseler, Chronol. des apos-
Rome (id. B. J. i. 31, § 1). At the death of iolitchen Zeitalters, p. 452); but there does not
Herod (n. c. 4) a his kingdom was divided between seem to be any ground for the view. There is a
his three sons, Herod Antipas, Archelaus, and legend that he was of the number of the Seventy
Philip. Archelaus received the half, containing disciples, and suffered martyrdom at Chonse, near
Idumea, Judaea, Samaria, and the cities on the Laodicea (Menoloy. Graze, i. 246). There is a
coast, with 600 talents' income (Joseph. Ant. xvii. monograph written about him by Dietelmair, De
11, § 4). With one party among the Jews he was A>-ckipjx>, Altorf, 1751, 4to. H. A.
popular: another complained against him, but in ARCHFTE, THE C 3"1S~T,
,
as if from a
vain, to Augustus (id. Ant. xvii. 11, 1). He never
properly had the title of king (PacriKeus) assigned place named Erech, Tf^S : [2 Sam. xv., xvi.,
to him (Matt. ii. 22), but only that of idvdpxys apxirrcupos (for & 'Apx't, kraipos ? so Comp.
(ibid. ) so that the former word must be taken as
; o Apax*, eraipos or erepos, 29); 2 Sam. xvii.,]
loosely used. In the 10th year of his reign (Jo- 6 'Apax' [Vat. -x«; 1 Chr. 6 (cm. Aid. Alex.)
seph, xvii. 13, § 2, Vd. 1), or the 9th (B. J. ii. 7, irpa>Tos\ Comp. d apxtaiTepos (for 6 apxiercupos
§ 3), according to Dion Cass. (xv. 27) in the con- or rather 6 ApxU ercupos, as above):] Araehites),
'
sulship of M. ^Emil. Lepidus and L. Arruntius, the usual designation of David's friend Hushai (2
i. e. a. D. 6, a complaint was preferred by his Sam. xv. 32, [xvi. 16,] xvii. 5, 14; 1 Chr. xxvii.
brothers and his subjects against him on the ground 33).
of his tyranny, in consequence of which he was de- The word
(somewhat disguised, it is
also appears
posed and banished to Vienne in Gaul (Joseph. true, in the A. V.) in Josh. xvi. 2, where "the
Ant. xvii. 13, § 2; B. J. ii. 7, § 3), where he is borders of Archi" (i. e. "the Archite") 6 are
generally said to have died. But Jerome ( Onomast. named as on the boundary of the " children of Jo-
s. v. Bethlehem) relates that he was shown the sep- seph," somewhere in the neighborhood of Bethel.
ulchre of Archelaus near that town. If so, he must
No town of the name of Tf^S appears in Pales-
have returned as a private man to Judsea, and there
tine is it possible that, as in the case of the Gerizi,
have died. The parents of our Lord turned aside ;
years before the date in general use as the Christian See also Gerizdi Zemaraim. ;
tra.
150 ARCHITECTURE ARCHITECTURE
every artificer in brass and iron." It is probable
ix. 15, 24). Among the succeeding
Palmyra (1 K.
that the workers in metal were for the most part kings of Israel and of Judah, more than one is re-
dwellers in towns and thus the arts of architecture corded as a builder: Asa (1 K. xv. 23), Baasha
:
and metallurgy became from the earliest times lead- (xvi. 17), Omri (xvi. 24), Ahab (xvi. 34, xxii. 39),
ing characteristics of the civilized as distinguished Hezekiah (2 K. xx. 20; 2 Chr. xxxii. 27, 30), Je-
from the nomadic tendencies of the human race. hoash, and Josiah (2 K. xii. 11, 12, xxii. 6); and,
To the race of Shem is attributed (Gen. x. 11, lastly, Jehoiakim, whose winter palace is mentioned
12, 22, xi. 2-9) the foundation of those cities in (Jer. xxii. 14, xxxvi. 22; see also Am. iii. 15).
the plain of Shinar, Babylon, Nineveh, and others On the return from captivity, the chief care of
to one of which, Resen, the epithet "great" suffi- the rulers was to rebuild the Temple and the walls
ciently marks its importance in the time of the of Jerusalem in a substantial manner, with stone,
writer, a period at least as early as the 13th cent. and with timber from Lebanon (Ezr. iii. 8, v. 8;
B. c, if not very much earlier. (Rawlinson, Out- Neb. ii. 8, iii. 1, 32). During the government of
line of Ass. Hist. p. 10; Layard, Nineveh, ii. 221, Simon Maccabaeus, the fortress called Baris, and
235, 238.) From the same book we learn the ac- afterwards Antonia, was erected for the defense of
count of the earliest recorded building, and of the the Temple and the city. But the reigns of Herod
materials employed in its construction (Gen. xi. 3, and of his sons and successors were especially re-
9); and though a doubt rests on the precise site of markable for the great architectural works in which
the tower of Belus, so long identified with the Birs they delighted. Not only was the Temple restored
Niniroud (Benjamin of Tudela, p. 100, Bohn; New- to a large portion if not to the full degree of its for-
ton, On Proph. x. Vaux, Xin. and
pp. 155, 150; mer magnificence, but the
and other fortifications
Persep. pp. 173, 178; Keith, On Proph. p. 289), public buildings of Jerusalem were enlarged
and
yet the nature of the soil, and the bricks found embellished to an extent previously unknown (Luke
there in such abundance, though bearing mostly the xxi. 5; Benj. of Tudela, p. 83, Bohn). [More par-
name of Nebuchadnezzar, agree perfectly with the ticular descriptions of these works will be found
supposition of a city previously existing on the same under Jerusalem.] Besides these great works,
or a closely neighboring site. (Layard, ii. 249, 278, the town of Caesarea was built on the site of an in-
and Kin. and Bab. 531; Plin. vii. 56; Ez. iv. 1.) significant building called Strato's Tower; Samaria
In the book of Esther (i. 2) mention is made of was enlarged, and received the name of Sebaste;
the palace at Susa, for three months in the spring the town of Agrippium was built and Herod car- ;
the residence of the kings of Persia (Esth. iii. 13 ried his love for architecture so far as to adorn with
Xen. Cyrop. viii. 6, § 22); and in the books of To- buildings cities even not within his own dominions,
bit and Judith, of Ecbatana, to which they retired Bervtus, Damascus, Tripolis, and many other places
for two months during the heat of summer. (Tob. (Joseph. B. J. 21, 1, 11).
i. His son Philip the
iii. 7, xiv. 14; Jud. i. 14; Herod, i. 98.) tetrarch enlarged the old Greek colony of Paneas,
A branch of the same Syro-Arabian race as the giving it the name of Caesarea in honor of Tiberius
Assyrians, but the children of Ham, was the na- whilst his brother Antipas founded the city of Ti-
tion, or at least the dominant caste, of the Egypt^ berias, and adorned the towns of Sepphoris and
ians, the style of whose architecture agrees so re- Betharamphta, giving to the latter the name Liv-
markably with the Assyrian (Layard, ii. 206 ff.). ias, in honor of the mother of Tiberius (Reland, p.
buildings of the Egyptian monarchs. Pithom and appearance we can only conjecture, though with
Raamses are said to have been built by them. nearly absolute certainty, that they were formed on
(Ex. i. 11; Wilkinson, ii. 195.) Greek and Roman models. Of the style of the
earlier buildings of Palestine, we can only form an
The Israelites were by occupation shepherds, and
idea from the analogy of the Egyptian, Assyrian,
by habit dwellers in tents (Gen. xlvii. 3). The
" house " built by Jacob at Succoth is probably no and Persian monuments now existing, and from the
modes of building still adopted in Eastern countries.
exception to this statement (fVS, Gesen.). They The connection of Solomon with Egypt and with
had therefore originally, speaking properly, no ar- Tyre, and the influence of the Captivity, may have
chitecture. Even Hebron, a city of higher an- in some measure successively affected the style both
tiquity than the Egyptian Zoan (Tanis), was called of the two temples, and of the palatial edifices of
originally from its founder, perhaps a Canaanite of Solomon. The enormous stones employed in the
the race of Anak, Kirjath-Arba, the house of Arba Assyrian, Persepolitan, and Egj'ptian buildings
(Num. xiii. 22; Josh. xiv. 15). From the time of find a parallel in the substructions of Baalbec, more
the occupation of Canaan they became dwellers in ancient than the superstructure (Layard, ii. 317,
towns and in houses of stone, for which the native 318), and in the stones of so vast a size which still
limestone of Palestine supplied a ready material remain at Jerusalem, relics of the building either
(Lev. xiv. 34, 45; IK. vii. 10; Stanley, S. <$ P. of Solomon or of Herod (Williams, pt. ii. 1). But
pp. 146, 8); but the towns which they occupied as it has been observed again and again, scarcely
were not all,nor indeed in most cases, from any connected monuments are known to survive in
built
the first by themselves (Deut. vi. 10; xiii. Num.
Palestine by which we can form an accurate idea
19). of its buildings, beautiful and renowned as they
The peaceful reign and vast wealth of Solomon were throughout the East (Plin. v. 14 Stanley, p. ;
gave great impulse to architecture for besides the 183), and even of those which do remain no trust-
;
Temple and his other great works at and near Je- worthy examination has yet been made. It is
rusalem, he built fortresses and cities in various probable, however, that the reservoirs known under
places, among which the names and sites of Baal- the names of the Pools of Solomon and Hezekiah
ath and Tadmor are in all probability represented contain some portions at least of the original fabrics
by the more modern superstructures of Baalbec and (Stanley, pp. 103, 165).
ARCTURUS AREOPAGUS 151
The domestic architecture of the Jews, so far as "a of flowers," was then to the Israelites a
field
it can be understood, is treated under House. desert (comp. 2 Esdr. x. 21. 22). A.
Tools and instruments of building are mentioned
ARDTTES, THE. [Ard.]
by the sacred writers; the plumb-line, Am. vii. 7;
the measuring-reed, Ez. xl. 3 ; the saw, 1 K. vii. 9. AR'DON O'WTW [fugitive]: 'ApSdv, [Vat.
H. W. P. H. Alex, Opva; Vat. M. \opva-] Ardon), 1 Chr.
ii. 18. [A son of Caleb, the son of Hezron, by his
ARCTU'RUS. The Hebrew words tt?37,
wife Azubah.]
'Ash, and ^37, 'Ayish, rendered " Arcturus " in
ARE'LI pHfHgt, Sam. '•b'PN [son of a
the A. V. of Job ix. 9, xxxviii. 32, in conformity
hero]: 'Apij\; [in Gen. 'Aperi\eis; Alex. Apot)-
with the Vulg. of the former passage, are now gen-
\eis :] Areii), a son of Gad (Gen. xlvi. 1G ; X um.
erally believed to be identical, and to represent the
xxvi. 17). His descendants are called the Are'-
constellation Ursa Major, known commonly as the
lites (Xum. xxvi. 17).
Great Bear, or Charles's Wain. Niebuhr (Desc.
de f Arab. p. 101) relates that he met with a Jew
AREOP'AGITE Apfoirayir^s [Tiseh.-yef-
{'
Beigh, those in the tail being called el Benat, " the gus, Vulg.), was a rocky height in Athens, opposite
daughters " (comp. Job. xxxviii. 32). The ancient the western end of the Acropolis," from which it is
separated only by an elevated valley. It rises grad-
versions differ greatly in their renderings. The
LXX. render 'Ash by the "Pleiades" in Job ix. ually from the northern end, and terminates ab-
9 (unless the text which they had before them had ruptly on the south, over against the Acropolis, at
the words in a different order), and 'Ayish by " Hes- which point it is about fifty or sixty feet above the
perus," the evening star, in Job xxxviii. 32. In valley already mentioned. Of the
site of the Are-
the former they are followed or supported by the opagus, there can be no doubt, both from the de-
Chaldee, in the latter by the Vulgate. scription of Pausanias, and from the narrative of
R. David
Kimchi and the Talmudists understood by 'Ash the Herodotus, who relates that it was a height over
tail of the Ram or the head of the Bull, by which against the Acropolis, from which the Persians as-
they are supposed to indicate the bright star Alde- sailed the latter rock (Paus. Herod, viii. i. 28, § 5 ;
baran in the Bull's eye. But the greatest difficulty 52). According to tradition
was called the hill it
who give as the equivalent of both 'Ash and 'Ayish trial here before the assembled gods by Neptune
either Capella or the constellation Orion while Bar from the Council of Five Hundred, which held its
;
Bahlul hesitated between Capella, Aidebaran, and sittings in the valley below the hill. It existed as
a cluster of three stars in the face of Orion. a criminal tribunal before the time of Scion, and
Fol-
lowing the rendering of the Arabic, Hyde was in- was the most ancient and venerable of all the Athe-
duced to consider 'Ash and 'Ayish distinct; the for- nian courts. It consisted of all persons who had
mer being the Great Hear, and the latter the bright held the office of Archon, and who were members
star Capella, or a of the constellation Auriga. of it for life, unless expelled for misconduct. It
enjoyed a high reputation, not only in Athens, but
W. A. W.
throughout Greece. Before the time of Solon the
ARD (T";S [descent]: 'ApdS: Ared). 1. Son court tried only cases of willful murder, wounding,
poison, and arson; but he gave it extensive powers
of Benjamin [and if so, the youngest of his sons]
of a censorial and political nature. The Council is
(Gen. xlvi. 21).
mentioned by Cicero (ad Fain. xiii. 1; ad Alt. i.
2. 'ASdp; [Aid. Alex. 'AStp:] ffered. Son of 14, v. 11), and continued to exist even under the
Bela, and grandson of Benjamin (Num. xxvi. 40), Roman
emperors. Its meetings were held on the
written Addar in 1 Chr. viii. 3. His descendants south-eastern summit of the rock. There are still
are called the Ardites OT^SH), Xum. xxvi. sixteen stone steps cut bi the rock, leading up to
the hill from the valley of the Agora below; and
40. [As Ard is not mentioned among the sons of
immediately above the steps is a bench of stones ex-
Benjamin in Num. xxvi. 38, 39, "son" may stand
cavated in the rock, forming three sides of a quad-
for grandson in (icn. xlvi. 21, and thus the same
rangle, and facing the south. Here the Areopagites
person be meant in both passages.]
sat as judges in the open air (inraidptot 4$ikoi.£ovto,
ARDATH- "the field called Ardath" —
Pollux, viii. 118). On the eastern and western side
Esdr. ix. 2»j. is a raised block. These blocks are probably the
* Liicke (F.inl. in d. Offenb. d. Joh. i. 174) and two rude stones which Pausanias saw there, and
Volkmar (Einl. in d. Apdbr. ii. 131) take Ardath which are described by Euripides as assigned, the
(JEth. Arphad, Ar. A rant) to be a corruption for one to the accuser, the other to the criminal, in the
causes which were tried in the court (Iph. T. 961).
Arbath. meaning " desert " (Heb. n3"^y)> used
The Areopagus possesses peculiar interest to the
as an appellative rather than as a proper name.
Liicke supposes the desert of Judah to be intended <* * Dr. Robinson says, inadvertently, that it
'•'
bears
Volkmar, the Holy Land in general, which, though about north " from the Acropolis (Bibl. Res. i. 7). H.
152 ARES ARGOB
Christian, as the spot from which St. Paul deliv- Lyons, and his kingdom given to Agrippa, his foe
ered his memorable address to the men of Athens (Ant. xviii. 7), who had been living in habits of
(Acts 22-31).
xvii. It has been supposed by some intimacy with the new emperor (Ant. xviii. 6, § 5).
commentators that St. Paul was brought before the It would be natural that Aretas, who had been
Council of Areopagus ; but there is no trace in the grossly injured by Antipas, should, by this change
narrative of any judicial proceedings. St. Paul of affairs, be received into favor; and the more so,
" disputed daily " in the " market " or Agora (xvii. as Vitellius had an old grudge against Antipas, of
17), which was situated south of the Areopagus in which Josephus says, Ant. xviii. 4, § 5, eupwrev
the valley lying between this hill and those of the bpyijv, yue'xpt 5^ /coJ /ueTrjAfle, Taiov dpxVtV
Acropolis, the Pnyx, and the Museum. Attracting TTapei\n<p6ros. Now in the year 38 Caligula made
more and more attention, " certain philosophers of several changes in the East, granting Ituraea to
the Epicureans and Stoics" brought him up from Socemus, Lesser Armenia and parts of Arabia to
the valley, probably by the stone steps already men- Cotys, the territory of Cotys to Rhasmetalces, and
tioned, to the Areopagus above, that they might to Polemon, son of Polemon, his father's govern-
listen to him more conveniently. Here the phi- ment. These facts, coupled with that of no Da-
losophers probably took their seats on the stone mascene coins of Caligula or Claudius existing,
benches usually occupied by the members of the make it probable that about this time Damascus,
Council, while the multitude stood upon the steps which belonged to the predecessor of Aretas (Ant.
and in the valley below. (For details, see Dirt, if xiii. 5, § 2), was granted to him by Caligula. Thus
Ant. p. 126; Diet, of Geogr. i. 281.) [See Mars' the difficulty would vanish. The other hypotheses,
Hill for Paul's discourse there.] that the ethnarch was only visiting the city (as if
A'RES CApts: Ares). Akah 2 (1 Esdr. v. he could then have guarded the walls to prevent
10).
escape), —that Aretas had seized Damascus on Vi-
giving up the expedition against him (as if a
AR'ETAS ('Ape'ras: [Aretas:.] Arab. Chor- tellius Roman governor of a province would allow one of
ash), a common appellation of many of the Arabian
its chief cities to be taken from him, merely because
kings or chiefs. Two are mentioned in the Bible.
he was in uncertainty about the policy of a new
1. A contemporary of Antiochus Epiphanes
emperor), are very improbable.'' Wieseler, Chron.
(B. c. 170) and Jason (2 Mace. v. 8). B. F. W.
rles apostolisclu-n ZeiiaUers, p. 174, and again in
2. In 2 Cor. xi. 32, St. Paul writes, iv Aafiao-
his art. in Herzog's Eneyklopddie, refers to a coin
k$ 5 idvapxys 'ApeTo rov fiacriKtais £<ppovpei r V fiao-t\fws 'Apera <pt\e\\r)vos, but it seems to be-
tt6\lv Aa.fia<TKr)V(ov irtaaai /**. This Aretas was
long to an earlier Aretas. See Conyb. and How-
father-in-law of Herod Antipas. [Herod.] There
son, Life of St. Paul, ed. 2, vol. i. p. 132, note.
is a somewhat difficult chronological question re-
See Wieseler, pp. 142 ff., 167 ff., whose view has
specting the subordination of Damascus to this
been adopted in this article; Anger, de Temporum
Aretas. The city under Augustus and Tiberius
in Actis Ap. ratione, p. 173 ff., and Conyb. and
was attached to the province of Syria and we have
;
Howson, vol. i. p. 99 ff. end. H. A.
Damascene coins of both these emperors, and again
of Nero and his successors. But we have none of ARE'US, a king of the Lacedaemonians, whose
Caligula and Claudius, and the following circum- letter to the high priest Onias is given in 1 Mace,
stances make it probable that a change in the ruler- xii. 20 ff. He is called Arena in the A. V. in
ship of Damascus took place after the death of Ti- ver. 20 and in the margin of ver. 7 but in the ;
berius. There had been war for some time between Greek text he is named 'Ovidpris [Alex. -vet-] in
Aretas, king of Arabia Nabatsea, whose capital was ver. 20, and Aapeios in ver. 7 there can be little
:
Petra, and Antipas, on account of the divorce by doubt however that these are corruptions of 'Apeur.
Antipas of Aretas's daughter at the instance of In Josephus (Ant. xii. 4, § 10, v. § 8) the name is
Herodias, and also on account of some frontier dis- written Apelbs, and in the Vulgate Arius. There
'
putes. Abattle was fought, and the army of An- were two Spartan kings of the name of Areus, of
tipas entirely destroyed (Joseph. Ant. xviii. 5, § l). a whom the first reigned b. c. 309-265, and the sec-
On this, being a favorite with Tiberius, he sent to ond, the grandson of the former, died when a child
Rome for help; and Vitellius, governor of Syria, of eight years old in b. c. 257. There were three
was commissioned to march against Aretas, and to high priests of the name of Onias, of whom the
take him dead or alive. While he was on his first held the office b. c. 323-300. This is the one
march (Ant. xviii. 5, § 3) he heard at Jerusalem of who must have written the letter to Areus I., prob-
the death of Tiberius (March 16, A. D. 37), and, ably in some interval between 309 and 300. (Grimm,
ir6\efiov eK(p4pav oi/Ksd' 6/j.oiais Swdfavos Sia rb
zu Mace. p. 185.) [Onias.]
tls Taiov fj.€Tair€irTOi)Kevai ra n paypar a, aban- AR'GOB (2'inS, once with the def. article
doned his march, and sent his army into winter-
quarters, himself remaining at Antioch. By this 2'SHSn =
"the stony," from 23"?, Ges. Thes.
change of Rome, a complete reversal took 1260: 'Apy6f3: Arr/ob), a tract of country on the
affairs at
place in the situation of Antipas and his enemy. east of the Jordan, in Bashan, in the kingdom of
The former was ere long (a. d. 39) banished to Og, containing 60 <l great" and fortified "cities"
a * It is with reference to this defeat that Josephus Hemsen (Der Apostel Pauhis, pp. 19-22) Winer (Bibl.
;
makes his remarkable statement, that the Jews looked Realw. i. 84) Meyer (Apostelgeschichte, p. 15) Guer-
; ;
upon it as a punishment from God inflicted on Herod ike (Einl. in rtrts N. T. p. 336); Bleek (Einl. in das N.
for putting to death John the Baptist, whom the Jews T. p. 361), and others. It is not easy to believe that
held in such veneration for his teaching and holy the Roman government would so suddenly, of its own
life. (Ant. xviii. 5, § 2.) See Lardner's Jewish Tts- accord, confer so important a city on a vassal who had
fimomes, Ch. iv. 1. H. just defeated one of its most faithful allies, and who
b * The view that Aretas seized and held Damascus had been proscribed as an enemy who was to be taken
by force for a short time after the defeat of Herod An- at all hazards dead or alive. H.
rtipas is maintained by Neander (PJtanzung^ i. 159);
ARGOB ARIEL 153
downs of the richest agricultural soil stretching
(C*"^17). Argob was in the portion allotted to the
from the Sea of Galilee to the Lejah, and beyond
Manasseh, and was taken possession of
half-tribe of
that to the desert, almost literally "without a
man in that tribe. [Jair; Ba-
by Jair, a chief
stone; " and it is not to be wondered at if the —
shan Havoth-Jair.] It afterwards formed one
;
has been described as an ocean of basaltic rocks and xxxi., X. 25, ed. Bip.) VI., Philopator ('Apia-
boulders, tossed about in the wildest confusion, and pd6ris, [Comp. Aid. Alex.] 'Apdd-ns [Vulg. Ari-
intermingled with fissures and crevices in every di- arathes], probably signifying "great" or "honor-
able master," from the roots existing in aryas
rection. "It is," says Mr. Porter, "wholly com-
posed of black basalt, which appears to have issued (Sanskrit), "honorable," and rata (head), "mas-
from innumerable pores in the earth in a liquid ter;" Smith, Diet. Biogr. s. v.), king of Cappa-
state, and to have flowed out on every side. Before docia
b. c. 163-130. He was educated at Rome
(Liv. xlii. 19); and his whole policy was directed
cooling, its surface was violently agitated, and it
was afterwards shattered and rent by internal con- according to the wishes of the Romans. This sub-
vulsions. The cup-like cavities from which the servience cost him his kingdom b. c. 158 but he ;
liquid mass was extruded are still seen, and likewise was shortly afterwards restored by the Romans to
the wavy surface that a thick liquid assumes which a share in the government (App. Syr. 47; cf.
cools while flowing. The rock is filled with little pits Polyb. xxxii. 20, 23; Polyb. iii. 5); and on the
and air-bubbles; it is as hard as flint, and emits capture of his rival Olophernes by Demetrius Soter,
a sharp metallic sound when struck" (241). regained the supreme power (Just. xxxv. 1). He
" Strange as it may seem, this ungainly and for- fell in b. c. 130, in the war of the Romans against
bidding region is thickly studded with deserted Aristonicus,who claimed the kingdom of Pergamus
cities and villages, in all of which the dwellings are on the death of Attalus III.
(Just, xxxvii. 1, 2).
solidly built and of remote antiquity" (238). The Letters were addressed to him from Rome in favor
number of these towns visited by one traveller of the Jews (1 Mace. xv. 22), who in after-times
lately returned is 50, and there were many others seem to have been numerous in his kingdom (Acts
which he did not go to; Roman road runs ii. 9; comp. 1 Pet. i. 1).
A B. F. W.
through the district from S. to N. probably be- ARIT)AI [3 syl]
tween Bosra and Damascus. On the outer bound-
: Ap<ra?os; [FA. 0T"«
Apaeos; Comp. 'ApiSat:] Aridai), ninth son of
ary of the Lejah are situated, amongst others, the Hainan
(Esth. ix. 9).
towns known in Biblical history as Kenath and
Edrei. In the absence of more conclusive evidence ARID'ATHA
(S^Tfcf: 2ap£a/ca; [Vat.
on the point, a strong presumption in favor of the Alex. FA. 2ap&axa'i Comp. 'ApiSudd:] Arida-
identification of the Lejah with Argob arises from tha), sixth son of Haman (Esth. ix. 8).
the peculiar Hebrew word constantly attached to ARI'EH [properly Arjeh or Aryeh]
Argob, and in this definite sense apparently to Ar-
(TH^n : 'Apia; [Vat, Apeta;] Alex. [Comp.]
gob only. This word is sDT] (Chebel), literally
"The
'Ap/e: Arie). Lion," so called probably
" a rope" and from his daring as a warrior: either one of the
(ffxoivifffxa, irepififrpov, funiculus),
it designates with charming accuracy the remark- accomplices
of Pekah in his conspiracy against
ably defined boundary line of the district of the Pekahiah, king of Israel, or, as Sebastian Schmid
Lejah, which is spoken of repeatedly by its latest understands the passage, one of the princes of
explorer as " a rocky shore; " " sweeping round in a Pekahiah, who was put to death with him (2 K.
circle clearly defined as a rocky shore-line; " " re- xv. 25). Rashi explains it literally of a golden
sembling, a Cyclopean wall in ruins " (Porter, ii. lion which stood in the castle. W. A. W. *
19, 219, 239, &c). The extraordinary features of
this region are rendered still more extraordinary by A'RIEL (bS^S, lion, i. e. hero, of God, or,
the contrast which it presents to the surrounding hearth of God: 'Ap«7A Ariel). :
plain of the Hauran, a high plateau of waving 1. As the proper name of a man (where the
meaning no doubt is the first of those given above)
the word occurs in Ezr. viii. 16. This Ariel was
a Jonath. S212112 Jerus. S312^^S.
i
one of the "chief men" who under Ezra directed
154 ARIMATH^EA ARISTOBULUS
the caravan which he led back from Babylon to Vov<pavos\ Comp. 'Ap«rcu:] Arisai), eighth son of
Jerusalem. Haman (Esth. ix. 9).
The word occurs also in reference to two Moab-
ARISTARCHUS
ites slainby Benaiah, one of David's chief captains
(' Api<rrap
X os [most ex-
cellent ruler] : Aristarchus), a Thessalonian (Acts
(2 Sam. xxiii. 20; 1 Chr. xi. 22). Gesenius and xx. 4; xxvii. 2), who accompanied St. Paul on his
many others agree with our A. V. in regarding the third missionary journey (Acts xix. 29, where he
word as an epithet, "two lion-like men of Moab; " ismentioned as having been seized in the tumult
but it seems better to look upon it, with Thenius, at Ephesus together with Gaius, both aweKhri^ovs
Winer, Fiirst, and others, as a proper name, and
XlavKov). We hear of him again as accompanying
translate " two [sons] of Ariel," supplying the
the apostle on his return to Asia, Acts xx. 4; and
word ^32, which might easily have fallen out. again xxvii. 2. as being with him on his voyage to
A similar word occurs in Num. xxvi. 17, Areli Rome. We trace him afterwards as St. Paul's
(rvvatx^<i\uiros in Col. iv. 10, and Philem. 24,
O^fcOS), as the name of a Gadite, and head of both these notices belonging to one and the same
one of the families of that tribe. Both the LXX. time of Col. iv. 7 Philem. 12 ff. After this we ;
and the Vulg. give Ariel for this word, and Winer altogether lose sight of him. Tradition, says Wi-
without remark treats it as the same name. ner, makes him bishop of Apamea. H. A.
2. A designation given by Isaiah to the city of
* Though Aristarchus is mentioned so often, the
Jerusalem (Is. xxix. 1 (bis), 2 (bis), 7 [Alex, lapa-
A. V. very strangely speaks of him as " one Aris-
7)A] )• Its meaning is obscure. We must under-
tarchus " in Acts xxvii. 2. He appears from that
stand by it either " Lion of God " so Gesenius, —
passage to have gone with the apostle to Rome of
Ewald, Hiivernick, Fiirst, and many others or,
his own accord.
—
We do not " trace him as Paul's
with Umbreit, Knobel, and most of the ancient
o-vvatxfJ-a\a>TOs (fellow-prisoner) in Philem. 24;"
Jewish expositors, "Hearth of God," tracing the
but since he is reckoned there among the avvepyoi
o
(fellow-laborers), we may conclude that he received
first component of the word to the Arabic H\l, « the other appellation in Col. iv. 10, because he made
form of expression, probably not. Or he may have out thence, priests were its bearers (Num. vii. 9, x.
been dead at the time. The Menolog. Grcecorum, 21, 20; IK. viii. 3, G).
iv. 5, 19, The ends of
as usual (iii. 17 f.), makes him to have been one
the staves were visible without the veil in the holy
of the 70 disciples, and reports that he preached place of the temple of Solomon, the staves being
tobulus was not a Christian, or that he was not curtain of badgers' skins, and in a blue cloth over
living when the epistle to the Romans was written. all, and was therefore not seen.
(See Fritzsche, Epistola ad Bomanos, iii. 307). II. purpose or object was to contain invio-
Its
Paul speaks twice precisely in the same way of Ste- late theDivine autograph of the two tables, that
phanas (1 Cor. i. 16, and xvi. 15); but we happen "covenant " from which it derived its title, the idea
to learn from 1 Cor. xvi. 17, that Stephanas just of which was inseparable from it, and which may
then was with the apostle at Ephesus (xaipca iirl be regarded as the depositum of the Jewish dispen-
t»7 irapovaiq ~%Tt(pava), and consequently separat- sation. The perpetual safe custody of the material
ed from his family at Rome. It is quite possible tables no doubt suggested the moral observance of
that Aristobulus was at Corinth when Paul wrote the precepts inscribed. It was also probably a reli-
to the Romans, though his proper home was at quary for the pot of manna and the rod of Aaron.
Rome, or the reverse he himself may have lived at
: We read in 1 K. viii. 9, that " there was nothing
Corinth, but have had sons or other members of in the ark save the two tables of stone which Moses
his family settled at Rome. This entire class of put there at Horeb." Yet St. Paul, or the author
passages (Narcissus, Onesiphorus, Chloe) of Heb. asserts that, beside the two tables of
ix. 4,
involves a peculiarity of phraseology which has not "pot of manna" and "Aaron's rod that
stone, the
been duly recognized. H. budded " were inside the ark, which were directed
to be " laid up " and " kept before the testimony"
ARK, NOAH'S. [Noah.]
i. e. before the tables of the law (Ex. xl. 20); and
ARK OF THE COVENANT (]T&). probably, since there is no mention of any other
This, taken generally together with the mercy-seat, receptacle for them, and some would have been ne-
was the one piece of the tabernacle's furniture espe- cessary, the statement of 1 K. viii. 9 implies that
cially invested with sacredness and mystery, and is by Solomon's time these relics had disappeared.
therefore the first for which precise directions were
delivered (Ex. xxv.). The word signifies a mere The expression ^1~IW l^ft, Deut. xxxi. 26, ob-
scurely rendered " in the side of the ark " (A. V.),
chest or box, and is word Hllt^, merely means "beside" it. The
(as well as the
words of the
"ark" of Noah) rendered by the LXX. and New A. V. in 1 Chr. xiii. 3, seem to imply an use of
Testament writers by kiISwt6s. We may remark the ark for the purpose of an oracle but this is ;
(I.) its material dimensions and fittings; (II.) its probably erroneous, and "we sought
it not" the
design and object, under which will be included its meaning; so the LXX. renders it: see Gesenius,
contents; and (HI.) its history.
Lex. s. v. 2?")^.
- T
I. It appears to have been an oblong chest of may have been impaired during its absence among
shittim (acacia) wood, 2£ cubits long, by 1$ broad the Philistines, seems probable from the example
and deep. Within and without gold was overlaid of Uzzah.
on the wood, and on the upper side or lid, which III. The chief facts in the earlier history of the
was edged round about with gold, the mercy-seat, ark (see Josh. iii. and vi.) need not be recited.
supporting the cherubim one at each end, and re- We may notice, however, a fiction of the Rabbis
garded as the symbolical throne of the Divine pres- that there were two arks, one which remained in
ence [Cherubim and Mercy-seat], was placed. the shrine, and another which preceded the camp
The ark was fitted with rings, one at each of the on its march, and that this latter contained the
156 ARK OF THE COVENANT ARMAGEDDON
broken tables of the law, as the former the whole In Latin also, the word arcanum, connected with
ones. In the decline of religion in a later period a area and arceo, is the recognized term for a sacred
superstitious security was attached to its presence mystery. Illustrations of the same subject occur
in battle. Yet, though this was rebuked by its per- also Plut. de Js. et Osi. c. 39; Ov. Ars Am. ii.
mitted capture, when captured its sanctity was 609, &c; Euseb. Prcep. Evang. ii. 3; Catull. lxiv.
vindicated by miracles, as seen in its avenging 260-1; Apul. Met. xi. 262. "
H. H.
progress through the Philistine cities. From this
period till David's time its abode was frequently
ARKTTE, THE (\T)?n, Sam. Cod.
shifted. It sojourned among several, probably Le- one of the families
"'f/'ny : 'ApovKoiios'- Aracceus),
vitical, (1 Sam. vii. 1; 2 Sam. vi. 3, 11;
families
of the Canaanites (Gen. x. 17; 1 Chr. i. 15), and
1 Chr. 13, xv. 24, 25) in the border villages
xiii.
from the context evidently located in the north of
of Eastern Judah, and did not take its place in
Phoenicia. Josephus (Ant. i. 6, § 2) gives the
the tabernacle, but dwelt in curtains, i. e. in a sep-
name 'Apowcaios, and as possessing "Apicqv
as
arate tent pitched for it in Jerusalem by David.
Its bringing up by David thither was a national
tV
eV to> Aifravw. He also again mentions the
place CApKaia, B. J. vii. 5, § 1) in defining the
festival, and its presence there seems to have sug-
position of the Sabbatical river. The name is
gested to his piety the erection of a house to receive
found in Pliny (v. 16), and Ptolemy (v. 15), and
it. Subsequently that house, when completed, re-
from yElius Lampridius (Alex. Sev.) we learn that
ceived, in the installation of the ark in its shrine,
the Urbs Arcena contained a temple dedicated to
the signal of its inauguration by the effulgence of
Alexander the Great. It was the birthplace of
Divine glory instantly manifested. Several of the
Alexander Severus, and was thence called Csesarea
Psalms contain allusions to these events (e. g. xxiv., known to the Crusaders,
Libani. Area was well
xlvii., cxxxii.) and Ps. cv. appears to have been
who under Raimond of Toulouse besieged it for two
composed on the occasion of the first of them.
months in 1099 in vain it was, however, afterwards
;
When idolatry became more shameless in the taken by William of Sartanges. In 1202 it was
kingdom of Judah, Manasseh placed a " carved totally
destroyed by an earthquake. The site which
image" in the "house of God," and probably re-
moved the ark to make way for it. This may now bears the name of Arka ^Li'wfc) lies on the
,
marked silence of those apocryphal books which and Rom. Geogr., art. Arca). G.
enumerate the rest of the principal furniture of the
sanctuary as present, besides the positive statement
ARMAGEDTDON (['Ap^aytSSdv, Lachm.
Tisch.] 'ApfiayeSceV- [Armagedon], Rev. xvi. 16).
of 2 Esdr. as above quoted.
It would be foreign to the purpose of this work to
enter into any of the theological controversies con-
nected with this word. Whatever its full symbol-
ical import may be, the image rests on a geograph-
ical basis; and the locality implied in the Hebrew
term here employed (rbv t6ttov rbv Ka\6v/j.€vou
"EPpaio-rl Ap/j.aye5c!>v) is the great battlefield of
'
allusion of a proverbial character to the ark and its Megiddo (Mayeddd LXX. and Josephus) is
in the
rites, which seems to show that they were popularly especially connected. Hence 'Ap-fj.aytStl>v, " the
'
known, where he says that " only the master hill of Megiddo." (See Bahr's Excursus on
(5<5<{<r/caAos) may uncover the ark" (ki/3wt6s)- Herod, ii. 159.) The same figurative language is
ARMENIA ARMLET 157
used by one of the Jewish prophets (Zech. xii. 11). be noticed that Armenia is spoken of rather in
As regards the Apocalypse, it is remarked by Stan- reference to its geographical position as one of the
ley (S. P. p. 330), that this imagery would be
ij'-
extreme northern nations with which the Jews were
peculiarly natural to a Galiltean, to whom the scene acquainted, than for any more definite purpose.
of these battles was familiar. [Megiddo.] (1.) Ararat is noticed as the place whither the
H.
J. S. sons of Sennacherib fled (Is. xxxvii. 38). In the
prophecies of Jeremiah (li. 27) it is summoned
ARME'NIA ('Ap^evta) is nowhere mentioned along with iMinni and Ashkenaz to the destruction of
under that name in the original Hebrew, though Babylon, —
the LXX. however only notice the last.
it occurs in the English version (2 K. xix. 37), It was the central district surrounding the moun-
where our translators have very unnecessarily sub- tain of that name. (2.) Mural C^tt) is only
stituted it for Ararat (comp. marginal reading).
noticed in the passage just referred to. It is prob-
[Here the LXX. read 'Apapad (Alex. ApaSa.5),
ably identical with the districtMinyas, hi the
Vulg. Armemk] The absence of the name, how-
upper valley of the Muradsu branch of the Eu-
ever, which was not the indigenous name of the
phrates (Joseph. Ant. i. It contains the
3, § 6).
people, by no means implies that the Hebrew writers
They un-
root of the name Armenia according to the gen-
were unacquainted with the country.
erally received derivation. Har-Minni, " the moun-
doubtedly describe certain districts of it under the
tains of Minni." It is worthy of notice that the
names Ararat, Minni, and Togarmah. Of these
spot where Xenophon ascertains that the name of
three the latter appears to have the widest signif-
the country through which he was passing was Ar-
ication. It is the name of a race (Gen. x. 3 ), and
menia, coincides with the position here assigned to
not of a locality, and is used "by Ezekiel as descrip-
Mjnn! (Xen. An. iv. 5; Ainsworth, Track of
tive of the whole country (xxvii. 14, xxxviii. 6),
while the two former are mentioned together, and 10,000, p. 177). (3.) Togarmah (na^'lFI :
have been identified with separate localities ©oyapfjia, and &opyofj.a) is noticed in two passages
Armenia is that lofty plateau whence the rivers of Ezekiel, both of which support the idea of its
Euphrates, Tigris, and Acampsis, pour
Araxes, identity with Armenia. In xxvii. 14 he speaks of
down two its commerce with the Tyrians in " horses, horse-
their waters in different directions, the
first to the Persian Gulf, the last two respectively men, and mules" (A. V.), or, as the words mean,
to the Caspian and Euxine Seas. It may be termed " carriage-horses, riding-horses, and mules" (Hitzig,
the nuchas of the mountain system of western Comment.), which we have already noticed as the
Asia. From the centre of the plateau rise two staple productions of Armenia. That the house
lofty chains of mountains, which run from E. to of Togarmah " traded in the fairs of Tyre," as the
W., converging towards the Caspian sea, but par- A. V. expresses it, is more than the Hebrew text
allel to each other towards the W., the most north- seems to warrant. The words simply signify that
erly named by ancient geographers Abus Ms, and the Armenians carried on commerce with the Tyr-
culminatin g in Mount Ararat; the other named ians in those articles. In this passage Togarmah
Niphates Ms. Westward these ranges may be is mentioned in connection with Meshech and
traced in Anti-Taurus and Taurus, while in the op- Tubal; in xxxviii. 6, it is described as "of the
posite direction they are continued in Caspius Ms. north quarters " in connection with Gomer. Coup-
The climate of Armenia is severe, the degree of ling with these particulars the relationship between
severity varying with the altitude of different local- Togarmah, Ashkenaz, and Riphat (Gen. x. 3), the
ities,the valleys being sufficiently warm to ripen three sons of Gomer, and the nations of which
the grape, while the high lands are bleak and only these patriarchs were the progenitors, we cannot
adapted for pasture. The latter supported vast fail in coming to the conclusion that Togarmah
numbers of mules and horses, on which the wealth represents Armenia. We
will only add that the
of the country chiefly depended and hence Strabo traditional belief of the Armenians themselves, that
;
(xi. 529) characterizes the country as <r<p6$pa iV- they are descended from Thorgomass or Tiorgar-
WjSoToy, and tells us that the horses were held in mah, strongly confirms this view." W. L. B.
as high estimation as the celebrated Nissean breed.
The inhabitants were keen traders in ancient as ARMLET (n"T2rS, Num. xxxi. 50, 2
in modern times. Sam. i. 10: ^AiS^f! Aquila [in 2 Sam.] fipaxi-
The slight acquaintance which the Hebrew d\iov [periscelis, ]
'• armilla, brachiale ; prop-
writers had of this country was probably derived erly a fetter, from
~TP^, a step; comp. Is. iii.
from the Phoenicians. There are signs of their
knowledge having been progressive. Isaiah, in his
prophecies regarding Babylon, speaks of the hosts
as coming from "the mountains" (xiii. 4), while
Jeremiah, in connection with the same subject, uses
the specific names Ararat and Minni (li. 27).
Ezekiel, who was apparently better acquainted with
the country, uses a name which was familiar to its
own inhabitants, Togarmah. Whether the use of
the term Ararat in Is. xxxvii. 38 belongs to the Assyrian Armlet. From Nineveh Marbles, British
period in which the prophet himself lived, is a Museum.
question which cannot be here discussed. In the
and Anklet), an ornament universal in the
prophetical passages to which we shall refer, it will 20,
a * \Ve are indebted for a valuable work on Armenia work from Dr. Dwight (1850) entitled "Christianity
and Persia to the American missionaries, Messrs. H. G. revived in the East," treating especially of the great
O. Dnight and Eli Smith, who made a tour of observa- moral changes which are taking place among the
Ar-
tion in these countries in 1830. We have a still later menians of Turkey. H.
158 ARMLET ARMS
East, especially among women; used by princes asmate]: 'Epuvvoi; [Vat. Ep/xcovoer, Alex. -wei?
one of the insignia of royalty, and by distinguished Aid. "Epfxwvei Comp. 'Apfiwyi :] Armoiti), son of
;
persons in general. The word is not used in the Saul by Rizpah (2 Sam. xxi. 8).
A. V., as even in 2 Sam. i. 10, they render it " by
the bracelet on his arm." Sometimes only one was * ARMORY (ptt>3, which Luther renders Ear-
worn, on the right arm (Ecclus. xxi. 21). From nischham and De Wette Zeughaus) occurs only in
Cant. viii. 6, it appears that the signet sometimes Neh. iii. 19 (A. V.), and is mentioned there as being
consisted of a jewel on the armlet. opposite the part of the walls of Jerusalem built by
These ornaments were worn by most ancient Ezra (3) after the captivity. The same place, no
princes. They are frequent on the sculptures of doubt, is meant in Is. xxii. 8 (pB?3), whether we
Persepolis and Nineveh, and were set in rich and
render there " armorer " (A. V.) or " armory of the
fantastic shapes, resembling the heads of animals
house of the forest," i. e. (as more fully in 1 Kings
(Layard, Nineveh, ii. 298). The kings of Persia
vii. 2 n°.) "of the forest of Lebanon," and so called
wore them, and Astyages presented a pair among
because built with cedars brought from Lebanon.
other ornaments to Cyrus (Xen. Cyr. i. 3). The
See Knobel, Exeget. Handb. v. 153; and Gesen-
.^Ethiopians, to whom some were sent by Cam-
ius, iiber den Jesaia, ii. 690. This " armory,"
byses, scornfully characterized them as weak fetters
therefore, was an apartment in this "house" or
(Herod, ii. 23). Nor were they confined to the
palace of Solomon, in which, as we see expressly
kings, since Herodotus (viii. 113) calls the Persians
from 1 Kings x. 16, 17, he deposited his " golden
generally \\ie\io(p6pot. In the Egyptian monu-
targets and shields " (Keil, Biicher der Konige, p.
ments " kings are often represented with armlets
153). It appears to have existed still, or remains
and bracelets, and in the Leyden Museum is one
of it, in the time of Nehemiah. Gesenius infers
bearing the name of the third Thothmes." [A
from Neh. iii. 19 (though the local indication there
gold bracelet figured below.] (Wilkinson's Anc.
is very indefinite) that it was situated on Ophel,
than himself as Goliath (1 Sam. xvii. 51, xxi. 8, peace even the king in state did not wear a sword
(1 K. iii. 24); and a similar expression occurs to
denote those able to serve (Judg. viii. 10; 1 Chr.
xxi. 5). Other phrases, derived from the chereb
are, "to smite with the edge" (literally "mouth,"
comp. (rrS/xa, and comp. "devour," Is. i. 20) of
the " sword " —" slain with the sword " — " men
that drew sword," &c.
Swords with two edges are occasionally referred
to (Judg. iii. 16; Ps. cxlix. 6), and allusions are
it is met
when mustering his forces (xxii. G ) ;
and on it the
with in the earliest stages of the history, in use
dying king is leaning when we catch our last both for the chase (Gen. xxi. 20, xxvii. 3) and war
gliinpse of his stately figure on the field of Gilboa (xlviii. 22). In later times archers accompanied the
(2 Sam. i. 6). His fits of anger or madness lie- armies of the Philistines (1 Sam. xxxi. 3; 1 Chr.
come even more terrible to us, when we find that it
x. 3) and of the Syrians (1 K. xxii. 34). Among
was this heavy weapon and not the lighter "jave- the Jews its use was not confined to the common
lin " (as the A. Y. renders it) that he cast at David soldiers, but captains high in rank, as Jehu (2 K.
(1 Sam. xviii. 10, 11, xix. 9, 10) and at Jonathan ix. 24), and even kings' sons (1 Sam. xviii. 4) car-
(xx. 33). A
striking idea of the weight and force ried the bow, and were expert and sure in its use
of this ponderous arm may be gained from the fact (2 Sam. i. 22). The tribe of Benjamin seems to
that a mere back thrust from the hand of Abner have been especially addicted to archery (1 Chr.
was enough to drive its butt end through the body viii. 40, xii. 2 2 Chr. xiv. 8, xvii. 17 ) but there
; ;
of Asahel (2 Sam. ii. 23). The chanith is men- were also bowmen among Reuben, Gad, Manasseh
tioned also in 1 Sam. xiii. 19, 22, xxi. 8; 2 K. xi. (1 Chr. v. 18), and Ephraim (Ps. lxxviii. 9).
10 2 Chr. xxiii. 9, and in
;
numerous passages of
poetry.
b. Apparently lighter than the preceding, and
in more than one passage distinguished from it, was
"
the Cidon (pTI), to which the word "Javelin
perhaps best answers (Ewald, Wvrfspiess). It
Egyptian Bows.
Job vi. 4, they would seem to xli. 26 and Is. lix. 17. This word has furnished
From an allusion in
have been sometimes poisoned and the " sharp ;
one of the names of Mount Hermon (see Deut. iii.
9; Stanley, p. 403), a parallel to which is found in
arrows of the mighty with coals of juniper," in Ps.
cxx. 4, may point to a practice of using arrows the name Q&pal- given to Mount Sipylus in Lydia.
with some burning material attached to them. It is possible that in Deut. iv. 48, Sion CjVOJtf)
1. The Shiryon (^V^tT; or in its contracted 4. Greaves, or defenses for the feet (not " legs
form
,
T~ t
,
\ and once n> "1K.*'): according to the as in the A. V.) — (in!itt, Mitzchah, made of
LXX. dwpat, Vulg. lonca, —a Breastplate. brass, Htt^TO — are named in Sam. 1 xvii. 6,
This occurs in the description of the arms of Go-
only.
liath — D^PtPr' "JVntP, a "coat of mail," Of the defensive arms borne by the warrior the
literally a " breastplate of scales " (1 Sam. xvii. 5), notices are hardly less scanty than those just ex-
and further (38), where shiryon alone is rendered amined.
"coat of mail." It may
be noticed in passing that
5. Two kinds of Shield are distinguishable.
this passage contains the most complete inventory
a. The Tzinnah (H31*; from a root ]3V, to
of the furniture of a warrior to be found in the
whole of the sacred history. Goliath was a Philis- This was the large shield, encompassing
protect).
tine, and the minuteness of the description of his (Ps. v. 12) and forming a protection for the whole
equipment may be due either to the fact that the person. When not in actual conflict, the tzinnah
Philistines were usually better armed than the He- was carried before the warrior (1 Sam. xvii. 7, 41).
"
brews, or to the impression produced by the con- The definite article in the former passage ("
the
" as in the A. V.) denotes the
trast on this particular occasion between this fully shield, not "a shield
armed champion and the wretchedly appointed importance of the weapon. The word is used with
soldiers of the Israelite host, stripped as they had romach (1 Chr. xii. 8, 24; 2 Chr. xi. 12, &c.)
and
been very shortly before, both of arms and of the chanith (1 Chr. xii. 34) as a formula for weapons
means of supplying them, so completely that no generally.
11
162 ARMY ARMY
2 K. xxv. 19, " scribe of the host," both terms oc-
6. Of smaller dimensions was the Magen 0.2ft,
curring, however, together in 2 Chr. xxvi. 11, the
from ^22, to cover), a buckler or target, probably meaning of each being primarily a writer or scribe),
The by whom also the officers were appointed (Deut. xx.
for use in hand to hand fight. difference in
9). From the number so selected, some might be
size between this and the tzinnah is evident from
excused serving on certain specified grounds (Deut.
1 K. x. 16, 17 2 Chr. ix. 15, 16, where a much
;
xx. 5-8; 1 Mace. iii. 56). The army was then di-
larger quantity of gold is named as being used for
vided into thousands and hundreds under their re-
the latter than for the former. The portability of
the magen may be inferred from the notice in 2 spective captains (Q^bSH "nttf, JTIKffin ^W,
Chr. xii. 9, 10; and perhaps also from 2 Sam. i. Num xxxi. 14), and still further into families
21. The word is a favorite one with the poets of (Num. ii. 34 ; 2 Chr. xxv. 12) the family
5, xxvi. —
being regarded as the unit in the Jewish polity.
From the time the Israelites entered the land of
Canaan until the establishment of the kingdom,
little progress was made in military affairs. Their
wars resembled harder forays, and the tactics
turned upon stratagem rather than upon the dis-
cipline and disposition of the forces. Skillfully
availing themselves of the opportunities which the
country offered, they gained the victory sometimes
by an ambush (Josh. viii. 4); sometimes by sur-
prising the enemy (Josh. x. 9, xi. 7; Judg. vii. 21);
and sometimes by a judicious attack at the time of
fording a river (Judg. iii. 28, iv. 7, vii. 24, xii. 5).
No general muster was made at this period but ;
2, x.14): their positions in the camp or on the war. David further organized a national militia,
march were accurately fixed (Num. ii.): the whole divided into twelve regiments, each of which was
army started and stopped at a given signal (Num. called out for one month in the year under their
x. 5, 6) thus they came up out of Egypt ready for respective officers (1 Chr. xxvii. 1); at the head
:
the fight (Ex. xiii. 18). That the Israelites pre- of the army when in active service he appointed a
served the same exact order throughout their march,
commander-in-chief (S2^"")tP, "captain of the
may be inferred from Balaam's language (Num.
xxiv. 6). On the approach of an enemy, a con- host," 1 Sam. xiv. 50).
scription was made from the general body under the Hitherto the army had consisted entirely of in-
direction of a muster-master (originally named fantry 1 Sam. iv. 10, xv. 4), the use of
0^2?,
"!£&, Deut. xs. 5, "officer," afterwards "IS^D, horses having been restrained by divine command
ARMY ARMY 163
(Deut. xvii. 16). had, however, experi-l or a strong advanced guard (1 Sam. xiii. 2, xxv.
The Jews
enced the great advantage to be obtained by char- 13). Jehoshaphat divided his army into five bodies,
iots, both in their encounters with the Canaauites corresponding, according to Ewald ((Jescliic/tte, iii.
(Josh. xvii. 16; Judg. i. 19), and at a later period 192), to the geographical divisions of the kingdom
with the Syrians (2 Sam. viii. 4, x. 18). The in- at that time. May not, however, the threefold
terior of Palestine was indeed generally unsuited principle of division be noticed here also, the heavy-
to the use of chariots. The Canaanites had em- armed troops of Judah being considered as the
ployed them only in the plains and valleys, such as proper army, and the two divisions of light-armed
Jezreel (Josh. xvii. 16), the plain of Philistia (Judg. of the tribe of Benjamin as an appendage (2 Chr.
i. 19; 1 Sam. xiii. 5), and the upper valley of the xvii. 14-18)?
Jordan (Josh. xi. 9; Judg. iv. 3). But the border, The maintenance and equipment of the soldiers
both on the side of Egypt and Syria, was admi- at the public expense dates from the establishment
rably adapted to their use and accordingly we find
; of a standing army, before which each soldier armed
that as the foreign relations of the kingdoms ex- himself, and obtained his food either by voluntary
tended, much importance was attached to them. offerings (2 Sam. xvii. 28, 29), by forced exactions
David had reserved a hundred chariots from the (1 Sam. xxv. 13), or by the natural resources of
spoil of the Syrians (2 Sam. viii. 4). These prob- the country (1 Sam. xiv. 27). On one occasion
ably served as the foundation of the force which only do we hear of any systematic arrangement for
Solomon afterwards enlarged through his alliance provisioning the host (Judg. xx. 10). It is doubt-
with Egypt (1 K. x. 28, 29), and applied to the ful whether the soldier ever received pay even under
protection of his border, stations or barracks being the kings (the only instance of pay being mentioned
erected for them in different localities (1 K. ix. 19). applies to mercenaries, 2 Chr. xxv. 6); but that he
The amounted to 1400 chariots, 4000 horses,
force was maintained, while on active service, and pro-
at the rate (in round numbers) of three horses for vided with arms, appears from 1 K. iv. 27, x. 16,
each chariot, the third being kept as a reserve, and 17 2 Chr. xxvi. 14.
; Notices occur of an arsenal
12,000 horsemen (1 K. x. 26; 2 Chr. i. 14). At or armory, in which the weapons were stored (1 K.
this period the organization of the army was com- xiv. 28; Neh. iii. 19; Cant. iv. 4).
plete and we have, in 1 K. ix. 22, apparently a
; The numerical strength of the Jewish army
list of the various gradations of rank in the ser- cannot be ascertained with any degree of accuracy.
The numbers, as given in the text, are manifestly
vice, as follows: — (1) nnnbsn "'ttfaS, "men
incorrect,and the discrepancies in the various state-
of war " =privates ; (2) D s "12}?, " servants," the ments irreconcilable. At the Exodus the number
of the warriors was 600,000 (Ex. xii. 37), or 603,-
lowest rank of officers = lieutenants ; (3) D^"}J27, 350 (Ex. xxxviii. 26; Num. i. 46); at the entrance
=
cavalry officers. cording to another statement (1 Chr. xxi. 5, 6) to
It does not appear that the system established by 1,470,000, namely, 1,000,000 for Israel and 470,000
David was maintained by the kings of Judah; but for Judah. The militia at the same period
in Israel the proximity of the hostile kingdom of amounted to 24,000 X 12 288,000 (1 Chr. xxvii. =
Syria necessitated the maintenance of a standing 1 ff.). At a later period the army of Judah under
army. The militia was occasionally called out in Abijah is stated at 400,000, and that of Israel
time of peace, as by Asa (2 Chr. xiv. 8), by Je- under Jeroboam at 300,000 (2 Chr. xiii. 3). Still
hoshaphat (2 Chr. xvii. 14), by Amaziah (2 Chr. later, Asa's army, derived from the tribes of Judah
xxv. 5), and lastly by Uzziah (2 Chr. xxvi. 11); and Benjamin aione, is put. at 580,000 (2 Chr. xiv.
but these notices prove that such cases were ex- 8), and Jehoshaphat's at 1,160,000 (2 Chr. xvii.
ceptional. On the other hand the incidental notices 14 ff.).
of the body-guard lead to the conclusion that it Little need be said on this subject with regard to
was regularly kept up (1 K. xiv. 28; 2 K. xi. 4, the period that succeeded the return from the Baby-
11). Occasional reference is made to war-chariots lonish captivity until the organization of military
(2 K. viii. 21), and it would appear that this branch Judaea under the Romans.
affairs in The system
of the service was maintained, until the wars with adopted by Judas Maccabaeus was in strict con-
the Syrians weakened the resources of the king- formity with the Mosaic law (1 Mace. iii. 55); and
dom K.
xiii. 7).
(2 It was restored by Jotham though he maintained a standing army, varying
(Is. but in Hezekiah's reign no
ii. 7), force of the from 3000 to 6000 men (1 Mace. iv. 6 2 Mace. ;
kind could be maintained, and the Jews were viii. 16), yet the custom of paying the soldiers ap-
obliged to seek the aid of Egypt for horses and pears to have been still unknown, and to have
chariots (2 K. xviii. 23, 24). This was an evident originated with Simon (1 Mace. xiv. 32). The in-
breach of the injunction in Deut. xvii. 16, and met troduction of mercenaries commenced with John
with strong reprobation on the part of the prophet Hyrcanus, who, according to Josephus (Ant. xiii.
Isaiah (xxxi. 1). 8,'§ 4), rifled the tombs of the kings in order to
With regard to the arrangement and maneu- pay them. The intestine commotions that pre-
vering of the army in the field, we know but little. vailed in the reign of Alexander Janna?us obliged
A division into three bodies is frequently mentioned him to increase the number to 6200 men (Joseph.
(Judg. vii. 16, ix. 43; 1 Ant. xiii. 13, § 5, 14, § 1); and the same policy
Sam. xi. 11; 2 Sam.
xviii. 2). Such a was followed by Alexandra (Ant. xiii. 16, § 2) and
division served various purposes.
In action there would be a centre and two wings; by Herod the Great, who had in his pay Thracian,
in camp, relays for the night-watches (Judg. vii. German, and Gallic troops (Ant. xvii. 8, § 3). The
19); and by the combination of two of the di- discipline and arrangement of the army was grad-
visions, there woidd be a main body and a reserve, ually assimilated to that of the Romans, and the
164 ARNA ARNON
titles of the officers borrowed from it (Joseph. B. 'Apv&vt] Arnan). In the received Hebrew text
J. " the sons of Arnan " are mentioned in the geneal-
ii. 20, § 7).
II. Roman Army. — The Roman army was ogy of Zerubbabel (1 Chr. iii. 21). But according
divided into legions, the number of which varied to the reading of the LXX., Vulgate, and Syriac
considerably, each under six tribuni (x<Aiapx os > versions, which Houbigant adopts, Arnan was the
"chief captain," Acts xxi. 31), who commanded son of Rephaiah. W. A. W.
by turns. The legion was subdivided into ten co-
horts (crire?pa,, "band," Acts x. 1), the cohort into
AR'NON (p2~lM: derivable, according to
three maniples, and the maniple into two centuries, Ges., Thes. p. 153,from roots signifying " swift
containing originally 100 men, as the name implies, or " noisy," either suiting the character of the
but subsequently from 50 to 100 men, according to stream: 'Apvcbv'- Arnon), the river ( ^H3, ac-
the strength of the legion. There were thus 60
curately "torrent") which formed the boundary
centuries in a legion, each under the command of a
between Moab and the Amorites, on the north of
centurion (eKaTovTapxys, Acts x. 1, 22; kKar6v-
Moab (Num. xxi. 13, 14, 24, 26; Judg. xi. 22),
rapxos, Matt. viii. 5, xxvii. 54). In addition to
and afterwards between Moab and Israel (Reuben)
the legionary cohorts, independent cohorts of vol- (Deut. 48; Josh. xii. 1,
ii. 24, 36, iii. 8, 12, 16, iv.
unteers served under the Roman standards; and From Judg. xi.
2, xiii. 9, 16; Judg. xi. 13, 26).
Biscoe (Histor-y of Acts, p. 220) supposes that all
18, it would seem to have been also the east border
the Roman forces stationed in Judsea were of this
of Moab." See also 2 K. x. 33; Jer. xlviii. 20.
class. Josephus speaks of five cohorts as stationed In many of the above passages it occurs in the for-
at Csesarea at the time of Herod Agrippa's death mula for the site of Aroer, " which is by the -brink
(Ant. xix. 9, § 2), and frequently mentions that In Numbers it is simply
of the river Arnon."
the inhabitants of Ccesarea and Sebaste served in " Arnon," but in Deut. and Joshua generally " the
the ranks (Ant. xx. 8, § 7). One of these cohorts
river A." (A. V. sometimes " river of A." ). Isaiah
was named the Italian (Acts x. 1), not as being a (xvi. 2) mentions its fords; and in Judg. xi. 26 a
portion of the Italica legio (for this was not em-
bodied until Nero's reign), but as consisting of word of rare occurrence (T?, hand, comp. Num.
volunteers from Italy (" Cohors militum voluntaria, xiii. 29) is used for the sides of the stream. The
quae est in Syria," Gruter, Inscr. i. 434). This
" high places of A." (m?23, a word which gen-
cohort probably acted as the body-guard of the proc-
erally refers to worship) are mentioned in Num. xxi.
urator. The cohort named "Augustus's " (airilpa
28. By Josephus (Ant. iv. 5, § 1) it is described
2e/8a<rHj, Acts xxvii. 1) may have consisted of the
as rising in the mountains of Arabia and flowing
volunteers from Sebaste (B. J. ii. 12, § 5 Biscoe, ;
a This appears to have been the branch called the Katrane, joining the Wady Mojeb, two or three miles
Seil es-Saldeh, which flows N. W. from Kalaat el- east from 'AraHr.
AROD ARPHAXAD 165
thor: Seetzen). It then runs through the delta in town such a position immediately near Aroer but
in ;
a, S. W. course, narrowing
as it goes, and is 10 it. a suggestion has been made above [Arnon], which
deep where its waters meet those of the Dead Sea. on investigation of the spot may clear up this
point.
(Lynch, Rqwrt, May 3, 1847, p. 20.) 2. [In Josh. xiii. 25, Rom. and Vat. M. 'Ap-
According to the information given to Burck- Aroer " that is ' facing ' (^35" v3J) Rab-
afia.]
hardt, its principal source is near Katrane, on the
bah" (Rabbah of Amnion), a town "built" by
Haj route. Hence, under the name of Seil es-
and belonging to Gad (Num. xxxii. 34 Josh. xiii. ;
Sakkh, it flows N. W. to its junction with the W. This is probably the place
25; 2 Sam. xxiv. 5).
LejAm, one hour E. of 'Ar&Hr, and then, as W.
in Judg. xi. 33, which was shown in
Mqjeb, more directly W. to the Dead Sea. The mentioned
Jerome's time ( Oiwm. Aruir) " in monte, vigesimo
W. Mqjeb receives on the north the streams of ab iElia lapide ad septentrionem." Ritter (Syria,
the IT. Wale, and on the south those of W. She-
p. 1130) suggests an identification with Ayra, found
kik and W. Saliheh (S).
by Burckhardt 2} hours S. W. of es-Snlt. There
At its junction with the Lejum is a piece of
is considerable difference however in the radical
pasture ground, in the midst of which stands a
the second Ain not being
hill with ruins on it (Burck. p. 374). May not letters of the two words,
present.
these ruins be the site of the mysterious " city that
3. Aroer, in Is. xvii. 2, if a place at all,'' must
is in the midst of the river" (Josh. xiii. 9, 10;
north than either of the two already
Deut. ii. 36), so often coupled with Aroer? From be still further
named, and dependent on Damascus. Geleuius,
the above description of the ravine it is plain that
however, takes it to be Aroer of Gad, and the " for-
that city cannot have been situated immediately
saken" state of its cities to be the result of the
below Aroer, as has been conjectured. G.
deportation of Galilee and Gilead by Tiglath-Pileser
A'ROD ("TT)S [descendant, Fiirst] : ['ApoaSi'; (2 K. xv. 29).See Ges. Jesaia, p. 556.
Vat. 1 ApoSei, 2. m. ApoaSei Comp. 'ApoaS:] ;
4. A townJudah, named only in 1 Sam. xxx.
in
Arod), a son of Gad (Num. xxvi. 17), called Arodi 28. Robinson (ii. 199) believes that he has iden-
tified its site in Wady 'Ar'arah, on the road from
OTTM) in Gen. xlvi. 16. His family are called
Petra to Gaza, about 11 miles W. S. W. of Bir
the Arodites (Num. xxvi. 17). es-Seba, a position which agrees very fairly with
AR'ODI 0"pH: 'Apo?;8eis; Alex. Apor)$is: the slight indications of the text. G.
Arodi). Arod the son of Gad (Gen. xlvi. 16). AR'OERITE ["H^'-IS = 'Apapt', Vat. Alex.
ARODITES, THE (^TV*??? : 6 'ApoaSi -pet' Arorites]. Hothan the Aroerite was the
[Vat. -Set] : Aroditm). Descendants of Arod the father of two of David's chief captains (1 Chr. xi.
AR OER ("!3n?, occasionally "W'Vft?, = A'ROM ('Apo>; [Aid. 'Apc^O Asonus). The
"sons of Arom," to the number of 32, are enu-
rains, places of which the foundations are laid bare,
merated in 1 Esdr. v. 16 among those who returned
Gesenius « Apo^p Aroer), the name of several with Zorobabel.
:
'
:
LT nless it is a mistake for Asom,
towns of Eastern and Western Palestine. and represents Hashum in Ezr. ii. 19, it has no
1. [In Josh. xii. 2, Rom. and Vat. M. 'Apvwv;
parallel in the lists of Ezra and Nehemiah.
in Jer. xlviii. 19, Rom. 'Ap^p.] A city " by the W. A. W.
brink," or "on the bank of" (both the same ex-
pression —
" on the lip ") or " by " the torrent Ar- AR'PAD ("IQIW [support, a, strong city]: —
non, the southern point of the territory of Sihon 'ApcpaS; ['Ap<pa0, Alex. Ap<par, etc. :] Arphnd), a
king of the Amorites, h and afterwards of the tribe city or district in Syria, apparently dependent on
of Reuben (Deut. ii. 36, iii. 12, iv. 48; Josh. xii. Damascus (Jer. xlix. 23). It is invariably named
2, xiii. 9,16; Judg. xi. 26;= 2 K. x. 33; 1 Chr. with Hamath (now Human, on the Orontes), but
v. 8 ), but later again in possession of Moab (Jer. no trace of its existence has yet been discovered,
xlviii. 19). It is described in the Onomasticon nor has any mention of the place been found out
(Aroer) as " usque hodie in vertice montis," " su~ of the Bible (2 K. xviii. 34, xix. 13; Is. x. 9,
per ripam (^eiKos) torrentis Arnon," an account xxxvi. 19, xxxvii. 13. In the two last passages it
agreeing exactly with that of the only traveller of is rendered in the A. V. Arphad). Arpad has been
modern times who has noticed the site, namely, identified, but without any ground beyond the sim-
Burckhardt, who found ruins with the name 'Ara'ir ilarity in the names, with Arvad, the island on the
on the old Roman road, upon the very edge of the coast of Phoenicia (Winer). G.
precipitous north bank of the Wady Mojeb. [Ar- AR'PHAD. [Arpad.]
non.] the topography east of the Jordan,
Like all
this site requires further examination. Aroer is ARPHAX'AD (lB7pB"]N: 'Ap<K<i5; Jos.
often mentioned in connection with the city that is 'Ap<pa|d5Tjs: Arphaxad), the son of Shem and the
" in," or " in the midst of," " the river." The na- ancestor of Eber (Gen. x. 22, 24, xi. 10), and said
ture of the cleft through which the Arnon flows is to be of the Chaldseans (Joseph, i. 6, 4). Bochart
such that it is impossible there can have been any (Phaleg, ii. 4) supposed that the name was pre-
a May it not with equal probability be derived from their conquest, to guard the important boundary of
^37"^^, modern Arabic Ar ar (see Rob. the Arnon.
juniper, the , ,
Aroer would appear not to be one of the very oldest do any of the ancient versions agree with the Hebrew
cities Possibly it was built by the Amorites after text.
166 ARROWS ARTAXERXES
served in that of the province Arrapachitis ('Ap- arta, great or honored (cf. 'hpraioi, Herod, vii.
frairaxiTts, Ptol. vi. 1, § 2; "hpp~ana) in northern 61, the old national name of the Persians, also Arii,
Assyria (comp. Ewald, Gesch. des Volkes Jsr., i. and the Sanscrit Arya, which is applied to the fol-
378). Different interpretations of the lowers of the Brahminical law), and kshatra or
name have
been given; but that of Ewald (I. appears
c.) to kshershe, a king, grecized into Xerxes. [Ahasue-
be the best, who supposes it to mean the stronghold kus.]
1. The first Artaxerxes is mentioned in Ezr. iv.
of the Chatdees (Arab, araph, to bind, and Kard,
Kurd, pi. Mrad, Chald. Comp. Niebuhr, Gesch. 7, as induced by " the adversaries of Judah and
Assur's, p. 414, n.). Benjamin " to obstruct the rebuilding of the temple,
and appears identical with Smerdis, the Magian im-
2. Akphaxad, a king " who reigned over the
postor, and pretended brother of Cambyses. For
Medes in Ecbatana, and strengthened the city by
that the Ahasuerus of Ezr. iv. 6
vast fortifications" (Jud. i. 1-4). In a war with there is no doubt
is Cambyses, and that the Darius of iv. 24 is Da-
" Nabuchodonosor, king of Assyria," he was en-
rius Hystaspis, so that the intermediate king must
tirely defeated " in the great plain in the borders
be the Pseudo-Smerdis who usurped the throne
of Kagau" (?.Bages, Raga, Tobit i. 14, &c), and
b. c. 522, and reigned eight months (Herod, iii.
afterwards taken prisoner and put to death (Jud. i.
13-15). From the passage in Judith (i. 2, $ko- 61, 67 ffi). We
need not wonder at this variation
in his name. Artaxerxes may have been adopted
Uixt](T(V in "E-K^aravaiv) he has been frequently
or conferred on him as a title, and we find the true
identified with Deioces (Artseus, Ctes.), the founder
Smerdis called Tanyoxares (the younger Oxares) by
of Ecbatana (Herod, i. 98); but as Deioces died
Xenophon (Cyrop. viii. 7) and Ctesias (Pers.fr.
peaceably (Herod, i. 102), it seems better to look
8-13), and Oropastes by Justin (Hist. i. 9). Ox-
for the original of Arphaxad in his son Phraortes
ares appears to be the same name as Xerxes, of
(Artynes, Ctes.), who greatly extended the Median
which Artaxerxes is a compound.
empire, and at last fell in a battle with the Assyr-
2. In Neh. ii. 1, we have another Artaxerxes,
ians, 633 b. c. (Herod, i. 102, avr6s re Sitcpddpr]
.. . Kal 6 ffrparbs avrov 6 iroK\6s). Niebuhr who permits Nehemiah to spend twelve years at
Jerusalem, in order to settle the affairs of the col-
(Gesch. Assur's, p. 32) endeavors to identify the
name with Astyages =
Ashdahak, the common ony there, which had fallen into great
We
confusion.
may safely identify him with Artaxerxes Ma-
title of the Median dynasty, and refers the events
crocheir or Longimanus, the son of Xerxes, who
to a war in the twelfth year of Nebuchadnezzar,
reigned b. c. 464-425. And we believe that this
king of Babylon, b. c. 592 (ibid, pp. 212, 285).
is the same king who had previously allowed Ezra
[Judith; Nebuchadnezzar.] B. F. W.
to go to Jerusalem for a similar purpose (Ezr. vii.
ARROWS. [Arms.]
1). There are indeed some who maintain that as
AR'SACES VI., a king of Parthia, who as- Darius Hystaspis is the king in the sixth chapter
sumed the royal title Arsaces ('Ap<ra/C7js, Armen. of Ezra, the king mentioned next after him, at the
Arschag, probably containing the roots both of beginning of the seventh, must be Xerxes, and thus
Arya and Sacce) in addition to his proper name, they distinguish three Persian kings called Arta-
Mithridates I. (Phraates, App. Syr. p. 67 from xerxes in the Old Testament, (1) Smerdis in Ezr.
confusion with his successor) according to universal iv., (2) Xerxes in Ezr. vii., and (3) Artaxerxes Ma-
custom (Strab. xv. p. 702), in honor of the founder crocheir in Nehemiah. But it is almost demon-
of the Parthian monarchy (Justin xli. 5, § 5). He strable that Xerxes is the Ahasuerus of the book
made great additions to the empire by successful of Esther [Ahasuerus], and it is hard to suppose
wars; and when Demetrius Nicator entered his that in addition to his ordinary name he would
dominions to collect forces or otherwise strengthen have been called both Ahasuerus and Artaxerxes
his position against the usurper Tryphon, he de- in the 0. T. It seems, too, very probable that the
spatched an officer against him who defeated the policy of Neh. ii. was a continuation and renewal
great army after a campaign of varied success of that of Ezr. vii., and that the same king was
(Justin, xxxvi. 1), and took the king prisoner, B. c. the author of both. Now it is not possible for
138 (1 Mace. xiv.1-3; Joseph. Ant, xiii. 5, § 11; Xerxes to be the Artaxerxes of Nehemiah, as Jo-
Justin, xxxvi. 1, xxxviii. 9). Mithridates treated sephus asserts (Ant. xi. 5, § 6), for Xerxes only
his prisoner with respect, and gave him his daughter reigned 21 years, whereas Nehemiah (xiii. 6) speaks
in marriage (App. Syr. pp. 67, 68), but kept him of the 32d year of Artaxerxes. Nor is it neces-
in confinement till his own death, c. B. c. 130. sary to believe that the Artaxerxes of Ezr. vii. is
(App. Syr. p. 68; Diod. ap. Miiller, Fragm. Hist. necessarily the immediate successor of the Darius
ii. 19.) B. F. W.. of Ezr. vi. The book of Ezra is not a continuous
AR'SARETH, a region beyond Euphrates, history. It is evident from the first words of ch.
apparently of great extent (2 Esdr. xiii. 45, only)» vii. that there is a pause at the end of ch. vi. In-
G. deed, as ch. vi. concludes in the 6th year of Darius,
* Volkmar (Handb. d. Einl. in die Apokr. ii. and ch. vii. begins with the 7th year of Artaxerxes,
we cannot even believe the latter king to be Xerxes,
193) supposes the word to represent .""HN
-1
V ^
without assuming an interval of 36 years (b. C.
"Land of Arat" or "Ararat," in northern Ar- 515-479) between the chapters, and it is not more
menia. A. difficult to imagine one of 58, which will carry us
years it became
taxerxes), the name probably of two different kings Ezra to Jerusalem that after 13 ;
of Persia mentioned in the Old Testament. The evident that a civil as well as an ecclesiastical head
word, according to Herod, vi. 98, means 6 /ue'-yas was required for the new settlement,
and therefore
opTjios, the great warrior, and is compounded
of that in 444 he allowed Nehemiah to go up in the
ARTEMAS ARVAD 167
latter capacity. From
the testimony of profane which de Velde speaks (Mem. p. 288), a little
Van
historians this king appears remarkable among Per- S. W. of Nablus.
sian monarcha for wisdom and right feeling, and Bunsen (Bibelwerk on Judg. ix. 31) and Ber-
with this character his conduct to the Jews coin- theau (Richter, p. 145) make Tormah, referred to
cides (Diod. xi. 71). above, a proper name = Arumah. Keil and De-
remains to say a word in refutation of the view
It litzsch (on Judges, p. 308, English are trans.)
that the Artaxerxes of Nehemiah was Artaxerxes undecided. But critics generally, as Gesenius,
Muemon, elder brother of Cyrus the Younger, who Dietrich, De Wette, Cassel, Furst, retain the ad-
reigned b. c. 404-359. As Ezra and Nehemiah in Sept. Cod.
verbial sense, secret/if (iv Kpvcprj,
were contemporaries (Neh. viii. 9), this theory both as agreeing with the
Vat.); which is better,
transfers the whole history contained in Ezra vii. text, and on exegetical grounds. Zebul, who had
ad Jin,, and Nehemiah to this date, and it is hard command in the city, was friendly to Abimelech;
to believe that in this critical period of Jewish an- but in order to advance the interest of the latter
nals there are no events recorded between the reigns without betraying himself to the Shechemites, he
of Darius Hystaspis (Ezr. vi.) and Artaxerxes must confer with him secretly, and for this purpose
Mnemon. Besides, Eliashib, who was high-priest sent messengers to him (ix. 31) for concerting meas-
when Nehemiah reached Jerusalem (Neh. iii. 1), ures against Gaal, the common enemy. If the term
i. e. on this last supposition, e. c. 397, was grand- suggests the idea of deceit as well as secrecy, it is
son of Jeshua (Neh. xii. 10), high-priest in the none the less appropriate, since acting in this way
time of Zerubbabel, b. c. 530. We
cannot think Zebul was deceiving Gaal as well as intriguing with
that the grandfather and grandson were separated Abimelech. [Tobmah.] H.
by an interval of 139 years. G. E. L. G.
AR'VAD
(TH^j from a root signifying
AR TEMAS ('Aprtfias, i- e. 'Apre/jilScopos),
"wandering," Ges. p. 12G8), a place in Phoenicia, the
a companion of St. Paul (Tit. iii. 12). According
men of which are named in close connection with
to tradition he was bishop of Lystra.
those of Zidon as the navigators and defenders of
* Paul was about to send Artemas to Crete at the ship of Tyre in Ez. xxvii. 8, 11. In agree-
the time of his writing to Titus in that island, and ment with this is the mention of " the Arvadite
"
hence Artemas must have been then with the
apostle at Nicopolis or on the way thither (Tit.
CHpMi^) in Gen. x. 18, and 1 Chr. i. 16, as a
iii. 12). The name, which signifies "gift of Ar- son of Canaan, with Zidon, Ilamath, and other
temis," was a common one among the Greeks.
northern localities. The LXX.'have in each of
the above passages 'ApdStos, and in Josephus (Ant.
(See Pape's Griech. Eigennamen, H. p. 77.)
i. 6, § 2) we find '
ApovSaios "ApaSov t\\v vi)crov
* ARTEMIS {"Aprils, Acts xix. 24). [Di- icrx iv - There is thus no doubt that Arvad is the
ana.]
island of Ruad ( 0\*\ h which lies off Tortosa
* ARTILLERY (no longer applied, as in
the older English, to the smaller missive weapons) (Tartus), 2 or 3 miles from the Phoenician coast,
(not at, but) some distance above, the mouth of the
is the translation of V /3 in 1 Sam. xx. 40, i. e.
river Eleutherus, now the Nahr el-Kebir (Maund. p.
his a>-ms, namely, the bow and arrows with which
403; Burckh. p. 161), and at the northern extrem-
Jonathan had been shooting, at the time of his
ity of the great bay which stretches above Tripoli
memorable interview with David at the stone Ezel. (Kiepert's Map, 1856). The island is high and
The A. V. has " his instruments " in the margin,
rocky, but very small, hardly a mile in circum-
which is the rendering of the Bishops' Bible.
399 " 800 yards in extreme
ference (see Maund. p. ;
support beyond the apparent probability of the white line of snow, ends, and melts away in the
change. Arumah is possibly the same place as north into a range of low green hills, Phoenicia and
Ruma, under which name it is given by Eusebius the last remains of Phoenicia also end in the north-
and Jerome in the Onomasticon. ernmost of the Phoenician cities, Arvad, Arvad,
According to
them it was then called Arimathaea (see also by the Greeks called Aradus, and now Ruad.'" Mr.
4.RIMA). But this is not consonant with its Thomson, author of The Land and the Book, had
apparent position in the story. already visited and described this place in 1845 (see
G.
* Raumer (Palastina, p. 148, 4te Aufl.) thinks a These nautical propensities remain in full force.
Arumah was probably el-Armah, of the ruins of (See Allen's Dead Sea, ii. 183.)
168 ARVADITE ASA
Bibl. Sacra, v. 251 " On
the very margin of
ff.). by Kennicott [Abijah], and by Davidson (Intro-
the sea there are the remains of double Phoenician duction to the 0. T., p. 686), who considers that
walls of huge beveled stones, which remind one of the copyists were led into error by the different
the outer foundations of Baalbek. In one part the modes of marking them, and by confounding the
wall is still 30 or 40 and was originally different letters which denoted them, bearing as
feet high,
15 or 20 feet thick.must have been a stronger they do a great resemblance to each other. Thus
It
place than Tyre, for its distance from the shore Asa's reign marks the return of Judah to a con-
and depth of channel rendered it impossible for sciousness of the high destiny to which God had
even an Alexander to destroy its insular character. called her, and to the belief that the Divine Power
The harbor was on the northeast side, formed by was truly at work within her. The good effects of
carrying out into the sea two walls of great stones, this were visible in the enthusiastic resistance
to move any one of which would puzzle our best offered by the people to Zerah, an invader, who is
modern engineers." Tyre drew important supplies called a Cushite or Ethiopian, and whom several
of military and naval strength from this little authors, as Ewald (Gesch. des V. I., iii. 470), iden-
island. " The inhabitants of Arvad were thy mar- tify with Osorkon I., the second king of the 22d
iners: the men
Arvad with thine army were
of dynasty of Egypt, inheritor therefore of the quar-
upon thy walls round about" (Ez. xxvii. 8, 11). rel of his father Shishak, to whom Asa had proba-
Many Greek inscriptions are found " graven on to pay tribute.
bly refused [Zkkah.] At the
columns of hard black basalt." Mr. Thomson head of an enormous host (a million of men, we
copied some of them, which are inserted in the read in 2 Chr. xiv. 9) he attacked Mareshah or
Bibl. Sacra as above. H. Marissa in the S. W. of the country, near the later
Eleutheropolis (Robinson, B. R., ii. 67), a town
AR'VADITE, THE
CHVJMn 6'ApdSios-- afterwards taken by Judas Maccabseus (1 Mace. v.
:
Aradius). One of the families of Canaan (Gen. 65), and finally destroyed by the Parthians in theii
x. 18; 1 Chr. i. 16). [Arvad.] Probably the war against Herod (Joseph. Ant. xiv. 13, § 9).
inhabitants of the little island Aradus, or Kuad, There he was utterly defeated, and driven back
opposite Antaradus on the N. coast of Phoenicia. with immense loss to Gerar. As Asa returned
W. A. W. laden with spoil, he was commended and encour-
prophet, and on his arrival at Jerusalem
AR'ZA (S2"]W [earth]: 'Herd; Alex. Apaa; aged by a
convoked an assembly of his own people and of
[Comp. Arsa).
'flptro:] Prefect of the palace at
Tirzah to Elah king of Israel, who was assassinated
many who had come to him from Israel, and with
solemn sacrifices and ceremonies renewed the cov-
at a banquet in his house by Zimri (1 K. xvi. 9).
enant by which the nation was dedicated to God.
In the Targum of Jonathan the word is taken as
the name of an idol, and in the Arabic version in
The peace which followed this victory was broken
by the attempt of Baasha of Israel to fortify Eamah
the London Polyglot the last clause is rendered
" which belongs to the idol of Beth-Arza." as a kind of Deceleia, " that he might not suffer
any to go out or to come in unto Asa king of
W. A. W.
Judah." To stop this he purchased the help of
A'SA (WDS, curing, physician : 'Acrd Jos. Benhadadl.,king of Damascus, by a large payment
;
'Avavos- Asa). 1. Son of Abijah, and third king of treasure left in the temple and palace from the
of Judah, was conspicuous for his earnestness in Egyptian tribute in Rehoboam's time, and thus he
supporting the worship of God and rooting out forced Baasha to abandon his purpose, and destroyed
idolatry, with its attendant immoralities; and for the works which he had begun at Ramah, using the
the vigor and wisdom with which he provided for materials to fortify two towns in Benjamin, ieba (the <
the prosperity of his kingdom. In his zeal against hill), and Mizpeh (the watch-tower), as checks to
heathenism he did not spare his grandmother, Maa- any future invasion. The wells which he sunk at
chah, who occupied the special dignity of " King's Mizpeh were famous in Jeremiah's time (xli. 9).
Mother," to which great importance was attached The means by which he obtained this success were
in the Jewish court, as afterwards in Persia, and censured by the prophet Hanani, who seems even
to which parallels have been found in modern East- to have excited some discontent in Jerusalem, in
ern countries, as in the position of the Sultana consequence of which he was imprisoned, and some
Valide in Turkey (see 1 K. ii. 19 2 K. xxiv. 12
; other punishments inflicted (2 Chr. xvi. 9). The
Jer. xxix. 2 also Calmet, Fragm, xvi. ; and prophet threatened Asa with war, which appears to
;
Bruce's Travels, vol. ii. p. 537, and iv. 244). She have been fulfilled by the continuance tor some
had set up some impure worship in a grove (the time of that with Baasha, as we infer from an allu-
word translated idol, 1 K. xv. 13, is in Hebrew sion, in 2 Chr. xvii. 2, to the cities of Ephraim
liorror, while in the Vulgate we read, ne esset which he took, and which can hardly refer to any
(Maacha) princeps in sneris Priapi) but Asa events prior to the destruction of Ramah.
;
burnt the symbol of her religion, and threw its In his old age Asa suffered from the gout, and
ashes into the brook Kidron, as Moses had done to it is mentioned that " he sought not to the Lord
the golden calf (Ex. xxxii. 20), and then deposed but to the physicians." If any blame be intended,
Maachah from her dignity. He also placed in the we must suppose that he acted in an arrogant and
temple certain gifts which his father had dedicated, independent spirit, and without seeking God's
probably in the earlier and better period of his blessing on their remedies. He died greatly loved
reign [Abijah], and which the heathen priests and honored in the 41st year of his reign. Their
must have used for their own worship, and renewed are difficulties connected with its chronology, aris
the great altar which they apparently had dese- ing perhaps from the reasons already mentioned as
crated (2 Chr. xv. 8). Besides this, he fortified to the numbers in Chronicles. For instance, in 2
cities on his frontiers, and raised an army, amount- Chr. xvi. 1, we read that Baasha fortified Ramah
ing, according to 2 Chr. xiv. 8, to 580,000 men, in the 36th year of Asa's reign. In 1 K. xv. 33,
but the uncertainty attaching to the numbers in Baasha is said to have died in the 26th. If the
our present text of Chronicles has been pointed out former number be genuine, it is supposed by the
ASADIAS ASAREEL ] 69
note in the margin of the English Bible, by Clin- Jehovah respecting the book of the law which Hil-
ton, and with some little hesitation by Ewald, that kiah found in the temple (2 K. xxii. 12, 14 also ;
the chronicler is referring to the years not of Asa's called Asaiah, 2 Chr. xxxiv. 20). R. W. B.
reign, but of the separate kingdom of Judah,
which would coincide with the lGth of Asa and the
ASA'IAH [3 syL] (H^S [Jehovah made]
former. G. E. L. C.
"the Shilonite," according to 1 Chr. ix. 5, who
* In Matt. i. 7, 8, Lachm., Tisch. (8th ed.), andwith his family dwelt in Jerusalem after the return
from Babylon. In Neh. xi. 5 he is called Maa-
Tregelles read Aad(p for 'A<rc£.
'
A.
2. ('Offird; Alex. [Comp. Aid.] 'Aira.) An- seiaii, and his descent is there traced from Shiloni,
which is explained by the Targum of 11. Joseph
cestor of Berechiah, a Levite who resided in one of
the villages of the Netophathites after the return
on 1 Chr. as a patronymic from Shelah the son of
Judah, by others as " the native or inhabitant of
from Babylon (1 Chr. ix. 16). W. A. W.
Shiloh."
ASADI'AS ('A<roSi'as; Alex. 2a.5a.ias'- Se-
4. ([Vat. Icraia,:] Asaas.) 2 Chr. xxxiv. 20.
deus). Son of Chelcias, or Hilkiah, and one of the [Asahiah.] W. A. W.
ancestors of Baruch (Bar. i. 1). The name is
probably the same as that elsewhere represented by
AS'ANA CAo-o-avd; [Aid. Alex. 'Acnwa:]
Hasadiah W. Asana), name of a man (1 Esdr.. v. 31). [As-
(1 Chr. iii. 20). W. A.
NAII.]
AS'AEL ('Aotjja; Vulg. omits), of the tribe
of Naphtali, and forefather of Tobit (Tob. i. 1). A'SAPH (*1DW [collector]: 'Acdf: Asaph).
[Jahzeel?] 1. A Levite, son of Berechiah, one of the leaders
of David's choir (1 Chr. vi. 39). Psalms 1. and
AS'AHEL 07SntC>2, made by God: 'Ao-
Ixxiii. to lxxxiii. are attributed to him, but proba-
ar}\: Asael [Asahel]). 1. Nephew of David, being
bly all these, except 1., Ixxiii., and lxxvii., are of
the youngest son of his sister Zeruiah. He was later origin a (Vaihinger, Vers, of Psalms) and ;
celebrated for his swiftness of foot, a gift much val-
ued in ancient times, as we see by the instances of he was in aftertimes celebrated as a seer (r"T?n) as
Achilles, Antilochus (Horn. II. xv. 570), Papirius and was put on a par
well as a musical composer,
Cursor (Liv. ix. 16), and others. When with David (2 Chr. xxix. 30; Neh. xii. 46).
fighting The
under the command of his brother Joab against office appears to have remained hereditary in his
Ishbosheth's army at Gibeon, he pursued Abner, family, unless he was the founder of a school of
who, after vainly warning him to desist, was obliged poets and musical composers, who were called after
to kill him in self-defense, though with great reluc- him " the sons of Asaph " (comp. the Horneridae)
tance, probably on account of his extreme youth (1 Chr. xxv. 1; 2 Chr. xx. 14; Ezr. ii. 41).
(2 Sam. ii. 18 ff. [iii. 27, 30, xxiu. 21; 1 Chr. xi. 2. (2a(£ctT [Vat. 2a<j>av] in 2 K., Aad<p in Is.; '
ASAHI'AH, or ASA'IAH (HW xi. 17). Most probably the same as 1 and 2.
[whom
W. A. W.
Jehovah made]: 'A<ratas; [Alex. 2 K. xxii. 14,
laffai:] As'iia), a servant of king Josiah, sent by
* ASAR'AEL. [Azarael.]
him, together with others, to seek information of ASAR'EEL (^N~)tt7N [whom God bound,
a * The contents of the Psalms in question are sup- Asaph who wrote them may have been a descendant
posed to require a later author than the Asaph in of the founder of the family, which, as Ezr. ii. 41
David's time. But the title which ascribes these shows, existed through many generations- H.
realms to Asaph is not necessarily incorrect for the ;
170 ASARELAH ASH
sc. by a vow, Ges.]: 'Etrep^A; [Vat. Io-sptnjA;] ASE'RER (Sepap; [Aid. 'A<njpc£p:] Saree),
Alex. E<r<=pa7jA; [Comp. A<rap7)A:] Asrael). A name of a man (1 Esdr. v. 32). [Sisera.]
son of Jehaleleel, whose name is abruptly intro-
duced into the genealogies of Judah (1 Chr. iv. 16).
ASH 77?S, oren: irlrvs- pinus) occurs only
in Is. xliv. 14, as one of the trees out of the wood
W. A. W.
of which idols were carved " He heweth him down
:
ASAREXAH (nbbntt?M : 'Epa^jA; [Alex. cedars, and taketh the cypress and the oak, which
IefftTjA; Comp. Asa- he strengtheneth for himself among the trees of the
'Aa-etp7]\d; Aid. 'AtreprjAa:]
rela). One of the sons of Asaph, set apart by forest: he planteth an ash, and the rain doth nour-
David to " prophesy with harps and with psalteries ish it." It is impossible to determine what is the
and with cymbals " (1 Chr. xxv. 2); called Jesh- tree denoted by the Hebrew word oren ; the LXX.
arelah in ver. 14. W. A. W. and the Vulg. understand some species of pine-tree,
* ASBAZARETH. So A. V. ed. 1611 in and this rendering is supported by many learned
commentators, amongst whom may be named Mun-
1 Esdr. x. 69 for " Asbazareth," the less correct
ster, Calvin, and Bochart and some of the Jewish
reading of later editions. See Azbazareth. ;
considered to be necessarily Egyptian (Lepsius, ters of berries, which are noxious and bitter when
Chronohgie d. JEgypter, i. 382), and Egyptian green, but become rather sweet when they ripen,
etymologies have therefore been proposed. Gese- and turn black. Gesenius (Thes. s. v.) is in favor
nius (Thes. s. v.) suggests "she of some species of pine being the tree intended.
<$»C-JICJT
Nothing is known
of the tree of which Abul
who is of Neith," the Egyptian Minerva; but this
Fadli speaks. Sprengel (Hist. Rei Herb. i. 14)
word has not been found in the ancient Egyptian
thinks the aran is the caper-tree (Capparis sjn-
or Coptic and it must be regarded as very doubt-
;
nosa, Linn.). Dr. Royle says the tree appears to
ful. If we are guided by the custom of the He-
agree in some respects with Salvadora persica.
brews, and the only parallel case, that of Bithiah,
Other attempts at identification have been made by
whose Hebrew name, "daughter," that is, "ser-
Faber in his posthumous MS. notes on Biblical Bot-
vant, of Jehovah," implying conversion, must have
any, and Link (Schrceder's Botan. Journ. iv. 152),
been given her on her marriage to Mered, at a time
but they are mere conjectures. The A. V. adopted
probably not long distant from Joseph's rule [Bi-
the translation of ash in all probability from the
thiah], we must suppose that his Egyptian wife
similarity of the Hebrew oren with the Latin omits;
received a Hebrew name from Joseph, especially if
and Dr. Royle states that the Ornus Luropceus is
her native name invplied devotion to the gods of
found in Syria, but thinks it is not a true native.
the country. Such a new name would have been
Until future investigation acquaints us with the
preserved in preference to the other in the 0. T.
nature of the tree denoted by the aran of Abul
If Hebrew, Asenath may be compared to the male
Fadli, it will lie far better to adopt the interpreta-
proper name Asnah, H3DS (Ezr. ii. 50), and de- tion of the LXX., and understand some kind of
pine to be the oren of Scripture. Pinus haUpensU
rived like it from IPS or CDS, in which case
or P. maritima may be intended. Celsius (Hierob.
both names would signify storehouse ; unless both i. 193) objects to any pine representing the oren,
may be cognate with H3P, and mean bramble, a because he says pines are difficult to transplant,
and therefore that the pine would ill suit the words
sense not repugnant to Semitic usage in proper
of the prophet, " he planteth an oren." This,
names. The former derivation is perhaps the more
however, is not a valid objection: the larch, for in-
probable, in connection with Joseph's history and
stance, is readily transplanted, and grows with great
the name of Ephraim. R. S. P.
rapidity, but it is not a native of Syria. The He-
*ASER ('Ao-fipi VA - Affo-np- Naasson) oc-
brew oren is probably derived from the Arabic verb
curs in Tob. i. 2 as the name of a city in Galilee
aran, "to be agile," "to be slender," or "grace-
near Thisbe, which see. Hazor is probably the
ful." W. H.
place intended. A.
A'SER, Luke ii. 36 , Rev. vii. 6. [Asher.]
Dr. Hooker says he never heard of P. sylvestris in
Syria, and thinks P. halipensis is meant.
which (see Josh. xv. 31) appear to have been much [Comp. 'AaefSd-] Juramentum). A proper name,
more to the south. In 1 Chr. vi. 59, it is given but whether of a person or place is uncertain (1
as a priests' city, occupying the same place as the Chr. iv. 21). Houbigant would understand it of
" the house of Ash-
somewhat similar word Ain Of)?) does in the list the latter, and would render
bea" by Beth-ashbea. The whole clause is ob-
of Josh. xxi. 16.
scure. The Targum of R. Joseph (ed. Wilkins)
In 1 Sam. xxx. 30, Chor-ashan is named with
paraphrases it, "and the family of the house of
Honnan and other cities of " the South." [The
manufacture of the fine linen for the garments of
compound name QK?V "VIS) means (Ges.) smok- the kings and priests, which was handed clown to
*n
the house of Eshba." W. A. W.
ff farnace, or (Fiirst) smelting furnace.']
Eusebius and Jerome (Onom.) mention a village ASH'BEL (bstpS: 'A<r/37jA, 'Avvfop-- As-
named Bethasan as 15 miles west of Jerusalem; bel), a son of Benjamin (Gen. xlvi. 21 Num. xxvi. ;
but this, though agreeing sufficiently with the posi- 38; 1 Chr. viii. 1). Respecting the sons of Ben-
tion of the place in Josh. xv. 42, is not far enough jamin, see Becher.
south for the indications of the other passages;
and indeed Euseb. and Jer. discriminate JJethasan
ASH'BELITES, THE ObjatrWTT : 6
Xava(eoi [-£aiot] : Ascenez.) Ashkexaz (1 Chr. it was probably selected as one of the seats of the
i. 6; Jer. Ii. 27). \y. A. W. national worship of Dagon (1 Sam. v. 5). It was
ASHT)OD, or AZO'TUS ("TVT#H assigned to the tribe of Judah (Josh. xv. 47), but
[strong-
was never subdued by the Israelites: it appears on
holdot castle] "A^tos, LXX. [commonly] and
:
N. the contrary to have been the point for conducting
T.), one of the five confederate cities of
the Philis- offensive operations against them, so much so, that
tines, situated about 30 miles from the
southern after Uzziah had succeeded in breaking down the
frontier of Palestine, 3 from the Mediterranean
Sea, wall of the town, he secured himself against future
and nearly midway between Gaza and Joppa.
It attacks by establishing forts on the adjacent hills
stood on an elevation overlooking the plain, and
the (2 Chr. xxvi. 6): even down to Nehemiah's a^e it
natural advantages of its position were improved
preserved its distinctiveness of race and language
by fortifications of great strength'. For this reason (Xeh. xiii. 23). But its chief importance arose
172 ASHDODITES ASHER
from its position on the high road from Palestine 'border, from Cinnereth (Sea of Galilee) unto the
1
to Egypt, commanding the entrance to or from the sea of the Arabah,' the Salt Sea, under Ashdoth
'
latter country : it was on this account besieged by hap-Pisgah eastward " and so also in iv. 49, though
;
Tartan, the general of the Assyrian king, Sargon, here our translators have chosen to vary the for-
about b. c. 716, apparently to frustrate the league mula for English readers. The same intention is
formed between Hezekiah and Egypt (Is. xx. 1). evident in the passages quoted from Joshua ; and in
Its importance as well as strength is testified by x. 40, and xii. 8 of the same book, Ashdoth is used
the protracted siege which it afterwards sustained alone — " the springs " — to denote one of the main
under Psammetichus, about b. c. 630 (Herod, ii. natural divisions of the country. The only other
157), the effects of which are incidentally referred instance of the use of the word is in the highly
to by Jer. (xxv. 20). That it recovered from this poetical passage, Num. xxi. 15, " the 'pouring
blow appears from its being mentioned as an inde- forth of the torrents,' which extendeth to She-
' '
pendent power in alliance with the Arabians and beth-Ar." This undoubtedly refers also to the east
others against Jerusalem (Neh. iv. 7). It was de- of the Dead Sea.
stroyed by the Maccabees (1 Mace. v. 68, x. 84), What the real significance of the term may be,
and lay in ruins until the Koman conquest of Ju- it is impossible in our present ignorance of the
daea, when it was restored by Gabinius, b. c. 55 country east of the Dead Sea to determine. Doubt-
(Joseph. Ant. xiv. 5, § 3; B. J. i. 7, § 7), and was less, like the other topographical words of the Bible,
one of the towns assigned to Salome after Herod's it has a precise meaning strictly observed in its use
death (Joseph. Ant. xvii. 8, § 1). The only notice but whether it be the springs poured forth at the
of Azotus in the N. T. is in connection with Phil base of the mountains of Moab, or the roots or
ip's return from Gaza (Acts viii. 40). It is now spurs of those mountains, or the mountains them-
an insignificant village, with no memorials of its selves, it is useless at present to conjecture. G.
ancient importance, but is still called Esdud.
W. L. B. ASHDOTHITES, THE CH^tf SPT : d
* Yet the present not wholly destitute of 'Actios [Vat. -aos] Azotii).
site is
The inhabitants •
'Arabah' also (t. e. the Jordan valley) and the tribe, in which case the southern
boundary was
ASHER ASHES 173
probably one of the streams which enter the Med- of an hour from Tubas, the ancient Thebez, is the
iterranean south of that place either Nahr el- — hamlet of Teydsir, which Mr. Porter suggests may
DeJ'neh or Nahr Zurka. Following the beach be the Asher of Manasseh (llandb. p. 318). In
round the promontory of Carniel, the tribe then the Vat. MS. the LXX. of this passage is entirely
possessed the maritime portion of the rich plain of corrupt. W. A. W.
Esdraelon. probably for a distance of eight or ten
miles from the shore. The boundary would then
ASHE'RAH (rntPS), the name of a Phoe-
nician goddess, or rather of the idol itself. Our
appear to have run northwards, possibly bending to
the rendering of the LXX.
translators, following
the east to embrace Ahlab, and reaching Zidon by
(&\ffos) and of the Vulg. (lucus), translate the
Kanah (a name still attached to a site six miles in-,
word by "grove." Almost all modern interpreters
land from Said), whence it turned and came down
however, since Selden (Be Diis Syriis, p. 343),
by Tyre to Achzib (Ecdippa, now es-Zib). a
agree that an idol or image of some kind must be
This territory contained some of the richest soil in
intended, as seems sufficiently proved from such
all Palestine (Stanley, p. 265 Kenrick, Phcen. p. 35),
;
Manasseh and Zebulun " came to Jerusalem to the Alex. Acrrip- Vulg. om.). The descendants of
Passover of Hezekiah (2 Chr. xxx. 11). With the Asher and members of his tribe (Judg. i. 32).
general obscurity —
the aged widow ' Anna the on a heap called the apple (H^pri), from its round
daughter of Phanuel of the tribe of Aser,' who in
shape (Cramer, de Ara exteriori), said to have
the very close of the history departed not from the
sometimes amounted to 300 Cors but this Maimon.
;
Robinson's identification (iii. 55) is surely too far in- c Zidon was then distinguished by the name Kab-
land. Alammelech was probably on the Nahr el-Me- bah = " the Strong," Josh. xix. 2^.
lech, a tributary of the Kishon. Jiphthah-el may be 3 This name is added by the LXX. Compare Josh,
Jefal (Rob. iii. 107). Bethlehem (Beit Lahm) is 10 xvii. 11.
miles inland from the shore of the bay of Chaifa (Rob. « This would be well compensated for if the ancient
p. 113) ;and as it was in Zebulun, it fixes the distance legend could be proved to have any foundation, that
of Asher"s boundary i^s less than that from the sea. the parents of St. Paul resided at Giscala or Gush
h For the crops, see Rob. iii. 102 ; for the oil, Ken- Chaleb, t. e. the Ahlab of Asher (Judg. i. 31). See
rick, p. 31 Reland, p. 817.
; Reland. p. 813. [But see Acts xxii. 3.]
174 ASHIMA ASHKELON
about the person, especially on the head, were used one of the five cities of the lords of the Philistines
as a sign of sorrow. [Mourning.] H. H. (Josh. xiii. 3; 1 Sam. vi. 17), but less .often men-
* Jeremiah (xxxi. 40) speaks of "a valley of tioned, and apparently less known to the Jews than
ashes;" and from his mention of "the brook of the other four. This doubtless arose from its re-
Kidron " in the same passage, he may possibly mote situation, alone, of all the Philistine towns,
refer to a "valley" which bore this name, near on the extreme edge of the shore of the Mediter-
Jerusalem. But the prophet's representation there ranean (Jer. xlvii. 7), and also well down to the
being symbolic, it is not easy to decide how far we south. Gaza, indeed, was still further south, but
are to regard the scenery under which he couches then it was on the main road from Egypt to the
the allegory as literal and how far as fictitious. centre and north of Palestine, while Ashkelon lay
At a little distance north of Jerusalem are several considerably to the left. The site, which retains
large mounds of ashes (one of them 40 feet high), its ancient name, fully bears out the above infer-
which some conjecture may be as old as the age of ence; but some indications of the fact may be
the temple, having been built up by the ashes carried traced, even in the scanty notices of Ashkelon which
out thither from the altar of sacrifice (Lev. vi. 10, occur in the Bible. Thus, the name is omitted
11). So much curiosity was felt respecting these from the list in Josh. xv. of the Philistine towns
ashes that two small specimens of them were sub- falling to the lot of Judah (but comp. Joseph. Ant.
mitted to Professor Liebig, who found them on v. 1, § 22, where it is specified), although Ekron,
analysis to consist largely of animal and not of veg- Ashdod, and Gaza are all named; and considerable
etable elements. But the general opinion is that uncertainty rests over its mention in Judg. i. 18
they are the accumulations of ashes deposited there (see Bertheau in Exeg. Handb.). Samson went
from soap manufactories which formerly existed at down from Timnath to Ashkelon when he slew the
Jerusalem. The fact that similar mounds occur in thirty men and took their spoil, as if to a remote
the vicinity of Nabulus (Shechem), which are place whence his exploit was not likely to be heard
known to be formed in this way, would seem to be of; and the only other mention of it in the histor-
decisiveon this question. Travellers have observed ical books is in the formulistic passages. Josh. xiii.
them also near Ghuzzeh (Gaza), Ludd (Lydda), 3, and 1 Sam. vi. 17, and in the casual notices of
and Ramleh, where the Jews never offered sacrifices. Jud. ii. 28; 1 Mace. x. 86, xi. 60, xii. 33. The
See Dr. Robinson's Later Pes. iii. 201. The other Philistine cities are each distinguished by
chemical test, as he suggests, is too limited for de- some special occurrence or fact connected with it,
termining the character of the entire mass, and a but except the one exploit of Samson, Ashkelon is
few particles of bones might easily be intermixed to us no more than a name. In the poetical books
with the other sediments. Dr. Sepp takes notice it occurs 2 Sam. i. 20; Jer. xxv. 20, xlvii. 5, 7;
of these ash-heaps (Jerusalem u. das lieil. Land, Am. i. 8; Zeph. ii. 4, 7; Zech. ix. 5.
i. 250), and expresses the same opinion of their In the post-biblical times Ashkelon rose to con-
origin. H. siderable importance. Near the town though all —
traces of them have now vanished were the temple —
ASH'IMA IMO^S 'A<n M «$0 [Vat. -<r«-]
:
and sacred lake of Derceto, the Syrian Venus and ;
[Comp. 'AffijUoQ Asima), a god worshipped by the it shared with Gaza an infamous reputation for the
people of Hamath. The worship was introduced steadfastness of its heathenism and for the cruel-
into Samaria by the Hamathite colonists whom ties there practiced on Christians by Julian (Re-
Shalmanezer settled in that land (2 K. xvii. 30). land, pp. 588, 5'JO). " The soil around the town
The name occurs only in this single instance. The was remarkable for its fertility the wine of Asca- ;
Talmudists say that the word signifies a goat with- lon was celebrated, and the Al-lanna plant flour-
out hair, or rather' with short hair (Buxtorf, Lex. ished better than in any other place except Can-
Tabu.), and from this circumstance Ashima has opus " (Kenrick, p. 28). It was also celebrated for
been regarded as identical with the Mendesian god its cypresses, for figs, olives, and pomegranates, and
of the Egyptians (considered by the Greeks to be for its bees, which gave their name to a valley in
Pan), to whom the goat was sacred. This god has the neighborhood (Kenrick, p. 28; Edrisi and Ibn
also by some been identified with the Phoenician Batuta in Ritter, Palastina, p. 88). Its name is
god Esmun (see Winer, Realw.), whose name is
familiar to us in the "Eschalot" or "Shallot," a
frequently found in Phoenician inscriptions as a kind of onion, first grown there, and for which this
component of the names of persons, and who is place was widely known. " The sacred doves of
regarded as the Phoenician jEsculapius
(Gesen. Venus still fill with their cooings the luxuriant gar-
Man. Phan. pp. 136, 347). The two conjectures dens which grow in the sandy hollow within the
are not necessarily discrepant, since to the Phoeni- ruined walls" (Stanley, p. 257). Ashkelon played
cian Esmun belong the characteristics both of Pan a memorable part in the struggles of the Crusades.
and of ^Esculapius (Movers, Phimizier, i. 532). " In it was intrenched the hero of the last gleam
There are many other conjectures of Jewish writers of history which has thrown its light over the
respecting this god, but they are of no authority plains of Philistia, and within the walls and towers
whatever. F. W. G. now standing Richard held his court " (Stanley,
ASH'KELON, AS'KELON, Apocr. AS'- ibid.). By the Mohammedan geographers it was
called "the bride of Syria" (Schultens, Index
CALON (pbfJtTMa [perh. migration, Ge-
Geogr.).
sen.; stony, Dietr!]; once "the Eshkalonite," " The position of the town is naturally very
"O'lbnttWT: >A(TK<i\a>v: Saad. ^j^JLulC strong. The walls are built on a ridge of rock
which winds in a semicircular curve around the
(note the change from Aleph to Ain): Ascakm),
town and terminates at each end in the sea. There
is no bay or shelter for ships, but a small harbor
« The usual form would be VplCS, Ashlcal. Ro- towards the east advanced a little way into the
't -' :
diger (in Gesenhis, p. 1476) suggests that the uncom- town, and anciently bore, like that of Gaza, the
mon termination is a Philistine form. name of Majumas" (Kenrick, p. 28).
ASHKENAZ ASHTAROTH 175
In the time of Origen some wells of remarkable are not, however, on this account to conclude that
shape were shown near the town, which were be- they, any more than the Gomerites in general, were
lieved to be those dug by Isaac, or at any rate, to confined to this locality. Assuming here, what
be of the time of the patriarchs. In connection will be more properly discussed under the word Ja-
witli this tradition may be mentioned the fact that phet, that the Japhetic tribes migrated from their
in the Samaritan version of Gen. xx. 1, 2, and original seats westward and northward, thus peo-
pling Asia Minor and Europe, we may probably
xxvi. 1, Askelon (flbpO" «) is put for the " Ge-
recognize the tribe of Ashkenaz on the northern
rar" of the Hebrew text. G. shore of Asia Minor, in the name of Lako As-
* A word should be said of the present site of
canius, and in Europe in the name Scand-ia,, Scand-
Ashkelon. Gesenius speaks of a village there still,
inavia. Knobel (VoBevrtafd, p. 35) regards the
bearing the ancient name; but in fact not a living
soul dwells any longer within the proper precincts word as a compound
(TD3"tt7S), the latter element
of the old city, though a little east of the ruins is being equivalent to the Gr. y«vos, Lat. gens, genus,
a cluster of some twenty mud hovels surrounded Eng. land, kin; the meaning therefore being the
by a few palms and other trees. The name is un- .Is-race. If this be so, it would seem that we here
known on the spot except by tradition. The tes- find the origin of the name Asia, which has sub-
timony of all travellers is the same : it is difficult sequently been extended to the whole eastern part
to conceive of a more desolate scene, a sadder spec- of the world. Knobel considers that Ashkenaz is
tacle of the wasting effects of time, and of the havoc with the German race. It is worthy
to be identified
of war, than the ruins of Ashkelon present to us. of notice, though possessing little weight as ev-
" A lofty and abrupt ridge begins near the share, idence for this view, that the rabbins, even to the
runs up eastward, bends round to the south, then
present day, call Germany T3327S. The opinion
to the west, and finally northwest to the sea again,
of Gbrres Vulkertaftl, p. 92) that Ashkenaz is to
forming an irregular amphitheatre. On the top of (
the sands below" (Porter's Handbook, i. 269). epenjA:] Fsrhl). Probably A.SRIEL, the son of
AVe seem, as we stand there, to hear echoing through Manasseh (1 Chr. vii. 14). W. A. W.
the ruins those words of Zephaniah (ii. 4), spoken
25 centuries ago: "Ashkelon shall be a desola-
ASHTERATHITE (TrTJ-KtfjT! = A 'A<r-
rapcodi [Vat. -dei] Astarotln'lis).
: native or A
tion"; and of Zechariah (ix. 5): "Ashkelon shall
inhabitant of Ashtaroth (1 < hr. xi. 44) beyond
not be inhabited." H.
Jordan. Uzzia the Ashterathite was one of Da-
ASH'KENAZ (t?3tt S:
;
'Ao-x^o^ Atce- vid's guard. V\ A. \V.
nez), one of the three sons of Gomer, son of Ja- ASH'TAROTH,
and (once) ASTAROTH
phet (Gen. x. 3), that is, one of the peoples or
tribes belonging to the great Japhetic division of (fYWFItpV 'AtrrapuQ- AttnroOi [in Josh. xiii.
:
the human race, and springing immediately from 31, Alex. AffBapufj.; in 1 Chr. vi. 71, 'Affypwd;
that part of it which bears the name of Gombr. Alex.- Pa/j.u>6: Comp. Aid. Acrrapwd]), a city on '
The original seat of the people of Ashkenaz was the E. of Jordan, in Basban, in the kingdom of
undoubtedly in the neighborhood of Armenia, since Og, doubtless so called from being a seat of the
they are mentioned by Jeremiah (li. 27) in connec- worship of the goddess of the same name. [Asii-
tion with the kingdoms of Ararat and Minni. We toreth.] It is generally mentioned as a descrip-
tion or definition of Og, who •• dwelt in Ashta- —
« Note here, as in the Arabic, the substitution of roth in Edrei " (Deut. i. 4), "at Ashtaroth and at
Ain for Aleph. Edrei " (Josh. xii. 4, xiii. 12), or " who was at
176 ASHTAROTH ASHTORETH
Ashtaroth " (ix. 10). It fell into possession of the yet recognized; but the second, es-Sanamein, can
half tribe of Manasseh (Josh. xiii. 31), and was hardly be other than the still important place which
given with its suburbs or surrounding pasture-lands continues to bear precisely the same name, on the
above, and the other may have been Ashteroth- (two-horned) is on her brow." Elsewhere also
Karnaim. The only trace of the name yet recov- among the massive ruins of the deserted cities there
ered in these interesting districts is Tell-Askierah he saw " sculptured images of Astarte, with the
or Asherah (Bitter, Syria, p. 819; Porter, ii. 212), crescent moon," showing how prevalent was this
and of this nothing more than the name is known. form of worship, and what its characteristic symbol
Uzziah the Ashterathite is named in 1 Chr. xi. 44. was (Ashtoreth). See his Giant Cities of
G. Bashan, pp. 12, 43. H.
ASHTAROTH (rfnfitfy:
t - :
ii. Judg.
° ASHTORETH
(ITjhltfg 'Ao-rdpn,- A»- :
13, at 'AcrTct/jToi; x. 6, ui 'Aarapc&d; 1Sam. vii. tarthe [Astaroth]), the principal female divinity of
3, xii. 10, ra &\o~r); vii. 4, to &\a-n 'Aarapwd; the Baal was the principal male di-
Phoenicians, as
xxxi. 10, with rPjS, rb 'Ao-Taprtlov, Alex, -tj-: vinity. It is a peculiarity of both names that they
Astaroth), the plural of Ashtoketh, which see. frequently occur in the plural, and are associated
together in this form (Judg. x. 6; 1 Sam. vii. 4,
A.
xii. 10). Gesenius (Tl/es. s. vv.) maintained that by
ASH'TEROTH-KARNA'IM (r\1F\WV these plurals were to be understood statues of
D^5~!T2 = " Ashtaroth of the two horns or peaks
" Baal and Astarte but the more correct view seems
;
;
sebius and Jerome in the Onomasticon, though not of Babylon, Land. 1854, p. 23; Bawlinson, nerod-
very clear on the point, yet certainly make a dis- otits, i. 634). There is no reason to doubt that
tinction between Ashtaroth and Astaroth-Carnaim, this Assyrian goddess is the Ashtoreth of the Old
desciibing the latter as a kw/x^i /xeyiarii rr\s 'Apa- Testament and the Astarte of the Greeks and Ro-
jStas, vicus grandis in angulo Batansea?. 3. Some mans. The worship of Astarte seems to have ex-
weight is due to the renderings of the Samaritan tended wherever Phoenician colonies were founded.
version, and of the Arabic version of Saadiah, which Thus we find her name in inscriptions still existing
give Ashtaroth as in the text, but Ashteroth-Kar- in the island of Cyprus on the site of the ancient
naim by entirely different names (see above). The Citium, and also at Carthage (Gesen. Mon. Phcen.
first of these, Aphinith, does not appear to have been pp. 125, 449), and not unfrequently as an element
a This was held by the Jews at the date of the Tal- alludes to the worship of the horned goddess, the
mud to refer to its situation between two high peaked " mooned Ashtaroth."
hills (see Suhhah, fol. 2), though it more probably
ASHTORETH ASIA 177
in Phoenician proper names, as "Aarapros, 'Aj85a- rites is apparent from the close connection of this
cndpTos, AeXeiacrrdpros (Joseph, c. Ap. i. 18). The goddess with Asiieraii, or, as our translators ren-
name occurs moreover written in Egyptian hiero- dered the word, " groves." It is not necessary
glyphics, as Astart (Ges. Tins. s. v. For evidence that we should here enter further into the very per-
of her wide-spread worship see also Eckhel, Duct. plexed and revolting subject of the worship of this
Num. iii. 369 ff.). It is worthy of remark that goddess. The reader who wishes to pursue the
Riidiger, in his recently published Addenda to Ge- inquiry may find ample details in Movers' Plu'mi-
senius's Thesaurus (p. 100), notices that in the zier, already referred to, and in Creuzer's Symbolik.
inscription on the sarcophagus of a king named F. W. G.
Esmunazar, discovered in January, 1855 (see Rob-
inson, iii. 36, note), the founding, or at least resto-
ASH'UR ("fintrS [black, Ges., possibly hero,
that of productive power, as Baal symbolizes that Gessuri). This name occurs only in the enumer-
of generative power, and it would be natural to ation of those over whom Ishbosheth was made
conclude that as the sun is the great symbol of the king (2 Sam. ii. 9). By some of the old inter
latter, and therefore to be identified with Baal, so prefers —
Arabic, Syriac, and Vulgate versions —
the moon is the symbol of the former and must be and in modern times by Ewald (Gesch. iii. 145),
identified with Astarte. That this goddess was so the name is taken as meaning the Geshurites, the
typified can scarcely be doubted. The ancient members of a small kingdom to the S. or S. E. of
name of the city, Ashtaroth-Karnaim, already re- Damascus, one of the petty states which were in-
ferred to, seems to indicate a horned Astarte, that cluded under the general title of Aram. [Aram;
is, an image with a crescent moon on her head like Geshur.] The difficulty in accepting this sub
the Egyptian Athor. At any rate it is certain that stitution is that Geshur had a king of its own,
she. was by some ancient writers identified with the Talmai, whose daughter moreover was married to
moon; thus Lucian (De Syria Deti, 4) says, "A<r- I >avid somewhere about this very time (1 Chr. iii.
rapTTiv 5' iyiii SoKeco 'ZeArivair^v efj.fj.evcu. And 2, compared with 4), a circumstance not consistent
again Herodian, v. 0. 10, Ovpaviav $oii tKes 'Aa- with his being the ally of Ishbosheth, or with the
Tpodpxvv (a grecized form of Astarte) ovo/id^ovai, latter being made king over the people of Ge-
ae\T)vr)v elvai OeXovres. On these grounds shur. Talmai was still king many years after this
Movers, Winer, Keil, and others maintain that occurrence (2 Sam. xiii. 37). In addition, Geshur
originally Ashtoreth was the moon-goddess. On was surely too remote from Mahanaim and from the
the other hand, it appears to be now ascertained rest of Ishbosheth' s territory to be intended here.
that the Assyrian Ishtar was not the moon-god- It would therefore be perhaps safer to follow
dess, but the planet Venus (Rawlinson, Herod. the Targum of Jonathan, which has Beth-Asher,
1. c), and it is certain that Astarte was by many
"It^S i"V3, " the house of Asher," a reading sup-
ancient writers identified with the goddess Venus
ported by several MSS. of the original text, which,
(or Aphrodite) as well as also with the planet of that
name. The name itself seems to be identical with omitt'ng the Vau, have "Hk£?Nn (Davidson, JTebr.
our word Star, a word very widely spread (San- Text, ad he.). " The Asherites " will then denote
skrit, tara ; Zend, staranm ; l'ehlevi, setaran ; the whole of the country west of the Jordan above
Pers. xAjLvji- istarah ; Gr. acrrrip ; Lat. Stella. Jezreel (the district of the plain of Esdraelon), and
the enumeration will proceed regularly from north
Though this derivation is regarded as doubtful by to south, Asher to Benjamin. The form "Ash-
erite" occurs in Judg. i. 32.
Keil, from the absence of the initial V in all the
LXX. was evidently quite
The reading of the
presumed representatives of the word (Kimiye, i. different but what it was has not been yet recog-
;
province. Under the early Emperors it was rich was of later date, and denoted one of Constantine's
and flourishing, though it had been severely plun- subdivisions of the province of which we are speak-
dered under the Republic. In the division made ing.
by Augustus of senatorial and imperial provinces, In the books of Maccabees, where reference is
it was placed in the former class, and was governed made to the pre-provincial period of this district
by a proconsul. (Hence avdinraroi, Acts xix. 38, (b. c. 200-150), we frequently encounter the word
and on coins. ) It contained many important cities, Asia in its earlier sense. The title " King of Asia "
among which were the seven churches of the Apoc- was used by the Seleucid monarchs of Antioch, and
alypse, and it was divided into assize districts for was claimed by them even after it more properly
judicial business. (Hence ayopbioi, i- t. ^jx4pat, belonged to the immediate predecessors of Attalus
Acts, ibid.) It is not possible absolutely to define (see 1 Mace. xi. 13 Conybeare and Howaon's Life
;
the inland boundary of this province during the and Epistles of St. Paul, eh. xiv. Marquardt's ;
life of St. Paul: indeed the limits of the provinces Rum. Alterthiimer, iii. 130-140). J. s. H.
were frequently undergoing change; but generally ASIAR'CHiE ('Afftdpxaf- prindpet Asice,
it may be said that it included the territory an- Vulg. chief of Asia, A. V.: Acts xix. 31). officers
:
ciently subdivided into JSolis, Ionia, and Doris, and chosen annually by the cities of that part' of the
afterwards into Mysia, Lydia, and Caria. [MY8IA, province of Asia of which Ephesus was, under Ro-
Lycia, Bithyma, Phrygia, Galatia.] man government, the metropolis. They had charge
Meyer's comment on Acts xvi. 6 is curious, and of the public games and religious theatrical spec-
neither necessary nor satisfactory. He supposes tacles, the expenses of which they bore, as was done
that the divine intimation given to St. Paul had by the holders of \eirovpyiai at Athens, and the
reference to the continent of Asia, as opposed to aediles at Rome (Niebuhr, iii. 35; Gibbon, xv. ii.
Europe, and that the apostle supposed it might 205, ed. Smith). Their office was thus, in great
have reference simply to Asia cis Taurum, and measure at least, religious, and they are in conse-
therefore attempted to penetrate into Bithvnia." quence sometimes called apxiepeis, and their office
The view of Meyer and De Wette on Acts xxvii. 2 Upaicrvvn (Mart. S. Pohjcarp. in Putr. Ap. c. 21
(and of the former on Acts xix. 10), namely, that [cf. c. 12] ). Probably it represented the religious
the peninsula of Asia Minor is intended, involves a element of the ancient Panionian league; to the
Greek Imperial Copper Coin (" medallion ") of Laodicea of Phrygia; Commodus; with name of Asiarch.
territorial limits of which also the circle of the time held the office. From its costliness, it was
functions of the Asiarchs nearly corresponded. often (oeO conferred on a citizen of the wealthy
(See Herod, i. 142.) Officers called AvKidpxai are city of Tralles (Strabo, xiv. G49). Philip, the
mentioned by Strabo (xiv. G05). who exercised ju- Asiarch at the time of St. Polycarp's martyrdom,
dicial and civil functions, subject to the Roman was a Trallian. Coins or inscriptions bearing the
government; but there is no evidence to show that names of persons who had served the office of
the Asiarchs exercised any but the religious func- Asiarch once or more times, are known as belong-
tions above-mentioned. Modestinus names Bt- ing to the following cities: Aphrodisias. Cyzicus,
6vviapxia and KcunraSoKapxla. as religious offices Hypsepa, Laodicea, Pergamus, Philadelphia, Sardis,
in JBHhynia and Cappadocia. The office of Asiarch Smyrna, Thyatira. (Aristid. Or. xxvi. 518, ed.
was annual, and subject to the approval of the pro- Dind. Eckhel. ii. 507, iv. 207 BCckh, Jnscr. vol.
; ;
consul, but might be renewed and the title appears ii. Van Dale, Dissert, p. 274 ff. Krause, Civita-
; ; ;
to have been continued to those who had at any tes Xeocoi-a, p. 71 Wetstein, On Acts xix. Aker-
; ;
<* * Meyer has cancelled this remark in his later edi- coast of the Peninsular Asia, as in Acts ii. 9 and vi. 9.
25. W. A. W.
The children of Asnah were among the Asena).
A'SIEL (bhjTOPS [created by God]: 'Ao-nj\: Xethinim who returned with Zerubbabel (Ezr. ii.
50). In the parallel list of Xeh. vii. 52 the name
J»e/). 1. A Simeonite whose descendant Jehu
is omitted, and in 1 Esdr. v. 31 it is written As-
lived in the reign of Hezekiah (1 Chr. iv. 35).
ana. [See also Asexath.] W. A. W.
2. One of the five swift writers whom Esdras
was commanded to take to write the law and the [ASNAP'PAR (so correctly A. V. ed. 1611
historv of the world (2 Esdr. xiv. 24). in later eds.)] ASXAP'PER ("1S?PS : Syr.
W. A. W.
Aaevva<pap\ Alex. Etpid: 'Afftxeva(pdp ; [Vat.
ASI'PHA CAcr«pd: [Vat. M. Tacreicpa: Gas- No<|)op:] Aseuapnar), mentioned in Ezr. iv. 10,
pkit), 1 Esdr. v. 2J. [Hasupha.] with the epithets " great and noble," as the person
AS'KELON, Judg. i. 18; 1 Sam. vi. 17; 2 who settled the Cutlueans in the cities of Samaria.
Sam. i. 20. [Ashkelox.] He has been variously identified with Shalmaneser,
* ASMA'VETH. [Azmaveth.] Sennacherib, and Esar-haddon. Of the three the
third is the most probable, as Gesenius says, since
ASMODE'US ClPt?W : 'Aff/wJawj, Tob. in ver. 2 of the same chapter the Cuthsans at-
^T^SS, which
in Job xxxi. 12, tribute their settlement to that king. But on the
iii. 8), the same as
whole, as this is but slight evidence, it seems better
&c., means "destruction," and 'AiroWvecv, Rev.
to accept Patrick's view (Comm. in loco), that
ix. 11 [Apollyox], where he is called "a king,
Asnapper was " some great commander, who was
the angel of the bottomless pit," and 6 'OKoOpevcov,
intrusted by one of these kings to conduct them,
Wisd. xviii. 25, where he is represented as the
and bring them over the river Euphrates, and see
"Evil angel" (Ps. lxxviii. 49) of the plague.
them settled in Samaria." G. E. L. C.
(SchleusneVs Thesiur. s. v.) From the fact that
the Talmud (cod. Gittin, Eccles. i. 12) calls him A'SOM CAo-o>: Asom), 1 Esdr. ix. 33. [Ha-
SHUM.]
"H^EJ"! SD7tt,rea; dtenwnum (cf. Lightfoot, Hor.
Hebr. et Tahn. in Luke xi. 15), some assume him ASP OH??, pethen: a<Tirls. Spdnaiv, /3a<ri-
to be identical with Beelzebub, and others with Az- \lfficos ' osjms, basiliscus. The Hebrew word oc-
curs in the six following passages: Deut. xxxii. 33;
rael. The name is derived either from "f ^t*\ to
Ps. lviii. 4, xci. 13; Job rs. 14, 16; Is. xi. 8. It
destroy, or, according to Reland (Winer, s. v.), isexpressed in the passages from the Psalms by
from a Persian vrord = ir(ipd£etv. In the book adder in the text of the A. V., and by as>) in the
of Tobit this evil spirit is represented as loving margin. Elsewhere the text of the A. V. has
Sara, the daughter of Raguel, and causing the asp a as the representative of the original word
death of seven husbands, who married her in suc- pethen.
cession, on the bridal night gaining the power to :
That some kind of poisonous serpent is denoted
do so hinted) through their incontinence.
(as is
by the Hebrew word is clear from the passages
Tobias, instructed by Raphael, bums on u the ashes quoted above. We
further learn from Ps. lviii. 4,
of perfume" the heart and liver of the fish which that the pethen was a snake upon which the ser-
he caught in the Tigris " the which smell when the
;
pent-charmers practiced their art. In this passage
had smelled, he fled into the utmost parts
evil spirit the wicked are compared to " the deaf adder that
of Egypt, and the angel bound him" (Tob. viii. stoppeth her ear, which will not hearken to the
3)- voice of charmers, charming never so wisely: " and
It is obviously a vain endeavor to attempt to ra- from Is. xi. 8, " the sucking child shall play on
tionalize this story of the hole of the asp," it would appear that the
. . Asmodeus with the fishy fume
, <
pethen was a dweller in holes of walls. &c. The
That drove him, though enamored, from the spouse question of identity is one which is by no means
Of Tobit's son, and with a vengeance sent easy to determine. Bochart contributes nothing in
From Media post to Egypt, there fast bound,"
aid to a solution when he attempts to prove that
since is throughout founded on Jewish demon-
it the pethen is the asp (Ffieroz. iii. 156). for this
ology, and "the loves of the angels," a strange species of serpent, if a species be signified by the
fancy derived from Gen. vi. 2. Those, however, term, has been so vaguely described by authors,
who attempt this task make Asmodeus the demon that it is not possible to say what known kind is
of impurity, and suppose merely that the fumes represented by it. The term asp in modern zoi logy
deadened the passions of Tobias and his wife. The is generally restricted to the Vipera ".<j>i.< of La-
Rabbis (among other odd make demon
treiUe, but it is most probable that the name,
fables) this
the offspring of the incest of Tubal-cain with his amongst the ancients, stood for different kinds of
sister Noema, and say (in allusion to Solomon's venomous serpents. Solinus (c. xxvii. says. •• plures )
many wives) that Asmodeus once drove him from diversaeque sunt aspidum species; " and .Elian (A'.
his kingdom, but being dispossessed was forced to Anim. x. 31) asserts that the Egyptians enumerate
a As/i (the Greek do-iris, the Latin aspis) has by think that the words are onomatopoetic, alluding to
the hissing sounds serpents make cf. Lat. asp-imrf-
gome been derived from the Ileb. ^DS, ''to gather
:
Oedmann (Vermisch. Srnnml. v. 81) identifies one ear; that she stops the other with dust, lest
the peihen with the Coluber lebetinus, Linn., a she should hear the charmer's voice." Others
species described by Forskal (Desc. Anim. p. 15). maintain that " she applies one ear to the ground
Rosenmi;Der {Not. ad Ilieroz. iii. 15G), Dr. Lee and stops the other with her tail." That such
errors should have prevailed in former days, when
(Heb. Lex. s. v. )HSi), Dr. Harris {Nat. Hist, of little else but foolish marvels filled the pages of
Bible, art. Asp), Col. H. Smith {Cye. Bib. Lit. natural history, is not to be wondered at, and no
art. Serpent), believe that the peihen of Scripture allusion to them would have been made here, if this
is to be identified with the Coluber baton of Fors- absurd error of " the adder stopping her ears with
kal. Oedmann has no hesitation in estal lishing an her tail " had not been perpetuated in our own day.
identity between the C. lebetinus and the C. bcetan ; In Bythner's Lyre of David, p. 165 (Dee's transla-
but from Forskal's descriptions it is most probable tion, 1847 ), the following explanation of the word
!
that the two species are distinct. The whole ar- pethen, without note or comment, occurs: u Asp,
gument that seeks to establish the identity of the whose deafness marks the venom of his malice, as
Coluber bcetan with the pethen of Scripture is based though impenetrable even to charms. It is deaf of
entirely upon a similarity of sound. Kosenniiiller one ear, and stops the other with dust or its tail,
thinks that the Arabic word beetan ought to be that it may not hear incantations." Dr. Thomson
written pcetan, and thinks there can be no doubt also (Land and Book; p. 155, London, 1859 !) seems
that this species represents the pethen of Scripture.
to give credence to the fable when he writes:
Oedmann's argument also is based on a similarity of " There is also current an opinion that the adder
sound in the words, though he adduces an addi- will actually stop up his ear with his tail to fortify
tional proof in the fact that, according to the himself against the influence of music and other
Swedish naturalist quoted above, the common people charms." It is not, then, needless to observe, in
of Cyprus bestow the epithet of kouphe (icov<pri), confutation of the above error, that no serpent pos-
'•deaf," upon the C. lebetinus. He does not, how- sesses external openings to the ear.
ever, believe that this species is absolutely deaf, for The true explanation of Ps. lviii. 4 is simply as
he says it can hear well. This epithet of deafness follows: There are some serpents, individuals of
attributed to the C. lebetinus Oedmann thinks may the same species perhaps, which defy all the at-
throw light on the passage in Ps. lviii. 5, about tempts of the charmer: in the language of Script-
" the deaf adder." ure such individuals may be termed deaf. The
As regards the opinion of Rosenmiiller and others point of the rebuke consists in the fact that the pe-
who recognize the pethen under the bcetan cf Fors- then was capable of hearing the charmer's som:. but
kal, it may be stated that, even if the identity is refused to do so. The individual case in question
allowed, we are as much in the dark as ever on the was an exception to the rule. If, as some have sup-
subject, for the Coluber bcetan of Forskal has never posed, the expression "deaf adder" denoted some
been determined. If C. baton =
C. lebetinus the species that was incapable of hearing, whence it
species denoted maybe the Echis arenicola (tox- had its specific name, how could there be any force
ica) of Egypt {Catalogue of Snakes in Brit. ^[. in the comparison which the psalmist makes with
i. -2U). Probably all that naturalists have ever wicked men?
heard of the C. baton is derived from two or three
lines of description given by Forskal. " The whole
body is spotted with black and white: it is a foot
a fact which has never yet been proved, though, as comparative deafness is, it appears to us, the very
ASPALATHUS ASS 181
reaso7i why such sounds as the charmer makes pro- aspal. rubens.
" The latter," he says, " is the better
duce the desired effect in the subject under treat- of the two its smell is like that of the rose, whence
:
ment. [Serpent-charming.] As the Egyptian the name Lignum Rhodium, rather than from
cobra is more frequently than any other species the Rhodes, the place where it is said to grow." The
subject upon which the serpent-charmers of the Lignum Rhodianum is by some supposed to be the
Bible lands practice their science, as it is fond of substance indicated by the aspalathus : the plant
concealing itself in walls and in holes (Is. xi. 8), which yields it is the Convolvulus scoparius of
and as it is not improbable that the derivation of Linnaeus. 6 Dr. Koyle (Cycl. Bib. Lit. s. v.) is
the Hebrew word pethen " has reference to the ex- inclined to believe that the bark of a tree of the
panding powers of this serpent's neck when irri- Himalayan mountains, the Myrica sapida of Ur.
tated, it appears to us to have a decidedly better Wallich, is the article indicated, because in India
claim to represent the pethen than the very doubt- the term Darskishan, which by Avieenna and
ful species of Coluber boston, which on such slender Serapion are used as the Arabic synonyms of
grounds has been so positively identified with it. aspalathus, is applied to the bark of this tree. If
W. H. the aspalathus of the Apocrypha be identical with
the aspalathus of the Greeks, it is clear that the
ASPAL'ATHUS apw/xaTwu
(affnaKados ;
Theocritus (Id, iv. 57) we learn that the aspalathus sage referred to above; Sprengel, Hist Rei Herb.
i. 45, 183 but in all probability the term has been
was of a thorny nature, and (from Id. xxi\v87) ;
so thorny a nature that Plato (Repub. p. GIG A, prnXi [Vat. -\ei] : Asrielitte). Num. xxvi. 31.
ed. Bekker) says cruel tyrants were punished with [Asriel.]
it in the lower world. The Hebrew names of the
ASS. five following
Gerarde (Herbal, 1625) mentions two kinds genus Asians occur in the 0. T.
p. : Chamar, 'Athon,
of aspalathus: aspal. albicans toruto citreo, and
'Ayir, Fere, and Arod. '
" We mustnot go to Cm
col. scoparius, albeit that may however, took the latter name, which was handed over
possess the two needful qualifications. It is peculiar to a wood brought from India, though the original
to the Canary Islands. .Many plants with fragrant plant was a thorny shrub growing on the shores of
roots are called Rose-roots. Such is the Lignum aloes, the Mediterranean, probably Sparlwm v illusion ac- ,
"
the lign aloes of Scripture and there is the pofiiapt'fa
;
cording to Sibthorpe (For. Grax. vol. vii. p. 69). '
c * So in the Genevan version. This accords with
of Dioscorides, which came from Macedonia. A late
learned friend of mine writes. ' This was certainly Lin the Hebrew in 2 MSS. and one edition cited by Mi-
chaelis. A.
naeus's R/iodiola rosea, figured as such by Parkinson
in his Theatrum Botanicum, after Lobel. Soon after
182 ASS ASS
and be forbidden j he compares 2
religious life to
1. Chanwr ("ilttn«: ovos, imofyyiov, yo/xdp
Cor. vi. 14, " Be ye not unequally yoked with un-
in 1 Sam. xvi. 20: asinus, "ass," "he-ass") de-
believers." It is not at all improbable that such
notes the male domestic ass, though the word was
a lesson was intended to be conveyed; but we
no doubt used in a general sense to express any ass
think that the main reason in the prohibition is a
whether male or female. The ass is frequently physical one, namely,
that the ox and the ass could
mentioned in the Bible: it was used (a) for carry-
not pull pleasantly together on account of the dif-
ing burdens (1 Sam. xxv. 18; Gen. xlii. 26, xlv.
ference in size and strength perhaps also this pro-
;
23; 2 Sam. xvi. 1; 1 Chr. xii. 40; Neh. xiii. 15;
hibition may have some reference to the law given
1 Sam. xvi. 20): (b) for riding (Gen. xxii. 3:
in Lev. xix. 19.
Ex. iv. 20; Num. xxii. 21; 1 K. xiii. 23; Josh.
The expression used in Is. xxx. 24, " The young
xv. 18; Judg. i. 14, v. 10, x. 4, xii. 14; 1 Sam.
asses that ear the ground," would be more intel-
xxv. 20; 2 Sani. xvii. 23, xLx. 26; Zech. ix. 9:
ligible to modern understandings were it translated
Matt. xxi. 7) (c) for ploughing (Is. xxx. 24,
:
the asses that till the ground ; the word ear from
xxxii. 20; Deut. xxii. 10), and perhaps for treading
aro "I till," "I plough," being now obsolete
out corn, though there is no clear Scriptural allu-
(comp. also 1 Sam. viii. 12). [Ear, Earing.]
sion to the fact. In Egypt asses were so employed
(Wilkinson's A?w. Egypt, iii. 34), and by the Jews,
Although the flesh of the wild ass was deemed a
luxury amongst the Persians and Tartars, yet it
according to Josephus ( Contr. Apian, ii. § 7): (d)
does not appear that any of the nations of Canaan
for grinding at the mill (Matt, xviii. 6 Luke xvii.
;
asses which formed the especial care of one of Da- unknown to the ancient Hebrews, though in all
vid's officers (1 Chr. xxvii. 30). While on the probability theyconfounded these species. The
other hand Abraham (Gen. xxii. 3, &c.), Achsali Asinus hemionus or Dshiggetai, whicli was separ-
(Josh. xv. 18), Abigail (1 Sam. xxv. 20), the dis- ated from Asinus hemippus (with which it had long
it is not improbable that the two names stand for hemippus, the Assyrian wild ass, Asiiius vulgaris,
different animals. the true onager, and perhaps Asinus onager, the
The subject which relates to the different animals Koulan or Ghorkhur of Persia and Western India.
known as wild asses has recently received very val- The following quotation from Mr. Blythe's val-
uable elucidation from Mr. Blythe in a paper con- uable paper is given as illustrative of the Scriptural
tributed to the Journd of the Asiatic Society of allusions to wild asses " To the west of the range
:
Bengal (1859), a reprint of which appears in the of the Ghor-khur lies that of Asinus hemippus, or
October No. of The Annuls and Magazine of Nat- true Hemionus of ancient writers the particular —
ural History (18(50). This writer enumerates seven species apostrophized in the book of Job, and again
species of the division Asinus. In all probability that noticed by Xenophon. There is a recent ac-
the species known to the ancient Jews are Asinus count of it by Mr. Layard in Ninereh and its Re-
hffliippus, which inhabits the deserts of Syria, mains (p. 324). Returning from the Sinher, he
Mesopotamia, and the northern parts of Arabia; was riding through the desert to Tel Afer, and there
and Asinus vulgaris of X. E. Africa, the true he mistook a troop of them for a body of horse
onager or aboriginal wild ass, whence the domes- with the Bedouin riders concealed! The reader '
ticated breed is sprung; probably also the Asinus will remember,' he adds, that Xenophon men- '
onager, the Koulan or Ghorkhur, which is found tions these beautiful animals, which he must have
in Western Asia from 48° X. latitude southward seen during his march over these very plains . . .
all an aromatic smell, but no trees appeared of the Sept., with 6 MSS., read Acrcrapriixdid in
. . .
The asses, when they were pursued, having gained the passage referred to for Ta(j)p<i>v of the Roman
ground on the horses, stood still (for they exceeded edition. 'Ao-a.prnj.ob6 is also found in the Sept. in
Jer. xxxviii. (Heb. xxxi.) 40 as the representative of
ASSHUR. [Assybia.]
ASSHU RIM (anWfjl: 'AowM/piei'/*; Alex.
Affovpifi' Assurim). A
from De-
tribe descended
dan, the grandson of Abraham (Gen. xxv. 3).
They have not been identified with any degree of
certainty. Knobel considers them the same with
the Asshur of Ez. xxvii. 23, and connected with
southern Arabia. W. A. W.
ASSIDE'ANS ('A<ri8o?oi; [in 1 Mace. vii.
"1SS n ,,
33^ be translated "Jeconiah the captive"
Wild Ass. On monuments of Persepolis. (Rawlin-
(Bertheau ad foe). G.
son's Herodotus.)
AS'SOS AS'SUS
CAao-os), a town and sea-
or
ASSABI'AS ('AffojBfaj; [Vat. Alex. Aid. port of the Roman province of Asia, in the district
2aj8iaj:] Hambias), 1 Esdr. i. 9. [Hashabiah.] anciently called Mysia. It was situated on the
northern shore of the gulf of Adhamyttium, and
ASSAI/IMOTH (SaAiyucM; [Vat. SaKei^d;
was only about seven miles from the opposite coast
Alex. Aid.
'
A<rcra\ifj.(b6 :] Salimoth (39)), 1 Esdr.
viii. 3G. [Shelomith.]
of Lesbos, near Methymna (Strab. xiii. p. (U8). A
good Roman road, connecting the towns of the
ASSANI'AS (Sa/i/as; |Tat - Ald -
'Atrtrafiiat ; central parts of the province with Alexandria Troas
Alex. Ao-Oyuios; 2 MSS. 'A<ro/3ios:] Assannas), 1 [Tboas] passed through Assos, the distance be-
Esdr. viii. 54. [Hashabiah.] latter places being about 20 miles tween the two
* ASSARE'MOTH. This word is given in (Itin. Anton.). These geographical points illus-
the margin of the A. V. in 1 Mace. iv. 15 as the trate St. Paul's rapid passage through the town, as
ASSUERUS ASSYRIA 185
mentioned in Acts xx. 13, 14. The Tombs, leading to the Great Gate, is one
ship in which Street of
ue was to accomplish his voyage from Troas to Caes- of the most remarkable features of Assos. Illus-
area [to Ptolemais, Acts xxi. 7] went round Cape trations of the ancient city will be found in Texier,
Lectum, while he took the much shorter journey Clarac, Fellows, and Choiseul-Gouffier. It is now
by land. Thus he was able to join the ship with- utterly desolate. Two monographs on the subject
out difficulty, and in sufficient time for her to are mentioned by Winer: Quandt, De Asson. Ke-
anchor off Mitylene at the close of the day on giom. 1710; Aninell, De "Aaay, Upsal. 1758.
which Troas had been left. It is now a matter of curiosity to refer to the
The chief characteristic of Assos was that it was interpretation which used to be given to the words
singularly Greek. Fellows found there " no trace of aaaov irape\eyoi>TO, in Acts xxvii. 13. In the
the Romans." Leake says that " the whole gives Vulgate they were rendered " cum sustulissent de
perhaps the most perfect idea of a Greek city that Asson," and they were supposed to point to a city
anywhere exists." The remains are numerous and of this name in Crete. Such a place is actually
remarkably well preserved, partly because many of inserted by Padre Georgi, in the map which accom-
the buildings were of granite. The citadel, above panies his Paulus Naufragus (Venet. 1730, p.
the theatre, commands a glorious view, and must 181). The true sense of the passage was first
itself have been a noble object from the sea. The given by Beza. J. S. H
ASSUE'RUS ("Ao-uTjpos [Alex. A<rovnpos\ Tigris. Gradually its limits were extended, until
Comp. Aid. K(T(To\)t)pos- Assuerus] ),
' 'fob. xiv. 15. it came to be regarded as comprising the whole
[AHASUKRUS.] Armenian mountains (lat. 37°
region between the
AS'SUR ("WS: 'Aa-ffoip-.lAssur]). 1. 30) upon the north, and upon the south the coun-
Ezr.
try about Baghdad (lat. 33° 30). Eastward its
iv. 2; Ps. lxxxiii. 8; 2 Esdr. ii. 8; Jud. ii. 14; v.
1; vi. 1, 17; vii. 20, 24; xiii.
boundary was the high range of Zagros, or moun-
15; xiv. 3; xv. 6;
xvi. 4. [AssiiLi;: ASSYRIA.] tains ofKurdistan ; westward, it was, according to
2. ('Atrovfi; [Aid.] Alex. Affovp- Azlu.) 1 Esdr. the views of some, bounded by the Mesopotamian
v. 31. [ILwuiun.] desert, while, according to others, it reached the
Euphrates. Taking the greatest of these dimen-
ASSYRIA, ASSHUR (""WK : 'AoWp; sions, Assyria may
be said to have extended in a
Jos. 'Acraupia'-Assur), was a great and powerful direction from N. E. to S. W. a distance of nearly
country lying on the Tigris (Sen. ii. 14), the cap- 500 miles, with a width varying from 350 to 100
ital of which was Nineveh (Gen. x. 11, &c.). It miles. Its area would thus a little exceed 100,000
derived its name apparently from Asshur, the son square miles, cr about equal that of Italy.
of Shem (Gen. x. 22 [1 Chr. i. 17]), who in later 1. General character of (lie country. The —
times was worshipped as their chief god by the country within these limits is of a varied character.
Assyrians. [Asshur occurs also Gen. x. 11 (prob- On the north and east the high mountain-chains
ably): Num. xxiv. 22, 24: Ez. xxvii. 23, xxxii. of Armenia and Kurdistan are succeeded by low
22; Hos. xiv. 3, as the name of the country or ranges of limestone hills of a somewhat arid aspect,
people.] The boundaries of Assyria differed greatly which detach themselves from the principal ridges,
at different periods. Probably in the earliest times running parallel to them, and occasionally inclosing,
it was confined to a small tract of low country be- between their northern or northeastern flank and
tween the Gebel Mahloub and the Lesser Zab, or the main mountain-line, rich plains and fertile val-
Zab Asfal, lying chiefly on the left bank of the leys. To these ridges there succeeds at first an
186 ASSYRIA ASSYRIA
undulating zone of country, well watered and fairly ever, the richest region of all, derived its appella-
productive, which finally sinks down with some sud- tion from the Zab (Diab) rivers on which it lay,
denness upon the great Mesopotamian plain, the as Ammianus Marcellinus informs us (xxiii. 20).
modern district of El-Jezireh. This vast flat, Ptolemy (v. 18) made Mesopotamia (which he un-
which extends hi length for 250 miles from the lat- derstood literally as the whole country between the
itude of Marc/in (37° 20) to that of Tekrit (34° Euphrates and the Tigris) distinct from Assyria,
33), and which is, in places, of nearly equal width,
is interrupted only by a single limestone range — just as the sacred writers distinguish O^^?
a narrow ridge rising abruptly out of the plain; Q>
!'!
LT ? from n!jJ&H. Strabo (xvi. § 1) extended
I
Adiabene of the geographers, no name Ninus) found Babylon, is only one out of ten thou-
alent for the
of a district can be said to be mentioned. The sand proofs of the untrustworthy character of his
classical geographers, on the contrary, divided As- history. The researches recently carried on in the
syria into a number of regions — Strabo (xvi. § 1 two countries clearly show, not merely by the state-
and § 4) into Aturia, Arbelitis, Artacene, Apollo- ments which are said to have been deciphered on
niatis, Chakmitis, Dolomene, Calachene, Adiabene, the historical monuments, but by the whole char-
Mesopotamia, &c; Ptolemy (vi. 1) into Arrapa- acter of the remains discovered, that Babylonian
chitis, Adiabene, the (jaranuean country, Apollo- greatness and civilization was earlier than Assyrian,
niatis, Arbelitis, the country of the Sambaia, and that while the former was of native growth,
Calacine, and Sittacene. These regions appear to the latter was derived from the neighboring coun-
be chiefly named from cities, as Arbelitis from Ar- try. The cuneiform writing, for instance, which is
bela; Calacene (or Calachine) from Calah or Halah rapidly punched with a very
simple instrument
(Gen. x. 11; 2 K. xvii. 6); Apolloniatis from Apol- upon moist clay, but is only with much
labor and
lonia; Sittacene from Sittace, &c. Adiabene, how- trouble inscribed by the chisel
upon rock, must
ASSYRIA ASSYRIA 1ST
nave been invented in a country where men " had gods, names of towns, names of rivers, — and in its
brick for stone" (Gen. xi. 3), and have thence estimate of time presenting the impossible average
passed to one where the material was unsuited for of 34 or 35 years to a reign, and the very improb-
it. It may be observed also, that while writing able phenomenon of reigns in half the instances
occurs in a very rude form in the earlier Babylo- amounting exactly to a decimal number. Unfor-
nian ruins (Loftus's Chabhei, p. 169), and grad- tunately we have no authentic list to substitute for
ually improves in the later ones, it is in Assyria the forgery of Ctesias. Berosus spoke of 45 kings
uniformly of an advanced type, having apparently as reigning during his period of 526 years, and
been introduced there after it had attained to per- mentioned all their names (Euseb. 1. s. c); but
fection. they have unluckily not been preserved to us. The
6. D ite of the foundation of the kingdom. — work of Herodotus on Assyrian history (Herod, i.
With respect to the exact date at which Assyria 106 and 184) has likewise entirely perished; and
became a separate and independent country, there neither Greek nor Oriental sources are available to
is an important difference between classical author- supply the loss, which has hitherto proved irrepa-
ities. Herodotus and Ctesias were widely at vari- rable. Recently the researches in Mesopotamia have
ance on this point, the latter placing the commence- done something towards filling up this sad gap in
ment of the empire almost a thousand years before our knowledge but the reading of names is still
;
the former ! Scripture does but little to determine so doubtful that it seems best, in the present con-
the controversy ; that little, however, is in favor of dition of cuneiform inquiry, to treat the early pe-
the earlier author. Geographically — as a country riod of Assyrian history in a very general way, only
— Assyria was evidently known to Moses (Gen. ii. mentioning kings by name when, through the sat-
14, xxv. 18: Num. xxiv. 22, 24); but it does not isfactory identification of a cuneiform royal desig-
appear in Jewish history as a kingdom till the reign nation with some name known to us from sacred or
of Menahem (ab. b. c. 770). In Abraham's time profane sources, firm ground has been reached, and
(B.C. 1900?) it is almost certain that there can serious error rendered almost impossible.
have been no Assyrian kingdom, or its monarch The Mesopotamian researches have rendered it
would have been found among those who invaded apparent that the original seat of government was
Palestine with Chedorlaomer (Gen. xiv. 1). In not at Nineveh. The oldest Assyrian remains have
the time of the early Judges (b. c. 1400 V) As- been found at Kileh-Sherghat, on the right bank
syria, if it existed, can have been of no great of the Tigris, 60 miles south of the later capital,
strength; tor Chushan-Rishathaim, the first of the and this place the monuments show to have been
foreigners who oppressed Israel (Judg. iii. 8), is the residence of the earliest kings, as well as of the
master of the whole country between the rivers Babylonian governors who previously exercised au-
(Aram-Naharaim =
» Syria between the two riv- thority over the country. The ancient name of
ers"). These facts militate strongly against the the town appears to have been identical with that of
views of Ctesias, whose numbers produce for the the country, namely, Asshur. It was built of brick,
founding of the empire the date of b. c. 2182 and has yielded but a very small number of sculpt-
(Clinton, F. H. i. 263). The more modest ac- ures. The kings proved to have reigned there are
count of Herodotus is at once more probable in fourteen in number, divisible into three groups and ;
itself, more agreeable to Scripture, and more in their reigns are thought to have covered a space of
accordance with the native writer Berosus. Herod- nearly 350 years, from b. c. 1273 to b. c. 930. The
otus relates that the Assyrians were " lords of most remarkable monarch of the series was called
Asia" for 520 years, when their empire was par- Tiglath-Pileser. He appears to have been king
tially broken up by a revolt of the subject-nations towaids the close of the twelfth century, and thus
(i. 95). After a period of anarchy, the length of to have been contemporary with Samuel. He over-
which he does not estimate, the Median kingdom ran the whole country between Assyria Proper and
was formed, 179 years before the death of Cyrus, the Euphrates; swept the valley of the Euphrates
or b. c. 708. He would thus, it appears, have from south to north, from the borders of Babylon
assigned to the foundation of the Assyrian empire to Mount Taurus crossed the Euphrates, and con-
;
a date not very greatly anterior to b. c. 1228. tended in northern Syria with the Hittites invaded :
Berosus, who made the empire last 520 years to Armenia and Cappadocia and claims to have sub- ;
the reign of Pul (ap. Euseb. Cliron. Can. i. 4), dued forty-two countries " from the channel of the
must have agreed nearly with this view; at least Lower Zab {Z'ib Asfal) to the Upper Sea of the
he would certainly have placed the rise of the king- Setting Sun." All this he accomplished in the first
dom within the 13th century. This is, perhaps, five years of his reign. At a later date he appears
the utmost that can be determined with any ap- to have suffered defeat at the hands of the king of
proach to certainty. If, for convenience' sake, a Babylon, who had invaded his territory and suc-
more exact date be desired, the conjecture of Dr. ceeded in carrying off to Babylon various idols from
Brandis has some claim to be adopted, which fixes the Assyrian temples.
the year b. c. 1273 as that from which the 526 The other monarchs of the Kileh-Sherghat se-
years of Berosus are to be reckoned (Rerum Assyr- ries, both before and after Tiglath-Pileser, are com-
inrum Tempora Emendata, p. 17). paratively insignificant. The later kings of the
7. Early kings, from the foundation of the king- series are only known to us as the ancestors of the
dom to Put. —
The long list of Assyrian kings, two great monarchs, Sardanapalus the first, and his
which has come down to us in two or three forms, son Shalmaneser or Shahnanubar, who were among
only slightlv varied (Clint. F. H. i. 867), and the most warlike of the Assyrian princes. Sarda-
which is almost certainly derived from Ctesias, napalus the first, who appears to have been the
must of necessity be discarded, together with his warlike Sardanapalus of the Greeks (Suidas, >: j *-.
date for the kingdom. It covers a space of above comp. Hellan. Ft. 158), transferred the seat of gov-
1200 years, and bears marks besides of audacious ernment from Kileh-Sherghat to Ximrm/ (probably
fraud, being composed of names snatched from all the Scriptural Calah), where he built the first of
quarters, Arian, Semitic, and Greek, —
names of those magnificent palaces which have recently been
188 ASSYRIA ASSYRIA
exhumed by our countrymen. A great portion of
trustworthy; but their coincidence is at least re-
the Assyrian sculptures now in the British Museum markable, and seems to show that about the middle
are derived from this edifice. A
description of the of the eighth century b. c. there must have been a
building has been given by Mr. Layard (Nin. and break in the line of Assyrian kings, a revolution, —
its Remains, vol. ii. ch. 11). By an inscription foreign or domestic, — and a consequent weakening
repeated more than a hundred times upon its sculpt- or dissolution of the bonds which united the con-
ures, we learn that Sardanapalus carried his arms quered nations with their conquerors.
far and wide through Western Asia, warring on It was related by Bion and Polyhistor (Agathias,
the one hand in Lower Babylonia and Chaldaja, on ii. 25), that the original dynasty of Assyrian kings
the other in Syria and upon the coast of the Med- ended with a certain Belochus or Beleus, who was
iterranean. His son, Shalmaneser or Shalmanubar, succeeded by a usurper (called by them Beletaras
the monarch who set up the Black Obelisk, now in or Balatorus), in whose family the crown continued
the British Museum, to commemorate his victories, until the destruction of Nineveh. The general
was a still greater conqueror. He appears to have character of the circumstances narrated, combined
overrun Cappadocia, Armenia, Azerbijan, great por- with a certain degree of resemblance in the names,
tions of Media Magna, the Kurdish mountains, — for Belochus is close upon Phaloch, and Beletaras
Babylonia, Mesopotamia, Syria, and Phoenicia; may represent the second element in Tiglath-jPt7e«er
everywhere making the kings of the countries trib- (who in the inscriptions is called " Tiglath-.P((<W-
utary to him. If we may trust the reading of sira "), —
induce a suspicion that probably the Pul
certain names, on which cuneiform scholars appear or Phaloch of Scripture was really the last king of
to be entirely agreed, he came in contact with vari- the old monarchy, and that Tiglath-Pileser II., his
ous Scriptural personages, being opposed in his was the founder of what has been called
successor,
Syrian wars by Benhadad and Hazael, kings of Da- the " Lower Empire." It may be suspected that
mascus, and takmg tribute from Jehu, king of Berosus really gave this account, and that Poly-
Israel. His son and grandson followed in his steps, histor, who repeated it, has been misreported by
but scarcely equalled his glory. The latter is Eusebius. The synchronism between the revolution
thought to be identical with the Biblical Pul, Phul, in Assyria and the era of Babylonian independence
or Phaloch [Pul], who is the first of the Assyrian is thus brought almost to exactness, for Tiglath-
kings of whom we have mention in Scripture. Pileser is known to have been upon the throne
8. The longs from Pvl to Esarhaddon. The — about b. c. 740 (Clinton, F. H. i. 278), and may
succession of the Assyrian kings from Pul almost well have ascended it in b. c. 747.
to the close of the empire is rendered tolerably cer- 10. Supposed loss of the empire at this period. —
tain, not merely by the inscriptions, but also by the Many writers of repute — among them Clinton and
Jewish records. In the 2d book of Kings we find Niebuhr — have been inclined to accept the state-
the names of Pul, Tiglath-Pileser, Shalmaneser, ment of Herodotus with respect to the breaking up
Sennacherib, and Esarhaddon, following one another of the whole empire at this period. It is evident,
in rapid succession (2 K. xv. 19 and 29, xvii. 3, however, both from Scripture and from the mon-
xviii. 13, xix. 37 ) and in Isaiah we have the name
; uments, that the shock sustained through the do-
of " Sargon, king of Assyria" (xx. 1), who is a mestic revolution has been greatly exuberated.
contemporary of the prophet, and who must evi- Niebuhr himself observes ( Vortrdt/e tiber idle Ge-
dently therefore belong to the same series. The schichte, i. 38) that after the revolution Assyria
inscriptions, by showing us that Sargon was the soon " recovered herself, and displayed the most
father of Sennacherib, fix his place in the list, and extraordinary energy." It is plain, from Scripture,
give us for the monarchs of the last half of the that in the reigns of Tiglath-Pileser, Shalmaneser,
8th and the first half of the 7th century b. c. the Sargon, Sennacherib, and Esarhaddon, Assyria was
(probably) complete list of Tiglath-Pileser II., Shal- as great as at any former era. These kings all
maneser II., Sargon, Sennacherib, and Esarhaddon, warred successfully in Palestine and its neighbor-
It not intended in this place to enter into any
is hood some attacked Egypt (Is. xx. 4); one appears
;
detailed account of the actions of these kings, which as master of Media (2 K. xvii. 6); while another
will be more properly related in the articles specially has authority over Babylon, Susiana, and Elymais
devoted to them. [Pul, Shalmaneser, Sar- (2 K. xvii. 24; Ezr. iv. 9). So far from our ob-
gon, &c] A few remarks, however, will be made serving symptoms of weakness and curtailed domin-
on the general condition of the empire at this ion, it is clear that at no time were the Assyrian
period. arms pushed further, or their efforts more sustained
9. Establishment of the Loirer Dynasty. — It and vigorous. The Assyrian annals for the period
seems to be certain that at, or near, the accession are in the most complete accordance with these
of Pul, a great change of some kind or other oc- representations. They exhibit to us the above-
curred in Assyria. Berosus is said to have brought mentioned monarchs as extending their dominions
his grand dynasty of 45 kings in 526 years to a further than any of their predecessors. The em-
close at the reign of Pul (Polyhist. ap. Euseb. pire is continually rising under them, and reaches
1.s. c), and to have made him the first king of a its culminating point in the reign of Esarhaddon.
new series. By the synchronism of Menahem (2 The statements of the inscriptions on these subjects
K. xv. 19), the date of Pul may be determined to are fully borne out by the indications of greatness
about rs. O. 770. It was only 23 years later, as we to be traced in the architectural monuments. No
find by the Canon of Ptolemy, that the Babyloni- palace of the old monarchy equalled, either in size
ans considered their independence to have com- or splendor, that of Sennacherib at Nineveh. No
menced (B. C. 747). Herodotus probably intended series of kings belonging to it left buildings at all
to assign nearly to this same era the great commo- to be compared with those which were erected by
tion which (according to him) broke up the As- Sargon, his son, and his grandson. The magnifi-
syrian empire into a number of fragments, out of cent remains at Koyunjik and Khorsabml belong
which were formed the Median and other kingdoms. entirely to these later kings, while those at Nimrvd
These traditions may none of them be altogether are about equally divided between them and their
ASSYRIA ASSYRIA 189
predecessors. It is further noticeable that the writ- rodotus, the Median attack on Nineveh took
first
ers who may be presumed to have drawn from place about the year it. c. 633. By what circum-
Bercsus, as Polyhistor and Abydenus, particularly stances this people, who had so long been engaged
expatiated upon the glories of these later kings. in contests with the Assyrians, and had hitherto
Polyhistor said (ap. Euseb. i. 5) that Sennacherib shown themselves so utterly unable to resist them,
conquered Babylon, defeated a Greek army in (Jili- became suddenly strong enough to assume an ag-
cia, and built there Tarsus, the capital. Abydenus gressive attitude, and to force the Ninevites to sub-
related the same facts, except that he substituted mit to a siege, can only be conjectured. Whether
for the Greek army of Polyhistor a Greek fleet; and mere natural increase, or whether fresh immigra-
added, that Esarhaddon (his Axerdis) conquered tions from the east, had raised the Median nation
lower Syria and Egypt (ibid. i. 9). Similarly Me- at this time so far above its former condition, it is
nander, the Tyrian historian, assigned to Shalma- impossible to determine. We
can only say that,
neser an expedition to Cyprus (ap. Joseph. Ant. soon after the middle of the seventh century they
Jud. ix. 14), and Herodotus himself admitted that began to press upon the Assyrians, and that, grad-
Sennacherib invaded Egypt (ii. 141). On every ually increasing in strength, they proceeded, about
ground it seems necessary to conclude that the the year b. c. 633, to attempt the conquest of the
second Assyrian kingdom was really greater and country. For some time their efforts were unsuc-
more glorious than the first; that under it the lim- cessful; but after a while, having won over the
its of the empire reached their fullest extent, and Babylonians to their side, they became superior to
the internal prosperity was at the highest. the Assyrians in the field, and about b. c. 625, or
The statement of Herodotus is not, however, a little earlier, laid final siege to the capital [Me-
without a liasis of truth. It is certain that Baby- dia]. Sasacus, the last king, —
probably the grand-
lon, about the time of Tiglath-Pileser's accession, son of Esarhaddon, —
made a stout and prolonged
ventured upon a revolt, which she seems afterwards defense, but at length, finding resistance vain, he
to have reckoned the commencement of her inde- collected his wives and his treasures in his palace,
pendence [Babylon]. The knowledge of this fact and with his own hand setting fire to the building,
may have led Herodotus into his error, for he would perished in the flames. This account is given in
naturally suppose that when Babylon became free brief by Abydenus, who probably follows Berosus;
there was a general dissolution of the empire. It and its outline so far agrees with Ctesias (ap. Diod.
has been shown that this is far from the truth; ii. 27) as to give an important value to that writer's
and it may further be observed that, even as re- details of the siege. [Nineveh.] In the general
gards Babylon, the Assyrian loss was not perma- fact thatAssyria was overcome, and Nineveh cap-
nent. Saigon, Sennacherib, and Esarhaddon all tured and destroyed, by a combined attack of Medes
exercised full authority over that country, which and Babylonians, Josephus (Ant. Jud. x. 5) and
appears to have been still an Assyrian fief at the the book of Tobit (xiv. 15) are agreed. Polyhistor
close of the kingdom. also implies it (ap. Euseb. i. 5); and these authori-
11. Successors of Esarhaddon. — By the end of ties must be regarded as outweighing the silence
the reign of Esarhaddon the triumph of the Assyr- of Herodotus, who mentions only the Medes in con-
ian arms had been so complete that scarcely an nection with the capture (i. 100), and says nothing
enemy was left who could cause her serious anxiety. of the Babylonians.
The kingdoms of Hamath, of Damascus, and of 13. Fulfillment of prophecy. — The prophecies
Samaria had been successively absorbed; Phoenicia of Nahum and Zephaniah (ii. 13-15) against Assyria
had been conquered Judaja had been made a feud-
; were probably delivered shortly before the catas-
atory; Philistia and Idumsea had been subjected, trophe. The date of Nahum is very doubtful
Egypt chastised, Babylon recovered, cities planted [Nahum], but not unlikely that he wrote
it is
in Media. Unless in Armenia and Susiana there about b. c. 645, towards the close of the reign
was no foe left to chastise, and the consequence of Manasseh. Zephaniah is even later, since he
appears to have been that a time of profound peace prophesied under Josiah, who reigned from b. c. 639
succeeded to the long and bloody wars of Sargon to 608. If b. 0. 625 be the date of the destruction
and his immediate successors. In Scripture it is of Nineveh, we may place Zephaniah's prophecy
remarkable that we hear nothing of Assyria after about B. c. 630. Ezekiel, writing about b. c. 584,
the reign of Esarhaddon, and profane history is bears witness historically to the complete destruc-
equally silent until the attacks begin which brought tion which had come upon the Assyrians, using the
about her downfall. The monuments show that example as a warning to Pharaoh-Hophra and the
the son of Esarhaddon, who was called Sardanapa- Egyptians (ch. xxxi.).
lus by Abydenus (ap. Euseb. i. 9), made scarcely It was declared by Nahum emphatically, at the
any military expeditions, but occupied almost his close of his prophecy, that there should be "no
whole time in the enjoyment of the pleasures of healing of Assyria's bruise" (iii. 19). In accord-
the chase. Instead of adorning his residence —
as ance with this announcement we find that Assyria
his predecessors had been accustomed to do — with never rose again to any importance, nor even suc-
a record and representation of his conquests, Sarda- ceeded in maintaining a distinct nationality. Once
napalus II. covered the walls of his palace at Nin- only was revolt attempted, and then in conjunction
eveh with sculptures exhibiting his skill and prow- with Armenia and Media, the latter heading the
ess as a hunter. No doubt the military spirit rap- rebellion. This attempt took place about a century
idly decayed under such a ruler, and the advent after the Median conquest, during the troubles
of fresh enemies, synchronizing with this decline, which followed upon the accession of Darius Hys-
produced the ruin of a power which had for six taspis. It failed signally, and appears never to have
centuries been dominant in Western Asia. been repeated, the Assyrians remaining thence-
12. Fall of Assyria. — The fall of Assyria, long forth submissive subjects of the Persian empire.
previously prophesied by Isaiah (x. 5-19), was ef- They were reckoned in the same satrapy with Baby-
fected (humanly speaking) by the growing strength lon (Herod, iii. 92; comp. i. 192), and paid an
and boldness of the Medes. If we may trust He- annual tribute of a thousand talents of silver. In
100 ASSYRIA ASSYRIA
the Persian armies, which were drawn in great part connection with this Assyrian requirement that
from the subject-nations, they appear never to have Ahaz, on his return from Damascus, where he had
been held of much account, though they fought, in made his submission to Tiglath-Pileser, incurred
common with the other levies, at Thermopylae, at the guilt of idolatry (2 K. xvi. 10-16). The history
Cunaxa, at Issus, and at Arbela. of Hezekiah would seem, however, to show that the
14. General character of the empire. — In con- rule, if resisted, was not rigidly enforced; for it
sidering the general character of the Assjrtan em- cannot be supposed that he would have consented
pire, it is, in the first place, to be noticed, that like to reestablish the idolatry which he had removed,
all the early monarchies which attained to any yet he certainly came to terms with Sennacherib,
great extent, it was composed of a number of sepa- and resumed his position of tributary (2 K. xviii.
rate kingdoms. In the East, conquest has scarcely 14). In any case it must be understood that the
ever been followed by amalgamation, and in the worship which the conquerors introduced was not
primitive empires there was not even any attempt intended to supersede the religion of the conquered
at that governmental centralization which we find race, but was only required to be superadded as a
at a later period in the satrapial system of Persia. mark and badge of subjection.
As Solomon "reigned over all the kingdoms from 15. Its extent. —
With regard to the extent of
the river (Euphrates) unto the land of the Philis- the empire very exaggerated views have been en-
tines and the border of Egypt," so the Assyrian tertained by many writers. Ctesias took Senrira-
monarchs bore sway over a number of jetty kings mis to India, and made the empire of Assyria at
— the native rulers of the several ctuntries — least co-extensive with that of Persia in his own
through the entire extent of their dominie ns. These day. This false notion has long been exploded, but
native princes — the sole governors of their own even Xiebuhr appears to have believed in the ex-
kingdoms — were feudatories of the Great Monarch, tension of Assyrian influence over Asia Minor, in
of whom they held their crown by the double tenure the expedition of Memnon —
whom he considered
of homage and tribute. Menahem (2 K. xv. 19), an Assyrian —
to Troy, and in the derivation of the
Hoshea (ibid. xvii. 4), Ahaz (ibid. xvi. 8), Heze- Lvdian Heracleids from the first dynasty of Nine-
kiah (ibid, xviii. 14), and Manasseh (2 Chr. xxxiii. vite monarchs (Alt. Geschicht. i. 28-9). The in-
11-13), were certainly in this position, as were many formation derived from the native monuments tends
native kings of Babylon, both prior and subsequent to contract the empire within more reasonable
to Nabonassar; and this system (if we may trust bounds, and to give it only the expansion which is
the inscriptions) was universal throughout the em- indicated for it in Scripture. On the west, the
pire. It naturally involved the frequent lecurrence Mediterranean and the river Halys appear to have
of troubles. Princes circumstanced as were the been the boundaries; on the north, a fluctuating
Assyrian feudatories would be always lo< king for line, never reaching the Euxine nor extending be-
an occasion when they might revolt and reestablish yond the northern frontier of Armenia on the east, ;
their independence. The offer of a foreign alliance the Caspian Sea and the Great Salt Desert on the ;
would be a bait which they could scarcely resist, south, the Persian Gulf and the Desert of Arabia.
and hence the continual warnings given to the The countries included within these limits are the
Jews to beware of trusting in Egj"pt. Apart from following : —
Susiana, Chaldaea, Babylonia, Media,
this, on the occurrence of any imperial misfortune Matiene, Armenia, Assyria Proper, Mesopotamia,
or difficulty, such for instance as a disastrous ex- parts of Cappadocia and Cilicia, Syria, Phoenicia,
pedition, a formidable attack, or a sudden death, Palestine, and Idumaea. Cyprus was also for a
natural or violent, of the reigning monarch, there while a dependency of the Assyrian kings, and they
would be a strong temptation to throw off the yoke, may perhaps have held at one time certain portions
which would lead, almost of necessity, to a rebellion. of Lower Egypt. Lydia, however, Phrygia, Lycia,
The history of the kings of Israel and Judah suf- Pamphylia, Vontus, Iberia, on the west and north,
ficiently illustrates the tendency in question, which Bactria, Sacia, Parthia, India, —
even Carmania and
required to be met by checks and remedies of the Persia Proper, —
upon the east, were altogether be-
:
severest character. The deposition of the rebel yond the limit of the Assyrian sway, and appear
prince, the wasting of his country, the plunder of at no time even to have been overrun by the Assyr-
his capital, a considerable increase in the amount ian armies.
of the tribute thenceforth required, were the usual 1G. Civilization of the Assyrians. —
The civiliza-
consequences of an unsuccessful revolt; to which tion of the Assyrians, as has been already observed,
were added, upon occasion, still more stringent was derived originally from the Babylonians. They
measures, as the wholesale execution of those chiefly were a Semitic race, originally resident in Baby-
concerned in the attempt, or the transplantation lonia (which at that time was Cushite), and thus
of the rebel nation to a distant locality. The cap- acquainted with the Babylonian inventions and dis-
tivity of Israel is only an instance of a practice long coveries, who ascended the valley of the Tigris and
previously known to the Assyrians, and by them established in the tract immediately below the Ar-
handed on to the Babylonian and Persian govern- menian mountains a separate and distinct nation-
ments. ality. Their modes of writing and building, the
It is not quite certain how far Assyria required form and size of their bricks, their architectural
a religious conformity from the subject people. Her ornamentation, their religion and worship, in a
religion was a gross and complex polytheism, com- great measure, were drawn from Babylon, which
prising the worship of thirteen principal and numer- they always regarded as a sacred land the orig- —
ous minor divinities, at the head of the whole of inal seat of their nation, and the true home of all
whom stood the chief god, Asshur, who seems to their gods, with the one exception of Asshur. Still,
be the deified patriarch of the nation (Gen. x. 22). as their civilization developed, it became in many
The inscriptions appear to state that in all coun- respects peculiar. Their art is of home growth.
tries over which the Assyrians established their The alabaster quarries in their neighborhood sup-
supremacy, they set up " the laws of Asshur," and plied them with a material unknown to their
"altars to the Great Gods." It was probably in southern neighbors, on which they could represent,
ASSYRIA ATAD 191
far better than upon enamelled bricks, the scenes vol. i.; Clinton's Fasti Hell., vol. i. and M. Xie- ;
which interested them. Their artists, faithful and buhr's Geschichte Assttr's uml Babel's.) G. R.
laborious, acquired a considerable power of render- * The work of Mr. Rawlinson, the writer of the
ing the human and animal forms, and made vivid preceding article, is now the classical work on this
and striking representations of the principal occu- subject: The Five Great Monarchies of the An-
pations of human life. If they do not greatly affect cient Eastern World; or, the History. Geography,
the ideal, and do not, in this branch, attain to any and Antiquities of Chaldma, Assyria, Babylon, Me-
very exalted rank, yet even here their emblematic dia, and Persia (vols. i. to iii. London, 1S62-65).
figures of the gods have a dignity and grandeur For some of the important Biblical connections, Ur.
which is worthy of remark, and which implies the Pusey's Introduction to Jonah (pp. 247-54) may
possession of some elevated feelings. But their be read with advantage. There is a good account
chief glory is in the representation of the actual. of the Assyrian inscriptions, and of the progress
Their pictures of war, and of the chase, and even made in reading them, as well as other information,
sometimes of the more peaceful incidents of human by Spiegel, in Herzog's Real-Encyk., art. Ninive
life, have a fidelity, a spirit, a boldness, and an iind Assyiien, vol. x. pp. 301-81, and supplementary
appearance of life, which place them high among article, vol. xx. pp. 219-235. See also the elaborate
realistic schools. Their art, it should be also noted, article on Assyria by Brandis, in the 2d ed. (1866)
is progressive. Unlike that of the Egyptians, which of the first vol. of Fauly's Rtal-Encyclopddie, where
continues comparatively stationary from the earliest will be found a very full account of the literature
to the latest times, it plainly advances, becoming of the subject. H.
continually more natural and less uncouth, more
life-like and less stiff, more varied and less conven-
ASSYRIANS ("flttJS : 'Affvipwi, 'Aaaoip.
Assyriorum).
tional. The latest sculptures, which are those in viol 'Aaaovp: Assur, Assyrii, filii
the hunting-palace of the son of Esarhaddon, are
The inhabitants of Assyria. The name in Hebrew
Here the animal-forms ap- is simply Asshur, the same as
that of the country,
decidedly the best.
proach perfection and in the striking attitudes, the
;
and there appears to be no reason in most cases for
translating it as a gentilic (Is. x. 5, 24, xiv. 25,
new groupings, and the more careful and exact
xxxi. 8; Lam. v. 6; Ez. xvi. 28; Jud. xii. 13, &c).
drawing of the whole, we see the beginnings of a
taste and a power which might have expanded un- W. A. W.
der favorable circumstances into the finished excel- ASTAROTH (rinftWV VAarapAQ: Asta-
lence of the Greeks. ,roth), Deut. i. 4. [Ashtaroth.]
The advanced condition of the Assyrians in vari-
ous other respects is abundantly evidenced alike by
ASTARTE. [Ashtoreth.]
the representations on the sculptures and by the AS'TATH ('Affrafl: Ezead), 1 Esdr. viii. 38.
Cyrus.] B. F. W.
coarse and sensual; their conduct of war cruel;
even their art materialistic, and so debasing; they ASUPPIM, and HOUSE OF (D^BDgil
had served their purpose when they had prepared
the East for centralized government, and been God's
and D^SDSn j"T2 : oIkos 'Eo-etpifi, 6 'Eaetpifx;
scourge to punish the people of Israel (Is. x. 5-6 ) [Vat. Eae<peiv, -cpei/j.: Alex. Aaarpeif, £<re<£ei/u :]
they were, therefore, swept away to allow the rise in qua parte domus erat seniorum concilium, ubi
of that Arian race which, with less appreciation of erat concilium), 1 Chr. xxvi. 15, 17, literally
art, was to introduce into Western Asia a more "house of the gatherings." Some understand it
spiritual form of religion, a better treatment of as a proper name of chambers on the south side of
captives, and a superior governmental organization. the Temple. Gesenius and Bertheau explain it of
(See for the geography Capt. Jones's paper in the certain store-rooms, and Fiirst, following the Vul-
x i v th volume of the Asiatic Society's Journal (part gate, of the council-chambers in the outer court of
3); Col. Chesney's Euphrates Expedition: Mr. the Temple in which the elders held their deliber-
Layard's Works; Rich's Kurdistan, &c. Eor the ations. The same word in A. V. of Neh. xii. 25,
historical views, Rawlinson's Herodotus, vol. i.; is rendered " thresholds," and is translated "lin-
Brandis's Merunt Assyriarum Tempora Emendata tels " in the Targum of R. Joseph. W. A. W.
Sir H. Rawlinson's Contributions to the Asiat. Soc.
ASYN'CRITUS ('AffvyKpiros [incompara-
Journ. and the Athenceum; Bosanquet's Sacred unlike]: Asyncritus), a Christian at Rome,
ble,
ind Profane Chronology; M. Oppert's Rapport saluted by St. Paul (Rom. xvi. 14).
: son Excellence M. k Ministre de /' Instruction ;
Dr. Hincks's Contributions to the Dublin University A'TAD, the threshing-floor of O^U
Mag. ; Mr. Vance Smith's Exposition of the Proph-
ecies relating to Nineveh and Assyria ; and comp.
B. G. Niebuhr's Vortrage iiber alter Geschichte, SanJvers. TUVV ^SIS : Saad.
192 ATARAH ATAROTH
&\cvs 'Ara5: area Atad), a spot " beyond Jordan," There was a temple of Atargatis ( 'ATapyarriov,
at which Joseph and his brethren, on their way Alex. Arepy. —
2 Mace. xii. 20) at Karnion (Kar-
from Egypt to Hebron, made their seven days' naim, 1 Mace. v. 43; i. e. AshUiroth-Karnaim)
" great and very sore mourning " over the body of which was destroyed by Judas Maccabaeus (1 Mace.
Jacob in consequence of which we are told it ac- v. 44).
;
quired from the Canaanites the new name of Abel- The name is rightly derived by Michaelis (Lex.
Mitzraim (Gen. 1. 10, 11). According to Jerome Syr. pp. 975 f.) from Syr. Targeto, an opening
(Ononi. s. v. Areaatad) it was in his day called (tarag, he opened). Comp. Movers, Phoniz. i.
Bethgla or ISethacla (Beth-Hogla), a name which 594 f. Others have deduced it, with little prob-
he connects with the gyratory dances or races of
ability, from *T3 "HW, greatness of fortune (?),
the funeral ceremony " locus gyri eo quod ibi
: ;
mention of the Canaanites, " the inhabitants of goddess of the first Assyrian dynasty (Derketadas,
the land," who were confined to the west side of fr. Derketo: Niebuhr, Gesch. Assur's, pp. 131,138),
the river (see amongst others verse 13 of this chap- and that the name appears in Tiglath- or Tilguth-
ter), and one of whose special haunts was the sunken Pileser (id. p. 37).
district " by the side of Jordan " (Num. xiii. 29).
' ' An interesting coin representing Atargatis is
engraved and described in the Philosophical Trans-
[Canaan.] The word "Q37, "beyond," although
<ic/i<nt*, vol. lxi. pp. 34G ff.
usually signifying the east of Jordan, is yet used
for either east or west according to the position of ATAROTH (/TVltpy, and once riltSig =
the speaker. [Ebbb.] That Jerome should have crowns: T) 'ArapwB'- Ataroth), the name of several
denned the situation as "trans Jordanem," at the places in Palestine both on the E.
and W. of Jor-
same time that he explains it as between the river dan.
and Jericho, may be accounted for either by the
1. [Alex. Arapaiv in Num. xxxii. 3.] One of
words being a mere quotation from the text, or
the towns in the "land of Jazer and land of Gil-
by some subsequent corruption of copyists. The
G. ead " (Num. xxxii. 3), taken and "built" by the
passage does not survive in Eusebius.
tribe of Gad (xxxii. 34). From its mention with
ATARAH (<"nt£5 [a crown] 'Arcya; places which have been identified on the N. E. of
:
[Alex. Erepa:] Atara), a wife of Jerahmeel, and the Head Sea near the mountain of Jebel Attariis
mother of Onam (1 Car. ii. 2G).
y,jH*yX£- a connection has been assumed be-
J,
ATAR'GATIS ('Arapydns, Strab. xvi.
p. 785, 'Arapyariou 5e tV
'Addpav oi tween Ataroth and that mountain. But Jebel Atta-
'EAA7)V6S iitdKovv), or according to another form riis lies considerably to the S. of Heshbon (Hesban),
of the word Dekceto (AepKeraS, Strab. /• c. ; which was in the tribe of Reuben, and which is
Luc. de Syria dea, p. 884 ed. Bened.; Plin. //. X. named apparently as the southernmost limit of Gad
v. 19, prodigiosa Atargatis Grascis Derceto; Ov. (Josh. xiii. some other identification is
20), so that
Met. iv. 45, Derceth), a Syrian goddess, represented necessary. Atroth-Shophan was probably in the
generally with the body of a woman and the tail neighborhood of Ataroth; the Shophan serving as
of a fish (Luc. /. c. ; Ovid. I. c. comp. Daoon). a distinction ; but for this see Atroth.
Her most famous temples were at Hierapolis (Ma- 2. [LXX. corrupt in Josh. xvi. 2.] A place on
bug) and Ascalon. Herodotus identified her with the (South?) boundary of Ephraim and Manasseh
Aphrodite Urania (i. 105, compared with Diod. (Josh. xvi. 2, 7). The whole specification of this
Sic. ii. 4). Lucian compared her with Here, boundary is exceedingly obscure, and it is not
though he allowed that she combined traits of possible to say whether Ataroth is or is not the
other deities (Aphrodite, Rhea, Selene, &c; see same place as,
AsiiTORETn). Plutarch (Crass. 17) says that
3. [In Josh, xvi., 'ArapwO (Vat. AarapwB)
some regarded her as " Aphrodite, others as Here,
Kal 'EpciK (Vat. M. EpoK, Comp. Aid. Alex. 'ASdp),
others as the cause and natural power which pro-
in Josh, xviii., Maarapwfi 'Opex, Vat. MaarapwO-
vides the principles and seeds for all things from '
tributes of the goddess, and explains her fish-like min, " near the mountain ' that is on the south
'
form and popular identification with Aphrodite. side of the nether Beth-horon " (Josh, xviii. 13).
Lucian also mentions a ceremony in her worship In xvi. 5 it is accurately rendered Ataroth-addar.
at Hierapolis which appears to be connected with In the Onomasticon mention is made of an
the same belief, and with the origin of her name. Atharoth in Ephraim, in the mountains, 4 miles
Twice a year water was brought from distant places N. of Sebaste as well as of two places of the name
:
and poured into a chasm in the temple; because, " not far from " Jerusalem. The former cannot be
he adds, according to tradition, the waters of the that seen by Robinson (ii. 205), now Atara. Rob-
Deluge were drained away through that opening inson discovered another about miles S. of Bethel
(de Syria dea, p. 883). Compare Burm. ad Ovid. (i. 575). This is too far to the E. of Beth-horon
Met. iv. 45, where most of the references are given to be Ataroth-addar, and too far S. to be that on
at length Movers, Phoniz. i. 584 ff.
; the boundary of Ephraim (2).
•» * See note on Abel-Mizraim. AU that the Script- Jordan," the point of reckoning being left indetermi-
ure account states is that Atad was " beyond the nate. H.
ATER ATHALIAH 193
4. " ATAROTH « THE HOUSE OF JOAB " (i. e. over Judah. At
length Jehoiada thought it time
Ataroth-licth-Joab), a place (?) occurring in the to produce the lawful king to the people, trusting
list of the descendants of Judah (1 Chr. ii. 51; to their zeal for the worship of God, and loyalty to
'Arapbe oXkov 'Ioid/3 [Alex. lw$afi] Corona do- the house of David, which had been so strenuously
:
was founded it. c. 831^ (Joseph, c. Apion. i. 18). icon " a keeping of." Clinton's date for Athaliah's
From the slaughter of the royal house, one infant usurpation is B. c. 883-877. In modern times the
named Joash, the youngest son of Ahaziah, was history of Athaliah has been illustrated by the mu-
rescued by his aunt Jehosheba, daughter of Jeho- sic of Handel and of Mendelssohn, and the stately
priest (2 Chr. xxiv. 6). The was brought up Benjamite, one of the sons of Jeroham who dwelt
child
under Jehoiada' s care, and concealed in the temple at Jerusalem (1 Chr. viii. 26).
for six years, during which period Athaliah reigned 3. ('AfleAia [Vat. AOeKft ;] Alex. A8\ia:
j
13
194 ATHARIAS ATHENS
Athalia.) One of Bene-Elam, whose son
the ATHENS ('A07j«/cu: Athena), the capital of
Jeshaiah with seventy males returned with Ezra Attica, and the chief seat of Grecian learning and
in the second caravan from Babylon (Ezr. viii. 7.) civilization during the golden period of the history
W. A. W. of Greece. This city is fully described elsewhere
ATHARFAS ('ATOapias- ot Astharas), a cor- (Diet, of Or. and Rum. Geogr. i. 255 ff.); and an
account of it would be out of place in the present
rupt rendering of Sntt?*inn, the Tikshatha
work. St. Paul visited it in his journey from
(1 Esdr. v. 40). Macedonia, and appears to have remained there
ATHENO'BIUS ('A07j»/o0">y [Athenobius]), some time (Acts xvii. 14, 15 ff.
: comp. 1 Thess.
;
an envoy sent by Antiochus VII. Sidetes to Simon, iii. 1). During his residence there he delivered his
the Jewish high-priest (1 Mace. xv. 28-36). He memorable discourse on the Areopagus to the " men
is not mentioned elsewhere. B. F. W. of Athens" (Acts xvii. 22-31) [Areopagus]. In
mentioned in the
ATHENIANS CA0-nva7ot : Athemenses). order to understand the localities
it may be observed that lour hills
Natives of Athens (Acts xvii. 21) [and 22. For sacred narrative,
of moderate height rise within the walls of the city.
the character which Paul ascribed to them, see
Athens]. Of these one to the northeast is the celebrated
Acropolis, or citadel, being a square craggy rock discussed at length in the Diet, of Geogr. i. 293
about 150 feet high. Immediately to the west of ff.]. The remark of the sacred historian respect-
the Acropolis is a second hill of irregular form, but ing the inquisitive character of the Athenians (xvii.
inferior height, called the Areopagus. To the 21) is attested by the unanimous voice of antiquity.
southwest rises a third hill, the Pnyx, on which The great Athenian orator rebukes his countrymen
the assemblies of the citizens were held; and to the for their love of constantly going about in the
south of the latter is a fourth hill, known as the market, and asking one another, What news ?
Museum. The Agora or " market," where St. (•7rep<i'oVT€S atnwv irvvdaveffdcu koto. t?V ayopdv,
Paul disputed daily, was situated in the valley be- Afyerai tj Kaiviv ; Bern. Philipp. i. 43, ed.
tween the Acropolis, the Areopagus, the Pnyx, and Keiske). Their natural liveliness was partly owing
the Museum, being bounded by the Acropolis on to the purity and clearness of the atmosphere of
the N. E. and E., by the Areopagus on the N., by Attica, which also allowed them to pass much
the Pnyx on the N. W. and W., and by the Mu- of their time in the open air.
seum on the S. The annexed plan shows the posi- The remark of St. Paul upon the " superstitious '•
tion of the Agora. Many writers have maintained [A. V.] a character of the Athenians (xvii. 22) is
that there were two markets at Athens and that ; in likemanner confirmed by the ancient writers.
a second market, usually called the new Agora, Thus Pausanias says that the Athenians surpassed
existed to the north of the Acropolis. If this were all other states in the attention which they paid to
true, it would be doubtful in which of the two the worship of the gods {'Adrjvaiois irepiff<r6T(p6v
markets St. Paid disputed but since the publica- ti f) tojs &A.A.OU es to 0€?a eVri (nrouSvjs, Paus.
;
tion of Forchhammer's on the Topography i. 24, § 3); and hence the city was crowded in every
treatise
of Athens, it is generally admitted that there was direction with temples, altars, and other sacred
only one Agora at Athens, namely, the one situated buildings. The altar " to the Unknown God,"
in the valley already described. [The subject is which St. Paul mentions in his address, has been
spoken of under Altar.
o * This rendering is the more unfortunate as it
" religious "
conceals from the reader a remarkable instance of Saifiovearepovi) is neutral, and means very
Paul's conciliatory habit in dealing with men when or
" devout." In the same paragraph the rendering
" an unknown God." H.
no principle was at stake- The Greek term (Seitri- should be (instead of the)
ATHLAI ATONEMENT 195
the Christian church founded by St. Paul at
Of white linen garments, he brought forward a young
Athens, we have no particulars in the N. T. ; but bullock for a sin-offering and a ram for a burnt-
according to ecclesiastical tradition (Euseb. //. E. offering, purchased at his own cost, on account of
iii. 4) Dionysius the Areopagite, who was con- himself and his family, and two young goats for a
verted by the preaching of the apostle, was the sin-offering with a ram for a burnt-offering, which
first bishop of the church. [Dionysius.] were paid for out of the public treasury, on account
of the people. He then presented the two goats
ATH'LAI [2 syl.] O^/TO [Jehovah afflicts] before the Lord at the door of the tabernacle and
:
vrtcrreia; in Heb. vii. 27, ^ 7j/j.tpa, according to The goat upon which the lot "for Jehovah "
Olshausen and others ; but see Ebrard's and Ben- had fallen was then slain, and the high-priest
gel's notes), the great day of national humiliation, sprinkled its blood before the mercy-seat in the
and the only one commanded in the Mosaic law. same manner as he hail done that of the bullock.
[Fasts.] The mode of its observance is described Going out from the Holy of Holies he purified the
in Lev. xvi., where it should be noticed that in w. holy place, sprinkling some of the blood of both the
3 to 10 an outline of the whole ceremonial is given, victims on the altar of incense. At this time no *>
while in the rest of the chapter certain points are one besides the high-priest was suffered to be pres-
mentioned with more details. The victims which ent in the holy place.
were offered in addition to those strictly belonging The purification of the Holy of Holies and of
to the special service of the day, and to those of the holy place being thus completed, the high-
the usual daily sacrifice, are enumerated in Num. priest laid his hands upon the head of the goat on
xxix. 7-11; and the conduct of the people is em- which the lot "/or Azazel" had fallen, and con-
phatically enjoined in Lev. xxiii. 26-32. fessed over it all the sins of the people. The goat'
II. It was kept on the tenth day of Tisri, that was then led, by a man chosen for the purpose, into
is, from the evening of the ninth to the evening of the wilderness, into " a land not inhabited," and
the tenth of that month, five days before the Feast was there let loose.
of Tabernacles. [Festivals.] Some have inferred The high-priest after this returned into the holy
from Lev. xvi. 1, that the day was instituted on place, bathed himself again, put on his usual gar-
account of the sin and punishment of Nadab and ments of office, and offered the two rams as burnt-
Abihu. Maimonides (More Ntvochim, xviii.) re- offerings, one for himself and one for the people.
gards it as a commemoration of the day on which He also burnt upon the altar the fat of the two sin-
Moses came down from the mount with the second offerings, while their flesh was carried away and
tables of the law, and proclaimed to the people the burned outside the camp. They who took away
forgiveness of their great sin in worshipping the the flesh and the man who had led away the goat
golden calf. had to bathe their persons and wash their clothes
III. The observances of the day, as described in as soon as their service was performed.
the law, were as follows. It was kept by the people The accessory burnt-offerings mentioned Num.
as a solemn sabbath {o-a^ara ffafifidTaii', LXX.). xxix. 7-11, were a young bullock, a ram, seven
They were commanded to set aside all work and lambs, and a young goat. It would seem that (at
" to afflict their souls," under pain of being " cut least in the time of the second temple) these were
offfrom among the people." It was on this occa- offered by the high-priest along with the evening
sion only that the high-priest was permitted to sacrifice (see below, V. 7).
enter into the Holy of Holies. Having bathed his It may be seen (as Winer has remarked) that in
person and dressed himself entirely in the holy the special rites of the Day of Atonement there is
<* See Lev. xvi. 14. The English version, " upon the day of atonement we learn expressly from Ex.
the mercy -seat," appears to be opposed to every Jewish xxx. 10. Most critics consider that this is what is
authority. (See Drusius in lot. in the Critici Sacri.) spoken of in Lev. xvi. 18 and 20. But some suppose
It has, however, the support of Ewald's authority. that it is the altar of burnt-offerings which is referred
The Vulgate omits the clause the LXX. follows the ; to in those verses, the purification of the altar of in-
ambiguity of the Hebrew. The word eastward must cense being implied in that of the holy place men-
mean either the direction in which the drops were tioned in ver. 16. Abenezra was of this opinion (see
thrown by the priest, or else on the east side of the Drusius in loc.). That the expression, "before the
ark, i. e. the side towards the veil. The last clause Lord," does not necessarily mean within the taber-
of the verse may be taken as a repetition of the com- nacle, is evident from Ex. xxix. 11. If the golden
mand, for the sake of emphasis on the number of altar is here referred to, it seems remarkable that no
sprinklings " And he shall take of the blood of the
: mention is made in the ritual of the cleansing of the
bullock and sprinkle it before the mercy-seat, on the brazen altar. But perhaps the practice spoken of by
east and seven times shall he sprinkle the blood with
; Josephus and in the Mishna of pouring what remained
•lis finger before the mercy-seat. of the mixed blood at the foot of the large altar, was
b That the altar of incense was thus purified on an ancient one, and was regarded as its purification.
196 ATONEMENT ATONEMENT
a natural gradation. In the first place the high- his own house and dwelt in a chamber appointed
priest and his family are cleansed then atonement
; for his use. This was to avoid the accidental causes
is made by the purified priest for the sanctuary of pollution which he might meet with in his do-
and all contained in it then (if the view to which
; mestic life. But to provide for the possibility of
reference has been made be correct) for the brazen his incurring some uncleanness in spite of this pre-
altar in the court, and lastly, reconciliation is made caution, a deputy was chosen who might act for
for the people. him when the day came. In the treatise of the
IV. In the short account of the ritual of the Mishna entitled Pirke Aroth, it is stated that no
day which is given by Josephus (Ant iii. 10, § 3) such mischance ever befell the high-priest. Put
there are a few particulars which are worthy of Josephus (Ant. xvii. 6, § 4) relates an instance of
notice. His words of course apply to the practice the high-priest Matthias, in the time of Herod the
in the second temple, when the ark of the covenant Great, when his relation Joseph took his place in
had disappeared. He states that the high-priest the sacred office. During the whole of the seven
sprinkled the blood with his finger seven times on days the high-priest had to perform the ordinary
the ceiling and seven times on the flocr of the most sacerdotal duties of the daily service himself, as well
holy place, and seven times towards it (as it would as on the Day of Atonement. On the third day
appear, outside the veil), and round the golden altar. and on the seventh he was sprinkled with the ashes
Then going into the court he either sprinkled or of the red heifer in order to cleanse him in the
poured the blood round the great altar. He also event of his having touched a dead body without
informs us that along with the fat, the kidneys, the knowing it. On the seventh day he was also re-
top of the liver, and the extremities (at e'|ox«0 °f quired to take a solemn oath before the elders that
the victims were burned. he would alter nothing whatever in the accustomed
V. The treatise of the Mishna, entitled Yoma, ritesof the Day of Atonement."
professes to give a full account of the observances Several curious particulars ore stated regard-
(>.
of the day according to the usage in the second ing the scapegoat. The two goats of the sin-offer-
temple. The following details appear either to be ing were to be of similar appearance, size, and
interesting in themselves or to illustrate the lan- value. The
lots were originally of boxwood, but
guage of the Pentateuch. in later times they were of gold. They were put
1. The high-priest himself, dressed in his colored into a box or urn, into which the high-priest
little
thirdly, with the blood of the goat ; fourthly, after as a token of God's acceptance of the atonement
having offered the evening sacrifice, to fetch out of the day, referring to Is. i. 18. A particular in-
the censer and the plate which had contained the stance of such a change, when also the lot " to
incense. These four entrances, forming, as they Azozel" was in the priest's right hand, is related
do, parts of the one great annual rite, are not op- as having occurred in the time of Simon the Just.
posed to a reasonable view of the statement in Heb. It is further stated that no such change took place
ix. 7, and that in Josephus, B. J. v. 5, § 7. for forty years before the destruction of Jerusalem.
Three of the entrances seem to be very distinctly The prayer which the high-priest uttered over the
implied in Lev. xvi. 12, 14, and 15. head of the goat was as follows: Lord, the "O
3. It is said that the blood of the bullock and house of Israel, thy people, have trespassed, re-
that of the goat were each sprinkled eight times, belled, and sinned before thee. I beseech thee, O
once towards the ceiling, and seven times on the Lord, forgive now their trespasses, rebellions and
floor. This does not agree with the words of Jo- sins which thy people have committed, as it is writ-
sephus (see above, IV.). ten in the law of Moses, thy servant, saying that
4. After he had gone into the most holy place in that day there shall be an atonement for you to
'
the third time, and had returned into the holy cleanse you that ye may be clean from all your sins
" (Gemara on Yoma, quoted by
place, the high-priest sprinkled the blood of the before the Lord '
bullock eight times towards the veil, and did the Frischmuth). The goat was then goaded and
same with the blood of the goat. Having then rudely treated by the people till it was led away by
mingled the blood of the two victims together and the man appointed. As soon as it reached a cer-
sprinkled the altar of incense with the mixture, he tain spot which seems to have been regarded as the
came into the court and poured out what remained commencement of the wilderness, a signal was made
at the foot of the altar of burnt-offering. by some sort of telegraphic contrivance, to the
5. Most careful directions are given for the prep- high-priest, who waited for it. The man who led
aration of the high-priest for the services of the the goat is have taken him to the top of a
said to
day. For seven days previously he kept away from high precipice and thrown him down backwards, so
a This, according to the Jerusalem Gemara on Yoma directed the high-priest to throw the incense upon the
(quoted by Lightfoot), was instituted in consequence censer outside the veil, and to carry it, smoking, into
if an innovation of the Sadducean party, who had the Holy of Holies.
ATONEMENT ATONEMENT 197
as to dash him to pieces. If this was not a mistake it does not seem possible to make sense out of Lev.
of the writer ofYoma, it must have been, as Spen- xvi. 10 and 26. In these verses the versions are
cer argues, a modern innovation. It cannot be We
driven to strange shifts. have already referred
doubted that the goat was originally set free. Even to the inconsistency of the LXX. In the Vulgate
if there be any uncertainty in the words of the and our own
version the first clause of ver. 10 stands
Hebrew, the rendering of the LXX. must be better "cujus (sc. hirci sors) autem in caprum emissa-
authority than the Talmud —
/col u e^airoarfAAaiv riurn
" —
" but the goat on which the lot fell to be
the scapegoat." In ver. 26 our version reads " And
rbv xW aP 0V T0V Sie(TTa\fj.€i/ov tis dcpeffiv k. t.
A. Lev. xvi. 26. he that let go the goat for the scapegoat," while
7. The high-priest, as soon as he had received the Vulgate cuts the knot to escape from the
the signal that the goat had reached the wilderness, awkward tautology —
" ille vero, qui dimiserit ca-
read some lessons from the law, and offered up prum emissarium."
some prayers. He then bathed himself, resumed 2. Sotoe have taken Azazel for the name of the
which the goat was sent, (a.) Abenezra
his colored garments, and offered either the whole place to
or a great part of the accessory offering (mentioned quotes the words of an anonymous writer referring
Num. xxix. 7-11) with the regular evening sac- it to a hill near Mount Sinai. Vatablus adopts
rifice. After this he washed again, put on the this opinion (Critici Sacri, in Lev. xvi.). (6.)
white garments, and entered the most holy place Some of the Jewish writers, with Le Clerc, consider
for the fourth time, to fetch out the censer and the that it denotes the cliff to which the goat was taken
incense-plate. This terminated the special rites of to be thrown down, according to Yoma. (c.)
mention is made of abstinence from food. But it be sent. But Gesenius remarks that the pluralis
is most likely implied in the command that the fractus, which exists in Arabic, is not found in He-
people were to " afflict their souls." According to brew.
Yoma, every Jew (except invalids and children 3. Many who have studied the subject
of those
under 13 years of age) is forbidden to eat anything most closely takeAzazel for a personal being to
so large as a date, to drink, or to wash from sun- whom the goat was sent, (a.) Gesenius gives to
set to sunset.
vTSTl? the same meaning as the LXX. has as-
VI. There has been much discussion regarding
the meaning of the word Azazel. The opinions signed to it, if airo-KOiXTraios is to be taken in its
usual sense; but the being so designated he sup-
which seem most worthy of notice are the follow-
poses to be some false deity who was to be appeased
ing:—
by such a sacrifice as that of the goat. He derives
1. It has been regarded as a designation of the
the word from a root unused in Hebrew, but found
goat itself. This view has been most favored by
the old interpreters. They in general supposed it in Arabic, 7T37, to remove or take away (Heb.
to mean the goat sent away, or let loose. In ac- Ewald agrees with Gesenius, and
Lex. s. v.).
cordance with this the Vulgate renders it, Caper speaks of Azazel as a demon belonging to the pre-
emissarius ; Symmachus, 6 rpdyos airepxip-cosi Mosaic religion, (b.) But others, in the spirit of a
Aquila, & rpdyos anoAeAvfitvos; Luther, der simpler faith, have regarded him as an evil spirit,
ledige Bock; the English translators, the scape- or the devil himself. In the book of Enoch the
goat. The LXX. uses the term 6 airoTroiJurdios, name Azalzel is given to one of the fallen angels
applied to the goat itself. Theodoret and Cyril and assuming, with Spencer, that this is a corrup-
of Alexandria consider the meaning of the Hebrew tion of Azazel, if the book were written, as is gen-
to be the goit sent away, and regard that as the erally supposed, by a Jew, about b. c. 40, it repre-
sense of the word used in the LXX. If they were sents an old Jewish opinion on the subject. Origen,
right, arroiTo/x.ira7os is, of course, not employed in adopting the word of the LXX., identifies him with
its ordinary meaning (Averruncus). (See Suicer, the devil tri re iv t$ AevtrtKoi uiroiro/jiircuos hv
:
superable difficulties. It can hardly be supposed of God's people, now forgiven, in order to mock
that the prefix which is common to the designation their spiritual enemy in the desert, his proper abode,
of the two lots should be used in two different and to symbolize by its free gambols their exulting
meanings. If one expression is to be rendered for triumph. He considers that the origin of the rite
Tehovah, it would seem that the other must be for was Egyptian, and that the Jews substituted Satan
Azazel, with the preposition in the same sense. If for Typhon, whose dwelling was the desert. The
this is admitted, taking Azazel for the goat itself, obvious objection to Spencer's view is that the goat
198 ATONEMENT ATONEMENT
formed part of a sin-offering to the Lord, and that himself, with his person cleansedand dressed in
it, with its fellow, had been formally presented be- white garments, was the best outward type which
fore the Lord at the door of the Tabernacle. Few, a living man could present in his own person of
perhaps, will be satisfied with Hengstenberg's mode that pure and holy One who was to purify His
of meeting this difficulty." people and to cleansethem from their sins.
4. An explanation of the word which seems less But respecting the meaning of the scapegoat,
objectionable, if it is not wholly satisfactory, would we have no such light to guide us, and (as has been
already implied in what has been stated regarding
render the designation of the lot vTS|2? V, "for
the word Azazel) the subject is one of great doubt
complete sending away." Thus understood, the and difficulty.
word would come from 7TV (the root adopted by Of those who take Azazel for the Evil Spirit,
some have supposed that the goat was a sort of
Gesenius), being the Pealpal form, which indicates
bribe, or retaining fee, for the accuser of men.
intensity. This view is held by Tholuck (quoted
Spencer, in supposing that it was given up with its
and approved by Thomson), by Biihr, and by
load of sin to the enemy to be tormented, made it
Winer.
a symbol of the punishment of the wicked while,
VII. As it might be supposed, the Talmudists
;
man. Ewald instructively remarks that though Spencer.) But we shall take a simpler, and per-
the least uncleanness of an individual might be haps a truer view, if we look upon the slain goat
atoned by the rites of the law which could be ob- as setting forth the act of sacrifice, in giving up its
served at other times, there was a consciousness of own life for others "to Jehovah," in accordance
secret and indefinite sin pervading the congregation, with the requirements of the Divine law; and the
which was aptly met by this great annual fast. goat which carried off its load of sin " for complete
Hence, in its national character, he sees an an- removal," as signifying the cleansing influence of
tithesis between it and the passover, the great festi- faith in that sacrifice. Thus in his degree the de-
val of social life :and, in its atoning significance, vout Israelite might have felt the truth of the
he regards it as a fit preparation for the rejoicing Psalmist's words, " As far as the east is from the
at the ingathering of the fruits of the earth in the west, so far hath he removed our transgressions
feast of tabernacles. Philo looked upon its position from us." But for us the whole spiritual truth
in the Jewish calendar in the same light. has been revealed in historical fact, in the life, death,
In considering the meaning of the particular and resurrection of Him who was made sin for us,
rites of the day, three points appear to be of a very who died for us, and who rose again for our jus-
distinctive character. 1. The white garments of tification. This Mediator, it was necessary, should
the high-priest. 2. His entrance into the Holy of •'in some unspeakable manner unite death and
Holies. 3. The scapegoat. The writer of the life" (Maurice on Sacrifice, p. 85).
Epistle to the Hebrews (ix. 7-25) teaches us to (Spencer, De Legibus Htbreeorum Ritualibiis, lib.
apply the first two particulars. The high-priest iii. Dissertatio viii.; Lightfoot's Temple Service,
a * In support of the view that Azazel denotes an 6 In the similar part of the rite for the purification
evil spirit, or Satan, see also Bush, Azazel, etc. in the of the leper (Lev. xiv. 6, 7), in which a live bird was
Amer. Bibl. Repos. July, 1842, 2d ser., viii. 116-136; set free, it must be evident that the bird signified the
Diestel, Set-Typhon, Asahel mid Satan, in the Zeilschr. carrying away of the uncleanness of the sufferer in
f. d. hist. T/ieol., 1860, xxx. 159-217 ;and Vaihinger, precisely the same manner.
art. Azazel in Herzog's Real-Encykl., vol. i. A.
ATROTH AUGUSTUS CiESAR 19 J
(
3. xv.; Yorna, with the notes in Surenhusius's ed. latter to the E. This may probably be accounted
of the Mishna, vol. ii. Frischniuth, Dissertatio de
; for by the peculiar character of this river, the cal-
Hirco Emissario, in the Thesaurus Theoloyico-Phi- careous waters of which are continually making
hhyicus; Ewald, Die Altertkiinier des Volkes Is- changes in the channels. Beaufort thought that
rael, p. 370 ff. Hengstenberg, Egypt and the
; the modern Satalia is the ancient Olbia, and that
Books of Moses, on Lev. xvi. (Enylish Transla- Laara is the true Attalia. Forbiger, after Man-
tion), and Christoloyie, ProlevanyeUum ; Thom- nert, is inclined to identify the two places. But
son's Bunipton Lectures, Lect. iii. and notes. For Spratt and Forbes found the true Olbia further to
the modes hi which the modern Jews have regarded the west, and have confirmed Leake's opinion, that
and observed the Day of Atonement, see Buxtorf, Attalia is where the modern name would lead us to
Synagoya Judaica, cap. xx., and Picart, Cere- expect to find it. (Beaufort's Karamania ; Spratt
monies Reliyieuses, vol. i.) S. C. and Forbes's Lycia.) J. S. H.
altogether omitted. G. from Rome in favor of the Jews (1 Mace. xv. 22)
* The A. V. makes two places (Atroth, Shophan, were addressed to Attalus II. (Polyb. xxv. 6, xxxi.
Just.
but not connected by and as by et in the Vulg.); 9, xxxii. 3, 5, 8, &c, 25 f. Strab.
xiii. 4 ; ;
17. B. F. W.
ATTAI [2 syl.] (\P1V [opportune,, Ges.]:
ATTHARATES ('AT0apdr7js: Atharathes),
'E0«; [Vat. E00«;] Alex. I e 00,, Ie00et: Ethel). 1 Esdr. ii, 49 (comp. Neh. viii. 9), a corruption of
1. Grandson of Sheshan the Jerahmeelite through "the Tirshatha;" comp. Atharias.
his daughter Ahlai,whom he gave in marriage to AU'GIA (Airyi'a: om. in Vulg.). The daugh-
Jarha his Egyptian slave (1 Chr. ii. 35, 36). His
ter of Berzelus, or Barzillai, according to 1 Esdr.
grandson Zabad was one of David's mighty men
v. 38. Her descendants by Addus were among
(1 Chr. xi. 41).
the priests whose genealogy could not be substan-
2. ('Iefli; [Vat. E0o«;] Alex. E00«: Eihi.)
tiated after the return from Babylon. The name
One cf the lion-faced warriors of Gad, captains of
does not occur either in Ezra or Nehemiah.
the host, who forded the Jordan at the time of its
overflow, and joined David in the wilderness (1 Chr. AUGUS'TUS CyE'SAR (AtryoDffros Kcu-
xii. 11). trap), the first Roman
emperor, during whose reign
3. ('IeT0i; [Vat. Ie00ej;] Alex. l 6 00 t Elhai.) :
Christ was born (Luke ii. 1 If.). He was born
Second son of King Rehoboam by Maachah the a. u. c. 691, b. c. 63. His father was Caius Oc-
tavius; his mother Atia, daughter of Julia the
daughter of Absalom (2 Chr. xi. 20).
W. A. W. sister of C. Julius Caesar. He bore the same name
as his father, Caius Octavius. He was principally
ATT ALFA ('ArTaAeia: [Attalia']), a coast- educated, having lost his father when young, by
town of Pamphylia, mentioned only very casually his great uncle Julius Caesar. After his murder,
in the New Testament (Acts xiv. 25), as the place the young Octavius came into Italy as Caius Julius
from which Paul and Barnabas sailed on their Caesar Octavianus, being by his uncle's will adopted
return to Antioch from their missionary journey into the Gens Julia as his heir. He was taken into
into the inland parts of Asia Minor. It does not the Triumvirate with Antony and Lepidus, and
appear that they made any stay, or attempted to after the removal of the latter divided the empire
preach the gospel in Attalia. This city, however, with Antony, taking the West for his share. But
though comparatively modern at that time, was a there was no real concord between them, and the
place of considerable importance in the first century, compact resulted in a struggle for the supreme
and has continued to exist till now. Its name power, which was terminated in favor of Octavianus
since the twelfth century has been Satalia, a cor- by the decisive naval battle of Actium, b. c. 31
ruption of which the crusading chronicler, Wil- (Suet. Octav. 17; Dion Cass. 1. 15 ff; Veil. Pater,
liam of Tyre, gives a curious explanation. ii. 85). On this victory he was saluted Imperator
Attains Philadelphus, king of Pergamus, ruled by the senate; and on his offering afterwards to
over the western part of the peninsula from the resign the chief power, they conferred on him the
N. to the S., and was in want of a port which title Augustus (b. c. 27.) He managed with con-
should be useful for the trade of Egypt and Syria, summate tact and skill to consolidate the power
as Troas was for that of the yEgean. Thus Attalia conferred on him, by leaving the names and rights
was built and named after the monarch. All its of the principal state officers intact, while by de-
remains are characteristic of the date of its founda- grees he united them all in his own person. The
tion. first link binding him to N. T. history is his treat-
There has been considerable doubt concerning; ment of Herod after the battle of Actium. That
the exact position of Attalia.There is a discrep- prince, who had espoused Antony's side, found
ancy even between Strabo and Ptolemy, the former himself pardoned, taken into favor and confirmed,
placing it to the W. of the river Catarrhactes, the nay even increased in his power (Joseph. Ant. xv.
200 AUGUSTUS' BAND AVIM
6, § 5 ff.; 7, § 3; In gratitude Herod the N. of Palestine. It has not been identified with
10, § 3).
built him a temple of marble near the source of certainty. Michaelis (notes on Amos) heard from
the Jordan (Ant. xv. 10, § 3), and was through life a native of Damascus of a valley near that city,
the fast friend of the imperial family. After Herod's called Un, and he quotes a Damascene proverb re-
death in A. n. 4, Augustus divided his dominions ferring thereto; but theinformation was at best
almost exactly according to his dying directions, suspicious,and has not been confirmed, although
among his sons (Ant. xvii. 11, § 4); but was soon the neighborhood of Damascus has been tolerably
obliged to exile one of them [Ahchelaus], and well explored by Burckhardt (App. iv.) and by
attach his portion, Judaea and Samaria, to the Porter. Theprophet, however, would seem to be
province of Syria (Ant. xvii. 13, § 2). Augustus alluding to some principal district of the country
died at Nola in Campania, Aug. 19 a. u. c. 767, of equal importance with Damascus itself, and so
A. D. 14, in his 70th year (Suet. Octav. 99 f. the LXX. have understood it, taking the letters as
Dion Cass. lvi. 29 ff. Joseph. Ant. xviii. 3, § 2,
;
pointed "JIM and expressing
in their version as
it
B. I. 11, 9, § 1). Long before his death he had r
rreSiov Clv. By this they doubtless intend the
associated Tiberius with him in the empire (Suet.
great plain of Lebanon, Ccele-Syria, in which the
Tiber. 21; Tacit. Ann. 1, 3). See, for a more com-
renowned idol temple of Baalbek or Heliopolis was
plete notice, the article Augustus in the Dictionary
situated, and which still retains the very same name
of Biography and Mythology. II. A.
by which Amos and Joshua designated it, cl-Buka'a.
* Augustus adopted Tiberius as his successor
The application of Aven as a term of reproach or
several years before his death ; but according to the
contempt to a flourishing idol sanctuary, and the
best chronologists it was not till A. d. 12, i. e.
play or paronomasia therein contained, is quite in
about two years before his death (a. D. 14), that
keeping with the manner of Amos and of Hosea.
he admitted Tiberius to a share in the government.
The latter frequently applies the very same word to
For the details of the computation, see Greswell's
Bethel. [Bethaven.]
Dissertations, i. 344 ff. Sepp's Lebtn Christi, i.
;
of our Lord by Mr. S. J. Andrews, pp. 22-28. is clearly a contraction of Beth-aven, that is Bethel
Augustus occurs twice as one of the imperial (comp. iv.
15, etc.).
titles in Acts xxv. 21, 25 (A. V. after the Latin
3. In this manner are pointed, in Ez. xxx. 17,
where it is used of Nero, the emperor
for 2«/3o<rT(is),
the letters of the name which is elsewhere given as
to whom Paul appealed when arraigned before Fes-
tus. The Roman Senate conferred this title on On, "PH, the sacred city of Heliopolis or On, in
Octavius in the first instance (Suet. Octow. 7), but Egypt. [On.] (The LXX. and Vulgate both
it was applied also to his successors (Suet. Tiber. render it accordingly, 'HKiovnoKis, Heliopolis.)
26). H. The intention of the prophet is doubtless to play
AUGUSTUS* BAND (Acts xxvii. 1). upon the name in the same manner as Amos and
[Army, p. 164.] Hosea. See above, 1. G.
AURA'NUS (tIi Adpavos), leader of a riot A'VIM, A'VIMS, or A'VITES" (UW&Q
at Jerusalem (2 Mace. iv. 40). In the Vatican
LXX. and
= the Avvim :
=
A'VA (K53? Awa: 'Aid; [Comp. 'Aovdv-] may have made their way northwards from the
Desert (Stanley, Sinai and Pal. App. § 83). The
Arab), a place in the empire of Assyria, from which
only notice of them which has come down to us is
colonies were brought to repeople the cities of Sa-
contained in a remarkable fragment of primeval
maria after the deportation of the Jews (2 K. xvii.
history preserved in Deut. ii. 23. Here we see
24). From the names in connection with which it
them "dwelling in 'the' villages" (or nomad en-
is introduced, it would appear to be the same place
5). [For the meaning of this surname see Elea- stead," appear to have pushed them further north.
zar 8.] This must be inferred from the terms of the pas-
sive in Josh. xiii. 2, 3, the enumeration of the rest
A'VEN ("1.1^, nothingness: ['flj/: idolum]). of the laud still remaining to be conquered. Be-
1. The " plain of Aven " [marc/. Bikath-aven]
ginning c from " Sihor, which is before Egypt,"
( STlVpSl) is mentioned by Amos (i. 5) in his probably the Wady-el-Arish, the list proceeds
denunciation of Aram (Syria) and the country to northwards along the lowland plains of the sea-
found in the which we do not know the ancient form. The only
sibly a trace of their existence is to be
town "Avim" (accurately, as in the other cases,
notice of it. is in connection with the custom of
• the Avvim ) which occurs among the cities of boring the ear of the slave (Ex. xxi. 6 Deut. xv.
' ;
>:
possible that in, Hivite, is a variation, arising
discovered a site east of Bethel which the natives error of the transcriber for the former.
"
ment employed both by the iron-smith and the car-
letter Alif being substituted for the letter " Ain penter, and is supposed to be a curved knife or bill,
of the old Hebrew name. C. V. A. Van Dyck. smaller than
A'VITH (mj?: Terdalu, [Alex. rtddcun, 7. Olnf?, Kardom, a large axe used for felling
in Gen. ; in 1 Chr., Ttdaifj., Vat. reOBaifj., Alex. trees (Judg.ix. 48; 1 Sam. xiii. 20, 21: Ps. Lxxiv.
Teddafj.: Avith]), the city of Hadad ben-Bedad, 5; Jer. xlvi. 22). The words 1, 5, and 7 have an
one of the kings of Edom before there were kings etymological affinity with each other, the idea of
hi Israel (Gen. xxxvi. 35 ; 1 Chr. i. 46 ; in the lat- cutting being that which is expressed by their roots.
a It is perhaps worth notice, where every syllable tion of it, as " dwellers in the lowlands," is not obvi-
has some significance, that while " the Gazathite . . . . ous ; nor does he specify any derivation.
the Ekronite," are all in the singular, " the Avvim " c See Lengerke's confident hypothesis (Kenaan, p.
is plural. 183), for which, as is often the case, he does not con-
6 Gesenius, Thesaurus, p. 1000. Lcngerke's explana- descend to give the shadow of a reason.
202 AZAEL AZARIAH
waul, like that which gave his surname to ( harles 5. ('Eo-SpiT)A; [Comp. Aid. 'Etrp^A; Alex. e£-
Mattel. W. A. W. pirjA:] Azreel.) Father, or ancestor, of Maasiai,
or Amashai, a priest who dwelt in Jerusalem after
the return from Babylon (Neh. xi. 13; comp. 1
Chr. ix. 12). W. A. W.
a
AZARrAH
(rp-TS and ^rPITS: 'Afrpf-
as' Azarias ; whom God hath helped). It is a
common name in Hebrew, and especially in the
families of the priests of the line of Eeeazar,
whose name has precisely the same meaning as
Azariah. It is nearly identical, and is often con-
Assyrian Axe. — (British Museum.) founded with Ezra as well as with Zerahiah and
AZ'AEL Seraiah. The principal persons who bore this
name of a man
OaCotjAos; [Aid. 'ACotjA:] Ezelus),
(1 Esdr. ix. 14). [Asahel]. name were :
—
1. Son of Ahimaaz (1 Chr. vi. 9). He appears
AZAE LUS ('ACarjAos; [Alex. A(ay\:] Me- from 1 K. iv. 2, to have succeeded Zadok, his
lius), an Israelite in the time of Esdras: the name
grandfather, in the high-priesthood, in the reign
is probably merely a repetition of that preceding it
of Solomon, Ahimaaz having died before Zadok.
(1 Esdr. ix. 34).
[Ahimaaz.] To him, it can scarcely be doubted,
A'ZAL (Atzel, /^fr*, but from the emphatic instead of to his grandson, Azariah, the son of Jo-
hanan, belongs the notice in 1 Chr. vi. 10, ".He it
accent V^S,
Atzal: 'la<r65; Alex. [Comp. Aid.]
is that executed the priest's office in the temple
'AitotjA.: usque ad prvximum), a name only occur- that Solomon built at Jerusalem," meaning that
ring in Zech. xiv. 5. It is mentioned as the limit he officiated at the consecration of the temple, and
to which the " ravine " or cleft (K^S) of the Mount was the first high-priest that ministered in it. The
other interpretation which has been put upon these
of Olives will extend when " Jehovah shall go forth
words, as alluding to the Azariah who was high-
to fight." The whole passage of Zechariah is a
priest in Uzziah's reign, and resisted the king when
highly poetical one and several commentators
:
Comp. 'Efpi^A:] Azareel), a Levite musician son of Obed. This fact assigns the compilation of
the genealogy in 1 Chr. ii. 36-41 to the reign of
(Neh. xii. 36). [The A. V. ed. 1611, following
Hezekiah.
the Bishops' Bible, incorrectly reads "Asarael."]
6. The son of Johanan, 1 Chr. vi. 10, 11. He
AZA'REEL (^S~ft37 [whom God helps]
must have been high-priest in the reigns of Abijah
:
'0(,p(T]A; [Vat. -p«t-; Aid.] Alex. 'EAjtjA; [Comp. and Asa, as we know his son Amariah was in the
'A^ap^A:] Azareel). 1. A Korhite who joined days of Jehoshaphat, the son of Asa. It does not
David in his retreat at Ziklag (1 Chr. xii. 6). appear what part he took in Asa's zealous reforma-
2. ('Atrp^A! [Vat. Afapta;] Alex. E^A-) A tion (2 Chr. xv.), nor whether he approved the
Levite musician of the family of Heman in the time stripping of the house of God of its treasures to
of David, 1 Chr. xxv. 18 called Uzziel in xxv. 4. induce Benhadad to break his league with Baasha
:
3. ('ACapWjA; [Vat. A^apoTjA;] Alex. E{p")A: king of Israel, as related 2 Chr. xvi., for his name
Ezrihel. ) Son of Jeroham, and prince of the tribe and his office are never alluded to in the history of
of Dan when David numbered the people (1 Chr. Asa's reign, either in the book of Kings or Chron-
xxvii. 22). icles. The active persons in the religious move-
4. ('EQhtjA: [Vat. E£epTfA:] Ezrel.) One of ment of the times were the kins; himself and the
the sons of Bani, who put away his foreign wife on
the remonstrance of Ezra (Ezr. x. 41): apparently « * The original article has here been combined with
the same as Esi:il, 1 Esdr. ix. 34. that in the Concise Dictionary. H.
AZARIAH AZARIAH 203
two prophets, Azariah the son of Oded, and Ha- hasted to go out, because the Lord had smitten
nani. The silence concerning Azariah, the high- him." Uzziah was a leper unto the day of his
priest, is, perhaps, rather unfavorable than other- death, and, as such, was never able again to go to
wise to his religious character. His name is the Lord's House, which he had so presumptuously
almost lost in Josephus's list of the high-priests. invaded. Azariah was contemporary with Isaiah
Having lost, as we saw in the article Amakiah, its the prophet, and with Amos and Joel, and doubt-
termination A2, which adhered to the following less witnessed the great earthquake in Uzziah's
name, it got by some process transformed into reign (Am. i. 1; Zech. xiv. 5). He is not men-
IffOS- tioned in Josephus's list. 'Iovt)\os occurs instead;
7. Another Azariah is inserted between Hilkiah, possibly the name of the prophet inadvertently sub-
in Josiah's reign, and Seraiah, who was put to stituted for that of the high-priest. Neither is he
death by Nebuchadnezzar, in 1 Chr. vi. 13. But in the priestly genealogy of 1 Chr. vi.
Josephus does not acknowledge him, making Se- 15. [Rom. OvSeias; Vat. OvSeta.] Son of
raiah the son of Hilkiah, and there seems to be Johanan, one of the captains of Ephraim in the
scarcely room for him. It seems likely that he reign of Ahaz (2 Chr. xxviii. 12), who sent back
may have been inserted to assimilate the genealogy the captives and spoil that were taken in the inva-
to that of Ezr. vii. 1, where, however, the Seraiah sion of Judah by Pekah.
and Azariah are probably neither of them the high- 16. [Vat. Alex. Aid. Zaxapias.] A Kohathite,
priests of those names. father of Joel in the reign of Hezekiah (2 Chr.
8. Son of Zephaniah, a Kohathite, and ancestor xxix. 12).
of Samuel the prophet (1 Chr. vi. 30). Apparently 17. [Vat. Zaxaptas-] A Merarite, son of
the same as Uzziah in ver. 24. Jehalelel, in the time of Hezekiah, contemporary
9. Azariah, the son of Oded (2 Chr. xv. 1), with the son of the preceding (2 Chr. xxix. 12).
called simply Oded in ver. 8, was a remarkable 18. The high-priest in the days of Hezekiah (2
prophet in the days of king Asa, and a contempo- Chr. xxxi. 10-13). He appears to have cooperated
rary of Azariah the son of Johanan the high-priest, zealously with the king in that thorough purifica-
and of Hanani the seer. He powerfully stirred up tion of the temple and restoration of the temple-
the spirit of Asa, and of the people of Judah and services which was so conspicuous a feature in Hez-
Benjamin, in a brief but pithy prophecy, which has ekiah's reign. He especially interested himself in
been preserved, to put away all idolatrous worship, providing chambers in the house, of the Lord in
and to restore the altar of the one true God before which to stow the tithes and offerings and conse-
the porch of the temple. Great numbers of Israelites crated things for the use of the priests and Levites,
from Ephraim, and Manasseh, and Simeon, and all and in appointing overseers to have the charge of
Israel, joined in the national reformation, to the Eor the attendance of priests and Levites,
them.
great strengthening of the kingdom ; and a season and the maintenance of the temple-services, de-
of rest and great prosperity ensued. Oded, the pended entirely upon the supply of such offerings,
prophet in the days of Ahaz, may probably have and whenever the people neglected them the priests
been a descendant of Azariah. and Levites were forced to disperse themselves to
10. Son of Jehoshaphat king of Judah (2 Chr. their villages, and so the house of God was deserted
xxi. 2). (comp. Neh. x. 35-39, xii. 27-30, 44-47). His
name seems to be corrupted into Nripias in Jose-
11. ( :in^"1TV.) Another son of Jehoshaphat,
phus. He succeeded Urijah, who was high-priest
and brother of the preceding (2 Chr. xxi. 2). in the reign of Ahaz. Who his successor was is
12. ['Oxo^iay, Vat. -£«- Ochozias.]
: At 2 somewhat uncertain. He is not, any more than the
Chr. xxii. 6, Azariah is a clerical error for Ahaziah. preceding, included in the genealogy of 1 Chr. vi.
19. [Vat. Alex. FA. A(apta.] Son of Maa-
13. (T ~IT3?.) Son of Jeroham, and one of the
,
4. (Azareus.) Priest in the line of Esdras (2 mountains of Judah. Perhaps like Shochoh, Aphek,
Esdr. i. 1), elsewhere Azaiuah and Ezerias. &c, there were more than one place of the name.
5. {Azarias.) Name assumed by the angel Sehwarz (p. 102) would identify it with " Tell
Raphael (Tob. v. 12, vi. 6, vii. 8, ix. 2).
Ezakaria " (Zakariya on Robinson's Map, 1856)
13,
6. A captain in the army of Judas Maccabseus not far from Ain-shems, and very possibly correctly.
A'ZAZ (TT2? [strong-]: 'Afri^; C Vat -] M^- AZEL (b?N, in pause b^S : 'Eo^a; [Comp.
[Comp. Azaz). A Reubenite, 'A(T7)\; Sin. in 1 Chr. ix. EcraTjA.:] Asel), a de-
O£ov£; 'a£ci£:]
father of Bela (1 Chr. v. 8). W. A. W. scendant of Saul (1 Chr. viii. 37, 38, ix. 43, 44).
* AZA'ZEL stands in the margin of the A. V. A'ZEM (ESV, when not emphasized E!?2
(Lev. xvi. 8) for "scape-goat" in the text. See [a bone]: 'A<r<5/x, 'Ia<r<k; [Alex. Aat/i,
Atrofi:]
Atonement, The Day of, under III. and VI. Asem, Esem), a city in the extreme south of Judah
H. (Josh. xv. 29), afterwards allotted to Simeon (xix.
strengthens]: 'Otfas; [Vat. FA. O^ejcwG Ozaziu). AZEPHU'RITH, or more properly Ar-
1. A Levite musician in the reign of David, ap- SIPHURITH ['Apaupovpid; Vat. Apaeupovpeid
pointed to play the harp in the service which Alex. Apo~i<povpet6], a name which in the LXX. of
attended the procession by which the ark was 1 Esdr. v. 16 occupies the place of Jorah in Ezr. ii.
brought up from the house of Obed-edom (1 Chr. 18, and of Hariph in Neh. vii. 24. It is altogether
(Josh. xv. 35; 2 Chr. xi. 9; Neh. xi. 30), but is 'A^tasO Ozitus), a " servant of the temple" (1
most clearly defined as being near Shochoh (that Esdr. v. 31), elsewhere called Uzza.
is the northern one) [Shochoh] (1 Sam. xvii. 1).
AZI'EI (2 Esdr. i. 2), one of the ancestors of
Joshua's pursuit of the Canaanites after the battle Esdras, elsewhere called Azariah and Ezias.
of Beth-horon extended to Azekah (Josh. x. 10, 11).
Between Azekah and Shochoh, an easy step out of A'ZIEL (bsn? 'o£W)A [Vat. FA. -£,-] :
their own encamped before Oziel), a Levite (1 Clir. xv. 20). The name is a
territory, the Philistines
the battle in which Goliath was killed (1 Sam. xvii. ,
shortened form of Jaaziel ( /S" T3?^), which oc-
1). It was among the cities fortified by Rehoboam
curs in ver. 18 of same chapter.
(2 Chr. xi. 9), was still standing at the time of the
invasion of the kings of Babylon (Jer. xxxiv. 7), AZPZA (NrTO [strong]: '0£Ca; [Vat. M.
Ofcia:] Aziza). A layman of the family of Zattu,
« The verb occurs only in Is. v. 2, where it is ren- who had married a foreign wife after the return
dered in the A. V. " fenced ; " but by Gesenius, in his from Babylon (Ezr. x. 27); called Sardeus in 1
Jesaia, " grub ihn um." Esdr. Lx. 28. "W. A. W.
AZMAVETH azzan 205
toj opos mons Azoti). In the fatal battle in
'
1 Chr. viii. 36 the A. V. ed. 1611, etc. reads Vat. MS. [rather, in the Rom. ed. Vat. E<r5piT)A.; ;
" Asniaveth," following the Bishops' Bible.] Comp. 'EfpnjA.]; Alex. le£ptr)\-- Ezriel). 1. The
head of a house of the hall-tribe of Manasseh be-
3. CA(T/j.c!)6; Alex. A£]ua>0.) The father of Jeziel
yond Jordan, a man of renown (1 Chr. v. 24).
and Pelet, two of the skilled Benjamite slingers and
archers who joined David at Ziklag (1 Chr. xii. 3),
2. ('0£W)A.; [Vat. Eo-peirjA.:] Ozriel.) Naph- A
talite, ancestor of Jerimoth the head of the tribe at
perhaps identical with 1. It has been suggested
the time of David's census (1 Chr. xxvii. 19); called
that in this passage " sons of Azmaveth " may
Uzziel in two Heb. MSS.. and apparently in the
denote natives of the place of that name.
LXX.
4. Overseer of the royal treasures in the reign 3. Alex. Ezriel.) The
('E<rp<T)A ; EcCpiTjA. :
ance in Benjamin, being named with Anathoth, enemy]: 'Y.fyiKa.fj.; [Vat. E(pttKaV-,] Alex. E<rpt-
Kirjath -jearim and other towns belonging to that Kan- Ezricam). 1. A descendant of Zerubbabel,
tribe. Forty-two of the Bene-Azmaveth returned and son of Neariah of the royal line of Judah (1
from the captivity with Zerubbabel (Ezr. ii. 24). Chr. iii. 23).
The " sons of the singers " seem to have settled 2. ([Vat E(peucau, EcrSpetKav;] Alex. E^pi-
round it (Xeh. xii. 29). The name elsewhere oc- Kafi- ) Eldest son of Azel, and descendant of Saul
curs as Beth-Azmayeth. Azmaveth does not (1 Chr. viii. 38, ix. 44).
make its appearance in the lists in Joshua, but the ([Vat. EopetKav, ECepet;] in Neh. 'Eo-piKdfx;
3.
name was borne by several Benjamites of the kindred Alex. E^pi: Azaricam.) Levite, ancestor of A
of Saul (1 Chr. viii. 36, ix. 42, xii. 3; in the last Shemaiah who lived in the time of Nehemiah (1
passage Bene-A. may merely denote natives of the Chr. ix. 14; Neh. xi. 15).
place, especially as natives of Anathoth, Gibeah, 4. ('E(piKau; [Vat. EySpeiKaV, Comp. 'Etrpr
&c. are mentioned in the same verse). G. Ka/j..] ) Governor of the house, or prefect of the
AZ'MON (flOn? or ]b?3? [strong] :
'
word becomes shortened into v!L?2, and, thence haps under some modified form. Rawlinson dis-
tinguishes between the second god of the first triad
dropping the guttural, 72, Bel, which is the of the Assyrian pantheon, whom he names provis-
Babylonian name of this god (Buxtorf, Lex. Chald. ionally Bel-Nimrod, and the Babylonian Bel whom
et Talm., Gesen., Fiirst, Movers; the identity of he considers identical with Merodach (Herod, i.
the two words is, however, doubted by Rawlinson, 594 ff.; 627 ff.).
Herod, i. 318). The same perplexity occurs respecting the con-
There can be no doubt of the very high antiqui- nection of this god with the heavenly bodies as we
ty of the worship of Baal. We
find his worship es- have already noticed in regard to Ashtoreth. C'reu-
tablished amongst the Moabites and their allies the zer (Symb. ii. 413) and Movers (Phon. i. 180)_de-
Midianites in the time of Moses (Num. xxii. 41), clare Baal to be the Sun-god on the other hand, ;
and through these nations the Israelites were se- the Babylonian god is identified with Zeus by He-
duced to the worship of this god under the particu- rodotus, and there seems to be no doubt that Bel-
lar form of Baal-Peor (Num. xxv. 3 ff. Deut. iv. Merodach is the planet Jupiter (Rawlinson, Herod.
;
3 ). Not withstanding the fearful punishment which 1. c). It is quite likely that in the case of Baal
their idolatry brought upon them in this instance, as well as of Ashtoreth the symbol of the god
the succeeding generation returned to the worship varied at different times and in different localities.
of Baal (Judg. ii. 10-13), and with the exception of Indeed the great number of adjuncts with which
the period during which Gideon was judge (Judg. the name of Baal is found is a sufficient proof of
vi. 26 ff., viii. 33) this form of idolatry seems to the diversity of characters in which he was regard-
have prevailed amongst them up to the time of Sam- ed, and there must no doubt have existed a corre-
uel (Judg. x. 10; 1 Sam. vii. 4), at whose rebuke sponding diversity in the worship. It may even be
the people renounced the worship of Baalim. Two a question whether in the original notion of Baal
centuries pass over before we hear again of Baal in there was reference to any of the heavenly bod-
connection with the people of Israel, though we can ies, since the derivation of the name does not in
scarcely conclude from this silence that his worship this instance, as it does in the case of Ashtoreth,
was altogether abandoned. We know that in the point directly to them. If we separate the name
time of Solomon the service of many gods of the Baal from idolatry, we seem, according to its mean-
BAAL BAAL 207
ing, to obtain simply the notion of Lord and Pro- David's officers, who had
the superintendence of
prietor of all. With this the idea of productive his olive and sycamore plantations (1 Chr. xxvii.
power is naturally associated, and that power is as 28). He was of the town of Gederah (Josh. xv.
naturally symbolized by the sun, whilst on the 36) or Beth-Gader (1 Chr. ii. 51), and from his
other hand the ideas of providential arrangement name we may conjecture that he was of Canaanitish,
and rule, and so of prosperity, are as naturally sug- not Jewish origin.
gested by the word, and in the astral mythology these
4. Ba'al-pe'ok ("11375 7372: Bee\<peydp:
ideas are associated with the planet Jupiter. In
point of fact we find adjuncts to the name of Baal
Beelphegor). We
have already referred to the
worship of this god. The narrative (Num. xxv.)
answering to all these notions, e. g. BeiKoafrnv,
seems clearly to show that this form of Baal-wor-
Bakamen (Plaut. Pcen. v. 2, 67) = "|',
l
Ettr ?372, ship was connected with licentious rites. Without
" Lord of thelieavens; " laying too much stress on the Rabbinical derivation
^On"v3?2, Baal-Hamon
(Gesen. Mon. Pkasn. 349), the Sun-Baal, and sim- of the word ~ni?S, hiatus, i. e. " aperire hymenem
ilarly the name of a city in the 0. T. "pZ2n"7372 virgineum," we seem to have reason to conclude
that this was the nature of the worship. Baal-peor
(Cant. viii. 11); 12"7372, Baal-Gad, the name was identified by the Rabbins and early fathers
amongst them a large number of cities, which are most all critics. The reader is referred for more
mentioned below. We shall first mention those detailed information particularly to Creuzer's Sym-
names of men and of gods in which Baal is the bolic and Movers's Phonizier. F. W. G.
first element. It may
be noted before proceeding BA'AL (737?), geographical. This word oc-
to specify the particular compounds of Baal that
curs as the prefix or suffix to the names of several
the word standing alone occurs in the 0. T. in
places in Palestine. Gesenius has expressed his
two [three] instances as the name of a man (1 Chr.
opinion (Thes. p. 225 a) that in these cases it has
v. 5, viii. 30, [ix. 36]). Fiirst considers that in
no reference to any worship of the god Baal, at the
these instances the latter element of the word is
particular spot, but merely expresses that the place
dropped.
"possesses" or contains something special denoted
1. Ba'al-BE'rith (rVHS 7372 '
[tgS BaaA by the other part of the name, the word Baal bear-
ing in that case a force synonymous with that of
SiadJiicnv,] Baa\fiepi6\ [Alex, rov BaaA Beep as
Baal fadus,] Baal- Beth. Without being so presumptuous as to
$ia6r)Krii>, BaaA SiadrjKris:
this conclusion, some reasons may (with
bent). This form of Baal was worshipped at contradict
considerable hesitation) be mentioned for reconsid-
Shechem by the Israelites after the death of Gideon
ering it.
(Judg. viii. 33, ix. 4). The name signifies the
Covenant-Baal, and has been compared with the (a.) Though employed in the Hebrew Scriptures
Greek Zeus opKios or the Latin Deus fldius. The to a certain extent metaphorically, and there cer-
meaning, however, does not seem to be the god tainly with the force of "possession" or "owner-
who presides over covenants, but the god who comes ship," — as a " lord of hair " (2 K. i. 8), " lord of
into covenant with the worshippers. In Judg. ix. dreams" (Gen. xxxvii. 19), £-c, Baal never seems
to have become a naturalized Hebrew word, but
46 he is called j"TH2 7W. We know nothing
frequently occurs so as to betray its Canaanite
of the particular form of worship paid to this god. originand relationship. Thus it is several times
Ba'al-ze'bub (212? 737.2 employed to designate the inhabitants of towns
2. : BaaA ixvTa-
either certainly or probably heathen, but rarely if
Beelzebub), the form of Baal worshipped at Ekron ever those of one undoubtedly Hebrew. It is ap-
(2 K. i. 2, 3, [6,] 16). The meaning of the name plied to the men of Jericho before the conquest
is Bacd or Lord of the fly. Though such a desig- (Josh. xxiv. 11); to the men of Shechem, the an-
nation of the god appears to us a kind of mockery, cient city of Hamor the Hivite, who rose to recover
and has consequently been regarded as a term of the rights of Hamor' s descendants long after the
derision (Selden, De Diis Syris, p. 375), yet there
conquest of the land (Judg. ix. 2-51, with Ewald's
seems no reason to doubt that this was the name commentary, Gesch. ii. 445-7), and in the ac-
given to the god by his worshippers, and the plague count of which struggle, the distinction between
of flies in hot climates furnishes a sufficient reason
for the designation. Similarly the Greeks gave the the 0^372. of Shechem, and the D s tt73N— the
epithet air6fnvios to Zeus (Pausan. v. 14, § 2; Hebrew relations of Abimelech — is carefully main-
Clem. Alex. Protrept. ii. 38), and Pliny (xxix. 6, tained. used for the men of Keilah, a place on
It is
34, init.) speaks of a Fly-god Myiodes. The name the western confines of Judah, exposed to all the at-
occurs in the N. T. in the well-known form Beel- tacks and the influences of the surrounding heathen
zebub [properly Beelzebul]. (1 Sam. xxiii. 11, 12), for Uriah the Hittite (2 Sam.
3. Ba'al-ha'nan ("}3n 7372, Baal is gra- xi. 26), and for others (Is. xvi. 8, etc.). Add to
Baal forms part of the
this the consideration that if
cious: BaWevcbv, Ba\a(vvd>p\ [Alex. Ba\atv-
name of a person we are sure to find the name
vwv-] Balanan: comp. )3nin% 'iwawns, Je- mentioned with some Hebrew alteration, as Jerub-
hovah is gracious). (1.) The name of one of the besheth for Jerub-baal, Mephibosheth for Merib-
early kings of Edom (Gen. xxxvi. 38, 39; 1 Chr. baal, Ish-bosheth for Esh-baal, and others. In
. 49, 50). Hos. ii. 16 a remarkable instance is preserved of
(2.) (BaWavaV, [Vat. BaKavas; Alex. Ba\- the distinction, noticed above in connection with the
Aava; Comp. BaAaavdV].) The name of one of record of the revolt at Shechem, between the hea-
208 BAAL BAAL
then Baal and the Hebrew Jsh —
" at that day, <Aeu'eH =
Holy-well: BaAe'/c; [Vat. 1 Bape/c Alex. ;
saith Jehovah, men shall call Me ' Ishi,' and shall BaaA Qeprippafi/xccO Aid. BaAe'0 BripafifucB ; ;
call Me no .more Baali,' " both words having the Comp. BaaAai? BrippadjxcliQ '] Bnalath-Beer), a town
'
sense of " my husband." among those in the south part of Judah, given to
(b.) Such places called by this name or its com- Simeon; and which also bore the name of Ra-
pounds as can be identified, and several of which math-Xegeb, or " the heights of the South
existed at the time of the conquest, were either (Josh. xix. 8). In another list it appears in the
near Phoenicia, as Baal-gad, Baal-hermon, Bel- contracted form of Baal. [See 1.]
markos (of later times) or in proximity to some
; Other sacred wells in this parched region were
"
other acknowledged seat of heathen worship, as the Beer-lahai-roi, the " well of the vision of God ;
Baal-meon and Bamoth-Baal, near the infamous and Beer-sheba, the " well of the oath."
seat of Baal-peor or Kirjath-Baal and Baal-tamcir,
;
famous sanctuaries and high places of Gibeon and Alex. BaA7a5; Comp. BaaA7a8; in Josh. xiii. 5,
significance with which the name of Baal must "the plain (i"T37p2) of Lebanon" would lead to
always have been invested both for the Israelites the supposition that it lay in the great plain be-
and for then predecessors in the country; for those
-
but it is quite possible that the conjunction ren- of the same name. [Shalisha.]
dered " and " may be here, as often elsewhere, used 12. Ba'al-ta'mar ("TO/n 2, sanctuary of
as an expletive, —
" unto Baal-hermon, even Senir,
the palm: BaaA ©a/xap- Baalthamar), a place
even Mount Hermon." Perhaps this derives some
named only in Judg. xx. 33, as near Gibeah of
color from the fact, which we know, that this
mountain had at least three names (Deut. iii. 9). Benjamin. The palm-tree ("1^^) of Deborah
May not Baal-hermon have been a fourth, in use (iv. 5) was situated somewhere in the locality, and
among the Phoenician worshippers of Baal, one of is possibly alluded to (Stanley, 145, 6). In the
whose sanctuaries, Baal-gad, was at the days of Eusebius it was still known under the al-
foot of this
very mountain '?
tered name of Br)6da^ap but no traces of it have ;
meon, [Beelmeon]), one of the towns which were eAvecpcov :] Beelsephon), a place in Egypt near
"built" by the Reubenites (Num. xxxii. 38), and where the Israelites crossed the Red Sea (Ex. xiv.
to which they " gave other names." Possibly the 2, 9 ; Num. xxxiii. 7). From the position of
"Beth," which is added to the name in its men- Goshen and the indications afforded by the narra-
tion elsewhere, and which sometimes superseded tive of the route of the Israelites, we place Baal-
the "Baal" of the original name, is one of the zephon on the western shore of the Gulf of Suez,
changes referred to. [Beth-baal-meon: Betii- a little below its head, which at this time was about
MEON.] It is also named in 1 Chr. v. 8, and on 30 or 40 miles northward of the present head.
each occasion with Nebo. In the time of Ezekiel [Goshen; Red Sea, Passage of]. Its posi-
it was Moabite, and under that prosperous domin- tion with respect to the other places mentioned
ion had evidently become a place of distinction, with it is clearly indicated. The Israelites en-
being noticed as one of the cities which are the camped before or at Pi-hahiroth, between Migdol
"glory of the country " (Ez. xxv. 9). In the days and the sea, before Baal-zephon, according to Ex.
of Eusebius and Jerome (Onom. Balmen) it was (xiv. 2, 9), while in Num. Pi-hahiroth is described
still a " vicus maximus " called Balmano, 9 miles as being before Baal-zephon, and it is said that
distant from Heshbon CU&ous, £sbus), near the when the people came to the former place they
"mountain of the hot springs," and reputed to be pitched before Migdol (Num. xxxiii. 7); and again,
the native place of Elisha. that afterwards they departed from before Pi-hahi-
* The site is still " Taking a sweep on
known. roth, here in Heb. Hahiroth (v. 8). Migdol and
the fine turf to the southeast" (from Heehban), Baal-zephon must therefore have been opposite to
says Mr. Tristram (Lund of Israd, p. 5-10 ), " we one another, and the latter behind Pi-hahiroth with
passed by the ruins of MrC'in (Baal-meon), situated reference to the Israelites. Baal-zephon was per-
on a mamelon exactly like Heshbon, and due east haps a well-known place, if, as seems likely, it is
of Nebbak, shapeless and featureless, at which a always mentioned to indicate the position of Pi-
cursory glance was sufficient." H. hahiroth, Which we take to be a natural locality
[Red Sea, Passage of; Pi-hahiroth]. The
10. Ba'al-per'azim (2 2 : Baal-phar- name has been supposed to mean " place of Ty-
,,
!J"nQ
asim), the scene of a victory of David over the Phi- phon," or " sacred to Typhon," an etymology
listines, and of a great destruction of their images, approved by Gesenius ( Thes. s. v.). Zephon would
and so named by him in a characteristic passage well enough correspond in sound to Typhon, had
of exulting poetry —
" Jehovah hath burst (VT?^) we any ground for considering
'
the latter name to
be either Egyptian or Semitic, but as we have not,
upon mine enemies before me as a burst (V^) the conjecture is a very bold one. Were, however,
of waters.' Therefore he called the name of that Typhon an Egyptian word, we could not consider
place Baal-perazim,' " i. e bursts or destructions Zephon in Baal-zephon to be its Hebrew transcrip-
'
(2 Sam. v. '20; 1 Chr. xiv. 11). The place and tion, inasmuch as it is joined with the Hebrew form
the circumstance appear to be again alluded to in We would
7^2. rather connect Baal-zephon, as
Is. xxviii. 21, where it is called Mount P. Perhaps
this may point to the previous existence of a high a Hebrew compound, with the root ""l^^f* as if
place or sanctuary of Baal at this spot, which would it were named from a watch-tower on the frontier
lend more point to David's exclamation (see Gese-
nius, Jet. 84-1). The LXX. render the name in its
like the neighboring '"^P, "the tower." It is
two occurrences, respectively noticeable that the name of the son of Gad called
SiaKoiruv,
'En-oVcn
and A(OK07T7j <papa<riv' [Vat. -pi-; in 1 Chr. xiv. Ziphion IV?!? in Gen. (xlvi. 16) is written Ze-
11"; BadA. $apa<rlv, Alex, -aeiv', Vat. <£aaA 4>o(J-
ifffifj.'] the latter an instance of retention of the
phon V*I2? in Num. (xxvi. 15). The identifica-
original word and its explanation side by side ; the tions of Baal-zephon that have been proposed de-
former uncertain. pend upon the supposed meaning "place of Ty-
phon." Forster (Epp. ad Mich., pp. 28, 29) thinks
11. Ba'al-shal'isha (nG7^B7 '2 Bai6a.pi- :
it was Heroopoiis, 'Hpwwv tt6\is, which some, as
(T&; [Vat. M. Baidapaaa, H. Baidaapttaa Alex.-] Champollion (VEgypU tons let Pharaons, ii. 87
;
Ba$<rapu [Alex.l BaOcrapura; Comp. BaaA 2aAj- ff.) consider, wrongly, to be the same as Anuria,
tro:] Baalsalisa), a place named only in 2 K. iv.
the stronghold of the Hycsos, both which places
42; apparently not far from Gilgal (comp. v. 38).
were connected with Typhon (Steph. B. s. v. 'Hpci;
Manetho, ap. Joseph, c. Apion. i. 26). Avaris cannot
a The "unto in the A. V. is interpolated, though be Heroopoiis, for geographical reasons. (Comp..
not so marked. as to the site of Avaris, Brugsch, Geographische
14
210 BAAL BABEL
Jnschriften, i. 86 ff. ; as to that of Heroopolis, 4. A man who accompanied Zerubbabel on hi»
Lepsius, Chron. d. JEgypt. i. 344 ff., and p. 342, return from the captivity (Ezr. ii. 2; Neh. vii. Y).
against the two places being the same.) Possibly the same person is intended in Neh. x. 27.
R. S. P. [Baana, 3.]
my Baal, the name of the principal god of the reign of the separate kingdom of Israel, and the
Canaanites; and, second, my lord, as applied by a founder of its second dynasty. The name, accord-
woman to her husband (Ex. xxi. 22; 2 Sam. xi. 26). ing to Gesenius, is from a root to be wicked, but
The passage is " And it shall be at that day, saith this would seem impossible unless it has been al-
:
the Lord, that thou shalt call me Ishi, and shalt tered [Abu aii]. and Culmet suggests that it may
call me no more Baali." The time is coming, the
prophet would say, when Israel shall utterly re- mean in the work, from w*, and 71273? to make, 2
nounce his idolatry, and so far from going after
or he who seeks H272 and lays waste HStt?.
heathen gods, shall not even take upon his lips so
Baasha was son of Ahijah of the tribe of Issachar,
much as a word that would revive even a thought
and conspired against King Nadab, son of Jero-
of the old idolatry which had been so base a vio-
boam, when he was besieging the Philistine town
lation of the covenant of marriage between Jehovah
of Gibbethon, and killed him with his whole family.
and his people. See the next verse (17th) which
He appears to have been of humble origin, as the
confirms this view. Consult Manger ( Comment, in
prophet Jehu speaks of him as having been " ex-
Libv. Hos. p. 132), and Pusey (Minor Prophets,
alted out of the dust" (1 K. xvi. 2). In matters
Part I. p. 19). The A. V. (mar;/.) translates both
of religion his reign was no improvement on that
terms (my husband: my lord ). The Vulgate trans-
of Jeroboam ; he equally forgot his position as king
lates the former (meus vir), but does not translate
of the nation of God's election, and was chiefly
the latter. H.
remarkable for his persevering hostility to Judah.
BAALIM. [Baal.] It was probably in the 13th year of his reign [Asa]
[Alex.] Baava- Bana), the name of several men. the 24th year of his reign, and was honorably bu-
1. The son of Ahilud, Solomon's commissariat offi- ried in the beautiful city of Tirzah (Cant. vi. 4),
cer in Jezreel and the north of the Jordan valley which he had made his capital. The dates of his
(1 K. iv. 12). accession and death according to Clinton (F. H. i.
2. [(Baava: Baana.) The father of Zadok, 321) are b. c. 953 and b. c. 931 (1 K. xv. 27, xvi.
one of those who repaired the wall of Jerusalem 7; 2 Chr. xvi. 1-6). G. E. L. C.
after the captivity] (Neh. iii. 4). * Furst derives the name from an obsolete root
3. [Baavd Vulg. corrupt.] (1 Esdr. v. 8.)
(existing in Arabic) = valor, boldness. H.
[Baanah, 4.]
BATBEL, BAB'YLON, &c. P22: Ba0-
BA'ANAH (H3P? [= KJS5, see. above]
v\dv- [Babel, Babylon] ) is properly the capital city
Baavd; [Vat. in 2 Sam. iv. 5, 9, Baaju; 6, Bafj.fxa'-] of the country which is called in Genesis Shinar
Baana). 1. Son of Rimmon, a Benjamite, who
( l37Z)t£T) and in the later Scriptures Chaldcea, or
with his brother Rechab murdered Ish-bosheth.
For this they were killed by David, and their muti- the land of the Chaldseans (D^t??? )• The name :
Vaavas'] Banna), son of Hushai, Solomon's com- the other sense came to be attached to it after the
missariat officer in Asher (1 K. iv. 16). confusion of tongues. Probably a temple was the
BABEL, BABYLON BABEL, BABYLON 211
first buildiug raised by the primitive nomads, and composed of a series of stone piers with movable
in the gate of this temple justicewould be adminis- platforms of wood stretching from one pier to
tered in early times (comp. 2 Sam. xix. 8), after another. Such are the chief features of the de-
which houses would grow up about the gate, and scription left us by Herodotus 178-186).
(i.
in this way the name would readily pass from the According to Ctesias (ap. Diod. Sic. ii. 7, K)
actual portal of the temple to the settlement. Ac- the circuit of the city was not 480 but 360 stades —
cording to the traditions which the Greeks derived which is a little under 42 miles. It lay, he says, on
from the Babylonians in Alexander's age the city both sides of the Euphrates, and the two parts
was originally built about the year B. c. 2230. were connected together by a stone bridge five
The architectural remains discovered in southern stades (above 1000 yards) long, and 30 feet broad,
Babylonia, taken in conjunction with the monu- of the kind described by Herodotus. At either ex-
mental records, seem to indicate that it was not at tremity of the bridge was a royal palace, that in the
first the capital, nor, indeed, a town of very great eastern city being the more magnificent of the two.
importance. It probably owed its position at the It was defended by a triple enceinte, the outer-
head of Nimrod's cities (Gen. x. 10) to the power most 60 stades, or 7 miles round the second, which;
and preeminence whereto it afterwards attained was circular, 46 stades, or 4* miles: and the third
rather than to any original superiority that it could 20 stades. or 2£ miles. The height of the second
boast over the places coupled with it. Erech, Ur, or middle wall was 300 feet, and its towers were 420
and Ellas'ir, appear to have been all more ancient feet. The elevation of the innermost circuit was
than Babylon, and were capital cities when Babil even greater than this. The walls of both the second
was a provincial village. The first rise of the and the third inclosure were made of colored brick,
Chalda?an power was in the region close upon the and represented hunting scenes —
the chase of the
Persian Gulf, as Berosus indicated by his fish-god leopard and the lion —
with figures, male and fe-
Oannes, who brought the Babylonians civilization male, regarded by Ctesias as those of Ninus and
and the arts out of the sea (ap. Syncell. p. 28, B.). Semiramis. The other palace was inferior both in
Thence the nation spread northwards up the course size and magnificence. It was inclosed within a
of the rivers, and the seat of government moved in single enceinte, 30 stades, or 3 J miles in circum-
the same direction, being finally fixed at Baby- ference, and contained representations of hunting
lon, perhaps not earlier than about b. c. 1700. and battle scenes as well as statues in bronze, said
1. Topography of Babylon —
Ancient descrip- to be those of Ninus, Semiramis, and Jupiter
tions jof the city. — The
descriptions of Babylon Belus. The two palaces were joined, not only by
which have come down to us in classical writers the bridge, but by a tunnel under the river Ctesias's !
are derived chiefly from two sources, the works of account of the temple of Belus has not come down
Herodotus and of Ctesias. These authors were to us. We may gather however, that he repre-
both of them eye-witnesses of the glories of Baby- sented its general character in much the same way
lon — not, indeed, at their highest point, but be- as Herodotus, but spoke of it as surmounted by
fore they had greatly declined —
and left accounts three statues, one of Bel, 40 feet high, another of
of the city and its chief buildings, which the his- Rhea, and a third of Juno or Beltis. He seems
torians and geographers of later times were, for the further to have described elaborately the famous
most part, content to copy. The description of " "
hanging gardens of Nebuchadnezzar (Diod. Sic.
Herodotus is familiar to most persons. According ii. 10) but the description, as reported by Diodorus,
to this, the city, which was built on both sides of is not very intelligible. It appears that they were
the Euphrates, formed a vast square, inclosed with- a square of 400 feet each way, and rose in terraces,
in a double line of high walls, the extent of the the topmost terrace being planted with trees of all '
outer circuit being 480 stades, or about 56 miles. kinds, which grew to a great size.
The entire area included would thus have been In examining the truth of these descriptions, we
about 200 square miles. Herodotus appears to im- shall most conveniently commence from the outer
ply that this whole space was covered with houses, circuit of the town. All the ancient writers appear
which, he observes, were frequently three or four to agree in the fact of a district of vast size, more
stories high. They were laid out in straight streets or less inhabited, having been inclosed within lofty
crossing each other at right angles, the cross streets walls, and included under the name of 'Babylon.
leading to the Euphrates being closed at the river With respect to the exact extent of the circuit they
end with brazen gates, which allowed or prevented differ. The estimate of Herodotus and of Pliny (E.
access to the quays wherewith the banks of the Eu- iV. vi. 26) is 480 stades, of Strabo (xvi. i, § 5) 385,
phrates were lined along its whole course through of Q. Curtius (v. 1 § 26) 308, of Clitarchus (ap.
the city. In each division of the town, Herodotus Diod. Sic. ii. 7) 365, and of Ctesias (ap. eund.)
says, there was a fortress or stronghold, consisting 360 stades. It is evident that here we have merely
in the one case of the royal palace, in the other of the moderate variations to be expected in independ-
the great temple of Belus. This last was a species ent measurements, except in the first of the num-
of pyramid, composed of eight square towers placed bers. Setting this aside, the difference between
ore above the other, the dimensions of the basement the greatest and the least of the estimates is little
tower being a stade —
or above 200 yards — each more than £ per cent. a With this near agreement on
way. The height of the temple is not mentioned the part of so many authors, it is the more sur-
by Herodotus. A winding ascent, which passed prising that in the remaining case we should find
round all the towers, led to the summit, on which the great difference of one third more, or 33 $ per
was placed a spacious ark or chapel, containing no cent. Perhaps the true explanation is that Herod-
statue, but regarded by the natives as the habitation otus spoke of the outer wall, which could be traced
of the god. The temple stood in a sacred precinct
a If the estimate of Ctesias be regarded as 100,
two stades (or 400 yards) square, which contained
that of Clitarchus will be .100-1923
. .
with attention that no vestiges of the ancient walls Herodotus and Ctesias both relate that the banks
are to be found, or at least, that none have as yet of the river as it flowed through the city were on
been discovered. Still it is impossible to doubt each side ornamented with quays. The stream has
that a line of wall inclosing an enormous area orig- probably often changed its course since the time of
inally existed. The testimony to this effect is too Babylonian greatness, but some remains of a quay or
strong to be set aside, and the disappearance of embankment (E) on the eastern side of the stream
the wall is easily accounted for, either by the con- still exist, upon the bricks of which is read the
stant quarrying, which would naturally have com- name of the last king. The two writers also agree
menced with it (Rich, First Mem. p. 44), or by as to the existence of a bridge, and describe it very
the subsidence of the bulwark into the moat from similarly. Perhaps a remarkable mound (K) which
which it was raised. Taking the lowest estimate interrupts the long flat valley— evidently the an-
of the extent of the circuit, we shall have for the — closing the principal
cient course of the river in
space within the rampart an area of above 100 ruins on the west, may be a trace of structure.
this
square miles nearly five times the size of London
; 2.Present stateof theMains. — Before seeking
It is evident that this vast space cannot have been to identify the principal buildings of ancient Baby-
entirely covered with houses. Diodorus con-
fesses(ii. 9, ad Jin.) that but a small part of an
the enclosure was inhabited in his own day,
and Q. Curtius (v. i. § 27) says that as
much as nine-tenths consisted, even in the
most flourishing times, of gardens, parks,
paradises, fields, and orchards.
With regard to the height and breadth
of the walls there is nearly as much differ-
ence of statement as with regard to their
extent. Herodotus makes the height 200
royal cubits, or 337£ feet; Ctesias 50 fathoms,
or 300 feet Pliny and Solinus 200 royal
;
32 feet. Here asrain Pliny and Solinus have merely sally admitted to mark the site, it is necessary to
!
softened down Herodotus; Strabo, however, has a give an account of their present character and con-
new number. This may belong properly to the in- dition, which the accompanying plan will illustrate.
ner wall, which, Herodotus remarks (i. 181), was of About five miles above Hillah, on the opposite
less thickness than the outer. or left bank of the Euphrates, occur a series of
BABtiL, BABYLON BABEL, BABYLON 213
artificial mounds of enormous size, which have single, which are plainly of the same date with the
been recognized in all ages as probably indicating great mass of ruins upon the river-bank. Of these,
the site of the capital of southern Mesopotamia. by far the most striking is the vast ruin called the
They consist chiefly of " three great masses of Birs-Nimrud, which many regard as the tower of
building —
the high pile of unbaked brickwork Babel, situated about six miles to the S. W. of
called by Rich Mujellibe,' but which is known to
'
Hillah, and almost that distance from the Eu-
the Arabs as Babil (A) the building denomi-
' '
; phrates at the nearest point. This is a pyramid-
nated the Kasr or palace (B) and a lofty mound
' '
; ical mound, crowned apparently by the ruins of a
(C), upon which stands the modern tomb of Am- tower, rising to the height of 153^ feet above the
rdm-ibn-' Alb " (Loftus's Chaldaia, p. 17). Besides level of the plain, and in circumference somewhat
1
these principal masses the most remarkable features more than 2000 feet. As a complete description
are two parallel lines of rampart (F F) bounding of it is given under the next article [Babel, Tow-
the chief ruins on the east, some similar but infe- er of] no more need be said of it here. There
rior remains on the north and west (I I and H), is sufficient reason to believe from the inscriptions
an embankment along the river-side (E), a remark- discovered on the spot, and from other documents
able isolated heap (K.) in the middle of a long val- of the time of Nebuchadnezzar, that it marks the
ley, which seems to have been the ancient bed of site of Borsippa, and was thus entirely beyond the
the stream, and two long lines of rampart (G G) limits of Babylon (Beros. Fr, 14).
meeting at a right angle, and with the river form- 3. Identification of stVes. —On comparing the
ing an irregular triangle, within which all the ruins existing ruins with the accounts of the ajicient
on this side (except Babil) are inclosed. On the writers, the great difficulty which meets us is the
west, or right bank, the remains are very slight position of the remains almost exclusively on the
and scanty. There is the appearance of an inclos- left bank of the river. All the old accounts agree
ure, and of a building of moderate size within it in representing the Euphrates as running through
(D), nearly opposite the great mound of Amrdm; the town, and the principal buildings as placed on
but otherwise, unless at a long distance from the the opposite sides of the stream. In explanation
stream, this side of the Euphrates is absolutely of this difficulty it has been urged, on the one
bare of ruins. hand, that the Euphrates having a tendency to run
Scattered over the country on both sides of the off to the right has obliterated all trace of the build-
Euphrates, and reducible to no regular plan, are a ings in this direction (Layard's Xin. and Bab. p.
number of remarkable mounds, usually standing 403 on the other, that by a due extension of the
) ;
" contain traces of architectural ornament —piers, tions of figures are traceable, recalling the state-
buttresses, pilasters, &c." (Layard, p. 506); and in ments of Ctesias Diod. Sic. ) that the brick
(ap.
the rubbish at their base have been found slabs walls of the palace were colored and represented
inscribed by Nebuchadnezzar and containing an hunting-scenes. No plan of the palace is to be
account of the building of the edifice, as well as a made out from the existing remains, which are
few sculptured fragments and many pieces of enam- tossed in apparent confusion on the highest point
elled brick of brilliant hues. On these last por- of the mound. 3. The mound of Amrdm is thought
oMOHAWIL
Ohart of the country round Babylon, with limits of the ancient City, according to Oppert.
stamped with the names and titles of the kings; uments show that Babylon was at no time absorbed
we find buttresses employed to support buildings, into Assyria, or even for very many years together
and we have probable indications of the system of a submissive vassal. Assyria, which she had col-
erecting lofty buildings in stages. On the other onized during the time of the second or great Chal-
hand, mortar unknown, and the bricks are laid
is daean dynasty, to which she had given letters and
either in clay or in bitumen (comp. Gen. xi. 3); the arts, and which she had held in subjection for
they are rudely moulded, and of various shapes and many hundred years, became in her turn (about
sizes sun-dried bricks predominate, and some large b. c. 1270) the predominant Mesopotamian power,
;
buildings are composed entirely of them in these and the glory of Babylon in consequence suffered
;
reed-matting occurs at intervals, apparently used to eclipse. But she had her native kings during the
protect the mass from disintegration. There is no whole of the Assyrian period, and she frequently
trace of ornament in the erections of this date, contended with her great neighbor, being some-
which were imposing merely by their size and so- times even the aggressor. Though much sunk
lidity. from her former greatness, she continued to be the
The first important change which we are able to second power in Asia; and retained a vitality which
BABEL, BABYLON BABEL, BABYLON 217
at a later date enabled her to become once more I
Euphrates as far as the Taurus range, over Syria, " Nergal-shar-ezer, Pab-Mag " of Jeremiah (xxxix.
Phoenicia, Palestine, Idumaea, and (perhaps) a por- 3, He bears this title, which has been
13-14).
tion of Egypt. Thus, among others, the Jews "chief of the Magi" (Gesenius), or
translated
passed quietly and almost without remark, from "chief priest" (Col. Rawlinson), in the Inscrip-
one feudal head to another, exchanging dependency tions, and calls himself the son of a " king of Baby-
on Assyria for dependency on Babylon, and con- lon." Some writers have considered him identical
tinuing to pay to Nabopolassar the same tribute with " Darius the Mede " (Larcher, Conringius,
and service which they had previously rendered to Bouhier); but this is improbable [Darius the
the Assyrians. Friendly relations seem to hare Mede], and he must rather be regarded as a Baby-
been maintained with Media throughout the reign lonian of high rank, who having married a daughter
of Nabopolassar, who led or sent a contingent to of Nebuchadnezzar raised his thoughts to the crown,
help Cyaxares in his Lydian war, and acted as and finding Evil-Merodach unpopular with his sub-
mediator in the negotiations by which that war jects, murdered him and became his successor.
was concluded (Herod, i. 74). At a later date Neriglissar built the palace at Babylon, which
hostilities broke out with Egypt. Neco, the son seems to have been placed originally on the right
of Psamatik I., about the year b. c. 608, invaded bank of the river. He was probably advanced in
the Babylonian dominions on the southwest, and life at his accession, and thus reigned but four
made himself master of the entire tract between years, though he died a natural death, and left the
his own country and the Euphrates (2 K. xxiii. 2 J, crown to his son, Laborosoarchod. This prince,
l
and xxiv. 7). Nabopolassar was now advanced in though a mere lad at the time of his father's de-
life, and not able to take the field in person (Beros. cease, was allowed to ascend the throne without
Fr. 14). He therefore sent his son, Nebuchadnez- difficulty but when he had reigned nine months,
:
zar, at the head of a large army, against the he became the victim of a conspiracy among his
Egyptians, and the battle of Carchemish, which friends and connections, who, professing to detect
soon followed, restored to Babylon the former limits in him symptoms of a bad disposition, seized him,
of her territory (comp. 2 K. xxiv. 7 with Jer. xlvi. and tortured him to death. Nabonidus (or Laby-
2-12). Nebuchadnezzar pressed forward and had netus), one of the conspirators, succeeded; he is
reached Egypt, when news of his father's death called by Berosus " a certain Nabonidus, a Baby-
recalled him ; and hastily returning to Babylon, he lonian" (ap. Joseph, c. Ap. i. 21), by which it
was fortunate enough to find himself, without any would appear that he was not a member of the
struggle, acknowledged king (b. c. 604). royal family and this is likewise evident from his
;
A complete account of the works and exploits of inscriptions, in which he only claims for his father
this great monarch — by far the most remarkable the rank of " Kab-Mag." Herodotus seems to have
of all the Babylonian kings — will be given in a been mistaken in supposing him (i. 188) the son
later article. [Nebuchadnezzar.] It is enough of a greai queen, Nitocris, and (apparently) of a
to note in this place that he was great both in former king, Labynetus (Nebuchadnezzar V ). In-
peace and in war, but greater in the former. Be- deed it may be doubted whether the Babylonian
sides recovering the possession of Syria and Pales- Nitocris of Herodotus is really a historical person-
tine, and carrying off the Jews after repeated rebel- age. His authority is the sole argument for her
lions into captivity, he reduced Phoenicia, besieged existence, which it is difficult to credit against the
and took Tyre, and ravaged, if he did not actually silence of Scripture, Berosus, the Canon, and the
conquer, Egypt. But it was as the adorner and Babylonian monuments. She may perhaps have
beautitier of his native land — as the builder and been a wife of Nebuchadnezzar; but in that case
restorer of almost all her cities and temples — that she must have been wholly unconnected with Na-
this monarch obtained that great reputation which bonidus, who certainly bore no relation to that
has handed down his name traditionally in the monarch.
East, on a par with those of Nimrod, Solomon, and Nabonidus, or Labynetus (as he was called by
Alexander, and made it still a familiar term in the the Greeks), mounted the throne in the year B. c.
mouths of the people. Probably no single man 555, very shortly before the war broke out between
ever left behind him as his memorial upon the Cyrus and Crasus. He entered into alliance with
earth one half the amount of building which was the latter of these monarchs against the former,
erected by this king. The ancient ruins and the and had the struggle been prolonged would have
modern towns of Babylonia are alike built almost sent a contingent into Asia Minor. Events pro-
exclusively of his bricks. Babylon itself, the capital, ceeded too rapidly to allow of this; but Nabonidus
was peculiarly the object of his attention. It was had provoked the hostility of Cyrus by the mere
here that, besides repairing the walls and restoring fact of the alliance, and felt at once that sooner or
the temples, he constructed that magnificent palace, later he would have to resist the attack of an
which, with its triple inclosure, its hanging gaidens, avenging army. He probably employed his long
its plated pillars, and its rich ornamentation of and peaceful reign of 17 years in preparations
enamelled brick, was regarded in ancient times as against the dreaded foe, executing the defensivo
one of the seven wonders of the world (Strab. xvi. works which Herodotus ascribes to his mother
1, § 5.)
(i. 185), and accumulating in the town abundant
BABEL, BABYLON BABEL, BABYLON 219
stores of provisions (ib. c. 190). In the year b. c. with " (Jer.
fire li. 58). The defenses, that is to
539 the attack came. Cyrus advanced at the head say, were ruined though it is not to be supposed
;
of his irresistible hordes, but wintered upon the that the laborious and useless task of entirely de-
Diyaleh or Gyndes, making his final approaches molishing the gigantic fortifications of the place
in the ensuing spring. Nabonidus appears by the was attempted, or even contemplated, by the con-
inscriptions to have shortly before this associated queror. Babylon was weakened, but it continued
with him in the government of the kingdom his a royal residence, not only during the life-time of
son, Bel-shar-ezer or Belshazzar on the approach
; Darius the Mede, but through the entire period of
of Cyrus, therefore, he took the field himself at the the Persian empire. The Persian kings held their
head of his army, leaving his son to command in court at Babylon during the larger portion of the
the city. In this way, by help of a recent dis- year; and at the time of Alexander's conquests it
covery, the accounts of Berosus and the book of was still the second, if not the first, city of the
Daniel — hitherto regarded as hopelessly conflict- empire. It had, however, suffered considerably on
ing — may be reconciled. [Belshazzar.] Na- more than one occasion subsequent to the time of
bonidus engaged the army of Cyrus, but was de- Cyrus. Twice in the reign of Darius (Behist. Ins.),
feated and forced to shut himself up in the neigh- and once in that of Xerxes (Ctes. Pers. § 22), it
boring town of Borsippa (marked now by the had risen against the Persians, and made an effort
Birs-Nimrud), where he continued till after the to regain its independence. After each rebellion its
fall of Babylon (Beros. ap. Joseph, c. Ap. i. 21). defenses were weakened, and during the long period
Belshazzar guarded the city, but over-confident in of profound peace which the Persian empire enjoyed
its strength kept insufficient watch, and recklessly from the reign of Xerxes to that of Darius Codo-
indulging in untimely and impious festivities (Dan. mannus they were allowed to go completely to de-
v.), allowed the enemy to enter the town by the cay. The public buildings also suffered grievously
channel of the river (Herod, i. 19.1 ; Xen. Cyrop. from neglect. Alexander found the great temple
vii. 7). Babylon was thus taken by a surprise, as of Belus in so ruined a condition that it would have
With the conquest by Cyrus commenced the Rennell's Essay in Rich's Babylon and Persepolis.
decay and ruin of Babylon. The " broad walls " On the history, compare M. Niebuhr's Geschichte
were then to some extent " broken down " (Beros. Assures and Babel's ; Brandis's Rerum Assyria-
Fr. 14), and the "high gates" probably " burnt rum Tempora Emendata ; Bosanquet's Sacred
220 BABEL, TOWER OF BABEL, TOWER OF
and Profane Chronology ; and Rawlinson's Herod- place to a certain tower-like building, which thej
otus, vol. i. Essays vi. and viii. G. E. called the temple (Herod., Diod. Sic, Man; Plin.,
* As a fitting close to this article we subjoin &c), or the tomb (Strabo) of Belus, it has generally
from Prof. Rawlinson's new volume (Monarchies been supposed that the tower was in course of
of the Ancient. Eastern World, iii. 516-18) his time finished, and became the principal temple of
account of the capture of Babylon by Cyrus, the Chaldaean metropolis. Certainly this may have
which so remarkably fulfilled the Hebrew pre- been the case; but while there is some evidence
dictions : —
" When all was prepared, Cyrus de- against there is none in favor of it. A Jewish
termined to wait for the arrival of a certain festi- tradition, recorded by Bochart (Phateff, i. 9), de-
val, during which the whole population were wont clared that fire fell from heaven, and split the tower
to engage in drinking and revelling, and then through to its foundation; while Alexander Poly-
silently in the dead of night to turn the water histor (Fr. 10) and the other profane writers who
of the river and make his attack. All fell out noticed the tower (as Abydenus, Frs. 5 and 6),
as he hoped and wished. The festival was even said that it had been blown down by the winds.
held with greater pomp and splendor than usual; Such authorities therefore as we possess, represent
for Belshazzar, with the natural insolence of youth, the building as destroyed soon after its erection.
to mark his contempt for the besieging army, When the Jews, however, were carried captive into
abandoned himself wholly to the delights of the Babylonia, struck with the vast magnitude and
season, and himself entertained a thousand lords peculiar character of certain of the Babylonian tem-
in his palace. Elsewhere the rest of the popula- ples, they imagined that they saw in them, not
tion was occupied in feasting and dancing. Drunk- merely buildings similar in type and mode of con-
en riot and mad excitement held possession of the
struction to the "tower" (v^^l) of their Script-
town: the siege was forgotten; ordinary precau-
tions were neglected. Following the example of ures, but in this or that temple they thought to
their king, the Babylonians gave themselves up recognize the very tower itself. The predominant
for the night to orgies in which religious frenzy opinion was in favor of the great temple of Nebo
and drunken excitement formed a strange and re- at Borsippa, the modern Birs-Ximrud, although
volting medley. the distance of that place from Babylon is an in-
" Meanwhile, outside the city, in silence and superable difficulty in the way of the identification.
darkness, the Persians watched at the two points Similarlywhen Christian travellers first began to
where the Euphrates entered and left the walls. visitthe Mesopotamian ruins, they generally at-
Anxiously they noted the gradual sinking of the tached the name of " the tower of Babel " to what-
water in the river-bed; still more anxiously they ever mass, among those beheld by them, was the
watched to see if those within the walls would ob- loftiest and most imposing. Rawulf in the 16th
serve the suspicious circumstances and sound an century found the " tower of Babel " at Felugiah,
alarm through the town. Should such an alarm Pietro della Yalle in the 18th identified it with the
be given, all their labors would be lost. . . . ruin Babil near HiUah, while early in the present
But as they watched no sounds of alarm reached century Rich and Ker Porter revived the Jewish
them — only a confused noise of revel and riot, notion, and argued for its identity with the Birs.
which showed that the unhappy townsmen were There are in reality no real grounds either for iden-
quite unconscious of the approach of danger. tifying the tower with the Temple of Belus, or for
" At last shadowy forms began to emerge from supposing that any remains of it long survived the
the obscurity of the deep river-bed, and on the check which the builders received, when they were
landing-places opposite the river gates scattered " scattered abroad upon the face of the earth," and
clusters of men grew into solid columns, the — " left off to build the city " (Gen. xi. 8). All then
undefended gateways were seized, a war-shout — that can be properly attempted by the modern critic
was raised, —
the alarm was taken and spread, — is to show (1.) what was the probable type and
and swift runners started off to show the King '
character of the building: and (2.) what were the
of Babylon that his city was taken at one end.' materials and manner of its construction.
In the darkness and confusion of the night a terri- With regard to the former point, it may readily
ble massacre ensued. The drunken revellers could be allowed that the Birs-Nimmd, though it can-
make no resistance. The king, paralyzed with fear at not be the tower of Babel itself, which was at
the awful handwriting on the wall, which too late Babylon (Gen. xi. 9), jet, as the most perfect rep-
had warned him of his peril, could do nothing even to resentative of an ancient Babylonian temple-tower,
check the progress of the assailants, who carried all may well be taken to show, better than any other
before them everywhere. Bursting into the palace, ruin, the probable shape and character of the edifice.
a band of Persians made thai way to the presence This building appears, by the careful examinations
of the monarch and slew him on the scene of recently made of it, to have been a sort of oblique
his impious revelry. Other bands carried fire pyramid built in seven receding stages. " Upon a
and sword through the town. When morning platform of crude brick, raised a few feet above the
came, Cyrus found himself undisputed master of level of the alluvial plain, was built of burnt brick
the city." H. the first or basement stage — an exact square, 272
feet each way, and 26 feet in perpendicular height.
BA'BEL, TOWER OF. The " tower of Upon this stage was erected a second, 230 feet each
Babel" only mentioned once in Scripture (Gen.
is way, and likewise 26 feet high: which, however,
xi. 4-9), and then as incomplete. No reference to was not placed exactly in the middle of the first,
it appears in the prophetic denunciations of the but considerably nearer to the southwestern end,
punishments which were to fall on Babylon for her which constituted the back of the building. The
pride. It is therefore quite uncertain whether the other stages were arranged similarly —
the third
building ever advanced beyond its foundations. being 188 feet, and again 26 feet high ; the fourth
As, however, the classical writers universally in 146 feet square, and 15 feet high; the fifth 104
their descriptions of Babylon gave a prominent feet square, and the same height as the fourth ; the
BABEL, TOWER OF BABEL, TOWER OF 221
sixth 62 and again the same height;
feet square, which belonged to very primitive
times (b. c.
and the seventh 20 feet square and once more the 2230); that of the emplacement, so that the four
same height. On the seventh stage there was angles face the four cardinal points, is likewise
probably placed the ark or tabernacle, which seems common to those ancient structures; while the
to have been again 15 feet high, and must have square form is universal. On the other hand it
nearly, if not entirely, covered the top of the seventh may be doubted whether so large a number of
story. The entire original height, allowing three was common. The Mugheir and Warka
stages
feet for the platform, would thus have been 150 temples have no more than two, and probably
feet, or, without the platform, 153 feet. The whole never had more than three, or at most, four stages.
formed a sort of oblique pyramid, the gentler slope The great temple of Belus at Babylon (Bahil)
facing the X. E., and the steeper inclining to the shows only one stage; though, according to the best
S. W. On the N. E. side was the grand entrance, authorities, it too was a sort of pyramid (Horod.,
and here stood the vestibule, a separate building, Strabo). The height of the Birs is 153i feet, that
the debris from which having joined those from of Babil 140 (?), that of the Warka temple 100,
the temple itself, fill up the intermediate space, that of the temple at Mugheir 50 feet. Strabo's
and very remarkably prolong the mound in this statement that the tomb of Belus was a stade (606
direction " (Rawlinson's Herodotus, vol. ii. pp. feet) in height would thus seem to be a gross exag-
582-3). The Birs temple, which was called the geration. Probably no Babylonian tower ever
" Temple of the Seven Spheres," was ornamented equalled the Great Pyramid, the original height of
with the planetary colors (see the plan), but this which was 480 feet.
was most likely a peculiarity. The other chief With regard to the materials used in the tower,
features of it seem to have been common to most, and the manner of its construction, more light is to
if not all, of the Babylonian temple-towers. The be obtained from the Warka and Mugheir build-
feature of stages is found in the temples at Warka ings than from the Birs. The Birs was rebuilt
and Mugheir (Loftus's Chaldasa, pp. 129 and 108) from top to bottom by Nebuchadnezzar, and shows
the mode of construction prevalent in Babylon at than that which we perceive from Script-
style of art
the best period ; the temples at Warka and Mug- ure to have obtained at the date of the tower.
heir remain to a certain extent in their primitive Burnt bricks were employed in the composition of
condition, the upper stories alone having been ren- the tower (Gen. xi. 3), and though perhaps it is
ovated. The Warka temple is composed entirely
somewhat doubtful what the chemar ("IQn) used
of sun-dried bricks, which are of various shapes
and sizes the cement used is mud and reeds are
; ;
for mortar may have been (see Fresnel in Joum.
largely employed in the construction. It is a build- Asiastique for June, 1853, p. 9), yet on the whole
*ng of the most primitive type, and exhibits a ruder it is most probable that bitumen (which abounds
222 BABEL, TOWER OF BABYLON
of "scaling heaven" was
present to the minds of
those who raised either
the Tower of Babel, or any
— M y> § fe other of the Babylonian
temple-towers. The ex-
pression used in Genesis
(xi. 4) is a mere hyperbole
§ -|i|l ill for great height (comp.
Deut. i. 28; Dan. iv. 11,
1*5 Ac), and should not be
I 1 i "H § I
taken literally. Military
defense was probably the
primary object of such ed-
«T n" o ef kT t*T of h" ifices in early times: but
Jerusalem where the Apostles were assembled on 9). At a later period, when the warlike Chaldae-
the Day of Pentecost. ans acquired the predominance in the 7th cent.
4. Others place it on the Tigris, and identify it b. c, the names Chaldaean and Babylonian became
with Seleucia or Ctesiphon, but for this there is no almost synonymous (Ez. xxiii. 14, 15; comp. Is.
evidence. The two theories which remain are wor- xlviii. 14, 20). W. A. W.
thy of .more consideration.
5. That by Babylon is intended the small fort
BABYLO'NISH GARMENT, literally
of that name which formed the boundary between HIH^ tyiKh iroinix-n- pallium cocci-
("JSiJtP :
Upper and Lower Egypt. Its site is marked by neum) "robe of Shinar" (Josh. vii. 21). An am-
the modern Baboul in the Delta, a little north of ple robe, probably made of the skin or fur of an
Fostat, or old Cairo. According to Strabo it de- animal (comp. Gen. xxv. 25), and ornamented with
rived its name from some Babylonian deserters who embroidery, or perhaps a variegated garment with
had settled there. In his time it was the head- figures inwoven in the fashion for which the Baby-
quarters of one of the three legions which garri- lonians were celebrated. Josephus {Ant. v. 1, § 10)
soned Egypt. Josephus {Ant. ii. 15, § 1) says it describes it as "a royal mantle {^\a/j.vSa flaai-
was built on the site of Letopolis, when Cambyses Aeiof), all woven with gold." Tertullian {De
subdued Egypt. That this is the Babylon of 1 Pet. Habitu muliebn, c. i.) tells us that while the Syr-
is the tradition of the Coptic Church, and is main- ians were celebrated for dyeing, and the Phrygians
tained by Le Clerc, Mill, Pearson, and others. for patchwork, the Babylonians inwove their colors.
There is, however, no proof that the Apostle Peter For this kind of tapestry work they had a great rep-
was ever in Egypt, and a very slight degree of utation (Pliny viii. 74 Cvhres diversos pictures
:
probability is created by the tradition that his com- intexere Babylon maxime celebrnvit, et nomen im-
panion Mark was bishop of Alexandria. posuit). Compare also Martial {Ep. viii. 28):
The most natural supposition of all is that by
Babylon is intended the old Babylon of Assyria,
Non ego praetulerim Babylonica picta superbe
Texta, Semiramia quae variantur acu
which was largely inhabited by Jews at the time
in question (Joseph. Ant. xv. 3, § 1 Philo, De Virt.
; and the Babylonia peristromata of Plautus {Stich.
p. 1023, ed. Franc. 1691). The only argument ii. 2, 54; see also Joseph. B. J. vii. 5, § 5; Plut.
against this view is the negative evidence from the M. Cato, iv. 5). Perhaps some of the trade in
silence of historians as to St. Peter's having vis- these rich stuffs between Babylon and the Phoeni-
ited the Assyrian Babylon, but this cannot be cians (Ez. xxvii. 24) passed through Jericho, as
allowed to have much weight. Lightfoof.'s remarks well as the gold brought by the caravans of Sheba,
are very suggestive. In a sermon preached at St. which they may have left in exchange for the prod-
Mary's, Cambridge ( Works, ii. 1144, Eng. folio ed.), ucts of its fertile soil (Josh. vii. 21). [Jericho.]
he maintained that Babylon of Assyria is intended, Rashi has a story that the king of Babylon had a
because " it was one of the greatest knots of Jews palace at Jericho, probably founded on the fact that
in the world," and St. Peter was the minister of the robe of the king of Nineveh (Jon. iii. 6) is
the circumcision. Again, he adds, " Bosor (2 Pet.
called i""H;TS, addereth. In the Bereshith Rabba
ii. 15) speaks Peter in Babylon," it being the
(§ 85, fol.' 75, 2, quoted by Gill) it is said that the
Chaldee or Syriac pronunciation of Pethor in Num.
robe was of Babylonian purple. Another story in
xxii. 5. This last argument has not, perhaps, much
the same passage is that the king of Babylon had
weight, as the same pronunciation may have char-
a deputy at Jericho who sent him dates, and the
acterized the dialect of Judaea. Bentley gave his
king in return sent gifts, among which was a
him
Buffrage in favor of the ancient Babylon, quoting
garment of Shinar. Kimchi (on Josh. vii. 21)
Joseph, c. Jp. i. 7 {Grit. Sacr. p. 81, ed. Ellis).
quotes the opinions of R. Chanina bar R. Isaac
W. A. W.
that the Babylonish garment was of Babylonian
* The writer above has mentioned English
purple, of Rab that it was a robe of fine wool, and
names only. Of German writers who hold that the of Shemuel that it was a cloak washed with alum,
Babylon of Assyria is meant (1 Pet. v. 13), are which we learn from Pliny (xxxv. 52) was used in
Steiger (on Pet. Einl. p. 23); De Wette (Exey. W. A. W.
dyeing wool.
Handb. in loc); Winer {Realm, i. 124); Credner
{Einl. in dm N.T., p. 643); Bleek {Einl. in das BA'CA, THE VALLEY OF (p»5
N. T., p.567); Neander {PJlanzung, ii. 590);
Fronmiiller (on 1 Peter in Lange's Bibelwerlc, p. S32H : tov K\av6fxuvos [Alex, -/tows]
/coj\ebs :
64), and others. Neander thinks that the wife of Vallis lacrymarum), a valley somewhere in Pales-
Peter (<rw€KAe/cH)) is meant (1 Pet. v. 13), and tine, through which the exiled Psalmist sees in vis-
not the church in Babylon. H. ion the pilgrims passing in their march towards
the sanctuary of Jehovah at Zion (Ps. lxxxiv. 6).
BAB'YLON, in the Apocalypse, is the
sym- The passage seems to contain a play, in the man-
bolical name by which Rome is denoted (Rev. xiv. ner
of Hebrew poetry, on the name of the trees
8, xvii., xviii.). The power of Rome was regarded
by the later Jews as that of Babylon by their fore- (D'WSl; Mulberry) from which the valley
fathers (comp. Jer. Ii. 7 with Rev. xiv. 8), and
probably derived its name, and the " tears " 022)
hence, whatever the people of Israel be understood
shed by the pilgrims in their joy at their approach
to symbolize, Babylon represents the antagonistic
to Zion. These tears were so abundant as to turn
principle. [Revelation.] W. A. W. the dry valley in which the Bacaim trees delighted
(Niebuhr, quoted in Winer, s. v.) into a springy
BABYLONIANS (N.^22, bay^JS :
BafivAwvioi'- Babylonii, Jilii Babylonis). The . or marshy place (^3?*?). Tbat tlle vaUev wa9 a
224 BACCHIDES BADGER-SKINS
real locality is most probable, from the use of the BACCHU'RUS (PaKxovpos- Zaccarus), one
definite article before the name (Gesen. Thes. p. 205). of the " holy singers " (twv Upo^/aKTuv) who had
taken a foreign wife (1 Esdr. ix. 24). No name
A valley of the same name ( LX^vJ! ^<3N ) still
corresponding with this is traceable in the parallel
list in Ezra.
exists in the Sinaitic district (Burck. p. 619).
The rendering of the Targum is Gehenna, i. e. BACCHUS. [Dionysus.]
the Ge-Hinnom or ravine below Mount Zion. This BACE'NOR (BaK-qvwp: Bacenor), apparent-
locality agrees well with the mention of Baeaim ly a captain of horse in the army of Judas Macca-
trees in 2 Sam. v. 23. G. baeus (2 Mace. xii. 35). Or possibly rod $a.K7]vo-
* This valley, according to the general view of pos may have been the title of one of the Jewish
interpreters (Hengstenberg, Tholuck, Hupfeld)is not companies or squadrons.
an actual, but an idealized place. Human life is a
pilgrimage (Gen. xlvii. 9), and those who serve God
BACHRITES, THE
("Hpan: LXX.
and have faith in Him, bear cheerfully its hardships. omits [in most MSS. ; Comp. t, Bex e pO um :
f -
His people find cause for thanksgiving and joy un- Becheritarum), the family of Bechek, son of
der circumstances the most adverse and trying (2 Ephraim (Num. xxvi. 35). [Bekiah.]
Cor. vi. 4-10 Philip, iv. 6,7). The later lexicogra-
;
Comp.
Hupfeld finds no allusion to the mulberry ra vaiclvdiva;
Aid. ed. Idudiva; vdi/Btva,
trickle.
al. TreTrvpui/xeva in Ex. xxv. 5; Alex. Sep/xara
tree (which complicates needlessly the idea), but
in Ex. xxxv. 7; ucLkivOos; Aq. and Sym.
only a of the concinnity of the figure: the ayia
mark
in Ez. xvi. 10: peUes ianthiruB, ianihinus).
bitter tearsbecome to us as it were fountains of IdvQiva
The Hebrew tachash, which the A. V. renders
sweet water (Die Psalmen, ii. 429). Dr. Robinson
badger, occurs in connection with 'dr,dr<5rt (" skin,"
has a note against the idea of a proper name in this
xxxv. 7, 23,
passage (Phys. Geogr. p. 124). The " valley of "skins"), in Ex. xxv. 5, xxvi. 14,
xxxvi. 19; Num. iv. 6, 8, 11, 12, 14, 25. In Ez.
the shadow of death " (Ps. xxiii. 4) is no doubt a
xvi. 10 tachash occurs without oroth, and is men-
similar expression. H.
tioned as the substance out of which women's shoes
BACCHIDES (BewexfoTjs), a friend of Anti- were made; in the former passages the tachash
ochus Epiphanes (Joseph. Ant. xii. 10, § 2) and skins are named in relation to the tabernacle, ark,
governor of Mesopotamia (eV t<$ ir4pav too irora-
&c., and appear to have formed the exterior cover-
/j.ov, 1 Mace. vii. 8; Joseph. I. c), who was com- There is much ob-
ing of these sacred articles.
missioned by Demetrius Soter to investigate the scurity as to the meaning of the word tachash.
charges which Alcimus preferred against Judas Mac- The ancient versions seem nearly all agreed that it
caba;us. He confirmed Alcimus in the high priest- denotes not an animal, but a color, either black or
hood, and having inflicted signal vengeance on the sky-blue amongst the names of those who adopt ;
extreme party of the Assidseans [Assideans] he interpretation are Bochart {Hieroz. ii.
this 387),
returned to Antioch. After the expulsion of Alci- Rosenmiiller (Schol. ad V. T., Ex. xxv. 5; Ez.
mus and the defeat and death of Nicanor he led a xvi. 10), Bynaeus (de Calceis Hebreeorvm. lib. i.
second expedition into Judaea. Judas Maccabaeus eh.
3), Scheuchzer (Phys. Sacr. in Ex. xxv. 5),
fell in the battle which ensued at Laisa (b. c. 161);
Parkhurst (Heb. Lex. s. v. ), who observes that " an
and Bacchides reestablished the supremacy of the outermost covering for the tabernacle of azure or
Syrian faction (1 Mace. ix. 25, ol affefiels &vSpes sky-blue was very proper to represent the sky or
Joseph. Ant. xiii. 1, § 1). He next attempted to sur azure boundary of the system." Some versions,
prise Jonathan, who had assumed the leadership as the German of Luther and the A. V., led ap-
of the national party after the death of Judas but parently by the Chaldee, and perhaps by a certain
; ft
Jonathan escaped across the Jordan. Bacchides similarity of sound between the words tachash,
then placed garrisons in several important positions, taxus, dachs, have supposed that the badger (meles
and took hostages for the security of the present titjriifi) is denoted; but this is clearly an error, for
government. Having completed the pacification the badger is not found in the Bible lands. Oth-
of the country " (Joseph. Ant. xiii. 1, 5) he re- ers, as Gesner and Harenberg (in Musceo Brent.
turned to Demetrius (b. c. 160). After two years ii.
312), have thought that some kind of wolf,
he came back at the request of the Syrian faction, known by the Greek name $d>s and the Arabic
in the hope of overpowering Jonathan and Simon, Shaghid, is intended. Hasaeus (in Dissert. Phil-
who still maintained a small force in the desert ohg. Sylloge, 17) and Biisching, in his
diss. ix. §
but meeting with ill success, he turned against preface to the Epitome of Scheuchzer's Physica
those who had induced him to undertake the expe- Sacra, are of opinion that tachash denotes a ceta-
dition, and sought an honorable retreat. When cean animal, the Trichechw manatus of Linnaeus,
this was known by Jonathan he sent envoys to which, however, is only found in America and the
Bacchides and concluded a peace (b. c. 158) with West Indies. Others with Sebald Rau ( Comment,
him, acknowledging him as governor under the de iis qua ex Arab, in mum Tabernac. fueriint
Syrian king, while Bacchides pledged himself not repetita, Traj. ad Rhen. 1753, ch. ii.) are in favor
to enter the land again, a condition which he faith- of tachash representing some kind of seal (Phoca
fully observed (1 Mace. vii. ix.; Joseph. Ant. xii. vitulina, Linn.). Dr. Geddes (Grit. Rem. Ex. xxv.
10, 11; xiii. 1). B. F. W. 5) is of the same opinion. Gesenius understands
a In 1 Mace. ix. 57, his return seems to be referred superbit in coloribus multis" (Buxtorf, Lex. Rab.
to the death of Alcimus. s. v.).
"'
c ''
The Butt of the Greeks is certainly the jackal
t>
W13DD, <!
taxus, sic dictus quia gaudet et
(Canis Aureus).
BADGEB-SKINS BAG 225
some "kind of seal or badger, or other similar (! ) with tachash), seems to imply that
tion, repeated
creature." the skin of some animal and not a color is denoted
Of modern writers l>r. Kitto (f'ict.
Bible on Ex. xxv. 5) thinks that tachash denotes by it. The Arabic dachas or tiichas denotes a
some clean animal, as in all probability the skin of dolphin, but in all probability is not restricted in
an unclean animal would not have been used for its application, but may refer to either a seal or a
the sacred coverings. Col. H. Smith (Cyc. Bib. cetacean, 6 The skin of the Halicore, from its
Lit. [1st ed.] art. Badger), with much
plausibility, hardness, would be well suited for making soles for
conjectures that tachash refers to some ruminant shoes; and it is worthy of remark that the Arabs
of the Aigocerine or Damaline groups, as these near Cape Mussendum apply the skin of these
animals are known to the natives under the names animals for a similar purpose (Col. H. Smith, /. c).
of pacasse, thaCasse (varieties, he says, of the word The Halicore Tabernaculi is found in the Red Sea,
tachash). and have a deep gray, or slaty (hysi/iiuis) and was observed by Eiippell (Mas. Settck. i. 113,
colored skin. Dr. Robinson on this subject (Bib. t. 6), who gave the animal the above name, on the
Res. i. 171) writes: "The superior of the convent coral banks of the Abyssinian coast. Or perhaps
at Sinai procured for me a pair of the sandals usu- tachash may denote a seal, the skin of which ani-
ally worn by the Bedawin of the peninsula, made mal would suit all the demands of the Scriptural
of the thick skin of a fish which is caught in the allusions.Pliny (//. .V. ii. 55) says seal-skins
Red Sea. The Arabs around the convent called it were used as coverings for tents; but it is quite
Tun, but could give no farther account ofit than impossible to come to any satisfactory conclusion in
constructed at Sinai, but would seem hardly a fit- kos' saccus.) Charitim, the "bags" in which
ting material for the ornamental sandals belonging Xaaman bound up the two talents of silver for Ge-
to the costly attire of high-born dames in Palestine, ha,zi (2 K. v. 23), probably so called, according to
described by the prophet Ezekiel" (xvi. 10). Gesenius, from their long, cone-like shape. The
It is difficult to understand why the ancient ver- word only occurs besides in Is. iii. 22 (A. V. "crisp-
sions have interpreted the word tachash to mean* a ing-pins"), and there denotes the reticules carried
color, an explanation which has, as Gesenius re- by the Hebrew ladies.
marks, no ground either in the etymology or in the 2. (D^S sacculus,
: (idpannros, fiapaimiov
cognate languages. Whatever is the substance in-
sacceUw.) a bag for carrying weights (Deut.
Cis,
dicated by tachash, it is evident from Ex. xxxv. 23,
xxv. 13; Prov. xvi. 11; Mic. vi. 11), also used as a
that it was some material in frequent use amongst
purse (Prov. i. 14; Is. xlvi. 6).
The Eye. "
3. v/T '•
KaSiov pera. )
: Cell, translated " bag
in 1 Sam. a word of most general
xvii. 40, 49, is
meaning, and is generally rendered " vessel " or
"instrument." In Gen. xlii. 25, it is the "sack"
in which Jacob's sons carried the corn which they
brought from Egypt: and in 1 Sam. ix. 7, xxi. 5,
it denotes a bag or wallet for carrying food (A. V.
"vessel"; comp. Jud. x. 5, xiii. 10, 15). The
shepherd's "bag" which David had seems to have
been worn by him as necessary to his calling, and
was probably, from a comparison of Zech. xi. 15,
16 (where A. V. " instruments " is the same jvord),
for the purpose of carrying the lambs which were
unable to walk, or were lost, and contained materi-
als for healing such as were sick and binding up
those that were broken (comp. Ez. xxxiv. 4, 16).
elsewhere Baovpi/x; Vat. 2 Sam. iii. 16, Bopo/cfi; Neh. vii. 53). [The name corresponds to ActJB,
xvi. 5, xix. 16, Baovpei/u.; xvii. 18, Baopei/x; 2 K. 1 Esdr. v. 31.]
8, BaOovpci/x (and so Alex.)] ; Alex, [elsewhere]
ii.
BAKBUKIAH (7Tp2i72 [wastingfrom
Baovpet/x; Joseph. Baxoup-fis and Baovpiv- Baku-
rim), a village, the slight notices remaining of
Jehovah] : LXX. omits [in most~MSS., but FA.3
BaK/SctKias, Ba/c/3aias; Comp. Bokx^o-s, Ba/c#a-
which connect it almost exclusively with the flight
of David. It was apparently on or close to the
Kias ' Becbecia] ). 1. A Levite in the time of Ne-
hemiah (Neh. xi. 17. xii. 9).
road leading up from the Jordan valley to Jerusa-
lem. Shimei the son of Gera resided here (1 K.
2. [FA. S Comp. BaK/Sa/ctas.] Levite porter, A
apparently a different person from the preceding
ii. 8), and from the village, when David having
(Neh. xii. 25).
left the " top of the mount " behind him was mak-
ing his way down the eastern slopes of Olivet into BAKING. [Beead.]
the Jordan valley below, Shimei issued forth, and
running along (Joseph. SiaTptx 01 "^ on * ne s '^ e or BA'LAAM (DV?2, i. e. Bileam: BaKadfi;
" rib " of the hill over against the king's party, Joseph. BaKafios- Balaam), a man endowed with
flung his stones and dust and foul abuse (xvi. 5), the gift of prophecy, introduced in Numbers (xxii.
with a virulence which is to this day exhibited in 5) as the son of Beor. He belonged to the Mid-
the East towards fallen greatness, however eminent ianites, and perhaps as the prophet of his people
it may previously have been. Here in the court possessed the same authority that Moses did among
of a house was the well in which Jonathan and the Israelites. At any rate he is mentioned in
Ahimaaz eluded their pursuers (xvii. 18). In his conjunction with the five kings of Midian, appar-
account of the occurrence, Josephus (Ant. vii. 9, ently as a person of the same rank (Num. xxxi. 8
§ 7) distinctly states that Bahurini lay off the main cf. xxxi. 16). He seems to have lived at Pethor,
road (iraides inrpairevTes tt)S 6Sov), which agrees which is said at Deut. xxiii. 4, to have been a city
well with the account of Shimei' s behavior. Here (0^nn3
of Mesopotamia D"]S). He himself
Phaltiel, the husband of Michal, bade farewell to
speaks of being "brought from Aram out of the
his wifewhen on her return to King David at He-
mountains of the East" (Num. xxiii. 7). The
bron (2 Sam. iii. 16). Bahurini must have been
very near the south boundary of Benjamin, but it reading, therefore, "jl^^ ^2^1, instead of ^32
isnot mentioned in the lists in Joshua, nor is any
^fty, which at Num. xxii. 5 is found in some
explanation given of its being Benjamite, as from
Shimei's residing there we may conclude it was. MSS., and is adopted by the Samaritan, Syriac,
In the Targum Jonathan on 2 Sam. xvi. 5, we find and Vulgate versions, need not be preferred, as the
Ammonites do not appear to have ever extended so
it given as Almon (^737). But the situation
far as the Euphrates, which is probably the river
of Almon (see Josh. xxi. 18) will not at all suit alluded to in this place. The name Balaam, ac-
the requirements of Bahurim. Dr. Barclay con- cording to Gesenius [and Fiirst] is compounded
jectures that the place lay where some ruins still
exist close to a Wady Ruicaby, which runs in a
of 72
and 337, " non-populus, fortasse i. q. per-
straight course for 3 miles from Olivet directly egrinus;" according to Vitringa it is
/V? and
towards Jordan, offering the nearest, though not
the best route (Barclay, 563, 4). the hrd of the people ; V;
according to Simo-
Azmaveth "the Barhumite" OprHSH : nis, 3? 72 and D3?, the destruction of the people.
o BapSiafxirris ;
[Vat. Bapatafxftrr)s(] Alex. Ba- There a Bela, the son of Beor, mentioned Gen.
is
pwLieirris' {de Beromi] 2 Sam. xxiii. 31), or " the xxxvi 32, as the first king of Edom. Balaam is
called in 2 Pet. ii. 15, "the son of Bosor:" this
Baharumite" OCTir^n : 6 Bapcc/xi; [Vat.
Chaldaism
Lightfoot ( Works, vii. 80) thinks a for
Beepjueij/; Alex. Bapaa'fxi : Bauramites] 1 Chr. xi.
Beor, and infers that St. Peter was then in Baby-
33), one of the heroesof David's guard, is the
lon. Balaam is one of those instances which
only native of Bahurim that we hear of except
meet us in Scripture, of persons dwelling among
IShimei. G. |
tion, he had begun to conceive that these gifts were they did happen, and that it pleased God thus to
his own, and that they might be used to the fur-
interfere on behalf of His elect people, and to bring
therance of his own ends. He could make mer- forth from the genius of a self-willed prophet, who
chandise of them, and might acquire riches and thought that his talents were his own, strains of
honor by means of them. A custom existed among poetry bearing upon the destiny of the Jewish na-
many nations of antiquity of devoting enemies to tion and the church at large, which are not sur-
destruction before entering upon a war with them. passed throughout the Mosaic records. It is
At this time the Israelites were marching forward evident that Balaam, although acquainted with
to the occupation of Palestine: they were now en- God, was desirous of throwing an air of mystery
camped in the plains of Moab, on the east of Jor- round his wisdom, from the instructions he gave
dan, by Jericho. Balak, the king of Moab, having Balak to offer a bullock and a ram on the seven
witnessed the discomfiture of his neighbors, the altars he everywhere prepared for him; but he
Amorites, by this people, entered into a league with seems to have thought, also, that these sacrifices
the Midianites against them, and dispatched mes- would be of some avail to change the mind of the
sengers to Balaam with the rewards of divination Almighty, because he pleads the merit of them (xxiii.
in their hands. We
see from this, therefore, that 4), and after experiencing their impotency to effect
Balaam was i»i the habit of using his wisdom as a such an object, "he went no more," we are told,
trade, and of mingling with it devices of his own
"to seek for enchantments" (xxiv. 1). His relig-
and perhaps par- ion, therefore, was probably such as would be the
by which he imposed upon others, '
their request, for he invited them to tarry the night could merely guess from the customs in vogue at
the time. Sacrifices had been used by the patri-
with him, that he might learn how the Lord would
regard it. These misgivings were confirmed by archs to what extent they were efficient could only
;
the express prohibition of God upon his journey. be surmised. There is an allusion to Balaam in
Balaam reported the answer, and the messengers the prophet Micah (vi. 5), where Bishop Butler
of Balak returned. The king of Moab, however, thinks that a conversation is pi-eserved which oc-
not deterred by this failure, sent again more and curred between him and the king of Moab upon
more honorable princes to Balaam, with the prom- this occasion. But such an opinion is hardly ten-
able, if we bear in mind that Balak is nowhere
ise that he should be promoted to very great honor
upon complying with his request. The prophet represented as consulting Balaam upon the accepts
again refused, but notwithstanding invited the em- able mode and that the direc-
of worshipping God,
bassy to tarry the night with him, that he might tions found in Micah are of quite an opposite char-
know what the Lord would say unto him further; acter to those which were given by the son of Beor
and thus by his importunity he extorted from God upon the high places of Baal. The prophet is
the permission he desired, but was warned at the recounting "the righteousness of the Lord" in de-
livering His people out of the hand of Moab under
same time that his actions would be overruled ac-
cording to the Divine will. Balaam therefore pro- Balak, and at the mention of his name the history
ceeded on his journey with the messengers of Ba- of Balaam comes back upon his mind, and he is
lak. But God's anger was kindled at this mani- led to make those noble reflections upon it which
occur in the following verses. " The doctrine of
festation of determined self-will, and the angel of
the Lord stood in the way for an adversary against Balaam " is spoken of in Rev. ii. 14, where an allu-
him. The words of the Psalmist, " Be ye not like sion has been supposed to NiKd'Aaos, the founder
to horse and mule which have no understanding, of the sect of the Nicolaitans, mentioned in v. 15,
whose mouths must be held with bit and bridle, these two names being probably similar in signifi-
lest they fall upon thee," had they been familiar to cation. Though the utterance of Balaam was over-
Balaam, would have come home to him with most ruled so that he could not curse the children of
tremendous force; for never have they received a Israel,he nevertheless suggested to the Moabites
more forcible illustration than the comparison of the expedient of seducing them to commit fornica-
tion. The effect of this is recorded in ch. xxv.
Balaam's conduct to his Maker with his treatment
of his ass, affords us. The wisdom with which the A battle
was afterwards fought against the Midian-
tractable brute was allowed to " speak with man's ites, in which Balaam sided with them, and was
the prophet," is palpable and conspicuous. He deavored to curse (Num. xxxi. 8). (Comp. Bish-
Ewald, Gesch. des
was taught, moreover, that even she had a spiritual op Butler's Sermons, serm. vii. ;
S. L.
perception to which he, though a prophet, was a Volkes Israel, ii. 277.)
stranger; and when his eyes were opened to behold * There are but two views that can well be taken
the angel of the Lord, " he bowed down his head of this miracle of " the dumb ass speaking." Did
and fell flat on his face." It is hardly necessary God exert such an influence upon the beast that
to suppose, as some do, among whom are Hengsten- it saw his messenger which men did not see, and
228 BALAAM BALAK
without a reasoning mind distinctly uttered the the dark waters of the Dead Sea witli its black and
words of a rational being ? or did God exert such desolate shores, which were recognized among all
an influence upon Balaam that the reproof of the the eastern tribes as a monument of God's wrath
messenger of God and the beast on which he rode against the impious and ungodly. On the right he
sounded in his ears and sunk into his heart? In sees the land of the Amorites, whom Jehovah had
either case the occurrences were realities to Balaam, just overthrown as proof of His power and purpose
and were the result of a direct interposition of God. to destroy the wicked and to give the victory to His
more palpable on the former, but not less real on people. In the valley of the Jordan lies spread
the latter supposition. out before him the camp of Israel, divided accord-
The arguments for the subjective view (as rep- ing to their tribes, in the midst of which is seen
resented by Tholuck, Hengstenberg and others) on the tabernacle of God, above which hangs the pillar
Balaam are the following: 1. The usual manner of cloud ; while in the distance beyond the camp
in which God revealed himself in that age was by his eyes restupon the land which he knew to be
visions and dreams, and we have no evidence that promised to the people of Israel. Yet even in this
he ever revealed himself otherwise to Balaam, whilst situation, amid so much adapted to show him how
in the first two cases he waited until after night, a thing it is to sin against the Infinite One,
fearful
the proper season for visions and dreams, before he he dared, for the reward with which Balak tempted
gave his answer. 2. No astonishment is indicated his avarice, to abuse his office as a holy prophet
at the communication of the ass, or respect such and to attempt, once and again, to call down curses
as we should naturally expect to be exhibited to on those whom God had blessed. How much more
such a messenger of God. On the other hand he vivid is our conception of Balaam's apostasy and
says in his impatience, " Because thou hast mocked guilt, when we thus place ourselves in imagination
me, I would there were a sword in my hand, for where he stood in that critical hour of his moral
now would I kill thee." 3. At the time of the history
revelation, Balaam's two servants (Num. xxii. 22) In support of the internal or subjective interpre-
and probably the Moabitish messengers (xxii. 35) tation, the reader may consult Herder, Geist der
were with him, and yet they do not seem to have Ebr. Poesie, i. 237; Tholuck's Vermiechte Schrif-
been cognizant of any communication to the ex- ten, i. 406-432; Hengstenberg's Geschjchte Bileams
ternal senses of Balaam. 4. Balaam himself did u. seine Weissagungen (Berlin, 1842); and Prophe-
not perceive the messenger of God which proved so cies of Balaam (Bibl. Sao: iii. 347-378, and 699-
formidable an obstruction to the ass until after its 743). Kurtz maintains the outward or literal view
expostulation, and God had opened his eyes. Com- (Gesckichte des A. Bundes, ii. 477-489).
pare similar language as preparatory to a vision, or Later exegetical helps for the study of Balaam's
internal illumination, in 2K. vi. 17 Ps. cxix. 18. prophecies Keil and Delitzsch in their Commentary
; :
In opposition to this view it may be said: (o.) on the Pentateuch, iii. 176-202 (Clark's Library);
" This occurs in a Historical Book, and unless it Knobel, Exeget. Ilandb. xiii. 121-148; Bunsen's
is expressly stated, we should not interpret these Bibelwerh, i. 261-265 ; and "Wordsworth's Holy
occurrences as seen in vision." But we reply, that Bible, with Notes and Introductions, Part II. 159-
God so often revealed himself in visions, and they 164 (London, 1864).
were so unquestionably relied upon, that the authors Dean Stanley has grouped together with fine
of the Historical Books of the Bible do not consider effect the characteristic points of this " grandest of
it necessary to state in what way a particular all the episodes introduced into the Mosaic nar-
revelation is made. Compare Gen. xxii. 3 xxviii. rative" (History of the Jewish Church, i. 209-218).
;
12 ff., xxxii. 2, and many other passages, (b.) "We Bishop Hall has some good practical reflections on
cannot draw the line of demarkation between what Balaam's character and prophecies ( Contemplations
was seen in vision, and what occurred before the on Historical Passages of the 0. and N. T., book
eyes of all." It is not necessary that we should do vii. 4). Keble's noble hynin (Christian Year:
this one mode is as real as the other it is enough Second Sunday after Easter) should not be over-
; ;
when what is narrated belongs to the sphere of looked. The "sculptor's hand" has graphically
ordinary experience, that we then understand it of bodied forth both the sin of the apostate and the
external events, (c.) " The language in Num. xxii. warning from it for others, in the lines
28, as well as in 2 Pet. ii. 16, implies a direct oral " No sun or star so bright
communication." But it is not necessary to so in- In all the world of light
terpret it. There was a direct communication in That they should draw to Heaven his downward eye
the way of reproof from God to Balaam, and it He hears th' Almighty's word,
matters little whether God put the sound of words He sees the Angel's sword,
Yet low upon the earth his heart and treasure lie."
into the mouth of the dumb beast, or into the ears
H.
of Balaam as coming from the beast.
R. D. C. R. BA'LAC (o BoAok: Balac), Rev. ii. 14.
* The sin of Balaam was one of peculiar aggra- [Balak.]
vation, and is characterized as such in 2 Pet. ii. 15,
BAI/ADAN. [Mekodach-Baladax.]
16, and Jude 11. To see his conduct in its true BA LAH (nb2 Bw\d [Alex. B«A/8a>Aa]
:
light, we must call to mind the geography of the Bala), Josh. xix. 3. [Baal, Geogr. No. 2, 6.]
scene. This professed servant and prophet of Jeho-
vah was standing at the time on one of the sum- BALAK (p^2 : BaAa* : Baltic), son of
mits of the Abarim beyond the Jordan, from which Zippor, king of the Moabites, at the time when
Moses was permitted to behold the Land of Promise the children of Israel were bringing their journey-
just before his death. For the range of view under ings in the wilderness to a close. According to
the eye of the spectator from that position, see under Gesenius the name signifies inanis, vacuus. Balak
Nebo (Amer. ed.). Standing there, Balaam was entered into a league with Midian and hired Balaam
on a mount consecrated to pagan worship and to curse the Israelites but his designs were frus-
;
thronged with idolaters. On his left hand he sees trated in the manner recorded in Num. xxii.-xxiv.
BALAMO BALDNESS 229
mentioned also at Josh. xxiv. 9 Judg. ance" in Is. xlvi. 6, is the word generally used for
He is ; xi.
25; Mic. vi. 5. [Balaam.] S. L. a measuring-rod, like the Greek kui/wv, and like it
too denotes the tongue or beam of a balance.
* Balak's name signifies not inanis, vacuus, but
in the active sense one who makes empty or desolate, Oj% peles, rendered "weight" (Prov. xvi. 11,
" a waster," " spoiler" a complimentary title such
; LXX. and "scales" (Is. xl. 12, LXX.
{,0*7))
as a king or conqueror might bear. The writer o-Tadfx6s) is said by Kimchi (on Is. xxvi. 7) to be
above quotes Gesenius in his Tkesawr. i. 214; but properly the beam of the balance. In his Lexicon
in his other works Gesenius defines the name in he says it is the part in which the tongue moves,
the other way. See his Ihbr. u. Chabl. Honda. and which the weigher holds in his hand. Gesenius
(1835); Hoffmann's Latin ed. 1847; and Dietrich's (Thes. s. v.) supposed it was a steelyard, but there
ed. 1863. burst adopts the same explanation is no evidence that this instrument was known to
(i. 194). The last book of the Bible mentions the Hebrews. Of the material of which the balance
Balak once more, and presents him in the same was made we have no information.
character as the dupe and instrument of Balaam Sir G. Wilkinson describes the Egyptian balance
in leading the people of Israel into gross idolatry as follows: —
"The beam passed through a ring
and licentiousness (Rev. ii. 14). H. suspended from a horizontal rod, immediately above
BAL'AMO. [Jud. viii. 3.] [Baal, Geogr. and parallel to it; and when equally balanced, the
No. 6.] ring, which was large enough to allow the beam to
freely, showed when the scales were equally
BALANCE. Two Hebrew words are thus play poised, and had the additional effect of preventing
translated in the A. V.
the beam tiltingwhen the goods were taken out of
1. D^T^O, mozenayim (LXX. £vy6i>, Vulg. one and the weights suffered to remain in the
statera), the dual form of which points to the double other. To the lower part of this ring a small
scales, like Lat. bilanx. The balance in this form plummet was and this being touched by the
fixed,
was known at a very early period. It is found on hand and found hang freely, indicated, without
to
the Egyptian monuments as early as the time of the necessity of looking at the beam, that the
Joseph, and we find allusions to its use in the story weight was just" (Anc. Eg. ii. 240).
of the purchase of the cave of Machpelah (Gen. xxiii. The expression in Dan. v. 27,." thou art weighed
16) by Abraham. Before coinage was introduced in the balances, and art found wanting," has been
it was of necessity employed in all transactions in supposed to be illustrated by the custom of weigh-
which the valuable metals were the mediums of ing the Great Mogul on his birthday in the presence
exchange (Gen. 21; Ex. xxii. 17; 1 K. xx.
xliii.
of his chief grandees. The ceremony is described
39; Esth. iii. 9; Is. xlvi. 6; Jer. xxxii. 10, &c). in a passage from Sir Thomas Roe's Voyage in
The weights which were used were at first probably India, quoted in Taylor's Calinet, Frag. 186:
stones, and from this the word " stone " continued » The scales in which he was thus weighed, were
to denote any weight whatever, though its material plated with gold, and so the beam on which they
was in later times lead (Lev. xix. 36; Deut. xxv. hung by great chains, made likewise of that most
13, 15; Frov. xi. 1, xx. 10. 23; Zech. v. 8). These precious metal. king, sitting in one of them,
The
weights were carried in a bag (Deut. xxv. 13; Prov. was weighed against silver coin, which imme-
first
xvi. 11) suspended from the girdle (Chardin, Voy. diately after was distributed among the poor; then
iii. 422), and were very early made the vehicles of
was he weighed against gold; after that against
fraud. The habit of carrying two sets of weights jewels (as they say); but I observed (being there
is denounced in Deut. xxv. 13 and Prov. xx. 10, present with my lord ambassador) that he was
and the necessity of observing strict honesty in the weighed against three several things, laid in silken
matter is insisted upon in several precepts of the bags, on the contrary scale By his weight
Law (Lev. xix. 36; Deut. xxv. 13). But the cus (of which his physicians yearly keep an exact ac-
torn lived on, and remained in full force to the days count) they presume to guess of the present stSte
of Micah (vi. 11), and even to those of Zechariah, of his body of which they speak flatteringly, how-
;
who appears (eh. v.) to pronounce a judgment ever they think it to be." It appears, however,
against fraud of a similar kind. The earliest weight from a consideration of the other metaphorical ex-
to which reference is made is the HTD^ttJp, Icesitdh same passage of Daniel that the
pressions in the
weighing in balances is simply a figure, and may
(Gen. xxxiii. 19; Josh. xxiv. 32; Job xlii. 11),
have reference to such a custom as that
which in the margin of our version is in two pas- or may not
sages rendered " lambs," while in the text it is
above described. Many examples of the use of the
" piece of money." It may have derived its name
same figure of speech among Orientals are given in
Oriental Illustrations, p. 502.
from being in the shape of a lamb. We know that Roberts's
W. A. W.
weights in the form of bulls, lions, and antelopes
were in use among the ancient Egyptians and As- BALAS'AMUS
(BaaAffa^os [Aid. BaAa<ra-
syrians. [Money, I. 3.] By means of the balance pos]- Balsamus), in 1 Esdr. ix. 43. The corre-
the Hebrews appear to have been able to weigh sponding name in the list in Ezra is Maaseiah.
with considerable delicacy, and for this purpose
they had weights of extreme minuteness, which
BALDNESS
(nfl"^ <pa\a.Kpa><ns, (paKa- :
2. Hip, kaneh (£vy6v- statera), rendered "bal- seems to have been included
1
under the Ktixhv and
230 BALM BALM
\f/wpd (Lev. xxi. 20, LXX.) which were can be considered conclusive.
disqualifica- ever, The Syriac
tions for priesthood. A man bald on
the back of version in Jer. viii. 22, and the Samaritan in Gen.
xxxvii. 25, suppose eera, "wax," to be meant;
the head is called CHf?, (pa\aicp6s, LXX., Lev.
others, as the Arabic version in the passages cited
xiii. 40, and if forehead-bald, the word used to
in Genesis, conjecture theriaca, a medical com-
describe him is 022, ava.<pa\a,vTtas, LXX., Lev. pound of great supposed virtue in serpent bites.
xiii. 41 (recalvaster). (Gesen. s. vr.) In Lev. Of the same opinion is Castell (Lex. Hept. s. v.
xiii. 29 ft'., very careful directions are given to dis- ^H^). Luther and the Swedish version have
tinguish Bohak, " a plague upon the head and "
salve," " ointment," in the passages in Jeremiah
'
beard (which probably is the Mentagra of Pliny, but
in Ez. xxvii. 17 they read " mastic." The
'
17 (margin, "rosin") as an article of commerce to occur at Joppa both by Rauwolf and Pococke
imported by Judah into Tyre. (Strand. Flor. Pakest. No. 561). The derivation
Many attempts have been made to identify the of the word from a root, " to flow forth," b is opposed
tzdri by different writers, not one of which, how-
to the theory which identifies the pressed oil of the
<* From Maundrell'sdescription of the zuckum Dr. b n*^, " to flow as a wound from a cleft." The
Hooker unhesitatingly identifies it with Balanites
cognate Syriac and Arabic have a similar meaning.
JEgyptiaca, which he saw abundantly at Jericho.
BALNUUS BANI 231
tuchum (Balanites sEgijptiaca with the tzdri, backsliding Israelites became a perpetual reminder
[ ?] )
although this oil is in very high esteem amongst of their abominable treachery against the gracious
the Arabs, who even prefer it to the balm of Mecca, God who would draw them upward, on a very
as being more efficacious in wounds and bruises different height, to himself" (Comm. iib. die Pro-
(see Mariti, ii. 353, ed. Lond.). Maundrell (Journey pheten, iii. 115, ed. 1843). The word after all is
from Ahp. to Jerus., p. 86), when near the Dead really appellative rather than a proper name (A. V.).
Sea, saw the zuckum-tree. He says it is a thorny H.
bush with small leaves, and that " the fruit both
in shape and colour resembles a small unripe walnut.
(HIES BA'MOTH
[heights]: BuliM: Ba-
and then, putting the pulp into scalding water, they Amorite country on their march to Canaan (Num.
xxi. 19, 20). It was between Nahaliel and I'isgah,
skim off the oyl which rises to the top this oyl :
Bonnus), 1 Esdr. ix. 31. [Binnui.] of the towns of Moab in Is. xv. 2. In this last
BALTHA'SAR (Ba\rdaap Balthasar), passage the word is translated in the A. V. " the
:
Bar. i. 11, 12. [Belshazzar.] high places," as it is also in Num. xxii. 41, where
BAMAH (ntt2, a high place). Though the same locality is doubtless referred to." Near
to Bamoth was another place bearing the name of
frequently occurring in the Bible to denote the
elevated spots or erections on which the idolatrous
the same divinity, Baal-meon, or Beth-baal- —
MEON. G.
rites were conducted [High-place], this word ap-
pears in its Hebrew form only in one passage (Ez.
BAN
(Baevdv [Alex. Aid. Bdv] Tubal), a :
is called Bamah (i"Ttt2) unto this day." (LXX. BA'NI (^32 [built, perh. having posterity]),
Vulg. excekum].) Ewald (Propheten, 286) pro- Rom.] translate, noAvSvvdpem vlbs Ta\aa5Si
nounces this verse to be an extract from an older [Vat. -5ej; Alex. iroWvs $vva.(j.ta>s vtos TaSdi;
prophet than Ezekiel. G. Comp. Bavl 6 TaSi: Bonni de Gadi]).
up, but down when you repair to your ' high place
8. Another Levite (Neh. ix. 4; LXX. [ed
'
Rom.] transl. viol Xwvevi [Vat. om. Comp
:
Thus the term (i"TO2) ever in the mouth of the Aid. Alex. Xavavl'- Bani]).
a It will be observed that our Translators have, in different word ODtt?) which is devoid of the special
Num. xxiii. 3, rendered by « high place » a totally
meaning of « Bamoih."
232 BANID BANUAS
0. IBavi; Vat. Alex. Ba«/ei: Bani.] Another spices (Prov. ix. 2; Cant. viii. 2), were perfumed
Levite, of the sons of Asaph (Neh. xi. 22). ointments, garlands or loose flowers, white or brill-
iant robes, after these, exhibitions of music, singers,
BA'NID (Bavlas [Vat. -vet] ; Alex. Bern;
[Aid. Bovi'S:] Bania), 1 Esdr. viii. 36. This rep-
and dancers, riddles, jesting, and merriment (Is.
xxviii. 1; Wisd. ii. 6-8; 2 Sam. xix. 35; Is. xxv.
resents a name which has apparently escaped from
the present Hebrew text (see Ezr. viii. 10). 6, v. 12; Judg. xiv. 12; Neh. viii. 10; Eccl. x. 19;
Matt. xxii. 11; Am. vi. 5, 6; Luke xv. 25). Seven
BANNAIA [3 syl.]
(2afiavva7os [Vat.
days was a not uncommon duration of a festival,
-ous]; Alex. Bavvaiovs ; [Aid. Bavvaia-] Bannus), especially for a wedding, but sometimes fourteen
1 Esdr. ix. 33. The corresponding name in the
(Tob. viii. 19; Gen. xxix. 27; Judg. xiv. 12); but
list in Ezra is Zabad. if the bride were a widow, three days formed the
*BANNER. [Ensign.] limit (Buxtorf, de Conviv. Hebr.). The reminder
BAN'NUS (Bavvovs- Baneas), 1 Esdr. ix. 34. sent to the guests (Luke xiv. 17) was, probably,
[Bani, or Binnui.] only usual in princely banquets on a large scale,
" Whether the
BANQUETS. These, among the Hebrews, involving protracted preparation.
were not only a means of social enjoyment, but slaves who bade the guests had the office (as the
were a part of the observance of religious festivity. vocatores or invitatores among the Romans) of
At the three solemn festivals, when all the males pointing out the places at table and naming the
appeared before the Lord, the family also had its strange dishes, must remain undecided." (Winer,
domestic feast, as appears from the place and the s. v. Gastmahle.) There seems no doubt that the
share in it to which " the widow, the fatherless, and Jews of the O. T. period used a common table for
the stranger" were legally entitled (Deut. xvi. 11). all the guests. In Joseph's entertainment a cere-
Probably, when the distance allowed, and no incon- monial separation prevailed, but there is no reason
venience hindered, both males and females went up for supposing a separate table for each, as is dis-
(e. g. to Shiloh, 1 Sam. i. 9) together, to hold the tinctly asserted in Tosephot Tr. Berach. c. vi. to
regards the special observance by the male sex Germans (Horn. Od. xxiii., xxii. 74; Tac. Gtvm.
(Neh. viii. 17). Sacrifices, both ordinary and ex- 22), and perhaps among the Egyptians (Wilkinson,
traordinary, as amongst heathen nations (Ex. xxxiv. ii. 202, engravings). But the common phrase to
" sit at table," or " eat at any one's table," shows
15; Judg. xvi. 23), included a banquet, and Eli's
sons made this latter the prominent part. The the originality of the opposite usage. The posture
two, thus united, marked strongly loth domestic was (^tE ^, 25^>
1
but his inclination towards alien usages was doubt- to have been limited to the case of a guest who was
less shared by the Herodianizing Jews (Jer. xvi. also a traveller.
5-7 ; Ez. xxiv. 17 Hos. ix. 4 Eccl. vii. 2 Joseph.
; ; ;
viands and wine, which last was often drugged with hemiah.
BAPTISM BAPTISM 233
BAPTISM (0a7TTio>ta). I. It is well known It was natural the priests
that, of all people,
that ablution or bathing was common in most most especially should be required to purify them
ancient nations as a preparation for prayers and selves in this manner. At their consecration Aaron
sacrifice, or as expiatory of sin. The Egyptian were brought to the door of the taber-
and his sons
priests, in order to be fit for their sacred offices, water (Ex. xxix. 4); and
nacle and washed with
bathed twice in the day and twice in the night whenever they went into the sanctuary they were
(Herod, ii. 37). The Greeks and Romans used to enjoined to wash their hands and their feet in the
bathe before sacrifice {Ko lavatum, ut sacrijicem, laver, which was between the altar and the taber-
Plaut. Aulular. iii 6. 43) and before prayer nacle, " that they died not " (Ex. xxx. 20). In Sol-
omon's temple there were ten la vers to wash the
« Haec sancte ut poscas, Tiberino in gurgite mergis things offered for the burnt-offering, and a molten
Mane caput bia terque, et noctem tiumine purgas." sea for the ablution of priests (2 Chr. iv. 2, 6).
Pers. Sat. ii. 15-
The consecration of the high-priest deserves espe-
At the celebration of the Eleusinian mysteries, cial notice. It was first by baptism, then by unc-
on the second day of the greater mysteries, the mys- tion, and lastly by sacrifice (Ex. xxix. 4, xl. 12-15;
tce went in solemn procession to the sea-coast, Lev. viii.).
where they were purified by bathing (see Bid. of The spiritual significance of all these ceremonial
Gr. and Rom. Antiq. p. 453). But, above all, washings was well known to the devout Israelite.
when pollution of any kind had been contracted, " I will wash my hands in innocency," says the
" (Ps.
as by the being stained with blood in battle, puri- Psalmist, " and so will I compass thine altar
fication by water was thought needful before acts of xxvi. 6). " Wash me thoroughly from mine iniq-
devotion could be performed or any sacred thing be uity, and cleanse me from my sin." " Wash me
taken in hand (see Soph. Ajax, 665 Virg. sEn. ii. and I shall be whiter than snow" (Ps. Ii. 2, 7;
;
719, &c. ). Even the crime of homicide is said to comp. Ixxiii. 13). The prophets constantly speak
have been expiated by such means. of pardon and conversion from sin under the same
figure. u Wash you, make you clean " (Is. i. 16).
R Omne nefas omnemque mali purgamiua causam
" When the Lord shall have washed away the filth
Credebant nostri tollere posse senes.
of the daughter of Zion " (iv. 4). "U Jerusalem,
Ah nimium
! faciles, qui crimina csedis
tristia
wash thine heart from wickedness" (Jer. iv. 14).
familiar to the minds of the Israelites. There can the whole was knit up with faith in Him that should
be no question but that there was at this period a come after, even Christ Jesus (Acts xix. 4). It
general expectation of the Messiah's kingdom, an was such that Jesus himself deigned to be baptized
expectation which extended beyond Judaa and with it, and perhaps some of his disciples received
prevailed throughout all the east (" Oriente toto," no other baptism but John's until they received the
Sueton. Vespas. c. iv.). Conquest had made special baptism of the Holy Ghost on the great day
Judsea a province of Rome, and the hope of de- of Pentecost. Yet John himself speaks of it as a
liverance rested on the promises of the Redeemer. mere baptism with water unto repentance, pointing
The last words of Malachi had foretold the coming forward to Him who should baptize with the Holy
of the Angel of the Covenant, the rising of the Ghost and with fire (Matt. iii. 11). And the dis-
Sun of Righteousness, to be preceded by the tinction between John's baptism and Christian bap-
prophet Elijah, to turn the hearts of the fathers to tism appears in the case of Apollos who, though
the children and of the children to the fathers " instructed in the way of the Lord," the faith of
(Mai. iii. 1, iv. 2, 5). The Scribes therefore taught Jesus Christ, and fervent in spirit, speaking and
that " Elias must first come" (Matt. xvii. 10: teaching diligently the things of the Lord, yet
for this expectation of Elias among the Rabbins, knew only the baptism of John ; " whom when
see Lightfoot, Harmony on John i. 21, vol. iv. p. Aquila and l'riscilla had heard, they took him unto
402; Wetstein on Matt. xi. 13). And so, when them, and expounded unto him the way of God
John preached and baptized, the people, feeling the more perfectly" (Acts xviii. 26, 27). Even more
call to repentance, came to him as to one who was observable is the case of the disciples at Ephesus,
at the same time reproving them for their sins, and mentioned Acts xix. 1-6. They were evidently
giving hope of freedom from the afflictu ns which numbered among Christians, or they would not
their sins had brought upon them. He proclaimed have been called disciples, paG-nTai. But when
the near approach of the kingdom of heaven a — they were asked if they had received the Holy
phrase taken from Dan. ii. 44, vii. 14, in use also Ghost since they had believed, they said that they
among the Jews in later times (see Wetstein and had not even heard if there was a Holy Ghost,, an
Lightfoot, //. //. on Matt. iii. 2) and preached
"
— answer which may have signified either that they
a baptism of repentance " for the remission of sins knew not as yet the Christian doctrine of the per-
(Mark i. 4). They readily coupled in their own sonality of the Spirit of God, not having been bap-
minds the necessity of repentance and the expecta- tized in the name of the Trinity, or that theyhad
« Full information on this subject will be found in wyn, Moses and Aaron, bk. i. c. 3 Selden, Be Jure
;
important action of John as a baptist was his bap- (1 John v. 6); for at baptism He came to his
tizing of Jesus. John may probably not have offices of a Priest and an Evangelist; He came
known at first that Jesus was the Christ (see John forth, too, from the privacy of his youth to man-
i.. 31). He knew Him doubtless as his kinsman ifest Himself to the world. But He came " not by
in the flesh, and as one of eminently holy life; but water only," as the Cerinthians, and before them
the privacy of the youth of Jesus, and the humil- the Nicolaitans, had said (Iren. iii. 11), but by
ity of his carriage may have concealed, even from blood also. He had come into the world by birth
those nearest to Him, the dignity of his person. of the Virgin Mary ; He came forth to the world
Yet, when He came to be baptized, John would by the baptism of John. Both at his birth and
have prevented Him, saying, " I have need to be at his baptism the Spirit announced Him to be
baptized of Thee, and comest Thou to me? " He the Son of God. Thus came He not by baptism
knew that his own mission was from God, and that only, but by baptism and birth. His birth, his
it was to call sinners to repentance, warning them baptism, and the Holy Spirit at both of them, were
to flee from the wrath to come, and to prepare for the three witnesses testifying to the one truth (els
the kingdom of God; but he was so conscious of to tsv, v. 8), namely, that Jesus was the Son of
the superior holiness of the Lord Jesus, that he God (v. 5).
thought it unfit that Jesus should submit to bap- V. Baptism of the Disciples of Christ.
tism from him. The answer of Jesus, " Suffer it AVhether our Lord ever baptized has been doubted.
to be so now, for so it becometh us to fulfill all The only passage which may distinctly bear on the
righteousness," may probably have meant that our question is John iv. 1, 2, where it is said " that
Lord, who had taken on Him the form of a sen- Jesus made and baptized more disciples than John,
ant, ami was born under the Law, was desirous though Jesus himself baptized not, but his dis-
of submitting to every ordinance of God (iracrav ciples." We necessarily infer from it, that, as soon
=
b~iKaio<Tvv7)v TravTO, to SiKaiw/xaTci. tov ®eov). as our Lord began his ministry, and gathered to
He bad been circumcised in his infancy; He had Him a company of disciples, He, like John the
been subject to his mother and Joseph; He would Baptist, admitted into that company by the ad-
now go through the transitional dispensation, be- ministration of baptism. Normally, however, to
ing baptized by John in preparation for the king- say the least of it, the administration of baptism
dom. was by the hands of his disciples. Some suppose
230 BAPTISM BAPTISM
that the first-called disciples had all received VI. The Types of Baptism. —
1. St. Peter (1
baptism at the hands of John the Baptist, as must Pet. 21) compares the deliverance of Noah in
iii.
have pretty certainly been the case with Andrew the Deluge to the deliverance of Christians in bap-
(see John i. 35, 37, 40); and that they were not tism. The passage is not without considerable
again baptized with water after they joined the difficulty, though its general sense is pretty readily
company of Christ. Others believe that Christ apparent. The apostle had been speaking of those
himself baptized some few of his earlier disciples, who had perished " in the days of Noah when the
who were afterwards authorized to baptize the rest. ark was a-preparing, hi which few, that is eight
But in any case the words above cited seem to souLs, were saved by water." According to the
show that the making disciples and the baptiz- A. V., he goes on, " The like figure whereunto bap-
ing them went together; and that baptism was, tism doth now save us." The Greek, in the test
even during our Lord's earthly ministry, the formal MSS., is *0 Kai ij/j.as avr'tTvirov vvv (Tw(ei /8o7r-
mode of accepting his service and becoming at- Ticr/ma. Grotius well expounds o.vtWvkov
tached to his company. by kvriffroixov, "accurately corresponding." The
After the resurrection, when the Church was to difficulty is in the relative g. There is no anteced-
be spread and the Gospel preached, our Lord's own ent to which it can refer except vSaros, "water; "
commission conjoins the making of and
seems as if /3dirTt(T/j.a. must be put in appo-
disciples with it
their baptism. The command, " Make with 2, and as in explanation of it.
disciples of sition Noah
all nations by baptizing them" (Matt, xxviii. 10), and his company were saved by water, " which wa-
is merely the extension of his own practice, " Je- ter also, that is the water of baptism, correspond-
sus made disciples and baptized them " (John iv. ingly saves us." Even if the reading were $, it
l). a The conduct of the Apostles is the plainest would most naturally refer to the preceding vSaros.
comment on both; for so soon as ever men, con- Certainly it could not refer to ki/3wtou, which is
vinced by their preaching, asked for guidance and feminine. We must then probably interpret, that,
direction, their first exhortation was to repentance though water was the instrument for destroying the
and baptism, that thus the convert should be at disobedient, it was yet the instrument ordained of
once publicly received into the fold of Christ (see God for floating the ark, and so for saving Noah
Acts ii. 38, viii. 12, 36, ix. 18, x. 47, xvi. 15, 33, and his family; and it is in correspondence with
&c). this that water also, namely, the water of baptism,
Baptism then was the initiatory rite of the Chris- saves Christians. Augustine, commenting on these
tian Church, as circumcision was the initiatory rite words, writes that " the events in the days of Noah
of Judaism. The contrast between them is plain were a figure of things to come, so that they who
the one was a painful and dangerous, the other is a believe not the Gospel, when the Church is build-
simple and salutary rite. Circumcision seemed a ing, may be considered as like those who believed
suitable entrance upon a religion which was a yoke not when the ark was preparing; whilst those who
of bondage baptism is a natural introduction to a have believed and are baptized (i. e. are saved by
;
law of liberty and as it was light and easy, like baptism) may be compared to those who were for-
;
the yoke of Christ, so was it comprehensive and ex- merly saved in the ark by water " (L'pisi. 104, torn,
pansive. The command was unlimited, " Make ii. p. 579 " The building of the ark," he says again,
).
disciples of all nations by baptizing them." The "was a kind of preaching." "The waters of the
arms of mercy were extended to receive the world. Deluge presignified baptism to those who believed
The " Desire of allnations" called all nations to —
punishment to the unbelieving" (lb.).
accept his service. Baptism therefore was a wit- It would be impossible to give any definite ex-
ness to Christ's reception of all men —
to God's planation of the words, " baptism doth sdve us,"
love for all his creatures. But again, as circum- without either expressing a theological opinion or
cision admitted to the Jewish covenant —
to the exhibiting in detail different sentiments. The
privileges and the responsibility attaching to that apostle, however, gives a caution which no doubt
covenant, so baptism, which succeeded it, was the itself may have need of an interpreter, when he
mode of admission to the Christian covenant, to adds, " not the putting away the filth of the flesh,
its graces and privileges, to its duties and service. but the answer (eVepttiTij/xo) of a good conscience
It was to be the formal taking up of the yoke of towards God." And probably all will agree that
Christ, the accepting of the promises of Christ. he intended here to warn us against resting on the
The baptized convert became a Christian as the outward administration of a sacrament, with no
circumcised convert had become a Jew; and as corresponding preparation of the conscience and
the circumcised convert had contracted an obli- the soul. The connection in this passage between
gation to obey all the ordinances of Moses, but baptism and " the resurrection of Jesus Christ
therewith a share in all the promises to the seed may be compared with Col. ii. 12.
of Abraham, so the baptized convert, while con- 2. In 1 Cor. x. 1, 2, the passage of the Red Sea
tracting all the responsibility of Christ's service, and the shadowing of the miraculous cloud are
had a share too in all the promises of God in treated as types of baptism. In all the early part
Christ. of this chapter the wanderings of Israel in the wil-
It is obviously difficult to draw out the teaching derness are put in comparison with the life of the
of the New Testament on the rite of .baptism and Christian. The being under the cloud and the
its significance, without approaching too near to passing through the sea resemble baptism eating ;
the regions of controversy. "We shall endeavor manna and drinking of the rock are as the spiritual
therefore merely to classify the passages which refer food which feeds the Church; and the different
to it, and to exhibit them in their simplest form, temptations, sins, and punishments of the Israelites
and to let them speak their own language. on their journey to Canaan are held up as a warn-
ing to the Corinthian Church. It appears that the
<* MafhjTevcraTe iravra to e'Si^j /SaTrTifovTes avTOvs Rabbins themselves speak of a baptism in the cloud
(Matt, xxviii. 19), compared with /aaOijTas 7roifi (cat (see Wetstein in h. I., who quotes Pirke 1. lUiezer, 1
fiaiTTigei (John ir. 1). 44; see also Schoettgen in h. I.) The passage from
BAPTISM BAPTISM 23T
the condition of bondmen in Egypt was through deeper significance attaches to the comparison of
the Red .Sea, and with the protection of the lumin- death, especially of our Lord's death, to baptism,
ous cloud. When the sea was passed, the people when we consider too that the connection of bap-
were no longer subjects of Pharaoh ; but were, un- tism with the death and resurrection of Christ is
der the guidance of Moses, forming into a new so much insisted on by St. Paul? (See below.)
commonwealth, and on their way to the promised VII. Names of Baptism. —
Prom the types of
land. It is sufficiently apparent how this may re- baptism referred to in the New Testament, we may
semble the enlisting of a new convert into the body perhaps pass to the various names by which bap-
of the Christian Church, his being placed in a new tism seems to be there designated.
relation, under a new condition, in a spiritual com-
1. "Baptism" (0dwTicriJ.a the word 0onrTi<rfJ.6s
:
past verb." —
Alford tn h. I.). The obvious reason
by merpitare (as Tertullian, De Corona Militis, c.
3, " Dehinc ter mergitamur " ) see Suicer, s. v.
for the comparison of the two rites is, that circum-
;
into the waters, and water was to be poured over gued, that no one could then reasonably withhold
him, so our Lord meant to indicate that He him- baptism (calling it "the water") from those who
self had to pass through " the deep waters of afflic-
had visibly received that of which baptism was the
tion " (see Kuinoel on Matt. xx. 22; Schleusner,
sign and seal. With this phrase, to u$wp, "the
s. v. PaTTTtfa)- "To baptize" was used as synon- water," used of baptism, compare "the breaking
ymous with "to overwhelm;" and accordingly in of bread " as a title of the Eucharist, Acts ii. 42.
Lord baptism is used without any qualification, It occurs Eph. v. 26. The whole passage runs,
" Husbands love your own wives, as Christ also
whereas in passages adduced from profane authors
we always find some words explanatory of the mode loved the church and gave himself for it, that He
of the immersion. 6 Is it not then probable that some might sanctify and cleanse it by the washing of
« The Fathers consider the baptism of the sea and and law of Moses," who was the mediator of the old
the cloud to be so a type of baptism, that the sea rep- Covenant. ;r
Baptized into Moses," therefore, is anti-
resented the water, and the cloud represented the thetical to the expression, "baptized into Christ,"
Spirit. (Greg. Naz. Orat. xxxix. 634 e/Sdnrio-e Huii- Rom. vi. 3, Gal. iii. 27.
:
otjs, oAA' iv vSari, ko\ npb toutou ev ve^e'Arj ical iv 8a- As, "His mersere maris." —
'Virg. JEn. vi. 512.
AderoT), Tvn-iicws oe toOto fy, cos Kal ITauAoj ooicct' i) 8a- TjJ <rvjx)popa /3ej3ajrTco-fieVoc. —
Heliodor. JEthiop.
Aourtra toO v'Serros, 17 v«pe\r) tow ITceii/uaTos. See Suicer, ii. 3.
s.v. pd7TTi<r/ia. ) Eis rbi' Mioo-iji' is, according to some, c It is unquestionable, however, that in Mark vii.
by the ministry of Moses or, according to others, 4 j3a7rTi'^<r8ai is used, where immersion of the whole
;
under the guidance of Moses (as Chrysost.,Theophy- body is not intended. See Lightfoot, in he. [For the
lact, and others, hi Ii. I.). Most plainly, however, and opposite opinion, see De Wette in loc. (Exegel. Hanrlb. i.
in the opinion of the most weighty commentators, 200), and Meyer in Inc. (Komm. ilb. d. N. T. ed. 1864).
both ancient and modern, it means *' into the' religion See especially Fritzsche, Evang. Marci, p. 264. H.]
238 BAPTISM BAPTISM
water with the word " (iVa alr^v aytdo-y Kada- and the renewal of the
of the bath of regeneration
piffas t<j> KovTpip rov vSaros eV b-fifj.ari, " that Holy Spirit. If, according to the more ancient
He might sanctify it, having purified it by the and common interpretation, the laver means bap-
[well-known] laverof the water in the word," Elli- tism, the whole will seem pertinent. Christians
cott). There appears clearly in these words a ref- are placed in a new condition, made members of
erence to the bridal bath but the allusion to bap-
; the Church of Christ, by baptism, and they are
tism is clearer still, baptism of which the bridal renewed in the spirit of their minds by the Holy
bath was an emblem, a type or mystery, signifying Ghost. One question naturally arises in this pas-
to us the spiritual union betwixt Christ and His sage. Does avuKaivdaecDs depend on \ovrpov, or
Church. And as the bride was wont to bathe be- on 5io? If we adopt the opinion of those who
fore being presented to the bridegroom, so washing make with irahiyytveaias, dependent on Aou-
it,
in the water is that initiatory rite by which the rpov, which is the rendering of the Vulgate, we
Christian Church is betrothed to the Bridegroom, must understand that the renewal of the Holy
Christ. Ghost is a grace corresponding with, and closely
There is some difficulty in the construction and allied to, that of regeneration, and so immediately
interpretation of the qualifying words, iy py\fx.ari, coupled with it. But it seems the more natural
" by the word." According to the more ancient construction to refer avaKaivaxrews n. a- to Sid,
interpretation they would indicate, that the out- if it were only that the relative, which connects
ward rite of washing and bathing is insufficient with the verse following, belongs of necessity to
and unavailing, without the added potency of the Tlvev/iaTos. Dean Alford, adopting the latter
Word of God (comp. 1 Pet. iii. 21, " Not the put- construction, refers the "washing " to the laver of
ting away the filth of the flesh," <tc); and as the baptism, and the " renewing " to the actual' effect,
KovTpbv rod vdaros had reference to the bridal that inward and spiritual grace of which the laver
bath, so there might be an allusion to the words is but the outward and visible sign. Yet it is to
of betrothal. The bridal bath and the words of be considered, whether it be not novel and unknown
betrothal typified the water and the words of bap- in Scripture or theology to speak of renewed as
tism. On the doctrine so expressed the language the spiritual grace, or thing signified, in baptism.
of Augustine is famous " Detrahe verbum, et quid There is confessedly a connection between baptism
:
est aqua nisi aqua ? Accedit verbum ad elemen- and regeneration, whatever that connection may
tum, et fit sacramentum " (Tract. 80 in Johan.). be. But "the renewal of the Holy Ghost" has
Yet the general use of prj/xa in the New Testament been mostly in the language of theologians (is it
and the grammatical construction of the passage not also in the language of Scripture?) treated as
seem to favor the opinion, that the Word of God a further, perhaps a more gradual process in the
preached to the Church, rather than the words made work of grace, than the first breathing into the
use of in baptism, is that accompaniment of the soul of spiritual fife, called regeneration or new
laver, without which it would be imperfect (see El- birth.
licott, ad h. I.). There is so much resemblance, both in the
4. "The washing of regeneration" (Xovrpbv phraseology and in the argument, between this pas-
naXiyyeveaias, "the bath of regeneration") is a sage in Titus and 1 Cor. vi. 11, that the latter
phrase naturally connected with (he foregoing. It ought by all means to be compared with the for-
occurs Tit. iii. 5. All ancient and most modern mer. St. Paul tells the Corinthians, that in their
commentators have interpreted it of baptism. Con- heathen state they had been stained with heathen
troversy has made some persons unwilling to ad- vices; "but," he adds, "ye were washed " (lit. ye
mit this interpretation but the question probably
; washed or bathed yourselves, aire\ovcra.(rdf), "but
should be, not as to the significance of the phrase, ye were sanctified, but ye were justified in the
but as to the degree of importance attached in the name of the Lord Jesus Christ, and by the Spirit
words of the apostle to that which the phrase in- of our God." It is generally believed that here is
dicates. Thus Calvin held that the " bath " meant an allusion to the being baptized in the name of
baptism but he explained its occurrence in this
; the Lord Jesus Christ though some connect
;
context by saying, that " Baptism is to us the seal " sanctified " and "justified " as well as " washed,"
of salvation which Christ hath obtained for us." with the words " in the name," &c. (see Stanley,
The current of the apostle's reasoning is this. He in foe). But, however this may be, the reference
tells Titus to exhort the Christians of Crete to be to baptism seems unquestionable.
submissive to authority, showing all meekness to Another passage containing very similar thoughts,
all men: " for we ourselves were once foolish, err- clothed in almost the same words, is Acts xxii. 16,
ing, serving our own lusts but when the kindness
; where Ananias says to Saul of Tarsus, "Arise,
of God our Saviour, and his love toward man ap- and be baptized, and wash away thy sins, calling
peared, not by works of righteousness which we upon the name of the Lord " (avaaras Qdirricrai
performed, but according to his own mercy He Kal a.Tc6\ovaai ras a/xaprias crov, f7riKaA.e<ra ue- /
saved us, by (through the instrumentality of) the vos to ovofxa avrov). See by all means Calvin's
bath of regeneration, and the renewing of the Holy Commentary on this passage.
Ghost {Std Kovrpoii iraXiyytviffias Kal avanaivdi- 5. " Illumination " (<pa>Ttfffi6s)- It has been
trews Tlvfifiaros aylov), which He shed on us much questioned whether 0a>Ti£etr0at, "enlight-
abundantly through Jesus Christ our Saviour, that, ened," in Heb. vi. 4, x. 32, be used of baptism or
being justified by his grace, we might be made not. Justin Martyr, Clement of Alexandria, and
heirs of eternal life through hope (or according to almost all the Greek Fathers, use <pa>Ti<rfx6s as a
hope, Kar «A.ir/8a)." The argument is, that synonym for baptism. The Syriac version, the
Christians should be kind to all men, remembering most ancient in existence, gives this sense to the
that they themselves had been formerly disobedient, word in both the passages in the Epistle to the He-
but that by God's free mercy in Christ they had brews. Chrysostom, Theodoret, Theophylact, and
been transplanted into a better state, even a state other Greek commentators so interpret it; and they
of salvation (iawatv Tj/xas); and that by means are followed by Ernesti, Michaelis, and many mod-
BAPTISM BAPTISM 239
ern interpreters of the highest authority (Wetstein 1. The passage in John iii. 5 — " Except a man
cites from Orac. SSari (peori^ffdai)- On '>e born of water and of the Spirit, he cannot enter
Sibyll. i.
the other hand, it isvery commonly alleged into the kingdom of God "
now has been a well-estab- —
that the use is entirely ecclesiastical, not Script- lished battle-field from the time of Calvin. Hook-
ural, and that it arose from the undue esteem tor er's statement, that for the first fifteen centuries
baptism in the primitive Church. It is impossible no one had ever doubted its application to baptism,
to enter into all the merits of the question here. is well known (see Keel. Pol. v. lix.). Zuinglius
If the usage be Scriptural, it is to be found only was probably the first who interpreted it other-
in the two passages in Hebrews above mentioned wise. Calvin understood the words " of water and
but it may
perhaps correspond with other figures of the Spirit" as a %v Sia ivolv, "the washing or
and expressions in the New Testament. The pa- cleansing of the Spirit " (or rather perhaps " by
tristic use of the word may be seen by referring to the Spirit "), " who cleanses as water," referring to
Suicer, g. v. cpa>Ttcrij.6s, and to Bingham, E. A. Matt. iii. 11. ("He shall baptize you with the
bk. xi. ch. i. § 4. The rationale of the name, ac- Holy Ghost and with fire") as a parallel usage.
cording to Justin Martyr, is, that the catechumens Stier ( Words of the Lord Jesus, in h. 1.) observes
before admission to baptism were instructed in all that Liicke has rightly said that we may regard
the principal doctrines of the Christian faith, and this interpretation by means of a %v Sta Svo7u,
hence " this laver is called illumination, because which erroneously appealed to Matt. iii. 11, as now
those who learn these things are illuminated in generally abandoned. Stier, moreover, quotes with
their understanding" (Apol. ii. 94). But, if this entire approbation the words of Meyer (on John
word be used in the sense of baptism in the Epistle iii. 5) : — " Jesus speaks here concerning a spiritual
to the Hebrews, as we have no mention of any baptism, as in chap. concerning a spiritual feed-
vi.
training of catechumens in the New Testament, ing ; in both places, however, with reference to their
we must probably seek for a different explanation visible auxiliary means." That our Lord probably
of its origin. It will be remembered that >p&ra- adopted expressions familiar to the Jews in this
yuiyia was a term for admission into the ancient discourse with Nicodemus, may be seen by refer-
mysteries. Baptism was without question the ini- ence to Lightfoot, H. H. in loc.
tiatory rite in reference to the Christian faith (cf. 2. The prophecy of John the Baptist just referred
Now, that Christian faith is more than once called with the Holy Ghost and with fire (Matt. iii. 11),
by St. Paid the Christian " mystery." The " mys- may more properly be interpreted by a %v 5i<x 5vo7v.
tery of God's will" (Eph. i. 9), "the mystery of Bengel well paraphrases it: —
" Bptritiis Suneius,
Christ" (Col. iv. 3; Eph. iii. 4), "the mystery of quo Christus baptizat, igneam vim habet; atque
"
the Gospel" (Eph. vi. 19), and other like phrases ea vis ignea etiam conspicua fuit oculis hominum
are common in his epistles. A Greek could hard- (Acts ii. 3). The Fathers, indeed, spoke of a
ly fail to be reminded by such language of the threefold baptism with fire: first, of the Holy
religious mysteries of his own former heathenism. Ghost in the shape of fiery tongues at Pentecost;
But, moreover, seeing that " in Him are hid all the secondly, of the fiery trial of affliction and tempta-
treasures of wisdom and knowledge," it seems tion (1 Pet. i. 7); thirdly, of the fire which at the
highly probable, that in three memorable passages last day is to try every man's works (1 Cor. iii. 13).
St. Paul speaks, not merely of the Gospel or the It is, however, very improbable that there is any
faith, but of Christ himself, as the great Mystery allusion to either of the last two in Matt. iii. 11.
of God or of godliness. (1.) In Col. i. 27 we read, There is an antithesis in John the Baptist's lan-
" the glory of this mystery, which is Christ in guage between his own lower mission and the Di-
you," rov /j.v(TTriplov tovtov, os ianv Xpurrbs vine authority of the Saviour. John baptized with
iv u/iiu- (2.) In Col. ii. 2, Lachmann, Tregelles, a mere earthly element, teaching men to repent,
and Ellicott, as we think on good grounds, adopt and pointing them to Christ; but He that should
the reading too fiv(TT7]ptov rod ®eov, Xpiffrov, come after, 6 ipxdfJ-evos, was empowered to bap-
rightly compared by Bp. Ellicott with the preced- tize with the Holy Ghost and with fire. The water
ing passage occurring only four verses before it, and of John's baptism could but wash the body; the
interpreted by him, " the mystery of God, even Holy Ghost, with which Christ was to baptize,
Christ." (3.) And it deserves to be carefully con- should purify the soul as with fire.
sidered, whether the above usage in Colossians does 3. Gal. iii. 27: " For as many as have been bap-
not suggest a clear exposition of 1 Tim. iii. 1G, tized into Christ have put on Christ." In the
rb Trjs ( ucrt/Seias fivcrriipiov hs i<pavepwf)r) K. r. A. whole of this very important and difficult chapter,
For, be the "Mystery of God," He may
if» Christ St. Paul is reasoning on the inheritance by the
well be called also the "Mystery of godliness;" Church of Christ jf the promises made to Abra-
and the masculine relative is then easily intelligible, ham. Christ —
i. e. Christ comprehending his
as being referred to Xptffr6s understood and im- whole body mystical —
is the true seed of Abra-
plied in ft.vcrT7\piov' for, in the words of Hilary, ham, to whom the promises belong (ver. 10). The
" Deus Christus est Saeramentum." Law, which came after, could not disannul the
But, if all this be true, as baptism is the initia- promises thus made. The Law was fit to restrain
tory Christian rite, admitting us to the service of (or perhaps rather to manifest) transgression (ver.
God and to the knowledge of Christ, it may not 23). The Law acted as a pedagogue, keeping us
improbably have been called (puricr^s and after- for, and leading us on to, Christ, that He might
wards (pcerayooyia, as having reference, and as ad- bestow on us freedom and justification by faith in
Him (ver. 24). But after the coming of faith we
mitting to the mystery of the Gospel, and to Christ
himself,who is the Mystery of God. are no longer, like young children, under a peda-
VIII. —
From the names of baptism we must gogue, but we are free, as heirs in our lather's
now pass to a few of the more prominent passages, house (ver. 25; comp. ch. iv. 1-5). "For ye all
not already considered, in which baptism is re- are God's sons (filii emancipati, not ircuSes, but
into Christ, have put on (clothed yourselves in) token and pledge of the spiritual death to sin and
Christ (see Schoettgen on Rom. xiii. 14). In Him resurrection to righteousness and moreover of the ;
is neither Jew nor Greek, neither bond nor free, final victory over death in the last day, through
neither male nor female; for all ye are one in the power of the resurrection of Christ. It is
Christ Jesus" (ver. 26-28). The argument is said that it was partly in reference to this passage
plain. All Christians are God's sons through unionin Colossians that the early Christians so generally
with the Only-begotten. Before the faith in Him used trine immersion, as signifying thereby the
came into the world, men were held under the tute- three days in which Christ lay in the grave (see
lage of the Law, like children, kept as in a state Suicer, «. V. awa5va>,U- a).
of bondage under a pedagogue. But after the IX. Recipients of Baptism. The command to —
preaching of the faith, all who are baptized into baptize was co-extensive with the command to preach
Christ clothe themselves in Him; so they are es- the Gospel. All nations were to be evangelized;
teemed as adult sons of his Father, and by faith and they were to be made disciples, admitted into
in Him they may be justified from their sins, from the fellowship of Christ's religion, by baptism
which the Law could not justify them (Acts xiii. (Matt, xxviii. 19). Whosoever believed the preach-
39). The contrast is between the Christian and ing of the Evangelists was to be baptized, his faith
the Jewish church one bond, the other free one
: ; and baptism placing him in a state of salvation
infant, the other adult. And the transition-point (Mark xvi. 16). On this command the Apostles
is naturally that when by baptism the service of acted; for the first converts after the ascension
Christ isundertaken, and the promises of the Gos- were enjoined to repent and be baptized (Acts ii.
pel are claimed. This is represented as putting on 37). The Samaritans who believed the preaching
Christ, and in Him assuming the position of full- of Philip were baptized, men and women (Acts
grown men. In this more privileged condition viii. 12). The Ethiopian eunuch, as soon as he
there is the power of obtaining justification by professed his faith in Jesus Christ, was baptized
faith, a justification which the Law had not to offer. (Acts viii. 37, 38). Lydia listened to the things
4. 1 Cor. xii. 13 : " For by one Spirit (or in one spoken by Paul, and was baptized, she and her
spirit, iv kv\ TrvtvpaTi) we were all baptized into house (Acts xvi. 15). The jailer at Philippi, the
one body, whether Jews or Greeks, whether bond very night on which he was convinced by the earth-
or free, and were all made to drink of one Spirit." quake in the prison, was baptized, he and all his,
The resemblance of this passage to the last is very straightway (Acts xvi. 33).
clear. In the old dispensation there was a marked All this appears to correspond with the general
division between Jew and Gentile: under the (ins- character of the Gospel, that it shoidd embrace
pel there is one body in Christ. As in Gal. iii. the world, and should be freely offered to all men.
16, Christ is the seed (rb (Tirf'p/xo), so here He is " Him that cometh unto me I will in no wise cast
the body (rb (To>jxa), into which all Christians be- out" (John vi. 37). Like the Saviour himself,
come incorporated. All distinctions of Jew and Baptism was sent into the world " not to condemn
"
Gentile, bond and free, are abolished. By the the world, but that the world might be saved
grace of the same Spirit (or perhaps "in one spirit" (John iii. 17). Every one who was convinced by
of Christian love and fellowship (comp. Eph. ii. 18), the teaching of the first preachers of the Gospel,
without division or separate interests) all are joined and was willing to enroll himself in the company
in baptism to the one body of Christ, his universal of the disciples, appears to have been admitted to
church. Possibly there is an allusion to both baptism on a confession of his faith. There is no
sacraments. " We
were baptized into one body, distinct evidence in the New Testament that there
we were made to drink of one Spirit (%v Tlvevna was in those early days a body of catechumens
iTTOTicrdrifj.ev'- Lachm. and Tisch. omit els)- Both gradually preparing for baptism, such as existed in
our baptism and our partaking of the cup in the the ages immediately succeeding the Apostles, and
communion are tokens and pledges of Christian such as every missionary church has found it neces-
unity. They mark our union with the one body sary to institute. The Apostles, indeed, frequently
of Christ, and they are means of grace, in which insist on the privileges of being admitted to the
we may look for one Spirit to be present with bless- fellowship of Christ's Church in the initiatory
ing (comp. 1 Cor. x. 3, 17; see Waterland on the sacrament, and on the consequent responsibilities
Eucharist, ch. x., and Stanley on 1 Cor. xii. 13). of Christians and these are the grounds on which
;
5. Bom. vi. 4 and Col. ii. 12, are so closely par- subsequent ages have been so careful in preparing
allel that we may notice them together. As the adults for baptism. But perhaps the circumstances
apostle in the two last-considered passages views of the Apostles' age were so peculiar as to account
baptism as a joining to the mystical body of Christ, for this apparent difference of principle. Convic-
so in these two passages he goes on to speak of at that time was likely to be sudden and
tion
Christians in their baptism as buried with Christ strong ; the church was rapidly forming the Apos- ;
in his death, and raised again with Him in his tles had the gift of discerning spirits. All this
resurrection." As the natural body of Christ was led to the admission to baptism with but little for-
laid in the ground and then raised up again, so mal preparation for it. At all events it is evident
His mystical body, the Church, descends in bap- that the spirit of our Lord's ordinance was compre-
tism into the waters, in which also (eV <j5, sc. /3cnr- hensive, not exclusive; that all were invited to
TiVjuaTi, Col. ii. 12) it is raised up again with come, and that all who were willing to come were
Christ, through "faith in the mighty working of graciously received.
God, who raised Him from the dead." B/obably, The great question has been, whether the invi-
as in the former passages St. Paul had brought tation extended, not to adults only, but to infants
forward baptism as the symbol of Christian unity, also. The universality of the invitation, Christ's
declaration concerning the blessedness of infants
a " Mersio in baptismate, vel certe aqua superfusa, and their fitness for his kingdom (Mark x. 14),
sepulturam refert" (Bengel). the admission of infants to circumcision and to the
BAPTISM BAPTISM 241
baptism of Jewish proselytes, the mention of whole is little doubt that the expressions in the Book of
households, and the subsequent practice of the Acts mean only that those who were baptized with
Church, have been principally relied on by the ad- Christian baptism were baptized into the faith of
vocates of infant baptism. The silence of the New Christ, into the death of Christ, not tl^t the form
Testament concerning the baptism of infants, the of words was different from that enjoined by our
constant mention of faith as a prerequisite or con- Lord in St. Matthew.
dition of baptism, the great spiritual blessings which Sponsors. —
There is no mention of sponsors in
seem attached to a right reception of it, and the the N. T., though there is mention of the " ques-
responsibility entailed on those who have taken its tioning " (iirepiirvfjia). In very early ages of the
obligations on themselves, seem the chief objections Church, sponsors (called avdBoxot, sponsores, sus-
urged against pa±dobaptisni. But here, once more, ceptores) were in use both tor children and adults.
we must leave ground which has been so exten- The mention of them first occurs in Tertullian —
sively occupied by controversialists. for infants in the De Baptismo (c. 18), for adults,
X. The Modt: of Baptism. —
The language of as is supposed, in the De Corona Militis (c. 3:
the New Testament and of the primitive fathers " Inde suscepti lactis et mellis concordiam praegust-
sufficiently points to immersion as the common amus." See Suicer, s. v. auaSex ^ -^- ^ n *' le
mode of baptism. John the Baptist baptized in Jewish baptism of proselytes, two or three sponsors
the river Jordan (Matt. iii.). Jesus is represented or witnesses were required to be present (see above,
as " coming up out of the water " (avafiaii/vv curb Lightfoot on Matt. iii. 6). It is so improbable
baptism — the baptism of the sick and dying. answering that he did, they then baptized him in
Questions and Answers. —
In the earliest times place of the departed (Chrys. Horn. xl. in 1 Cor.
of the Christian Church, we find the catechumens xv. ). Epiphanius relates a similar custom among
required to renounce the Devil (see Suicer, $. v. d.iro- the Cerinthians (Hceres. xxviii.), which, he said,
Tacraofxai) and to profess their faith in the Holy prevailed from fear that in the resurrection those
Trinity and in the principal articles of the Creed should suffer punishment who had not been bap-
(see Suicer, i. 653). It is generally supposed tized. The Cerinthians were a very early sect;
that St. Peter (1 Pet. iii. 21), where he speaks of according to Irenaeus (iii. 11), some of their errors
the "answer (or questioning, iwept&T-n/Aa) of a had been anticipated by the Nicolaitans, and St.
good conscience toward God " as an important con- John is said to have written the early part of his
stituent of baptism, refers to a custom of this kind Gospel against those errors; but the Marcionites
as existing from the first (see however, a very dif- did not come into existence till the middle of the
ferent interpretation in Gnomon). The 2d century. The question naturally occurs, Did
Bengelii
"form of sound words" (2 Tim.
i. 13) and the St. Paul in 1 Cor. xv. 29 allude to a custom of
"good profession professed before many witnesses" this kind, which even in his days had begun to
(1 Tim. vi. 12) may very probably have similar sig- prevail among heretics and ignorant persons If '?
the Acts of the Apostles, it is only mentioned as baptism for the dead would lose all its significance.
in " the name of the Lord Jesus," or " in the name It is truly said, that such accommodations to the
of theLord" (Acts ii. 38, viii. 16, x. 48, xix. 5). opinions of others are not uncommon in the writ-
The custom of the primitive church, as far as we ings of St. Paul (comp. Gal. 21-31; and see
iv.
can learn from the primitive Fathers, was always Stanley, ad h. /.). St. Ambrose (in 1 ad Cor. xv.)
to baptize in the names of the three Persons of seems to have acquiesced in this interpretation.
the Trinity (see Suicer, s. v. frairrifa); and there His words are, " The Apostle adduces the example
a * With iiro in Mark i. 10 (T. R.), as quoted above, the remark in the body of the page. See also Acta
itwould be only " from " but Lachmann, Teschendorf,
; viii.39, where the A. V. errs in just the opposite way
and Tregelles read i< there, which would agree with (ex being used there). H.
16
242 BAPTISM BAPTISM
of those who were so secure of the future resurrec- 7. " What shall they do, who are baptized in
tion that they even baptized for the dead, when by the place of the dead? " i. e. who, as the ranks of
accident death had come unexpectedly, the faithful are thinned by death, come forward to
fearing that
be baptized, that they may fill up the company of
the unbaptized might either not rise or rise to evil."
Perhaps it may be said, that the greater number of believers. See also Olshausen as above, who ap-
modern commentators have adopted this, as the pears to hesitate between these last two interpre-
simplest and most rational sense of the apostle's tations.
words. And —
which undoubtedly adds much to On the subject of Baptism, of the practice of
the probability that vicarious baptism should have the Jews, and of the customs and opinions of the
been very ancient —
we learn from Lightfoot (on early Christians with reference to it, much infor-
1 Cor. xv.) that a custom prevailed among the Jews mation is to be found in Vossius, De Baptismo;
of vicarious abolution for such as died under any Suicer, s. W. avaSvoo, (iawTifa, dj/aSe'xo^uai, kAi-
legal uncleanness. vik6s, &c- ;
Wetstein, as referred to above; Bing-
It however, equally conceivable, that the pas- ham, Ecel. Ant. bk. xi. ; Vicecomes, Dissertationes,
is,
sage in St. Paul gave rise to the subsequent prac- lib. i. Lightfoot, Hvr. Hebr.
; and Schoettgen, ;
tice among the Marcionites and Cerinthians. Mis- Hor. Hebr., as referred to above. E. H. B.
interpretation of Scriptural passages has undoubt- * The most elaborate recent work on baptism is
edly been a fertile source of superstitious ceremony, J. W. F. Hr.fling's Das Sakrament der Tanfe, 2
which has afterwards been looked on a£ having Bde. Erlangen, 1846-48. See also the art. Taufe
resulted from early tradition. It is certain that (by Steitz) in Herzog's Real-Encylcl. xv. 428-485.
the Greek Fathers, who record the custom in ques- References to the controversial literature on the
tion, wholly reject the notion that St. Paul alluded subject cannot well be given here. The essay, how-
to it. ever, of Dr. T. J. Conant, The Meaning and Use
2. Chrysostom believes the apostle to refer to (>/'Baptizein philoloyicaUy and historically investi-
the profession of faith in baptism, part of which gated, published as an Appendix to his revised ver-
was, " I believe in the resurrection of the dead," sion of the Gospel of Matthew (New York, Amer.
iri(TT(vcM> (Is veKpaiv avaaraaLv- " In this faith," Bible Union, 1860), and also issued separately, de-
he says, •' we are baptized. After confessing this servesmention for its copious collection of passages
among other articles of faith, we go down into the from ancient authors. A.
water. And reminding the Corinthians of this,
St. l'aul says, no resurrection, why art
If there be
Supplement to Baptism.
thou then baptized for i. e. for the dead
the dead, The "Laying on of Hands" was considered
in the
bodies (ri Kal /Bair-rtf?; inrtp ruv vexpwv; tovt- ancient church as the "Supplement of Baptism."
For in this faith thou art I. Imposition of hands is a natural form by
e'crTi, tuiv ffinfxa.rwv)y
" which benediction has been expressed in all ages
baptized, believing in the resurrection of the dead
(Num. xl. in 1 Cor. xv. cf. Horn. xiii. in Epist. ad
;
and among all people. It is the act of one supe-
Corinth.). St. Chrysostom is followed, as usual, rior eitherby age or spiritual position towards an
by Theodoret, Theophylact, and other Greek com- inferior,and by its very form it appears to bestow
mentators. Indeed, he had been anticipated by some gift, or to manifest a desire that some gift
Tertullian among the Latins (Ado. Marcion. lib. v. should be bestowed. It may be an evil thing that
c. 10), and probably by Epiphanius among the is symbolically bestowed, as when guiltiness was
Greeks (Hares, xxviii.). thus transferred by the high-priest to the scape-
The former of the two interpretations above goat from the congregation (Lev. xvi. 21); but,
mentioned commends itself to us by its simplicity; in general, the gift is of something good which God
the latter by its antiquity, having almost the gen- is supposed to bestow by the channel of the laying
eral consent of the primitive Christians in its fa- on of hands. Thus-, in the Old Testament, Jacob
vor (see Suicer, i. 642); though it is somewhat accompanies his blessing to Ephraim and Manasseh
difficult, even with St. Chrysostom's comment, to with imposition of hands (Gen. xlviii. 14): Joshua
reconcile it wholly with the natural and grammati- is ordained in the room of Moses by imposition of
cal construction of the words. In addition to the hands (Num. xxvii. 18; Deut. xxxiv. !i); cures
above, which seem the most probable, the variety seem to have been wrought by the prophets by
of explanations is almost endless. Among them the imposition of hands (2 K. v. 11); and the high-
following appear to deserve consideration. priest, in giving his solemn benediction, stretched
3. " "What shall they do, who are baptized when out his hands over the people (Lev. ix. 22).
death is close at hand? " Epiphan. Hwres. xxviii. The same form was used by our Lord in blessing
6, where according to Bengel {mip will have the and occasionally in healing, and it was plainly
sense of near, close upon. regarded by the Jews as customary or befitting
4. " Over the graves of the martyrs." That (Matt, xix."l3; Mark viii. 23, x. 16). One of the
such a mode of baptism existed in after ages, see promises at the end of St. Mark's Gospel to Christ's
Euseb. H. E. iv. 15; August. Be Ch: Dei, xx. followers is that they should cure the sick by lay-
9. Vossius adopted this interpretation; but it is ing on of hands (Mark xvi. 18) and accordingly ;
verv unlikely that the custom should have prevailed we find that Saul received his sight (Acts ix. 17)
in the days of St. Paul. and Publius's father was healed of his fever (Acts
5. "On account of a dead Saviour;" where an xxviii. 8) by imposition of hands.
enallage of number in the word vacpwv must be In the Acts of the Apostles the nature of the
understood. See Rosenmiiller, in foe. gift or blessing bestowed by the Apostolic imposi-
6. ""What shall they gain, who are biptized for tion of hands is made clearer. It is called the gift
the sake of the dead in Christ V " i. e. that so the of the Holy Ghost (viii. 17, xix. 6). This gift of
xi. 12, 25; Heb. xi. 40), that " God may complete Joel's prediction —
"I will pour out my Spirit upon
the number of his elect, and hasten his kingdom." and your sons and your daughters shall
all flesh,
.-See Qlshausen, in he. prophesy, and your young men shall see visions,
BAPTISM BAPTISM 243
and your old men shall dream dreams and on my ceeding the Apostles, we may suppose that the con-
;
servants and on my handmaidens I will pour out in sequences of the imposition of hands which mani-
"
those days of my Spirit, and they shall prophesy fested themselves in visible works of power (Acts
(ii. 17, 18, and 38). Accordingly visible super- viii., xix.) ceased. Nevertheless the practice of
natural powers were the result of this gift —
powers the imposition of hands continued. Why? Be-
which a Simon Magus could see, the capacity of cause, in addition to the visible manifestation of
bestowing which he could covet and propose to the Spirit his invisible working was believed to be
purchase (viii. 18). In the case of the Ephesian thereby increased, and his divine strength there-
disciples these powers are stated to be, Speaking in imparted. That this was the belief in the Apos-
with tongues and Prophesying (xix. G). Sometimes tolic days themselves may be thus seen. The cer-
they were granted without the ceremony of impo- emony of imposition of hands was even then habit-
sition of hands, in answer to Apostolic prayer (iv. ual and ordinary. This may be concluded from
31), or in confirmation of Apostolic preaching (x. the passage already quoted from Heb. vi. 2, where
44). But the last of these cases is described as Imposition is classed with Baptisms as a funda-
extraordinary (xi. 17), and as having occurred in mental: it may possibly also be deduced (as we
an extraordinary manner for the special purpose of shall show to have been believed) from 2 Cor. i. 21,
impressing a hardly-learned lesson on the Jewish 22, compared with Eph. i. 13, iv. 30; 1 John ii.
Christians by its very strangeness. 20 ; and it may be certainly inferred from subse-
By the time that the Epistle to the Hebrews quent universal practice. But although all the
was written we find that there existed a practice baptized immediately after their baptism received
and doctrine of imposition of hands, which is pro- the imposition of hands, yet the extraordinary
nounced by the writer of the Epistle to be one of gifts were not given to all. " Are all workers
the first principles and fundamentals of Christianity, of miracles'? have all the gifts of healing? do
which he enumerates in the following order: (1.) — all speak with tongues? do all interpret?" (1
The doctrine of Repentance; (2.) of Faith; ^3.) of Cor. xii. 29). The men thus endowed were,
Baptisms; (4.) of Laying on of Hands; (5.) of the and must always have been, few among many.
Resurrection; (6.) of Eternal Judgment (Heb. vi. 1, Why, then, and with what results, was imposition
2). Laying on of Hands in this passage can mean of hands made a general custom ? Because, though
only one of three things —
Ordination, Absolution, the visible gifts of the Spirit were bestowed only
or that which we have already seen in the Acts to on those on whom He willed to bestow them, yet
have been practiced by the Apostles, imposition of there were diversities of gifts and operations (ib.
hands for the gift of the Holy Ghost on the bap- 11). Those who did not receive the visible gifts
tized. The meaning of Ordination is excluded by might still receive, in some cases, a strengthening
the context. We have no proof of the* existence and enlightenment of their natural faculties. " To
of the habitual practice of Absolution at this period one is given by the Spirit the word of wisdom, to
nor of its being accompanied by the lajang on of another the word of knowledge by the same Spirit"
hands. Everything points to that laying on of hands (ib. 8); while all in respect to whom no obstacle
which, as we have seen, immediately succeeded bap- existed might receive that grace which St. Paul
tism in the Apostolic age, and continued to do so contrasts with and prefers to the "best gifts," as
in the ages immediately succeeding the Apostles. " more excellent " than miracles, healing, tongues,
The Christian dispensation is specially the dis- knowledge and prophesying (ib. 31), greater too
pensation of the Spirit. He, if any, is the Vicar than "faith and hope" (xiii. 13). This is the
whom Christ deputed to fill his place when He de- grace of " charity," which is another name for the
parted (John xvi. 7). The Spirit exhibits himself ordinary working of the Holy Spirit in the heart
not only by his gifts, but also, and still more, of man. This was doubtless the belief on which
by his graces. His gifts are such as those enu- the rite of Imposition of Hands became universal
merated in the Epistle to the Corinthians: "the in the Apostolic age, and continued to be univer-
gift of healing, of miracles, of prophecy, of dis- sally observed in the succeeding ages of the Church.
cerning of spirits, of divers kinds of tongues, of There are numberless references or allusions to it in
interpretation of tongues" (1 Cor. xii. 10). His the early Fathers. There is a possible allusion to
graces are, " love, joy, peace, long-suffering, gentle- it in Theophilus Antiochenus, A. D. 170 (Ad Autol.
ness, goodness, faith, meekness, temperance " (Gal. 1. i. c. 12, al. 17). It is spoken of by Tertullian,
v. 22, 23): the former are classed as the extraordi- A. d. 200 (De Bapt. c. viii.; De Resurv. Cam. c.
nary, the latter as the ordinary gifts of the Spirit. viii.); by Clement of Alexandria, A. d. 200 (apud
different ways and on different persons at the same 73); by Firmilian, a. d. 250 (dpodCypr. Ep. p.
time (1 Cor. xii. 6). His extraordinary gifts were 75, § 8); by Cornelius, a. d. 260 (apud Euseb. 1.
poured out in great abundance at the time when vi. c. 43); and by almost all of the chief writers
the Christian Church was being instituted. At of the 4th and 5th centuries. Cyprian (he. cit.)
no definite moment, but gradually and slowly, derives the practice from the example of the Apostles
these extraordinary gifts were withheld and with- recorded in Acts viii. Firmilian, Jerome, and Au-
drawn. When the Church was now contemplated gustine refer in like manner to Acts xix. " The
as no longer in course of formation, but as having Fathers," says Hooker, " everywhere impute unto
been now brought into being, his miracles of it that gift or grace of the Holy Ghost, not which
power ceased to be wrought (see Trench, On the maketh us first Christian men, but, when we are
Miracles, Introduction, and Jeremy Taylor, On made such, assisteth us in all virtue, armeth us
Confirmation). But He continued his miracles of against temptation and sin. . .. The Fathers
grace. His ordinary gifts never ceased being dis- therefore, being thus persuaded, held confirmation
pensed through the Church, although after a time as an ordinance Apostolic, always profitable in
the extraordinary gifts were found no longer. God's Church, although not always accompanied
With the Apostolic age, and with the age suc- with equal largeness of those external effects wliich
244 BAPTISM BARABBAS
gave it countenance at the first " (Eccl. Pol. v. 66, same time with the imposi-
as being in use at the
4). tion of hands (De Bapt. vii. and viii.), but he
II. Time of Confirmation. — Originally
Impo- speaks of it as being " de pristina disciplina," even
sition of Hands followed immediately upon Bap- in his day. It is certain, therefore, that it must
tism, so closely as to appear as part of the bap- have been introduced very early, and it has been
tismal ceremony or a supplement to it. 1 his is thought by some that the two Scriptural passages
clearly stated by Tertullian (De Bapt. vii., viii.), above quoted imply its existence from the very be-
Cyril (Catech. Myst. iii. 1), the author of the Chrysostom, Hilary, Theodoret,
ginning. (See
Apostolical Constitutions (vii. 43), and all early Comm.
and Cyril in Catecli. 3.)
in he.
Christian writers and hence it is that the names
; Another Greek name is o-<ppayis. It was so
arppayis, xpitrfia, sigillum, signacuium, are applied called as being the consummation and seal of the
to Baptism as well as to Imposition of Hands. grace given in baptism. In the passage quoted
(See Euseb. H. E. iii. 23; Greg. Naz. Or. p. 40; from the Epistle to the Colossians " sealing " by
Herm. Past. iii. 9, 16; Tertull. De Spectac. xxiv.) the Spirit is joined with being "anointed by God."
Whether it were an infant or an adult that was A similar expression is made use of in Eph. i. 13,
baptized, confirmation and admission to the Eu- "In whom also after that ye believed ye were
charist immediately ensued. This continued to be sealed with that Holy Spirit of promise;" and
the general rule of the Church down to the ninth again, " the Holy Spirit of God, whereby ye are
century, and is the rule of the Eastern Churches to sealed unto the day of redemption " (Eph. iv. 30).
the present time. The way in which the difference The Latin equivalents are sigillum, siynacidum, and
in practice between East and West grew up was the (the most commonly used Latin term) consigtiatio.
following. It was at first usual for many persons Augustine (De Trin. xv. 26) sees a reference in
to be baptized together at the great Festivals of these passages to the rite of confirmation.
Easter, Pentecost, and Epiphany in the presence of IV. Definitions of Confirmation. —The Greek
the bishop. The bishop then confirmed the newly- Church does not refer to Acts viii., xix., and Heb.
baptized by prayer and imposition of hands. But vi. for the origin of confirmation so much as to 1
by degrees it became customary for presbyters and John ii. and 2 Cor. i. Regarding it as the con-
deacons to baptize in other places than the cathe- summation of baptism she condemns the separation
drals and at other times than at the great festivals. which has been effected in the West. The liussian
Consequently, it was necessary either to give to Church defines it as " a mystery in which the bap-
presbyters the right of confirming, or to defer con- tized believer, being anointed with holy chrism in
firmation to a later time, when it might be in the the name of the Holy Ghost, receives the gifts of
power of the bishop to perform it. The Eastern the Holy Ghost for growth and strength in the
Churches gave the right to the presbyter, reserving spiritual life" (Longer Catechism). The Latin
only to the bishop the composition of the chrism with Church defines it as " miction by chrism (accom-
which the ceremony is performed. The Western panied by a set form of words), applied by the
Churches retained it in the hands of the bishop. Bishop to the forehead of one baptized, by means
(See Cone. Cartharj. iii. can. 36 and iv. can. 36; of which he receives increase of grace and strength
Cone. Tolet. i. can. 20; Cone. Autissiodor. can. 6; by the institution of Christ" (Liguori after Bel-
Cone. Bracar. i. can. 36 and ii. can. 4 Cone. Eliber. larmine).
; The English Church (by implication) as
can. 38 and 77.) Tertullian says that it was usual " a rite by means of which the regenerate are
for the bishop to make expeditions (excurrat) from strengthened by the manifold gifts of the Holy
the city in which he resided to the villages and re- Ghost the Comforter, on the occasion of their rat-
mote spots in order to lay his hands on those who ifying the baptismal vow" (Confirmation Service).
had been baptized by presbyters and deacons, and to Were we to criticise these definitions, or to describe
pray for the gift of the Holy Spirit upon them the ceremonies belonging to the rite in different ages
( Cont. Lueif. iv. ). The result was that, in the of the Church, we should be passing from our legit-
West, men's minds became accustomed to the sev- imate sphere into that of a Theological Dictionary.
erance of the two ceremonies which were once so
— Literature. —
Hooker, Ecclesiastical Polity, bk.
closely joined the more, as it was their practice
v. § 66, Oxf. 1863; Bellarmine, De Sacramento
to receive those who had been heretically or schis- Conftrmationis, in libro De Controversiis, torn. iii.
matically baptized, not by rebaptism, but only by Col. Agr. 1629; DaihY, De Confirmatione et Ex-
imposition of hands and prayer. By degrees the tremd Unctione, Genev. 1659 Hammond, De Con- ;
early Latin Christian writers, nor is there any- Lond. 1856 Liguori, Theologia Moralis, iii. 468,
;
Greek equivalent for it: for rt\elwcris answers Paris, 1845 Hey, Lectures on Divinity, Camb. ;
rather to baptism than confirmation. The ordinary Palmer, Origines Liturgical: On Confirmation,
Greek word is xpioywi, which, like the Latin " unc-
Lond. 1845 Bates, College Lectures on Christian
;
tio," expresses the gift of the Holy Spirifs grace. Antiquities, Lond. 1845; Bp. Wordsworth, Cate-
In this general sense it is used in 1 John ii. 20,
chesis, Lond. 1857; Dr. Wordsworth, Notes in
" Ye have an unction from the Holy One," and in
Greek Test, on Acts viii., xix. and Heb. vi., Lond.
2 Cor. i. 21, " He which hath anointed us is God, 1860, and On Confirmation, Lond. 1861; Wall,
who hath also sealed us and given the earnest of On Confirmation, Lond. 1862. F. M.
the Spirit in our hearts." So early a writer as "
Tertullian not only mentions the act of anointing BARABTBAS (Bapa00Zs, W ?^ 1
?> sm °f
BARACHEL BARBARIAN 245
Abba, see Simonis Onom. N. T. 38), a robber much as 178 years after Joshua, where he is gen-
{K7)(TT7)s, John xviii. 40), who had committed Lord A. Hervey supposes the nar-
erally placed.
murder in an insurrection (Mark xv. 7 Luke xxiii. rative to be a repetition of Josh. xi. 1-12 (Geneal-
;
19) in Jerusalem, and was lying in prison at ogies, p. 228 ff.). A great deal may be said for
the time of the trial of Jesus before Pilate. When this view; the names Jabin and Hazor; the
the Roman governor, in his anxiety to save Jesus, mention of subordinate kings (Judg. v. 19: cf.
proposed to release him to the people in accordance Josh. xi. 2 flf. ) ; the general locality of the battle
with the custom that he should release one prisoner the prominence of chariots in both narratives, and
to them at the Passover, the whole multitude cried especially the name Misrephoth-maim, which seems
out, Aloe tovtov, air6\vffov 5e rfftiy rbv BapaB- to mean " burning by the waters," as in the marg.
Ba.v- which request was complied with by Pilate. of the A. V., and not " the flow of waters."
According to many [Jive, two of them a secunda Many chronological difficulties are also thus re-
manu] of the cursive, or later MSS. in Matt, xxvii. moved; but it is fair to add that in Stanley's
17, his name was'l7jo-oCjBopo/3/3as; Pilate's ques- opinion (<S. & P., p. 392, note) there are geo-
tion there running, riva. fleAere airoAutrco ufuv ; graphical difficulties in the way. (Ewald, Gesch.
'\r\aovv BapaBBav, ti 'l-ncrovv rbv \ey6fi.evov Xpiff- des Volkes Israel; Lord A. Hervey, Genealogies,
toV; and this reading is supported by the Armenian pp. 225-246 ff.) [Deborah.] F. W. F.
version, and cited by Origen (on Matt. vol. v. 35). * The means we have at present for illustrating
It has in consequence been admitted into the text the local scene of Barak's victory over Sisera im-
by Fritzsche and Teschendorf." But the contrast part a new interest to the narrative, and furnish a
in ver. they should ask Barabbas, and remarkable testimony to its accuracy.
20, " that Though the
destroy Jesus," seems fatal to it. H. A. song of Deborah and Barak was written thousands
of years ago, so many of the places mentioned in
BAR'ACHEL (bSD"]3 [whom God has it have survived to our time and been identified
blessed]: BapaxtyX-' Barachel), "the Buzite," that this battle-field lies now mapped out before us
father of Elihu (Job xxxii. 2, 6). [Buz.] on the face of the country almost as distinctly as if
* BARACHIAH, Zech. i. 1, 7, A.V. ed. we were reading the account of a contemporary
1611, and other early editions. Berechiah 7. event. Dr. Thomson, who has had his home for
a quarter of a century almost in sight of Tabor,
BARACHI'AS [Bapax'tas'- Barachias], Matt,
at the foot of which the battle was fought, has
xxiii. 35. [Zacharias.]
given a living picture of the movements of the hos-
BA'RAK (p"^2, lightning, as in Ex. xix. 16 tile armies, and of the localities referred to, show-
BapaK, LXX. [Sarac, Vulg. :] comp. the family ing that nearly all these still exist and bear their
:
population at Harosheth. Accompanied, at his own phibl.-cril. (Lips. 1818); Butteher, Aehrenlese zum
express desire, by Deborah, Barak led his rudely- Alt. Test. (p. 16 ff); Gumpach, Alttestamentliche
armed force of 10,000 men from Xaphthali and StucHen (Heidelberg, 1852); and Sack, Lieder in
Zebulon to an encampment on the summit of Tabor, den historUchen Biicher des A. T. (1864). The
where the nine hundred iron chariots of Jabin exegetical articles (embracing translation and notes
would be useless. At a signal given by the proph- of Dr. Robinson (Bibl. Repos. i. 568-612) and of
etess, the little army, seizing the opportunity of Prof. Robbins (Bibl. Sacra, xii. pp. 597-642) are
a providential storm (Joseph, v. 5, § 4) and a wind elaborate and valuable. The Commentaries on
that blew in the faces of the enemy, boldly rushed Judges (those of Studer, Keil, Bertheau, Cassel)
down the hill, and utterly routed the unwieldy host give special prominence to the explanation of this
of the Canaanites in the plain of Jezreel (Esdraelon), remarkable ode. There is a spirited though free
" the battle field of Palestine" (Stanley, S. & P. translation of the song in MQman's History of
p. 331). From the prominent mention of Taanach the Jews, i. pp. 292-295 (Amer. ed.). H.
(Judg. v. 19, "sandy soil") and of the river Ki- BARBARIAN
(BapBapos). lias rf "EAA^
shon, it is most likely that the victory was partly
BapBapos is the common Greek definition, quoted
due to the suddenly swollen waves of that impet- by Serv. ad Virg. jEn. ii. 504; and in this strict
uous torrent (x«ifiap5ou$, LXX.), particularly its sense the word is used in Rom. i. 14, •• I am debtor
western branch called Megiddo. The victory was both to Greeks and barbarians;" where Luther
decisive, Harosheth taken (Judg. iv. 16), Sisera used the term "
Ungrieche," which happily expresses
murdered, and Jabin ruined. A peace of 40 years its force. " EAA7ji/€i Kal Bxp&apoi is the constant
ensued, and the next danger came from a different division found in Greek literature, but Thucydides
quarter. The victors composed a splendid epini- (i. 3 points out that this distinction is subsequent
)
cian ode in commemoration of their deliverance to Homer, in whom the word does not occur, al-
(Judg. v.).
though he terms the Carians BapBapi<pa>vot (H.
It is difficult to decide the date of Barak. He ii. 867, where Eustathius connects the other form
appears to have been a contemporary of Shamgar At according to Stra-
Ka.pBa.vos with Kap). first,
(Judg. v. 6). If so, he could not have been so was only used
bo (xiv. p. 662), it kcit ovofiarovodav
and even of one who spoke a patois, are AetrjSios the well-known useful cereal, mention of which is
Siu Kal iv <pwvfj fiapfSapa) re0pafj.fi.evos, Plat. Pro- made in numerous passages of the
Pliny Bible.
tag. 341 c (it is not so strong a word as ira\iy- (//. N. xviii. 7) states that barley is one of the
yXoDffaos, Donaldson, Crat. § 88); and the often most ancient articles of diet. It was grown by the
quoted hue of Gv. Trust, v. 10, 37, — Egyptians (Ex. ix. 31 ; Herod, ii. 77 ; Diodor. i. 34
" Barbaras hie ego sum quia -non inteUigor itlli." Plin. xxii. 25); and by the Jews (Lev. xxvii. 10;
Deut. viii. 8; Ruth ii. 17, &c), who used it for
The ancient Egyptians (like the modern Chinese) baking into bread, chiefly amongst the poor (Judg.
had an analogous word for all tovs yd] acpia.v vii. 13; 2 K. iv. 42; John vi. 9, 13); for making
6fj.oyAd>crcrovs, Herod, 158; and fidpfiapos is
ii.
into bread by mixing it with wheat, beans, lentiles,
used in the LXX. to express a similar Jewish dis-
millet, &c. (Ez. iv. 9); for making into cakes (Ez.
tinction. Thus in Ps. cxiii. 1, Aaos fldpfiapos is
iv. 12); as fodder for horses (1 K. iv. 28). Com-
used to translate XV , "peregrino sermone utens" pare also Juvenal (viii. 154); and Pliny (H. N.
xviii. 14; xxviii. 21), who states that though bar-
(Schleusn. Thes. s. v.), which is also an onomato-
ley was extensively used by the ancients, it had in
pceian from XV -, to stammer. In 1 Cor. v. 13, his time fallen into disrepute and was generally
Tim. iii. 7, we have oi e£&>, and Matt. vi. 32, ret eflerj, used as fodder for cattle only. Soninni says that
barley is the common food for horses in the East.
used Hebraistically for D^S, D^fM (in very much
Oats and rye were not cultivated by the Jews, and
the same sort of sense as that of fidpfiapoi) to dis- perhaps not known to them. [Rye.] (See also
tinguishall other nations from the Jews; and in
Kitto, Phys. H. of Pal. 214.) Barley is men-
the Talmudists we find Palestine opposed to tioned hi the Mishna as the food of horses and
iTl2~lS, just as Greece was to Barbaria or asses.
fi fidp-
(cf. Cic. Fin.
15; Lightfoot, Centuria
ii.
The barley harvest is mentioned Ruth i. 22, ii.
fiapos'-
Chorogr. ad init.) And yet so completely was 23 ; 2 Sam. xxi. 9, 10. It takes place in Palestine
the term Bdp&apos accepted, that even Josephus in March and April, and in the hilly districts as
and Philo scruple as little to reckon the Jews late as May but the period of course varies ac-
;
race and spoke the Punic, i. e. Phoenician, as spoken erally ripe somewhat earlier than the latter, yet
at Carthage. A misunderstanding of the term ren- the harvest-time of both is the same. Thus it was
dered "barbarous " in Acts xxviii. 2 led Coleridge with the Jews: the winter and spring-sown barley
to deny that the Melitoeans could be meant there, were usually gathered into the garners about the
because they were highly civilized. The " no little same time though of course the very late spring- ;
kindness " which " the barbarous people showed " sown crops must have been gathered in some time
to the wrecked mariners obliges us to acquit them of after the others.
any want of humanity. " Barbarians " (see above) Major Skinner (Adventures in an Overland Jour-
would be less inexact, but leans now towards the ney to India, i. 330) observed near Damascus afield
same objectionable meaning. H. newly sown with barley, which had been submitted
to submersion similar to what is done to rice-fields.
BARHU MITE, THE. [Bahurim.] Dr. Royle (Kitto's Cycl. Bib. Lit. art. "Barley")
BARI'AH (rp-lS [a bolt]: Btppi; [Vat. with good reason supposes that this explains Is.
" Blessed are ye that sow beside all
Mapei;] Alex. Bepia'- Baria), one of the sons of xxxii. 20 :
Shemaiah, a descendant of the royal family of Ju- waters;" and demurs to the explanation which
dah (1 Chr. iii. 22). many writers have given, namely, that allusion is
made to the mode in which rice is cultivated. We
BAR-JE'SUS. [Elymas.]
cannot, however, at all agree with this writer, that the
BAR-JO NA. [Peter.] passage in Eccl. xi. 1 has any reference to irriga-
BARLEY BARNABAS 247
tion of newly sown barley-fields. Solomon in the hexastichum, or
winter barley of farmers, will
contest enforcing obligations to liberality, of that
is serve to represent the latter kind. The kind usually
especial naturewhich looks not for a recompense: grown in Palestine is the //. distichum. It is too
as Bishop Hall says, " Bestow thy beneficence on well known to need further description." W. H.
those from whom there is no probability of a re-
turn of kindness." It is clear that, if allusion is BAR'NABAS (nwama : Bapvd0as:
made to the mode
of culture referred to above, [Barnabas], a name signifying uibs TrapaK\r)(rtws,
either in the case of rice or barley, the force and "son of prophecy," or "exhortation" (or, but not
moral worth of the lesson is lost; for the motive so probably, "consolation," as A. V.), given by
of such a sowing is expectation of an abundant re- the Apostles (Acts iv. 36) to Joseph (or Joses, as
turn. The meaning of the passage is surely this: the Rec. Text), a Levite of the island of Cyprus,
" Be liberal to those who are as little likely to repay who was early a disciple of Christ (according to
thee again, as bread or corn cast into the pool or the Euseb.
and Clem. Alex. Strom,, ii.
//. E. i. 12,
river is likely to return again unto thee." Barley, 176 Sylb., one of the Seventy), and in Acts (/. c.)
as an article of human food, was less esteemed than is related to have brought the price of a field which
wheat. [Bread.] Compare also Calpurnius ( Eel. he had sold, and to have laid it at the feet of the
iii. 84), Pliny (//. N. xviii. 7), and Livy (xxvii. 13), Apostles. In Acts be. 27, we find him introducing
who tells us that the Roman cohorts who lost their the newly-converted Saul to the Apostles at Jeru-
standards were punished by having barley bread salem, in a way which seems to imply pievious ac-
given them instead of wheaten. The Jews accord- quaintance between the two. On tidings coming
ing to True/. Sanhedr. c. 9, § 5, had the following to the church at Jerusalem that men of Cyprus and
law: "Si quia loris caesus reciderit jussu judicum Cyrene had been, after the persecution which arose
arcse inditus hordeo abator, donee venter ejus rum- about Stephen, preaching the word to Gentiles at
patur." That barley bread is even to this day little Antioch, Barnabas was sent thither (Acts xi. 19-
esteemed in Palestine, we have the authority of 26), and being a good man, and full of the Holy
modern travellers to show. Dr. Thomson (Land Ghost, he rejoiced at seeing the extension of the
and Book, p. 449 says " nothing is more common
) grace of God, and went to Tarsus to seek Saul,
than for these people to complain that their oppres- as one specially raised up to preach to the Gentiles
sors have left them nothing but barley bread, to (Acts xxvi. 17). Having brought Saul to An-
eat." This fact is important as serving to elu- tioch, he was sent, together with liim, to Jerusa-
cidate some passages in Scripture. Why, for in- lem, upon a prophetic intimation of a coming
stance, was barley meal, and not the ordinary meal- famine, with relief to the brethren in Judoea (Acts
offering of wheat flour, to be the jealousy-offering xi. 30). On their return to Antioch, the two,
(Num. v. Because thereby is denoted the
15)? being specially pointed out by the Holy Ghost (Acts
low reputation in which the implicated parties were xiii. 2) for the missionary work, were ordained by
held. The homer and a half of barley, as part of the church and sent forth (a. d. 45). From this
the purchase-money of the adulteress (Hos. iii. 2), time, though not of the number of the Twelve,
has doubtless a similar typical meaning. With this Barnabas and Paul enjoy the title, and dignity of
circumstance in remembrance, how forcible is the ex- apostles. Their first missionary journey is related
pression in Ezekiel (xiii. 19), "Will ye pollute me in Acts xiii., xiv. it was confined to Cyprus and
;
among my people for handfuls of barley And V Asia Minor. Some time after their return to An-
how does the knowledge of the fact aid to point out tioch (a. d. 47 or 48). they were sent (a. d. 50),
the connection between Gideon and the barley-cake, with some others, to Jerusalem, to determine with
in the dream which the "man told to his fellow
" the Apostles and Elders the
difficult question re-
(Judg. vii. 13). Gideon's "family was poor in specting the necessity of circumcision for the Gentile
Manasseh —
and he was the least in his father's converts (Acts xv. 1 ff .). On that occasion, Paul
-
house;" and doubtless the Midianites knew it. and Barnabas were recognized as the Apostles of
Again, the Israelites had been oppressed by Midian the uncircumcision. After another stay in Antioch
for the space of seven years. Very appropriate, on their return, a variance took place between Bar-
therefore, is the dream and the interpretation there- nabas and Paul on the question of taking with
of. The despised and humble Israelitish deliverer them, on a second missionary journey, John Mark,
was as a mere vile barley-cake in the eyes of his sister's son to Barnabas (Acts xv. 36 ff".). " The
enemies. On this passage Dr. Thomson remarks, contention was so sharp that they parted asunder;
" If the Midianites were accustomed in their ex- and if we may judge from the hint furnished by
temporaneous songs to call Gideon and his band the notice that Paul was commended by the breth-
"cakes of barley /ire<v/," as their successors the ren to the grace of God, it would seem that Bar-
haughty Bedawin often do to ridicule their ene- nabas was in the wrong. He took Mark, and
mies, the application would be all the more nat- sailed to Cyprus, his native island. And here the
ural." That barley was cultivated abundantly in Scripture notices of him cease: those found in
Palestine is clear from Deut. viii. 8; 2 Chr. ii. Gal. ii. 1, 9, 13, belong to an earlier period b see
10, 15. above. From 1 Cor. ix. 6, we infer that Barnabas
The cultivated barleys are usually divided into was a married man; and from Gal. 1. c., and the
"two-rowed" and "six-rowed" kinds. Of the circumstances of the dispute witli Paul, his char-
first the Hordmm distiehum, the common summer acter seems not to have possessed that thoroughness
barley of England, is an example; while the H. of purpose and determination which was found in
Ignatiarue, pt. i. c. 4). But it is very generally BARTIM^E'US [A. V. Bartime'us] (Bap-
given up now, and the Epistle is believed to have ^NEtp ""I?, son of Timai), a blind
Tj/uaibs, i- e.
been written early in the second century. The
beggar of Jericho who (Mark x. 46 ff.) sat by the
matter will be found concisely treated by Hefele,
wayside begging as our Lord passed out of Jericho
in the prolegomena to his edition of the Apostolic
on his last journey to Jerusalem. Notwithstanding
Fathers, 1 vol. 8vo., Tubingen, 1847; and more
that many charged him to hold his peace, he con-
at length in his volume, Das Sendschreiben des
tinued crying, "Jesus, thou son of David, have
Ap. Barnabas, ifc, Tubingen, 1840; and in He-
mercy on me!" Being called, and his blindness
berle's article in Herzog's Cyclopaedia. [See also
miraculously cured, on the ground of his faith, by
Norton's Genuineness of the Gospels, 2d ed., vol.
Jesus, he became thenceforward a disciple. Nothing
i. Add. Notes, pp. ccl.-cclviii., Cambr. 1846, and
more is known of him. H. A.
Donaldson's Hist, of Christian Literature and * The account of this miracle as related by all
Doctrine, i. 201-211, Lond. 1864.— A.] H. A.
the Synoptists is comparatively full (Matt. xx. 29-
BAROT>IS (BapoSi'y [Vat. Alex. -Sets]: 34; Mark x. 46-52; Luke xviii. 35-43). In point of
Rahotts), a name inserted in the list of those " serv- vividness of description and moral suggestiveness
ants of Solomon " who returned with Zerubbabel it is hardly surpassed by any similar narrative in
(1 Esdr. v. 34). There is no corresponding name the Gospel. For the circumstances under which
in the list of Ezra or Nehemiah. the miracle was performed and its import as a
* BARREL. The Hebrew word ("T3 symbol of the spiritual relations which men sustain
: {,Spi a :
name which explain how Luke should seem to say that Jesus
The Syriac version has ^I2"1S, a re-
was approaching Jericho when he performed the
calls that of Artachoeas ('ApTaxa"Js)t wh° 's
cure, while Matthew and Mark say that he per-
named by Herodotus (vii. 22, 117) as being in a
formed it as he was leaving Jericho. One reply to
high position in the Persian army under Xerxes,
this statement is that Jesus may have healed two
and a special favorite of that king (Simonis, Onom.;
blind men, one before he entered the city and the
Smith's Diet, of Biog. i. 369).
other on his departure from it the former being ;
BARTHOLOMEW (Bop0oXo^o?oy, e. the instance that Luke mentions, the latter that
»'.
o * The recently discovered Codex Sinaiticut, pub' of Dressers Patrum Apost. Opera, Lips. 1863, and is
lished by Teschendorf in 1862 and 1863, contains the critically edited, with the rest of the epistle, in Hil-
jntire epistle in Greek. T'-ie portion supplied by the genfeld's Novum Test, extra Canonem receptum, fasc.
Cortex SinaiticKs is given literally in the second edition ii., Lips. 1866. A.
BARUCH BARUCH, THE BOOK OF 249
which Mark mentions, while Matthew speaks of the tone of the book again changes suddenly, and the
two cases together. So Wieseler (Synapse der vier writer addresses Jerusalem in words of triumphant
Evang. p. 332) and Ebrard (Kritik der Evang. joy, and paints in the glowing colors of Isaiah the
Geschich. p. 407 ft', 2te Aufl.). Neander (note in his return of God's chosen people and their abiding
Leben Jesu Christi, p. 614, 4te Aufl.) inclines to glory (iv. 30-v. 9).
the same view. It is possible also, as Bengel sug- 1. The book and in
at present exists in Greek,
gests (Gnomon N. T. 140), that Bartimoeus having
i. several which were made from the
translations
failed in his first application when Jesus arrived at Greek. The two classes into which the Greek
Jericho, renewed his request the next day in com- MSS. may be divided do not present any very re-
pany with another blind man, as Jesus left the house markable variations (Fritzsche, Einl. § 7 but the )
;
of Zaccheus and the city on his way to Jerusalem. Syro-Hexaplaric text of the Milan MS., of which
Two additional words in Luke xviii. 38, " And (on a complete edition is at length announced, is said
the morrow) he cried" &c, would thus conciliate to contain references to the version of Theodotion
the two accounts perfectly; and, really, the con- (Eichhorn, Einl. in die Apoc. Schrij't. p. 388 n.),
fessedly fragmentary character of the narratives which must imply a distinct recension of the Greek,
allows us, without violence, to suppose that omis- if not an independent rendering of an original He-
sion. Trench favors this last explanation. H. brew text. Of the two Old Latin versions which
povx'i Joseph. Bapovxos- Baruch). 1. Son of Sabatier) is more free. The vulgar Syriac and
Neriah, the friend (Jer. xxxii. 12), amanuensis Arabic follow the Greek text closely (Fritzsche,
1
yKtiirrri Stapfp6vTus ireiraiSfVfjievos); and his in such a way as to suit the contents of the book,
brother Seraiah held an honorable office in the court which exhibits not only historical inaccuracies but
of Zedekiah (Jer. Ii. 59). His enemies accused also evident traces of a later date than the begin-
him of influencing Jeremiah in favor of the Chal- ning of the Captivity (iii. 9 ff., iv. 22 ff. ; i. 3 ff.
daeans (Jer. xliii. 3; cf. xxxvii. 13); and he was Comp. 2 K. xxv. 27).
thrown into prison with that prophet, where he 3. The book was held in little esteem among the
remained till the capture of Jerusalem b. c. 586 Jews (Hieron. Prcef. in Jerem. p. 834 . nee . .
(Joseph. Ant. x. 9, § 1). By the permission of habetur apud Hebrceos ; Epiph. de mens, ov Ktivrai
Nebuchadnezzar he remained with Jeremiah at Mas- 4iri<TT0\al (Bapovx) nap 'Eftpaiois) ; though it is
phatha (Joseph. I. c. but was afterwards forced stated in the Greek text of the Apostolical Consti-
;
to go down to Egypt with " the remnant of Judah tutions that it was read, together with the Lamen-
that were returned from all nations " (Jer. xliii. 6; tations, "on the tenth of the month Gorpiaeus"
Joseph. Ant. x. 9, § 6). Nothing is known cer- i. e. the day of Atonement; Const. Ap. v. 20, 1).
tainly of the close of his life. According to one But this reference is wanting in the Syriac version
tradition he remained in Egypt till the death of (Bunsen, Anal. Ante-Nic. ii. 187), and the asser-
Jeremiah, and then retired to Babylon, where he tion is unsupported by any other authority. There
died in the 12th year after the destruction of Jeru- is no trace of the use of the book in the New Tes-
salem (Bertholdt, Einl. 1740 n.). Jerome, on the tament, or in the Apostolic Fathers, or in Justin.
other hand, states " on the authority of the Jews " But from the time of Irenasus it was frequently
(Hebnei tradunt), that Jeremiah and Baruch died quoted both in the East and in the West, and gen-
in Egypt " before the desolation of the country by erally as the work of Jeremiah (Iren. Ado. Hair.
Nabuchodonosor " ( Comm. in Is. xxx. 6, 7, p. v. 35, 1, significavit Jeremias, Bar. iv. 36-v. ; Ter-
405). [Jeremiah.] B. F. W. tull. c. Gnost. 8, Hieremue, Bar. (Epist.) vi. 3
2. The son of Zabbai, who assisted Nehemiah ff. ; Clem. Peed. i. 10, § 91, 5ia 'Upe^iov, Bar. iv.
in rebuilding the walls of Jerusalem (Neh. iii. 20). 4; id. Pad. ii. 3, § 36, dtia ypcup-fi, Bar. iii. 16-
3. A priest, or family of priests, who signed 19; Orig. ap. Euseb. H. E. 25; 'lepe/j.ias crvv
vi.
the
covenant with Nehemiah (Neh. x. 6). 0pi)vois ko\ rfj iiTiffToKfj (? Cyi-r. Test. Lib.
);
ii. 6, apud Hieremiam, Bar.
35, &c.). It was,
iii.
4. The son of Col-hozeh, a descendant of Perez,
however, " obelized " throughout in the LXX. as
or Pharez, the son of Judah (Neh. xi. 5).
deficient in the Hebrew ( Cod. Chis. ap. Daniel,
BARUCH, THE BOOK OF, is remark- &c, Romte, 1772, p. xxi.). On the other hand it
able as the only book in the Apocrypha which is is contained as a separate book in the Pseudo-Lao-
formed on the model of the Prophets; and though dicene Catalogue, and in the Catalogues of Cyril
it is wanting in originality, it presents a vivid re- of Jerusalem, Athanasius, and Nicephorus; but it
flectionof the ancient prophetic fire. It may be is not specially mentioned in the Conciliar cat-
divided into two main parts, i.-iii. 8, and iii. 9- alogues of Carthage and Hippo, probably as be-
end. The first part consists of an introduction ing included under the title Jeremiah. (Comp.
(i. 1-14), followed by a confession and prayer (i. [Athan.] Syn. S. Script, ap. Credner, Zur Gesch.
15— iii.8). The second part opens with an abrupt des Kan. 138. Hilar. Pro/, in Psalm. 15.) It
address to Israel (iii. 9-iv. 30), pointing out the is omitted by those writers who reproduced in the
sin of the people in neglectinii the divine teaching main the Hebrew Canon (e. g. Melito, Gregory Na-
of Wisdom (iii. 9-iv. 8), and introducing a noble zianzen, Epiphanius). Augustine quotes the words
lament of Jerusalem over her children, through of Baruch (iii. 16 ) as attributed " more commonly
which hope still gleams (iv. 9-30). After this the to Jeremiah " (quklam . . . scribm ejus attribute
250 BARUCH, THE BOOK OF BASCAMA
runt . sedJeremice celebratius habetur, de Civ.
. . to the authority ofsome Greek MSS., stands in
sviii. 33), and elsewhere uses them as such (c. the English version as the 6th chapter of Baruch,
Faust, xii. 43). At the Council of Trent Baruch is the work of a later period. It consists of a rhe-
was admitted into the Romish Canon; but the torical declamation against idols (comp. Jer. x.,
Protestant churches have unanimously placed it xxix.) in the form of a letter addressed by Jer-
among the Apocryphal books, though Whiston emiah "to them which were to be led captive to
maintained its authenticity (/. c. infra). Babylon." The letter is divided into clauses by
4. Considerable discussion has been raised as to the repetition of a common burden: they are no
the original language of the book. Those who gods; fear them not (vv. 16, 23, 29, 66); how can
advocated its authenticity generally supposed that a man think or say that they are gods t (vv. 40, 44,
it was first written in Hebrew (Huet, Dereser, &c. ; 56, 64). The condition of the text is closely anal-
but Jahn is undecided: Bertholdt, Einl. 1755), and ogous to that of Baruch and the letter found the same
;
this opinion found many supporters (Bendtsen, partial reception in the Church. The author shows
Griineberg, Movers, Hitzig, De Wette, Einl. an intimate acquaintance with idolatrous worship
§ 323). Others again have maintained that the and this circumstance, combined with the purity
Greek is the original text (Eichhorn, Einl. 388 ft". of the Hellenistic dialect, points to Egypt as the
Bertholdt, Einl. 1757 Hiivernick, ap. De Wette,
; country in which the epistle was written. There
I. c). The truth appears to lie between these two in no positive evidence to fix its date, for the sup-
extremes. The two divisions of the book are dis- posed reference in 2 Mace. ii. 2 is more than un-
tinguished by marked peculiarities of style and certain ; but it may be assigned with probability to
language. The Hebraic character of the first part the first century b. c.
(i.-iii. 8) is such as to mark it as a translation 8. A Syriac first Epistle of Baruch " to the nine
and not as the work of a Hebraizing Greek: e. g. and a half tribes " (comp. 2 Esdr. xiii. 40, Vers.
. 14, 15, 22, ii. 4, 9, 25, iii. 8 and several obscu-
; Arab.) is found in the London and Paris Polyglotts.
rities seem to be mistranslations e. g. i. 2, 8, ii. : This is made up of commonplaces of warning, en-
18, 29. The second part, on the other hand, which couragement, and exhortation. Fritzsche (Einl.
is written with greater freedom and vigor, closely § 8) [with whom Davidson agrees (lntrod. to the
approaches the Alexandrine type. And the imita- 0. T. iii. 424)] considers it to be the production
tions of Jeremiah and Daniel which occur through- of a Syrian monk. It is not found in any other
out the first part (cf. i. 15-18 =
Dan. ix. 7-10 ii. ; language. Whiston (A Collection of Authentic
1, 2 =
Dan. ix. 12, 13 ii. 7-19 =
Dan. ix. 13-18)
; Records, &c. London, 1727, i. 1 ff., 25 If.) en-
give place to the tone and imagery of the Psalms deavored to maintain the canonicity of this epistle
and Isaiah. as well as that of the Book of Baruch.
5. The most probable explanation of this con- B. F. W.
trast is gained by supposing that some one thor- * The " First Epistle of Baruch " has also been
oughly conversant with the Alexandrine transla- published in Lagarde's L ibri Vet. Test.Apocr. Syr-
tion of Jeremiah, perhaps the translator himself iace, lieii. 1861, and a Latin translation (taken
(Hitzig, Fritzsche), found the Hebrew fragment from the London Polyglott) may be found in Fa-
which forms the basis of the book already attached bricius's Cod. psevdepigr, Y. T., ii. 145 Gins-
ft'.
to the writings of that prophet, and wrought it up burg, in the 3d ed. of Kitto's Cyclop, of Bill. Lit.,
into its present form. The peculiarities of lan- gives a full analysis of the epistle, and expresses
guage common to the LXX. translation of Jer- his surprise that this " interesting relic " of antiquity
emiah and the first part of Baruch seem too great has been so unjustly neglected. He supposes it to
to be accounted for in any other way (for instance have been written by a Jew about the middle of
the use of Seay-urns, ktrooToK-i), fSopfi-qo-is (jSo/x- the second century b. c. A.
/3f"tv), airoiKi<Tfj.6s, yavva, a.iro<TTpe<peiv (neut.),
syl.], 1 BAB/ZELAI
v. marg. [3 Esdr. 38,
ipydfecrQal tivi, uvofia firiKa\elcrdai iirl rivi),
[but Bebzelus in the text. See Addus].
and the great discrepancy which exists between the
Hebrew and Greek texts as to the arrangement of BARZIL/LAI [3 syl.] ("l*";?, iron: Bep-
the later chapters of Jeremiah, increases the prob- £eAAi[Vat. Alex. -Aei; in Ezr., Bep(e\\ai, etc.;
ability of such an addition having been made to in Neh., Alex. Bep(e\\ai] Berzellai). 1. A
the canonical prophecies. These verbal coincidences wealthy Glleadite who showed hospitality to David
cease to exist in the second part, or become very when he fled from Absalom (2 Sam. xvii. 27). On
rare; but this also is distinguished by clu racteristic the score of his age, and probably from a feeling
words: e. g. 6 aldvios, 6 aytos, iirdyeiv. At the of independence, he declined the king's offer of
same time the general unity (even in language, ending his days at court (2 Sam. xix. 32-39).
e. g. xapixoavvt)) and coherence of the book in David before his death recommended his sons to
its present form point to the work of one man. the kindness of Solomon (1 K. ii. 7). [The de-
(Fritzsche, Einl. § 5; Hitzig, Psalm, ii. 119; scendants of his daughter, who married into a
Ewald, Gesch. d. Yolkes fyr. iv. 232 n.) Bertholdt priestly family, were unable, after the Captivity, to
appears to be quite in error {EinL 1743, 1762) in prove their genealogy (Ezr. ii. 61; Neh. vii. 63.
assigning iii. 1-8 to a separate writer (De Wette, See 1 Esdr. v. 38).]
Einl. § 322). 2. A Meholathite, whose son Adriel married
6. There are no certain data by which to fix the Michal, Saul's daughter (2 Sam. xxi. 8).
time of the composition of Baruch. Ewald (/. c. R. W. B.
pp. 230 ft*.) assigns it to the close of the Persian BAS'ALOTH
(BaoW/* [Alex. Baa\a>d; ;
period and this may be true as far as the Hebrew
;
[Aid. Baoa\cl>e:] PhasaUm), 1 Esdr. v. 31.
portion is concerned; but the present book must
[Bazlith.]
be placed considerably later, probably about the
, time of the war of liberation (c. b. C. 160), or BAS'CAMA (ft Bacncafid: Jos. Beur/ca: Bas-
somewhat earlier. cmna), a place in Gilead (els r^v ra\aaS7rtv) where
7. The Epistle, of Jeremiah, which, according Jonathan Maccabseus was killed by Trypho, and
BASHAN BASHAN 251
from which his bones were afterwards disinterred Jordan, a place which it retained afterwards to the
and conveyed to Modin by his brother Simon (1 exclusion of Bashaii (comp. Josh. xxii. 9, 15, 32;
Mace. xiii" 23; Joseph. Ant. xiii. 6, § 6). No Judg. xx. 1; Ps. lx. 7, cviii. 8; 1 Chr. xxvii. 21;
trace of the name lias yet been discovered. G. 2 K. xv. 29). Indeed "Bashan" is most fre-
BA'SHAN (almost invariably with the definite quently used as a mere accompaniment to the name
of Og, when his overthrow is alluded to in the na-
article. }CT3n : Batrdy. Basan), a district on tional poetry.
the east of Jordan. It is not, like Argob and other After the Captivity, Bashan is mentioned as di-
districts of Palestine, distinguished by one constant vided into four provinces —
Gaulanitis, Auranitis,
designation, but is sometimes spoken of as the Trachonitis, and Batanaja. Of these four, all but
" land of Bashaii " (*3 1 ^"V, 1 Chr. v. 11; and the third have retained almost perfectly their an-
cient names, the modern Lejah alone having su-
comp. Num. xxi. 33, xxxii. 33), and sometimes as
perseded the Argob and Trachonitis of the Old and
"all Bashan "
xii. 5. xiii. 12,
(2 J ^ ; Deut.
most commonly without
30), but
iii. 10, 13; Josh, New Testaments. The province of Jaulan is the
most western of the four; it abuts on the sea of
any addition. was taken by the children of Is-
It Galilee and the lake of Merom, from the former of
rael after their conquest of the laud of Sihon from which to a plateau nearly 3000 feet above
it rises
Anion to Jabbok. They "turned" from their the surface of the water. This plateau, though
road over Jordan and " went up by the way of now almost wholly uncultivated, is of a rich soil,
Bashan " —
probably by very much the same route and its N. W.
portion rises into a range of hills
as that now followed by the pilgrims of the Hajj almost everywhere clothed with oak forests (Porter,
and by the Romans before them —
to Edrei on the ii. 259). No less than 127 ruined villages are scat-
western edge of the Lejah. [Edkei.] Here they tered over its surface. [Golan.]
encountered Og king of Bashan, who "came out" The Hauran is to the S. E. of the last named
probably from the natural fastnesses of Argob, only province and S. of the Lejah Jaulan, its sur-
; like
to meet the entire destruction of himself, his sons, face is perfectly flat, and its soil esteemed amongst
and all his people (Num. xxi. 33-35 Deut. iii. 1^ ; the most fertile in Syria. It too contains an im-
3). Argob, with its 60 strongly fortified cities, mense number of ruined towns, and also many
evidently formed a principal portion of Bashan inhabited villages. [Hauran.]
(Deut. iii. 4, 5), though still only a portion (13), The contrast which the rocky intricacies of the
there being besides a large number of unwalled Lejah present to the rich and flat plains of the
towns (5). Its chief cities were Ashtaroth (*. e. Hauran and the Jaulan has already been noticed.
Beeshterah, comp. Josh. xxi. 27 with 1 Chr. vi. [Akoob.]
71), Edrei, Golan, Salcah, and possibly Mahanaim The remaining district, though no doubt much
(Josh. xiii. 30). Two of these cities, namely, Go- smaller in extent than the ancient Bashan, still
lan and Beeshterah, were allotted to the Levites retains name, modified by a change frequent in
its
of the family of Gershom, the former as a " city the Oriental languages. Ard-tl-Bathanyeh lies on
of refuge" (Josh. xxi. 27; 1 Chr. vi. 71). the east of the Lejah and the north of the range
The Bashan are very strictly defined.
limits of of Jebel Hauvan or ed Druze (Porter, ii. 57). It
It extended from the "border of Gilead" on the is a mountainous district of the most picturesque
south to Mount Hermon on the north (Deut. iii. 3, character, abounding with forests of evergreen oak,
10, 14; Josh. xii. 5; 1 Chr. v. 23), and from the and with soil extremely rich; the surface studded
Arabah or Jordan valley on the west to Salchah with towns of very remote antiquity, deserted it is
(Sulkhad) and the border of the Geshurites, and true, but yet standing almost as perfect as the day
the Maaeathites on the east (Josh. xii. 3-5; Deut. they were built.
iii. 10). This important district was bestowed on For the boundaries and characteristics of these
the half-tril* of Manasseh (Josh. xiii. 29-31), to- provinces, and the most complete researches yet
gether with " half Gilead." After the Manassites published into this interesting portion of Palestine,
had assisted their brethren in the conquest of the see Porter's Damascus, vol. ii. [and his Giant Cities
country west of the Jordan, they went to their tents of Bashan, I860]. G.
and to their cattle in the possession which Moses * We have a valuable work for information con-
had given them in Bashan It is just cerning some parts of Bashan in the Reiseberirht
(xxii. 7, 8).
named in the list of Solomon's commissariat dis- ii'j. Hiuran u. die Trachonen by Dr. John Wetz-
tricts (1 K. iv. 13). And here, with the exception stein, Prussian Consul at Damascus (Berlin, 1860).
of one more passing glimpse, closes the history of He explored especially that region of almost fab-
Bashan as tar as the Bible is concerned. It van- ulous wonders, El-Lejah, the supposed Akgoij, and
ishes from our view until we meet with it as being by his testimony fully confirms the accounts of
devastated by Hazael in the reign of Jehu (2 K. x. other travellers. An excellentmap (drawn by Kie-
33). True the " oaks " of its forests and the wild pert) accompanies the book, showing, in addition to
cattle of its pastures —
the " strong bulls of Ba- the names of places, the roads ancient and modern
shan " —
long retained their proverbial fame (Ez. and various geographical features, as Wadyt or val-
xxvii. 6; Ps. xxii. 12), and the beauty of its high leys, streams, lakes, and mountains. He paid spe-
downs and wide sweeping plains could not but cial attention to the inscriptions (Semitic, Greek,
strike now and then the heart of a poet (Am. iv. and Latin) found there in great numbers, some of
1; Ps. lxviii. 15; Jer. 1. 19; Mic. vii. 14), but his- which are copied in this volume. It contains also
tory it has none ; its very name seems to have given illustrations (woodcuts) of the architectural remains
place as quickly as possible to one which had a of this district.
connection with the story of the founder of the It should be mentioned that Dr. Wetzstein dis-
nation (Gen. xxxi. 47-48), and therefore more claim sents from the view of the great body of scholars that
to use. Even so early as the time of the conquest, IJ-Lejah (his orthography is Lega) is the Argob
" Gilead " seems to have begun to take the first ' of Scripture. His reasons for doing so are mainly
place as the designation of the country beyond the negative in their character, and are outweighed by
252 BASHAN-HAVOTH-JAIR BASIN
those on the other side. He thinks the country refer to the same persons
respectively and we may ;
could never have been subjugated by the Hebrews. well conclude with Hengstenberg that the change
He states as proof of the inaccessibility and of all the names cannot have arisen from accident
strength of this almost impregnable position that and further, that the names in the genealogical
Ibrahim Pasha, whose armies made Constantino- table, which is essentially an Edomitish document,
ple itself tremble, in 1838 stormed the place de- are those which these women respectively bore as
fended by only 5000 men for 6 months, sacrificed the wives of Esau (Hengstenberg, Auth. d. Pent. ii.
20,000 regular troops, and was obliged at last to 277, Eng. transl. ii. 226).
confirmed This view is
withdraw, wholly baffled in his attempt. But the by the fact that the Seirite
Judith wife, who is called
Bible represents the conquests of Moses on the in the narrative, appears in the genealogical account
east of the Jordan as confessedly extraordinary under the name of Aholibamah, a name which
(Deut. xxxi. 4; Josh. ii. 10, ix. 10. &c). If it be appears to have belonged to a district of Idumea
necessary to insist on that consideration, we must (Gen. xxxvi. 41). The only ground for hesitation
say that the success of the Hebrew arms could not or suspicion of error in the text is the occurrence
be doubtful in a warfare in which they stood un- of this name Bashemath both in the narrative and
der a leadership guided and upheld by divine co- the genealogy, though applied to different persons.
operation. He argues also that the territory con- The Samaritan text seeks to remove this difficulty
quered by the. Hebrews on the east of the Jordan by reading Mahalath instead of Bashemath in the
could not have included the present El-Lejah, genealogy. We
might with more probability sup-
and hence that Argob must be sought elsewhere. pose that this name (Bashemath) has been assigned
But the boundaries of the Hebrew territory be- to the wrong person in one or other of the passages
yond the Jordan are vaguely described they were but if so it is impossible to determine which is er-
:
at the time of the first Hebrew invasion have of Solomon and wife of one of his officers, called
embraced the region of Argob. For the positive in A. V. Basmath (1 K. iv. 15). F. W. G.
grounds on which the identification of El-Lejah * According to the Masoretic pointing, the name
with Argob rests, see under Argob and Chebel. in English in all the passages should be Basemath
The Prussian Consul mentions a striking fact in
illustration of the fertility of the country assigned
for the sibilant is and not tt\ The Bishops' W
Bible has Basemath, except in 1 K. iv. 15, where it
to Reuben, Gad, and the half-tribe of Manasseh,
and of its adaptation to the wants of a nomadic is Basmath, as in A. V. H.
and pastoral people such as many of these Hebrews BASIN. (1.) <pid\y. jtiiala ; from pytQ
were (Num. xxxii. 1-5, 33). He says (Reise-
p^lt, to scatter (Ges. p. 434); often in A. V. bowl.
bericht, p. 82) that the provinces there of Kanetra
and Golan are the best watered and richest for
(2.) ^2S: Kparrip: crater. (3.) ""ODS : craier
pasturage not only of Peraea but of all Syria;
so that the wandering tribes of nomads alone feed in A. V. sometimes cup, from ^^3, cover, a cup
there more than 300,000 camels six months in the
with a lid. (4.) ^|D, wrongly in LXX. (Ex. xii.
year ;while, as ascertained from the bureau of
tax-registration at Damascus, 42 other Bedouin 22) 0vpa, and in Vulg. limen (Ges. p. 965).
tribes range there {nomadiaren) during the entire 1. Between the various vessels bearing in the
year. Hence the agricultural population have for A. V. the names of basin, bowl, chaiger, cup and
centuries been driven away and the cities once dish, it is scarcely possible now to ascertain the
found in that quarter lie now in ruins. H. precise distinction, as very few, if any remains are
ter of Ishmael, the last married of the three wives Oriental vessels for culinary or domestic purposes.
of Esau (Gen. xxxvi. 3, 4, 13), from whose son, Among the smaller vessels for the Tabernacle or Tem-
Reuel, four tribes of the Edomites were descended. ple-service, many must have been required to receive
When first mentioned she is called Mahalath (Gen. from the sacrificial victims the blood to be sprinkled
xxviii. 9); whilst, on the other hand, the name for purification. Moses, on the occasion of the
Bashemath is in the narrative (Gen. xxvi. 34) given great ceremony of purification in the wilderness,
to another of Esau's wives, the daughter of Elon
half the blood in " the basins " H^SSH, or
the Hittite. remarkable that
It is Esau's wives put
all
receive different names in the genealogical table of bowls, and afterwards sprinkled it on the people
the Edomites (Gen. xxxvi.) from those by which (Ex. xxiv. 6, 8, xxix. 21; Lev. i. 5, 15, iii. 2, 8,
they have been previously mentioned in the history. 13, iv. 5, 34, vui. 23, 24, xiv. 14, 25, xvi. 15, 19;
The diversity will be best seen by placing the names Heb. ix. 19). Among the vessels cast in metal,
side by side :
— whether gold, silver, or brass, by Hiram for Solomon,
besides the laver and great sea, mention is made
Genealogy Narrative
of basins, bowls, and cups. Of the first (""p^Tp,
(Gen. xxxvi. 2, 3). (Gen. xxvi. 34 ; xxviii. 9).
marg. bowls) he is said to have made 100 (2 Chr.
1. Adah, d. of Elon. 2. Bashemath, of Elon.
d.
iv. 8; 1 K. vii. 45, 46. Cf. Ex. xxv. 29 and 1 Chr.
2. Aholibamah, d. of Anah. 1. Judith, d. of Beeri.
3. Bashemath ,d. of Ishmael.
3.
xxviii. 14, 17).
Mahalath, d. of Ishmael. Josephus, probably with great
exaggeration, reckons of <pid\ai and (rirovSela,
Whatever be the explanation of this diversity of 20,000 in gold 'and 40,000 in silver, besides an
names, there is every reason for supposing that they equal number in each metal of Kparijpes, for the
BASKET BAT 253
offerings of flour mixed with oil (Ant. viii. 3, §§ 7, ing Hebrew words is KapraWos, which specifically
8. Comp. Birch, Hist, of Pottery, i. 152). means a basket that tapers downwards (k6<Pivos
otbs to k6.tw, Suid.), similar to the Roman corbis.
2. The " basin " from which our Lord washed
This shape of basket appears to have been familiar
the disciples' feet, viirrfy, was probably deeper and
to the Egyptians (Wilkinson, ii. 401). (4.) 3V??,
larger than the hand-basin for sprinkling, "T^D
so called from its similarity to a bird-cage or trap
(Jer. lii. A. V. "caldrons," Vulg.
18). which, in
(ndpraWos is used in the latter sense in Ecclus.
lebetes, is by the Syr. rendered basins for washing
probably in regard to its having a lid: it
the feet (John xiii. 5). (Schleusner, Drusius.) xi. 30),
was used for carrying fruit (Am. viii. 1, 2); the
[Washing of Feet and Hands.]
LXX. gives 0770s Symm. more cor. ectly Ka\ados
H. W. P.
; ;
BASKET. The Hebrew terms used in the the Vulg. uncinus. (5.) TH, used like the Greek
work baskets. (2.) n^vD^D, a word of kindred Roman sportuki. Hesychius explains it as to to>v
Trvpwu dyyos i compare also the expression Seiwov
origin, applied to the basket used in gathering
curb o-irvpiSos (Athen. viii. 17). The k6<pivos
grapes (Jer. vi. 9). (3.) NpQ, in which the first seems to have been generally larger. According to
Etym. Mag. it is fiaBv Kal ko?\ov x^P'JM '' a3
used by the Romans (Colum. xi. 3, p. 460) it con-
tained manure enough to make a portable hot-bed
[Diet, of Ant., Cophinus] in Rome itself it was :
to support this. W. L. B.
tion of the Hebrew name," the authority of the old in Palestine. Molossus Ruppelii, Vespertilio pipis-
versions, which are all agreed upon the point,'' and treUus var. JEgyptius, V. auritus var. jEgypt.,
the context of the passages where the Hebrew word Taphozous perforatus, Nycteris Thebaica, Rhino-
occurs, are conclusive as to the meaning. It is true poma microphyllum, Rhinolophus tridens, occur in
that in the A. V. of Lev. xi. 19, and Deut. xiv. 1 8, the tombs and pyramids of Egypt.
the 'atalUph closes the lists of ''fowls that shall Many travellers have noticed the immense num-
not be eaten;" but it must be remembered that bers ©f bats that are found in caverns in the East,
the ancients considered the bat to partake of the and Layard says that on the occasion of a visit to
nature of a bird, and the Hebrew oph, " fowls," a cavern these noisome beasts compelled him to
retreat (Nineveh and Babylon, p. 307). To this
day these animals find a congenial lurking abode
" amidst the remains of idols and the sculptured
representations of idolatrous practices" (Script.
Nat. II. p. 8): thus forcibly attesting the meaning
of the prophet Isaiah's words. Bats belong to the
order Cheiroptera, class Mammalia. W. H.
BASTARD. Among those who were excluded
from entering the congregation, that is, from inter-
marrying with pure Hebrews (Selden, Table Talk,
s. v. "Bastard"), even to the tenth generation,
'ataUeph ismentioned, the following words, which born of relations between whom marriage is forbid-
were doubtless suggested by this name, occur " All :
den. Simeon the Temanite says, it is every one
fowls that creep, going upon all four, shall be an
whose parents are liable to the punishment of
" cutting off" by the hands of Heaven; R. Joshua,
abomination unto you." Besides the passages cited
every one whose parents are liable to death by the
above, mention of the bat occurs in Is. ii. 20 : " In
that day a man shall cast his idols of silver and his
house of judgment, as, for instance, the offspring
" of adultery. The ancient versions (LXX., Yulg.,
idols of gold .... to the moles and to the bats :
through the smoke that cometh out of the temple Defunct, c. iii. ):
upon their bodies and heads sit bats, swallows, and « Manzeribus scortum, sed moecha nothis dedit ortum."
birds, and the cats also." The child of a goi, or non-Israelite, and a maimer
was also reckoned by the Talmudists a mamzer, as
was the issue of a slave and a mamzer, and of a
mamzir and female proselyte. The term also occurs
in Zech. ix. 6, " a bastard shall dwell in Ashdod,"
where it seems to denote a foreign race of mixed
and spurious birth. Dr. Geiger infers from this
passage that mamzer specially signifies the issue
of such marriages between the Jews and the women
of Ashdod as are alluded to in Neh. xiii. 23, 24,
and applies it exclusively to the Philistine bastard.
W. A. W.
BATH, BATHING. This was a prescribed
part of the Jewish ritual of purification in cases of
accidental, leprous, or ordinary uncleanness (Lev.
Num. xix. 7, 19; 2 Sam.
xv. j/ass., xvi. 28, xxii. 6;
xi. 2,4; 2 K. v. 10); as also after mourning which
always implied defilement, e. g. Ruth iii. 3 ; 2 Sam.
xii. The high-priest at his inauguration (Lev.
20.
6) and on the day of atonement, once before
xiii.
" night " : vespertilio, from " vesper," the evening. LCOO_i (fvaso), " a peacock."
BATH BATH-ZACHARIAS 255
high-priest in bathing. There were bath-rooms in at Heshbon would, according to the Oriental cus-
the later Temple over the chambers Abtinet and tom, be the gate pointing to a town of that name.
Happarvah for the priests' use (Lightfoot, Detm The only place in this neighborhood at all resem-
of Temp. p. '24). A bathing-chamber was probably bling Bath-rabbim in sound is Babbah (Amman),
included in houses even of no great rank in cities but the one tank of which we gain any intelligence
from early times (2 Sam. xi. 2) ; much more in as remaining at Heslxin, is on the opposite (S.) side*
those of the wealthy in later times often in gardens
; of the town to Amman (Porter, Handbook, p. 298).
(Susan. 15). With this, anointing was customarily Future investigations may settle this point. The
ioined ; the climate making both these essential LXX. and Vulg. translate: eV irvAais duyarpbs
alike to health and pleasure, to which luxury added ttoKKuv'i in porta fliee multitudinis. G.
the use of perfumes (Susan. 17; Jud. x. 3; Esth.
ii. 12). The " pools," such as that of Siloam, and
BATH'SHEBA [rather Bath-shela] ("H3
Hezekiah's (Neh. iii. K. xx. 20; Is. xxii. 372^?» 2 Sam. xi. 3, &c. also called Bath-shua,
15, 16; 2 ;
bath probably prevailed, and an allusion in Josephus a tighter of seven, sc. years), the daughter of Eliam
/1
(.KovCrSfJ-tVOS (TTpaTtWTlKUITfpOV, B. J. i. 17, § 7) (2 Sam. xi. 3), or Ammiel (1 Chr. iii. 5), the son
seems to imply the use of the bath (henci?, no doubt, of Ahithophel (2 Sam. xxiii. 34), the wife of Uriah
a public one, as in Home) by legionary soldiers. the Hittite. It is probable that the enmity of
We read also of a castle luxuriously provided with Ahithophel towards David was increased, if not
a volume of water in its court, and of a Herodian caused, by the dishonor brought by him upon his
palace with spacious pools adjoining, in which the family in the person of Bathsheba. The child
guests continued swimming, &c. in very hot weather which was the fruit of her adulterous intercourse
from noon till dark (Joseph. Ant. xii. 4, § 11, xv. with David died but after marriage she became
:
3, § 3). The hot baths of Tiberias, or more strictly the mother of four sons, Solomon (Matt. i. 6),
of Emmaus (Euseb. Ononiast. Alddfi, query Al/j.dd? Shimea, Shobab, and Nathan. When, in David's
Bonfrerius) near it, and of Callirrhoe, near the old age, Adonijah, an elder son by Haggith, at-
Eastern shore of the Dead Sea, were much resorted tempted to set aside in his own favor the succession
to. (Keland, i. 46 Joseph. Ant. xviii. 2, xvii. 6.
;
promised to Solomon, Bathsheba was employed by
§ 5, B. J. i. 33, § 5 ; Amm. Marcell. xiv. 8 ;
Nathan to inform the king of the conspiracy (1 K.
Stanley, 373, 295.) The parallel customs of ancient i. 11, 15, 23). After the accession of Solomon,
Egypt, Greece, and Home, are too well known to she, as queen-mother, requested permission of her
need special allusion. (See Diet, of Gr. and Rom. son for Adonijah to take in marriage Abishag the
Ant., art. Balnea). H. H. Shunammite. This permission was refused, and be-
* The N. T. passages should be noticed. In came the occasion of the execution of Adonijah
John xiii. 10 (where AeAou/ueVos is opposed to (1 K. ii. 24, 25). [David.] Bathsheba was said
vtyacrBat ) there is an unquestioned reference to the by Jewish tradition to have composed and recited
practice of bathing, especially before partaking of Prov. xxxi. by way of admonition or reproof to her
the Passover meal. For \ovrp6v in Eph. v. 26 son Solomon, on his marriage with Pharaoh's
and Tit. iii. 5, variously rendered as "bath" or daughter. Calmet, Diet. s. v.; Com. a Lapid. on
" bathing," see Baptism IV. 3, 4; and Meyer and Prov. xxxi. H. W. P.
Ellicott on those passages. Whether fSairTlfficvTut in
BATH-SHU'A (WETTI? [daughter of an
Mark vii. 4 refers to bathing the body after coming
oath]: Vat. and Alex, j) B-npaafSee: Bethsabee),
from market (De Wette, Meyer), or washing by
a variation of the name of Bathsheba, mother of
immersion what has been purchased and brought
Solomon, occurring only in 1 Chr. iii. 5. It is per-
from market (Lange, Bleek), is a point about which
haps worth notice that Shua was a Canaanite name
As to the means for bathing
interpreters differ.
which the Jews anciently possessed in the tanks
(comp. 1 Chr. ii. 3, and Gen. xxxviii. 2, 12 — where
•• Bath-shua"
is really the name of Judah's wife),
and reservoirs within and around Jerusalem, and
while Bathsheba's original husband was a Hittite.
which to some extent the inhabitants of that city
possess at present, see Waters, under Jerusa- BATH-ZACHARI'AS (quasi IT""! 5? ,T2
lem. The traveller in the East finds the syna- [house of Z.\. Baidfaxap'ia', Alex, and Joseph.
gogues of the- modern Jews, e. g. those at Safed BedfaxapLci'- Bethzachara), a place, named only
in Galilee, furnished with large bathing rooms for 1 Mace. vi. 32, 33, to which Judas Maccabseus
the performance of the washings which they prac- marched from Jerusalem, and where he encamped
tice in connection with their worship. The syna- for the relief of Bethsura (Bethzur) when the latter
gogues at Jerusalem have a similar arrangement. was besieged by Antiochus Eupator. The two
H. places were seventy stadia apart (Joseph. Ant. xii.
BATH-RABTBIM, the
intricate and confined
gate of ("137127 Sov (Joseph, B. J. i.
—
CTevr\s oij<rr]s ttjs irap6-
1, § 5, and comp. the passage
D^ZPTG), one of the gates of the ancient city cited above, from which it is evident
that Josephus
knew the spot). This description is met in every
of Heshbon, by ('V) which were two " pools," a respect by the modem Beit Sakarkh, which has
whereto Solomon likens the eyes of his beloved been discovered by Robinson at nine miles north
(Cant. vii. 4 [5]). The "Gate of Bath-rabbim" of Beit sir, " on an almost isolated promontory or
a The " fish-pools " of the A. V. is from piscina; of 6 * Tristram (Land of Israel, p. 640) makes it bear
the Vulg. The Hebrew word Berecah is simply a pool southeast of Hesb&n. H.
or tank.
256 BATTLE-AXE BDELLIUM
jutting out between two deep valleys, and con- forbidden, perhaps therefore some reference to such
tell,
nected with the high ground south by a low neck acts of oppression is made in these words of the
between the heads of the valleys, the neck forming psalmist. W. H.
the only place of access to what must have been
BAZ'LITH
(fTyS? [a stripping, naked-
an almost impregnable position " (Rob. iii. 283,
ness']). " Children of B." were amongst the Ne-
284). The place lies in the entangled country west
thinim who returned with Zerubbabel (Neh. vii.
of the Hebron road, between four and five miles
54). In Ezr. ii. 52, the name is given as Baz-
south of Bethlehem. [Bethzuk.] G.
luth (rFwSS [which means the same] ). LXX.
* BATTLE-AXE (Jer. li. 20). [Axe, 7;
in both places Bao-a\<b0; [but Vat. in Ezr. Baara-
Maul.]
Swe, in Neh. Baaraaid-] Besluth. [Basaloth.]
* BAT TLEMENT. [House.]
BA'VAI [2 syl.] 03? [of Persian origin,
BAZLUTH (rfibv?: 0a<ra\aS<?; [Vat.
BcwaScoe:] Besluth). Bazlith (Ezr. ii. 52).
Ges.]: Bevel; [Vat. BeSei; Comp. Bafiat:] Ba-
vai), son of Henadad, ruler (127) of the "dis-
BDELLIUM (nVlS, bedolaeh: &/0pa|,
Kfjvo-TaWov: bdellium), a precious substance, the
trict " 0| /3) of Keilah in the time of Nehemiah name of which occurs in Gen. ii. 12, with " gold "
(Neh. iii. 18). and "onyx stone," as one of the productions of
the land of Havilah, and in Num. xi. 7, where
BAY-TREE (rnT&" ezrach: K e$ p0 s rod
manna is in color compared to bdellium. There
Ai&dvov'- cedrus Libani). It is difficult to see
are few subjects that have been more copiously dis-
upon what grounds the translators of the A. V.
cussed than this one, which relates to the nature
nave understood the Hebrew word of Ps. xxxvii.
of the article denoted by the Hebrew word bedo-
35 to signify a " bay-tree " such a rendering is:
or faint blue for the same reason the av6pa£ (" car-
;
port of this view we may observe that the word according to Pliny brochon, malacha, maldacon,
translated "in great power" c more literally signi- names which seem to be allied to the Hebrew bedo-
fies "to be formidable," or "to cause terror," and laeh. Plautus (Cure. i. 2, 7) uses the word bdell-
that the word which the A. V. translates " spread- ium.
ing himself," d more properly means to " make As
regards the theory which explains bedolaeh
bare." The passage then might be thus para- it must be allowed that the evidence
by "pearls,"
phrased " I have seen the wicked a terror to oth- in its favor is very inconclusive in the first place
:
;
ers, and behaving with barefaced audacity, just as it assumes that Havilah is some spot on the Persian
some proud native of the land." In the Levitical Gulf where pearls are found, a point however, which
Law the oppression of the stranger was strongly is fairly open to question ; and secondly, it must be
a
b
From FPIT, ortus est (Sol).
r
ny-
nt-iw. fT^HD.
VT • •
See the Hebrew Lexicons, s.
BEALIAH BEAR 257
remembered that there are other Hebrew words for continue in flower March. In Egypt beans are
till
"pearls," namely, Dar, a and according to Bochart, sown in November and reaped in the middle of
Ptuinim,' though there is much doubt as to the
1 February; but in Syria the harvest is later. Dr.
meaning of this latter word. Kitto 319) says that the "stalks are cut
{ibid.
The fact that ibm, "a stone," is prefixed to down with the scythe, and these are afterwards cut
shohnni. "onyx," and not to beddlach, seems to ex- and crushed to fit them for the food of cattle ; the
clude the latter from being a mineral; nor do we beans when sent to market are often deprived of
think it a sufficient objection to say " that such a their skins by the action of two small mill-stowes
production as bdellium is not valuable enough to (if the phrase may be allowed) of clay dried in the
be classed with gold and precious stones," for it sun." Dr. Shaw (Travels, i. 257, 8vo ed. 1808)
would be easy to prove that resinous exudations says that in Northern Africa beans are usually full
were held in very high esteem by the ancients, both podded at the beginning of March, and continue
Jews and Gentiles; and it is more probable that during the whole spring; that they are "boiled and
the sacred historian should mention, as far as may stewed with oil and garlic, and are the principal
be in a few words, the varied productions, vegeta- food of persons of all distinctions."
ble as well as mineral, of the country of which he Herodotus (ii. 37) states that the Egyptian
was speaking, rather than confine his remarks to priests abhor the sight of beans, and consider them
its mineral treasures; and since there is a similarity impure, and that the people
do not sow this pulse
of form between the Greek fiSiAKtov, or fxd5e\Kou, at all, nor indeed eat what grows in their
country;
and the Hebrew bedohch, and as this opinion is but a passage in Diodorus implies that the absti
well supported by authority, the balance of proba- nence from this article of food was not
general
tion of the A. Y., though the point will probably ation. The dislike which Pythagoras is said to
always be left an open oue. c W. H. have maintained for beans has been by some traced
to the influence of the Egyptian priests with that
BEALFAH (rPb^, remarkable as con-
philosopher (see Smith's Diet, of Gr. and Horn.
taining the names of both Baal and Jah: BaaAia; Biog. art. "Pythagoras").
[Vat. FA. BaSoia; Alex. BooSta:] Baalla), a Hiller (Hieropliyt. ii. 130), quoting from the
Benjamite, who went over to David at Ziklag (1 Mishna, that the high-priest of the Jews was
sa?s A
Clir. xii. 5). not allowed to eat either eggs, cheese, flesh, bruised
BE'ALOTH (n'lb^a, the plur. fern, form beans (fabas fresas), or lentils on the day before
the sabbath.
of Baal: BaKfuaivdv, Alex. BaAcofl: Baloth), a
town in the extreme south of Judah (Josh. xv. 24). The bean ( Vtcia faba) is too well known to need
description ; it is cultivated over a large portion of
BE'AN, Children [Sons] of (viol haiaf, the old world from the north of Europe to the south
Joseph, viol rod Badvou: Jilii Bean), a tribe, appar-
of India ; it belongs to the natural order of plants
ently of predatory Bedouin habits, retreating into W. H.
called Leguminosce.
« towers " (irvpyous) when not plundering, and who
were destroyed by Judas Maccabseus (1 Mace. v. 4). BEAR
(n'V Heb. and Ch., or 3fn,<&&: &pic-
The name has been supposed to be identical with tos, &pKos, \ukos in Prov. xxviii. 15; fiepifj.va
Beon ; but in the absence of more information
the word were 2N1 wsas,
Prov. xvii. 12, as if :
this must remain mere conjecture, especially as it is
Beans are mentioned with various other things in habit than the brown bear (Units arctos), but
2 Sam. xvii. 28, as having been brought to David when pressed with hunger it is known to attack
at the time of his flight from Absalom, and again men and animals it is very fond of a kind of chick-
;
flower at Lydda on the 23d, and at Sidon and Acre province of Hasbeiya on Mount Hermon. Kloeder
even earlier (Kitto, Phys. II. Palest. 215); they supposed this bear must be the Ursus arctos, for
d
Vl9 from V^5, " to roll," in allusion to its
-pJjHeb. ; » J, Arab.
form. Lat. bulla ; Dutch, bol. " a bean." The Ara-
6
ova?.
bic word (J«j, A 1, & identical. Gesen. Thes. s. t
c The derivation of FT? 121 is doubtful ; but First's 6
but Bochart
Hl'l from 2*31, l ente >ncedere ;
etymology from 712, manare, fluere, " to distill," conjectures an Arabic root = « to be hairy." Foretell
17
258 BEARD BEARD
which opinion, however, he seems to have had at the bottom, and gods with one turning up at
no authority; and a recent writer, Dr. Thomson the end (Wilkinson, Anc. Egypt, suppl. plate 77,
(Land and Book, p. 573), says that the Syrian part 2). The enemies of the Egyptians, including
hear is still found on the higher mountains of this probably many of the nations of Canaan. Syria,
country, and that the inhabitants of Hermon stand and Armenia, &c, are represented nearly always
in great fear of him. Hemprich and Ehrenberg bearded. On the tomb of Beni Hassan is repre-
(Symbohz Phys. pt. i.) inform us that during the sented a train of foreigners with asses and cattle,
summer months these bears keep to the snowy parts who all have short beards, as have also groups of.
of Lebanon, but descend in winter to the villages various nations on another monument.
and gardens it is probable also that at this period
;
the beard grow in mourning, being at all other lect it in seasons of permanent affliction (2 Sam.
times shaved. Hence Joseph, when released from *ix. 24), and to regard any insult to it as the last
prison, " shaved his beard " to appear before Pha- outrage which enmity can inflict. Thus David
raoh (Gen. xli. 14). It was, however, the practice resented the treatment of his ambassadors by Ha-
among the Egyptians to wear a false beard made nun (2 Sam. x. 4); so the people of God are figu-
of plaited hair, and of a different form according ratively spoken of as "beard" or "hair" which
to the rank of the persons, private individuals being lie will shave with " the the king Assyria " razor, of
represented with a small beard, scarcely two inches (Is. vii. 20).The beard was the object of saluta-
long, kings with one of considerable length, square tion, and under this show of friendly reverence
though the Romans, when they adopted the fash- BE'CHER ("132 : [in Gen.] Bo X o>, [Alex.
ion of shaving, compelled their slaves to Xo0a>p; in Num., Comp. B€x«'p> tne ot l lers omit;
cherish
their hair and beard, and let them shave when in 1 Chr., Bax'ip, Alex. Boxop, Vat. A/3ax€t in
manumitted (Liv. xxxiv. 52, xlv. 44). H. H. ver. 8, in ver. 6 omits:] Bechor, [in Num. Beefier :]
according to Gesen. a young camel,
BEAST. The representative in the A. V. of first-born, but also hints at, Onom. p. 399).
which Simonis
the following Hebrew words: 17^712, "1^372, 1. The second son of Benjamin, according to the
list both in Gen. xlvi. 21, and 1 Chr. vii. 6 but
7VT\ (SVn, Chald.).
;
pressed by the addition of the word <"7"7.tt?n (has- accounted for on the supposition of "1^2 having
sdr/ch, wild beast), " (Ex. xxiii. 11; been accidentally taken for a proper name, instead
"of the field
of in the sense of "first-born." It may be added
Lev. xxvi. 22 Deut. vii. 22 Hos. ii. 14, xiii. 8
; ;
BE'BAI [2 syl.] 022 [Pehlevi, fatherly] brew ^"152, but which in the LXX. is rendered
[In Ezr.,] [Vat. Baflei, Alex. Bo/8ai; in
Baflcu, Trpair6roKos ai/rov, and another name, 'Aad, added
Neh.,] Brjflt, Be0cu, [etc.; in 1 Esdr. Brjflal, to make up the six sons of Azel. And that the
Zebes-J] Bebai). LXX. are right in their rendering is made highly
1. " Sons of Bebai," 623 (Neh. 628) in number, probable by the very same form being repeated in
returned from Babylon with Zerubbabel (Ezr. ii. ver. 39, " and the sons of Eshek his brother were
11; Xeh. vii. 16; 1 Esdr. v. 13), and at a later
Ulam his first-born, 1~OD2> Jehush the second,"
period twenty-eight more, under Zechariah the son
of Bebai, returned with Ezra (Ezr. viii. 11).
&c. The support too which Becher as a proper
Four
of this family had taken foreign wives (Ezr. x. 28;
name derives from the occurrence of the same name
in Num. xxvi. 35, is somewhat weakened by the
1 Esdr. ix. 29). The name occurs also among those
fact that Bered (BapdS, LXX.) is substituted for
who sealed the covenant (Neh. x. 15). [Babi.]
Becher in 1 Chr. vii. 20, and that it is omitted
« From the unused root 13712. "to be dumb."
- t'
" a desert " D^*3£
; = " any dwellers in a dry or
b The word D^X is translated by the A. V. " wild desert region," jackals, hyenas, &c. Bochart is wrong
beasts of the desert " in Is. xiii. 21, xxxiv. 14 ; Jer. 1. in limiting the word to mean " wild cats " (Hitroz. ii.
206).
39. The root is !"P2, "to be dry " whence ;
"»S.
260 BECHER BECHORATH
altogether in the LXX. version of Num. xxvi. 35. Omri, Jerimoth, and Abiah; other branches pos-
Moreover, which is perhaps the strongest argument sessed the fields round Anathoth and Alameth,
of all, in the enumeration of the Benjamite families called Alemeth vi. 60, and Almon Josh. xxi. 18.
in Num. xxvi. 38, there is no mention of Becher Which of the above were Becher's own sons, and
or the Bachrites, but Ashbel and the Ashbelites which were grandsons, or more remote descendants,
immediately follow Bela and the Belaites. Not- is perhaps impossible to determine. But the most-
withstanding, however, all this, the first supposition important of them, as being ancestor to king Saul,
was, it can scarcely be doubted, substantially the and his great captain Abner (2 Sam. iii. 37), the
true one. Becher was one of Benjamin's three sons, last-named Abiah, was, it seems, literally Becher's
Bela, Becher, Ashbel, and came down to Egypt with son. The generations appear to have been as fol-
Jacob, being one of the fourteen descendants of lows: Becher —
Abiah (Aphiah, 1 Sam. ix. 1) —
Rachel who settled in Egypt, namely, Joseph and Bechorath —Zeror — Abiel (Jehiel, 1 Chr. ix. 35)
his two sons Manasseh and Ephraim, Benjamin and — Ner —
Kish —
Saul. Abner was another son
his three sons above named, Gera, Naaman, Ehi of Ner, brother therefore to Kish, and uncle to
Saul. Abiel or Jehiel seems to have been the first
OnS, alias DT'nS, Ahiram, Num. xxvi. 38, and
of his house who settled at Gibeon or Gibeah (1
rHnS, Aharah, 1 Chr. viii. 1, and perhaps Chr. viii. 29, ix. 35), which d perhaps he acquired
by his marriage with Maachah, and which became
mnS and PPnS, ver. 4 and 7), and Ard
thenceforth the seat of his family, and was called
(Tl$, but in 1 Chr. Addar), the afterwards Gibeah of Saul (1 Sam. xi. 4; Is. x. 29).
viii. 3, ~HS,
sons' of Bela, Muppim (otherwise Shuppim, and
From 1 Chr. viii. 6 it would seem that before this
Shephuphan, 1 Chr. vii. 12, 15, viii. 5; but Shu- Gibeon or Geba
had been possessed by the sons of
pham, Num. xxvi. 39) and Huppim (Huram, 1
Ehud (called Abihud ver. 3) and other sons of Bela.
Chr. viii. 5, but Hupham, Num. xxvi. 39), appar- But the text appears to be very corrupt.
Ahiram or Ehi (Aher, 1 Chr. vii. Another remarkable descendant of Becher was
ently the sons of
Bichri, a Benjamite, who headed
12), and Eosh, of whom we can give no account, Sheba the son of
the formidable rebellion against David described in
as there is no name the least like it in the parallel
2 Sam. xx. and another, probably, Shirnei the son
;
passages, unless perchance it be for Joash (Vi 1 ), of Gera of Bahurim, who cursed David as he fled
a son of Becher, 1 Chr. vii. 8. a And so, it is wor- from Absalom (2 Sanh xvi. 5), since he is said to
thy of observation, the LXX.
render the passage, be " a man of the family of the house of Saul."'
only that they make Ard
the son of Gera, great- But if so, Gera must be a different person from the
grandson therefore to Benjamin, and make all the Gera of Gen. xlvi. 21 and 1 Chr. viii. 3. Perhaps
others sons of Bela. As regards the posterity of
therefore nPStT^p is used in the wider sense of
Becher, we have already noticed the singular fact
as Josh. vii. 17, and so the passage may only
of there being no family named after him at the tribe,
numbering of the Israelites in the plains of Moab, mean that Shimei was a Benjamite. In this case
as related in Num.
xxvi. But the no less singular he would be a descendant of Bela.
circumstance of there being a Becher, and a family From what has been said above it will be seen
of Bachrites, among the sons of Ephraim (ver. 35),
how important it is, with a view of reconciling ap-
seems to supply the true explanation. The slaugh- parent discrepancies, to bear in mind the different
Goshen, in that border affray related in 1 Chr. vii. families. Thus in the case before us we have the
had sadly thinned the house of Ephraim of its tribe ofBenjamin described (1.) as it was about the
21,
males. The daughters of Ephraim must therefore time when Jacob went down into Egypt; (2.) as it
have sought husbands in other tribes, and in many was just before the entrance into Canaan; (3.) as it
cases must have been heiresses. It is therefore was in the days of David; and (4.) as it was eleven
highly probable that Becher, 6 or his heir and head generations after Jonathan and David, i. e. in Heze-
kiah's reign. It is obvious how in these later times
of his house, married an Ephraimitish heiress, a
daughter of Shuthelah (1 Chr. vii. 20, 21), and so many new heads of houses, called sons of Benjamin,
that his house was reckoned in the tribe of Ephra-
would have sprung up, while older ones, by failure
im, just as Jair, the son of Segub, was reckoned in of lines, or translation into other tribes, would have
the tribe of Manasseh (1 Chr. ii. 22; Num. xxxii. disappeared. Even the non-appearance of Becher
The time when Becher first appears in 1 Chr. viii. 1 may be accounted for on this prin-
40, 41).
among the Ephraimites, namely, just before the en- ciple,without the necessity for altering the text.
tering into the promised land, when the people were Son of Ephraim, Num. xxvi. 35, called Bered
2.
numbered by genealogies for the express purpose of 1 Chr. vii. 20. Same as the preceding.
A. C. H.
dividing the inheritance equitably among the tribes.
is evidently highly favorable to this view. (See BECHO'RATH (m'"OS [frst-bai-n]: Ba-
Num. xxvi. 52-56, xxvii.). The junior branches Xtp [Vat. -x«ip]; Alex. Bex<»pa0 Bechorath), :
of Becher's family would of course continue in the son of Aphiah, or Abiah, and grandson of Becher,
tribe of Benjamin. Their names, as given in 1 according to 1 Sam. ix. 1; 1 Chr. vii. 8. [Be-
Chr. vii. 8, were Zemira, Joash, Eliezer, Elioenai, cher.] A. C. H.
Beds. (From Fellows, Asia Miner.) being used for nightly rest, and during the
ticle
day. This applies both to the divan and bedstead
1. This substantive portion of the bed was lim-
in all its forms, except perhaps the litter. There
ited to a mere mat, or one or more quilts.
2. A
quilt finer than those used in 1. In sum- was also a garden-watcher's
o bed,
t
ren- '
HD^O, :
mer a thin blanket or the outer garment worn by dered variously in the A. V. "cottage" and "lodge,"
day (1 Sam. xix. 13) sufficed. This latter, in the which seems to have been slung like a hammock,
case of a poor person, often formed both 1. and 2 perhaps from the trees (Is. i. 8, xxiv. 20).
and that without a bedstead. Hence the law pro- Josephus (Ant. xii. 4, 11) mentions the bed-
vided that it should not be kept in pledge after chambers in the Arabian palace of Hyrcanus.
sunset, that the poor man might not lack his need-
ful covering (Deut. xxiv. 13).
3. The only material mentioned for this, is that
which occurs 1 Sam. xix. 13, and the word used is
of doubtful meaning, but seems to signify some
fabric woven or plaited of goat's hair. It is clear,
however, that it was something hastily adopted to
serve as a pillow, and is not decisive of the ordi
38) as he crossed the lake. The block of stone vate life is given in 2 K. iv. 10. The " bed-cham-
ber " in the temple where Joash was hidden, was,
such as Jacob used, covered perhaps with a gar-
ment, was not unusual among the poorer folk, shep- as Calmet suggests (Diet, of Bib., art. Beds),
herds, &c. probably a store-chamber for keeping beds, not a
4. The bedstead was not always necessary, the mere bedroom, and thus better adapted to con-
divan, or platform along the side or end of an Ori- ceal the fugitives (2 K. xi. 2; 2 Chr. xxii. 1L
ental room, sufficing as a support for the bedding. iTKSSn "TTO « chamber of beds," not the usual
(See preceding cut.) Yet some slight and portable
frame seems implied among the senses of the word 2SK72 Tin "chamber of reclining," Ex. viii.
3 and passim).
n?2p, which used for a "bier" (2 Sam. iii.
is
The position of the bed-chamber in the most re-
31), and for the ordinary bed (2 K. iv. 10), for the
mote and secret parts of the palace seems marked
litter on which a sick person might be carried (1
in the passages Ex. viii. 3; 2 K. vi. 12. H. H.
Sam. xix. 15), for Jacob's bed of sickness (Gen.
tlvii. 31), and for the couch on which guests re- BET) AD ("H? [separation]: BapdS; [Comp.
262 BEDAIAH BEE
BaSdS :] Badad), the father of one of the kings of the bee that is in the land of Assyria." That Pal-
Edom, "Hadad ben-Bedad" (Gen. xxxvi. 35; 1 estine abounded in bees is evident from the descrip-
Chr. i. 46). tion of that land by Moses, for it was a land " flow-
*BEDA'IAH (3 syl.), Ezr. x. 35. [Bede- ing with milk and honey; " nor is there any reason
IAH.] forsupposing that this expression is to be understood
otherwise than in its literal sense. Modern trav-
BED AN (7*T3 [servile, Ges.] : [Bapdic :] ellers occasionally allude to the bees of Palestine.
Badcm). Mentioned 1 Sam. xii. 11, as a Judge
1. Dr. Thomson (Land and Book, p. 299) speaks of
of Israel between Jerubbaal (Gideon) and Jephthah. immense swarms of bees which made their home
As no such name occurs in the book of Judges, in a gigantic cliff of Wady Kurn. " The people
various conjectures have been formed as to the per- of M'alia, several years ago," he says, "let a man
son meant, most of which are discussed in Pole down the face of the rock by ropes. He was en-
{Synopsis, in loc). Some maintain him to be the
tirely protected from the assaults of the bees, and
Jair mentioned m
Judg. x. 3, who, it must then extracted a large amount of honey; but he was so
be supposed, was also called Bedan to distinguish terrified by the prodigious swarms of bees that he
him from the older Jair, son of Manasseh (Num. could not be induced to repeat the exploit." This
xxxii. 41), a Bedan being actually named among forcibly illustrates Deut. xxxii. 13, and Ps. lxxxi.
the descendants of Manasseh in 1 Chr. vii. 17. 16, as to "honey out of the stony rock," and the
The Chaldee Paraphrast reads Samson for Bedan two passages out of the Psalms and Judges quoted
in 1 Sam. xii. 11, and many suppose Bedan to be above, as to the fearful nature of the attacks of
another name for Samson, either a contraction of these insects when irritated.
Ben-Dan (the son of Dan or Danite), or else mean- Maundrell ( Trav. p. 66 says that in passing )
cxviii. 12, "They compassed me about like bees;" the circumstance. Compare also Oedmann ( Ver-
and in Is. vii. 18, " It shall come to pass in that misch. Saniinl. pt. vi. c. 20). can well, there- We
day that the Lord shall hiss for the fly that is in fore, understand the full force of the Psalmist's
the uttermost parts of the rivers of Egypt, and for complaint, " They came about me like bees." b
o From ""Q"^, ordine duxit ; eoi'git (examen). Ges. that are smoked ; " showing how ancient the custom is
Hies. s. T. of taking bees' nests by means of smoke. Constant
* It is very curious to observe that in the passage allusion is made to this practice in classical authors.
of Deut. i. 44, the Syriac version, the Targum of On- Wasps' nests were taken in the same way. See Bo-
selos, and an Arabic MS., read, " Chased you as bees chart (Hieroz. iii. 360).
BEE BEELZEBUL 263
The passage about the swarm of bees and honey whose labors kings and private men use for their
in the lion's carcase (Judg. xiv. 8) admits of easy health; she is desired and honored by all, and
explanation. The lion which Samson slew had though weak in strength, yet since she values wis-
been dead some little time before the bees had taken dom, she prevails." This passage is not found in
up their abode in the carcase, for it is expressly any Hebrew copy of the Scriptures it exists, how-
:
stated that " alter a time,'' Samson returned and ever in the Arabic, and it is quoted by Origen,
saw the bees and honey in the lion's carcase, so that Clemens Alexandrinus, Jerome, and other ancient
'• if,"' as
i >edmann has well observed, " any one here writers. As to the proper name, see Deborah.
represents to himself a corrupt and putrid carcase, The bee belongs to the family Apidm, of the
the occurrence ceases to have any true similitude, Hymenopterous order of insects. W. II
for it is well known that in these countries at cer- * On this subject of bees in Palestine, Mr. Tris-
tain seasons of the year the heat will in the course tram furnishes important testimony (Land of
of twenty-four hours so completely dry up the moist- Israel, pp. 86, 87). After speaking of "bee-keep-
ure of dead camels, and that without their under- ing" in that country, carried so far that almost'
going decomposition, that their bodies long remain, "every house possesses a pile of bee-hives in its
like mummies, unaltered and entirely free from yard," he adds respecting the number of wild bees
offensive odor." To the foregoing quotation we as follows " The innumerable fissures and clefts
:
may add that very probably the ants would help of the limestone rocks, which everywhere flank the
to consume the carcase, and leave perhaps in a valleys, afford in their recesses secure shelter for
short time little else than a skeleton. Herodotus any number of swarms, and many of the Bedouin,
(v. 114) speaks of a certain Onesilus who had been particularly in the wilderness of Judaea, obtain
taken prisoner by the Amathusians and beheaded, their subsistence by bee-hunting, bringing into Je-
and whose head having been suspended over the rusalem jars of that wild honey on which John the
gates, had become occupied by a swarm of bees; Baptist fed in the wilderness and which Jonathan
compare also Aldrovandus (De Insect, i. 110). Dr. had long before unwittingly tasted, when the comb
Thomson (Land and Book, p. 566) mentions this had dropped on the ground from the hollow of the
occurrence of a swarm of bees in a lion's carcase as tree in which it was suspended. The visitor to the
an extraordinary thing, and makes an unhappy con- Wady Kurn, when he sees the busy multitudes of
jecture, that perhaps "hornets," dtbabir in Arabic, bees about its clefts, cannot but recall to mind the
are intended, "if it were known," says he, "that promise, With honey out of the stony rock would
'
they manufactured honey enough to meet the de- 1 have satisfied thee.' There is ho epithet of the
mands of the story." It is known, however, that land of promise more true to the letter, even to the
hornets do not make honey, nor do any of the present day, than this, that it was a land flowing '
family Vespidm, with the exception, as far as has with milk and honey.' " H.
been hitherto observed, of the Brazilian Nectdi'-ina
mellijici. The passage in Is. vii. 18, " the Lord
BEELIADA
(V'VhV'Z known by Baal: =
shall hiss for the bee that is in the land of Assyria,"
'EAiaSe; [Vat. FA. BaA^Sae;] Alex. BaAAiaSa:
BaaUnda), one of David's sons, born in Jerusalem
has been understood by some to refer to the prac-
(1 Chr. xiv. 7). In the lists in Samuel the name
tice of •• calling out the bees from their hives by a
is Eliada, El being substituted for Baal.
hissing or whistling sound to their labor in the
fields, and summoning them again to return " in BEEL'SARUS (BeeKcrdpos : Beelsuro), 1
the evening (Harris, Nat. H. of Bible, art. Bee). Esdr. v. 8. {Bilshan.]
Bochart (Hieroz. iii. 358) quotes from Cyril, who BEELTETH'MUS (BeeArefl^os; Alex. [Bo-
thus explains this passage, and the one in Is. v. 26. eArefytos,] BeeA/re/uofl Balthemus), an officer of
:
Columella, Pliny, JElian, Virgil, are all cited by Artaxerxes residing in Palestine (1 Esdr. ii. 16,
Bochart in illustration of this practice see numer-
;
lowing remarks on this subject: —"No one has of Rehum, the name immediately before it (Ezr.
offered any proof of the existence of such a cus- iv. 8).
tom, and the idea will itself seem sufficiently strange BEEL'ZEBUL
(Bee\(ePovX: Beelzebub), the
to all who are acquainted with the habits of bees." title of a heathen deity, to whom the Jews ascribed
That the custom existed amongst the ancients of the sovereignty of the evil spirits (Matt. x. 25, xii.
calling swarms to their hives, must be familiar to 24; Mark iii. 22; Luke xi. 15 ff.). The correct
every reader of Virgil, reading is without doubt Beelzebul, and not Beel-
zebub [A. V.] as given in the Syriac, the Vulg., and
''Tinnitusque cie, et Martis quale cymbala circum,"
some other versions; the authority of the MSS.
and it is curious to observe that this practice has is decisive in favor of the former, the alteration
continued down to the present day. Many a cot- being easily accounted for by a comparison with
tager believes the bees will more readily swarm if 2 K. i. 2, to which reference is made in the passages
he beats together pieces of tin or iron. As to the quoted. [Baal, p. 207, No. 2.] Two questions
real use in the custom, this is quite another matter; present themselves in connection with this subject:
but no careful entomologist would hastily adopt (1.) How are we to account for the change of the
any opinion concerning it. final letter of the name? (2.) On what grounds
In all probability however, the expression in did the Jews assign to the Baal-zebub of Ekron the
Isaiah has reference, as Mr. Denham says, " to the peculiar position of 6 tuv Satfxoi/iuv ? The
&px<M
custom of the people in the East of calling the at- sources of information at our command for the an-
tention of any one by a significant hiss, or rather swer of these questions are scanty. The names are
hist." not found elsewhere. The LXX. translates Baal-
The LXX. has the following eulogium on the zebub BaoA fiv'ia, as also does Josephus (Ant. ix.
bee in Prov. vi. 8 " Go to the bee, and learn how 2, § 1 ) and the Tahnudical writers are silent on
: :
diligent she is, and what a noble work she produces, the subject.
264 BEELZEBUL BEEB
1. The
explanations offered in reference to the bams pilularius or dunghill beetle, in which case
change of the name may be ranged into two classes, Baal-zebub and Beelzebul might be used indiffer-
according as they are based on the sound or the ently.
meaning of the word. The former proceeds on the 2. The second question hinges to a certain extent
assumption that the name Beelzebub was offensive on the first. The reference in Matt, x. 25 [xii. 24]
to the Greek ear, and that the final letter was al- may have originated in a fancied resemblance between
tered to avoid the double b, just as Habakkuk be- the application of Ahaziah to Baal-zebub, and tuat
came in the LXX. A/jifiaKoifji (Hitzig, Vorbemerk. of the Jews to our Lord for the ejection of the un-
in Habakkuk), the choice of /, as a substitute for clean spirits. As no human remedy availed for the
6, being decided by the previous occurrence of the cure of this disease, the Jews naturally referred it
letter in the former part of the word (Bengel, to some higher power and selected Baal-zebub as
Gnomon in Matt. x. 25, comparing MeAx<$A. in the the heathen deity to whom application was made in
=
LXX. as Miehal). It is, however, by no means case of severe disease. The title &pxwv ruv Sai-
clear why other names, such as Magog, or Eldad, fxoviiov may have special reference to the nature of
should not have undergone a similar change. We
the disease in question, or it may have been educed
should prefer the assumption, in connection with from the name itself by a fancied or real etymology.
this view, that the change was purely of an acci- It is worthy of special observation that the notices
dental nature, for which no satisfactory reason can of Beelzebul are exclusively connected with the sub-
be assigned. The second class of explanations car- ject of demoniacal possession, a circumstance which
ries the greatest weight of authority with it. These may account for the subsequent disappearance of
proceed on the ground that the Jews intentionally the name. W. L. B.
changed the pronunciation of the word, so as either
to give a significance to it' adapted to their own
BE'EB =
(HS2 w<?#.- to (ppeap: puteus).
1. One of the latest halting-places of the Israel-
ideas, or to cast ridicule upon the idolatry of the
ites, lying beyond the Anion, and so called because
neighboring nations, in which case we might com-
of the well which was there dug by the " princes "
pare the adoption of Sychar for Sychem, Beth-aven
"
for Beth-el. The Jews were certainly keenly alive and "nobles of the people, and is perpetuated in
to the significance of names, and not unfrequenily
a fragment of poetry (Num. xxi. 16-18)." This
is possibly the Bker-elim, or "well of heroes,"
indulged in an exercise of wit, consisting of a play
upon the meaning of the words, as in the case of referred to in Is. xv. 8. The " wilderness " (""Q~Tp)
Nabal (1 Sam. xxv. 25), Abraham (Gen. xvii. 5), which is named as their next starting point in the
and Sarah (Gen. xvii. 15). Lightfoot (Exercita- last clause of verse 18, may be that before spoken of
tions, Matt. xii. 24) adduces instances from the
Talmudical writers of opprobrious puns applied to in 13, or it may be a copyist's mistake for "1S5P«
idols. The explanations, which are thus based on It was so understood by the LXX., who read the
etymological grounds, branch off into two classes clause, koI curb (pptaros
;
—
" and from the well,"
i. e. "from Beer."
some connect the term with ^'QT, habitation, thus According to the tradition of the Targumists —
making Beelzebul =
oHcoSetnrdVrjs (Matt. x. 25), a tradition in part adopted by St. Paul ( 1 Cor. x.
the lord of the dwelling, whether as the "prince of 4) —
this was one of the appearances, the last before
the power of the air" (Eph. ii. 2), or as the the entrance on the Holy Land, of the water which
prince of the lower world (Paulus, quoted by had " followed " the people, from its first arrival at
Olshausen, Comment, in Matt. x. 25), or as inhab- Rephidim, through their wanderings. The water
itinghuman bodies (Schleusner, Lex. s. v.), or as — so the tradition appears
to have run —
was grant-
occupying a mansion in the seventh heaven, like ed for the sake of Miriam, her merit being that, at
Saturn in Oriental mythology (Movers, Phoniz. i. the peril of her life, she had watched the ark in
260, quoted by Winer, Realwort. art. Beelzebub ; which lay the infant Moses. It followed the march
comp. Michaehs, Suppl. ad Lex. p. 205, for a sim- over mountains and into valleys, encircling the en-
tire camp, and furnishing water to every man at
ilar view). Others derive it from /3jf, dung (a
his own tent door. This it did till her death
word, it must be observed, not in use in the Bible
(Num. xx. 1), at which time it disappeared for a
itself, but frequently occurring in Talmudical writ-
season, apparently rendering a special act necessary
ers), thus making Beelzebul, literally, the lord of
on each future occasion for its evocation. The
dung, or the dunghill; and in a secondary sense, as
striking of the rock at Kadesh (Num. xx. 10) was
zebel was used by the Talmudical writers as = idol
the first of these the digging of the well at Beer
;
entirely alters the passage — ical iiropevdij iv 65<£ the widely extended Canaanitish tribe of the Hit-
Koi tyvyev els 'Papa; Vulg. in Bern). G. tites. On this supposition the difficulty vanishes,
* Some have thought this second Beer to be the and each of the accounts gives us just the infor-
same as Beeroth (which see), to which the objection mation we might expect. In the narrative, where
is that Jotham would not have been secure in a the stress is laid on Esau's wife" being of the race
place so near Shechem. Dr. Robinson heard of of Canaan, her father is called a Hittite; whilst
a deserted village el-Bireh near the border of the in the genealogy, where the stress is on Esau's con-
plain of Philistia, of course much more remote nection by marriage with the previous occupants of
from Shechem, and affording an opportunity of Mount Seir, he is most naturally and properly de-
ready escape thence into the desert if necessary; scribed under the more precise term Horite.
and he inquires whether Beer may not possibly 2. Father of the prophet Hosea (Hos. i. 1).
have been there {Res. ii. 132). A name like this F. W. G.
must have been given to many places. H.
BEER-LAHAI-ROT ("MH Tl^ "K3
BEE'RA (^W2 [a well] : Be-npa; [Vat. well of the living and seeing [God] : (pptap ov
BaiaiKa'-]Bera), son of Zophah, of the tribe of 6pao~ews' puteus vi-
ivdiirtov etSov'i to <pp4ap r-qs
Asher (1 Chr. vii. 37). ventis et videntis me), a well, or rather a living
b
spring (A. V. fountain, comp. Gen. xvi. 7), be-
BEE RAH 0~nS2 [a well] Befo; Alex.
:
puteus Elim), a spot named in Is. xv. 8 as on the From the fact of this etymology not being in
agree-
"border of Moab,'' apparently the south, Eglaim ment with the formation of the name, it has been
being at the north end of the Dead Sea. The suggested (Ges. Thes. 175) that the origin of the
name points to the well dug by the chiefs of Israel name is Lechi (comp. Judg. xv. 9, 19). It would
on their approach tothe promised land, close by seem, however, that the Lechi of Samson's advent-
the "border of Moab" (Num. xxi. 16; comp. 13), ure was much too far north to be the site of the
533). [Beer, 1.] Beer-elim was probably chosen By this well Isaac dweltboth before and after
by the Prophet out of other places on the boundary the death of his (Gen. xxiv. 62, xxv. 11).
father
on account of the similarity between the sound of In both these passages the name is given in the
A. V. as " the well Lahai-roi."
the name and that of Pin^T? — the " howling "
Mr. Rowland announces the discovery of the well
which was to reach even to that remote point Lahai-roi at Moyle or Moilahi, a station on the
(Ewald, Proph. i. 233). G. road to Beer-sheba, 10 hours south of Ruheibeh;
BEE'RI 0"1^3, fontanus, Gesen. near which is a hole or cavern bearing the name
; illustrious,
of Beit Hay ar (Ritter, Sinai, 1086, 7); but this
Furst:« [Bed>x> Alex.] Berjp, Gen., Beripei, Hos.
requires confirmation.
Beeri). 1. The father of Judith, one of the wives
This well is not to be confounded with that near
of Esau (Gen. xxvi. 34). There need be no ques-
which the life of Ishmael was preserved on a subse-
tion that Judith, daughter of Beeri, is the same
quent occasion (Gen. xxi. 19) and which, according
person as is called in the genealogical table (Gen.
to the Moslem belief, is the well Zem-zem at
xxxvi. 2) Aholibamah, daughter of Anah, and con-
Mecca. G.
sequently Beeri and Anah must be regarded as
names of the same person. There is the further BEE'ROTH
(n'VlSa, wells: Bypdr, B«r
difficulty that Beeri spoken of as a Hittite,
is
pw6d, Br)p<&9'- Beroth) one of the four cities of the
whilst Anah is called a Horite and also a Hivite,
Hivites who deluded Joshua into a treaty of peace
and we have thus three designations of race given
with them, the other three being Gibeon, Che-
to the same individual. It is stated under Anah
phirah, and Kirjath-Jearim (Josh. ix. 17). Beeroth
that Hivite is most probably to be regarded as an
was with the rest of these towns allotted to Benja-
error of transcription for Horite. With regard to
min (xviii. 25), in whose possession it continued at
the two remaining names the difficulty does not
the time of David, the murderers of Ishbosheth be-
seem to be formidable. It is agreed on all hands
ing named as belonging to it (2 Sam. iv. 2). From
that the name Horite (^n) signifies one who the notice in this place (verse 2, 3) it would appear
dwells in a hole or cave, a Troglodyte and it seems that the original inhabitants had been forced from
:
in the highest degree probable that the inhabitants the town, and had taken refuge at Gittaim (Neh.
of Mount Seir were so designated because they in- xi.33), possibly a Philistine city.
habited the numerous caverns of that mountainous Beeroth is once more named with Chephirah and
region. The name therefore does not designate Kirjath-Jearim in the list of those who returned
them according to their race, but merely according from Babylon (Ezr. ii. 25; Neh. vii. 29; 1 Esdr.
to their mode of life, to whatever race they might v. 19). [Beroth.]
belong. Of we know nothing except in-
their race Beeroth was known in the times of Eusebius,
deed what the conjunction of these two names in and his description of its position ( Onom. Beeroth,
reference to the same individual may teach us and with the corrections of Reland, 618, 9; Rob. i.
:
from this case we may fairly conclude that these 452, note) agrees perfectly with that of the modern
Troglodytes or Horites belonged in part at least to el-Bireh, which stands at about 10 miles north of
9] we find Nahari " the Beerothite " 0rhS2n looked that here, and in subsequent earlier notices
BrjdcepaTos ;
[Vat. 2 Alex. Brjpwdaios :] 2 Sam. of the place, it is spelt Beer-shaba (Vp^ 2).
xxiii. 37), or " the Berothite " (\"Y~)2n: <5 Br>p-
2. The other narrative ascribes the origin [or re-
would encamp earlier still, because to go further ring to the same well as the former account, we shall
would have been to encounter the night-perils be spared the necessity of inquiring whether these
of the desert between Jerusalem and Jericho.
two accounts relate to separate occurrences, or
refer to one and the same event, at one time ascribed
The ffwoSia (Luke ii. 44) shows that the holy
Books of travel to one, at another time to another of the early heroes
family travelled in a caravan.
abundantly illustrate this custom as to the extent and founders of the nation. There are at present
of the first day's journey. See, for example, on the spot two principal wells, and five smaller
Maundrell's Journey from Aleppo to Jerusalem ones. They are among the first objects encountered
on the entrance into Palestine from the south, and
(1697) p. 1; Richardson's Travels along the Medi-
terranean, ii. 174; Beldam's Recollections of being highly characteristic of the life of the Bible,
Scenes in the East, i. 281 Miss Martineau's Eastern at the same time that the identity of the site is be-
;
ate size. There are no trees or shrubs near the spot. sheba! " " After this, with the mere mention that
So much for the actual condition of Beer-sheba. Beer-sheba and the villages round it (" daughters")
After the digging of the well Abraham planted were re-inhabited after the Captivity (Neh. xi. 30),
the name dies entirely out of the Bible records like ;
a "grove" (/tPM, eshel) as a place for the wor-
many other places, its associations are entirely con-
ship of Jehovah, and here he lived until the sacrifice
fined to the earlier history, and its name is not even
of Isaac, and for a long time afterwards, xxi. 23 — once mentioned in the New Testament.
xxii. 1, 19. Here was dwelling at the
also Isaac
But though unheard of, its position insured a
time of the transference of the birthright from continued existence to Beer-sheba. In the time of
Esau to Jacob (xxvi. 33, xxviii. 10), and from the pa- Jerome it was still a considerable place (oppidum,
triarchal encampment round the wells of his grand-
Quaest. ad Gen. xvii. 30 or vicus grandis, Onom. ),
;
tamia which changed the course of his whole life. mentioned in some of the ecclesiastical lists as an
Jacob does not appear to have revisited the place episcopal city under the Bishop of Jerusalem (Re-
until he made it one of the stages of his journey land, p. G20). Its present condition has been already
down to Egypt. He then halted there to offer described. It only remains to notice that the place
sacrificeto the God of his father,'' doubtless retains its ancient name as nearly similar in sound
"
under the sacred grove of Abraham. as an Arabic signification will permit Bir es-Seba —
From this time till the conquest of the country —
the " well of the lion," or " of seven." G.
we lose sight of B., only to catch a momentary
glimpse of it in the lists of the " cities" in the ex- BEESH'TERAH
(rpntp}?? : ^ Bocopd,
treme south of Judah (Josh. xv. 28) given to the Alex. Beedapa'i [Comp. Aid. Beecflepo:] Bosra),
tribe of Simeon (xix. 2; 1 Chr. iv. 28). Samuel's one of the two cities allotted to the sons of Gershom,
sons were judges in Beer-sheba (1 Sam. viii. 2), its out of the tribe of Manasseh beyond Jordan (Josh.
distance no doubt precluding its being
27). By comparison with the parallel list in
among the xxi.
number of the " holy cities" (LXX. 1 Chr. vi. 71, Beeshterah appears to be identical
ro?s fiyiaafie-
vois ir6\(cri) to which he himself went in circuit with Ashtaroth. In fact the name is considered
every year (vii. 16). By the times of the monarchy by Gesenius as merely a contracted form of Beth-
it had become recognized as the most southerly Ashtaroth, the house of A. ( Tkes. 196 ; comp.
(iTW^) before taking his journey across the Sac. Annot. ad Job. xl.), PfeifFer (Dabia vexata S.
From Dan to Beer- S., p. 594, Dresd. 1679), Castell (Lex. Hept. p.
desert to Sinai (1 K. xix. 3).
sheba (Judg. xx. 1, &c), or from Beer-sheba to Dan 292), A. Sehultens (Comment, in Job xl.), Micha-
elis c(Suppl. ad Lex. Heb. No. 208), have under-
(1 Chr. xxi. 2; comp. 2 Sam. xxiv. 2), now became
the established formula for the whole of the prom- stood thereby the elephant; while others, as Bo-
ised Land; just as "from Geba to B." (2 K. xxiii. chart (Hieroz. 705), Ludolf (Hist. jFAhiop. i.
iii.
8), or "from B. to Mount Ephraim " (2 Chr. xix. 11), Shaw (Trav. 299, 8vo. Lond.), Scheuchzer
ii.
a There is a correspondence worth noting between the plural majestatis of nDHB. Rosenmuller's ob-
the word " way " or " maimer " in this formula
jection to the Coptic origin of the word is worthy of
(7f "^H, literally " the road "),and the word ij 6Sds, observation, —
that, if this was the case, the LXX.
" the way " (A. V. incorrectly " that way "), by which interpreters would not have given Bripia as its repre-
sentative.
the new religion is designated in the Acts of the
Apostles (see ix. 2, &c.). c Michaelis translates m^SHS by jumenta, and
t> Bochart, Gesenius, Fiirst, Jablonski, and others,
thinks the name of the elephant has dropped out.
are disposed to assign to this word an Egyptian origin,
Pe/iemou, or Pt/iemout, i. e. bos mnrhius. Others, and " Mihi videtur nomen eleph«utis forte V^D excidisse."
Rosenmuller amongst the number, believe the word is
268 BEHEMOTH BEHEMOTH
Gesenius (Thes. i"Y1Dn2),
Nile. Harmer (Observ. ii. 319) says " there is a
s. v. Fiirst (Concord.
great deal of beauty in the ranging the descriptions
Heb. and English commentators generally,
s. v.),
of the behemoth and the leviathan, for in the
believe the hippopotamus to be denoted by the
Mosaic pavement the people of an Egyptian barque
original word. Other critics, amongst whom is
are represented as darting spears or some such
Lee (Comment, on Job xl., and Lex. Heb. s. v.
weapons at one of the river-horses, as another of
mErjij}), consider the Hebrew term as a plural them is pictured with two sticking near his shoulders.
noun for "cattle" in general; it being to the left .... It was then a customary thing with the old
reader to apply to the Scriptural allusions the par- Egyptians thus to attack these animals (see also
ticular animal, which may be, according to Lee, Wilkinson, Anc. Egypt, hi. 71); if so, how beauti-
" either the horse or wild ass or wild bull"(!); a ful is the arrangement there is a most happy
:
compare also Beiske, Conjecture in Job. p. 167. Dr. gradation; after a grand but just representation
Mason Good (Book of Job literally translated, p. of the terribleness of the river-horse, the Almighty
473, Lond. 1712) has hazarded a conjecture that is represented as going on with his expostulations
the behemoth denotes some extinct pachyderm like something after this manner : —
But dreadful as
'
and Hasseus (in Dissertat. Syllog. No. vii. § 37 Pr&nestinum, to which Mr. Harmer refers, there
and § 38, p. 500), who rejects with some scorn the are two crocodiles, associates of three river-horses,
notion of the identity of behemoth and mammoth. which are represented without spears sticking in
Dr. Kitto (Pict. Bib. Job xl.) and Col. Hamilton them, though they seem to be within shot.
Smith (Kitto's Cycl. Bib. Lit., art. Behemoth), from It has been said that some parts of the descrip-
being unable to make all the Scriptural details cor- tion in Job cannot apply to the hippopotamus the :
respond with any one particular animal, are of 20th verse for instance, where it is said, " the
opinion that behemoth is a plural term, and is to mountains bring him forth food." This passage,
be taken " as a poetical personification of the great many writers say, suits the elephant well, but can-
pachydermata generally, wherein the idea of hip- not be applied to the hippopotamus, which is never
popotamus is predominant." The term behemoth seen on mountains. Again, the 24th verse " his—
would thus be the counterpart of letriathan, the nose pierceth through snares " —
seems to be spoken
animal mentioned next in- the book of Job; which of the trunk of the elephant, " with its extraordinary
word, although its signification in that passage is delicacy of scent and touch, rather than to the
restricted to the crocodile, does yet stand in Script- obtuse perceptions of the river-horse." In answer
ure for a python, or a whale, or some other huge to the first objection it has been stated, with great
monster of the deep. [Leviathan.] were We reason, that the word hdrim (D^n) is not neces-
at one time inclined to coincide with this view, but
sarily to be restricted to what we understand com-
a careful study of the whole passage (Job xl. 15-24)
monly by the expression " mountains." In the
has led us to the full conviction that the hippopot-
Prsenestine pavement alluded to above, there are
amus alone is the animal denoted, and that all the
to be seen here and there, as Mr. Harmer has
details descriptive of the behemoth accord entirely
observed. " hillocks rising above the water." In
with the ascertained habits of that animal. 6
Ez. 15 (margin), the altar of God, only ten
xliii.
Gesenius and Kosenmiiller have remarked that,
cubits high and fourteen square, is called " the
since in the first part of Jehovah's discourse (Job
mountain of God." " The eminences of Egypt,
which appear as the inundation of the Nile de-
creases, may undoubtedly be called 'mountains in
the poetical language of Job." But we think there
is no occasion for so restricted an explanation. The
tioned, it purpose of that discourse moth, though passing much of his time in the
suits the general
better to suppose that aquatic or amphibious creat- water and in " the covert of the reed and fens,"
ures are spoken of in the last half of it and that eateth grass like cattle, and feedeth on the hill- sides
;
since the leviathan, by almost universal consent, in company with the beasts of the field. There is
denotes the crocodile, the behemoth seems clearly much beauty in the passages which contrast the
to point to the hippopotamus, his associate in the habits of the hippopotamus, an amphibious animal,
in accordance with this opinion. H. fore might well be said to get its food from the moun-
c A recent traveller in Egypt, the Rev. J. L. Erring- tains, on the sides of which it would grow."
BEHEMOTH BEHEMOTH 269
with those of herbivorous land-quadrupeds: but if cable to the elephant but this is hardly the case, for
;
the elephant is to be understood, the whole descrip- though the elephant is fond of frequent ablutions, and
tion is comparatively speaking tame. is frequently seen near water, yet the constant huhit
With respect to the second objection, there is of the hippopotamus, as implied in verses 21, 22,
little doubt that the marginal reading is nearer the seems to be especially made the subject to which
Hebrew than that of the text. " Will any take the attention is directed. The whole passage (Job
him in his sight, or bore his nose with agin?" xl. 15-24) may be thus literally translated: —
Perhaps this refers to leading him about alive with " Behold now behemoth, whom I made with thee 6
;
"he bendeth his tail like a cedar," has given occa- thighs interweave one with another.
sion to much discussion some of the advocates for ;
" His bones d are as tubes of copper his (solid) ;
may denote either extremity, and that here the Maker hath furnished him with his scythe (tooth)./
elephant's trunk is intended. The parallelism, how- " For the hills bring him forth abundant food, and
ever, clearly requires the posterior appendage to be all the beasts of the field have their pastime there.
" Beneath the shady trees v he lieth down, in the
signified by the term. The expression seem3 to
covert of the reed, and fens.A
allude to the stiff, unbending nature of the animal's
" The shady trees cover him with their shadow the ;
tail, which in this respect is compared to the trunk
willows of the stream surround him.
of a strong cedar which the wind scarcely moves. " Lo the river swelleth proudly against him, yet
!
The description of the animal's lying under " the he is not alarmed he is securely confident though a
:
shady trees," amongst the "reeds" and willows, is Jordan burst forth against his mouth.
»
peculiarly applicable to the hippopotamus." It has any one capture him when in his sight
" Will ? k
been argued that such a description is equally appii- will any one bore his nostril in the snare? "
« BoAAo is also the LXX.'s version of Bera, Gen. b There can be no doubt that in both passages the
been called Bela from the name of its founder. 3. [BaAci, BaAe',. etc,: Bela]. Eldest son of
This rendered yet more probable by Bela being
is Benjamin, according to Gen. xlvi. 21/' Num. xxvi.
the name of an Edomitish king in Gen. xxxvi. 32. 38, 1 Chr. vii. 6, viii. 1, and head of the family of
For further information see De Saulcy's Narrative, the Belaites. The houses of his family, according
i.457-481, and Stanley's S. <j- P. 285. [Zoak.] to 1 Chr. viii. 3-5, were Addar, Gera, Abihud (read
2. [BoKolk: Bela, Bale in 1 Chr.] Son of Beor,
Ehud 1T1N, for -prP3S), Abishua, Naaman,
who reigned over Edom in the city of Dinhabah,
eight generations before Saul, king of Israel, or
Shupham, and Haram. Of these Ehud is
Ahoali,
about the time of the Exodus. Bernard Hyde, fol- the most remarkable. The exploit of Ehud the
shared the peculiarity of so many
lowing some .Jewish commentators (Simon. Gnomast. son of Gera, who
of his Benjamite brethren, in being left-handed
142, note), identifies this Bela with Balaam the son
(Judg. xx. 10), in slaying Eglon the king of Moab,
of Beor but the evidence from the name does not
;
from which Bela and Balaam sprung. As regards ured by the length of the rest of 80 years which
followed. It is perhaps worth noticing that as we
the name of Bela's royal or native city Dinhabah,
which luirst and Gesenius render "place of plunder," have Husham by the side of Bela among the kings
it may be suggested whether it may not possibly of Edom, Gen. xxxvi. 34, so also by the side of
Bela, son of Benjamin, we have the Benjamite fam-
be a form of n^H"!, the Chaldee for gold, after ily of Hushim (1 Chr. vii. 12), sprung apparently
the analogy of the frequent Chaldee resolution of from a foreign woman of that name, whom a Ben-
the dagesh forte into nun. There are several names jamite took to wife in the land of Moab (1 Chr.
of places and persons in Idumea which point to viii. 8-11). [Becher.]
gold as found there —
as Dizaiiab, Deut. i. 1, 4. [BaAe'/c Alex. BaAe Bala.] Son of Aliaz, ; :
" place of gold; " Mezahab, " waters of gold," or a Eeubenite (1 Chr. v. 8). It is remarkable that
"gold-streams," Gen. xxxvi. 39. a Compare Dehe- his country too was "in Aroer, even unto Nebo
liris, the ancient name of the Tiber, famous for its and Baal-meon; and eastward he inhabited untc
yellow waters. If this derivation for Dinhabah be the entering in of the wilderness from the river
true, Chaldee form would not be difficult to Euphrates" (8, 9).
its A. C. H.
account and would supply an additional evidence
for,
of the early conquests of the Chaldees in the direction
LAH. [Bela, BE 3.]
1
of Idumea. The name of Bela's ancestor Beor, BE'LAITES, THE0 V ??^,
: <5BoAi';(Tat.
Alex. -A«( : Belaitai] ), Num. xxvi. 38. [Bela, 3.]
"117 3, is of a decidedly Chaldee or Aramaean form,
BEI/EMUS (B^At^os: Balsamus), 1 Esdr.
like Peor 1372, Pethor "1HD, Rehob 3J"H, and ii. 16. [Bishlam.]
others and we are expressly told that Balaam the
;
son of Beor dwelt in Pethor, which is by the river BE'LIAL. The translators of our A. V., fol-
of the land of the children of his people, i. e. the
lowing the Vulgate, have frequently treated the
river Euphrates and he himself describes his home
;
word 727*73 as a proper name, and given it in
as being in Aram (Num. xxii. 5, xxiii. 7). Saul
the form Belial, in accordance with 2 Cor. vi. 15.
again, who reigned over Edom after Samlah, came
This is particularly the case where it is connected
from Kehoboth by the river Euphrates (Gen. xxxvi.
37). We read in Job's time of the Chalda?ans with the expressions tE^M, man of, or "j3 son of:
making incursions into the land of Uz, and carrying in other instances it is translated wicked or some
off the camels, and slaying Job's servants (Job i. equivalent term (Deut. xv. 9; Ps. xli. 8, ci. 3;
17). Abraham we have the king
In the time of Prov. vi. 12, xvi. 27, xix. 28; Nah. i. 11, 15).
of Shinar apparently extending his empire so as to There can be no question, however, that the word
make the kings on the borders of the Dead Sea his is not to be regarded as a proper name in the 0. T.
tributaries, and with his confederates extending his its meaning is worthlessness, and hence recklessness,
conquests into the very country which was after- lawlessness. Its etymology is uncertain the first :
qf a heifer whose calf has been taken from her. The cend, as
= without ascent, that is, of the lowest con-
3 of comparison is very frequently omitted in Hebrew dition ; and lastly with 72^, usefulness = without
poetry.
saur. p. 209): the latter appears to be the most while he pulled up each exhausted skin with a
probable, not only in regard to sense, but also as string he held in his hand. In one instance we
explaining the unusual fusion of the two words, the observe from the painting, that when the man left,
>i at the end of the one and at the beginning of the
the bellows, they were raised as if inflated with air
other leading to a ansis, originally in the pronun- would imply a knowledge of the valve.
and this
ciation, and afterwards in the writing. The ex- The pipes even in the time of Thothmes III., [sup-
pression son or man of Belial must be understood posed to be] the contemporary of Moses, appear
as meaning simply a worthless, lawless fellow (jro- to have been simply of reed, tipped with a metal
pdvonos, LXX.): it occurs frequently in this sense point to resist the action of the fire."
in the historical books (Judg. xix. 22, xx. 13; 1 Bellows of an analogous kind were early known
Sam. i. 16, ii. 12, x. 27, xxv. 17, 25, xxx. 22; 2 to the Greeks and Romans. Homer (//. xviii. 470)
Sam. xvi. 7, xx. 1 1 K. xxi. 10 2 Chr. xiii. 7 ), speaks of 20 <pv<rai in the forge of Hephsestos, and
; ;
and only once in the earlier books (Deut. xiii. 13). they are mentioned frequently by ancient authors
(Diet, of Ant., art. Follis). Ordinary hand-bel-
The adjunct tt^N is occasionally omitted, as in lows, made of wood and kid's-skin, are used by the
Sam. xxiii. 6, and Job xxxiv. 18, where 7157* v2 modern Egyptians, but are not found in the old
stands by itself, as a term of reproach. The later paintings. They may however have been known,
Hebrews used pana and fiwpe in a similar manner
as they were to the early Greeks. F. W. F.
In the N. T. the term appears in the form Be- Zech. xiv. 20 (to eVl rbv lV0V T °v "bntov, x^
Kiap and not Be\ta\, as given in the A. V. The
LXX.; A. V., niarg. "bridles," from T??j to
change of A into p was common we have an in- ;
strike).
stance even in Biblical Hebrew iTVWQ (Job
In Ex. xxviii. 33 the bells alluded to were the
golden ones, according to the Rabbis 72 in number
xxxviii. 32) for n'lVTK) 2 K. xxiii. 5); in Chal-
(Winer, s. v. Schellen), which alternated with the
dee we meet with N^HIl for E^vR,
and vari- three-colored pomegranates round the hem of the
high-priest's ephod. The object of them wa3 " that
ous other instances ; the same change occurred in
his sound might be heard when he went in unto the
the Doric dialect (</>aOpos for <pav\os), with which
holy place, and when he came out, that he die not
the Alexandrine writers were most familiar. The
(Ex. xxviii. 35), or " that as he went there might
term as used in 2 Cor. vi. 15 is generally under- be a sound, and a noise made that might be heard
stood as an appellative of Satan, as the personifica-
in the temple, for a memorial to the childien of his
tion of all that was bad: Bengel (Gnomon in loc.)
people " (Ecclus. xlv. 9). No doubt they answered
explains it of Antichrist, as more strictly the oppo-
the same purpose as the bells used by the Brah-
site of Christ (omnem colluviem antichristianam
mins in the Hindoo ceremonies, and by the Roman
nature videtur). W. L. B.
Catholics during the celebration of mass (comp.
girls of
furnace. They were known even in the time of
feet (Lane, Mod. Egypt, ii. 370, and at Koqjar,
Moses, and perhaps still earlier, since the operations
Mungo Park saw a dance "in which many per-
of a foundry would be almost impossible without
formers assisted, all of whom were provided with
them. A picture of two different kinds of bellows, little bells fastened to their legs and arms."
both of highly ingenious construction, may be found
In Zech. xiv. 20 "bells of the horses" (where
in Wilkinson, ^4«c. Egypt, iii. 338. " They, con-
our marg. Vers, follows the LXX.) is probably a
sisted," he says, " of a leather, secured and fitted
wrong rendering. The Hebrew word is almost the
into a frame, from which a long pipe extended for
carrying the wind to the fire. They were worked same as E^Fw^^
" a pair of cymbals," and as
they are supposed to be inscribed with the words
" Holiness unto the Lord," it is more probable that
they are not bells, but " concave or flat pieces of
brass, which were sometimes attached to horses for
the sake of ornament" (Jahn, Arch. Bibl. § 96).
Indeed they were probably the same as the
Egyptian Bellows. (F. Cailliard, Recherches sur les Arts purpose of our modern sheep-bells. The compari-
ctes Anciens Egyptiens.) son to the KwSwvts used by the Greeks to test
horses seems out of place; and hence Archbishop
by the feet, the operator standing upon them, with Seeker's explanation of the verse, as meaning that
BELMAIM BELSHAZZAR 273
war-horses would become useless, and their trap- five, are shown to explain and confirm it. In 1854
pings would be converted to sacred purposes, is he deciphered the inscriptions on some cylinders
untenable. The general meaning, as obvious from found in the rums of Um-Qeer (the ancient Ur of
the context, is that true religion will then be uni- the Chaldees), containing memorials of the works
versally professed. F. W. F. executed by Nabonnedus. From these inscriptions
it appears that the eldest son of Nabonnedus was
BELMAIM (BeKde/j.; [Vat.] Alex. BtABai/x;
called Bel-shar-ezar and admitted by his father to
[Sin. A0*A/8cu/u; Comp. BeApaiju:] Belmn), a
a share in the government. This name is com-
place which, from the terms of the passage, would
pounded of Bel (the Babylonian god), Shar (« king),
appear to have lieen south of Dothaim (Jud. vii.
and the same termination as in Nabopolassar, Neb-
3). Possibly it is the same as Belmen, though
uchadnezzar, &c, and is contracted into Belshaz-
whether this is the case, or indeed whether either
zar, just as Neriglissar (again with the same ter-
of them ever had any real existence, it is at present
mination) is formed from Nergal-sharezar. In a
impossible to determine. [Judith.] The Syriac
communication to the Athenaeum, No. 1377, Sir
has Abel-meehola. G.
Henry Rawlinson says, " we can now understand
BELMEN ([Horn. Comp.] BfAyueV; [Sin.] how Belshazzar, as joint king with his father, may
Alex. B(\/xaiV, [Ya r BaiAfxaiv] - Vulg. omits), have been governor of Babylon, when the city was
:
a place named amongst the towns of Samaria as attacked by the combined forces of the Medes and
lying between Beth-horon and Jericho (Jud. iv. 4). Persians, and may have perished in the assault
The Hebrew name would seem to have been Abel- which followed while Nabonnedus leading a force
;
maim; but the only place of that name in the to the relief of the place was defeated, and obliged
O. T. was far the north of the locality here
to to take refuge in Borsippa, capitulating after a
alluded to. [Abel-maim.] The Syriac version short resistance, and being subsequently assigned,
has Abel-meholah, which is more consistent with according to Berosus, an honorable retirement in
the context. [Abel-meholah; Belmaim.] Carmania." In accordance with this view we
G. arrange the last Chaldaean kings as follows Neb- : —
uchadnezzar, his son Evil-merodach, Neriglissar,
BELSHAZ'ZAR p5?Htt^>2, Dan. v. 1,
Laborosoarchod (his son, a boy, killed in a conspir-
and "l^tPM/Sj vii. 1: BaArdffap [Alex. Bapra- acy), Nabonnedus or Labynetus, and Belshazzar.
ffap in Dan. v. 1] Baltasir), the last king of Herodotus says that Labynetus was the son of
:
Babylon. According to the well-known scriptural Queen Nitoeris; and Megasthenes (Euseb. Cfu:
narrative, he was warned of his coming doom by Arm. p. 60) tells us that he succeeded Laborosoar-
the handwriting on the wall which was interpreted chod, but was not of his family. 'NafiavvlSoxov
by Daniel, and was slain during a splendid feast in curoSeiKVvcri fiacrtAta, irpoa^KOVTa. ol ouSeV. In
his palace. Similarly Xenophon (Cyrop. vii. 5, 3) Dan. v. 2, Nebuchadnezzar is called the father of
tells us that Babylon was taken by Cyrus in the Belshazzar. This of course need only mean grand-
night, while the inhabitants were engaged in feast- father or ancestor. Now Neriglissar usurped the
ing and revelry, and that the king was killed. On throne on the murder of Evil-merodach (Beros. op.
the other hand the narratives of Berosus in Jose- Joseph. Apion. L): we may therefore well suppose
phus (c. Apion. i. 20) and of Herodotus (i. 184 ff.) that on the death of his son Laborosoarchod, Neb-
differ from the above account in some important uchadnezzar's family was restored in the person of
particulars. Berosus calls the last king of Babylon Nabonnedus or Labynetus, possibly the son of that
Nabonnedus or Nabonadius (Nabu-nit or Nabona- king and Nitoeris, and father of Belshazzar. The
hit, i. e. Xebo blesses, or 7nakes prosperous), and chief objection to this supposition would be that
says that in the 17th year of his reign Cyrus took if Neriglissar married Nebuchadnezzar's daughter
Babylon, the king having retired to the neighbor- (Joseph, c. Apion. i. 21) [20, Didot's ed.], Nabon-
ing city of Borsippus or Borsippa (Birs-i-Nimrud), nedus would through her be connected with Laboro-
called by Niebuhr (Lect. on Anc. Hist, xii.) "the soarchod. This difficulty is met by the theory of
Chaldean Benares, the city in which the Chaldaeans Kawlinson (Herod. Essay viii. § 25), who connects
had their most revered objects of religion, and where Belshazzar with Nebuchadnezzar through his mo-
they cultivated their science." Being blockaded in ther, thinking it probable that Nabu-nahit, whom
that city, Nabonnedus surrendered, his life was he does not consider related to Nebuchadnezzar,
spared, and a principality or estate given to him in would strengthen his position by marrying the
Carmania, where he died. According to Herodotus daughter of that king, who would thus be Belshaz-
the last king was called I^abynetus, a name easy to zar' s maternal grandfather. A totally different
reconcile with the Nabonnedus of Berosus, and the view is taken by Marcus Niebuhr ((leschichte As-
Nabannidochus of Megasthenes (Euseb. Prcep. sur's hiuI Bribers sett Phul, p. 91), who considers
Mkanp. ix. 41). Cyrus, after defeating Labynetus Belshazzar to be another name for Evil-merodach,
in the open field, appeared before Babylon, within the son of Nebuchadnezzar. He identifies their
which the besieged defied attack and even block- characters by comparing Dan. v. with the language
ade, as they had walls 300 feet high, and 75 feet of Berosus about Evil-merodach, irpotrras t£>v
•. thick, forming a square of 15 miles to a side, and irpayfx.a.T<j>i> iced acreAyws-
dv6fx.ais He considers
had stored up previously several years' provision. that the capture of Babylon described in Daniel,
But he took the city by drawing off for a time the was not by the Persians, but by the Medes, under
waters of the Euphrates, and then marching in Astyages (i. e. Darius the Mede). and that between
with his whole army along its bed, during a great the reigns of Evil-merodach or I5elshazzar, and Ne-
Babylonian festival, while the people, feeling per- riglissar, we must insert a brief period during which
fectly secure, were scattered over the whole city in Babylon was subject to the Medes. This solves a
reckless amusement. These discrepancies have difficulty as to the age of Darius (Dan. v. 31; cf.
lately been cleared up by the discoveries of Sir Rawlinson, Essay iii § 11), but most people will
Henry Rawlinson; and the histories of profane probably prefer the actual facts discovered by Sir
writers, far from contradicting the Scriptural narra- Henry Rawlinson to the theory (though doubtless
18
274 BELTESHAZZAR BENE-KEDEM
very ingenious) of Niebuhr. Eawlinson's view, On the son of the younger daughter of Lot, and the^
Belshazzar died b. c. 538, on Niebuhr's b. c. 559. progenitor of the Ammonites (Gen. xix. 38). The
G. E. L. C. reading of the LXX. and Vulgate differs from the
pointed by David to the service of the ark (1 Chr. Ammon, id est Jilius populi met.
'
xv. 18).
BENE-BERAK (pn2-,, 32 [sons of light-
BEN AT AH [3 syl.] (^32 and 7T32 = ning or of Barak] : BavatfiaKar j
Alex. Batrnfia-
built by Jah : Bapalas Eanaias), the name of sev-
Bane Barach: Syr.
eral Israelites :
— paic- et et ^ "St tV**), one
1. Benaiahu; the son of Jehoiada the chief of the cities of the tribe of Dan, mentioned only in
priest (1 Chr. xxvii. 5), and therefore of the tribe Josh. xix. 45. The paucity of information which we
of Levi, though a native of Kabzeel (2 Sam. xxiii. possess regarding this tribe (omitted entirely from
20; 1 Chr. xi. 22), in the south of Judah; set by- the lists in 1 Chr. ii.-viii., and only one family
David (1 Chr. xi. 25) over his body-guard of Chere- mentioned in Num. xxvi.) makes it impossible to
thites and l'ekt lutes (2 Sam. viii. 18; IK. i. 38; say whether the "sons of Berak " who gave their
1 Chr. xviii. 17; 2 Sam. xx. 23) and occupying name to this place belonged to Dan, or were, as we
a middle rank between the first three of the Gib- may perhaps infer from the name, earlier settlers
borim, or "mighty men," and the thirty "valiant dispossessed by the tribe. The reading of the
men of the armies" (2 Sam. xxiii. 22, 23; 1 Chr. Syriac, Baal-debac, is not confirmed by any other
xi. 25, xxvii. 6; and see Kennicott, Z>iss. p. 177). version. By Eusebius the name is divided (comp.
The exploits which gave him this rank are nar- Vulg.), and Bapoucai is said to have been then a
rated in 2 Sam. xxiii. 20, 21 1 Chr. xi. 22. He ;
village near Azotus. No trace has been found of
was captain of the host for the third month (1 Chr. it. G.
xxvii. 5). * Knobel (Josua, p. 471) identifies it with Ibn
Benaiah remained faithful to Solomon during Abruk, an hour's distance from el- Yehudiyeh (Je-
Adonijah's attempt on the crown (1 K. i. 8, 10), a hud), according to Scholz (Reise, p. 25G). A.
matter in which he took part in his official capacity
as commander of the king"s body-guard (1 K. i. 32.
BEN'E-JAAKAN CRTSC 'OS, children
38, 44); and after Adonijah and Joab had both [sons] of Jaakan [peril, sagacious, icise, Fiirst]
been put to death by his hand, he was raised by Bavaia; Alex. BaviKav- Benejaacan), a tribe who
Solomon into the place of the latter as commander- gave their name to certain wells in the desert which
in-chief of the whole army (ii. 35, iv. 4). formed one of the halting-places of the Israelites
Benaiah appears to have had a son, called after on their journey to Canaan. [Beeroth Bene-
his grandfather, Jehoiada, who succeeded Ahitho- jaakan.] In Num. xxxiii. 31, 32, the name is
phel about the person of the king (1 Chr. xxvii. given in the shortened form of Bene-jaakan. The
34). But this is possibly a copyist's mistake for tribe doubtless derived its name from Jaakan, the
" Benaiah the son of Jehoiada." son of Ezer, son of Seir the Horite (1 Chr. i. 42),
whose name is also given in Genesis as Akan.
2. Vulg. in 2 Sam.
[Vat. Alex. om. in 2 Sam. ;
ite; an Ephraimite, one of David's thirty mighty The situation of these wells has not been yet
men (2 Sam. xxiii. 30; 1 Chr. xi. 31), and the cap- identified. In the time of Eusebius ( Onom. Beroth.
tain of the eleventh monthly course (1 Chr. xxvii. fil. Jacin, 'laKei/x) the spot was shown 10 miles
14). from Petra on the top of a mountain. Robinson
suggests the small fountain et-Taiyibeh, at the bot-
[In 1 Chr. xv. 18, Bavaia.]
3. Benaiahu a :
6. [Vat. Qavai /Savaioy.] Benaiahu; a Le- [sons] of the East), an appellation given to a people,
vite in the time of Hezekiah, one of the " overseers
or to peoples, dwelling to the east of Palestine. It
occurs in the following passages of the O. T. (1.) :
(D^TpS) of offerings" (2 Chr. xxxi. 13). Gen. xxix. 1, "Jacob came into the land of the
7. [Vat. om. ; Alex. Bavaia- Banaia.] Be- people of the East," in which was therefore reck-
oned Haran. (2.) Job i. 3, Job was " the greatest
naiah; one of the "princes" (O^fcOtp?) of the
of all the men of the East" [Job]. (3.) Judg.
families of Simeon (1 Chr. iv. 36).
vi. 3, 33, vii. 12, viii. 10. In the first three pas-
8. Benaiah ;
time of Ezra
four laymen in the
sages the Bene-Kedem are mentioned together with
who had taken strange wives. [Bavaia- Vulg. 1,
the Midianites and the Amalekites; and in the
Banea; 3, Baneas; 4, Banaia.] 1 (Ezr. x. 25).
fourth the latter peoples seem to be included in this
[Baanias.] 2 (Ezr. x. 30). [Naidus.] 3 (Ezr.
common name " Now Zebah and Zahnunna [were] :
camels, and the Ammonites a couching-place for make "streets" in Samaria for Syrian residents.
Jlocks ; " referring, apparently, to the habits of the [Ahab.] This date is b. c. 950.
wandering Arabs; while "palaces" and "dwell- Benhadad II., son of the preceding, and also
ings," also mentioned and thus rendered in the A. king of Damascus. Some authors call him grand'
V., may be better read " camps'' and "tents." son, on the ground that it was unusual in antiquity
The words of Jeremiah strengthen the supposition for the son to inherit the father's name. But Ben-
just mentioned " Concerning Kedar, and con- hadad seems to have been a religious title of the
:
cerning Hazor,which Nebuchadrezzar king of Syrian kings, as we see by its reappearance as the
Babylon shall smite, thus saith the Lord, Arise ye, name of Hazael's son, Benhadad III. Long wars
go up to Kedar, and spoil the men of the East. with Israel characterized the reign of Benhadad II.,
Their tents and their flocks shall they take away of which the earlier campaigns are described under
they shall take to themselves their curtains [i. e. Ahab. His power and the extent of his dominion
tents], and all their vessels, and their camels." are proved by the thirty-two vassal kings who ac-
Opinions are divided as to the extension of the companied him to his first siege of Samaria. Some
appellation of Bene-Kedem; some (as Kosenmiiiler time after the death of Ahab, probably owing to
and Winer) holding that it came to signify the the difficulties in which Jehoram of Israel was in-
Arabs generally. From a consideration of the pas- volved by the rebellion of Moab, Benhadad renewed
sages above cited, and that which makes mention the war with Israel, and after some minor attempts
of the land of Kedem, Gen. xxv. 6 [Ishmael],
which were frustrated by Elisha, attacked Samaria
we think (with Gesenius) that it primarily signified a second time, and pressed the siege so closely that
the peoples of the Arabian deserts (east of Palestine there was a terrible famine in the city, and atrocities
and Lower Egypt), and chiefly the tribes of Ish- were committed to get food no less revolting than
mael and of Keturah. extending perhaps to Meso- those which Josephus relates of the siege of Jerusalem
potamia and Bahylonia (to which we may suppose by Titus. But when the Syrians were on the very
Kedem to apply in Num. xxiii. 7, as well as in Is. point of success, they suddenly broke up in the
ii. 6 )
; and that it was sometimes applied to the night in consequence of a sudden panic, under which
Arabs and their country generally. The only pos- they fancied that assistance was coming to Israel
itive instance of this latter signification of Kedem
from Egypt or some Canaanitish cities as Tyre or
occurs in Gen. x. 30, where " Sephar, a mount of Ramoth. Jehoram seems to have followed up this
the East" is by the common agreement of scholars unhoped-for deliverance by successful offensive oper-
situate in Southern Arabia [Arabia; Sephar]. ations, since we find from 2 K. ix. 1 that Ramoth
in Gilead was once more an Israelitish town.
In the 0. T. 213?, with its conjugate forms, [Ahab.] Soon after Benhadad fell sick, and sent
seems to be a name of the peoples otherwise called Hazael, one of his chief officers, with vast presents,
Bene-Kedem. and with the same limitations. The to consult Elisha, who happened to be in Damascus,
same may be observed of rj avaroXJ) in the N. T. as to the issue of his malady. Elisha replied that
Dip. ^2, Dip. !d3 ynK, the sickness was not a mortal one, but that still he
-
BENHA'DAD [more correctly Bex-hadad] ing suggested the deed, and the introduction of
Hazael's name in the Latter clause of ver. 15 can
(1111" 2. son of Hadad: vlb?"A5fp: Benadad), scarcely be accounted for, if he is also the subject
the name of three kings of Damascus. Hadad or of the first clause. Ewald, from the Hebrew text
Ad'tdwas a Syrian god, probably the Sun (Macrob. and a general consideration of the chapter (Gesch.
Saturnalia, i. 23), still worshipped at Damascus in des V. /. iii. 523, note), thinks that one or more
the time of Josephus (Ant. ix. 4, 6), and from it of Benhadad 's own servants were the murderers:
several Syrian names are derived, as Hadadezer, Calmet (Fragm. vii.) believes that the wet cloth,
i. e. Had id has helped. The "son of Hadad," which caused his death, was intended to effect his
'
therefore, means worshipper of Hadad. Damascus, cure. This view he supports by a reference to
after having been taken by David (2 Sam. viii. 5. Bruce's Travels, iii. 33. Hazael succeeded him
6), was delivered from subjection to his successor perhaps because he had no natural heirs, and with
276 BEN-HAIL BENJAMIN
him expired the dynasty founded by Rezon. Ben- these interpretations are of comparatively late date,
hadad's death was about b. c. 890, and he must and it is notorious that such explanatory glosses
have reigned some 30 years. are not only often invented long subsequently to
Benhadad III., son of the above-mentioned the original record, but are as often at variance
Hazael, and his successor on the throne of Syria. with the real meaning of that record. The meaning
His reign was disastrous for Damascus, and the given by Josephus oia t eV avTcjj yevofievr)v — V
vast power wielded by his father sank into insig- dUvv-qv rfj fM-qrpi (Ant. i. 21, § 3) is completely —
nificance. In the striking language of Scripture, different from either of the above. However this
" Jehoahaz [the son of Jehu] besought the Lord, and may be, the name is not so pointed as to agree with
the Lord hearkened unto him, for he saw the oppres- any interpretation founded on " son of" being —
sion of Israel, because the king of Syria oppressed
22, and not 33. Moreover in the adjectival forms
them; and the Lord gave Israel a savior" (2 K.
of the word the first syllable is generally suppressed,
xiii. 4, 5). This savior was Jeroboam II. (cf. 2
K. xiv. 27), but the prosperity of Israel began to as TtfpP,? or %, i. e. "sons of "O^E
revive in the reign of his father Jehoash, the son
Yemini," for sons of Benjamin; "O^E? K^M,
of Jehoahaz. When Benhadad succeeded to the
throne of Hazael, Jehoash, in accordance with a "man of Yemini," for man of Benjamin (1 Sam.
prophecy of the dying Elisha, recovered the cities ix. 1; Esth. ii.
5); land of Yemini "E^ V?&
which Jehoahaz had lost to the Syrians, and beat
for land of Benjamin (1 Sam. ix. 4); as if the
him in Aphek (2 K. xiii. 17) in the plain of Es-
draelon, where Ahab had already defeated Benhadad patriarch's name had been originally Yamin ^P\
II. [Ahab.] Jehoash gained two more victories, (comp. Gen. xlvi. 10), and that of the tribe Yemin-
but did not restore the dominion of Israel on the ites. These adjectival forms are carefully preserved
E. of Jordan. This glory was reserved for his suc- in the LXX. [In Judg. iii. 15 and 1 Sam. ix. 1
cessor. The date of Benhadad III. is b. c. 840. the A. V. reads in the margin " son of Jeinini,"
His misfortunes in war are noticed by Amos i. 4. and " son of a man of Jemini."]
G. E. L. C. Until the journeys of Jacob's sons and of Jacob
himself into Egypt we hear nothing of Benjamin,
BEN-HAIL (^n"p, son of the host, i. e.
and as far as he is concerned those well-known
warrior: Benhail), one of the "princes" O^E?) narratives disclose nothing beyond the very strong
whom king Jehoshaphat sent to teach in the cities affection entertained towards him by his father and
of Judah (2 Chr. xvii. 7). The LXX. translates, his whole-brother Joseph, and the relation of fond
tovs rjyov/Mtvovs aiirov k al tows v I o v s rw v endearment in which he stood, as if a mere darling
8 v v a t a> v. child (comp. Gen. xliv. 20), to the whole of his
family. Even the harsh natures of the elder
BEN-HA'NAN (?2rp2 [son of the merci- patriarchs relaxed towards him. But Benjamin
ful]: vibs Qavd; Alex, [i/iof] kvau: films Hanan), can hardly have been the " lad " which we com-
son of Shimon, in the line of Judah (1 Chr. iv. 20). monly imagine him to be, for at the time that the
BENI'NU (^35 [our son]: Bavovat; [Vat. patriarchs went down to reside in Egypt, when
" every man with his house went with Jacob," ten
FA. Beviapfiv ;] Alex. Bavovaiai [Aid. Bav-
owai; Comp. Bavovve:] Baninu), a Levite; one
i
sons are ascribed to Benjamin, a larger number —
of those who sealed the covenant with Nehemiah
than to any of his brothers, and two of these, —
from the plural formation of their names, were
(Neh. x. 13 [14]).
themselves apparently families (Gen. xlvi. 21). a
BENJAMIN (TBJ^: Bcna/ufo, Bwia- And here, little as it is, closes all we know of the
ueiv- Benjamin). 1. The youngest of the children life of the patriarch himself; henceforward the his-
of Jacob, and the only one of the thirteen (if indeed tory of Benjamin is the history of the tribe. And
there were not more: comp. "all his daughters," up to the time of the entrance on the Promised
Gen. xxxvii. 35, xlvi. 7), who was born in Palestine. Land that history is as meagre as it is afterwards
His birth took place on the road between Bethel full and interesting. We know indeed that shortly
and Bethlehem, a short distance —
"a length of after the departure from Egypt it was the smallest
earth" —from the latter, and his mother Rachel tribe but one (Num. i. 36; comp. verse 1); that
died in the act of giving birth to him, naming him during the march its position was on the west of
"
with her last breath Ben-oni, " son of my sorrow the tabernacle with its brother tribes of Ephraim
(comp. 1 Sam. iv. 19-22). This was by Jacob and Manasseh (Num. ii. 18-24). We have the
changed into Benjamin (Binyamin) (Gen. xxxv. names of the " captain " of the tribe, when it set
16-18). forth on its long march (Num. ii. 22); of the
The name is worthy some attention. From the "ruler" who went up with his fellows to spy out
terms of the story it would appear to be implied the land (xiii.of the families of which the tribe
9) ;
that it was bestowed on the child in opposition to consisted when was marshalled at the great halt
it
the desponding, and probably ominous, name given in the plains of Moab by Jordan-Jericho (Num.
him by his dying mother, and on this assumption xxvi. 38-41, 63), and of the "prince" who was
it has been interpreted to mean " Son of the rightchosen to assist in the dividing of the land (xxxiv.
hand," i. e. fortunate, dexterous, Felix
21). These are indeed preserved to us. But there
; as if
adopted by Philo, Aben-Ezra, and others. Both xxvi. 38^1 ; 1 Chr. vii. 6-12, vin. 1).
BENJAMIN BENJAMIN 277
we are favored concerning Ephraim (1 Chr. vii. 20- (2.) No less important than these eminences are
23): no record of zeal for Jehovah like Levi (Ex. the torrent beds and ravines by which the upper
xxxii. 2G): no evidence of special bent as in the country breaks down into the deep tracts on each
case of Reuben and Gad (Num. xxxii. ). The only side of it. They formed then, as they do still, the
foreshadowing of the tendencies of the tribe which only mode of access from either the plains of Philis-
was to produce Ehud, .Saul, and the perpetrators tia and of Sharon on the west, or the deep valley
of the deed of Gibeah, is to be found in the prophetic of the Jordan on the east
b the latter steep and —
gleam which lighted up the dying Jacob, " Benja- precipitous in the extreme, the former more gradual
min shall ravin as a wolf: in the morning he shall in their declivity. Up these western passes swarmed
devour the prey, and at night he shall divide the the Philistines on their incursions during the times
spoil" (Gen. xlix. 27). of Samuel and of Saul, driving the first king of
The proximity of Benjamin to Ephraim during Israel right over the higher district of his own tribe
the march to the Promised Land was maintained to Gilgal in the hot recesses of the Arabah, and
in the territories allottee! to each. Benjamin lay establishing themselves over the face of the country
immediately to the south of Ephraim and between from Michmash to Ajalon. Down these same defiles
him and Judah. The situation of this territory they were driven by Saul after Jonathan's victorious
was highly favorable. It formed almost a paral- exploit, just as in earlier times Joshua had chased
lelogram, of about 2G miles in length by 12 in the Canaanites down the long hill of Beth-horon,
breadth. boundary was the Jordan, and and as centuries after the forces of Syria were
Its eastern
from thence it extended to the wooded district of chased by Judas Maccabajus (1 Mace. iii. 16-24).
Kirjath-jearim, a point about eight miles west of The passes on the eastern side are of a much
Jerusalem, while in the other direction it stretched more difficult and intricate character than those
from the valley of Hinnom, under the " Shoulder on the western. The principal one, which, now
of the Jebusite" on the south, to Bethel on the unfrequented, was doubtless in ancient times the
north. Thus Dan intervened between Benjamin main ascent to the interior, leaves the Arabah
and the Philistines, while the communications with behind the site of Jericho, and breaking through
the valley of the Jordan were in their own power. the barren hills with many a wild bend and steep,
On the south the territory ended abruptly with the slope, extends to and indeed beyond the very
steep slopes of the hill of Jerusalem on the north central ridge of the table-land of Benjamin, to
;
it melted imperceptibly into the possessions of the the foot of the eminence on which stand the ruins
friendly Ephraim. The smallness of this district, of Bireh, the ancient Beeroth. At its lower part
hardly larger than the county of Middlesex [Eng.], this valley bears the name of Wady Fuwar, but
was, according to the testimony of Josephus, compen- for the greater part of its length it is called Wady
sated for by the excellence of the land (Sta, rrjv rfjs Suweinit. It is the main access, and from its cen-
"eminence;" Mizpeh, " watch-tower ;" while the the face of the afterwards less steep, and
cliff,
"ascent of Beth-horon," the " cliff Rimmon," the finally leading to Bethel or Taiyibeh, the ancient
<• pass of Michmash " with its two " teeth of rock," Ophr'ah (Rob. i. 570).
all testify to a country eminently broken and hilly. These intricate ravines may well have harbored
The special associations which belong to each of the wild beasts, which, if the derivation of the
these eminences, whether as sanctuary or fortress, names of several places in this locality are to be
many of them arising from the most stirring inci- trusted, originally haunted the district — zeboim,
dents in the history of the nation, will be best hyenas (1 Sam. xiii. 18), sliual and shaalbim,
examined under the various separate heads. foxes or jackals (Judg. i. 35; 1 Sam. xiii. 17),
ajalon, gazelles.
a A trace of the pasture land3 may be found in the
mention of the " herd (1 Sam.!
' xi. 5) ; and possibly Jebusite, —
are all among the names of places in Ben-
others in the names of some of the tonus of Benjamin : jamin ;and we can hardly doubt that in these names
as hap-I'arah, ,r the cow -' Zelah-ha-eleph, " the ox-
; is preserved the memory of many an ascent of the
'•
rib (Josh, xviii. 23, 28). wild tribes of the desert from the sultry and open
b It is perhaps hardly fanciful to ask if we may not plains of the low level to the fresh air and secure
account in this way for the curious prevalence among fastnesses of the upper district.
the names of the towns of Benjamin of the titles of c The subject of the connection between the topog-
tribes. Ha-Avvim, the Avites Zemaraim, the Ze-
j raphy of Benjamin and the events which took place
marites ha-Ophni, the Ophnite
; Chephar ha-Am- ; there is treated in the mo9t admirable manner in the
monai, the village of the Ammonites ha-Jebusi, the ; 4th chapter of Mr. Stanley's Sinai and Palestine
278 BENJAMIN BENJAMIN
Such were the and such the character of
limits That frightful transaction was indeed a crisis in
the possession of Benjamin as fixed by those who the history of the tribe the naiTative undoubtedly :
originally divided the land. But it could not have is intended to convey that the six hundred who
been long before they extended their limits, since in took refuge in the cliff Rimmon, and who were
the early lists of 1 Chr. viii. we find mention made afterwards provided with wives partly from Jabesh
of Benjamites who built Lod and Ono, and of Gilead (Judg. xxi. 10), partly from Shiloh (xxi.
others who were founders of Aijalon (12, 13), all 21), were the only survivors. A long interval must
which towns were beyond the spot named above as have elapsed between so abject a condition and the
the westernmost point in their boundary. These culminating point at which we next meet with the
places too were in their possession after the return tribe."
from the Captivity (Neh. xi. 35). Several circumstances may have conduced to its
The contrast between the warlike character of which it was now to as-
restoration to that place
the tribe and the peaceful image of its progenitor sume. The Tabernacle was at Shiloh in Ephraim
has been already noticed. That fierceness and during the time of the last Judge; but the Ark
power are not less out of proportion to the small- was in Benjamin at Kirjath-jearim. Ramah, the
ness of its numbers and of its territory. This official residence of Samuel, and containing a sanc-
comes out in many scattered notices, (a. ) Benja- tuary greatly frequented
(1 Sam. ix. 12, &c. ), —
min was the only tribe which seems to have pur- Mizpeh, where the great assemblies of " all Israel "
sued archery to any purpose, and their skill in the took place (1 Sam. vii. 5), Bethel, perhaps the —
bow (1 Sani. xx. 20, 36; 2 Sam. i. 22; 1 Chr. viii. most ancient of all the sanctuaries of Palestine, and
40, xii. 2 2 Chr. xvii. 17 and the sling ( Judg. xx. Gibeon, specially noted as "the great high place"
; )
trait in 1 Sam. xxii. 7-18. Though Saul was Hebron a detachment of 3000 men of the " brethren
not only the king of the nation, but the head of of Saul" (1 Chr. xii. 29). Still the insults of
the tribe, and David a member of a family which Shimei and the insurrection of Sheba are indications
had as yet no claims on the friendship of Benjamin, that the soreness still existed, and we do not hear
yet the Benjamites resisted the strongest appeal of of any cordial cooperation or firm union between
Saul to betray the movements of David, and after the two tribes until a cause of common quarrel
those movements had been revealed by Doeg the arose at the disruption, when Rehoboam assembled
Edomite (worthy member —
as he must have seemed "all the house of Judah with the tribe of Benjamin
to them — of an accursed race ) they still firmly
!
to fight against the house of Israel, to bring the
refused to lift a hand against those who had as- kingdom again to the son of Solomon " (1 K. xii.
sisted him. 21; 2 Chr. xi. 1). Possibly the seal may have
—
And yet to return to the deed of Gibeah in — been set to this by the fact of Jeroboam having
one or two of the expressions of that antique and just taken possession of Bethel, a city of Benjamin,
simple narrative —
the phrase "Benjamin my for the calf-worship of the northern kingdom b
(1
brother " —
the anxious inquiry, " what shall we do K. xii. 29). On the other hand Rehoboam forti-
Very much of the above article is drawn from that such almost total extermination, and to have reached
source. the numbers and force indicated in the lists of 1 Chr.
a A fair argument in favor of the received chro- xii. 1-8, vii. 6-12, viii. 1-40.
nology of the book of Judges may be drawn from this h Bethel, however, was on the very boundary line,
circumstance —
since no shorter period would have and centuries before this date was inhabited by both
been sufficient for the tribe to have recovered [from] Ephraimites and Benjamites (Judg. xix. 16).
BENJAMIN BERACHAH 279
Benjamites in high positions in the army of Ju-
.of
BEN'JAMIN, High gate, or gate, of
dah (2 L'hr. xvii. 17). But what above all must C\Vbvr\ 2 137127), Jer. xx. 2, xxxvii. 13, xxxviii.
have contributed to strengthen the alliance was the
7; Zech. xiv. 10. [Jerusalem.]
fact that the Temple was the common property of
both tribes. True, it was founded, erected, and * BEN'J AMITE (^PH?* J ud g- xix *4i-
endowed by princes of " the house of Judah," but 1 Sam. ix. 21, xxii. 7; 2 Sam', xvi. 11; IK. ii. 8;
the city of " the Jebusite " (Josh, xviii. 28), and 1 Chr. xxvii. 12; Ps. vii., title; with the article,
the whole of the ground north of the Valley of
Hinnom, was in the lot of Benjamin. In this lat- ^Pirna, Judg. iii. 15; 2 Sam. xvi. 11, xix\
%
the constant mention of it in the various censuses ixivy Vat. laKeifi, Alex.Ufietuatos, Jemini, 1
taken of the two tribes, and on other occasions, Sam. ix. 4), an appellation of the descendants of
and also from the lists of the men of Benjamin Benjamin. On the Hebrew forms noted above, see
who returned with Zerubbabel (Ezr. ii. ; Neh. vii. Benjamin, p. 276. A.
and took possession of their old towns (Neh. xi. 31-
At Jerusalem the name must have been al-
BE'NO 022 [his son] : LXX. translates vlotf
35).
Benno), a Levite of the sons of Merari (1 Chr.
ways kept alive, if by nothing else, by the name of
m the high gate of Benjamin " (Jer. xx. 2). [Jeru- xxiv. 26, 27).
that the ancient memories of their house were not ris mei), the name which the dying liachel gave to
allowed to fade from the recollections of the Ben- her newly-born son, but which by his father was
jamites. The genealogy of Said, to a late date, is changed into Benjamin (Gen. xxxv. 18).
carefully preserved in the lists of 1 Chr. (viii. 33-
40, ix. 39-44); the name of Kish recurs as the
BEN-ZO'HETH (HnV]?: '
vw l Za>d0;
Alex, [viot] Za>x a ^ occurring
: Benzoheth), a name
father of Mordecai (Esth. the honored deliv-
ii. 5),
erer of the nation from miseries worse than those
among the descendants of Judah (1 Chr. iv. 20).
threatened by Nahash the Ammonite. But it was The passage appears to be a fragment, and as if
reserved for a greater than these to close the line of
the name of a son of the Zoheth just mentioned had
originally followed. A. V. follows Vulgate. "
this tribe in the sacred history. The royal name
once more appears, and « Saul who also is called BE'ON 0|3?2 : B*id.V, Alex. Papa: Beon), a
Paul " has left on record under his own hand that place on the east of Jordan (Num. xxxii. 3), doubt-
he was " of the stock of Israel, of the tribe of Ben- less a contraction of Baal-meon (comp. ver. 38).
jamin." It is perhaps more than a mere fancy to
note how remarkably the chief characteristics of BE'OR
("H^a [a torch]: Bedbpf [Alex. ir.
the tribe are gathered up in his one person. There 1 Chr. Be»o>p:] Beor). 1. The father of Bela,
was the fierceness, in his persecution of the Chris- one of the early Edomite kings (Gen. xxxvi. 32;
tians ; and there were the obstinacy and persistence, 1 Chr. i. 43).
which made him proof against the tears and prayers 2. [Vat. Baioip, Beup.] Father of Balaam
of his converts, and " ready not to be bound only, (Num. xxii. 5, xxiv. 3, 15; xxxi. 8; Josh. 22,
xiii.
" He Bosor in the
but also to die for the name of the Lord Jesus xxiv. 9; Mic. vi. 5). is called
(Acts xxi. 12, 13). There were the force and N. T. [Bela.]
vigor to which natural difficulties and confined
circumstances formed no impediment; and lastly,
BE'RA (37H2 [son, or in evil = wicked]: Vat.
there was the keen sense of the greatness of his
[Rom.] and Alex. Ba\\d; Joseph. BaWas- Bara),
king of Sodom at the time of the invasion of the
•house, in his proud reference to his forefather
five kings under Chedorlaomer (Gen. xiv. 2; also
Saul the son of Cis, a man of the tribe of Benja-
.'•
17 and 21).
min."
Be may, no nobler hero could be found
this as it BERA'CHAH
(nan? [blessing] Bepxia; :
now probably Beni Nairn, an eminence on very high Bacchides, the general of Demetrius, encamped
ground, 3 or 4 miles east of Hebron, commanding shortly before the engagement in which Judas Mac-
an extensive view of the Dead Sea, and tradition- cabseus was slain (1 Mace. ix. 4. See Joseph. Ant.
ally the scene of Abraham's intercession for Sodom. xii. 11, § 1). J. S. H.
The tomb of Lot has been shown there since the BERECHI'AH (VPSTa
days of Mandeville (see Reland, 685 Rob. i. 489- ;
t v v :
and tetSJ
t vv :
BERACHI'AH (•irTOn?, Berechiahu [Je- and a descendant of the royal family of Judah (1
hovah will bless] Bopax''a Baracltia), a Gershon- Chr. iii. 20).
: :
ite Levite, father of Asaph the singer (1 Chr. vi. 2. [Vat. Neh. iii. 30, Bapxeia, vi. 18, Bapa-
39). [The name is written " Berechiah " in some Xe»a.] A man mentioned as the father of Meshul-
eds. of the A. V. See Berechiah 6.] lam who assisted in rebuilding the walls of Jerusa-
lem (Xeh. iii. 4, 30; vi. 18).
BERAIAH [3 syl.] (rPbT|3 [whom I cre-
3. [Vat. Bapaxei: Alex. Bapax««: Baracltia.']
ated] Bapai'a Baraia ), son of Shimhi, a chief A Levite of the line of Elkanah (1 Chr. ix. 16).
: :
man of Benjamin (1 Chr. viii. 21). 4. [Barachias.] doorkeeper for the ark (1 A
BERE'A (B«po?a: [Benea~]). 1. A city of Chr. xv. 23).
Macedonia, to which St. Paul retired with Silas 5. [Bopax^os; Vat. Zaxapias-] Berechiahu,
and Timotheus, in the course of his first visit to one of the chief men of the tribe of Ephraim in
Europe, on being persecuted in Thessalonica (Acts time of king Ahaz (2 Chr. xxviii. 12).
xvii. 10), and from which, on being again perse- 6. Berechiahu, father of Asaph the singer (1
cuted by emissaries from Thessalonica, he withdrew Chr. xv. 17). [Berachiah.]
to the sea for the purpose of proceeding to Athens 7. [Bapax'ias.] Berechiahu, father of Zech-
(ib. 14, 15). The community of Jews must have ariah the prophet (Zech. i. 1, also 7). [Here A
been considerable in Berea, and their character is V. ed. 1611 reads " Barochiah."] G.
described in very favorable terms (ib. 11). Sopater,
one of St. Paul's missionary companions, was from
BE'RED
(T?£ [hail]: BapdS: Barad). L
this place (Bepoiaios, Acta xx. 4). He accom- A place in the south of Palestine, between which
and Kadesh lay the well Lachai-roi (Gen. xvi. 14).
panied the apostle on his return from the second
The name is variously given in the ancient versions
visit to Europe (ib.); and he appears to have pre-
viously been with him, in the course of that second Peshito, Gadar, 'j-^.? Gerar; Arab. Jared, =
visit, at Corinth, when he wrote the Epistle to the
Romans (Rom. xvi. 21). Oyi, probably a mere corruption of the Hebrew
Berea. called Veriia or Kara-Verria, is
now name; Onkelos, Chagra, N^30 (elsewhere em-
fully described by Leake (Northern Greece, vol. iii.
ployed in the Targums for " Shur; " can it be con-
290 ft'.), and by Cousinery ( Voyage dans la Mace-
doine, i. 69 ff.). Situated on the eastern slope of nected with Hagar, "^H, ^il?); Ps.-Jonathan,
the Olympian mountain-range, with an abundant
supply of water, and commanding an extensive
Chalutza, K^vP, i. e. the Elusa, "EKovcra of
Ptolemy and the ecclesiastical writers, now el-Khu-
view of the plain of the Axius and Haliacmon, it
hisuli. on the Hebron road, about 12 miles south
is regarded as one of the most agreeable towns in
of Beer-sheba (Rob. i. 201, 2; Stewart, 205; Re-
Rumili, and has now 15,000 or 20,000 inhabitants.
A few ancient remains, Greek, Roman, and Byzan- land, 755). We .have the testimony of Jerome
(Vita S. Hilar ionis) that Elusa was called by its
tine, still exist here.Two roads are laid down in
inhabitants Barec, which would be an easy corrup-
the Itineraries between Thessalonica and Berea,
one passing by Pella. a St. Paul and his compan- tion of Bered, "7 being read for 1. Chalutza is
ions may have travelled by
them. Two the name elsewhere given in the Arabic version for
either of
roads also connect Berea with Dium, one passing "Shur" and for "Gerar."
by Pydna. It was probably from Dium that St. 2. [Vat. om. Bared.] A son or descendant
:
Paul sailed to Athens, leaving Silas and Timotheus of Ephraim (1 Chr. vii. 20), possibly identical with
behind and possibly 1 Thess. iii. 2 refers to a jour- Becher in Num. xxvi. 35, by a mere change of let-
;
a * The " Notes on Macedonia " (Bibl. Sacr. xi. 830) remainder Greeks. They have one synagogue, 12
by the late Rev. Edward M. Dodd, who was a mis- mosques, and 60 Greek churches " (which last, it
sionary at Thessalonica. describe minutely the route should be said, except 3 or 4, are not itcKK^aiat. propr
between that city and Be*ea. The population of Berea erly so called, but eicicArjo-iSia as the modern Greekfl
is overstated in the article above. Mr. Dodd says that term them, i. e. chapels or shrines). H.
it is B 6000 about 200 Jews, 1500 Turks, and the
;
BERI BERIAH 281
eating a direct descent, as Houbigant (ap. Barrett,
BERI CH3 [fountain]: Bapiv, [Vat. 2a-
Synopsis in loc.) remarks, although he very need-
Bpti: Alex. Bapf, Comp. Bypel:] Ben), son of
Zophah, of the tribe of Asher (1 Chr. vii. 36).
lessly proposes conjecturally to omit them. sim- A
ilar genealogy from Beriah to Joshua is given in
BERI' AH
(nip"!?, in evil, or a gift, see 1 Chr. vii. 25-27. As the text stands, there are
No. 2: Bapid'- Beria, Brie). 1. A
son of Asher but three sons of Ephraim mentioned before Be-
(Gen. xlvi. 17; Num. from whom riah
xxvi. 44, 45), Shuthelah, Ezer, and Elead — all of whom —
seem to hare been killed by the men of Gath, though
descended the ''family of the Beriites," ^y*"]?,
it is possible that the last two are alone meant, and
Baptut [Alex. Bapai], familia Brieitarum (Num. the first of whom is stated to have left
descendants.
xxvi. 44).
In the enumeration of the Israelite families in Num-
2. [Bf pid; Alex. Bapia'- Beria.] A
son of bers four of the tribe of Ephraim are mentioned,
Ephraim, so named on account of the state of his sprung from his sons Shuthelah, Becher, and Tahan,
father's house when he was born. "And the sons and from Eran, son or descendant of Shuthelah
of Ephraim: Shuthelah, and Bered his son, and (xxvi. 35, 36). The second and third families are
Tahath his son, and Eladah his son, and Tahath probably those of Beriah and a younger son, unless
his son, and Zabad his son, and Shuthelah his son, the third is one of Beriah, called after his descend-
and Ezer, and Elead, whom the men of Gath [that ant Tahan (1 Chr. vii. 25); or one of them may be
were] born in [that] land slew" [lit. "and the that of a son of Joseph, since it is related that
men . .slew them "], "because they came down Jacob determined that sons of Joseph who might
.
to take away their cattle. And Ephraim their be born to him after Ephraim and Manasseh should
father mourned many days, and his brethren came " be called after the name of their brethren in their
to comfort him. And when he went in to his wife, inheritance " (Gen. xlviii. 6). See however Be-
she conceived, and bare a son, and he called his cher. There can be no doubt that the land in
name Beriah, because it went evil with his house" which the men of Gath were born is the eastern
[lit. " because evil " or " a gift " " was to his part of Lower Egypt, if not Goshen itself. It
would be needless to say that they were born in
house:" 'W32 HH^n n3n2
t t t t : :
\S, g Tt i,
"»."»** their own land. At this time very many foreigners
kokoIs iytvero iv otica) fxov, LXX. " eo quod must have been settled in Egypt, especially in and
:
in malis domus ejus ortus esset," Vulg.] (1 Chr. about Goshen. Indeed Goshen is mentioned as a
vii. 20-23). With respect to the meaning of the non-Egyptian country in its inhabitants (Gen. xlvi.
name, Gesenius prefers the rendering "in evil" to 34), and its own name as well as nearly all the
"a gift," as probably the right one. In this case names of its cities and places mentioned in the
nV"^2 in the explanation would Bible, save the cities built in the oppression, are
be, according to
probably Semitic. In the book of Joshua, Shihor,
him, nV^ with Beth essentia} {Thes. v.). It
the Nile, here the Pelusiac branch, is the boundary
s.
must be remarked, however, that the supposed in- of Egypt and Canaan, the Philistine territories ap-
stances of Beth essentia being prefixed to the sub- parently being considered to extend from it (Josh,
ject in the 0. T. are few and inconclusive, and xiii. 2, 3). It is therefore very probable that many
that disputed by the Arabian grammarians if
it is Philistines would have settled in a part of Egypt
the parallel " redundant B6 " of the Arabic be ever so accessible to them and so similar in its popula-
so used (comp. Thes. pp. 174, 175, where this use tion to Canaan as Goshen and the tracts adjoining
of " redundant Be " is too arbitrarily denied). The it. Or else these men of Gath may have been mer-
LXX. and Vulg. indicate a different construction, cenaries like the Cherethim (in Egyptian Shayra-
with an additional variation in the case of the for- tana) who were in the Egyptian service at a later
mer ("my house" for "his house "), so that the time, as in David's, and to whom lands were prob-
rendering " in evil " does not depend upon the con- ably allotted as to the native army. Some suppose
struction propose! by Gesenius. Michaelis suggesta that the men of Gath were the aggressors, a con-
jecture not at variance with the words used in the
that ny"^2 may mean a spontaneous gift of God,
relation of the cause of the death of
Ephraim's
beyond expectation and the law of nature, as a son
sons, since we may read "when \?T) they came
born to Ephraim now growing old might be called
(Suppl. pp. 224, 225). In favor of this meaning, down," &c., instead of " because," &c. (Bagster's
which, with Gesenius, we take in the simple sense Bible, in loc), but it must be remembered that this
of "gift," it may be urged, that it is unlikely that rendering is equally consistent with the other ex-
four persons would have borne a name of an unu- planation. There is no reason to suppose that the
sual form, and that a case similar to that here sup- Israelites at this time may not have sometimes en-
posed is found in the naming of Seth (Gen. iv. gaged in predatory or other warfare. The warlike
25). This short notice is of no slight historical habits of Jacob's sons are evident in the narrative
importance; especially as it refers to a period of Simeon and Levi upon
of the vengeance taken by
Hebrew history respecting which the Bible affords Hamor and Shechem
(Gen. xxxiv. 25-29), and of
us no other hut information. The event must be their posterity in the account' of the fear of that
assigned to the time between Jacob's death and the Pharaoh who began to oppress them lest they
beginning of the oppression. The indications that should, in the event of war in the land, join with
guide us are, that some of Ephraim's sons must the enemies of his people, and by fighting against
have attained to manhood, and that the Hebrews them get them out of the country (Ex. i. 8-10).
were still free. The passage is full of difficulties.
It has been imagined, according to which side was
The first question is What sons of Ephraim were supposed to have acted the a^irressor, that the Git-
:
killed '? The persons mentioned do not all seem to tites descended upon the Ephraimites in a preda-
be his sons. Shuthelah occupies the first place, tory excursion from Palestine, or that the Ephra-
and a genealogy of his descendants follows, as far imites made a raid into Palestine. Neither of
as a second Shuthelah, the words "his son" indi- these explanations is consistent with sound criti-
.282 BERIITES BERYL
cism, because the men of Gath are said to have Aid. Bi)puddfi\ Comp Btpodd-] Berotha, Beroth).
been born in the land, that is, to have been settled The first of these two names, each of which oc-
in Egypt, as already shown, and the second one, curs once only, is given by Ezekiel (xlvii. 16) in
which is adopted by Bunsen (Egypt's Place, i. 177, connection with Hamath and Damascus as forming
178), is inadmissible on the ground that the verb part of the northern boundary of the promised
land. The second is mentioned (2 Sam. viii. 8) as
used, "TTCj " ne went down," or " descended,"
the name of a city of Zobah taken by David, also
is com-
applicable to going into Egypt, but not to
in connection with Hamath and Damascus. The
ing from it. The Rabbinical idea that these sons slightness of these references makes it impossible
of Ephraim went to take the Promised Land needs
to identify the names with any degree of probabil-
no refutation. (For these various theories see PoH ity, or even to decide whether they refer to the same
Synopsis in loc.)
locality or not. The well known city Beirut (Ber-
[Beptd; Vat. Bepiya, Bap€iya: Alex. Bapi- ytus) naturally suggests itself as identical
3.
with one
ya Bona.]
: A
Benjamite. He and bis brother at least of the names ; but in each instance the cir-
Shema were ancestors of the inhabitants of Ajalon, cumstances of the case seem to require
a position
and expelled the inhabitants of Gath (1 Chr. viii. further
east, since Ezekiel places Berothah between
13, 16). Hamath and Damascus, and David's war with the
[Bepid; Alex. ver. 10 omits, ver. 11 Bapia:
4.
king of Zobah led him away from the sea-coast
Baria.] A
Levite (1 Chr. xxiii. 10, 11).
towards the Euphrates {2 Sam. viii. 3). In the
R. S. r.
by the He-
latter instance the difficulty is increased
BERI'ITES. [Beriah, 1.] brew text reading in 1 Chr. xviii. 8, Chun instead
BE'RITES, THE (D'ngPT [the wells, i. e. of Berothai, and by the fact that both in Samuel
people of]: iv Xapfii [Vat. Alex, -pei]), a tribe and Chronicles the Greek translators, instead of
or people who are named with Abel and Beth- giving a proper name, translate by the phrase fa
maachah —
and who were therefore doubtless situ- twv ixKtKTciiv w6\(wv, clearly showing that they
ated in the north of Palestine —
mentioned only as read either the same text in each passage, or at
having been visited by Joab in his pursuit after least words which bore the same sense. Fiirst re-
Sheba the son of Bichri (2 Sam. xx. 14). The gards Berothah and Berothai as distinct places, and
" identifies the first with Berytus. Mislin (Saints
expression is a remarkable one, "all the Berites
V Lieux, i. 244) derives the name from the wells
(*3n 3 comp.
; " all the Bithron " ). The Vul- (Beeroth), which are still to be seen bored in the
gate has a different reading —
omnesque viri solid rock at Beirut. F. W. G.
electi congregati fuerant — apparently reading for
BE'ROTHITE, THE (1 Chr. xi. 39). [Bee-
D", "'Qn by an easy transposition and change of roth.]
letters O^HPSl, i. e. the young men, and this is in BERYL (tt^ttnFI tarsMsh: xpv<r6\t0os,
Ewald's opinion the correct reading (Gesch. iii. 249, &ap<reis, &v0pa£, \i0os dvOpaxos: chrysolitkus,
note). G. hyacinthus, mare) occurs in Ex. xxviii. 20, xxxix.
13; Cant. 14; Ez. 16, x. 9, xxviii. 13; Dan.
BE'RITH, THE GOD (rVn^. b« [i. e.
x. 6.
v.
The tarsMsh was the
i.
noted: " His hands are orbs of gold adorned with Hadadezer, king of Zobah, mentioned with Be-
the tarshish stone." This seems to be the correct rothai as having yielded much spoil of brass to
rendering of the Hebrew. The orbs or rings of David (2 Sam. viii. 8). In the parallel account, 1
gold, as Cocceius has observed, refer not to rings Chr. xviii. 8, the name is called, by an inversion of
on the fingers, but to the fingers themselves, as they letters, Tibchath. Ewald (Gesch. ii. 195) pro-'
gently press upon the thumb and thus form the nounces the latter to be the correct reading, and
figure of an orb or a ring. The latter part of the compares it with Tebach (Gen. xxii. 24). G.
verse the causal expletive of the former.
is It is
[Vat. Bairavv ! Sin. Ba-
BET'ANE(B€Tc£«tj;
not only said in this passage that the hands are e. prob. Bairavn- Vulg.
ravn;] Alex. B\tTam), «'•
Xetfjiappos tov Boa6p\ [1 Sam. xxx. 21, Vat. Be- expresses the textile materials (A. V. "hangings")
avas, Alex. Bex^pO torrens Besor), a torrent-bed for the tents of Astarte. From this general force
or wady extreme south of Judah, of which the transition was natural to a house in the sense
in the
" (Prayer-
mention occurs only in 1 Sam. xxx. 9, 10, 21. It of a family, as Ps. cvii. 41, " families
1
is plain from the conditions of the narrative that it Book, "households"), or a pedigree, as Ezr. ii. 59.
must have been south of Ziklag, but hitherto the In 2 Sam. xiii. 7, 1 K. xiii. 7, and other places, it
situation of neither town nor wady has been iden- has the sense of "home," i. e. "to the house."
tified with any probability. The name may signify Beth also has some collateral and almost technical
"fresh" or "cool" (Kiirst). G. meanings, similar to those which we apply to the
"
* Dr. Bohinson holds that the Brook Besor, in word " house," as in Ex. xxv. 27 for the '• places
all probability, is the Wtidy 'Ar' arah, the south- or sockets into which the bars for carrying
the table
eastern branch of Wady es-Seba\ running from were " housed
" and others. ;
Aroer to IJeersheba. For the grounds of this opin- Like sEdes in Latin and Dom in German, Beth
ion, see his Phys. Geography, pp. 121-123. Diet- has the special meaning of a temple or house of
rich supposes Besor to mean verdant worship, in which sense it is applied not only to
grassy,
(Gesen. Wdrterb. 6te Aufl.). H. the tabernacle (see above) or temple of Jehovah
(1 K. iii. 2, vi. 1, &c.), but to those of false gods
* BESTEAD (from the Anglo-Saxon stede, a
—
Dagon (Judg. xvi. 27; 1 Sam. v. 2), Kimmon
place: comp. our instead, homesterul, &c.), found
(2 K. v. 18), Baal -(2 K. x. 21), Nisroch (2 K<
only in Is. viii. 21 (A. V.), means "placed " or " sit-
xix. 37), and other gods (Judg. ix. 27). " Bajith "
uated " (well or ill), and hence accompanied in Is.,
as above, by "hardly," i. e. severely, the two words
in Is. xv. 2 is really ha-Bajith " the Temple " =
—
meaning some well-known idol fane in Moab.
together give the sense of ntZ7J73, namely, "brought [Bajith.]
284 BETHABARA BETHANY
Beth more frequently employed in combination
is * It has been claimed that Bethabara or Bethany
with other words to form the names of places than must have been one of the upper crossing-places
either Kirjath, Hatzer, Beer, Ain, or any other of the Jordan, not far south of the Sea of Tiberias,
word. A list of the places compounded with Beth and not so low down as opposite Jericho, because
is given below in alphabetical order; but in addi- Jesus went thence to Galilee (John i. 44) in a
tion to these it may be allowable here to notice two, single day (Stanley, Sin. and Pal. p. 305). But
which, though not appearing in that form in the this depends on how we are to reckon the " third
A. V., yet do so in the LXX., probably with day" in John ii. 1; for unless we count the day
greater correctness. of Christ's calling the first disciples (John i. 35)
as the first, and that of the marriage at Cana
Betii-e'ked ("Tf?3? 2 : [BaiOaicd0 Alex. Baid-
;
" the third "
as
(ii. 1), there may have been three or
aKaS'] camera pastorum), the "shearing-house,"
more days spent on the journey. But instead of
at the pit or well ("112) of which the forty-two itsoccupying one day only, the third day may have
brethren of Ahaziah were slain by Jehu (2 K. x. been the third after the arrival in Galilee, or ac-
12). It lay between Jezreel and Samaria accord- cording to Liicke (Evang. des Johannes, i. 467),
ing to Jerome (Onom.), 15 miles from the town of the third from the calling of Nathanael (John i.
Legio, and hi the plain of Esdraelon. With either "of these last computations we
46).
must place Bethabara much further south than
Beth-hag'gan (]3n 2 [house of the gar- any ford near the south end of the Galilean sea.
den]: BaiOydv; [Vat. BauOaV, Comp. BaiOaydv •] It stands, on Kiepert's Wandkarte von Paldstina,
Domus horti), A. V. "the garden-house" (2 K. off against the upper part of the plain of Jericho.
ix. 27), one of the spots which marked the flight It confers additional interest on Bethabara, if,
of Ahaziah from Jehu. It is doubtless the same as many suppose, it was the place where Jesus him-
place as En-gannim, "spring of gardens," the self was baptized. If to irpwrov in John x. 40
modern Jenin, on the direct road from Samaria means that when John began his career as the
northward, and overlooking the great plain (Stan- baptizer, he baptized first at Bethabara beyond
ley, p. 349, note). G. the Jordan; and if the desert of Judaea lay in
BETHABARA (BriOafiapd, quasi i*T2 part on the east of the Jordan so as to embrace
Bethabara, then Jesus may have received his bap-
m3y, house of ford ox ferry: [Bethania]), a tism there; for John came at first baptizing in
place beyond Jordan, irepav tov 'lop., in which, "the wilderness of Judaea" (Matt. iii. 1), and
according to the Received Text of the N. T., John Jesus, without any intimation of a change of place,
was baptizing (John i. 28), apparently at the time is said to have come and been baptized in the Jor-
that he baptized Christ (comp. ver. 29, 39, 35). If dan (Matt. iii. 13). But against this conclusion
the reading of the Received Text be the correct one, stands the fact that the wilderness (eprjfios) of
Bethabara may be identical with Beth-barah, the Judaea lay in all probability wholly on the west of
ancient ford of Jordan, of which the men of Eph- the Jordan and the Dead Sea. See Jud.ea, Wil-
raim took possession after Gideon's defeat of the derness of (Amer. ed.). Further, to irpwTov
Midianites [Beth-barah] ; or, which seems more may signify only "at the first," referring in a gen-
likely, with Beth-nimrah, on the east of the river, eral way to this place beyond the Jordan, where
nearly opposite Jericho. [Beth-nimrah.] But Jesus spent some of the last months or weeks of his
the oldest MSS. (A B) and the Vulgate" have not life, as the same place where John had formerly
accordingly restored to the text by Lachmann, Ti- BTjOavuO:] Bethanoth), a town in the mountainous
district of Judah, named with Halhul, Beth-znr,
schendorf, and other modern editors. At this dis-
tance of time, and in the absence of any careful
and others, in Josh. xv. 59 only. It is very prob-
impossible to de- ably the modern Beit Ainun, the remains of which,
'
cide on evidence so slight and conflicting. It must near to those of Halhvl and Beit Sin; were dis-
covered by Wolcott and visited by Bobinson (iii.
not be overlooked that, if Bethany be accepted,
the definition " beyond Jordan " still remains, and 281). G.
therefore another place must be intended than the
Well-known residence of Lazarus. G.
BETH'ANY (quasi ^ilffS, house of
dates [or from n*337V^5» heme of sontncj:
a In the Onomasticon, however, Jerome has Beth- BnOav'ta: Bethania), a village which, scanty as are
abara. the notices of it contained in Scripture, is more in-
BETHANY BETHANY 285
timately associated in our minds than perhaps any El-Azariyeh itself is a ruinous and wretched
other place with the most familiar acts and scenesvillage, a "wild mountain hamlet" of "some
of the last days of the life of Christ. It was at twenty families," the inhabitants of which display
Bethany that He raised Lazarus from the dead, even less than the ordinary eastern thrift and in-
and from Bethany that He commenced his " tri- dustry (Rob. i. 432; Stanley, p. 189; Bonar, p.
umphal entry " into Jerusalem. It was his nightly 310). In the village are shown the traditional
resting place during the time immediately preced- sites of the house and tomb of Lazarus the former ;
ing his passion and here, at the houses of Martha the remains of a square tower, apparently of old
;
and Mary and of Simon the leper, we are admitted date, though certainly not of the age of the kings'
to view Him, more nearly than elsewhere, in the of Judah, to which Ue Saulcy assigns it (p. 128)
—
circle of hisdomestic life. the latter a deep vault excavated in the limestone
Though it was only at a late period of the life rock, the bottom reached by 26 steps. The house
of our Lord that his connection with Bethany of Simon the leper is also exhibited. As to the
commenced, yet this is fully compensated for by real age and character of these remains there is at
its having been the scene of his very last acts on present no information to guide us.
earth. It was somewhere here, on these wooded Schwarz maintains el- Azariyeh to be Azal;
slopes beyond the ridge of Olivet, that the Apos- and would fix Bethany at a spot which, he says,
tles stood when they last beheld his figure, as, with the Arabs call Beth-hanan, on the Mount of Of-
"uplifted hands" —
still, to the very moment of fense above Siloam (pp. 263, 135).
disappearance, "blessing" them —
He was "taken These traditional spots are first heard of in the
up" into the "cloud " which "received" and hid 4th century, in the Itinerary of the Bourdeaux
Him from their " steadfast " gaze, the words still Pilgrim, and the Onomasticm of Eusebius and
ringing in their ears, which prove that space and Jerome ; and they continued to exist, with certain
time are no hiuderance to the connection of Chris- and of ecclesiastical establish-
varieties of buildings
tians with their Lord —
" Lo I am with you al-
! ments in connection therewith, down to the 16th
ways, even to the end of the world." century, since which the place has fallen gradually
The little information we possess about Bethany into its present decay. This part of the history i8
is entirely gathered from the N. T., neither the 0. well given by Robinson (i. 432-3). By Mande-
T. nor the Apocrypha hJtving apparently any allu- ville and other mediaeval travellers the town is
sion to it." It was situated "at" (irp6s) the spoken of as the " Castle of Bethany," an expres-
Mount of Olives (Mark xi. 1; Luke xix. 29), about sion which had its origin in castellum being em-
fifteen stadia from Jerusalem (John xi. 18), on or ployed in the Vulgate as the translation of Kd/xr)
near the usual road from Jericho to the city (Luke in John xi. 1.
xix. 29, comp. 1; Mark xi. 1, comp. x. 46), and N.B. The derivation of the name of Bethany
close by and west (?) of another village called given above —
that of Lightfoot and Reland is —
Bethphage, the two being several times mentioned doubtless more correct than the one proposed by
together.
Simonis (Onom. s. v.), namely, s 3V n
~?i locus de-
There never appears to have been any doubt as
pressions, which has no special applicability to this
to the site of Bethany,which is now known by a name
spot more than any other, while it lacks the cor-
derived from Lazarus el-' Azariyeh b ( XJ\'\LxJ ! ). respondence with Bethphage, " House of Figs, 1 ''
ondary ridge or hump, of sufficient height to shut the late period at which we first hear of Bethany.
out the village from the summit of the mount G.
(Rob. i. 431, 432; Stanley, p. 189; Bonar, pp. * The etymology is still unsettled. The various
138-9). conjectures are stated by Arnold in Herzog's Real-
From a distance the village is, to use the em- Encyk. ii. 116. The one that he prefers makes it
phatic words of the latest published description,
"remarkably beautiful" —
"the perfection of re- the Chaldee or Aramaean S^2V i*T2 (Buxt.
tirement and repose " —
" of seclusion and lovely Lex. Chakl. col. 1631 f. ), i. e. domus miseri, " house
peace" (Lonar, pp. 139, 230, 310, 337; and see of the afflicted." Origen, Theophylact and others
Lindsay, p. G9). It is difficult to reconcile these express a similar idea in their oIkos inraKorjs, as
glowing descriptions with Mr. Stanley's words (p. if related to n337, i. e., where the prayer of the
189), or with the impression which the present needy is H.
heard and answered.
writer derived from the actual view of the place.
Possibly something of the difference is due to the * BETHANY beyond the Jordan (ac-
different time of year at which the visits were cording to the true text in John i. 28). For this,
made. see Bethabara. H.
a It has been suggested (Hitzig, Jesaia) that the the other places mentioned in the passage, and is quite
Word rendered " poor " in the A. V. of Is. x. 30 out of the line of Sennacherib*s advance.
b The Arabic name is given above from Robinson.
( n*DV ) — " P oor Anathoth " —
is an abbreviated
Lord Lindsay, however, denies that this is correct, and
form of the name of Bethany, as Nimrah is of Beth- asserts, after frequently hearing it pronounced, that
nimrah, &c. but apart from any other difficulty, the name is Lazarieh.
;
there is the serious one that Bethany does not lie near
286 BETH-ARABAH BETH-AZMAVETH
derstanding Salman as Zalmunna, and the whole
'
Dead Sea (" wilderness," Josh. xv. 61), on the north astinn,
p. 108; Ritter's Erdhunde, viii. 2, 328;
border of the tribe, and apparently between Beth-
Porter, Handb. p. 418). Travellers who turn to
hoglah and the high land on the west of the Jordan
the left inland from the shore of Gennesaret, after
valley (xv. 6 ). It is also included in the list of the
proceeding a short distance beyond Afejdel (Mag-
towns of Benjamin (xviii. 22, Baidafiapd, Vat.
dala) in ascending the hills to Safed have before
[Alex. Baidapafia]). G.
them the site of Arbela at the entrance into Wady
Ha/mam (valley of Doves), just back of the re*
BETH-ATtAM (accurately Beth-haram,
markable caverns which appear there in the face of
nn 2 ['OOapyai, Vat. -yaei
: Alex. B-n6a- the almost perpendicular rocks, reaching the height
;
not receive her name of Julia until after the death or's march through the country. The name is
of Augustus, a. p. 14, it is probable that Josephus variously explained. According to Gesenius it sig-
is in error as to the new name given to the place, nifies " House of God's ambush," i. e. a place made
and speaks of it as having originally received that strong by His hand rather than man's. Simonis
which it bore in his own day. It is curious that (Onomast. p. 494) comes nearer still to this import
he names Libias long before (Ant, xiv. 1, §4) in of the name =
" Lustrum Dei, i. e. maximum et in-
:
lat. and 67° 10' long. (Bitter, Jwdan, p. 573); BETH-A'VEN 2, house of naught,
(ftM
and Eusebius and Jerome ( Onomasticon) state that i. e. badness: 12] BaiOdov, Alex.
[Josh, xviii.
it was five miles south of Bethnabran, or Betham-
B-ndavv' Bethaven) a place on the mountains of
naran (L e. Beth-nimrah?). This agrees with the Benjamin, east of Bethel (Josh. vii. 2, Bai6^\
position of the Wady Seir, or Sir, which falls into
[Alex. Bydavv], xviii. 12), and lying between that
the Ghor opposite Jericho, and half way between place and Michmash (1 Sam. xiii. 5 ; also xiv. 23,
Wady Jlesban and Wady Shoaib. No one appears r^v [Alex. B-ndavv\-
Ba/x<I>0, In Josh, xviii. 12,
to have explored this valley. Seetzen heard that it
contained a castle and a large tank in masonry
the " wilderness " (Midbar =
pasture-land) of Beth-
aven is mentioned. In 1 Sam. xiii. 5 the reading
(Beken, 1854, ii. 318). These may turn out to
of the LXX. is BatBwpcbv [Comp. Bai0a/8eV], Beth-
be the ruins of Libias. G. horon but if this be correct, another Beth-horon
;
oIkos Met\P<&d; Ales, oikos B(\afia>V- oppidum Hormah, &c. (comp. Josh.
sheba, xv. 32, Lebaoth).
of Moab, and to be known either as Beth-meon usual expression "under Beth-car" (2 nnijltt),
(Jer. xlviii. 23) or Baal-meon (Ez. xxv. 9). The it would seem that the place itself was on a height,
name is still attached to a ruined place of consid- with the road at its foot. Josephus (Ant. vi. 2, § 2)
erable size (betriichtlich, Seetzen), a short distance has /ue'xpi Kopfraiwv, and goes on to say that the
to the S. W. of Hesb&n, and bearing the name of stone Ebenezer was set up at this place to mark it
name of 'that place (S^nn DIpTSn) Bethel; but after which the name of Luz occurs no more (Judg.
'
narrative) the name of Israel was given him. Here tion, forming, as they do, the title of the chief
He found him in Bethel, and there He spake with by the Jews in their lamentations (Keland, Pal.
638). [Temple, the Second.]
us, even Jehovah God of hosts " (Hos. xii. 4, 5).
After the conquest Bethel is frequently heard of.
Early as is the date involved in these narratives,
In the troubled times when there was no king in
yet, if we are to accept the precise definition of Gen.
Israel, it was to Bethel that the people went up in
xii. 8, the name of Bethel would appear to have
their distress to ask counsel of God (Judg. xx. 18,
existed at this spot even before the arrival of Abram
xxi. 2: in the A. V. the name is translated
in' Canaan he removed from the oaks of Moreh to 26, 31,
:
" house of God "). Here was the ark of the cove-
"'the' mountain -on the east of Bethel," with
" Bethel on the west and Hai on the east." Here nant under the charge of Phinehas the grandson
of Aaron, with an altar and proper appliances for
he built an altar; and hither he returned from
the offering of burnt-offerings and peace-offerings
Egypt with Lot before their separation (xiii. 3, 4).
(xx. 26-28, xxi. 4); and the unwonted mention of
See Stanley, S. <f P. 218.
a regular road or causeway as existing between it
a * The two accounts relate to different journeys of God again appeared to him there and granted to him
Jacob when he stopped at Bethel. The origin of the still more signal manifestations of his presence and
name, in the fullness of its moaning, was not one but two- favor (Gen. xxxv. 14, 15). H.
fold. The accounts really differ only in this, that the
expressive name which the patriarch gave to the place
f>
The word is the same (H2^ m a ^ three cases,
on his setting out for Padan-aram he had occasion to though in the A. V. it is rendered " talked » in the
renew and emphasize on his return to Bethel, because two former.
BETHEL BETHEL 289
and the great town of Shechem is doubtless an in- Not the least remarkable of these later works was
dication that it was already in much repute. Later
the monument (p s 5Jn : o-t^Atj), evidently a con-
than t his we find it named as one of the holy cities
spicuous erection, of the "man of God," who pro-
to which Samuel went in circuit, taking equal rank
claimed the ultimate downfall of this idolatrous
with Gilgal and Mizpeh (1 Sum. vii. 10).
worship at its very outset, and who would seem to
Doubtless, although we are not so expressly told,
have been at a later date canonized as it were by
it was this ancient reputation, combined with its
the votaries of the very idolatry which he denounced.
situation on the extreme south frontier of his new
" Woe unto you for ye build the sepulchres of the
!
kingdom, and with the hold which it must have
prophets, and your fathers killed them."
had on the sympathies both of Benjamin and
Ephraim —
the former's by lot, and the latter's by
But, in any case, the fact of the continued exist-
ence of the tomb of this protester through so many
conquest —
that made Jeroboam choose Bethel as
centuries of idolatry illustrates very remarkably the
the depository of the new false worship which was
way in which the worship of Jehovah and the false
to seal and consummate the division between the
worship went on side by side at Bethel. It is plain
ten tribes and the two.
from several allusions of Amos that this was the
Here he placed one of the two calves of gold, and
case (v. 14, 22); and the fact before noticed of
built a "house of high places" and an altar of in-
prophets of Jehovah being resident there, and of
cense, by which he himself stood to burn, as we see
the friendly visits even of the stern Elijah ; of the
him in the lamiliar picture of 1 K. xiii. Towards
the end of Jeroboam's life Bethel fell into the hands
relation between the "man of God from Judah"
and the "lying prophet" who caused his death,
of Judah (2 Chr. xiii. 19), whence it was probably
of the manner in which Zedekiah the son of Che-
recovered by Baasha (xvi. 1). It then remains un-
naanah, a priest of Baal, resorts to the name of
mentioned for a long period. The worship of Baal,
Jehovah for his solemn adjuration, and lastly of the
introduced by the Phoenician queen of Ahab (1 K.
way in which the denunciations of Amos were tol-
xvi. 31), had probably alienated public favor from
the simple erections of Jeroboam to more gorgeous
erated and he himself allowed to escape, all —
these point to a state of things well worthy of in-
shrines (2 K. x. 21, 22). Samaria had been built
vestigation: In this connection, too, it is carious
(1 K. xvi. 24). and Jezreel, and these things must
that men of Bethel and Ai returned with Zerubba-
have all tended to draw public notice to the more
bel (Ezr. ii. 28; Neh. vii. 32); and that they re-
northern part of the kingdom. It was during this
turned to their native place whilst continuing their
period that Elijah visited Bethel, and that we hear
relations with Nehemiah and the restored worship
of " sons of the prophets " as resident there (2 K.
(Neh. xi. 31). In the Book of Esdras the name
ii. 2, 3), two facts apparently incompatible with
appears as Betolius. In later times Bethel is
the active existence of the calf-worship. The men-
only named once, amongst the strong cities in Ju-
tion of the bears so close to the town (ii. 23, 25),
daea which were repaired by Bacchides during the
looks too as if the neighborhood were not much
struggles of the times of the Maccabees (1 Mace,
frequented at that time. But after his destruction
is. 50).
of the Baal worship throughout the country, Jehu
appears to have returned to the simpler and more Bethel receives a bare mention from Eusebius
national religion of the calves, and Bethel comes and Jerome in the Onomnsticon, as 12 miles from
once more into view (2 K. x. 29). Under the Jerusalem on the right hand of the road to Sichem
descendants of this king the place and the worship and here its ruins still lie under the scarcely altered
must have greatly flourished, for by the time of name of Beitin. They cover a space of " three or
Jeroboam II., the great-grandson of Jehu, the rude four acres," and consist of " very many foundations
village was again a royal residence with a " king's and half-standing walls of houses and other build-
house" (Am. vii. 13); there were palaces both for ings." " The ruins lie upon the front of a low hill
"winter" and "summer," "great houses" and between the heads of two hollow wadies which unite
"houses of ivory " (iii. 15), and a very high degree and run off into the main valley es-Suweimt " (Rob.
of luxury in dress, furniture, and living (vi. 4-6). i. 448-9). Dr. Clarke, and other travellers since
The one was now accompanied by
original altar his visit, haveremarked on the " stony " nature of
several others (iii. 14, ii. 8); and the simple "in- the soil at Bethel, as perfectly in keeping with the
cense " of its founder had developed into the narrative of Jacob's slumber there. When on the
"burnt-offerings" and "meat-offerings" of "solemn spot little doubt can be
felt as to the localities of
An admirable passage on the history of Bethel Sea, ascertained that the river in its intermediate
passage rushes over not fewer than 27 violent rap-
will be found in Stanley (217-223).
ids, as well as many others less precipitous. It is
2. [In Josh., Alex, omit; Comp.
Bom. Vat. interesting to be reminded that sepulchres are found
Aid. BoifiTjA..] A
town in the south part of Judah, at the present day in the rocky heights around
named in Josh. xii. 10 and 1 Sam. xxx. 27. The Bethel. See Sinai und Golgotha, von 1". A. Strauss,
collocation of the name
in these two lists is deci-
p. 371. Stanley also {Sin. and Pal. p. 147, Ain.
sive against its being thewell-known Bethel. In the
ed.) speaks of "the excavations" which the trav-
latter case the LXX. read Bai6tr6vp, i- e. Beth-zur eller
sees in approaching this place, in which the
[butComp. Alex. Bcu0ijA]. By comparison of the dead of so many past generations have
been buried.
lists of the towns of Judah and Simeon (Josh. xv.
It was from such recesses, no doubt, that king Jo-
30, xix. 4; 1 Chr. iv. 30), the place appears under siah, in his zeal for the worship
of Jehovah, dug
the names of Ciiesil, Bethul, and Bethuel. up the bones of the old idolaters who had lived at
G.
Bethel, which he burned on the altar of the golden
* It is remarkable that a place so prominent as
calf in order by this act of pollution to mark his
Bethel (1) in the O. T. should be unnamed in the abhorrence
of such idolatry, and to render the place
New; and yet it continued to exist in the time of infamous forever. There is nothing very remark-
Christ, for Josephus {B. J. iv. 9, § 9) relates its
able in the situation or scenery of Bethel to impress
capture by Vespasian on his march from Tiberius
the observer; and the hold which it acquired on
to Jerusalem. The Saviour must have passed the religious veneration
of the Hebrews presupposes
within sight of it (perhaps at other times, but some
such antecedent history as that related of the
certainly) on his journey from Judaea to Galilee,
patriarchs in the book of Genesis. H.
when he stopped at Jacob's well near Sychar (John
iv. 3 ft"), and must have been near it when he re-
April was almost large enough to be called a lake. i. e. a swimming-pool), with five "porches croas), ' (
On the hill-top just east of Bethel, where Abraham close upon the sheep-gate or "market" UV1 rfj
and Lot agreed to separate Irom each other, the wpoBarutrj it will be observed that —
the word
eye catches a sight which is quite startling: we see "market" is supplied) in Jerusalem (John v. 2).
BETH-EZEL BETH-HARAN 291
The porches — i. e. cloisters or colonnades a — place named only in Mic. i. 11. From the context
were extensive enough to accommodate a large it was doubtless situated in the plain of Philistia.
number of sick and infirm people, whose custom G.
it was to wait there for the * Gesenius defines the name as " fixed dwelling; "
"troubling of the
water." and the point of the expression in Mic. i. 11 seems
Eusebius —
though unfortunately he gives no to turn on that meaning. " They who abide, strong
clue to the situation of Bethesda —
describes it in though they be, shall not furnish an abiding place."
the Onomasticon as existing in his time as two pools See Pusey's Minor Prophet*, iii. 300. In some
(<=V Tah \iixvous SiSv/jlois), the one supplied by the versions (Sept. Vulg. Luth.) the expression, instead
periodical rains, while the water of the other was of being treated as a proper name, is rendered house
of a reddish color {ir^poLViy^ivov), due, as the tra- by the side, i. e. the one next. H.
dition then ran, to the fact that the flesh of the
sacrificeswas anciently washed there before offering.
BETH-GATJER ("T7| '?, if not in pause,
on which account the pool was also called Trpofiar- Geder, ~H3 [home of the wall] : BedytSup; Vat.
jfcrj. See, however, the comments of Lightfoot on BaidyaiScov Alex.]
; Baidyedwp Bethgader), :
this view, in his Exercit. on S. John, v. 2. Euse- doubtless a place, though it occurs in the geneal-
bius's statement is partly confirmed by the Bour- ogies of Judah as if a person (1 Chr. ii. 51). Pos-
deaux Pilgrim (A. d. 333), who mentions in his sibly ihe same place as Geder (Josh. xii. 13).
Itinerary " twin fish-pools, having five porches, G.
which are called Bethsaida " (quoted in Barclay,
299).
BETH-GA'MUL (b^2
2, house of the
The large reservoir called the Birket Israil, weaned, Gesen. Lex., but may it not be "house of
within the walls of the city, close by the St. Ste- camel"?: oIkos Tai/icek; Alex. Tafxu\a: Beth-
phen's gate, and under the northeast wall of the yamul) a town of Moab, in the mishor or downs
llaram area, is generally considered to be the mod- east of Jordan (A. V. " plain country," Jer. xlviii.
ern representative of Bethesda. This tradition 23, comp. 21) apparently a place of late date, since
;
reaches back certainly to the time of Saewulf, a. d. there is no trace of it in the earlier lists of Num.
1102, who mentions it under the name of Beth- xxxii. 34-38, and Josh. xiii. 16-20. place called A
saida (Early Tram. 41). It is also named in the Um
el-Jemdl is said to exist a few miles south of
Citez de Jherustlem, A. D. 1187 (sect. vii. Rob. ii. Busrah in the
;
Hauran (Burckh. 106 Kiepert's ;
562), and in more modern times by Maundrell and map in Rob. 1857); but this is much too far to
all the later travellers. the N. E. to suit the requirements of the text. In
The little that can be said on the subject goes a country of nomadic tribes this latter name would
rather to confirm than to invalidate this tradition. doubtless be a common one. G.
On the one hand, (1.) the most probable position of BETH-HAC'CEREM « [Heb. -hacce'rem]
the sheep-gate is at the northeast part of the city
(D]l3n 2, house of the vine: [in Neh.,] Bi)d-
[Jerusalem]. On the other hand, the Birket
none of the marks which appear to
Israil exhibits aKxaplp, [Vat. Bw0axa/u; Alex.] B7)0axx°W"*;
[in Jer., Bai8axapfj.d, Sin. Bedda.xa.pixa, Alex.
have distinguished the water of Bethesda in the
records of the Evangelist and of Eusebius. (2.) B-n06axap.] Bethacharam, [Bethacare/n]), a
The construction of the Birkeh is such as to show town which, like a few other places, is distinguished
that it was originally a water-reservoir,'' and not, by the application to it of the word pehc, TJ^Q,
as has been suggested, the moat of a fortress (Rob.
A. V. " part " (Neh. iii. 14). It had then a
i. 293-4, 243); (3.) there is certainly a remark-
iii.
able coincidence between the name as given by Eu- " ruler " called ~)tt?. From the other mention
sebius, Bezatha, and that of the northeast suburb of it (Jer. vi. 1) we was used as a bea-
find that it
of the city at the time of the Gospel history — con-station, and that
was near Tekoa.it By
Bezetha and (4. ) there is the difficulty that if the
; Jerome (Conirn. Jer. vi.) a village named Bethach-
Birket /grail be not Bethesda, which of the ancient armn is said to have been on a mountain between
" pools " does it represent? Tekoa and Jerusalem, a position in which the em-
One other proposed identification must be no- inence known as the Frank mountain (Herodium)
ticed, namely, that of Dr. Robinson (i. 342-3), who stands conspicuous and this has accordingly been
;
suggests the "fountain of the Virgin," in the val- suggested as Beth-haccerem (Pococke, Rob. i. 480).
ley of the Kedron, a short distance above the Pool The name is at any rate a testimony to the early
of Siloam. In favor of this are its situation, sup- fruitfulness of this part of Palestine.
posing the sheep-gate to be at the southeast of the Karem (Kope'/x) is one of the towns added in the
city, as Lightfoot, Robinson, and others suppose, LXX. to the Hebrew text of Josh. xv. 60, as in the
and the strange intermittent "troubling of the wa- mountains of Judah, in the district of Bethlehem.
ter " caused by the periodical ebbing and flowing G.
of the supply. Against it are the confined size of
the pool, and the difficulty of finding room for the
BETH-HA'RAN
C|"jn 'a : j, BaiOapdv,
[Alex. BaiBappa-] Betharan), one of the "fenced
five store. (See Barclay's detailed account, City,
cities " on the east of Jordan, " built " by the
(j-c. 510-524, and 325-6.) G.
Gadites (Num. xxxii. 36). It is named with Beth-
BETH-E'ZEL (b^Kn JTSl, house offrm- nimrah. and therefore is no doubt the same place
ness (?): oIkos ix6^vos avrrjs' domus vicina), a as Beth-aram (accurately Beth-haram), Josh. _
gives another interpretation, locus gyri, reading the 4, 5). This road —
still, as in ancient times, " the
neral races or dances at the mourning for Jacob 252), though a route rather more direct, known as
[Atad] BatdayXad/j., [ddXaacra,] Bedeyatci; the " Jaffa road," is now used by travellers with
:
the boundary-line between Benjamin and Ephraim gular stones so characteristic of the whole of this dis-
(Josh. xvi. 3, 5, and xviii. 13, 14), was counted to trict. There are in many places steps cut, and
Ephraim (Josh. xxi. 22; 1 Chr. vii. 24), and given other marks of the path having been artificially
to the Kohathites (Josh. xxi. 22; 1 Chr. vi. 68 improved. But though rough, the way can hardly
[53]). be called "precipitous;" still less is it a ravine
The road connecting is memorable
the two places (Stanley, p. 208), since it runs for the most part
in sacred history as the scene of two of the most along the back of a ridge or water-shed dividing
complete victories achieved by the Jewish arms: wadies on either hand. After about three miles of
that of Joshua over the five kings of the Amorites this descent, a slight rise leads to the lower village
(Josh, x.; Ecclus. xlvi. 6), and that of Judas Mac- standing on its mamelon —
the last outpost of the
cabseus over the forces of Syria under Seron (1 Benjamite hills, and characterized by the date-palm
Mace. iii. 13-24). Later still the Roman army in the enclosure of the village mosque. A short
under Cestius Gallus was totally cut up at the same and sharp fall below the village, a few undulations,
spot (Joseph. B. J. ii. 19, §§ 8, 9). and the road is amongst the dura of the great
There is no room for doubt that the two Betb- corn-growing plain of Sharon.
horons still survive in the modern villages of Beit- This rough descent from the upper to the lower
'«' \«-C O^Aj) et-Tahta and eUFoka, which Beit' in- is the "going down
to Beth-horon" of the
(
Bible narrative. Standing on the high ground of
were noticed by Dr. Clarke, and have been
first the upper and overlooking the wild scene,
village,
since visited by Dr. Robinson, Mr. Stanley, and we may feel assured that it was over this rough
others. Besides the similarity of the name, and path that the Canaanites fled to their native low-
the fact that the two places are still designated as lands.
"upper" and "lower," all the requirements of the In a remarkable fragment of early history (1
narrative are fulfilled in this identification. The Chr. vii. 24) we are told that both the upper and
road is still the direct one from the site which must lower towns were
built by a woman of Ephraim,
have been Gibeon (el-Jib), and from Michmash Sherah, who in the present state of the passage
(Miikhmds) to the Philistine plain on the one hand, appears as a grand-daughter of the founder of her
and Antipatris (Joseph. B. J. ii. 19, § 9) on the tribe, and also as a direct progenitor of the great
other. On the mountain which lies to the south- leader with whose history the place is so closely
ward of the nether village is still preserved the comiected. G.
name ( l'dlo) and the site of Ajalon, so closely con-
nected with the proudest memories of Beth-horon
IMOTH, or -JES'IMOTH
BETH-JESH
and the long "descent" between the two remains (iTrainn 2 in Numbers, HEtt^n, house of ;
a The statements of Dr. Robinson and Mr. Stanley that of an ascent and BeWitr, though perhaps no ;
on this point are somewhat at variance but although higher than the ridge between it and Gibeon, yet
;
the road from Gibeon to Beit-hr et-Tahta is by no looks higher, because it is so much above everything
means a uniform rise, yet the impression is certainly beyond it. I
BETH-LEBAOTH BETHLEHEM 293
is, on the lower level at the south end of the Jor- amongst them that of the embroiderer and the
dan valley (Num. xxxiii. 49); and named with weaver (Ex. xxxv. 35). 6
Ashdoth-pisgah and Beth-peor. It was one of the After the conquest Bethlehem appears under its
limits of the encampment of Israel before crossing own name Beth-lehem-judah (Judg. xvii. 7; 1 Sam.
the Jordan. Later it was allotted to Reuben (Josh. xvii. 12; Ruth i. 1, 2), possibly, though hardly
xii. 3, xiii. 20), but came at last into the hands of probably, to distinguish it from the small and re-
Moab, and formed one of the cities which were mote place of the same name in Zebulun. As the
" the alory of the country " (Ez. xxv. !)). Sehwarz Hebrew text now stands, however, it is omitted
(p. 228) quotes "a Beth-Jisimuth as still known at altogether from the list of the towns of Judah in
the northeastern most point of the Dead Sea, half Joshua xv. though retained by the LXX. in the
a mile from the Jordan;" but this requires con- eleven names which they insert between verses 59
firmation. G. and 60. Among these it occurs between Theko
(Tekoa), ®eKct> (comp. 1 Chr. iv. 4, 5), and Phagor
BETH-LEB'AOTH (KlMa1? 3, house of (? Peor, Qaycvp)- This omission from the He-
lionesses : BadapdB ; Alex. Bai6a\t3a6 : Beth- brew text is certainly remarkable, but it is quite in
Ubaoth), a town in the lot of Simeon (Josh. xix. keeping with the obscurity in which Bethlehem re-
6), and therefore in the extreme south of Judah mains throughout the whole of the sacred history.
(xv. 32, Lebaoth), probably in the wild country to Not to speak of the later event which has made the
which its name bears witness. In the parallel list name of Bethlehem so familiar to the whole Chris-
in 1 Chr. iv. 31 the name is given Beth-birei. tian and Mussulman world, it was, as the birthplace
G. of David, the scene of a most important occurrence
BETH'-LEHEM (2nb fVZl^house of to ancient Israel. And yet from some cause or
other it never rose to any eminence, nor ever be-
bread: BnBKeefj.: Bethlehem). 1. One of the
came the theatre of any action or business. It is
oldest towns in Palestine, already in existence at difficult to say why Hebron and Jerusalem, with
the time of Jacob's return to the country. Its no special associations in their favor, were fixed on
earliest name was Ephrath or Ephratah (see as capitals, while the place in which the great ideal
Gen. xxxv. 1G, xlviii. 7; Josh. xv. 60, LXX.), and king, the hero and poet of the nation, drew his first
it is not long after the occupation of the country breath and spent his youth remained an " ordinary
till
by the we meet with it under its Judasan village." No doubt this is in part owing
Israelites that
new name Here, as in other cases to what will be noticed presently
of Bethlehem. the isolated —
(comp. Beth-meon, Beth-diblathaim, Beth-peor), the nature of its position but that circumstance did not
;
« At the date of the visit of Benjamin of Tudela, er's beam " (whatever the " beam " may be) which
there were still " twelve Jews, dyers by profession, liv- occur in the accounts of giants or mighty men slain
ing at Beth-lehem " (Benj. of Tudela, Asker, i. 75). by David or his heroes, but not in any unconnected
b May not this elucidate the allusions to the " weav- with him.
294 BETHLEHEM BETHLEHEM
of Moab at Mizpeh (1 Sam. But what- once to all, and a blessing is invoked on the head of
xxii. 3, 4).
ever its origin, here we find the connection in full Ruth the Moabitess, that she may be like the two
vigor. When the famine occurs, the natural re- daughters of the Mesopotamian Nahor, " like Rachel
source is to go to the country of Moab and " con- and like Leah, who did build the house of Israel."
tinue there; " the surprise of the city is occasioned This, in the face of the strong denunciations of
not at Naomi's going, but at her return. Ruth Moab contained in the Law is, to say the least, very
was "not like" the handmaidens of Boaz —
some remarkable."
difference of feature cr complexion there was doubt- The elevation of David to the kingdom does not
less which distinguished the "children of Lot" appear to have affected the fortunes of his native
from the children of Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob; place. The residence of Saul acquired a new title
but yet she gleans after the reapers in the field with- specially from him, by which it was called even
out molestation or remark, and when Boaz in the down to the latest time of Jewish history (2 Sam.
most public manner possible proclaims his intention xxi. 6; Joseph. B. J. v. 2, § 1, ra^adaaouX-f)), but
of taking the stranger to be his wife, no voice of David did nothing to dignify Bethlehem, or con-
remonstrance is raised, but loud congratulations are nect it with himself. The only touch of recollec-
expressed, the parallel in the life of Jacob occurs at tion which he manifests for it, is that recorded in
the well-known story of his sudden longing for the In the New Testament Bethlehem retains its dis-
water of the well by the gate of his childhood (2 tinctive title of Bethlehem- judah b (Matt. ii. 1, 5),
Sam. xxiii. 15). and once, in the announcement of the angels, the
The few remaining casual notices of Bethlehem "city of David " e (Luke ii. 4; and comp. John
in the Old Testament may be quickly enumerated. vii. 42: KWfxr)'- cnstellum). Its connection with the
It was fortified by Rehoboam (2 Chr. xi. 6). By history of Christ is too familiar to all to need any
the time of the Captivity, the Inn of Chimham by notice here: the remark should merely be made
that as in the earlier history less is recorded of the
(7^*W = "close to") Bethlehem, appears to have
place after the youth of David than before, so in
become the recognized point of departure for trav- the later nothing occurs after the birth of our Lord
ellers to Egypt (Jer. xli. 17) —
a caravanserai or
to indicate that any additional importance or in-
khan (fTPS : see Stanley, perhaps terest was fastened on the town.
App. § 90), In fact, the pas-
sages just quoted, and the few which follow, ex-
the identical one which existed there at the time of
haust the references to it in the N. T. (Matt. ii. 6,
our Lord (KaraXv/u-a), like those which still exist
all over the east at the stations of travellers. 8,16; Lukeii. 15).
Lastly, "Children of Bethlehem," to the number
After this nothing is heard of it till near the mid-
of 123, returned with Zerubbabel from Babylon dle of the 2d century,
when Justin Martyr speaks
(Ezr. ii. 21; Neh. vii. 26). of our Lord's birth as having taken place " in a cer-
o Moab appears elsewhere in connection with a place given as B. ttjs 'IouWas ; but in the more ancient
in Judah, Jashubi-lehem (1 Chr. iv. 22). We might Syriac recension lately published by Mr. Curetou it is,
be tempted to believe the name merely another form as in the 0. T., Bethlehem-judah.
of £^/i-lehem, if the context —
the mention of Mare- c Observe that this phrase has lost the meaning
ghah and Chozeba, places on the extreme west of the which it bears in the 0. T., where it specially and
tribe — did not forbid it. invariably signifies the fortress of the Jebusites, the
b In the Greek copies of St. Matthew the name is fastness of Zion (2 Sam. v. 7, 9 1 Chr. xi. 5, 7).
;
BETHLEHEM BETHLEHEM 295
tain cave very close to the village," which cave he irregular triangle 150 yards
(Stewart), at about
goes on to say had been specially pointed out by from the apex of which, and separated from it by a
Isaiah as •'
a sign." The passage from Isaiah to vacant space on the extreme eastern part of the
which lie refers is xxxiii. 13-19, in the LXX. ver- ridge, spreads the noble Basilica of St. Helena,
sion of which occurs the following — "He shall " half church, half fort," now embraced by its
dwell on high His place of defense shall be in a
: three convents, Greek, Latin, and Armenian.
lofty cave of the strong rock " (Justin. JJinl. c. This is not the place for a description of the
Tryph. §§ 78, 70). Such is the earliest supplement " holy places " of Bethlehem. All that can be said
we possess to the meagre indications of the narrative about them has been well said by Lord Nugent
of the Gospels and while it is not possible to say
; (i. 13-21), and Mr. Stanley (438-442). (See also,
with certainty that the tradition is true, there is no though interspersed with much irrelevant matter,
reason for discrediting it. There is nothing in Stewart, 240, 334-5.) Of the architecture of the
itself improbable — as there certainly is in many church very little is known for a resume of that
;
cases where the traditional scenes of events are laid little Fergusson's Handbook of Architecture,
see
in caverns — in the supposition that the place in 524; also Salzmann's Photographs and the Etude
which Joseph and Mary took shelter, and where accompanying them (p. 72). 6 One fact, of great
was the "manger" or "stall" (whatever the interest — probably the most genuine about the
<pdrvn may have been)," was a cave in the lime- place — is associated with a portion of the crypt of
stone rock of which the eminence of Bethlehem is this church, namely, that here, " beside what he
composed. Nor is it necessary to assume that believed to be the cradle of the Christian faith,"
Justin's quotation from Isaiah is the ground of an St. Jerome lived for more than 30 years, leaving a
inference of his own; it may equally be an author- lasting monument of his sojourn in the Vulgate
ity happily adduced by him in support of tfie ex- translation of the Bible. '
isting tradition. In the plain below and east of the convent, about
But the step from the belief that the nativity a mile from the walls, is the traditional scene of the
may have taken place in a cavern, to the belief that angels' appearance to the shepherds, a very small,
the present subterraneous vault or crypt is that poor village called Beit-Sdlrur, to the E. of which
cavern, is a very wide one. Even in the 150 years are the unimportant remains of a Greek church.
that had passed when Justin wrote, so much had These buildings and ruins are surrounded by olive-
happened at Bethlehem that it is difficult to believe trees (Seetzen, ii. 41, 42). Herein Arculfs time,
that the true spot could have been accurately pre- " by the tower of Ader," was a church dedicated
served. In that interval— an interval as long as to the three shepherds, and containing their mon-
that between the landing of William III. and the uments (Arculf, 6). But this plain is too rich ever
battle of Waterloo —
not only had the neighbor- to have been allowed to lie in pasturage, and it is
hood of Jerusalem been overrun and devastated by the more likely to have been then occupied, as it is now
Romans at the destruction of the city, but the em- and as it doubtless was in the days of Ruth, by
peror Hadrian, amongst other desecrations, had cornfields, and the sheep to have been kept on the
actually planted a grove of Adonis at the spot hills.c
(Incus inumbrabat Adonidis, Jerome, Ep. Paul.). The traditional well of David (2 Sam. xxiii 15),
This grove remained at Bethlehem for no less than a group of three cisterns, is more than half a mile
180 years, namely, from a. d. 135 till 315. After away from the present town on the other side of
this the place was purged of its abominations by the wady on the north. A
few yards from the
Constantine, who about A. d. 330 erected the pres- western end of the village are two apertures, which
ent church (Euseb. Vit. Const, iii. 40. See Tobler, have the appearance of wells; but they are merely
102, note). Conceive the alterations in the ground openings to a cistern connected with the aqueduct
implied in this statement —
a heathen sanctuary
! below, and we have Dr. Robinson's assurance that
established and u grove planted on the spot that — there is now no well of living water in or near the
grove and those erections demolished to make room town.
for the Basilica of Constantine The population of Beit-lahm is about 3000 souls,
The modern town of Beil-lahm y &<- v^yO )
entirely Christians. All travellers remark the good
looks of the women {Eothen), the substantial, clean
lies to the E. of the main road from Jerusalem to
appearance of the houses, and the general air of
Hebron, 6 miles from the former. It covers " the
comfort (for an eastern town) which prevails. G.
E. and X. E. parts of the ridge of a " long gray * In regard to the well at Bethlehem (1) it
hill " of Jura limestone, which stands nearly due
should be remarked that David (see 2 Sam. xxiii.
E. and W., and is about a mile in length. The hill
15) longed not for "living water" but for that from
has a deep valley on the N. and another on the S.
The west end shelves down gradually to the valley the " reservoir " or " cistern " (as "1S2 signifies,
but the east end is bolder, and overlooks a plain of see FiirstSept. Kolkkos Vulg. cisterna), at the gate
;
some extent. The slopes of the ridge are in many of Bethlehem. The writer in approaching Beth-
parts coveredby terraced gardens, shaded by rows lehem from the south (April 21st, 1852) found a
and vines, the terraces sweeping little stream running down the steep bank on that
of olives witli figa
round the contour of the hill with great regularity. side, and at the top, on entering the town, drank
On the top of the hill lies the village in a kind of of the refreshing water from a reservoir there, said
a
It is as well to remember that the " stable " and adduces the authority of Eutychius that the present
its accompaniments are the creations of the imagina- Church is the work of Justinian, who destroyed that
j
tion of poets and painters, with no support from the of Constantine as not sufficiently magnificent.
i
Mr. Stanley mentions, and recurs characteristi- field '') has no special reference to " field " more than
ft
cally to the interesting fact, that the present roof is hill, but means rather " passing the night out of
constructed from English oak given to the church by doors " x>apa also means a " district " or neighbor-
;
Edward IV. (& tf P. 141, 439.) Tobler, 104, note, hood, with no special topographical signification.
,
296 BETHLEHEMITE BETH-PALET
to be supplied by an aqueduct from Solomon's less inappearance than in meaning is quite in cha-
Pools. The same springs must have furnished Beth- racter with the plays on words frequent in Hebrew
lehem with water of old (there is no better water literature. [Hazar-susim Madmannah.] G. ;
lehem), a town in the portion of Zebulun named Num. xxxii. 3 it is named simply Nimeah. By
Eusebius and Jerome (Onom. Bethamnaram, and
now here but in Josh. xix. 15. It has been recovered
Beth-nemra) the village is said to have been still
by Dr. Bobinson at Beit Lahm, about six miles west
standing five miles north of Libias (Beth-haran);
of Nazareth, and lying between that town and the
and under Ne'flpa Eusebius mentions that it was a
main road from Akka to Gaza. Bobinscn charac-
large,place, Kafi-n fieylffTT), in Karavaia ( ? B'ata-
terizes it as " a very miserable village, none more
naea), and called Abara.
so in all the country, and without a trace of an-
The name stills survives in the Nahr Nimrin,
tiquity except the name" (iii. 113). G.
the Arab appellation of the lower end of the Wadu
BETHLEHEMITE, THE ("JT2
Shoaib, where the waters of that valley discharge
themselves into the Jordan close to one of the reg-
"'Dn Vil : B770A.ee,uiT77s [Vat. -fiet-], 6 Bat0A.ee-
ular fords a few miles above Jericho. It has been
^Jttjs [Vat. -e^ej-]; Alex. Br^AeejutTTjs [and
seen by Seetzen (lieisen, 1854, ii. 318), and Rob-
-fiet-] Bethlehemites).
'•
A
native or inhabitant of
inson (i. 551), but does not appear to have been
Bethlehem. Jesse (1 Sam. xvi. 1, 18, xvii. 58) and
explored, and all that is known is that the vegeta-
Elhanan (2 Sam. xxi. 19) were Bethlehemites.
tion is very thick, betokening an abundance of wa-
Another Elhanan, son of Dodo of Bethlehem, was
ter. The IVady Shoaib runs back up into the
one of David's guard (2 Sam. xxiii. 24). [El-
Eastern mountains, as far as es-Salt. Its name
hanan.] W. A. W. (the modern form of Hobab ? ) connects it with the
BETHLOTMON (Bat6\ooLiwv, [Vat. Pa 7 e- wanderings of the children of Israel, and a tradi-
0Acoyuau>; Aid. Be0Aaytc6;/: Sejxjltmon]), 1 Esdr. v. tion still clings to the neighborhood, that it was
17. [Bethlehem, 1.] G. down this valley they descended to the Jordan
BETH-MA'ACHAH (rDS.n'a, and with (Seetzen, ii. 377).
It seems to have escaped notice how fully the
the article, EH 2 [house of oppression] requirements of Bethabara are met in the circum-
: Bed/xa-
Xa, Qepftaxd; [Vat. BaiOfiaxa: Alex. Br)6/j.axa stances of Beth-nimrah
'•] its abundance of water —
Bethmaachn), a place named only in 2 Sam. xx. 14, and its situation close to " the region round about
Jordan " (f) nepix&pos rod 'lopSdvou, i- e. the ClC-
15, and there occurring more as a definition of the
position of Abel than for itself. In the absence car of the 0. T., the Oasis of Jericho), immediately
of more information, we can only conclude that it is accessible to "Jerusalem and all Judaea " (John i.
identical with Maachah, or Aram-maachah, 28; Matt. iii. 5; Mark i. 5) by the direct and or-
one of the petty Syrian kingdoms in the north of dinary road from the capital. Add to this, what
Palestine. [Aram.] G. is certainly a strong confirmation of this suggestion,
In the parallel list, Josh. xv. 30, 31, Madmannah Bai04>aA.e0:j Bethphelet), a town among those in
occurs in place of Beth-marcaboth possibly the
;
the extreme south of Judah, named in Josh. xv.
Latter was substituted for the former after the town 27, and Neh. xi. 26, with Moladah and Beer-sheba.
had become the resort of chariots. 'Without sup- In the latter place it is Beth-phelet (following
posing the one word to be a mere corruption of the Vulgate). Its remains have not yet been dis-
BETH-PAZ'ZEZ CJ89 3 n
. „,„_,„ />»*».« '-1 j- 7- i iv. 12 only). There is a Rapha in the line of Ben-
[*««e °/ f/
peraton] Brjptra^s ;
:
b
f
jamin and elsewhere, l.ut no apparent connection
Baiffyatniy^ Seto- exigts etwee n those and this, nor has the name
Alex. i
BeO&oywp'-] fanum Phogor, Phogor, Bcthphogor Laish or Dan (Judg. xviii. 28). It was one of the
in Ononi. Bethfogo), a place, no doubt dedicated little kingdoms of Aram or Syria, like Zobah,
to the god Baal-peor, on the east of Jordan, Maacah, and Ish-tob (comp. the reading of the
opposite (airivavTi) Jericho, and six miles above Alex. LXX. above), in company with which it was
Libias or Beth-haran (Euseb. Oiiomasticon). It
Ammonites to fight against David (2
hired by the
was in the possession of the tribe of Reuben (Josh,
Sam. x. 6). In ver. 8 the name occurs in the
xiii. In the Pentateuch the name occurs in a
20). it is doubt-
shorter form of Rehob, in which form
formula by which one of the last halting-places of again mentioned in Num. xiii. 21.
less Being,
the children of Israel is designated " the ravine —
however, " far from Zidon " (Judg. xviii. 28), this
(H^2n) over against (710) Beth-peor" (Deut. place must not be confounded with two towns of
iii. 29, iv. 46). In this ravine Moses was probably the name of Rehob in the territory of Asher.
buried (xxxiv. G). [Rehob.] The conjecture of Robinson (iii. 371)
Here, as in other cases, the Beth may be a Hebrew is that this ancient place is represented by the
mod-
substitution for Baal. G. ern Hunin, a fortress commanding the plain of the
Huleh, in which the city of Dan ( Tell d-Kady) lay.
BETHPHAGE [3 syl.] {B-n6<payh and Btj0-
Hadadezer the king of Zobah is said to have
<payrj Bethphage ; quasi M2S 2, house of un- been the son of Rehob (2 Sam. viii. 3, 12). G.
ripe figs), the name of a place on the mount of
Olives, on the road between Jericho and Jerusalem.
BETHSA'IDA iB-ndo-atii Sf\ kxS,
From the two being twice mentioned together, it house offish Bethsaida), the name of two places
:
BETH-PHE LET, Neh. xi. 26. [Beth- northeastern extremity — formerly a village (k&5//.t?),
BaiQcran, BaiQ. Alex. B-ndoav- Belksan], 1 Sam. men of Jabesh "all night " to traverse, cannot be
xxxi. 10, 12; 2 Sam. xxi. 12. [Beth-shean.] less than twenty miles. G.
* For information respecting this important
BETH-SHE'AN ()Sip JT2 [house of
fuller
—
site (Beisdn) its various ruins (Hebrew, Grecian,
quiet]), or, in Samuel, Beth-shan, ()W 2 : Roman, its abundant waters
Christian, Saracenic),
BaiBo-du, Bi)Qo-dv, & oIkos ~2dv, [etc.:] Bet/isan), which gush from perennial fountains, its fertility
a city which, with its " daughter " towns, belonged and luxuriant vegetation, its Tell or acropolis (200
to Manasseh (1 Chr. vii. 29), though within the feet high and nearly perpendicular), which afibrds
with this name, he holds that there was only one, but rendered Beth-shan.
this consisted of two parts, one of which was on the '' The exactness of the definition in this description
west and the other on the east bank of the Jordan. is seriously impaired in the A. V. by the substitution
He speaks of the remains of buildings near the mouth of " a fountain " for " the fountain " of the original.
of the river, so situated as to indicate a double town ' So great was this fertility, that it was said by the
of this character. The references to Bethsaida in the Rabbis, that if Paradise was in the land of Israel,
Gospels might be harmonized by this supposition, as Beth-shean was the gate of it for that its fruits were
:
well as by that of two more distinct places. Julias the sweetest in all the land. (See the quotations in
might in that case also distinguish the part enlarged Lightfoot, C/wr. Cent, Ix.)
BETH-SHEMESH BETHUEL 299
" the finest panorama, next to Geiizim, in all cen- 2. Alex. Baidff/j.as-]
[BatdffafjLvs; A city on
tral Palestine " —
the reader may see Robinson's the border of Issachar (Josh. xix. 22).
Later Bibl. Res. iii. 32G ff. (who visited the place 3. [Qeffo~a.ij.vs, Bartcra/xiis' Alex, ©afffiovi,
in his second journey) Thomson's Land and Book,
;
Bcdffa/jvs-] One of the " fenced cities " of Naph-
ii. 173-175; Tristram's -Land of Israel, pp. 500- tali, named (Josh. xix. 38; Judg. i. 33), and
twice
504; Porter's ILindb. for Syr. and Palest, ii. 354 on both occasions with Betii-anath. The Canaan-
ft'. ;Van de Velde's Journey through Syr. and Pal- ite inhabitants were not expelled from either place,
est ii. 300 ft'.; and Sepp's Jerusalem u. das heiHffe but became tributaries to Israel. Jerome's expres-
Land, ii. (12 (though this last writer appears to have sion (Onom. Bethsamis) in reference to this is per-
only seen the region from Zer'in (Jezreel)). But haps worthy of notice, " in qua cultores pristini
from Zer'in, which is on the brow of a steep de- manserunt; " possibly glancing at the worship from
clivity, one can easily look down into the Ghiu- upon which the place derived its name.
Beth-shean, so exactly described in 1 K. iv. 12 as By name
once mentioned (Jer. xliii.
4. this is
"beneath Jezreel." (See also Bibl. lies. iii. 1G6, 1st13) an idolatrous temple or place in Egypt, which
ed.. and Wilson's Lands of the Bible, ii. 87.) the LXX. render by 'H\iovn6\ts iv'Clv, i- e. the
H. famous Heliopolis; Vulg. domus solis. In the
BETH-SHE'MESH {WKW jT2, in pause middle ages Heliopolis was still called by the Arabs
'Ain Shems (Edrisi, &c, in Rob. i. 25). [Aven;
tt?ptt? 2, house of the sun: tt6\is 7)\iov, Bat6- On.] G.
ca.fx.vs, [etc. :] Bethsames), the name of several BETH-SHEMITE, THE (TP3
places. 1. One of the towns which marked the
north boundary of Judah (Josh. xv. 10), but not ^STP^n : o BaidffafjLvff'-Tris [Vat. -tret-]; Alex.
named in the lists of the cities of that tribe. It o Bfddafj.vfftT7ts. Bethsamita, Bethsamitis). Prop-
was in the neighborhood of Kirjath-jearim and erly " the Beth-shimshite," an inhabitant of Beth-
Tinman, and therefore in close proximity to the shemesh (1 Sam. vi. 14, 18). The LXX. in the
low-country of Philistia. The expression "went former passage refer the words to the field and not
down" in Josh. xv. 10; 1 Sam. vi. 21, seems to to Joshua (rhv iv Baidffafxvs). W. A. W.
indicate that the position of the town was lower
than Kirjath-jearim and it is in accordance with
;
BETH-SHITTAH iT2, house (H^n
of the acacia: Br-dffeeS; Alex.- y- Baffeerra;
the situation that there was a valley (D72V) of [Comp.
BaidaffeTTa.'] Bethsetta), one of the spots
cornfields attached to the place (1 Sam. vi. 13). to which the flight of the host of the Midianites
From Ekron to Beth-shemesh a road (T]~i'^T. extended after their discomfiture by Gideon (Judg.
vii. 22). Both the narrative and the name (comp.
686s) existed, along which the Philistines sent back " Abel-shittim," which
was in the Jordan valley
the ark after its calamitous residence in then- coun-
opposite Jericho) require its situation to be some-
try (1 Sam. vi. 0, 12); and it was in the field of
where near the river, where also Zererath (probably
,
"Joshua the Beth-shemite " (", KJ»t#n" iT3) Zeredatha or Zartan) and Abel-meholah doubtless
that the " great Abel " (whatever that may have
lay but no identification has yet been made of any
:
modern name isnot obvious, as no spring or well BETHU'EL (^n2 [man of God] : Bct0-
appears now to exist at the spot; but the Shems ovf)K\ Joseph.Ba9ovr]\os Bathuel), the son of
'
and the position are decisive. Nahor by Milcah nephew of Abraham, and father
;
300 BETHUEL BETH-ZUR
of Rebekah (Gen. xxii. 22, 23; xxiv. 15, 24, 47; uation is concerned, naturally all but impregnable
xxviii. 2). In xxv. 20, and xxviii. 5, he is called (Rob. ii. 312). It is about three miles from Dothan,
and some six or seven from Jenbi (Engannim),
"Bethuel the Syrian " (i. e. Aramite, ^S^SH).
which stand on the very edge of the great plain of
Though often referred to as above in the narrative,
Esdraelon. Though not absolutely commanding
Bethuel only appears in person once (xxiv. 50).
the pass which leads from Jenin to Sebastieh and
Upon this an ingenious conjecture is raised by forms the only practicable ascent to the high coun-
Prof. Blunt ( Coincidences, I. § iv. ) that he was the
near to bear out the some-
try, it is yet sufficiently
subject of some imbecility or other incapacity. The
what vague statement of Jud. iv. 6. Nor is it un-
Jewish tradition, as given in the Targum Ps. Jon-
important to remember that Sanur actually endured
athan on Gen. xxiv. 55 (comp. 33), is that he died
a siege of two months from Djezzar Pasha without
on the morning after the arrival of Abram's ser-
yielding, and that on a subsequent occasion it was
vant, owing to his having eaten a sauce containing
only taken after a three or four months' investment,
poison at the meal the evening before, and that on
by a force very much out of proportion to the size
that account Laban requested that his sister's
of the place (Rob. ii. 313). G.
departure might be delayed for a year or ten
months. Josephus was perhaps aware of this tra- BETH -ZACH ARIAS. [Bath-Zacha-
dition, since he speaks of Bethuel as dead {Ant. i. RIAS.]
16, § 2). G. BETH-ZUB/ ("AS 2, house of rod : By0-
BETHU'EL (bs^in? {man of God] : Bad- (Tovp, [Baidvovp, Bai6<rovpd, etc. : Bessi/r. Bethsur,
oiWja ;
[Vat. BaBovv ;] Alex. BadovK Bathuel),
: 1 and inMace] Bethwra), a town in the mountains
Chr. iv. 30. [Bethul.] of Judah, named between Halhul and Gedor (Josh.
xv. 58). As far as any interpretation can, in their
BETHTJL (V\""!2 &s above; Arab. Bethur,
present imperfect state, be put on the genealogical
lists of 1 Chr. ii. 42-49, Beth-zur would appear from
\-jii :
BovAd; [Alex. BadovK'] Bethul), a town
45 to have been founded by the people of
ver.
of Simeon in the South, named with Eltolad and
Maon, which again had derived its origin from
Hormah (Josh. xix. 4). In the parallel lists in Hebron. However this may be, Beth-zur was
Josh. xv. 30 and 1 Chr. iv. 30 the name appears "built," i. e. probably, fortified by Rehoboam, —
under the forms of Chesil ( V^pS) and Beth- with other towns of Judah, for the defense of his
uel; and probably also under that of Bethel in new kingdom (2 Chr. xi. 7). After the Captivity
the people of Beth-zur assisted Nehemiah in the
Josh. xii. 16; since, for the reasons urged under
rebuilding of the wall of Jerusalem (Neh. iii. 16);
Bethel, and also on account of the position of the
name in this list, the northern Bethel can hardly be the place had a " ruler " ptt?), and the peculiar
intended. [Bethel.] G.
employed to denote a dis-
word Pelec (TJ |?5) is
BETHULIA (BervKoia; [Vat. Jud. iv. 6 trict or circle attached to it, and to some other
BairovKova Alex, commonly BatTvKova, and so of the cities mentioned here.
;
[TofographjgaIi
Vat. according to Holmes; Sin. BairovAova exc. iv. Terms.]
6, -A.iu:] Bethulia), the city which was the scene In the wars of the Maccabees, Beth-zur or Beth-
of the chief events of the book of Judith, in which sura played an important part. It was fortified
book only does the name occur. Its position is there by Judas and his brethren " that the people might
described with very minute detail. It was near to have a defense against Idumsea," and they suc-
Dothaim (iv. 6), on a hill (i>pos) which overlooked ceeded in making it " very strong and not to be
(a-KevavTi) the plain of Esdraelon (vi. 11, 13, 14, taken without great difficulty " (Jos. Ant. xii. § 4);
vii. 7,10, xiii. 10) and commanded the passes from so much so, was able to resist for a length of
that it
that plain to the hill country of Manasseh (iv. 7, time the attacks of Simon Maccabaeus (1 Mace. xi.
vii. 1), in a position so strong that Holofernes aban- 65) and of Lysias (2 Mace. xi. 5), the garrison hav-
doned the idea of taking it by attack, and deter- ing in the former case capitulated. Before Beth -zur
mined to reduce it by possessing himself of the two took place one of the earliest victories of Judas over
springs or wells (in]yal) which were " under the Lysias (1 Mace. iv. 29), and it was in an attempt
city " in the valley at the foot of the eminence on to relieve it when besieged by Antiochus Eupator,
which it was built, and from which the inhabitants that he was defeated in the passes between Beth-zur
derived their chief supply of water (vi. 11, vii. 7, and Bath-zacharias, and his brother Eleazar killed
13, 21). Notwithstanding this detail, however, by one of the elephants of the king's army 1 Mace, (
the identification of the site of Bethulia has hith- vi. 32-47; Jos. Ant. xii. 9, 3). The recovery of
erto defied attempts, and is one of the greatest
all the site of Beth-zur, under the almost identical
puzzles of sacred geography; so much so as to name of Beit-sur, by Wolcott and Robinson (i.'216,
form an important argument against the historical note; iii. 277), explains its impregnability, and also
truth of the book of Judith (Rob. iii. 337-8). the reason for the choice of its position, since it
In the middle ages the name of Bethulia was commands the road from Beer-sheba and Hebron,
given to " the Frank Mountain," between Bethle- which has always been the main approach to Jeru-
hem and Jerusalem (Rob. i. 479), but it is unne- salem from the south.
cessary to say that this is very much too far to the A
short distance from the Tell, on which are
south to suit the narrative. More lately it has been strewn the remains of the town, is a spring, 'Am
assumed to be Safed in North Galilee (Rob. ii. edh-Dhiruteh, which in the days of Jerome, and
425); which again, if in other respects it would later, was regarded as the scene of the baptism of
agree with the story, is too far north. Von Raumer the Eunuch by Philip. The probability of this is
(Pal. p. 135-6) suggests Sanih; which is perhaps elsewhere examined [Gaza] ; in the mean time it
the nearest to probability. The ruins of that town may lie noticed that Beit-stir is not near the road
are on an " isolated rocky hill," with a plain of to Gaza (Acts viii. 26), which runs much more to
considerable extent to the east, and, as far as sit- the northwest. [Bethsura.] G.
BETOLIUS BEZEK 301
xliii. 11, A. Y. " nuts."
* It shows how wonderfully the oldest names of curs in Gen. It is prob-
the Bible have been preserved and transmitted to us ably related to the modern Arabic word
Butm =
that we find Halhul, Beth-zur and Gedor grouped terebinth, Pistacia terebinthus. G.
together in Josh. xv. 58, and the same places repre- BETROTHING.
[Marriage.]
sented on the modern map as Halhul, BeksAr,
and Jedttr in the immediate vicinity of each other. BEU'L AH
(H vTO married : olKovixivt] 2= '.
Reland (Pahestini, p. G5) calls the latter a mistake, BE'ZAI 0^2 [victory, or conqueror] : Baa-
which it 'certainly is. Some of the codices show ffov, Bead, "Children of
Bt\ai, [etc.:] Besai),
attempts at correction. Grimm suggests {Exeyet. Bezai," to the number of 323, returned from cap-
llamlb. :" den Apokr. iv. 1G6) that the Maccabsan tivity with Zerubbabel (Ezr. ii. 17; Neh. vii. 23).
writer confounded Beth-zur in the mountains of The name occurs again among those who sealed
Judah with another place of the same or a similar the covenant (Neh. x. 18). [Bassa.]
name near Jerusalem, probably the present Moham- BEZAI/EEL (bsb^5 [in the shadow, i. e.
medan village Bet Sdhiir, half an hour from the
Jerusa-
protection, of God] BetreAerjA: Beseleel). 1. The
:
probable scene of the baptism. Robinson proposes of Pahath-moab who had taken a foreign wife,
heard of a place (Moyat es-Sid) in the same Wady of Judah " (verse 3), and inhabited by Canaanitea
Hasy, which he would regard as the r\ votbp of and Perizzites (verse 4). This must have been a
which he was in quest. See further under Gaza. distinct place from —
H. 2. [Vat. A/S^ezc for <=V Befe/c.] Where Saul
BETOLIUS (BeroAico; [Alex. Bt)toKm\ numbered the forces of Israel and Judah before
Aid. Br)TcoXlcu] ), 1 Esdr. v. 21. [Bethel.] going to the relief of Jabesh-Gilead (1 Sam. xi. 8).
From the terms of the narrative this cannot have
BETOMES'THAM (Beroyueo-eat^ [Vat.
been more than a day's march from Jabesh and
BaiTO/j.aia-eai/j., Sin. om.]) and BETOMAS'- ;
last passages the exact specification, ""Itt^SS, of contrasted with the apocryphal books circulated by
heretics, there was a natural tendency to the appro-
the other two is omitted, but traces of its former
presence in the text in Josh. xxi. 36 are furnished
priation of the word as limited by the article to
us by the reading of the LXX. and Vulg. t))v — the whole collection of the canonical Scriptures.
In Chrysostom (Horn. x. in Gen., Horn. ix. in CoL)
Boabp iv rfj ipi^/xoi, r))v M i <r w ([Vat. Me«ra>,]
it is thus applied in a way which shows this use to
Alex. Mio-wp) /col to Bosor in soli-
irepicnr6pia-
have already become familiar to those to whom he
tudine, Misor et Jaser.
Bezer may be the Bosor of the books of Macca-
wrote. The liturgical use of the Scriptures, as the
worship of the Church became organized, would
bees. [Bosor.] G.
naturally favor this application. The MSS. from
BE'ZER (""1^5 [ore, metal]: Boo-dV; [Vat. which they were read would be emphatically the
corrupt;] Alex. Batrap'- Bosor), son of Zophah, hooks of each church or monastery. And when
one of the heads of the house of Asher (1 Chi vii. this use of the word was established in the East, it
-
,
responding precisely with the reading of the Sina- otheca, bibliopola, taken the place of libri, or libdli,
itic MS. in 1 Mace. vii. 19]. The name may thus in the common speech of men.
It is, however, worthy of note, as bearing on the
refer either to the main body of the Mount of
history of the word in our own language, and on
Olives, or to that branch of it to the north of Je-
that of its reception in the Western Church, that
rusalem, which at a later period was called Bezetha.
" Bible " is not found in Anglo-Saxon literature,
G.
though Bibliothece is given (Lye, Diet. Anglo-Sax.
BI'ATAS (*o\i'as; Alex. *,o0ay; [Aid. Bi- as used in the same sense as the corresponding
araj: Philias), 1 Esdr. ix. 48. [Pelaiah.]
word in mediaeval Latin for the Scriptures as the
BIBLE (Bi&Kla, LXX.: BMa,
Vulg.)i —
I. great treasure-house of books (Du Cange and Ad-
The Kar i^ox^v, t° the elung. in roc). If we derive from our mother-
application of this word,
collected books of the Old and New Testament is tongue the singularly happy equivalent of the Greek
not to be traced further back than the 5th century. evayyeXtov, w e have received the word which stands :
lirst appears in literature, the word is already nat- the place of, ret auyypd/j.fia,Ta toiv irpo<pr)Toiv, and
uralized. In R. Brunne 290), Piers Plough-
(p. this juxtaposition corresponds to the manner in
man (1016, 4271), and Chaucer (Prol. p. 437), it which Ignatius had previously spoken of at irpo-
appears in its distinctive sense, though the latter, <pr}Teiai, vSfxos Mwcrtcos, to euayyeAiov (Fj). ad
in at least one passage (House of Fume, book iii.) Smyrn. c. 7). It is notmeant, of course, that such
uses it in a way which indicates that it was not phrases or such practices prove the existence of a
alwavs limited to that meaning. From that time, recognized collection, but they show with what feel-
however, the higher use prevailed to the exclusion ings individual writings were regarded. They pre-
of any lower; and the choice of it, rather than of pare the way for«the acceptance of the whole body
any of its synonyms by the great translators of of N. T. writings, as soon as the Canon is com-
the Scriptures, Wycliffe, Luther, Coverdale, fixed it pleted, as on a level with those of the Old. A
be}'ond all possibility of a change. The transfor- little further on and the recognition is complete.
mation of the word from a plural into a singular Thcophilus of Antioch (ad Autvlyc. lib. iii.), Ire-
noun in all the modern languages of Europe, though noeus (adv. Ilcer. ii. 27, iii. 1), Clement of Alex-
originating probably in the solecisms of the Latin andria (Strom, lib. iii. c. 10, v. c. 5), Tertullian (adv.
of the 13th century (Du Cange, in roc. Biblia), has Prax. speak of the New Testament
cc. 15, 20), all
made it fitter than it would otherwise have been, writings (what writings they included under this
for its high office as the title of that which, by virtue title is of course a distinct question) as making up
of its unity and plan, is emphatically the Book. with the Old, pia. yvUxris (Clem. Al. /. c), "totum
II. The history of the growth of the collections instrumentum utriusque testamenti " (Tert. /. c),
known as the Old and New Testament respectively, " uuiversEe scriptural" As this was in part a con-
will befound fully under Canon It falls within sequence of the liturgical usage referred to, so it re-
the scope of the present article to indicate in what acted on it, and influenced the transcribers and
way and by what steps the two came to be looked translators of the books which were needed for the
on as of coordinate authority, and therefore as parts instruction of the Church. The Syrian Peshito in
of one whole —
how, i. e. the idea of a completed the 3d, or at the close of the 2d century, includes
Bible, even before the word came into use, presented (with the omission of some of the avriKeySfjava)
itself to the minds of men. As regards a large the New Testament as well as the Old. The Al-
portion of the writings of the New Testament, it exandrian Codex, presenting in the fullest sense of
is not too much to say that they claim an author- the word a complete Bible, may be taken as the
ity not lower,nay even higher than the Old. That representative of the full maturity of the feeling
which had not been revealed to the " prophets " of which we have seen in its earlier developments.
the Old dispensation is revealed to the prophets of III. The existence of a collection of sacred books
the New (Eph. iii. 5). The Apostles write as recognized as authoritative leads naturally to a
having the Spirit of Christ (1 Cor. vii. 40), as more or less systematic arrangement. The arrange-
teaching and being taught " by the revelation of ment must rest upon some principle of classifica-
Jesus Christ" (Gal. i. 12). Where they make no tion. The names given to the several books will
such direct claim their language is still that of men indicate in some instances the view taken of their
who teach as "having authority," and so far the contents, in others the kind of notation applied
old prophetic spirit is revived in them, and their both to the greater and smaller divisions of the
teaching differs, as did that of their Master, from sacred volumes.
the traditions of the Scribes. As the revelation of The existence of a classification analogous to that
God through the Son was recognized as fuller and adopted by the iater Jews and still retained in the
more perfect than that which had been made iroKv- printed Hebrew Bibles, is indicated even before the
fjiipus kcu irokvTp6irais to the fathers (Heb. i. 1), completion of the O. T. Canon (Zech. vii. 12).
the records of what He had done and said, when When the Canon was looked on as settled, in the
once recognized as authentic, could not be re- period covered by the books of the Apocrypha, it
garded as less sacred than the Scriptures of the took a more definite form. The Prologue to Eccle-
Jews. Indications of this are found even within siasticus mentions " the Law and the Prophets and
the N. T. itself. Assuming the genuineness of the the other Books." In the N. T. there is the same
"
2d Epistle of Peter, it shows that within the life- kind of recognition. " The Law and the Prophets
time of the Apostles, the Epistles of St. Paul had is the shorter (Matt. xi. 13, xxii. 40 Acts xiii. 15, ;
come to be classed among the ypcupal of the &c.)i "the Law, the Prophets, and the Psalms"
Church (2 Pet. iii. 16). The language of the same (Luke xxiv. 44), the fuller statement of the division
Epistle in relation to the recorded teaching of popularly recognized. The arrangement of the
prophets and apostles (iii. 2, cf. Eph. ii. 20, iii. 5, books of the Hebrew text under these three heads,
iv. 11), shows that the nacra Trpocprjreia ypacprjs can requires, however, a further notice.
sians was to be read in the church of Laodicea (Col. tinued to occupy the position which it must have
iv. 16), though it does not prove that it was regarded held from the first as the most ancient and author-
as of equal authority with the ypafy)} de6iri>ev(TTOs, itative portion. Whatever questions may be raised
indicates a practice which would naturally lead to as to the antiquity of the whole Pentateuch in its
its being so regarded. The writing of a man who present form, the existence of a book bearing this
spoke as inspired, could not fail to be regarded as title is traceable to a very early period in the history
participating in the inspiration. It is part of the of the Israelites (Josh. i. 8, viii. 34, xxiv. 26). The
development of the same feeling that the earliest name which must at first have attached to those
records of the worship of the Christian Church indi- portions of the whole book was applied to the
cate the liturgical use of some at least of the writings earlier and contemporaneous history connected with
of the New, as well as of the Old Testament. Jus- the giving of the Law, and ascribed to the same
tin (Apol. i. 66) places ret airofivrHxovev/xaTa twv writer. The marked distinctness Of the five por-
304 BIBLE BIBLE
tions which make up the Torah shows that the}' De Wette, Bertholdt) seeing in it an indication of
must have been designed as separate books, and later date, and therefore of doubtful authenticity,
when the Canon was completed, and the books in the orthodox school on the other [hand], as repre-
their present form made the object of study, names sented by Hengstenberg (Dissert, on Ban., ch. ii.
for each book were wanted and were found. In § iv. and v. ), maintaining that the difference rested
the Hebrew classification the titles were taken from only on the ground that, though the utterer of pre-
the initial words, or prominent words in the initial dictions, he had not exercised, as the others had
verse; in that of the LXX. they were intended to done, a prophet's office among the people. What-
be significant of the subject of each book, and so we ever may have been its origin, the position of this
have — book in the Hagiographa led the later Jews to think
and speak slightingly of it, and Christians who rea-
1. iTtPH-Q Feveats. soned with them out of its predictions were met by
2. rnntp (np*)). "e^s os remarks disparaging to its authority (Hengstenberg;
.
I. c). The arrangement of the Propheta? Minores
3. ^|(*5 ••.. AsvitikSv. does not call for special notice, except so far as they
were counted, in order to bring the whole list of
4. "iSip? . . . 'Apie^oi.
canonical books within a memorial number an-
5. D !? :
" ' AevrepovS/JUOV- swering to that of the letters in the Hebrew alpha-
bet, as a single volume, and described as rb Sco8e-
The Greek titles were adopted without change, ex-
Kairp6<p7jTov.
cept as to the 4th, in the Latin versions, and from known
3. Last in order came the group as Cetii*-
them have descended to the Bibles of modern Chris-
tendom. bim, E'O^HS (from 2H3 to write), ypacpf7a,
2. The next group presents a more singular com- ayi6ypa<pa, including the remaining books of the
bination. The arrangement stands as follows: Hebrew Canon, arranged in the following order,
(" Joshua. and with subordinate divisions:
I Judges. (a.)Psalms, Proverbs, Job.
ERIE'S"! 1 & 2 Samuel,
] (b.) The Songof Songs, Ruth, Lamentations,
(priores)
1 & 2 Kings.
Ecclesiastes, Esther.
Nebiim.
(c. ) Daniel, Ezra, Nehemiah, 1 and 2 Chronicles.
f n^Vm
U r 'f '
f
Isaiah
J Jeremiah.
-
(posteriores) Tbe twelTe ters of the three books; (b) as nhvOE tTEn,
cattn
-If
f
i minor
'
the five rolls, as being written for use in the syn-
(minores) Prophets.
[
agogues on special festivals on five separate rolls.
— the Hebrew titles of these books corresponding Of the Hebrew titles of these books, those which
to those of the English Bibles. D^yliri, the
are descriptive of their contents are
The grounds on which books simply historical
were classed under the same name as those which Psalms. \?t?E, Proverbs. HpV', Lamentations
contained the teaching of prophets, in the stricter (from the opening word of wailing in i. 1). The
sense of the word, are not at first sight obvious, but
the O. T. presents some facts which may suggest an
Song of Songs (E^t^n "V^). Ecclesiastes
explanation. The " sons of the prophets " (1 Sam. (nbnp, the Preacher). 1 and 2 Chronicles
x. 5; 2 K. v. 22, vi. 1) living together as a society,
almost as a caste (Am. vii. 14), trained to a religious (C > G s n "HIH, words of days = records).
life, cultivating sacred minstrelsy, must have oc- The Septuagint translation presents the following
cupied a position as instructors of the people, even titles, — VaKftoi, Uapotfxiat, Opf/wi, ^Afl-yua afffid-
in the absence of the special calling which sent twv, "EKKKt]<ria<TT7)s, TlapaAeiw6ixfpa (' e. things
them as God's messengers to the people. body A omitted, as being supplementary to the Books of
of men so placed become Kings). The Latin version imports some of the
naturally, unless intellec-
tual activity absorbed in asceticism, historians titles, and translates others, 1'salmi, Proverbia,
is
and annalists. The references in the historical Threni, Canticum Canticorum, Ecclesiastes, Parali-
books of the O. T. show that they actually were so. pomenon and these in their translated form have ;
Nathan the prophet, Gad, the seer of David (1 determined the received titles of the books in our
Chr. xxix. 29), Ahijah and Iddo (2 Chr. ix. 29), English Bibles; Ecclesiastes, in which the Greek
Isaiah (2 Chr. xxvi. 22, xxxii. 32), are cited as title is retained, and Chronicles, in which the
chroniclers. The greater antiquity of the earlier Hebrew and not the Greek title is translated, being
historical books, and perhaps the traditional belief exceptions.
that they had originated in this way, were likely to The LXX. presents, however, some striking
cooperate in raising them to a high place of honor variations in point of arrangement as well as in
in the arrangement of the Jewish Canon, and so names of books. Both in this and
relation to the
they were looked on as having the prophetic charac- inthe insertion of the avTi\ey6/jLeva, which we
ter which was denied to the historical books of the now know as the Apocrypha, among the other
Hagiographa. The greater extent of the prophecies books, we trace the absence of that strong reverence
of Isaiah, Jeremiah, Ezekiel, no less than the for the Canon and its traditional order which dis-
prominent position which they occupied in the his- tinguished the Jews of Palestine. The Law, it is
tory of Israel, led naturally to their being recog- true, stands first, but the distinction between the
nized as the Prophets Majores. The exclusion of greater and lesser prophets, between the Prophets
Daniel from this subdivision is a more remarkable and the Hagiographa is no longer recognized.
fact,and one which has been differently interpreted Daniel, with the Apocryphal additions, follows upon
the Rationalistic school of later criticism (Eichhorn, Ezekiel; the Apocryphal 1st or 3d Book of Esdras
BIBLE BIBLE 305
comes 2d following on the Canonical Ezra." other MSS. the Pauline Epistles precede the Acts.
as a
Tobit and Judith are placed after Nehemiah, Wis- A.]— The Western Church on the other hand,
dom (2o<pta %3.A6fx<vi/Tos) and Ecclesiasticus (Soviet as represented by Jerome, Augustine, and their
Xeifidx) after Canticles, Baruch before and the successors, gave priority of position to the 1'auliue
Epistle of Jeremiah after Lamentations, the twelve Epistles, and as the order in which these were given
Lesser Prophets before the four Greater, and the presents (1) those addressed to Churches arranged
two [three or four] Books of Maccabees come at according to their relative importance, (2) those
the close of all. The Latin version follows nearly addressed to individuals, the foremost place was
the same order, inverting the relative position of naturally occupied by the Epistle to the Romans.
the greater and lesser 'prophets. The separation The tendency of the Western Church to recognize
of the doubtful books under the title of Apocrypha Pome as its centre of authority may perhaps in
in the Protestant versions of the Scriptures, left the part account for this departure from the custom of
others in the order in which we now have them. the East. The order of the Pauline Epistles them-
The history of the arrangement of the books of selves, however, is generally the same, and the only
the New Testament presents some variations, not conspicuously different arrangement was that of
without interest, as indicating differences of feeling Mansion, who aimed at a chronological order. In
or modes of thought. The four Gospels and the the three MSS. above referred to [and in the Codex
Acts of the Apostles uniformly stand first. They Sinmlicus] the Epistle to the Hebrews comes after
are so far to the New what the Pentateuch was to •2 Thessalonians. [In the manuscript from which
the Old Testament. They do not present however the Vatican (B) was copied, it stood between
in themselves, as the books of Moses did, any order Galatians and Ephesians. This is shown by the
of succession. The actual order does not depend numbering of the sections in the Vat. MS. A.] —
upon the rank or function of the writers to whom In those followed by Jerome, it stands, as in the
they are assigned. The two not written by Apostles English Bible and the Textus Keceptus, after Phi-
are preceded and followed by those which are, and lemon. We are left to conjecture the grounds of
it seems as if the true explanation were to be found this difference. Possibly the absence of St. Paul's
in a traditional belief as to the dates of the several name, possibly the doubts which existed as to his
Gospels, according to which St. Matthew's, whether being the sole author of it, possibly its approxima-
in its Greek or Hebrew form, was the earliest, and tion to the character of the Catholic Epistles may
St. John's the latest. The arrangement once have determined the arrangement. The Apocalypse,
adopted would naturally confirm the belief, and so as might be expected from the peculiar character
we find it assumed by [the Muratorian Canon,] of its contents, occupied a position by itself. Its
Irenams, Origen, Augustine. [On the other hand, comparatively late recognition may have determined
the Codex Bezie (D) and the best MSS. of the Old the position which it has uniformly held as the last
Latin version have the following order Matt., John,
: of the Sacred Books. 6
Luke, Mark. A.] — The position of the Acts as IV. Division into Chapters and Verses. As soon
an intermediate book, the sequel any break is made in the continuous writing
to the Gospels, the as
prelude to the Epistles, was obviously a natural one. which has characterized in nearly all countries the
After this we meet with some striking differences. early stages of the art, we get the germs of a sys-
The order in the Alexandrian, Vatican, and Ephraem tem of division. But these divisions may be used
MSS. (A B C) gives precedence to the Catholic for two distinct purposes. So far as they are used
Epistles, and as this is also recognized by the to exhibit the logical relations of words, clauses and
Council of Laodicea ( Can. 60), Cyril of Jerusalem sentences to each other, they tend to a recognized
(Catecli. iv. p. 35), and Athanasius (Epi&L Fest. punctuation. So far as they are used for greater
ed. Bened. i. p. 961), it would appear to have been convenience of reference, or as a help to the memory,
characteristic of the Eastern Churches. Lachmann, they answer to the chapters and verses of our
who bases his recension of the text chiefly on this modern Bibles. The question now to be answered
family of MSS., has reproduced the arrangement is that which asks what systems of notation of the
in his editions. [So has Tischendorf; and this is latter kind have been employed at different times
the arrangement found in a great majority of the by transcribers of the Old and New Testament, and
manuscripts. In the Codex Slnaitlcus and in four to whom we owe the system now in use.
a * The Apocryphal 1st Book of Esdras, certainly in the Codex Sinaiticus 1st and 4th Maccabees come after
the principal MSS. and editions of the LXX., and prob- Judith then follow the Prophets, the greater preceding
;
ably in all. precede* the canonical Ezra. The Vatican, the lesser, contrary to the order in the Vat. and Alex.
Alexandrine, and Sinaitic (Frid.-Aug.) MSS. of the MSS. ;and last of all come the poetical books. Psalms.
Septuagint, with the Aldine edition, unite the Books Proverbs, Ecclesiastes, Song of Songs, Wisdom of Sol-
of Ezra and Xehemiah in one as 2d Esdras. The state- omon, Ecclesiasticus, Job. In respect to the position
ments in the text in regard to the order of the books of the Book of Job, the Vatican and the Alexandrine
in the Septuagint require great modification for the
; manuscripts differ both from the Sinaitic and from each
M.SS. and editions differ widely in this respect; and other, the former placing it after Canticles, the latter
the Roman edition of the LXX. (1587), deviates mate- after Psalms. See Tischendorfs Prolegom. to his 3d
rially in the arrangement of the books from the Vatican edition of the LXX. (1860), pp. lxxiv., xciv., xcvi.
manuscript, which it has been popularly supposed to The best MSS. of the A'ulgate, it may be further
represent. remarked, differ widely in the arrangement of the
In the Vat. MS. the whole series of the poetical books from the common editions. See art. Vulgate,
books intervenes between Xehemiah and Esther, which § 24. note on the Alcuin MS. A.
is followed by Judith. Tobit, and the Lesser and 6 * On the history of the arrangement of the books
of the X. T., see Tischendorf, A T. ed. 7ma, Prolegom
r
Greater Prophets, including Daniel. In the Alex. MS. .
the twelve Minor Prophets immediately follow Chroni- pp. lxxi. -lxxiv. ;
Scrivener, Introd. to the Crit. of the
cles ;then come the Greater Prophets, ending with N. T. pp. 61. 62 : Laure it's Neutestamentliche Sttt<li>it,
Daniel then Esther, Tobit. Judith, 1 Esdras, Ezra and
:
pp. 41^19 (Gotha. 1866) and especially Volkmar's Ap-
;
Nehemiah as 2d Esdras, and the four Books of Mac- pendix to Credner's Gtsch. des Seutest. Kanon, pp.
cabees. These are followed by the poetical books. In 393-411. A.
20
303 BIBLE BIBLE
(1.) The Hebrew of the Old Testament. " Mass," on the assumption that it also was derived
It is hardly possible to conceive of the liturgical from the " Ite, missa est," by which the congrega-
use of the books of the Old Testament, without tion was informed of the conclusion of the earlier
some kinds of recognized division. In proportion portion of the service of the Church. The peculiar
as the books were studied and commented on in use of Missa shortly after its appearance in the
the schools of the Rabbis, the division would be- Latin of ecclesiastical writers in a sense equivalent
come more technical and complete, and hence the to that of Haphtaroth (" sex Missas de Propheta
existing notation, which is recognized in the Tal- Esaia facite," Csesarius Arelat. and Aurelian in Bing-
mud (the Gemara ascribing it to Moses, —
Hupfeld, ham, Ant. xiii. 1) presents at least a singular coinci-
Stud, und Krit. 1830, p. 827), may probably have dence. The Haphtaroth themselves were intended
originated in the earlier stages of the growth of the to correspond with the larger Parshioth of the Law,
synagogue ritual. The New Testament quotations so that there might be a distinct lesson for each
from the Old are for the most part cited without Sabbath in the intercalary year as before: but the
any more specific reference than to the book from traditions of the German and the Spanish Jews,
which they come. The references however in Mirk both of them of great antiquity, present a consid-
xii. 26 and Luke xx. 37 (eVi ttjs fidrov), Horn. xi. erable diversity in the length of the divisions, and
2 'HA(o) and Acts viii. 32 (77 neptoxh ttjs show that they had never been determined by the
(ei/
ypacprjs), indicate a division which had become same authority as that which had settled the Par-
familiar, and show that some at least of the sections shioth of the Law (Van der Hooght, Pro/at. in
were known popularly by titles taken from their Bib. § 35). Of the traditional divisions of the
subjects. In like manner the existence of a cycle Hebrew Bible, however, that which has exercised
of lessons is indicated by Luke iv. 17; Acts xiii. most influence in the received arrangement of the
15, xv. 21 ; 2 Cor. iii. 14 and this, whether iden- text, was the subdivision of the larger sections into
;
space within the line. The initial letters 2 and adopted D by the Dominican Pagninus in his Latin
version, 1528, and carried throughout the whole of
served as a notation, in the margin or in the text
the Old and New Testament, coinciding substan-
itself, for the two kinds of sections. The threefold
tially, as regards the former, with the Masoretic, and
initial 222 or DOD, was used when the com- therefore with the modern division, but differing
mencement of one of the Parshioth coincided with materially as to the New Testament from that
that of a Sabbath lesson (comp. Keil, Einleitung in which was adopted by Robert Stephens (cf. infra)
das A. T. §§ 170, 171). and through his widely circulated editions passed
A different terminology was employed for the into general reception. The chief facts that remain
Prophetae Priores and Posteriores, and the divis- to be stated as to the verse divisions of the Old
ion was less uniform. The tradition of the Jews Testament are, (1) that it was adopted by Stephens
that the Prophets were first read in the service of in his edition of the Vulgate, 1555, and by Frellon
the synagogue, and consequently divided into sec- in that of 1556; (2) that it appeared, for the first
tions, because the reading of the Law had been for- time in an English translation, in the Geneva Bible
bidden by Antiochus Epiphanes, rests upon a very of 1560, and was thence transferred to the Bishops'
slight foundation, but its existence is at any rate a Bible of 1568, and the Authorized Version of 1611.
proof that the Law was believed to have been sys- In Coverdale's Bible we meet with the older nota-
tematically divided before the same process was tion, which was in familiar use for other books, and
applied to the other books. The name of the sec- retained in some instances (e. [/ in references to
mode of writing (i. c. the division of the text into In applying this system to the transcription of the
short lines, generally with very little regard to theGospels, each of them was divided into shorter sec-
sense) adopted in the 4th or 5th centuries (see Pro- tions of variable length, and to each of these were
legom. to Breitinger's Septuagint, i. § 6), though attached two numerals, one indicating the Canon
it may have facilitated reference, or been useful as under which it would be found, and the other its
a guide to the reader in the half-chant commonly place in that Canon. Luke [iii. 21, 22], for exam-
used in liturgical services, was too arbitrary (ex- ple, would represent [constituted] the 13th section
cept where it corresponded to the parallel clauses belonging to the first Canon [corresponding to the
of the Hebrew poetical books) and inconvenient to 14th section in Matthew, the 5th in Mark, and the
be generally adopted. The Alexandrian MS. pre- 15th in John, —
the first Canon comprising the
sents a partial notation of xvpaKcua, but as regards sections common to the four Gospels]. This divis-
the Old Testament these are found only in portions ion, however, extended only to the books that had
of Deuteronomy and Joshua. Traces exist (Cote- come under the study of the Harmonists. The
ler. Monum. Ecchs. Grasc., Breitinger, Proleg. ut Epistles of St. Paul were first divided in a similar
sup.) of a like division in Numbers, Exodus, and manner by the unknown Bishop to whom Euthalius
Leviticus, and Latin MSS. present frequently a sys- assigns the credit of it (circ. 396), and he himself,
tem of division into " tituli " or "capitula," but at the instigation of Athanasius [the younger], ap-
without any recognized standards. In the 13th plied the method of division to the Act,s and the
century, however, the development of theology as a Catholic Epistles. Andrew, bishop of Coesarea in
science, and the more frequent use of the Scriptures Cappadocia, completed the work by dividing the
as a text-book for lectures, led to the general adop- Apocalypse (circ. 500). a
tion of a more systematic division, traditionally as- Of the four great uncial MSS., A [and so the
cribed [by some] to Stephen Langton, Archbishop Sinaitic MS., but not, according to Tischendorf, a
of Canterbury (Triveti Annnl. p. 182, ed. Oxon.), prima manu] presents the Ammonian or Eusebian
[by others to] Hugh de St. Cher [Hugo de S. numerals and canons, C and D the numerals with-
Caro] (Gilbert Genebrard, Chronol. 1. iv. 644), and out the canons. B has neither numerals nor ca-
passing through his commentary (Post ilia in Uni- nons, but a notation of its own, the chief peculi-
versa Biblia, and Concordance, circ. 1240) into arity of which is, that the Epistles of St. Paul are
general use. No other subdivision of the chapters treated as a single book, and brought under a con-
was united with beyond that indicated by the tinuous capitulation.
this After passing into disuse
marginal letters ABCD as described above. and so into comparative oblivion, the Eusebian and
As regards the Old Testament then, the present Euthalian divisions have recently (since 1 827 again )
arrangement grows out of the union of Cardinal become familiar to the English student through
Hugo's capitular division and the Masoretic verses. Bishop Lloyd's edition of the Greek Testament.
The Apocryphal books, to which of course no Ma- [The Eusebian sections and canons also appear in
soretic division was applicable, did not receive a the recent editions of Tischendorf, Wordsworth,
versicular division till the Latin edition of Pagninus and Tregelles.]
in 1528, nor the division now in use till Stephens's With the New Testament, however, as with the
edition of the Vulgate in 1555. Old, the division into chapters adopted by Hugh
(2.) The history of the New Testament presents de St. Cher superseded those that had been in use
some additional facts of interest. Here, as in the previously, appeared in the early editions of the
case of the Old, the system of notation grew out of Vulgate, was transferred to the English Bible by
the necessities of study. The comparison of the Coverdale, and so became universal. The notation
Gospel narrative gave rise to attempts to exhibit of the verses in each chapter naturally followed on
the harmony between them. Of these, the first of the use of the Masoretic verses for the Old Testa-
a * Euthalius appears to have derived these divis- T. pp. 27, 32. On the Eusebian sections and canons
ions, at least in the Acts,from a MS. written by Pam- see Scrivener, Introd. to the Crit. of the N. T. pp. 50-
philus the martyr (d. a. d. 309). See Montfaucon. 53. A.
Bibl. Coislin. p. 78 ff. Tregelles,
; Text. Crit. of tin N.
308 BIBLE BILDAD
rnent. The superiority of such a division over the * BIBLE, ENGLISH.
See Version, au-
marginal notation ABCD
in the Bible of Car- thorized.
dinal Hugh de St. Cher led men to adopt an anal-
ogous system for the New. In the Latin version
: BoBICHRI CHp2 -
X oP i [Vat. Alex. pet ] :
tion of editors or printers, and the activity of the [Vat.' -ko]; Joseph. BaSaKpos'- Badacer), Jehu's
two Stephenses caused that which they adopted in
" captain " (W /W Joseph. 6 rrjs rpW-ns /xolpas :
their numerous editions of the Greek Testament
and Vulgate to be generally received. In the riye/jiu>i>, Ant. ix. 6, § 3), originally his fellow-offi-
cer (2 K. ix. 25); who completed the sentence on
Preface to the loncordance, published by Henry
(
ognized. The convenience of such a system for had been partially superseded by the degradation
reference is obvious ; but it may be questioned of Vashti, and sought revenge by the murder of
whether has not been purchased by a great sac-
it
Ahasuerus. This suggestion falls in with that of
rifice of the perception by ordinary readers of the the Chaldee Vs., and of the LXX. which in Esth.
true order and connection of the books of the Bi- ii. 21 interpolates the words iXvTri)d7\o-av oi Svo
ble." In some cases the division of chapters sep- on TrpOTix^rj Map-
tuvovxot tov fia.o-i\eais • • •
arates portions which are very closely united (see Soxcuos- The name is omitted by the LXX. on
e. g. Matt. Mx. and x. 1, xix. 30, and xx. 1;
38, both occasions. Bigthan is probably derived from
Mark ii. 23-28, and iii. 1-5, viii. 38, and ix. 1 the Persian and Sanskrit Bagaddna, " a gift of
Luke xx. 45-47, and xxi. 1-4; Acts vii. 60, and fortune" (Gesen. s. v.). F. W. P.
viii. 1 ; 1 Cor. x. 33. xi. 1 ; 2 Cor. iv. 18, v. 1, vi.
18, and vii. 1), and throughout gives the impression BIG'VAI [2 syl.] OJja Bayove, Bayovat,:
acterized the book as it came from the hand of the number, returned from the Captivity with Zerub-
writer. The separation of verses in its turn has con- babel (Ezr. ii. 14; Neh. vii. 19), and 72 of them
duced largely to {he habit of building doctrinal sys- at a later date with Ezra (Ezr. viii. 14). [Bagoi;
tems upon isolated texts. The advantages of the re- Baoo.]
ceived method are united with those of an arrange- 2. (Beguai, Begoai.) Apparently one of the
ment representing the original more faithfully in the chiefs of Zerubbabel's expedition (Ezr. ii. 2 Neh. ;
structure of the Paragraph Bibles, lately published vii. 7), and who afterwards signed the covenant
by different editors, and in the Greek Testaments (Neh. x. 16).
of Lloyd, Lachmann, and Tischendorf. The stu- BIK'ATH-A'VEN, Am. i. 5, marg. [Ave*
dent ought, however, to remember in using these 1; Ccelesyria.]
that the paragraphs belong to the editor, not to the 1
writer, and are therefore liable to the same casual- BILDAD
("H ??, son of contention, if Ge-
ties rising out of subjective peculiarities, dogmatic senius's derivation of it from "f
i? 1? be correct;
bias, and the like, as the chapters of our common
BaASoS: [Alex. Ba\8ar, in Job ii. 11: xviii. 1:]
Bibles. Practically the risk of such casualties has
BaMad), the second of Job's three friends. He is
been reduced almost to a minimum by the care of
editors to avoid the errors into which their prede- called " the Shuhite " (TPK&n), which implies
cessors have fallen, but the possibility of the evil both his family and nation. Shuah was the name
exists, and should therefore be guarded against by of a son of Abraham and Keturah, and of an Ara-
the exercise of an independent judgment. bian tribe sprung from him, when he had been sent
E. H. P. eastward by his father. Gesenius (s. v.) supposes
it to be " the same as the ~2.aucKa.la of Ptolemy
a * On this point see the striking remarks of Locke (v. 15) to the east of Batanea," and therefore to
In the Preface to his Paraphrase and Notes on the the east of the land of Uz [Shuah]. The LXX..
Epistles of St. Paul. A. strangely enough, renders it 6 twv "Zavxtw tv-
BILEAM BIRTHDAYS 309
pavvos, appearing to intend a distinction between from which of the sons of Benjamin Jediael was
him and the other friends, whom in the same verse descended, as he is not mentioned in Gen. xlvi. 21,
it calls &a(ri\e?s (Job. ii. 11). or Num. xxvi. But as he was the father of Ehud
Bildad takes a share in each of the three contro- (ver. 10), and Ehud seems, from 1 Chr. viii. 3, 6,
versies with Job (viii., xviii., xxv.). He follows in to have been a son of Bela, Jediael, and conse-
the train of Eliphaz, but with more violent decla- quently Bilhan, were probably Belaites. The oc-
mation, less argument, and keener invective. His currence of Bilhan as well as Bela in the tribe of
address is abrupt and untender; and in his very first Benjamin, names both imported from Edom, is re-
speech he cruelly attributes the death of Job's chil- markable. A. C. H.
dren to their own transgressions and loudly calls
on Job to repent of his supposed crimes. His sec-
BIL'SHAN
0jtt??2 [son of the tongue]:
ond speech (xviii. ) merely recapitulates his former BaXaadv [Vat. Baarpa/j.], BaKadv [Alex. Baacrav,
assertions of the temporal calamities of the wicked
FA. Baa<pav] Belsan, [Btlsam]), one of Zerub- :
on this occasion he implies, without expressing, babel's companions on his expedition from Babylon
(Ezr. ii. 2; Neh. vii. 7).
Job's wickedness, and does not condescend to ex-
hort him to repentance. In the third speech (xxv.), BIM'HAL
(7TTui2 [son of circumcision]
unable to refute the sufferer's arguments, he takes
Ba/ia^A; [Vat. \pa\ai)\:] Chamaal), one of the
refuge in irrelevant dogmatism on God's glory and sons of Japhlet in the line
of Asher Chr. vii. (1 33).
man's nothingness: in reply to which Job justly
reproves him both for deficiency in argument and BINE A (N3722 [perh. fountain]: Baavd;
failure in charitable forbearance (Ewald, das Buck [Vat. Baua, 1 Chr. viii. 37; Alex. do. ix. 43:]
Ijob). [See Job.] F. W. F. Banaa), the son of Moza; one of the descendants
of Saul (1 Chr. viii. 37; ix. 43).
BIL'EAM (n^ba [foreigner, Ges.; or
throat, gorge, Dietr.]': 'Upfadav; [Vat. om.;] BINNU I (^32 [a building, Ges. ; Hndred-
Alex. lfi\cutfi: Baalam), a town in the western ship, Fiirst]: Borata; [Vat. E&avata:] Bennoi).
half of the tribe of Manasseh, named only in 1 1. A Levite, father of Noadiah, in Ezra's time
Chr. vi. 70, as being given (with its "suburbs") (Ezr. viii. 33).
to the Kohathites. In the lists in Josh. xvii. 2. [Bavovi; Vat. FA. Qavovi'- BennuL] One
and xxi. this name does not appear, and Ibleam of the sons of Pahath-moab, who had taken a for-
and Gath-riminon are substituted for it, the former eign wife (Ezr. x. 30). [Balxuus.]
by an easy change of letters, the latter uncertain. 3. [Bavovi: BennuL] Another Israelite, of the
[Gath-bimmon; Ibleam.] G. sons of Bani, who had also taken a foreign wife
(Ezr. x. 38). [Here the A.V. ed. 1611, etc. reads
BIL'GAH (H272 [cheerfulness]: 6Be\yds; BennuL]
[Vat. BeA./3aj:] Belga). 1. A
priest in the time
4. [Bavovi: BannuL] Altered from Bani in the
of David the head of the fifteenth course for the
;
corresponding list in Ezra (Neh. vii. 15).
temple service (1 Chr. xxiv. 1-4).
5. [In Neh. Hi 24, Bavi, Vat. Alex. FA. Boi/ei;
2. [Vat. Alex. FA. 1 omit; Horn, in Neh. xii. 18
Apriest who returned from Babylon
x. 9, Bavaiov; xii. 8, Bavovi: BennuL] A Levite,
BaKyds-] son of Henadad, who assisted at the reparation of
with Zerubbabel and Joshua (Neh. xii. 5, 18);
the wall of Jerusalem, under Nehemiah, Neh. iii.
probably the same who, under the slightly altered
24, x. 9. He is possibly also the Binnui in xii. 8.
name Bilgai, sealed the covenant (Neh. x. 8).
BIRDS. [Fowls.]
BILGAI [2 syl.] 0272 [cheerfulness]:
Bt\ya~t; [Vat. BeKtreta, FA. -aia.-] Belgai),T$eh.
BIRSHA (VttnSl [son of wickedness, Ges.]:
x. 8; probably the same as Bilgah, 2. Bapad: Bersn), king of Gomoirha at the time of
the invasion of Chedorlaomer (Gen. xiv. 2).
BIL'HAH (HPT 72 [peril, bashfulness]:
* BIRTH. [Children.]
BaKKa.: Bala). 1. Handmaid of Rachel (Gen.
xxix. 2J), and concubine of Jacob, to whom she BIRTHDAYS (to ytv4o-ia, Matt. xiv. 6).
Properly rdyevedKia is a birthday feast land hence
bore Dan and Naphtali (Gen. xxx. 3-8, xxxv. 25,
in the early writers the day of a martyr's com-
xlvi. 25; 1 Chr. vii. 13). Her step-son Reuben af-
memoration), but to yevfffta seems to be used in
terwards lay with her (Gen. xxxv. 22), which en-
this sense by a Hellenism, for in Herod, iv. 26 it
tailed a curse upon Reuben (Gen. xlix. 4).
2. [BaaAa; Vat. A&e\\a] A town of the
means a day in honor of the dead. It is very prob-
able that in Matt. xiv. 6 the feast to commemorate
Simeonites ( 1 Chr. iv. 2it ) also called Baalah and
;
[Baal, p. 208, No. 2, b.] Herod's accession is intended,*1 for we know that
Balah.
such feasts were common (especially in Herod's
BIL'HAN (]ri72 [perh. modest] : BaKad/u. ; family, Joseph. Ant. xv. 11, §3; Blunt's Coinci-
[Alex. BaKaaV-] Balaam, the same root as Bilhah, dences, Append, vii.), and were called " the day of
Gen. xxx. 3, <tc. The final ^ is evidently a Horite the king " (Hos. vii. 5). The Gemarists distin-
termination, as in Zaavan, Akan, Dishan, Aran, guish expressly between D"0 v!2 7tt7 N^D^SS,
Lotan, Alvan, Hemdan, Eshban, <fcc. ; and may
be compared with the Etruscan ena, Greek a(v)s, yev4aia regni, and the HT^vH or birthday.DV
wv, Ac). (Lightfoot, Hor. Hear, ad Matt. xiv. 6.)
1. A Horite chief, son of Ezer, son of Seir, The custom of observing birthdays is very an-
dwelling in Mount Seir, in the land of Edom (Gen. cient (Gen. xl. 20; Jer. xx. 15); and in Job i. 4,
xxxvi. 27; 1 Chr. i. 42). <fcc, we read that Job^s sons " feasted every one his
2. (BaKudu: Balan.) A Benjamite, son of Je- day." In Persia they were celebrated with peculiar
iiael (1 Chr. vii. 10). It does not appear clearly honors and banquets, for the details of which see
a * Against this opinion see Meyer (mi loc.) who says meaning. See also Kuinoel, i. 426. There is no reason
thereis not a single Greek example of y<r vioia. with this for discarding the usual sense in Matt. xiv. 6. H.
310 BIRTHRIGHT BISHOP
Herod, i. 138. And
Egypt " the birthdays of
in Esdr. ii. 16) of Artaxerxes in Pal-
Taffo-6/j.fvoi, 1
the kings were celebrated with great pomp. Theyestine at the time of the return of Zerubbabel from
were looked upon as holy; no business was done captivity (Ezr. iv. 7). By the LXX. the word is
translated (v elpi\vn, in peace; see margin of A.
upon them, and all classes indulged in the festivi-
ties suitable to the occasion. Every Egyptian at- V., and so also both Arabic and Syriac versions.
tached much importance to the day, and even to (iirio-Koiros)-BISHOP
This word, applied in
the hour of his birth " (Wilkinson, v. 290). the N. T. to the officers of the Church who were
Probably in consequence of the ceremonies usual charged with certain functions of superintendence,
in their celebration, the Jews regarded their ob- had been in use before as a title of office. The in-
servance as an idolatrous custom (Lightfoot, I. c). spectors or commissioners sent by Athens to her
F. W. F. subject-states were iiriffKonoi (Aristoph. Ax. 1022),
BIRTHRIGHT QT$3$ : rh irpwrorSKia). and their office, like that of the Spartan
them to interfere in all the political ar-
Hannosts,
is likely that some remembrance of this lost pre- churches addressed by St. Paul as an apostle (Phil,
eminence stirred the Reubenite leaders of Korah's i. 1; 1 Tim. iii. 1, 8).
rebellion (Num. Esau's act,
xvi. 1, 2, xxvi. 5-9). 3. The same persons are described by both
transferring his right to Jacob, was allowed valid names (Acts xx. 17, 28; Tit. i. 5, 7).
(Gen. xxv. 33). The first-born of the king was 4. npeo-fivTfpoi discharge functions which are
his successor by law (2 Chr. xxi. 3); David, how- essentially episcopal, i. e. involving pastoral super-
ever, by divine appointment, excluded Adonijah in intendence (1 Tim. v. 17; 1 Pet. v. 1, 2). The
favor of Solomon, which deviation from rule was age that followed, that of the Apostles witnessed a
indicated by the anointing (Goodwin, /. c. 4, with gradual change in the application of the words, and
Hottinger's notes). The first-born of a line is often in the Epistles of Ignatius, even in their least in-
noted by the early scriptural genealogies, e. g. Gen. terpolated or most mutilated form, the bishop is
xxii. 21, xxv. 13 Num. xxvi. 5, &c. The Jews recognized as distinct from, and superior to, the
;
attached a sacred import to the title (see Schuttgen, presbyters (Ep. ad Smyrn. c. 8; ad Trail, cc. 2,
Hot: Hebr. i. 922) and thus "first-born" and 3, 8; ad Mayn. c. 6). In those of Clement of
" first-begotten " seem applied to the Messiah (Rom. Rome, however, the two words are still dealt with
viii. 29, Heb. i. 6). H. H. as interchangeable (1 Cor. cc. 42, 44, 57). The
* The term " "
used figuratively to
first-born is omission of any mention of an iirlaicoiros in ad-
denote preeminence, and is applied to one peculiarly dition to the irpeafiv-repoi and Siolkovoi in Poly-
distinguished by the favor of God, as to David, Ps. carp's Epistle to the Philippians (c. 5), and the
lxxxix. 27; to the Jewish nation as the chosen enumeration of " apostoli, episcopi, doctores, minis-
people, Ex. iv. 22; 2 Esdr. iv. 58; Psalt. Salom. tri," in the Shepherd of Hernias (i. 3, 5), are less
xviii. 4 (Fabric. Cod. pseudepigr. V. T. i. 970); decisive, but indicate a transition stage in the his-
and to Ephraim, Jer. xxxi. 9. See also Col. i. 15. tory of the word.
A. Assuming as proved the identity of the bishops
and elders of the N. T. we have to inquire into —
bir'zavith (rnna, Keri n,,rn (1.) The relation which existed between the two
-
Alex. Bep£aie: Bnrsailh),a name occurring in the of the men to whom both titles were applied. (3.)
genealogies of Asher (1 Chr. vii. 31), and appa- Their relations to the general government and dis-
rently, from the mode of its mention, the name of
cipline of the Church.
a place (comp. the similar expression, " father of
I. There can be no doubt that irpeapvTfpoi had
Bethlehem," "father of Tekoa," &c. in chaps, ii.
the priority in order of time. The existence of a
and iv.). The reading of the Keri may be inter- body bearing that name is implied in the use of the
preted "well of olives." No trace of it is found correlative
ol vedrtpot (comp. Luke xxii. 26; 1
elsewhere.
Pet. v. 1, 5) in the narrative of Ananias (Acts v. 6).
BISH'LAM (Q^2
[son of peace] Bese- The order itself is recognized in Acts xi. 30, and
:
lam), apparently an officer or commissioner (<rw- takes part in the deliberations of the Church at
BISHOP BISHOP 311
Jerusalem in Acts xv. It is transferred by Paul of the bishop-elders appear to have been as follows
and Barnabas to the Gentile churches in their first — 1. General superintendence over the spiritual
missionary journey (Acts xiv. 23). The earliest well-being of the flock (1 Pet. v. 2). According to
use of itriffKoiroi, on the other hand, is in the ad- the aspects which this function presented, those on
dress of St. Paul to the elders at Miletus (Acts xx. whom it devolved were described as irotfieves (Eph.
28), and there it is rather descriptive of functions iv. 11), TrpoetrTaJTey (1 Tim. v. 17), npoia-rayavoi
than given as a title. The earliest epistle in which (1 Thess. v. 12). Its exercise called for the x°-? ia~
it is formally used as equivalent to irptafivTtpoi jxa KvfSepvrjaews (1 Cor. xii. 28). The last two
(except on the improbable hypothesis that Timothy of the above titles imply obviously a recognized
belongs to the period following on St. Paul's de- rank, as well as work, which would show itself
parture from Ephesus in Acts xx. 1) is that to the naturally in special marks of honor in the meetings
Philippians, as late as the time of his first impris- of the Church. 2. The work of teaching, both
onment at Home. It was natural, indeed, that publicly and privately (1 Thess. v. 12 ; Tit. i. 9 ; 1
this should be the order; that the word derived Tim. v. 17). At first, it appears from the descrip-
from the usages of the synagogues of Palestine, tion of the practices of the Church in 1 Cor. xiv.
every one of which had its superintending elders 20, the work of oral teaching, whatever form it as-
sumed, was not limited to any body of men, but
(D N 3|7T : comp. Luke vii. 3), should precede that
was exercised according as each man possessed a
borrowed from the constitution of a Greek state. special yaptfTfua for it. Even then, however, there
If the latter was afterwards felt to be the more were, as the warnings of that chapter show, some
adequate, it may have been because there was a life inconveniences attendant on this freedom, and it
in the organization of the Church higher than that was a natural remedy to select men for the special
of the synagogues, and functions of pastoral su- function of teaching because they possessed the
perintendence devolving on the elders of the Chris-
Xapurfta, and then gradually to confine that work
tian congregation which were unknown to those to them. The work of preaching (nypvaareiv) to
of the other periods. It had the merit of being the heathen did not belong, apparently, to the
descriptive as well as titular; a " nomen officii" bishop-elders as such, but was the office of the
as well as a " nomen dignitatis." It could be apostle-evangelist. Their duty was to feed the
associated, as the other could not be, with the Jiock, teaching publicly (Tit. i.
9), opposing errors,
thought of the highest pastoral superintendence — admonishing privately (1 Thess. v. 12). 3. The
of Christ himself as the iroifj.^1/ ical iniffKorros (1 work of visiting the sick appears in Jam. v. 14, as
Pet. ii. 25). assigned to the elders of the Church. There, in-
II. Of the order in which the first elders were deed, it is connected with the practice of anointing
appointed, as of the occasion which led to the in- as a means of healing, but this office of Christian
stitution of the office, we have no record. Argu- sympathy would not, we may believe, be confined
ing from the analogy of the Seven in Acts vi. 5, 6, to the exercise of the extraordinary ^opicr^aTa
it would seem probable that they were chosen by jctyiiaTw, and it is probably to this, and to acts of
the members of the Church collectively (possibly to a like kind, that we are to refer the a.VTt\a[xf}dve<r-
take the place that had been filled by the Seven, dai twv aadivovvraiv of Acts xx. 35, and the av-
comp. Stanley's Apost. Age, p. 6-4) and then set riArityets of 1 Cor. xii. 28. 4. Among these acts
apart to their office by the laying on of the Apos- of charity that of receiving strangers occupied a
tles' hands. In the case of Timothy (1 Tim. iv. conspicuous place (1 Tim. iii. 2; Tit. i. 8). The
14; 2 Tim. i. 6) the irpeff^uTepiov, probably the bishop-elder's house was to be the house of the
body of the elders at Lystra, had taken part with Christian who arrived in a strange city and found
the apostle in this act of ordination but here it himself without a friend.
; 5. Of the part taken
remains doubtful whether the office to which Tim- by them in the liturgical meetings of the Church
othy was appointed was that of the Bishop-Elder we have no distinct evidence. Reasoning from the
or one derived from the special commission with language of 1 Cor. x., xii., and from the practices of
which the two epistles addressed to him show him the post-apostolic age, we may believe that they
to have been entrusted. The connection of 1 Tim. would preside at such meetings, that it would be-
v. 22 is, on the whole, against our referring the lay- long to them to bless and to give thanks when the
ing on of hands there spoken of to the ordination Church met to break bread.
of elders (comp. Hammond, in foe), and the same The mode in which these officers of the Church
may be said of Heb. vi. 2. The imposition of hands were supported or remunerated varied probably in
was indeed the outward sign of the communication different cities. At Miletus St. Paul exhorts the
of ^apiarfiara, as well as of functions elders of the Church to follow his example and
all spiritual
for which ^apicr/uaTa were required, and its use for work for their own livelihood (Acts xx. 34). In 1
the latter (as in 1 Tim. iv. 14; 2 Tim. i. 6) was Cor. ix. 14, and Gal. vi. 6, he asserts the right of
connected with its instrumentality in the bestowal the ministers of the Church to be supported by it.
of the former. The conditions which were to be In 1 Tim. v. 17, he gives a special application of
observed in choosing these officers, as stated in the the principle in the assignment of a double allow-
pastoral epistles, are, blameless life and reputation ance (ti/xt), comp. Hammond, in foe.) to those who
among those " that are without " as well as within have been conspicuous for their activity.
the Church, fitness for the work of teaching, the Collectively at Jerusalem, and probably in other
wide kindliness of temper which shows itself in churches, the body of bishop-elders took part in de-
hospitality, the being " the husband of one wife " liberations (Acts xv. 6-22, xxi. 18), addressed other
(»'. e. according to the most probable interpretation, churches {ibid. xv. 23), were joined with the Apos-
not divorced and then married to another; but tles in the work of ordaining by the laying on of
comp. Hammond, Estius, Ellicott, in foe), showing hands (2 Tim. i. 6). It lay in the necessities of
powers of government in his own household as well any organized society that such a body of men
as in self-control, not being a recent and, therefore, should be subject to a power higher than their own,
an untried convert. When appointed, the duties whether vested in one chosen by themselves or de-
312 BISHOP BITHYNIA
riving its authority from some external source and race received
; it, as they received their Christianity,
we find accordingly that it belonged to the delegate from the missionaries of the Latin Church.
of an apostle, and a fortiori to the apostle himself, E. H. P.
to receive accusations against them, to hear evi-
dence, to admonish where there was the hope of
BITHI'AH
daugh- (n\*13, worshipper, lit.
amendment, to depose
of Jehovah: Bfrdla; [Vat. B«A<a; Alex. B«0-
where this proved unavailing
ter,
Asia, and the extent to which Greek was the uni- province of Asia Minor, though illustrious in the
versal medium of intercourse for* the churches of the earlier parts of post-apostolic history, through
first and second centuries (Milman, Latin Christ. Pliny's letters and the Council of Nica>u, has little
b. i. c. i.): nowhere do we find any attempt at connection with the history of the Apostles them-
substituting a Latin equivalent, hardly even an selves. only mentioned in Acts xvi. 7, and in
It is
Jerome (Up. VIII. ad Evagr.) with "superin- Iconium to Troas, in the course of his second mis-
tendentes." The title episcoptu its sionary journey, made an attempt to enter Bithynia,
itself, with
companions, presbyter and diaconue, was transmit- but was prevented, either by providential hindrances
ted by the Latin of the Western Church to all the or by direct Divine intimations. From the latter
Romance languages. The members of the Gothic it is evident that, when St. Peter wrote his first
BITHYNIA BITTER HERBS 313
Epistle, there were Christians (probably of Jewish uation of Becker's Rom. Altertlnimer, III. i. p. 146.
or proselyte origin) in some of the towns of this For a description of the country, which is moun-
province, as well as in " Pontus, Galatia, Cappado- tainous, well wooded and fertile, Hamilton's lie-
cia, and Asia." searches in A. M. may be consulted, also a paper
Bithynia, considered as a Roman province, was by Ainsworth in the Roy. Geog. Journal, vol. ix.
on the west contiguous to Asia. On the east its The course of the river Rhyndacus is a marked fea-
limits underwent great modifications. The prov- ture on the western frontier of Bithynia, and the
ince was originally inherited by the Roman repub- snowy range of the Mysian Olympus on the south-
lic (n. c. 74) as a legacy from Nicomedes III., the west. J- S. H.
province is sometimes called " Pontus and Bithyn- manded to eat the Paschal lamb
" with unleavened
ia " in inscriptions; and the language of Pliny's bread and with bitter herbs."
letters is similar. The province of Pontus was not There can be little doubt that the term merorim
constituted till the reign of Nero [Pontus]. It is general, and includes the various edible kinds of
is observable that in Acts ii. 9 Pontus is in the bitter plants, whether cultivated or wild,
which the
enumeration and not Bithynia, and that in 1 Pet. Israelites could with facility obtain in sufficient
i. 1 both are mentioned. See Marquardt's contin- abundance to supply their numbers either in Egypt,
where the first passover was eaten, or in the desert3 minthia Echioides, Linn, [rather Gaertn.; Picris
of the Peninsula of Sinai, or in Palestine. The Echmdes, Linn.], Bristly Helminthia (Ox-tongue),
Mishna (Pesichim, c. 2, enumerates five kinds
§ 6) a plant belonging to the chicory group. The Pi-
of bitter herbs — chazereth, thamenh, char-
'ttlshin, cm of botanists is a genus closely allied to the
chabina, and mnror, which it was lawful to .eat Helminthia.
either green or dried. There is great difficulty in Aben Ezra in Celsius (Hierob. ii. 227) remarks
identifying the plants which these words respectively that, according to the observations of a certain
denote, but the reader may see the subject discussed learned Spaniard, the ancient Egyptians always
by Bochart (Hieroz. i. 691, ed. Rosenmiiller) and used to place different kinds of herbs, upon the
by Carpzovius (Appwat. Hist. Cril. p. 402). Ac- table, with mustard, and that they dipped
morsels
cording to the testimony of Forskal in Niebuhr's of bread into this salad. That the Jews derived
Preface to the Description de PArabie (p. xliv.), this custom of eating herbs with their meat from
the modern Jews of Arabia and Egypt eat lettuce, the Egyptians is extremely probable, for it is easy
or, if this is not at hand, bugloss " with the Pas- to seehow, on the one hand, the bitter-herb salad
chal lamb. The Greek word iriKpls is identified should remind the Jews of the bitterness of their
by Sprengel {Hist. Rei Herb. i. 100) with the HeU bondage (Ex. i. 14), and, on the other hand, how
to TpvfiXiov be the salad dish of bitter herbs, and alluded to above that this bird is a lover of marshes
rb tycv/Aiov, the morsel of bread of which Aben and pools, and would not therefore be found in a
Ezra speaks a '?
locality which is " dry like a wilderness," a little
The merorim may well be understood to denote reflection will convince the reader that the difficulty
various sorts of bitter plants, such particularly as is more apparent than real. Nineveh might be
belong to the cruciferce, as some of the bitter
cresses, or to the chicory group of the composite,
the hawk-weeds, and sow-thistles, and wild lettuces
which grow abundantly in the Peninsula of Sinai,
in Palestine, and in Egypt (Decaisne, Florida
Sinaico in Annal. des Scienc. Nat. 1834; Strand,
Fhr. Pukest. No. 445, &c). W. H.
BITTERN (Ysi?, teppM: itfvos , weteK&r,
Aq. ; kvkvos, Theod. in Zeph. ii. 14: ericius).
The Hebrew word has been the subject of various
interpretations, the old versions generally sanction-
ing the "hedgehog" or "porcupine;" in which
rendering they have been followed by Bochart (Hie-
roz. ii. 454); Shaw (Trav. i. 321, 8vo ed.);
Lowth (On and some others; the
Isaiah, xiv. 23),
" tortoise," the "beaver," the "otter," the "owl,"
have also all been conjectured, but without the
slightest show of reason. Philological arguments
appear to be rather in favor of the " hedgehog " or
"porcupine," for the Hebrew word kippod appears
to be identical with kunj'ud, the Arabic word b for
the hedgehog; but zoologically, the hedgehog or
porcupine is quite out of the question. The word
occurs in Is. xiv. 23, where of Babylon the Lord
says, " I will make it a possession for the kijjjiiid Botaurus stellaris.
and pools of water;" —
in Is. xxxiv. 11, of the
" dry like a wilderness," but the bittern would
made
land of Idumea it is said " the kdath and the lip-
which flows through
pod shall possess it; " and again in Zeph. ii. 14, find an abode in the Tigris
" I will make Nineveh a desolation and dry like a the plain of
Mesopotamia as to the bittern perch- ;
tard ? The practice began iu Judaea, where, in order plies " the voice of birds." " Sed quum canendi ver-
render palatable the bitter herbs eaten with the
to
paschal iamb, it was usual, says Moses Kotsinses, to bum adhibent vates, haud dnbie mj post VlD
sprinkle over them a thick sauce called Karoseth, est subaudiendum " (Rosenmull. Schol. ad Zeph. ii. 14.).
which was composed of the oil drawn from dates or See on this subject the excellent remarks of Harmer
from pressed raisin-kernels, of vinegar and mustard." (Obsert: iii. 100).
See " Extract from the Portfolio of a Man of Letters,"
MonMy d Such is no doubt the meaning of rP^.ffipS ',
9 » j
G - o > but Parkhurst (Lex. Heb. s. v. "75 P) translates the
6
cXAO et ^XaaJ) erinaceus, echinus, Kam. Dj.
word " door-porches," which, he says, we are at liberty
See Freytag. to suppose were thrown dow.i.
c Dr. Harris (art to the words
Bittern) objects e
" their voices shall sing in the windows " being applied «.aA. See Simon. Lex. Heb. s. v. "TDp.
BITUMEN BLINDNESS 315
feathers of the neck, have received the name
may phen were condemned to death by the Jews. From
of the porcupine bird from the ancient Orientals. Lev. xxiv. 16, wrongly understood, arose the singu-
The bittern (Bolaurus stellai-is) belongs to the Ar- lar superstition about never even pronouncing the
deidcB, the heron family of birds; it has a wide name of Jehovah. Ex. xxii. 28, " Thou shalt not
range, being found in Russia and Siberia as far revile the gods, nor curse the ruler of thy people,"
north as the river Lena, in Europe generally, in does not refer to blasphemy in the strict sense, since
Barbary, S. Africa, Trebizond, and in the countries "elohim " is there used (as elsewhere) of magis-
between the Black and Caspian Seas, ifcc. trates, &c.
The Jews, misapplying Ex. xxiii. 13, " Make no
W. H.
BITUMEN. [Slime.] mention of the name of other gods," seemed to
think themselves bound to give nicknames to the
BIZJOTH'JAH (n\^S^2 [contempt of
heathen deities; hence their use of Bosheth for
Jehovah] LXX. [Vat. Alex.] omits, [but Comp. Baal [Hos. ix. 10, comp. Ish-bosheth, Mephibo-
:
Bi(iw8(a; Aid. 'Ej8e£bu0iai':] Baziothia), a town sheth], Beth-aven for Beth-el [Hos. iv. 15],Beel-
in the south of Judah named with Beer-sheba zebul It is not strange that this
for Beelzebub, &c.
and Baalah (Josh. xv. 28). No mention or
" (Plin. xiii. 9), joined to
"contumelia numinum
identification of it is found elsewhere. G.
their zealous proselytism, made them so deeply un-
BIZ THA
(NH?2 Ba&v, [Vat. FA.* Ma- popular among the nations of antiquity (Winer,
:
Egypt, and hence is called in Deut. xxviii. 27, 35, safe ground for extending it to include all sorts of
Killing (as distinguished from wilful) offenses, be-
"the botch of Egypt" (D"!!?*? cf. Job TH^
sides this one limited and special sin.
;
The often
ii. 7, V} ^niC). It seems to have been the misunderstood expression " it shall not be forgiven
kind of him, neither in this world, Ac.," is a direct appli-
\l/a>pa aypla or black leprosy, a fearful
elephantiasis (comp. Plin. xxvi. 5). must have cation of a Jewish phrase in allusion to a Jewish
It
come with dreadful intensity on the magicians error, and will not bear the inferences so often ex-
whose art it baffled, and whose scrupulous cleanli- torted from it. According to the Jewish school
ness (Herod, ii. 36) it rendered nugatory: so that notions, "a quo blasphematur
nomen Dei, ei non
they were unable to stand in the presence of Moses valet pcenitentia ad suspendendum judicium, nee
because of the boils. dies expiationis ad expiandum, nee plagae ad adster-
Other names and leprous eruptions genxlum, sed omnes suspendunt judicium, et mors
for purulent
abstergU." In refutation of this tradition our
are HAW
fT?n2 (Morphea alba), HnSD
Lord used the phrase to imply that " blasphemy
(Morphea nigra), and the more harmless scab against the Holy Ghost shall not be forgiven;
jHnSpJS, Lev. xiii. passim (Jahn, Arch. Bibl. neither before death, nor, as you vainly dream, by
F. W. F.
means of death " (Lightfoot, Hor. flebr. ad locum).
§ 189).'
As there are no tenable grounds for identifying this
BLASPHEMY ($\ao-<prifxia), in its technical
blasphemy with " the sin unto death," 1 John v.
English sense, signifies the speaking evil of God 16, we shall not here enter into the very difficult
(!"V GW7 2f?D), and in this sense it is found Ps. inquiries to which that expression leads.
Blasphemy was punished with stoning, which <« * It does not appear how the rendering of the
was inflicted on the son of Shelomith (Lev. xxiv. LXX. of Job ii. 5 and Hos. vii. 16 illustrates the use
11). On this charge both our Lord and St. Ste- of /3Aa<r<|>T)|mt'a or its cognates H
316 BLINDNESS BLOOD, REVENGER OF
on the altar, i. e. on its horns,
at once squeezed out)
'VW, to bore) is extremely common in the East
its base, or its four corners, or on its side above or
from many causes; e. g. the quantities of dust and
below a line running round it, or on the mercy-seat,
sand pulverized by the sun's intense heat; the per- according
to the quality and purpose of the offering
petual glare of light the contrast of the heat with
;
but that of the passover on the lintel and door-
the cold sea-air on the coast where blindness is spe-
posts (Exod. xii.; Lev. iv. 5-7, xvi. 14-19; Ugo—
cially prevalent; the dews at night while they sleep
lini, Thes. vol. x. and xiii.). There was a drain
on the roofs small-pox, old age, &c. and perhaps from the temple into
; ;
the brook Cedron to carry off
more than all the Mohammedan fatalism, which the blood (Maimon. ajntd Cramer
de Ara Exter.
leads to a neglect of the proper remedies in time.
Ugolini, viii.). In regard to (2), it sufficed to pour
One traveller mentions 4000 blind men in Cairo, the animal's blood on the earth, or to bury it, as
and Volney reckons that 1 hi every 5 were blind, a solemn rendering of the life to
God in case of ;
Penal and miraculous blindness are several times bin.: Jiuxu laborans). The term is in Scripture
mentioned in the Bible (Gen. xix. 11, aopcurta, applied only to the case of women under menstru-
LXX.; 2 K. vi. 18-22; Acts ix. 9). In the last ation or the Jftt.rus uteri (Lev. xv. 19-30; Matt. ix.
passage some have attempted (on the ground of St. 20, yvvti alfiopp'oovGa.; Mark v. 25 and Luke viii.
Luke's profession as a physician) to attach a tech- 43, ovcra iv pvaet ai/xaros)- The latter caused a
nical meaning to ax^-vs and <tk6tos (Jahn, Arch. permanent legal uncleanness, the former a tempo-
Bibl. § 201), viz. a spot or " thin tunicle over the rary one, mostly for seven days, after which she was
cornea," which vanishes naturally after a time: for to be purified by the customary offering. The
which fact Winer (s. v. Blindheit) quotes Hippocr. " bloody flux " (Svatvrepia) in Acts xxviii. 8,
{Prtedict. ii. 215) ax^-ves • • • eKAtaivovTai Ka\ where the patient is of the male sex, is, probably,
atpavi^ovrai, *)v fi/q Tpaifj.a ri eiriytv7\Tai iv tovtw a medically correct term a (see Bartholini, De Mar-
t<$5x^pW- ^ u ^ *his c' oes not remove the mirac- bis BiUicis, 17). H. H.
ulous character of the infliction. In the same way
analogies are quoted for the use of saliva (Mark
BLOOD, REVENGER OF (bS3 : Goel).
a * It has been objected that though the term may island that this disorder is by no means uncommon
be technically correct, Luke has erred in assigning there at the present day ("Smith's Voyage awl Ship-
" dysentery " to a dry climate, like that of Malta. wreck of St. Paul, p. 167, ed. 1866). H.
But we have now the testimony of physicians iD that
BLOOD, REVENGER OF BOAZ 317
lost, except as annulled by compensation: it de- others of an absurd kind, the following: at the
scends to the latest generation. Similar customs, cross-roads posts were erected bearing the word
with local distinctions, are found in Persia, Abys-
TD7pE, refuge, to direct the fugitive. All facil-
sinia, among the Druses and Circassians. (Nie-
ities of water and situation were provided in the
buhr, Deter, de V Arable, pp. 28, 30, Voyage, ii.
cities no implements of war or chase were allowed
:
avenger of blood ( vS2, the redeemer, or avenger, CM"} ^33. The Latter word in Hebrew signifies a
as next of kin, Gesen. 254, who rejects
s. v. p. tumult or uproar (Ps. ii. 1), but in Arabic and
the opinion of Michaelis, giving it the sig. of " pol- Syriac thunder. Probably the name had respect
luted," i. e. till the murder was avenged (<5 ayx'
""
to the fiery zeal of the brothers, signs of which we
revwv, LXX., propinqwus occisi, Vtdg., Num. xxxv. may see in Luke ix. 54 ; Mark ix. 38 ; comp. Matt,
19), and was bound to execute retaliation himself xx. 20 ff. H. A.
if itlay in his power. The king, however, in Later BOAR. [Swims.]
times appears to have had the power of restraining
* BOAT. [Ship.]
this license. The shedder of blood was thus re-
garded as impious and polluted (Num. xxxv. 1G-31; BO'AZ (TV3, fteetness:" Bo6(; Vat. [b >i ;
Deut. xix.' 11; 2 Sam. xiv. 7, 11, xvi. 8, and iii. Alex. Boos exc. Ruth ii. 15, iv. 8, and 1 Chr. Boof :]
29, with 1 K. ii. 31, 33; 2 Chr. xxiv. 22-25). Booz). A
wealthy Bethlehemite, kinsman to
1.
2. The law of retaliation was not to extend be-
Elimelech, the husband of Naomi. Finding that
yond the immediate offender (Deut. xxiv. 16 2 K. ;
the kinsman of Ruth, who stood in a still nearer
xiv. G; 2 Chr. xxv. 4; Jer. xxxi. 29-30; Ez. xviii. relation than himself, was unwilling to perform the
20; Joseph. Ant. iv. 8, § 39).
3. The involuntary shedder of blood was per-
office of vS2, he had those obligations publicly
mitted to take flight to one of six Levitical cities, transferred with the usual ceremonies to his own
specially appointed out of the 48 as cities of refuge, discharge; and hence became his duty by the
it
three on each side of the Jordan (Num. xxxv. 22, "levirate law" to marry Ruth (although it is
23; Deut. xix. 4-6). The cities were Kedesh, in hinted, Ruth iii. 10, that he was much her senior,
Mount NaphtaK; Shechem, in Mount Ephraim; and indeed this fact is evident whatever system of
Hebron in the hill-country of Judah. On the E. chronology we adopt), and to redeem the estates of
side of Jordan, Bezer, in Reuben Ramoth, in Gad
; her deceased husband Mahlon (iv. 1 fF. Jahn, Arch. ;
Golan, in Manasseh (Josh. xx. 7, 8). The elders Hilil. § 157). He gladly undertook these respon-
of the city of refuge were to hear his case and pro- and their happy union was blessed by the
sibilities,
tect him till he could he tried before the authorities birth of Obed, fromwhom in a direct line our Lord
of his own city. If the act were then decided to was descended. No objection seems to have arisen
have been involuntary, he was taken back to the on the score of Ruth's Moabitish birth; a fact
city of refuge, round which an area with a radius which has some bearing on the date of the narra-
of 2000 (3000, Patrick) cubits was assigned as the tive (cf. Ezr. ix. 1 ff.). [Bethlehkm.]
limit of protection, and was to remain there in Boaz is mentioned in the tcenealogy (Matt. i. 5),
safety till the death of the high-priest for the time but there is great difficulty in assigning his date.
being. Beyond the limit of the city of refuge, the The genealogy in Ruth (iv. 18-22) only allows 10
revenger might slay him, but after the high-priesfs 'generations for 850 years, and only 4 for the 450
death he mi«iht return to his home with impunity years between Salmon and David, if (as is almost
(Num. xxxv. 25, 28; Josh. xx. 4, 6). The roads certain from St. Matt, and from Jewish tradition)
lo the cities were to be kept open (Deut. xix. 3). the Rahab mentioned is Rahab the harlot. If Boaz
To these particulars the Talmudists add, among be identical with the judge Ibzan [Ihzan], as is
It stood on the left, and was 17 £ cubits high (1 K. anything more than that the flax was in bud, ready
vii. 15, 21; 2 Chr. iii. 15; Jer. lii. 21). It was to flower (see Ges. and Fiirst, s. v.). See also Flax.
hollow and surmounted by a chapiter, 5 cubits high, A.
ornamented with net-work and 100 pomegranates. BONDAGE. [Slavery.]
The apparent discrepancies in stating the height BONNET. [See Head-dkess.] In old
of it arise from the including and excluding of the English, as in Scotch to this.day, the word " bon-
ornament which united the shaft to the chapiter, net " was applied to the head-dress of men. Thus
&c. F. W. F. in Hall's Rich. III., fol. 9 a. " And after a h tie
:
BOCCAS {6 Bokkols- Boccus), a priest in the season puttyng of hys boneth he sayde: O Lorde
line of Esdras (1 Esdr. viii. 2). [Bukki; Bo God creator of all thynges, howe muche is this
and thus follow an opinion, possibly a tradition, warlike resistance, all the women and children were
that the place of weeping was near Bethel. The to be made captives, and the men put to death. A
going up thither "of the angel" from Gilgal special charge was given to destroy the " pictures
and images " of the Canaanites, as tending to idol-
('?*!) favors that view. Bertheau (Riehter, p. The Amalek was
atry (Num. xxxiii. 52). case of
50) infers from the sacrifices (ver. 5) that the He- a special one, in which Saul was bidden to destroy
brews could not have been at the time far from one So also was that of the expedition
the cattle.
of their sacred places, perhaps Shiloh; but (see
against Arad, in which the people took a vow to
Keil's Book of Judges, p. 264) they were not re-
destroy the cities, and that of Jericho, on which
stricted in this manner, but performed such rites
the curse of God seems to have rested, and the gold
in any place where Jehovah appeared to them.
and silver, &c. of which were viewed as reserved
Beyond this there is no clew to the exact spot
wholly for Him (1 Sam. xv. 2, 3; Num. xxi. 2;
where the scene occurred. H. Josh. vi. 19). The law of booty was that it should
BO'HAN C|n2 [thumb]: [Bai&V, in Josh, be divided equally between the army who won it
xviii. 17 Alex. Baa/n; Comp. Aid.] Baav'- Boen), and the people of Israel, but of the former hah one
a Keubenite after whom a stone was named, possibly head in every 500 was reserved to God, and appro-
erected to comniemoiate some achievement in the priated to the priests, and of
the latter one in every
conquest of Palestine (comp. 1 Sam. vii. 12). Its 50 was similarly reserved and appropriated to the
position was on the border of the territories of Ben- Levites (Num. xxxi. 26-47). As regarded the
jamin and Judah between Beth-arabah and Beth- army, David added a regulation that the baggage-
troops engaged.
hogla on the E., and Adummim and En-shemesh on guard should share equally with the
Its exact situation is unknown (Josh. xv. The present made by
the W. David out of his booty to the
[Stones.] W. L. B. elders of towns in Judah was an act of gratefid
6, xviii. 17).
courtesy merely, though perhaps suggested by the
BOIL. [Medicine.] law, Num. I. c. So the spoils devoted by him to
BOLSTER. The Hebrew word (ntt^P, provide for the temple, must be regarded as a free-
tneracislwth ) so rendered, denotes, like the English, will offering (1 Sam. xxx. 24-26; 2 Sam. viii. 11;
simply a place for the head. Hardy travellers, like 1 Chr. xxvi. 27). H. H.
BOOZ BOTTLE 819
BO'OZ (Rec. T. BoSC; Lachm. [Treg. and of a kid's skin. These bottles when rent are re-
Tisch. (7th ed.)] with [in Luke], Bods; ABD paired sometimes by setting in a piece; sometimes
[Tiscb. (8th ed.) in Matt., with 13 and Sin., Boe's:] by gathering up the wounded place in manner of
Booz), Matt. i. 5; Luke in. 32. [Boaz.] a purse sometimes they put in a round flat piece
;
1144). G.
BOS'ORA (Boo-opa [ ?]and [Comp.] Boaoppa. ;
taken by Judas Maccabseus (1 Mace. v. 26, 28), Wine-bottles of skin are mentioned as used by
doubtless the same as Bozrah. Greeks, Romans, and Egyptians, by Homer (Od.
vi. 78, olvov ix* vev 'boxy eV cuyeitp', H- iii.
BOTCH. [Medicine.]
247); by Herodotus, as used in Egypt (ii. 121),
BOTTLE. The words which are rendered in
where he speaks of letting the wine out of the skin
A. V. of 0. T. " bottle " are, (1.) rV2Tl (Gen. xxi. by the iroSedv, the end usually tied up to serve as
the neck; by Virgil {Georg. ii. 384). Also by
14, 15, 19) : ao-n6s uter ; a skin-bottle. (2.) 7?3,
Athenaeus, who mentions a large skin-bottle of the
or 7J33 (1 Sam. x. 3 nature of the gerba {acnths 4k TrapSaAciv Sipfjuarwv
; Job xxxviii. 37 ; Jer. xiii.
12; Is. v. 14; Lam. iv. 2): ayytToi/, 6/5^a/x/i€i'o$, v. 28, p. 199).
11, xxx. Chardin says that
Kepatxiov, affKOS- titer, vas testeum, lagena, layun-
wine in Persia is preserved in skins saturated with
pitch, which, when good, impart no flavor to the
cula. (3.) p^Sf?? (Jer. six. 1): friitbs bo-rpaKi- wine Skins for wine or other
( Voyages,
iv. 75).
idiom, as in Ps. xxv. 6, xl. 8, Prov. xii. 10, Luke i. KeSpos- buxus, pimts) occurs in Is. Ix. 13, together
78, 2 Cor. vii. 15 (see the margin in these places); with " the fir-tree and the pine-tree," as furnishing
but in many other cases they have given a bald, wood from Lebanon for the temple that was to be
verbal translation where a different rendering would built at Jerusalem. In Is. xii. 19 the teasshiir is
have more happily expressed the meaning as, " The mentioned in connection with the cedar, " the fir-
;
bowels (hearts) of the saints are refreshed by thee " tree and the pine," &c, which should one day be
" Ye are not straitened in us, but are straitened in planted in the wilderness. There is great uncer-
your own bowels" (affections); see Cant. v. 4; Jer. tainty as to the tree denoted by the teasshiir. The
iv. 19, xxxi. 20; Ecclus. xxx. 7; 2 Cor. vi. 12; Talmudical and Jewish writers generally are of
Phil. i. 8, ii. 1; Col. iii. 12; Philem. 7, 12, 20; opiriion that the box-tree is intended, and with
1 John iii. 17. A. them agree Montanus, Deodatius, the A. V. and
other modern versions Kosenmiiller (Bib!. BoL
BOWL. (1.) Hv!) : o-rpeirrhv avd^iov- funic- ;
ala,] concha. (3.) b?D ! also in A. V. dish. (4.) tree. The Syriac and the Arabic version of Saadias
understand the teasshiir to denote a species of cedar
V*Z& Kparhp- scyphus.
: (5.) n^3T? Kvados-
:
called sherMn, h which is distinguished by the small
cyatliw. Of these words (1) may be taken to in-
size of the cones and the upright growth of the
v73, r°U, as a ua " branches. This interpretation is also sanctioned
dicate chiefly roundness, from
by Gesenius and Concord, p. 134).
Fiirst (Heb.
or globe, placed as an ornament on the tops or cap-
itals of columns (1 K. vii. 41; 2 Chr. iv. 12, 13):
Hiller (Iiierophyt. i. 401) believes the Hebrew word
same word, however, both in the Chaldee, the Syriac, Italiae." Corsica was celebrated for its box-trees
and the Arabic, is occasionally used to express the (l'lin. xvi. 16; Theophrast. //. P. iii. 15,
§ 5), and
berosh.a Although the claim which the box-tree it is well known that the ancients understood the
has to represent the teasshur of Isaiah and Ezekiel art of veneering wood, especially box-wood, with
is far from being satisfactorily established, yet the
ivory, tortoise-shell, Are. (Yirg. JEn. x. 137). This
evidence rests on a better foundation than that passage, therefore, does certainly
seem to favor the
which supports the claims of the sherbin. The opinion that tensshur denotes the wood of the box-
tree (Buxus sempervirens), or perhaps that of the the expression of the text nor the requirements of
only other known species, auxus baharicn; but the narrative. [See Seneh, Amer. ed.] G.
the point must be left undetermined. W. H.
BOZKATH
(niT?a [stow*,] Ba<rvSci0 , :
BO'ZEZ (V:P2> shining, according to the Alex. MaaxaO; [Comp. Ba<rexa0; Aid. Ba<r/ca0;]
conjecture of Gesenius, Thes. p. 223: Bocr«s: [Vat. in Kings, Batxovpwd [Comp. BacrovKwd :] Joseph.
;
Ba^Tjs: Comp. Boffc:] Buses), the name of one of BocrKtd- Bascath, Besecnth), a city of Judah in
the two "sharp rocks" (Hebrew, "teeth of the the Shefelnh; named with Lachish (Josh. xv. 39).
cliff") "between the passages" by which Jonathan It is mentioned once again (2 K. xxii. 1) as the
entered the Philistine garrison. It seems to have native place of the mother of king Josiah. Here
been that on the north side (1 Sam. xiv. 4, 5). it is spelt in the A. V. " Boscath." No trace of
Robinson notices two hills of blunt conical form the site has yet been discovered. G.
in the bottom of the Wady BttweinU just below
Muklunos (i. 441 and iii. 289). Stanley, on the
BOZ'RAH n
( 7%*2. possibly from a root with
the force of restraining, therefore used for a sheep-
other hand, could not make them out (S. <f P. 205,
note). And indeed these hills answer neither to
Q^riS. Bochart reads D^tPSflXS in one word.
« ton?. Rosenmuller regards the expression daughter of box- r'
the city of Jobab the son of Zerah, one of the early plates). (3.) VilQ, Gen. xxxviii.
kings of that nation (Gen. xxxvi. 33; 1 Chr. i. 44). 18, 25, rendered "bracelet," but meaning prob-
This is doubtless the place mentioned in later times ably " a string by which a seal-ring was suspended "
by Isaiah (xxxiv. C, lxiii. 1 (in connection with
(Gesen. s. v.). [(4.) Jltl, <r<ppayls, armilla, Ex.
Edom), and by Jeremiah (xlix. 13, 22), Amos (i.
12), and Micah (ii. 12, "sheep of B.," comp. Is. xxxv. 21, which some (Gesenius, Knobel) under-
xxxiv. 6 the word is here rendered by the Vulgate stand to denote a hook or clasp for fastening the
;
and by Gesenius " fold," " the sheep of the fold," garments of women, others (Rosenmiiller, De Wette.
Ges. Thes. 230). It was known to Eusebius, who Ivalisch a nose-ring. A.] ) —
speaks of Onomasticon (Boaiiip) as a city
it in the
of Esau in the mountains of Idumsea, in connection
with Is. lxiii. 1, and in contradistinction to Bostra
in Persea. There is no reason to doubt that the
modern representative of Bozrah is el-Busaireli,
8»^yajj|j which was first visited by Burckhardt
Gold Egyptian Bracelet. (Wilkinson.)
(Syr. 407; Beszeyra), and on the mountain lies
district to the S. E. of the Dead Sea, between
Men as well as women wore bracelets, as we see
Tufileh and Petra, about half-way between the
from Cant. v. 14, which may be rendered, "His
wrists are circlets of gold full set with topazes."
latter and the Dead Sea. Irby and Mangles men-
tion it under the name of Jpseyra and Bsaida
Layard says of the Assyrian kings: "the arms
were encircled by armlets, and the wrists by brace-
(chap. viii. see also Robinson, ii.
: 167). The
"goats " which Isaiah connects with the place were
found in large numbers in this neighborhood by
Burckhardt (Syr. 405).
2. In his catalogue of the cities of the land of
Moab, Jeremiah (xlviii. 24) mentions a Bozrah as
in "the plain country" (ver. 21, "Itt^Jpn \^S, Assyrian Bracelet Clasp. (Nineveh Marbles.)
t. e. the high level downs on the east of the Dead
Sea and of the lower Jordan, the Belka of the lets, all equally remarkable for the taste and beauty
modern Arabs). Here lay Ileshbon, Nebo, Kirjath- of the design and workmanship. In the centre of
aim, Diblathaim, and the other towns named in the bracelets were stars and rosettes, which were
this passage, and it is here that we presume Bozrah probably inlaid with precious stones" (Xhnrch,
should be sought, and not, as has been lately sug- ii. 323). These may be observed on the sculptures
gested, at Bostra, the Roman city in Bashan, full in the British Museum. [Armlet; Anklet.]
6ixty miles from Ileshbon (Porter's Danutscux, ii. F. W. F.
163, Ac). On the other hand, Bozrah stands by BRAMBLE. [Thorns.]
itself in this passage of Jeremiah, not being men-
tioned in any of the other lists of the cities of BRASS X aKK6s). The word Ht^TO
( (from
Moab, e. g. Num. xxxii. ; Josh. xiii. ; Is. xvi. ; Ez.
the root tPn3, to shine) is improperly translated by
xxy. and the catalogue of Jeremiah is expressly
;
Baid to include cities both "far and near" (xlviii. " brass " in the earlier books of Scripture, since the
24). Some weight also is due to the consideration Hebrews were not acquainted with the compound
of the improbability that a town at a later date so of copper and zinc known by that name. In most
important and in so excellent a situation should be places of the 0. T. the correct translation would be
entirely omitted from the Scripture. Still there is copper (although it may sometimes possibly mean
the fact of the specification of its position as in the bronze (xaKxbs KeKpafievos), a compound of copper
Mishor and also this, that in a country where the and tin. Indeed a simple metal was obviously in-
;
very kings were "sheep masters" (2 K. iii. 4), a tended, as we see from Deut. viii. 9, " out of whose
name signifying a sheep-fold must have been of hills thou mayest dig brass," and Job xxviii. 2,
common occurrence. "Brass is molten out of the stone," and Deut.
For the Koman Bostra, the modern Bttsrn, on xxxiii. 25, "Thy shoes shall be iron and brass,"
the south border of the Haurdn, see Eeland, p. which seems to be a promise that Asher should have
665, and Porter, ii. chap. 12. G. a district rich in mines, which we know to have
been the case, since Euseb. (viii. 15, 17 [de Mart.
BRACELET (iTT3?!f^ ^\\ l0 v, X A.<8ui/). Pal. c. 7]) speaks of the Christians being con-
:
Under Armlet an account given of these orna- demned roTs /caret Qcuvoo rrjs ITaAaKrTiVrjs x a *-~
is
ments, the materials of which they were generally kov yU€ToAAou (Lightfoot, Cent. Chorogr. e. 99).
made, the manner in which they were worn, <fcc. [Asher.]
m5?S, three [four] other words are trans- Copper was known at a very early period, and
Besides
the invention of working it is attributed to Tubal-
mtj? (a chain, atipa, from its being wreathed, kos from xa\cia>) made its application almost uni-
versal among the ancients, as Hesiod expressly says
TntD). It only occurs in this sense in Is. iii. 19, (Diet, of Ant., art. y£«).
BRAYING BREAD 323
The same word used for money, in both Tes- (ii. 3G) that in the former country bread was made
is
taments (Ez. xvi. 36 ;« Matt. x. 9, &c). exclusively of ohjra. which, as in the LXX., he
It is often used in metaphors, e. g. Lev. xxvi. 19, identifies with zea ; but in this he was mistaken,
" I will make your heaven as iron and your earth as wheat was also used (Ex. ix. 32 comp. Wilkin- ;
as brass," i. e. dead and hard. This expression is son's Anc. Egypt, ii. 397). Occasionally the grains
reversed in Deut. xxviii. 23 (comp. Coleridge's " All above mentioned were mixed, and other ingredients,
in a hot and copper sky," &c, Anc. Mar.). "Is such as beans, lentils, and millet, were added (Ez.
my flesh of brass," i. e. invulnerable, Job vi. 12. iv. 9; cf. 2 Sam. xvii. 28); the bread so produced
" They are all brass and iron," i. e. base, ignoble, is called " barley cakes " (Ez. iv. 12, " as barley
impure, Jer. 28. It is often used as an emblem cakes," A. V.), inasmuch as barley was the main
vi.
of strength, Zech. vi. 1; Jer. i. 18, &c. The ingredient. The amount of meal required for a
" brazen thighs " of the mystic image in Nebu- single baking was an ephah or three measures (Gen.
chadnezzar's dream were a fit symbol of the "Axatoi xviii. 6; Judg. vi. 19; 1 Sam. i. 24; Matt. xiii.
Xa^Koxiratvei. No special mention of orichalcum 33), which appears to have been suited to the size
seems to be made in the Bible. of the ordinary oven. The baking was done in
The word x a^ K0 *-'l & a '/0 >' * n ^ev% *• !*>» "• ^
primitive times by the mistress of the house (Gen.
(oi irdSes aurov ofxoioi x a ^- KO ^-'0sey), has excited xvii! ti) or one of the daughters (2 Sam.
xiii. 8):
much difference of opinion. The A. V. renders it female servants were however employed in large
" fine brass," as though it were from ^a\/crf$ and households (1 Sam. viii. 13): it appears always to
Aei'/8a> (smelting brass), or that opelxa^tos, which have been the proper business of women in a family
was so rare as to be more valuable than gold. Boch- Matt. xiii. 33; cf. Plin. xviii.
(Jer. vii. 18, xliv. 19;
art makes it " aes Baking, as a profession, was carried on by
album igneo colore splendens," as 11, 28).
men (Hos. vii. 4, 6). In Jerusalem the bakers con-
though from "]D.s, " shining." It may perhaps be
gregated in one quarter of the town, as we may infer
deep-colored frankincense, as opposed to apyvpoKt- from the names "bakers' street" (Jer. xxxvii. 21),
fiavov (Liddell and Scott's Lex.). F. W. F.
and " tower of the ovens " (Neh. iii. 11, xii. 38,
* BRAYING IN A MORTAR,
Prov. "furnaces," A. V.). In the time of the Herods,
xxvii. 22. [Punishments, III. (a.) 4.] bakers were scattered throughout the towns of Pal-
* BRAZEN SEA, 2 K. xxv. 13; Jer. lii. 17. estine (Ant. xv. 9, § 2). As the bread was made
[Sea, Molten.] in thin cakes, which soon became dry and unpal-
atable, it was usual to bake daily, or when required
BRAZEN SERPENT. [Serpent.] (Gen. xviii. 6; comp. Harmer's Observations, i.
BREAD (DPlb). The preparation of bread
483): reference is perhaps made to this iu the
Lord's prayer (Matt. vi. 11; Luke xi. 3).
as an article of food dates from a very early period. The
It must not, however, be inferred from the use of bread taken by persons on a journey (Gen. xlv. 23;
the word lechem in Gen. iii. 19 (" bread," A. V.) Josh. ix. 12) was probably a kind of biscuit. The
that it was known at the time of the fall, the word process of making bread was as follows: the flour
there occurring in its general sense of food: the was first mixed with water, or perhaps milk (Burck-
earliest undoubted instance of its use is found in hardt's Notes on the Bedouins, i. 58); it was then
Gen. xviii. 6. The corn or grain (~QB9, ^3^0 kneaded (EJV?) with the hands (in Egypt with the
employed was of various sorts. The best bread was
made of wheat, which after being ground produced
the "flour" or "meal" (Http.: &KevpaV, Judg.
-
was also used both in Egypt (Ex. ix. 32) and Pal- iv. 366 ff.; the LXX. inclines to this view, giving
estine (Is. xxviii. 25; Ez. iv. 9; 1 K. xix. 6, LXX. 4yKaTa\finnaTa, " store," A. V., in Deut. xxviii.
iyicpv<plas oAupiTTji). Herodotus indeed states 5, 17; the expression in Ex. xii. 34, however,
" bound up in their clothes," favors the idea of a
a * Translated "filthiness" in Ezek. xvi. 36 (A. V.),
became dough (p^f2:
wooden bowl), until it (Traits,
24). Such cakes were termed m??1!3 (&(vfx.a, Egyptians making cakes of bread sprinkled with seeds.
LXX.), a word of doubtful sense, variously sup- (Wilkinson.)
s. v.), sweetness (Gesen. Thesaur. p. 815), G£ parity (p |7"1 \dyavov Ex. xxix. 2, 23 Lev. ii. 4 : ; ;
(Knobel, Comm. in Ex. xii. 20), while leavened Num. vi. 15-19), and merely coated with oil. Oil
was occasionally added to the ordinary cake (1 K.
bread was called V'?""' 0**" sharpened or soured;
xvii. 12). A more delicate kind of cake is de-
Ex. xii. 39.; Hos. vii. 4). Unleavened cakes were scribed in 2 Sam. xiii. 6, 8, 10; the dough ("flour,"
ordered to be eaten at the passover to commemorate
A. V.) is kneaded a second time, and probably some
the hastiness of the departure (Ex. xii. 15, xiii. 3,
stimulating seeds added, as seems to be implied in
7; Deut. xvi. 3), as well as on other sacred occa-
The the name rYOTl/ (from "2~2^, heart ; compare
1
single person (Luke xi. 5), and consequently one Bread). The baskets
was barely sufficient to sustain life (1 Sam. ii. 36, were placed on a tray
"morsel," A. V.; Jer. xxxvii. 21, "piece," A. V.), and carried on the bak-
er's head (Gen. xl. 16
whence the expression \T~w D"? .., 1 "bread of
Herod, ii. 35; Wilkin-
affliction" (1 K.
27; Is. xxx. 20), referring
xxii. son, ii. 386).
not to the quality (pant plebeio, Grotius), but to >
The methods of bak-
the quantity two hundred would suffice for a party
; An Egyptian carrving cakes /•«l*\ were, and
to the oven. ing (~>~>)
for a reasonable time (1 Sam. xxv. 18; 2 Sam. (Wilkinson.)
xvi. 1). The cakes were sometimes punctured, and still are, very various
BREAD BRICK 325
in the adapted to the various styles of ftita of the Bedouins, a pasty substance (Burck-
East,
life. In the towns, where professional bakers hardt's Notes, i. 57) was prepared in a saucepan,
resided, there were no doubt fixed ovens, in
nti?n~ip (eVxap« : craticula : frying-pan, A.
shape and size resembling those in use among
V. none of which meanings however correspond
;
ing of a stone or metal jar about three feet high, sacred offerings (Lev. ii. 7, vii. 9). As the above-
which wxs heated inwardly with wood (1 K. xvii. mentioned kinds of bread (the last excepted) were
12; Is. xliv. 15; Jer. vii. 18) or dried grass and thin and crisp, the mode of eating them was by
flower-stalks (-^SpTos, Matt. vi. 30); when the fire breaking (Lev. ii. 6; Is. lviii. 7; Lam. iv. 4; Matt,
had burned down, the cakes were applied either in- xiv. 19, xv. 36, xxvi. 26 ; Acts xx. 11 comp. Xen. ;
wardly (Herod, ii. 92) or outwardly: such ovens Anab. vii. 3, § 22, &provs 5i«'/cA.a), whence the
were used by the Egyptians (Wilkinson, ii. 385),
and by the Easterns of Jerome's time {Comment.
term D*^D, to break to give bread (Jer. xvi. =
7): the pieces broken for consumption were called
in Lam. v. 10), and are still common among the
KKaafiara (Matt. xiv. 20; John vi. 12). Old
Bedouins (Wellsted's Travels, i. 350; Niebuhr's
bread is described in Josh. ix. 5, 12, as crumbled
Descript. de Arable, pp. 45, 46).
I' The use of a
single oven several families only took place in (D^ipa : Aquil. e\f/a0upa)fj.fvos'- in frusta com-
by
time of famine (Lev. xxvi. 20). Another species minuli ; A. V. "mouldy," following the LXX. iv-
of oven consisted of a hole dug in the ground, the puiTtwv koI /3e£pcojueVos), a term which is also ap-
sides of which were coated with clay and the bot- plied (1 K. xiv. 3) to a kind of biscuit which easily
tom with pebbles (Harmer, i. 487). Jahn (Ar- crumbled {koXKvoIs- "cracknels," A. V.).
cheeoL i. 9, § 140) thinks that this oven is referred W. L. B.
to in the term D^^S (Lev. xi. 35) ; but the dual BREASTPLATE. [Arms, p. 161; High-
number is an objection to this view. The term priest, I. (2.) a.]
stones, " coals," A. V. ), the term ^317 referring, &cr<pa\Tos), for mortar (Gen. xi. 3; Joseph. Ant. i.
however, not to the mode of baking, but to the 4, § 3). In the alluvial plain of Assyria, both the
rounded shape of the cake (Gesen. Thesaur. p. material for bricks and the cement, winch bubbles
997): the equivalent terms in the LXX. iyupvcplas, up from the ground, and is collected and exported
and in the Vulg. subci.nericius panis, have direct by the Arabs, were close at hand for building pur-
reference to the peculiar mode of baking. The poses, but the Babylonian bricks were more com-
cakes required to be carefully turned during the monly burnt in kilns than those used at Nineveh,
process (Hos. vii. 8: Harmer, i. 488). Other which are chiefly sun-dried like the Egyptian.
methods were used for other kinds of bread ; some Xenophon mentions a wall called the wall of Media,
not far from Babylon, made of burnt bricks set in
were baked on a pan (iH5D^? : Tiryavov sartago bitumen (irAlydois birrais ev atrcpaKra) Kei/xevais)
•
the Greek term survives in the tajen of the Be- 20 feet wide, and 100 feet high. Also another wall
douins), the result being similar to the khubz still of brick 50 feet wide (Diod. ii. 7, 8, 12; Xen.
used among the latter people (Burckhardt's Notes, Anab. ii. 4, § 12, iii. 4, § 11; Nah. iii. 14; La yard,
i. 58) or like the Greek rayr\viai, which were Nineveh, ii. 46, 252, 278). While it is needless to
baked in oil, and eaten warm with honey (Athen. inquire to what place, or to whom the actual inven-
xiv. 55, p. 646); such cakes appear to have been tion of brick-making is to be ascribed, there is per-
chiefly used as sacred offerings (Lev. ii. 5, vi. 14, haps no place in the world more favorable for the
vii. 9; 1 Chr. xxiii. 29). A similar cooking uten- process, none in which the remains of original brick
til was used by Tamar (2 Sam. xiii. 9), named structures have been more largely used in later
n^CPQ (rrtyavou), in which she baked the cakes,
times for building purposes. The Babylonian
bricks are usually from 12 to 13 in. square, and
and then emptied them out in a heap (p^P, not 3£ in. thick. (English bricks are usually 9 in.
poured, asif it had been broth) before Amnon. long, 4J wide, 2£ thick.) They most of them bear
A different kind of bread, probably resembling the the name inscribed in cuneiform character, of
I Neb
BRICK BRICK
uchadnezzar, whose buildings, no doubt, replaced Greeks preferred brick walls in general to stone
those of an earlier age (Layard, Nin. and Bab. pp. (xxxv. 14; Vitruv. ii. 3, 8). Bricks of more than
505, 531). They thus possess more of the charac- 3 palms length and of less than 1 } palm, are men-
ter of tiles (Ez. iv. 1). They were sometimes tioned by the Talmudists (Gesen. s. v.). The Is-
glazed and enamelled with patterns of various col- raelites, in common with other captives, were em-
ors. Semiramis is said by Diodorus to have over- ployed by the Egyptian monarchs in making bricks
laid some of her towers with surfaces of enamelled and in building (Ex. i. 14, v. 7). Kiln-bricks were
brick bearing elaborate designs (Diod. ii. 8). En- not generally used in Egypt, but were dried in the
amelled bricks have been found at Nimroud (Lay- sun, and even without straw are as firm as when
ard, ii. 312). Pliny (vii. 56) says that the Baby- first put up in the reigns of the Amunophs and
lonians used to record their astronomical observa- Thothmes whose names they bear. The usual di-
tions on tiles (coctilibus laterculis). He also, as mensions vary from 20 in. or 17 in. to 14£ in.
well as Vitruvius, describes the process of making long; 8| in. to 6i in. wide; and 7 in. to 4i in.
bricks at Rome. There were three sizes, (1.) Ii ft- thick. When made of the Nile mud, or alluvial
long, 1 ft. broad; (2.) 4 (Greek) palms long, deposit, they required (as they still require) straw
12-135 in. (3.) 5 palms long, 15-16875 in. The to prevent cracking, but those formed of clay taken
breadth of (2.) and (3.) the same. He says the from the torrent beds on the edge of the desert,
« 3 2 1
Figs. 1, 2. Men returning after carrying the bricks. Figs. 3, 6. Taskmasters. Figs. 4, 5. Men carrying bricks.
Figs. 9-13. Digging and mixing the clay or mud. Figs. 8, 14. Making bricks with a wooden mould, d, h.
Fig. 15. Fetching water from the tank, k. At e the bricks (tobi) are said to be made at Thebes.
held together without straw; and crude brick walls constructed of sun-dried bricks, of which many spec-
1
had frequently the additional security of a layer of imens are to be seen in the British Museum with in-
reeds and sticks, placed at intervals to act as bind- scriptions indicating their date and purpose (Birch,
ers (Wilkinson, ii. 194, smaller ed. Birch, Ancient i. 11, 17).
; Among the paintings at Thebes, one
Pottery, i. 14; comp. Her. i. 179). Baked bricks on the tomb of Rekshara, an officer of the court of
however were used, chiefly in places in contact with Thothmes III. (about 1400 b. c), represents the
water. They are smaller than the sun-dried bricks enforced labors in brick-making of captives, who
(Birch, i. 23). A brick-kiln is mentioned as in are distinguished from the natives by the color in
Egypt by the prophet Jeremiah (xliii. 9). A brick which they are drawn. Watching over the labor-
pyramid is mentioned by Herodotus (ii. 136) as the ers are " task-masters," who, armed with sticks,
|
work of King Asychis. Sesostris (ii. 138) is said are receiving the "tale of bricks" and urging on
to have employed his captives in building. Nu- the work. The processes of digging out the clay,
J
merous remains of buildings of various kinds exist, of moulding, and of arranging, are all duly repre-
BRIDE BRIERS 327
sented, and though the laborers cannot be deter- 90, 91, 92, 142, 143). A stone bridge over the
mined to be Jews, yet the similarity of employment Jordan, called the Bridge of the daughters of Jacob,
illustrates the Bible history in a remarkable degree is mentioned by B. de la Brocquiere, A. d. 1432,
(Wilkinson, ii. 11)7; Birch, i. 19; see Aristoph. and a portion of one by Arculf, a. d. 700 (Early
As. 1133, AiyvwTtos ir\ivdo<p6pos\ Ex. v. 17, 18). Trav. in Pal. 8, 300; Burckhardt, Syria, 315;
The Jews learned the art of brick-making in Kobinson, ii. 441). The bridge (yc<pupa) connect-
Egypt, and w e find the use of the brick-kiln in ing the Temple with the upper city, of which Jose-
:
David's time (2 Sam. xii. 31), and a complaint phus speaks (B. J. vi. 6, § 2, Ant. xv. 11, 5),
made by Isaiah that the people built altars of brick seems to have been an arched viaduct (Kobinson, i.
instead of unhewn stone as the law directed (Is. lxv. 288, iii. 224). H. W. P.
3; Ex. xx. -lb). [Pottery.] H. W. P. BRIERS 6
than six Heb. words are No less
BRIDE, BRIDEGROOM. [Marriage.] thus rendered in eleven passages of the O. T. In
BRIDGE. The only mention of a bridge in Heb. vi. 8, it represents jSutavBau. In the 8th chap-
the Canonical Scriptures is indirectly in the proper ter of Judges occurs twice (v. 7, 16) the word
name Geshur ("^272), a district in Bashan, N. E. O^Dp^S, which the LXX. render by ra?s Bap-
of the sea of Galilee. At this place a bridge still Kt\vifjL[Vat. Afiapicriveifx, Bapatcnvei/x], or [Alex.]
exists, called the bridge of the sons of Jacob ° (Ge- BapKo/xfjieiv, [BapaKT)vtt/jL,\ and the A. V. by
sen. s. v.). Absalom was the son of a daughter of briers. This is probably an incorrect rendering.
the king of Geshur (2 Sam. iii. 3, xiii. 37, xiv. 23, The word properly means a threshing machine,
32). The Chaldee paraphrase renders "gates," in consisting of a flat, square, wooden board set with
Nahum ii. 6, "bridges," where, however, dykes or teeth of iron, flint, or fragments of iron pyrites,
weirs are to be understood, which being burst by which are abundant in Palestine. Gesenius con-
inundation, destroyed the walls of Nineveh (Diod. jectures that ^p~12 was the name for 2>yrites, from
ii. 27). Judas Maecaboeus is said to have intended
to make a bridge in order to besiege the town of p"^3, fulguravit ; and hence that ^p^Sl trib- =
Casphor or Caspis, situate near a lake (2
13). Josephus (Ant. v. 1, § 3), speaking of the
Mac. xii. ulapyritis munita =
2T}"M2 (see Robinson, ii. 307).
Jordan at the time of the passage of the Israelites, For P"!JD) Mic. vii. 4, and )r?D, Ez. xxviii.
says it had never been bridged before, ouk c^ukto 24, see under Thorns.
wuSrepov, as if in his own time bridges had been In Ez. ii. 6, we read " Though briers and thorns
made over it, which under the Romans was the
case. (See the notices below.) In Is. xxxvii. 25, be with thee," briers representing the Heb. 0"O""lD,
which is explained by rebels in the margin. The
"^pj &9 J or water, is rendered by LXX. y£<pvpav
riBtifti.
root is 3"nD, rebellis vel refractarius fuit, and the
Permanent bridges over water do not appear to rendering should be " Though rebellious men like
have been used by the Israelites in their earlier thorns be with thee."
times, but we have frequent mention made of fords In Is. Iv. 13, we have " instead of the brier shall
and of their military importance (Gen. xxxii. 22 come up the myrtle-tree," the Heb. word for brier
Josh. ii. 7; Judg. iii. 28, vii. 21, xii. 5; Is. xvi.
being "TEHD, sirpdd: K6vvfa' urtica. K6vv£a
2). West of the Jordan there are few rivers of
is a strong-smelling plant of the endive kind, flea-
importance (Amm. Marc. xiv. 8; Reland, p. 284),
bane, Inula helenium, Linn. (Arist. H. A. iv. 8,
and perhaps the policy of the Jews may have dis-
couraged intercourse with neighboring tribes, for it 28; Diosc. iii. 126). The Peshito has J»Lr
seems uidikely that the skill of Solomon's architects
satureia, savory, wild thyme, Thymus serpyllum, a
was unable to construct a bridge.
plant growing in great abundance in the desert of
Herodotus (i. 180) describes a bridge consisting
Sinai according to Buckhardt (Syr. ii.). Gesenius
of stone piers, with planks laid across, built by Ni-
rejects both flea- bane and wild thyme on etymolog-
tocris, b. c. circ. GOO, connecting the two portions
ical grounds, and prefers urtica, nettle, consider-
of Babylon (see Jer. Ii. 31, 32, 1. 38), and Diodorus
speaks of an arched tunnel under the Euphrates ing 1S"?P to be a compound of ^PO, ussit, and
(ii. 9). Bridges of boats are described also by
"TS^' punxil- He also notices the opinion of
Herodotus (iv. 88, vii. 36; comp. ^Esch. Ptrs. 69,
Ewald (Gram. Crit. p. 520) that Sinapi album,
\iv6Se<rp.os (TxeSia), and by Xenophon (Anab. ii.
4, § 12). A bridge over the Zab, made of wicker- the white mustard, is the plant meant.
In Is. v. 6, we have mention of briers and thorns
work, connecting stone piers, is described by Layard
as springing up in desolated and wasted lands and
(i. 192), a mode of construction used also in South
;
remains still exist (Stanley, 296 ; Irby and Mangles, in one x6pTos, in another &ypa><XTis Itfpa.
a * This bridge spans the Jordan, between theHWek Palestine must always have passed this wa}- See .
and the lake of Galilee, and is called Jisr Bin'it Ya'- Geshur. II.
kub, "Bridge of Jacob's daughters" (Robinson, Phys. b * The eminent Hebraist, Professor Dietrich of
Geogr. p. 155). It is 60 paces long, and has 4 pointed Marburg, treats of the subject of this article under the
Arches. Though comparatively modern, it no doubt head of Dornen- und Diste/namen (pp. 35-68) iu his
stands where a bridge stood in the earliest times, since Abhandlungen fur Semitisctie Wortjbrschung (Leipzig,
much of the traffic and travel between Damascus and 1844). H
328 BRIGANDINE BROOK
There nothing in the etymology cr usage by Robinson (Bib. lies. ii. 221), "as large as a wal-
is
nut near the northern shore, and the Arabs said it
which we can identify the T
^2tt7 with any partic-
,
had put it on before in his tent, which was a Si- divine thing," was employed to express this sub-
cilian cassocke, and vpon that a brigcmdbne made stance. Sulphur is found nearly pure in different
of many foldes of canuas with oylet-holes, which parts of the world, and generally in volcanic dis-
was gotten among the spoiles at the battell of tricts it exists in combination with metals and in
;
Issus" (North's Plutarch, Alex, p. 735, ed. 1595). various sulphates; it is very combustible, and is
"Hym selfe with the Duke of Buckingham stode used in the manufacture of gunpowder, matches,
harnessed in olde euil-fauoured Briganders" (Hall, &c. Pliny (/. c.) says one kind of sulphur was
Edw. V., fol. 15 b, ed. 1550). The forms brigan- employed " ad ellychnia conficienda." W. H.
taiUt and brigantine also occur. W . A. W * BRING. " To bring a person on his way "
BRIMSTONE (fYH.?^" e^oV-
gqphriik: or "journey " used in the A. V. in the sense of
is
sulphur). There can be no question that the He- to conduct or accompany him, for a part or the
brew word which occurs several times in the Bible whole of the distance, often with the associated
is correctly rendered " brimstone; " b this meaning idea of fitting him out with the necessary supplies
is fully corroborated by the old versions. The word (rivti? : ffvfjurpoireinra;,irpoTrefj.irW- deduco, prcc-
is very frequently associated with "fire:" "The
mitto; Gen. 16; Acts xv. 3, xxi. 5; Rom. xv.
xviii.
Lord rained upon Sodom and Gomorrah brimstone 24; 1 Cor. xvi. 6; 2 Cor. i. 16; Tit. Hi. 13; 3
and fire out of heaven" (Gen. xix. 24); see also John 6). A.
Ps. xi. 6 Ez. xxxviii. 22.
; In Job xviii. 15, and
Is. xxx. 33, " brimstone " occurs alone, but no
* BROIDER. See Embroiderer. In
doubt in a sense similar to that in the foregoing many modern
A. V., broidered in editions of the
passages, namely, as a synonymous expression with 1 Tim. ii. broidered hair " 9 — " not with
is a —
lightning, as has been observed by Le Clerc (Dis- corruption of brvided, the rendering of the ed. of
sert, de Sodomce subversione, Commentario [in] 1611 and other early editions. Broided is an old
Pentateuch, adjecta, § iv.), Michaelis, Rosenmiiller, form of braided. The marginal rendering is
and others. There is a peculiar sulphurous odor "plaited;" Gr. iv ir\ey/j.a<riv; Vulg. in tortis
which is occasionally perceived to accompany a crinibus. A.
thunder-storm the ancients draw particular atten-
;
BROOK. Four Hebrew words are thus ren-
tion to it: see Pliny (N. H. xxxv. 15), "Fulmina
dered in the 0. T.
ac fulgura quoque sulphuris odorem habent;
" Sen-
eca (Q. not. ii. 53), and Persius (Sat. ii. 24, 25). 1. p^CS, aphik (Ps. xlii. 1 [2]), which properly
Hence the expression in the Sacred writings " fire denotes a violent torrent, sweeping through a moun-
and brimstone " to denote a storm of thunder and tain gorge. It occurs only in the poetical books,
lightning. The stream of brimstone in Is. xxx. 33 and is derived from a root aphak, signifying " to
is, no doubt, as Lee (Htb. Lex. p. 123) has well be strong." Elsewhere it is rendered "stream,"
expressed it, " a rushing stream of lightning." "channel," "river."
From Deut. xxix. 23, " the whole land thereof 2. ~l'lW
s
yeor (Is. xix. 6, 7, 8, xxiii. 3, 10), an
like the overthrow of Sod-
,
is brimstone
Egyptian word, generally applied to the Nile, or to
om," it would appear that native sulphur itself is
Sulphur is found the canals by which Egypt was watered.
The only
alluded to (see also Is. xxxiv. 9).
this usage are found in Dan. xii. 5,
at the present time in different parts of Palestine, exceptions to
6, 7.
but in the greatest abundance on the borders of
the Dead Sea. " We picked up pieces," says Dr. 3. b^tt, miccd (2 Sam. xvii. 20), which oc-
curs but once, and then, according to the most
a Probably allied to ""IS:
1
,
a general name for such probable conjecture, signifies a " rivulet," or small
trees as abound with resinous inflammable exudations ;
stream of water. The etymology of the word is
raiuing of brimstone."
BROTHER BROTHER 329
obscure. The Targum erroneously renders it language alone, to take " brethren " as meaning
" Jordan." "relatives;" and therefore the a priori presump-
tion is in favor of a literal acceptation of the term.
4. 7n3, nuchal, a term applied both to the
We have dwelt the more strongly on this point,
dry torrent bed (Num. xxi. 12; Judg. xvi. 4) and
because it seems to have been far too easily assumed
to the torrent itself (1 K. xvii. 3). It corresponds
that no importance is to be attached to the mere
with the Arabic wddy, the Greek xeifxtipfrovs, the fact of their being invariably called Christ's breth-
Italian Jiumtra, and the Indian nullah. For fur-
ren; whereas this consideration alone goes far to
ther information, see River. \Y. A. W. prove that they really were so.
BROTHER (OS : uSe\(p6s)- The Hebrew There are, however, three traditions respecting
word is used in various senses in the 0. T., as (1.)
them. They are first mentioned (Matt. xiii. 56)
in a manner which would certainly lead an un-
Any kinsman, and not a mere brother e. y. nephew ;
The word a5e\<p6s has a similar range of mean- phaeus (or Clopas
—
not Cleopas, see Alford, Gr.
Test. Matt. x. 3) and Mary, the sister of the Vir-
ings in the N. T., and is also used for a disciple
(Matt. xxv. 40, &c); a fellow- worker, as in St.
gin. This tradition is accepted by Papias, a Jerome
(Cat. Script. Kcc. 2), Augustine, and the Latin
Paul's Epp. passim; and especially a Christian.
Indeed, we see from the Acts that it was by this
Church generally, and is now the one most com-
name that Christians usually spoke of each other. monly received. Yet there seem to be overwhelm-
The name Christian was merely used to describe ing arguments against it: for (1.) The reasoning
them objectively, i. e. from the Pagan point of entirely depends on three very doubtful assumptions,
view, as we see from the places where it occurs,
namely, (a.) That "his mother's sister" (John xix.
with " Mary, the wife
namely, Acts [xi. 26], xxvi. 28, and 1 Pet. iv. 25) must be in apposition
of Cleophas," which would be improbable, if only on
16.
The Jewish schools distinguish between "bro- the ground that it supposes two sisters to have had
ther" and "neighbor;" "brother" meant an Is- the same name, a supposition substantiated by no
raelite by blood, " neighbor " a proselyte. They parallel cases [Wieseler (comp. Mark xv. 40) thinks
allowed neither title to the Gentiles; but Christ that Salome, the wife of Zebedee, is intended by
and the Apostles extended the name " brother " to "his mother's sister"], (b.) That "Mary, the
all Christians, and " neighbor " to all the world,
mother of James," was the wife of Alphoeus, i. e.
1 Cor. v. 11; Luke x. 29, 30 (Lightfoot, Hor. that the James intended is 'Ia/ca>/3os 6 'A\<f>aiov.
(c.) That Cleophas, or more correctly Clopas, whose
Uebr. ad Matt. v. 22).
We must now briefly touch on the difficult and wife Mary was, is identical with Alphseus; which
interesting question as to who were " the brethren may be the case, although it cannot be proved.
his cousins were meant, it would lie signally
of the Lord," and pass in review the theories re- (2.) If
" neither did his brethren believe on
specting them. And first we would observe that in untrue that
" (John vii. 5 ff.), for in all probability three
arguing at all against their being the real brethren him
of Jesus, far too much stress has been laid on the out of the four (namely, James the Less,
Matthew (or
assumed indefiniteness of meaning attached to the Levi), and Jude, the brother (?) of James) were
word "brother" in Scripture. In all the adduced actual Apostles. We
do not see how this objection
cases it will be seen that, when the word is used in can be removed. (3.) It is quite unaccountable
that these " brethren of the Lord," if they were
any but its proper sense, the context prevents the
possibility of confusion and indeed in the only two
only his cousins, should be always mentioned in
;
exceptional instances (not metaphorical), namely, conjunction with the Virgin Mary, and never
with
those in which Lot and Jacob are respectively their own mother Mary, who was both alive and
in
word is only extended so far as to mean " nephew; " generally spoken of as distinct from the Apostles
and it must be remembered that even these excep- see Acts i. 14; 1 Cor. ix. 5; and Jude (17) seems
tions are quoted from a single book, seventeen cen- to clearly imply that he himself was
not an Apostle.
turies earlier than the gospels. It seems to us that these four objections are quite
If then the word
" brethren," as repeatedly applied to James, &c, adequate to set aside the very slight grounds for
really mean "cousins" or "kinsmen," it will be identifying the
"brethren of the Lord " with the
" sons of Alphseus."
the only instance of such an application in which
no data are given to correct the laxity of meaning. II. A
second tradition accepted by Hilary.
Again, no really parallel case can be quoted from Epiphanius, and the Greek fathers generally, makes
the N. T., except in merely rhetorical and tropical them the sons of Joseph by a former marriage with
passages; whereas when "nephews" are meant a certain Escha or Salome of the tribe of Judah
they are always specified as such, as in Col. iv. 10 indeed Epiphanius (Hceres. xxix. § 4) even men-
Acts xxiii. 16 (Kitto, The Apostles, &c, p. 165 tions the supposed order of birth of the four sons and
ff.). There is therefore no adequate warrant in the two daughters. But Jerome ( Com. in Matt. xii. 49
a * Not the primitive bishop of this name, of Hierap- century. Prof. Lightfoot (on Galat. p. 259) has pointed
)lis,but a mediaeval namesake who lived in the 11th out this slip of the writer. H.
330 BROTHER BUKKI
slights this as amere conjecture, borrowed from the III. and notes; Kuinoel and Alford on Matt. xiii.
" deliramenta Apocryphoruni," and Origen says 56; Lightfoot, Hor. Hebr. Matt. v. 22, <fcc, &c).
that it was taken from the Gospel of St. Peter. F. W. F.
The only shadow of ground for its possibility is the * On this question of " the brethren of the Lord,"
apparent difference of age between Joseph and the Dr. Lange maintains the cousin-theory, but with a
Virgin. peculiar modification. He derives the cousinship
III. They are assumed
have been the offspring not from the mothers (the two Marys being sisters),
to
of a levirate marriage between Joseph and the wife but from the fathers (Clopas or Alphseus and Joseph
of his deceased brother Clopas. But apart from all being brothers). See his Bibelwerk, i. 201, and
evidence, it is obviously idle to examine so arbitrary Dr. Schaff 's Translation, Professor Light-
p. 255.
an assumption. foot thinks the words on the cross, " Woman, be-
The arguments against their being the sons of hold thy son," said of John the Evangelist, are
the Virgin after the birth of our Lord, are founded decisive, as showing that the mother of Jesus had
on —(1. The almost constant tradition of her no sons of her own, and hence according to his view
)
aenrapdevia- St. Basil (Serm. de S. Nativ. ) even " the brethren " must have been sons of Joseph by
records a story that " Zeehary was slain by the Jews a former marriage (St. Paul's Ep. to the Galat.,
pp.
between the porch and the altar " for affirming her 241-275). Of these two explanations (the cousin-
to be a Virgin after, as well as before the birth of theory being regarded as out of the question) Dr.
her most holy Son (Jer. Taylor, Duct. Dubit. II. 3, Schaff (on Lange, pp. 256-260, where he has a full
4). Still the tradition was not universal: it was note) prefers the latter, partly as agreeing better
denied, for instance, by large numbers called Anti- with the apparent age of Joseph, the husband of
dicomarianitse and Helvidiani. To quote Ez. xliv. Mary (who disappears so early from the history),
2, as any argument on the question is plainly ab- and also with the age of the brothers who seem at
surd. (2.) On the fact that on the cross Christ times to have exercised a sort of eldership over
commended his mother to the care of St. John ,•
with those of the sons of Alphseus. This argument mitting the mother in his last moments to the care
loses all weight, when we remember the constant of John, which this view is said to make irrecon-
recurrence of names in Jewish families, and the ex- concilable with " the claims of filial piety," if Mary
treme commonness of these particular names. In had sons of her own, it is not easy in point of prin-
the N. T. alone there may be at least five contem- ciple to make out the material difference (affirmed
porary Jameses, and several Judes, not to mention by those who suppose a previous marriage of Joseph
the 21 Simons, 17 Joses, and 16 Judes mentioned between such claims of her own sons and those of
by Josephus. step-sons. " The perpetual virginity of Mary,"
On the other hand, the arguments for their being says the late Prof. Edwards, " is inferred from half
our Lord's uterine brothers are numerous, and, a verse (Matt. i. 25), which by natural implication
1 iken collectively, to an unprejudiced mind almost teaches the direct contrary." This question is
irresistible, although singly they are open to objec- brought up again under James. H.
tions: e. g. (1.) The word irpwroWoKos vl6s, Luke
ii. 7. (2.) Matt. i. 25, ouk eyivuHTKtv aiir^v eus
* BRUIT, Jer. x. 22; Nah. iii. 19, is used in
the sense, now obsolete, of " report," " tidings."
ov (reKff, k. t. A-, to which Alford justly remarks,
The A. V. in the passages referred to follows the
only one meaning could have been attached but for
Genevan version. A.
preconceived theories about the aenrapBtvia- (3.)
The general tone of the gospels on the subject, BUBAS'TIS. [Pibeseth.]
since they are constant/)/ spoken of with the Virgin * BUCKLER. [Amis, II. 5; Shield.]
Mary, and with no shadow of a hint that they were
not her own children (Matt. xii. 46 Mark iii. 31,
;
BUK'KI ("i?2 [contracted for ITTJgl ; see
&c). It can, we think, hardly be denied that any- infra] Bokki- [Alex.] Bwkcu; [Vat. Bcoe, Bobcat ']
:
one of these arguments is singly stronger than those Bocci). 1. Son of Abishua and father of L'zzi,
produced on the other side. fifth from Aaron in the line of the high-priests in
To sum up then, we have seen (I.) that "the 1 Chr. v. 31, vi. 36 (vi. 5, 51, A. V.), and in the
brethren of the Lord " could hardly have been iden- genealogy of Ezra, Ezr. vii. 4, and 1 Esdr. viii. 2,
tical with the sons of Alphseus, and (II.) that we where he is called Bokk<x, Boccas, which is cor-
have no grounds for supposing them to have been rupted to Borith, 2 Esdr. i. 2. Whether Bukki
the sons of Joseph by a previous, or (III.) a levi- ever filled the office of high-priest, we are not in-
rate marriage that the arguments in favor of their
; formed in Scripture. Epiphanius in his list of the
being actual brothers of our Lord are cogent, and ancestors of Jehoiada, whom he fancifully supposes
that the tradition on the other side is not suffi- to be brother of Elijah the Tishbite, omits both
ciently weighty or unanimous to set them aside. Bukki and Abishua (Advers. Melchizedec. iii.).
Finally, this tradition of the perpetual virginity of Josephus (Ant. viii. 1, § 3) expressly says that all
the mother of our Lord (which any one may hold, of Aaron's line between Joseph (Abishua ) the high-
if he will, as one of the " pie credibilia," Jer. Tay- priest, and Zadok who was made high-priest in the
lor,Duct. Dub. II. 3, 6) is easily accounted for by reign of David, were private persons (iStaiTevaavTes)
the general error on the inferiority of the wedded i. «. not high- priests, and mentions by name " Bukki
to the virgin state: Scripture in no way requires the son of Joseph the high-priest," as the first of
us to believe and since Mary's previous virginity those who lived a private life, while the pontifical
it,
is alone requisite to the Gospel narrative, we must dignity was in the house of Ithamar. But in v.
regard it as a question of mere curiosity. [James; 11, § 5, Josephus says as expressly that Abishua (there
Jobes; Juije.] (Pearson, On the Creed, Art. called Abiezer) having received the high-priesthood
BUKKIAH BURIAL 331
from his father Phinehas, transmitted it to his own most synonymous with 7217 is ~!5, the latter sig-
sou Bukki, who was succeeded by Uzzi, after whom
nifying generally a young bull of two years old,
it passed to "We may conclude therefore that
1-2. 1 i -
of our Lord, eh. x. A. C. H. All the above words refer to domesticated cattle,
2. (Bcikx'P IT at -
X
6 'pl! Alex Bokki: Bocti.) which formed of old, as now. an important part of
-
Son of Jogli, "prince" (WiW") of the tribe of the wealth of the people of Palestine. In Is. li. 20
Dan, one of the ten men chosen to apportion the the word S1FI occurs, and is rendered "wild bull,"
land of Canaan between the tribes (Num. xxxiv. 22). but " wild ox " in Deut. xiv. 5. The LXX. have
BUKKI'AH (^n*|7a [wasting from Jeho- aevTAiov in the former passage and opvya in the
latter. It was possibly one of the larger species of
vah], Bukkijahu: BovKias [Vat. -/c«i-] Alex. Bok-
Ktas, [KoKKias-] Bocciau), a Kohathite Levite, of
;
25), cow (Ez. iv. 15), oxen (Gen. xii. 16). Hence and rush," equivalent to high and low alike (the
in Deut. xxi. 3, "Ip2 i""l?3?? is a heifer ; Ex. LXX. have p.i-ya.v ko.1 /xi/cpoV in one passage, apxw
xxix. 1, ~!p2")2 "15, a young bullock: and in koX re\os in the other), and in Is. lviii. 5,^1£22S
is rendered bulrush. W. D.
Gen. xviii. 7, simply "1p3""}3, rendered a calf
* The remainder of this article in the English
in A. V. It is derived from an unused root,
edition is entirely superseded by the art. Reed,
~1p2, to cleave, hence to plough, as in Latin ar- which see. A.
mentum is aramentum. * BULRUSHES, ARK OF. [Moses.]
~niC differs from *^p2 in the same way as BUN AH (HD^2 [discretion]: Bauad; [Vat.
ntT, a sheep, from "|M!J, a flock of sheep. It is Bavata- Aid. Beutvd'-] Buna), a son of Jerahmeel,
of the family of Pharez in Judah (1 Chr. ii. 25).
a generic name, but almost always signifies one
head of homed cattle, without distinction of age or BUN'NI. 1. [built]: Bonni), one 032 of
sex. It is very seldom used collectively. The the Levites in the time of Nehemiah (Neh. ix. 4);
Chaldee form of the word, ""Hn, occurs in Ezr. vi. possibly the same person is mentioned in x. 15.
fid's.
(Sull. c. 17) says @djp oi «f>otVi/c«s ri)v {Sovv xa-
It probably the same word as rat/pus,
[FA. 3 Boi'j'ui': Comp. Bovva.: BonL] Another
2.
\ovffi. is
Levite, but of earlier date than the preceding (Neh.
taurus, Germ, stier, Engl, steer. The root "I^IC
xi. 15). The name, ^'Z, is also slightly different.
18), and of one three years old (Gen. xv. 9). Al- BURIAL, SEPULCHRES, TOMBS. The
Jews uniformly disposed of the corpse by entomb-
o The ' princes " are only specified to seven tribes ment where possible, and failing that, by interment
out of the ten not to Judah, Simeon, or Benjamin.
: extending this respect to the remains even of the
832 BURIAL BURIAL
slain enemy and malefactor (1 K. xi. 15 ; Deut. xxi. the favorite haunt of idolatry, should be polluted by
23), in the latter case by express provision of law. burying there (comp. 2 K. xxiii. 16). Such was
Since this was the only case so guarded by Mosaic also the " Potter's Field " (Matt, xxvii. 7), which
precept, it may be concluded that natural feeling had perhaps been wrought by digging for clay into
was relied on as rendering any such general injunc- holes serviceable for graves.
tion superfluous. Similarly, to disturb remains The Mishnaic description of a sepulchre, com-
was regarded as a barbarity, only justifiable in the plete according to Rabbinical notions, somewhat
is
case of those who had themselves outraged religion as follows : a cavern about 6 cubits square, or 6 by
(2 K. xxiii. 16, 17 Jer. viii. 1, 2).
; The Rabbis 8, from three sides of which are recessed longitud-
quote the doctrine " dust thou art, and unto dust
inally several vaults, called E"OT3, each large
shalt thou return," as a reason for preferring to
entomb or inter their dead but that preferential enough for a corpse. On the fourth side the cavern
;
practice is older than the Mosaic record, as traceable is approached through a small open covered court,
in patriarchal examples, and continued unaltered by or portico, "1!£n, of a size to receive the bier and
any Gentile influence; so Tacitus (Hist. v. 5) notices bearers. In some such structures the demoniac may
that it was a point of Jewish custom, corpora con- have housed. The entry from this court to that
dere quttni crcmare.
cavern was closed by a large stone called 7712,
On this subjectwe have to notice: (1) the place
as capable of being rolled, thus confirming the
of burial, and shape; (2) the mode of burial;
its site
Evangelistic narrative. Sometimes several such
(3) the prevalent notions regarding this duty; [and
caverns, each with its recesses, were entered from
(4) the rapidity with which burial took place after
the several sides of the same portico. (Mishna, Bava
death.]
Bathra, 6, 8, quoted by J. Nicolaus, de Sepulchris
1. A natural cave enlarged and adapted by exca- Hebrceorum [lib. iii. c. xi.] Such a tomb is that de- . )
vation, or an artificial imitation of one, was the scribed in Buckingham's Travels in Arabia (p. 158),
standard type of sepulchre. This was what the and those known to tradition as the " tombs of the
structure of the Jewish soil supplied or suggested. kings " (see below). But earlier sepulchres were
A distinct and simple form of sepulture as con- doubtless more simple, and, to judge from 2 K.
trasted with the complex and elaborate rites of xiii. 21, did not prevent mutual contact of remains.
Egypt clings to the region of Palestine and varies Sepulchres were marked sometimes by pillars, as
but little with the great social changes between the that of Rachel; or by pyramids, as those of the
periods of Abraham and the Captivity. Jacob and Asmoneans at Modin (Joseph. Ant. xiii. 6, 7); and
Joseph, who both died in Egypt, are the only known had places of higher and lower honor. Like tem-
instances of the Egyptian method applied to patri- ples, they were, from their assumed inviolability,
archal remains. Sepulchres, when the owner's sometimes made the depositaries of treasures (Da
means permitted it, were commonly prepared before- Saulcy, ii. 183). We find them also distinguished
hand, and stood often in gardens, by roadsides, or by a "title " (2 K. xxiii. 17). Such as were not
even adjoining houses. Kings and prophets alone otherwise noticeable were scrupulously "whited"
were probably buried within towns (1 K. ii. 10, xvi. (Matt, xxiii. 27) once a year, after the rains before
6, 28; 2 K. x. 35, xiii. 9; 2 Chr. xvi. 14, xxviii. the passover, to warn passers by of defilement (Hot-
27; 1 Sam. xxv. 1, xxviii. 3). Sarah's tomb and tinger, Cippi Jkbr. [Ugolini, xxxiii.] p. 1034; Ros-
Eachel's seem to have been chosen merely from the teusch de Sepul. Calce notat. Ugolini, xxxiii.).
accident of the place of death; but the successive 2. With regard to the mode of burial we should
interments at the former (Gen. xlix. 31) are a remember that our impressions, as derived from the
chronicle of the strong family feeling among the
O. T., are those of the burial of persons of rank or
Jews. Itwas the sole fixed spot in the unsettled public eminence, whilst those gathered from the
patriarchal life and its purchase and transfer, mi- N. T. regard a private station. But in both cases
;
nutely detailed, are remarkable as the sole transac- " the manner of the Jews " included the use of
tion of the kind, until repeated on a similar occasion spices, where they could command the means. Thus
at Shechem. Thus it was deemed a misfortune or Asa lay in a " bed of spices " (2 Chr. xvi. 14). A
an indignity, not only to be deprived of burial (Is. portion of these were burnt in honor of the de-
xiv. 20; Jer. passim; 2 K. ix. 10), but, in a lesser
ceased, and to this use was probably destined part
degree, to be excluded from the family sepulchre of the 100 pounds weight of "myrrh and aloes"
(I K. xiii. 22), as were Uzziah the royal leper, and in our Lord's case. On high state occasions the
Manasseh (2 Chr. xxvi. 23, xxxiii. 20). Thus the vessels, bed, and furniture used by the deceased
remains of Saul and his sons were reclaimed to rest were burnt also. Such was probably the " great
in his father's tomb. Similarly it was a mark of a
burning " made for Asa. If a king was unpopular
profound feeling towards a person not of one's family or died disgraced (e. y. Jehoram, 2 Chr. xxi. 19
to wish to be buried with him (Ruth i. 17 1 K.
Joseph. Ant. ix. 5, § 3), this was not observed. In
;
kindred sepulchres are common in many eastern hasty precaution against hostile violence. Even
branches of the human race. Cities soon became
then the bones were interred, and re-exhumed for
populous and demanded cemeteries (comp. the term solemn entombment. The ambiguous word in Am.
TTokvdvUpiov, Ez. xxxix. 15), which were placed
without the walls such an one seems intended by
;
10, 1ID~IDD, rendered in the A. V. " he that
vi.
the expression in 2 K. xxiii. 6, " the graves of the burneth Mm," probably means " the burner of per-
children of the people," situated in the valley of thefumes in his honor," i. e. his near relation, on
Kedron or of Jehoshaphat. Jeremiah (vii. 32, xix whom such duties devolved not, as Winer (s. v. ;
11) threatens that the eastern valley called Tophet, Begraben) and others think, " the burner of the
BURIAL BURIAL 333
corpse." " For a great mortality never causes men separately. Previously to this being done, spices
to burn corpses where it is not the custom of the were applied to the corpse in the form of ointment,
country nor
; did the custom vary among the Jews or between the folds of the linen hence our Lord's
;
on such an occasion (Ez. xxxix. 12-14). It was remark, that the woman had anointed his body,
the office of the next of kin to perform and preside wpos to ivTa<pid^tv, " with a view to dressing it
over the whole funereal office; but a company of in ivrdcpia;" not, as in A. V. "for the
these
public buriers, originating in an exceptional neces- burial." For the custom of mourners visiting the
sity (Ez. /. <•.), had become, it seems, customary in sepulchre, see Mourning; for that of frequenting
the times of the N. T. (Acts v. 6, 10). The closing tombs for other purposes, see Necromancy.
of the eyes, kissing, and washing the corpse (Gen. 3. The precedent of Jacob's and Joseph's remains
xlvi. 4, 1. I; Acts ix. 37), are customs common to being returned to the land of Canaan was followed,
all nations. Coffins were but seldom used, and if in wish at least, by every pious Jew. Following a
used were open; but fixed stone sarcophagi were similar notion, some of the Eabbins taught that
common in tombs of rank. The bier, the word for only in that land could those who were buried ob-
which in the 0. T. is the same as that rendered tain a share in the resurrection which was to usher
bed [see Bed], was borne by the nearest relatives, in Messiah's reign on earth. Thus that land was
ami followed by any who wished to do honor to the Bailed by them, " the land of the living," and the
dead. The grave-clothes (60oVia, evrdcpia) were sepulchre itself, " the house of the living." Some
probably of the fashion worn in life, but swathed even feigned that the bodies of the righteous, wher-
and fastened with bandages, and the head covered ever else buried, rolled back to Canaan under ground,
ifcl
Plan of the Tombs called " Tombs of the Prophets.'
and found there only their appointed rest (J. Nico- Prophets " will be best explained by the preceding
laus, Sepulchr. Ileb. [lib. iii. c] xiii. 1). Tombs plan, taken from Porter (p. 147), and of which he
die
were, in popular belief, led by the same teaching, gives the following description :
—
invested with traditions. Thus Machpelah is stated " Through a long descending gallery, the first
(Lightfoot, Centuria Chorograpkica, s. v. Hebron) part of which is winding, we enter a circular cham-
to have been the burial-place not only of Abraham ber about 24 ft. in diameter and 10 high, having
and Sarah, but also of Adam and Eve; and there a hole in its roof. From this chamber two parallel
was probably at the time of the N. T. a spot fixed high and 5 wide, are carried south-
galleries, 10 ft.
upon by tradition as the site of the tomb of every wards through the rock for about 60 ft. a third di- ;
prophet of note in the 0. T. To repair and adorn verges S. E., extending 40 ft. They are connected
these was deemed a work of exalted piety (Matt. by two cross-galleries in concentric curves, one at
xxiii. 2:1). The scruples of the Scribes extended their extreme end, the other in the middle. The
even to the burial of the ass whose neck was broken outer one is 115 ft. long and has a range of thirty
(Ex. xxxiv. 20), and of the first-boin of cattle. (R. niches on the level of its floor, radiating outwards.
Maimon. dt Primogen. ch. iii. § 4, quoted by J. Two small chambers, with similar niches, also open
Nicolaus, <le Sepulchr. Ileb. [lib. iii. c] xvi. 1, 3, 4). into it."
The neighborhood of Jerusalem is thickly studded The celebrated « Tombs of the Kings " have re-
with tombs, many of them of great -antiquity. A ceived this name on account of their remarkable
succinct but valuable account of them is given in character; but they are supposed by Kobinson and
Porter's Handbook (p. 143 ff.); but it is only nec- Porter to be the tomb of Helena, the widowed
essary in this article to refer to two or three of the queen of Monobazus king of Adiabene. She be-
most celebrated. The so-called " Tombs of the came a proselyte to Judaism, and fixed her resi-
a * Dr. Pusey assigns good reasons for abiding by 10 (Minor Prophets, Part III. p. 207). See also Baur,
the more obvious sense of the expression in Am. vi. Der Prophet Amos, p. 3^6 H.
334 BURIAL BURIAL
dence at Jerusalem, where she relieved many of the 92 long by 87 wide.
ft. On the western side is a
poor during the famine predicted by Agabus in the vestibule or "porch 39 feet wide. The open front
days of Claudius Caesar (Acts xi. 28), and built for was supported by two columns in the middle.
herself a tomb, as we learn from Josephus. (On Along the front extend a deep frieze and cornice,
Helena and her tomb see Joseph. Ant. xx. 2, § 1 the former richly ornamented. At the southern
ff., 4, § 3; B. J. v. 2, § 2, 4, § 2; Paus. viii. 1G, side of the vestibule is the entrance to the tomb.
§ 5 Robinson, i. 361 ff. )
; Into the question of the The room is a mere antechamber 18 J ft. by
first
ticulars see Porter, from whose Handbook the pre- (Num. xix. 11 ff.). We have a striking instance
ceding account is taken.) of this usage in the account of Ananias and Sap-
The so-called " Zechariah," said to have phira, who were borne to the grave as soon as the
Tomb of
been constructed in honor of Zechariah, who was bodies could be laid out and shrouded for that pur-
slain " between the temple and the altar
" in the pose (Acts v. 1 ff.). The deaths in this case were
reisn of Joash (2 Chr. xxiv. 21 Matt, xxiii. 35), extraordinary, and possibly that fact may have has-
;
is held in great veneration by the Jews. It is tened the burial somewhat ; though even under or-
doubtful, however, whether it be a tomb at all, and dinary circumstances a person among the Jews was
the style of architecture can scarcely be earlier than
12-15). See Denkblcitter, p. 325. were unbloody), and from "peace-offerings" (both
When the body was embalmed, as among the of the eucharistic kind), because only a portion of
Egyptians, the same reason for a speedy burial did them were consumed. (See 1 K. iii. 15, viii. 64,
not exist. Hence Joseph, after the 40 days spent &c.)
in the process of embalming the body of Jacob his The meaning, whole burnt-of-
therefore, of the
father, waited 30 (or 70)° days longer, before he fering was that which
the original idea of all
is
proceeded to Canaan to deposit the remains in the sacrifice, the offering by the sacrificer of himself,
cave of Machpelah (Gen. 1. 1 ft'.). De Wette refers soul and body, to God, the submission of his will
to Gen. xxiii. 2-4 and xxv. 9, as showing that the to the Will of the Lord. See Ps. xl. 10, li. 17, 19,
ancient Hebrews did not hasten burial, like the and compare the more general treatment of the
later Hebrews (Lehrb. der hebraisvli-jiid. Archaol- subject under the word Sacrifice. It typified
Offie, p. 400, 4te Aufl.); but the nassages hardly (see Heb. v. 1, 3, 7, 8) our Lord's offering (as es-
warrant that conclusion. Abraham's plea, " Let me pecially in the temptation and the agony), the per-
bury my dead out of my sight," indicates at least fect sacrifice of his own human will to the Will of
impatience of any needless delay. H. his Father. As that offering could only be accepted
* BURNING. See Burial, 2; Punish- from one either sinless or already purified from sin,
therefore the burnt-offering (see Ex. xxix. 36, 37,
ments, III. (a.) 3.
38; Lev. viii. 14, 18, is. 8, 12, xvi. 3, 5, Ac.) was
BURNT-OFFERING (nb^ or nViy, always preceded by a sin-offering. So also we
V s y3, " perfect " Christians, because the sin-offering has been made
and in poetical passages i. e.
once for all for us, offer the continual burnt-offering
d\oKapirci!cns (Gen.), d\0Kavrw/j.a (Ex. and Lev.,
of ourselves, " as a living sacrifice, holy and accept-
&c), LXX. ; 6\0KavTe>ixa, N. T.: hohcaustum,
(See Rom. xii. 1.)
able to the Lord."
Vulg.). The original derivation of the word
In accordance with this principle it was enacted
7V7V is from the root HvJ, " ascends; " and it is that with the burnt-offering a "meat-offering" (of
applied to the offering, which was wholly consumed flour and oil) and "drink-offering" of wine should
by fire on the altar, and the whole of which, except be offered, as showing that, with themselves, men
the refuse ashes, " ascended " in the smoke to God. dedicated also to God the chief earthly gifts with
It corresponds therefore in sense, though not exactly which He had blessed them. (Lev. viii. 18, 22,
in form, to the word 6\oKavrwft.a, " whole burnt- 26, ix. 16, 17, xiv. 20 ; Ex. xxix. 40 ; Num. xxviii.
offering," from which the name of the sacrifice in 4, 5.)
modem languages is taken. Every sacrifice wa3 in The ceremonial of the burnt-offering is given in
part "a burnt-offering," because, since fire was the detail in the book of Leviticus. The animal was
chosen manifestation of God's presence, the portion to be a male unblemished, either a young bullock,
of each sacrifice especially dedicated to Him was ram, or goat, or, in case of poverty, a turtle- dove
consumed by fire. But the term is generally re or pigeon. It was to be brought by the offerer
stricted to that which is properly a " whole burnt •• i)/ his
own voluntary will" and slain by himself,
offering," the whole of which was so offered and after he had laid his hand upon its head, to make
so consumed. it his own representative, on the north side of the
The burnt-offering is first named in Gen. viii. altar. The priest was then to sprinkle the blood
20, as offered after the Flood. (In iv. 4 we find upon the altar,* and afterwards to cut up and burn
the whole victim, only reserving the skin for him-
the more general word Hn3Q "offering," a word
self. The birds were to be offered similarly, but
usually applied to unbloody sacrifices, though in not divided.
(See Lev. i., vii. 8, viii. 18-21, <t*c.)
the LXX. and in Heb. xi. 4 translated by Qvala.) It will be observed how all these ceremonies were
Throughout the whole of the book of Genesis (see
typical of the meaning described above, and espe-
xv. 9, 17, xxii. 2, 7, 8, 13) it appears to be the
cially how emphatically the freedom of will in the
only sacrifice referred to; afterwards it became dis- sacrificer is marked.
tinguished as one of the regular classes of sacrifice The burnt-offering being thus the rite which
under the Mosaic law. represented the normal state and constant duty of
Now all sacrifices are divided (see Heb. v. 1) into man, when already in covenant with God, e was the
"gifts" and " sacrifices-for-sin " (i. e. eucharistic one kind of Thus
sacrifice regularly appointed.
and propitiatory sacrifices), and of the former of there were, as jniblic burnt-offerings —
these the burnt-ottering was the choicest specimen.
1st. The'daily burnt-offering, a lamb of the first
Accordingly (in Ps. xl. 8, 9, quoted in Heb. x. 5,
year, sacrificed every morning and evening (with
G) we have first (in ver. 8) the general opposition,
an offering of flour and wine) for the people (Ex.
as above, of sacrifices (6v<riai) (propitiatory), and
offerings (irpo<rd>opcu); and then (in ver. "burnt- xxix. 38-42; Num. xxviii. 3-8).
9)
o * The 70 days of mourning (Gen. 1. 3) probably is, of course, impossible that the forms of
cance. It
include the 40 days of the embalming (Tuch, Genesis, should be rigidly separated, because the ideas
sacrifices
p. 595), though some make the former additional to which they enshrine, though capable of distinction,
the latter. H. are yet inseparable from one another.
b It is clear that in this ceremony the burnt-offer- c This is remarkably illustrated by the fact that
ing touched closely on the propitiatory or sin-offering, heathens were allowed to offer burnt-offerings, and
although the solemnity of the blood-sprinkling in the that Augustus ordered two lambs and a bullock to be
latter was much greater, and had a peculiar signifi- offered for him every day (Joseph. B. J. ii. 17, § 2).
336 BUSH BUTTER
2dly. The Sabbath burnt-offering, double of that direct evidence of any cassia growing in the local-
which was offered every day (Num. xxviii. 9, 10). ities about Mount Sinai, neither Decaisne nor Bove"
3dly. The offering at the new moon, at the three mentioning a senna bush amongst the plants of
great festivals, the great Day of Atonement, and this mountain. Sprengel identifies the seneh with
feast of trumpets: generally two bullocks, a ram, what he terms the Rubus sanctus,/ and says it grows
and seven lambs. (See Num. xxviii. 11-xxix. 39.) abundantly near Sinai. The monks of St. Cath-
Private burnt-offerings were appointed at the erine, it is well known, have planted a bramble bush
consecration of priests (Ex. xxix. 15; Lev. viii. 18, near their chapel, to mark the spot and perpetuate
ix. 12), at the purification of women (Lev. xii. 6, the name of the supposed bush in which God ap-
8), at the cleansing of the lepers (Lev. xiv. 19), peared to Moses. It is quite impossible to say what
and removal of other ceremonial uncleanness (xv. kind of thornbush is intended by seneh, but Sinai
15, 30), on any accidental breach of the Nazaritic is ahnost beyond the range of the genus Rubus.
vow, or at its conclusion (Num. vi. comp. Acts ; W. H.
xxi. 26), &c. * The word " bush " (Poitos, as in Mark xii. 26)
But freewill burnt-offerings were offered and ac- denotes a section of the Pentateuch. See Bible,
cepted by God on any solemn occasions, as, for III. (1). H.
example, at the dedication of the tabernacle (Num.
vii.) and of the temple (1 K. viii. 64), when they
[Measures.] BUSHEL.
were offered in extraordinary abundance. But, ex- * BUTLER.
[Cupbearer; Joseph.]
cept on such occasions, the nature, the extent, and
the place of the sacrifice were expressly limited by
(HSpn, BUTTER
cheniah: frovrvpoV. bu-
God, so that, while all should be unblemished and tyrum), curdled milk, as distinguished from 3vH,
pure, there should beno idea (as among the hea-
j'resh milk ; hence, curds, butter, and in one place
then) of buying by costliness of sacrifice.
his favor
probably cheese. It comes from an unused root,
Of this law Jephthah's vow was a transgression,
consistent with the semi-heathenish character of his
early days (see Judg. xi. 30, 35). The sacrifice of
SOP = Arab. If**-, spisswn full lac. In Gen.
cows in 1 Sam. vi. 14 was also a formal infraction of xviii. 8, butter and milk are mentioned among the
it, excused by the probable ignorance of the people,
things which Abraham set before his heavenly guests
and the special nature of the occasion. A. B. (comp. Judg. v. 25; 2 Sam. xvii. 29). Milk is
the etymology of (Mt.) "Sinai" to this name.* fcie i. e. cream, and Vitringa and Hitzig
colligunt,
It is almost certain that seneh is definitely used for meaning to the word in Is. vii. 15-22.
give this
some particular bush, for the Hebrew siach c ex- Butter was not in use among the Greeks and Ro-
presses bushes generally ; the /Sa-ros and rubus of mans except for medicinal purposes, but this fact is
the LXX. and Vulg. are used by Greek and Ro- of no weight as to its absence from Palestine. Rob-
man writers to denote for the most part the differ- inson mentions the use of butter at the present day
ent kinds of brambles (Rubus), such as the rasp- (Bib. Res. i. 449), and also the method of churning
berry and the blackberry bush; Celsius's opinion, (i. 485, and ii. 418), and from this we may safely
therefore, is corroborated by the evidence of the infer that the art of butter-making was known to
oldest versions. Pococke (Descr. of the East, i. the'ancient inhabitants of the land, so little have
215 ), however, objects to the bramble as not grow- the habits of the people of Palestine been modified
ing at all in the neighborhood of Mount Sinai, and in the lapse of centuries. Burckhardt ( Travels in
proposes the hawthorn bush, Oxyacantha Arabiea Arabia, i. 52) mentions the different uses of butter
(Shaw). ' 1
Etymologically * one would be inclined by the Arabs of the Hedjaz. W. D.
to refer the seneh of the Hebrew scriptures to some * The Arabs of the present day do not make our
species of senna plant (cassia), though we have no kind of butter, such as we eat with bread, but the
d It is uncertain what Dr. Shaw speaks of; Dr. bramble, Rubus fruticosus."
BUZ CADES-BARNE 337
means only " I am conscious to myself of nothing,"
made in the hot sun, as the semn is, it would be CAB'BON (f"l23 : Xa&pd; [Comp.] Alex.
quite as liquid as the semn. See also Dr. Thom- Xaftfia; [Aid. XafWdv-] Chebbon),& town in the
son's Land <f Book, ii. 393. C. V. A. V. low country (She/elah) of Judah (Josh. xv. 40)
which is only once mentioned, and of which nothing
BUZ (W2, contempt: 6 Boi5{: [Buz]), the has been since discovered. G.
second son of Milcah and Nahor (Gen. xxii. 21).
CA'BUL ^23 ( : Xoo^a/xao-o/jLeK, including
The gentilic name is ^M2. and Elihu is called " the i
Aram. Elihu was therefore probably a descendant Alex. Xa/3wA Cabul), a place named as one of the :
of Buz, whose family seems to have settled in Ara- landmarks on the boundary of Asher (Josh. xix.
bia Deserta or Petrsea, since Jeremiah (xxv. 23 27). From its mention in proximity to Jiphthach-
'Pais), in denouncing God's judgments against them,
el— afterwards Jotapata, and now Jefat it is —
mentions them with Thema and Dedan. Some probable that it is the same with that spoken of by
connect the territory of Buz with Busan, a Roman Josephus ( Vit. § 43, 45) as in the district of Ptole-
mais, and 40 stadia from Jotapata. In this case
fort mentioned in Amm. Marc, xviii. 10, and
it may fairly be considered as still existing in the
others with Basta in Arabia Petrsea, which how-
ever has only the first letter in common with it modem Kabul, which was found by Dr. Smith and
(Winer, s. v.).
by Robinson 8 or 9 miles east of Akka, and about
The jingle of the names Huz and But: is by no the same distance from Jefat (Rob. iii. 87, 88.
For references to the Talmuds see Schwarz, p. 192).
means so apparent in the Hebrew ( y"^> W2J ; but
Being thus on the very borders of Galilee, it is
it is quite in the Oriental taste to give to relations more than probable that there is some connection
these rhyming comp. Ishua and Ishui
appellatives ;
and Methusael (Gen. iv. between this place and the district
(^^QS Y*T?^>
(Gen. xlvi. 17); Mehujael
18), Uzziel and Uzzi (1 Chr. vii. 7): and among
"the land of C") containing twenty cities, which
the Arabians, Haroot and Maroot, the rebel angels, was presented by Solomon to Hiram king of Tyre
Hasan and Hoseyn, the sons of 'Alee, &c. The (1 K. ix. 11-14). The LXX. rendering of the
Koran abounds in such homoioteleuta, and so pleas- name, "Opiov, appears to arise from their having read
ing are they to the Arabs, that they even call Cain V :)22, Cebool, " boundary," for 7123. On the
and Abel, Kabil and Habil (Weil's Bibl. Leyends, other hand, the explanation of Josephus is quite in
23; also Southey's Notes to Thalaba), or Habil accordance with that hinted at hi the text itself —
and Habid (see Stanley, p. 413). The same idiom thoroughly in keeping with Oriental modes of
is found in Mahratta and the modern languages of
speech. Hiram, not liking Solomon's gift, seizes
the East. on the name of one of the cities, which in his own
2. (Bou£; Alex. AxifyvC, [Vat. ZaQovxa/j. for Phoenician tongue expresses his disappointment
Bob( a8eK<pou'-] Buz). A
name occurring in the (Kara •botviKwi/ yAurrav, ovk apeaKov, Jos. Ant.
genealogies of the tribe of Gad (1 Chr. v. 14). viii. 5, § 3), and forms from it a designation for
F. W. F. the whole district. The pun is doubtless a Phoe-
> nician one, since there is no trace of it in the
BU'ZI ( W2,no article: Bov(e(: Buzi), father
Hebrew beyond the explanation in ver. 12, " they
of Ezekiel the prophet (Ez. [The personal i. 3).
pleased him not;" the Hebrew words for which,
name here is gentilic elsewhere. As the son was a
priest the father must have been so too. H.] —
*n&'* Sb, have no affinity whatever with W^B
" Cabul."
BUZ'ITE 0W2
Bou^ttjs; [Vat. Sin. -fa :
See however possible derivations of the
name in the noma sticons of Simonis (p. 417), and
Alex, rov Bov(t'] Buzites). A descendant of Buz.
Hiller (435, 775). G.
The term is applied to Elihu, who was of the kin-
dred of Ram or Aram (Job xxxii. 2, 6). CADDIS (KoSSi's; [Alex. Aid. roSS/s; Sin.
W. A. W. TaSSeis:]Gaddis), the surname (diaKaKov/juvos)
of Joannan, the eldest brother of Judas Macca-
* BY. This preposition, among its other uses, baeus (1 Mace. ii. 2).
formerly meant "against" (though never very com-
mon in that sense), and so undoubtedly our trans-
CADES ([KaSfc; Alex. KrjSes, KaSijs; Sin.
Krj5es, KeSes- Cades]), 1 Mace. xi. 63, 73. [Ke-
incomm.) employed it
lators (taking i/aaurw as dot,
'• For I know nothing
DESH.]
in 1 Cor. iv. 4 : by (=against)
myself." See Trench On the Authorized Version, * CADESH, A. V. ed. 1611, etc., Gen. xvi. 14,
22
338 CADMIEL (LESAREA
different reading), Judith v. 14. [Kadesh-bar- ances. Some
of the friends of these soldiers
(3.)
NEA.] thus brought by them into connection with Paul
CADMIEL (Ka56ri\os, [KaS^A; Vat. E«r-
may have been employed about the palace of the
emperor, and so could have been the members of
tco5o7)Aos,05a/iir)A;] Alex. Ka5,u.ir)Aos, [KaSaiTjA-'j
" Caesar's household " who sent greetings to the
Cadukel), 1 Esdr. v. 26, 58. [Kadmiel.]
church at Philippi. Perhaps one step of the com-
CiE'SAR (Kalcrap, also 6 2e/3a<n-os [Augus-
bination may be left out. The camp of the Prae-
tus] in Acts xxv. 21, 25), always in the N. T. the
torians, situated out of the city, may have in-
Roman emperor, the sovereign of Judaea (John xix.
cluded also those of their number, a small division,
15; Acts xvii. 7). It was to him that the Jews
quartered near the palace in the city, and who as
paid tribute (Matt. xxii. 17 ff. Luke xx. 22, xxiii.
;
the emperor's body-guard might be said to belong
2); and to him that such Jews as were cives Ro-
to his " household." There is no proof that the im-
mani had the right of appeal (Acts xxv. 11 f., xxvi.
perial residence itselfwas ever called " praetorium."
32, xxviii. 19); in which case, if their cause was a
Paul may have gained converts from these, as one
criminal one, they were sent to Rome (Acts xxv.
another of them acted as sentries over him.
12, 21, — comp. Pliny, Epp. x. 97 ), where was
after
As the reason why they in particular greeted the
the court of the emperor (Phil. iv. 22). The N. T.
Christians at Philippi, Neander suggests that they
history falls entirely within the reigns of the five
may have known some of the church there who had
first Roman Caesars, namely,Augustus, Tiberius,
been at Rome, or possibly may themselves have been
Caligula, Claudius,and Nero only the two former of
natives of that city. It may be that Paul's " chiefly "
;
have been some difference in the use of the name p. 457 ff. Schenkel, Briefe an die Eplieser, P/iili/t-
;
at a later period. After Nero's time the emperor per, &c, pp. 119, 162; Bleek, Einl. in das N. T. p.
was still called both Augustus (which see) and 433 Meyer, Exeget. Uandb. (Phil. i. 13, iv. 21,
:
Caesar; but his son or designated successor on the 3te Aurl.); Rilliet, Z/ Epitre aux Philippiens, p.
throne was also called Caesar, though properly the 129; Lightfoot in Journ. of Class, and Sacr.
title was put after the individual's name, instead Philol. (March, 1857); Conybeare and Howson's
fers to any of the immediate relations of the em- CLESARE'A (Kaurdpeta, Acts viii. 40, ix. 30,
peror, or to some of his servants and dependents x. 1, 24, xi. 11, xii. 19, xviii. 22, xxi. 8, 16; xxiii.
in the palace. Nero was on the throne when Paul 23, 33; xxv. 1, 4, 6, 13). The passages just enu-
wrote to the Philippians. It has some bearing on merated show how important a place this city occu-
the question, that Nero had no very near kindred pies in the Acts of the Apostles. It was the resi-
living after he became emperor (Rilliet, DEpibre dence, apparently for several years, of Philip, one of
aux Philipp. p. 342). It is possible, of course, if he the seven deacons or almoners (viii. 40, xxi. 8, 16),
had such, that some of them might have heard the and the scene of the conversion of the Italian cen-
Gospel and have believed. History gives no ac- turion, Cornelius (x. 1, 24, xi. 11). Here Herod
count of any such conversions, and it is altogether Agrippa I. died (xii. 19). From hence St. Paul
improbable, if they occurred, that the testimony to sailed to Tarsus, when forced to leave Jerusalem on
this effect would be wanting. Meyer lays special his return from Damascus (ix. 30), and at this port
stress on this silence of the oldest writers. We are he landed after his second missionary journey (xviii.
led therefore to seek forsome other explanation of 22). He also spent some time at Caesarea on his
Paul's language. It seems essential to any correct return from the third missionary journey (xxi. 8,
explanation that it should recognize the apparent 16), and before long was brought back a prisoner to
connection between Acts xxviii. 16, Phil. i. 13, and the same place (xxiii. 23, 33), where he remained
iv. 22. (1.) Soldiers under the general custody of two years in bonds before his voyage to Italy (xxv.
the Praetorian Prefect (this is the meaning of rw 1, 4, 6, 13).
<TTpoT07r«5apx??' -^cts 5CC ™- 16, text. rec.°) at- Caesarea was situated on the coast of Palestine,
tended Paul while he was a prisoner, and in the per- on the hue of the great road from Tyre to Egypt,
formance of this service would often relieve each and about half way between Joppa and Dora (Jo-
other (Acts). (2.) In the course of time the seph. B. J. i. 21, § 5). The journey of St. Peter
apostle would thus become known as a preacher of from Joppa (Acts x. 24) occupied rather more than
the gospel to many of these soldiers (Phil. i. 13), a day. On the other hand St. Paul's journey from
and through them to their comrades and acquaint- Ptolemais (Acts xxi. 8) was accomplished within the
day. The distance from Jerusalem was about 70
« * Whether the term is textually certain or not, the miles Josephus states it in round numbers as 600
;
fact stated there is certain, and presupposed in Phil. i. stadia (Ant. xiii. 11, § 2; B. J. i. 3, § 5). The
13. See Captain of the Guard, Amer. ed. II. Jerusalem Itinerary gives 68 miles ( Wesseling, p.
CAESAREA CvESAREA PHILIPPI 339
600. Dr. Robinson thinks this ought to be 78: head of Judaea (" Judaea? caput," Tac. Hist. ii. 79).
Bib. Res. ii. 242, note). It has been ascertained, It was in this interval that the city was built by
however, that there was a shorter road by Antipatris Herod the Great. The work was in fact accom-
than that which is given in the Itinerary, a point — plished in ten years. The utmost care and expense
were lavished on the building of Caesarea. It was
of some importance in reference to the night-journey
of Acts xxiii. [Antipatris.] a proud monument of the reign of Herod, who
'
its position) irapaAws (Joseph. B. J. iii. 9, § 1),Roman colony, called it by his name, and
or made it a
7] iirl QaAaTTT) (id. vii. 1, must be care- gave to it the Jus lUdicum. The history of the
§ 3). It
fully distinguished from .'.ksaek.v Phiuppi.
( place, during the time of its greatest eminence, is
The magnificence of Caesarea is described in de- summed up in one sentence by Pliny " Strato- : —
tail by Josephus in two places (Ant. xv. !); B. ./. i. nis turris, eadem Caesarea, ab Herode rege condita:
21). The chief features were connected with the nunc Colonia prima Flavia, a Vespasiano Imperatore
harbor (itself called 2e/3a<7"r2>s Xifxifv on coins, and deducta" (v. 14).
by Josephus, Ant. xvii. 5, § 1), which was equal in To the Biblical geographer Caesarea is interesting
size to the Piraeus. A vast breakwater, composed as the home of Eusebius. It was also the scene of
of stones 50 feet long, curved round so as to afford some of Origen's labors and the birth-place of Pro-
complete protection from the south-westerly winds, copius. It continued to be a city of some impor-
leaving an opening only on the north. Broad land- tance even in the time of the Crusades. Now, though
!
ing-wharves surrounded the harbor; and conspicu- an Arabic corruption of the name still lingers on
ous from the sea was a temple, dedicated to Caesar the site (Kaisariyek), it is utterly desolate and ;
and to Home, and containing colossal statues of the its ruins have for a Ions; period been a quarry, from
Emperor and the Imperial City. Caesarea contained which other towns in this part of Syria have been
also an amphitheatre and a theatre. The latter was built. (See Buckingham's Travels and the Ap-
the scene of the death of Herod Agrippa I. Caesarea pendix to vol. i. of Dr. Traill's Josephus.) J. S. H.
was the official residence of the Herodian kings, and
of Festus, Felix, and the other Roman procurators (LESARE'A PHILIPPI (KaiffapeiaJ, *.-
of Judaea. Here also were the head-quarters of the \lirirov) is mentioned only in the two first Gospels
military forces of the province. It was by no means (Matt. xvi. 13; Mark viii. 27) and in accounts of
strictly a Jewish city. The Gentile population pre- the same transactions. The story in Eusebius, that
dominated: and at the sjpagogue-worship the the woman healed of the issue of blood, and supposed
Scriptures of the O. T. were read in Greek. Con- to have been named Berenice, lived at this place,
stant feuds took place here between the Jews and rests on no foundation.
Greeks and an outbreak of this kind was one of
; Caesarea Philippi was the northernmost point of
the first incidents of the great war. It was at Caes- our Lord's journeyings; and the passage in His
aiea that Vespasian was declared emperor. He life, which was connected with the place, was other-
340 C^ESAREA PHILIPPI CAIN
wise a very marked one. through the reigns of many emperors.
(See Stanley's /Sinai <$ Under the
Palestine, p. 391.) The place itself too is remark- simple name of Paneas it was the seat of a Greek
able in its physical and picturesque characteristics, bishopric in the period of the great councils, and
and also in its historical associations. It was at of a Latin bishopric during the crusades. It is
the easternmost and most important of the two rec- still called /Junius, the first name having here, as
ognized sources of the Jordan, the ether being at in other cases, survived the second. A remarkable
Tell el-Kadi (Dan or Lai.sii, which by Winer monument, which has seen all the periods of the
and others has been erroneously identified with C»s. history of Caesarea Philippi, is the vast castle above
Philippi). Not that either of these sources is the the site of the city, built in Syro-Greek or even
most distant fountain-head of the Jordan, the name Phoenician times, and, after receiving additions
of the river being given (as in the case of the Mis- from the Saracens and Franks, still the most re-
sissippi and Missouri, to quote Dr. Robinson's il- markable fortress in the Holy Land. J. S. H.
lustration), not to the most remote fountains, but CAGE. The term so rendered in Jer. v. 27,
the most copious. The spring rises, and the city
was built, on a limestone terrace in a valley at 2 v3, is more properly a trap (nayis, decipula),
1
!
the base of Mount Hermon. Caesarea Philippi in which decoy birds were placed the same article :
has no 0. T. history, though it has been not un- is referred to in Ecclus. xi. 30 under the term nap-
reasonably identified with Baal-Gad. Its annals raWos, which is elsewhere used of a tapering
run back direct from Herod's time into hea- basket. [Fowling.] In Rev. xviii. 2 the Greek
thenism. There is no difficulty in identifying it term is 4>uAa/nj, meaning a prison or restricted
with the Panium of Josephus; and the inscriptions habitation rather than a cage. W. L. B.
are not yet obliterated, which show that the God CA'IAPHAS [3 syl.] (Kai'ctyxw, said (Winer,
Pan had once a sanctuary at this spct. Here Herod
.the Great erected a temple to Augustus, the town
&c.) to be derived from N£?3, depressio, Targ.
being then called from the grotto where Pan had Prov. xvi. 20), in full JOSEPH Caiafhas (Joseph.
been honored. It is worth while here to quote in Ant. xviii. 2, 2), high-priest of the Jews under
succession the words of Josephus aid of Dr. Robin- Tiberius during the years of our Lord's public
ion: "Herod, having accompanied Cesar to the ministry, and at the time of his condemnation and
sea and returned home, erected him a beautiful tem- crucifixion. Matt. xxvi. 3, 57 (Mark does not name
ple of white marble near the place called Panium. him); Luke iii. 2; John xi. 49, xviii. 13, 14, 24,
This is a fine cavern in a mountain; under which 28; Acts iv. G. The Procurator Valerius Gratus,
there is a great cavity in the earth and the cavern shortly before his leaving the province, appointed
;
is abrupt, and very deep, and fill of still water. him to the dignity, which was before held by
Over it hangs a vast mountain, and under the Simon ben-Camith. He held it during the whole
mountain rise the springs of the river Jordan. procuratorship of Pontius Pilate, but soon after
Herod adorned this place, which was already a very his removal from that office was deposed by the
remarkable one, still further by the erection of this Proconsul Vitellius (a. d. 36), and succeeded by
temple, which he dedicated to Cesar." (Joseph. Jonathan, son of Ananus (Joseph. Ant. xviii. 4,
Ant. xv. 10, § 3; comp. B.J. i. 21, § 3.) "The § 3). He was son-in-law of Annas. [Annas.]
situation is unique, combining in an unusual degree Some in the ancient church confounded him with
the elements of grandeur and eauty. It nestles
1
the historian Josephus, and believed him to have
in its recess at the southern base of the mighty become a convert to ( hristianity. (Assemanu,
Hermon, which towers in majesty to an elevation BibUoth. Orient, ii. 165.) H. A.
of 7000 or 8000 feet above. The abundant waters CAIN [2 syl. in Heb.] Cp£, derived either
of the glorious fountain spread over the terrace
luxuriant fertility and the graceful interchange of from TV2\), to acquire, Gen. iv. 1; from "pp,
copse, lawn, and waving fields." (Robinson, iii. a epear, as indicative of the violence used by Cain
404.) and Lamech, Gesen. Thesavr. p. 120; or from an
Panium became part of the territory of Philip, Arabic word knyn, a, smith, in reference to the arts
tetrarch of Trachonitis, who
enlarged and embel- introduced by the Cainites, Von Bohlen, Introd. to
lished the town, and called it Ca-sarea Philippi, Gen. ii. 85: KaiV; Joseph. Kais' Cain)." The
partly after his own name, and partly after that of historical facts in the life of Cain, as recorded in
the emperor (Ant. xviii. 2, § 1; B.J. ii. 9, § 1). ( it'ii. iv., are briefly these: — He was the eldest son
Agrippa II. followed in the same course of flattery, of Adam and Eve; he followed the business of ag-
and called the place Neronias (.1"/. xx. 9, §4). riculture in a fit of jealousy, roused by the rejec-
;
Josephus seems to imply in his life Vit. 13) that tion of his own sacrifice and the acceptance of
(
a * Baumgarten ( Comm. iib. Pentateuch, i. 73) adopts from 'pp = n'p, i. e. a possession which she had at-
the sense of "spear," "weapon," as the name of the r/nirei/, suggests itself as more natural, and is more for-
firstborn whom Eve had thus " obtained from Jeho- cible as including an affinity of sense as well as of
vah.'' because she would recognize in him the means sound. See Mr. Wright's note to this effect in his
of victory, t. e. the promised seed who was to overcome Book of Genesis in Hebrew, &c, p. 18. Gesenius
the great enemy (Gen. iii. 15)- According to this view Handw. p. 766, 6te Aurl.) does not seem to object to
(
the words l^p, without being related iD sig- this etymology as unphilological. Fiirst (Handw. ii.
H3P,
'• '-' t t'
merely paronomastic (nomen et omen). 315) defines
nification, are as " something brought forth," " crea-
^p
though they serve at the same time to express the " H
ture (= ^ 3P, Ps. civ. 24), and thus briugs the verb
idea with greater eDergy. But the derivation of p~ and noun still nearer to each other. H.
CAIN CAIN 341
descendants are enumerated, together with the in- iav 6p6ws TrpoaeveyKris), is there not an elevation
ventions for which they were remarkable. Occa- of the countenance (i. e. cheerfulness and happi-
sional references to Cain are made in the N. T. ness) ? but if thou doest not well, there is a sinking
(Heb. xi. 4; 1 John iii. 12; Jude 11.) of the countenance : sin lurketh (as a wild beast)
The following points deserve notice in connection at the door, and to thee is its desire: but thou
with the Biblical narrative: —
1. The position of shalt rule over it." The narrative implies there-
the land of Nod. The name itself tells us little; fore that his offering was rejected on account of
it means ftiyht or exile, in reference to v. 12 where the temper in which it was brought.
a cognate word is used: Von Bohlen's attempt to >. The descendants of Cain are enumerated to
identify it with India, as though the Hebrew name the sixth generation. Some commentators (Kno-
bel, Von Bohlen) have traced an artificial structure
Hind ("T2D) had been erroneously read two-Nod,
in this genealogy, by which it is rendered parallel
is too far fetched the only indication of its posi-
;
to that of the Sethites e. g. there is a decade of
:
tion is the indefinite notice that it was " east of names in each, commencing with Adam and ending
Eden " (16), which of course throws us back to the with Jabal and Noah, the deficiency of generations
previous settlement of the position of Eden itself. in the Cainites being supplied by the addition of
Knobel (Comm. in loc.) who adopts an ethnological the two younger sons of Lamech to the list; and
interpretation of the history of (Jain's descendants, there is a considerable similarity in the names, each
would identify Nod with the whole of Eastern Asia, list containing a Lamech and an Enoch while Cain ;
the identification of Nod with any special locality ference from this comparison being that the one
the direction "east of Eden" may have reference was framed out of the other. It must be observed,
to the previous notice in iii. 24, and may indicate however, that the differences far exceed the points
that the land was opposite to (KarevavTi, LXX.) of similarity; that the order of the names, the
the entrance, which was barred against his return. number of generations, and even the meanings of
It is not improbable that the east was further used those which are noticed as similar in sound, are
to mark the direction which the Cainites took, as sufficiently distinct to remove the impression of
distinct from the Sethites, who would, according artificial construction.
to Hebrew notions, be settled towards the west. 6. The social condition of the Cainites is prom-
Similar observations must be made in regard to inently brought forward in the history. (Jain him-
the city Enoch, which has been identified with the self was an agriculturist, Abel a shepherd : the
names of the Heniochi, a tribe in Caucasus (Hasse), successors of the latter are represented by the Seth-
Anuchta, a town in Susiana (Huetius), Chanoge, ites and the progenitors of the Hebrew race in
an ancient town in India (Von Bohlen), and Iconi- later times,among whom a pastoral life was always
um, as the place where the deified king Annacos held in high honor from the simplicity and devo-
was honored (Ewald): all such attempts at identi- tional habits which it engendered the successors:
fication must be subordinated to the previous set- of the former are depicted as the reverse in all
tlement of the position of Eden and Nod. these respects. Cain founded the first city; La-
2. The " mark set upon Cain " has given rise to mech instituted polygamy; Jabal introduced the
various speculations, many of which would never nomadic life; Jubal invented musical instruments;
have been broached, if the Hebrew text had been Tubalcain was the first smith; Lamech' s language
consulted the words probably mean that Jehovah
:
takes the stately tone of poetry; and even the names
gave a sign to (Jain, very much as signs were after- of the women, Naamah (pleasant), Zillah (shadow),
wards given to Noah ((Jen. ix. 13), Moses (Ex. iii. Adah (ornamental), seem to bespeak an advanced
2, 12), Elijah (1 K. xix. 11), and Hezekiah (Is. state of civilization. But along with this, there
xxxviii. 7, 8). Whether the sign was perceptible to was violence and godlessness; Cain and Lamech
Cain alone, and given to him once for all, in token furnish proof of the former, while the concluding
that no man should kill him, or whether it was one words of Gen. iv. 26 imply the latter.
that was perceptible to others, and designed as a 7. The contrast established between the Cainites
precaution to them, as is implied in the A. V., is and the Sethites appears to have reference solely to
uncertain ; the nature of the sign itself is still more the social and religious condition of the two races.
uncertain. On the one side there is pictured a high state of
3. The
narrative implies the existence of a con- civilization, unsanctified by religion, and produc-
siderable population in Cain's time; for he fears tive of luxury and violence; on the other side, a
lesthe should be murdered in return for the mur- state of simplicitywhich afforded no material for
der he had committed (14). Josephus {Ant. i. 2, history beyond the declaration " then began men
§ 1) explains his fears as arising not from men but to call upon the name of the Lord." The historian
from wild beasts; but such an explanation is wholly thus accounts for the progressive degeneration of
unnecessary. The family of Adam may have largely the religious condition of man, the evil gaining a
increased before the birth of Seth, as is indeed im- predominance over the good by its alliance with
plied in the notice of (Jain's »vife (17), and the worldly power and knowledge, and producing the
mere circumstance that none of the other children state of things which necessitated the flood.
are noticed by name may be explained on the 8. Another motive may be assigned for the in-
ground that their lives furnished nothing worthy troduction of this portion of sacred history. All
of notice. ancient nations have loved to trace up the inven-
4. The character of Cain deserves a brief notice. tion of the arts to some certain author, and, gen-
He is described as a man of a morose, malicious, erally speaking, these authors have been regarded
and revengeful temper: and that he presented his as objects of divine worship. Among the Greeks.
offering in this state of mind is implied in the re- Apollo was held to be the inventor of music, Vul-
buke contained in ver. 7, which may be rendered can of the working of metals, Triptolemus of the
hus " If thou doest well (or, as the LXX. has it, plough.
: A similar feeling of curiosity prevailed
P,42 CAIN CALAH
among the Hebrews; and hence the historian has Julius Africanus, Origen, Eusebius, or even Jerome,
recorded the names of those to whomhad access to. It seems certain, therefore, that his
the invention
of the arts was traditionally assigned, obviating at name was introduced into the genealogies of the
the same time the dangerous error into which other Greek O. T. in order to bring them into harmony
nations had fallen, and reducing the estimate of with the genealogy of Christ in St. Luke's Gospel,
their value by the position which their inventors where Cainan was found in the time of Jerome.
held. W. L. B. The question is thus narrowed into one concerning
CAIN" [2 syl. in Heb.] (with the article, its introduction into the Gospel. It might have
been thought that it had found its way by acci-
^i?n =
"the lance," Ges. but may it not be dent into the genealogy of Joseph, and that Luke
;
[and so the text 1 Chr. i. 2]; "J^p.: Kaivav: cause which cannot now be discovered. For fur-
ther information, see Geneal. of our Lord ./. C^,
Cainan; possessor, Fiirst; telifuber, Gesen., as if
ch. viii. Heidegger, Hist. Patriarch, ii. 8-15;
;
= "pp, from the Arab, to forge, as in Tubal- Bochart, Phaleg, lib. ii. cap. 13; and for the op-
Cain, Gen. iv. 22; see Dr. Mill's Vindic. of our posite view, Mill's Vindic. of our Lord's Geneal.
Lord's Geneal. p. 150). 1. Son of Enos, aged 70 p. 143 ff. A. C. H.
years when he begat Mahalaleel his son. He lived CAIUS. [John, Second and Third Epis-
840 years afterwards, and died aged 910 (Gen. v. tles or.]
9-14). The rabbinical tradition was that he first
introduced idol-worship and astrology a tradition
CAKES. [Bread.]
—
which the Hellenists transferred to the post-dilu- CALAH
([TV??, in pause] [comple- nb|
vian Cainan. Thus Ephraem Syrus asserts that tion]: Xa\ax Chale), one of the most ancient :
the Chaldees in the time of Terah and Abram cities of Assyria. Its foundation is ascribed to the
worshipped a graven god called Cainan and Greg- patriarch Asshur (Gen. x. 11). The name has been
;
may probably have been suggested by the meaning Chronicles (1 Chr. v. 26); but this view is unsup-
of the supposed root in Arabic and the Aramean ported by the
Septuagint, which renders Halah by
dialects; just as another signification of the same 'AAae. According to the opinions of the best
root seems to have suggested the tradition that the Oriental antiquaries, the site of Calah is marked
daughters of Cain were the first who made and sang by the Nimrud ruins, which have furnished so large
a proportion of the Assyrian remains at present in
to musical instruments (Gesen. s. v. "pp). England. If this be regarded as ascertained, Ca-
2. [Alex. Ka.iva.fi in Gen. x. 24; Tisch. (with lah must be considered to have been at one time
Sin. B L) Kaivijx in Luke iii. 36.] Son of Ar- (about b. c. 930-720) the capital of the empire. It
phaxad, and father of Sala, according to Luke iii. was the residence of the warlike Sardanapalus and his
35, 36, and usually called the second Cainan. He successors down to the time of Sargon, who built
is also found in the present copies of the LXX. in a new capital, which he called by his own name, on
the genealogy of Shem, Gen. x. 24, xi. 12, and 1 the site occupied by the modern Khorsabad. Ca-
Chr. i. 18 (though he is omitted in 1 Chr. i. 24), lah still continued under the later kings to be a
but is nowhere named in the Hebrew codd., nor in town of importance, and was especially favored by
any of the versions made from the Hebrew, as the Esarhaddon, who built there one of the grandest
Samaritan, Chaldee, Syriac, Vulgate, &c. More- of the Assyrian palaces. In later times it gave
over it can be demonstrated that the intrusion of name to one of the chief districts of the country,
the name into the version of the LXX. is com- which appears as Calacine" (Ptolem. vi. 1) or Cal-
-
paratively modern, since Augustine is the first achene (Strab. xvi. 1, § 1) in the geographers.
writer who mentions it as found in the 0. T. at G. R.
all c and since we have the absolute certainty that
; * Mr. J. L. Porter (Kitto's Cyc. of Bibl. Lit.,
it was not contained in any copies of the Alexan- 3d ed., art. Calah) objects to the identification of
drine Bible which either Berosus, Eupolemus, Poly- Calah with Nimrud, that sufficient space is not
histor, Josephus, Philo, Theophilus of Antioch, left for Resen, which is described in Gen. x. 12 as
" a great city " lying between Nineveh and Calah;
a The letter p is generally rendered in the A. V. by
the " Kenites " is obscured by the form Cain, which is Evang. reckons 1360 years from the birth of
ix. 21),
probably derived from the Vulgate. Shem to Jacob's going down to Egypt, which seems to
b * Knobel (Josua, p. 437) says that Cain according include the 130 years of Cainan. But in the great
to all the Arabic Yuk'in not far from
appearance is fluctuation of the numbers in the ages of the patri-
Hebron (Rob. Bibl. Res., 1st ed.,
ii. 449). Dr. Robinson archs, no reliance can be placed on this argument.
records the name, but says nothing of the identifica- Nor have we any certainty that the figures have not
tion. The position may be right enough, but the re- been altered in the modern copies of Eusebius. to make
semblance of the names is too slight to be of any ac- them agree with the computation of the altered copies
count H. of the LXX.
CALAMOLALUS CALEB 343
the distance between Nimrud and the ruins of an- Ephratah, and consequently grandfather of Caleb the
3ient Nineveh (opposite Mosul) being less than spy. His brothers, according to the same author-
twenty miles. He would therefore identity Resen ity, were Jerahmeel and Ram; his wives Azubah,
with Nimrud, and Caluh with Kalah- or Kileh- Jerioth, and Ephratah and his concubines Ephah ;
Sherghat, forty miles south of Nimrud on the and Maachah (ver. 9, 42, 46, 48). But from the
right bank of the Tigris. He further observes: manifest corruption of the text in many parts of
" Kalah-Sherghat was one of the most ancient
the chapter, from the name being written ^3^73
places in Assyria. On a cylinder discovered there
[Chelubai] in ver. 9, which looks like a patro-
is an inscription recording the fact that the King
Tiglath-pileser restored a monument which had nymic from 2^173, Chelub (1 Chr. iv. 11) the
been taken down sixty years previously, after hav- brother of Shuah, from the evident confusion be-
ing stood for 641 years. It must, therefore, have tween the tvvo Calebs at ver. 49, and from the non-
been founded about b. c. 1870 (Rawlinson's Herod. appearance of this elder Caleb anywhere except in
i. 457, 460; Vaux, Nin. and Pers. p. 13). On this genealogy drawn up in Hezekiah's reign [Aza-
the bricks and pottery found at Kalah are the riah, No. 5], it is impossible to speak with con-
names and titles of the earliest known Assyrian fidence of his relations, or even of his existence.
kings. The name Asshiir is found among them."t. Son of Jephunneh, by which patronymic the
Kesen illustrious spy is usually designated (Num. xiii. 6,
Ivalisch (Genesis, p. 261) likewise identifies
with Nimrud, and Calah with Kalah-Sherghat. and ten other places), with the addition of that of
See Assyria, p. 187; Nineveh; Resen. A. " the Kenezite," or " son of Kenaz," in Num. xxxii.
CALAMOLA'LUS (KaAa/ndAaAos; [Vat. 12; Josh. xiv. 6, 14. Caleb is first mentioned :i
KaAxaA [Vat. KccAko], XoAko? [Alex. XaA%aA] noted that these O^Sttn or D^tt'bO are all dif-
• • : • t
Chalchal, Chalcol), a man of Judah, son or de- ferent from those named in Num. i. ii. vii. x. as
scendant of Zerah (1 Chr. ii. 6). Probably iden- princes or heads of the tribes of Israel, and conse-
tical with Chalcol (A. V. only; no difference in quently that the same title was given to the chiefs
the Hebrew), son of Mahol, one of the four wise of families as to the chiefs of the whole tribe. Ca-
men whom Solomon excelled in wisdom (1 K. iv.
leb was a S^t^l or K?S7 in the tribe of Judah,
31). For the grounds of this identification see
Darda. G. perhaps as chief of the family of the Hezronites,
* CALDE'A, CALDE'AN S, OAL'DEES, at the same time that Nahshon the son of Am-
minadab was prince of the whole tribe. He and
occur in the A. V. ed. 1611 and other early editions
Oshea or Joshua the son of Nun were the only
passim for Ciialdea, etc., which see. A.
two of the whole number who, on their return from
CALDRON. (1.) TFT, probably from TFT, Canaan to Kadesh-Barnea, encouraged the people
to enter in boldly to the land, and take possession
boil, akin to Arab. 1 $ to be moved, as water in
,
» * burst's derivation (ed. 1857) is from 273 to Dietrich in his edition of Gesenius (1863) adopts the
attack, seize, and hence as appellative, bold, a hero. same etymology. II.
344 CALEB CALF
only gave him but with her first whose name is not given, the mother of Jerah-
his daughter to wife,
the upper and nether springs of water which she meel, Ram, and Caleb or Chelubai; the second,
asked for. After this we hear no more of Caleb, Abiah, the daughter of Machir, whom he married
nor is the time of bis death recorded. But we when 60 years old, and who bare him Segub and
learn from Josh. xxi. 13, that in the distribution Ashur. Also that Caleb had two wives, Azubah,
of cities out of the different tribes for the priests the first, the mother, according to Jerome's version,
and Levites to dwell in, Hebron fell to the priests, of Jerioth and Ephratah, the second, the mother
;
the children of Aaron, of the family of Kohathites, of Hur; and that this second marriage of Caleb
and was also a city of refuge, while the surround- did not take place till after Hezron's death.
ing territory continued to be the possession of Ca- A. C. H.
leb, at least as late as the time of David (1 Sam. * Caleb-Ephratah (see 3 above), it is true, does
xxv. 3, xxx. 14). not occur elsewhere; but in 1 Sam. xxx. 14 we find
But a very interesting question arises as to the mention made of a district Caleb, which must have
birth and parentage of Caleb. He is, as we have been a part of Judah, and so called from Caleb, Josh-
seen, styled "the son of Jephunneh the Kenezite," ua's spy, to whom it was allotted. Bertheau in his
and his younger brother Othniel, afterwards the note on 1 Chr. ii. 24 (Biicher der Chromk, p. 17)
first Judge, is also called "the son of Kenaz suggests that the northern part of this territory of
(Josh. xv. 17; Judg. i. 13, iii. 9, 11). Caleb where it approached Ephratah, i. e. Bethlehem,
On the other hand the genealogy in 1 Chr. ii. may have been distinguished from the southern part
makes no mention whatever of either Jephunneh or by the more definite name of Caleb-Ephratah. He
Kenaz, but represents Caleb, though obscurely, as remarks further that the proposed change of the
being a descendant of Hezron and a son of Hur text (jj\6e XaA.6/3 els 'K<ppa6d in the LXX. which
(see too ch. iv.). Again in Josh. xv. 13 we have the Vulg. follows) removes the difficulty, but intro-
this singular expression, " Unto Caleb the son of duces a notice altogether foreign to the text, since
Jephunneh he gave a part among the children ofJu- the verse relates to Hezron and not to Caleb. There
dah; " and in xiv. 14, the no less significant one, may be some doubt about the translation. But the
" Hebron became the inheritance of Caleb the son chronology and history of this period are too ob-
of Jephunneh the Kenezile, because that he wholly scure to allow us to say that Hezron must have
followed Jehovah God of Israel." It becomes, died in Egypt, and could not have died in Caleb-
therefore, quite possible that Caleb was a foreigner Ephratah (1 Chr. ii. 24). See Wordsworth on the
by birth a proselyte, incorporated into the tribe passage, Chronicles, p. 171 (1866).
; H.
of Judah, into which perhaps he or his ancestors CALEB. " The south of Caleb " is that por-
had married, and one of the first-fruits of that
tion of the Negeb (223) or "south country" of
Gentile harvest, of which Bahab, Ruth, Jethro,
Palestine, occupied by Caleb and his descendants
Naaman, and many others were samples and signs.
And a most striking con- (1 Sam. xxx. 14). In the division of Canaan Joshua
this conjecture receives
firmation from the names in Caleb's family. For assigned the city and suburbs of Hebron to the
" field " of the city, that is the
on turning to Gen. xxxvi. 11, 15, we find that priests, but the
Kenaz is an Edomitish name, the son of Eliphaz. pasture and corn lands, together with the villages,
Again, in 1 Chr. ii. 50, 52, among the sons of Ca-
were given to Caleb. The south, or Negeb, of
Caleb, is probably to be identified with the exten-
leb the son of Hur we find Shobal and half the
Manahethites or sons of Manahath. But in Gen. sive basin or plain which lies between Hebron and
Kurmiil, the ancient Carmel of Judah, where Ca-
xxxvi. 20-23, we are told that Shobal was the son
leb's descendant Nabal had his possessions.
of Seir the Horite, and that he was the father of
Manahath. So too Korah, Jthran, Elah Chr. (1
W. A. W.
ii., and perhaps Jephunneh, compared with
iv.), CALF (n%9, baV :
ii6o- X o<;, SapdKis). Id
Pinon, are all Edomitish names (1 Chr. i. Gen. Ex. ;
xxxii. 4, we are told that Aaron, constrained
xxxvi.). We Temanites, or sons of Te-
find too
by the people in the absence of Moses, made a
man (1 Chr. i. 30), among
the children of Ashur molten calf of the golden ear-rings of the people, to
the son of Hezron (1 Chr. iv. 6). The finding thus represent the Elohim which brought Israel out of
whole families or tribes, apparently of foreign origin, Egypt. He is also said to have " finished it with
incorporated into the tribes of Israel, seems further
to supply us with an easy and natural solution of a graving-tool," but the word t3~IP may mean a
the difficulty with regard to the great numbers of mould (comp. 2 K. v. 23, A. V.'"'bags;" LXX.
the Israelites at the Exodus. The seed of Abra- dvAaKois)- Bochart {Hieroz. lib. ii. cap. xxxiv.)
ham had been multiplied by the accretion of pros- explains it to mean " he placed the ear-rings in a
elytes, as well as by generation. bag," as Gideon did (Judg. viii. 24). Probably,
Ca'leb-Eph'ratah, according to the pres-
3. however, it means that after the calf had been cast,
ent text of 1 Chr. ii. 24, the name of a place where Aaron ornamented it with the sculptured wings,
Hezron died. But no such place was ever heard feathers and other marks, which were similarly rep-
of, and the composition of the name is a most im- resented on the statues of Apis, &c. (Wilkinson,
probable one. Nor could Hezron or his son have iv. 348). It does not seem likely that the ear-rings
given any name to a place in Egypt, the land of would have provided the enormous quantity of gold
their bondage, nor couldHezron have died, or his required for a solid figure. More probably it was
son have lived, elsewhere than in Egypt. The a wooden figure laminated with gold, a process which
present text must therefore be corrupt, and the is known to have existed in Egypt. " A gilded ox
reading which Jerome's Hebrew Bible had, and covered with a pall " was an emblem of Osiris (Wil-
which is preserved in the LXX., is probably the kinson, iv. 335).
The
The legends about the
calf are numerous.
true one, ' "
namely, nm2S
T T V:
"DT>"^
• T S3,
T
"Caleb
by the Jews to have originated
suggestion is said
came in unto Ephratah." The whole information with certain Egyptian proselytes (Godwyn's Mos.
given seems to be that Hezron had two wives, the and Aar. iv. 5); Hur, " the desert's martyr," was
CALF CALF 345
killed for opposing it: Abu'lfeda says that all ex- honor of Apis (Suid. s. v."Airi5ts).
to the festival in
cept 12,000 worshipped it when made, it was mag- Of the various sacred cows of Egypt, that of fsis,
;
ically animated (Ex. xxxii. 24). " The Devil," says of Athor, and of the three kinds of sacred bulls.
Jonathan, "got into the metal and fashioned it into Apis, Basis, and Mnevis, Sir (1. Wilkinson fixes on
a calf" (Lightfoot, Works, v. 398). Hence, the the latter as the prototype of the golden calf; " the
Koran (vii. 1 46) calls it "a corporeal calf, made of offerings, dancings, and rejoicings practiced on that
their ornaments, which lowed.'''' This was effected, occasion were doubtless in imitation of a ceremony
not by Aaron (according to the Mohammedans), they had witnessed in honor of Mnevis" (Anc.
but by al Sfuneri, a chief Israelite, whose descend- I'-U'.ll 11-! v l'J7> see Plates 35, 36).
- The ox was
ants still inhabit an island of the Arabian gulf. worshipped from its utility in agriculture (Plut. de
He took a handful of dust from the footsteps of the Is. p. 74), and was a symbol of the sun, and con-
horse of Gabriel, who rode at the head of the host, secrated to him (Horn. Od. i. xii. &c. Warburton, ;
and threw it into the mouth of the calf, which im- Div. Leg. iv. 3, 5). Hence it is almost universally
mediately began to low. No one is to be punished found in Oriental and other mythologies. 4. The
in hell more than 40 days, being the number of expression "an ox that eateth hay," <ftc. (Ps. cvi.
days of the calf-worship (Sale's Koran, ed. Daven- 20, &e.), where some see an allusion to the Egyptian
port, p. 7, note; and see Weil's legends, 125). It custom of bringing a bottle of hay when they con-
was a Jewish proverb that " no punishment befall- sulted Apis (Godwyn's Mos. and Aar. iv. 5). Yet
eth the Israelites in which there is not an ounce of these terms of scorn are rather due to the intense
this calf" (Godwyn, tibi supr.). hatred of the Jews, both to this idolatry and that
of Jeroboam. Thus in Tob. i. 5, we have one of
Jeroboam's calves called 7) 8a.fi.aAis BaaA, which is
an unquestionable calumny just as in Jer. xlvi. 15, ;
y
A7ris 6 fiSax ' °~ ov & 6«Ae/CTos- is either a mistake
or a corruption of the text (Bochart, Hier-oz. ii. 28,
v
6, and Schleusner, s. v. Aim).
II. It seems to us more likely that in this calf-
worship the Jews merely
" Likened their Maker to the graved ox ;
"
then grinding it to powder scattered it over the had led them out of Egypt. (4.) It was extremely
water, where, according to some, it produced in the unlikely that they would so soon adopt a deity whom
drinkers effects similar to the water of jealousy they had so recently seen humiliated by the judg-
(Num. v.). He probably adopted this course as ments of Moses (Num. xxxiii. 4). (5.) There was
the deadliest and most irreparable blow to their su- only otic Apis, whereas Jeroboam erected two calves.
perstition (Jerome, Ep. 128; Pint, de Is. p. 362), (But see Jahn, Arch. Bibl. § 464.) (6.) Jero-
or as an allegorical act (Job xv. 10), or with refer- boam's well-understood political purpose was, not
ence to an Egyptian custom (Herod, ii. 41; Poli to introduce a new religion, but to provide a differ-
Syn. ad loc). It has always been a difficulty to ent form of the old ; and this alone explains the
explain the process which he used; some account fact that this was the only form of idolatry into
for it by his supposed knowledge of a forgotten art which Judah never fell, since she already possessed
(such as was one of the boasts of alchymy) by which the archetypal emblems in the Temple. (7.) It
he could reduce gold to dust. Goguet ( Origiiie des appears from 1 K. xxii. 6, &c. that the prophets of
Lois) invokes the assistance of natron, which would Israel, though sanctioning the calf-worship, still re-
have had the additional advantage of making the garded themselves, and were regarded, as " prophets
1 '
draught nauseous. Baumgarten easily endows the of' Jehovah.
fire employed with miraculous properties. Bochart These arguments, out of many others, are ad-
and Kosenmiiller merely think that he cut, ground, duced from the interesting treatise of Moncaeus, de
and filed the gold to powder, such as was used to Vituki Aureo ( Critici Sacri, ix.). The work is in-
sprinkle over the hair (Joseph. Ant. viii. 7, § 3). hibited by the Church of Rome, and has been an-
There seems little doubt that *V3E = swered by Visorinus. A brief resume of it may
Ka.Ta.Kaia>,
be found in Poli Syn. ad Ex. xxxii., and in Watt's
LXX. (Havernick's hit rod. to the Pentnt. p. 292.) " Remnants of Time " (ad finem). [Ohkkubim.]
It has always been a great dispute respecting this The prophet Hosea is full of denunciations against
calf and those of Jeroboam, whether, I. the Jews the calf-worship
of Israel (Hos. viii. 5, 6, x. 5), and
intended them for some Egyptian God, or II. for a mentions the curious custom of kissing them (xiii
mere cherubic symbol of Jehovah. 2). His change of Beth-el into Beth-aven possibly
I. The arguments for the first supposition are, 1. contempt of this idolatry (but see Beth-
rose from
The ready apostasy of the Jews to Egyptian super- The calf at Dan was carried away by
aven).
stition (Acts vii. 39, and chap. passim Lactant. Tiglath-Pileser, and that of Bethel 10 years after
v. ;
Inst. iv. 10). 2. The fact that they had been wor- by his son Shalmaneser (2 K. xv. 29, xvii. 3; Pri-
shippers of Apis (Josh. xxiv. 14), and their extreme deaux, Connection, i. 15).
"amfliarity with his cultus (1 K. xi. 40). 3. The Bochart thinks that the ridiculous story of Celsus
resemblance of the feast described in Ex. xxxii. 5, about the Christian worship of an ass-headed deity
346 CAL1TAS CAMEL
called @a<pafiau>8 J) 'Ovrf]\ (a story, at the source is that the tower of Babel was built at Calno or
of which Tertullian, 'OvoKo'nris, Apol. 16, Nat. Ad Chalane, as if a protest against some different opin-
i. 14, could only guess), sprang from some misun- ion. See Gesenius titer Jesaia (i. 394). The Bible
derstanding of cherubic emblems (Minuc. Fel. Apol. is silent respecting this ancient place during all the
ix.). But it is much more probable, as Origen long ages between Nimrod (Gen. x. 10) and the
conjectured, that the Christians were confounded prophet Amos (vi. 2). Dr. Pusey (Minor Prophets,
with the absurd mystic Ophiani (Tac Hist. v. 4: ii. 202) agrees with those who think that Calneh or
Merivale, Hint, of Emp. vi. 564). Calno was the later Greek Ctesiphon, on the left
In the expression " the calves of our lips " (Hos. of the Tigris, about 40 miles from Babylon. [Cal-
xiv. 2), the word "calves" is used metaphorically neh.] H.
lor victims or sacrifices, and the passage signifies CAL/PHI
Xa\<pi; [Sin- Alex. XaX<pei\] (<5
either " we will render to thee sacrifices of our lips," Jos.
Xa\pa?os: Calphi), father of Judas, one of the
that is, "the tribute of thanksgiving and praise," two captains
(apxovres) of Jonathan's army who
or " we will offer to thee the sacrifices which our remained firm at the battle of Gennesar (1 Mace,
lips have vowed." The LXX. erroneously translate xi. 70).
Kapirbv tS>v xe<A.eW, which is followed by the Syr.
and Arab, versions, and is supposed to have been
CALVARY
Upaviov- Sjr. Karkaptha: Cal-
varia), a word occurring in the A. V. only in Luke
borrowed by the author of the epistle to the Hebrews
xxiii. 33, and there no proper name, but arising
(xiii. 15). For allusions to the "fatted calf" see
from the translators having literally adopted the
Gen. xviii. 7 Luke xv. 23, &c. and on the custom
; ;
word calearia, i. e. a bare skull, the Latin word
of cutting up a calf, and " passing between the
by which the Kpaviov of the Evangelists is ren-
parts thereof" to ratify a covenant, see Jer. xxxiv.
dered in the Vulgate Kpaviov again being nothing ;
Abram when he was in Egypt. It is clear from this things were sent to Elisha by Ben-hadad, king of
passage that camels were early known to the Egyp- Syria, from Damascus (2 K. viii. 9); the Ishmael-
tians (see also Ex. ix. 3), though no representation ites trafficked with Egypt in the precious gums of
of this animal has yet been discovered in the paint- Gilead, carried on the backs of camels (Gen. xxxvii.
ings or hieroglyphics (Wilkinson, Anc. Egypt, i. •25) the Midianites and the Amalekites possessed
:
234, Lond. 1854). The camel has been from the camels " as the sand by the sea-side for multitude "
earliest times the most important beast of burden (Judg. vii. 12); Job had three thousand camels be-
amongst Oriental nations. The Ethiopians had fore his affliction (Job i. 3), and six thousand after-
" camels in abundance" (2 Chr. xiv. 15); the queen wards (xlii. 12).
of Sheba came to Jerusalem " with camels that bare The camel was used for riding (Gen. xxiv. 64;
spices and gold and precious stones " (1 K. x. 2); 1 Sam. xxx. 17); as a beast of burden generally
the men of Kedar and of Hazor possessed camels (Gen. xxxvii. 25; 2 K. viii. 9; 1 K. x. 2, &c), for
(Jer. xlix. 29, 32); David took away the camels draught purposes (Is. xxi. 7 see also Suetonius,
:
Xero, c. 11)." From 1 Sam. xxx. 17 we learn ence to it is made in the Bible. 6 Camel's flesh,
that camels were used in war: compare also Pliny although much esteemed by the Arabs (Prosp.
(N. H. viii. 18), Xenophon ( Cyrop. vii. 1, 27), and Alpinus, H. N. JEg. i. 226), was forbidden as food
Herodotus (i. 80, vii. 86), and Livy (xxxvii. 40). to the Israelites (Lev. xi. 4; Deut. xiv. 7), because,
It is to the mixed nature of the forces of the Persian though the camel " cheweth the cud, it divideth
army that Isaiah is probably alluding in his descrip-
not the hoof." Many attempts have been made to
tion of the fall of Babylon (Is. xxi. 7). explain the reason why camel-flesh was forbidden
John the Baptist wore a garment made of camel's to the Jews, as by Bochart (Hieroz. i. 11), Rosen-
hair (Matt. iii. 4; Mark i. 6), and some have sup- muller (Not. ad Hieroz. 1. c), Michaelis (Laws of
posed that Elijah " was clad in a dress of the same Moses, iii. 234, Smith's translat.), none of which,
stuff" (Calmet's Bid. Frag. No. cccxx. Rosen- however, are satisfactory.
; It is sufficient to know
muller, Schol. ad Is. xx. 2), the Hebrew expression that ihe law of Moses allowed no quadruped to be
"lord of hair" (2 K. i. 8) having reference not to used as food except such as chewed the cud and
his beard or head, but to his garment (compare divided the hoof into two equal parts as the camel :
Zech. xiii. 4; 1 K. xix. 13. 19) [Sackcloth], but does not fully divide the hoof the anterior parts
see Elijah. Chardin (in Harmer's Observ. ii. only being cleft, it was excluded by the very terms
487) says the people in the East make vestments of the definition.
of camel's hair, which they pull off the animal at Dr. Kitto (Phys. H. of Palest, p. 391) says " the
the time it is changing its coat. ^Elian (Nat. H. Arabs adorn the necks of their camels with a band
xvii. 34) speaks of the excellent smooth quality of of cloth or leather, upon which are strung small
the hair of camels, which the wealthy near the Cas- shells called cowries in the form of half-moons."
pian Sea used to wear; but the garment of camel's This very aptly illustrates Judg. viii. 21, 26, with
hair which the Baptist wore was in all probability reference to the moon-shaped ornaments c that were
merely the prepared skin of the animal. on the necks of the camels which Gideon took from
Camel's milk was much esteemed by Orientals Zebah and Zalmunna. (Comp. Stat. Thebaid, ix.
(Aristot. Hist. Anim. vi. 25. § 1, ed. Schneid. 687. d [Ornaments.] )
From the temperate habits of the camel with re- some of the Rabbis, and adopted by
25), following
"
gard to its requirements of food and water, and Kosenmiiller, Gesenius, Lee, and others, that drom-
" are meant. According to those who sanc-
from its wonderful adaptation, both structurally edaries
and physiologically, to traverse the arid regions tion this rendering, the word (which occurs only in
which for miles afford but a scanty herbage, we can Isaiah, I. c.) is derived from the root ~1'^". "to
readily give credence to the immense numbers which leap," " to gallop; " but the idea involved is surely
Scripture speaks of as the property either of tribes The old
inapplicable to the jolting trot of a camel.
or individuals. The three thousand camels of Job versions moreover are opposed to such an explana-
may be illustrated to the very letter by a passage in
tion. We prefer, with Michaelis (Svpj)l. ad Lex.
Aristotle (//. A. ix. 37, § 5): "Now some men Ileb. No. 1210) and Parkhurst (s. v.), to under-
in upper Asia possess as many as three thousand stand by circdroth " panniers " or " baskets " car-
camels." ried on the backs of camels or mules, and to refer
2. Becer, bicrdh 0"O3, n"l33 LXX. Kafirj- the word to its unreduplicated form in Gen. xxxi.
:
<* See Schleusner (Thes. in LXX.) s. v. oi/<e'. translation) : "Sometimes they travel in a covered
vehicle which issecured on the back of a camel, and
l> From "133, i. q. "Ip2, " to be first."
answers the purpose of a small house." Parkhurst says
Go.
n*n3'n3 " is in the reduplicate form, because these
c
> Jo "a young camel," of the same age as " a
baskets were in pairs, and slung one on each side of
young man " amongst men. But the idea of swiftness the beast." In this sense the word may be referred
is involved even in the Arabic use of this word for
& d IT,
canopy over
:prop/rare, festinare (v. Gesenius, Thes.)
i. e.
it.
« the camel's saddle," with
s. v.).
tab. 58.
camelina, aliis, cum
guns which are fixed to the saddle. Col. H. Smith the writer encountered a small caravan of them,
says this species appears figured in the processions laden with military stores, in Greece, on the road
of the ancient Persian satrapies among the bas- between Delphi and Amphissa.
reliefs of Chehel Minar. Though the Bactrian Much important information in respect to the
camel was probably not used by the Jews, it was general characteristics and habits of the camel will
doubtless known to them in a late period of their be found in U. S. Senate Documents (viii. No. 62,
history, from their relations with Persia and Chal- pp. 1-238, 1856-7) relating to the purchase of
da?a. of Alep. ii. 170, 2d ed.) camels for purposes of military transportation. A
Russell (N. Hist,
says the two-humped camel is now seldom seen at circular was addressed by agents of the U. S. Gov-
Aleppo. ernment to American residents in the East, espe-
The camel, as may be readily conceived, is the cially our missionaries (II. 6. 0. Dwight, Edwin
subject amongst Orientals of many proverbial ex- E. Bliss, W. F. Williams) whose intelligent replies
pressions; see many cited by Boehart (Hieroz. i. to the inquiries made are replete with important
30), and comp. Matt, xxiii. 24, and xix. 24, where facts and suggestions illustrative of the subject.
there can be no doubt of the correctness of the Hints for Scripture also may be gleaned from them.
A. V., notwithstanding the attempts which are It is stated e. g. (p. 80) that camels, ordinarily occu-
made from time to time to explain away the ex- pying from 30 to 45 days on the journey to Mosul
pression the very magnitude of the hyperbole is from Aleppo by the way of Orfu and the Desert,
:
evidence in its favor with the Talmuds [Talmudic will accomplish the distance on an emergency in 13
;
writers] " an elephant passing through a needle's days. (See addition to Haran, Amer. ed.) The
eye" was a common figure to denote anything im- Hon. George P. Marsh has written a valuable trea-
possible. tise on " The Camel, his Organization, Habits, and
We may notice in conclusion the wonderful Uses, considered with reference to his Introduction
adaptation of the camel to the purposes for which into the United States," Boston, 1856, 16mo. It
it is designed. With feet admirably formed for is understood that the attempt to domesticate and
journeying over dry and loose sandy soil; with an employ the camel in the southern parts of our
internal reservoir for a supply of water when the country has proved a failure. H.
ordinary sources of nature fail with a hump of fat
;
a From "133,
- t'
oblevit : « Quia mulieres in oriente the Messiah, "12 D v3 t£7H, " the man that propi-
ungues oblinunt " (Sinionis, Lex. s. v.). Cf. Arabic tiates ali things " (Patrick's Commentary).
*
0> . > c nvns^-ns nntys'i m. « and she shaii
that it was not far from Capernaum (John ii. L2, parts of the same neighborhood. It has been
iv. 46), and also on higher ground, since our Lord alleged for the northeastern Kana that it is more
went down (KaTe/in) from the one to the other (ii. directly on the way to Capernaum. But there is
12). No further help is to be obtained from the not a word of proof that Jesus was going down to
notices either of Josephus ( Vit. § 16 B. J. i. 17, ; Capernaum at the time; he was at Cana, wherever
§ 5)— even if the place which he mentions be the it was, because he and his disciples had been invited
same — or of Eusebius and Jerome in their Ono- there to attend the marriage (John ii. 2). Nor if
masticon. he went down to Capernaum from Cana immedi-
The is at Kefir Kenna, a small
traditional site ately after the marriage (which is not certain —
village about 4a miles northeast of Nazareth. It since jUeTct tovto, John ii. 12, may mark that move-
now contains only the ruins of a church said to ment as only relatively subsequent) does the expres-
stand over the house in which the miracle was per- sion going down
' settle anything'
for it would ;
formed, and —
doubtless much older —
the fountain be topographically exact whether he went from the
from which the water for the miracle was brought one Kana or the other. Nor does the nobleman's
(Mitt/in, iii. 443-6). The Christians of the village coming to him
from Capernaum, to inter-
at Cana,
are entirely of the Greek Church. The " water- cede for his son (John
46 ff. ) decide the question iv.
pots of stone " were shown to M. Lamartine, for it is merely said that on hearing that Jesus
though at St. Willibald's visit centuries before had returned to Galilee from Judaea, he came to
there had been but one remaining (Early Trav. him where he was of course, whether the Cana —
16). In the time of the Crusades, the six jars in which he found him was the nearer or the more
were brought to France, where one of them is said distant one.
still to exist in the Musee d' Angers (see M. Di- Stanley (Notices of Localities, cj-c. p. 188) sug-
dron's Essays in the Annates Archeohgiques, xi. gests that Cana may have been one of the Galilean
5, xiii. 2). homes of Jesus; but his going thither on the return
The tradition identifying Kefr Kenna with Cana from Judaea (John iv. 43 ff.) so far from favoring this,
is certainly of considerable age. It existed in the is rather opposed to it. The reason assigned for
time of Willibald (the latter half of the 8th cent.), doing so, namely, that " a prophet is not without
who visited it in passing from Nazareth to Tabor, honor save in his own country," explains in effect
and again in that of Phocas (12th cent. See Re- why he avoided Nazareth (his iraTpls), to which he
land, 680). From that time until lately the tradi- might have been expected to go, and went to Cana,
tion appears to have been undisturbed. But even a place having so much less interest for him. H.
by Quaresmius the claims of another site were ad-
mitted, and these have been lately brought forward
CA'NAAN
0373? (=C'na/an; comp. the
by Dr. Robinson with much force. The rival site Greek name Xva, as mentioned below) [low, hum-
is a village situated further north, about 5 miles bled]: Xavadv; Jos. Xavdavos- C/ianaan). 1.
near the present Jefat, the Jotapata of the Jewish comp. Jos. Ant. i. 0, § 4), the progenitor of the
wars. This village still bears the name of Kana Phoenicians ("Zidon"), and of the various nations
who before the Israelite conquest peopled the sea-
el-Jelil (^AXil Li Li), a name which is in coast of Palestine, and generally the whole of the
every respect the exact representative of the Hebrew country westward of the Jordan (Gen. x. 15; 1
Chr. i. 13). [Canaan, land of; Canaaxites.]
original — as Kenna, KjS yi&, is widely differ-
In the ancient narrative of Gen. ix. 20-27, a curse
ent from it — and it is in this fact that the chief is pronounced on Canaan for the unfilial and irrev-
strength of the argument in favor of the northern erential conduct of Ham: it is almost as if the
Kana seems to reside. The argument from tradi- name had belonged to both, or the father were al-
tion is not of much
weight. The testimonies of ready merged in the son.
Willibald and Phocas, given above, appear to have 2. The name " Canaan " is sometimes employed
escaped the notice of Dr. Robinson, and they cer- for the country itself —
more generally styled " the
tainly form a balance to those of Adrichomius and land of C." It is so in Zeph. ii. 5; and we also
others,which he quotes against Kefr Kenna (Rob. find "Language of C." (Is. xix. 18): " Wars of
ii.346-9, iii. 108, with the note' on De Saulcy; C." (Judg. iii. 1): "Inhabitants of C." (Ex. xv.
comp. Ewald. v. 147; Mislin. iii. 443-6). 15): "King of C." (Judg. iv. 2, 23, 24, v. 19):
The Gospel history will not be affected whichever " Daughters of C." (Gen. xxviii. 1, 6, 8, xxxvi. 2):
site may
be discovered to be the real one. " Kingdoms of C." (Ps. cxxxv. 11). In addition to
G.
* Dr. Robinson(Bibl. Res. iii. 205, ed. 1841) the above the word occurs in several passages where
pronounces the addition of el-Jelil to the northern it is concealed in the A. V. by being translated.
Kana conclusive in favor of that village: most of These are: Is. xxiii. 8, "traffickers," and xxiii. 11,
the later writers acquiesce in this view. Thomson "the merchant city;" Gesenius, "Jehovah gab
raises a doubt whether any such designation dis- Befehl iiber Canaan: " Hos. xii. 7, " He is a mer-
tinguishes the one place from the other. Of the chant " Ewald, " Kanaan halt triigerische Wage: "
;
many, he says, to whom he put the question, " only Zeph. i. 11, " merchant-people; " Ewald, " dass alle
one had ever heard of the word JelU as a part Cananiter sind dahin." G.
if the name; and from the hesitancy with which
i. 332) has a long note in which he contends for the which the verb is used), a name denoting the coun-
352 CANAAN CANAANITES
try west of the Jordan and Dead Sea, and between naan, that being in the Greek both of the LXX.
those waters and the Mediterranean specially op-
posed to the " land of Gilead," that is, the high
;
and the N. T. Xavavcuos = s
33?3? (comp. Matt,
table-land on the east of the Jordan. xv. 22 with Mark vii. 26). Nor does it signify, as
Thus: "our
littleones and our wives shall be here in the cities has been suggested, a native of Kana, since that
of Gilead .... but we will pass over armed into would probably be Kavirrjs. But it comes from
the land of Canaan " (Num. xxxii. -26-32), and see a Chaldee or Syriac word, )S3|7, Kanedn, or
xxxiii. 51: " l'hineas returned from the chil-
. . .
dren of Reuben and the children of Gad out of the OTjO-Xil ^J.J_Q~I Kanenieh [?], by which I
land of Gilead into the land of Canaan to the chil- the Jewish' sect or faction of "the Zealots" so —
dren of Israel," Josh. xxii. .32: see also Gen. xii. prominent in the last days of Jerusalem was desig-
5, xxiii. 2, 19, xxxi. 18, xxxiii. 18, xxxv. 6, xxxvii. nated (see Buxtorf, Lex. [Talm.] s. v.). This Syr-
1, xlviii. 3, 7, xlix. 30; Num. xiii. 2, 17, xxxiii. iac word is the reading of the Peshito version. The
40, 51; Josh. xxi. 2; Judg. xxi. 12. True, the dis- Greek equivalent of Kanedn is ZijAojtvjs, Zelotes,
trict to which the name of " low land " is thus and this St. Luke (vi. 15; Acts i. 13) has correctly
applied contained many very elevated spots She- : — preserved. St. Matthew and St. Mark, on the
chem (Gen. xxxiii. 18), Hebron
19), Bethel (xxiii. other hand, have literally transferred the Syriac
(xxxv. 6), Bethlehem Shiloh (Josh. xxi.
(xlviii. 7), word, as the LXX. translators did frequently before
2; Judg. xxi. 12), which are all stated to be in the them. There is no necessity to suppose, as Mr.
" land of Canaan." But high as the level of much Cureton does (Nit nan Rec. lxxxvii.), that they
of the country west of the Jordan undoubtedly is,
mistook the word for i^l *, I .V I D \\
A ' ^ ' "*"]
there are several things which must always have
prevented, as they still prevent, it from leaving an ,
a Canaanite or descendant of Ca- = Xavavalos
impression of elevation. These are, (1) that re- naan. The Evangelists could hardly commit such
markable, wide, maritime plain over which the eye an error, whatever subsequent transcribers of their
ranges for miles from the central hills a feature of works may have done.
;
But that this meaning
the country which cannot be overlooked by the was afterwards attached to the word is plain from
most casual observer, and which impresses itself the readings of the Codex Bezse (D) and the Vul-
most indelibly on the recollection; (2) the still gate, as given above, and from the notice quoted
deeper, and still more remarkable and impressive from Cotelier in the note to Winer's article (p.
hollow of the Jordan valley, a view into which may 463). The spelling of the A. V. has doubtless
be commanded from almost any of the heights of led manyto the same conclusion and it would be ;
central Palestine; and, (3) there is the almost con- well were altered to " Kananite," or some other
if it
stant presence of the long high line of the moun- form distinguished from the well-known one in
tains east of the Jordan, which from their distance which it now stands. G.
have the effect more of an enormous cliff than of a * Simon is supposed to have been called the
mountain range —
looking down on the more bro- "Cananite" or "Zealot" because of his former
ken and isolated hills of Canaan, and furnishing a zeal in behalf of Judaism. As there was another
constant standard of height before which everything Simon among the Apostles, he appears to have re-
is dwarfed. tained the name after he became a disciple, as a
The word " Canaanite " was used in the 0. T. means of distinction, though it had ceased to
in two senses, a broader and a narrower, which will mark the trait of character out of which it arose.
be most conveniently examined under that head It has been said that he took the appellation from
but this does not appear to be the case with " Ca- his having belonged to a political sect known as the
naan," at least in the older cases of its occurrence. Zealots, mentioned by Josephus (B. J. iv. 3, § 9);
It is only in later notices, such as Zeph. ii. 5, and but though he may have shown the same tendencies
Matt. xv. 22, that we find it applied to the low of character, the party historically distinguished
maritime plains of I'hilistia and Phoenicia (comp. by that name did not appear till a later period.
Mark vii. 26). In the same manner it was by the See Wetstein's Nov. Test. i. 366. H.
Greeks that the name Xua, C'rm, was used for
CA'NAANITES, THE C^???!}, i- e. ac-
Phoenicia, i.
the testimony of Augustine, both quoted by Gese- but very unfrequently, occurs Xavavatos, $oivi£,
:
nius, 696.) The LXX. translators had learnt to Ex. vi. 15, comp. Josh. v. 1: Chananem), a word
apply this meaning to the word, and in two cases used in two senses: (1) a tribe which inhabited a
they render the Hebrew words given above by particular locality of the land west of the Jordan
Xwpa t£>v boiviKuv (Ex. xvi. 35; Josh. v. 12, before the conquest; and (2) in a wider sense, the
comp. as they do " Canaanites " by 4>oiViKes.
v. 1), people who inhabited generally the whole of that
G. country.
* CANAAN, LANGUAGE OF, Is. xix. 1 . Eor the tribe of " the Canaanites " only — the
18. See Canaanites; Ham. dwellers in the lowland. The whole of the country
west of Jordan was a "lowland " as compared with
CA'NAANITE, THE (Rec. T. 6 Kavavtrys, the loftier and more extended tracts on the east:
A, Kai/ai/eiTTjs; Lachm. [Tisch. Treg.] with 15 but there was a part of this western country which
C, o Kavavalosl D [in Matt.], Xavavaios- Cha- was still more emphatically a "lowland." (a.)
nantus), the designation of the Apostle Simon, There were the plains lying between the shore of
otherwise known as " Simon [the] Zelotes." It the Mediterranean- and the foot of the hills of Ben-
occurs in Matt. x. 4 ; Mark. iii. 18. jamin, Judah, and Ephraim the Shefelnh or —
The word does not signify a descendant of Ca~ plain of Philistia on the south that of Sharon —
CANAANITES CANAANITES 353
between Jaffa and Carmel — the great plain of Es-but the expression " inhabitants of
stricter sense ;
the plain of Phoenicia, containing Tyre, Sidon, and eral. Again, in Gen. x. 18, 19, where the preseat
all the other cities of that nation, (b.) But sep- writer believes the tribe to be intended, Gesenius
arated entirely from these was the still lower region takes it to apply to the whole of the Canaanite
of the Jordan Valley or Arabah, the modern Gkdr, nations. But in these and other similar instances,
a region which extended in length from the sea of allowance must
surely be made for the different
Cinneroth (Genneaafeth) to the south of the Dead dates at which the various records thus compared
Sea about 120 miles, with a width of from 8 to 14. were composed. And besides this, it is difficult to
The climate of these sunken regions —
especially imagine what accurate knowledge the Israelites can
of the valley of the Jordan —
is so peculiar, that it have possessed of a set of petty nations, from
whom
is natural to find them the special possession of one they had been
entirely removed for four hundred
tribe. "Amalek" —
so runs one of the earliest years, and with whom they were now again brought
and most precise statements in the ancient records into contact only that they might exterminate them
of Scripture — " Amalek dwells in the land of the as soon as possible. And before we can solve such
south and the Hittite, and the Jebusite, and the questions we also ought to know more than we do
;
Amorite, dwell in the mountains; and the Canaan- of the usages and circumstances of people who dif-
" fered not only from ourselves, but also possibly in a
ite dwells by the sea, and by the side of Jordan
(Num. xiii. 29). This describes the division of material degree from the Orientals of the present
the country a few years only before the conquest. day. The tribe who possessed the ancient city of
But there had been little or no variation for cen- Hebron, besides being, as shown above, called inter-
turies. In the notice which purports to be the changeably Canaanites and Amorites, are in a third
earliest of all, the seats of the Canaanite tribe
—
passage (Gen. xxiii.) called the children of Heth or
aa distinguished from the sister tribes of Zidon, Hittites (comp. also xxvii. 46 with
xxviii. 1, 6).
the Hittites, Amorites, and the other descendants The Canaanites who were dwelling in the land of
of Canaan —
are given as on the seashore from the south when the Israelites made their attack on
Zidon to Gaza, and in the Jordan valley to Sodom, it, may have been driven to these higher and more
Gomorrah, and Lasha (afterwards Callirhoe), on the barren grounds by some other tribes, possibly by
shore of the present Dead Sea (Gen. x. 18-20). the Philistines who displaced the. Awites, also
In Josh. xi. 3 —
at a time when the Israelites were dwellers in the low country (Deut. ii. 23).
actually in the western country this is expressed —Beyond their chariots (see above) we have no
more broadly. " The Canaanite on the east and clue to any manners or customs of the Canaanites.
the west" is carefully distinguished from the Like the Phoenicians, they were probably given to
Amorite who held "the mountain" in the centre commerce and thus the name became probably in;
of the country. In Josh. xiii. 2, 3, we are told later times an occasional synonym for a merchant
(Job xli. 6 Prov. xxxi. 24 comp. Is. xxiii. 8, 11
; ;
with more detail that " all the circles (1117 ?S) '
'
Phcm.
Hos. xii. 7 ; Zeph. i. 1 1. See Kenrick, p.
of the Philistines . . . from Sihor (the Wady e
232).
Arish) unto Ekron northward, is counted to the Of the language of the Canaanites little can be
Canaanite." Later still, the Canaanites are still said. On the one hand, being if the genealogy —
dwelling in the upper part of the Jordan Valley
— of Gen. x. be right —
Hamites, there could be no
Bethshean; the plain of Esdraelon Taanach, affinity between their language and that of the Is-
Ibleam, and Megiddo the plain of Sharon
; Dor — raelites, who were descendants of Shem. On the
and also on the plain of Phcenicia Accho and — other is the fact that Abram and Jacob shortly
Zidon. .Here were collected the chariots which after their entrance to the country seem able to
formed a prominent part of their armies (Judg. i. hold converse with them, and also that the names
19, iv. 3; Josh. xvii. 16), and which could indeed of Canaanite persons and places which we possess,
be driven nowhere but in these level lowlands (Stan- are translatable into Hebrew. Such are Melchize-
ley, 8. <f- P. p. 134). dek, Hamor, Shechem, Sisera . . . Ephrath, and
The plains which thus appear to have been in also a great number of the names of places. But
possession of the
Canaanites specially so called, we know that the Egyptian and Assyrian names
were not only of great extent; they were also the have been materially altered in their adoption into
richest and most important parts of the country, Hebrew records, either by translation into Hebrew
and it is not unlikely that this was one of the rea- equivalents, or from the impossibility of accurately
sons for the name of " Canaanite " being rendering the sounds of one language by those of
2. Applied as a general name for the non-Israel- another. The modern Arabs have adopted the He-
ite inhabitants of the land, as we have already seen brew names of places as nearly as would admit of
was the case with "Canaan. their having a meaning in Arabic, though that
1
Instances of this are, Gen. xii. 6; Num. xxi. meaning may be widely different from that of the
3 — where the name applied is to dwellers in the Hebrew name. Examples of this are Beil-ur, Beit-
south, who 29 are
in xiii. Amalekites; Judg.
called lahm, Bir es-Seba, which mean respectively, " house
i. 10 — with which comp. (Jen. xiv. 13 and xiii. 18, of the eye," "house of flesh," "well of the lion,"
and Josh. x. 5, where Hebron, the highest land in while the Hebrew names which these have super-
Palestine, is stated to be Amorite; and Gen. xiii. seded meant "house of caves," "house of bread,"
12, where the "land of Canaan " is distinguished "well of the oath." May not a similar process
from the very Jordan valley itself. See also Gen. have taken place when the Hebrews took possession
xxiv. 3, 37, comp. xxviii. 2, 6; Ex. xiii. 11, comp. of the Canaanite towns, and " called the lands after
5. But in many of its occurrences it is difficult their own names? " (For an examination of this
to know in which category to place the word. Thus interesting but obscure subject see Gesenius, Hebr.
in Gen. 1. 11: if the floor of Atad was at Beth- Spy. pp. 223-5.)
hogla, close to the west side of the Jordan, " the The " Nethinim " or servants of the temple seem
Canaanites" must be intended in the narrower and to have originated in the dedication of captives
23
354 CANDACE CANDLESTICK
taken in war from the petty states surrounding the words are the following " Inde Napata LXXX. :
Israelites. [Nethinim.] If this was the case, mill.; oppidum id parvum inter praedicta solum.
and if they were maintained in number from sim- Ab eo ad insulam Meroen CCCLX M. Herbas circa
ilar sources, there must be many non-Israelite names Meroen demum viridiores, silvarumque aliquid ap-
in the lists of their families which we possess in paruisse et rhinocerotum elephantorumque vestigia.
Ezr. ii. 43-54; Neh. vii. 46-56. Several of the Ipsum oppidum Meroen ab introitu insulae abesse
names in these catalogues —
such as Sisera, Me- LXX. mill, passuum: juxtaque aliam insulam Tadu
hunim, Nephushim —
are the same as those which dextro subeuntibus alveo, qua? portum faceret.
we know to be foreign, and doubtless others would iEdificia oppidi pauca. Regnare feminam Can-
be found on examination. The subject perhaps dacem quod nomen multis jam annis ad reginas ;
would not be beneath the examination of a Hebrew transiit." If " aedificia oppidi" refers to "Me-
scholar. roen," just before, then "regnare Candacem " does
This is perhaps the proper place for noticing the of course, and Candace reigned in the city and
various shapes under which the formula for desig- island name.
of that But, on the other hand,
nating the nations to be expelled by the Israelites Meroe was an important city, and could not well
is given in the various books. "
be said to consist of a few buildings," and Napata
1. Six nations the Canaanites, Hittites, Amor-
: might be so described and hence, as some suppose,
;
ites, Perizzites, Hivites, and Jebusites. This is Pliny at this point goes back to the remoter Napata,
the usual form, and, with some variation in the of which he has already spoken as " parvum," and
order of the names, found in Ex. iii. 8, 17,
it is so much the more as that is uppermost in the mind,
xxiii. 23, xxxiii. 2, xxxiv. Deut. xx. 17 Josh. 11 ; ; as being the place from which he reckons the situa-
ix. 1, xii. 8 Judg. iii. 5. In Ex. xiii. 5, the same
; tion of the other places named.
names are given with the omission of the Periz- Others suppose that Napata was only one of the
zites. capitals of Meroe, and that Strabo and Dion Cassius
2. With the addition of the Girgashites, making speak of Candace in connection with the former
up the mystic number seven (Deut. vii. 1 ; Josh, place rather than the latter, because she had a noted
iii. 10, xxiv. 11). The Girgashites are retained palace there. It follows, then (to make the con-
and the Hivites omitted in Neh. ix. 8 (comp. Ezr. ciliation here complete), that Strabo must mean by
ix. 1). "kings" rulers of both sexes. Eitter (Erdhunde,
3. In Ex. xxiii. 28, we find the Canaanite, the i. 592, 2d ed. ) regards the Napata of Pliny as a
Hittite, and the Hivite. different place from that of Strabo. For a fuller
4. The
list of ten nations in Gen. xv. 19-21 in- statement of the case, the reader is referred to J.
cludessome on the east of Jordan, and probably C. M. Laurent's Neutestamentliche Studien, pp.
some on the south of Palestine. 140-140 (Gotha, 1866); and Bibl. Sacra, 1866,
5. In 1 K. ix. 20 the Canaanites are omitted
pp. 515-16.
from the list. G. The name Candace, says Riietschi (Herzog's
CANT) ACE (KavSdicv, Strab. xvii. p. 820), a Real-Encykl. vii. 243), appears not to be of Semitic
queen of Ethiopia (Meroe), mentioned Acts viii. origin, at least no satisfactory etymology has yet
27. The name was not a proper name of an indi- been assigned for it. The supposition that the
vidual, but that of a dynasty of Ethiopian queens. Candace in Acts viii. 27 was the one who fought
(See Plin. vi. 35; Dion Cass. liv. 5; Strab. I. c.) against the Romans b. c. 22 (Strabo, xvii. 1, § 54)
The eunuch of this queen, who had charge of all is just possible, so far as the dates are concerned,
her treasure, is mentioned in Acts as having been but has every presumption against it. Some of
met by Philip the Evangelist on the desert road the commentators suppose her to have been the
from Jerusalem to Gaza, and converted to Chris- same; in which case she must have reigned under
tianity. Ethiopian tradition gives him the name the emperor Claudius, and have been nearly ninety
of Indich; and in Iren. iii. 12, and Euseb. //. E. years old at the time of Philip's baptizing the
ii. 1, he is said to have first propagated the gospel eunuch. Pliny's statement that Candace was a
in Arabia Felix and Ethiopia, but Sophronius transmitted title of these Ethiopian queens renders
makes him preach and suffer martyrdom in the so violent a supposition needless. H.
island of Ceylon. (See Wolf, Curos, ii. 113.)
H. A. CANDLESTICK (iTTOE : \v X viarod <pw-
* The foregoing is the generally received view, r6s, 1 Mace. i. 21 ; 6 aQd.va.ros — Aey6/j.ei>os \i>x~
but is subject still to some doubt. Of ,the writers to vos KaX Kai6/j.evos aStaAeiirTUs if t<$ vaw, Diod.
whom appeal is made, Strabo (xvii. 2, § 3) says ex- Sic. ap. Schleusn. Thes. s. v.), which Moses was
pressly that the inhabitants of Meroe appoint kings commanded to make for the tabernacle, is described
(/3a<riA.e'as) as their sovereigns, and appoint them Ex. xxv. 31-37, xxxvii. 17-24. It is called in Lev.
for their personal qualities, being therefore elective, xxiv. 4, " the pure," and in Ecclus. xxvi. 17, " the
dence of Candace was Napata (tovto ijv to /3a- (mentioned below) it required a talent of "pure
aiXeiov rrjs KavoaKrjs), a different place from gold," and it was not moulded, but "of beaten
Meroe, eighty-six geographical miles farther north. work" (roptvT-fi)- Josephus, however, says (Ant.
iii. 6, § 7) that it was of cast gold (Kex a>vev tx ^ V7>^
Dion Cassius (liv. 5, though he writes erroneously
Taudirri) makes the same distinction, referring the and hollow. From its golden base (Tf*^, /3<x<m,
queens who bore this title to Napata, and not Meroe.
Joseph.), which, according to the Jews, was 3 feet
In accordance with these notices, Rawlinson {Herod-
high (Winer, Leuchter), sprang a main shaft or reed
otus, ii. 41) makes Napata the capital of one part
of Ethiopia, and Meroe the seat of another inde- (n.3r), " and spread itself into as many branches
pendent kingdom. The passage in Pliny {Hist. as there are planets, including the sun. It ter-
Nat. vi. 35) does not disagree with this conclusion, minated in 7 heads all in one row, all standing
though it is chiefly his language that has misled parallel to one another, one by one, in imitation
readers, if they have fallen into error here. His of the number of the planets " (Whiston's Jos. ubi
CANDLESTICK CANDLESTICK 355
tupra). As the description given in Ex. is not very the apartment of the tabernacle, opposite the
first
clear, we abbreviate Lightfoot's explanation of it. table of shew-bread, which it was intended to il-
" The foot of it was gold, from which went up a lumine, in an oblique position (\o£us) so that the
shaft straight, which was the middle light. Near lamps looked to the east and south (Joseph. Ant.
the foot was a golden dish wrought almondwise; iii. 6, § 7; Ex. xxv. 37); hence the central was
and a little above that a golden knop, and above called " the western " lamp, according to some,
that a golden flower. Then two branches, one on though others render it "the evening lamp," and
each side, bowed, and coming up as high as the say that it alone burned perpetually (Ex. xxvii. 20,
middle shaft. On each of them were three golden 21), the others not being lit during the day, al-
cups placed almondwise, on sharp, scollop-shell though the Holy Place was dark (Ex. xxx. 8 1 ;
of its Kitnv and Aeirro] KavXiffKoi by Josephus, on the capital (ver. 35) of one of the three lower,
agrees only tolerably with the deeply interesting the fourth and uppermost bearing the central
sculpture on the Arch of Titus; but he drops a lamp.
hint that it was not identical with the one used in As thus understood, the passage is interpreted
the Temple, saying (possibly in allusion to the fan- according to its strictest grammatical construction,
tastic griffins, &c, sculptured on the pediment, and each term is taken in its ordinary acceptation
which are so much worn that we found it difficult in the Hebrew Scriptures. The form, as thus repre-
to make them out), to epyov i£j]\\a.KTO tt}s Kara sented, is more symmetrical than the one sculpt-
"somewhat different from the golden candlestick of abrum of the first Hebrew tabernacle.
the temple." These questions are examined in Re- Whether the lamps were all on the same level,
land's treatise De Spoliis Templi Hierosol. in Arcu as supposed to be represented on the Arch of Titus
Titiano conspicuis. The general accuracy of the (for the central shaft is defaced at the top), whether
sculpture is undoubted (Prideaux, Con. i. 166). the lamp was highest, as supposed by
central
After the triumph the candlestick was deposited Ewald, and whether the seven lamps were arranged
in the Temple of Peace, and according to one story in a pyramidal form, as supposed by Scachius, is
ably suggested by the two large golden chandeliers, The term candlestick (A. V.) is obviously inap-
lighted in the court of the women during the Feast propriate here. It is also improperly used in the
of Tabernacles, which illuminated all Jerusalem New Testament in passages where lamp-stand is
(Wetstein, ad be), or perhaps to the lighting of meant by the Greek word (Air^i/ia).
this colossal candlestick, " the more remarkable in As to the allusion in our Saviour's words, "I
the profound darkness of an Oriental town " (Stan- am the light of the world," it has been shown by
ley, S. 4- P. p. 428). F. W. F. Liicke (who examines the subject minutely), and
* According to the description given in Ex. xxv. by Meyer, that they could not have been suggested
31-37, the candelabrum, or chandelier, of the tab- by the lighting of the lamps in the temple. On
the contrary, there is a manifest reference to the
ernacle (improperly called candlestick in the com-
repeated and familiar predictions of the Messiah, as
mon English version) was constructed as follows:
"a light of the Gentiles" (Is. xlii. 6, xlix. 6), as
From a base or stand (called TfX, properly the which
"the Sun of righteousness" (Mai. iv. 2), to
upper portion of the thigh where it joins the body,
allusion is made in Luke i. 78, 79, as " the day-
and hence, naturally, the support on which a struct- spring from on high," " to give light to them that
sit in darkness." Comp. Matt. iv. 16; Luke ii.
ure rests) rose an upright central shaft (Tlip,
32. T. J. C.
a. reed, cane) bearing the central lamp; from two
three on a side, making six branches from the main CANKERWORM. [Locust.]
shaft, all being in the same plane with it, and each CAN'NEH (n33, one Codex nibs : Xa-
bearing a lamp. [Cal-
vaa; Alex. XavaaV- Chene), Ez. xxvii. 23.
As parts of the main shaft and its branches, NEH.]
serving for ornaments of the structure, are men-
CANON OF SCRIPTURE, THE, may
(V??< properly a cvp or bowl,
tioned flower-cups be generally described as " the collection of books
hence, the calyx or outer covering of a flower), capi- which forms the original and authoritative written
rule of the faith and practice of the Christian
tals (~'J l??j crown of a column, its capital, Am.
r
Church." Starting from this definition it will be
ix. 1; Zeph. ii. 14), and floicers
(PPS). In the object of the present article to examine shortly,
shape, the capital may have had the rounded form I. The original meaning of the term II. The Jew- ;
of fruit, as indicated in some of the ancient ver- ish Canon of the Old Testament Scriptures as to
sions and Josephus. (a) its formation, and (0) extent; III.
The Chris-
From the representation in verses 33-35, these tian Canon of the Old; and IV. of the New Tes-
parts appear to have been arranged as follows: tament.
Each of the six side-branches (ver. 33) had three I. The use of the word Canon. The word —
flower-cups (calyxes) shaped like the calyx of the
Canon (.Kav&v, akin to PPH [cf. Gesen. Thes. s.
almond blossom, and terminated in a crown or cap-
ital, with its ornamental flower, as a receptacle for
v.], icai/Tj, Kavva, carina [canalis, channel], cane,
straight
the lamp. The central shaft (vers. 34, 35) was cannon) in classical Greek is (1.) properly a
or that used in weaving
composed of four such combinations of calyx, capi- rod, as the rod of a shield,
CANON OANON 357
(liciatortum), or a carpenter's rule. (2.) The ing part of and giving the rule."
last It is true that
usage offers an easy transition to the metaphorical an ambiguity thus attaches to the word, which may
use of the word for a testing rule in ethics (comp. mean only " publicly used in the Church " but such ;
Arist. Eth. Nic. iii. 4, 5), or in art (the Canon of an ambiguity may find many parallels, and usage
Polycletus; Luc. de Salt. p. 946 B.), or in language tended to remove it." The spirit of Christendom
(the Canons of Grammar). The varied gift of recognized the books which truly expressed its es-
tongues, according to the ancient interpretation of sence; and in lapse of time, when that spirit was
Acts ii. 7, was regarded as the "canon" or test deadened by later overgrowths of superstition, the
which determined the direction of the labors of the written " Rule " occupied the place and received
several Apostles (Severian. ap. Cram. Cat. in Art. the name of that vital "Rule" by which it was
ii. 7, SiSoTai iKaffrco yhSiaaa Kaddnep navm/)- first stamped with authority (6 Kavwv rr\s aXrj-
Chronological tables were called Kau6ves xp 0VlK0 1' Beias ai 0e?ai ypacpai, Isid. Pelus. Ep. cxiv. comp. ;
(Plut. Sol. p. 27); and the summary of a book Aug. de ductr. Clu: iv. 9 (6); and as a contrast
was called Kavtiiu, as giving the "rule," as it were, Anon. ap. Euseb. H. E. v. 28).
of its composition. The Alexandrine grammarians The first direct application of the term Kavwv to
applied the word in this sense to the great " clas- the Scriptures seems to be in the verses of Amphi-
sical " writers, who were styled "the rule" (6 lochius (c. 380 a. d.), who concludes his well-known
Kavwv), or the perfect model of style and language. Catalogue of the Scriptures with the words outos
(3.) But in addition to these activemeanings the av^euSecrTOTOJ Kavwv av eirj twv 9eoirvevo~TWV
word was also used passively measured space ypatpwv, where the word indicates the rule by
lor a
(at Olympia), and, in later times, for a fixed tax which the contents of the Bible must be deter-
(Du Cange, s. v. Canon). mined, and thus secondarily an index of the con-
The ecclesiastical usage of the word offers a com- stituent books. Among Latin writers the word is
plete parallel to the classical. It occurs in the commonly found from the time of Jerome (Prol.
LXX. in its literal sense (Jud. xiii. 6), and again Gal. Tobias et Judith non sunt in Canone)
. . .
in Aquila (Job xxxviii. 5). In the N. T. it is and Augustine (De Civ. xvii. 24, perpauci
. . .
found in two places in St. Paul's epistles (Gal. vi. auctoritatem Canonis obtinuerunt; id. xviii. 38,
16; 2 Cor. x. 13-16), and in the second place the inveniuntur in Canone), and their usage of
. . .
transition from an active to a passive sense is wor- the word, which is wider than that of Greek writers,
thy of notice. In patristic writings the word is is the source of its modern acceptation.
commonly used both as "a rule" in the widest The uncanonical books were described simply as
sense, and especially in the phrases " the rule of the " those without," or " those uncanonized " (a/ca-
Church," "the rule of faith," the rule of truth" v6viara, Cone. L'lod. lix.). The Apocryphal books,
(6 Kavuiv ttjs inK\riffias, 6 Kavwv tTjs a\7]6^ias, which were supposed to occupy an intermediate
6 Kavwv rr/s iriffTecos; and so also Kavwv eKKAr/- position, were called "books read " (avayiyvwo~K6-
<TiaffTiK6s, and 6 Kavwv simply). This rule was /xeva, Athan. Ep. Fest.), or "ecclesiastical" (ec-
regarded either as the abstract, ideal standard, em- clesiastic}, Rufin. in Symb. Apost. § 38), though
bodied only in the life and action of the Church; the latter title was also applied to the canonical
or, again, as the concrete, definite creed, which set Scriptures (Leont. I. c. infr.). The canonical books
forth the facts from which that life sprang (reg- (Leont. de Sect. ii. ra Kav o v i(6 pe v a /3'/3A.ia)
vla: Tertull. de Virg. vel. 1). In the fourth were also called "books of the Testament" (iv-
century, when the practice of the Church was fur- SiddrjKa j8i/3A.ta), and Jerome styled the whole col-
ther systematized, the decisions of synods were lection by the striking name of " the holy library "
styled " Canons," and the discipline by which min- (Bibliotheca sancta), which happily expresses the
isterswere boivnd was technically "the Rule," and unity and variety of the Bible (Credner, Zur Gesch.
those who were thus bound were styled Canonici d. Kan. § 1; Hist, of Canon of N. T. App. D).
("Canoas"). In the phrase "the canon (i. e. II. (a) The formation of the Jewish Canon. —
fixed part) of the mass," from which the popular The history of the Jewish Canon in the earliest
sense of "canonize" is derived, the passive sense times is beset with the greatest difficulties. Before
again prevailed. the period of the exile only faint traces occur of the
As applied to Scripture the derivatives of Kavwv solemn preservation and use of sacred books. Ac-
are used long before the simple word. The Latin cording to the command of Moses the " book of the
translation of Origen speaks of Scripturce Canon- law " was " put in the side of the ark " (Deut. xxxi.
ical, (de Princ. iv. 33), libri regulares (Comm. in 25 ff), but not in it (1 K. viii. 9; comp. Joseph.
Mutt. § 117), and Ubri canomzati (id. § 28). In Ant. iii. i. 7, v. 1, 17), and thus in the reign of
another place the phrase haberi in Canone (Prol. Josiah, Hilkiah is said to have " found the book of
in Cant. s. f. ) occurs, but probably only as a trans- the law in the house of the Lord " (2 K. xxii. 8;
lation of Kavovi^eadai, which is used in this and cog- comp. 2 Chr. xxxiv. 14). This "book of the law,"
nate senses in Athanasius {Ep. Fest.), the Laodi- which, in addition to the direct precepts (Ex. xxiv.
cene Canons (a.Kav6vurTa, Can. lix.), and later 7), contained general exhortations (Deut. xxviii.
writers. This circumstance seems to show that the 61) and historical narratives (Ex. xvii. 14), was
title " Canonical " was first given to writings in the further increased by the records of Joshua (Josh,
sense of " admitted by the rule," and not as "form- xxiv. 26), and probably by other writings (1 Sam.
n Crcdner accepts the popular interpretation, as if sical authors with the " canon " of Scripture, not-
canonical were equivalent to " having the force of withstanding the tempting analogy. If it could be
law," and supposes that scripturce l;%is, a phrase oc- shown that 6 zcai/wr was used at an early period for
curring in the time of the persecution of Diocletian, the list of sacred books, then it would be the simplest
represents ypa<t>al kclvovos, which however does not, as interpretation to take Ka.vovi£e<r8a.i in the sense of
far as I know, occur anywhere (Zur Gesch. d. Kan. :r
being entered on the list." [For this view see F. C.
p. 67). The terms canonical and canonize are prob- Baur, Die Beiteutung des Wattes Kai/wv, in Hilgen-
ably of Alexandrine origin ; but there is not the feld's Zeitschr. f. wiss. Theol., 1858, i. 141-150.
slightest evidence for connecting the " canon " of clas-
358 CANON CANON
x. 25), though it is impossible to determine their view harmonizes with what must have been the
contents." At a subsequent time collections of natural development of the Jewish faith after the
proverbs were made (Prov. xxv. 1), and the later Return. The Constitution of the Church and the
prophets (especially Jeremiah comp. Kueper, Je-
; formation of the Canon were both from their nature
rem. Libror. ss. interp. et vindex, Berol. 1837) gradual and mutually dependent. The construction
were familiar with the writings of their predeces- of an ecclesiastical polity involved the practical de-
sors, a circumstance which may naturally be con- termination of the divine rule of truth, though, as
nected with the training of " the prophetic schools." in the parallel case of the Christian Scriptures,
It perhaps marks a further step in the formation open persecution first gave a clear and distinct ex-
of the Canon when " the book of the Lord " is men- pression to the implicit faith.
tioned by Isaiah as a general collection of sacred The persecution of Antiochus (b. c. 168) was for
teaching (xxxiv. 16; comp. xxix. 18), at once fa- the Old Testament what the persecution of Dio-
miliar and authoritative; but it is unlikely that was for the New, the final crisis which
cletian
any definite collection either of " the psalms " or stamped the sacred writings with their peculiar
of " the prophets " existed before the Captivity. character. The king sought out " the books of
At that time Zechariah speaks of " the law " and the law " (ra fii&Aia tov v6/j.ov, 1 Mace. i. 56)
" the former prophets " as in some measure coor- and burnt them and the possession of a " book
;
dinate (Zech. vii. 12); and Daniel refers to " the of the covenant " ( /3i/3Aioj/ Siaflrj/CTjs) was a cap-
ital crime (Joseph. Ant. xii. 5, § 4, r)<pavi£ero
books" (Dan. ix. 2, D^IQDH) in a manner which
elirov /3i'/3A.os eupeSei'rj Upa Kal v6/xos ....).
seems to mark the prophetic writings as already According to the common tradition, this proscrip-
collected into a whole. Even after the Captivity tion of " the law " led to the public use of the writ-
the history of the Canon, like all Jewish history up ings of the prophets, and without discussing the
to the date of the Maccabees, is wrapt in great ob- accuracy of this belief, it is evident that the gen-
scurity. Faint traditions alone remain to interpret eral effect of such a persecution would be, to direct
results which are found realized when the darkness the attention of the people more closely to the books
is first cleared away. Popular belief assigned to which they connected with the original foundation
Ezra and " the great synagogue" the task of col- of their faith. And
this was in fact the result of
lecting and promulgating the Scriptures as part of
the great After the Maccabsean persecution
trial.
their work in organizing the Jewish Church. the history of the formation of the Canon is merged
Doubts have been thrown upon this belief (Kau, in the history of its contents.'' The Bible appears
De Synag. magna, 1726; comp. Ewald, Gesch. d. from that time as a whole, though it was natural
V. hi: iv. 191), and it is difficult to answer them,
that the several parts were not yet placed on an
from the scantiness of the evidence which can be equal footing, nor regarded universally and in every
adduced but the belief is in every way consistent
;
respect with equal reverence c (comp. Zunz, Die got-
with the history of Judaism and with the internal tesd. Vortv. d. Juden, pp. 14, 25, &c).
evidence of the books themselves. The later em- But while the combined evidence of tradition
bellishments of the tradition, which represent Ezra and of the general course of Jewish history leads
as the second author of all the books [2 Esdras], to the conclusion that the Canon in its present
or define more exactly the nature of his work, can shape was formed gradually during a lengthened
only be accepted as signs of the universal belief in interval, beginning with Ezra and extending through
his labors, and ought not to cast discredit upon the a part or even the whole (Neh. xii. 11, 22) of the
simple fact that the foundation of the present Ca- Persian period (b. c. 458-332), when the cessation
non is due to him. Nor can it be supposed that of the prophetic gift d pointed out the necessity and
the work was completed at once ; so that the defined the limits of the collection, it is of the- ut-
account (2 Mace. ii. 13) which assigns a collection most importance to notice that the collection was
of books to Nehemiah is in itself a confirmation of peculiar in character and circumscribed in contents.
the general truth of the gradual formation of the All the evidence which can be obtained, though it
Canon during the Persian period. The work of is confessedly scanty, tends to show that it is false,
Nehemiah is not described as initiatory or final. both in theory and fact, to describe the O. T. as
The tradition omits all mention of the law, which " all the relics of the Hebraeo-Chaldaic literature
may be supposed to have assumed its final shape up to a certain epoch " (De Wette, Einl. § 8), if
under Ezra, but says that Nehemiah " gathered the phrase is intended to refer to the time when
together the [writings] concerning the kings and the Canon was completed. The epilogue of Eccle-
prophets, and the [writings] of David, and letters siastes (xii. 11 ff.) speaks of an extensive literature,
of kings concerning offerings " while " founding a with which the teaching of Wisdom is contrasted,
library" (Kara^aWSfxeyos fSifSKioOijKriv tiriffu-
and " weariness of the flesh " is described as the
fr)yayf ra. irtpl tSiv /SaatAfcoj/ Kal npo(pr]Twv Kal result of the study bestowed upon it. It is im-
ra, rov AavlS eirio-roAas fraffiKiwv Trepl ava-
iced
that these "many writings" can have
possible
6eua.T(i>Vj 2 Mace. I. c). The various classes of perished in the interval between the composition
books were thus completed in succession and this
of Ecclesiastes and the Greek invasion, and the
;
a According to some (Fabric. Cod. Pseudep. V. T. in particular to his care with regard to the restitution
i. 1113), this collection of sacredbooks was preserved of the copies of the sacred writings which were " lost
by Jeremiah at the destruction of the Temple (comp. (SiaTrenrioKOTa). It is of importance to notice that the
2 Mace. ii. 4 f.) according
; to others it was consumed work was a restoration, and not a new collection.
together with the ark (Epiph. de Pond. civ. ii. 162). Yet the distinction between the three degrees of
c
In 2 K. xxii. 8 ff., 2 Chr. xxxiv. 14 ff., mention is made inspiration which were applied by Abarbanel (Keil,
only of the Law. Einl. 158, 6) to the three classes of writings is un-
§
b The reference to the work of Judas Mace, in 2 known to the early rabbins.
Mace. 14, oxrauTws 6e xai 'IovSas to. 8iaire7rraiKdTa
ii. d After Malachi, according to the Jewish tradition
(Titringa, Obs. Sacr. vi. 6 ap. Keil, c).
fiia rov iroAejxov tov yeyovoro. r)^lv eirt.o-uvriyo.ye rravra, ; I.
later date (c. B. c. 131), it falls in with what has lent as to the latter in his narrative (comp. Orig.
been said on the effect of the Antiochian persecu- ap. Euseb. //. E. vi. 25). The later history, he
tion. After that " the law, the prophecies, and the adds, has also been written in detail, but the records
remainder of the books" are mentioned as integral have not been esteemed worthy of the same credit,
sections of a completed whole (6 i/6/j.os, " because the accurate succession of the prophets
Kal al
irpo(p7)Te?ai, Kcd to. \onra rSiv /3:/3A.ia;j'), and the was not preserved in their case " (8ia to /j.t] ye-
phrase which designates the last class suggests no veffOai t))?' rSiv Trpo(pr]Tui>v aKptfii) StaBoxvv)-
reason for supposing that that was still indefinite " But what faith we place in our own Scriptures
and open to additions. A like threefold classifica- {•ypa.fi.fia.ffiv) is seen in our conduct. They have
tion is used for describing the entire 0. T. in the suffered no addition, diminution, or change. From
Gospel of St. Luke (xxiv. 44, ev t<£ v6po> McoiWcur our infancy we learn to regard them as decrees of
Kal Trpo(prirats Kal \pa\fxo7s; comp. Acts xxviii. 23), God (®eoD S6yfiaTa); we observe them, and if
and appears again in a passage of Philo, where the need be, we gladly die for them " (c. Apion. i. 8;
Therapeutic are said to find their true food in laws comp. Euseb. //. E. iii. 10).
; '
and oracles uttered by prophets, and hymns and In these words Josephus clearly expresses not his
(to aAAa) the other [books VJ by which knowledge own private opinion, nor the opinion of his sect,
and piety are increased and perfected " (Philo, de the Pharisees, but the general opinion of his coun-
Vita cont. 3). [Bible.] trymen. The popular belief that the Sadducees
The triple division of the 0. T. is itself not a received only the books of Moses (Tertull. De
mere accidental or arbitrary arrangement, but a Prasscr. Hceret. 45; Hieron. in Matth. xxii. 31, p.
reflection of the different stages of religious devel- 181; Origen, c. Cels. i. 49), rests on no sufficient
opment through which the Jewish nation passed. authority and if they had done so, Josephus could
;
The Law is the foundation of the whole revelation, not have failed to notice the fact in his account of
the special discipline by which a chosen race was the different sects [Sadducees].* In the tradi-
trained from a savage willfulness to the accomplish- tions of the Talmud, on the other hand, Gamaliel
ment of its divine work. The Prophets portray is represented as using passages from the Prophets
the struggles of the same people when they came and the Hagiographa in his controversies with
into closer connection with the kingdoms of the them, and they reply with quotations from the
world, and were led to look for the inward antitypes same sources without scruple or objection. (Comp.
of the outward precepts. The Hagiographa carry Eichhorn, Einl. § 35; Lightfoot, Horce Hebr. et
the divine lesson yet further, and show its working Talm. ii. 616 C. F. Schmid, Enarr. Sent. Fl. Jo-
;
in the various phases of individual life, and in rela sephi de Libris V. T. 1777; G. Giildenapfel, Dis-
tion to the great problems of thought and feeling, sert. Josephi de Sadd. Can. Sent, exhibens, 1804.)
which present themselves by a necessary law in the The casual quotations of Josephus agree with his
later stages of civilization (comp. Oehler, art. Ka- express Canon. With the exception of Prov.,
non, in Herzog's EncykL p. 253). Eccles., and Cant., which furnished no materials
The general contents of these three classes still, for his work, and Job, which, even if historical,
however, remain to be determined. Josephus, offered no point of contact with other history, he
the earliest direct witness on the subject, enumer- uses all the other books either as divinely inspired
ates twenty-two books "which are justly believed to writings (5 Moses, Is., Jer., Ez., Dan., 12 Proph.),
lie divine" (tol oiKalais 0e7a weTTiffTevfi.fi/ a) five or as authoritative sources of truth.
:
books of Moses, thirteen of the prophets, extending The writings of the N. T. completely confirm
to the reign of Artaxerxes (i. e. Esther, according the testimony of Josephus. Coincidences of lan-
to Josephus)," and four which contain hymns and guage show that the Apostles were familiar with
directions for life (Joseph, c. Apion, i. 8). Still several of the Apocryphal books (Bleek, Ueber d.
there is some ambiguity in this enumeration, for Stelluny d. Apokr. u. s. w. in Stud. u. Krit. 1853,
pp. 267 ff. ) e but they do not contain one authori-
a The limit fixed by Josephus marks the period to tative or direct quotation from them, while, with
which the prophetic history extended, and not. as is the exception of Judges, Ecel., Cant., Esther, Ezra,
commonly said, the date at which the 0. T. canon
was itself finally closed. c The chief passages which Bleek quotes, after Stier
6 In Ant. xiii. 10, § 6, Josephus simply says that and Nitzsch, are James i. 19 Ecclus. v. 11 1 Pet: i. 6, ;
—
||
the Sadducees rejected the precepts which were not con- 7 Wisd. iii. 3-7; Heb. xi. 34, 35 2 Mace. vi. 18
|| II
tained iu the laws Of lloseS (dnep ovk o.vayeypa.nTo.1 vii. 42 Heb. i. 3 Wisd. vii. 26, &o.
; II
Rom. i. 20-32 ;
ev tois Mcuuoe'ws i/6p.oi<;), but derived only from tradi- Wisd. xiii.-xv. Rom. ix. 21 Wisd. xv. 7 Eph. vi.
II ; || ;
>ae statement has no connection whatever with the passages prove satisfactorily that the Apostolic writers
'ther writings of the Canon. were acquainted with the Apocryphal books, they indi-
The Canou of the Samaritans was confined to the cate with equal clearness that their silence with regard
Pentateuch, not so much from their hostility to the to them cannot have been purely accidental. An ear-
Jews, as from their undue exaltation of the Law (Keil lier criticism of the alleged coincidences is given in
EM. § 218). Cosin's Canon of Scripture, §§ 35 ff.
360 CANON CANON
and Nehemiah, every other book in the Hebrew about Balaam and Job. Joshua wrote his own
Canon is used either for illustration or proof." book and the eight [last] verses of the Pentateuch.
Several of the early fathers descr'be the contents Samuel wrote his own book, the book of Judges
of the Hebrew Canon in terms which generally and Ruth. David wrote the book of Psalms, [of
agree with the results already obtained. Melito which, however, some were composed] by the ten
of Sardis (c. 179 A. D.) in a journey to the East venerable elders, Adam, the first man, Melchizedek,
made the question of the exact number and order Abraham, Moses, Haman, Jeduthun, Asaph, and
of " the books of the Old Testament " a subject of the three sons of Koran. Jeremiah wrote his own
special inquiry, to satisfy the wishes of a friend book, the books of Kings and Lamentations. Hez-
(Euseb. H. E. iv. 26). He gives the result in the ekiah and his friends [reduced to writing] the books
following form the books are, 5 Moses
; . Josh., contained in the Memorial word IaMSCHaK, i. e.
. .
Jud., Ruth, 4 K., 2 Chr., Ps., Prov. {1.a\ofxSivos Isaiah, Proverbs, Canticles, Ecclesiastes. The men
Uapoifxiai ko.1 Soviet), Eccl., Cant., Job, Is., Jer., Synagogue [reduced to writing] the
of the great
12 Proph., Dan., Ez., Esdr. The arrangement is books contained in the memorial letter KaNDaG,
peculiar, and the books of Nehemiah and Esther i. e. Ezekiel, the 12 lesser prophets, Daniel, and
are wanting. The former is without doubt included Esther. Ezra wrote his own book, and brought
in the general title "Esdras," and it has been con- down the genealogies of the books of Chronicles to
jectured (Eichhorn, Einl. § 52; comp. Kouth, Bel. his own times Who brought the remainder
. . . .
Sacr. i. 136) that Esther may have formed part of of the books [of Chronicles] to a close ? Nehemiah
the same collection of records of the history after the son of Hachalijah " (Baba Bathra f. 14 b, ap.
the exile. 6 The testimony of Origen labors under Oehler, art. Kanon, I. c).
a similar difficulty. According to the present Greek In spite of the comparatively late date (c. A. D.
text (Euseb. H. E. vi. 25; In Ps. i. Philoc. 3),
500), from which this tradition is derived, it is
in enumerating the 22 books " which the Hebrews
evidently in essence the earliest description of the
hand down as included in the Testament (eVSiaflr)- work of Ezra and the Great Synagogue which has
kous)," he omits the book of the 12 minor proph- been preserved. The details must be tested by
ets, and adds " the Letter " to the book of Jeremiah
other evidence, but the general description of the
and Lamentations ('lepefitas avv ©p-qvoLs Kal rfj growth of the Jewish Canon bears every mark of
£iriaTo\Ti iv kvi). The number is thus imperfect, probability. The early fables as to the work of
and the Latin version of Kufinus has rightly pre- Ezra [2 Esdras see above] are a natural corrup-
;
served the book of the 12 prophets in the catalogue tion of this original belief, and after a time entirely
placing it after Cant, and before the greater proph- supplanted it but as it stands in the great collec-
;
among the Apocrypha. (" Hie prologus Script, the Yod was thrice repeated in reverence for the
quasi galeatum principium omnibus libris quos de sacred name (Hody, De Bibl. Text. p. 644; Eich-
Hebrseo vertimus in Latinum convenire potest, ut horn, Einl. § 6 ). In Hebrew MSS., and in the early
scire valeamus, quidquid extra hos est, inter Apoc- editions of the O. T., the arrangement of the later
rypha esse ponendum," Hieron. Prol. Gal.). The books offers great variations (Hody, I. c, gives a large
agree in reckoning all
statement of the Talmud is in many respects so collection), but they generally
remarkable that it must be transcribed entire. separately except the books of
Ezra and Nehemiah d
" But who wrote [the books of the Bible] ? Moses (Buxtorf, Hottinger, Hengstenberg, Havernick, 11.
Gottesd. Vortrage d. Juden).
wrote his own book (?), the Pentateuch, the section cc. ; Zunz,
a Some passages are quoted in the N. T. which are Origen expressly excludes 1 Mace, from the canon
c
not found in the canonical hooks. The most impor- 7 a Molkk. ), although written in He-
(cfioSei-ouTcov dor!
tant of these is that from the prophecies of Enoch brew. Bertholdt's statement to the contrary is incor-
[Enoch, Book op] (Jude, 14). Others have been found rect (Einl. § 31), although Keil (de Auct. Can. Libb.
iu Luke xi. 49-51 John vii. 38 James iv. 5, 6 Mace. 67) maintains the same opinion.
; ;
1 Cor. ii. 9
; but these are more or less questionable. d Notwithstanding the unanimous judgment of later
b Hody (De Bibl. Text. p. 646) quotes a singular writers, there are traces of the existence of doubts
note, falsely attributed to Athanasius, who likewise among the first Jewish doctors as to some books.
omits Esther. " Sunt etiam ex antiquis Hebraeis qui Thus in the Mishna (Jad. 3, 5) a discussion is recorded
"
Esther admittant, atque ut numerus idem (22) serve- as to Cant, and Eccles. whether they " soil the hands j
*ur, cum Jm/ieibus copularunt." The book is want- and a difference as to the latter book existed between
ing also in the Synops. S. Script., Gregor. Naz., Am- the great schools of Hillel and Shammai. The same
philochius, Nicephorus Callistus, &c. doubts as to Eccles. are repeated in another form in
CANON CANON 361
So far then it has been shown that the Hebrew l. c). A further trace of the identity of the Alex-
Canon was uniform and coincident with our own a andrine Canon with the Palestinian is found in the
;
but while the Palestinian Jews combined to pre- Apocalypse of Esdras [2 EsDRAS], where "24 open
serve the strict limits of the old prophetic writings, books" are specially distinguished from the mass
the Alexandrine Jews allowed themselves greater of esoteric writings which were dictated to Ezra by
freedom. Their ecclesiastical constitution was less inspiration (2 Esdr. xiv. 44 ff.).
definite, and the same influences which created From the combination of this evidence there can
among them an independent literature disinclined be no reasonable doubt that at the beginning of
them to regard with marked veneration more than the Christian era the Jews had only one Canon of
the Law itself. The idea of a Canon was foreign the Sacred writings, defined distinctly in Palestine,
to their habits; and the fact that they possessed and admitted, though with a less definite apprehen-
the sacred books not merely in a translation, but sion of its peculiar characteristics, by the Hellen-
in a translation made at different times, without izingJews of the Dispersion, and that this Canon
any unity of plan and without any uniformity of was recognized, as far as can be determined, by our
execution, necessarily weakened that traditional Lord and his Apostles. But on the other hand,
feeling of their real connection which existed in the connection of other religious books with the
Palestine. Translations of later books were made Greek translation of the 0. T., and their common
(1 Mace, Ecclus., Baruch, &c), and new ones use in Egypt, was already opening the way for an
were written (2 Mace, Wisd.), which were reck- extension of the original Canon, and assigning an
oned in the sum of their religious literature, and authority to later writings which they did not de-
probably placed on an equal footing with the Hagio- rive from ecclesiastical sanction.
grapha in common esteem. But this was not the III. a. The History of the Christian Canon
result of any express judgment on their worth, but of the Old Testament. The history of the Old —
a natural consequence of the popular belief in the Testament Canon among Christian writers exhibits
doctrine of a living Word which deprived the pro- the natural issue of the currency of the LXX., en-
phetic writings of part of their distinctive value. larged as it had been by apocryphal additions. In
So far as an authoritative Canon existed in Egypt, proportion as the Fathers were more or less absolutely
it is probable that it was the same as that of Pal- dependent on that version for their knowledge of
estine. In the absence of distinct evidence to the the Old Testament Scriptures, they gradually lost
contrary this is most likely, and positive indications in common practice the sense of the difference be-
of the fact are not wanting. The translator of the tween the books of the Hebrew Canon and the
Wisdom of Sirach uses the same phrase (6 v6fios Apocrypha. The custom of individuals grew into
Kal ol irptxprJTai teal to. ixWa /HifiAia) in speaking the custom of the Church and the public use of ;
of his grandfather's Biblical studies in Palestine, the Apocryphal books obliterated in popular regard
and of his own in Egypt (comp. Eichhorn, Einl. the characteristic marks of their origin and value,
§ 22), and he could hardly have done so, had the which could only be discovered by the scholar. But
Bible been different in the two places. The evi- the custom of the Church was not fixed in an ab-
dence of Philo, if less direct, is still more conclu- solute judgment. It might seem as if the great
sive. His language shows that he was acquainted leaders of the Christian Body shrank by a wise
with the Apocryphal books, and yet he does not forethought from a work for which they were un-
make a single quotation from them (Hornemann, fitted; for by acquirements and constitution they
Observ. ml illustr. doctr. de Can, V. T. ex Philone, were little capable of solving a problem which must
pp. 28, 2.'), ap. Eumhom, Einl. § 26), though they at last depend on historical data. And this re-
offered much that was favorable to his views. On mark must, be applied to the details of patristic ev-
the other hand, in addition to the Law, he quotes idence on the contents of the Canon. Their habit
all the books of " the Prophets," and the Psalms must be distinguished from their judgment. The
and Proverbs, from the Hagiographa, and several want of critical tact which allowed them to use the
of them (Is., Jer., Hos., Zech., Ps., Prov.) with most obviously pseudonymous works (2 Esdras,
clear assertions of their "prophetic" or inspired Enoch) as genuine productions of their supposed
character. Of the remaining Hagiographa (Neh., authors, or as "divine Scripture," greatly dimin-
Ruth, Lam., 1, 2 Chron., Dan., Eccl., Cant.,) he ishes the value of casual and isolated testimonies
makes no mention, but the three first may have to single books. In such cases the form as well as
been attached, as often in Hebrew usage, to other the fact of the attestation requires to be examined,
books (Ez., Jud., Jer.), so that four writings alone and after this the combined witness of different
are entirely unattested by him (comp. Hornemann, Churches can alone suffice to stamp a book with
ecclesiastical authority.
the Talmud (Sabb. f. 30, 2), where it is said that the
* The passages from the Talmud relating to Cauticles
book would have been concealed (T22) but for the and Ecclesiastes are quoted and translated in full by
quotations at the beginning and the end. Comp. Hie- Ginsburg ( Coheleth, Lond. 1861, pp. 13-15). The phrase
ron. Oman, in Ec'es. s. f. " Aiunt Hebrsei cum inter used in some of these passages, " to soil (or pollute ')
:
'
caetera scripta Salomonis quse antiquata sunt nee in the hands," has often been misunderstood. As.applied
memoria duraverunt, et hie liber eblitterandus vide- to a book, it signifies "to be sacred" or "canonical,"
retur, eo quod vanas Dei assereret creatures . . . . not the reverse, as might naturally be supposed. Tliis
ex hoc uno capitulo (xii.) meruisse auctoritatem ." . . tut is clearly shown, and the reason of it given, by
Parallel passages arc quoted in the notes on the pas- Ginsburg, Sotig of So?igs, London, 185", p. 3, note.
gage, and by meek, Stud. u. Krit. 1853, pp. 322 ff. A.
The doubts as to Bather have been already noticed. a The dream of a second and third revision of the
A series of references to the Apocryphal books from Jewish Canon in the times of Eleazer and Hillel, by
Jewish writers has been made by Hottinger (Thes. which the Apocryphal books were ratified (Genebrard),
Philol. 1669), and collected and reprinted by Words- rests on no basis whatever. The supposition that the
worth (On tlie Canon of the Scriptures, App. C). Com- Jews rejected the Apocrypha after our Lord's coming
pare also the valuable notices in Zunz, Die gottescl. (Card. Perron) is equally unfounded. Cosin, Canon
Vortr. d. Juden, pp 126 ff. of Scripture, §§ 23, 25.
362 CANON CANON
The confusion which was necessarily introduced is the only one which is distinctly recognized, and
by the use of the LXX. was further increased it is supported by the combined authority of those
when the Western Church rose in importance. The fathers whose critical judgment is entitled to the
LXX. itself was the original of the Old Latin, and greatest weight. In the mean time, however, as
the recollection of the original distinction between has been already noticed, the common usage of the
the constituent books of the Bible became more early fathers was influenced by the position which
and more difficult in the version of a version and ; the Apocryphal books occupied in the current ver-
at the same time the Hebrew Church dwindled down sions, and they quoted them frequently as Script-
to an obscure sect, and the intercourse between the ure when they were not led to refer to the judg-
Churches of the East and West grew less intimate. ment of antiquity. The subjoined table (No. II.)
The impulse which instigated Melito in the second will show the extent and character of this partial
century to seek in "the East" an "accurate" ac- testimony to the disputed books.
count of "the books of the Old Testament," grad- These casual testimonies are, however, of com-
ually lost its force as the Jewish nation and literature and are, in many cases, op-
paratively slight value,
were further withdrawn from the circle of Christian posed to the deliberate judgment of the authors
knowledge. The Old Latin version converted use from whom they are quoted. The real divergence
popularly into belief, and the investigations of Je- as to the contents of the Old Testament Canon is
rome were unable to counteract the feeling which to be traced to Augustine, whose wavering and
had gained strength silently, without any distinct uncertain language on the point furnishes abundant
and authoritative sanction. Yet one important, materials for controversy. By education and char-
though obscure, protest was made against the grow- acter he occupied a position more than usually
ing error. The Nazarenes, the relics of the He- unfavorable for historical criticism, and yet his
brew Church, in addition to the New Testament overpowering influence, when it fell in with ordi-
"made use of the Old Testament, as the Jews" nary usage, gave consistency and strength to the
(Epiph. Hair. xxix. 7). They had "the whole opinion which he appeared to advocate, for it may
Law, and the Prophets, and the Hagiographa so be reasonably doubted wli ether he differed inten-
called, that is the poetical books, and the Kings, tionally from Jerome except in language. In a
and Chronicles and Esther, and all the other books famous passage (de Doctr. Christ, ii. 8 (13)) he
in Hebrew " (Epiph. I. c. Trap' avrols yap nas 6 enumerates the books which are contained in " the
v6fj.os Kal ol Trpocprjrai Kal ra ypa<pe7a \ey6fxeva, whole Canon of Scripture," and includes among
<pr/fil8e ra ffTixnpa., Kal ai Ba<rt\e?at Kal Tlapa- them the Apocryphal books without any clear mark
Kenrdfitva Kal AiaByp Kal ra\\a iravra 'Efipai- of distinction. This general statement is further
Kors avayivdiaKerai). And in connection with this confirmed by two other passages, in which it is
fact, it is worthy of remark that Justin Martyr, argued that he draws a distinction between the
who drew his knowledge of Christianity from Pal- Jewish and Christian Canons, and refers the author-
estine, makes no use of the apocryphal writings in ity of the Apocryphal books to the judgment of the
any of his works. Christian Church. In the first passage he speaks of
From what has been said, it is evident that the the Maccabsean history as not " found in the Sacred
history of the Christian Canon is to be sought in Scriptures which are called canonical, but in others,
the instance from definite catalogues and not
first among which are also the books of the Maccabees,
from isolated quotations. But even this evidence which the Church, and not the Jews, holds for ca-
isincomplete and unsatisfactory. A
comparison of nonical, on account of the marvellous sufferings of
the subjoined table (No. I. ) of the chief extant Cat- the martyrs [recorded in them] ..." (quorum
alogues will show how few of them are really inde- supputatio temporum non in Scripturis Sanctis,
pendent and the later transcriptions are commonly qua? Canonic* appellantur, sed in aliis invenitur,
;
of no value, as they do not appear to have been in quibus sunt et Machabaeorum libri, quos non
made with any critical appreciation of their dis- Judaei, sed ecclesia pro Canonicis habet De . . .
exhibits three distinct varieties, which are to be with sobriety" (c. Gaud. i. 38). But it will be
traced to the three original sources from which the noticed that in each case a distinction is drawn be-
Catalogues were derived. The first may be called tween the "Ecclesiastical" and properly "Canon-
the pure Hebrew Canon, which is that of the ical " books. In the second case he expressly lowers
Church of England (the Talmud, Jerome, Joan. the authority of the books of the Maccabees by re-
Damasc). The second differs from this by the marking that "the Jews have them not like the
omission of the book of Esther (Melito, [Athan.] Law, the Psalms, and the Prophets to which the
Syn. S. Script., Grey. Naz., Amphiloch., Leant., Lord gives His witness " (Aug. I. c). And the
Niceph. CallisL). The third differs by the addi- original catalogue is equally qualified by an intro-
tion of Baruch, or "the Letter" (Origen, Atha- duction which distinguishes between the authority
nns., Cyr. Ilieros., [Concil. Laod.,] Ml. Piclav.). of books which are received by all and by some of
The omission of Esther may mark a real variation the Churches and, again, between those which are
;
in the opinion of the Jewish Church [Esther], received by churches of great or of small weight
but the addition of Baruch is probably due to the (de Doctr. Chr. ii. 8 (12)) so that the list which
place which it occupied in direct connection with immediately follows must be interpreted by this
Jeremiah, not only in the Greek and Latin trans- rule. In confirmation of this view of Augustine's
lations, but perhaps also in some copies of the special regard for the Hebrew Canon, it may be
Hebrew text [Baruch, Book of]. This is ren- further urged that he appeals to the Jews, "the
dered more likely by the converse fact that the Lam- librarians of the Christians," as possessing "all the
entations and Baruch are not distinctly enumerated writings in which Christ was prophesied of" (In
by many writers who certainly received both books. Ps. xl., Ps. lvi.), and to " the Law, the Psalms, and
During the four first centuries this Hebrew Canon the Prophets," which were supported by the witness
CANON CANON 363
of the Jews (c. Gaud.c), as including "all the tione habentur, pro sacris et canonicis non suscepe-
1.
canonical authorities of the Sacred books " (de Unit. rit . . anathema esto, Cone. Trid. Sess. iv.).
. .
Eccles. p. 16), which, as he says in another place This decree was not, however, passed without oppo-
{de Civ. xv. 23, 4), " were preserved in the temple sition (Sarpi, 139 ff. ed. 1655, though Pallavacino
of the Hebrew people by the care of the successive denies this); and in spite of the absolute terms in
priests." But on the other hand Augustine fre- which it is expressed, later Romanists have sought
quently uses passages from the Apocryphal books to find a method of escaping from the definite
as coordinate with Scripture, and practically dis- equalization of the two classes of Sacred writings
regards the rules of distinction between the various by a forced interpretation of the subsidiary clauses.
classes of sacred writings which he had himself laid Du Pin (Dissert, prelim, i. 1), Lamy (App. Bibl. ,
down. He stood on the extreme verge of the age ii. 5), and Jahn (Evnl. in d. A. T., i. 141 ff. ap.
of independent learning, and follows at one time Reuss, a. a.O. § 337), endeavored to establish two
the conclusions of criticism, at another the pi-escrip- classes, of proto-Canonical and deutero-Canonical
tions of habit, which from grew more and books, attributing to the first a dogmatic, and to
his date
more powerful. the second only an ethical authority. But such a
The enlarged Canon of Augustine, which was, as classification, however true it may be, is obviously
it will be seen, wholly unsupported by any Greek at variance with the terms of the Tridentine de-
authority, was adopted at the Council of Car- cision, and has found comparatively little favor
thage (a. d. 397?), though with a reservation among Romish writers (comp. [Herbst] Welte,
(Can. 47, De confirmando isto Canone tra7ismarina Einl. ii. ff. 1 f.).
ecclesia consulatur), and afterwards published in The reformed churches unanimously agreed in
the decretals which bear the name of Innocent, confirming the Hebrew Canon of Jerome, and re-
Damasus, and Gelasius (cf. Credner, Zur Gesch. fused to allow any dogmatic authority to the Apoc-
d. Kan. J 51 ff.); and it recurs in many later writ- ryphal books, but the form in which this judgment
ers. But nevertheless a continuous succession of was expressed varied considerably in the different
the more learned fathers in the West maintained confessions. The Lutheran formularies contain no
the distinctive authority of the Hebrew Canon up definite article on the subject, but the note which
to the period of the Reformation. In the sixth cen- Luther placed in the front of his German transla-
tury Primasius ( Comm. in Apoc. iv. Cosin, § 92 ?), tion of the Apocrypha (ed. 1534), is an adequate
in the 7th Gregory the Great (Moral xix. 21, p. declaration of the later judgment of the Commun-
622), in the 8th Bede (In Apoc. iv. ?), in the 9th ion " Apocrypha, that is, Books which are not
:
Alcuin (ap. Hody, 654; yet see Carm. vi., vii.), placed on an equal footing (nicht gleich gehalten)
in the 10th Radulphus Flav. (hi Lent xiv. with Holy Scripture, and yet are profitable and
Hody, 655), in the 12th Peter of Clugni (Ep. good for reading." This general view was further
c. Petr. Hody, I. c), Hugo de S. Victore (de expanded in the special prefaces to the separate
Script. 6), and John of Salisbury (Hody, 656; books, in which Luther freely criticised their indi-
Cosin, § 130), in the 13th Hugo Cardinalis vidual worth, and wholly rejected 3 and 4 Esdras,
(Hody, 656), in the 14th Nicholas Liranus as unworthy of translation. At an earlier period
(Hody, p. 657; Cosin, § 146), Wycliffe (? comp. Carlstadt (1520) published a critical essay, De ca-
Hody, 658), and Occam (Hody, 657 Cosin, § 147), nonicis scripturis libellus (reprinted in Credner,
;
in the 15th Thomas Anglicus (Cosin, § 150), Zur Gesch. d. Kan. pp. 291 ff.), in which he fol-
and Thomas de Walden (Id. § 151), in the 16th lowed the Hebrew division of the Canonical books
Card. Ximenes (Ed. Compl. Pre/.), Sixtus Se- into three ranks, and added Wisd., Ecclus., Judith,
nensis (B'Mioth. i. 1), and Card. Cajetan (Hody, Tobit, 1 and 2 Mace, as Hagiographa, though not
p. 662; Cosin § 173), repeat with approval the included in the Hebrew collection, while he rejected
decision of Jerome, and draw a clear line between the remainder of the Apocrypha with considerable
the Canonical and Apocryphal books (Cosin, Scho- parts of Daniel as " utterly apocryphal " (plane
lastical History of the Canon ; Reuss, die Gesch. apocryphi; Credn. pp. 389, 410 ff.).
d. heiligen Schriften N. T., Ed. 2, § 328). The Calvinistic churches generally treated the
Up to the date of the Council of Trent, the question with more precision, and introduced into
Romanists allow that the question of the Canon their symbolic documents a distinction between the
was open, but one of the first labors of that assem- "Canonical" and " Apocryphal," or " Ecclesiasti-
bly was to circumscribe a freedom which the growth cal " books. The Gallican Confession (1561), after
of literature seemed to render perilous." The de- an enumeration of the Hieronymian Canon (Art. 3),
cree of the Council "on the Canonical Scriptures," adds (Art. 4) " that the other ecclesiastical books
which was made at the 4th Session (April 8th, are useful, yet not such that any article of faith
1546), at which about 53 representatives were pres- could be established out of them " (quo [sc. Spirilu
ent,pronounced the enlarged Canon, including the Sancto\ suggerente docemur,il!os [sc. libros Canon-
Apocryphal books, to be deserving in all its parts icos] ab aliis libris ecclesiaslicis discernere, qui, ut
of "equal veneration" (pari pietatis affectu), and sint utiles, non sunt tamen ejusmodi, ut ex iis con-
added a list of books " to prevent the possibility of stitui possit aliquis Jidei articulus). The Belgie
doubt " (ne cui dubitatio suboriri possit). This Confession (1561?) contains a similar enumeration
hasty and peremptory decree, unlike in its form to of the Canonical books (Art. 4), and allows their
any catalogue before published, was closed by a sol- public use by the ( Jhurch, but denies to them all
emn anathema against all who should " not receive independent authority in matters of faith (Art. <>).
the entire books with all their parts as sacred and The later Helvetic Confession (1562, Bullinger) no-
canonical " (Si quis autem libros ipsos integros cum ticesthe distinction between the Canonical and
omnibus suis partibus, prout in ecclesia catholica Apocryphal books without pronouncing any judg-
legi consueverunt et in veteri vulgata Latina edi- ment on the question (Niemeyer, Lihr. Symb. Ec~
a The history of the Catalogue published at the and it was probably limited to the determination of
Council of Florence (1441) is obscure (Cosin, §§ 159 f.), books for Ecclesiastical use (Reuss, § 325).
364 CANON
doubt. A blank marks the silence of the author as to the book in question.
CANON CANON 365
zles. Ref. p. 468). The Westminster Confession establishment of doctrine and a similar decision is ;
(Hardwick, I. c,
(Art. 3) places the Apocryphal books on a level given in the Irish Articles of 1G15
with other human writings, and concedes to them 341 f.). The original English Articles of 1552
no other authority in the Church. contained no catalogue (Art. 5) of the contents of
The English Church {Art. 6) appeals directly to "Holy Scripture," and no mention of the Apocry-
the opinion of St. Jerome, and concedes to the pha, although the Tridentine decree (1546) might
Apocryphal books (including [1571] 4 Esdras and seem to have rendered this necessary. The exam-
The Prayer of Mauasses") a use -'for example of ple of foreign Churches may have led to the addi-
life and instruction of manners," but not for the tion upon the later revision.
expressed opinion of the later Greek Church
The
a The Latin copy of 1562 includes only 2, 3 Esdr., on the Canon of Scripture has been modified in
Wisd., Ecclus., Tobit, Jud., 1, 2 Mace. (Hardwick, some cases by the circumstances under which the
Hist, of Art. p. 275). declaration was made. The " Confession " of Cyril
"
The evidence against the authenticity of this speaks of the teaching contained in " the xxii. books
1
Canon, as an original part of the collection, is de- of the Old Test, in the New Test., and then iv Tali 2o-
cisive, in spite of the defense of Bickell (Stud. u. Krit. </u'ais, Kal vlov Seipa^ *ai ndo-ais
SoAop.tovTOS T6 (prjixl
iii.611 If.), as the present writer has shown at length an-Aci; ypa<pais BeUis- In a third catalogue (adv. H<zr.
in another place (Hist, of N. T. Canon, iv. 498 ff. [p. viii. p. 19) he adds the letters of Baruch and Jeremiah
384 ff., 2d ed?]). The Canon recurs in the Capitular. (which he elsewhere specially notices as wanting in the
Aquisgran. c. xx., with the omission of Baruch and Hebrew, de Mens. p. 163), and speaks of Wisdom and
Lamentations. Ecclus. as iv <ip.<piAe'KTa) (among the Jews), X upis aAAwi-
2 The same Canon appears in Cone. Hipp. Can. nvSui /3i/3AiW ivaTTOKpv<bu)v. Comp. ado. Htzr. xxix.
xxxvi. The Greek version of the Canon omits the p. 122.
books of Maccabees; and the history of the Council 11 Leont. /. C. TavTa eo-Ti ra Kavovi£6peva /3i/3Ai'a iv
itself is very obscure. Comp. Cosin, § 82. ttJ eKKArjcria Kal TraAaia Kal via, S>v Ta 7raAaia TrafTa
3 This Canon mentions three books of the Maccabees. Si\0VTai. ot 'E/3paioi.
Judith is not found in some MSS. and generally it ;
V2 Joan. Damasc. /. c.rf So^i'aToO SoAop.ii'TOS Kal r)
may be observed that the published text of the Con- 2oi|)ia toO 'Ir)o"o0 . . . erapeTOt fiev Kal KaAal aAA' ovk
ciliar Canons needs a thorough revision. Ecclesiasti- api6iJ.oivTai, oiiSe eVeu'TO iv rrj Ki|3u)TO).
cus is thus mentioned egtaOev &e Trpoo-iOTOpeurSoJ ip-ty
:
13 Quibus nonnulli adjiciunt Esther, Judith, et To-
p.av6avei.v iiixtav toO; viovs rnv crotf>iav toO 7roAvp.a#oO? bit, cktos Se TOvruiv Trjs ypa^ij; an-av v66ov (Hody,
Xeipdx- Comp. Constit. Aposl. ii. 57. I.e.).
The Canons of Laodicea, Carthage, and the Apostolic 14 Hilar. I. c. Quibusdam autem visum est additis
Canons, were all ratified in the Quini-Sextine Council, Tobia et Judith xxiv. libros secundum numerum Grse-
Can. 2. carum litterarum connumerare. . . .
4 'Icpeui'as avv <dp-qvoi% Kal o~ToAj) iv ivi. Ori- im 15 Hieron. I. c. Quicquid extra hos (the books of the
gen expressly says that this catalogue is w? 'E /S p a i o i Hebrew canon) est, inter apocrypha ponendum. Igi-
n-apaSiooao-i, and begins with the words: eicrl Se at tur Sapientia, quae vulgo Salomonis inscribitur, et Jesu
eiKoo-i 6vo /3i'/3Aoi naff 'E0paious aloe. He quotes sev- filii Sirach liber, et Judith et Tobias et Pastor non
eral of the Apocryphal books as Scripture, as will be sunt in canone. Machabcp.orum primum librum He-
seen below and in his Letter to Africanus defends the
; braicum reperi secundus Graecus est : Cf. Prol. . . .
interpolated Greek text of Daniel and the other 0. T. in Libras Stdom. ad Chrom. et Heliod. Fertur et
books, on the ground of their public use (Ep. ad Af- navapeTOS, Jesu filii Sirach liber, et alius \j/evSeTrCypa-
ric. § 3 ff.). The whole of this last passage is of the (pos, qui Sapientia Salomonis inscribitur Sic- . . .
deepest interest, and places in the clearest light the ut ergo Judith et Tobit et Machabcp.orum libros legit
influence which the LXX. exercised on common opin- quidem ecclesia, sed inter canonicos non recipit, sic et
ion. haec duo volumina legit ad aedificationem plebis, non
Athanasius closes his whole catalogue with the ad auctoritatem ecclesiasticorum dogmatum confir-
5
words TavTa Tnjyal tov <70>TT)pt'ov
: iv toutois a 6- mandam. Comp. Prologos in Dan. Hurem., Tobit, Ju-
. . .
ti icrrtv Kal eVepa (3ij3At'a toutiov eguBev, ov Kavo- tiauay on the place, adds
. . . Hucusque completum :
vi£6p.eva pev Tervniopeva Si TrapaTwv iraiipuiv ava.yi.vui- est Vet. Test, id est, omnes canonicae Scripturae . . .
(TKecrBai tois apTi Trpoo-epxoaeVois koX /301/Aop.eVots k<xtt)- quas transtulit Hieronymus de Hebraica ver- . . .
6 The list of the Apocryphal books is prefaced by a onicae, sed dicuntur ecclesiasticae, istae sunt, id est .
clause nearly identical with that in Athanasius. In a giving the list coutained in Prol. Galat.
second enumeration (Credner, a. a. O. p. 144), three 16 After giving the Hebrew canon and the received
books of the Macrabtes and Susanna are enumerated canon of N. T., Rufinus says: Sciendum tamen est,
amOng the aimAeyoaefa. quod et alii libri sunt, qui non canonici sed ecclesias-
7 The Apocryphal books are headed Kal oa-ai avri- tic! a majoribus appellati sunt, id est, Sapientia, quae
:
\iyovrai Trjs TraAatas avrai elcriv. Susanna (i. e. Add. dicitur Salomonis, et alia Sapientia quae dicitur fiii
to Daniel) is reckoned among them. Sirach ejusdem vero ordiuis libellus est Tobiee . . .
8 The catalogue ends with the words n-ao-as <?x £t s et Judith et Machabceorum libri
:
Quae omnia legi
'
. . .
el tis Si rovriav cktos ovk iv yvrjtriois. quidem in ecclesiis voluerunt, non tamen proferri ad
9 The verses occur under the name of Gregory of auctoritatem ex his fidei confirmandam. Caeteras vero
Nazianzus, but are generally referred to Amphilochius. Scripturas apocryphas nominarunt, quas in ecclesiis
Of Esther he says tovtois npo&eyKpivovcri. ttji' 'Ea-drjp
: legi noluerunt.
He concludes oStos atfievSicrTaTOs Kaviov av 17 See below.
Tives.
eii)
10
w :
0fO7rviv<TT<ov ypafydv.
Epiphanius adds of Wisdom and Ecclus. :
18 Cassiodorus gives also, however, with marks of
high respect, the catalogue of Jerome. Comp. Cown,
xp>}-
o-i/xoi piv eio"l Kal uxpikipoi, aAA' ecs api#p.w prjTaie ovk §89.
ava(f>ipovrai, Sib oiiSi . . . iv rfj ttjs SiaOijKrjs Ki/SwTtp 19 Isidorus, like Cassiodorus, gives the catalogue of
[averidrfo-av]. The same catalogue is repeated de Mens. Jerome, as well as that of Augustine. Comp. Cosin,
p. 180. In another place (aJv. Hcer. lxxvi. p. 941), he §103.
366 CANON
^ N
a "8 .^ is
2 * •- d 1* a
$** * a
<3
:S to
. •
O 00
•J 5
<
$3
.a ^
P.J5 _ ,_,
u
•r-
.
P,
d a>
H
"S • e *
2, &a F^Q 1
o r ft CO CI
to ^g2 o i i * .*^
1H U5 -•
T* .J » ft
U $3 as>
^
•
"^' s- a °
. .
COS . a. §)<§>£
s
d - . n-i's ~ •
CO ~~ CO "^ « 5
"'-'
£,
d3 CO £ rl *J „ iH ^ CO c O -
c ^ as 4
^2 $ u O
r
o
J-
Ri O
.-os -
11 OS
.
p* _:
a 3 eo •" . :a
x
.3 a
. e
!U 3 3>~
>.1Q
:s — £ n a .^ 3
fti.a^
'P a to •
"**
.s -a • .2 . a
° =2
eg ti
>—
^ • _r
i-i
os
*
Sti
fc tf
g < E
3 *
H H D P (S -fl
,i O fv Bm O
CANON CANON 367
Lucar, who was most favorably disposed towards Paul, omitting 1 & 2 Chr., Ezr., Neh., Esther, Tobit,
the Protestant Churches, confirms the Laodicene 1 & 2 Mace, Judith, (Baruch?), Apocalypse, Epist.
Catalogue, and marks the Apocryphal books as not James, 1 Pet., 1 John.
possessing the same divine authority as those whose In the Scriptural Vocabulary of Jacob of Edessa
canonicity is unquestioned (Kimmel, Mon. Fid. (Assem. 1. c. p. 499), the order and number of the
Eccles. Or. i. p. 42, to Kupos irapa tov wavaylov books commented upon is somewhat different:
KViVfxaros ovk ex ov(TiV wi- ra Kuplws nod avafupt- Pent., Josh., Judg., Job, 1 & 2 Sam., David (i. e.
P6\ws navoviKo. /8i/3Aia). In this judgment Cyril Ps.), 1 & 2 K., Is., 12 Proph., Jer., Lam., Baruch,
Lucar was followed by his friend Metrophanes Cri- Ez., Dan., Prov., Wisd., Cant., Ruth, Esth., Ju-
topulus, in whose confession a complete list of the dith, Ecclus., Acts, Epist. James, 1 Pet., 1 John,
books of the Hebrew Canon is given (Kimmel, ii. 14 Epist. of St. Paul, 4 Gosp., omitting 1 & 2
p. 105 f.), while some value is assigned to the Chr., Ezr., Neh., Eccl., Tobit, 1 & 2 Mace, Apoc.
Apocryphal books (airofi\riTovs oi>x rjyovneda) in (comp. Assem. Bibl. Orient, iii. 4 not.).
consideration of their ethical value; and the de- The Catalogue of Ebed-Jesu (Assem. Bibl. Ori-
tailed decision of Metrophanes is quoted with ap- ent., iii. 5 ff.) is rather a general survey of all the
pioval in the " Orthodox Teaching " of Platon, Hebrew and Christian literature with which he was
Metropolitan of Moscow (ed. Athens, 1836, p. 59). acquainted (Catalogus librorum omnium Ecclesias-
The " Orthodox Confession " simply refers the sub- ticorum) than a Canon of Scripture. After enu-
ject of Scripture to the Church (Kimmel, p. 159, rj merating the books of the Hebrew Canon, together
iKK\r}(rla %x tl T V
Qovalav . . va SoKifxdfa ras with Ecclus., Wisd., Judith, add. to Dan., and Ba-
.
ypa<pds; comp. p. 123). On the other hand the ruch, he adds, without any break, "the traditions
Synod at Jerusalem, held in 1672, " against the of the Elders " (Mishnah), the works of Josephus,
Calvinists," which is commonly said to have been including the Fables of vEsop which were popularly
led by Romish influence (yet comp. Kimmel, p. ascribed to him, and at the end mentions the
lxxxviii.), pronounced that the books which Cyril " book of Tobias and 7VxW." In the like manner,
Lucar " ignorantly or maliciously called apocry- after enumerating the 4 Gosp., Acts, 3 Cath. Epist.
phal," are " canonical and Holy Scripture," on the and 14 Epist. of St. Paul, he passes at once to the
authority of the testimony of the ancient Church Diatessaron of Tatian, and the writings of " the
([Kimmel,] Weissenborn, Dosith. Confess, pp. 467 disciples of the Apostles." Little dependence, how-
f.). The Constantinopolitan Synod, which was ever, can be placed on these lists, as they rest on
held in the same year, notices the difference exist- no critical foundation, and it is known from other
ing between the Apostolic, Laodicene, and Cartha- sources that varieties of opinion on the subject of
ginian Catalogues, and appears to distinguish the the Canon existed in the Syrian Church (Assem.
Apocryphal books as not wholly to be rejected (b<ra Bibl. Orient, iii. 6 not.).
/iti/Toi ra>i> rrjs naAaias SiaO^Kris fiifSxiwv rj? One testimony, however, which derives its origin
ava.pidfj.T)(Tii t&v ayioypatpw ov ffvfnrepiAafilSd- from the Syrian Church, is specially worthy of
i/erai . . oi>K a.ir6fS\r\Ta rvyxdvovcri Si6\ov). notice.
.
Junilius, an African bishop of the 6th
The authorized Russian Catechism ( The Doctrine century, has preserved a full and interesting account
of the Russian Church, &c, by Rev. W. Black- of the teaching of Paulus, a Persian, on Holy
more, Aberd., 1845, pp. 37 ff.) distinctly quotes and Scripture, who was educated at Nisibis where " the
defends the Hebrew Canon on the authority of the Divine Law wasregularly explained by public mas-
Greek Fathers, and repeats the judgment of Atha- ters," asa branch of common education (Juiiil.
nasius on the usefulness of the Apocryphal books De part, [die] leg. Prof.). He divides the books
as a preparatory study in the Bible; and there can of the Bible into two classes, those of " perfect,"
be no doubt but that the current of Greek opinion, and those of " mean " authority [medice auctori-
in accordance with the unanimous agreement of the tatis]. The first class includes all the books of the
ancient Greek Catalogues, coincides with this judg- Hebrew Canon with the exception of 1 & 2 Chr.,
ment. Job, Canticles, and Esther, and with the addition
The history of the Syrian Canon of the O. T. is of Ecclesiasticus. The second class consists of
involved in great obscurity from the scantiness of Chronicles (2), Job, Esdras (2), Judith, Esther,
the evidence which can be brought to bear upon it. and Maccabees (2), which are added by "very
The Peshito was made, in the first instance, directly many" (plurimi) to the Canonical books. The
from the Hebrew, and consequently adhered to the remaining books are pronounced to be of no au-
Hebrew Canon but as the LXX. was used after- thority, and of these Canticles and Wisdom are
;
wards many of the Apoc- said to be added by "some" (quidam) to the Ca-
in revising the version, so
ryphal books were translated from the Greek at an non. The classification as it stands is not without
early period, and added to the original collection difficulties, but it deserves more attention than it
(Assem. Bibl. Or. i. 71). Yet this change was has received (comp. Hody, p. 653; Gallandi, Bib-
only made gradually. In the time of Ephrem (c. tioih. xii. 79 ff. [Migne, Patrol. Lat. vol. lxviii.]
a. d. 370) the Apocryphal additions to Daniel were The reprint in Wordsworth, On the Canon, App.
yet wanting, and his commentaries were confined to A., pp. 42 ff., is very imperfect). [See Westcott's
the books of the Hebrew Canon, though he was Canon of the N. T., 2d ed., pp. 485-87.]
acquainted with the Apocrypha (Lardner, Credi- The Armenian Canon, as far as it can be ascer-
bility, &c, iv. pp. 427 f. ; see Lengerke, Daniel, tained from editions, follows that of the LXX., but
cxii.). The later Syrian writers do not throw much it is of no critical authority; and a similar remark
light upon the question. Gregory Bar Hebraeus, applies to the ^Ethiopian Canon, though it is more
in his shortcommentary on Scripture, treats of the easy in this case to trace the changes through
books in the following order (Assem. B'M. Orient, which it has passed (Dillmann, Ueber d. JEth.
ii. 282): the Pentateuch, Josh., Judg., 1 & 2 Sam. Kan., in Ewald's Jahrbucher, 1853, pp. 144 ff.).
Ps., 1 & 2 K., Prov., Ecclus., Eccl., Cant., Wisd., In addition to the books already quoted under
Ruth, Hist. Bus., Job, Is., 12 Proph., Jer., Lam., the heads for which they are specially valuable,
Ez., Dan., Bel, 4 Gosp., Acts ... 14 Epist. of St. some still remain to be noticed. C. F. Schmid,
368 CANON CANON
Hist. ant. et Vindic. Can. S. Vet. et Nov.
Written instruction was in each particular case
Test.
Lips. 1775; [H. Corrodi], Versuch einer Beleuch- only occasional and fragmentary and the complete- ;
Loci quidam Hist. Can. V. T. illustrati, Breslau, thus formed is one of the most striking proofs of
1842. The great work of Hody (De Biblior. T, .</., the Providential power which guided the natural
Oxon. 1705) contains a rich store of materials, development of the church. The prevailing method
though even this is not free from minor errors. of interpreting the O. T., and the peculiar position
Stuart's Critical History and Defence of the Oil which the first Christians occupied, as standing
Test. Canon, London, 1849 [Andover, 1845] is upon the verge of "the coming age" (cdwv),
rather an apology than a history. [It has particu- seemed to preclude the necessity and even the use
lar reference to Mr. Norton's " Note on the Jewish of a " New Testament." Yet even thus, though
Dispensation, the Pentateuch, and the other Books there is nothing to indicate that the Apostles re-
of the Old Testament," in vol. ii. of his Evidences garded their written remains as likely to preserve a
of the Genuineness of the Gospels, Cambridge, perfect exhibition of the sum of Christian truth,
1844 (pp. xlviii.-cciv. of the 2d ed., 1848), in coordinate with the Law and the Prophets, they
which the Mosaic authorship of the Pentateuch claim for their writings a public use (1 Thess. v.
was denied. See also Palfrey, Lectures on the 27; Col. iv. 16; Rev. xxii. 18), and an authorita-
Jewish Scriptures, Boston, 1838, etc. i. 20-42; De tive power (1 Tim. iv. 1 ff. 2 Thess. iii. 6 Rev. ; ;
Wette, Einl. in die Backer des A. T, 6* Aufl. xxii. 19); and, at the time when 2 Peter was writ-
1852, pp. 13-4G, or Parker's (often inaccurate) ten, which on any supposition is an extremely early
translation, i. 20-119, and Appendix, pp. 412-28; writing, the Epistles of St. Paul were placed in sig-
Dillmann, Ueber die Bildung der Sammlung h<i- nificant connection with " the other Scriptures " a
liger Schriften A. T. (in the Jahrb. f
dev&sche (ras Aoirra? ypa<pds, not ras aAAas ypacpds)-
fheol. 185*8, iii. 419-91); Bleek, Einl in das A. The transition from the Apostolic to the sub-
T, Berlin, 18G0, pp. G62-71G, and the references Apostolic age is essentially abrupt and striking.
under the art. Apocrypha. A.] — An age of conservatism succeeds an age of creation
IV. The history of the Canon of the New Tes- but in feeling and general character the period
tament. —
The history of the Canon of the N. T. which followed the working of the Apostles seems
presents a remarkable analogy to that of the Canon to have been a faithful reflection of that which they
of the 0. T. The beginnings of both Canons are moulded. The remains of the literature to which
obscure, from the circumstances under which they it gave birth, which are wholly Greek, are singu-
arose; both grew silently under the guidance of an larly scanty and limited in range, merely a few Let-
inward instinct rather than by the force of external ters and " Apologies." As yet, writing among
authority both were connected with other religious Christians was, as a general rule, the result of a
;
literature by a series of books which claimed a par- pressing necessity and not of choice; and under
tial and questionable authority; both gained defi- such circumstances it is vain to expect either a dis-
niteness in times of persecution. The chief differ- tinct consciousness of the necessity of a written
ence lies in the general consent with which all the Canon, or any clear testimony as to its limits.
churches of the West have joined in ratifying one The writings of the Apostolic Fathers (c.
Canon of the N. T., while they are divided as to 70-120 A. d.) are all occasional. They sprang out
the position of the 0. T. Apocrypha. of peculiar circumstances, and offered little scope
The history of the N. T. Canon may be conven- for quotation. At the same time the Apostolic
iently divided into three periods. The first tradition was still fresh in the memories of men,
extends
to the time of Hegesippus (c. A. D. 170), and in- and the need of written Gospels was not yet made
cludes the era of the separate circulation and grad- evident by the corruption of the oral narrative.
ual collection of the Apostolic writings. The sec- As a consequence of this, the testimony of the
ond is closed by the persecution of Diocletian (a. d. Apostolic fathers is chiefly important as proving
303), and marks the separation of the sacred writ- the general currency of such outlines of history and
ings from the remaining Ecclesiastical literature. types of doctrine as are preserved in our Canon.
The third may be denned by the third Council of They show in this way that the Canonical books
Carthage (a. d. 397), in which a catalogue of the offer an adequate explanation of the belief of the
books of Scripture was formally ratified by conciliar next age, and must therefore represent completely
authority. The fust is characteristically a period the earlier teaching on which that was based. In
of tradition, the second of speculation, the third of three places, however, in which it was natural to
authority; and it is not difficult to trace the feat- look for a more distinct reference, Clement ( Ej>.
ures of the successive ages in the course of the his- 47), Ignatius (ad Eph. 12), and Polycarp (Ep. 3)
tory of the Canon. refer to Apostolic Epistles written to those whom
1. The history of the Canon of the Neio Testa- they were themselves addressing. The casual co-
ment to 170 A. i>. —
The writings of the N. T. incidences of the writings of the Apostolic fathers
themselves contain little more than faint, and per- with the language of the Epistles are much more
haps unconscious intimations of the position which extensive. With the exception of the Epistles of
they were destined to occupy. The mission of the Jude, 2 Peter, and 2, 3 John, b with which no co-
Apostles was essentially one of preaching and not incidences occur, and 1, 2 Thessalonians, Colos-
of writing of founding a present church and not sians, Titus, and Philemon, with which the coinci-
;
of legislating for a future one. The "word" is dences are very questionable, all the other Epistles
essentially "hearing," '"received," and were clearly known, and used by tkem; but still
one of
"handed down," a "message," a "proclamation." they are not quoted with the formulas which pre-
<* The commonly quoted from Photius SeaTTOTOV irdOr) n ko.1 8a.vixa.Ta. Ka\ SiSayiiara .... 8ie-
late tradition
(Biblioth. 254) show that St. John completed the Tafe T€ Kai crvv&irip9pu>o £ ....
to ,
of the immediate addition of supplementary books. c. 105 with Luke xxiii. 46). The references of
But the sense of the peculiar position which the Justin to St. John are less decided (comp. Apol. i.
Apostles occupied, as the original inspired teachers 01; Dial. [88,] 63, 123, 56, &c; Otto, in Illgen's
of the Christian church, was already making itself Zeitschrijl, u. s. u: 1841, pp. 77 ff. 1843, pp. 34
felt in the sub -apostolic age; and by a remarkable tf. and of the other books of the N. T. he men-
i
;
agreement Clement (ad Cor.i.7, 47) Polycarp (ad tions the Apocalypse only by name (Dial. c. 81),
Phil. 3), Ignatius (ad Rom. 4) and Barnabas (c. 1) and offers some coincidences of language with the
draw a clear line between themselves and their pred- Pauline Epistles'.
ecessors, from whom they were not separated bv The evidence of Papias (c. 140-150 a. d.) is
any lengthened intervals of time. As the need for nearly contemporary with that of Justin, but goes
a definite standard of Christian truth became more back to a still earlier generation (6 irpea&uTepos
pressing, so was the character of those in whose t\eye)- In spite of the various questions which
writings it was to be sought more distinctly appre- have been raised as to the interpretation of the
hended. fragments of his " Enarrations " preserved by Euse-
The next period (120-170 A. n.), which may be bius (//. E. iii. 39) it seems on every account most
fitly termed the age of the Apologists, carries the reasonable to conclude that Papias was acquainted
history of the formation of the Canon one step fur- with our present Gospels of St. Matthew and St.
ther. The facts of the life of Christ acquired a Mark, the former of which he connected with an
fresh importance in controversy with Jew and Gen- earlier Hebrew original (rjpij.T)vevcre): and probably
tile. The oral tradition, which still remained in also with the Gospel of St. John (Frag. xi. Routh;
the former age, was dying away, and a variety of comp. Iren. v. sub Jin.), the former Epistles of St.
written documents claimed to occupy its place. John and St. Peter (Euseb. H. E. iii. 24), and the
Then it was that the Canonical Gospels were defi- Apocalypse (Frag. viii.). c
nitely separated from the mass of similar narratives Meanwhile the Apostolic writings were taken by
in virtue of their outward claims, which had re- various mystical teachers as the foundation of
mained, as it were, in abeyance during the period strange schemes of speculation, which are popularly
of tradition. The need did not create, but recog- confounded together under the general title of
nized them. Without doubt and without contro- Gnosticism, whether Gentile or Jewish in their
versy, they occupied at once the position which origin. In the earliest fragments of Gnostic writ-
they have always retained as the fourfold Apostolic ers which remain there are traces of the use of the
record of the Saviour's ministry. Other narratives Gospels of St. Matthew and St. John, and of 1
remained current for some time, which were either Corinthians ('Air6(paais /j.eyaKr) [Simon M.] ap.
interpolated forms of the Canonical books ( The Hippol. adv. flier, vi. 16, 9, 13) and the Apoca-
Gospel according to the Hebrews, &c), or inde- lypse was attributed by a confusion not difficult of
pendent traditions (The Gospel according to the explanation to Cerinthus (Epiph. Jlcer. li. 3). In
Egyptians, &c), and exercised more or less influ- other Gnostic (Ophite) writings a little later there
o The exceptions to this statement which occur in b * The date 246 is doubtless a misprint for 146
;
the Latin versions of Polycarp (ad Phil. c. 12 " ut but the year of Justin's death is uncertain. Mr. Hort,
his Scripturis dictum est." Ps. iv. i Eph. iv. 26), and
: inan able article in the Journal of Class, and Sacred
Barnabas (c. 4 "sicut scriptum est," Matt. xx. 16), Philology for June 1856 (iii. 191), assigns it to a. b.
cannot be urged against the uniform practice which is 148 most scholars have placed it in the neighborhood
;
observed in the original texts. Some of the most re- of a. D. 165. On this subject, and on the date of Jus-
markable Evangelic citations are prefaced by [Ku'pios] tin's writings, see Donaldson, Hist, of Christian Lit.
e*7ref not Ae'yei, which seems to show that they were
, and Doctrine, ii. 73 f., 82 ff., Lond. 1866. A.
derived from tradition and not from a written narra- c A fragment of Papias's Commentary on the Apoc-
tive (Clem. Ep. 13, 46). alypse is preserved in the Commentary published by
* The correctness of the old Latin version of Barna- Cramer, Cat. in Apoc. p. 360, which is not noticed by
bas in c. 4. " sicut scriptum est," is now confirmed by Routh.
the Codex Sinaiticus, which reads i><; yiypa-m-eu. This * Frag.
xi. of Routh above referred to has been
is interesting as perhaps the earliest example which shown to belong to another Papias, who lived in the
has come down to us of an express quotation of a book eleventh century. See J. B. Lightfoot, St. Paid's Ep.
of the N. T. as Scripture. A. to the Galatians, 2d ed., 1866, p. 265, note. A.
24
370 CANON CANON
are references to St. Matthew, St. Luke, St. John, (superscripti : or " which bear the name of John,"
Romans, 1, 2 Corinthians, Galatians, Ephesians, super scriptce) are reckoned among the Catholic
Hebrews (Hist, of N. T. Canon, pp. 313 ff. [249 [Epistles] (MS. Catholica, i. e. Ecclesia?)." » We
ff., 2d ed.] ) and the Clementine Homilies contain receive moreover the Apocalypses of John and Peter
;
clear coincidences with all the Gospels (Horn. xix. only, which [latter] some of our body will not have
20 St. Mark; Horn. xix. 22 St. John). It is, in- read in the Church." a Thus the catalogue omits
deed, in the fragments of a Gnostic writer, Basil- of the books received at present the Epistle of
ides (c. 125 A. D.), that the writings of the N. T. James, the Epistle to the Hebrews, and 2 Peter,
are found quoted for the first time in the same while it notices the partial reception of the Revela-
manner as those of the 0. T. (Basil, up. Hipp. adv. tion of Peter. The Canon of the Peshito forms a
Hcer. p. 238, yeypaTrraf, 240, -^ ypacprj, &c.). remarkable complement to this catalogue. It in-
[See, however, the addition to note a, p. 309.] A cludes the four Gospels and the Acts, fourteen
Gnostic, Heracleon, was the first known commenta- Epistles of St. Paul, 1 John, 1 Peter, and James,
tor on the Christian Scriptures. And the history omitting Jude, 2 Peter, 2, 3 John, and the Apoca-
of another Gnostic, Mansion, furnishes the first lypse ; and this Canon was preserved in the Syrian
distinct evidence of a Canon of the N. T. Churches as long as they had an independent litera-
The need of a definite Canon must have made ture (Ebed Jesu j 1318 a. d. ap. Assem. Bibl. Or.
itself felt during the course of the Gnostic contro- iii. pp. 3 ff.). Up to this point, therefore, 2 Peter
versy. The common records of the life of Christ is the only book of the N. T. which is not recog-
may be supposed to have been first fixed in the dis- nized as an Apostolic and authoritative writing:
cussions with external adversaries. The standard and in this result the evidence from casual quota-
of Apostolic teaching was determined when the tions coincides exactly with the enumeration in the
Church itself was rent with internal divisions. The two express catalogues.
Canon of Makcion (c. 140 A. P.) contained both 2. The history of the Canon of the N. T.from
elements, a Gospel (" The Gospel of Christ ") which 170 a. d. to 303 a. d. —
The second period of the
was a mutilated recension of St. Luke, and an history of the Canon is marked by an entire change
"Apostle" or Apostolicon, which contained ten in the literary character of the Church. From the
Epistles of St. Paul —the only true Apostle in close of the second century Christian writers take
Marcion's judgment —
excluding the pastoral Epis- the foremost place intellectually as well as morally
tles, and that to the Hebrews (Tert. adv. Marc. v. and the powerful influence of the Alexandrine
Epiph. adv. Hcer. xlii.). The narrow limits of this Church widened the range of Catholic thought, and
Canon were a necessary consequence of Marcion's checked the spread of speculative heresies. From
belief and position, but it offers a clear witness to the first the common elements of the Roman and
the fact that Apostolic writings were thus early re- Syrian Canons, noticed in the last section, form a
garded as a complete original rule of doctrine. Nor Canon of acknowledged books, regarded as a whole,
is there any evidence to show that he regarded the authoritative and inspired, and cot rdinate with the
books which he rejected as unauthentic. The con- O. T. Each of these points is proved by the testi-
duct of other heretical teachers who professed to mony of contemporary fathers who represent the
admit the authority of all the Apostles proves the Churches of Asia Minor, Alexandria and North
converse; for they generally defended their tenets Africa. IrenjEUS, who was connected by direct
by forced interpretations, and not by denying the succession with St. John (Euseb. H. E. v. 20),
authority of the common records. And while the speaks of the Scriptures as a whole, without dis-
first traces of the recognition of the divine inspira- tinction of the Old or New Testaments, as " perfect
tion collective unity of the Canon comes from
and inasmuch as they were uttered by the Word of God
them, it cannot be supposed, without inverting the and His Spirit " {Adv. Hcer. ii. 28, 2). " There
whole history of Christianity, that they gave a could not be," he elsewhere argues, " more than
model to the Catholic Church, and did not them- four Gospels or fewer" (Adv. Hcer. iii. 11, 8 ff.).
selves simply perpetuate the belief and custom Clement of Alexandria, again, marks "the
which had grown up within it. Apostle" (6 anoaToAos, Strom, vii. 3, § 14; some-
The close of this period of the history of the times an6aTO\oi) as a collection definite as "the
N. T. Canon marked by the existence of two
is Gospel," and combines them " as Scriptures of the
important testimonies to the N. T. as a whole. Lord " with the Law and the Prophets (Strom, vi.
Hitherto the evidence has been in the main frag- 11, § 88) as "ratified by the authority of one
mentary and occasional but the MuRATOEIAN
;
Almighty power " (Strom, iv. 1, § 2). Tertui.-
Canon in the West, and the Pkshito in the East, i.ian notices particularly the introduction of the
deal with the collection of Christian Scriptures as word Testament for the earlier word Instrument,
such. The first is a fragment, apparently trans- as applied to the dispensation and the record (adv.
lated from the Greek, and yet of Roman origin, Marc. iv. 1), and appeals to the Neio Testa until.
mutilated both at the beginning and the end, and as made up of the "Gospels" and "Apostles"
written, from internal evidence, about 170 A. r>. (Adv. Prax. 15). This comprehensive testimony
It commences with a clear reference to St. Mark's extends to the four Gospels, the Acts, 1 Peter, 1
Gospel, and then passes on to St. Luke as the third, John, thirteen Epistles of St. Paul, and the Apoca-
St. John, the Acts, thirteen Epistles of St. Paul. lypse ; and, with the exception of the Apocalypse,
The first Epistle of St. John is quoted in the text no one of these books was ever afterwards rejected
and then afterwards it is said that " the Epistle of or questioned till modern times. 6
Jnde and two Epistles of the John mentioned above But this important agreement as to the principal
contents of the Canon left several points still unde-
cided. The East and West, as was seen in the last
« We have given what appears meaning
to be the
of the corrupt text of the passage. It would be out
of place to discuss all the disputed points here comp.
; 6 The Manichees offer no real exception to the
Hist. ofN. T. Canon, pp. 242, [184, 2d ed.] ff., and truth of this remark. Comp. Beausobre, Hist, dt
the references there given. Manich., i. 297 f.
CANON CANON 371
section, severally received some books which were as they were emphatically called, created a schism
not universally accepted. So far the error lay in in the Church. The Donatists, who maintained
defect; but in other cases apocryphal or unapostolic the sterner judgment on their crime, may be re-
books obtained a partial sanction or a popular use, garded as maintaining in its strictest integrity the
before they finally passed into oblivion. Both these popular judgment in Africa on the contents of the
phenomena, however, were limited in time and (.'anon of Scripture which was the occasion of the
range, and admit of explanation from the internal dissension and Augustine allows that they held in
;
character of the books in question. The examina- common with the Catholics the same " Canonical
tion of the claims of the separate writings belongs Scriptures," and were alike "bound by the author-
to special introductions; but the subjoined table ity of both Testaments" (August, c. Cresc. i. 31,
(Xo. III.) will give a general idea of the extent and 57 ; Ep. 129, 3). The only doubt which can be
nature of the historic evidence which bears upon raised as to the integrity of the Donatist Canon
them. arises from the uncertain language which Augus-
This table might be much extended by the in- tine himself uses as to the Epistle to the Hebrews,
sertion of isolated testimonies of less considerable which the Donatists may also have countenanced.
writers. Generally, however, it may be said that But, however this may have been, the complete
of the " disputed " books of the X. T., the Apoca- CaBon of the N. T., as commonly received at pres-
lypse was universally received, with the single ex- ent, was ratified at the third Council of Car-
ception of Dionysius of Alexandria, by all the thage (a. d. 397),° and from that time was ac-
writers of the period; and the Epistle to the He- cepted throughout the Latin Church (Jerome,
brews, by the Churches of Alexandria, Asia(V) Innocent. Rufinus, Bhilastrius), though oc-
and Syria, but not by those of Africa and Rome. casional doubts as to the Epistle to the Hebrews
The Epistles of St James and St. Jude, on the still remained 6 (Isid. Hisp. Proami. §§ 85-109).
other hand, were little used, and the Second Ep. Meanwhile the Syrian Churches, faithful to the
of Si. Peter was barely known. conservative spirit of the East, still retained the
But while the evidence for the formation of the Canon of the Beshito. Chktsostom (t 407 A. D.),
Canon is much more copious during this period Theodore of Mopsuestev (t 429 a. d.), and
than during that which preceded, it is essentially Theodoret, who represent the Church of Anti-
of the same kind. It is the evidence of use and och, furnish no evidence in support of the Epistles
not of inquiry. The Canon was fixed in ordinary of Jude, 2 Peter, 2, 3 John, or the Ajjocalypse. Ju-
practice, and doubts were resolved by custom and Nii.irs, in his account of the public teaching at
not by criticism. Old feelings and beliefs were per- Nisibis, places the Epistles of James, Jade, 2,
petuated by a living tradition; and if this habit of 3 John, 2 Peter in a second class, and mentions
mind was unfavorable to the permanent solution of the doubts which existed in the East as to the
difficulties, it gives fresh force to the claims of the Apocalypse. And though Ephrem Syrus was
acknowledged books, which are attested by the acquainted with the Apocalypse ( Oj/p. Syr. ii. p.
witness of every division of the Church (Okigen, 332 c), yet his genuine Syrian works exhibit no
Cyprian, Methodius), for it is difficult to con- habitual use of the books which were not contained
ceive how such unanimity could have arisen except in the Syrian Canon, a fact which must throw some
from the original weight of apostoHcal authority. discredit upon the frequent quotations from them
For it will be observed that the evidence in favor which occur in those writings which are only pre-
of the acknowledged books as a whole is at once served in a Greek translation.
clear and concordant from all sides as soon as the The Churches of Asia Minor seem to have occu-
Christian literature is independent and considerable. pied a mean position as to the Canon between the
The Canon preceded the literature and was not de- East and West. With the exception of the Apoca-
termined by it. lypse, they received generally all the books of the
3. The history of the N. T. Canon from A. D. N. T. as contained in the African Canon, but this
303—397. — The persecution of Diocletian was di- is definitely excluded from the Catalogue of Greg-
rected in a great measure against the Christian ory of Nazianzus (tc. 389 a. d.), and pro-
writings (Lact. Instil, v. 2; de Mart. Persec. 16). nounced " spurious " {v6Qov), on the authority of
The influence of the Scriptures was already so great " the majority " (ol ir\etovs), in that of Amphilo-
and so notorious, that the surest method of destroy- CHIUS (c. 380 a. d.), while it is passed over in
ing the faith seemed to be the destruction of the silence in the Laodicene Catalogue, which, even if
records on which it was supported. The plan of it has no right to its canonical position, yet be-
the emperor was in part successful. Some were longs to the period and country with which it is
found who obtained protection by the surrender of commonly connected. The same Canon, with the
the sacred books, and at a later time the question same omission of the Apocalypse, is given by Cyril
of the readmission of these " traitors" (traditores), of Jerusalem (t 386 a. d.); though Epipha-
a The enumeration of the Pauline Epistles marks it occurs after the Apocalypse, differs in several respects
the doubt which had existed as to the Hebrews Epis-
: from any of Anger's MSS. Comp. Anger, Dtr Laodice-
tolse Pauli Apostoli xiii.; ejusdem ad Hebraeos una. nerbrief, Leipz. 1843, pp. 142 ff. The Greek title in G
In the Council of Hippo (Can. 36) the phrase is sim- (not F), 7rpos AaoucSaxrjcras apxerou, is apparently only
ply " xiv. Epistles of St. Paul." Generally it may be a rendering of the Latin title from the form of the
observed that the douht was in many, if not in most, name (g. Laudicenses). [The text of this Epistle, ac-
cases us to the authorship, and not as to the canonicity cording to four MSS. in the British Museum, is given
of the letter. Comp. Hieron. Ep. ail Dard., 129, § 3. by Mr. Westcott in his History of the Canon of the
b The MSS. of the Vulgate from the sixth century N. T., 2d ed., App. E.]
downwards very frequently contain the apocryphal c * On the doubtful genuineness of the Greek writ-
Epistle to the Laodiceans among the Pauline Epistles, ings which bear the name of Ephrem, see Tregelles,
generally after the Epistle to the Colossians, but also Textual Criticism nf the N. T. (Home's Introd., 10th
'n other places, without any mark of suspicion. The ed., vol. iv.), p. 337, note, and Rbdiger in Herzog's
text in Cod. Hart. (Brit. Mus.) 2833 (sec. xi.) in which Real-Encykl. iv. 87. A
372 CANON
J?
p-i
03 .—
'~
<# £ 'P
«U |S~!M
a o
'1
'I 8
SB ^i£S^ W qgSqdte;
h« &3 «*0 «i
• * S~ ~ S ; -g fc -:a j
$«
-y^j
§ d ...
i gs^a;
t
im;
rt
- p-kj s
I •
«y (S ^ -3 <s tq o
^3 a a .
s -s 5 I ?
«
?
:
? i3 3S
j2 .g
s~
1-c
FS.3
!3^M .$"6
M H
5
o SEf
£ i-i •
of M
p <hi M I-P ° • -H 2 S: -a O
a
2% S°S «
o -w -r era
o K? «5
a-
a
g g •
.a a
f^o^iS 'leiSn 4^8 3 s ^3*Q *& ^.-S;3
el
5 §
«
CANON CANON 373
Nius, who was his fellow-countryman and contem- opposition of controversialists, who quoted and en-
porary, confirms the Western Canon, while he no- forced the early doubts. Erasmus with charac-
tices the doubts which were entertained as to the teristic moderation denied the apostolic origin of
Apocalypse. These doubts prevailed in the Church the Epistle to the Hebrews, 2 Peter, and the Ajjoc-
of Constantinople, and the Apocalypse does not alypse, but left their canonical authority unques-
seem to have been recognized there down to a late tioned (Prcef. ad Antileijom.). Luther, on the
period, though in other respects the Constantino- other hand, with bold self-reliance, created a purely
politan Canon was complete and pure (Nicepho- subjective standard for the canonicity of the Script-
kus, Photius, CEcumenius, Theophylact, ures in the character of their " teaching of Christ,"
t c. 1077 A. d.). and while he placed the Gospel and first Epistle of
The well-known Festal Letter of Athanasius St. John, the Epistles of St. Paul to the Romans,
(t 373 A. d.) bears witness to the Alexandrine Galatians, Ephesians, and
the first Epistle of St.
Canon. This contains a clear and positive list of Peter, in the first rank as containing the " kernel
the books of the N. T. as they are received at pres- of Christianity," he set aside the Epistle to the He-
ent and the judgment of Athanasius is confirmed brews, St. Jude, St. James, and the Apocalypse at
;
by the practice of his successor Cyril. the end of his version, and spoke of them and the
One important Catalogue yet remains to be men- remaining Antilegomena with varying degrees of
tioned. After noticing in separate places the ori- disrespect, though he did not separate 2 Peter and
gin and use of the Gospels and Epistles, Euseiuus 2, 3 John from the other Epistles (comp. Landerer,
sums up in a famous passage the results of his Art. Kanon in Herzog's Encyklop. p. 295 fF.).
inquiry into the evidence on the Apostolic books The doubts which Luther rested mainly on inter-
furnished by the writings of the three first centu- nal evidence were variously extended by some of
ries (//. E. iii. 25). His testimony is by no means his followers (Melancthon, Centur. Magdeb.,
free from difficulties, nor in all points obviously Flacius, Gerhard: comp. Eeuss, § 334); and
consistent, but his last statement must be used to especially with a polemical aim against the Romish
fix the interpretation of the former and more cur- Church by Chemnitz {Exam. Cone. Trid. i. 73).
sory notices. In the first class of acknowledged But while the tendency of the Lutheran writers
books (o/xoXoyov/xiva) he places the four Gospels, was to place the Antilegomena on a lower stage of
the Epistles of St. Paul (i. e. fourteen, H. E. iii. authority, their views received no direct sanction in
3), 1 John, 1 Peter, and (ef ye <paveir)) in case its any of the Lutheran symbolic books, which admit
authenticity is admitted (such seems to be his mean- the " prophetic and apostolic writings of the Old
ing), the Apocalypse. The second class of disputed and New Testaments," as a whole, without further
books (avTiAey6/xeva) he subdivides into two parts, classification or detail. The doubts as to the An-
the first consisting of such as were generally known tilegomena of the N. T. were not confined to the
and recognized (yi/dpi/j.a to7s iroAAoh), including Lutherans. Caelstadt, who was originally a
the Epistles of James, Jude, 2 Peter, 2, 3 John ; friend of Luther and afterwards professor at Zurich,
and the second of those which he pronounces spu- endeavored to bring back the question to a critical
rious (i>6da), that is which were either unauthentic discussion of evidence, and placed the Antilegomena
or unapostolic, as the Acts of Paul, the Shepherd, in a third class " on account of the controversy as
the Apocalypse of Peter, the Apocalypse of John to the books, or rather (ut certius loquar) as to
(if not a work of the Apostle), and according to their authors
" (De Can. Script, pp. 410-12, ed.
some the Gospel according to the Hebrews. These Credn.). Calvin, while he denied the Pauline
two great classes contain all the books which had authorship of the Epistle to the Hebrews, and at
received ecclesiastical sanction, and were in common least questioned the authenticity of 2 Peter, did not
distinguished from a third class of heretical forger- set aside their canonicity (Prof, ad Hebr. ; ad
ies (e. (j. the Gospels of Thomas, Peter, Matthias, 2 Petr. ) ; and he notices the doubts as to St James
&c.). and St. Jude only to dismiss them.
One point in the testimony of Eusebius is partic- The language of the Articles of the Church of
ularly deserving of notice. The evidence in favor England with regard to the N. T. is remarkable.
of the apostolic authority of 2 Peter which can be In the Articles of 1552 no list of the books of
derived from the existing writings of the first three Scripture is given but in the Elizabethan Articles
;
centuries is extremely slender but Eusebius, who (1562, 1571) a definition of Holy Scripture is
;
possessed more copious materials, describes it as given as " the Canonical books of the Old and New
"generally well known;" and this circumstance Testament, of whose authority was never any doubt
alone suggests the necessity of remembering that in the Church" (Art. vi.). This definition is fol-
the early < Catalogues rest on evidence no longer lowed by an enumeration of the books of the 0.
available for us. In other respects the classification T. and of the Apocrypha and then it is said sum-
;
of Eusebius is a fair summary of the results which marily, without a detailed catalogue, " all the books
follow from the examination of the extant ante- of the N. T., as they are commonly received, we
Nicene literature. do receive and account them for Canonical (pro
The evidence of later writers is little more than lanonicis habemus)." A distinction thus remains
I
the repetition or combination of the testimonies between the "Canonical" books, and such "Ca-
already quoted. An examination of table No. IV., nonical books as have never been doubted in the
p. 374, which includes the most important Catcb- Church;" and it seems impossible to avoid the
of the writings of the X. T., will convey a conclusion that the framers of the Articles intended
clear summary of much that has been said, and to leave a freedom of judgment on a point on which
supply the most important omissions. the greatest of the continental reformers, and even
At the era of the Reformation the question of of Romish scholars (SLxtus Sen. BibUoth. S. i. 1;
the N. T. Canon became again a subject of great ( laietan, Pro./'. ad Epp. ad Hebr., Jac, 2, 3 John,
though partial interest. The hasty decree of the J ml.) were divided. The omission cannot have
Council of Trent, which affirmed the authority of arisen solely from the fact that the Article in ques-
ill the books commonly received, called out the tion was framed with reference to the Church of
374 CANON
No. IV. THE CHIEF CATALOGUES OF THE BOOKS OF THE NEW TESTAMENT.
Only " disputed" books are noticed, or such as were in some degree recognized as authoritative.
The symbols are used as before.
il
.5.0
I. Conciliar Catalogues:
[Laodicea]
Carthage
Apostolic (Concil. Quinisext.
Junilius
Joann. Damasc. . .
Ebed Jesu
(b) Palestine.
Eusebius
Cyril of Jerus.
Epiphanius .
(c)Alexandria.
Origen . .
Athanasius
Aniphilochius .
(e) Constantinople.
Chrysostom
Leontius .
Nicephorus
Augustine .
(b) Italy.
Can. Murat.
Philastrius .
Jerome . .
Eufinus
Innocent
[Gelasius]
Cassiodorus {Vet. Trans.)
(c) Spain.
Isidore of Seville . . .
estant confessions which contain any list of books, of the separate books of the Old and New Testa-
give a list of the books of the New as well as of ments belong to the special articles. The general
the Old Testament (Con/ Belg. 4; Con/ Gall. 3; course which they have taken is simple and natural.
Con/. Fid. 1). But if this license is rightly con- Sender (Untersuch. d. Kan. 1771-5) first led the
ceded by the Anglican Articles, the great writers way towards the later subjective criticism, though
of the Church of England have not availed them- he rightly connected the formation of the Canon
selves of it. The early commentators on the Ar- with the formation of the Catholic Church, but
ticles take little (Burnet) or no notice (Beveridge) without any clear recognition of the providential
of the doubts a.s to the Antilegomena; and the power which wrought in both. Next followed a
chief controversialists of the Reformation accepted series of special essays in which the several books
the full Canon with emphatic avowal (Whitaker, were discussed individually with little regard to the
Disp. on Scripture, cxiv. 105 Fulke's De/ence of place which they occupy in the whole collection
;
Eng. Trans, p. 8; Jewel, Defence of Apol. ii. 9, 1). (Schleiermacher, Bretschneider, De Wette, &c).
The judgment of the Greek Church in the case At last an ideal view of the early history of Chris-
of the 0. T. was seen to be little more than a re- tianitv was used as the standard by which the books
flection of the opinions of the West. The differ- were to be tried, and the books were regarded as
ence between the Roman and Reformed Churches results of typical forms of doctrine and not the
on the N. T. was less marked and the two con- sources of them (F. C. Baur, Schwegler, Zeller).
;
flicting Greek confessions confirm in general terms, All true sense of historic evidence was thus lost.
without any distinct enumeration of books, the pop- The growth of the Church was left without expla-
ular Canon of the N. T. (Cyr. Luc. Con/ i. 42; nation, and the original relations and organic unity
Dosith. Confess, i. 467). The confession of Me- of the N. T. were disregarded.
TROPHANES gives a complete list of the books and For the later period of the history of the N. T. ;
the remaining books (Catechism, 1. c. supr.). and fairly complete, but frequently inaccurate.
cluded on the ground of corruptions ; but no notice alypse of St. John is placed also among the Apocry-
was taken of the Epistles of Clement, both of which, phal books (Credner, a. a. 0. p. 122).
as is well known, are found at the end of the Cod. 10 This Catalogue, which excludes the Epistle to the
Alex., and are mentioned in the index before the gen- Hebrews and the Apocalypse (statutum est nihil aliud
eral summary of books which again is followed by ;
legi in ecclesia debere catholica nisi et Pauli . . . .
the titles of the Apocryphal Psalms of Solomon. trededm epistolas et septem alias ....), is followed
8 lie adds also " the Apostolic Canons," and accord- by a section in which Philastrius speaks of " other
ing to one MS. the two Epistles of Clement. [heretics] who assert that the Epistle to the brews is H
4 The other chief passages in Eusebius are, H. E. not Paul's " (Hair. 89). And in another place (Han:
iii. 3, 24 ii. 23.
; His object in the passage quoted is 60) he reckons it as heresy to deny the authenticity
avaKe<pa\aiu>cao-6ai Tas SrjAioOeiVas rfji Kaivrjs SiaflrjiCTjs of the Gospel and Apocalypse of St. John. The differ-
ypcupas. ent statements seem to be the result of careless com
The list concludes with the words, to. Se Aoi7ra irav-
6 pilation.
however perverse their conclusions may be. In op- Author and date ; II. Form ; III. Meaning ; IV.
position to them Thiersch has vindicated, perhaps Canonicity.
with an excess of zeal, but yet in the main rightly, Author and date.
I. By the Hebrew title it is —
the position of the Apostolic writings in relation Solomon and so in all the versions, and
ascribed to ;
to the first age ( Versuch zur HersteMuny, u. s. w., by the majority of Jewish and Christian writers,
Erlangen, 1845; and Ermederung, u. s. 10., Er- ancient and modern. In fact, if we except a few
lang. 1846). The section of Reuss on the subject of the Tahnudical writers (Bava Bathra, R. Moses
(Die Gesch. d. keil. Schriften N. T., 2tc Aufl. Kimchi; see Gray's Key), who assigned it to the
Braunschw. 1853 [4th ed. 1864]), and the article age of Hezekiah, there is scarcely a dissentient voice
of Landerer (Herzog's Encyklop. s. v.) contain val- down to the close of the last century. More recent
uable summaries of the evidence. Other references criticism, however, has called in question this deep-
and a fuller discussion of the chief points are given rooted and well accredited tradition. Among Eng-
by the author of this article in The History of tht lish scholars Kennicott, among German Eichhorn
Canon of the N. T. (Cambr. 1855). B. F. W. and Rosenmiiller, regard the poem as belonging to
* Among the more recent writers on the subject the age of Ezra and Nehemiah (Kennicott, Diss. i.
the following may be mentioned: Kcstlin (of the 20-22 Eichhorn, Einleitung in das A. T., Bd. iii. §
;
Tubingen school), Die pseudonyme Litttratur der 647, p. 531 ff., 2d ed. Rosenm. Animadv. in Lmcth.
;
dltesten Kirche, ein Beit ray zur Gesch. der Bild- Pradect., Schol. in V. T.). Kennicott based his
ung des Kanons, in Baur and Zeller's Thiol. Jahrb. opinion upon the uniform insertion of the *, in all
1851, x. 149-221; Gaussen, Le canon dts Saintes
s 1"1
Ecritures, etc., 2 vol. Lausanne, 1860, translated the copies, in the name of David ("l ). The
and abridged by Dr. E. N. Kirk, Tin Canon of name, however, occurs only once 4) ; and the (iv.
the Holy Scriptures examined in the Liihtof lli*- insertion of the letter in this solitary instance is
tory, Boston, 1862 (Amer. Tract Soc); Credner, easily accounted for by a supposed error in trans-
Gesch. des Neutest. Kanon, herausg. ton Dr. G. scription. At any rate the insertion of the » would
Volkmar, Berlin, 1860; Bleek, EinL in das N. T., not bring the Canticles so far down as the time of
Berlin, 1862, pp. 631-678; Hilgenfeld, Der Kanon Ezra since we find the same peculiarity in Hos.
;
xiii. 9, xvi. 19). The canopy the nate most of the Chaldaisms alleged by Eichhorn
of Holofernes is
A. V. The Song of Solomon. No book of the vincial dialects. If, moreover, it should be urged
provincialisms, it may be
O. T. has been the subject of more varied criticism, that Chaldaisms are not
CANTICLES CANTICLES 377
Solomon could
replied that scarcely be ignorant of tialis Michaelis and Rosen-
of a pastoral kind."
the Aramaean literature of his own time, atid that muller, while differing as to its interpretation, agree
he may have consciously used it for the purpose of in making it continuous, "carmen amatorium"
enrichment (Gesen. Heir. Gr. §§ 2, 4). (Mich.). A modified continuity was suggested by
Bossuet, who divided the Song into 7 parts, or
The title, thoughit is possibly too flattering to
pastoral drama, corresponding with the
have come from the hand of Solomon, must have scenes of a
existed in the copy used by the LXX., and conse- 7 days of the Jewish nuptial ceremony (Lowth,
quently can lay claim to a respectable antiquity. P
reelect, xxx.). Bossuet is followed by Calmet,
The mural argument pat forward by the supporters Percy, Williams, and Lowth; but his division is
of the most recent literal interpretation, and based impugned by
Taylor (Fragm. Calmet), who pro-
upon the improbability of Solomon's criminating poses one of days; and considers the drama to be
6'
himself (see below), is not very conclusive. His post-nuptial, not antenuptial, as it is explained
conduct could easily be traced to a spirit of gener- by Bossuet. The entire nuptial theory has been
handled by J. D. Michaelis, and the literal
ous self-accusation; and at any rate it need not be severely
exalted above the standard which was likely to school of
interpreters in general. Michaelis attacks
flourish in the atmosphere of a court such as his.
the first day of Bossuet, and involves in its destruc-
On the whole then it seems unnecessary to depart tion the remaining six (Not. ad Lowth. Pixel, xxxi.).
It should be observed that Lowth does not com-
from the plain meaning of the Hebrew title.
promise himself to the perfectly dramatic character
Supposing the date fixed to the reign of Solomon,
of the poem. He makes it a drama, but only of
great ingenuity has been employed by the Rabbin-
the minor kind, e. dramatic as a dialogue; and
*'.
the Hebrew title. The rendering of D^t^HT^HJ, thing like a dramatic progress and development
sufficient to enlist the sympathy of a chorus is so
mentioned by Simonis (Lex. Heb.), "series carmi-
num " (comp. (reipd, chain), and adopted by evident, that the strongly marked idyllic scenery
could not fail to outweigh the scarcely perceptible
Paulus, Good, and other commentators, can scarcely
elements of dramatic intention. Accordingly the
compete with Gesenius's, " Snug of Songs, i. e. the
idyllic theory, propounded by Sig. Melesegenio,
most beautiful of songs " (comp. Ps. xlv. 1,
confirmed by the use of a similar form among the
n"! > "T > ~W, "a delightful song," Gesen.; " car- Arabians, under the name of " Cassides " (Sir W.
men jucundum," Rosenm. ; comp. also Theocr. Jones, Poes. As. Comment, iii.), and adopted by
typical ; the allegorical ; and the literal. sally received. It was impugned by Theodore of
1. The mystical interpretation is properly an Mopsuestia (360-429), but continued to hold its
offshoot of the allegorical, and probably owes its ground as the orthodox theory till the revival of
origin to the necessity which was felt of supplying letters; when it was called in question by Erasmus
a literal basis for the speculations of the allegorists and Grotius, and was gradually superseded by the
This basis is either the marriage of Solomon with typical theory of Grotius, Bossuet, Lowth, &c.
Pharaoh's daughter, or his marriage with an Israel- This, however, was not effected without a severe
itish woman, the Shulamite. The former (taken struggle, in which Sanctius, Durham, and Calovius
together with Harmer's variation) was the favorite were the champions of the allegorical against the
opinion of the mystical interpreters to the end typical theory. The latter seems to have been
of the 18th century: the latter has obtained since mainly identified with Grotius (Pol. Syn.), and was
its introduction by Good (1803). The mystical stigmatized by Calovius as the heresy of Theodore
interpretation makes its first appearance in Origen Mopsuest, condemned at the 2d council of Con-
who wrote a voluminous commentary upon the stantinople, and revived by the Anabaptists. In
Cant. Its literal basis, minus the mystical ap the 18th century the allegorical theory was reas-
plication, is condemned by Theodoret (a. d. 420.) serted, and reconstructed by Puffendorf (1776) and
It reappears in Abulpharagius (1226-1286), and the reactionary allegorists the majority of whom, ;
was received by Grotius. As involving a literal however, with Rosenmuller, return to the system
basis, it was vehemently objected to by Sanctius, of the Chaldee Paraphrase.
Durham, and Calovius; but approved of and sys- Some of the more remarkable variations of the
tematized by Bossuet, endorsed by Lowth, and used allegorical school are: —
(a.) The extension of the
for the purpose of translation by Percy and Wil- Chaldee allegory to the Christian Church, originally
liams. The arguments of Calovius prevented its projected by Aponius (7th century), and more fully
taking root in Germany and the substitution by wrought out by De Lyra (1270-1340), Brightman
:
Good of an Israelitish for an Egyptian bride has (1600), and Cocceius (1603-1099). According to
not saved the general theory from the neglect which De Lyra, chaps, ii.-vii. describe the history of the
was inevitable after the reactionary movement of Israelites from the Exodus to the birth of Christ;
the 19th century allegorists. chap. vii. ad
Jin. the history of the Christian
2. Allegorical. — Notwithstanding the attempts Church toConstantine. Brightman divides the
which have been made to discover this principle of Cant, into a history of the Legal, and a history of
interpretation in the LXX. (Cant.
iv. 8); Ecclus. the Evangelical Church ; his detail is highly elabo-
(xlvii. 14-17); Wisd. (viii. 2); and Joseph, (c. Cant. v. 8, he discovers an allusion to
rate, e. g. in
Apion. i. § 8); it is Peter "\Valdo (1160), and in verse 13 to Robert
impossible to trace it with any
certainty further back than the Talmud (see Gins- Trench (1290). (b.) Luther's theory limits the
burg, Introd.). According to the Talmud the allegorical meaning to the contemporaneous history
beloved is taken to be God, the loved one, or bride, of the Jewish people under Solomon, (c.) Accord-
is the congregation of Israel. This general relation ing to Ghislerius. and Corn, a Lapide the Bride is
is expanded into more particular detail by the Tar- the Virgin Mary, (d.) Puffendorf refers the spir-
gum, or Chaldee Paraphrase, which treats the Song itual sense to the circumstances of our Saviour's
of songs as an allegorical history of the Jewish death and burial.
people from the Exodus to the coming of the Mes- 3. The literal interpretation seems to have been
siah and the building of the third temple. In connected with the general movement of Theodore
order to make out the parallel, recourse was had to Mopsuest. (360-429) and his followers, in opposi-
the most extraordinary devices: e. g. the reduction tion to the extravagances of the early Christian al-
of words to their numerical value, and the free in- legorists. Its scheme was nuptial, with Pharaoh's
terchanging of words similar to each other in sound. daughter as the bride. That it was by many re-
Elaborate as it was, the interpretation of the Tar- garded as the only admissible interpretation appears
gum was still further developed by the mediaeval from Theodoret, who mentions this opinion only to
Jews; but generally constructed upon the same condemn it. Borne down and overwhelmed by the
allegorical hypothesis. It was introduced into their prolific genius of mediaeval allegory, we have a
CANTICLES CANTICLES 379
glimpse of it in Abulpharagius (vid. supr. and in Sect. 5 (viii. 5-14): the conflict is over; virtue
) ;
the MS. commentary (Bodl. Oppenh. Coll. No. and truth have won the victory, and the shep-
625), cited by Mr. Ginsburg, and by him referred herdess and her beloved return to their happy
conjecturally to a French Jew of the 12th or 13th home visiting on the way the tree beneath whose
;
cent. This Commentary anticipates more recent shade they first plighted their troth (viii. 5). Her
criticism by interpreting the Song as celebrating brothers repeat the promises which they had once
the humble love of a shepherd and shepherdess. made conditionally upon her virtuous and irre-
The extreme literal view was propounded by Cas- proachable conduct.
tellio (1544), who called the Cant. " Colloquium Such is a brief outline of the scheme most re-
Salomonu cum arnica quadam Sulamitha," and re- cently projected by the literalists. It must not be
jected it from the Canon. Following out this idea, supposed, however, that the supporters of the alle-
Winston (1723) recognized the book as a composi- gorical interpretation have beeu finally driven from
tion of Solomon; but denounced it as foolish, las- the field. Even in Germany a strong band of re-
civious, and idolatrous. Meanwhile the nuptial actionary allegorists have maintained their ground,
theory was adopted by Grotius as the literal basis including such names as Hug, Kaiser, Kosenrnul-
of a secondary and spiritual interpretation and, ler, Hahn, and Hengstenberg.
; On the whole, their
after its dramatical development by Bossuet, long tendency is to return to the Chaldee Paraphrase;
continued to be the standard scheme of the mys- a tendency which is specially marked in Kosenmul-
tical school. In 1803 it was reconstructed by ler. In England the battle of the literalists has
Good, with a Jewish instead of an Egyptian bride. been fought by Dr. Pye Smith (Congreg. Mag.
The purely literal theory, opposed on the one hand for 1837-38); in America by Prof. Noyes, who
to the allegorical interpretation, and on the other adopts the extreme erotic theory, and is unwilling
to Castellio and Whiston, owes its origin to Ger- to recognize in Cant, any moral or religious de-
many. Michaelis (1770) regarded the Song as an sign. It should be observed that such a sentiment
exponent of wedded love, innocent and happy. as this of Dr. Noyes is utterly alien to the views
But, while justifying its admission into the Canon, of Jacobi and his followers, who conceive the rec-
he is betrayed into a levity of remark altogether in- ommendation of virtuous love and constancy to be a
consistent with the supposition that the book is portion of the very highest moral teaching, and in
inspired (Not. ad Lowth. Pixel.). From this time no way unworthy of an inspired writer.
the scholarship of Germany was mainly enlisted on The allegorical interpretation has been defended
the side of the literalists. The literal basis became in America by Professors Stuart and Burrowes.
thoroughly dissociated from the mystical super- The internal arguments adduced by the allegorists
structure; and all that remained to be done was to are substantially the same which were urged by
elucidate the true scheme of the former. The most Calovius against the literal basis of the mystical in-
generally received interpretation of the modern lit- terpretation. The following are specimens :
eralists is that which was originally proposed by (a.) Particulars not applicable to Solomon (v.
Jacobi (1771), adopted by Herder, Amnion, Um- 2): (b.) particulars not applicable to the wife of
breit, Ewald, &c. and more recently by Prof. Solomon (i. 6, 8; v. 7; vi. 13, cf. i. 6): (c.) Solo-
;
Meier of Tubingen (1854), and in England by Mr. mon addressed in the second person (viii. 12): (d.)
Ginsburg, in his very excellent translation (1857). particulars inconsistent with the ordinary condi-
According to the detailed application of this view, tions of decent love (v. 2): (c.) date 20 years
as given by Mr. Ginsburg, the Song is intended to after Solomon's marriage with Pharaoh's daughter
display the victory of humble and constant love (comp. Cant. v. 4, and 1 K. vi. 38). It will
over the temptations of wealth and royalty. The readily be observed that these arguments do not in
tempter is Solomon; the object of his seductive en- any way affect the literal theory of Jacobi.
deavors is a Shulamite shepherdess, who, surrounded For external arguments the allegorists depend
by the glories of the court and the fascinations of principally upon Jewish tradition and the analogy
unwonted splendor, pines for the shepherd -lover of Oriental poetry. The value of the former, as
from whom she has been involuntarily separated. respects a composition of the 10th cent. ii. c, is
The drama is divided into 5 sections, indicated estimated by Mich. (Nut. ad Lowth.) at a very low
by the thrice repeated formula of adjuration (ii. 7, rate. For the latter, it is usual to refer to such
iii. 5, viii. 4), and the use of another closing sen- authors as Chardin, Sir W. Jones, Herbelot, &c.
tence (v. 1). (see Rosenm. Animad.). Rosenml'ller gives a song
Section 1 (Ch. i. — ii. 7): scene — a country seat of Hafiz, with a paraphrase by a Turkish commen-
of Solomon. The shepherdessis committed to the tator which unfolds the spiritual meaning. For
charge of the court-ladies (" daughters of Jerusa- other specimens of the same kind see Lane's Egyp-
lem"), who have been instructed to prepare the tians. On the other hand the objections taken by
way for the royal approach. Solomon makes an Dr. Noyes are very important (New Ti-'>n.<l.). It
unsuccessful attempt to win her affections. would seem that there is one essential difference be-
Sect. 2 (ii. 8 —
iii. 5): the shepherdess explains to tween the Song of Solomon and the allegorical
the court-ladies the cruelty of her brothers, which compositions of the poets in question. In the lat-
had led to the separation between herself and her ter the allegory is more or less avowed and distinct ;
allegories do not generally occur in the sacred writ- vino's, &c, by Ewald, Gottingen, 1826 ;Das Hoke
ings without some intimation of their secondary Lied Sahmonis ausgelegt von W. Hengstenberg,
meaning, which intimation in the case of the Cant, Berlin, 1853; Das Hohe Lied, &c, by Ernst Meier,
is not forthcoming. They argue from the total Tubingen, 1854; The Song of Songs, &c, by C.
silence of our Lord and his Apostles respecting this D. Ginsburg, Lond. 1857; the last mentioned is
hook, not indeed that it is uninspired, but that it specially recommended to the English reader.
was never intended to bear within its poetic en- T. E. B.
velope that mystical sense which woidd have ren- * Among the names of other writers on Canticles
dered it should be mentioned Kenan (Cantigue des ('an-
a perfect treasury of reference for St. Paul,
when unfolding the spiritual relation between tiques, translating and treating of the plan, age,
Christ and His church (see 2 Cor. xi. 2; Rom. vii. and character of the poem, 2d ed., 1861); Ewald in
4; Eph. v. 23-32). Again, it is urged that if his Dichter d. A. B. (ed. 1866-7); Delitzsch (1851)
this poem be allegorically spiritual, then its spirit- who maintains the mystical theory (das Mysterium
ualism is of the very highest order, and utterly in- der Ehe ist das Mysterium des Hohenliedes), ac-
consistent with the opinion which assigns itcording to which the leader has the deeper spiritual
to Sol-
omon. The philosophy of Solomon, as given in sense brought near to him, not so much by the au-
Eccl., is a philosophy of indifference, apparently thor as by the Spirit that guided the author Um- ;
suicu,ested by the exhaustion of all sources of phys- breit, Holies Lied (in Herzog's Reah-Kncijk. vi.
ical enjoyment. The religion of Solomon had but 206-220), almost a treatise by itself, and occupied
little practical influence on his life; if he wrote the chiefly with a critique of the Later expositions Bleek ;
glowing spiritualism of the Cant, when a young (EM. in das A. T. pp. 635-41) who finds in it
man, how can we account for his fearful degener- not so much the hand as the character of Solomon
acy? If the poem was the production of his old and Kev. \V. Houghton (London, 1865), a Trans-
age, how can we reconcile it with the last fact re- lation and Short Explanatory Notes: the Song
corded of him that " his heart was not perfect with viewed as secular, and the theme the fidelity of
the Lord, his God ? " For the same reason it is chaste love, constant and devoted. Isaac Taylor
maintained that no other writer would have selected (Spirit of Hebrew Poetry, New York, 1862) has a
Solomon as a symbol of the Messiah. The exces- very instructive chapter (eh. x.) on this book. He
sively amative character of some passages is desig- supposes Solomon to have invented the characters
nated as almost blasphemous when supposed to be and incidents which form the ground-work of the
addressed by Christ to his church (vii. 2, 3, 7, 8): poem, and not to have drawn them from his own
and the fact that the dramatis personal are three, history. He does not admit the objections to its
is regarded as decidedly subversive of the allegor- ethical character to be well founded. " It is a
ical theory. divinely inspired myth, conveying the deepest and
The strongest argument on the side of the alle- most sacred elements of the spiritual economy in
gorists is the matrimonial metaphor so frequently the terms and under the forms of instinctive human
employed in the Scriptures to describe the relation feeling and passion. ... It has justified its pres-
between Jehovah and Israel (Ex. xxxiv. 15, 16; ence in the Canon by the undoubtedly religious
Num. xv. 39; Ps. lxxiii. 27; Jer. iii. 1-11; Ez. purposes it has served, in giving animation, and
It is fully stated by Prof. Stuart
xvi., xxiii., etc.). depth, and intensity, and warmest tone to the de-
(0. T. Canon). On the other hand the literalists vout meditations of thousands of the most devout
deny so early a use of the metaphor. They con- and of the purest minds." The symbi licnl view is
tend that the phrase " to go whoring after other ably supported by Dr. L. Withington, Solomon's
gods " describes a literal fact; and that even the Son,/, Translated and Explained (Boston, 1801).
metaphor as used by the prophets who lived after The Song represents the love which exists between
Solomon implies a wedded relation, and therefore Christ and the church —
the bride, the Lamb's wife
cannot be compared with the ante-nuptial affection — with special reference to the conversion of the
which forms the subject of Cant. Gentiles, when a more sublime and spiritual re-
IV. Canonicity. —
It has already been observed ligion should prevail. The arguments for this po-
that the book was rejected from the Canon by Cas- sition are drawn out with singular acuteness and
tellio and Winston but in no case has its rejection
; power. The version is avowedly free, so as " to
been defended on external grounds. It is found in give not only the meaning, but to preserve the
the LXX., and in the translations of Aquila, Sym- poetic and moral shading, and thus make it to the
machus, and Theodotion. It is contained in the reader now what it was to the Hebrews." It is
catalogue given in the Talmud, and in the cata- seldom that so many remarks profoundly suggest-
logue of Melito; and in short we have the same ive beyond the direct scope of the book, and so
evidence for its canonicity as that which is com- many expressions of rare beauty are found in the
monly adduced for the canonicity of any book of pages of a Commentary. The translation, on the
the 6. T. whole, is less highly wrought than the other parts.
(In addition to the ordinary sources, reference is Among the more recent writers who adopt the
advised to Lowtli, Protect. x\x., xxxi., together literal theory, besides Bleek and Renan, already
with the notes of Michaelis, and the animadversions referred to, may be mentioned Heiligstedt (1848,
of Rosenmiiller, Oxon. 1821; Planner's Outlines, in Maurer's Comm. vol. iv.), Bi tteher (J84'.M,
&c, London, 2d ed. 1775; Transl. with notes by Friedrich (1855), Hitzig (1855, Exeget. Handb.
Mason Good, Lond. 1803; Gmgreg. Mag. for 1837 xvi.), Vaihinger (1858), Weissbach (1858), and
and 1838; New Transl. ofProv., Eccl., and Cant. Davidson (In/rod. to the O. T., 1802, ii. 389-
by Prof. Xoyes, Boston, 1846 [2d ed. 1867] Com- 421). ; Ginsburg's art. Solomons Song in the 3d
mentary on Song, &c, by Prof. Burrowes, Phila- edition of Kitto's Cycl. of Bill. Lit. will repay
delphia. 1853 [2d ed. New York, 1866] Das Ge~ perusal.
;
H.
CAPERNAUM CAPERNAUM 381
CAPERNAUM (Rec. Text, Kawtpvaoi/x; fishermen kept close to home), while Jesus was
Lacbm. [Tisch. and Treg.] with B [D Z Sin. etc.] "walking" there, before "great multitudes" bad
learned to "gather together unto Him," that they
Kacpapvaov/x, as if QITO 19D, " village of Na-
heard the quiet call which was to make theni for-
:hum;" Syriac Nitr. pdxjU i.a.i.3, Pesh. sake all and follow Him (Mark
comp. 28). i. 16, 17,
was here that Christ worked the miracle on the
It
PQ.aaJ ;. °>^ ; Capharnaum), a name with
centurion's servant (Matt. viii. 5; Luke vii. 1), on
which all are familiar as that of the scene of many Simon's wile's mother (Matt. viii. 14; Mark i. 30;
acts and incidents in the life of Christ. There is Luke iv. 38), the paralytic (Matt. ix. 1; Mark ii.
no mention of Capernaum in the O. T. or Apocry- 1; Luke v. 18), and the man afflicted with an un-
pha, but the passage Is. ix. 1 (in Hebrew, viii. 23) clean devil (Mark i. 23; Luke iv. 33). The son of
is applied to it by St. Matthew. The word Cqpkar the nobleman (John iv. 4G was, though resident at )
the Evangebst Matthew or Levi (Matt. ix. 9). The certainly answers better to Josephus's account than
brothers Simon-Peter and Andrew belonged to Ca- a spring so close to the shore and so near one end
pernaum (Mark i. 29), and it is perhaps allowable of the district as is 'Ain el-Tin. The claim of
to imagine that it was on the sea-beach below the Khan Minyeh is also strongly opposed by a later
town (for, doubtless, like true orientals, these two traveller (Bonar, pp. 437-41). Still this makes
nothing for Tell Hum.
o The fact of a Roman having built the synagogue
certainly seems some argument against the prosperity 6 Vast ruins ... no ordinary city . . . site of a
of the town. great town (Bonar, pp. 414, 415).
382 CAPERNAUM CAPHAR-SALAMA
The arguments in favor of Tell Hum date from {Vie de Jesus, i. 220-24, Paris, 1866) who has
about 1675. They are urged by Dr. Wilson. The travelled in Palestine, holds in like manner that the
principal one is the name, which is maintained to ( apharnauin of Josephus {B. J. iii. 10, § 8) is
be a relic of the Hebrew original Caphar having— identical with the Round Fountain, and hence that
given place to Tell. Dr. Wilson also ranges Jo- the Capernaum of the New Testament must be
sephus on his side {Lands of the Bible, ii. 139-149. found at that place. So Norton, Trans, of the
See also Eitter, Jordan, pp. 335-343, who supports Gospels, icilh Notes, ii. 55, 56. On the other hand
Tell Hum). Khan Minyeh, et-Tabighah, and the English explorers, Captain Wilson and his as-
Tell Hum, are all, without doubt, ancient sites, sociates, are reported to have found indications
but the conclusion from the whole of the evidence which point to Tell Hum as the disputed site.
is irresistible
: that it is impossible to say which of They regard as such the discovery of a synagogue
them represents Capernaum, which Chorazin, or in a state of fine preservation, remarkable for its
which Bethsaida. Those anxious to inquire further elegant architecture, and belonging in all probability
into this Subject may consult the originals, as given to an age earlier than that of Christ {Athenemm,
above. For the best general description and re- Feb. 24, 1866). It may have been one of the Gal-
production of the district, see Stanley, S. $ P. ilean synagogues in which the Saviour himself
ch. x. G. taught and performed some of his mighty works.
* The later travellers in Palestine leave the ques- It is certain that such a discovery shows that an
tion as to the spot on which Capernaum stood important town must once have existed on this
hardly less perplexed than it was before. " The spot; but this of itself would not settle the ques-
disputed sites of the cities of Gennesaret," says tion of the name of the town. Mr. Thrupp {.Taurn*
Dean Stanley, after his second visit to the East of Class, and Sacr. Philol. ii. 290-308) also con-
{Notices of Localities, etc., p. 195), "must still re- tends for Tell Hum as the site of Capernaum Dr. :
main disputed." Porter {Handbook of Syria, ii. Tregelles {ibid. iii. 141-154) presents a widely differ-
425) accepts Dr. Robinson's conclusion in favor of ent view, placing Capernaum close by Bethsaida
Khan Minyeh, so called from an old caravansarai (Julias), near the mouth of the Upper Jordan, in
near a heap of ruins, on the northern edge of Gen- the Batihah, which (and not the Ghuweir) he re-
nesaret. 'Ain et-Tin is only another name for gards as the plain of Gennesaret described by Jose-
the same place, derived from a fig-tree which over- phus.
hangs a fountain in the neighborhood. Dr. Thom- It may be added in regard to Khan Minyeh that
son {Land and Book, i. 542-548) and Mr. Dixon the recent excavations of the English exploring ex-
{Holy Land, ii. 173, London, 1805) decide for Tell pedition (see Athenantm, March 31, 1866) have
Hum, at the head of the lake, about three miles brought to light nothing there except some frag-
northeast of Khan Minyeh. The claim of ''Ain ments of " masonry and pottery of comparatively
Ofiidawarah, or the Pound Fountain, near the modern date." H.
south end of the plain of Gennesaret, and so
CA'PHAR (~'5 T "" om a root signifying ,to
'
of mason-work," has for some time past been kept cover," Ges. p. 707), one of the numerous words
in abeyance; but Mr. Tristram {Land of Israel, employed in the Bible to denote a village or col-
p. 442, London, 18G5) has brought it forward once lection of dwellingssmaller than a city (/»). Mr.
more, and certainly with reasons for it which are Stanley proposes to render it by "hamlet" {S. §
not without weight. He speaks with greater au- P. App. § 85), to distinguish its occurrences from
thority on some branches of the argument from his those of Chavvah, Chatzer, Benoteh, and other
character as an eminent naturalist. Josephus states similar words. As an appellative it is found only
(jB. ./. iii. 10, § 8) that the fountain of Capernaum three times: 1 Chr. xxvii. 25; Cant. vii. 11, and 1
produced the KopaKivos, a fish like that of the lake Sam: vi. 18 (in the last the pointing being differ-
near Alexandria. Mr. Tristram now maintains ent, Copher, "l^); but in neither is there any-
that neither of the places except the Pound Foun-
thing to enable us to fix any special force to the
tain furnishes this mark of identification. " The
word.
remarkable siluroid, the catfish or coracine {Kopaiti-
In names of places it occurs in Chephar-Am-
vos), abounds to a remarkable degree in the Round
MONAI, ClIKPIIIKAH, Caphar-salama. But the
Fountain to this day. .We obtained specimens number of places compounded therewith mentioned
. .
could we discover it at 'Ain T&bigAah " (the nearest Alex. Xap(pa.f>ffapafj.a,-- Caphar sala ma), a place
fountain to Tell Hum, though distant two miles to (wdj/xTj, Joseph. Ant. xii. 10, § 4) at which a battle
the southward), " where the water is hot and brack- was fought between Judas Maccabaeus and Nicanor
ish." Mr. Tristram thinks it worth while to men- (1 Mace. vii. 31). From the fugitives having taken
tion that fever is very prevalent at this day at M»
refuge in the " city of David," it would appear to
Mudawarah (the Round Fountain), whereas "the have been near Jerusalem. Is it not possible that
dry, elevated, rocky ground of Tell Hum " would be it was Siloam, the Arabic name of which is Kefr-
comparatively free from it. " Peter's wife's mother selwan f Ewald places it north of Ramla on the
lay sick of a fever" at Capernaum (Mark i. 30). Samaritan boundary {Gesch. iv. 368, note), but no
For other details of his able argument the reader certain traces of it seem to have been yet found.
is referred to his work as above. The Abbe Michon G.
CAPHENATHA CAPHTOR 383
CAPHENATHA (Xa^erafla: Caphctetha), must rather be compared nome, prob-
to the Coptite
a place apparently close to and on the east side of ably in primitive ages of greater extent than under
Jerusalem, which was repaired by Jonathan Macca- the Ptolemies, for the number of nomes was in the
beus (1 Mace. xii. 37). The name is derived by course of time greatly increased. The Caphtorim
Lio-htfoot from Caphnioth, the Talmudic word for stand last in the list of the Mizraite peoples in Gen.
unripe figs. If this be correct, there is a remark- and Chr., probably as dwellers in Upper Egypt, the
able correspondence between the name Caphenatha names next before them being of Egyptian, and the
and those of Bethany (house of dates), Bethphage earliest names of Libyan peoples [Egypt]. It is
not necessary to discuss other identifications that
(house of figs), and of the Mount of Olives itself,
on which the three were situated —
have been proposed.
all testifying to The chief are Cappadocia,
the ancient fruitfulness of the place. G. Cyprus, and Crete, of which the last alone, from
the evident connection of the Philistines with Crete,
CAPHI'RA {Kcupelpa; [Vat. Ueipa\ Aid.
Alex. Kcupipcf-] Enocadies), 1 Esdr. v. 19. [Che- would have any probability in the absence of more
definite evidence. There would, however, be great
PHIRAH.]
difficulty in the way of the supposition that in the
CAPH'TOR ("1V1S3: KairwaSoKia [ex- earliest times a nation or tribe removed from an
cept in Jer.]: Cappadocia) : CAPHTORIM
island to the mainland.
The migration of the Philistines is mentioned or
(D N ~)FI£2: [in Gen.,] racpdoptfi/j., [Alex.] Xa<p-
the passages speaking of Caphtor
alluded to in all
dopiei/j.; [in 1 Chr., Rom. Vat. omit; Alex. Xa<p-
or the Caphtorim. It thus appears to have been
opieip.; Comp. Aid.] Kapdoptflfj.; [in Deut. Kair-
an event of great importance, and this supposition
7ra5o«:es:] Caphtovirn, Cappailoces), a country
receives support from the statement in Amos. In
thrice mentioned as the primitive seat of the Phi-
the lists of Gen. and Chr., as the text now stands,
listines (Deut. ii. 23; Jer. xlvii. 4; Am. ix. 7), who
the Philistines are said to have come forth from
are once called Caphtorim (Deut. ii. 23), as of the
the Casluhim —
" the Casluhim, whence came forth
same race as the Mizraite people of that name the Philistines, and the Caphtorim,"
(Gen. x. 14; 1 Chr. i. 12). The position of the
where the —
Hebrew forbids us to suppose that the Philistines
country, since it was peopled by Mizraites, must be
and Caphtorim both came from the Casluhim.
supposed to be in Egypt or near to it in Africa, for
Here there seems to have been a transposition, for
the idea of the southwest of Palestine is excluded
the other passages are as explicit, or more so, and
by the migration of the Philistines. In Jer. it is
their form does not admit of this explanation. The
spoken of as ~Hfl?3 "'K, and has therefore been period of the migration must have been vary re-
mote, since the Philistines " were already established
supposed to be an island. ^5 however, has a
in Palestine in Abraham's time (Gen. xxi. 32, 34).
wider signification; commonly it is any maritime The evidence of the Egyptian monuments, which
land, whether coast or island, as in the expression is indirect, tends to the same conclusion, but takes
D^3n S *S (Gen. x. 5), by which the northern us yet further back in time. It leads us to suppose
that the Philistines and kindred nations were cog-
coasts and the islands of the Mediterranean seem
nate to the Egyptians, but so different from them
to be intended, the former, in part at least, being
in manners that they must have separated before
certainly included. It must be remembered, how-
the character and institutions of the latter had at-
ever, that the Nile is spoken of as a sea (D*) by tained that development in which they continued
Nahum in the description of No, or Thebes (iii. 8). throughout the period to which their monuments
[No.] It is also possible that the expression in belong. We
find from the sculptures of Ptameses
Jer. merely refers to the maritime position of the III. at Medeenet Haboo, that the Egyptians about
Philistines (comp. Ez. xxv. 16), and that Caphtor 1200 b. c. were at war with the Philistines, the
is here poetically used for Caphtorim. Tok-karu, and the Shayratana of the Sea, and that
The writer (Encyclopaedia Britannica, 8th ed., other Shayratana served them as mercenaries. The
Egypt, p. 419) has proposed to recognize Caphtor Philistines and Tok-karu were physically cognate,
in the ancient Egyptian name of Coptos. This and had the same distinctive dress the Tok-karu ;
name, if literally transcribed, is written in the hiero- and Shayratana were also physically cognate, and
glyphics Kebtu, Kebta, and Keb-Her, probably pro- fought together in the same ships. There is reason
nounced Kubt, Kabt, and Kebt-Hor (Brugsch, to believe that the Tok-karu are the Carians, and
Geogr. fnschr. Taf. xxxviii. no. 899, 900), whence the Shayratana cannot be doubted to be the Chere-
thim of the Bible and the earlier Cretans of the
Coptic kgcjt, KenTO; KenTcw, Greeks, inhabiting Crete, and probably the coast of
Palestine also (Enc. Brit. art. Egypt, p. 402). All
KC&TCW, Gr. KdVros, Arab. JahS, Kuft. The bear a greater resemblance to the Egyptians than
does any other group of foreign peoples represented
similarity of rame is so great that it alone might
in their sculptures. This evidence points therefore
satisfy us, but the correspondence of Afyvirros, as
to the spread of a seafaring race cognate to the
if A?a yvirrot, to "1V1Q3 "V, unless
S
S refer to Egyptians at a very remote time. Their origin is
the Philistine coast, seems conclusive. We must not alone spoken of in the record of the migration
not suppose, however, that Caphtor was Coptos : it of the Philistines, but in the tradition of the
ised Land, for they are mentioned after the "five lords of -
) to "f. 'AoT)5aJ8), even to Azzah (Gaza), Caphtorim
of the Philistines" in Josh. (xiii. 3). The expression
who came forth from Caphtor destroyed them and dq-elt
therefore in Deut. ii. 23, "And the Avim who dwelt in
in their stead," may mean that a part of the Avim
villages (E^^rT3, wrongly made a proper name in alone perished.
the A. V., and in the LXX., where the fern, plural
384 CAPHTHORIM CAPTAIN OF THE GUARD
Phoenicians that they came from the Erythraean name reached as far northwards as the Euxine Sea.
Sea [Arabia], and we must look for the primeval The region of Cappadocia, viewed in this extent,
seat of the whole race on the coasts of Arabia a'nd constituted two satrapies under the Persians, and
Africa, where all ancient authorities lead us mainly afterwards two independent monarchies. One was
to place the Cushites and the Ethiopians. [Cush.] Cappadocia on the Pontus, the other Cappadocia
The from the Egyptians
difference of the Philistines near the Taurus. Here we have the germ of the
in dress and manners is, as we have seen, evident two Koman provinces of Pontus and Cappadocia.
on the Egyptian monuments. From the Bible we [Pontus.] Several of the monarchs who reigned
learn that their laws and religion were likewise dif- in Cappadocia Proper bore the name of Ariarathes.
ferent from those of Egypt, and we may therefore One of them is mentioned in 1 Mace. xv. 22. The
consider our previous supposition as to the time of last of these monarchs was called Archelaus (see
the separation of the peoples to which they belong Joseph. Ant. xvi. 4, § 0). He was treacherously
to be positively true in their particular case. It is treated by the Emperor Tiberius, who reduced his
probable that they left Caphtor not long after the kingdom to a province A. d. 17. This is the
first arrival of the Mizraite tribes, while they had position in which the country stood during the
not yet attained that attachment to the soil that time of St. Peter's apostolic work.
afterwards so eminently characterized the descend- Cappadocia is an elevated table-land intersected
ants cif those which formed the Egyptian nation. by mountain-chains. It seems always to have been
The words of the prophet Amos seem to indicate a deficient in wood; but it was a good grain country,
deliverance of the Philistines from bondage. " [Are] and it was particularly famous for grazing. Its
Koman metropolis, afterwards both the birthplace
ye not as children of Ethiopians (D^tt'^G) unto
ami episcopal see of St. Basil, was Cassarea (now'
me, [0] children of Israel? hath the Lord said.
Kaisariyeh), formerly Mazaca, situated near Mount
Have not ] caused Israel to go up out of the land Argceus, the highest mountain in Asia Minor.
of Egypt, and the Philistines from Caphtor, and
Some of its other cities were equally celebrated in
Aram from Kir?" (Am. ix. 7). The mention of ecclesiastical history, especially Nyssa, Nazianzus,
the Ethiopians is worthy of note: here they are
Samosata and Tyana. The native Cappadocians
perhaps spoken of as a degraded people. The in-
seem originally to have belonged to the Syrian
tention appears to be to show that Israel was not
stock: and since Ptolemy (v. G) places the cities of
the only nation which had been providentially led
Iconium and Derbe within the limits of this region,
from one country to another where it might settle,
we may possibly obtain from this circumstance some
and the interposition would seem to imply oppres-
light on "the speech of Lycaonia," Acts xiv. 11.
sion preceding the migration. It may lie remarked
[Lycao^ia.] The best description of these parts
that Manetho speaks of a revolt and return to
of Asia Minor will be found in Hamilton's -ftfi-
allegiance of the Libyans, probably the Lehabim,
searches, and Texier's Asie Mineure. J. S. H.
or Lubim, from whose name Libya, &c., certainly
came, in the reign of the first king of the third CAPTAIN. (1.) As a purely military title,
dynasty, Necherophes or Nechenichis, in the earliest Captain answers to ~ltt? in the Hebrew army, and
age of Egyptian history, B. c. cir. 2000 (Cory, Anc. [Akmy.]
X'htapx os (tribunus) in the Roman.
Frag. 2d'ed. pp. 100, 101). R. S. P. The "captain of the guard" (ffTpa.Tonfda.pxys)
CAPHTHORIM (D^WB? : Vat. omits; in Acts xxviii. 16, is also spoken of under ARMY
Alex. XcKpopiei/u. ;
[Comp. Aid. Ka<p6opie(fi :] [p. 1G4]. (2.) VrP> which is occasionally ren-
Caphtorim). 1 Chr. i. 12. [Caphtor.] dered captain, applies sometimes to a military (Josh.
CAPHTORIMS (D'HhS?: „l ¥La.™d- x. 24; Judg. xi. 6, 11; Is. xxii. 3; Dan. xi. 18),
[Caphtok.] sometimes to a civil command (e. g. Is. i. 10,
iii.
SoKts'- Cappadoc.es). Deut. ii. 23.
6): its radical sense is division, and hence decision
CAPPADOCIA (KaTTwaSoKla). This eastern
without reference to the means employed the term :
among the readers of St. Peter's first Epistle (1 in connection with the priests, was not a military
Pet. i. 1). The Jewish community in this region, officer, but superintended the guard of priests and
doubtless, formed the nucleus of the Christian and Levites, who kept watch by night in the Temple.
:
the former may probably lie traced to the first in- The office appears to have existed from an early
troduction of Jewish colonists into Asia Minor by date: the "priests that kept the door" (2 K. xii.
Seleucus (Joseph. Ant. xii. 3, § 4). The Koman !t. xxv. 18) are described by Josephus (Ant. x. 8, §
period, through the growth of large cities and the 5) as tovs (pvXa.ffffovTa.'i to Uphv riyefi6vas' a
construction of roads, would afford increased facili- notice occurs in 2 Mace. iii. 4 of a irpoffTarns tov
ties for the spread both of Judaism and Christianity. Upov this officer is styled ffTparriyos by Josephus
;
It should be observed that Cappadocia was easily (Ant. xx. 6, § 2; B. J. vi. 5, § 3); and in the
approached from the direction of Palestine and
Syria, by means of the pass called the Cilician
Mishna (Middotlu i. § 2) HDH "H
U7V, « the
Taurus from the captain of the mountain of the Temple; " his duty,
Gates, which led up through the
as described in the place last quoted, was to visit
low coast of Cilicia, and that it was connected, at
the posts during the night, and see that the sentries
least under the later Emperors, by good roads with
were doing their duty. (4.) The term apxvyds,
the district beyond the Euphrates.
rendered " captain" (Heb. ii. 10), has no reference
The range of Mount Taurus and the upper course
whatever to a military office. W. L. 15.
of the Euphrates may safely be mentioned, in gen-
eral terms, as natural boundaries of Cappadocia on
* CAPTAIN OF THE GUARD. Title
the south and east. Its geographical limits on the of the officer (A. V.) to whose custody
Paul and
west and north were variable. In early times the other prisoners were committed at Rome (Acts
CAPTAIN OF THE GUARD CAPTIVITIES OF THE JEWS 385
xxviii. 16), where a stricter translation would lie same custody (which no doubt was the fact), as after-
Pretoria!) prefect or commander of the Praetorian wards treated with special indulgence. "Captain —
camp. See Wieaeler's Chronol. des apostol. Zeitalt. of the guard" in Gen. xxxix. 1, xl. 3, 4, &c. prob-
p. Xti. The force of the article in that place (t<£ ably should be " captain " or " officer of the execu-
(TTpaToireSdpxy) °v ms im interesting question. ti rs." [Joseph; Potiphab.] H.
The command of the praetorian guard was originally CAPTIVITIES OF THE JEWS. The
divided between two prefects, but during the reign bondage of Egypt, and their subjugation
Israel in
of Claudius, Burrus or Burrhus Afranius, a distin- at different times by the Philistines and other na-
guished Roman general, was appointed sole prceft c- tions, are sometimes included under the above title;
tus pratorio, and retained this office as late cer- and the Jews themselves, perhaps with reference to
tainly as the beginning of A. D. 62. On his death Daniel's vision (eh. vii.), reckon their national cap-
the command was committed again to two prefects, tivities as four —
the Babylonian, Median, Grecian,
as had been at first, and this continued to be the and Roman (Eisenmenger, Entdecktes Jvdentkum,
it
arrangement until a late period of the empire. The vol. i. p. 748). But the present article is confined
time of Paul's arrival at Home could not have been to the forcible deportation of the Jews from their
far from a. d. 62, as admits of being shown by an native land, and their forcible detention, under the
independent calculation. Wieseler supposes t<£ Assyrian or Babylonian kings.
CTTpaToireSdpx]) to refer to this Burrus, as sole The kingdom of Israel was
invaded by three or
prefect at that time, and he urges the expression four successive kings of Assyria.Pul or Sardana-
as a reason for assigning the apostle's arrival to A. palus, according toRawlinson (Outline of Assyrian
]>. 02, or the year preceding. So also Anger, De History, p. 14, but compare Rawl. Herodotus, vol.
tgtnporum in Actis Apost. ratione, p. 100, and Lew- i. p. 466), imposed 771 (or 762 a tribute, b. c.
in, Fasti Sm-ri, p. 325. It is very possible that this Rawl.) upon Menahem
and 2 K. xv. (1 Chr. v. 26,
view is the correct one. It would furnish a striking 10). Tiglath-Pileser carried away b. c. 740 the
coincidence between Luke's narrative and the his- trans-Jordanic tribes (1 Chr. v. 26) and the inhab-
tory of the times. Vet, in speaking of the praetorian itants of Galilee (2 K. xv. 29, compare Is. ix. 1), to
prefect, the writer of the Acts may have meant the Assyria. Shalmaneser twice invaded (2 K. xvii. 3,
one who acted in this particular case, the one who 5) the kingdom which remained to Hoshea, took
took into his charge the prisoners whom the cen- Samaria b. c. 721 after a siege of three years, and
turion transferred to him, whether he was sole carried Israel away into Assyria. In an inscription
perfect or had a colleague with him; comp. xxiv. interpreted by Rawlinson (Herodotus, vol. i. p. 472),
23. De Wette assents to Meyer in this explanation the capture of Samaria is claimed by King Sargon
of the article. The expression, as so understood, (Is. xx. 1) as his own achievement. The cities of
dnes not affirm that there was but one prefect, or Samaria were occupied by people sent from Babylon,
deny it. Cuthah, Ava, Hamath, and Sepharvaim and Halah, :
But if the words 6 tKa.T6i>Tapxos T'S (TTpa- Habor, Hara, and the river of Gozan became the
TOTreSapxri (Acts xxviii. 16) are not genuine," this seats of the exiled Israelites.
question concerning tw falls away, so far as it Sennacherib b. c. 713 is stated (Rawl. Outline,
depends on Luke's authority. At the same time p. 24, but compare Demetrius ap. Clem. Alexand.
the words (if added to the text) express what was Slromuta, i. 21, incorrectly quoted as confirming
unquestionably true, according to the Roman usage the statement) to have carried into Assyria 200,000
(see Plin. Kpist. x. 65); but of course we have captives from the Jewish cities which he took (2 K.
then the testimony only of some glossator who (if xviii. 13). Nebuchadnezzar, in the first half of his
we may conjecture a motive), knowing what the reign, b. c. 606-562, repeatedly invaded Judaea,
ride was, apprises the reader of its observance as to besieged Jerusalem, carriedaway the inhabitants to
the other prisoners, because he would represent Paul Babylon, and destroyed the city and Temple. Two
in being '-suffered to dwell by himself" as ex- distinct deportations are mentioned in 2 K. xxiv.
empted from the rule, or if at first subjected to the 14 (including 10,000 persons) and xxv. 11. One
also in the two best cursive MSS. (loti, 13), another very only occasion the loss of the words following iiuxTov-
good one (40), and one or two more. (The MSS. CDE Tapxos (3) because it does not appear how or why it
;
are unfortunately mutilated here.) They are likewise should affect all our oldest and best authorities (in-
absent from the oldest and best of the ancient ver- cluding the versions used by all the principal churches),
sions (Pcshito Syriac, Coptic, Vulgate, Armenian, and and leave hardly a trace of its influence on the great
the JSthiopic in T. P. Piatt's edition), and Chrysos- mass of modern manuscripts. Alford, it should be
tom ignores them both in his text and commentary. noticed, in his fourth edition (1861) brackets the words
The earliest witness for them appears to be the later as doubtful. The critical scholar may find it instruct-
Syriac version, as revised by Thomas of Uarkel a. d. compare other examples of glossarial additions
ive to
616, which has them marked with an asterisk, indi- in the Received Text and the mass of later manu-
cating that they did not originally belong to it. (The scripts of the Acts, in opposition to the most ancient
.flSthiopic of the Polyglott is here of no authority.) authorities : see Acts
ii. 30, 31 viii. 37 xiii. 42
; xv. ; ;
The oldest Greek MS. which has them (L) is not earlier 18, 24, 34 ; 21
xviii. xxi. 8, 25
; xxiii. 9 xxiv. 6-8,
; ;
than ihe middle of the ninth century ; the oldest Greek 22, 23, 26 ; xxv. 16 xxviii. 29, etc.
; A.
25
386 CAPTIVITIES OF THE JEWS CAPTIVITIES OF THE JF.WS
in 2 Chr. xxxvi. 20. Three in Jer. In. 28, 29, in- ations (see Gesenius on Is. xxxvi. 16, and compare
cluding 4000 persons, and one in Dan. i. 3. The Gen. xlvii. 21). It was also a great advantage to
two principal deportations were, (1) that which took the Assyrian king to remove from the Egyptian
place is. c. 598, when Jehoiachin with all the border of his empire a people who were notoriously
nobles, soldiers, and artificers were carried away; well-affected towards Egypt. The captives were
and (2) that which followed the destruction of the treated not as slaves but as colonists. There was
Temple and the capture of Zedekiah B. c. 588. The nothing to hinder a Jew from rising to the highest
three which Jeremiah mentions may have been the eminence in the state (Dan. ii. 48), or holding the
contributions of a particular class or district to the most confidential office near the person of the king
general captivity or they may have taken place, (Neh. i. 11; Tob. i. 13, 22).
; The advice of Jerel
under the orders of Nebuchadnezzar, before or after miah (xxix. 5, &c.) was generally followed. The
the two principal deportations. The captivity of exiles increased in numbers and in wealth. They
certain selected children, is. C. 607, mentioned by observed the Mosaic law (Esth. iii. 8; rob. xiv. 9).
Daniel, who was one of them, may have occurred They kept up distinctions of rank among themselves
when Nebuchadnezzar was colleague or lieutenant (Ez. xx. 1). And though the assertion in the Tal-
of his father Nabopolassar, a year before he reigned mud be unsupported by proof that they assigned
alone. The 70 years of captivity predicted by thus early to one of their countrymen the title of
Jeremiah (xxv. 12) are dated by Prideaux from Head of the ( 'aptivity (or, captain of the people, 2
b. c. 606 (see Connection, anno 606 and comp. Esdr. v. 16), it is certain that they at least pre-
;
Davison, On Prophecy, Lect. vi. pt. 1). If a sym- served their genealogical tallies, and were at no loss
bolical interpretation were required, it would lie to tell who was the rightful heir to David's throne.
more difficult to regard (with Winer and Rosen- They had neither place nor time of national gather-
miiller) these 70 years as an indefinite period desig- ing, no Temple; and they offered no sacrifice. But
nated arbitrarily by a sacred number, than to be- the rite of circumcision and their laws respecting
lieve with St. Augustine (Jinarratio in Ps. exxvi. food, &c. were observed their
; priests were with
1) that they are a symbol of "all time." The them (Jer. xxix. 1); and possibly the practice of
captivity of Ezekiel dates from B. c. 598, when erecting synagogues in every city (Acts xv. 21) was
that prophet, like Mordecai the uncle of Esther begun by the Jews in the Babylonian captivity.
(ii. 6), accompanied Jehoiachin. The 'aptivity is not without contemporaneous
(
We know nothing, except by inference from the literature. In the apocryphal book of Tobit,
book of Tobit, of the religious or social state of the which is generally believed to be a mixture of po-
Israelitish exiles in Assyria. Doubtless the con- etical fiction with historical facts recorded by a
stant policy of 17 successive kings had effectually contemporary, we have a picture of the inner life
estranged the people from that religion which cen- of a family of the tribe of Naphtali, among the
tered in the Temple, and bad reduced the number captives whom Shalmaneser brought to Nineveh.
of faithful men below the 7000 who were revealed The apocryphal book of Baruch seems, in Mr.
for the consolation of Elijah. Some priests at least Layard's opinion, to have been written by one
were among them (2 K. xvii. 28), though it is not whose eyes, like those of Ezekiel, were familiar
certain that these were of the tribe of Levi (1 K. with the gigantic forms of Assyrian sculpture.
xii. 31). The people had been nurtured for 250 Several of the Psalms appeal' to express the senti-
years in idolatry in their own land, where they de- ments of Jews who were either partakers or wit-
parted not (2 K. xvii. 22) from the sins of Jeroboam, nesses of the Assyrian captivity. Ewald assigns
notwithstanding the proximity of the Temple, and to this period Ps. xlii., xliii., lxxxiv., xvii., xvi.,
the succession of inspired prophets (2 K. xvii. 13) xlix., xxii., xxv., xxxviii., lxxxviii., xl., lxix., cix., Ii.,
among them. Deprived of these checks on their lxxi., xxv., xxxiv., lxxxii., xiv., cxx., exxi., exxiii.,
natural inclinations (2 K. xvii. 15), torn from their exxx., exxxi. And in l's. lxxx. we seem to have
native soil, destitute of a hereditary king, they the words of an Israelite, dwelling perhaps in Ju-
probably became more and more closely assimilated daea (2 Chr. xv. 9, xxxi. 6), who had seen the
to their heathen neighbors in Media. And when, departure of his countrymen to Assyria: and in Ps.
after the lapse of more than a century, they were exxxvii. an outpouring of the first intense feelings
joined b. c. 598 by the first exiles from Jerusalem, of a Jewish exile in Babylon. But it is from the
very few families probably retained sufficient faith three great prophets, Jeremiah, Ezekiel, and Daniel,
in the God of their fathers to appreciate and follow that we learn most of the condition of the children
the instruction of Ezekiel. But whether they were of the captivity. The distant warnings of Jere-
many or few, their genealogies were probably lost, miah, advising and cheering them, followed them
a fusion of them with the Jews took place, Israel into Assyria. There, for a few years, they had no
ceasing to envy Judah (Is. xi. 13); and Ezekiel prophetic guide till suddenly the vision of Ezekiel
:
may have seen his own symbolical prophecy (xxxvii. at 'hebar (in the immediate vicinity of Nineveh,
(
his pride by inscribing on the walls of the royal passing at least 27 years (Ez. xxix. 17) in captivity,
palace his victorious progress and the number of his I laniel survived even beyond the Return and
;
captives. He could not have designed to increase though his high station and ascetic life probably
the population of Babylon, for he sent Babylonian secluded him from frequent familiar intercourse with
colonists into Samaria. One political end certainly his people, he filled the place of chief interpreter of
was attained —
the more easy government of a God's will to Israel, and gave the most conspicuous
people separated from local traditions and associ- example of devotion and obedience to His laws.
CAPTIVITIES OF THE JEWS CARBUNCLE 387
The Babylonian was brought to a close been written by Calmet, Commentaire litteral, vol.
captivity
by the decree (Ezr. i. 2) of Cyrus u. c. 536, and iii. and vi. ; by Witsius, sEgyptiaca; and by J.
the return of a portion of the nation under Sheah- D. Michaelis.
bazzar or Zerubbabel b. c. 535, Ezra is. c. 45X, and The Captivity was a period of change in the ver-
Neheiniah B. c. 445. The number who returned nacular language of the Jews (see Neh. viii. 8) and
upon the decree of b. c. 536 (which was possibly in the national character. The Jews who returned
framed by Daniel, Milman, Hist, of Jews, ii. 8) were remarkably free from the old sin of idolatry:
was 42,360, besides servants. Among them about a great spiritual renovation, in accordance with the
30,000 are specified (compare Ezr. ii. and Neh. divine promise (Ez. xxxvi. 24-28), was wrought in
vii.) as belonging to the tribes of Judah, Benjamin, them. A
new and deep feeling of reverence for
and Levi. It has been inferred (I'rideaux. "into the letter of the law and for the person of Moses
530) that the remaining 12,000 belonged to the was probably a result of the religious service which
tribes of Israel (compare Ezr. vi. 17). And from was performed in the synagogues. new impulse A
the fact that out of the 24 courses of priests only of commercial enterprise and activity was implanted
4 returned (Ezr. ii. 'Mi), it has been inferred that in them, and developed in the days of the Disper-
the whole number of exiles who chose to continue sion (see James iv. 13). W. T. B.
in Assyriawas about six times the number of those CARABA'SION ('Pa/3a<riW [Vat. Kopo- ;
11), and kept up their national distinctions, were a corrupt name to which it is difficult to find any-
known as The Dispersion (John vii. 35; 1 Pet. i. thing corresponding in the Hebrew text (1 Esdr.
1 ; James i. 1) : and, in course of time, they served ix. 34).
a great purpose in diffusing a knowledge of the
true God, and in affording a point for the com-
CARBUNCLE. The representative in the
A. V. of the Hebrew words 'ekdaeh and bdr'kath
mencement of the efforts of the Evangelists of the
or bare'keth.
Christian faith.
Many
attempts have been made to discover the 1. 'JSkddch (fHpN : Aidos KpvardWov: xidos
ten tribes existing as a distinct community. Jo- yAv<prjs, Sym. Theod. ; \. rprjirTayiff/xov, Aq.
sephus (Ant. xi. 5, § -) believed that in his day lapiaes soulpti) occurs only in Is. 12 in the de- liv.
they dwelt in large multitudes, somewhere beyond scription of the beauties of the new Jerusalem:
the Euphrates, in Arsareth, according to the author "I will make thy windows of agates and thy gates
of 2 Esdr. xiii. 45. Rabbinical traditions and fa- of carbuncles " (comp. Tob. xiii. 16, 17, and Rev.
bles,committed to writing in the middle ages, assert xxi. 18-21) —
"general images," as Lowth (Notes
the same fact (Lightfoot, //«/•. Hebr. in 1 Cor. xiv. on Is. 1. c.) has remarked, "to express beauty,
Appendix), with many marvellous amplifications magnificence, purity, strength, and solidity, agree-
(Eisenmenger, Ent. Jud. vol. ii., eh. x. Jahn, He- ;
ably to the ideas of the Eastern nations." The
brew Commonwealth, App. bk. vi.). The imagina- translators of the A. V., having in mind the ety-
tion of Christian writers has Bought them in the mology of the Hebrew word," render it " carbun-
neighborhood of their last recorded habitation: cle; " but as many precious stones have the quality
Jewish features have been traced in the Affghan of "shining like fire," it is obvious that such an
tribes: rumors are heard to this day of a Jewish interpretation is very doubtful. Symmachus, re-
colony at the foot of the Himalayas: the Black ferring the word
to a Chaldee signification of the
Jews of Malabar claim affinity with them elabo- :
root, namely, " to bore," understands " sculptured
rate attempts have been made to identify them re- stones," whence the Vulg. lapides Ko- sculjiti (see
cently with the Nestorians, and in the 17th cen- senmuller, Schol. oil Jes. Perhaps the
liv. 13).
tury with the Indians of North America. But term may be a general one to denote any bright
though history bears no witness of their present spa rh-li ii</ gem, but as it'occurs only once, without
distinct existence, it enables us to track the foot- any collateral evidence to aid us, it is impossible to
steps of the departing race in four directions after determine the real meaning of the word.
the time of the Captivity. (1.) Some returned '
and mixed with the Jews (Luke ii. 30; Phil. iii. 5,
&c.) (2.) Some yvere left in Samaria, mingled with (T/xapaySos, nepavvios, Sym. smaragdus), : the
the Samaritans (Ezr. vi. 21; John iv. 12), and third stone in the first row of the sacerdotal breast-
became bitter euemies of the Jews. (3.) Many plate (Ex. xxviii. 17, xxxix. 10), also one of the
remained in Assyria, and mixing with the .lews, mineral treasures of the king of Tyre (Ez. xxviii.
formed colonies throughout the East, and were 13). Braun (Be VestU. Sacerd. Heb. p. 052,
recognized as an integral part of the Dispersion Amst. 1080) supposes with much probability that
(see Acts ii. xxvi. 7; Buchanan's Christian Re-
'.), the smaragdus or emerald is the precious stone sig-
searches, p. 212), for whom, probably ever since nified. This view is supported bythe LXX. (which
the days of Ezra, that plaintive prayer, the tenth always gives afj.dpuy5os as the representative of the
of the Shemoneh Esre, has been daily offered, bdr'hath), the Vulgate, and Josephus (Ant. iii. 7,
" Sound the great trumpet for our deliverance, lift § 5). Pliny (xxxvii. 5) speaks in terms of the
up a banner for the gathering of our exiles, and warmest admiration of the smaragdus, and enu-
unite us all together from the four ends of the merates no fewer than twelve kinds, but it is prob-
earth." (4.) Most, probably, apostatized in As- able of them arc malachites or glass.
some It is
syria, as Trideaux (unno 677) supposes, and adopted certain that the smaragdus which, according to
the usages and idolatry of the nations among whom Theophrastus (Fr. ii. 24. ed. Schneider), was sent
they were planted, and became wholly swallowed up as a present from the king of Babylon into Egypt,
in them. Dissertations on the Ten Tribes have « extundere instituit ignem ex igniario " (Freytag, Lex
Arab. s. v.).
f. the Arabic As '' Krom Pl^' " to send forth u ghtnm S<" " M
^ ' flash."
"88 CARCAS CARMEL
and which, as Egyptian chroniclers relate, was four southwestern part of the peninsula of Asia Minor.
cubits long by three wide, must have been made of In the Roman times the name of Caria was prob-
some other material than emerald; but o-fxdpayb'os ably less used than previously. At an earlier pe-
is used by Theophraatua to denote the emerald.
we find it mentioned as a separate district (1
riod
»« This gem," he
says, » is very rare and of a smallMace. xv. 23). At this time (b. c. 139) it was in
size ... It has some peculiar properties, for it the enjoyment of the
privilege of freedom, granted
renders water of the same color with itself. by the Romans. A little before it had been as-
. . .
It soothes the eyes, and people wear seals of this signed by them
to Pihodes, and a little later it was
stone in order that they may look at them." « Mr. incorporated in the
province of Asia. From the
King (Antique Gems, p. 30) is of opinion that the context it appears that many Jews were
resident in
smaragdi of Pliny may be confined to the green Caria. The cities where they lived were probably
ruby and the true emerald. Braun believes that Halicarnassus {ib.), Cnidus (ib.
also Acts xxvii. 7),
the Greek a/xapaySos, /xdpaySos is etymologically and Miletus (Acts xx.
15-38). Off the coast of
allied to the Hebrew term, and Kalisch Ex. xxviii. Curia were the islands Pathos, Cos, Rhodes.
(
the basalt formation which runs through the Plain share of the rich corn-growing plain of Sharon.
of Esdraelon to Tabor and the Sea of Galilee (Rit- The king of " Jokneam of Carmel " was one of the
ter, 712-13). The round stones known by the Canaanite chiefs who fell before the arms of Joshua
names of "Lapides Judaici" and "Elijah's melons," (xii. 22). These are the earliest notices which we
are the bodies known to geologists as " geodes." possess of the name. There is not in them a hint
Their exterior is chert or flint of a lightish brown of any sanctity as attaching to the mount. But
color; the interior hollow, and lined with crystals taking into account the known propensity of the
of quartz or chalcedony. They are of the form, early inhabitants of Palestine to convert " high
and often the size, of the large water-melons of the places " into sanctuaries, — the prominence of Car-
east. Formerly they were easily obtained, but are mel, — the Jehovah did exist
fact that an altar of
now very rarely found (Seetzen, 131-4; Parkin- there before the introduction of Baal worship into
ii.
son's Organic Remiins, i. 322, 451). The "ol- the kingdom (1 K. xviii. 30), Elijah's choice of —
ives " are commoner. They are the fossil spines of the place for the assembly of the people, such as
a kind of echinus (cidaris glandifera) frequent in semblies being commonly held at holy places, —
these strata, and in size and shape are exactly tike and the custom, which appears to have been preva-
the fruit (Parkinson, iii. 45). The "apples " are lent, of resorting thither on new-moon and sabbath
probably the shells of the (Maris itself. For the (2 K. iv. 23), — taking these into account, there
legend of the origin of these "fruits," and the seem to be grounds for believing that from very
position of the " field " or " garden " of Elyah in early times it was considered as a sacred spot. In
which they are found, see Mislin, ii. 64, 65." later times we know that its reputation was not
In form Carmel is a tolerably continuous ridge, confined to Palestine. Pythagoras was led to it by
at the W. end about 600,'' and the E. about 1600 that reputation; such is the express statement of
feet above the sea. The highest part is some four his biographer lamblichus, who himself visited the
miles from the east end, at the village of Esfieh, mountain; Vespasian too came thither to consult
which, according to the measurements of the Eng- — so we are told by Tacitus, with that mixture of
lish engineers, is 1728 feet above the sea. In ap- fact and fable which marks all the heathen notices
pearance Carmel still maintains the character which of Palestine —
the oracle of the god, whose name
there is no reason to doubt was the origin of its was the same as that of the mountain itself; an or-
name. It is still clothed with the same " excel- acle without image or temple, —
" ara tantum et
lency " of " wood," which supplied the prophets of reverentia" (Diet, of Geogr. Carmelus).
Israel and Judah alike with one of their most But that which has made the name of Carmel
favorite illustrations (Is. xxxiii. 9; Mic. vii. 14). most familiar to the modern world is its intimate
Modern travellers delight to describe its " rocky connection with the history of the two great
dells with deep jungles of copse," —
its "shrub- prophets of Israel Elijah and Elisha. —
The fiery
" zeal of the one, the healing tenderness of the other,
beries thicker than any others in central Palestine
(Stanley, MS.), —
its "impenetrable brushwood of are both inseparably connected in our minds with
oaks and other evergreens, tenanted in the wilder this mountain. Here Elijah brought back Israel
parts by a profusion of game and wild animals" to allegiance to Jehovah, and slew the prophets of
(Porter. // indb.), but in other places bright with the foreign and false god here at his entreaty were
;
" hollyhocks, jasmine, and various flowering creep- consumed the successive "fifties" of the royal
ers" (Van de Velde). "There is not a flower," guard; but here, on the other hand, Elisha re-
says the last-named traveller, " that I have seen in ceived the visit of the bereaved mother whose son
Galilee, or on the plains along the coast, that I do he was soon to restore to her arms (2 K. iv.
not find here on Carmel .... still the fragrant, 25, &c.).
lovely mountain that he was of old " (i. 317-18). The first of these three events, without doubt,
« The legend is sometimes told of Lazarus (Seetzeu, tree-broom, Judas-tree (one mass of bunches of brill-
Reisen, 1864, ii. 134). iant red laburnum-shaped bloom), hoaiw-leafed haw-
b The cupola of the convent is 560 ft. above the sea thorn, service-apple, and most abundant of all, the
(Admiralty Chart, 1585). For the general form of the storax-tree, " one sheet of pure white blossom, rivalling
ridge, sec the section on Van de Vekle's now map. the orange in its beauty and its perfume all these in ;
c * "The Flora of Carmel," Bays Schubert, writing flower together wafted their fragrance in volumes
on the spot. " is one of the richest and most diversified through the air."
in all Palestine, since it unites the products of the "Then the ground, wherever there was a, fragment
mountain With those of the valley and the sea-coast." of open space, was covered with tall red hollyhocks,
He enumerates forty-seven different kinds of tin mis pink convolvulus, valerians, a beautiful largi
found there, without pretending to complete the list. linum, a gladiolus, a gigantic mottled arum, red tu-
-
" A botanist, he remarks, " might spend a year there.
'
lips, ranunculuses (large and red), pheasant's eye, ol
and every day be adding new specimens to his collec- endless varieties, tufts of exquisite cyclamen, a mass
tion " ( Reise in das Morgenlanri, iii. 212). of bloom under every tree, five species of orchis, the —
Mr. Tristram, who wandered at leisure over the Car- curious Ophrys atrata, with its bee-like lip, another
mel range, speaks of the wonderful profusion of flow- like the spider-orchis, and a third like the man-orchis
''
;
ering shrubs, in all their glory " (about the middle of while four species of Onosma, and especially the brill-
March), as the grand characteristic of the "excellency iant yellow Onosma Syriacum, hung from every rock.
of Carmel." He mentions (giving at the same time [t was the garden of Eden run wild; yet all this
the botanical names) the arbutus, myrtle, scented bay, beauty scarcely lasts a month " (Land of Israfl, pp.
guelder-rose, a sweet-scented evergreen like the laurus- 490, 497, 2d ed.). H
tinus, elder, carob-tree or locust, wild-olive, terebinth.
390 CARMEL CARMEL
took place at the eastern end of the ridge. In fact times there was nothing At last out of the
it is difficult to find another site, the actual name far horizon there rose a little cloud, c and it grew
of which has not been preserved, in which every in the deepening shades of evening till the whole
particular is so minutely fulfilled as in this. The sky was oVercast, and the forests of Carmel shook
tradition preserved in the convent, and among the in the welcome sound of the mighty winds, which
1 — the names of
>ruses of the neighboring villages, in eastern regions precede a coming tempest " (Si-
the places, — the distance from — the na-
Jezreel, nai cf Palestine, 353-6).
ture of the — the presence of the never-
locality, There is good reason to believe that a later inci-
failing spring, —all are in its favor. how
It is, dent in the life of the same great prophet took
ever, remarkable that the identification has been place on Carmel. This was when he " caused fire
made but lately, and also that it should have been to come down from heaven and consume the two
'
'
made by two travellers almost at the same time " fifties " of the guard which Ahaziah had de-
— Lieut. Van de Velde in 1852, and Professor spatched to take him prisoner, for having stopped
Stanley in 1853. This interesting site cannot be his messengers to Baal-zebub the god of Ekron (2
better described than in the words of the latter K. i. 9-15). [See Elijah, § 3.] In this nar-
traveller. rative our Version, as is too frequently the case,
"The tradition is unusually trustworthy; it is conceals the force of the original by imperfect trans-
perhaps the only case in Palestine in which the lation. "A hill" (v. 9) should be "the mount"
recollection of an alleged event has been actually
(~inn), the word always used for Carmel, and, in
retained in the native Arabic nomenclature. Many
names of towns have been so preserved but here is connection with Elijah, for Carmel only, with the
;
no town, only a shapeless ruin, yet the spot has exception of Sinai, which of course cannot be in-
a name, — Et-Maharrakah, — the Burning,' or tended here.
' Josephus (Ant. ix. 2, § 1), with
' the Sacrifice.' The Druses come here from a equal force, has eirl rfjs Kopvcprjs rov upovs.
distance to perform a yearly sacrifice; and, though The tradition in the present convent is, that
it is possible this practice may have originated the Elijah and Elisha both resided on the mountain,
name, it is more probable that the practice itself and a cave is actually shown under the high-altar
arose from an earlier tradition But be the of the church as that of Elijah. There is nothing
tradition good or bad, the localities adapt them- in the Scripture to sanction such a statement with
selves to the event in almost every particular. The regard to Elijah, but in the case of Elisha, the tra-
summit thus marked out is the extreme eastern dition may rest on better grounds. After the as-
point of the range, commanding the last view of cent of Elijah, Elisha went to Mount Carmel (2 K.
the sea behind, and the first view of the great plain ii. 25), though only for a time; but he was again
in front. . .There on the highest ridge of the there at the Shunammite's visit (iv. 25), and that
.
mountain may well have stood, on its sacred high- at a time when no festival, no " new-moon or sab-
'
place,' the altar of Jehovah which Jezebel had cast bath " (iv. 23), required his presence. (In iv. 27,
down. Close beneath, on a wide upland sweep, there is nearly the same error as was noticed above
under the shade of ancient olives, and round a well a in reference to i. 9; " the hill " should be rendered
of water, said to be perennial, and which may " the mount.")
therefore have escaped the general drought, and This is the last mention of ( 'armel as the scene
have been able to furnish water for the trenches of any event in the sacred history. Its sanctity no
round the altar, must have been ranged on one doubt remained, but it is its richness and its prom-
side the king and people with the 850 prophets of inence, " —
Tabor among the mountains Carmel;
Baal and Astarte, and on the other the solitary and by the sea," —
which appear to have taken hold of
commanding figure of the prophet of Jehovah. the poets of the nation, both of Israel and Judah,
Full before them opened the whole plain of Es- and their references to it are frequent and charac-
draelon; the city of Jezreel, with Ahab's palace and teristic (Cant. vii. 5; Is. xxxv. 2, xxxvii. 24; Jer.
Jezebel's temple, distinctly visible; in the nearer xlvi. 18, 1. 19; Am. i. 2, ix. 3; Mic. vii. 14; Nah.
foreground, immediately under the base of the i. 4).
mountain, was clearly seen the winding stream of the Carmel has derived its modern name from the
Kishon." To this may be added that a knoll is great prophet; Mar Elyas is the common desig-
pointed out between the ridge and the plain, bear- nation, Kurmel being occasionally, but only sel-
ing the name of Tell Kasis, b "the hill of the dom, heard. It is also the usual name of the con-
Priests," and that the modern name of the Kishon vent, though dedicated " in honorem BB. Virginia
is Nfihr el-Mukatta, "the river of slaughter." Mariae."
" The closing scene still remains. From the Professor Stanley has pointed out (S. <$• P. 352)
slaughter by the side of the Kishon the king went that it is not any connection with Elijah that gives
up to the glades of Carmel to join in the sacrificial the convent its interest to the western world, but
feast. And Elijah too ascended to the ' top of the the celebrated order of the Barefooted Carmelite
mountain,' and there with his face on the earth re- Friars, that has sprung from it, and carried its
mained rapt in prayer, while his servant mounted name into Europe. The order is said in the tradi-
to the highest point of all, whence there is a wide tions of the Latin Church to have originated with
view of the blue reach of the Mediterranean, over Elijah himself (St. John of Jerus. quoted in Mislin,
the western shoulder of the ridge Seven 49), but the convent was founded by St. Louis,
times the servant climbed and looked, and seven and its French origin is still shown by the practice
a Josepbus distinctly says that the water was ob- 1858), the only one in which it is marked, to be too
tained from the neighboring well anb rfc Kpjjnjs far off.
:
{Ant. viii. 13, § 5). There is therefore no occasion c This cloud is treated in the formularies of the
for the " coincidence " discovered by Prof. Blunt, Und. Roman Catholic Church as a type of the Virgin
Coincidences (II. xxii.). Mary. (See Mislin, ii. p. 45, and Sreviarium Rom.
b But this knoll appears, from the description of July 16.)
Van de Velde (i. 330), and from his new map (Dec.
CARMEL CARNAIM 391
of unfurling the French flag on various occasions.
up a "place" (~P, i.e. literally a "hand;"
set
Edward I. of England was a brother of the order,
comp. 2 Sam. xviii. 18, "Absalom's place," where
and one of its most famous generals was Simon
the same word is used) after his victory over Am-
Stokes of Kent (see the extracts in Wilson's Lands,
alek (1 Sam. xv. 12). And this Carmel, and not
ii. 240. For the convent and the singular legends
the northern mount, must have been the spot at
connecting Mount Carmel with the Virgin Mary
which king Uzziah had his vineyards (2 Cbx. xxvi.
and our Lord, see Mislin, ii. 47-50). By Napo-
10). In the time of Eusebius and Jerome it was
leon it was used as a hospital during the siege of
the seat of a Roman garrison ( Onomasticon, Car-
Acre, and after his retreat was destroyed by the
melus). The place appears in the wars of the Cru-
Arabs. At the time of Irby and Mangles's visit
sades, having been held by king Amalrich against
(18 17) oidy one friarremained there (Irby, 60).
Saladiu in 1172. The ruins of the town, now
G.
Kurinul, still remain at ten miles below Hebron in
* It is instructive, as a means of learning the
a slightly S. E. direction, close to those of Main
relative position of places, to know what points of (Maon), Zif (Ziph), and other places named with
geographical interest can be seen from such watch- Carmel in Josh. xv. 55. They are described both
towers of the Holy Land. The best position for by Robinson (i. 494-8) and by Van de Velde (ii.
viewing the prospect from Carmel is that furnished 77-79), and appeal- to be of great extent. Con-
from the flat roof of the convent. Standing there, spicuous among them is a castle of great strength,
with our faces toward the east, the attitude of the in the walls of which are still to be seen the large
Hebrew in naming the points of the compass, we masonry characteristic of Jewish buildings.
bevelled
have behind us "the great and wide sea," as the There is also a very fine and large reservoir. This
Psalmist calls it (civ. 25), which suggested to the is mentioned in the account of king Amalrich's
sacred writers so many of their grandest images for occupation of the place, and now gives the castle
setting forth aa idea of God's power. Before us lies
its name of Kasr el-Birkeh (Van de Velde, ii. 78).
an extensive reach of the plain of Esdraelon (Jez- G.
reel), and the summits of Gilboa and the lesser
Harmon. On the southeast is the mountainous CARMELITE O^^H? = Kap^\ios, Xap-
tract,known as that of Ephraim or Samaria, rilled /xatial: [Vat. FA. -Sat] in i Chr. xi. 37 ; Alex. Kap-
up with a rolling sea of hill-tops to an indefinite 2 Sam. ii. 2, KapfirjAi in 1 Chr. xi.
yU>;AeiT7js in
extent. Looking to the south, along the coast, at 37: Carmeli, de Carmelu, Carmelites). native A
the distance of ten miles, is Atldit, the site of a of Carmel in the mountains of Judah. The term
famous castle of the Crusaders, one of the last foot- is applied to Nabal (1 Sam. xxx. 5; 2 Sam. ii. 2,
holds which they relinquished to the Saracens. A iii. 3) and to Hezrai, or Hezro, one of David's
few miles beyond there, though not in sight, are guard (2 Sam. xxiii. 35; 1 Chr. xi. 37). In 2
the ruins of Caesarea, so interesting from its con- Sam. iii. 3 the LXX. [Kap^Ata] must have read
nection with the fortunes of the great apostle. The rpb»n?, « Carmelitess." W. A. W.
line of vision on the north is bounded by the hills
near Nazareth and Safed. Indeed, the path which CARMELITESS (irbp-]? Kaphas, :
of snow, from the Wely so famous for its view of wife of David (1 Sam. xxvii. 3; 1 Chr. iii. 1). In
Esdraelon behind Nazareth. It would be easy, so the former passage both LXX. and Vulg. appear to
far as the distance is concerned, to make out the
hav3 read ^piS, "Carmelite." W. A. W.
position of ancient Tyre, now Sar ; but the projec-
tion of H
is tl-Abind, the White Promontory, hides CAR'MI C^pTS [a vine-dresser, Ges. a dis- ;
it from view. The graceful curve of the bay of tinguished one, Fiirst]
Xapfxi [Vat. -fiet] Char- :
'
Ashteroth-Karnaim. dered " wagon," Gen. xlv. 19, 27; Num. vii. 3, 7,
G.
CARNION. [Carnaim.] 8: from 72^, roll, drawn
Ges. p. 989), a vehicle
CARRIAGE. This word occurs only six times Layard, Nin. ii. 75; Mrs. Poole, .Enylisltwoman in
in the text of the A. V., and it may be useful to Eyypt, 2d series, 77.) The only cart used in Wes-
remind the reader that in none of these does it bear tern Asia has two wheels of solid wood (Olearius,
its modern sense, but signifies what we now call Trunk, 418; SirR. [K.] Porter, Travels, ii. 533).
" baggage." The Hebrew words so rendered are For the machine used for threshing in Egypt and
Syria, see Threshing. But in the monuments
three. 1. "*
/3, c'le, generally translated " stuff"
of ancient Egypt representations are found of carts
or "vessels." the Greek word crKeuos;
It is like
of Persia and Media who " saw the king's face, and tured from enemies with captives, and also some
a * The incident referred to in Acts xxi. 15 (see of the camels or mules forms ever an important item
No. 4 above) shows the presence of an eye-witness. in Eastern travelling. It is a circumstance that would
What Paul and his travelling companions did was to interest the author of the narrative as one of the party,
place their baggage, in part perhaps the alms which but otherwise seems mentioned without any motive.
they were carrying up to Jerusalem (Acts xxiv. 17), Luke, who wrote the Acts, was with the apostle on
nn their beasts of burden. The loading and unloading this journey (Jjfiets, Acts xx. 6, xxi. 1 and 15). H.
CARVING CASLUHIM 393
used in carrying timber and other articles (Layard, place of uncertain site on the road between Babylon
mn. ii. 39G, Mm. 4- Bab. 134, 447, 583, Mm. of and .Jerusalem (Ear. viii. 17). Neither the Caspise
Bab. pt. ii. pis. 12, 17). Four-wheeled carnages l'yhe nor the city Kaswin, with which some writers
are said by Pliny (N. H. vii. 5G) to have been in- have attempted to identify it, are situated upon
vented by the Phrygians (AYilkinson, Am. Egypt. this route. (Gesen. Thee. 703.)
Abridgm. i. 384, 385; ii. 39, 47). The carts used * Fiirst has a long note in his Lexicon on this
enigmatical word. He supposes it to denote " the
snowy-mountainous Caucasian region." It is not
bon\), 1 Mace. v. 36. Casphor.] ing to Galen (De Theriac. ad Pis. p. 108), of
mosyllos, from the ancient city and promontory
CASTHOR (Xaa-(pwp; [Alex. Kaatpup; Sin.
Mosyllon, on the coast of Africa and the sea of
Ka<r0a>:] Casphor), one of the fortified cities in the
Babel Mandeb, not far from the modem Cape
"land of Gahiad" (1 Mace. v. 26), in which the
Guardafui (Sprengel, Annot. ad Dioscor. i. 12).
.lews took refuge from the Ammonites under Tim-
Will not this throw some light on Ez. xxvii. 19,
otheus (comp. ver. 6), and which with other cities
where it will be observed that, instead of the ren-
was taken by Judas Maceabseus (v. 36). In the
dering " going to and fro " in the text of the A. V.,
latter passage the name is given as Casphon, and
the margin has Meuzal f •'
Dan and Javan and
in 2 Mace. xii. 13 as Caspis, if indeed the same
Meuzal traded in thy markets with cassia, calamus,"
place is referred to, which is not quite clear (see
Ewald,
&c. The cassia would be brought from India to
iv. 359, note). G.
Meuzal, and from thence exported to Tyre and other
CAS'PIS Kaaireiv :] Cas-
(Kdcnrtv ;
[Alex. countries under the name of Meuznlitis, or Meuzal
pian), a strong fortified city whether east or west cassia. 6 —
of Jordan is not plain having near it a lake —
Dioscoricles speaks of another kind of cassia called
(Ki^vin) two stadia in breadth. It was taken by Kitto, which
has been supposed by some to be sub-
Judas Maceabseus with great slaughter (2 Mace, stantially the same
as the Hebrew word Kiddah. to
xii. 13, 16). The parallel history of the 1st Book which it certainly bears a strong resemblance.
If
of Maccabees mentions a city named CASPHOB or the
words are identical, they must denote cassia
Casphon, with which Caspis may be identical —
of different qualities, for the kitto of Dioscorides
but the narratives differ materially. G. was very inferior, while we cannot doubt that the
CAS'SIA. The representative in the A. V. of cassia used in the composition of the holy ointment
the Hebrew words kiddah and ketzi'vth. would be of the best kind.
Cassia is not produced by any trees which are
1. Kiddah (i"R|"? : ipi s : casia, slacte) occurs
now found growing in Arabia. It is probable there-
in Ex. xxx. 24, as one of the ingredients in the
lore that the Greek authors were mistaken on this
composition of the " oil of holy ointment; " and in
subject, and that they occasionally have regarded
Ez. xxvii. 19, where " bright iron, cassia, and
products imported into Arabia, and thence exported
calamus " are mentioned as articles of merchandise
northwards to other countries, as the natural pro-
brought by Dan and Javan to the market of Tyre.
ductions of that country. The cassia-bark of com-
There can be no doubt that the A. V. is correct in
merce is yielded by various kinds of Cinnamomum,
the translation of the Hebrew word, though there
which grow in different parts of India, and is not
is considerable variety of reading in the old versions.
ths product of only one species of tree. Cinna-
The LXX. and Josephus (Ant. iii. 8, § 3) have
momum malabathricum of S. India supplies much
iris, i. e. some species of flay, perhaps the Iris
of the cassia-bark of commerce. Dr. Hooker says
florentinn, which has an aromatic root-stock. Sym-
that cassia is an inferior cinnamon in one sense,
machus and the Vulg. (in Ez. I. c.) read stacle,
though, as it never comes from the same species as
"liquid myrrh." The Arabic versions of Saadias
the true cinnamon, the statement is ambiguous.
and Erpenius conjecture costus, which Dr. Eoyle
(Kitto's Cyc. art. Ketzioth ') identifies with Auck-
' 2. Ketzi'vth (r\V^Vj) Kaaia. casia), only in :
landia Costus, to which he refers not the fddddh, Ps. xlv. 8, " All thy garments smell of myrrh, aloes,
but the ketzVoth of the Hebrew Scriptures (see b,e- and cassia." This word is generally supposed to
low). The Chaldee and Syriac, with most of the be another term for cassia the old versions are in :
European versions, understand cassia by kiddah favor of this interpretation, as well as the etymology
they are followed by Gesenius, Simonis, luirst, Lee, of the Hebrew word. The Arabic reads Salicha, d
and all the lexicographers. The accounts of cassia which, from its description by Abul Fadli and
as given by ancient authors are confused and the Avicenna (Celsius, Hierob. ii. 364—5), evidently
;
investigation of the subject is a difficult one. It is denotes some cassia-yielding tree. Dr. Eoyle sug-
clear that the Latin writers by the term casia un- gests (see above) that ketzi'uth is identical in mean-
derstood both the Oriental product now under con- ing and in form with the Arabic kouth, koosl, or
sideration, as well as some low sweet herbaceous [Syriac] kooshta, e whence is probably derived the
plant, perhaps the Daphne ynidium, Linn, (see Fee, costus of the Greeks and Romans. Dioscorides
Flore de 1 iryile, p. 32, and Du Molin, Flor. Poet. (i. 15) enumerates three kinds of costus, an Arabian,
Ancienne, 277): but the Greek word, which is first Indian, and Syrian sort the first two are by :
used by Herodotus (ii. 86), who says (iii. 110) the Sprengel referred to Costus arabicus, Linn. (Zin-
" to tear lengthwise " so called from the splitting of " to scrape," " to peel."
;
i. 600, note). As to blTSft, see Bochart, Geog. Sac. e \n ... V costus, i. e. radicis aromatica3 Indicse et
p. i. lib. ii. c. 21, and Rosenmiiller, Schot. ad Ez. 1. c. Arabicse species, Kam. Dj. See Freytag.
who, however, identify it with Sanaa, in Arabia.
CASTLE CATERPILLAR 595
yiberacece). The koost of India, called by Euro- CATS (ol alAoupof- cattce a )
only in occurs
peans Indian orris, is the root of what Royle has Barueh vi. 22 [Fpist. of Jer. 22J, in the passage
named AuekkmMa costus. There is no reason, which sets forth the vanity of the Babylonish idols:
however, why we should abandon the explanation ;t
Upon their bodies and heads sit bats, swallows,
of the old versions, and depart from the satisfactory and and the cats aLso." The Greek ai'Aou-
birds,
jtymologieal evidence afforded by the Hebrew term pos, used by Aristotle, has more particular ref-
a-s
to the doubtful question of identity between it and erence to the wild cat (Fells catus, etc.). Herod-
the Arabic koost. W. H. otus, in the well-known passage (ii. 06) which treats
of the cats of Egypt, uses cuAovpos to denote the
CASTLE. [Fortifications.]
domestic animal; similarly Cicero (Tusc. v. 27,
CAS'TOR AND POL'LUX, the Dioscuri
78) employs felis; but both Greek and Latin
(AiScrKovpoi, Acts xxviii. 11). For the mythology
words are used to denote other animals, apparently
of these two heroes, the twin-sons of Jupiter and
some kinds of marten (Martes). The context of
Leda, we must refer to the Diet, of Bvog. and
the passage in Barueh appears to point to the do-
Mi/thol. We
have here to do with them only so
mesticated animal. Perhaps the people of Babylon
far as they were connected with seafaring life.
originally procured the eat from Egypt.
They were regarded as the tutelary divinities (deol
The domestic cat of the ancient Egyptians is
aairripes) of sailors. They appeared in heaven as
supposed by some to be identical with the Felis
the constellation of Gemini. Immediately on ship-
maniculata, Riippell, of Nubia, and with our own
board they were recognized in the phosphoric lights,
domestic animal, but there is considerable doubt
called by modern Italian sailors the fires of St.
on this matter. The Egyptians, it is well known,
Elmo, which play about the masts and the sails
paid an absurd reverence to the cat; it accompanied
(" In magna tempestate apparent quasi stelhe velo
them in their fowling expeditions; it was deemed
insidentes: adjuvari se tunc perielitantes existimaut
a capital offense to kill one; when a cat died, it was
Follucis et Castoris numine," Senec. Nat. Qucest. i.
1; comp. Flin. ii. 37). Hence the frequent allu-
sions of Roman poets to these divinities in con-
nection with navigation (see especially Hor. Carm.
i. 3. '2, '' fratres Helena?, lucida sidera," and iv. 8.
31). As
the ship mentioned here by St. Luke was
from Alexandria, it may be worth while to notice
that Castor and Follux were specially honored in
the neighboring district of Cyrenaica (Schol. Find.
Pyth. v. G). In Catull. iv. 27, we have distinct
mention of a boat dedicated to them. See also
lxviii. 65. In art these divinities were sometimes
represented simply as stars hovering over a ship,
but more frequently, as young men on horseback
with conical caps, and stars above them (see the
coins of lihegium, a city of Bruttii, at which St. Felis maniculata.
Silver coin of Bruttii. Obv. Heads of Castor and vorite, was allowed to accompany the fowler, is
:
a The word Calta occurs once only in classical Latin, o Even to a proverb :
—
namely, in Martial, Epig. xiii. 69 but that some bird
; " Catus amat pisces, sed non vult tingere plantain."
is Intended is beyond a doubt. The ancient Greeks " Letting 1 dare not wait upon I would,
Ukd Etonians do not appear to have kept domestic cats. Like the poor cat i' the adage." — Shaksp. Macbeth,
We have sought in vain for the slightest allusion to i. 7.
Felis domestiens in classical authors. See Trench's Lessons in Proverbs, p. 149.
396 CATHUA CAVE
rubigo, bruchus, aerugo). The Hebrew word occurs ornaments worn by Arab women about their necks
in 1 K. viii. 37; 2 Chr.
28; Ps. lxxviii. 46; Is.
vi. But to this Gesenius very properly objects (Jes. i.
the destructive kinds of locust which at times visit The Targum merely adopts the Hebrew word with-
the Bible lands must be limited to two or three out translating it, and the Syriac and Arabic
the most destructive being the Acridium
species, vaguely render it " their ornaments."
peregrinum and the (Edipoda migratoria ; conse- W. A. W.
quently some of these names must stand either for * CAUSEY
(French chaussee), a raised or
different conditions in the life of the locust, or they
may be synonyms, or else they may denote other paved way'(nv'pQ), in 1 Chr. xxvi. 16, 18, and
insect devourers. The term now under notice Prov. xv. 19 (margin), in the A. V. ed. 1611, but
seems to be applied to a locust, perhaps in its larva afterwards changed to causeway, a corruption for
state. The indefinite rendering of the A. V. may causey. " Causeway," however, is found in the
well, we think, be retained to express the Chdsil, or margin of Is. vii. 3 in A. V. ed.
1611. See Wor-
the consumer. and Webster's Dictionaries, and Eastwood
cester's
and Wright's Bible Word-Book, p. 90. H.
2. Yelek. [See Locust, 8.] W. H.
CATHU'A (Kadovd; [Vat. Kova'-] Canna),
*CAUSEWAY. [Causey.]
1 Esdr. v. 30. Apparently answers to Giddel in CAVE (!"H37D : ffirriXaiof- spelunca : in A.
Hebrew text. [Fritzsche (Exeg. Handb. in loc.) V. Is. ii. 19, hole ; [Is. xxxii. 14;] Jer. vii. 11, den;
makes TeSSovp the representative of Giddel, and Josh. xiii. 4, literatim, Mearah ; Maara, Vulg.).
finds no Hebrew correspondent of KaOovd. A.] I. The chalky limestone of which the rocks of
Syria and Palestine chiefly consist presents, as is
CATTLE. [Bull.]
the case in all limestone formations, a vast number
CAULS (B^D'Otp : i^^Kia : torques). of caverns and natural fissures, many of which have
The margin of the A. V. gives " net-works.". The also been
artificially enlarged and adapted to various
Old English word "caul" denoted a netted cap purposes both of shelter and defense. (Page, Text-
worn by women. Compare Chaucer ( W-yf of Book of Geology, p. 141 Kitto, Phys. Geogr. of ;
Bathes' Tale, C. T. 1. 6599): Pal. p. 72.) This circumstance has also given oc-
casion to the use of so large a number of words as
" Let se, which is the proudest of hem alle,
are enmloyed in the Scriptures to denote caves,
That werith on a coverchicf or a calle."
holes, and fissures, some of them giving names to
The Hebrew word shebisim thus rendered in Is. iii. the towns and places in their neighborhood. Out
18, is, like many others which occur in the same besides No may be selected the follow-
of tliem, I.,
passage, the subject of much dispute. It occurs
ing: —
but once, and its rout not elsewhere found in
is
Hebrew. The Rabbinical commentators connect II. Tin or ">V1 (Ges. p. 458), a hole ; usu-
ally Tpd>y\r), and caverna. From this come (a.)
it with ^2tT, thibbets, rendered "embroider" in
Ex. but properly "to vvork in squares,
xxviii. 39, ''""in, dweller in cares, the name of the Horites of
make So Kimchi (Lex. s. v.) ex- Mount Seir, Wady Ghoeyer, expelled by the Edom-
checker- work."
plains shebisim as "the name of garments wrought ites, probably alluded to by Job, a Troglodyte race
in checker- work." Iiashi says they are "a kind of spoken of by Strabo. (Gen. xiv. 6, xxxvi. 21;
net-work to adorn the head." Abarbanel is more Deut. ii. 12; Job xxx. 6; Strab. i. p. 42, xvi. pp.
full: he describes them as "head-dresses, made of 775-776; Burckhardt, Syria, p. 410 Robinson, ii. ;
silk or gold thread, with which the women bound 69, 157 Stanley, S. cf- P. §§ 68-71.); [Hokites.]
their heads about, and they were of checker- work."
(/>.) "["Tin, land of caverns (Ez. xlvii. 16, 18;
The word occurs again in the Mislma ( Celim,
Burckhardt, Syria, pp. 110, 286): Avpavlru,
xxviii. 10), but nothing can possibly be inferred
from the passage itself, and the explanations of the LXX.: Auran, Vulg. [Haukan.] (c.) "TP2
commentators do not throw much light upon it.
house of caverns, the two towns of Beth-
It there appears be used to a net-work "JVin,
as part of
[Beth-horon.] (d.)
worn as a head-dress by women. Bartenora says it horon (Josh. xvi. 3, 5).
was " a figure which they made upon the net-work U^yin, two caverns, the town Horonaim (Is. xv.
for ornament, standing in front of it and going
5). [HOKONAIM.]
round from one ear to the other." Beyond the
III. Q^pn, places of refuge in rocks (Ges. p.
fact that the shebisim were head-dresses or orna-
ments of the head-dress of Hebrew ladies, nothing 445) for birds,' Cant. ii. 14: a-Kewrf- foramina;
can be said to be known about them. [Jer. xlix. 10, r pvfj.a\tai: cavernce;] Obad. 3,
Schreeder (De VJRst. Mid., cap. ii.) conjectured onal: idssura: A. V. clefts.
that they were medallions worn on the necklace,
IV. HHnSft TpvfxaXia-- antrum: A. V. dt n : ;
The sites of the cave of Elijah, as well as of the Lastly, it was the caves which he beneath and
" cleft " of Moses on Mount Horeb (Ex. xxxiii. 22) around so many of the Jewish
cities that formed
are also obviously indeterminate for though tradi- the last hiding-places of the Jewish leaders in the
;
tion has not only assigned a place for the former war with the Romans. Josephus himself relates
on Jebel Musa, and consecrated the spot by a the story of his own concealment in the caves of
chapel, there are caves on the competing summit Jotapata and after the capture of Jerusalem, John ;
of Serbal, to one or other of which it might with of Gischala, Simon, and many other Jews, endeav-
equal probability be transferred. (Stanley, p. 49 ored to conceal themselves in the caverns beneath
Robinson, i. 103; Burckhardt, p. 608.) the city whilst in some of them great spoil and ;
Besides these special caves there is frequent men- vast numbers of dead bodies were found of those
tion in O. T. of caves as places of refuge. Thus who had perished during the siege by hunger or
the Israelites are said to have taken refuge from the from wounds (Joseph. B. J. iii.
8, § 1, vi. 9, 4). §
Philistines in "holes" (1 Sam. xiv. 11): to which The rock dwellings and temples of Petra are de-
the name of the scene of Jonathan's conflict, Mikh - scribed in a separate article.
mas (Michmash), sufficiently answers. (Stanley, Natural cavities in the rock were and are fre-
p. 204; Rob. i. 440; Irby, p. 89.) So also in the quently used as cisterns for water, and as places of
time of Gideon they had taken refuge from the Mid- imprisonment (Is. xxiv. 22; Ez. xxxii. 23; Zech.
398 CEDAR CEDAR
ix. 11) [Cistern; Prison] ; also as stalls for horses allthe descriptions in the Bible of a cedar-tree are
and for granaries (Irby and Mangles, p. 140). No that it should be tall (Is. ii. 13), spreading (Ez.
use, however, of rock caverns more strikingly con- xxxi. 3), abundant K. v. 6, 10), fit for beams,
(1
nects the modern usages of Palestine and the adja- pillars, and boards K. vi. 10, 15, vii. 2), masts
(1
cent regions with their ancient history than the of ships (Ez. xxvii. 5), and for carved work as
employment of them as burial-places. The rocky images (Is. xliv. 14). To these may be added qual-
a portion of the Holy Land almost
soil of so large, ities ascribed to cedar-wood by profane writers.
forbids interment, excepting in cavities either nat- Pliny speaks of the cedar of Crete, Africa, and
ural or hewn from the rock. The dwelling of the Syria as being most esteemed and imperishable.
demoniac among the tombs is thus explained by The same quality is ascribed also to juniper. In
the rock caverns abounding near the Sea of Galilee Egypt and Syria ships were built of cedar, and in
(Jolliffe, i. 36.). Accordingly numerous sites are Cyprus a tree was cut down 120 feet long and pro-
shown in Palestine and adjacent lands of (so-called) portionately thick. The durability of cedar was
sepulchres of saints and heroes of Old and New- proved, he says, by the duration of the cedar roof
Test., venerated both by Christiana and Moham- of the temple of Diana at Ephesus, which had lasted
medans (Early Travels, p. 30; Stanley, p. 148). 400 years. At Utica the beams, made of Numid-
Among these may be mentioned the cave of Mach- ian cedar, of a temple of Apollo had lasted 1170
pelah, the tomb of Aaron on .Mount Hor, of Joseph, years! Yitruvius speaks of the antiseptic proper-
and of Rachel, as those for which every probability ties of the oil of cedar and also of juniper (Plin.
of identity in site at least may be claimed (Irby //. N. xiii. 5, xvi. 40; Vitruv. ii. 9; Joseph. Ant.
and Mangles, p. 134; Robinson, i. 218, 219, ii. 275- viii. 5, § 2; Sandys, Travels, pp. 106, 107).
287). More questionable are the sites of the tombs Not only was cedar timber used by David and
of Elisha, Obadiah, and John the Baptist, at Sa- Solomon Sam. v. 11 IK. v.
in their buildings (2 ;
maria; of Habakkuk at Jeidtha (Gabatha), Micah 6. vi. but also in the second Temple
15. vii. 2),
near Keila, and of Deborah, Rebekah's nurse, at rebuilt under Zerubbabel, the timber employed was
Bethel (Stanley, pp. 143, 14!) Reland, pp. 772. 698,
;
cedar from Lebanon (Ezr. iii. 7; 1 Esdr. iv. 48, v.
981; Roll. ii. 304). The much debated 55). Cedar is also said by Josephus to have been
questions so
relating to the and near Jerusalem and used by Herod in the roof of his temple (B. J. v.
tombs in
Bethany will be found treated under those heads. 5, § 2). The roof of the Rotunda of the Church
But whatever value may belong to the connection of the Holy Sepulchre at Jerusalem is said to have
of the names of judges, kin^s, or prophets, with been of cedar, and that of the Church of the Vir-
the very remarkable rock-tombs near Jerusalem, gin at Bethlehem to have been of cedar or cypress.
there can be no doubt that the caves bearing these (Williams, Holy City, ii. 202; Quaresmius, Elite.
names are sepulchral caverns enlarged and embel- Terr. Sanct. vi. 12; Rer. p. 2; Tobler, Bethlehem.
lished by art. The sides of the valley of Jehosh- pp. 110, 112.)
aphat are studded with eaves, many of which arc- Xow in some important respects no tree bo* the
inhabited by Arab families. Sandys, p. 1 88 Maun- cedar (Pi/ins cedrus), or its almost equivalent, the
( ;
drell, p. 440; Robinson, i. 241, 349, 304; Bartlett, Pin/is Deodara," call answer the above conditions.
Walks about .It rusalem, p. 117). It is no doubt the The characteristics of these two trees, of which
vast number of caves throughout the country, to- great numbers are found from Mount Taurus to the
gether with, perhaps, as Maundrell remarks, the Himalayas, are so often interchanged that they are
taste for hermit life which prevailed in the 5th and scarcely to lie distinguished the one from the other.
Oth centuries of the Christian era, which has placed No tree is at once bo lofty, spreading, and umbra-
the sites of so many important events in caves and geous, and the wood of the Deodara at least is ex-
grottoes; e. g. the birth of the Virgin, the Annun- tremely durable. The difficulties which are found
ciation, the Salutation, the birth of the Baptist and in reconciling the ancient descriptions with the
of our Lord, the scene of the Agony, of St. Peter's modern specimens of cedar wood lie, (1) in the fit-
denial, the composition of the Apostles' Creed, the ness of cedar trees for masts of ships (Ez. xxvii. 5);
Transfiguration (Shaw, pt. ii. c. 1; Maundrell, E. (2) still more in the very general agreement as to
T. p. 479): and the like causes have created a tra- the inferior quality of the timber, which is usually
ditionary cave-site for the altar of Elijah on Mount described as less valuable than the worst sorts of
Cannel, and peopled its sides, as well as those of deal. Of authorities quoted by Dr. Royle in his
Mount Tabor, with hermit inhabitants. (1 K. article on the subject in Dr. Kitto's Cyclopaedia (art.
xviii. 19; Irby and Mangles, p. 00; Reland. p. 329; Eres), two only ascribe serviceable qualities to the
Winer, s. v. Carnal ; Am. ix. 3; Sir J.Maunde- cedar-wood, whether grown in England or in speci-
ville,Travels, p. 31; Sandys, p. 203; Maundrell, mens brought from the ancient cedar grove on Mount
E. T. p. 478 Jahn, Arch. Bibl. p. 9 Stanley, p. Lebanon. Accordingly, Celsius in his Hierdbotan
; ;
353; Kitto, Phys. Geogr. pp. 30,31; Van Egmont, icon has endeavored to prove that by the cedar of
Travels, ii. 5-7.) H. W. P. Scripture is meant the Pinus sylvestris or Scotch
fir, and that by "fir" is intended the cypress.
CEDAR (T^S: K e5pos- cedrus: from T"?S, Others have supposed that the Sandarac tree, the
Callitris quadrivaMs, or Thvja
root of T^HS, coihd or compressed, Gesen. p. 148). citrus of Pliny,
articiitata, represents the cedar. The timber of
The term is expressive of a mighty and deeply
this tree is extremely hard and durable; the roof
roofed tree, and is usually understood to apply here
of the mosque of Cordova, built in the 9th century,
to one of the coniferous kind, but not always to
is constructed of it, which was formerly supposed
that which is commonly known as the Cedar of
from the Spanish name alerce to have been made
Lebanon.
of larch (Cook, Sketches in Spain, p. 5, and note;
The conditions to be fulfilled in order to answer
o The difference between the Lebanon cedar and also are longer and more distinctly 3-sided. The wood
the Deodara consists chiefly in the cones, which in of both is extremely resinous.
the latter grow in pairs, and upon stalks the leaves ;
CEDAR CEDAR 399
Fergusson, Handb. of Arch. i. 450). Besides these West. Barb. c. iv. 49; Gesen. p. 148, who rejects
trees, the Oephalonian pine, the common yew, Teams the opinion of
Celsius; Winer, s. v.).
baccatn, and the juniper cedar, Cedrus baccifera, or It may be observed, (1.) That unsuccessful exper-
oxycedrut, each of them possesses qualities which iments on English-grown cedar, or on wood derived
answer to some at least of those ascribed to the from the trees of the ancient cedar grove of Leba-
cedar. The opinion of Celsius is founded in great non, do not as yet invalidate all claim of the cedar,
measure on the use by the Arabs and Arabic writers whether Lebanon or Deodara cedar, to share in the
qualities anciently ascribed to it. Besides the trees
of the word \s\. arz, evidently the equivalent of
which belong to the one grove known b\ the name
TTjf, erez, to express the cedar of Lebanon, and of "the Cedars,'' proves and green woods of cedar
also at Aleppo the Pinus sylvestris, which is abun- are found in other parts of the range (Buckingham,
dant both near that city and on Lebanon. A sim- Travels among Arabs, p. 4HS; Eng. Cyel. s. v.
ilar argument will apply also to the Thuja articulrtla Syria; Robinson, hi- 593; Burckhardt, Syria, p.
of .Mount Atlas, which is called by the Arabs st- Is); Loudon, Arboretum, vol. iv. pp. 2400, 2407;
ars, a name which led to the mistake as to the ma- Celsius, Hierobotanicon, i. 81): Belon, Obs. dc Ar-
terial of the Cordova roof from its similarity to boribus concerts, ii. 1H2, 166, 166). (2.) That it
the Spanish alerce (Niebuhr, Deter, de VArabie, has been already shown that the Deodara cedar
p. 131, &c, and Questions, xc. p. 169, &c. Pliny, ;
certainly possesses in a remarkable degree the prop-
//. X. xiii. 11, 15; Kitto, Eres, Thuja; Hay, erty of durability, said to be wanting in the Leb-
anon cedar. But (3.) The remains of wood used kiel; and it may be added, that the LXX. render
in the Nineveh palaces were supposed by Layard to " masts " inthat passage by 'uttous eKarivovs,
be cedar, a supposition confirmed by the inscrip- hi hI, offir, or fikejir.
tions, which show that the Assyrian kings imported But there is another use of cedar-wood men-
cedar from Lebanon. This wood is now proved by tioned in Scripture, namely, in purification (I^v.
microscopic examination to be yew (Layard, X. and xiv. 4; Num. xix. 0). The term cedar is applied
li. pp. 356, 357; Loudon, a. g. p. 24-'}l). by Pliny to the lesser cedar, oxycedrut, a Phoenician
In speaking, therefore, of cedar of Lebanon used juniper, which is still common on the Lebanon,
in building for beams, pillars, or ceiling boards, it and whose wood is aromatic. The wood or fruit
is probable that the wood of more than one tree of this tree was anciently burnt by way of per-
was employed, but uiiuer the one name of cedar, fume, especially at funerals (Plin. //• A. xiii. 1. 5;
and that the trees which furnished the material Ov. Fast. ii. 558; Horn. 0<l. v. 00). The tree is
were, besides the Pinus cedrus, the i 'edrut I >< odara, common Egypt and Nubia, and also in Arabia,
in
the yew, Taxus baccata), and also the Scotch pine
i in the Wady Mousa, where the greater cedar is not
( Pinus sylw stris
The Sandarac tree Thuja artic-
)• ( found. It obviously likely that the use of the
is
ulata) is said by Van Egmont ( Travels, ii. 280) to more common tree should be enjoined while the
have been found on Lebanon, but no hint of im- people were still in the wilderness, rather than of
portation of foreign timber is anywhere given in the uncommon (Shaw. Travels, p. 404; Burck-
Scripture, or by Josephus, whilst each of the above- hardt. Syria, 430; Russell, Nubia, p. 425).
p.
named trees mows there in greater or less abun- The grove known as the Cedars of Leb-
of trees
dance. The Pinus sylvestris may have furnished anon consists of about 400 trees, standing quite
the material of the ship-masts mentioned by Eze- alone in a depression of the mountain with no trees
400 CEDAR CEDAR
aear, about 6400 feet above the sea, and 3000 be- ruperus excelsa, were probably all included under
low the summit. About 11 or 12 are very large the term erez ; though there can be no doubt that
and old, 25 large, 50 of middle size, and more than by this name is more especially denoted the cedar of
300 younger and smaller ones." The older trees Lebanon, as being /cot' e|oxV the firmest and
have each several trunks and spread themselves grandest of the conifers.
widely round, but most of the others are of cone- The Pinus sylcesti-is is by old writers often men-
like form and do not send out wide lateral brandies. 6 tioned as one of the pines of Lebanon; but Dr.
In 1550 there were 28 old trees, in 1739 Pococke Hooker says he has little doubt that the P. Hale-
counted 15, but the number of trunks makes the pi nsis must be the tree meant, for the P. sylvestrts
operation of counting uncertain. They are re Lebanon or SjTia.
(" Scotch fir") is not found in
garded with much reverence by the native inhab- The claim
Deodar to represent a Bible
of the
itants as living records of Solomon's power, and Conifer may be dismissed at once. Deodars are
the Maronite patriarch was formerly accustomed to not found nearer to the Lebanon than within a dis-
celebrate there the festival of the Transfiguration tance of several hundred miles. As to the " cedar
at an altar of rough stones. Within the last 10 wood " used in purifications, it is probable that one
years a chapel has been erected (Robinson, 590, of the smaller junipers is intended (J. sabina ?),
iii.
have also been observed by Ehrenberg in forests of suddenly contracts to a gorge, and becomes a rocky
oak between Bsherre and Bshinnate." There is ravine of the most picturesque description, with vil-
another passage (Ez. xxvii. 5) where the Tynans lages, groves, and convents perched on its flanks,
"
are said to have made use of " cedars of Lebanon base, and summits, recalling Switzerland vividly
for masts of ships, in which perhaps erez denotes
and accurately. At the time of my visit (October,
some fir; in all probability, as Dr. Hooker con- I860) the flanks of the valley about the cedars were
jectures, the Piiut* Ilulrpriisis, which grows in
perfectly arid, and of a pale yellow red; and the
Lebanon, and is better fitted for furnishing ship- view of this great red area, perhaps two or three
masts than the wood of the Cedrus Libani. With miles across, with the minute patch of cedar grove,
regard to the objection that has been made to the seen from above and at a distance of ten miles or
wood of the Cedrus Libani — (see Dr. Lindley's
so, was most singular. I can give you no idea of
remark in the Gardener's Chron. i. 699, "the what a speck the grove is in the yawning hollow.
worthless though magnificent cedar of Mount Leb-
I have said the floor of the valley is flat and broad
anon") — that its inferior quality could ever have but, on nearer inspection, the cedars are found to
i
o * Mr. Jessup (see addition to this article) says to the minutest twigs, and even the arrangement of
that the largest of these " is forty-eight feet in circum- the clustered leaves has the same general tendency.
ference, and the remaining eleven vary from twenty to Climb into one, and you are delighted with a succes-
thirty feet" (Hours at Home for March, 1867; iv sion of verdant floors spread around the trunk, and
408). A. gradually narrowing as you ascend. The beautiful
b * Dr. Thomson (I/ind and Book, i. 297) remarks cones seem to stand upon, or rise out of this green
flooring." A.
on a striking peculiarity in the shape of this tree,
which is illustrated by the engraving here given. He
says " The branches are thrown out horizontally from
: c From the unused root T^S, i. ?• Arab, v »|, con-
the parent trunk. These, again, part into limbs which
preserve the same horizontal direction, and so oh down traxit, colleg-it firmavitqw se. Gesen. Thes. s. T.
CEDAR CEILING 401
gard to other coniferous trees in Swiss and Hima- It contains about 300 trees, the largest- measuring
over 30 feet in circumference. " Perhaps 20 of
layan valleys."
Dr. Hooker draws attention to the unfortunate them," says Mr. Jessup, " will measure from 20 to
disrecard shown with respect to the seedlings an- 25 feet in circumference, and almost all of them
nually produced from the old cedar-trees in Leb- are large and venerable in appearance. There is
anon. It is a remarkable but lamentable tact that not an insignificant tree in the grove." Near el-
no trees are seen much less than 50 years old! Bariik there is a much larger grove or rather forest,
The browsing goat-sand the drought destroy all the containing thousands of trees. They cover an area
Voung seedlings; and it is a sad pity that no means of nearly one hundred acres along the mountain
are adopted to encourage their growth, which might side, and up and down a gradually sloping ravine.
easilv be done by fencing and watering. 9 . The largest of the trees measure in girth
. .
In Southern Lebanon there was a forest of cedars has no connection with " Cedar." [Kidkon.]
a few years ago near 'Ain Zehalteh, containing G.
" more than 10,000 trees, many of them of im-
mense size; " but "the Vandal of a Sheik," as .Mr. CEI'LAN (K,\dv. [Aid. Kei\di>:] Ciaso).
Tristram calls him, " sold them to a native specu- Sons of Ceilan andAzetas. according
to 1 Esdr. v.
lator, who cut them down for pitch." The stumps, 15, returned with Zorobabel from Babylon. There
in the lists of
however, remain, and luxuriant young plants are are no names corresponding to these
springing up on every side. Mr. Jessup visited the Ezra or Nehemiah.
place, and measured one stump " nearly 15 feet in CEILING ("PSD, from "JCD ^KoiXoo-rde-:
interest to the 'Cedars of the Lord themselves." (Ez. xli. 16), a plank).
'
The descriptions of Script-
a See Dr. Hooker's paper a On the Cedars of Leba- on a visit to the cedars) in which he brings together
non, Taurus, &c." in the Nat. Hist. Review, No. v. in a striking picture all the Scripture allusions to this
p. 11.
celebrated forest (Notices of Localities, p. 216 ff.).
• Dean Stanley has a beautiful paragraph (founded H
26
402 CEILING CENCHREA
ure (1 K. vi. 9, 15, vii. 3; 2 Chr. iii. 5, 9, Jer. the Alhambra Court of the Crystal Palace. The
xxii. 14; Hag. i. 4), and of Josephus (Ant. viii. 3, ancient Egyptians used colored tiles in their build-
§§ 2-9, xv. 11, § 5), show that the ceilings of the ings (Athen. v. 206; Wilkinson, ii. 287). The
Temple and the palaces of the Jewish kings were
formed of cedar planks applied to the beams or
joints crossing from wall to wall, probably with
Bunk panels (<parvd>fj.ara), edged and ornamented
with gold, and carved with incised or other patterns
(fia6v£vAois yAv<pais), sometimes painted (Jer.
xxii. 14).
It is probable that both Egyptian and Assyrian
models were, in this as in other branches of archi-
tectural construction, followed before the Roman
period. [Architecture.] The construction and
designs of Assyrian ceilings in the more important
buildings can only be conjectured (Layard, Nin-
eveh, ii. 265, 289), but the proportions in the walls
vivid connection (2 Chr. xxvi. 18; Luke i. 9). Arabia, ii. 180; see also Lane, Mod. Egypt, ii, 72,
Thus " Korah and his company " were bidden to
Ai'^aros of Matt. ii. 11 in Rev. v. 8, $i<xAr) is used
;
thing as that used by Aaron in the priestly function. Paris. It thus becomes =
8vo-i.ao-rript.ov Ov/xiafiaTO^,
Nor, aa the rebellion was evidently a deliberately con- the expression for the same thing in LXX., Ex. xxx
;erted movement, is there any difficulty in supposing 1, but its simpler meaning is merely that of an " in-
'he amount of preparation suggested in the text. strument for the 8vfi.La.iJLa. (incense)," and thus either
6 The word for censer here is
KifiavwTOs from the censer, or incense altar.
, See also 1 Mace. i. 21, 22.
404 CENSUS CENSUS
73). The instances of numbering recorded in the the numbers of Israel
1,100,000, and of Judah
0. T. are as follows 470,000, total 1,570,000; but informs us that Levi
1. Under the express direction of God (Ex. and Benjamin were not numbered (1 Chr. xxi. 6,
xxxviii. 26), in the 3d or 4th month after the Ex- xxvii. 24). Josephus gives the numbers of Israel
odus, during the encampment at Sinai, chiefly for and Judah respectively 900,000 and 400,000 (2
the purpose of raising money for the Tabernacle. Sam. xxiv. 1, 9, and Calmet, ad he. ; 1 Chr. xx'
The numbers then taken amounted to 603,550 1, 5, xxvii. 24; Joseph. Ant. vii. 13, § 1.)
men, which may be presumed to express with 5. The census of David was completed by Solo-
greater precision the round numbers of 600,000 mon, by causing the foreigners and remnants of
who are said to have left Egypt at first (Ex. xii. the conquered nations resident within Palestine to
37). be numbered. Their number amounted to 153,-
2. Again, in the 2d month of the 2d year after 600, and they were employed in forced labor on
the Exodus (Num. i. 2, 3). This census was taken his great architectural works (Josh ix. 27 ; 1 K. v.
for a double purpose, (".) to ascertain the number 15, ix. 20, 21 1 Chr. xxii. 2; 2 Chr. ii. 17, 18).
;
of fighting men from the age of 20 to 50 (Joseph. Between this time and the Captivity, mention is
Ant. iii. 12, § 4). The total number on this occa- made of the numbers of armies under successive
sion, exclusive of the Levites, amounted at this time kings of Israel and Judah, from which may be
also to 603,550 (Num. ii. 32), Josephus says 603,- gathered with more or less probability, and with
650; each tribe was numbered, and placed under a due consideration of the circumstances of the times
special leader, the head of the tribe, (b.) To as- as influencing the numbers of the levies, estimates
certain the amount of the redemption offering due of the population at the various times mentioned.
on account of all the first-born both of persons and 6. Rehoboam (n. c. 975-958) collected from"
cattle. Accordingly the numbers were taken of all Judah and Benjamin 180,000 men to fight against
the first-born male persona of the whole nation aboveJeroboam (1 K. xii. 21).
one month old, including all of the tribe of Levi 7. Abijam (958-955), with 400,000 men, made
of the same age. The Levites, whose numbers war on Jeroboam with 800,000, of whom 500,000
amounted to 22.000, were taken in lieu of the first- were slain (2 Chr. xiii. 3, 17).
born males of the rest of Israel, whose numbers 8. Asa (955-914) had an army of 300,000 men
were 22,273, and tbr the surplus of 273 a money from Judah, and 280,000 (Josephus says 250,000)
payment of 1365 shekels, or 5 shekels each, was from Benjamin, with which he defeated Zerah the
made to Aaron and his sons (Num. iii. 39, 51). Ethiopian, with an army of 1,000,000 (2 Chr. xiv.
If the numbers in our present copies, from which 8, 9; Joseph. Ant. viii. 12, § 1).
those given by Josephus do not materially differ, Jehoshaphat (914-891), besides men in gar-
9.
be correct, it seems likely that these two number- risons, had under arms 1,160,000 men, including
ings were in fact one, but applied to different pur- perhaps subject foreigners (2 Chr. xvii. 14-19;
poses. We can hardly otherwise account for the Jahn, Hist. v. 37).
identity of numbers even within the few months 10. Amaziah (838-811) had from Judah and
of interval (Calmet on Num. i. Pictorial Bible, Benjamin 300,000, besides 100,000 mercenaries
ibid.). It may be remarked that the system of from Israel (2 Chr. xxv. 5, 6).
appointing head men in each tribe as leaders, as 11. LT zziah (811-759) could bring into the field
well as the care taken in preserving the pedigrees 307,500 men (307,000, Josephus), well armed, under
of the families corresponds with the practice of the 2600 officers (2 Chr. xxvi. 11-15; Joseph. Ant. ix.
Arab tribes at the present day (Crichton, Arabia. 10, § 3).
ii. 185, 186; Niebuhr. Descr. de V Arable, 14: Besides these more general statements, we have
Buckingham, Arab Tribes, 88 Jahn, Hist Book other and partial notices of numbers indicating
;
ii. 8, 11; Malcolm, Sketches of Persia, xiv. 157, population. Thus, (a.) Gideon from 4 tribes col-
159). lected 32,000 men (Judg. vi. 35, vii. 3). (b.)
3. Another numbering took place 38 years after- Jephthah put to death 42,000 Ephraimites (Judg.
wards, previous to the entrance into Canaan, when xii. 6). The numbers of Ephraim 300 years before
the total number, excepting the Levites, amounted were 32,500 (Num. xxvi. 37). (c.) Of Benjamin
to 601,730 males, showing a decrease of 1.870. All 25,000 were slain at the battle of Gibeah, by which
tribes presented an increase except the following: slaughter, and that of the inhabitants of its cities,
Reuben, [showing a decrease] of 2,770; Simeon, the tribe was reduced to 600 men. Its numbers
37,100; Gad, 5,150; Ephraim and Naphtali, 8,000 in the wilderness were 45,600 (Num. xxvi. 41;
each. The tribe of Levi had increased by 727 Judg. xx. 35, 46). (f/.) The number of those who
(Num. xxvi.). The great diminution which took joined David after Saul's death, besides the tribe
place in the tribe of Simeon may probably be as- of Issachar, was 340,922 (1 Chr. xii. 23-38). (e.) At
signed to the plague consequent on the misconduct the time when Jehoshaphat could muster 1,160,000
of Zimri (Calmet, on Num. xxv. 9). On the other men, Ahab in Israel could only bring 7000 against
hand, the chief instances of increase are found in the Syrians (1 K. xx. 15). (/*.) The numbers car-
Manasseh, of 20,500; Benjamin, 10,200; Asher, ried captive to Babylon B. C. 599 from Judah, are
11,900, and Issachar, 9,900. None were numbered said (2 K. xxiv. 14, 16) to have been from 8000 to
at this census who had been above 20 years of age 10,000, by Jeremiah 4600 (Jer. Hi. 30).
at the previous one in the 2d year, excepting Caleb 12. The number of those who returned with
and Joshua (Num. xxvi. 63-65). Zerubbabel in the first caravan is reckoned at 42,-
4. The next formal numbering of the whole 360 (Ezr. ii. 64); but of these perhaps 12,542
people was in the reign of David, who in a moment belonged to other tribes than Judah and Benjamin.
of presumption, contrary to the advice of Joab, gave It is thus that the difference between the total
orders to number the people without requiring the (ver. 64) and the several details is to be accounted
statutable offering of £ a shekel. The men of Israel for. The purpose of this census, which does not
above 20 years of age were 800,000, and of Judah materially differ from the statement in Nehemiah
500,000, total 1,300,000. The book of Chron. gives (Neh. vii.), was to settle with reference to the year
CENSUS CENSITS 405
of Jubilee the inheritances in theHoly Land, which tains about 166 sq. miles, and in 1850 contained
had been disturbed by the Captivity, and also to a population of 145,000, or 873 to the sq. mile.
ascertain the family genealogies, and ensure, as far The population of Malta in 1849 was 115,804, or
as possible, the purity of the Jewish race (Ezr. ii. 1,182 to the sq. mile. The two last instances, there-
59, x. 2, 8, 18, 44; Ixv. xxv. 10). fore, alone supply an average superior to that
In the second caravan, B. c. 458, the number ascribed to Palestine in the time of David, while
was 1,4'J6. Women and children are in neither the average of Judah and Benjamin in the time of
case included (Ezr. viii. 1-14). Jehoshaphat, would seem, with the exception men-
It was probably for kindred objects that the tioned above, to give 1,480 to the sq. mile, a popula-
pedigrees and enumerations which occupy the first tion exceeded only, in England, by the county of
!t chapters of the 1st book of Chronicles were either Middlesex (6,683), and approached by that of Lan-
composed before the Captivity, or compiled after- cashire (1,064).
wards from existing records by Ezra and others (1 But while, on the one hand, great doubt rests on
Chr. iv. 38, 32, 39, v. 9, vi. 57, 81, vii. 28, ix. 2). the genuineness of numerical expressions in O. T.
In the course of these we meet with notices of the it must be considered on the other, that the read-
numbers of the tribes, but at what periods is uncer- ings on which our version is founded give, with
tain. Thus Keuben, Gad, and half the tribe of trifling variations, the same results as those pre-
Manasseh are set down at 44,760 (v. 18), Issachar sented by the LXX. and by Josephus (Jahn, v. 36;
at 87,000 (vii. 5), Benjamin 59,434 (vii. 7, 9, 11), Winer, Znhlen; Glasse, Phil. Sacr. Ju caussis cor-
Asher 20,000 (vii. 40). Besides there are to be ruptkmis, i. § 23, vol. ii. p. 189).
reckoned priests, Levites, and residents at Jerusalem In the list of cities occupied by the tribe of Judah,
from the tribes of Benjamin, Ephraim, and Manasseh including Simeon, are found 123 " with their vil-
(ix. 3). lages," and by Benjamin 26. Of one city, Ai,
Throughout all these accounts two points are situate in Benjamin, which like many, if not all the
clear. 1. That great pains were taken to ascertain others, was walled, we know that the population,
and register the numbers of the Jewish people at probably exclusive of children, was 12,000, whilst
various times for the reasons mentioned above. 2. of Gibeon it is said that it was larger than Ai
That the numbers given in some cases can with (Josh. viii. 25, 29, x. 2, xv. 21-02, xviii. 21-28,
difficulty be reconciled with other numbers of no xix. 1-9). If these " cities " jnay be taken as
very distant date, as well as with the presumed samples of the rest, it is clear that Southern Pales-
capacity of the country for supporting population. tine, at least, was very populous before the entrance
Thus the entire male population above 20 years of of the people of Israel.
age, excepting Levi and Benjamin, at David's cen- But Josephus, in his accounts (1) of the popula-
sus, is given as 1,300,000 or 1,570,000 (2 Sam. tion of Galilee in his own time, and (2) of the
xxiv. 1 1 Chr. xxi.), strangers 153,600, total numbers congregated at Jerusalem at the time of
;
1,453,600 or 1,723,000. These numbers (the ex- the Passover, shows a large population inhabiting
cepted tribes being borne in mind) represent a Palestine. He says there were many cities in
population of not less than 4 times this amount, or Galilee, besides villages, of which the least, whether
at least 5,814,000, of whom not less than 2,000,000 cities or villages is not quite certain, had not less
belonged to Judah alone (2 Sam. xxiv. 9). About than 15,000 inhabitants (B. J. iii. 3, § 2, 4; comp.
100 years after Jehoshaphat was able to gather from Tac. Hist. v. 8). After the defeat of Ostitis, .v. i>.
Judah and Benjamin (including subject foreigners) 66, before the formal outbreak of the war, a census
an army of 1,160,000 besides garrisons, represent- taken at Jerusalem by the priests, of the numbers
ing a population of 4,640,000. Fifty years later, assembled there for the Passover, founded on the
Amaziah could only raise 300,000 from the same number of lambs sacrificed, compared with the prob-
2 tribes, and 27 years after this, Uzziah had 307,- able number of persons partaking, gave 2,700,000
500 men and 2,600 officers. Whether the number persons, besides foreigners and those who were ex-
of the foreigners subject to Jehoshaphat constitutes cluded by ceremonial defilement (see Tac. Hist. v.
the difference at these periods must remain uncer- 12). In the siege itself 1,100,000 perished, and
tain. during the war 97,000 were made captives. Besides
To compare these estimates with the probable these many deserted to the Romans, and were dis-
capacity of the country, the whole area of Palestine, missed by them (B. J. vi. 8, 9, 3). These numbers,
including the trans-Jordanie tribes, so far as it is on any supposition of foreign influx (6/j.6<pv\oi> dAA.'
possible to ascertain their limits, may be set down ouk eTrtxwpiov) imply a large native population;
as not exceeding 11,000 square miles; Judah and and 63 years later, in the insurrection of Barcho-
Benjamin at 3,135, and Galilee at 930 sq. miles. chebas, >iou Cassius says that 50 fortified towns
I
The population, making allowance for the excepted and 980 villages were destroyed, and 580,000 per-
tribes, would thus be not less than 530 to the sons were slain in war, besides a countless multitude
square mile. Now the population of Belgium in who perished by famine, fire, and disease, bo that
1850 was 4,426,202, or at the rate of 388 to the, Palestine became almost depopulated (Dion ass. I
sq. mile, the area being about 11,400 sq. miles. lxix. 14).
The area of the kingdom of Saxony is 5,752 sq.
Lastly, there are abundant traces throughout the
miles, and its population in JX52 was 1,987,832. or
whole of Palestine of a much higher rate of fertility
an average of 345J, but in Some districts 500, to in former as compared with present times, a fertility
the sq. mile. The counties of Yorkshire, West- remarked by profane writers, and of which the
moreland (the least populous county in England), present neglected Btate of cultivation affords no test.
and Lancashire, whose united area is 8,642 sq. This, combined with the positive divine promises of
miles, contained in 1852 a population of 3,850,215, populousness, increases the probability of at least
or rather more than 445 to the sq. mile; while the approximate correctness in the foregoing estimates
county of Lancashire alone gave 1,064 persons, the of population (Tac. Ili.<t. v. 0; Amm. Blare, xiv
West Kiding of Yorkshire 496, and Warwickshire 8; Joseph. B. J. iii. 3; St. Jerome on Ezek. xx.,
539 to the sq. mile. The island of Barbadoes con- and Rabbinical authorities in Reland, c. xxvi. Shaw, ;
406 CENTURION CHAFF
Travels, ii. pt. 2, c. 1, pp. 336, 340, Has- man was the Son of God." The name of Cornelius
and 275 ;
appear before the Censors, and give his own name tesy and kindness, and, as may be inferred from the
and his father's; if married, that of his wife, and ascendency which the apostle gained over him
the number and ages of his children after this an during the vo)'age, was capable of appreciating the
:
account and valuation of his property, on which a noble character and rare endowments of his pris j
tax was then imposed. By the lists thus obtained oner. H.
every man's position in the state was regulated. CE'PHAS [Kr,<pas]. [Peter.]
After these duties had been performed, a lustrum,
CE'RAS (KTjpas: Carke), 1 Esdr. v. 29.
or solemn purification of the people followed, but [Keros.]
not always immediately (Diet, of Antiq. arts. Cen-
sus, Lustrum ; Dionys. iv. 15, 22 ; Cic. de Legg.
* CESAR,
A. V. ed. 1611, etc. [Cesar.]
iii. 3; Dig. 50, tit. 15; Cod. 11, tit. 48; Clinton,
* CESARE'A, A. V. ed. 1611, etc. [Ces-
Fast. Hell. iii. p. 457, c. 10). area.]
The census was taken, more or less regularly, in CE'TAB (KtjtcS/3: Cetha), 1 Esdr. v. 30.
the provinces, under the Republic, by provincial There is no name corresponding with this in the
censors, and the tribute regulated at their discretion lists of Ezra and Nehemiah.
(Cic. Vtrr. ii. lib. ii. 53, 56 ), but no complete census
CHA'BRIS ('APpis, [Xa/3pis Vat. Sin.] ;
was made before the time of Augustus, who carried Alex. XaQpeis: Vulg. omits [exc. Jud. viii. 10
(9)
out 3 general inspections of this kind, namely, Chabri]), the son of Gothoniel
(6 tov I\), one of
(1) b. c. 28; (2) b. c. 8; (3) a. i>. 14; and a the three "rulers"
(iipxovTes), or '-ancients"
partial one, a. d. 4. The reason of the partial ex- (irpsafrvrepoi) of Bethuha, in the time of Judith
tent of this last was that he feared disturbances out (Jud. vi. x.
15, viii. 10, 6).
of Italy, and also that he might not appear as an
exactor. Of the returns made, Augustus himself
CHADIAS. " They of Chadias (oi XaStaaai
[Alex. OvxaSiaaaf. Aid. oi XoSi'as]), and Am-
kept an accurate account (breviarium), like a private
midioi," according to 1 Esdr. v. 20, returned from
man of his property (Dion Cass. liv. 35, lv. 13;
Babylon with Zorobabel. There are no correspond-
Suet. Aug. 27, 101; Tac. Ann. i. 11; Tab. Ancyr.
ing names in Ezra and Nehemiah.
ap. Tac. ii. 188, Ernesti).
* Fritzsche (Exeg. Handb. in loc.) identifies
A special assessment of Gaul under commissioners Chadias with Kedesh, Josh. xv. 23. A.
sent for the purpose is mentioned in the time of
Tiberius (Tac. Ann. i. 31, ii. 6 Liv. Ep. 134,
* CH^E'REAS, the proper orthography for
;
the Arabs call tibn to this day. The derivation of 2 K. xxv. 7; Jer. xxxix. 7). Among the Romans,
the word is doubtful. Gesenius was of opinion that the prisoner was hand-cuffed to one, and occasionally
was the case among the Hebrews (Prov. i. 9). The by Pliny as resembling the green and blue tints
which are seen on a peacock's tail, or on a pigeon's
necklace (p2^) consisted of pearls, corals, &c,
neck. Mr. King (Antique Gems, p. 8) says it was
threaded on a string; the beads were called a kind of inferior emerald,
as Pliny understood it.
a '<
Our calcedony being often opalescent — i. c. hav- MS. Marbodus already under-
tinually interchanged in
«g something of Pliny's '' Carbunculortun ignes " in stood it of our Calcedony, as shown by his n Pal-
it — got
confounded with the Oarchcdonius or Punic lcnsque Chalcedonius ignis habet efflgiem." C. \V. —
carbuncle of a pale color, and this again with his green King.
Chalcedonius. Kapxi&di'ios and KaAxrjSdfios are con-
408 CHALCOL CHALDEA
the sapphire is the lapis lazuli, it is also met with what and in fact would vary according
ill-defined,
in certain parts of Syria." to the degree of skill and industry devoted to the
It is surprising to notice with what familiarity regulation of the waters and the extension of works
the sacred writers refer to the names and qualities for irrigation. In the most flourishing times of
of precious stones. This is specially true of John in the Chaldrean empire the water seems to have been
the Apocalypse (xxi. 18-21), who exhibits a knowl- brought to the extreme limit of the alluvium, a
edge of such matters which an expert only in this canal having been cut along the edge of the ter-
species of learning among us would be expected to tiary formation on the Arabian side throughout its
possess. But where such stones abound entire extent, running at an average distance from
in the East,
and are applied to so many uses, persons of the the Euphrates of about 30 miles.
most ordinary intelligence in other respects show 2. General character of the country. The —
themselves almost the equals of artisans and general aspect of the country is thus described by
scholars. " I venture to say " (says the writer just
a modern traveller, who well contrasts its condition
quoted), " that this donke}-boy coming to meet now with the appearance which it must have pre-
us could confound nine-tenths of Bible-readers in sented in ancient times. " In former days," he
America by his familiar acquaintance with the says, " the vast plains of Babylon were nourished
names, appearance, and relative value of the precious by a complicated system of canals and water courses,
stones mentioned in the Word of God. We
need which spread over the surface of the country like a
not be surprised, therefore, at the constant mention net-work. The wants of a teeming population were
of them by plain and unlettered prophets and supplied by a rich soil, not less bountiful than that
apostles. John was not a scholar nor a lapidary, on the banks of the Egyptian Nile. Like islands
and yet he is perfectly at home among precious rising from a golden sea of waving corn, stood
stones, and without effort gives a list which has frequent groves of palm-trees and pleasant gardens,
puzzled and does still puzzle our wisest scholars .affording to the idler or traveller their grateful and
even to understand, nor are they yet agreed in highly-valued shade. Crowds of passengers hurried
regard to them. In our translation, and in every along the dusty roads to and from the busy city.
other with which I am acquainted, the same Hebrew The land was rich in corn and wine. How changed
word is made to stand for entirely different gems, is the aspect of that region at the present day!
and lexicographers, commentators, and critics are Long lines of mounds, it is true, mark the courses
equally uncertain." H. of those main which formerly diffused life
arteries
CHAL'COL, 1 K. iv. 31. [Calcol.] and vegetation along their banks, but their chan-
nels are now bereft of moisture and choked with
CHALDE'A, more correctly CHALDSEA drifted sand the smaller offshoots are wholly
;
'
(3* 7TEi73
l
: j) XctA.5ai'a: Chaldcea) is properly only effaced. ' A drought is upon her waters,' says the
!
however, in our version, for the Hebrew ethnic ap- remains of that ancient civilization that glory — '
"
times is vanished, and no man dwells there."
22) but if Ur was already a city " of the Casdim
;
(Loftus's Chaldceq, pp. 14, 15.) The cause of the
before Abraham quitted it (Gen. xi. 28), the name change is to be found in the neglect of man.
of Casdim cannot possibly have been derived from " There is no physical reason," the same writer
his nephew. On the other hand the term Chaldsea observes, " why Babylonia should not be as beauti-
has been connected with the city Kakeadha (Chil- ful and as thickly inhabited as in days of yore; a
mad of Ezekiel, xxvii. 23). This is possibly correct. little care and labor bestowed on the ancient canals
At any rate, in searching for an etymology it should woidd again restore the fertility and population
be borne in mind that Kaldi or Kaldai, not Casdim, which it originally possessed." The prosperity and
is the native form. fertility of the country depend entirely on the reg-
Extent and boundaries.
1. —
The tract of country ulation of the waters. Carefully and properly ap-
viewed in Scripture as the land of the Chaldaeans plied and husbanded, they are sufficient to make
is that vast alluvial plain which has been formed the entire plain a garden. Left to themselves, they
by the deposits of the Euphrates and the Tigris — desert the river courses to accumulate in lakes and
at least so far as it lies to the west of the latter marshes, leaving large districts waterless, and others
stream. The country to the east is Elam or most scantily supplied, while they overwhelm tracts
Susiana; but the entire tract between the rivers, formerly under cultivation, which become covered
as well as the low country on the Arabian side of with a forest of reeds, and during the summer heats
the Euphrates, which is cultivable by irrigation breed a pestilential miasma. This is the present
from that stream, must be considered as comprised condition of the greater part of Babylonia under
within the Chaldsea of which Nebuchadnezzar was Turkish rule the evil is said to be advancing and
; ;
king. This extraordinary flat, unbroken except by the whole country threatens to become within a
the works of man, extends, in a direction nearly short time either marsh or desert.
N. W. and S. E., a distance of 400 miles along the 3. Divisions. —
In a country so uniform and so
course of the rivers, and is on the average about devoid of natural features as this, political divisions
100 miles in width. A line drawn from Hit on could be only accidental or arbitrary. Few are
the Euphrates to Tekrit on the Tigris, may be con- found of any importance. The true ChaWssa, as
sidered to mark its northern limits; the eastern has been always in the geog-
already noticed, is
boundary is the Tigris itself; the southern the raphers a most southern
distinct region, being the
Persian Gulf; on the west its boundary is some- portion of Babylonia, lying chiefly (if not solely) on
CHALDEA CHALDEANS 409
the right bank of the Euphrates (Strab. xvi. 1, § ; direction a distance of 40 miles, from about lat. 31°
Ptol. v. 20). Babylonia above this is separated 53', long. 44°, to lat. 31° 26', long. 44° 35'. Its
into two districts, called respectively Amordacia and greatest width 35 miles. isIt lies thus on the
Auranitis. The former is the name of the central right bank of the Euphrates, from which it is dis-
territory round Babylon itself; the latter is applied tant (at the nearest point) about 20 miles, and re-
to the regions towards the north, where Babylonia ceives from it a certain quantity of water at the
borders on Assyria (l'tol. v. 20). time of the inundation, which flows through it,
4. Cities. — Babylonia was celebrated at all and is carried back to the Euphrates at Samava,
times for the number and antiquity of its cities. by a natural river course known as the Skat-el.
" Babel, and Erech, and Acead, and Calneh in the Atchan. Above and below the Sea of Nedjef,
land of Shinar," are the first towns mentioned in from the Birs-Nimrud to Kufa, and from the
Scripture (Gen. x. 10). The " vast number of great south-eastern extremity of the Sea to Samava, ex-
cities " which the country possessed, was noted by tend the famous Chaldiean marshes (Strab. xvi. 1,
Herodotus (i. 178), and the whole region is in fact § 12; Arrian, Exp. Al. vii. 22), where Alexander
studded with huge mounds, each mound marking was nearly lost, but these are entirely distinct from
beyond a doubt the site of a considerable town. the sea itself, depending on the state of the Hindi-
The most important of those which have been yp)i canal, and disappearing altogether when that is
other side of the stream, a large canal, perhaps the great extent covered with marshes, owing to the
most important of all, leaving the Euphrates at same neglect. Thus it is at once true that " the
Hit, where the alluvial plain commences, skirted sea has come up upon Babylon and she is covered
the deposit on the west along its entire extent, and with the waves thereof" (Jer. li. 42); that she is
fell into the Persian Gulf at the head of the Bvbian
made " a possession for the bittern, and pools of
creek, about 20 miles west of the Shat-el- Arab
water" (Is. xiv. 23); and also that "a drought is
while a second main artery (the Fallacopas of Ar- upon her waters, and they are dried up " (Jer. 1.
rian) branched from the Euphrates nearly at Mo-
38), that she is " wholly desolate " " the hinder- —
saib, and ran into a great lake in the neighborhood
most of the nations, a wilderness, a dry land, and
of Borsippa, whence the lands to the southwest of
a desert " (ib. 12, 13). (See Loftus's Chaldasa
Babylon were irrigated. From these and other and Susiana; Layard's Nineveh and Huh. chs.
similar channels, numerous branches were carried
xxi.-xxiv. ; Rawlinson's Herodotus, vol. i. Essay
out, from which further cross cuts were made, until
ix. ; and Mr. Taylor's Paper Journal of the
in the
at length every field was duly supplied with the
Asiatic Society, vol. xv. [Also: Rawhnson,
precious fluid. F'u-r Great Monarchies of the Ancient Heathen
6. Sea of Nedjef, Chaldcean marshes, tfc. — World, vol. i. Lond. 18ii-2; and Oppert, Histoire
Chaldaea contains one natural feature deserving of des empires de Chaldee et (PAssyrie d'apres lea
special description — the '-great inland freshwater monuments, Versailles, 1800 (from the Annates de
sea of Nedjef" (Loftus, p. 45). This sheet of philos. chretienne, 1805). A.]). G. R.
water, which does not owe its origin to the inunda-
tions, but is a permanent lake of considerable
or CHALDE'ANS, CHAI/DEES
depth, surrounded by cliffs of a reddish sandstone (Q^tt'S Xa\8a?oi. Chaldm), appear in Script- :
in places 40 feet high, extends in a south-east erly ure until the time of the Captivity, as the people
410 CHALDEANS CHALK STONES
of the country which has Babylon for its capital, Hence all who
studied it, whatever their origin or
race were, on account of their knowledge, termed
and which is itself termed Shinar (""137312.) ; but
Chaldaeans. In this sense Daniel himself, the
in the book of Daniel, while this meaning is still
"master of the Chaldaeans" (Dan. v. 11), would
found (v. 30, and ix. 1), a new sense shows itself. no doubt have been reckoned among them; and so
The Chaldaeans are classed with the magicians and we find Seleucus, a Greek, called a Chaldaean by
astronomers; and evidently form a sort of priest Strabo (xvi. 1, § 6). It may be doubted whether
class, who have a peculiar "tongue" and "learn-
the Chaldaeans at any time were all priests, though
ing" (ii. 4), and are consulted by the king on re- no doubt priests were required to be Chaldaeans.
ligious subjects. The same variety appears in pro- They were really the learned class, who by their
fane writers. Berosus. the native historian, himself acquaintance
with the language of science had bo-
* Chaldaean in the narrower sense (Tatian, Or. come its depositaries. They were priests, magi-
adv. Gr. 58), uses the term only in the wider; cians,
or astronomers, as their preference for one or
while Herodotus, Diodorus, Strabo, and the later other
of those occupations inclined them and in ;
writers almost universally employ it to signify a the last of the three they probably
capacities
sect or portion of the people, whom they regard effected discoveries of great importance.
either as priests or as philosophers. With this According to Strabo, who well distinguishes (xvi.
view, however, is joined another, which but ill har-
1, § 6) between the learned Chaldaeans and the
monizes with it; namely, that the Chaldaeans are mere race descended from the ancient Kaldi, which
the inhabitants of a particular part of Babylonia, continued to predominate in the country bordering
viz., the country bordering on the Persian Gulf and
upon Arabia and the Gulf, there were two chief
on Arabia (Strab. xvi. 1, § 6; Ptol. v. 20). By seats of Chaldaean learning, Borsippa, and Ur or
help of the inscriptions recently discovered in the Orchoe. To these we may add from Pliny (//. N.
country, these discrepancies and apparent contra- vi. 26) two others, Babylon, and Sippara or Se-
dictions are explicable. pharvaim. The Chaldaeans (it would appear) con-
It appears that the Chaldteans (Kaldai or Kaldi) gregated into bodies, forming what we may perhaps
were in the earliest times merely one out of the call universities, and pursuing the studies, in which
many Cushite tribes inhabiting the great alluvial they engaged, together. They probably mixed up
plain known afterwards as Chaldaea or Babylonia. to some extent astrology with their astronomy,
Their special seat was probably that southern por- even in the earlier times, but they certainly made
tion of the country which is found to have so late- great advances in astronomical science, to which
retained the name of 'haldaea.
( Here was Ur " of their serene sky, transparent atmosphere, and reg-
the Chaldees," the modern Mugheir, which lies ular horizon specially invited them. The observa-
south of the Euphrates, near its junction with the tions, covering a space of 1903 years, which Callis-
Shat-el-IIie. Hence would readily come those thenes sent to Aristotle from Babylon (Simplic. ad
"three bands of Chaldoeans" who were instru- Arist. de Gael. ii. 123), indicate at once the antiq-
ments, simultaneously with the Sabceans, in the uity of such knowledge in the country, and the care
affliction of Job (Job. i. 15-17). In process of with which it had been preserved by the learned
time, as the Kaldi grew in power, their name grad- class. In later times they seem certainly to have
ually prevailed over that of the other tribes inhabit- degenerated into mere fortune-tellers (Cic. de Div.
ing the country ; and by the era of the Jewish Cap- i. 1; Aul. Cell. i. 9; Juv. vi. 552, x. 94, &c): but
tivity it had begun to be used generally for all the this reproach is not justly levelled against the Chal-
inhabitants of Babylonia. We
may suspect that daeans of the empire, and indeed it was but par-
when the name is applied by Berosus to the dynas tially deserved so late as the reign of Augustus (»•»
ties which preceded the Assyrian, it is by way of Strab. xvi. 1, § 6). G. R.
prolepsis. The dynasty of Nabopolassar, however,
was (it is probable) really Chaldaean, and this
greatly helped to establish the wider use of the ap-
pellation. had thus come by this time to have
It
two senses, both ethnic: in the one it was the spe-
cial appellative of a particular race to whom it had
belonged from the remotest times, in the other it
designated the nation at large in which this race
was predominant. We have still to trace its trans-
ference from an ethnic to a mere class sense from —
the name of a people to that of a priest caste or
sect of philosophers.
receiver " in the margin. Erasmus interpreted camelopardalus). In the list of animals allowed
I
the word quaestor wrarii. St. Ambrose thought for food (Deut. xiv. 5) mention is made of the
that the office of the ceconomus principally con- zemer ; the LXX., Vulg., and some other versions,
sisted in regulating the prices of the markets, and give "camelopard" or "giraffe" as the rendering
hence Pancirollus was erroneously led to interpret of this term it is improbable that this animal is
;
the term of the sedile. Theophylact rendered it intended, for although it might have been known
6 5joik7Jtt)s, 6 -rrpovo7)r))s rrjs ir6heu)s Koplvdov, to the ancient Jews from specimens brought into
and is followed by Beza, who gives procurator. Egypt as tributes to the Pharaohs from Ethiopia,
In an inscription in the Marm. Oxon. (p. 85, where the giraffe is found, it is in the highest degree
ed. 1732) we find NeiAy oiKovSfxq 'Aalas; and in improbable that it should ever have been named as
another, mention is made of Miletus, who was an article of food in the Levitical law, the animals
ceconomus of Smyrna (Ins. xxx. 26; see Prideaux's mentioned therein being doubtless all of them such
note, p. 477). Another in (p. mxci. 7, ed. as were well known and readily procured.
Gruter The
Scaliger, 1616) contains name of " Secundus "chamois" of the A. V. can hardly be allowed to
the
Arkirius Keipublicae Amerinorum " but the one represent the zemer
; ;for although, as Col. H.
which bears most upon our point is given by Orel- Smith asserts, this antelope is still found in Central
lius (No. 2821), and mentions the "arcarius pro- Asia, there is no evidence that it has ever been seen
vincue Achaise." in Palestine or the Lebanon. The etymology
For further information see Reinesius, Syntagm. points to some "springing" or "leaping" animal,
Inscr. p. 431; La Cerda, Advers. Sacr. cap. 56; a definition which would suit any of the Antelopew
Eisner, Obs. Sacr. ii. 68 and a note by Reinesius
;
us), 1 Esdr. viii. 48. This answers to Merari, if to been founded or settled by Joab, a man of the tribe
anything, in the parallel list of Ezra (viii. 19). of Judah and family of Othniel; and Neh. xi. 35,
as being reinhabited by Benjamites after the Cap-
* CHANOCH, Gen. iv. 17, marg. A form tivity. In this [the latter] passage it is rendered
of Enoch, more nearly representing the Hebrew.
'•valley of craftsmen" [Alex, yrj Apaaifx]- Its
A. mention by Nehemiah with Lod (Lydda), Neballat,
* CHAPEL occurs in Am. vii. 13 as the trans- etc., fixes its position as in the swelling ground at
914): at Kf(pa\ai- capita. The upper member of * The A. V. ed. 1611, and apparently in most
a pillar —
the same word which is now in use in xiitions, if not all, reads CABCHAMIS. A.
the slightly different form of " capital; " also possi-
CHAR CHEMISH (tt?^?"]? : LXX. [in
bly a roll moulding at the top of a building or work
most MSB.] omits; [Comp. Xapx aM el's :
] (-liuroi-
of art, as in the case (a) of the pillars of the Tab-
mis), 2 Chr. xxxv. 20. [Carchemish.]
ernacle and Temple, and of the two pillars called
especially Jachin and Boaz; and (b) of the lavers (Bapxove; [Yat. M. Bapxovs, CHAR'CUS
belonging to the Temple (Ex. xxxviii. 17; 1 K. vii.
H. Baxovs; Aid. XapKovs-] Barcus), 1 Esdr. v.
27, 31, 38). As to the form and dimensions of
32. Corrupted from BAKKOS, the corresponding
the former, see Tabernacle, Temple, Boaz, name in the parallel lists of Ezra and Nehemiah —
and of the latter, Layer. (3.) The word ttJrfl, possibly by a change of 3 into 3. But it does not
rosh := head, is also occasionally rendered " Chap- appear whence the translators of the A. V. got
iter," as in the description of the Tabernacle, Ex. their reading of the name. [Evidently from the
CHAREA CHARIOT 413
Aldine edition.] In the edition of 1611 it is number of its Thus Pharaoh in pursuing
chariots.
"Chareus." Israel took with him 000 chariots. The Canaan-
itesof the valleys of Palestine were enabled to resist
CHA'REA (Xapea; [Vat. omits:] Caree), 1
the Israelites successfully in consequence of the
Esdr. v. 32. [Harsha.]
number of their chariots of iron, i. e. perhaps
CHARGER (1.
•"^V' 7 from a
'
root s[ '-i ul(y- armed with iron scythes (Ges. s. v. ; Josh. xvii.
ing hollowness: rpvUKiov, kotv\t]- acetabulum. 18; Judg. i. 19). Jabin, king of Canaan, had 900
chariots (Judg. iv. 3). The Philistines in Saul's
2. vt2~T2H : yvKT-hp '• phiula ; only found Ezr. i.
time had 30,000, a number which seems excessive
9), a shallow vessel for receiving water or blood, (1 Sam. xiii. 5; but comp. LXX. and Joseph. Ant.
also for presenting offerings of fine flour with oil vi. 6, § 1). David took from Hadadezer king of
(Num. vii. 79; (ies. Thes. 22). The "chargers" Zobah 1000 chariots (2 Sam. viii. 4), and from the
mentioned in Numbers are said to have been of Syrians a little later 700 (x. 18), who in order to
silveiy and to have weighed each 130 shekels, or recover their ground collected
32,000 chariots (1
65 oz. (Hussey, Anc. Weights, c. ix. p. 190). Chr. xix. 7). Up to this time the Israelites pos-
2. The daughter of Herodias brought the head
sessed few or no chariots, partly no doubt in conse-
of St. John Baptist "in a charger," £wl irivaKi quence of the theocratic prohibition against multi-
(Matt. xiv. 8 [11; Mark vi. 25, 28]; probably a plying horses, for fear of intercourse with Egypt,
trencher or platter, as Horn. Od. i. 141: —
and the regal despotism implied in the possession
SaiTpbs 8e Kpeiioi' iriVaxas TrapeOrjKev aet'pas ofthem (Deut. xvii. 10; 1 Sam. viii. 11, 12).
wavroCutv.
But to some extent David (2 Sam. viii. 4), and in
Comp. [TriVa|,Luke xi. 39, A. V. "platter," and] a much greater degree Solomon, broke through the
Luke i. 03, irivaKtStov, a writing-tablet. [Basin.] prohibition from seeing the necessity of placing his
H. W. P. kingdom, under its altered circumstances, on a
footing of military equality or superiority towards
* The English "charger" as "that on which
other nations. He raised, therefore, and main-
anything is laid, a dish," comes from the French
tained a force of 1400 chariots (1 K. x. 25) by
charger, and the old English charge, i. e. "to
taxation on certain cities agreeably to Eastern cus-
load." The A. V. lenders PH
^p dish'm Ex. xxv. tom in such matters (1 K. ix. 19, x. 25; Xen.
29, xxxvii. 10, and Num. iv. 7. H. Anab. i. 4, 9). The chariots themselves and also
the horses were imported chiefly from Egypt, and
* CHARGES. " Be at charges with them "
the cost of each chariot was 600 shekels of silver,
A. Y. Acts xxi. 24, or rather for them " (Sawdvr)-
and of each horse 150 (1 K. x. 29). [Shekel.]
o~ov eV ai/Tols), means "pay the expense of their
From this time chariots were regarded as among
offerings." A.
the most important arms of war, though the sup-
CHARIOT. (1.) 2!H, from XH,
to ride: plies of them and of horses appear to have been
ap/j.a- currus : sometimes including the horses (2 still mainly drawn from Egypt (1 K. xxii. 34; 2
K. ix. 16, 21, xiii. 7, 14, xviii. 24, xxiii. 30; Is.
Sam. viii. 4, x. 18). (2.) 2^3"^, a chariot or horse
xxxi. 1). The prophets also allude frequently to
(Ps. civ. 3). (3.) 23"1T2, m. from same root as chariots as typical of power, Ps. xx. 7, civ. 3 ; Jer.
which were often of different colors, wore only a The car appears to have had closed sides. The war
breast-band and girths which were attached to the chariot wheels had spokes; the state or peace
saddle, together with head furniture consisting of chariot 8 or more, and a third person in state pro-
cheek pieces, throat-lash, head stall and straps cessions carried the royal umbrella. third horse, A
across the forehead and nose. A bearing-rein was like the Greek irapTjopos, was generally attached
fastened to a ring or hook in front of the saddle, (Layard, Nineveh, ii. 350).
and the driving-reins passed through other rings In later times the third horse was laid aside, the
on each side of both horses. From the central wheels were made higher, and had 8 spokes; and
point of the saddle rose a short stem of metal, end- the front of the car, to which the quiver was re-
4. [Hakan.]
The Persian art, as appears from the sculptures
at Persepolis, and also at Kouyunjik, shows great CHASE. [Hunting.]
similarity to the Assyrian; but the procession rep- CHAS'EBA (Xan-ePd : Caseba), a name
resented at the former place contains a chariot or among the list of the "Servants of the Temple"
car with wheels of 12 spokes, while from the sculpt- (1 Esdr. v. 31), which has nothing corresponding
ures at the latter, it appears that the Elamites, or to it in Ezra and Nehemiah, and is probably a
Persians, besides chariots containing 2 persons mere corruption of that succeeding it — Gazeka.
which were sometimes drawn by 4 horses, used a * CHA'VAH, Gen. iii. 20, marg. A form of
kind of cart drawn by a single mule or more, con-
Eve, more nearly representing the Hebrew. A.
sisting of a stage on high wheels capable of hold-
in" 5 or 6 persens, of whom the driver sat on a * CHAWS,
an old form for jaws, Ez. xxix. 4
low stool, with his legs hanging on each side of the and xxxviii. 4, in A. V. ed. Kill and other early
pole. (Xenoph. Cyrop. iv. 3, 1, and 2, § 22; Is. editions. A.
Ez. xxiii. 24 ; Niebuhr, Voyage, ii. 105
xxii. 6 ;
a * The writer has here followed the erroneous ren- denoted by D^pt^P, the naces by CHi^n^nd the
dering of the A. V. in 1 K. vii. 33. According to the
best lexicographers and commentators the spokes are felloes by C33. A.
416 CHEBEL CHEESE
That Chaldasa, not upper Mesopotamia, was the next year, however, he and his allies marched upon
scene of Ezekiel's preaching, is indicated by the their country, and after defeating many neighbor-
tradition which places his tomb at Kejfil (Loftus's ing tribes, encountered the five kings of the plain
Chaldeea, p. 35). G. R. in the vale of Siddim. He completely routed them
slew the kings of Sodom and Gomorrah, and car-
CHEBEL (b^n), one of the singular topo-
ried away much spoil, together with the family of
graphical terms in which the ancient Hebrew lan-
Lot. Chedorlaomer seems to have perished in the
guage abounded, and which give so much force and rescue which
was effected by Abraham upon hear-
precision to its records. The ordinary meaning of ing of the captivity
of his nephew (Gen. xiv. 17).
the word Chebel is a "rope" or "cord;" and in
According to Gesenius the meaning of the word
this sense it frequently occurs both literally (as
Josh. ii. 15, "cord;" 1 K. xx. 31, "ropes;" Is. may be " handful of sheaves, from S\Jo. handful
xxxiii. 23, '• tacklings ;
" Am. vii. 17, "line") and
and "1)33?, sheaf; " but this is unsatisfactory. The
metaphorically (as Feci, xii. 0; Is. v. 18; Hos. xi.
— name of a king is found upon the bricks recently
4). From this it has passed with a curious cor-
respondence to our own modes of speech to de-
pula.
—
discovered in Chaldaea, which is read Kudur-ma-
This man has been supposed to be identical
note a body of men, a " band " (as in Ps. cxix. 61).
with Chedorlaomer, and the opinion is confirmed
In 1 Sam. x. 5, 10, our word "string" would not
be inappropriate to the circumstances a "string —
by the fact that he is further distinguished by a
title which may be translated " Havager of the
of prophets coming down from the high place."
west." " As however one type alone of his legends
Further it is found in other metaphorical senses,
has been discovered," says Col. Eawlinson, "it is
arising out of its original meaning (as Job xviii.
10; Ps. xviii. 4; Jer. xiii. 21). Irom the idea of impossible to pronounce at present on the identifi-
cation. The second element in the name " Chedor-
a measuring-line (Mic. ii. 5), it has come to mean
laomer " is of course distinct from that in " Kudur-
a "portion" or "allotment" (as 1 Chr. xvi. 18;
mapula." Its substitution may be thus accounted
Ps. cv. 11; Ez. xlvii. 13). It is the word used in
for. In the names of Babylonian kings the latter
the familiar passage " the Unes " are fallen unto me
portion is often dropped. Thus Shalmaneser be-
in pleasant places " (Ps. xvi. Ii). But in its topo-
comes Shalman in Hoshea; Merodach-bal-adan,
graphical sense, as meaning a "tract" or "dis-
becomes Mardocempal, &c. Kvdur-mapula might
trict," we find it always attached to the region of
therefore become known as Kudur simply. The
Argob, which is invariably designated by this, and by
no other term (Dent. iii. 4, 13, 14; IK. iv. 13). It epithet "el-Ahmar," | ~- y
'
which means the -,
No clew is afforded us to the reason of this also very possible that the second element in the
1858. )
definite localization of the term ( 'hebel but a com- ;
name of Chedor-laomer, whatever be its true form,
parison of the fact that Argob was taken possession may be a Semitic translation of the original Hamite
of by Manasseh —
a part of the great tribe of Jo- term mapula." " Chedorlaomer may have been
seph — with the use of this word by that tribe, the leader of certain immigrant Chaldsean Elamites
who founded the great Chaldsean empire of Berosus
and by Joshua in his retort, in the very early and
characteristic fragment. Josh. xvii. 5, 14 (A. Y. in the early part of the 20th century b. c, while
"portion"), prompts the suggestion that it may Amraphel and Arioch, the Hamite kings of Shinar
have been a provincialism in use amongst that large and Ellasar, who fought under his banner in the
and independent part of' Israel. Should this be Syrian war as subordinate chiefs, and Tidal, who
thought untenable, its application to the " rocky led a contingent of Median Scyths belonging to the
shore" of Argob may be illustrated and justified may have been the local governors
old population,
by its use (Zeph. ii. 5-7; A. Y. "coast") for the who had submitted to his power when he invaded
"coast line" of the Mediterranean along Philistia. Chaldsea" (Rawlinson's Herod., i. 436, 446).
S. L.
In connection with the sea-shore it is also employed
in Josh. xix. 29. CHEESE mentioned only three times in the
is
The words used for Chebel in the older versions Bible, and on each occasion under a different name
are a-^oivia^a., Trep'i/AeTpov, irepixupov. regio, n3 s 23, from )'D3,
in the Hebrew: (1) to curdle
funiculus. [See Argob, and the addition to
(Job x. 10), referred to, not historically, but by
Bashan in Amer. ed.] G.
a The use of the word in this sense in our own " chain," and also " rood " as applied in the provinces
idiomatic expression —
"hard lines" will not be for- and colonies, to solid measure of wood, &c, are ob-
gotten. Other correspondences between Chebel as ap- vious.
plied to measurement, and our own words " rod " and
CHELAL CHEMOSH 417
cheese of kine, A. V. 2 Sam. xvii. 29: the Vul- Nabuchodonosor to
who obeyed the summons of
gate, following Theodotion's rendering, yaKadrjva his war with Arphaxad (Jud. i. 6). The word is
lxocrxd-pia> ,U Vt '* pingues vitulos, guided by the posi- apparently
r
i
corrupt. Simonis suggests XaAcoi', perh.
tion of the words after " sheep " the Targum and Ctesiphon.: Ewald conjectures it to lie a nickname
other Jewish authorities, however, identify the sub- -
for the Syrians, " sons of the moles " "T Vl (Gesch. !
[Vat. Nex a77^-' Ne ~belonging to the preceding chief families of Judah. The name occurs in 1
word Chalat), Ezr. x. 30 [where he is mentioned Chr. ii. 9 only, and from a comparison of this pas-
:]
as one of the eight sons of Pahath-Moab who had sage with ii. 18 and 42, it would appear to be but
all taken " strange wives "]. another form of the name Caleb. It is worth
noting that, while in this passage Jerahmeel is
CHELCFAS (XeA/ciay: Ilelcicts). 1. Ancestor
stated to be a brother of Chelubai, it appears from
of Baruch (Bar. i. 1).
1 Sam. xxvii. 10 that the Jerahmeelites were placed
2. Hilkiah the high-priest in the time of Isaiah
on the " south of Judah," where also were the pos-
(Bar. i. 7). W. A. W. sessions of the house of Caleb (Judg. i. 15 1 Sam. ;
CHELCFAS (Xe\>clas, l e. TlffiP, the xxv. 3, xxx. 14). In the Syriac Vers, the name is
portion of the Lord, Hilkiah: Helcias), the father UO NOO Said , ; probably a transcriber's error for
of Susanna (Hist, of Sus. 2, 29, 63). Tradition
(Hippol. in Susann. 689, ed. Migne) represents
i. Ui^J, Celubi (Burrington, i. 209). G.
him as the brother of Jeremiah, and identical with
the priest who found the copy of the law in the CHEM'ARIMS, THE (D^Mn : (in 2
time of Josiah (2 K. xxii. 8). B. F. W. K. xxiii. 5] ol Xoo/xapifi; [Vat.] Alex, ot Xai/xapeifi.
aruspices, ozditui). This word only occurs in the
CHELLIANS, THE (Jud. ii. 23). [Chel- text of the A. V.i. 4. In 2 K. xxiii. 5
in Zeph.
LUS.]
it is rendered " idolatrous priests," and in Hos. x.
chel'luh Ornb?, Keri, imbri 5 "priests," and in both cases " chemarim " is
[strength, Fiirst]: XeAKi'a; [Vat. FA. XfA/ceia; given in the margin. So far as regards the Hebrew
Aid. Alex. XeAia:] Cheliau), Ezr. x. 35 [one of usage of the word it is exclusively applied to the
the sons of Bani, who had foreign wives]. priests of the false worship, and was in all prob-
ability a, term of foreign origin. In Syriac the
CHEI/LTJS (XeWovs; [Sin. XeaAovs ; Vat.]
Alex. XeAovs'- Vulg. omits), named amongst the word Ji-iOCl^ cumro, is found without the same
places beyond (i. e. on the west of) Jordan to which meaning, being used in Judg. xvii. 5, restriction of
Nabuchodonosor sent his summons (Jud. i. 9). 12, of the priest of Micah, while in Is. lxi. 6 it
Except its mention with " "
Kades there is no clew denotes the priests of the true God, and in Heb. ii.
to its situation. Keland (Pal. p. 717) conjectures 17 is applied to Christ himself. The root in Syriac
signifies " to be sad," and hence cumro is supposed
that it may be Chalutza, rTH-T^Pj a place which,
to denote a mournful, ascetic person, and hence a
under the altered form of Elusn, was well known
to the Roman and Greek geographers. With this priest or monk (compare Arab. ^aj|, abil, and
agrees the subsequent mention of the " land of the
Syr. JJ-^^J, abllo, in the same sense). Kimchi
Chellians" (ttjs XeAAaiW [Vat. M. XaASateoi/;
Sin. Alex. XeAeoif], term Cellon), " by the wilder- from a root signifying " to be black," derived it
ness," to the south of whom were the children of because the idolatrous priests wore black garments
Ishmael (Jud. ii. 23). G. but this is without foundation. [IDOLATRY, II.]
* Volkmar (Einl. in die Apokr. i. 191) adopts In the Peshito-Syriac of Acts xix. 35 the feminine
the reading XaXBa'tuv, which is supported by the form of the word is used to render the Greek
Syriac. A. vea»c6pov, "a temple keeper." Compare the Vulg..
aiditui, which is the translation of Chemarim in
CHELOD (XeAeouA; Alex. XeXeovd; [Sin.
two passages. W. A. W.
XeAoiouS; Aid. XeAdS:] Vulg. omits). "Many
nations of the sons of Chelod " were among those CHE'MOSH- (Bfta? [perh. subduer, Ges.;
27
418 CHENAANAH CHERITH
fire., hearth, i. e. god offire, Fiirst] : Xa/xws; [Vat. Beeroth, and Mizpeh (xviii. 26). The men of
in Judg. Chamos), the national deity of Chephirah returned with Zerubbabel from Babylon
Afj.cos'-]
the Moabites (Num.
xxi. 29; Jer. xlviii. 7, 13, 46). (Ezr. ii. 25; Neh. vii. 29). The Samaritan Ver-
In Judg. xi. 24, he also appears as the god of the sion, at Gen. xiii. 3, renders Hai (Ai) by Cephrak,
Ammonites: he must not, however, be identified
n~lD3 but this cannot be Chephirah, since both :
with Molech. Solomon introduced, and Josiah
abolished, the worship of Chemosh at Jerusalem Ai and it are mentioned together in Josh. ix. (comp.
(1 K. xi. 7; 2 K. xxiii. 13). With regard to the 3 with 17), and in the lists of Ezra and Nehemiah
meaning of the name, and the position which already quoted. And indeed Dr. Robinson seems
Chemosh held in mythology, we have nothing to to have discovered it under the scarcely altered
record beyond doubtful and discordant conjectures. name of Kefir, in the mountain-country on the
Jerome (Cotpm. in Is. xv. 2) identifies him with western confines of Benjamin, about 2 miles east
Baal-Peor; others with Baal-Zebub, on etymologi- of Yah (Ajalon) (Rob. iii. 146). [Caphira.]
cal grounds; others, as Gesenius (Theswur. 693), G.
with Mars, or the god of war, on similar grounds
and others (Beyer ad Selden, p. 323) with Saturn,
CHE'RAN Cj^S : Xappdv : Charan), one
of the sons of Dishon (so A. V., but Hebrew is
as the star of omen, Chemosh having been wor-
ill
Dishau), the Horite "duke" (Gen. xxxvi. 26; 1
shipped, according to a Jewish tradition, under the
form of a black star. Jerome (on Is. xv.) notices
Chr. i. 41). No name corresponding with this
has yet been discovered amongst the tribes of
Dibon as the chief seat of his worship.
Arabia.
W. L. B.
to go up against Ramoth-Gilead, and smote Micaiah see. The Hebrew word occurs again in Zeph. ii.
" Cherethites."
on the cheek (1 K. xxii. 11, 24; 2 Chr. xviii. 10, 5; A. V. In these passages the
23). He may be the same as the preceding. LXX. render Cretans, and the Vulgate by Palaestini
A. C. H. and Philistines (K/>7)Tes: Alex, [in Ez.] tcpiras
fftSwvos'- Pahestini, Philisthini).
CHENA'NI 0333 [Jehovah appointed or
made]: Xaivevi; FA8. Alex. Xavavf, FA1 . Vat. CHER'ETHITES AND PEL'ETHITES
Omit:] Chanuni), one of the Levites who assisted
et
(\"lbDrH VT-}j> : 6 XtpeBl Kal 6 4>eAefl/, [etc. ;]
at the solemn purification of the people under Ezra
cra>/xaTo<pv\a.Kes, Joseph. Ant. vii. 5, § 4: Cerefhi
(Neh. ix. 4 only). By the LXX. the word Bani
et Phelethi), the life-guards of King David (2 Sam.
(
,,
33) preceding is read as if meaning "sons" —
viii. 18, xv. 18, xx..7, 23; 1 K. i. 38, 44; 1 Chr.
" sons of Chenani." The Vulgate and A. V. ad- xviii. 17). These titles are commonly said to sig-
hering to the Masoretic pointing, insert " and." nify " executioners and couriers " (asyyapoi) from
CHENANIAH (^TTpIlS [as above] : Xco- JT12, to slay, and fl/?, to run. It is plain that
[Vat. Kcovevia, Xcaveveta; Alex. these royal guards were employed as executioners
vevla, Xcoveviasi
Kaivtvta, Xuvevias; in 1 Chr. xv. 27, Alex. Xeve- (2 K. xi. 4), and as couriers (1 K. xiv. 27). Sim-
Vat. Iexovias; FA. Eiexovias Chonenias), ilarly Potiphar was captain of the guard of Pharaoh,
vias', ']
chief of the Levites, when David carried the ark to and also chief of the executioners (Gen. xxxvii. 36),
Jerusalem (1 Chr. xv. 22, xxvi. 29). In 1 Chr. xv. as was Arioch, Nebuchadnezzar's officer (Dan. ii. 14).
In the latter part of David's reign the Cherethites
27,' his name is written rP33S. and Pelethites were commanded by Benaiah (2 Sam.
t : :
CHEPHIRAH (rTpMPT,
with the definite torrens Carith), the torrent bed or wady to use —
article, except in the later books, " the hamlet: " —
the modern Arabic word which exactly answers to
[Rom.] Kecpipd, [etc. ; Vat. Ke<p€ipa, &eipa, the Hebrew Nachal in (not " by," as the trans- —
Kcuptipa; FA. in Neh. Kcxpetpa; Alex.] Xe^cipo, lators of the A. V. were driven to say by their use
[etc. :] Caphira, Caphara), one of the four cities of the word "brook") which Elijah hid himself
of the Gibeonites (Josh. ix. 17), and named after- during the early part of the three years' drought
wards among the towns of Benjamin, with Ramah, (1 K. xvii. 3, 5). No further mention of it is
CHERITH CHERUB 419
found in the Bible, and by Josephus (Ant. viii. 13, the frightful gorge opens suddenly upon us at a
§ 2) it is spoken of merely as xeifidppovs tis- bend of the road, about two miles from the Plain:
The position of the Cherith has been much dis- there " the traveller finds himself in front of a
puted. The words of the passage unfortunately precipice, perhaps 500 feet high, pierced by many
give no clew to it: —
"get thee hence (i, e. ap- inaccessible anchorite caverns, and with a steep,
parently from the spot where the interview with rugged hill above. We gaze down into the steep
Ahab had taken place, and which may or may not ravine, and see the ravens, eagles, and griffon-vul-
tures sailing beneath us. These are now the sote
be Samaria), and turn -thy face eastward (HQ'lp),
inhabitants of these caves, the monarchs of the
and hide thee in the torrent Crith, which is facing
waste." It will be seen how well this description
(\3Q yV) the Jordan." The expression li
facing answers to the import of the ancient name. In a
the Jordan," which occurs also in verse 5, seems retreat like this, too, the prophet could easily have
simply to indicate that the stream in question ran hid himself from the knowledge and pursuit of
into that river and not into either the Mediter- Ahab, and the birds of prey, which must have
ranean or the Dead Sea. Josephus, as we have haunted the place of old as now, could have brought
seen, does not name the torrent, and he says that to him the food which God prepared through them
Elijah went, not " eastward," but towards the for the preservation of nis servant.
south —
els T a irphs votov /J-epr)- Eusebius and There is a treatise " Elias corvorum convictor "
Jerome on the other hand (Ouomasticon, Chorath) in the Critici Sacri. Gumpach's " Elias und die
place the Cherith beyond Jordan, where also Raben " in his Alttestamentliche Stuclien, p. 200 ff.
Schwarz (51) would identify it in a Wady Alias, (Heidelberg, 1852), is an attempt to remove from
opposite Bethshean. This is the Wady d-Ydbk the narrative all traces of a miraculous interven-
(Jabesh), which Benj. Tudela says is a corruption tion. We
have the various opinions on the subject
canvassed, and the obvious meaning of the history
of QS >L?S "TNI (ii. 408; Asher). The only tra-
vindicated, in Deyling's Observatwnes Sacra, Para
dition on the subject is one mentioned by Marinus
i., No. xxv. H.
Sanutus in 1321; that it ran by Phasaelus, Herod's
city in the Jordan valley. This would make it the CHERUB (3T)? : Xepoip,Xapoi0; [Vat.
'Ain Fusdil which falls from the mountains of in Ezr. corrupt:] Cherub), apparently a place in
Ephraim into the Ghor, south of Kuril Surtabeh, Babylonia from which some persons of doubtful
and about 15 miles above Jericho. This view is extraction returned to Judsea with Zerubbabel (Ezr.
supported by Bachiene, and in our own time by ii. 59; Neh. vii. 61). In the parallel list of 1 Esdr.
Van de Velde (ii. 310). The spring of the brook v. this name, with the next, Addan, seems to be
is concealed under high cliffs and under the shade corrupted to Charaatii-alar.
of a dense jungle (V. de Velde, Memoir, 339). Dr.
Robinson on the other hand would find the name
CHERUB, CHERUBIM Cfil?, plur..
Persian sculptures apparently represent evil genii stretched forth, one at each end of the mercy-seat,
under similar quasi-cherubic forms. The Hebrew and to be made "of the mercy-seat," which Abar-
idea seems to limit the number of the cherubim. benel (Spencer, De Eeg. Heb. ritual, iii., Diss, v.),
and others interpret of the same mass of gold with
it, namely, wrought by hammering, not cast and
a It is perhaps questionable whether the smaller they could have been lost in the course of its wander-
cherubim on the mercy-seat were there in Solomon's ings [see Ark op Covenant] still, the presence of the ;
temple, as well as the colossal overshadowing ones. two pairs together seems hardly consistent and appro-
That they were on the ark when brought from Shiloh priate.
to the battle seems most likely and it is hardly con- b The number four was one of those which were
;
sistent with the reverential awe shown in the treat- sacred among the Jews, like seven, and forty (Bahr,
ment of the ark, even by the enemy, to suppose that De Symbol.). [Number.]
CHERUB CHERUB 421
the carvings, &c., of the temple had made them and omniscience, not as representations of actual
popular, Josephus could not possibly have said (Ant. beings (Clem. Alex. Strom, v. p. 241), the cherubim
viii. 3. § 3) ras Se x e P ov @& ouScls birolai rives should be regarded.^ Philo indeed assigns a varied
/)<rav eliriiv ou5' e<Kcierai Swarai. It is also re- signification to the cherubim in one place he makes
:
markable that Ez. i. speaks of them as " living them allegories of the beneficent and avenging en-
ergies of God in another, of the two hemispheres
creatures " (HVH, £wa), under mere animal
;
a The " cheruhim, lions, and oxen," which orna- forms of creature-being expressing best the highest
est
mented certain utensils in the temple (1 K. vii. 29), Thus he thinks the human
attributes of the Creator.
are probably all to be viewed as cherubic insignia, the form might indicate spirituality (p. 340). (Comp.
former of composite form, the two latter of simple. Grot, on Exod. xxv. 18, and Heb. ix. 5.) Some useful
b Schoettgen, Hor. Hebr. ad Apoc. iv. 3, quotes hints as to the connection of cherubic with other
Pirfce Rab. E'.iezer, " Ad quatuor pedes (throni) sunt mythological forms may be found in Creuzer, Sym-
quatuoranimalia quorum unumquodque quatuor facies bol, 441, 540.
i.
et tot alas habet. Quando Dens loquitur ab oriente, d In Ez. xxviii. 14, 16, the Tyrian king is addressed
tunc id fit inter duos cherubinos facie hominis quando as the " anointing cherub that covereth." This seems
;
a meridie, tunc id fit inter duos cherubinos facie leo- a mistake in the A. V., arising from a confusion of
nis," &c.
nirptt, which means <!
stretched out :
' (Vulg. cherub
c Bahr, Symbolik, vol. i. pp. 313-14 (whose entire
remarks on this subject are valuable and often pro- extentus), from nt£'£2, Aram, to extend, with some
found), inclines to think that the precise form varied
within certain limits c. g. the cherubic figure might
;
word from nit'O, l ° anoint. The notion is bor-
have one, two, or four faces, two or four feet, one or rowed no douht from the " extended " attitude of the
two pair of wings, and might have the bovine or leo- cherubim of the sanctuary, " covering " the ark, &o.,
nine type as its basis the imagery being modified to
; with their wings. So the king should have been the
suit the prominently intended attribute, and the high- i guardian of the law.
422 CHERUB CHERUB
the Syriac <^Oi-2, great, strong (Gesen. s. v. are taken from Assyrian sculptures.
No. 6 repre-
sents the griffin of Northern fable, as we see from
comp. Philo de Profugis, p. 465). The fact that the griffin found as an ornament in Scythian
tombs,
all the symbols embody various forms of strength,
but drawn by Grecian artists. In the sacred boats
the lion among wild, and the ox among tame beasts, or arks
of the Egyptians, there are sometimes found
the eagle among birds, the man as supreme over all
be claimed in the connection, and requires no cor- CHE'SIL (7^D3 [a fool or impious]: Bcu-
responding personality. Alex. Xatreip [Aid. XeaiS '] Cesil), a town
0rjA ; ;
In the reasons given for the other view, it is in the extreme south of Palestine, named with Hor-
plainly a false inference from the comparison of mah and Ziklag (Josh. xv. 30). The name does
Ps. xviii. 10 with Ps. civ. 3, 4, that angels and not occur again, but in the list of towns given out
cherubim stand in the same category in the repre- of Judah to Simeon, the name Bethul, occurs
sentations of the Scriptures. The personal exist- in place of it (xix. 4), as if the one were identical
ence of the former is attested by their frequent ap- with, or a corruption of, the other. This is con-
pearance on earth; while to the existence of the firmed by the reading of 1 Chr. iv. 30, Bethuel;
latter there is no similar attestation, unless it be
by that of the LXX. as given above, and by the
found in the third chapter of Genesis. But the mention in 1 Sam. xxx. 27 of a Bethel among the
historical reality of the facts there narrated is not cities of the extreme south. In this case we can
impaired by regarding the cherubim, spoken of in
v. 24, as symbolic representations of the divine
only conclude that 7^D- was an early variation of
Jon. by y\oo(T(r6KOfi.ou —
comp. John xii. in — CHETTITM or CHETTIIM(XeTreie.'/t;
Hebrew letters the reading of the whole passage Alex. [Sin. Aid.] Xei-neiyu: Cethim), 1 Mace. i.
:
Of the former the following wood-cut is probably a Fiirst]; Sam. Cod. HDT2; Sam. Vers. H2TTD :
near representation. D^T^S, " chests," from Vulg. translating quo nato parere ultra
Xa<r/3i':
(2.)
cessarit, and comp. a similar translation by Aquila,
T33, to hoard (Ez. xxvii. 24 only) A. V. " chests." in Jer. Qu. Hebr. ), a name which occurs but once
:
CHESUL'LOTH (with the definite article, sow, occurs in O. T., and appears in N. T. in such
rn-D~n: XaaaXdiQ: Casabth), one of the words as Barnabas, but which in plur. ^33, Ezr.
towns of Issachar, meaning in Hebrew " the loins," vi. 16, resembles more the Hebrew. Cognate words
and therefore, perhaps, deriving its name from its are the Arabic Beni, sons, in the sense of descend-
situation on the slope of some mountain (Josh. xix. ants, and Benat, daughters, Ges. pp. 215, 236;
18. See the quotation from Jarchi in Keil's Shaw, Travels, Pr. p. 8). The blessing of off-
CHILDREN CHILION 425
spring, but especially, and sometimes exclusively, were employed in household work (Lev. xxi. ft;
of the male sex, is highly valued among all Eastern Num. xii. 14; 1 Sam. ix. 11; Prov. xxxi. 19, 23;
nations, while the absence is regarded as one of the Ecclus. vii. 25, xlii. 9; 2 Mace. iii. 19). The ex-
severest punishments (Her. i. 136; Strab. xv. 733; ample, however, and authority of the mother were
Gen. xvi. 2, xxix. 31, xxx. 1, 14; Dent. vii. 14; 1 carefully upheld to children erf both sexes (Deut.
Sam. i. 6, ii. vi. 23, xviii. 18; 2 xxi. 20; Prov. x. 1, xv. 20; 1 K. ii. 19).
5, iv. 20; 2 Sam.
K. iv. 14; 9; Jer. xx. 15; Hos. ix. 14;
Is. xlvii. The first-born male children were regarded as de-
Esth. v. 11: Ps. cxxvii. 3, 5; Eccl. vi. 3; Drusius, voted to God, and were to be redeemed by an offer-
Prtto. Ben-Sine, ap. Crit. Sacr. viii. 1887; Lane, ing (Ex. xiii. 13; Num. xviii. 15; Luke ii. 22).
Mod. Egypt, i. 208, 240; Mrs. Poole, EngUskw. in Children devoted by special vow, as Samuel was,
Egypt, iii. 163; Niebuhr, Descr. de I Arab. 67: appear to have been brought up from very early
Cbardin, Voyage, vii. 446; Lussell, Nubia, 343). years in a school or place of education near the tab-
Childbirth is in the East usually, but not always, ernacle or temple (1 Sam. i. 24, 28). [Educa-
attended with little difficulty, and accomplished tion.]
with little or no assistance (Gen. xxxv. 17, xxxviii. The authority of parents, especially the father,
28, Ex. i. 19; 1 Sam. iv. 19, 20; Burckhardt, over children was very great, as was also the rev-
Notes on Bedouins, i. 96; Harmer, Obs. iv. 425; eiuiiee enjoined by the law to be paid to parents.
Lady M. W. Montagu, Letters, ii. 217, 219, 222). The disobedient child, the striker or reviler of a
As soon as the child was born, and the umbilical parent, was liable to capital punishment, though
cord cut, it was washed in a bath, rubbed with salt, not at the independent will of the parent. Chil-
and wrapped in swaddling clothes. Aiab mothers dren were liable to be taken as slaves in case of
sometimes rub their children with earth or sand non-payment of debt, and were expected to perform
(Ez. xvi. 4; Job xxxviii. 9; Luke ii. 7: Burckhardt, menial offices for them, such as washing the feet,
/. a.). On the 8th day the rite of circumcision in and to maintain them in poverty and old age.
the case of a boy, was performed, and a name given, How this last obligation was evaded, see Corban.
sometimes, but not usually, the same as that of the The like obedience is enjoined by the Gospel (Gen.
father, and generally conveying some special mean- xxxviii. 24 ; Lev. xxi. 9 ; Num. xii. 14 ; Deut. xxiv.
ing. Among Mohammedans, circumcision is most 16; 1 K. ii. 19; 2 K. xiv. 6, iv. 1; Is. 1. 1; Neh. v.
commonly delayed till the 5th, 6th, or even the 5; Job xxiv. 9; Prov. x. 1, xv. 20, xxix. 3; Dru-
14th year ((Jen. xxi. 4, xxix. 32, 35, xxx. 6, 24; sius, Hebr. ii. 63, ap. Crit. Sacr. viii. 1547
Qucest.
Lev. xii. 3 ; Is. vii. 14, viii. 3 ; Luke i. 59, ii. 21, Col. iii. 20; Eph. vi. 1; 1 Tim. i. 9; comp. Virg.
and Lightfoot, ad loc. Spencer, de Legg. Hebr. v.
;
Mn. vi. 609 and Servius, ad he. Aristoph. Ran.
; ;
male child, the mother was considered unclean for The inheritance was divided equally between all
7 _|_ 33 days if the child were a female, for double
;
the sons except the eldest, who received a double
that period 14 -4- 66 days. At the end of the time portion (Deut. xxi. 17; Gen. xxv. 31, xlix. 3; 1
she was to make an offering of purification of a Chr. v. 1, 2; Judg. xi. 2, 7). Daughters had by
lamb as a burnt-offering, and a pigeon or turtle- right no portion in the inheritance but if a man ;
dove as a sin-offering, or in case of poverty, two had no son, his inheritance passed to his daughters,
doves or pigeons, one as a burnt-offering, the other but they were forbidden to marry out of their
as a sin offering (Lev. xii. 1-8; Luke ii. 22). The father's tribe (Num. xxvii. 1, 8, xxxvi. 2, 8).
period of nursing appears to have been sometimes The term sons was applied also to the disciples
prolonged to 3 years (Is. xlix. 15; 2 Mace. vii. 27; and followers of the teachers of the various sects
comp. Livingstone, Travels, c. vi. p. 126; but which arose after the Captivity [Education ;
Burckhardt leads to a different conclusion). The Scribes]. (Lightfoot, Hor. Hebr. on John xiii.
Mohammedan law enjoins mothers to suckle their 33, Luke xi. 45, John xvi. [xv. ?] 16.) [Comp.
children for 2 full years if possible (Lane, Mod. Matt. xii. 27 ; Luke xi. 19. See also 1 Cor. iv. 14,
Egypt, i. 83; Mrs. Poole, Englishw. in Egypt, iii. 15, 17; 1 Tim. i. 2; 2 Tim. i. 2; Philem. 10; 3
161). Nurses were employed in cases of necessity John 4. A.] H. W. P.
(Ex. 9; Gen. xxiv. 59, xxxv. 8; 2 Sam. iv. 4;
ii.
2 K. xi. 2; 2 Chr. xxii. 11). The time of weaning CHII/EAB. [Abigail; Daniel.]
was an occasion of rejoicing (Gen. xxi. 8). Arab CHII/ION [properly Chilyon] flVV-? =
children wear little or no clothing for 4 or 5 years; Xe\aicl>v; [Vat. Ruth i. 2, KeA. ;] Alex. Xe\ewv,
the young of both sexes are usually carried by the [XaiAecov:] Chelion), the son of Elimelech and
mothers on the hip or the shoulder, a custom to Naomi, and husband of Orpah (Ruth i. 2-5, iv. 9).
which allusion is made by Isaiah (Is. xlix. 22, lxvi. He is described as " an Ephrathite ( ? Ephraimite)
12; Lane, Mod. Egypt, i. 83). Both boys and of Bethlehem-judah."
girls in their early years, boys probably till their
* The etymology usually assigned for the names
5th year, were under the care of the women (Prov.
xxxi. 1; Herod, i. 136; Strab. xv. p. 733; Niebuhr, of the brothers (Kuth i. 2) is for Chilion, rH3
Descr. p. 24). Afterwards the boys were taken
by the father under his charge. Those in wealthy
sickly, and for Mahlon, pining ; either given H bp
them at first from prognostics of their early fate,
to
families had tutors or governors (D^ttS, TrcuSa-
which as they died young, were fulfilled, or substi-
,
ycayoi) who were sometimes eunuchs (Num. xi. 12; tuted for other original names, after their death, in
2 K. x. 1, 23; Gal. iii. 24; Esth. ii. the family traditions.
5; Is. xlix. Considering how readily the
7; Joseph. 76; Lane, Mod. Egypt, i. 83). orientals change the names of persons both living
Vit.
Daughters usually remained in the women's apart- and dead, the latter supposition is by no means im-
ments till marriage, or, among the poorer classes, possible. See Bertheau (Richter u. Ruth, p. 239).
426 CHILMAD CHIOS
But the derivation is So good a scholar Reland (161), on the ground that Capernaum is
uncertain.
as Cassel (Richter u. Ruth, p. 205) refers Chilion to said by St. Matt. (iv. 13) to have been on the very
l>orders of Zebulun and Naphtali, and that Zebu-
7/3, and Mahlon to 7^71, i. e. the former, orna- lun was to the
south of Naphtali. But St. Mat-
ment, and the latter, joy ; so that the names could
thew's expression will hardly bear this strict inter-
have been given to them at their birth as terms of pretation.
The town, or the lake, appears to have
parental fondness. Mr. Wright (Ruth in Hebrew given its name (slightly altered) to a district
and Chaldee, p. 2) conjectures that the children Cinneroth "
"all —
(1 K. xv. 20). G.
were so named (sickness destruction) on account
;
* The name (Josh. xix. 35) is spelt " Cinnereth "
of the sad condition of the land at the time. That
in the A. V. ed. 1611, and other early editions.
the land was specially afflicted at the time they
According to Fiirst, the city " in later times was
were born we do not know. The famine which
drove the family to Moab was later. The names, called ~lp :122 Genusar (Megilla 6 a ). At the . . .
in whatever way explained, afford but a slight foot- time of Farchi (at the beginning of the 14th cent-
hold for assailing the historical claims of the book. ury) it was still in existence, lying, without doubt,
one hour northwest of Tabariyya [Tiberias], where
1 the ruins of Gansur are still found at the present
CHII/MAD ("TO ?? Xap/xdv; [Aid. XaA-
:
CHIMHAM (EH*?? [pining, longing], rh"123, Cinnroth, [Vulg. Ceneroth]). The word
but see below; Xafj.aa.fj.; AJex. Xavaav, [Comp. Xt- isby some derived from Cinnoor (Kivvvpa, cithara,
ftaav, 'AxifJ-adi/; LXX. in Jer. corrupt;] Joseph. a " harp "), as if in allusion to the oval shape of
'Axip-avos'- Chamaam), a and probably a
follower, But this, to say the least, is doubtful.
the lake.
son (Joseph. Ant. vii. 11, § 4; and comp. 1 K. ii. seems more likely that Cinnereth was an ancient
It
oration which we can find for it is the mention in join Marcus Agrippa in the Black Sea. are We
Joshua of Hammath as near it, which was possibly told (Joseph. Ant. xvi.
2, § 2) that after passing
the Humindm or Emmaus, near the shore of the by Rhodes and Cos, he was detained some time by
lake a little south of Tiberias. This is denied by north winds at Chios, and sailed on to Mitylene,
a * We see from Khan bore " furnished shelter for two travellers with their infant
Jer. xli. 17 that this
Chimham's name and (as the child when there was no room in the inn,' and when
for at least 4 centuries, '
usages of the East are so unchanging) may have been they too from that spot fled into Egypt " (Stanley,
the Khan OcaTaAu^a) which almost 6 centuries later Jewish Church, ii. 201). H.
CHISLEU CHLOE 427
when the winds became more appears advance to the south to meet the king of the north:
favorable. It
that during this stay at Chios Herod gave very lib- at a later period we find Alexander the Great de-
eral sums towards the restoration of some public scribed as coming 4k t7Js yrjs [Rom. XfTretetfi;
works which had suffered in the Mithridatic war. Alex. Sin.] Xernei.u (1 Mace. i. 1; A. V. Ciikt-
This island does not appear to have any other asso- tiim), and Perseus as KitisW /SatriAeus [Ceteorum
ciation with the Jews: nor mentioned rex] (1 Mace. viii. 5; A. V. Citims). Josephus
is it specially
in connection with the first spread of Christianity considered Cyprus as the original seat of the Chit-
by the Apostles. When St. Paul was there on the tim, adducing as evidence the name of its principal
occasion referred to, he did not land, but only town, Citium {Xedi/xos 5e X<E0tfj.a r))v v!\(fov Za-
passed the night at anchor. At that time Chios X^V Kinrpos (turn vvv /caAeirat, Ant. i. 6, § 1).
enjoyed the privilege of freedom (Plin. v. 38), and Citium was without doubt a Phoenician town, and
it is not certain that it ever was politically a part the name, as it appears in Phoenician inscriptions,
of the province of Asia, though it is separated from exactly accords with the Hebrew (Gesen. Tins. 726).
the mainland only by a strait of 5 miles. Its From the town the name extended to the whole
length is about 32 miles, and in breadth it varies island of Cyprus, which was occupied by Phoenician
from 8 to 18. Its outline is mountainous and colonies, and remained under Tyre certainly until
bold; and it has always been celebrated for its about b. c. 720 (Joseph. Ant. ix. 14, § 2). With
beauty and fruitfulness. In recent times it has the decay of the Phoenician power (circ. b. C. 600)
been too well known, under its modern name of the Greeks began to found flourishing settlements
Scio, for the dreadful sufferings of its inhabitants on its coasts, as they had also done in Crete, Rhodes,
in the Greek war of independence. Chios is de- and the islands of the yEgaean Sea. The name
scribed by the older travellers, Thevenot, Tourne- Chittim, which in the first instance had applied to
fort, and Chandler. J. S. H. Phoenicians only (for DVI 3 = D s Fin, Hittites,
CHISLEU. [Months.] branch of the Canaanitish race), passed over to
a
CHIT TIM, KIT (3VIS, D^fiS Egypt against Antiocbus; but the assumption on
TIM :
for the decks of their vessels (Ez. xxvii. 6, The 'arians were connected with the I>eleges, and
"H2 <
tian woman known to the Corinthians elsewhere; * CHOSAME'US. [See Simon Chosa-
by Michaelis and Meyer, an Ephesian, having friends M.EUS.]
at Corinth. It is impossible to decide. [See Ak-
istobulus, Amer. ed.] H. A. CHOZE'BA (S3T3 [lying, false] :
XwftMi
[Vat. wrJ mendacii). The "men of
CHO'BA (Xofla; [Sin. Xafla] Vulg. omits), :
~2.o>xt)6'-\
Chozeba " are named (1 Chr. iv. 22) amongst the
a place mentioned in Jud. iv. 4, apparently situated
in the central part of Palestine. It is probably the
descendants of Shelah the son of Judah. The
name does not reappear, but it is sufficiently like
same place as
Chezib (and especially the reading of the Samar-
CHO'BAI [2 syl.] (X»0erf [Sin. Xw/3u: itan Codex of that name) to suggest that the two
;
[furnace of
where it was conferred, are both significant. It is
smoke]: BTjpo-ojSee'; Alex. Boipaaav inlucu Asan),
clear that the appellation " Christian " was one
one of the places in which " David and his men
which, though eagerly adopted and gloried in by
were wont to haunt," and to his friends in which
the early followers of Christ, could not have been
he sent presents of the plunder taken from the
imposed by themselves. They were known to each
Amalekites (1 Sam. xxx. 30). The towns named
other as brethren of one family, as disciples of the
in this catalogue are all south of Hebron, and Chor-
same Master, as believers in the same faith, and as
ashan may, therefore, be identical with Ash an of
distinguished by the same endeavors after holiness
Simeon. This is, however, quite uncertain, and
and consecration of life and so were called brethren
;
(see Reland, p. 722) as famous for wheat, which is comp. Tac. Ann. xv. 44), is used contemptuously,
still grown in large quantities in this neighbor-
could not have been applied by the early disciples
hood. G. to themselves, nor could it have come to them from
* Dr. Thomson (Land and Book, ii. 8 found a
their own nation the Jews; it must, therefore,
)
heap of shapeless ruins about 2 miles north of Tell have been imposed upon them by the Gentile world,
Hum, known among the natives as Cliorazy " The and no place could have so appropriately given rise
name is nearly the Arabic for Chorazin, and the
to it as Antioch, where the first Church was planted
situation just where we might expect to find Cho- among the heathen. It was manifest by the
razin." Discoveries more recently made have preaching of the new teachers that they were dis-
strengthened this presumption from the name and tinct from the Jews, so distinct as to be remarked
position of Cliorazy. Mr. Grove, speaking of the by the heathen themselves and as no name was
;
a much larger extent of ground than Tell Hum, of honor, called his followers Xpicmavol, Christians,
and many of the private houses are almost perfect, the partisans of Christ, just as in the early strug-
with the exception of the roofs; the openings for gles for the Empire we meet with the Csesariani
doors and windows remaining in some cases. All Pompeiani,
and Octaviani. The Latin form of the
the buildings, including a synagogue or church [?],
are of basalt, and it is not till one is right in " " Christ," and not " Jesus," is the term most
among them that one sees clearly what they are; commonly applied to our Lord in the Epistles.
CHRONICLES CHRONICLES 429
name is what would be expected, for Antioch had appellare." was possibly suggested to him by
It
long been a Roman city. Its inhabitants were his having translated the Chronica <>t Eusebius into
celebrated for their wit and a propensity for con- Latin. Later Latin writers have given them the
ferring nicknames (Procop. Pers. ii. 8, p. 105). name of Ephemeridum libri. The constant tradi-
The Emperor Julian himself was not secure from which they have been followed
tion of the Jews, in
their jests (Amm. Marc. xxii. 14). Apollonius of by the great mass of Christian commentators, is
Tyana was driven from the city by the insults of that these books were for the most part compiled
the inhabitants (Philostr. Vit. Apoll. iii. 10). Their by Ezra;" and the one genealogy, that of Zerub-
wit, however, was often harmless enough (Lucian, babel, which comes down to a later time,'' is no ob-
De Sidtat. 76), and there is no reason to suppose jection to this statement, without recurring to the
that the name "Christian " of itself was intended strange notion broached by the old commentators,
as a term of scurrility or abuse, though it would and even sanctioned by Dr. Davidson (in Kitto's
naturally be used with contempt. Cycl. of Bill. Lit., art. Chronicles), that the knowl-
Suidas (s. v. Xptcrrtavoi) says the name was given edge of these generations was communicated to
in the reign of Claudius, when Peter appointed Ezra by inspiration. In fact, the internal evidence
Evodius bishop of Antioch, and they who were for- as to the time when the book of Chronicles was
merly called Nazarenes and Galileans had their compiled, seems to tally remarkably with the tradi-
name changed to Christians. According to Ma- tion concerning its authorship. Notwithstanding
lalas (Chronofj. x.) it was changed by Evodius him- this agreement, however, the authenticity of Chrmv-
self, and William of Tyre (iv. 9 ) has a story that a icles has been vehemently impugned by De Wette
synod was held at Antioch for the purpose. Igna- and other German whose arguments have
critics,
tius, or the author of the Epistle to the Magne- been successfully refuted by Dahler, Keil, Movers,
sians (c. x.), regards the prophecy of Isaiah (lxii. and others. It has been clearly shown that the
2, 12) as first fulfilled in Syria, when Peter and attack was grounded not upon any real marks of
Paul founded the Church at Antioch. But rea- spuriousness in the books themselves, but solely
sons have already been given why the name did upon the desire of the critics in question to remove
not originate within the Church. a witness whose evidence was fatal to their favorite
Another form of the name is XprjffTiavoi, aris- theory as to the post-Babylonian origin of the books
ing from a false etymology (Lact. iv. 7 Tertullian, ; of Moses. If the accounts in the books of Chron-
Apol. c. 3; Suet. Claud. 25), by which it was de- icles of the courses of priests and Levites, and the
rived from xp-qcrrSs- W. A. W. ordinances of divine service as arranged by David,
and restored by Hezekiah and Josiah, are genuine,
CHRONICLES, First and Second Books of
it necessarily follows that the Levitical law, as set
(in Heb. D^^H S
1]5"T : verba dierum, as Jerome was not invented after the
forth in the Pentateuch,
translates and sermones dierum, as Hilar. Pictav. return from the Captivity.
it, Hence the successful
in Wolf, but rather acta dierum ; journals, or dia- vindication of the authenticity of Chronicles has a
ries, e. the record of the daily occurrences), the
/'. very important bearing upon many of the very
name originally given to the record made by the gravest theological questions. As regards the plan
appointed historiographers in the kingdoms of Israel of the book, of which the book of Ezra is a contin-
and Judali. In the LXX. these books are called uation, forming one work, it becomes apparent im-
Tla.paKiiirofJL(V(av Trpairov and Sevrepov, which is mediately [as soon as] we consider it as the compi-
understood, after Jerome's explanation, as meaning lation of Ezra, or some one nearly contemporary
that they are supplementary to the books of Kings. with him. One of the greatest difficulties connected
The Vulgate retains both the Hebrew and Greek with the Captivity and the return must have been
name in Latin characters, Dabre jamim, or ha- the maintenance of that genealogical distribution
jamim, and Paralipomenon. Jerome tells us {ad of the lands which yet was a vital point of the
Domnion. et Jiogatiin.) that in his time they Jewish economy. Accordingly it appears to have
formed only one book in the Hebrew MSS., but been one to which both Ezra and Nehemiah gave
had been divided by the Christian churehes using their earnest attention, as David, Hezekiah, and
the LXX. for convenience, on account of their other kings, had done before them. Another dif-
length. In his Ep. to Paulinus, he thus further ficulty intimately connected with the former was
explains the name Paralipomenon, and eulogizes the the maintenance of the temple services at Jerusa-
book. " Paralipomenon liber, id est Instrum. Vet. lem. This could only be effected by the residence
epitome, tantus ac talis est, ut absque illo si quis of the priests and Levites in Jerusalem in the order
scientiam Scripturarum sibi voluerit arrogare, seip- of their courses: and this residence was only prac-
sum Per singula quippe nomina junctu- ticable in case of the payment of the appointed
irrideat.
rasque verborum, et prsetermissse in Regum libris tithes, first-fruits, and other offerings. Immedi-
tanguntur historian, et innumerabiles explicantur ately [as soon as] these ceased the priests and Le-
Evangelii quaestiones." The name Chronica, or vites were obliged to disperse to their own villages
Chronicorum liber, which is given in some copies to obtain a livelihood, and the temple services were
of the Vulgate, and from whence we derive our neglected. But then again the registers of the
English name of " Chronicles," seems to be taken Levitical genealogies were necessary, in order that
from Jerome's saying in his Prologue galeatw, it might be known who were entitled to such and
" Dibre hajamin, e. verba dierum
?'.
quod signifi- such allowances, as porters, as singers, as priests,
:
cantius Chronicon totius divinse historiae possumus and so on because all these offices went by fami-
;
a As far as 2 Chr. xxi. 2, says the Bava Balhra, as cepted, there is no difficulty. The hand which added
explained by R. Gedaliah, and by Buxtorf. See Wolf. Neh. xii. 10, 11, 22, 23, might equally have added
Bib. Hebr. vol. ii. p. 82. 1 Chr. iii. 22-24.
b For an explanation of Zerubbabel's genealogy in c Keil says that Spinoza led the way, by suggesting
1 Chr. iii. see Geneal. of our Lord, by Lord A. Herrey, that they were compiled after Judas Maccabaeus (p. 9).
ance. Obviously therefore one of the most pressing actly corresponding to the 14 from David to Hez-
wants of the Jewish community after their return ekiah inclusive. This part of the plan extends
from Babylon would be trusty genealogical records, from 1 Chr. ix. 35 to the end of the book of Ezra:
and if there were any such in existence, the arrange- 1 Chr. xv.-xvii., xxii.-xxix. 2 Chr. xiii.-xv., xxiv. ;
ment and publication of them would be one of the xxvi., xxix.-xxxi. and xxxv., are among the passages
greatest services a person in Ezra's situation could wholly or in part peculiar to the books of Chron-
confer. But further, not only had Zerubbabel (Ezr. icles, which mark the purpose of the compiler, and
iii., v., vi.), and after him Ezra and Nehemiah (Ezr. are especially suited to the age and the work of
ii., viii.; Neh. vii., viii.) labored most earnestly, in Ezra. Many Chaldaisms in the language of these
the teeth of immense difficulties, to restore the tem- books, the resemblance of the style of Chron. to
ple and the public worship of God there to the that of Ezra, which is, in parts, avowedly Ezra's
condition it had been in under the kings of Judah composition, the reckoning by Darics (1 Chr. xxix.
but it appears clearly from their policy, and from
7), as most explain D 33~I'1K, as well as the
>,
Captivity, and, in the following verses, of the partial the sons of Shela, and their dominion in Moab,
restoration of them at the return from Babylon 1 Chr. iv. 21, 22. The curious details concerning
(2-24) and that this list refers to the families
;
the Reubenites and Gadites in 1 Chr. v. must have
who had returned from Babylon is clear, not only been drawn from contemporary documents, em-
from the context, but from its re-insertion, Neh. xi. bodied probably in the genealogical records of Jo-
3-22, a with additional matter evidently extracted tham and Jeroboam, while other records used by
from the public archives, and relating to times sub- the compiler are as late as after the return from
sequent to the return from Babylon, extending to Babylon, such as 1 Chr. ix. 2 ff.; 2 Chr. xxxvi. 20
Neh. xii. 27, where Nehemiah's narrative is again ff. ; and others, as Ezr. ii. and iv. 6-23, are as late
resumed in continuance with Neh. xi. 2. Having as the time of Artaxerxes and Nehemiah. Hence
thus shown the reestablishment of the returned it is further manifest that the books of Chronicles
families, each in their own inheritance according to and Ezra, though put into their present form by
the houses of their fathers, the compiler proceeds one hand, contain in fact extracts from the writings
to the other part of his plan, which is to give a of many which were extant at Ike
different writers,
continuous history of the kingdom of Judah from time the compilation was made.
For the full ac-
David to his own times, introduced by the closing count of the reign of David, he made copious ex
scene of Saul's life (ch. x.), which introduction is tracts from the books of Samuel the seer, Nathan
itself prefaced by a genealogy of the house of Saul the prophet, and Gad the seer (1 Chr. xxix. 29).
(ix. 35-44), extracted from the genealogical tables For the reign of Solomon he copied from "the
book of Nathan," from " the prophecy of Ahijah
o Compare also 1 Chr. ix. 19, with Ezr. ii. 42, Neh. the Shilonite," and from "the visions of Iddo the
vii. 45. seer" (2 Chr. ix. 29). Another work of Iddo
CHRONICLES CHRONICLES 431
called "the story (or interpretation, not likely to be known except to one
Midrash, pious details,
at Babylon, of the decree, the presents made to the
W~^^^2) of the prophet Iddo," supplied an account
captives, the bringing out of the sacred vessels, the
of the acts, and the ways, and sayings of king very name of the Chaldee treasurer, the number
Abijah (xiii. 22) while yet another book of Iddo and weight of the vessels, and the Chaldee name
;
concerning genealogies, with the book of the prophet of Zerubbabel, and in this chapter the writer speaks
Shemaiah, contained the acts of king Kehoboam throughout of the captives going up to Jerusalem,
(xii. 15). For later times the " Book of the kings
and Sheshbazzar taking them up (H^^rT, as op-
of Israel and Judah " is repeatedly cited (2 Chr.
xxv. 26, xxvii. 7, xxxii. 32, xxxiii. 18, &c.),and posed to fcOSn). But with this clew we may ad-
"the sayings of the seers," or rather of Chozai
(xxxiii. 19); and for the reigns of Czziah and llez-
vance a little further, and ask, who was there at
ekiah " the vision of the prophet Isaiah " (xxvi. 22, Babylon, a prophet, as the writer of sacred annals
xxxii. 32). In other cases where no reference is
must be, an author, a subject of Nebuchadnezzar
made to any book as containing further information, and his sons, and yet who survived to see the Per-
it is probable that the whole account of such reign
sian dynasty, to whom we can with probability as-
sign this Surely the answer will be
narrative '{
is transcribed. Besides the above-named works,
there was also the public national record called Daniel. Who so likely to dwell on the sacred ves-
sels taken by Nebuchadnezzar (Dan. v. 2, 23); who
S^H ^~]D.l "150, mentioned in Neh. xii. 23, so likely to refer to the prophecy of Jeremiah (Dan.
from which doubtless the present books took their ix.2); who so likely to bewail the stubbornness of the
name, and from which the genealogies and other people, and their rejection of the prophets (Dan.
matters in them were probably derived, and which ix. 5-8); who so likely to possess the text of Cy-
are alluded to as having existed as early as the reign rus's decree, to know and record the name of the
of David, 1 Chr. xxvii. 2i. These " Chronicles of treasurer (Dan.i. 3, 11); and to name Zerubbabel
by his Chaldee name (Dan. i. 7)? Add to this,
David," TVJ ^bab D^SVT n:n, are prob-
that Ezr. i. exactly supplies the unaccountable gap
ably the same as the T 1*T, >,
^5^T, above referred between Dan. ix. and x. [Ezra], and we may con-
clude with some confidence that as Jeremiah wrote
to, as written by Samuel, Nathan, and Gad. From
the closing portion of the book of Kings, so did
this time the affairs of each king's reign were reg-
Daniel write the corresponding portion in Chron-
S and down to the end of Ezr. i. Ezra perhaps
ularly recorded in a book called at first ~}?~T "12D icles,
Nadab, &c, are they not written in the book of and assigns this as a reason why he made a new
the Chronicles of the kings of Judah " or "of Is- translation from the Hebrew. However, in several
rael" (1 K. xiv. 29, xv. 7, &c.)? And this con- of the differences between the text of Chronicles
tinues to the end of Jehoiakim's reign, as appears and the parallel passages in the other books," the
by 2 K. xxiv. 5; 2 Chr. xxxvi. 8. And it was Chronicles preserve the purest and truest raiding,
doubtless from this common source that the pas- as e. g. 2 Chr. ix. 25, compared with 1 K. iv. 26;
sages in the books of Samuel and Kings identical 1 Chr. xi. 11 compared with 2 Sam. xxiii. 8; xxi.
with the books of Chronicles were derived. All 12 coinp. with 2 Sam. xxiv. 13; 2 Chr. xxvi. 1, 3,
these several works have perished, but the most im- 8, &c., comp. with 2 K. xv. 1, 6, &c. As regards
portant matters in them have been providentially the language of these books, as of Ezra, Nehe-
preserved to us in the Chronicles. miah, Esther, and the later prophets, it has a
As
regards the closing chapter of 2 Chr. subse- marked Chaldee coloring, and Gesenius says of
quent to v. 8, and the 1st ch. of Ezra, a compar-
them, that "as literary works they are decidedly
ison of them with the narrative of 2 K. xxiv., xxv., inferior to those of older date" (Introd. to Heb.
will lead to the conclusion that, while the writer of Gram.). The chief Chaldaisms are the use of cer-
the narrative in Kings lived in Judah, and died tain words not found in old Hebrew, as t£7rPnn,
under the dynasty of Nebuchadnezzar, the writer
of the chapter in Chronicles lived at Babylon, and fpT, ?yXD, &c., or of words in a different sense, as
survived till the commencement at least of the Per- 1Z2S, n3V, &c, or of a different orthography, as
sian dynasty. For this last writer gives no details
of the reigns of Jehoiachin or Zedekiah, or the "P*!^ for TH, 311 for 3""*l, &c, and the inter-
events in .Judah subsequent to the burning of the
ieniple; but only dwelling on the moral lessons
change of H and H at the end and at the beginning
connected with the destruction of Jerusalem, passes of words, and other peculiarities pointed out by Ge-
on quickly to relate the return from captivity. senius and others. For further information see C.
Moreover, he seems to speak as one who had long F. Keil, Apologet. Versuch lib. d. Biicher d. Chronr-
ik ; F. C. Movers, Krilische Untersuchungen iib.
been a subject of Nebuchadnezzar, calling him
simply "King Nebuchadnezzar; " and by the re- d. Bibl. Chronik; Wolf 's Biblioth. Hebr.; Kitto's
peated use of the expression " brought him, or these,
to Babylon," rather encourages the idea that the « For a careful comparison of t'je text of 1 Chr. xi.
writer was there himself. The first chapter of with 2 Sam. v. and xxiii., see JDr. Keanicott's disser-
Ezra ?trongly confirms this view, for we have co- tation.
482 CHRONOLOGY CHRONOLOGY
Cyclop, of Bibl. Lit., art. Chronicles, and other lowing that event being separately treated in other
works cited by the above-named writers. articles.
A. C. The character of the inquiry may be made clearer
II.
* Additional Literature. —
It would be unjust to
by some remarks on the general nature of the sub-
ject. Formerly too great an exactness was hoped
withhold from the reader Dean .Stanley's represen-
for in the determination of Hebrew chronology.
tation (as he understands it) of the compilation and
Where the materials were not definite enough to
spirit of the book of Chronicles. Though the
>'
with the heavenly bodies. The Arabs of the desert, shom], the son of Moses " (1 Chr. xxvi. 21), where
from somewhat before the time of Mohammed — a contemporary of David is placed in the same re-
that is, as far as our knowledge of them in this lation to Gershom the son of Moses, as the latter
respect extends — to the present day, afford the best is to Moses himself. That these are not exceptional
parallel. We do not find them to have been a instances is evident from the occurrence of examples
mathematical people or one given to chronological of the same kind in historical narratives. Thus
computation depending on astronomy, but to have Jehu called "the son of Nimshi " (1 K. xix. 16;
is
regulated their calendars by observation alone. It 2 K. ix. 20; 2 Chr. xxii. 7) as well as "the son of
might have been expected that their observations Jehoshaphat the son of Nimshi " (2 K. ix. 2, 14).
would, from their constant recurrence, have acquired In the same manner Laban is called " the son of
an extraordinary delicacy and gradually given place Nahor" (Gen. xxix. 5), whereas he was his grand-
to computations; but such we do not find to have son, being the son of Bethuel (xxviii. 2, 5, comp.
been the case, and these observations are not now xxii. 20-20). We cannot, therefore, venture to use
more accurate than would be the earlier ones of the Hebrew genealogical lists to compute inter-
any series of the kind. The same characteristics vals oftime except where we can prove each descent
appear to have been those of the scientific knowl- to be immediate. But even if we can do this we
edge and practice of the Hebrews. We have no have still to be sure that we can determine the
reason for supposing that they had attained, either average length of each generation. (Historical
by discovery or by the instruction of foreigners, Chronology.) Ideler remarks that Moses, like
even in individual cases, to a high knowledge of Herodotus, reckons by generations. (Handbuch, i.
mathematics or accuracy of chronological computa- 506.) Certainly in the Pentateuch generations are
28
434 CHRONOLOGY CHRONOLOGY
connected with chronology by the length of each in the daily evening sacrifice (Ex. xii. 6; Num. ix. 3,
a series being indicated, but this is not the manner xxviii. 4); for the Pharisees, whom the present
of Herodotus, who reckons by generations, assum- Jews follow, took it to be the time between the 9th
ing an average of three to a century (ii. 142). and 11th hours of the day, or our 3 and 5 P. m.,
There is no use of a generation as a division of although the Samaritans and Karaites supposed it
time in the Pentateuch, unless, with some, we sup- to be the time between sunset and full darkness,
pose that TV 1
! in Gen. xv. 16 is so used. Those, particularly on account of the phrase S^23
however, who hold this opinion make it an interval
^^?®L T
i
"when the sun is setting," used in a
of a hundred years, since it would, if a period of
parallel passage (Deut. xvi. 6) (see Handbuch, i.
time, seem to be the fourth part of the 400 years
482-484). These passages :«ud expressions may,
of verse 13 : most probably, however, the meaning
however, be not unreasonably held to support the
is that some of the fourth generation should come
forth from Egypt. [Genealogy Generation.]
common opinion that the civil day began at sunset.
;
The term " between the two evenings " can scarcely
Wehave now to speak of the divisions of time,
be supposed to have originally indicated a long pe-
commencing with the least. There is no evidence
riod : a special short period, though scarcely a point,
that the ancient Hebrews had any such division
the time of sunset, is shown to correspond to it.
smaller than an hour.
Hour. —
The hour is supposed to be mentioned
This is a natural division between the late afternoon
when the sun is low, and the evening when his
in Daniel (iii. 6, 15, iv. 16, 30, A. V. 19, 33, v.
5), but in no one of these cases is a definite pe-
light has not wholly disappeared, the two evenings —
into which the natural evening would be cut by the
riod of time clearly intended by HVttT, SH^tT, commencement of the civil day if it began at sun-
SFl^tT, set. There is no difficulty in the command that
Chald., the word employed. The Egyp-
the observance of so solemn a day as that of atone-
tians divided the day and night into hours like our-
ment should commence a little before the true be-
selves from at least b. c. cir. 1200. (See Lepsius,
ginning of the civil day, that due preparation might
Chronoloyie </</• A<l(j. i. 130. ) It is therefore not be made for the sacrifices. In Judaea, where the
improbable that the Israelites were acquainted with duration of twilight is very short at all times,
the hour from an early period. The " sun-dial of the most natural division would be at sunset. The
Ahaz," whatever instrument, fixed or movable, it
natural day, DT*, probably was held to commence
may have been, implies a division of the kind. In
the N. T. we find the same system as the modem, at sunrise, morning-twilight being included in the
the hours being reckoned from the beginning of the last watch of the night, according to the old as
Jewish night and day. [IIouks.] well as the later division ; some, however, made the
l)ny. — For the civil day of 24 hours we find
morning-watch part of the day. Four natural pe-
riods, smaller than the civil day, are mentioned.
in one place (Dan. viii. 14) the term "^.S ^~>V,
These are 2*n??i evening, and *"1|?2, morning, of
"evening-morning," LXX. vvx^V^pov (also in 2
which there is frequent mention, and the less usual
Cor. xi. 25 A. V. "a night and a day"). What-
ever may be the proper meaning of this Hebrew E^n^,
"the two lights," as though "double
term, it cannot be doubted here to signify " nights
and days." The common word for day as distin- light," noon, and HTJn, or VCT, nV»bn —
guished from night is also used for the civil day, or " half the night," midnight. No one of these with
else both day and night are mentioned to avoid a people not given to astronomy seems to indicate
vagueness, as in the case of Jonah's " three days a point of time, but all to designate periods, even-
and three nights" (Jon. ii. 1, A. V. i. 17; comp. ing and morning being, however, much longer than
Matt. xii. 40). The civil day was divided into noon and midnight. The night was divided into
night and natural day, the periods of darkness and watches (FVTfl^M). In the O. T. but two are
light (Gen. i. 5). It commenced with night, which
expressly mentioned, and we have to infer the ex-
stands first in the special term given above. The istence of a third, the first watch of the night."
night, V^Vj ar>d therefore the civil day, generally
is
The middle watch (TlTlD WnifTlbttJSn) occurs
held to have begun at sunset. Ideler, however,
Judg. vii. 19, where the connection of watches
in
while admitting that this point of time was that of with military affairs is evident " And Gideon and —
the commencement of the civil day among all other the hundred men that [were] with him went down
nations known to us, which followed a lunar reck- unto the extremity of the camp at the beginning
oning, objects to the opinion that this was the case of the middle watch [and] they had but set the ;
pression D^S^^n "p3, " between the two even • a In Lam. ii. 19, fYHptTS tt?^1 of course re-
bags " used of the time of offering the passover and fers to, without absolutely designating, the first watch.
CHRONOLOGY CHRONOLOGY 435
in Mark xiii. 35, oi|/e, the late watch jxeaovvnTiov, ;
moon;" LXX. from the root Win,
veo/tTjvia,
midnight; a\eKTopo<po>via, the cock-crowing; and " it was new" primary sense o>' which,
(as to the
irpou, the early watch. [Day, Night, Watch B8
see Month) and in speaking of the first day of the
;
of Night.] month this word was sometimes used with the ad-
Week {V^ClW, a hebdomad). — The Hebrew dition of a number for the whole expression, " in
week was a period of seven days ending with the such a month on the first day," as ttf~[n2
Sabbath therefore it could not have been a division
;
of the month, which was lunar, without intercala- n-TH DV3 VD*bV?i3. "On the
tion. But there was no such intercalation, since third new moon on that day," badly ren-
the Sabbath was to be every seventh day, its name dered by the LXX. ToO ?€ firivbs rod rpirov . . .
is used for week," and weeks are counted on with- Tjj jjjue'p? ravTT) (Fx. xix. 1); hence the word
out any additional day or days. The mention to- came to signify 'month, though then it was some-
gether of Sabbaths and new moons proves nothing
times qualified as D S E£ W~fn. The new moon
but that the two observances were similar, the one in
was kept as a sacred festival. [Festivals.]
closing the week, the other commencing the month.
the Pentateuch, and Josh., Judg., and Ruth, we
The week, whether a period of seven days, or a
find but one month mentioned by a special name,
quarter of the month, w-as of common use in an- The
called according to their order.
tiquitv. The Egyptians, however, were without the rest being
special name is the first, which is
it,* month of thirty days into decads month with a
dividing their
as did the Athenians. The Hebrew week there- called 2"OSin (LXX. rfv rwv j/eW), Wlh
fore cannot have been adopted from Egypt; proba "the month of ears of corn," or " Abib," that is.
bly both it and the Sabbath were used and observed the month in which the ears of corn became full or
by the patriarchs. [Week; Sabbath.] ripe, and on the 16th day of which, the
second
Month (rT£, ttlTTT, D^EP EHh).- The day of the feast of unleavened bread, ripe ears,
mand to keep new-moons, and from the unlike- cannot be doubted to be equivalent expressions to
lihood of a change in the calendar. These lunar the 42 months and 1260 days of ftev. (xi. 2, 3, xii.
months have been supposed to have been always 6) for 360 X3J =
1260; and 30X42 1260. =
alternately of 29 and 30 days. Their average We have also the testimony of ancient writers that
length would of course be a lunation, or a little such a year was known to some nations, so that it
is almost certain that the year of Noah was of
(44') above 29 J days, and therefore they would in this
general be alternately of 29 and 30 days, but it is length. The characteristics of the year instituted
possible that occasionallymonths [night occur of at the Exodus can be clearly determined,
though
28 and 31 days, highly probable, the com-
if, as is we cannot absolutely fix those of any single year.
mencement of each was strictly determined by ob- There can be no doubt that it was essentially trop-
to be less than 29, or more than 30 days in length. therefore that there must have been some mode of
To ascertain what this was, it is ne-
The first day of the month is called Wlh, " new adjustment.
for affirming that the usual meaning, " sabbath,"' is b of Dion Cassius (xxxvii. 19), in itself
The passage
eatisfactory iu Lev. xxiii. 15. In the Thes. (s. v.), ambiguous, is of no value against the strong negative
evidence of the monuments. (See Lepsius, Chronolo-
Rodiger, possibly on the authority of Gesenius, admits
that the signification is perhaps " week." Meier's gieder^Eg. i. 131-133.)
436 CHRONOLOGY CHRONOLOGY
cessary first to decide when the year commenced. month, the Day of Atonement standing in the
On the 10th day of the month Abib, as already same relation to their beginning, and perhaps to
mentioned, ripe ears of corn were to be offered as the civil beginning of the year, as did the Passover
first-fruits of the harvest (Lev. ii. 14, xxiii. 10, 11). to the sacred beginning. It is perfectly clear that
The reaping of the barley commenced the harvest this would be the most convenient, if not the neces-
(2 Sam. xxi. 9), the wheat following (Ruth ii. 23). sary, commencement of single years of total cessa-
Josephus expressly says that the offering was of tion from the labors of the field, since each year so
barley (Ant. iii. 10, § 5). It is therefore necessary commencing would comprise the whole round of
to find when the barley becomes ripe in Palestine. these occupations in a regular order from seed-time
According to the observation of travellers the bar- to harvest, and from harvest
to vintage and gather-
ley is ripe, in the warmest parts of the country, in ing of fruit. This is indeed plain from the injunc-
the first days of April. The barley-harvest there- tion as to both Sabbatical and Jubilee years apart
fore commences about half a month after the ver- from the mention of the Day of Atonement, unless
nal equinox, so that the year would begin at about we suppose, and this would be very unwarrantable,
that tropical point were it not divided into lunar that the injunction follows the order of the seasons
months. We may conclude that the nearest new of agriculture, but that the observance did not. It
moon about or after the equinox, but not much be- might seem, at first sight, that the seventh month
fore, was chosen as the commencement of the year. was chosen, as itself of a kind of sabbatical charac-
Ideler, whom we have thus far followed, as to this ter; but this does not explain the fact that Sabbat-
year, concludes that the right new moon was
and Jubilee years were natural years, nor would
ical
chosen through observation of the forwardness of the seventh of twelve months be analogous to every
the barley-crops in the warmer districts of the seventh year. We can therefore come to no other
country (Haitdbuch, i. 490). There is, however, conclusion but that for the purposes of agriculture
this difficulty, that the different times of barley- the year was held to begin with the seventh month,
harvest in various parts would have been liable to while the months were still reckoned from the
cause confusion. It seems, therefore, not unlikely sacred commencement in Abib. There are two
that the Hebrews adopted the surer means of deter- expressions used with respect to the time of the
mining their new year's day by observations of heli- celebration of the Feast of Ingathering on the 15th
acal risings or similar stellar phenomena known day of the seventh month, one of which leads to the
to mark the right time before the barley-harvest. conclusion at which we have just arrived, while the
Certainly the ancient Egyptians and the Arabs other is in accordance with it. The first of these
made use of such means. The method of interca-
lation can only have been that which obtained after
speaks of this feast as n3 r i"ISV3, " in the ^n
the Captivity —
the addition of a thirteenth month,
going out" or end "of the year" (Ex. xxiii. 10),
whenever the twelfth ended too long before the and the second, as HS©!! n^^.H, « [at] the
equinox for the first-fruits of the harvest to be change of the year" (Ex. xxxiv. 22), a vague ex-
offered in the middle of the month following, and pression, as far as we can understand it, but one
the similar offerings at the times appointed. This fully consistent with the idea of the turning-point
method would be in accordance with the permission
granted to postpone the celebration of the Passover, of a natural year. By the term nDlpn the
in the case of any one who was either legally un- Rabbins denote the commencement of each of the
clean or journeying at a distance, for a whole month four seasons into which their year is divided (Ihtnd-
to the 14th day of the second month (Num. ix. 9- bitck, i. 550, 551). Evidence corroborative of our
13), of which permission we find Hezekiah to have conclusion is also afforded by the similar distinctive
availed himself for both the reasons allowed, because character of the first and seventh months in the
the priests were not sufficiently sanctified, and the calendar with respect to their observances. The
people were not collected (2 Chr. xxx. 1-3, 15). one was distinguished by the Feast of Unleavened
The later Jews had two beginnings to the year, or, Bread from the 15th to the 21st inclusive; the
as commonly but somewhat inaccurately said, other by that
it is of Tabernacles, from the 15th to the
two years. At the time of the Second Temple (as 22d. There is some evidence in the
besides this
Ideler admits) these two beginnings obtained, the special sanctification,above that of the ordinary
seventh month of the civil reckoning being Abib, new moon, of the first day of the seventh month,
the first of the sacred. Hence it has been held which in the blowing of trumpets bears a resem-
that the institution at the time of the Exodus was blance to the celebration of the commencement of
merely a change of commencement, and not the in- the jubilee year on the Day of Atonement. On
troduction of a new year; and also that from this these grounds we hold that there were two begin-
time there were the two beginnings. The former nings to the year from the time of the Exodus.
opinion is at present purely hypothetical, and has [Year.]
been too much mixed up with the latter, for which. Seasons. —
The ancient Hebrews do not appear
on the contrary, there is some evidence. The to have divided their year into fixed seasons. We
strongest point in this evidence, although strangely
find mention of the natural seasons, \^p_, " sum-
unnoticed by Ideler as such, is the circumstance
that the sabbatical and jubilee years commenced in mer," and P|^n "winter," which are used for
the seventh month, and doubtless on its first day.
That the jubilee year commenced in this month is the whole year in the expression ^/Vl \^p (Ps.
solemn proclamation was lxxiv. 17; Zech. xiv. 8; and perhaps Gen. viii. 22).
distinctly stated, since its
on the 10th day of the seventh month, the Day of The former of these properly means the time of
Atonement (Lev. xxv. 9, 10); and as this year im- cutting fruits, and the latter, that of gathering
mediately followed a sabbatical year, the latter fruits the one referring to the early fruit season,
;
must have commenced in the same manner. As the other to the late one. Their true significations
however these were whole years, it must be sup- are therefore rather summer and autumn than sum-
posed that they began on the first day of the mer and winter. There can be no doubt, however,
CHRONOLOGY CHRONOLOGY 437
that they came two grand divisions mencement of the year. The Day of Atonement,
to signify the
of the year, both from their use together as the two
D'HSSH D'V, was the 10th day of the 7tb
seasons, and from the mention of "the winter
month. It was a sabbath, that is a holy day, and
house," ^'nnWZl, and "the summer house," also a fast, the only one in the Hebrew year before
^pn iT2 (Am. iii. 15). The latter evidence the Babylonish 'aptivity. Upon this day the high- <
tion. The phrase DflT~lp, "cold and heat," in FpDSn 3n, « the Feast of Gathering," because it
Gen. viii. 22, more general, and cannot be was also instituted as a time of thanksgiving for
is still
held to indicate more than the great alternations the end of the gathering of fruit and of the vintage.
of temperature, which, like those of day and night, The small number and simplicity of these primitive
were promised not to cease. (Comp. Ideler, Hand- Hebrew festivals and holy days is especially worthy
buck, i. p. 494). There are two agricultural seasons of note. It is also observable that they are not of
of a more special character than the preceding in an astronomical character and that when they are ;
*>ath of celebration by the sound of the trumpet," which indeed seems to be indicated in the. passage.
was the 1st day of the 7th month, the civil com- After the lapse of seven sabbatical periods, or forty
438 CHRONOLOGY CHRONOLOGY
nine years, a year of jubilee was to be kept, imme- having been kept at any time. The dates of three
diately following the last sabbatical year. This was sabbatical years have, however, been preserved. These
called b^n were current b. c. 163, 135, and 137, and therefore
HOW, " the year of the trumpet," commenced
in each case about three months earlier
or 73^ alone, the latter word meaning either the than the beginning of these Julian years. (Joseph.
sound of the trumpet or the instrument itself, be- Ant. xii. 9, § 5; xiii. 8, § 1; xiv. 16, § 2: xv 1,
cause the commencement of the year was announced §2; B. J. i. 2, § 4; and 1 Mace. vi. 49, 53.) 4.
on the Day of Atonement by sound of trumpet. It There are some chronological indications in the
was similar to the sabbatical year in its character, 0. T. that may not unreasonably be supposed to
although doubtless yet more important. In the be connected with the sabbatical system. The
jubilee year debts were to be remitted, and lands prophet Ezekiel dates his first prophecy of those in
were to be restored to their former owners. It is the book "in the thirtieth year," &c, "which
obvious from the words of the law (Lev. xxv. 8-11) [was] the fifth year of king Jehoiachin's captivity"
that this year followed every seventh sabbatical (i. 2); thus apparently dating in the former case
year, so that the opinion that it was always identi-
from a better known era than that of Jehoiachin's
cal with a sabbatical year is untenable. There is a captivity, which he employs in later places, with-
further question as to the length of each jubilee out, however, in general again describing it. This
period, if we may use the term, some holding that
date of the 30th year has been variously explained
weekly sabbath, and the custom of the Jews in the era, not unlike the era of Simon the Maccabee.
first and second centuries b. c. ;although it must [Ju-ks.] Others suppose that the thirtieth year of
the prophet's life is meant; but this seems very
be noted that, according to Maimonides, the jubilee
period was of 50 years, the 51st year commencing unlikely. Others again, including Scaliger (De
a new period, and that the same writer mentions EmendaMone Temporum, pp. 79, 218, ed. 1583)
that the Jews had a tradition that after the destruc- and Rosenmuller (Sc/iol. ad
Inc.), hold that the
tion of the first Temple only sabbatical years, and date is from the commencement of
the reign of
no jubilee years, were observed. (Ideler, Handbuch, Nabopolassar. There is no record of an era of
i. pp. 503, 504.) The testimony of Josephus does Nabopolassar that king had been dead some years
;
not seem to us at all conclusive, although Ideler and we have no instance in the O. T. of the use of
(I. c.) holds it to be so; for the expression ravra
a foreign era. The evidence therefore is in favor
of Josiah's 18th year. There seems to he another
irevrriKovra jxzv iartv iri) ret travja (Ant. iii. 12,
reference to this date in the same book, where the
§ 3) cannot be held to prove absolutely that the
jubilee year was not the first year of a sabbatical time of the iniquity of Judah is said to be 40 years;
for the final captivity of Judah (Jer. Iii. 30) was
period instead of standing between two such periods.
It is important to ascertain when the first sabbati-
in the 40th year of this reckoning. In the same
place the time of the iniquity of Israel is said to be
cal year ought to have been kept whether the sab-
;
batical and jubilee periods seem to have been con- 390 years, which sum, added to the date of the
tinuous; what positive record there is of any sab- captivity of this part of the nation in the A. V.
b. c. 721, goes back to B. c. 1111 (Ez. iv. 5, 6).
batical or jubilee years having been kept and what
;
indications there are of a reckoning by such years This result leads to the indication of possible jubilee
narrative will not admit of much latitude. 2. It is captivity, it is probable that the year of 360 days
clear that any sabbatical and jubilee years kept is used, so that the agreement is not absolute.
have been greater in sacrifices than at least one in be employed as an era: it is, however, reckoned
Solomon's reign, nor is it likely that they are men- from in Ezra (iii. 1, 8), as is the Exodus in the
tioned as characterized by greater zeal than any Pentateuch.
others whatever so that we are almost driven to
; 7. The era of the Seleucidae is used in the first
the idea of some relation to chronology. This re- and second books of Maccabees.
sult would place the Exodus in the middle of the 8. The liberation of the Jews from the Syrian
17th century B. C, a time for which we believe yoke in the 1st year of Simon the Maccabee is
there is a preponderance of evidence (Historical stated to have been commemorated by an era used
Chronology). [Sabbatical Year; Jubilf.e.] in contracts and agreements (1 Mace. xiii. 41).
Eras. —
There are indications of several histor- The years 1, 2, and 3 on the coins ascribed to Si-
ical eras having been used by the ancient Hebrews, mon [Money, Shekel] are probably of this era,
but our information is so scanty that we are gen- although it is related that the right of coining
erally unable to come to positive conclusions. Some money with his own stamp was not conceded to
of these possible eras be may no more than dates him until somewhat later than its beginning (xv.
employed by writers, others, 0); for it may be reasonably supposed, either that
and not national eras ;
however, can scarcely have been used in this spe- Antiochus VII. confirmed privileges before granted
cial or individual manner from their referring to by his brother Bwetrius II. (comp. xv. 5), or that
events of the highest importance to the whole he gave his sanction to money already issued (Enc.
people. Brit., 8th ed., Numismatics, pp. 379, 380).
1. The Exodus is used as an era in 1 K. vi. 1, Reynal Years. —
By the Hebrews regnal years
in giving the date of the foundation of Solomon's appear to have been counted from the beginning of
Temple. This is the only positive instance of the the year, not from the day of the king's accession.
occurrence of thi3 era, for we cannot agree with Thus, if a king came to the throne in the last
Ideler that it is certainly employed in the Penta- month of one year, reigned for the whole of the
teuch. He refers to Ex. xix. 1, and Num. xxxiii. next year, and died in the 1st month of the 3d
38 (Handbuch, i. 507). Here, as elsewhere in the year, we might have dates in his 1st, 2d and 3d
same part of the Bible, the beginning of the Exo- years, although he governed for no more than 13
dus-year — not, of course, the actual date of the or 14 months. Any dates in the year of his acces-
Exodus (Regnal years, &c.) is used as the point sion, before that event, or in the year of his death,
whence time is counted; but during the interval after it, would be assigned to the last year of his
of which it formed the natural commencement it predecessor, and the 1st of his successor. The
cannot be shown to be an era, though it may have same principle would apply to reckoning from eras
been, any more than the beginning of a sovereign's or important events, but the whole stated lengths
reign is one. of reigns or intervals would not be affected by it.
2. The foundation of Solomon's temple is con- III. Historical Chronology. The histor- —
jectured by Ideler to have been an era. The pas- ical part of Hebrew Chronology is not less difficult
sages to which he refers (1 K. ix. 10; 2 Chr. viii. than the technical. The information in the Bible
1), merely speak of occurrences subsequent to the is indeed direct rather than inferential, although
interval of 20 years occupied in the building of the there is very important evidence of the latter kind
temple and the king's house, both being distinctly but the present state of the numbers makes abso-
specified so that his reading —
" Zwanzig Jahre, lute certainty in many cases impossible. If, for
—
;
nachdem Salomo das Haus des Herrn erbaute I' Hebrew and LXX. differ as to a par-
instance, the
leaves out half the statement and so makes it in- number, we cannot in general positively de-
ticular
correct (Handb. 1. c). It is elsewhere stated that termine that the original form of the number has
the building of the temple occupied 7 years (1 K. been preserved, when we have decided, and this we
vi. 37, 38), and that of Solomon's house 13 (vii. are not always able to do, which of the present
1), making up the interval of 20 years. forms has a preponderance of evidence in its favor,
3. The era once used by Ezekiel, and commenc- [n addition to this difficulty there are several gaps
ing in Josiah's 18th year, we have previously dis- in the series of smaller numbers which we have no
cussed, concluding that it was most probably con- means of supplying with exactness. When, there-
nected with the sabbatical system (Sabbatical and fore, we can compare several of these smaller num-
J abide Years). bers with a larger number, or with independent
4. The era of Jehoiachin's captivity is constantly evidence, we are frequently prevented from putting
used by Ezekiel. The earliest date is the 5th year a conclusive test by the deficiencies in the first se
(i. 2) and the latest, the 27th (xxix. 17). The ries. The frequent occurrence of round numbers is
prophet generally gives the date without applying a matter of minor importance, for, although when
any distinctive term to the era. He speaks, how- we have no other evidence it manifestly precludes
ever, of " the fifth year of king Jehoiachin's captiv- our arriving at positive accuracy, the variation of
"
ity " (i. 2), and " the twelfth year of our captivity a few years is not to be balanced against great dif-
(xxxiii. 21), the latter of which expressions may ferences apparently not to be positively resolved, as
explain his constant use of the era. The same era those of the primeval numbers in the Hebrew, LXX.,
is necessarily employed, though not as such, where and Samaritan Pentateuch. Lately some have laid
the advancement of .lehoiaehin in the 37th year of great stress upon the frequent occurrence of the
his captivity is mentioned (2 K. xxv. 27; Jer. lii. number 40, alleging that it and 70 are vague terms
31). We have no proof that it was used except equivalent to " many," so that " 40 years," or " 70
by those to whose captivity it referred. Its 1st years," would mean no more than "many years."
440 CHRONOLOGY CHRONOLOGY
Prima facie, this idea would seem reasonable, but in historical chronology they could hardly be ex-
]
on a further examination it will be seen that the pected to be right, having a very small knowledge
|
details of some periods of 40 years are given, and of foreign sources. In fact, by comparing their
show that the number is not indefinite where it later dates with the chronology of the time astro-
would at first especially seem to lie so. Thus the nomically fixed, we find so extraordinary a depart-
40 years in the wilderness can be divided into three ure from correctness that we must abandon the idea
periods: (1.) from the Exodus to the sending out of their having held any additional facts handed
of the spies was about one year and a quarter (1 down by and serving to guide them to a
tradition,
year 1 -f- x (2 V) months, Num. ix. 1, x. 11; comp. true system of chronology. There are, however,
ver. 29, showing it was this year, and xiii. 20 prov- important foreign materials to aid us in the deter-
ing that the search ended somewhat after midsum- mination of Hebrew chronology. In addition to
mer): (2.) the time of search, 40 days (Num. xiii. the literary evidence that has been long used by
25): (3.) the time of the wandering until the chronologers, the comparatively recent decipher-
brook Zered was crossed, 38 years (Deut. ii. 14): ment of the Egyptian and Assyrian inscriptions
making altogether almost 39^ years. This per- has afforded us valuable additional evidence from
fectly accords with the date (yr. 40, m. 11, d. 1) of contemporary monuments.
the address of Moses after the conquest of Sihon Biblical data, —
It will be best to examine the
and Og (Deut. i. 3, 4), which was subsequent to Biblical information under the main periods into
the crossing of the brook Zered. So again David's which it may be separated, beginning with the
reign of 40 years is divided into 7 years 6 m. in earliest.
Hebron, and 33 in Jerusalem (2 Sam. ii. 11, v. 5; A. Eirst Period, from Adam to Abram's depart-
1 Chr. iii. 4, but 1 K. ii. 11, 7 years, omitting the ure from Haran. — All the numerical data in the-
months, and 33). This thereforwfcannot be an in- Bible for the chronology of this interval are com-
definite number, as some might conjecture from its prised in two genealogical lists in Genesis, the first
following Saul's 40 years and preceding Solomon's. from Adam to Noah and his sons (Gen. v. 3 ad fin.),
The last two reigns again could not have been and the second from Shem to Abram (xi. 10-26),
much more or less from the circumstances of the and in certain passages in the same book (vii. 6, 11,
history. The occurrence of some round numbers viii. 13, ix. 28, 29, xi. 32, xii.
4). The Masoretic
therefore does not warrant our supposing the con- Hebrew text, the LXX., and the Samaritan Pen-
stant use of vague ones. In discussing the tech- tateuch greatly differ, as may be seen by the fol-
nical part of the subjective have laid some stress lowing table, which we take from the Genesis of
upon the opinions of the earlier Kabbinical com- the Earth and of Man (p. 90), adding nothing
mentators: in this part we place no reliance upon essential but a various reading, and the age of
them. As to divisions of time connected with re- Abram when he left Haran, but also inclosing in
ligious observances they could scarcely be far wrong parentheses numbers not stated but obtained by
CHRONOLOGY CHRONOLOGY 441
Josephus, Philo, and the earlier Christian writers see there is some ground in the similar case of cer-
appear however to have known nothing of him, and tain generations, just alluded to, from Abraham
it is therefore probable either that he was first in- downwards. With respect to probability of accu-
troduced by a copyist into the Gospel and thence racy arising from the state of the text, the Heb.
into the LXX., or else that he was found in some certainly has the advantage. There is every reason
codd. of the LXX. and thence introduced into the to think that the Rabbins have been scrupulous in
Gospel, and afterwards into all other copies of the the extreme in making alterations: the LXX., on
LXX. [CAINAN.] Liefore considering the varia- the other hand, shows signs of a carelessness that
tions of the numbers it is important to notice that would almost permit change, and we have the prob-
" as two of the three sources must have been cor- able interpolation of the second Cainan. If, how-
rupted, we may reasonably doubt whether any one ever, we consider the Sam. form of the lists as
of them be preserved in its genuine state " (Genesis sprung from the other two, the LXX. would seem
of the Euvth, <fc, p. 92) —
a check upon our con to be earlier than the Heb., since it is more prob-
fidence that has strangely escaped chronologers in able that the antediluvian generations would have
general. The variations are the result of design, been shortened to a general agreement with the
not accident, as is evident from the years before the Heb., than that the postdiluvian would have been
birth of a son and the residues agreeing in their lengthened to suit the LXX. for it is obviously ;
sums in almost all cases in the antediluvian gen- most likely that a sufficient number of years having
erations, the exceptions, save one, being apparently been deducted from the earlier generations, the
the result of necessity that lives should not overlap operation was not carried on with the later. It is
the date of the Flood (comp. Clinton, Fasti Hellen. noticeable that the stated sums in the postdiluvian
i. 285). We have no clew to the date or dates generations in the Sam. generally agree with the
of the alterations beyond that we can trace the computed sums of the Heb. and not with those of
LXX. form to the first century of the Christian the LXX., which would be explained by the theory
era, if not higher," and the Heb. to the fourth cen- of an adaptation of one of these two to the other,
tury: if the Sam. numbers be as old as the text, although it would not give us reason for supposing
we can assign them a higher antiquity than what either form to be the earlier. It is an ancient con-
is known as to the Heb. The little acquaintance jecture that the term year was of old applied to
most of the early Christian writers had with Hebrew periods short of true years. There is some plausi-
makes it impossible to decide, on their evidence, bility in this theory, at first sight, but the account
that the variation did not exist when they wrote: of the Deluge seems fatal to its adoption. The only
the testimony of Josephus is here of more weight, passage that might lie alleged in its support is that
but in his present text it shows contradiction, in which 120 years is mentioned as if the term of
though preponderating in favor of the LXX. num- man's life after the great increase of wickedness
bers. A comparison of the lists would lead us to before the Deluge, compared with the lives assigned
suppose, on internal evidence, that they had first to the antediluvian patriarchs, but this from the
two forms, and that the third version of them context seems rather to mean a period of probation
originated from these two. This supposed later before the catastrophe (Gen. vi. 3). A question
version of the lists would seem to be the Sam., has been raised whether the generations and num-
which certainly is less internally consistent, on the bers may not be independent, the original genera-
supposition of the original correctness of the num- tions in Gen. having been, as those in 1 Chr., simply
bers, than the other two. The cause of the altera- names, and the numbers having been added, per-
tions is most uncertain. It has indeed been con- haps on traditional authority, by the Jews (comp.
jectured that the Jews shortened the chronology in Genesis of the Earth, <fc, pp. 92-94). If we sup-
order that an ancient prophecy that the Messiah pose that a period was thus portioned out, then the
should come in the sixth millenary of the world's character of Hebrew genealogies as not of necessity
age might not be known to be fulfilled in the advent absolutely continuous might somewhat lessen the
of our I»rd. The reason may be sufficient in itself, numbers assigned to individuals. Some have sup-
but it does not rest upon sufficient evidence. It is, posed that the numbers were originally cyclical, an
however, worthy of remark, that in the apostolic idea perhaps originating in the notion of the dis-
age there were hot discussions respecting genealogies tribution of a space of time to a certain number of
(Tit. iii. which would seem to indicate that great generations. This particular theory can however
9),
importance was attached to them, perhaps also that scarcely be reconciled with the historical character
the differences or some difference then existed. The of the names. Turning to the evidence of ancient
different proportions of the generations and lives in history and tradition, we find the numbers of the
the LXX. and Heb. have been asserted to afford LXX. confirmed rather than those of the Heb.
an argument in favor of the former. At a later The history and civilization of Egypt and Assyria
period, however, when we find instances of longevity with Babylonia reach to a time earlier than, in the
recorded in all versions, the time of marriage is first case, and about as early as, in the second, the
o The earliest supposed indication of the LXX. tion of Demetrius but we cannot place reliance on
;
numbers is in the passage of Polyhistor (ap. Euseb. the correctness of a single fragmentary text.
Prcep. ix. 21, p. 422) giviug the same as the computa-
442 CHRONOLOGY CHRONOLOGY
LXX. version was This appears to be a sider the following as the best forms of the numbera
made?
necessary consequence of their correctness, since the according to the three sources.
translators were probably not sufficiently acquainted
LXX.
with external sources to obtain numbers either Creation
Flood (occupying chief
actually or approximatively true, even if they ex- part of this year) . . 2262 1307
ternally existed, and had they had this knowledge, Birth of Peleg .... 401; 401 >
the best form of each of the three versions, and to to Abraham to the giving of the Law (Gal. iii. 17),
state the intervals thus obtained. In the LXX. the first event being held to be that recorded in
antediluvian generations, that of Methuselah is 187 Gen. xii. 1-5. The same number of years is given
or 167 years the former seems to be undoubtedly in Ex., where the Hebrew reads
:
" Xow the so- —
the true number, since the latter would make this journing of the children of Israel who dwelt in
patriarch, if the subsequent generations be correct, Egypt [was] four hundred and thirty years. And
to survive the Flood 14 years. In the postdiluvian it came to pass at the end of the four hundred and
numbers of the LXX. we must, as previously shown, thirty years, even the selfsame day it came to pass,
reject the second Cainan, from the preponderance that all the hosts of the Lord went out from the
of evidence against his genuineness. [Cainan.] land of Egypt" (xii. 40, 41). Here the LXX..
Of the two forms of Nabor's generation in the and Sam. add after " in Egypt " the words " and
LXX. we must prefer 79, as more consistent with in Canaan," while the Alex, and other MSS. of the
the numbers near it, and as also found in the Sam. former also add after " the children of Israel " the
An important correction of the next generation has words " and their fathers." It seems most reason-
been suggested in all the lists. According to them able to regard both these additions as glosses; if
it would appear that Terah was 70 years old at they are excluded, the passage appears to make the
Abram's birth. " Terah lived seventy years, and duration of the sojourn in Egypt 430 years, but
begat Abram, Nahor, and Haran " (Gen. xi. 26). this is not an absolutely certain conclusion. The
It is afterwards said that Terah went from Ur of "sojourning" might well include the period after
the Chaldees to Haran and died there at the age the promise to Abraham while that patriarch and
of 205 years (145 Sam.) (vv. 31, 32), and the de- his descendants " sojourned in the Land of promise
parture of Abram from Haran to Canaan is then as [in] a strange country" (Heb. xi. 9), for it is
narrated (comp. Acts vii. 4), his age being stated not positively said " the sojourning of the children
to have been at that time 75 years (xii. 1-5). Usher of Israel in Egypt," but we may read "who dwelt
therefore conjectures that Terah was 130 years old in Egypt." As for the very day of close being
at Abram's birth (205 75 — =
130), and supposes that of commencement, it might refer either to
the latter not to have been the eldest son but men- Abraham's entrance, or to the time of the promise.
tioned first on account of his eminence, as is Shem A third passage, occurring in the same essential
in several places (v. 32, vi. 10, vii. 13, ix. 18, x. 1), form in both Testaments, and therefore especially
who yet appears to have been the third son of Noah satisfactory as to its textual accuracy, throws light
and certainly not the eldest (x. 21, and arrange- upon the explanation we have offered of this last,
ment of chap.). There is, however, a serious objec- since it is impossible to understand it except upon
tion in the way of this supposition. It seems analogical principles. It is the divine declaration
scarcely probable that if Abram had been born to to Abraham of the future history of his children
his father at the age of 130 jears, he should have " Know of a surety that thy seed shall be a stran-
asked in wonder " Shall [a child] be born unto ger in a land [that is] not theirs, and shall serve
him is an hundred years old? and shall Sarah,
that them; and they shall afflict them four hundred
that ninety years old, bear?" (Gen. xvii. 17.)
is years and also that nation whom they shall serve,
;
earth divided " (!"Q7?3, 25). It cannot be posi- noticeable that after the citation given above, the
tively affirmed that the « Dispersion " spoken of in events of the whole sojourn are repeated, showing
Gen. xi. is here meant, since a physical catastrophe that this was the period spoken of, and perhaps,
might be intended, although the former is perhaps therefore, the period denned (15, 16). The mean-
the more natural inference. The event, whatever ing of the " fourth generation " here mentioned
it was, must have happened at Peletr's birth, rather has been previously considered. It cannot, there-
than, as some have supposed, at a later time in his fore, be held that the statement of St. Paul that
life, for the easterns have always given names to from the promise to Abraham until the Exodus
children at birth, as may be noticed in the cases was 430 years is irreconcilable with the two other
of Jacob and his sons. —
We should therefore cou- statements of the same kind. In order to arrive at
CHRONOLOGY CHRONOLOGY 443
»s certain a conclusion as be may attainable, we had the good fortune to discover some independent
must examine the evidence we have for the details contemporary evidence bearing upon this matter.
of this interval. First, however, it will be neces- There is an Egyptian hieratic papyrus in the Hib-
saiy to form a distinct opinion as to the length of liotheque at Paris bearing a moral discourse by one
lifeof the patriarchs of this age. The Biblical nar- Ptah-hotp, apparently eldest son of Assa (b. c. cir.
rative plainly ascribes to them lives far longer than 1910-1860), the fifth king of the Fifteenth Dy-
what is held to be the present extreme limit, and nasty, which was of Shepherds [Egypt]. At the
we must therefore carefully consider the evidence conclusion Ptah-hotp thus speaks of himself "I :
upon which the general correctness of the numbers have become an elder on the earth (or in the land);
rests, and any independent evidence as to the I have traversed a hundred and ten years of life by
length of life at this time. The statements in the the gift of the king and the approval of the elders,
Bible regarding longevity may be separated into fulfilling my duty towards the king in the place of
two classes, those given in genealogical lists, and favor (or blessing)." (Facsimile dun Papyrus
those interwoven witli the relation of events. To Egyptien, par E. Prisse d'Avennes, pi. xix., lines
the former class virtually belong all the statements 7, 8). The natural inferences from this passage
relating to the longevity of the patriarchs before are that Ptah-hotp wrote in the full possession of
Abraham, to the latter nearly all relating to that his mental faculties at the age of 110 years, and
of Abraham and his descendants. In the case of that his father was still reigning at the time, and,
the one we cannot arrive at certainty as to the therefore, had attained the age of about 130 years,
original form of the text, as already shown, but the or more. The analogy of all other documents of
other rests upon a very different kind of evidence. the kind known to us does not permit a different
The statements as to the length of the lives of conclusion. That Ptah-hotp was the son of Assa
Abraham and his nearer descendants, and some of is probable from inscriptions in tombs at Memphis
his later, are so closely interwoven with the histor- that he was a king's eldest son is expressly stated
not alone in form, but in sense, that
ical narrative, by himself (Facsimile, &c, pi. v., lines 6, 7). Yet
their general truth and
its cannot be separated. he had not succeeded his father at the time of his
Abraham's age at the birth of Isaac is a great fact writing, nor does he mention that sovereign as
in his history, equally attested in the Old Testa- dead. The reigns assigned by Manetho to the
ment and in the New.
Again, the longevity as- Shepherd'-Kings of this dynasty seem indicative of
cribed to Jacob confirmed by the question of
is a greater age than that of the Egyptian sovereigns
Pharaoh, and the patriarch's remarkable answer, in (Cory's Ancient Fragments, 2d ed., pp. 114, 136).
which he makes his then age of 130 years less than It has been suggested to us by Mr. Goodwin that
the years of his ancestors (Gen. xlvii. 9), a minute 110 years may be a vague term, meaning u a very
point of agreement with the other chronological long life; " it seems to be so used in papyri of a
statements to be especially noted. At a later time latertime (p.. C. cir. 1200). We rarely thus em-
the age of Moses is attested by various statements ploy the term centenarian, more commonly employ-
in the Pentateuch, and in the N. T. on St. Ste- ing sexagenarian and octogenarian, and this term
phen's authority, though it is to be observed that is therefore indicative of a greater longevity than
the mention of his having retained his strength to ours among the Egyptians. If the 110 years of
the end of his 120 years (Deut. xxxiv. 7), is per- Ptah-hotp lie vague, we must still suppose him to
haps indicative of an unusual longevity. In the have attained to an extreme old age during his
earlier part of the period following, we notice simi- father's lifetime, so that we can scarcely reduce the
lar instances in the case of Joshua, and, inferen- numbers 110 and about 130 more than ten years
tial!)-, in that of Othniel. Nothing in the Bible respectively. This Egyptian document is of the
could be cited against this evidence, except it be time of the Fifteenth Dynasty, and of so realistic
the common explanation of Ps. xc. (esp. ver. 10) and circumstantial a character in its historical bear-
combined with its ascription to Moses (title). The ings that the facts it states admit of no dispute.
title cannot, analogically, be considered a very sure Other records tend to confirm the inferences we
guide, but the style and contents seem to us to sup- have here drawn. It seems, however, probable that
port it. It may be questioned, however, whether such instances of longevity were exceptional, and
the general shortness of man's life forms the subject perhaps more usual among the foreign settlers in
of this psalm. A
shortness of life is lamented as Egypt than the natives, and we have no ground for
the result of God's anger, the people are described considering that the length of generations was then
as under his wrath, and prayer is made for a hap- generally different from what it now is. For these
pier condition. Nothing could be more applicable reasons we find no difficulty in accepting the state-
to the shortening of life in the desert in order that ments as to the longevity of Abraham and certain
none who were twenty years old and upwards at of his descendants, and can go on to examine the
the Exodus should enter the Land of Promise. details of the period under consideration as made
With these the ordinary term of life would be three- out from evidence requiring this admission. The
score years and ten, or fourscore years. If, there- narrative affords the following data which we place
fore, we ascribe the psalm to Moses, we cannot be under two periods —
(1) that from Abram's leaving
certain that it gives the average of long life at his Haran to Jacob's entering I'.-y pt and (2) that :
time independently of the peculiar' circumstances from Jacob's entering Egypt to the Exodus.
of the wandering in the desert. Thus it is evident
1. Age of Abram on leaving Haran 75 yrs.
that the two classes of statements in the Bible bear- at line's birth 100 .
ing <»n longevity stand upon a very different basis. Age of Isaac at Jacob's birth 60 . .
It must be observed that all the supposed famous Age of Jacob on entering Egypt 130
modern instances of great longevity, as those of
Parr, Jackson, and the old Countess of Desmond, 216 or 215 yrs. a
have utterly broken down on examination, and that
the registers of this country prove no greater ex- a Bunsen reckons Abraham's yr. 75 as 1, and yr.
treme than about 110 years. We have recently 100 as 25, and makes the sum of this interval from the
444 CHRONOLOGY CHRONOLOGY
2. Age of Levi on entering Egypt .... cir. 45 from 480 or 440 yrs. the first three yrs. of Solomon
Residue of his life 92 and the 40 of David, we obtain (480 43 ) 437
— =
Oppression after the death of Jacob's sons
(Ex. i. 6, 7, if.).
or (440 43— = 397 yrs.) These results we have
first to compare with the detached numbers. These
Age of Moses at Exodus 80
are as follows :)
—
From Exodus to death of
(a.
Age of Joseph in the same year 39 First Servitude x yrs. (d. ) Servitudes and rule of
Residue of his life * . 71 Judges until Eli's death, 430 yrs. (e.) Period from
Age of Moses at Exodus 80 Eli's death to Saul's accession, 20+
a; yrs.
(J'.)
Saul's reign, 40 yrs. (</.) David's reign, 40 yrs.
151 (h.) Solomon's reign to Foundation of Temple, 3
These data make up about 387 or 388 years, to yrs. Sum, 3 x +
580 yrs. It is possible to obtain
which it is reasonable to make some addition, since approximatively the length of the three wanting
itappears that all Joseph's generation died before
numbers. Joshua's age at the Exodus was 20 or
the oppression commenced, and it is probable that 20 + x yrs. (Num. xiv. 29, 30), and at his death,
had begun some time before the birth of Moses. 110: therefore the utmost length of his rule must
it
dates the 430 years from Jacob's entering into was 85 yrs. old, and that he conquered the lot after
Egypt. The historical evidence should be carefully Joshua's death. Caleb cannot be supposed to have
weighed. Its chief point is the increase of the Is-
been a very old man on taking his portion, and it
is unlikely that he would have waited long before
raelitesfrom the few souls who went with Jacob
into Egypt, and Joseph and his sons, to the six
attacking the heathen who held it, to say nothing
hundred thousand men who came out at the Exo- of the portion being his claimed reward for not
dus. At the former date the following are enumer- having feared the Anakim who dwelt there, a reward
ated —
"besides Jacob's sons' wives," Jacob, his promised him of the Lord by Moses and claimed
of Joshua, who alone of his fellow-spies had shown
twelve sons and one daughter (13), his fifty-one
grandsons and one granddaughter (52), and his the same faith and courage (Num. xiv. 24; Deut.
i. 36: Josh. xiv. 6 ml fin., xv. 13-19; Judg. i. 9-
four great-grandsons, making, with the patriarch
himself, seventy souls (Gen. xlvi. 8-27). The gen- 15, 20). If we suppose that Caleb set out to con-
eration to which children woidd be born about this quer his lot about 7 years after its apportionment,
date may thus be held to have been of at least 51 then Joshua's rule would be about 13 yrs., and he
pairs," since all are males except one, who most would have been a little older than Caleb. The
probably married a cousin. This computation interval between Joshua's death and the First
takes no account of polygamy, which was certainly Servitude is limited by the history of Othniel. He
practised at the time by the Hebrews. This first was already a warrior when Caleb conquered his lot;
generation must, except there were at the time he lived to deliver Israel from the Mesopotamian
other female grandchildren of Jacob besides the one oppressor, and died at the end of the subsequent
mentioned (comp. Gen. xlvi. 7), have taken foreign 40 yrs. of rest. Supposing Othniel to have been
wives, and it is reasonable to suppose the same to 30 yrs. old when Caleb set out, and 110 yrs. at his
have been constantly done afterwards, though prob- death, 32 yrs. would remain for the interval in
ably in a less degree. "We cannot therefore found question. The rule of Joshua may be therefore
our calculation solely on these 51 pairs, but must reckoned to have been about 13 yrs.. and the sub-
allow for polygamy and foreign marriages. These sequent interval to the First Servitude about 32
admissions being made, and the especial blessing yrs., altogether 47 yrs. These numbers cannot be
which attended the people borne in mind, the in- considered exact but they can hardly be far wrong,
:
terval of about 215 j'ears does not seem too short more especially the sum. The residue of Samuel's
for the increase. On the whole, we have no hesi- judgeship after the 20 yrs. from Eli's death until
tation in accepting the 430 years as the length of the solemn fast and victory at Mizpeh, can scarcely
the interval from Abrani's leaving Haran to the have much exceeded 20 yrs. Samuel must have
Exodus. been still young at the time of Eli's death, and he
C. Third Period, from the Exodus to the Foun- died very near the close of Saul's reign (1 Sam.
dation of Solomon's Temple. There is but one — xxv. 1, xxviii. 3). If he were 10 yrs. old at the
passage from which we obtain the length of this former date, and judged for 20 yrs. after the victory
that which the Founda- at Mizpeh, he would have been near 90 yrs. old
period as a whole. It is in
tion of the Temple is dated in the 480th (Heb. ), or (10? + +
20 20? +38?) at his death, which ap-
440th (LXX.) year after the Exodus, in the 4th yr. pears to have been a long«period of life at that time.
If we thus suppose the three uncertain intervals,
2d m. of Solomon's reign (1 K. vi. 1). Subtracting
numbers 215 (Egypt's Place, i. 180). This is inaccu- mainder of 56 pair out of 70 souls puts us very much
rate, since if 75 = 1, then 100 = 26, and the interval in mind of Falstaff's mode of reckoning.'' (Egypt's
Is 216. Placr, i. 178). Had the critic read Gen. xlvi. he would
« Bunsen ridicules Dr. Baumgarten of Kiel for sup- not have made this extraordinary mistake, and allowed
posing a residue of 56 pairs from 70 souls. "This re- only three wives to 67 men.
. CHRONOLOGY CHRONOLOGY 445
the residue of Joshua's rule, the time after his reached a period in which the differences of chro-
death to the First Servitude, and Samuel's rule nologers are no longer to be measured by centuries
after the victory at Mizpeh to have been respectively but by tens of years and even single years, and
G, 32, and 20 yrs., the sum of the whole period will towards the close of which accuracy is attainable.
be (580 -|- 58 = ) 638 yrs. Two independent large The most important numbers in the Bible are gen-
numbers seem to confirm this result. One is in erally stated more than once, anil several means are
St. Paul's address at Antioch of l'isidia, where, alii in led by which their accuracy can be tested.
after speaking of the Exodus and the 40 yrs. in the The principal of these tests are the statements of
desert, he adds: "And when he had destroyed kings' ages at their accessions, the double dating
seven nations in the land of Chanaan, he divided of tlie accessions of kings of .ludah in the reigns
their land unto them by lot. And after that he of kings of Israel and the converse, and the double
gave [unto them] judges about the space of four reckoning by the years of kings of Judah and of
hundred and fifty years, until Samuel the prophet. Nebuchadnezzar. Of these tests the most valuable
And afterward they desired a king" (Acts xiii. 19, is the second, which extends through the greater
20, 21). This interval of 450 yrs. may be variously part of the period under consideration, and prevents
explained, as commencing with Othniel's deliver- our making any very serious error in computing its
ance and ending with Eli's death, a period which length. The mentions of kings of Egypt and
the numbers of the earlier books of the Bible, if Assyria contemporary with Hebrew sovereigns are
added together, make 422 yrs., or as commencing also of importance, and are likely to be more so,
with the First Servitude, 8 yrs. more, 430 yrs., or when, as we may expect, the chronological places of
with Joshua's death, which would raise these num- all these contemporaries are more nearly determined.
bers by about 30 yrs., or again it may lie held to All records therefore tending to fix the chronologies
end at Saul's accession, which would raise the of Egypt and Assyria, as well as of Babylonia, are
numbers given respectively by about 40 yrs. How- of great value from their bearing on Hebrew chro-
ever explained, this sum of 450 yrs. supports the nology. At present the most important of such
authority of the smaller numbers as forming an records is Ptolemy's Canon, from which no sound
essentially correct measure of the period. The other chronologer will venture to deviate. If all the
large number occurs in Jephthah's message to the Biblical evidence is carefully collected and compared,
king of the Children of Amnion, where the period it will be found that some small and great incon-
during which Israel had held the land of the Amo- sistencies necessitate certain changes of the num-
rites from the first conquest either up to the begin- bers. The amount of the former class has, however,
ning of the Servitude from which they were about been much exaggerated, since several supposed in-
to be freed, or up to the very time, is given as 300 consistencies depend upon the non-recognition of
yrs. (Judg. xi. 26). The smaller numbers, with the mode of reckoning regnal years, from the com-
the addition of 38 yrs. for two uncertain periods, mencement of the year and not from the day of the
would make these intervals respectively 346 and 364 king's accession. The some
greater difficulties and
yrs. Here, therefore, there appears to be another of the smaller cannot be resolved without the sup-
agreement with the smaller numbers, although it position that numbers have been altered by copyists.
does not amount to a positive agreement, since the In these cases our only resource is to propose an
meaning might be either three centuries, as a vague emendation. We
must never take refuge in the
sum, or about 300 yrs. So far as the evidence of idea of an interregnum, since it is a much more
the numbers goes, we must decide in favor of the violent hypothesis, considering the facts of the his-
longer interval from the Exodus to the building of tory, than the conjectural change of a number.
the First Temple, in preference to the period of 480 Two interregnums have however been supposed,
or 440 yrs. The evidence of the genealogies has one of 11 yrs. between Jeroboam II. and Zachariah,
been held by some to sustain a different conclusion. and the other, of 9 yrs. between Pekah and Hoshea.
These lists, as they now stand, would, if of con- The former supposition might seem to receive some
tinuous generations, be decidedly in favor of an support from the words of the prophet Hosea (x. 3,
interval of about 300, 400, or even 500 years, some 7, and perhaps 15), which, however, may as well
being much shorter than others. It is, however, imply a lax government, and the great power of
impossible to reduce them to consistency with each the Israelite princes and captains, as an absolute
other without arbitrarily altering some, and the anarchy, and we must remember the improbability
result with those who have followed them as the of a powerful sovereign not having been at once
safest guides has been the adoption of the shortest succeeded by his son, and of the people having been
of the numbers just given, about 300 yrs. a The content to remain for some years without a king.
evidence of the genealogies may therefore be con- It is still more unlikely that in Hoshea's case a
sidered as probably leading to the rejection of all king's murderer should have been able to take his
numerical statements, but as perhaps less incon- place after an interval of 9 yrs. We prefer in both
sistent with that of 480 or 440 yrs. than with the cases to suppose a longer reign of the earlier of the
rest. We have already shown (Technical Chro- two kings between whom the interregnums are con-
nology) what strong reasons there are against using jectured. With the exception of these two inter-
Mthe Hebrew genealogies to measure time. pre- We regnums, we would accept the computation of the
fer to hold to the evidence of the numbers, and to interval we are now considering given in the margin
take as the most satisfactory the interval of about of the A. V. It must be added, that the date of
638 yrs. from the Exodus to the Foundation of the conclusion of this period there given B. c. 588
Solomon's Temple. must be corrected to 586. The received chronology
D. Fourth Period, from the Foundation of Sol- as to its intervals cannot indeed be held to be
omon's Temple to its Destruction. We have now — beyond question in the time before Josiah's acces-
sion up to the Foundation of the Temple, but we be termed Biblical, inasmuch as it depends for the
cannot at present attain any better positive result most part upon theories, not only independent of,
than that we have accepted. The whole period but repugnant to the Bible: this last is at present
may therefore be held to be of about 425 yrs., that peculiar to Baron Bunsen. Before noticing these
of the undivided kingdom 120 yrs., that of the systems it is desirable to point out some character-
kingdom of Judah about 388 yrs., and that of the istics of those who have supported them, which
kingdom of Israel about 255 yrs. It is scarcely may serve to aid our judgment in seeing how far
possible that these numbers can be more than a they are trustworthy guides. All, or almost all
very few years wrong, if at all. (For a fuller treat- have erred on the side of claiming for their results
ment of the chronology of the kings, see Israel, a greater accuracy than the nature of the evidence
Kingdom of, and Judah, Kingdom of.) upon which they rested rendered possible. An-
E. Fifth Period, from the Destruction of Solo- other failing of these chronologers is a tendency to
mon's Temple to the Return from the Babylonish accept, through a kind of false analogy, long or
Captivity. —The determination of the length of short numbers and computations for intervals, rather
this period depends upon the date of the return to according as they have adopted the long or the short
Palestine- The decree of Cyrus leading to that reckoning of the patriarchal genealogies than on a
event was made in the 1st year of doubt-
his reign, consideration of special evidence. It is as though
less at Babylon (Ezr. i. 1), u. c. 538, but it does they were resolved to make the sum as great or as
not seem certain that the Jews at once returned. small as possible. The Rabbins have in their chro-
So great a migration must have occupied much nology afforded the strongest example of this error,
time, and about two or three yrs. would not seem having so shortened the intervals as even egre-
too long an interval for its complete accomplish- giously to throw out the dates of the time of the .
ment after the promulgation of the decree. Two Persian rule. The German school is here an ex-
numbers, held by some to be identical, must here ception, for it has generally fallen into an opposite
be considered. One is the period of 70 yrs., during extreme and required a far greater time than any
which the tyranny of Babylon over Palestine and derivable from the Biblical numbers for the earlier
the East generally was to last, prophesied by Jere- ages, while taking the Rabbinical date of the Ex-
miah (xxv.), and the other, the 70 Yrs. Captivity odus, and so has put two portions of its chronology
(xxix. 10; 2 Chr. xxxvi. 21; Dan. ix. 2). The "We do not lay much stress
in violent contrast.
commencement of the former period is upon the opinions of the early Christian writers, or
plainly the
1st year of Nebuchadnezzar and 4th of Jehoiakim even Josephus: their method was uncritical, and
(Jer. xxv. 1), when the successes of the king of they accepted the numbers best known to them
Babylon began (xlvi. 2), and the miseries of Jeru- without any feeling of doubt. We shall therefore
salem (xxv. 29), a and the conclusion, the fall of confine ourselves to the moderns.
Babylon (ver. 26). Ptolemy's Canon counts from The principal advocates of the Long Chronology
the accession of Nebuchadnezzar to that of Cyrus are Jackson, Hales, and Des-Vignoles. They take
66 yrs., a number sufficiently near to the round the LXX. for the patriarchal generations, and adopt
sum of 70, which may indeed, if the yrs. be of 360 the long interval from the Exodus to the Founda-
days ( Year) represent at the utmost no more than tion of Solomon's Temple. The Short ( hronology
about 69 tropical years. The famous 70 years of has had a multitude of illustrious supporters owing
captivity would seem to be the same period as this, to its having been from Jerome's time the recog-
since it was to terminate with the return of the nized system of the West. Ussher may be con-
captives (Jer. xxix. 10). The two passages in Zech., sidered as its most able advocate. He follows the
which speak of such an interval as one of desolation Hebrew in the patriarchal generations, and takes
(i. 12), and during which fasts connected with the the 480 years from the Exodus to the Foundation
last captivity had been kept (vii. 5), are not irre- of Solomon's Temple. The Rabbinical Chronology
concilable with this explanation: a famous past has lately come into much notice from its partial
period might be spoken of, as the moderns speak reception, chiefly by the German school. It accepts
of the Thirty Years' War. These two passages are, the Biblical numbers, but makes the most arbitrary
it must be noticed, of different dates, the first of corrections. For the date of the Exodus it has
the 2d year of Darius Hystaspis, the second of the been virtually accepted by Bunsen, Lepsius, and
4th year. —This period we consider to be of 48 -f- x Lord A. Hervey. The system of Bunsen we have
yrs., the doubtful number being the time of the been compelled to constitute a fourth class of itself.
reign of Cyrus before the return to Jerusalem, For the time before the Exodus he discards all Bib-
probably a space of about two or three years. lical chronological data, and reasons altogether, as
Principal Systems Of Biblical Chronology. —it appears to us, on philological considerations.
Upon the data we have considered three principal The following table exhibits the principal dates ac-
systems of Biblical Chronology have been founded, cording to five writers.
which may be termed the Long System, the Short, The principal disagreements of these chronol-
and the Rabbinical. There is a fourth, which, ogers, besides those already indicated, must be no-
although an offshoot in part of the last, can scarcely ticed. In the post-diluvian period Hales rejects the
-,
« In the book of Daniel (i. 1) the 3d year of 37th year of Jehoiachin's captivity, 12m. 25d. (Jer.),
Jehoiakim is given instead of the 4th. which may be or 27 (2 K.), falling according to the rendering of the
accounted for by the circumstance that the Babylonian A. V. in the 1st year of Evil-Merodach (Jer. lii. 31 2 ;
year commenced earlier than the Hebrew, so that K. xxv. 27), may be explained, as Dr. Hincks suggests,
Nebuchadnezzar's 1st would commence in Jehoiakim's either by supposing the Heb., "in the year when he
3d, and be current in his 4th. In other books of the was king," to mean that he reigned but one year in-
Bible the years of Babylonian kings seem to be gener- stead of two, as in the canon, or that Evil-Merodach is
ally Hebrew current years. Two other difficulties may not the Iluarodamus of the canon (Jnurn. Sacr. Lit.
be noticed. The I8th year of Nebuchadnezzar in Jer. Oct. 1858).
lii. 29 seems to be for the 19th. The difficulty of the
CHRONOLOGY CHRONOLOGY 447
Hales.
Creation
Flood
Abram leaves Haran
Exodus
Foundation of Solomon's Temple
Destruction of " "
4 48 CHRONOLOGY CHRONOLOGY
thu 3d being the very date the Hebrew numbers about 249 years before the accession of Hezekiah,
give. Again, Merodach-Baladan sent messengers and therefore b. c. cir. 973. The invasion of Shi-
to Hezekiah immediately after his sickness, and shak took place in his 5th year, by this computa-
therefore in about his 15th year, b. c. 710. Ac- tion, 909. Shishak was already on the throne
cording to Ptolemy's Canon, Mardocempadua when Jeroboam fled to him from Solomon. This
reigned 721-710, and, according to Berosus, seized event happened during the building of Millo, &c,
the regal power for 6 months before Elibus, the when Jeroboam was head of the workmen of the
Belibus of the Canon, and therefore in about 70-3, house of Joseph (1 K. xi. 2G-40, see esp. ver. 29).
this being, no doubt, a second reign. Here the The building of Millo and repairing of the breaches
preponderance of evidence is in favor of the earlier of the city of David was after the building of the
dates of Hezekiah. Thus far the chronological house of Pharaoh's daughter, that was constructed
data of Egypt and Assyria appear to clash in about the same time as Solomon's house, the com-
a manner that seems at first sight to present a pletion of which is dated in his 23d year (1 K. vi.
hopeless knot, but not on this account to be rashly 1, 37, 38, vii. 1; 2 Chr. viii. 1). This building is
cut. Anexamination of the facts of the history recorded after the occurrences of the 24th year of
has afforded Dr. Hincks what we believe to be the Solomon, for Pharaoh's daughter remained in Je-
true explanation. Tirhakah, he observes, is not rusalem until the king had ended building his own
explicitly termed Pharaoh or king of Egypt in the house, and the temple, and the wall of Jerusalem
Bible, but king of Cush or Ethiopia, from which round about (1 K. iii. 1), and Millo was built after
it might be inferred that at the time of Sennach- the removal of the queen (ix. 24 therefore, as Jer-
)
;
erib's disastrous invasion he had not assumed the oboam was concerned in this building of Millo and
crown of Egypt. The Assyrian inscriptions of repairing the breaches, and was met " at that time "
Sennacherib mention kings of Egypt and a con- (xi. 29) by Ahijah, and in consequence had to flee'
temporary king of Ethiopia in alliance with them. from the country, the 24th or 25th year is the most
The history of Egypt at the time, obtained by a probable date. Thus Shishak appears to have come
comparison of the evidence of Herodotus and others to the throne at least 21 or 22 years before his ex-
with that of Manetho's lists, would lead to the pedition against Rehoboam. An inscription at the
same or a similar conclusion, which appears to be quarries of Silsilis in Upper Egypt records the cut-
remarkably confirmed by the prophecies of Isaiah. ting of stone in the 22d jear of Sheshonk I., or
We hold, therefore, as most probable, that at the Shishak, for constructions in the chief temple of
time of Sennacherib's disastrous expedition, Tir- Thebes, where we now find a record of his conquest
hakah was king of Ethiopia in alliance with the of Judah (( 'hampollion, Lettres, pp. 190, 191).
king or kings of Egypt. It only remains to ascer- On we may place the accession of
these grounds
tain what evidence there is for the date of this ex- Shishak B. c. cir. 990. The evidence of Manetho's
pedition. First, it must be noted that the warlike lists, compared with the monuments, would place
operations of Sennacherib recorded in the Bible this event within a few years of this date, for they
have been conjectured, as already mentioned, to be do not allow us to put it much before or after B. C.
those of two expeditions. The fine paid by Heze- 1000, an approach to correctness which at this
kiah is recorded in the inscriptions as a result of period is very valuable. It is not possible here to
an expedition of Sennacherib's 3d year, which, by a discuss this evidence in detail.
comparison of Ptolemy's anon with Berosus, must
( 5. Exodus. —
Arguments founded on independ-
be dated is. c. 700, which would fall so near the ent evidence afford the best means of deciding which
close of the reign of the king of Judah, if no is the most probable computation from Biblical evi-
alteration be made, that the supposed second ex- dence of the date of the Exodus. comparison A
pedition, of which there would naturally be no of the Hebrew calendar with the Egyptian has led
record in the Assyrian annals on account of its ca- the writer to the following result The civil com-
:
lamitous end, could not be placed much later. The mencement of the Hebrew year was with the new
Biblical account would, however, be most reason- moon nearest to the autumnal equinox and at the ;
ably explained by the supposition that the two ex- approximative date of the Exodus obtained by the
peditions were but two campaigns of the same war, a long reckoning, we find that the Egyptian vague
war but temporarily interrupted by Hezekiah's sub- year commenced at or about that point of time.
mission. Since the first expedition fell in b. c. 700, This approximative date, therefore, falls about the
we have not to suppose that the reign of Tirhakah time at which the vague year and the Hebrew year,
in Ethiopia commenced more than 11 years at the as dated from the autumnal equinox, nearly or ex-
utmost before his accession in Egypt, a supposition actly coincided in their commencements. It may
which, on the whole, is far preferable to the dis- lie reasonably supposed that the Israelites in the
locating attempts that have been made to lower the time of the oppression had made use of the vague
reign of Hezekiah. This would, however, necessi- year as the common year of the country, which
tate a substitution of a later date in the place of indeed is rendered highly probable by the circum-
the 14th year of Hezekiah for the first expedition. stance that they had mostly adopted the Egyptian
(See especially Dr. Hincks's paper " On the Kecti- religion (Josh. xxiv. 14; Ez. xx. 7, 8), the celebra-
fications of Sacred and Profane Chronology, which tions of which were kept according to this year.
the newly-discovered Apis-steles render necessary," When, therefore, the festivals of the Law rendered
in the Journal of Sacred Literature, Oct. 1858; a year virtually tropical necessary, of the kind either
and Rawlinson's lie rod. i. 478-480). The syn- restored or instituted at the Exodus, it seems most
chronisms of Hoshea and Shalmaneser, Pekah and probable that the current vague year was fixed un-
Tiglath-Pileser, Menahem and Pul, have not yet der Moses. If this supposition be correct, we should
been approximatively determined on double evi- expect to find that the 14th day of Abib, on which
dence. fell the full moon of the Passover of the Exodus,
Thursday, April 2 1st, in the year is. c. 1652." A which we assign the Exodus, are wanting. It loses
full moon would not fall on the same day of the almost all its force when we find that a son of Aah-
vague year at a shorter interval than 25 years be- mes, Amosis, the head of the 18th dynasty, vari-
fore or after this date, while the triple coincidence ously assigned to the 17th and 16th centuries b. c.
of the new moon, vague year, and autumnal equi- bore the name of Rameses, which name from its
nox could not recur in less than 1500 vague years meaning (son of Ra or the sun, the god of Heli-
(Enc. Brit. 8th ed. Egypt, p. 458). The date thus opolis, one of the eight great gods of Egypt) would
obtained is but 4 years earlier than Hales's, and the almost necessarily be a not very uncommon one,
interval from it to that of the Foundation of Sol- and Raamses might therefore have been named
omon's Temple, b. c. cir. 1010, would be about from an earlier king or prince bearing the name
642 years, or 4 years in excess of that previously long before Rameses I. The history of Egypt pre-
obtained from the numerical statements in the Bi- sents great difficulties to the reception of the theory
ble. It must be borne in mind that the inferences together with the Biblical narrative, difficulties so
from the celebration of great passovara also led us great that we think they could only be removed by
to about the same time. In later articles we shall abandoning a belief in the historical character of
show the manner in which the history of Egypt that narrative: if so, it is obviously futile to found
agrees with this conclusion. [Egypt; Exodus, an argument upon a minute point, the occurrence
the.] Setting aside Ussher's preference for the of a single name. The historical difficulties on
480 years, as resting upon evidence far less strong the Hebrew side in the period after the Exodus are
than the longer computation, we must mention the not less serious, and have induced Bunsen to ante-
principal reasons urged by Bunsen and Lepsius in date Moses' war beyond Jordan, and to compress
support of the Rabbinical date. The reckoning by Joshua's rule into the 40 years in the wilderness
the genealogies, upon which this date rests, we have (Hibelwerk, i. pp. cexxviii.-ix. ), and so, we venture
already shown to be unsafe. Several points of his- to think, to forfeit his right to reason on the details
torical evidence are, however, brought forward by of the narrative relating to the earlier period. This
these writers as leading to or confirming this date. compression arises from the want of space for the
Of these the most important is the supposed ac- Judges. The chronology of events so obtained is
count of the Exodus given by Manetho, the Egyp- also open to the objection brought against the longer
tian historian, placing the event at about the same schemes, that the Israelites could not have been in
time as the Rabbinical date. This narrative, how- Palestine during the campaigns in the East of the
ever, is, on the testimony of Josephus, who has Pharaohs of the 18th, 10th, and 20th dynasties,
preserved it to us, wholly devoid of authority, be- since it does not seem possible to throw those of
ing, according to Manetho's own showing, a record Rameses III. earlier than Bunsen's date of the be-
of uncertain antiquity, and of an unknown writer, ginning of the conquest of western Palestine by the
and not part of the Egyptian annals. An indica- Hebrews. This question, involving that of the pol-
tion of date has also been supposed in the mention icies and relation of Egypt and the Hebrews, will
that the name of one of the treasure-cities built for be discussed in later articles. [Egypt; Exodus,
Pharaoh by the Israelites during the oppression the.] We therefore take b. c. 1652 as the most
was Raamses (Ex. i. 11), probably the same place as satisfactory date of the Exodus (see Duke of North-
the Rameses elsewhere mentioned, the chief town umberland's paper in Wilkinson's Anc. Eg. i. 77-
of a tract so called. [Rameses.] This name is 81; Bunsen, fflbekoerk, i. pp. ccxi.-ccxiii., cexxiii.
the same as that of certain well-known kings of ff.
; Lepsius, Chronologie der yEgypUr,'i. 314 fF.).
Egypt of the period to which by this scheme the 6. Bute, of the Commencement of the 430 years
Exodus would be referred. If the story given by of Sojourn. — We have already given our reasons
Manetho be founded on a true tradition, the great for holding the 430 years of Sojourn to have com-
oppressor would have been Rameses II., second king menced when Abraham entered Palestine, and that
of the 19th dynasty, whose reign is variously as- it does not seem certain that the Exodus was the
signed to the 14th and 13th centuries u. C. It is anniversary of the clay of arrival. It is reasonable,
further urged that the first king Rameses of the however, to hold that the interval was of 430 com-
Egyptian monuments and Manetho's lists is the plete years or a little more, commencing about the
grandfather of this king, Rameses I., who was the time of the vernal equinox, B. C. '2082, or nearer
last sovereign of the 18th dynasty, and reigned at the beginning of that pr-oleptic Julian year. Before
the utmost about 60 years before his grandson. It this date we cannot attempt to obtain anything be-
must, however, be observed, that there is great rea- yond an approximative chronology.
son for taking the lower dates, of both kings, which 7. Date of the Dispersion. —
Taking the LXX.
would make the reign of the second after the Rab- numbers as most probable, the Dispersion, if co-
binical date of the Exodus, and that in this case incident with the birth of Peleg, must be placed
both Manetho's statement must be of course set B. C. cir. 2698, or, if we accept Ussher's correction
aside, as placingthe Exodus in the reign of this of the age of Terah at the birth of Abraham, cir.
king's son, and the order of the Biblical narrative 2758. * We do not give round numbers, since doing
must be transposed that the building of Raamses so might needlessly enlarge the limits of error.
should not fall before the accession of Rameses I. 8. Date of the Flood. —
The Flood, as ending
The argument that there was no king Rameses be- about 401 years before the birth of Peleg, would be
fore Rameses I. is obviously weak as a negative placed b. c. cir 3099 or 3159. The year preced-
one, more especially as the names of very many ing, or the 402d, was that mainly occupied by the
a This was calculated for the writer at the Royal sarilyimply that he had done more than enter upon
Observatory, through the kindness of the Astronomer- his 75th year. (Comp. the case of Noah, vii. 6, 11,
Royal. —
Horce JEg. p. 217. 13.) C. 20S2, might
All the dates, therefore, before B.
Abraham is said to have been 75 J cars old when
ft
have to be lowered one year.
he left Haran (Gen. xii. 4), but this does not ueces-
29
450 CHRONOLOGY CHRONOLOGY
catastrophe. most reasonable to suppose the contrast to the repeated guaranty of the land of
It is
Noachian colonists to have begun to spread about Canaan (vs. 7, 8, 18) to Abraham and his seed as
three centuries alter the Flood. If the Division at their own. The inclusion of any part of Abra-
Peleg's birth be really the same as the Dispersion ham's own history in this period of servitude and
after the building of the Tower, this supposed in- affliction seems forbidden by the positive assurance
terval would not be necessarily to be lengthened, (ver. 15) that he should go to his grave in peace,
for the text of the account of the building of the and the manifest assignment of this servitude (as
Tower does not absolutely prove that all Noah's Tuch remarks) to the distant future. Besides,
descendants were concerned in it, and therefore Abraham's residence in Egypt had taken place be-
some may have previously taken their departure fore the prophecy was uttered. The statement of
from the primeval settlement. The chronology of Stephen (Acts vii. 6, 7) accords with this interpre-
Egypt, derived from the monuments and Manetho, tation. Paul, however (Gal. iii. 17), reckons 430
is held by some to indicate for the foundation of years between the promise to Abraham and the
its first kingdom a much earlier period than would giving of the law; but it is remarked by Kurtz.
be consistent with this scheme of approximative Keil, and others, that he simply conforms to the
Biblical dates. The evidence of the monuments, traditional view of the synagogue and the phrase-
however, does not seem to us to carry back this ology of the Septuagint, which alone was in the
event earlier than the latter part of the 28th cent- hands of his Gentile readers, and because the pre-
ury k. c. The Assyrians and Babylonians have cise length of time did not affect his argument.
not been proved, on satisfactory grounds, to have It was, on any view, 430 years. (It should be
reckoned back to so remote a time; but the evi- mentioned in passing that Josephus gives 400
dence of their monuments, and the fragments of years, Ant. ii. 9, § 1 B. J. v. 9, § 4 and 215 years,
; :
their history preserved by ancient writers, as in the Ant. ii. 15, § 2; comp. c. Apion. i. 33.)
case of the Egyptians, cannot be reconciled with It is alleged against the 430 years that the time
the short interval preferred by Ussher. As far as was but four generations (Gen. xv. 16). Put the
we can learn, no independent historical evidence reply is obvious that verses 13 and 15 cannot con-
points to an earlier period than the middle of the flict, and the generation \" therefore "the sum
28th century b. C. as the time of the foundation of total of the lives of all the men living at the same
kingdoms, although the chronology of Egypt reaches time " (Hofmann), or, in the time of the patriarchs,
to about this period, while that of Babylon and other a hundred years (Gesenius). But it is still affirmed
states does not greatly fall short of the same antiq- that but four generations are commonly mentioned
uity. in the genealogy of individuals. To which it is
9. Date of the Creation of Adam. — The num- answered, the specification of four main links (per-
bers given by the LXX. for the antediluvian patri- haps in conformity to the very language of proph-
archs would place the creation of Adam 2262 years ecy) does not exclude others; and we actually find
before the end of the Flood, or b. c. cir. 5361 or six generations mentioned from Joseph to Zelo-
5421. R. S. P. phehad (Num. xxvi. 29 ff.), seven from Judah to
* The assignment of only 215 years to the so- Bezaleel (1 Chr. ii. 3 ff.), and ten or eleven from
journ in Egypt (see No. 6 above) is far- from meet- Ephraim to Joshua (1 Chr. vii. 22 ff.). And a
ing with general acceptance. It has indeed come comparison of the two genealogies of Levi in Ex.
down from the Septuagint as the traditional theory, vi. and 1 Chr. vi., shows that there are names omit-
but in modern times has been strongly opposed. ted in the former which have been procured from
Of those who dissent from that view are Kosen other sources for the latter.
miiller, Hofmann, Jahn, Ewald, Gesenius, Winer, The one real difficulty is found in the parentage
Tuch, Kurtz, Delitzsch, Keil, Knobel, Kalisch, and of Moses. If Amram his father (Ex. vi. 20) was
many others of similar rank as scholars. On this the same with Amram the grandson of Levi (Ex.
question the reader may consult especially, Knobel vi. 18), and if Jochebed his mother was strictly
on Ex. xii. 40 (Exet/et. Handb. xii. 121), and Kurtz Levi's daughter (Ex. vi. 20 Num. xxvi. 59), it is a
;
(History of the Obi Covenant, ii. 135 ff., Eng. tr.). fatal objection. But that Moses' father could not
There are two texts that seem quite distinct and be the tribe or family-father Amram, has been, we
unequivocal. Ex. xii. 40 asserts that the abode in think, shown from Num. iii. 27, 28, where it ap-
Egypt was 430 years —even though we translate pears that in Moses' time the Amramites, Izehar-
"who abode in Egypt." And here is found no ites, Hebronites, and Uzzielites (the four affiliated
manuscript variation in the Hebrew text. It is branches of Kohath's descendants), numbered 8,600
supported by Targum Onkelos, the Syriac, and males. Allowing one-fourth of these to the Am-
Vulgate. The Septuagint (Codex Vatican.), how- ramites would give them over two thousand males;
ever, has introduced the words " and in the land and as Moses had but two sons to be included with
of Canaan," while the Alexandrian Codex adds also, himself in this number, it follows that if this Am-
" they and their fathers." This change, though ram, the head of this family, were the father of
found in the Targum Jonathan and the Samaritan Moses, then Moses must have had over 2,000 brot It-
version, at once suggests, by its two-fold explana- ers and brothers' sons — the women and girls of
tion, the suspicion of an artificial emendation to the family not being reckoned. The tribe-father
meet a difficulty. That these words, once in the must therefore have been a different man from the
text, should have been omitted, is hardly probable father of Moses. But was Jochebed Levi's daugh-
that they should have crept in to solve various dif-ter ? In Ex. ii. 1 she is called " a daughter of
ficulties, is Again, Gen. xv. 13 de- Levi;" but the connection admits the same gen-
quite natural.
"
clares the future servitude and affliction, not of eral sense as the phrase " a daughter of Abraham
Abraham, but of his " seed " " in a land not (Luke xiii. 16). That she was her husband's aunt
theirs," to be "400 years," in round numbers. (Ex. vi. 20), even if we interpret the expression
The suggestion that this was to be partly in Ca- rigidly, will decide nothing as to her parentage ex-
naan, is cut off by the statement that it should be cept in connection with his parentage. The pas-
in a land not theirs —
one land too — in strong sage Num. xxvi. 59 certainly presents a difficulty.
CHRONOLOGY CHUB 451
But the original leaves it more indefinite than our Chronology
cykl. xx. 543-570 (1866). The art.
version, " a daughter of Levi, whom one bore [who in the 3d edition of Kitto's Cycl. if Bib. Lit. is by
was horn] to him in Egypt." Here the LXX. the Rev. Henry Browne, author of Ordo Sceclorum.
read thus: Qvyar-qp Aevt, $) ere/fe tovtovs t<5 See further the statements and references under
Aev\ iv AiyvirTw, —
the tovtovs evidently refer- Acts of the Apostles Assyria Egypt; ; ;
ring to Moses, Aaron, and Miriam. One Hebrew Gospels; Jesus Christ; Paul. A.
Gr. and Heb.), to regard the whole clause after ancients is identical with the modern Oriental to-
paz, the tarsMsh of the Hebrew Bible." There is
"n^VO as a gloss, appended by some one who
much reason for believing that the topaz is the stone
understood the phrase " daughter of Levi " in a
strict sense, and endeavored to soften down the
indicated by the X pva6\t6os of St. John's vision.
See Beryl. W. H.
improbability by explaining that the daughter was
born in Egypt. Without going this length, we CHRYSOPRASE ( X pvff6wpaffos : chryso-
pj-astis) occursonly in Rev. xxi. 20 [in A. V. there
venture to regard the verse in the original as not ab-
solutely decisive, —
although its first aspect seems
" chrysoprasus "], as one of the precious stones
to be so. But when we consider the vagueness of mentioned in St. John's vision. The chrysoprase
of the ancients b is by some supposed to be identi-
the expression used when we remember that Levi
;
must have been at least 135 years old at her birth cal with the stone now so namely, the apple
called,
or leek-green variety of agate, which owes its color to
if Jochebed were his daughter; when we recall the
oxide of nickel this stone at present is found only
ten or eleven generations from Ephraim to Joshua; ;
relating to Biblical chronology may be mentioned V.) where it stands for "agate" and "emerald"
:
Gumpach, Uber den altj'iidischen Kalender, zu- in the text, which represent different Hebrew words.
nachst in seiner Beziehung zur neutest. Geschichte, See Chalcedony. H.
Briissel, 1848 and Die Zeitrechnung der Babylo-
;
CHUB
(IW3 Al&ves'- Chub), a word occur- :
Wolff, O., Versuch, die Widerspriiche in den Ja.hr- lxvi. 19; Jer. xlvi. 9); the fourth is of a people on
reihen der Kbnige Jwla's u. Isr. u. andere Differ- the Egyptian frontier; and the sixth probably ap-
enzen in d. bibl. Chronol. auszugleichen (ibid. pp. the remnant of the Jews who had fled into
plies to
625-688); Bunsen, Bibelwerk, Bd. i. p. cci. fF., and Egypt (comp. Dan. xi. 28, 30, 32, especially the
Bd. v. (1858-60); Parker, F., Chronology, Lond. where the covenant is not qualified as " holy "),
last,
a Epiphanius, in his Twelve Stones of the. Rationale, That of Solinus (lv.) exactly agrees with our In-
t>
has got " Chrysolite, by some called chrysophvilus, of dian chrysolite " Ohrysoprasos quoque ex auro et :
a golden color, and found close to the walls of Baby- porraceo mixtani lucem trahentes aeque beryllorum
lon." Pliny makes several varieties of this name : generi adjudicuverunt."
His first is doubtless the Oriental topaz. —
C. IV. Kiivj.
452 CHUN CHURCH
the present Heb. text corrupt in this word. It has The arguments in its favor are the following : ( 1 .
form or pronunciation of 213, as Winer observes to the Apostolical Constitutions (ii. 59), to Cyril
of Jerusalem Catech. xviii.), and to a similar use
(
Joseph. Mctx^"' Chun. : The words of the LXX. ( hristian vocabulary, lent the word in their turn
look as if they had read Berothai, a word very like to the other German tribes, among others to our
Anglo-Saxon forefathers." Had it been so intro-
which —
*T1~12 —
they frequently render by e/cA.e/c- duced, Dlfilaa's " peaceful and populous colony of
t6s), 1 Chr. xviii. 8. [Berothah.] shepherds and herdsmen on the pastures below
CHURCH ('E/CK\T)(rta). —
I. The derivation Mount Ihemus"
(Milman, i. 272), could never
of the word Church is found in the have affected the language of the whole Teutonic-
uncertain. It is
Teutonic and Slavonian languages (Anglo-Saxon, race in all its dialects. But in matter of fact we find
Circ, Circe, C'/rir, Cyriceaj English, Church; that the word employed by Ulfilas in his version
Scottish, Kirk; German, Kirche ; Swedish, Kyrka; of the Scriptures is not any derivative of Kvpiaxdv,
Danish, Kyrke ; Dutch, Karke; Swiss, Kilche; but, as we should have expected, aikklesjo (Rom.
Frisian, Tsierk; Bohemian, Cyrkeiv; Polish, (Jer- xvi. 23; 1 Cor. xvi. 19 et passim). This theory
kieir Russian, Zerkow), and answers to the deriv- therefore falls to the ground, and with it any attempt
;
atives of eKK\7jffia, which are naturally found in at showing the way in which the word passed across
the Romance languages (French, EgUse into the Teutonic languages. No special hypothesis
; Italian,
Chiesa ; old Vaudois, Gleisa; Spanish, has been brought forward to account for its admis-
Igktia),
and by foreign importation elsewhere (Gothic, sion into the Slavonic tongues, and it is enough to
Aikkletjo ; Gaelic, Eagh.it ; Welsh, Eghvys ; Cor- say that, unless we have evidence to the contrary,
nish, Eghs). The word is generally said to be we are justified in assuming that the Greek mis-
derived from the Greek Kvpiax/iu (Walafrid Strabo, sionaries in the 9th century did not adopt a terrn^
De Rebus Ecclesiast. c. 7; Suicer, s. v. KvpianAv; in their intercourse with strangers, which they
Glossarium, s. v. "Dominicum;" Casaubon, Ex- hardly, if at all, used in ordinary conversation
ercit. Baron, xiii. § xviii.; amongst themselves.
Hooker, Eccl. Pol. v.
(5.) Further, there is no
xiii. 1; Pearson, On reason why the word should have passed into these
the Creed, Art. ix.; Beveridge,
On the Thirty-Nine Articles, Art. xix.; Words- two languages rather than into Latin. The Roman
. worth, Theophilus Anglicanm, c. 1 Gieaeler, Eccles. Church was in its origin a Greek community, and
;
'History, c. 1; Trench, Study of Words, p. 75). it introduced the Creek word lor Church into the
But the derivation has been too hastily assumed. Latin tongue: but this word was not cyriacum;
CHURCH CHURCH 453
it was ecclesia ; and the same influence would no household (Matt. x. 25), the salt and light of the
doubt have introduced the same word into the world (v. 13, 15), Christ's flock (Matt. xxvi. 31;
northern languages, had it introduced any word at John x. 1), its members are the branches growing
all. (6.) Finally, it is hard to find examples of a
on Christ the Vine (John xv.): but the general
( reek word being adopted into the Teutonic dialects, description of it, not metaphorically but directly, is,
I
except through the medium of Latin. On the whole, that it is a kingdom. In Matt. xvi. 19, the king-
this etymology must be abandoned. It is atrange dom of heaven is formally, is elsewhere virtually,
that Strabo should have imposed it on the world so identified with eKKKriala. From the Gospel then,
long. It is difficult to say what is to be substituted. we learn that Christ was about to establish his
There was probably some word which, in the lan- heavenly kingdom on earth, which was to be the
guage from which the Teutonic and Slavonic are substitute for the Jewish Church and kingdom,
descended, designated the old heathen places of now doomed to destruction (Matt. xxi. 43). Some
religious assembly, and this word, having taken of the qualities of this kingdom are illustrated by
different forms in different dialects, was adopted by the parables of the tares, the mustard seed, the
the Christian missionaries. It was probably con- leaven, the hid treasure, the pearl, the draw-net:
nected with the Latin circus, circultts, and with the spiritual laws and principles by which it is to
the Greek kvkAos, possibly also with the Welsh be governed, by the parables of the talents, the
cylck, ri/l, cynchh, or caer. Lipsius, who was the husbandmen, the wedding feast, and the ten virgins.
first to reject the received tradition, was probablj It is not of this world though in it (John xviii. 36).
right in his suggestion, " Credo et a circo Kirck It is to embrace all the nations of the earth (Matt.
nostrum esse, quia veterum templa instar Circi xxviii. l'J). The means of entrance into it is
rotunda" (Epist. ad Belgas, Cent, iii. Ep. 44). Baptism (Matt, xxviii. 19). The conditions of be-
II. The word iKK\riaia is no doubt derived from longing to it are faith (Mark xvi. 16 ) and obedience
iiataKeiv, and in accordance with its derivation it (Matt, xxviii. 20). Participation in the Holy
originally meant an assembly called out by the Supper is its perpetual token of membership, and
magistrate, or by legitimate authority. This is the the means of supporting the life of its members
ordinary classical sense of the word. Hut it throws (Matt. xxvi. 26; John vi. 51: 1 Cor. xi. 26). Its
no light on the nature of the institution bo designa- members are given to Christ by the Father out of
ted in the New Testament. For to the writers of the world, and sent by Christ into the world they ;
the X. T. the word had now lost its primary signi- are sanctified .by the truth (John xvii. 19); and
fication, and was either used generally for any meet- they are to live in love and unity, cognizable by the
ing (Acts xix. 32), or more particularly, it denoted external world (John xiii. 34, xvii. 23). It is to
(1) the religious assemblies of the Jews (Deut. iv. be established on the Rock of Christ's Divinity, as
10, xviii. 16, ap. LXX.); (2) the whole assembly confessed by Peter, the representative (for the mo-
or congregation of the Israelitish people (Acts vii. ment) of the Apostles (Matt. xvi. 18). It is to
38; Heb. ii. 12; Ps. xxii. 22; Deut. xxxi. 30, ap. have authority in spiritual cases (Matt, xviii. 17).
LXX.). It was in this last sense, in which it It is to be never deprived of Christ's presence and
protection (xxviii. 20), and to be never overthrown
answered to ^Sltt^
• t
/Hp, that the word was
: • - . by the power of hell (xvi. 18).
adopted and applied by the writers of the N. T. to IV. The Church ns described in the Acts and in
the Christian congregation. The word eKK\ri<rla, the Epistles —
its Origin, Nature, Constitution, and
therefore, does not carry us back further than the Growth. —
From the Gospels we learn little in the
Jewish Church. It implies a resemblance and cor-
way of detail as to the kingdom which was to be
respondence between the old Jewish Church and the established. It was in the great forty days which
recently established Christian Church, but nothing intervened between the Resurrection and the Ascen-
more. Its etymological sense having been already sion that our Lord explained specifically to his
lost when adopted by and for Christians, is only Apostles " the things pertaining to the kingdom
misleading if pressed too far. The chief difference of God " (Acts i. 3), that is, his future Church.
between the words "ecclesia " and " church," would Its Origin. The removal of Christ from the—
probably consist in this, that "ecclesia " primarilyearth had left his followers a shattered company
signified body, and secondarily the with no bond of external or internal cohesion, ex-
the Christian
place of assembly; while the first signification of cept the memory of the Master whom they had
" church " was the place of assembly, which im-
lost, and the recollection of his injunctions to unity
parted its name to the body of worshippers. and love, together with the occasional glimpses of
III. Tin Church as described in the —
his presence which were vouchsafed them.
Gospels. They
The word occurs only twice, each time in St. Mat- continued together, meeting for prayer, and suppli-
thew (.Matt. xvi. 18, " On this rock will I build mycation, and waiting for Christ's promise of the gift
Church;" xviii. 17, "Tell it unto the Church"). of the Holy Ghost. They numbered in all some
In every other case it is spoken of as the kingdom 140 persons, namely, the eleven, the faithful women,
of heaven by St. Matthew, and as the kingdom of the Lord's mother, his brethren, and 120 disciples.
God by St. Mark and St. Luke. St. Mark, St They had faith to believe that there was a work
Luke, and St. John, never use the expression king- before them which they were about to be called to
dom of heaven. St. John once uses the phrase perform; and that they might be ready to do it,
kingdom of God (iii. 3). St. Matthew occasionally they filled up the number of the Twelve by the
"
speaks of the kingdom of God (vi. 33, xxi. 31, 43), appointment of Matthias •• to In- a true witness
and sometimes simply of the kingdom (iv. 23, xiii. with the eleven "of the Resurrection.' The Day of
1
19, xxiv. 14). In xiii. 41 and xvi. 28, it is the Pentecost is the birth-day of the Christian Church.
Son of Man's kingdom. In xx. 21, thy kingdom, The Spirit, who was then sent by the Son from the
i. e. Christ's. In the one Gospel of St. Matthew Father, and rested on each of the Disciples, com-
the Church is spoken of no less than thirty-six bined them once more into a whole combined —
times as the Kingdom. Other descriptions or titles them as they never had before been combined, by
are hardly found in the Evangelists. It is Christ's an internal and spiritual bond of cohesion. Before
454 CHURCH CHURCH
they had heen individual followers of Jesus, now stone (Eph. ii. 22). It is also the city of the saints
they became his mystical body, animated by his and the household of God (Eph. ii. 19). But the
Spirit. The nucleus was formed. Agglomeration passage which is most illustrative of our subject in
and development would do the rest. the Epistles is Eph. iv. 3, 6. " Endeavoring to
Its Nature. —
St. Luke explains its nature by keep the unity of the Spirit in the bond of peace.
describing in narrative form the characteristics of There is one body, and one Spirit, even as ye are
the society formed by the union of the original 140 called in one hope of your calling; one Lord, one
Disciples with the 3000 souls who were converted faith, one baptism, one God and Father of all, who
on the Day of Pentecost. " Then they that gladly is above all, and through all, and in you all." Here
received his word were baptized. . . . And they we see what it is that constitutes the unity of the
continued steadfastly in the Apostles' doctrine and Church in the mind of the Apostle: (1) unity of
"
fellowship, and in breaking of bread and in prayers Headship, "one Lord;" (2) unity of belief, "one
(Acts ii. 41).' Here we have indirectly exhibited faith;" (3) unity of Sacraments, "one baptism;"
the essential conditions Church Communion. (4) unity of hope of eternal life, " one hope of your
of
They are (1) Baptism, Baptism implying on the calling " (comp. Tit. i. 2) (5) unity of love, ;
part of the recipient repentance and faith: (2) "unity of the Spirit in the bond of peace;" (6)
Apostolic Doctrine; (3) Fellowship with the Apos- unity of organization, "one body." The Church,
tles; (4) the Lord's Supper; (5) Public Worship. then, at this period was a body of baptized men
Every requisite for church-membership is here enu- and women who believed in Jesus as the Christ, and
merated not only for the Apostolic days, but for in the revelation made by Him, who were united
future ages. The conditions are exclusive as well by having the same faith, hope, and animating
as inclusive, negative as well as positive. St. Luke's Spirit of love, the same Sacraments, and the sahie
definition of the Church, then, would be the con- spiritual invisible Head.
gregation of the baptized, in which the faith of the What was the Constitution of this body f —
Apostles maintained, connection with the Apos- On the evening of the Day of Pentecost, the 3,140
is
tles is preserved, the Sacraments are duly adminis- members of which it consisted were (1) Apostles,
tered, and public worship is kept up. The earliest (2) previous disciples, (3) converts. never We
definition (virtually) given of the Church is like- afterwards find any distinction drawn between the
wise the best. To this body St. Luke applies the previous disciples and the later converts; but the
name of " The Church " (the first time that the Apostles throughout stand apart. Here, then, we
word is used as denoting an existing thing), and to find two classes, Apostles and converts teachers —
it, constituted as it was, he states that there were and taught. At this time the Church was not
daily added ol <rai(6fj.evoi (ii. 47). By this expres- only morally but actually one congregation. Soon,
sion he probably means those who were " saving however, its numbers grew so considerably that it
themselves from their untoward generation " (ii. was a physical impossibility that all its members
40), " added," however, "to the Church " not by should come together in one spot. It became,
their own mere volition, but "by the Lord," and therefore, an aggregate of congregations. But its
so become the elect people of God, sanctified by essential unity was not affected by the accidental
his Spirit, and described by St. Paul as " delivered necessity of meeting in separate rooms for public
from tbe power of darkness and translated into the worship the bond of cohesion was still the same.
;
kingdom of his dear Son" (Col. i. 13). St. Luke's The Apostles, who had been closest to the Lord
treatise being historical, not dogmatical, he does Jesus in his life on earth, would doubtless have
not directly enter further into the essential nature formed the centres of the several congregations of
of the Church. The community of goods, which listening believers, and besides attending at the
he describes as being universal amongst the mem- Temple for the national Jewish prayer (Acts iii. 1),
bers of the infant society (ii. 44, iv. 32), is specially and for the purpose of preaching Christ (ii. 42),
declared to be a voluntary practice (v. 4), not a they would have gone round to "every house"
necessary duty of Christians as such (comp. Acts where their converts assembled " teaching and
is. 36, 39, xi. 29). preaching," and "breaking bread," and "distribut-
From the illustrations adopted by St. Paul in ing" the common goods "as each had need" (ii.
his Epistles, we have additional light thrown upon 46, iv. 35, v. 42). Thus the Church continued for
the nature of the Church. Thus (Rom. xi. 17), apparently some seven years, but at the end of that
the Christian Church is described as being a branch time " the number of disciples was " so greatly
grafted on the already existing olive-tree, showing "multiplied" (Acts vi. 1) that the Twelve Apos-
that it was no new creation, but a development of tles found themselves to be too few to carry out
that spiritual life which had flourished in the these works unaided. They thereupon for the first
Patriarchal and in the Jewish Church. It is time exercised the powers of mission intrusted to
described (Rom. xii. 4; 1 Cor. xii. 12) as one body them (John xx. 21), and by laying their hands on
made up of many members with different offices, the Seven who were recommended to them by the
to exhibit the close cohesion which ought to exist general body of Christians, they appointed them to
between Christian and Christian; still more it is fulfill the secular task of distributing the common
described as the body, of which Christ is the Head stock, which they had themselves hitherto per-
(Eph. i. 22), so that members of his Church are formed, retaining the functions of praying, and
members of Christ's body, of his flesh, of his bones preaching, and administering the sacraments in
(Eph. v. 23, 30; Col. i. 18, ii. 19), to show the their own hands. It is a question which cannot be
close union between Christ and his people: again, certainly answered whether the office of these Seven
as the temple of God built upon the foundation- is to be identified with that of the Stdtcovoi else-
stone of Jesus Christ (1 Cor. iii. 11), and, by a where found. They are not called deacons in Script-
slight change of metaphor, as the temple in which ure, and it has been supposed by some that they
God dwells by his Spirit, the Apostles and prophets were extraordinary officers appointed for the occa-
forming the foundation, and Jesus Christ the chief sion to see that the Hellenistic widows had their
corner-stone, i. e. probably the foundation corner- fair share of the goods distributed amongst the
CHURCH CHURCH 455
poor believers, and that they had no successors in death of James, the son of Zebedee, and the im-
their office. If this be so, we have no account given prisonment and flight of Peter, were the signal for
us of the institution of the Diaconate: the Dea- the dispersion of the Apostles. One remained be-
cons, like the Presbyters, are found existing, but the hind —
James the brother of the I^ord, whom we
circumstances under which they were brought into identify with the Apostle, James the son of Al-
existence are not related. We incline, however, phreus [James]. He had
not the same cause of
to the other hypothesis, which makes the Seven the dread as the rest. His Judaical asceticism and
originals of the Deacons. Being found apt to teach, general character would have made him an object
they were likewise invested, almost immediately of popularity with his countrymen, and even with
after their appointment, with the power of preach- the Pharisaical Herod. He remained unmolested,
ing to the unconverted (vi. 10) and of baptizing and from this time he is the acknowledged head
(viii. 38). From this time, therefore, or from about of the Church of Jerusalem. A consideration
this time, there existed in the Church — (1) the .of Acts xii. 17, xv. 13, 19, xxi. 18; Gal. ii. 2,
Apostles; the Deacons and Evangelists; (3)
(2) 9, 12; will remove all doubt on this head. In-
the multitude of the faithful. hear of noWe deed, four years before Herod's persecution he had
other Church-officer the year 44, seven years
till stood, it would seem, on a level with Peter (Gal. i.
after the appointment of the deacons. find We 18, 19; Acts ix. 27), and it has been thought that
that there were then in the Church of Jerusalem he received special instructions for the functions
officers named Presbyters (xi. 30) who were the as- which he had to fulfill from the Lord himself (1 Cor.
sistants of James, the chief administrator of that xv. 7; Acts i. 3). Whatever his preeminence was,
Church (xii. 17). The circumstances of their first he appears to have borne no special title indicating
appointment are not recounted. No doubt they it. The example of the Mother Church of Jerusa-
were similar to those under which the Deacons were lem was again followed by the Pauline Churches.
appointed. As in the year 37 the Apostles found Timothy and Titus had probably no distinctive
that the whole work of the ministry was too great title, but it is impossible to read the Epistles ad-
for them, and they therefore placed a portion of it, dressed to them without seeing that they had an
namely, distributing alms to the brethren and authority superior to that of the ordinary bishops
preaching Christ to the heathen, on the deacons, or priests with regard to whose conduct and ordi-
so a few years later they would have found that nation St. Paul gives them instructional Tim. iii.,
what they still retained was yet growing too bur- v. 17, 19; Tit. i. 5). Thus, then, we see that
densome, and consequently they devolved another where the Apostles were themselves able to superin-
portion of their ministerial authority on another tend the Churches that they had founded, the
order of men. The name of Presbyter or Elder Church-officers consisted of — (1) Apostles; (2)
implies that the men selected were of mature age. Bishops or Priests; (3) Deacons and Evangelists.
We gather incidentally that they were ordained by When the Apostles were unable to give personal
Apostolic or other authority (xiv. 23, Tit. i. 5). superintendence, they delegated that power which
We them associated with the Apostles as dis-
find they had in common to one of themselves, as in
tinguished from the main body of the Church Jerusalem, or to one in whom they had confidence,
(Acts xv. 2, 4), and again as standing between the as at Ephesus and in Crete. As the Apostles died
Apostles and the brethren (xv. 23). Their office off, these Apostolic Delegates necessarily multiplied.
was to pasture the Church of God (xx. 28), to rule By the end of the first century, when St. John was
(1 Tim. v. 17) the flocks over which the Holy Ghost the only Apostle that now survived, they would
had made them overseers or bishops (Acts xx. 28 have been established in every country, as Crete,
Phil. i. 1; 1 Tim. iii. 1, 2; Tit. i. 7), and to pray and in every large town where there were several
with and for the members of their congregations bkhops or priests, such as the seven towns of Asia
(James v. 14). Thus the Apostles would seem to mentioned in the book of Revelation. These super-
have invested these Presbyters with the full powers intendents appear to be addressed by St. John under
which they themselves exercised, excepting only in the name of Angels. With St. John's death the
respect to those functions which they discharged Apostolic College was extinguished, and the Apos-
in relation to the general regimen of the whole tolic Delegates or Angels were left to fill their places
(
'hurch as distinct from the several congregations in the government of the Church, not with the full
which formed the whole body. These functions unrestricted power of the Apostles, but with au-
they still reserved to themselves. By the year 44, thority only to be exercised in limited districts. In
therefore, there were Church of Jerusalem the next century we find that these officers bore
in the
— (1) the Apostles holding the government of the the name of Bishops, while those who in the first
whole body in their own hands; (2) Presbyters century were called indifferently Presbyters or
invested by the Apostles with authority for con- Bishops had now only the title of Presbyters. We
ducting public worship in each congregation; (3) conclude, therefore, that the title bishop was grad-
Deacons or Evangelists similarly invested with the ually dropped by the second order of the ministry,
lesser power of preaching and of baptizing unbe- and applied specifically to those who represented
lievers, and of distributing the common goods what James, Timothy, and Titus had been in the
among the brethren. The same order was estab- Apostolic age. Theodoret says expressly, "The
lished in the Centile Churches founded by St. Paul, same persons were anciently called promiscuously
the only difference being that those who were called both bishops and presbyters, whilst those who are
Presbyters in Jerusalem bore indifferently the name now called bishops were called apostles, but shortly
of Bishops (Phil. i. 1; 1 Tim. iii. 1, 2; Tit. i. 7) after the name of apostle was appropriated to such
Dr of Presbyters (1 Tim. v. 17; Tit. i. 5) elsewhere. as were apostles indeed, and then the name bishop
It was in the Church of Jerusalem that another was given to those before called apostles " ( Com. in
order of the ministry found its exemplar. The 1 Tim. iii. 1). There are other names found in
Apostles, we find, remained in Jerusalem (Acts viii. the Acts and in the Epistles which the light thrown
1) or in the neighborhood (viii. 14) till the perse- backward by early ecclesiastical history shows us
cution of Herod Agrippa in the year 44. The to have been the titles of those who exercised func
456 CHURCH CHURCH
tions which were not destined to continue in the of St. Paul. In his three journeys he carried
Church, but only belonging to it while it was be- Christianity through the chief cities of Asia Minor
ing brought into being by help of miraculous and Greece. His method appears almost invariably
agency. Such are prophets (Acts xiii. 1; Rom. to have been this he presented himself on the Sab-
:
xii. 6; 1 Cor. xii. 28; Eph. iv. 11), whose function bath at the Jewish synagogue, and having first
was to proclaim and expound the Christian revela- preached the doctrine of a suffering Messiah, he
tion, and to interpret Cod's will, especially as veiled next identified Jesus with the Messiah (xvii. •'()•
in the Old Testament; teachers (Acts xiii. 1; Rom. His arguments on the first head were listened to
xii. 7; 1 Cor. xii. 28; Eph. iv. 11) and pastors with patience by all; those on the second point
(Eph. iv. 11) whose special work was to instruct wrought conviction in some (xvii. 4), but roused
those already admitted into the fold, as contrasted the rest to persecute him (xvii. 5). On finding his
with the evangelists (ibid.) who had primarily to words rejected by the Jews, he turned from them
instruct the. heathen. Prophecy is one of the ex- to the Gentiles (xviii. 6, xxviii. 28). His captivity
traordinary ^apicr^ara which were vouchsafed, and in Rome, a. d. 63-65, had the effect of forming a
is to be classed with the gifts of healing, of speak- Church out of the Jewish and Greek residents in
ing ecstatically with tongues, of interpretation of the imperial city, who seem
have been joined by
to
tongues, i. e. explanation of those ecstatic utter- a few Italians. His last journey may have spread
ances, and discernment of spirits, i. e. a power of the Gospel westward as far as Spain (Rom. xv. 28;
distinguishing between the real and supposed pos- Clemens, Eusebjus, Jerome, Chrysostom). The
sessors of spiritual gifts (1 Cor. xii.). Teaching death of James at Jerusalem and of Peter and Paul
(xaftcrfj-a SiSacrKaAias, Rom. xii. 7; 1 Cor. xii. at Home, a. d. 67, leaves one only of the Apostles
28) is one of the ordinary gifts, and be classed
is to presented distinctly to our view. In the year 7U
with the word of wisdom and the word of knowl- Jerusalem was captured, and before St. John fell
edge (1 Cor. xii. 8), perhaps with "faith" (ib. 9), asleep in 98, the Petrine and Pauline converts, the
with the gift of government (^dpta/xa nvfitpvi)- Churches of the circumcision and of the uncircum-
<recos, ib. 28), and with the gift of ministration cision, had melted into one harmonious and accord-
(xdptcrp-a SiaKovias or avriAJixpeais, Kom. xii. 7 ant body, spreading in scattered congregations at
1 Cor. xii. 28 ). These xapi<rp.ara, whether extra- the least from Babylon to Spain, and from Mac-
ordinary or ordinary, were '-divided to every man edonia to Africa. How far Christian doctrine may
as the Spirit willed," according to the individual have penetrated beyond these limits we do not know.
character of each, and not officially. Those to Its further Growth. —
As this is not an ecclesi-
whom the gifts of prophecy, teaching, and govern- astical history, we can but glance at it. There
ment were vouchsafed were doubtless selected for were three great impulses which enlarged the bor-
the office of Presbyter, those who had the gift of ders of the Church. The first is that which began
ministration for the office of Deacon. In the on the day of Pentecost, and continued down to
Apostles they all alike resided. the conversion of Constantine. By this the Roman
Its external Growth. — The 3000 souls that were Empire was converted to Christ, and the Church
added to the Apostles and to the 120 brethren on was, speaking roughly, made conterminous with
the day of Pentecost were increased daily by new the civilized world. The second impulse gathered
converts (Acts ii. 47, v. 14). These converts were within her borders the hitherto barbarous nations
without exception Jews residing in Jerusalem, formed by the Teutonic and Celtic tribes, thus
whether speaking Greek or Hebrew (vi. 1). After winning, or in spite of the overthrow of the Empire,
seven or eight years a step was made outwards. retaining the countries of France, Scotland, Ire-
The persecution which followed the martyrdom of land, England, Lonibardy, Germany, Denmark,
Stephen drove away the adherents of the new Sweden, Norway. The third impulse gathered in
doctrines, with the exception of the Apostles, and the Slavonian nations. The first of these impulses
" they that were scattered abroad went everywhere lasted to the fourth century; the second to the
preaching the word " to the Jews of the Dispersion. ninth century; the third (beginning before the sec-
Philip, in his capacity of Evangelist, preached ond had ceased) to the tenth and eleventh centu-
Christ to the Samaritans, and admitted them into ries. We
do not reckon the Nestorian missionary
the Church by baptism. In I'hilistia he made the efforts in the seventh century in Syria, Persia, In-
first Gentile convert, but this act did not raise the dia, and China, nor the post-Keformation exertions
question of the admission of the Gentiles, because of the Jesuits in the East and West Indies, for
the Ethiopian eunuch was already a proselyte (viii. these attempts have produced no permanent results.
27), and probably a proselyte of Righteousness. Nor, again, do we speak of the efforts now being
Cornelius was a proselyte of the Gate (x. 2). The made in Africa, India, Australia, New Zealand, be-
first purely Gentile convert that we hear of by cause it has not yet been proved, except perhaps in
name is Sergius Paulus (xiii. 7), but we are told the case of New Zealand, whether they will be suc-
that Cornelius's companions were Gentiles, and by cessful in bringing these countries within the fold
their baptism the admission of the Gentiles was de- of Christ.
cided by the agency of St. Peter, approved by the V. Alterations in its Constitution. have — We
Apostles and Jewish Church (xi. 18), not, as might said that ecclesiastical authority resided (1) in the
have been expected, by the agency of St. Paul. Apostles; (2) in the Apostles and the Deacons; (3)
This great event took place after the peace caused in the Apostles, the Presbyters, and the Deacons;
by Caligula's persecution of the Jews, which oc- (4) in the Apostolic Delegates, the Presbyters, and
curred A. i). 40 (ix. 31), and more than a year be- the Deacons (5 ) in those who succeeded the Apos-
;
fore the famine in the time of Claudius, A. D. 44 tolic Delegates, the Presbyters, and the Deacons.
(xi. 28, 2!)). Galilee had already been evangelized And to these successors of the Apostolic Delegates
as well as Judaea and Samaria, though the special came to be appropriated the title of Bishop, which
agent in the work is not declared (ix. 31). was originally applied to Presbyters. At the com-
The history of the growth of the Gentile Church, mencement of the second century and thencefor-
so far as we know it, is identical with the history wards Bishops, Presbyters, and Deacons are the
CHURCH CHURCH 457
officers of the Church wherever the Church
existed. But there was a stronger power at work
blood." h
Ignatius's Epistles (in their unadulterated form), than any which could be controlled by canons.
and the other records which are preserved to us, Rome and Constantinople were each the seats of
are on this point decisive. (See Pearson's '///<//- imperial power, and symptoms soon began to ap-
1
ciw IgnaticmcB, pars ii. c. xiii. p. 534, ed. Churton.) pear that the patriarchs of the imperial cities were
Bishops were looked upon as Christ's Vicegerents rival claimants of imperial power in the Church.
(Cyprian, Ep. 55 (or 59) with Rigaltius's notes), Rome was in a better position for the struggle than
and as having succeeded to the Apostles (id. Ep. Constantinople, for, besides having the prestige of
69 (or GO) and 4:2 (or being Old Rome, she was also of Apostolic founda-
Jerome),
45), Finnilian,
every bishop's see being entitled a " sedes apostol-
tion. Constantinople could not boast an Apostle
ica." They retained in their own hands authorityas her founder, and she was but New Rome. Still
over presbyters and the function of ordination, butthe imperial power was strong in the East when it
had fallen in the West, and furthermore the Coun-
with respect to each other they were equals, whether
their see was "at Home or at Eugubium." cil of Chalcedon had so far dispensed with the
Within this equal college of bishops there soon canons and with precedent in respect to Constanti-
arose difference of rank though not of order. Be- nople as to grant the patriarch jurisdiction over
low the city-bishops there sprang up a class of three dioceses, to establish a right of appeal to Con-
country-bishops (chorepiscopi) answering to the stantinople from any part of the Church, and to
archdeacons of the English Church, except that confirm the decree of the second Council, which
they had received episcopal consecration (Ham- elevated the see of Constantinople above that of
mond, Beveridge, Cave, Bingham), and were en- Alexandria and of Antioch. It was by the Pope
abled to perform some episcopal acts with the sanc- of Constantinople that the first overt attempt at
tion of the city-bishops. Their position was am- erecting a Papal Monarchy was made; and by the
biguous, and in the fifth century they began to Pope of Rome, in consequence, it was fiercely and
decay and gradually died out. " Above the city- indignantly denounced. John of Constantinople,
bishops there were, in the second century appar- said Gregory the Great, was destroying the patri-
ently. Metropolitans, and in the third, Patriarchs archal system of government (lib. v. 43; ix. 68);
or Exarchs. The metropolitan was the chief bishop by assuming the profane appellation of Universal
in the civil division of the empire which was called Bishop he was anticipating Antichrist (lib. vii. 27,
a province {itrapx'w)- His see was at the metrop- 33), invading the rights of Christ, and imitating
olis of the province, and he presided over his suffra- the Devil (lib. v. 18). John of Constantinople
gans with authority similar to, but greater than, failed. The successors of Gregory adopted as their
that which is exercised in their respective provinces own the claims which John had not been able to
by the two archbishops in England. The authority assert, and on the basis of the False Decretals of
of the patriarch or exarch extended over the still and of Gratian's Decretum, Nicholas I.,
Isidore,
larger division of the civil empire which was called Gregory VII., and Innocent III. reared the struct-
a diocese. The ecclesiastical was framed in accord ure of the Roman in place of the Constantinopolitan
ance with the exigencies and after the model of the Papal Monarchy. From this time the federal
civil polity. When Constantine, therefore, divided character of the constitution of the Church was
the empire 13 dioceses, "each of which
into overthrown. In the West it became wholly des-
equalled the just measure of a powerful kingdom
" potic, and in the East, though the theory of aris-
(Gibbon, c. xviii.), the Church came to be distrib- tocratical government was and is maintained, the
uted into 13 (including the city and neighborhood still-cherished title of Oecumenical Patriarch indi-
of Rome, 14) diocesan, or, as we should say, na- cates that it is weakness which has prevented Con-
tional churches. There was no external bond of stantinople from erecting at least an Eastern if she
government to hold these churches together. They could not an Universal Monarchy. In the six-
were independent self-ruled wholes, combined to- teenth century a further change of constitution
gether into one greater whole by having one invis- occurred. A great part of Europe revolted from
ible Head and one animating Spirit, by maintain- the Western despotism. The Churches of England
ing each the same faith and exercising each the and Sweden returned to, or rather retained, the
same discipline. The only authority which they episcopal form of government after the model of the
recognized as capable of controlling their separate first centuries. In parts of Germany, of France,
action, was that of an (Ecumenical Council com- of Switzerland, and of Great Britain, a Presbyte-
posed of delegates from each and these Councils
; rian, or still less defined form was adopted, while
passed canon after canon forbidding the interference Rome tightened her hold on her yet remaining sub-
of the, bishop of any one diocese, that is, district, jects, and by destroying all peculiarities of national
or country, with the bishop of any other diocese. liturgy and custom, and by depressing the order
•' Bishops outside a 'diocese' are not
to invade the of bishops except as interpreters of her decrees, con-
Churches across the borders, nor bring confusion verted that part of the Church over which she had
into the Churches," says the second canon of the sway into a jealous centralized absolutism.
Council of Constantinople, "lest," says the eighth VI. The existing Church. Its members fall —
canon of the Council of Ephesus, "the pride of into three broadly-marked groups, the Greek
worldly power be introduced under cover of the Churches, the Latin Churches, the Teutonic
priestly function, and by little and little we be de- Churches. The orthodox Greek Church consists
prived of the liberty which our Lord Jesus Christ, of the Patriarchate of Constantinople with 135 sees,
the deliverer of all men, has given us by his own of Alexandria with 4 sees, of Antioch with 16 sees,
a An attempt was made to resuscitate this class in who were to act under the bishops of the diocese in
England, under the title of suffragan bishops, by the which they were situated.
still unrepealed 26th Henry VIII. c. 14, by which b See Canons v., vi. of Nicsea ii., iii., vi. of Constan-
;
twenty-six towns were named as the seats of bishops, tinople i., viii. of Ephesus
; ;ix., xvii., xxvii., xxx. of
Chalcedon.
453 CHURCH CHURCH
of Jerusalem with 13 sees, of the Russian Church These definitions show the difficulty in which the
with 65 sees; besides which, there are in Cyprus different sections of the divided Church find them-
4 sees, in Austria 11 sees, in Mount Sinai 1 see, in selves framing a definition which will at once
in
Montenegro 1 see, in Greece 24 sees. To these accord with the statements of Holy Scripture, and
must be added, (1.) the Nestorian or Chaktean be applicable to the present state of the Christian
Church, once spread from China to the Tigris, and world. We have seen that according to the Script-
from Lake Baikal to Cape Comorin, and ruled by ural view the Church is a holy kingdom, estab-
twenty-five Metropolitans and a Patriarch possess- lished by God on earth, of which Christ is the
ing a plenitude of power equal to that of Innocent invisible King —
it is a divinely organized body,
III. (Neale, Eastern Church, i. 143), but now the members which are knit together amongst
of
shrunk to 10 sees. (2.) The Christians of St. themselves, and joined to Christ their Head, by the
Thomas under the Bishop of Malabar. (3.) The Holy Spirit, who dwells in and animates it; it is
Syrian Jacobites under the Patriarch of Antioch a spiritual but visible society of men united by
resident at Caramit or Diarbekir. (4.) The Mar- constant succession to those who were personally
onites with 9 sees. (5.) The Copts with 13 sees. united to the Apostles, holding the same faith that
(6.) The savage, but yet Christian Abyssinians, the Apostles held, administering the same sacra-
and (7.) the Armenians, the most intelligent and ments, and like them forming separate, but only
active minded, but at the same time the most dis- locally separate, assemblies, for the public worship
tracted body of Eastern believers. of God. This is the Church according to the
The Latin Churches are those of Italy with 2G2 Divine intention. But as God permits men to mar
sees, ofSpain with 54, of Prance with 81, of Por- the perfection of his designs in their behalf, and
tugal with 17, of Belgium and Holland with 11, as men have both corrupted the doctrines and
of Austria with 04, of Germany with 24, of Switz- broken the unity of the Church, we must not ex-
erland with 5. Besides these, the authority of the pect to see the Church of Holy Scripture actually
Roman acknowledged by 03 Asiatic bishops,
See is existing in its perfection on earth. It is not to be
10 African, 130 American, 43 British, and 30 found, thus perfect, either in the collected frag-
Prelates scattered through the countries where the ments of Christendom, or still less in any one of
Church of Greece is predominant. these fragments though it is possible that one of
;
The Teutonic Churches consist of the Anglican those fragments more than another may approach
communion with 48 sees in Europe, 51 in Canada, the Scriptural and Apostolic ideal which existed
America, and the West Indies, 8 in Asia, 8 in only until sin, heresy, and schism, had time suffi-
Africa, and 15 in Australia and Oceanica; of the ciently to develop themselves to do their work. It
Church of Norway and Sweden, with 17 sees; of has been questioned by some whether Hooker, in
the Churches of Denmark, Prussia, Holland, Scot- his anxious desire after charity and liberality, has
land, and scattered congregations elsewhere. The not founded his definition of the Church upon too
members of the Greek Churches are supposed to wide a basis ; but it is certain that he has pointed
number 80,000,000 of the Teutonic and Protestant
; out the true principle on which the definition must
Churches 90,000,000; of the Latin Churches 170,- be framed (Feci. Pol. v. 08, 0). As in defining a
000.000 making a total of 25 per cent, of the pop-
; man, he says, we pass by those qualities wherein
ulation of the globe. one man excels another, and take only those essen-
VII. Definitions of the Church. The Greek — tial properties whereby a man differs from creatures
Church gives the following: "The Church is a of other kinds, so in defining the Church, which is
divinely instituted community of men, united by a technical name for the professors of the Christian
the orthodox faith, the law of God, the hierarchy, religion, we must fix our attention solely on that
and the Sacraments " (Full Catechism of the Or- which makes the Christian religion differ from the
thodox, Catholic, Eastern Church, Moscow, 1839). religions which are not Christian. This difference
The Latin Church defines it " the company of is constituted by the Christian religion having Jesus
Christians knit together by the profession of the Christ, his revelation, and his precepts for the ob-
same faith and the communion of the same sacra- ject of its contemplations and the motive of its
ments, under the government of lawful pastors, and actions. The Church, therefore, consists of all who
especially of theRoman bishop as the only Vicar acknowledge the Lord Jesus Christ the blessed
of Christ upon earth " (Bellarm.De Feci. Mil. iii. Saviour of mankind, who give credit to his Gospel,
2; see also Devoti Inst. Canon. 1, § iv., Romas, and who hold his sacraments, the seals of eternal
1818). The Church of England, "a congregation life, in honor. To go further, would be not to
of faithful men in which the pure word of God is define the Church by that which makes it to be
preached, and the Sacraments be duly ministered what it is, i. e. to declare the being of the Church,
according to Christ's ordinance in all those things but to define it by accidents, which may conduce
that of necessity are requisite to the same " (Art. to its well bcimj, but do not touch its innermost
xix. ). The Lutheran Church, " a congregation of nature. Prom this view of the Church the impor-
saints in which the Gospel is rightly taught and tant consequence follows, that all the baptized be-
the sacraments rightly administered" (Confessio long to the visible Church, whatever be their
Auyustana, 1031, Art. vii.). The Confessio Hel- divisions, crimes, misbeliefs, provided only they are
vetica, "a congregation of faithful men called, or not plain apostates, and directly deny and utterly
collected out of the world, the communion of all reject the Christian faith, as far as the same is
9aints" (Art. xvii.). The Confessio Saxonica, "a professedly different from infidelity. " Heretics as
congregation of men embracing the Gospel of touching those points of doctrine in which they
Christ, and rightly using the Sacraments" (Art. fail schismatics as touching the quarrels for which,
;
xii.). The Confessio Belgica, "a true congrega- or the duties in which they divide themselves from
tion, or assembly of all faithful Christians who look their brethren loose, licentious, and wicked per-
;
for the whole of their salvation from Jesus Christ sons, as touching their several offences or crimes,
alone, as being washed by his blood, and sanctified have all forsaken the true Church of God — the
and sealed by his Spirit" (Art. xxvii.). Church which is sound and sincere in the doctrine
CHURCH CHURCH 459
which they corrupt, the Church that keepeth the serving the differences first between the Church of
bond of unity which they violate, the Church that Cod mystical and visible, then between the visible
walketh in the laws of righteousness which they sound and corrupted, sometimes more, sometimes
transgress, this very true Church of Ihrist they less, the oversights are neither few nor light that
I
have left —
howbeit, not altogether left nor forsaken have been committed " (Hooker, Eccl. Pol. iii. 1,
simply the Church, upon the foundation of which 9). The word Church is employed to designate
they continue built, notwithstanding these breaches (1) the place in which luistians assemble to(
whereby they are rent at the top asunder" (v. worship (possibly 1 Cor. xiv. 19); (2) a household
7).'
68, of Christians (Col. iv. 15); (3) a congregation of
VIII. The Faith, Attributes, and Notes of the Christians assembling from time to time for worship,
Church. — The Xicene Creed is the especial and but generally living apart from each other (Horn,
authoritative exponent of the Church's faith, having xvi. 1); (4) a body of Christians living in one city
been adopted as such by the (Ecumenical Councils assembling for worship in different congregations
of Nic«a and Constantinople, and ever afterwards and at different times (1 Cor. i. 2); (5) a body of
regarded as the sacred summary of Christian doc- hristians residing in a district or country (2 Cor.
(
trine. We have the Western form of the same i.); (6) the whole visible Church, including sound
Creed in that which is called the Creed of the and unsound members, that is, all the baptized
Apostles —a name probably derived from its hav- professors of Christianity, orthodox, heretical, and
ing been the local Creed of Koine, which was the schismatics!, moral or immoral (7 ) the visible ;
chief Apostolic see of the West. An expansion of Church exclusive of the manifestly unsound mem-
the same Creed, made in order to meet the Arian bers, that is, consisting of those who appear to be
errors, is found in the Creed of St. Athanasius. orthodox and pious; (8) the mystical or invisible
The Confessions of Faith of the Synod of Bethlehem Church, that is, the body of the elect known to
(a. d. 1072), of the Council of Trent (commonly Cod alone who are in very deed justified and sancti-
known as Pope Pius' Creed, A. d. 1564), of the fied, and never to be plucked out of their Saviour's
Synod of London (a. d. 1562), of Augsburg, Swit- hands, composed of the Church Triumphant and
zerland, Saxony, &c, stand on a lower level, as of some members of the Church Militant (John x.
binding on the members of certain portions of the 28; Heb. xii. 22); (9) the Church Militant, that
Church, but not being the Church's Creeds. The is, the Church in its warfare on earth identical —
attributes of the Church are drawn from the ex- therefore with the Church visible; (10) the Church
pressions of the Creeds. The Church is described Triumphant, consisting of those who have passed
as One, Holy, Catholic, Apostolic. Its Unity con- from this world, expectant of glory now in paradise,
sists in having one object of worship (Eph. iv. ij), and to be glorified hereafter in heaven. The word
oiie Head (Eph. iv. 15), one body (Rom. xii. 5), may be fairly used in any of these senses, but it is
one Spirit (Eph. iv. 4), one faith (ib. 13), hope (ib. plain that if it is employed by controversialists
4), love (1 Cor. xiii. 13), the same sacraments (ib. without a clear understanding in which sense it is
x. 17), discipline and worship (Acts ii. 42). Its used, inextricable confusion must arise. And such
Holiness depends on its Head and Spirit, the means in fact has been the case. F. M.
of grace which it offers, and the holiness that it * The list of works relating to the Church, sub-
demands of its members (Eph. iv. 24). Its Catho- joined to this article in the English edition, has
licity consists in its being composed of many here been greatly enlarged and more strictly clas-
national Churches, not confined as the Jewish sified by Professor H. B. Smith, D. U., of the
Church to one country (Mark xvi. 15) in its Union Theological Seminary, N. Y. The literature
;
enduring to the end of time (Matt, xxviii. 20); in of the different religious confessions is more equally
its teaching the whole truth, and having at its represented. H.
disposal all the means of grace vouchsafed to man. * X. Literature. The Nature and Constitu-
Its Apostolicity in being built on the foundation tion of the Church: Cyprian, Be Unitate Ecclesia},
of the Apostles (Eph. ii. 20), and continuing in Opp.' Fell's ed. Oxf. 1700, Paris, 1726, Goldhorn's
their doctrine and fellowship (Acts ii. 42). The ed. Leips. 1838 Krabinger's ed. of the De Unitate,
;
miles of the Church are given by Bellarmine and 1853 transl. in Oxf. Lib. of Fathers comp. Nevin
; ;
theologians of his school, as being the title " Cath- in Mercersburg Rev. 1852-3, and Huther, Cy-
olic,"' antiquity, succession, extent, papal succession, prian's Lehre, 1839. Optatus of Mileve, Be
primitive doctrine, unity, sanctity, efficacy of doc- Schismate Bonatist. Vincentius of Lerins, Com-
trine, holiness of its authors, miracles, prophecy, monUorium adv. Hmreses, ed. Herzog, 1839; transl.
confession of foes, unhappy end of opponents, tem- Oxf. 1841. Augustine, Be Unitate Ecclesia. Hus,
poral good-fortune (Bellarm. Contr. torn. ii. lib. iv. Tractatus de Ecclesia. Roman Catholic
p. 1293, Ingoldst, 1580): by Dean Field as (1) the Theory: Bellarmine, Be Conciliis et Ecclesia
complete profession of the Christian faith (2) the (Disps. i. 1084, ingolstadt ed. 1580); Notes on
;
use of certain appointed ceremonies and sacraments Church, Holdsworth's ed. repr. 1840. Thomassin,
(3) the union of men in their profession and in the \~etus et Nova Ecclesice Disciplina, Luca;, 1728.
use 'it' these sacraments under lawful pastors (Of Miihler, Die Einheit in dec Kirche, Tubing. 1825.
the Church, bk. ii. c. ii. p. 05). It is evident that H. Klee, Treatise on the Church, transl. by Ed.
the notes by which the Church is supposed to be Cox, D. D., Lond. 1827. F. Oberthur, Idea Bibl.
distinguished must differ according to the definition Ecclesice Dei, 2d ed. 6 vol. Sulzbach, 1817-28.
of the Church accepted by the theologian who Lutheran and reformed (Presbyterian)
assigns them, because the true notes of a thing Theory Calvin, Institutes, iv. 1-4. Kostlin,
:
schland, 1851. Scherer, Esquisse d'une Theorie 1760-61. Bellarmine, De Potest. Rom. Pontif.
de I'Eylise chretienne, Paris, 1845. Julius Miiller, Pome, 1018. Theiner, Codex Diplomatics, 3 vols.
Die unsichtbare und dk sichibare Kirche, Deutsche fol. Rome, 1802. Gosselin, Power of Popes, etc. 2
Zeitschrii't, 1850. Miinchmeyer, Die unsichtbare vols. Bait. 1800. De Dominis, De Repub. Eccl.
und sichtbare Kirche, Getting. 1854. G. V. Lechler, Francof. 1017-1058. Pithou, Les Liberies de
Gesch. der Presbyt. Verfassung seit der Reforma- I' Eglise Gallicane, Paris, 1594. Bossuet, Defensio
tion, Leyden (prize essay), 1854. Vitringa, De Declaralionis, 1730. Dupin, Truite de la Puis-
Synagoga Vetere libri ires, Leucop. 1726. Blonde], sance eccles. et temporeUe, 1707. Dupin, Manuel
De Planck, Gesch. d. chr.-kirchl.
Episeopis, etc. iln Droit eccles. Paris, 4th ed. 1845. Febronius,
Gesellschaftsverfassung,5 Bde. 1805-9. Ziegler, I), Statu Ecclesim, 2 vols. 2d ed. 1770. Scharpff,
Gesch. d. Kirchenverfassung, 18:25. Peter King, Entstehung des Kirehenstaats, 1854, transl. Bait.
Inquiry into the Const, of Prim. Church, 1712. 1800. Sugenheim, Gesch. des Kirehenstaats, 1854.
George Gillespie, Aaron's Rod Blossoming, etc. Basse, 'an inigungdt r geistl. und well. ObergetaaU,
I
Lond. 1040. Ed. Calamy, Vind. of Presb. Got: 1855. Bohmer, Entstehung des Kirehenstaats,
1654. Jus Divinum Regiminis Eccleske, 1646. 1753; De Jure Episc. Principum evangel. Hal.
N. Y. 1844. Ayton's Original Const, of Chwch. 1712. Zacharise, Einheit des Staats und der
Rutherford, Right of Presbyteries. 1>. King, Ex- Kirche, 1707. C. Riffel, Geschichtliche Darstel-
pos, of Presb. Guv. Ediub. 1853. J. M. Mason, lung dis Verhaknisses, Mainz, 1836. Di.llinger,
Essays on Church. Hetherington'a Hist. West- The Church and Churches, transl. 1863. De
minster Assembly. Chas. Hodge, On the Church, in Maistre, Du Pope. Dupanloup, La Souverainete
Princeton Review, 1853-5. Essays on the Prim- Pontificals, 2d ed. Paris, 1860. F. P. Kenrick,
itive Church Officers, New York, 1851. L. Cole- Primacy of the Holy See, Phil. 1845. McClintock,
man, The Apostolical und Primitive Church, 2d Temporal Power, etc. Vinet, Essai sur la Man-
ed. Bost. 1844. Thos. Smyth, Presbytery and not ifestation des Convictions relig. Paris, 1826; Sur
Prelacy, 1840. William Cunningham, Discus- la Conscience, etc. 1820. Abp. Wake, The Au-
sions on Church Principles, Edinb. 1863. W. D. thority of Princes, 1697. S. Rutherford, Lex Rex,
Killen, The Ancient church, 1801. Congrega- Lond. 1644. Warburton, Alliance Church and
tionalism and Independency: John Cotton, State, 1736. Hobbes, Leviathan, 1608. J. R. Prety-
Doctrine of Church, 1043-8. Owen's Works, vols. man, Ch. of Engl, and Erastianism, 1854. H. W.
xv., xvi. Thos. Goodwin's Works, vol. vi. Thos. Wilberforce, History of Erastianism, 1851. Glad-
Hooker, Church Discipline, 1648. John "Wise, stone, State in Relation to Church, 2 vols. 4th ed.
Gov. of Church, 1715, 1800. Robinson's Just and 1841; Church Principles, 1840. Pusey, Royal Su-
Necessary Apology, Works, i. S. Davidson, Eccl. premacy, 1847. Coleridge, Constitution of Church
Polity N. Test. Congl. Lects. vol. xiii. Lond. A. and State, 1830. Maurice, Kingdom of Christ,
C. Dick, Chwch Polity, 2d ed. 1851. Cambridge N. Y. repr. 1838. Thos. Arnold, Principles Church
and Saybrook Platforms. The Works of Upham, Ref 1833. Chalmers, National Churches, 1838.
Punchard, Dexter (1865). Episcopal Church: Wardlaw, National Church Establishments, 1839.
Cranmer, Works, i. 376, ii. 11, Camb. 1843. Rid- General Church History. Eusebius, Soc-
ley, Conference with Latimer, p. 122, Cambr. 1843. rates, Sozomen, etc. Camb. 1720 transl. vols. Lond.
;
Hooper, Works, ii. 41, Cambr. 1852. Becon, 1838. Rufinus, Hist. Eccl. (contin. Eus.) Pom. 1740-
Works, i. 203, ii. 41, Camb. 1843. Hooker, Eccl. 41. Annals of Gregory of Tours, Yen. Bede, Adam
Polity, iii. 1, v. 68, 78. Andrewes, Works, viii. of Bremen, Nicephorus Callisti, etc. Roman Cath-
Oxf. 1854. R. Field, Bk. of Church, Cambr. 1847- olic Historians: Baronius, Annates Eccles. cont.
52. Thos. Jackson, Works, xii. Lond. Laud, Con- by llaynaldus, Bzovius, Mansi, 38 vols. fol. Lucae,
ference with Fisher, Oxf. 1840. Jeremy Taylor, 1738-59. Natalis Alexander, Hist. Eccl. Paris,
Works, v. Lond. 1840. Bramhall, Works, i.-iii. 8 vols. fol. 1699. Mansi, Conciliorum Collectio, Flor-
Oxf. 1842. Thorndike, Works, i.-vi. Oxf. 1844. ence, 31 vols. fol. 1759 ft". Fleury, Hist. Eccles.
Bilson's Perpetual Gov. 1503. John Rogers, Visi- cont. Fabre, 36 torn. Paris, 1691-1740. Sacharelli, 6
ble and Invisible Church, 2d ed. 1719. Pi. Sander- torn. 4to, Rom. 1773-95. Stolberg, Gesch. d. Relig.
son, The Church, ed. W. Goode. G. Hickes, Jem, cont. v. Kerz. 38 Bde. 1825-34. Dcillinger,
Treatises, 3 1847.
vols. R. Cosin, Eccl. Angl. Gesch. d. K. transl. 4 vols. Lond. 1840-8. Ritter,
Politeia, 1684. Pearson, on Art. JX. of Creed; Ilandbuch, 3 Bde. 5th ed. 1854; Alzog,^ 5th ed.
Browne, on same, N. Y. 1865. Stillingfleet, Ireni- 1850. Rohrbacher, Hist. Univ. de VEglise, 29
cum. Works, iii. Treatises by Abps. Wake, Potter tomes, Paris, 1842 ff. Henrion, 25 torn, new ed.
;
(8th ed. 1852), and Whately, Kingdom of Christ, 1859. Darras, Chh. Hist. 20 vols, transl. vols.
N. Y. 1841. Slater's Original Draft, 1717, 1830. 1-4, New York, 1865-66. Palma, Praslect. Hist.
Crakanthorp, Defensio Heel. Angl. new ed. 1847. Eccl. 3 vols. Rome, 1838-42. Protestant Histo-
Courayer, English Ordinations, new ed. 1840. A. rians: Centuries Magdeburgenses, 13 torn. fol.
Litton, The Church, etc. Lond. 1851, N. Y. 1856. 1559-1574. Hottinger, Hist. Eccles. 9 torn. 1655-
W. Palmer, Treatise on the Church. 3d ed. 2 vols. 67. Mosheim, Inst. Hist. Eccl. 1755; transl.
1842. W. Goode, Vind. Ch. Engl. 1851, N. Y. 1853. Murdock, New York, 5th ed. 1854. Venema, Inst.
Arnold, Fragment on Church, in Miscellaneous Hist. Eccl. 7 vols. Lugd. Bat. 1777-83. Schrockh,
Worku, 1850. Coleridge, Lay Sermons. The An- Allgemeine Kirchengeschichte, 4h Thle. 1768-1810.
tiquities of Bingham, Bates, Riddle. Hook's Church Henke, Allg. Geschichte der Kirche, 9 Thle. ed.
CHURCH CHURCH 461
Vater, 1823. Neander, Attg. Gesch. (General His- Cyprian, Leips. 1718. Seckendorf, Comment. Hist.
tory of the Church), 6 Bde. Berl. 1824-57 trans- ; ed. 2, 1694. Hagenbach, Vorlesungen, 6 Bde.
lated by Jos. Torrey, Bost. 1848-54, 5 vols. re- ;
1851-4. Merle d'Aubignd, Hist. Ref 5 vols. N.
printed in London and Edinburgh. Gieseler, Y. 1843. Marheineke, Gesch. d. teutsehen Ref. 4
Lekrbuch (Text Book of Church History), 6 Bde. Thle. Berl. 1831. Neudeeker, Gesch. d. Ref. 1843;
1824-57; 3 vols, to Reformation, transl. by Cun- d. Protest. 2 Bde. 1844; Urkunden, 1836; Acttm-
uincham, Phila. 1836; translated by Davidson, Dtticke, 1838; Xeiie Beitrdye, 2 Bde. 1841. Villers'
and in part by H. B. Smith, to 1648, 4 vols. New Essay, transl. Dbllinger (Rom.
Phila. 1833. J.
York, 1858-00. Hase, Lekrbuch, 7th ed. transl. Cath.), Die Reformation, 3 Bde. 1851. H. Soaines,
by Wing, New York, 1855. Guericke, Handbuch, Hist. Ref. 4 vols. 1826. L. Ranke, Deidsche Gesch.
3 Bde. 8th ed. 1855, 1st vol. transl. by Shedd, cm Zeitalier d. Ref. 5 Bde. Berl. 1839 ff., transl.
Andover, 1857; Niedner, Lekrbuch, new ed. 1866; Phila. 1844. J. H. Hottinger, Hist. Eccl. 1655:
Gfrorer, 7 Bde. to 1305, 1841-60; Kurtz, transl. J. J. Hottinger, Helcetische KirchengescJi. 1808
by Schreffer, 1860; F. <'. Baur, 5
Phila. 2 vols. ff. de Beausobre, Hist, de la Ref. 3 vols. Berne,
J,
Bde.; Hasse, 3 Bde. 1864; Ebrard, 2 Bde. 1865. 1785. Merle d'Aubigne\ Ref. in Switzerland, 2 v.
A. J. Matter, Hist. univ. de I'Eylise, 4 torn. Paris, 1864. Theod. Beza, Hist. Eccl. 3 torn. 1580. De
1839. Clias. Hardwick, Middle Ayes and Ref. 2 Thou, Hist, sui Temp. 5 v. fol. 1620. G. de Felice
vols. 1853-6. J. C. Robertson, Ancient and Medl Hist. Protest, in France, transl. N. Y. 1851. W.
aval, 2 vols. 3d ed. 1864. Waddington, thro' Ref. Haag, La France Protest. Ill vols. 1850 ff. Smed-
6 vols. 1835 ff. Bates, College, Lectures. ley, Ref Relit/ion in France, 3 vols. Von Polenz,
History of the Early Church: Tillemont, Gesch. d, franz. Protest. 4 Bde. 1858-64. L.
Memoires pour servir, etc., 16 vols. 4to, Paris, Ranke, Civil Wars in France, N. Y. 1854. Ger-
1693-1701 (first Mosheim, Hist. Com-
six cent. ). hard Brandt's Hist. Ref. in Loir Countries, 4 v. fol.
mentaries, 2 vols, transl. by Murdock, N. Y. 1852. 1770. Thos. McCrie, Hist, of Ref. in Italy and
H. II. Milman, 3 vols, new ed. X. Y. 1866. Cave, Spain, 2 vols. 1833. Rosseeuw-St. Ililaire, Hist.
Lives of the Fathers, new ed. Ox!'. 1840; Hist. Lift, d' Lsji iyne, torn, vii., viii. Ref. anil Anti-Ref in
Bohemia, from the German, 2 vols. Lond. 1845.
Oxf. 1740. Ed. Burton, Lectures, 4th ed. Oxf.
1855. Blunt, First Three Cent. Lond. 1856. Giudely, Boh men und Mahren, etc. 2 Bde. Prag,
Baumgarten's Apost. Hist. 2 vols, transl. Edinb. 1857. Palacky, Bohmen's Gesch. 3 Bde. 1854.
Sehaff, Apostolic Church, N. Y. 1853; Church to Krasinski, Ref. in Poland, 2 vols. Lond. 1838.
600, 3 vols. 1859-67. Capefigue, 4 vols. Paris, 1850. Hist, of Protest, in Hungary, Lond. 1854. Miinter,
Pressense. Trois pre in. Siecles, Paris, 4 torn. 1858 Kirchengesch. o. Danemark u. Norwegen, 3 Thle.
ff. Hagenbach, Vorlesunyen, 2 Thle. 1855-0. J. Leips. 1833. Knox, Hist. Ref. in Scotland, Edinb.
P. Lange, 2 Bde. 1854. F. D. Maurice, Lectures, 1732; Oil! Stuart's, Lond. 1780; Publications of
i.
Camb. 1854. Win. Bright, 313 to 451, Lond. I860. the Wodrow and Spottiswoode Societies; Hethering-
T. W. Allies (Rom. Cath.), Formation of Christen- ton's Church Hist. q/S. 2 vols. 1843. Stephen's
dom, i. Lond. 1865. Moberly, Christians at Rome, Hist. 4 vols. Lond. 1844; Stevenson's Hist. Edinb.
mill Occident, 2 Bde. Miinchen, 1863-5. Macaire, Press. Wordsworth, Eccl. Bioy. 4 vols. Lond.
Thiol, doymatiipie orthodoxe, 2 vols. Paris, 1860. 1839. Hook, Lives Abps. Canterb. vols. 1-5, Lond.
W. Beveridge, Synodikon, sice Pandecta Ca/nonum 1860-07. Anderson, Hist. Colonial Ch. Eny. 3
ah Eccl. Graxa recept. 2 vols. Oxf. 1672-82. John vols. 2d ed. Lond. 1850. Skinner, Eccl. Hist.
G. King, The Greek Church in Russia, 4to, Lond. Scotland, Lond. 1788; Russell, Hist. Ch. in Scot-
1772. Latin Church Milman's Latin Chris-
: lind, Lond. 1834. Thos. Lathbury, Hist, of Non-
tianitij, 8 vols. N. Y., ed. 1860-1. Ranke, Hist. jurors, Lond. 1845. Mant. Hist. Ch. Ireland,
of' J'opes, etc. 3 vols. Lond. Phila. 1851. Gibbon's 2d ed. 2 vols. Lond. 1841; King, Church Hist.
Decline and Fall of Rom. Emp. Thos. Greenwood, Ireland, Dublin, 1845. Wilberforce, Hist. Prat.
Cathedra Petri, 5 vols. 1856-64. P. Jafft, Re- Ep. Ch. in Am. Lond. 1844; Bp. White's Memoirs;
aesta Pontificum, Berol. 1851 (to A. d. 1198). Hawks, Doc. Hist. Maryland, Va., Conn., etc.
Bowyer, Hist, of Popes, ed. S. H. Cox, 3 vols. History of other Branches of the
Phila. 1840. Phil. Muller, Die romischen Pdbste, Church in England and America: Daniel
14 Bde. 1855. J. E. Riddle, History of Papacy, Neal, Hist, of Puritans, 1723-38; New York, 2
2 vols. Lond. 1854. vols. 1858. J. B. Marsden, History of Earlier and
History of the Reformation: Jo. Sleid- Later Puritans, 2 vols. Lond. 1852; Hist, of Chris-
anus, De Statu Reliyionis, etc., 1555 English tian Churches and Sects, 2 vols. Lond. 1856. Benj.
;
transl. 1683, by Bohun. Spalatini, Annal. Ref. ed Hanbury, Memoiials of the Conyreyedionalists, 3
462 CHURCHES CILICIA
vols. Lond. 1839-44.Sam. Hopkins, The Puritans, years by Othniel, Caleb's nephew (J udg. iii. 10),
3 vols. Bost. 18G0. Th. Price, Hist, of Prot. Non~ and nothing more heard of Mesopotamia as an
is
Conformity, 2 vols. 1836-8. Ed. Calamy, Non- aggressive power. The rise of the Assyrian empire,
Conf. Memorial, ed. Palmer, 2d ed. 3 vols. Lond. about b. c. 1270, would naturally reduce the bor-
1802. Benj. Brook, Lives of the Puritans, 3 vols. dering nations to insignificance. G. R.
Lond. 1813. Bogue and Bennett's Hist, of Dis- CHU'SI (Xous; Alex. Xotxm; [Aid. Comp.
senters to 1808, 2d ed. Lond. 1835. James Ben- Xovai :] Yulg. omits), a place named only in Judith
nett, Hist, of Dissenters, 1808-1838, Lond. 1839. vii. 18, as near Ekrebel, and upon the brook Moch-
W. Wilson, Hist, and Antiq. of Diss. Churches, 4 mur. It was doubtless in central Palestine, but
vols. 1808. C. Walker, Hist. Independency, 1660- all the names appear to be very corrupt, and are
61. Waddington, Cong. Hist, to 1662, Lond. 1862. not recognizable.
Thos. Read, Non- Conformists in Wales, 1861. I.
D. Rupp, Original Hist, of Religious Denominations
CHU'ZA
(properly Chuzas; Xov&s'- [Chusas
or -sa] ), i-rriTpoTros, or house-steward of Herod (An-
in United Stales, Pbila. 1844. R. Baird. Religion
in America, 1844. Is. Backus, Hist, of Baptists, tipas), whose wife Johanna ^lwdvva, V), hav- H3n
3 vols. 1801; Benedict, Baptists, N. Y. 1848; Cut- ing been healed by our Lord either of possession by
ting, Hist. Vindications, 1859. Young's Chronicle an evil spirit or of a disease, became attached to
of the Pilgrims, 2d ed. 1844. that body of women who accompanied Him on his
Felt's Ecclesiastical
Hist, of N. England, 2 vols. 1855. Palfrey's Hist.
journeyings (Luke viii. 3); and, together with Mary
New England, 3 vols. Bost. 1858-64. Tracy, The Magdalen and Mary the mother [ '?] of James,
Great Awakening, Bost. 1842. L'hden, New Eng. having come early to the sepulchre on the morning
Theocracy, transl. Boston, 1858. Astie, Hist, des of the resurrection, to bring spices and ointments
Etats-Unis, 2 torn. Paris, 1865. Abel Stevens, to complete the burial, brought word to the Apostles
Hist, of Methodism, 3 vols. 1858-61 Hist. Meth. that the Lord was risen (Luke xxiv. 10).
;
peffaOalfj.'] Chusan Rasathaim), the king of Meso- E. The latter portion was remarkable for its beauty
potamia who oppressed Israel during eight years in and fertility, as well as for its luxurious climate:
the generation immediately following Joshua (J udg. hence it became a favorite residence of the Greeks
iii. 8). The seat of his dominion was probably the after its incorporation into the Macedonian empire,
region between the Euphrates and the Khabour, to and its capital Taissus was elevated into the seat
which the name of Mesopotamia always attached The connec-
of a celebrated school of philosophy.
in a special way. In the early cuneiform inscrip- tion between the Jews and Cilicia dates from the
tions this country appears to be quite distinct from time when it became part of the Syrian kingdom.
Assyria; it is inhabited by a people called Na'iri, Antiochus the Great is said to have introduced
who are divided into a vast number of petty tribes 2000 families of the Jews into Asia Minor, many
and offer but little resistance to the Assyrian armies. of whom probably settled in Cilicia (Joseph. Ant.
No centralized monarchy is found, but as none of xii. 3, § 4). In the Apostolic age they were still
the Assyrian historical inscriptions date earlier than there in considerable numbers (Acts vi. 9). Cilician
about b. C. 1100, which is some centuries later mercenaries, probably from Trachea, served in the
than the time of Chushan, it is of course quite body-guard of Alexander Jannoeus (Joseph. Ant.
possible that a very different condition of things xiii. 13, § 5; B. J. i. 4, § 3). Josephus identified
may have existed in his day. In the weak and Cilicia with the Tarshish of Gen. x. 4; Qapabs 8«
divided state of Western Asia at this time, it was QapcrtTs, ovtws yap eKaAelVo rb TraXatbv t\ KtKtKia
easy for a brave and skillful chief to build up rapidly (Ant. i. 6, § 1 ). Cilicia was from its geographical
a vast power, which was apt to crumble away almost
as quickly. The case of Solomon is an instance. a Hence the close connection which existed between
Chushan-Rishathaim's yoke was broken from the Syria and Cilicia, as indicated in Acts xv. 23, 41
neck of the people of Israel at the end of eight Gal. i. 21.
CINNAMON CIRCUMCISION 468
po c
;iti between Syria and the West;
a1 the high road of this substance possessed by the Western nations
it was also the native country of St. Paul: hence ic was derived from China, and that it first reached
was visited by him, first, soon after his conversion India and Phoenicia overland by way of Persia at ;
(Gal. i. 21; Acts ix. 30), on which occasion he a later period when the Arabs, 'the merchants of
probably founded the church there;" and again in Sheba,' competed for the trade of Tyre, and carried
his second apostolical journey, when he entered it to her '
the chief of all spices '
(Ez. xxvii. 22), their
on the side of Syria, and crossed Antitaurus by the supplies were drawn from their African possessions,
Pylse Ciliciae into Lycaonia (Acts xv. 41). and the cassia of the Troglodytic coast supplanted
W. L. B. the cinnamon of the far East, and to a great extent
excluded it from the market."
CINNAMON ("1£?i7, P03p5 : Kivvdfxufjov.
With regard to the origin of the word, it is
cinnanwmum), a well-known aromatic substance, probable that it is derived from the Persian " Cin-
the rind of the Lauras cinnamomuin, called Ko- namon" i.e. "Chinese amomum " (see Tennent
nmda-gauhah in Ceylon. It is mentioned in Ex.
Dr. Royle, however, conjectures that it
in /. <:.).
xxx. 23 as one of the component parts of the holy Cacynnama, " sweet wood."
is allied to the Cingalese
anointing oil, which Moses was commanded to pre- or the Malagan Kaimanis. The brothers C. G.
pare; in Prov. vii. 17 as a perfume for the bed; and Th. V. L. Nees von Esenbeck have published
and in Cant. iv. 14 as one of the plants of the a valuable essay, " De Cinnamomo Disputatio "
garden which is the image of the spouse. In Rev. (Amamitates botan. Bonnenses, Fasc. i. Bonn*,
xviii. 13 it is enumerated among the merchandise
1823, 4to), to which the reader is referred for
of the great Babylon. " It was imported into W. H.
additional information.
Judaea by the Phoenicians or by the Arabians, and
is now found in Sumatra, Borneo, China, &c., hut CIN'NEROTH, ALL
(nh"1?3"b| : -xaaav
W.
chiefly, and of the best
of Ceylon, where the soil
quality, in the S.
and sandy, and
part
t V Xevveped [Vat. Xe(pa0 Alex. XevepeO ]
; i
This last is used in the composition of incense, and [Vat. Keipa/j.; Alex. Kipaua:] Gramas) and Gab-
diffuses a most delightful scent when burning. des came up with Zorobabcl from Babylon (1 Esdr.
Herodotus (iii. Ill) ascribes to the Greek word v. 20). [Kamah.]
Kivvafx.tiiij.ov a Phoenician, i. e. a Semitic origin.
His words are opvidas 8e Ae-yovcri /j.eyd\as
:
CIRCUMCISION
(TfWQ'.irepiTopfi: cir-
(pope e iv Toura to Kap<pea, Qoivikuv cumcisio) was peculiarly, though not exclusively, a
tci Tffj.e?s airb
fiad6vTfs Kivvd.jxaifj.ov Ka\eofxev. Jewish rite. It was enjoined upon Abraham, the
father of the nation, by God, at the institution,
The meaning of the Heb. root D3p is doubtful.
and as the token, of the Covenant, which assured
The Arab. *Jj =
to smell offensively like rancid to him and his descendants the promise of the
Messiah (Gen. xvii.). It was thus made a neces-
nut-oil. Gesenius suggests that the word might sary condition of Jewish nationality. Every male
have had the notion of lifting up or standing up- child was to be circumcised when eight days old
right, like rnn, ^"P, ^3H, and so be identical (Lev. xii. 3) on pain of
death; a penalty which, in
the case of Moses, appears to have been demanded
with nS"?, canna, calamus, which the cinnamon- of the father, when the Lord " sought to kill him "
rind resembles in form when prepared for the because his son was uncircumcised (Ex. iv. 24-26).
market, and has hence been called in the later If the eighth day were a Sabbath the rite was not
Latin cannell't, in Italian cinella, and in French postponed (John vii. 22, 23). Slaves, whether
cnntlle. Gesenius (Thes. 1223) corrects his former home-born or purchased, were circumcised (Gen.
xvii. 12, 13 and foreigners must have their males ;
derivation of the word (in Lex. Man.) from i"73p, )
and was therefore prohibited from using the sign and Moabites, as alike circumcised in flesh and un-
of the Covenant. This agrees with the mention
circumcised in heart. But, whatever meaning be
of their disobedience and its punishment, which assigned to the particular expression (Rosenmiiller
immediately follows in the passage in Joshua (v. 6), agrees with the A. V. Maurer suggests " circum-
;
and with the words (v. 9), " This day have I rolled cised in foreskin"), the next verse makes a plain
away the reproach of Egypt from off you." The distinction between two classes, of which all the
" reproach of Egypt " was the threatened taunt of -
Gentiles (C^12n v3), including surely the
their former masters that God had brought them
Egyptians and others just named, was one, and the
into the wilderness to slay them (Ex. xxxii. 12;
house of Israel the other the former being uncir-
;
Num. xiv. 13-16; Deut. ix. 28), which, so long as cumcised both in flesh and heart, the latter, though
they remained uncircumcised and wanderers in the possessing the outward rite, yet destitute of the cor-
desert for their sin, was in danger of falling upon responding state of heart, and therefore to be vis-
them. (Other views of the passage are given and ited as though uncircumcised. The difficulty that
discussed in Keil's Commentary cm Joshua, in then arises, namely, that the Egyptians are called
Clark's Tkeol. Libr., p. 129, &c.) whereas
uncircumcised, Herodotus and others state
The use of circumcision by other nations beside that they were circumcised, has been obviated by
the Jews is to be gathered almost entirely from supposing those statements to refer only to the
sources extraneous to the Bible. The rite has been priests and those initiated into the mysteries, so
found to prevail extensively both in ancient and that the nation generally might still be spoken of
modern times and among some
; nations, as, for in- as uncircumcised (Herod, ii. 36, 37, 104; and Wes-
stance, the Abyssinians, Nubians, modern Egypt- seling and Biihr in Inc.). The testimony of Herod-
ians,and Hottentots, a similar custom is said to be otus must be received with caution, especially as he
practiced by both sexes (see the Penny Cyclopaedia, asserts (ii. 104) that the Syrians in Palestine con-
article Circumcision). The Biblical notice of the fessed to having received circumcision from the
rite describes it as distinctively Jewish; so that in Egyptians. If he means the Jews, the assertion,
the N. T. "the circumcision" (% irepnofx^) and though it has been ably defended (see Spencer, de
the uncireumcision (^ aKpofiuaria) are frequently Leg. Hebr. i. 5, § 4) cannot be reconciled with
used as synonyms for the Jews and the Gentiles. Gen. xvii.; John vii. 22. If other Syrian tribes
Circumcision certainly belonged to the Jews as it are intended, we have the contradiction of Josephus,
did to no other people, by virtue of its divine insti- who writes, " It is evident that no other of the
tution, of the religious privileges which were at- Syrians that live in Palestine besides us alone are
tached to it, and of the strict regulations which circumcised " (Ant. viii. 10, § 3. Sec "Winston's
enforced itsobservance. Moreover, the 0. T. his- note there). Of the other nations mentioned by
tory incidentally discloses the fact that many, if
Jeremiah, the Moabites and Ammonites were de-
not all, of the nations with whom they came in scended from Lot, who had left Abraham before he
contact were uncircumcised. One tribe of the Ca- received the rite of circumcision and the Edomites;
feeling or expediency. St. Paul, who would by no On the long forgotten way from Jericho to Bethel,
means consent to the demand for Titus, who was a "broken cisterns" of high antiquity are found at
regular intervals. Jerusalem, described by Strabo
Greek, to be circumcised (GaL ii. 3-5), on another
occasion had Timothy circumcised to conciliate the as well supplied with water, in a dry neighborhood
Jews, and that he might preach to them with more (xvi. 700),depends maiidy for this upon its cis-
effect as being one of themselves (Acts xvi. 3). which almost every private house possesses
terns, of
The Abyssinian Christians still practice circum- one or more, excavated in the rock on which the
In accordance with city built. The following are the dimensions of
cision as a national custom. is
the spirit of Christianity, those who ascribed effi- 4, beloncino' to the house in
which Dr. Robinson
cacy to the mere outward rite, are spoken of in the resided. (1) 15 ft.X8X12 deep. (2.) 8X4
N. T. almost with contempt as " the concision " or X15. (3.) 10X10X15. (4.) 30X30X20.
'•amputation" (tV KaTaro/x^v); while the claim The cisterns have usually a round opening at the
to be the true circumcision is vindicated for 'hris- top, sometimes built up
»
with stonework above, and
tians themselves (Phil. iii. 2, 3). An ethical idea furnished with a curb and a wheel for the bucket
is attached to circumcision even in the 0. T., where (Eccl. xii. 6), so that they have externally much
uncircumcised lips (Ex. vi. 12, 30), or ears (Jer. vi. the appearance of an ordinary well. The water is
the roofs of the houses
10), or hearts (Lev. xxvi. 41) are spoken of, i. e., conducted into them from
either stammering or dull, closed as it were with a during the rainy season, and
with care remains
sweet during the whole summer and autumn. In
foreskin (Gesen. Heb. Lex. s. v. T^7), or rather
this manner most of the larger houses and public
rebellious and unholy (Deut. xxx. 6; Jer. iv. 4), buildings are supplied (Robinson, i. 324-5). Jose-
because circumcision was the symbol of purity (see phus (B. J. iv. 4, § 4) describes the abundant pro-
Thus the fruit of a tree is called uncir-
Is. hi. 1). vision for water supply in the towers and fortresses
cumcised, or in other words unclean (Lev. xix. 23). of Jerusalem, a supply which has contributed
In the N. T. the ethical and spiritual idea of purity greatly to its capacity for defense, while the dryness
and holiness is fully developed (Col. ii. 11, 13; of the neighborhood, verifying Strabo's expression
Rom. ii. 28, 29). T. T. P.
t))v kvkA'v x&P av *X 0V ^virpav kou avvSpov, has
CIS (Rec. T. Kis [and so written because the in all cases hindered the operations of besiegers.
Greek alphabet did not express sh] Laehm. [Tisch. Thus Hezekiah stopped the supply of water outside
:
Treg.] with [Sin.] A B C D, Keis- Cis), Acts the city in anticipation of the attack of Sennach-
xiii. 21. [Kish. 1.] erib (2 (Jhr. xxxii. 3, 4). The progress of Antio-
CI'SAI [2 syl.] (Kzo-olos; [Vat. Alex. FA. chus Sidetes, b. c. 134, was at first retarded by
Kejo-aios:] Cis), Esth. xi. 2. [Kish, 2.] want of water, though this want was afterwards
unexpectedly relieved (Joseph. Ant. xiii. 8, § 2;
CISTERN ("V»2, from "1K2, dig or bore,
Clinton, iii. 331). Josephus also imputes to divine
Gesen. 170: usually \o,kkos' cistermi or Incus), a interposition the supply of water with which the
receptacle for water, either conducted from an ex- army of Titus was furnished after suffering from
ternal spring, or proceeding from rain-fall. want of it (B. J. v. 9, § 4). The. crusaders also,
The dryness of the summer months between May during the siege A. D.' 1099, were harassed by ex-
and September, in Syria, and the scarcity of springs treme want of water while the besieged were fully
in many parts of the country, make it necessary to supplied (Matth. Paris, Hut. pp. 46, 49, ed. Wat.).
collect in reservoirs and cisterns the rain-water, of The defense of Masada by Joseph, brother of Herod,
which abundance falls in the intermediate period against Antigonus, was enabled to be prolonged,
(Shaw, Tract Is, 335; S. Jerome, quoted by Har- owing to an unexpected replenishing of the cisterns
mer, i. 148; Robinson, i. 430; Kitto, Pliys. Geogr. by a shower of rain (Joseph. Ant. xiv. 15, § 2), and
of 11. L. 302, 303). Thus the cistern is essentially in a subsequent passage he describes the cisterns
distinguished from the living spring ^V, 'Ain;
and reservoirs, by which that fortress was plenti-
fully supplied with water, as he had previously done
but from the well ""1^2, Beer, only in the fact in the case of Jerusalem and Maclnvrus (B. J. iv.
that Beer is almost always used to denote a place 4, § 4, iv. 6, § 2, vii. 8, § 3). Benjamin of Tudela
ordinarily containing water rising on the spot, while says very little water is found at Jerusalem, but
the
inhabitants drink rain-water, which they collect in
"113, Bar, is often used for a dry pit, or one that
their houses {Early Trav. p. 84).
may be left dry at pleasure (Stanley, 8. <f P. 512, Burckhardt mentions cisterns belonging to pri-
514). [Aix: Wkll.] The larger sort of public vate houses, among other places, at Sermein, near
tanks or reservoirs, in Arabic, Birkeh, Hebrew Be- Aleppo (Syria, p. 121), El Bara, in the Orontes
rectih. are usually called in A. V. "pool," while
valley (p. 132), Dhami and Missenia in the Lejah
for the smaller and more private it is convenient to
(pp.110, 112, 118), Tiberias (p. 331), Kerek in
reserve the name cistern. Moab (p. 377), Mount Tabor (p. 334). Of some
Both birkehs and cisterns are frequent through- at Hableb, near Gilgal, the dimensions are given
out the whole of Syria and Palestine, and for the by Robinson: (1.) 7 ft. —5 3 deep. X X
(2.)
construction of them the rocky nature of the ground Nearly the same as (1). (3.) 12X9X8. They
affords peculiar facilities either in original excava- have one or two steps to descend into them, as is
tion, or by enlargement of natural cavities. Dr. the case with one near Gaza, now disused, described
Robinson remarks that the inhabitants of all the by Sandys as "a Blighty cistern, filled only by the
hill country of Judah and Benjamin are in the rain-water, and descended into by stairs of stone"
habit of collecting water during the rainy season in (Sandys, p. 150: Robinson, ii. 39). Of those at
tanks and cisterns, in the cities and fields, and rlableh, some were covered with flat stones resting
30
466 CITHERN CITIES
on arches, some entirely open, and evidently an-
cient (Robinson, iii. 137).
all
(Dan. iii. 5). In the A. V. D^TT is rendered
" harp," and the same word
employed instead of
Empty cisterns weresometimes used as prisons is
and places of confinement. Joseph was cast into a Cithern (1 Mace. iv. 54) in Robert Barker's edition
of the English Bible, London, 1615. Gesenius
"pit," ""112 (Gen. xxxvii. 22), and his "dun- considers Cithara as
the same with haq) but Lu-. ;
geon " in Egypt is called by the same name (xli. ther translates Kiddpais by mit Pfeifen, "with
14). Jeremiah was thrown into a miry though pipes." (See Biuur to Mendelssohn's Psalms, 2d
empty cistern, whose depth is indicated by the Pref. Niebuhr, Travels; Fiirst's Concordance:
;
Cithern. tion, pass over a bridge, like the Nineveh, Rehoboth-by-the-river, Calah, and Resen,
string's of a violin. The chords the last being " a great city." A subsequent pas-
are made to vibrate by means of a leather thong sage mentions Sidoh, Gaza, Sodom, Gomorrah, Ad-
fastened to one of the lateral sticks of the triangle. mali. /eboini, and asha, as cities of the Canaan-
1
In Mendelssohn's edition of the Psalms represen- ites, but without implying for them antiquity equal
tations are given of the several musical instruments to that of Nineveh and the rest (Gen. x. 10-12, 10.
met with in the sacred books, and Kootkir or Kotli- xi. 3, 9, xxxvi. 37). Sir H. Rawlinson supposes.
ros is described by the accompanying figure. (1) that the expedition of Chedorlaomer (Gen. xiv.
The Cithara, if it be not the same with, resem- was prior to the building of Babylon or Nineveh,
bles very closely, the instruments mentioned in the indicating a migration or conquest from Persia or
Assyria; (2) that by Nimrod is to be understood.
book of Psalms under the denominations of ""H32,
not an individual, but a name denoting the '• set-
22"V, 733, respectively rendered in the A. V. tlers " in the Assyrian plain; and (3) that the
"harp," "psaltery," "organ." In Chaldee, Cithara names Rehoboth, Calah, &c, when first mentioned,
only denoted sites of buildings afterwards erected.
js translated DV)fl|7, the Keri for DYWf?He supposes that Nineveh was built about 1250
CITIES cities 4G7
B. c, and Calah about a century while Bab-
later, build, still less fortify, cities :>f their own in Goshen
ylon appears to have existed in the loth century ((Jen. xlvi. 34, xlvii. 1-11).
B. c. If this be correct, we must infer that the Meanwhile the settled inhabitants of Syria on
places then attacked, Sodom, Gomorrah, &c., were both sides of the Jordan had grown in power and
cities of higher antiquity than Nineveh or Babylon, in number of " fenced cities." In the kingdom of
inasmuch as when they were destroyed a few years Sihon are many names of cities preserved to the
later, they were cities in every sense of the term. present day; and in the kingdom of Og, in Bashan.
The name Kirjathaim, li double-city " (Ges. p. were 60 "great cities with walls and brazen bars,"
1236), indicates an existing city, and not only a site. besides unwalled villages and also 23 cities in
;
It may be added that the remains of civic buildings Gilead, which were occupied and perhaps partly
existing in Moab are evidently very ancient, if not, rebuilt or fortified by the tribes on the east of Jor-
in some cases, the same as those erected by the ab- dan (Num. xxi. 21, 32, 33, 35, xxxii. 1-3, 34, 42;
original Emims and Rephaims. (See also the name Deut. iii. 4, 5, 14; Josh, xi., xiii.; 1 K. iv. 13;
Avith, "ruins," Ges. p. 1000; Gen. xix. 1, 29, xxxvi. 1 Chr. ii. 22; Burckhardt, Syria, pp. 311, 457;
35; Is. xxiii. 13; Wilkinson, Arte. Egypt, i. 308; Porter, Damascus, ii. 195, 196, 206, 259, 275).
Layard, Nin. <$• Bab. p. 532; Porter, Damascus, i. On the west of Jordan, whilst 31 "royal " cities
309, ii. 196; Rawlinson, Outlines of Assyr. Hist. are enumerated (Josh, xii.), in the district assigned
4, 5.) But though it appears probable that, what- to Judah 125 "cities" with villages are reckoned
ever dates may be assigned to the building of Bab- Benjamin 26; to Simeon 17; Zab-
(Josh, xv.); in
ylon or Nineveh in their later condition, they were ulun 12; Asher 22; Naphtali 19;
Issachar 16;
in fact rebuilt at those epochs, and not founded forDan 17 (Josh, xviii., xix.). But from some of
the first time, and that towns in some form or otherthese the possessors were not expelled till a late pe
may have occupied the sites of the later Nineveh riod, and Jerusalem itself was not captured till the
or Calah; it is quite clear that cities existed in time of David (2 Sam. v. 6-9).
Syria prior to the time of Abraham, who himself From this time the Hebrews became a city-
came from " Ur," the " city " of the Chakteans dweliing and agricultural rather than a pastoral
(Ges. p. 55; Rawlinson, p. 4). people. David enlarged Jerusalem, and Solomon,
The earliest
besides embellishing his capital, also built or re-
description of a city, properly so
called, is that of (Gen. xix. 1-22); but it built Tadmor, Palmyra, Gezer, Beth-horon, Hazor,
Sodom
is certain that from very early times cities existed
and Megiddo, besides store-cities (2 Sam. v. 7, 9,
on the sites of Jerusalem, Hebron, and Damascus. 10; 1 K. ix. 15-18; 2 Chr. viii. 6). To Solomon
The last, said to be the oldest city in the world, also is ascribed by eastern tradition the building
must from its unrivalled situation have always com- of Persepolis (Chardin, Voyage, viii. 390; Man-
manded a congregated population Hebron is said delslo, i. 4; Kuran, ch. xxxviii.).
;
to have been built seven years before Zoan (Tanis) The works of Jeroboam at Shechem (1 K. xii.
in Egypt, and is thus the only Syrian town which 25; Judg. ix. 45), of Eehoboam (2 Chr. xi. 5-10),
presents the elements of a date for its foundation of Baasha at Rama, interrupted by Asa (1 K. xv.
(Num. xiii. 22; Stanley, 8. P. p. 409; Joseph. 17, 22), of Omri at Samaria (xvi. 24), the rebuild-
<f
Ant. i. 4; Conybeare and Howson, Life and ing of Jericho in the time of Ahab txvi. 34), the
6, §
Ep. of Paul, i. 94, 96).
St. works of Jehoshaphat (2 Chr. xvii. 12), of Jothain
But there can be no doubt that, whatever date (2 Chr. xxvii. 4), the rebuilding of Jerusalem, and
may be given to Egyptian civilization, there were later still, the works of Herod and his family, be-
inhabited cities in Egypt long before this (Gen. xii.
long to their respective articles.
Collections of houses in Syria for social habita-
14, 15; Martineau, East. Life. i. 151; Wilkinson,
i. 307; Diet, of Qeogr. art. Tanis). The name, tion may be classed under three heads: (1) cit- —
however, of Hebron, Kirjath-Arba, indicates its ex- ies; (2) towns with citadels or towers for resort
istence at least as early as the time of Abraham,
and defense; (3) unwalled villages. The cities
xiv. 15). The "tower of Edar." near Bethlehem, and gates (Lev. xxv. 29; Deut. ix. 1; Josh. ii. 15.
vi. 20; 1 Sam. xxiii. 7; IK. iv. 13; 2 K. vi. 26,
or "of flocks" T^5
7"55^?> indicates a position vii. 3, xviii. 8, 13; Acts ix. 25); and that as a mark
fortified against marauders (Gen. xxxv. 21). of conquest was to break down a portion, at least,
Whether "the city of Shalern " be a site or an of the city wall of the captured place, so the first
existing town cannot be determined, but there can care of the defenders, as of the Jews after their
be no doubt that the situation of Shechem is as return from captivity, was to rebuild the fortifica
well identified in the present day, as its importance tions (2 K. xiv. 13, 22; 2 Chr. xxvi. 2, 6, xxxiii
as a fortified place is plain from the Scripture nar- 14; Neh. iii., iv., vi., vii.; 1 Mace. iv. 00, 61. x. 45,
rative (Gen. xxxiii. IS. xxxiv. 20, 26; Robinson, Xen. Hell. ii. 2, § 15).
ii. 287). On the whole it seems plain that the a- <
But around the city, especially in peaceable times.
naanite, who was " in the land " before the coming -
lay undefended suburbs (n^tT ^^, irepHnrofjia.
of Abraham, had already built cities of more or less
importance, which had been largely increased by suburbana. 1 Chr. vi. 57 fF. Num. xxxv. 1-5, Josh. ;
the time of the return from Egypt. xxi.), to which the privileges of the city extended.
Even before the time of Abraham there were The city thus became the citadel, while the popula-
cities in Egypt Mien. xii. 14. 15; Num. xiii. 22; tion overflowed into the suburbs (1 Mace. xi. 61).
Wilkinson, i. 4. 5). The Israelites, during their The absence of walls as indicating security in peace-
sojourn there, wire employed in building or forti- able times, combined with populousness, as was the
fying the " treasure cities " of Pithom {Abbasieh) case in the flourishing period of Egypt, is illustrat-
and Raamses (Ex. i. 11; Herod, ii. 158; Winer, ed by the prophet Zechariah (ii. 4; IK. iv. 25;
Gesenius, 6. VO. ; Robinson, i. 54,55); but their Martineau. East. Life, i. 306).
pastoral habits make it unlikely that they should According to Eastern custom, special cities were
468 CITIES CITIES OF REFUGE
appointed to furnish special supplies for the service seph. Ant. xvi. 5, § 2, 3, xx. 9, § 7). The Straight
of the state; cities of store, for chariots, for horse- street of Damascus is still clearly defined and recog-
men, for building purposes, for provision for the nizable (Irby and Mangles, v. 86; Robinson, iii.
royal table. Special governors for these and their 454, 455).
surrounding districts were appointed by David and In building Caesarea, Josephus says that Herod
by Solomon (1 K. iv. 7, ix. 19; 1 Chr. xxvii. 25; was careful to carry out the drainage effectually
2 Chr. xvii. 12, xxi. 3; 1 Mace. x. 39; Xen. Anab. (Joseph. Ant. xv. 19, § 6): we cannot determine
i. 4, § 10). To this practice our Lord alludes in whether the internal commerce of Jewish cities whs
his parable of the pounds, and it agrees with the carried on as now by means of bazaars, but we
theory of Hindoo government, which was to be read of the bakers' street (Jer. xxxvii. 21 „ and Jo-
conducted by lords of single townships, of 10, 100, sephus speaks of the wool market, the hardware
or 1000 towns (Luke xix. 17, 19; Elphinstone, market, a place of blacksmiths' shops, and the
India, ch. ii., i. 39, and App. v. p. 485). clothes market, at Jerusalem (B. J. v. 8, § I ).
To the Levites 48 cities were assigned, distribut- The open (7rAaTe?cu) near the gatrs of
spaces
ed throughout the country, together with a certain towns were in ancient times, as they are still, used
amount of suburban ground, and out of these 48, as places of assembly by the elders, of holding
13 were specially reserved for the family of Aaron, courts by kings and judges, and of general result
9 in Judah and 4 in Benjamin, and 6 as refuge by citizens (Gen. xxiii. 10; Ruth Sam.
iv. 1; 2 xv.
cities (Josh. xxi. 13, 42), but after the division of
2^ xviii. 24; 2 K. vii. 1, 3, 20; 2 Chr. xviii. 9,
the kingdoms the Levites in Israel left their cities xxxii.
6; Neh. viii. 13; Job xxix. 7; Jer. xvii. 19;
and resorted to Judah and Jerusalem (2 Chr. xi. Matt. vi. 5; Luke xiii. 20). They were also used
13. 14).
as places of public exposure by way of punishment
The internal government of Jewish cities was (Jer. xx. 2; Am. v. 10).
rested before the Captivity in a council of elders Prisons were under the kingly government, with-
with judges, who were required to be priests: Jose- in the royal precinct (Gen.
xxxix. 20; IK. xxii.
phus says seven judges with two Levites as officers, 27; Jer. xxxii.
2; Neh. iii. 25; Acts xxi. 34. xxiii.
i
virripeTcu (Deut. xxi. 5, 19, xvi. 18, xix. 17; Ruth 35).
iv. 2; Joseph. Ant. iv. 8, § 14). Under the kings
Great pains were taken to supply both Jerusalem
a president or governor appears to have been ap- and other cities with water, both
by tanks and cis-
pointed (1 K. xxii. 26; 2 Chr. xviii. 25); and terns for rain-water, and by reservoirs supplied
by
judges were sent out on circuit, who referred mat- aqueducts from distant springs. Such was the
ters of doubt to a council composed of priests, Le-
fountain of Gihon, the aqueduct of Hezekiah (2 K.
vites, and elders, at Jerusalem (1 Chr. xxiii. 4, xxvi.
xx. 20; 2 lir. xxxii. 30; Is. xxii. 9), and of Solo-
(
v. i. 20; Jon. iv. 11; Chardin, Voy. vii. 273, 284; hence, cities of reception], Gesen.1216: Tr6Aets p.
Porter, Damascus, i. 153; P. della Valle, ii. 33). tS>v (pvyaSevTrjpiwv, (pvyaSevrripta, <pvyaSe7a'
In most Oriental cities the streets are extremely oppida in I'u ijitirnrii in anxilia,prcesiciia, separata;
narrow, seldom allowing more than two loaded urbes fugitivorum). Six Levitical cities specially
camels, or one camel and two foot passengers, to chosen for refuge to the involuntary homicide until
pass each other, though it is clear that some of the released from banishment by the death of the high-
streets of Nineveh must have been wide enough for priest (Num. xxxv. 6, 13, 15; Josh. xx. 2, 7, 9).
chariots to pass each other (Nah. ii. 5; Olearius, [Blood, Revenger of.] There were three on
Trav. pp. 294, 309 Burckhardt, Trav. in Arabia,
;
each side of Jordan. (1.) Kedesh, in Xaphtali,
i. 188; Buckingham, Arab Tribes, p. 330; Mrs. Kedes, about twenty miles E. S. E. from Tyre,
Poole, English w. in Egypt, i. 141). The word for twelve S. S. W. from Banins (1 Chr. vi. 76; Rob-
inson, ii. 439; Benj. of Tudela, Early True. p. 89).
streets used by Nahum — ."*!"!
JUT"!, from ^PH, (2.) Shechem, in Mount Ephraim, Nubulus (Josh,
brand, ir\aT(?ai —
used also of streets or broad
is xxi. 21; 1 Chr. vi. 67; 2 Chr. x. 1; Robinson, ii.
places in Jerusalem (l'rov. i. 20; Jer. v. 1, xxii. 4: 287, 288). (3.) Hebron, in Judah. J-Khidil.
Cant. iii. 2); and it may be remarked that the The two last were royal cities, and the latter sacer-
irA.aT€?ai into which the sick were brought to re- dotal also, inhabited by David, and fortified by Re-
ceive the shadow of St. Peter (Acts v. 15) were hoboam (Josh. xxi. 13; 2 Sam. v. 5; 1 Chr. vi. 55,
more likely to be the ordinary streets than the xxix. 27; 2 Chr. xi. 10; Robinson, i. 213, ii. 89).
special piazzt of the city. It seems likely that the (4.) On
the E. side of Jordan Bezer, in the —
immense concourse which resorted to Jerusalem at tribe ofReuben, in the plains of Moab, said in the
the feasts would induce wider streets than in other Gemara to be opposite to Hebron, perhaps Boeor,
cities. Herod built in Antioch a wide street paved but the site has not yet been found (Deut. iv. 43
with stone, and having covered ways on each side. Josh. xx. 8, xxi. 36: 1 Mace. v. 26; Joseph. Ant.
Agrippa II. paved Jerusalem with white stone (Jo- iv. 7, § 4; Reland, p. 662). (5.) Ramoth-Gil-
CITIMS CLAUDIA 469
e.\i>. the tribe of Gad, supposed to be on or
iii
which every Hebrew,
in that of the congregation, to
near the site of es-Szalt (Deut. iv. 43; Josh. xxi. and even strangers under certain restrictions, were
38; 1 K. xxii. 3; Roland, iii. 966). (6.) Golan, admitted. [CONGREGATION; Strangers.] The
in Bashan, in the half-tribe of Manasseh, a town privilege ofRoman citizenship was widely extended
whose has not been ascertained, but which
site under the emperors; it was originally acquired in
doubtless gave its name to the district of Gauloni- various ways, as by purchase (Acts xxii. 28; Cic.
tis, Juithni (Deut.iv. 43; Josh xxi. 27; 1 Chr. vi. ad Fam. xiii. 36; Dion Cass. Ix. 17), by military
71; Joseph. Ant. iv. 7, § 4; Reland, p. 815; Por- services (Cie. pro Bulb. 22; Suet. Any. 47), by
ter, Damascus, ii. 251, 254; Burckhardt, Syria, p. favor (Tac. Jlist. iii. 47),* or by manumission. The
286). right once obtained descended to a man's children
The Gemara notices that the cities on each side (Acts xxii. 28). The Jews had rendered signal
of the Jordan were nearly opposite each other, in services to Julius Caesar in the Egyptian war (Jo-
accordance with the direction to divide the band seph. Ant. xiv. 8, § 1, 2), and it is not improbable
into three parts (Deut. xix. 2; Reland, iii. GG2). that many obtained the freedom of the city on that
Maimonides says all the 48 Levitical cities had the ground: certain it is that great numbers of Jews,
privilege of asylum, but that the six refuge-cities who were Roman
citizens, were scattered over
were required to receive and lodge the homicide Greece and Asia Minor (Ant xiv. 10, § 13, 14).
gratuitously (Calmet, On Num. xxxv.). Among the privileges attached to citizenship, we
Most of the Rabbinical refinements on the Law m;;v icjte that a man could not be bound or impris-
are stated under BLOOD, Revengee of. To oned without a formal trial (Acts xxii. 29), still
them may be added the following. If the homi- less be scourged (Acts xvi. 37 Cic. in Verr. v. 63, ;
cide committed a fresh act of manslaughter, he was 66); the simple assertion of citizenship was suffi-
to flee to another city but if he were a Levite, to cient to deter a magistrate from such a step (Acts
;
wander from city to city. An idea prevailed that xxii. 25; Cic. in Verr. v. 62), as any infringement
when the Messiah came three more cities would be of the privilege was visited with severe punishment.
added: a misinterpretation, as it seems, of Deut. A Jew could only plead exemption from such treat-
xix. 8, 9 (Lightfoot, Cent. Chor. clii. 208). The ment before a Roman magistrate he was still liable ;
altar at Jerusalem, and, to some extent also, the to it from Jewish authorities (2 Cor. xi. 24 Seld. ;
city itself, possessed the privilege of asylum under ile Sijn. ii. 15, § 11). Another privilege attaching
similar restrictions; a privilege claimed, as regards to citizenship was the appeal from a provincial tri-
the former, successfully by Adonijah and in vain bunal to the emperor at Rome (Acts xxv. 11).
by Joab; accorded, as regards the city, to Shimei, [See the addition to Appeal, Amer. ed.]
but forfeited by him (1 Iv. i. 53, ii. 28, 33, 30, 40). W. L. B.
The directions respecting the refuge-cities pre- CITRON. [Apple-tree.]
sent ->ome difficulties in interpretation. The Levit-
ical cities were to have a space of 1000 cubits
CLAU'DA (KKavdrj, Acts xxvii. 16; called
Gaudos by Mela and Pliny, K\avSos by Ptolemy,
(about 583 yards) beyond the city wall for pasture
and KAauSi'a in the Stadiasmus Maris Mayni: it
and other purposes. Presently after, 2000 cubits
is still called Clnuda-nesn, or Gaudonesi, by the
are ordered to be the suburb limit (Sum xxxv. 4,
Greeks, which the Italians have corrupted into
5). The solution of the difficulty may be, either
Gozzo). This small island, unimportant in itself
the 2000 cubits are to be added to the 1000 as
and in its history, is of very great geographical im-
"fields of thesuburbs" (Lev. xxv. 34) as appears
portance in reference to the removal of some of the
to have been the case in the gift to Caleb, which
difficulties connected with St. Paul's shipwreck at
excluded the city of Hebron, hut included the
Melita. The position of Clauda is nearly due W.
"fields and villages of the city " (Josh. xxi. 11, 12,
of Cape Matala on the S. coast of Crete [Fair
Patrick), or that the additional 2000 cubits were
Havens], and nearly due S. of Phcenice. (See
a special gift to the refuge-cities, whilst the other
Ptol. iii. 17, § 1; Stndinsm. p. 496, ed. Gail)
Levitical cities had only 1000 cubits for suburb.
The ship was seized by the gale a little after pass-
Calmet supposes the line of 2000 cubits to be meas-
ing Cape Matala, when on her way from Fair Ha-
ured parallel, and the 1000 perpendicular to the
vens to Phcenice (Acts xxvii. 12-17). The storm
city wall an explanation, however, which supposes
;
took the name of his imperial patron, Tiberius fore A. t>. 67, the latest date that can be assigned
Claudius. She appears have become the wife
to to Paul's writing. But Martial's epigram must
of Pudens, who is mentioned in the same verse. have been written after this, perhaps several years
(See Martial, lib. iv. Epigr. 13.) This Pudens, we after, for he came to Rome only in A. D. 66 so ;
gather from an inscription found at Chichester, and that if they were married persons in 67, it is not
now in the gardens at Goodwood, was at one time likely Martial would celebrate their nuptials years
in close connection with king Cogidubnus, and gave after this." H.
an area for a temple of Neptune and Minerva, CLAUDIUS (KAwSios; m
Tiberius full,
which was built by that king's authority. And Claudius Nero Drusus Germanicus), fourth Roman
Claudia is said in Martial (xi. 53) to have been emperor, successor of Caius Caligula, reigned from
cceruleis Britaunis edita. Moreover, she is there 41 to 54 A. d. He was son of Nero 1 Irusus, was
also called Rufina. Now Pomponia, wife of the born in Lyons, Aug. 1, b. c. 9 or 10, and lived pri-
late commander in Britain, Aulas Plautius, under vate and unknown till the day of his being called
whom Claudia's father was received into alliance, to the throne, January 24, a. d. 41. He was
belonged to a house of which the Run were one of nominated to the supreme power mainly through
the chief branches. If she herself were a Rufa, the influence of Herod Agrippa the
First (Joseph.
and Claudia her protegee, the latter might well be Ant. xix.
2, §§ 1. 3, 4; Suet. Claud, p. 10); and
called Rufina; and we know that Pomponia was when on the throne he proved himself not
ungrate-
tried as superstitionis eostenm rea in the year 57, ful to him, for he enlarged the territory of Agrippa
Tacit. Ann. xii. 32; so that there are many circum-
by adding to it Judaea, Samaria, and some districts
stances concurrent, tending to give verisimilitude of Lebanon, and appointed his brother Herod to
to the conjecture. See Archdeacon Williams's the kingdom of Chalcis, (Joseph. Ant. xix.
5, § 6;
pamphlet, " On Pudens and Claudia;" —
an arti- Dion Cass. lx.
8), giving to this latter also, after
cle in the Quarterly Review for July, 1858, entitled
his brother's death, the presidency over the Temple
" The Romans at Colchester; " —
and an Excursus at Jerusalem (Joseph. Ant. xx. 1, § 3). In Clau-
in Alford's Greek Testament, vol. iii. Prolegg. p. dius's reign there were several famines, arising from
104. in which the contents of the two works first unfavorable harvests (Dion Cass. lx.
11; Euseb.
mentioned are embodied in a summary form. Ckron. Armen. i. 209, 271; Tacit. Ann. xii. 13),
H. A. and one such occurred in Palestine and Syria (Acts
* Conybeare and Howson also are disposed to
xi. 28-30) under the procurators Cuspiug Fadus
adopt the foregoing view of the personal and his- and Tiberius Alexander (Joseph. Ant. xx.
2, § 0,
torical relations. of Pudens and Claudia {lift and
and 5, § 2), which perhaps lasted some years.
Epistles of Paul, ii. 594, Amer. ed.). One obvious Claudius was induced by a tumult of the Jews in
exegetical difficultyis that Linus stands nearer than
Rome, to expel them from the city (Suet. Claud.
Pudens toClaudia in the order of the names (2 p. 25, " Judaeos impulsore Chresto assidue tumultu-
Tim. iv. 21), and if Claudia was the wife of either, antes Roma expulit; " cf. Acts xviii. 2). It is prob-
it is arbitrary to make her the wife of the latter
able that Suetonius here refers to some open dis-
rather than of the former. The reply made to this sension between Jews and Christians, but when it,
is that the amanuensis, confused by Paul's rapid
and the consequent edict, took place, is very uncer-
dictation, may have written down the names incor- tain. Orosius (Hist. vii. 0) fixes it in the 9th year
rectly. The German critics, as De Wette, Matthies, of Claudius, a. p. 49 or 50 referring to Josephus,
;
Huther (in Meyer's Coram, ilb. das N. Test.), who, however, says nothing about it. Pearson
Wiesinger, find no such point of contact here (Annal. Paul. p. 22) thinks the 12th year more
between secular and sacred history, but pass over probable (a. d. 52 or 53). As Anger remarks {De
the name simply with the remark that Claudia is ternporum in Actis App. ratione, p. 117), the edict
otherwise unknown. Winer and llerzog have no of expulsion would hardly be published as long as
articles on the name. The combinations which Herod Agrippa was at Rome, i. e. before the year
the writers assume who maintain that Claudia was 49. Claudius, after a weak and foolish reign ("non
a British princess, are strained and hypothetical. principem se, sed ministrum egit," Suet. p. 2d),
Pudens and Claudia were, confessedly, everyday was poisoned by his fourth wife Agrippina, the
names among the Romans, and therefore prove mother of Nero, (Tac. Ann. xii. 60, 7; Suet.
nothing as to the identity of the persons. The Claud pp. 44, 45; Joseph. Ant. xx. 8, § 1; B. J.
character of Martial forbids the idea that he could ii. 12. § 8), October 13, A. d. 54. H. A.
have had intimate friends among the friends of St.
Paul; and still more, his invoking on them the
CLAUDIUS LYS IAS. [Lystas.]
favor of heathen gods on the occasion of their CLAY (*~\A Tri,\6s: humus or lutum), a sed-
:
marriage (iv. 13) shows that they were still addicted imentary earth, tough and plastic, arising from the
to idolatry and not worshippers of the true God. disintegration of feldspar and similar minerals, and
The "inscription found at Chichester" also (see alwavs containing silica and alumina combined in
above) represents Pudens as a pagan. To meet variable proportions. As the sediment of water
these points, are required to "suppose either
we remaining in pits or in streets, the word is used
that Pudens concealed his faith, or that his rel- frequently in O. T. (e. g. Is. lvii. 20; Jer. xxxviii.
atives, in their anxiety to shield him, did idol- 6; Ps. xviii. 42), and in N. T. (tttjAcSs, John ix. 6),
atrous acts in his name " {Life and Epistles of a mixture of sand or dust with spittle. It is also
Paul, ii. 595). North of the Tweed this ingenious found in the sense of potter's clay (Is. xii. 25).
theory of the British origin of Claudia has found The alluvial soils of Palestine would no doubt sup-
much less favor. See the objections to it forcibly ply material for pottery, a manufacture which we
stated in Dr. Kitto's Cycl. of Bill Lit. i. 52!), 3d know was, as it still is, carried on in the country
ed., 1802. The writer of the article there points (Jer. xviii. 2, 6), but our knowledge on the subject
out a near approach, at least, to a serious chron- is so small as to afford little or no means of deter-
CLEAN CLOUD 471
mining, and the clay of Palestine, like that of family of Joseph at the time of our Lord's minis-
Egypt, is probably more loam than clay (Birch, try, it is probable that he himself was dead before
Hist, of Pottery, i. 55, 152). [Pottery.] The that time. On the whole, then, it seems safer to
word most commonly used for '•potter's clay" is doubt the identity of Cleopas with Clopas. Of
the further history of Cleopas nothing is known.
""»»h (Ex. i. 14; Job iv. 19; Is. xxix. 10; Jer.
H. A.
xviii. 4. &c). Bituminous shale, convertible into
clay, is said to exist largely at the source of the
CLEOPATRA
(KKeowdrpa), the name of
Jordan, and near the Dead Sea. The great seat numerous Egyptian princesses derived from the
of the pottery of the present day in Palestine is
daughter of Antiochus III., who married Ptolemy
Gaza, where are made the vessels in dark blue clay V. Epiphanes,
b. c. 193.
1. " The wife of Ptolemy " (Esth. xi. 1) was
so frequently met with.
probably the granddaughter of Antiochus, and wife
The use of clay in brick-making is described
of Ptol. VI. Philometor. [Ptol. Philometor.]
elsewhere. [Brick.]
2. A daughter of Ptol. VI. Philometor and
Another use of clay was in sealing (Job xxxviii. Cleopatra (1), who was married first to Alexander
14). The bricks of Assyria and Egypt are most Balas, b. c. 150 (1 Mace. x. 58), and afterwards
commonly found stamped either with a die or with given by her father to Demetrius Nicator when he
marks made by the fingers of the maker. Wine invaded Syria (1 Mace. xi. 12; Joseph. Ant. xiii. 4,
jars in Egypt were sometimes sealed with cla-y; § I). During the captivity of Demetrius in Parthia
mummy pits were sealed with the same substance, [Demetrius] Cleopatra married his brother Anti-
and remains of clay are still found adhering to the ochus VII. Sidetes, and was probably privy to the
stoue door-jambs. Our Lord's tomb may have been murder of Demetrius on his return to Syria b. c.
thus sealed (Matt, xxvii. 66), as also the earthen 125 (App. Syr. c. 68 yet see Joseph. Ant. xiii. 9, :
vessel containing the evidences of Jeremiah's pur- § 3; Just, xxxix. 1). She afterwards murdered
chase (Jer. xxxii. 14). So also in Assyria at Seleucus, her eldest son by Demetrius (App. Syr.
Knuvunjik pieces of line clay have been found c. 69); and at length was herself poisoned b. c. 120
bearing impressions of seals with Assyrian, Egypt- by a draught which she had prepared for her second
ian, and Phcenician devices. The seal used for son Antiochus VIII., because he was unwilling to
public documents was rolled on the moist clay, and gratify the. ambitious designs which she formed
the tablet .vas then placed in the fire and baked. when she raised him to the throne (Justin, xxxix.
The practice of sealing doors with clay to facilitate 2). B. F. W.
detection in case of malpractice is still common in
the East (Wilkinson, Anc. Egypt, i. 15, 48, ii.
CLEOPHAS. [Cleopas; Alph.eus.]
or Alplueus in John xix. 25. [Alph.eus.] Their landscape (Stanley, 5. </• P. p. 140). Similarly,
identity assumed by the later fathers and when a cloud appeals, rain is. ordinarily appre-
was
church historians. "
But Eusebius (//. E. iii. 11) hended, and thus the " cloud without rain becomes
writes the name of Alplueus, Joseph's brother, Clo- a proverb for the man of promise without perform-
pas, not Cleopas. And Chrysostom and Theodoret, ance (Prov. xvi. 15; Is. xviii. 4, xxv. 5; Jude 12;
on the Epistle to the Galatians. call James the Just comp. Prov. xxv. 14). The cloud is of course a
the son of Clopas. Besides which, Clopas, or Al- figure of transitoriness (Job xxx. 15; Hos. vi. 4).
phseus, is an Aramaic name, whereas Cleopas is a and of whatever intercepts divine favor or human
Greek name, probably contracted from KKeSwarpos, supplication (Lam. ii. 1, iii. 44). Being the least
is 'AvTiiras from 'AvTiirarpos. Again, as we find substantial of visible forms, undefined in shape,
the wife and children of Clopas constantly with the and unrestrained in position, it is the one amongst
472 CLOLD COAL
material things which suggests most easily spiritual rested at other times on the tabernacle, whence God
being. Hence it is, so to speak, the recognized is said to have "come down ill the pillar" (Num.
machinery by which supernatural appearances are xii. 5; so Ex. xxxiii. 9, 10). It preceded the host,
introduced (Is. xix. 1; Ez. i. 4; Rev. i. 7, and apparently resting on the ark which led the way
passim), or the veil between things visible and in- (Ex. xiii. 21, xl. 36, &c; Num. ix. 15-23, x. 34).
visible ; but, more especially, a mysterious or super- So by night the cloud on the tabernacle became
natural cloud is the symbolical seat of the Divine fire, and the guiding pillar a pillar of fire. A re-
presence itself — the phenomenon of deity vouch- markable passage in Curtius (v. 2, § 7), descriptive
safed by Jehovah to the prophet, the priest, the of Alexander's army on the march, mentions a
king, or the people. Sometimes thick darkness, beacon hoisted on a pole from head-quarters as the
sometimes intense luminousness, often, apparently, signal for marching " observabatur ignis noctu, fu-
;
and especially by night, an actual fire (as in the mus interdiu." This was probably an adoption of
descent of Jehovah on Sinai, Ex. xix. 18), is attrib- an eastern custom. Similarly the Persians used as
uted to this glory-cloud (Deut. iv. 11; Ex. xl. a conspicuous signal, an image of the sun inclosed
35, xxxiii. 22, 23; 2 Sam. xxii. 12, 13). Such a in crystal {ib. iii. 3, § 9). Caravans are still known
bright cloud, at any rate at times, visited and rested to use such beacons of fire and smoke; the cloud-
on the Mercy Seat (Ex. xxix. 42, 43; 1 K. viii. lessness and often stillness of the sky giving the
11; 2 Chr. v. 14; Ez. xliii. 4) and was by later smoke great density of volume, and boldness of
writers named Shekinah. For the curious ques- outline. H. H.
tions which the Rabbins and others have raised con- * CLOUTED, Josh. ix. 5, "old shoes and
cerning it, e. g. whether its light was created or elm/let/" i. e. patched; compare clouts, Jer. xxxviii.
not, whether the actual "light" created on the 11, 12. A.
" first day " (Gen. i. 3), or an emanation therefrom,
Buxtorf 's history of the Ark, ch. xi.-xiv. (Ugolini,
CNFDUS (KviSos) is mentioned in 1 Mace,
xv. 23, as one of the Greek cities which contained
vol. vii.), may be consulted. H. H.
Jewish residents in the second century before the
CLOUD, PILLAR OF O^H T1B2). Christian era, and in Acts xxvii. 7, as a harbor
This was the active form of the symbolical glory- which was passed by St. Paul after leaving Myra,
cloud, betokening God's presence to lead his chosen and before running under the lee of Crete. It was
host, or to inquire and visit offenses, as the lumin- a city of great consequence, situated at the extreme
ous cloud of the sanctuary exhibited the same S. W. of the peninsula of Asia Minor [Cam a], on
under an aspect of repose. The cloud, which be- a promontory now called Cape Crio, which projects
came a pillar when the host moved, seems to have between the islands of Cos and Rhodes (see Acts
'%}W V %--
S. The latter was the larger, and its moles were COAL. In A. V. this word represents no less
noble constructions. All the remains of Cnidus than five different Hebrew words. (1.) The first
show that it must have been a city of great mag-
and most frequently used is Gacheleth, P!?P2
nificence. Few ancient cities have received such
ember,
ample illustration from travels and engravings. (&vQpa^ avdpaKia- prima, carbo), a live
We may Karamania, Hamil- burning fuel, as distinguished from
refer to Beaufort's DPQ
(Prov.
ton's Researches, and Texier's Asie Mineure, also xxvi. 21). It is written more fully in Ez. x. 2,
Laborde, I>eake, and Clarke, with the drawings in >l
the Ionian Antiquities, published by the Dilettanti ^S
?P 3, and in Ez. i. 13, rfTfl(i ITS ^£3,
;
Society, and the English Admiralty Charts, Nos. In 2 Sam. xxii. 9, 13, " coals of fire " are put
COAL COAL 473
metaphorically for the lightnings proceeding from coal. There is no evidence to show that the ancient
God (Ps. xviii. 8, 12, 13, cxl. 10). Hebrews were acquainted with the substance we
In l'rov. xxv. 22 we have the proverbial expres- now denominate "coal;" indeed it seems prett)
sion, " Thou shall heap coals of fire upon his head," clear that the ancients generally used charcoal foi
which has been adopted li}' St. Paul in Rom. xii. their fuel ; and although there is a passage in The-
20, and by which is metaphorically expressed the ophrastus (Fr. ii. 61, ed. Schneider) from which
burning shame and confusion which men must feel we learn that fossil coal was found in Liguria and
when their evil is requited by good. In Ps. cxx. Elis, and used by "the smiths," yet its use must
4, " coals " =
burning brands of wood (not "juni- have been very limited. The houses of the ancient
per," but broom), to which the false tongue is com- Greeks and Romans were without chimneys in our
pared (James iii. G). sense of the word (see this subject admirably dis-
In 2 Sam. xiv. 7 the quenching of the live coal cussed by Beckmann, Hist. Invent, i. 295). As the
is used to indicate the threatened destruction of houses had merely an opening in the centre of the
the single remaining branch of the family of the roof, the burning of " coal " would have made even
widow of Tekoah suborned by Joab; just as Lucian their kitchens intolerable. Little as has been done
( Tij/i. § 3) uses the word (wwupov in the same con- for the zoology and botany of Palestine, still less
nection. has been done for its geology. " Indications of
says Kitto {Phys. Hist. Pal.
coal are exhibited."
The root of H^HS is 7H3, which is possibly
p 67), "in various parts of the Lebanon moun-
tains; here and there a narrow seam of this min-
the same in meaning as the Arab. *.^V^2>., to light eral protrudes through the superincumbent strata
to the surface; and we learn from Mr. Elliot (ii.
a fire, with the change of 7 into 73. 257 that the enterprise of Mohammed Ali has not
)
2. Peck&m, Orra (i<rxdpa, fa'Qpal carbo, suffered even this source of national wealth to
:
erly means "a hot stone." The root recourse to a fire. Coal is one of the articles of
is ^l?"1 to ,
lated by Mr. Grove from the French. Mr. Grove 32, margin; Is. xi. 8, lix. 5; Jer. viii. 17. The
deals largely with questions of this
cockatrice is a fabulous animal concerning which
nature in his
article on Ska, The Salt, in this Dictionary. absurd stories are told. [Adder.] W. H.
(See additions in Amer. ed.) On that particular COCKLE ;
(nt? S2, boshdh: faros'- spina)
subject, and on the geology of the country gener- " Let thistles grow
occurs only in Job xxxi. 40 :
ally, we have much valuable information in Mr. instead of wheat, and cockle instead of barley."
Tristram's Land of Israel (scattered through the
work, but especially in chapter xv.). H. The plural form of a Heb. noun, namely, Q^tTSS
found in Is. v. 2, 4, A. V. " wild
(beuslnm), is
* COAST (derived through the French coste,
grapes." It is uncertain whether these two words
from the Latin casta, "a rib," " side"), stands often
denote " noxious weeds " generally, or some partic-
in the A. V. for "border " (Judg. xi. 20; 1 Sam.
ular plant. Celsius has argued in favor of the aco-
v. 6; Matt. viii. 34, &c). The present usage re-
nite, the Acomtom NapeUus, which however is
stricts the term to the sea-shore. H.
quite a mountain never a field plant. —
He —
COAT. [Dress.] traces the Hebrew name to a Persian word (Bish)
* COAT OF MAIL, 1 Sam. xvii. 5, 38. of somewhat similar form. The beushim of Isaiah
See Arms, II. § 1, p. 161. (/. c), which the LXX. render " thorns " (&Kav6ai),
ing by the A. V. of the Hebrew words tziph'oni mer reaching its highest point in the snowy crest
a * So the Vulg. in Is. xxii. 17, but not the LXX. sistent with itself on this point ( Hnr. Hebr. on Matt,
We have aAe/crpuwi/, gallus, in 3 Mace. v. 23. H. xxvi. 34). See also Friedlieb's Archaol. i/tr Leii/nis-
b * Lightfoot has shown that the Talmud is not con- geschichte, p. 83. H.
COFFER COFFIN 475
to the north, behind which lie the Cedars; the lat- in Gen. 1. 26, the body of Joseph, after being em-
ter, in the still more snowy crest of Hennon — the balmed, is said to have been put into a "coffin"
culmination of the range being thns in the one at wooden chest (P"'^). Objectors have
(A. V.) or
the northern, in the other at the southern extremity
of the valley which they bound. The view of this urged from this expression that the writer of Gen-
great valley is chiefly remarkable, as being exactly esis was ignorant of Egyptian customs, and hence
to the it is on /mips
eye what the 'hollow' be- — could not have been .Moses, if Moses was born and
tween the two mountain ranges of Syria. A screen brought up in Egypt. But this objection mis-
through which the Leontes (Litany) breaks out, states the usage in such cases. Basaltic sarcophagi
closes the south end of the plain. There is a were very uncommon, and, as the general rule, the
similar screen at the north end, but too remote to mummy was placed in a wooden coffin. Herodotus
be visible " (Stanley's Sin. PaL p. 4'-t7). Thei)'- says expressly (ii. 86) that, the body, after being
plain gradually rises towards its centre, near which, duly prepared, was " given back to the relatives,
but a little on the southern declivity, stand the who inclosed it in a wooden case which they made
ruins of Ba tlbek or Heliopolis. In the immediate for the purpose, shaped into the figure of a man."
neighborhood of Baalbek rise the two streams of See Kawlinson's Herodotus, ii. 143, and Hengsten-
the Orontes (Nahr-el-Asy) and the Litany, which berg's Die Biicher Mote's und sEyypten, p. 71
flowing in opposite directions, to the N. W. and (Bobbins's trans, p. 76). " If a massive tomb or
the S. E., give freshness and fertility to the tract lofty pyramid had been erected to his memory, and
inclosed between the mountain ranges. if remains had been deposited there like
his mortal
The term Code-Syria was also used in a much those of the princes of Egypt, it would have been
wider sense. In the first place it was extended go supposed that his body would remain in Egypt till
as to include the inhabited tract to the east of the the day of doom. But he would not permit this
Anti-Libanus range, between it and the desert, in to be flone he took an oath of the children of
;
'
it was further carried on upon that side of Jordan, Egypt to Canaan and he was content with a simple
;
through Trachonitis and Perwa, to Idumaea and coffin of wood." (Wordsworth, 'oio.sis. p. 1S>7.
the borders of Egypt (Strab. xvi. § 21; Polyb. v. "Coffin," the marg. rendering of the A. V. for
S ). § 3; Joseph. Ant. i. 11, § 5). Ptolemy (v. 15) aop6s in Luke vii. 14, is probably more correct than
and Josephus (Ant. xiii. 13, § 2) even place Scy- " bier " in the text. The proper Greek for " bier "
thopolis in Ccele-Syria, though it was upon the is cpipzrpov, kKivi), Ae'xos ('» modem Greek £uAo-
phal Books there is frequent mention of Ccele-Syria no covering at all, or with a cloak thrown over the
in a somewhat vague sense, nearly as an equivalent body, leaving the face exposed. The shroud, a
for Syria 1 Esdr. ii. 17, 24, 27, iv. 48, vi. 29, vii. long piece of white cotton stuff, is wrapped around
(
1, viii. 67; 1 Mace. x. 69; 2 Mace. iii. 5, 8, iv. the body at the grave. 4,
The grave has at the bot-
viii. 8, x. 11). In all given tom, on all four sides, a ledge of stones built up
these cases the word is
in A. V. as Celosyhia. G. R. against its sides high enough to allow the body to
be deposited in the niche thus made, and be cov-
COFFER(T3"~IS, probably from t{n, to be
ered with boards, the ends of which rest on this
moved: dt/j.a. capsella), a movable box hanging ledge and prevent the earth from actually touching
from the side of a cart (1 Sam. vi. 8, 11, 15). the body I have attended scores of funerals on
This word is found nowhere else, and in each of
Lebanon, and I never saw a corpse carried that
the above examples has the definite article, as if of
could not have sat up at once had it been restored
some special significance. H. W. P. to life. In Beirut coffins have more recently
COFFIN. [Burial.] come into use, which may be left uncovered until
* A
few points require notice under this head, the grave is reached, or, as is often the case with
which are not found under Burial. One is that Christians, they are closed at the house or church.
476 COLA COLLOPS
Mohammedans Beirut carry the dead to the that is, from the king, the position of Huldah's
in
grave on a bier, as above mentioned, and then house, next the king's palace, accounting for the
sometimes put the body into a rude coffin at the fact that she was first appealed to. Of conjectures
grave." H. like these there is no end. W. A. W.
CO'LA (XcoAa; Alex. KwAa- [Sin. Vulg. * In Neh. xi. 9, the A. V. has the erroneous
omit]), a place named with Chobai (Jud. xv. 4, construction, "was second over the city." The
only), the position or real name of which has not
Hebrew, rT3tt/D "I^^H, means the city second in
been ascertained. Simonis (Onom. N. T. 170)
suggests Ahel-mecholah.
order = the second city, i.e. the second part of it
\a(d, Vat. FA. Xa\ea ] Cholkoza), a man of city, or Akra (Robinson, Bibl. lies. i. 412). The
the tribe of Judah in the time of Nehemiah (Neh. Syriac version follows the true construction, and
iii. 15, xi. 5). translates, " was governor over the second city,"
ment, refers to the orifice for the head and neck, Reformation, from their Jewish teachers. The
but we question whether it would be applied to any Targum of Jonathan, 2 K. xxii. 14, acting the
other robe than the sacerdotal ephod (Ex. xxxix. interpreter here as elsewhere (Herzog's Real-Kn-
23; Ps. cxxxiii. 2). The authority of the LXX.
(Sxrirep rb nepio-T6/u.iov), of the Vulg. (quasi capi-
cyli. xv. 678) has S^ U ^S ITS, house of in-
Secunrh). In 2 K. xxii. 14 it is said in the A. V. the annotation: " Exponunt hie comniuniter He-
that Huldah the prophetess " dwelt in Jerusalem
in the college" or, as the margin has it, "in the
brsei pro W~)112 mWO
; vel, ut Chal. JTS
second part." The same part of the city is un- interpres vertit, S3C71S i"VD, id est, domus
doubtedly alluded to in Zeph. i. 10 (A. V. " the doctrinas seu studii legis divinse." He adds, from
second "). Our translators derived their rendering the Rabbinic writers " Eratque certus quidani :
3], and some translate n^tTSS without the wall, which appears in his version of the parallel passage
in 2 Chr.). Matthew's Bible, so called (1537),
between the two walls, which was a second part
generally understood to be essentially Tyndale's
(mishneh) to the city." The latter is substantially
version of the Old Testament, has in both passages,
the opinion of the author of Quasi, in Libr. Reg.
Keil's explanation ( Comm.
"dwelt in Jerusalem in the second ward." Cran-
attributed to Jerome.
mer's Bible (1540) has in 2 K., "in the house
in loc.) is probably the true one, that the Mishneh
of the doctrine," but in 2 Chr. "within the second
was the " lower city," called by Josephus r\ &\Xy\
wall;" followed in both passages by the Bishops'
n-^Air (Ant. xv. 11, § 5), and built on the hill
Akra. Ewald (on Zeph. i. 10) renders it Neu- Bible (15G8). The Geneva version (1560) has in
2 K., " in the college," 2 Chr. " within the college "
stadt, that is, Beeztha, or New Town.
(with the marginal note on the former passage,
Others have explained the word as denoting the "
or, the house of doctrine, which was near to the
quarter of the city allotted to the Levites, who
temple," &c, as in the Rabbinic commentaries re-
were a second or inferior order as compared with
ferred to above), and in both passages was followed
the priests, or to the priests who were second in
by King James's revisers. T. J. C.
rank as compared with the high-priest. Junius
and Tretnellius render " in parte secunda ab eo," * COLLOPS
stands in Job xv. 27 for HE^D,
COLONY colors 477
which means simply "fat" or "fatness." It is which he could have introduced it with propriety.
said to be a Yorkshire word, still used, signifying It occurs five times in this brief recital, and shows
lumps or slices of meat (Eastwood and Wright's that the government of this particular city (tt6\is,
Bible Word-Book, p. 114). As " fatness " occurs KoKoivia) was modelled after the Koman form.''
just before, the translators may have wished to It is also at Philippi only that the "rod-bearers"
vary the expression, or may have been guided by or "lictors" (paf3$ovxoL), holding one of the most
caprice. Dr. Conant ( Translation of the Book of distinctive of all the Koman insignia, make their
Job, p. 51) renders "fatness" in one line of the appearance. (See Pauly's Real-Kurykl. ii. 507, 1st
parallelism, and "fat" in the other. H. ed. Wetstein, Nov. Test. ii. 556 Kuinoel, Acta
; ;
COLONY, a designation of Philippi, the cel- Schaff's Am. ed. p. 306; Conybeare & Howson's
ebrated city of Macedonia, in Acts xvi. 12. After Life and Letters of Paul, i. 345, Amer. ed. and ;
the battle of Actium, Augustus assigned to his Bibl. Sacra, Oct. i860, pp. 866-898.) H.
veterans those parts of Italy which had espoused
the cause of Antony, and transported many of the COLORS. The terms relative to color, oc-
expelled inhabitants to Philippi, Dyrrachium, and curring in the Bible, may be arranged in two
other cities (Dion Cass. li. 4). In this way Phi- classes, the first including those applied to the de-
lippi was made a lioman colony with the " Jus Ital scription of natural objects, the second those arti-
icum " (comp. Dig. 50, tit. 15, s. 8), and accord ficial mixtures which were employed in dyeing or
ingly we find it described as a " colonia " both in painting. In an advanced state of art, such a dis-
inscriptions and upon the coins of Augustus. tinction can hardly be said to exist; all the hues
(Orelli. Inscr. 512, 3658, 3746, 4064; Rasehe, vol. of nature have been successfully imitated by the
iii. pt. 2, p. 1120.) On the "Jus Italicum," see artist; but among the Jews, who fell even below
Diet, of Ant, arts. Cokmia and Lu/initas. their contemporaries in the cultivation of the fine
* Traces of this colonial rank of Philippi appear arts, and to whom painting was unknown until a
at the present time among the ruins on the ground. late period, the knowledge of artificial colors was
The traveller even at Neapolis (Kavalla), the sea- very restricted. Dyeing was the object to which
port of the ancient city, sees around him Latin the colors known to them were applied. So exclu-
inscriptions on sarcophagi, tablets, and fallen col- sively indeed were the ideas of the Jews limited to
umns. Two of the epitaphs there contain the name this application of color, that the name of the dye
of ( emperor who was on the throne
'laudius, the was transferred without any addition to the ma-
when Paul passed through Neapolis to the colony terial to which it was applied. The Jews were not
where he gathered his first church in Europe. however by any means insensible to the influence
At the distance of half an hour before coming to of color: they attached definite ideas to the various
the ancient site, stands a massive block of marble tints, according to the use made of them in robes
which no doubt once supported a statue or some and vestments: and the subject exercises an im-
monumental column, on which the names of " Caius portant influence on the interpretation of certain
Vibius et Cornelius Quartus " are distinctly legible, portions of Scripture.
with other Roman not easily deciphered.
letters 1. The natural colors noticed in the Bible are
Near them are also Turkish cemeteries with frag- white, black, red, yellow, and green. It will be
ments of marble at the head of the graves, obtained observed that only three of the prismatic colors
evidently from Philippi, on which Latin letters and are represented in this list; blue, indigo, violet,
occasionally entire words are found. On some of and orange are omitted. Of the three, yellow is
the stones among the ruins at Philippi are Greek very seldom noticed it was apparently regarded as
;
dragged before the rulers (apxovres) of the city 8); it is invariably employed wherever the expres
(Acts xvi. 10), Luke suddenly drops that term, and sion " green tree " is used in connection with idol-
in the next verse, speaks of he atrous sacrifices, as though with the view of con-
officers, whom
denominates " commanders "' {o-rpaT-qyoi). The veying the idea of the outspreading branches which
fact now was that in a Roman colony the chief served as a canopy to the worshippers (I)eut. xii.
magistrates, instead of being called duumviri or 2; 2 K. xvi. 4); elsewhere it is used of that which
qifitiinrriri (the number was not always the same), is fresh, as oil (Ps. xcii. 10), and newly plucked
frequently took the name of prcetores as one of boughs (Cant. i. 16). The other term, ydrdk, has
greater honor, and that in Greek was o-rparriyoi.
This is the oidy occasion in the book of Acts on " * YV'ak'h, in his Disserlationes in Ada Apostolonim
which Luke has made use of this peculiar designa- (SrpaTTjyol P.iilippensium, iii. 281-302), treats fully of
tion : and it is the oidy occasion, as far as appears, on this municipal peculiarity of Philippi. II.
478 COLORS COLORS
the radical signification of putting forth leaves, Transfiguration, where the countenance and robes
sprouting (Gesen. T/tes. p. 632): it is used indis- are described as like "the sun " and " the light,"
criminately for productions of the earth fit for
all (Matt. xvii. 2), "shining, exceeding white as
food (Gen. i. Ex. x. 15; Num. xxii. 4;
30, ix. 3; snow" (Mark "glistening" (Luke ix. 29).
ix. 3),
for all kinds of garden herbs (Deut. xi. 10; IK. sun five times;
wool four times; milk once. In
xxi. 2; 2 Iv. xix. 26; Prov. xv. 17; Is. xxxvii. 27; some instances the point of the comparison is not
contrast the restricted application of our gret ns ) so obvious, e. g. in Job xxxviii. 14, "they stand
when applied to grass, it means specifically the as a garment " in reference to the white color of the
Hebrew dress, and in Ps. Lxviii. 13, where the
young, fresh grass (MU?^, Ps. xxxvii. 2), which
glancing hues of the dove's plumage suggested an
springs up in the desert (Job xxxix. 8). Elsewhere image of the brilliant effect of the whits holyday
it describes the sickly yellowish hue of mildewed costume. Next to white, black; or rather dark,
corn (Deut. xxviii. 22; 1 K. viii. 37; 2 Chr. vi.
holds the most prominent place, not only as its op-
28; Am. iv. 9; Hag. ii. 17); and lastly, it is used posite, but also as representing the complexion of
for the entire absence of color produced by fear the < There were varions shades of it,
irientals.
(Jer. xxx. 6; compare ^Acd/n^s, 11. x. 376); hence including the brown of the Nile water (whence its
X^oop6s (Rev. vi. 8) describes the ghastly, livid hue name Sihor) —
the reddish tint of early dawn, to
of death. In other passages "green" is errone- which the complexion of the bride is likened (Cant,
ously used in the A. V. fm- white (Gen. xxx. 37; vi. 10), as well as the lurid hue produced by a
Esth. i. 6), young (Lev. ii. 14, xxiii. 14), moist flight of locusts (Joel ii. 2) —
and the darkness of
(Judg. xvi. 7, 8), sappy (Job. viii. 16), and unripe blackness itself (Lam. iv. 8). As before, we have
(Cant. ii. 13). Thus it may be said that green is various heightening images, such as the tents of
never used in the Bible to convey the impression Kedar, a flock of goats, the raven (Cant. i. 5, iv. 1,
of proper color. v. 11) and sackcloth (Rev. vi. 12). Red was also
The only fundamental color of which the He- a color of which the Hebrews had a vivid concep-
brews appear to have had a clear conception was tion this may lie attributed partly to the preva-
:
red; and even this is not very often noticed. They lence of that color in the outward aspect of the
had therefore no scientific knowledge of colors, and countries and peoples with which they were famil-
we cannot but think that the attempt to explain iar, as attested by the name Edom, and by the
such passages as Rev. iv. '> by the rules of philo- words adamah (earth), and adam (man), so termed
sophical truth, must fail (see Hengstenberg, Comm. either as being formed out of the red earth, or as
in loc). Instead of assuming that the emerald being red in comparison with the fair color of the
represents green, the jasper yellow, and the sardine Assyrians, and the black of the ^Ethiopians. Red
red, the idea intended to be conveyed by these im- was regarded as an element of personal beauty:
ages may be simply that of pure, brilliant, trans- comp. 1 Sam. xvi. 12: Cant. ii. 1, where the lily is
parent light. The emerald, for instance, was the red one for which Syria was famed (Plin. xxi.
chiefly prized by the ancients for its glittering, 11); Cant. iv. 3, vi. 7, where the complexion is
scintillating qualities (aiyK-qets, Orpheus de lip. p. compared to the red fruit of the pomegranate: and
608), whence perhaps it derived its name (afxapay- Lam. iv. 7, where the hue of the skin is redder
5os, from fiap/jiaipeiv). The jasper is character- than coral (A. V. "rubies") contrasting with the
ized by John himself (Rev. xxi. 11) as being
St. white of the garments before noticed. The three
crystal-clear (icpvo-TaKAifav), and not as having a colors, white, black, and red, were sometimes in-
certain hue. The sardine may be compared with termixed in animals, and gave rise to the terms.
the amber of Ez. i. 4, 27, or the burnished brass
"irV2, "dappled" (A. V. "white"), probably
of Dan. x. 6, or again the fine brags, " as if burn-
ing in a furnace," of Rev. i. 15, each conveying the white and red (Judg. v. 10); "lp37, " ringstraked."
impression of the color of fire in a state of pure in-
either with white bands on the legs, or white-footed
candescence. Similarly the beryl, or rather the
chrysolite (the Hebrew Tharsis), may be selected "Tp3, "speckled," and ^^^? "spotted," white
by Daniel (x. 6) on account of its transparency.
and black; and lastly 1~12, "piebald" (A. A".
An exception may be made perhaps in regard to
the sapphire, in as far as its hue answers to the
" grisled "), the spots being larger than in the two
deep blue of the firmament (Ex. xxiv. 10; former (Gen. xxx. 32. 35. xxxi. 10) the latter
cf. Ez. i. i term
is used of a horse (Zech. vi. 3. 6) with a symbolical
case the pellucidity
26, x. 1), but even in this
meaning: Hengstenberg (Clmstol. in loc.) consid-
((7257, omitted in A. V., Ex. xxiv. 10) or polish ers the color itself to be unmeaning, and that the
of the stone (comp. Lam. iv. 7) forms an important, prophet has added the term strong (A. V. "bay " |
if not the main, element in the comparison. The by way of explanation; Hitzig (Comm. in loc.) ex-
highest development of color in the mind of the plains it, in a peculiar manner, of the complexion
Hebrew evidently was light, and hence the predom- of the Egyptians. It remains for us now to notice
inance given to white as its representative (comp. the various terms applied to these three colors.
the connection between \svk6s and lux). This
feeling appears both in the more numerous allusions 1. White. The most common term is ]2 ;,
scorched ((pai6s; A. V. "brown," Gen. xxx. 32), arghamctna, "costly" (Hitzig, Comment, in Dan.
applied to sheep the word expresses the color pro- v. 7).
; Gesenius, however (Thesaur. p. 1263), con-
siders it highly improbable that a color so peculiar
duced by influence of the sun's rays Tip, literally :
to the shores of the Mediterranean should be de-
to be dirty, applied to a complexion blackened by
scribed by a word of any other than Semitic origin,
sorrow or disease (Job xxx. 30); mourner's robes
to heap up or
(Jer. viii. 21, xiv. 2; compare sorcHda vestes); a and connects it with the root Cy~),
clouded sky (1 K. xviii. 45); night (Mic. iii. 6; overlay with color. The coloring matter was con-
Jer. iv. 28; Joel ii. 10, iii. 15); a turbid brook tained in a small vessel in the throat of the fish
(whence possibly Redeon), particularly when ren- and as the quantity amounted to only a single drop
dered so by melted snow (Job vi. 16). Black, as in each animal, the value of the dye was propor-
being the opposite to white, is symbolical of evil tionately high: sometimes, however, the whole fish
(Zech. vi. 2, 6; Rew.vi. 5). was crushed (Plin. ix. 60). It is difficult to state
DIM with precision the tint described under the Hebrew
3. Red. is applied to blood (2 K. iii.
name. The Greek equivalent was, we know, ap-
22); a garment sprinkled with blood (Is. lxiii. 2);
plied with great latitude, not only to all colors ex-
a heifer (Num. xix. 2); pottage made of lentiles
tracted from the shell-fish, but even to other brill-
(Gen. xxv. 30); a horse (Zech. i. 8, vi. 2); wine
thus in John xix. 2, Ifxanov iropipv-
iant colors:
(Prov. xxiii. 31); the complexion (Gen. xxv. 25
povv = x Aa
" s KOKKIV7), in Matt, xxvii. 28 (cf.
/
tt
7; Luke xvi. 19; Rev. xvii. 4, xviii. 16). A simi- 1), or diavevri(r/ji.evov (Ex. xxviii. 8); the Vulgate
lar value was attached to purple robes both by the has it generally coccinum, occasionally coccus bis
(Greeks (Horn. Od. xix. 225; Herod, ix. 22; Strab. tinctus (Ex. xxviii. 8), apparently following the
xiv. 648), and by the Romans (Virg. Georg. ii. erroneous interpretation of Aquila.and Symmachus,
495; Hor. Ep. 12, 21; Suet. Cces. 43; Nero, 32). who render it Sifiacpos, double-dyed (Ex. xxv. 4),
Of the use of this and the other dyes in the text- as though
from n^tP, to repeat. The process of
ures of the tabernacle, we shall presently speak.
double-dyeing was however peculiar to the Tyrian
2. Blue (n?2Jjl : baKivdos, vaKivdtvos, 6\o- purples (Plin. ix. 39). The dye was produced from
ir6pcpvpos, Num. iv. 7: hyacinth its, hyncinthinus). an somewhat resembling the cochineal, which
insect,
This dye was procured from a species of shell-fish is found in considerable quantities in Armenia and
found on the coast of Phoenicia, and called by the other eastern countries. The Arabian name of the
Hebrews Chilzon (Targ. Pseudo-Jon., in Deut. insect is kermez (whence crimson) the Linnrean
:
xxxiii. 19), and by modern naturalists Helix name is Coccus llicis. It frequents the boughs of
lanthina. The Hebrew name is derived, according a species of ilex : on these it lays its eggs in groups,
to Gesenius {Thesavir. p. 1502), from a root signi- which become covered with a kind of down, so that
fying to vmshett; but according to Hitzig Com- they present the appearance of vegetable galls or
(
excrescences from the tree itself, and are described
ment, in Ez. xxiii. 6), from V^3, in the sense of
as such by Pliny, xvi. 12. The dye is procured
dulled, blunted, as opposed to the brilliant hue of from the female grub alone, which, when alive, is
the proper purple. The tint is best ex-plained by about the size of a kernel of a cherry and of a dark
the statements of Josephus {Ant. iii. 7, § 7) and amaranth color, but when dead shrivels up to the
Philo that it was emblematic of the sky, in which size of a grain of wheat, and is covered with a bluish
case it represents not the light blue of our northern mould (Parrot's Journey to Ararat, p. 114). The
climate, but the deep dark hue of the eastern sky general character of the color is expressed by the
{aepos 5e ctv^oKov vdiavdos, jUfAa? yap ouros
(pvaei, Phil. Opp. i. 536). The term adopted by Hebrew term ^TOn (Is. lxiii. 1), lit. sharp, and
the LXX. is applied by classical writers to a color hence dazzling (compare the expression xp<*>M a otfi),
approaching to black (Horn. Od. vi. 231, xxiii. 158; and in the Greek Aa/xwpd (Luke xxiii. 11), com-
Theoc. Id. 10, 28); the flower, whence the name pared with kokk'ivt) (Matt, xxvii. 28). The tint
was borrowed, being, as is well known, not the produced was crimson rather than scarlet. The
modern hyacinth, but of a dusky red color {fer- only natural object to which it is applied in Script-
rugineus, Virg. Georg. iv. 183; ccelestis luminis ure is the lips, which are compared to a scarlet
hyacinthus, Ooluin. ix. 4, 4). The A. V. has thread (Cant. iv. 3). Josephus considered it as
rightly described the tint in Esth. i. 6 (margin) as symbolical of fire {Ant. iii. 7, § 7; cf. Phil. i. 538).
violet; the ordinary term blue is incorrect: the Scarlet threads were selected as distinguishing
Lutheran translation is still more incorrect in giving marks from their brilliancy (Gen. xxxviii. 28; Josh.
it gelbe Seide (yellow silk), and occasionally simply ii. 18, 21); and hence the color is expressive of
Seide (Ez. xxiii. 6). This color was used in the what is excessive or glaring (Is. i. 18). Scarlet
same way as purple. Princes and nobles (Ez. xxiii. robes were worn by the luxurious (2 Sam. i. 24;
6; Ecclus. xl. 4), and the idols of Babylon (Jer. x. Prov. xxxi. 21; Jer. iv. 30; Lam. iv. 5; Rev. xvii.
9), were clothed in robes of this tint: the riband 4, xviii. 12, 16); it was also the appropriate hue
and the fringe of the Hebrew dress was ordered to of a warrior's dress from its similarity to blood
be of this color (Num. xv. 38 it was used in the ) : (Nah. ii.*3; cf. Is. ix. 5), and was especially worn
tapestries of the Persians (Esth. i. 6). The effect by officers in the Roman army (Plin. xxii. 3 Matt, ;
of the color is well described in Ez. xxiii. 12, where xxvii. 28).
such robes are termed Vl73^p ^P?^^, robes of Thethree colors above described, purple, blue,
and with white, were employed in
scarlet, together
perfection, i. e. gorgeous robes. We may remark,
the textures used for the curtains of the tabernacle
in conclusion, that the LXX. treats the term IfFTFI and for the sacred vestments of the priests. The
(A. V. " badger") as indicative of color, and has four were used in combination in the outer curtains,
translated it vaicivdivos, ianthinus (F.x. xxv. 5). the the entrance curtain (Ex. xxvi. 1, 31, 36).
vail,
3. Scarlet (Crimson, Is. i. 18; Jer. iv. 30). and the gate of the court (Ex. xxvii. 16): as also
The terms by which this color is expressed in in the high-priest's ephod, girdle, and breastplate
(Ex. xxviii. 5, 6, 8, 15). The three first, to the
Hebrew vary; sometimes ^3127 simply is used, as
exclusion of white, were used in the pomegranates
in Gen. xxxviii. 28-30 ; sometimes *2W D^^in, about the hem of the high-priest's robe (Ex. xxviii.
33). The loops of the curtains (Ex. xxvi. 4), the
as in Ex. xxv. 4; and sometimes 37^ VI simply, lace of the high-priest's breastplate, the robe of the
ephod, and the lace on his mitre were exclusively
as in Is. i. 18." The word V^S
(A. V. " crim-
of blue (Ex. xxviii. 28, 31, 37). Cloths for wrap-
son; " 2 Chr. ii. 7, 14, iii. 14) was introduced at a ping the sacred utensils were either blue (Num. iv.
late period, probably from Armenia, to express the
6), scarlet (8), or purple (13). Scarlet thread was
same color. The first of these terms (derived from specified in connection with the rites of cleansing
n3t£7, to shine) expresses the brilliancy of the color; the leper (Lev. xiv. 4, 6, 51),
and of burning the
red heifer (Num. xix. 6), apparently for the purpose
the second, n^vlFI, the worm, or grub, whence of binding the hyssop to the cedar wood. The
the dye was procured, and which gave name to the hangings for the court (Ex. xxvii. 9, xxxviii. 9),
color occasionally without any addition, just as the coats, mitres, bonnets, and breeches of the
vermilion is derived from vermiculns. The LXX. priests, were white (Ex. xxxix. 27, 28). The appli-
COLORS COLOSSE 4S1
cation of these colors to the service of the tabernacle
4. Vkumiliox vrtr /UiA-ros: smopis). This (•
ence has already been made to the statements of drawing figures of idols on the walls of temples (Ez.
Philo and Josephus on this subject: the words of xxiii. 14), for coloring the idols themselves (Wisil.
the latter are as follow: i) fSixrcros r);y y7)v airoarj- xiii. 14), or for decorating the walls and beams of
fxaivsiv eoi/ce, 5ia rb e'£ avT?)s ave?cr9ai rb Aivov houses (Jer. xxii. 14). The Greek term /a'iAtos is
?j Te -noptyvpa. t)]v OaAcuraav, ry ire<poLpixdai tou applied both to minium, red lead, and rubrim, red
k6x^-ov T'fi aiuarr rbv Se dspa fiivAerai drfKovi/ ochre; the Latin s'uwpis describes the best kind of
J
6 udxivdos- Kcd 6 (paTfi^ 5' h.v e'ir] TtK/j.-qpiov rav ochre, which came from Sinope. Vermilion was a
wvp6s, Ant. iii. 7, § 7. The subject has been fol- favorite color among the Assyrians (Ez. xxiii. 14),
lowed up with a great variety of interpretations, as is still attested by the sculptures of Nimroud
more or less probable. Without entering into a and Khorsabad (Layard, ii. 303). W. L. B.
disquisitionon these, we will remark that it is un-
necessary to assume that the colors were originally COLOS'SE (more properly COLOS'S^E, Ko-
selected with such a view; their beauty and costli- Ao<rera(, Col. i. 2; but the preponderance of MS.
ness is a sufficient explanation of the selection. ! authority is in favor of KoAa<r<rai, Colassce, a form
Colosse.
used by the Byzantine writers, and which perhaps visited Colossas during the prolonged stay at Eph-
represents the provincial mode of pronouncing the esus, which immediately followed. The most com-
name. On coins and inscriptions, and in classical petent commentators, however, agree in thinking
writers, we See Ellicott, ad foe).
find KoAocraal. that Col. ii. 1 proves that St. Paul had never been
A city in the upper part of the basin of the Mean- there, when the Epistle was written. Theodoret's
der, on one of its affluents named the Lycus. argument that he must have visited Colossae on the
Hierapolis and Laodicea were in its immediate journey just referred to. because he is said to have
neighborhood (Col. ii. 1, iv. 13, 15, 16; see Rev. gone through the whole region of Phrygia, may be
i. 11, iii. J4). Colossse fell, as these other two proved fallacious from geographical considerations:
cities rose, in importance. Herodotus (vii. 30) < 'olossie, though ethnologically in Phrygia (Herod.
and Xenophon (Ain't, i. 2. § (i) speak of it as a I. c, Xen. /. c), was at this period politically in the
city of considerable consequence; Strabo (xii. province of Asia (see Rev. I. c). That the Apostle
p. 576) describes it as only a Tr6\tafj.a, not a tt6- hoped to visit the place on being delivered from his
Ais; yet elsewhere (p. 578) lie implies that it had Roman imprisonment is clear from Philemon 22
some mercantile importance and Pliny, in St. ; (compare Phil. ii. 24). Philemon and his slave
Paul's time, describes it (v. 41) as one of the " cel- Onesimus were dwellers in Colossus. So also were
eberriina oppida " of ColoasflS was
its district. Archippua and Epaphras. From Col. i. 7, iv. 12,
situated close to the great road which led from it has been naturally concluded that the latter Chris-
Ephesus to the Euphrates. Hence our impulse tian was the founder of the Colossian Church (see
would lie to conclude that St. Paul passed this Alf'ord's Prolegomena to Gr. Test. vol. iii. p. 35).
way, and founded or confirmed the Colossian [EPAPHRAS.] The worship of angels mentioned
Church on his third missionary journey (Acts by the Apostle (Col. ii. 18) curiously reappears in
xviii. 23, xix. 1). lie might also easily have Christian times in connection with one of the topo-
31
482 COLOSSIANS COLOSSIANS
graphical features of the place. A and were not moved from the hope of which the
church in honor
of the archangel Michael was erected at the entrance Gospel was the source and origin (ch. i. 21-24).
of a chasm in consequence of a legend connected Of this Gospel the Apostle declares himself the
with an inundation (Hartley's Researches in Gn ece, minister; the mystery of salvation was that for
p. 52), and there is good reason for identifying this which he toiled and for which he suffered (ch. i.
chasm with one which is mentioned by Herodotus. 24-29). And his sufferings were not only for the
This kind of superstition is mentioned by Theodo- church at large, but for them and others whom he
ret as subsisting in his time also by the Byzan- had not personally visited,
; even that they might —
tine writer Nicetas Choniates, who was a native of come to the full knowledge of' Christ, and might
this place, and who says that lolossse and Chona? not fall victims to plausible sophistries: they were
<
were the same. The neighborhood (visited by to walk in Christ and to be built on Him (ch. ii.
l'ococke) was exploreu by -Mr- Arundell {Seven 1-7). Especially were they to be careful that no
Chwrches, p. 158; Asia Minor, ii. ICO); but Mr. philosophy was to lead them from Him in whom
Hamilton was the first to determine the actual dwelt all the fullness of the Godhead, who was the
site of the ancient city, which appears to lie at head of nil tpiritual penct rs, and who had quick-
some little distance from the modern village of ened them, forgiven them, and in His death had
Chonas (Researches in A. M. i. 508). J. S. H. triumphed over all the hosts of darkness (ch. ii.
8-15). Surely with such spiritual privileges they
COLOSSIANS, THE EPISTLE TO were not to be judged in the matter of mere cere-
THE, was written by the Apostle St. Paul during monial observances, or beguiled into creature-wor-
his first captivity at Rome (Acts xxviii. 10). and ship. Christ was tin head of the body; if they
apparently in that portion of it (Col. iv. 3. 4) when were truly united to Him, to what need were bodily
the Apostle's imprisonment had not assumed the austerities (ch. ii. 10-23). They were, then, W
more severe character which seems to be reflected mind things above — spiritual things, not carnal
in the Epistle to the Philippians (ch. i. 20, 21, -it), ordinances, for their life was hidden with Christ
ii. 27), and which not improbably succeeded the irh. iii. 1-4): they were to mortify their members
death of Burrus in a. i>. 02 (Clinton. Fasti lima. and the evil principles in which they once walked ;
received from Epaphras (ch. iv. 12; Philem. 23) In the last chapter the Apostle gives further spe-
and from Onesimus, both of whom appear to have cial precepts, strikingly similar to those given to
been natives of Colossa-, and the former of whom his Ephesian converts. They were to pray for the
was. if not the special founder, yet certainly one Apostle and for his success in preaching the Cos-
of the very earliest preachers of the gospel in that they were to walk circumspectly, and to be
pel,
city. The main object of the epistle ready to give a seasonal le answer to all who ques-
is not merely,
as in the case of the Epistle to the Philippians, to tioned them (ch. iv. 2-7). Tychicus, the bearer
exhort and to confirm, nor, as in that to the Ephe- of the letter, and Onesimus, would tell them all the
sians, to set forth the great features of the church state of the Apostle (ch. iv. 7-9); Aristarchus and
of the chosen in Christ, but is especially designed others sent them friendly greetings (ch. iv. 10-14).
to warn the Colossians against a spirit of semi-Ju- With an injunction to interchange this letter with
daistic and semi-Oriental philosophy which was that sent to the neighboring church of Laodicea
corrupting the simplicity of their belief, and was (ch. iv. 10). a special message to Archippus (ch. iv.
noticeably tending to obscure the eternal glory and 17), and an autograph salutation, this short but
dignity of Christ. striking epistle comes to its close.
This main design is thus carried out in detail. With regard to its genuineness and authenticity,
After his usual salutation (ch. i. 1. 2) the Apostle it is satisfactory to be able to say with distinctness
returns thanks to God lor the faith of the Colos- that there are no grounds for doubt. The externa!
sians. the spirit of love they had shown, and the testimonies (Just. M. Trypho,
85,] p. 311 b; [c.
progress which the G03pel had made among them, Theophil. ad AutoL ii. [c. 22,] p. 100, ed. Col.
as preached by Epaphras (ch. This leads
i. 3-8). 1086; Irenwus, Ileer. iii. 14, 1; Clem. Alex. Strom.
him to pray without ceasing may bethat they i. [c. 1,] p. 325, iv. [c. 7.] p. 588, al., ed. Totter:
fruitful in good works, and especially thankful to Tertull. de Pressor, c. 7: de Resurr. c. 23; Origen,
the Eather, who gave them an inheritance with His contra Cels. v. 8) are explicit, and the internal ar-
saints, and translated them into the kingdom of guments, founded on the balance of sentences,
style,
His Son —
His Son, the image of the invisible God, positions of adverbs, uses of the relative pronoun,
the first-born before every creature, the Creator of participial anacolutha, —
unusually strong and well-
all things earthly and heavenly, the Head of the defined. It is not right to suppress the fact that
church. He in whom all things consist, and by Mayerhoff (Jhr Brief an die Kol. Berl. 1838) and
Cod, if only they continued firm in the faith, second, in his subjective and anti-historical attempt
COLOSSIANS COLOSSIANS 483
to makeindividual writings of the X. T. mere the- by the high probability that in two cities of Asia
osophistic productions of a later Gnosticism, the within a moderate distance from one another, there
intelligent and critical reader will naturally yield would be many doctrinal prejudices, and many-
but little credence. It is indeed remarkable that social relations, that would call forth and need pre-
the strongly marked peculiarity of style, the nerve cisely the same language of warning and exhorta-
and force of the arguments, and the originality that tion. The priority in composition must remain a
appears in every paragraph should not have made matter for a reasonable difference of opinion. To
both these writers pause in their ill-considered at- us the shorter and perhaps more vividly expressed
tack on this epistle. Epistle to the Colossians seems to have been first
A few special points demand from us a brief written, and to have suggested the more compre-
notice. hensive, more systematic, but less individualizing,
The opinion that this epistle and those to the
1. epistle to the church of Ephesus.
Ephesians and to Philemon were written during For further information the student is directed to
the Apostle's imprisonment at ( 'a-sarea (Acts xxi. Davidson's Introduction, ii. 394 ft'.; Alford, Pro-
27-xxvi. 32), i. e. between Pentecost a. d. 58 and legom. to N. T. iii. 33 ff. and the introduction to
;
the autumnof A. D. 60, has been recently advocated the excellent Commentary of Meyer.
by several writers of ability, and stated with such The editions of this epistle are very numerous.
cogency and clearness by Meyer {Einleit. z. Ephes. Of the older commentaries those of Davenant, Ex-
p. 15 ff.), as to deserve some consideration. It pus. Ep. Fault ad Col., ed. 3; Suicer, in Ep. Pauli
will be found, however, to rest on ingeniously urged ad Col. Comment., Tig. 1099, may be specified; and
plausibilities; whereas, to go no further than the of modern commentaries, those of Biihr (Bas. 1833),
present epistle, the notices of the Apostle's impris- Olshausen (Kcnigsb. 1840), Huther (Hamb. 1841,
onment in cb. iv. 3, 4, 10, certainly seem historically a very good e.cet/eticd commentary), De Wette
inconsistent with the nature of the imprisonment (Leipz. 1847), Meyer (Gift. 1848); and in our own
at Csesarea. The permission of Felix (Acts xxiv. country those of Eadie (Glasg. [also New York]
23) can scarcely be strained into any degree of 1856), Alford (Lond. 1857), and Ellicott (Lond.
liberty to teach or preach the Gospel, while the 1858). C. J. E.
facts recorded of St. Paul's imprisonment at Pome * Later editions of Commentaries —
Meyer,
(Acts xxviii. 23, 31) are such as to harmonize ad- 1865; Alford, 1865; EUicott, 1865, and Amer.
mirably with the freedom in this respect which our reprint, 1805. Other recent works —
Ewald, Send-
present epistle represents to have been accorded schreiben des Apostels Paulus, 1857; Schenkel,
both to the Apostle and his companions: see ch. iv. Brief6 an die Ephes., Philipp. u. Kolosser, 1862;
11, and comp. De Wette, Einleit. z. Coloss. pp. 12, Dr. Karl Braune, Die Brr. an die Epheser, Ko-
13; Wieseler, Chronol. p. 420. losser, Pkilipper, 1807 (intended as a substitute for
2. The nature of the erroneous teaching con- Schenkel on these epistles in Lange's Bibelwerk);
demned in this epistle has been very differently Bleek, Vorlesungen iib. die Briefe an die Kolosser,
estimated. Three opinions only seem to deserve u. s. w., 1865, and Einl. in das N. Test., 1802, p. 434
any serious consideration; (a) that these erroneous ff.; Wordsworth, Greek Testament, 1866 (4th ed.);
teachers were adherents of Neo-Platonism, or of and J. Llewelyn Davies, The Epistles of St. Paul
some forms of Occidental philosophy; (b) that they to the Ephesians, the Colossians, and, Philemon,
leaned to Fssene doctrines and practices; (c) that with Introductions and Notes, London, 1866. There
they advocated that admixture of Christianity, are many good thoughts on this epistle, exegetical
Judaism, and Oriental philosophy which afterwards and practical, though quaintly expressed, in Trapp's
became consolidated into Gnosticism. Of these (a) Commentary on the New Testament, pp. 613-21
has but little in its favor, except the somewhat (Webster's ed., London, 1805).
vague term <pi\ocro(pia (ch. ii. 8), which, however, For a vindication of the genuineness of the epistle
it seems arbitrary to restrict, to Greci m
philosophy; in opposition to the Tubingen critics, see Klopper,
(b) is much more plausible as far as the usages De Orifjine Epp. ad Ephesios et Colossi uses,
alluded to, but seems inconsistent both with the Gryph. 1853, and Riibiger, De Christologia Paul-
exclusive nature and circumscribed localities of iin contra Baurium
Commtentatio, Vratisl. 1852.
Essene teaching; (c) on the contrary is in accord- Prof. Weiss defends the genuineness of the
also
ance with the Gentile nature of the church of Co- epistle against Baur's assumptions (Herzog's Re<rf-
losss (ch. i. 21), with its very locality —
speculative Encykl. xix. 717-723). But as to the place where
and superstitious Phrygia — and with that tendency it was written, he sides with those who maintain
to associate Judaical observances (ch. ii. 16) with that Paul was imprisoned at the time at Csesarea
more purely theosophistic speculations (ch. and not at Home. He insists with special earnest-
ii. 18),
which became afterwards bo conspicuous ness on the fact that in Philem. ver. 22 the Apostle
in de-
veloped Gnosticism. The portions in our analysis intimates that he might be expected soon at Colos-
of the epistle marked in italics serve to show how sal whereas he appears from Phil. ii. 24 to be medi-
;
deeply these perverted opinions were felt by the tating a journey to Macedonia and not to Asia Minor,
Apostle to strike at the doctrine of the eternal God- on regaining his liberty. But the implication here
head of 'hrist.
( that Paul could not have taken 'olossa? and Mace- (
3. The striking similarity between many por- donia in his way on the same journey (provided he
tions of this epistle and of that to the Ephesians was at Home), seems not well founded. For, cross-
has given rise to much speculation, both as to the ing from Italy to Dyrrachium, he could traverse the
reason of this studied similarity, and as to the Egnatian Way through Macedonia to Philippi, and
priority of order in respect to composition. These then embarking at Neapolis (Kacalla), the port of
points cannot here be discussed at length, but must Philippi, proceed to Troas or the mouth of the Cay-
lie somewhat briefly dismissed with the simple ex- ster, and thence to Ephesus or Colossae as his plan
pression of an opinion that the similarity may rea- might require.
(
Pressense also assigns the 'olossian
sonably he accounted for, (1) by the proximity in epistle to Csesarea [Hist, dis trots premiers Siecks,
time at which the two epistles were written: (2) ii. 55 ff.); but natural as it may seem that Paul
484 COME BY COMMERCE
should have written to the Asiatic churches during merchandise imported (Gen. xxxvii. 25,
of the
the two years that he was kept at Csesarea, that con- xxxix. 1; Job vi. 19). From Egypt it is likely
sideration (on which Pressense' mainly relies) can that at all times, but especially in times of general
hardly have more weight than the opposite consid- scarcity, corn would be exported, which was paid
eration that Paul might he expected also to write for by the non-exporting nations in silver, which
to the Colossians while he was at Rome. The fuller was always weighed (Gen. xli. 57, xlii. 3, 25, 35,
doctrinal development in the letters to the Colossians xliii. 11, 12, 21). These caravans also brought the
and the Ephesians favors a later rather than an earlier precious stones as well as the spices of India into
period in the history of these churches. The same Egypt (Ex. xxv. 3, 7 Wilkinson, Anc. Eg. ii. 235, ;
writer's allegation that Paul must have written this 237). Intercourse with Tyre does not appear to
group of letters (Colossians, Ephesians, Philemon) have taken place till a later period, and thus, though
at Caesarea, because a slave like Onesimus could not it cannot be determined whether the purple in
have been the apostle's fellow-prisoner at Home, which the Egyptian woolen and linen cloths were
where his captivity was less rigorous than at Cses- dyed was brought by land from Phoenicia, it is
area, is inconclusive for in fact there is no evidence certain that colored cloths had long been made and
;
at all that Onesimus was a prisoner anywhere. dyed in Egypt, and the use, at least, of them
Yet it should be stated there is a strong current adopted by the Hebrews for the tabernacle as early
of opinion among critics at present in favor of Caes- as the time of Moses (Ex. xxv. 4, 5; Heeren. Asiat.
area. In support of that view, see especially Leuss, Nat. i. 352; Herod, i. 1). The pasture-irround of
Geschkhte der lull. Schriflm, p. 100 ff. (3te AuH.). Shechem appears from the story of Joseph to have
Bottger, Meyer, Thiersch, Schenkel, Laurent (Nno- lain in the way of these caravan journeys (Gen.
test. Stvdien, p. 100 ff.), and others, advocate the xxxvii. 14, 25; Saalschiitz, Arch. Mebr. 15. 1.
same opinion. On the other hand, Hemsen, Ired- 159). <
ner, Guericke, Ewald, Neander, Lange, Pleek, At the same period it is clear that trade was
Braune (in Lange's Bibehoerk), and nearly all the carried on between Babylon and the Syrian cities,
English critics, refer the epistle to Paul's first Ro- and also that gold and silver ornaments were com-
man captivity. Bleek in his Vorkswigt n and mon among the Syrian and Arabian races; a trade
Einleitung, mentioned above, states very fully and which was obviously carried on by land-carriage
forcibly the grounds for this conclusion. H. (Nam. xxxi. 50; Josh. vii. 21; Judg. v. 30, viii.
24; Job vi. 19).
* COME BY. "We had much work to Until the time of Solomon the Hebrew nation
come by the boat " (Acts xxvii. 16), irepiKpar^s
may lie said to have had no foreign trade. Foreign
yevtcrdai ri)s aKa<pT)s, lit. " to become masters of
trade was indeed contemplated by the Law, and
the boat," i. e. to secure it so as to hoist it into
strict rules for morality in commercial dealings were
the ship (ver. 17). A.
laid down by it (Deut. xxviii. 12, xxv. 13-16; lev.
* COMFORTER. One of the titles and xix. 35, B6), and the tribes near the sea and the
offices of the Spirit (which see). Phoenician territory appear to have engaged to
some extent in maritime affairs (Gen. xlix. 13;
COMMERCE (1. mftp,
nnt ity, Gescn.
tiescn. p.
p 946: .
some shape, must have been carried on Syrian and Canaanite princes. I'or all these he
trade, in
to supply the town-dwellers with necessaries (see paid in gold, which was imported by sea from India
Heeren, Afr. Nat. i. 469), but it is also clear that and Arabia by his fleets in conjunction with the
international trade must have existed and affected Phoenicians (Heeren, As. Nat. i. 334; 1 K. x. 22-
to some extent even the pastoral nomad races, for 29; Gee. p. 12d2). It was by Phoenicians also
we find that Abraham was rich, not only in cattle, that the cedar and other timber for his great archi-
but in silver, gold, and gold and silver plate and tectural works was brought by sea to Joppa, whilst
ornaments (Gen. xiii. 2, xxiv. 22, 53); and further. Solomon found the provisions necessary fir the
that gold and silver in a manufactured state, and workmen in Mount Lebanon (1 K. v. 6, 9; 2 Chr.
silver, not improbably in coin, were in use both ii. 16).
among the settled inhabitants of Palestine and the The united fleets used to sail into the Indian
pastoral tribes of Syria at that date (Gen. xx. 16, Ocean every three years from Elath and Eziongeber,
xxiii. Hi, xxxviii. 18; Job xlii. 11), to whom those ports on the iElanitic gulf of the Red Sea, which
metals must in all probability have been imported David had probably gained from Edom, and brought
from other countries Uussey. Anc. Weights, c. xii.
(
back gold, silver, ivory, sandal-wood, ebony, pre-
3, p. 193: Kitto, Phys. Hist, of Pal, p. 109, 110; cious stones, apes,and peacocks. Some of these may
Herod, i. 215). have come from India and Ceylon, and some from
Among trading nations mentioned in Scripture, the coasts of the Persian Gulf and the coast of ]'..
F.gvpt holds in very early times a prominent posi- Africa (2 Sam. viii. 14; IK. ix. 26. x. 11. 22; 2
tion, though her external trade was carried on. not Chr. viii. 17; Her. iii. 114; Livingstone. Travels,
by her own citizens, but by foreigners, chiefly of pp. 637, 662).
the nomad races (Heeren, Afr. Nat. i. 468, ii. 371, I the trade which Solomon took so much pains
'.ut
372). It was an Ishmaelite caravan, laden with to encourage was not a maritime trade only. He
spices, which carried Joseph into Egypt, and the built, or more probably fortified, Baalbec and Pal-
account shows that slaves formed sometimes a part myra; the latter at least expressly as a caravan
COMMERCE CONCUBINE 485
station for land-commerce with eastern and 1807, 4to; F. M. Hubbard, Commerce of Ancient
the
south-eastern Asia (1 K. ix. 18). Egypt, in the Bill. Repos. for April 1836, vii. 364-
After his death the maritime trade declined, and 390; Commerce of Ancient Babylon, ibid. July
an attempt made by Jehoshaphat to revive it proved 1837, x. 33-66 Albert Barnes, The Ancient Com-
;
unsuccessful (1 K. xxii. 48, 49) [Tarshish, merce of Western Asia, in the Amer. Bibl. Repos.
Ophir]. We know, however, that Phoenicia was Oct. 1840, and Jan. 1841, 2d ser., iv. 310-328, v.
supplied from Juda?a with wheat, honey, oil, and 48-74; J. W. Gilbart, Lectures on Ancient Com-
balm (1 K. v. 11; Ez. xxvii. 17; Acts xii. 20; merce, Lond. 1847, 1853, repr. in Hunt's Mer-
Joseph. B. J. ii. 21, § 2; Vit. 13), whilst Tyrian chant?* Mag. vol. xix.; and Winer, Bibl. Realm.
dealers brought fish and other merchandise to art. Handel. A.
Jerusalem at the time of the return from captivity * COMPASS. To "fetch a compass" (2
(Neh. xiii. 16 ), as well as timber for the rebuilding Sam. v. 23; 2 K. iii. 9; Acts xxviii. 13) is to
of the temple, which then, as in Solomon's time, " make a circuit," " go round." A.
was brought by sea to Joppa (Ezr. iii. 7). Oil was
exported to Egypt (Hos. xii. 1), and fine linen and
* COMPEL
(A. V. in Matt. v. 41, Mark xv.
21). See Angareuo.
ornamental girdles of domestic manufacture were
sold to the merchants (Prov. xxxi. 24). CONANFAH(TP?33 [Keri, whom Jeho-
The successive invasions to which Palestine was
ccth creates] : Xcocevtoj -
;
Alex. X<t>x e,/tas ' Cnone
subjected, involving both large abstraction of treas-
ure by invaders and heavy imposts on the inhab- nias), one of the chiefs 0^J£?) of the Levites in
itants to purchase immunity or to satisfy demandsthe time of Josiah (2 Chr. xxxv. 9). The same
for must have impoverished the country name is elsewhere given in the A. V. [as] Coko-
tribute,
from time to time (under Eehoboam, 1 K. xiv. 26 NIAH.
Asa, xv. 18; Joash, 2 K. xii. 18; Aruaziah, xiv. * CONCISION. So Paul, by the use of an ab-
13; Ahaz, xvi. 8; Hezekiah, xviii. 15, 1G; Jehoahaz stract term for the concrete (Phil. iii. 2), denominates
and Jehoiakim, xxiii. 33, 35; Jehoiachin, xxiv. 13), the Judaizers who insisted on circumcision as neces-
but it is also clear, as the denunciations of the sary for Gentile converts. They carried their zeal
prophets bear witness, that much wealth must some- so far, and so monstrously perverted the real char-
where have existed in the country, and much foreign acter of the rite, that instead of a name which per-
merchandise have been imported so much so that, haps they were disposed to think honorable to them
;
in Egypt, by the festivals, which brought large " wife." The positions of these two among the
numbers of persons to Jerusalem, and caused great early Jews cannot be referred to the standard of
outlay in victims for sacrifices and in incense (1 K. our own age and country ; that of concubine being
viii. 63: Heeren, Afr. Nat. ii. 363). less degraded, as that of wife was, especially owing
The places of public market were, then as now, to the sanction of polygamy, less honorable than
chiefly the open spaces near the gates, to which among ourselves. The natural desire of offspring
goods were brought for sale by those who came was, in the Jew, consecrated into a religious hope,
from the outside (Neh. xiii. 15, 16; Zeph. i. 10). which tended to redeem concubinage from the
The traders in later times were allowed to intrude debasement into which the grosser motives for its
into the temple, in the outer courts of which victims adoption might have brought it. The whole ques-
were publicly sold for the sacrifices (Zech. xiv. 21; tion must be viewed from the point which touches
Matt. xxi. 12; John ii. 14). the interests of propagation, in virtue of which even
In the matter of buying and gelling great stress a slave concubine who had many children would
is laid by the Law on fairness in dealing. Just become a most important person in a family, espe-
weights and balances are stringently ordered (Lev. cially where a wife was barren. Such was the true
xix. 35, 36; Deut. xxv. 13-10). Kidnapping slaves source of the concubinage of Nachor, Abraham, and
is forbidden under the severest penalty (Ex. xxi. Jacob, which indeed, in the two latter cases, lost
16; Deut. xxiv. 7). Trade in swine was forbidden the nature which it has in our eyes, through the
by the Jewish doctors (Surenhus. Misfin, </>: damn. process, analogous to adoption, by which the off-
\ 7, vol. iv. p. 60; Lightfoot, //. //. on Matth. spring was regarded as that of the wile herself.
viii. 33: Wilier, Handel; Saalschiitz, Arch. Hear. From all this it follows that, save in so far as the
c. 15, 10). H. W. P. latterwas generally a slave, the difference between
* For further information on this subject, see wife and concubine was less marked, owing to the
the art. Ptmkxk ians. III.; Tychsen, De Comm. absence of moral stigma, than among us. We must
et X"cii/. Hi iiri'i'iiim ante Exilium Babylonicum, therefore beware of regarding as essential to the
in the Comm. Soc. Reg. Sci. Gotting., vol. xvi. relation of concubinage, what really pertained to
(1808; CI. hist., pp. 150-179; Vincent, Commerce that of bondage.
of the Ancients in the Indian Ocean, 2 vols. Loud. The concubine's condition was a definite one, and
486 CONCUBINE CONDUIT
quite independent of the fact of there being another Samuel and Kings the concubine3
In the looks of
woman having the rights of wife towards the same mentioned belong to the king, and their condition
man. The difference probably lay in the absence and number cease to be a guide to the general
of the right of the libdlus divortii, without which practice. A new king stepped into the rights of
the wife could not be repudiated, and in some par- his predecessor, and by Solomon's time the custom
ticulars of treatment and consideration of which we had approximated to that of a Persian harem (2
are ignorant; also in her condition and rights on Sam. xii. 8, xvi. 21; 1 K. ii. 22). To seize on
the death of her lord, rather than in the absence royal lubuies for his use was thus an usurper's
I
of nuptial ceremonies and dowry, which were non- first act. Such was probably the intent of Abner's
essential; yet it is so probable that these last did act 2 Sam. iii. 7), and similarly the request on
1
vot pertain to the concubine, that the assertion of behalf of Adonijah was construed (1 K. ii. 21-24).
the Gemara (Hierasol. Cketuboth, v.) to that effect, For fuller information Selden's treatises de Uxore
though controverted, may be received. The doc- Hi lire) and de Jure Nutur. ct Gent. v. 7, 8, and
trine that a concubine also could not be dismissed especially that de Successionibtis, cap. iii., may with
without a formal divorce is of later origin —
not some caution (since he leans somewhat easily to
that such dismissals were more frequent, probably, rabbinical tradition) be consulted; also the treatises
than those of wives —
and negatived by the silence Sotah, Kiddushin, and Chetuboth in the Gemara
of Ex. xxi. and Dent. xxi. regarding it. from Hierosol., and that entitled Sanhedrin in the
this it seems to follow that a concubine could not Gemara Babyl. The essential portions of all these
become a wife to the same man, nor vice versa, are collected in Ugolini, vol. xxx. de I
unless in the improbable case of a wife divorced Hebrced. H. H.
returning as a concubine. With regard to the
children of wife and concubine, there was no such CONDUIT 0"TbV£l : u$ P ayuy6s: aqiufhir-
difference asour illegitimacy implies; the latter
tm ; a trench or water-course, from i"w3?, to ascend\
were a supplementary family to the former, their
Gesen. p. 1022).
names occur in the patriarchal genealogies (Gen.
xxii. 24; 1 Chr. i. 32), and their position and 1. Although no notice is given either by Script-
provision, save in the case of defect of those former ure or by Josephus of any connection between the
(in which case they might probably Bucceed to |
Is of Solomon beyond Bethlehem and a supply
landed estate or other chief hostage), would depend of water lor Jerusalem, it seems unlikely that so
on the father's will (Gen. xw. 6). The state of large a work as the pools should be constructed
concubinage is assumed and provided for by the nier. r irrigating his gardens (Eccl. u. 6), and
1-, I
law of Moses. A concubine would generally be tradition, both oral and as represented by Tal-
cither (1) a Hebrew girl bought of her father, mudical writers, ascribes to Solomon the formation
/'.
e.
a slave, which alone the Rabbins regard as a lawful of the original aqueduct by which water was brought
woman, bond or free, 'the rights of (1) and (2) Pilate applied the sacred treasure of the Corban to
were protected by law (Ex. xxi. 7; I'eut. xxi. 10), the work of bringing water by an aqueduct from a
but (3) was unrecognized, and (4) prohibited. Free distance, Josephus says of 300 or 400 stadia (B. ./.
Hebrew women also might become concubines. So ii. 9, § 4), but elsewhere 200 stadia, a distance
Gideon's concubine seems to have been of a family which would fairly correspond with the length of
of rank and influence in Shechem, and such was the existing aqueduct with all its turns and wind-
probably the state of the l.evite's concubine (Judg. ings (Ant. xviii. 3, § 2; Williams, Holy City, ii.
xx.). The ravages of war among the male sex, or 501). His application of the money in this man-
the impoverishment of families, might often induce ner gave rise to a serious disturbance. Whether
this condition. The case (1) was not a hard lot. his work was a new one or a reparation of Solomon's
The passage in Ex. xxi. is somewhat obscure, and original aqueduct cannot be determined, but it
seems to mean, in brief, as follows: — A man who seems more than probable that the ancient work
bought a Hebrew girl as concubine for himself would have been destroyed in some of the various
might not treat her as a mere Hebrew slave, to be sieges since Solomon's time. The aqueduct, though
sent "out" (»'. e. in the seventh, v. 2), but might, much injured, and not serviceable for water beyond
if she displeased him, dismiss her to her father on Bethlehem, still exists: the water is conveyed from
redemption, i. e. repayment probably of a part of the fountains which supply the pools about two
what he paid for her. If he had taken her for a miles S. of Bethlehem. The water-course then passes
concubine for his son, and the son then, married from the pools in a N. E. direction, and winding
another woman, the concubine's position and rights round the bill of Bethlehem on the S. side, is car-
were secured, or, if she were refused these, she ried sometimes above and sometimes below the
became free without redemption. Further, from surface of tlie ground, partly in earthen pipes and
the provision in the case of such a concubine given partly in a channel about one foot square of rough
by a man to his son, that she should be dealt with stones laid in cement, till it approaches Jerusalem.
••after the manner of daughters," we see that the There it crosses the valley of Hinnom at the S.
W.
servile merged in the connubial relation, and that side of the city on a bridge of nine arches at a
her children must have been free. Yet some degree point above the pool called Birket-es-Sultdn, then
" returns S. P.. and
of contempt attached to the " handmaid's son E. along the side of the valley
and under the wall, and continuing its course along
(n^SW"^2), used reproachfully to the son of a con- the east side is finally conducted to the Haram. It
cubine merely in Judg. ix. 18; see also Ts. cxvi. was repaired by Sultan Mohammad Ibn-Kalaun of
16. The provisions relating to (2) are merciful and Egypt about a. d. 1300 (Williams, Holy City, ii.
considerate to a rare degree, but overlaid by the 4H8; Raumer, Pal. p. 280; Robinson, i. 265-267.
Rabbis with distorting comments. 347, 476, iii. 247).
CONEY CONEY 487
2. Among the works of Hezekiah he is said to Lands of the Bible, ii. 23 ff.). The Arabs call the
have stopped the " upper water-course of Gihon,"
and brought it down straight to the W. side of the 1-W 0«. tcibr; but among the southern Arabs
citv of David (2 Chr. xxxii. 30). The direction of ' j j
this water-course of course depends on the site of we find the term . .wftj. thofun=shaphan (Fresnel
Gihon. Dr. Robinson identities this with the large
pool called Birket-es- MawMi at the head of the in Asiatic.Town. June, 1838, p. 514). The Am-
valley of Hinnom on the S. W. side of Jerusalem, haric name is ashkoko, under which name the hy-
and considers the lately discovered subterranean rax is described by Bruce, who also gives a figure
conduit within the city to be a branch from Heze- of it, and mentions the fact that the Arabs also
kiah's water-course Kob. iii. 243-4, i. 327; Ges.
I
Josephus as at the N. E. side of the city, and by to be the shaphan of the Bible, and the point may
the once well-known site called the Camp of the fairly be considered satisfactorily settled. The
Assyrians (Joseph. B. J. v. 4, § 2, 7, § 3, and 12, "coney" or rabbit of the A. V., although it suits
§2). [Gihon; Jerusalem.] II. \V. P. the Scriptural allusions in every particular, except
in the matter of its ruminating, is to be rejected, as
CONEY (]Stt7 : Saaimovs, x 0l
P°yp"^ Kl0S > the rabbit is nowhere found in the Bible lands:
v. I. \ayw6s ' chcerogryllus, herinaceus, lepus-
there are several species or varieties of hare, but
culus), a gregarious animal of the class I'achyder- the rabbit is not known to exist' there in a will
mata, which is found in Palestine, living in the state." The Jerboa (Dipus JEffyptius) which Bo-
caves and clefts of the rocks, and has been erro- chart (Hieroz. ii. 409), Rosenmidler (Schol. in Lev.
neously identified with the Rabbit or Coney. Its xi.
5), and others have sought to identify with the
scientific name is Hyrax Syriacus. The "[Dtl? is shaphan, must also be rejected, for it is the nature
of the jerboas to inhabit sandy places and not stony
mentioned four times in the 0. T. In Lev. xi. 5
rocks. It is curious to find Bochart quoting Ara-
and in Deut. xiv. 7 it is declared to be unclean,
bian writers, in order to prove that the wabr de-
because it chews the cud, but does not divide the
notes the jerboa, whereas the description of this
hoof. In Ps. civ. 18 we are told '• the rocks are a
animal as given by Damir, Giauhari, and others,
refuge for the coneys," and in Prov. xxx. 26 that
exactly suits the hyrax.
"the coneys are but a feeble folk, yet make they
their houses in the rocks." The Hyrax satisfies "The wabr" says Giauhari, "is an animal less
than a cat, of a brown color, without a tail," upon
which Damir correctly remarks, " when he says it
h?s notail, he means that it has a very short one."
Now this description entirely puts the jerboa out
of the question, for all the species of jerboa are
remarkable for their lor.g tails.
a Russell {Aleppo, ii. 159, 2d ed.) mentions rabbits cient Hebrews had ever seen imported specimens of
as being occasionally bred in houses, " for the use of the rabbit, there can be no doubt that it would have
the Franks " at Aleppo and adds that the fur of the
; been included under the Hebrew term arneh, which is
white and black rabbit is much worn, and that the the Arabic name at Aleppo both of this- animal and
latter kind is imported from Europe. Even if the an- the hare.
488 CONFECTION CONGREGATION
was told confined to the sterile hills of the Jor-
it is
Every circumcised Hebrew (fO^S : avr6x6a>vi
dan and Dead Sea valleys only; Thomson (Land
indigma ; A. V. " home-born, born in the land,"
and Book, p. one individual
2')8) speaks only of
the term specially descriptive of the Israelite in op-
among the ruins of the Castle of Kurein.«
position to the non-Israelite, Ex. xii. 19 ; Lev. xvi.
Hemprich (Symbolce Phys. p. i.) enumerates
29; Num. 14) was a ix. member of the congrega-
three species of hyrax, and gives the localities as
tion, and took part in its proceedings, probably
follows: //. Syriacus, Mount Sinai; H. habesshi-
icus, mountains on the coast of Abyssinia this ; —
from the time that he bore arms. It is important,
tians of Abyssinia do not eat its flesh, nor do theappears doubtful, however, whether they were repre-
Mohammedans: see Oedmann (I'ermiscli. Samm. sented in the congregation in its corporate capacity
pt. v. ch. ii.). Hemprich states that the urine of as a deliberative body, as they were not, strictly
the Cape hyrax (//. capensis), as well as that of speaking, members of any house; their position
the Asiatic species, is regarded as medicinal. See probably resembled that of the irp6i,evoi at Athens.
also Sparman (Trav. p. 324) and Thunberg (Trav. The congregation occupied an important position
i. 190). This is confirmatory of the remarks of an under the Theocracy, as the oomilin or national
Arabic writer cited by Bochari (Hi&roz. ii. 413). parliament, invested with legislative and judicial
The hyrax is zoologically a very interesting an- powers. In this capacity it acted through a sys-
imal, for although in some respects it resembles the tem of patriarchal representation, each house, fam-
Rodentia, in which order this genus was originally ily, and tribe being represented by its head or
placed, its true affinities are with the rhinoceros;
its molar teeth differ only in size from those of that
father. These delegates were named ("H^H ^JpT
great pachyderm. Accordingly Dr. Gray places the 0^273 (&p -
{irpeafSvTtpoi- seniores; "elders");
hyrax in his sub-family Iiltinoceriiit, family Ele-
YovTfs- principes ; "princes"); and sometimes
phantidee ; if is about the size of a rabbit, which in
some of its habits it much resembles the animals ;
Q',
!S
l,
CONGREGATION (T(1V, bn[7, from governor or the high-priest; they represented the
whole congregation on various occasions of public
sTlfl, to call = convocation : cvvaycayi) ; iitKKr)- interest (Ex. iii. 16, xii. 21, xvii. 5, xxiv. 1); they
(ria, in Deut. xviii. 16, xxiii. 1 : congregatio, eccle- acted as a court of judicature in capital offenses
sia, ccelus). This term describes the Hebrew people (Num. xv. 33, xxxv. 12), and were charged with
in its collective capacity under its peculiar aspect the execution of the sentence (Lev. xxiv. 14 Num. ;
as a holy community, held together by religious xv. 35); they joined in certain of the sacrifices
rather than political bonds. Sometimes it is used (Lev. iv. 14, 15); and they exercised the usual
in a broad sense as inclusive of foreign settlers rights of sovereignty, such as declaring war. making
(Ex. xii. 19); but more properly, as exclusively ap- peace, and concluding treaties (Josh- ix. 15). The
propriate to the Hebrew element of the population people were strictly bound by the acts of their rep-
(Num. xv. 15); in each case it expresses the idea resentatives, even in cases where they disapproved
of the Roman Civitas or the Greek iroXtTfia. of them (Josh. ix. 18). After the occupation of
MU. Tristram, whoas a naturalist was the more ear- swering perfectly to what i3 said in Prov. xxx. 24, 26
nest in his efforts, caught one of these animals (which both as to its feebleness and its singular cunning and
it isiextremely difficult to do) among the cliffs on the power of self-preservation. See his Land of Israel, 2d
N. \V -side of the Dead Sea, and describos it as au- ed. p. 253 (London, 1866). H.
CONIAH COOKING 489
the land of Canaan, the congregation was assembled acter, in contradistinction to congregation, in which
only on matters of the highest importance. '1'he political and legal matters were occasionally settled.
delegates were summoned by messengers (2 Chr.
Hence it is connected with ttJ'lp, holy, and is ap-
xxx. G) to such places as might be appointed, most
plied only to the Sabbath and the great annual
frequently to Mizpeh (Judg. x. 17, xi. 11, xx. 1;
festivals of the Jews (Ex. xii. 1(5; Lev. xxiii. 2 ff.
1 Sam. vii. 5, x. 17; 1 Mace. iii. 46); they came
attended each with his band of retainers, so that
Num. xxviii. 18 ft'., xxix. 1 ff.). With one excep-
tion (Is. i. 13), the word is peculiar to the Penta-
the number assembled was very considerable (Judg.
xx. 2 if.). On one occasion we hear of the congre- teuch. The LXX. treats it as an adjective =
e'7rjKA.7)Tos; but there can be no doubt
gation being assembled for judicial purposes (Judg. k\t)t6s,
that the A. V. is correct in its rendering.
xx.); on other occasions for religious festivals (2
Chr. xxx. 5, xxxiv. 29); on others for the election
W. L. B.
of kings, as Saul (1 Sam. x. 17), David (2 Sam. v. COOKING.
As meat did not form an article
1), Jeroboam (1 K. xii. 20), Joash (2 K. xi. 19), of ordinary diet among the Jews, the art of cook-
Josiah (2 K. xxi. 24), Jehoahaz (2 K. xxiii. 30), ing was not carried to any perfection. The diffi-
and Uzziah (2 Chr. xxvi. 1). In the later periods culty of preserving it from putrefaction necessi-
of Jewish history the congregation was represented tated the immediate consumption of an animal,
by the Sanhedrim; and the term awayayri, which and hence few were slaughtered except for purposes
in the LXX. is applied exclusively to the congre- of hospitality or festivity. The proceedings on
gation itself (for the place of meeting "TyiXS
such occasions appear to have been as follows On
/HS :
ernacukm testimonii, the word "T^pO being con- 23), its throat being cut so that the blood might
be poured out (Lev. vii. 26); it was then flayed
sidered =
iTVlSM, was transferred to the places of
worship established by the Jews, wherever a certain and was ready either for roasting (T"Tv2), or boil-
number of families were collected. W. L. 13.
ing (7tt?2l) : in the former case the animal was
* " Congregation," assembly of the people, is
preserved entire (Ex. xii. 46), and roasted either
the proper rendering of fKKkTjaia in Acts vii. 38, over a fire (Ex. xii. 8) of wood (Is. xliv.
16), or
instead of "church " (A. V.). That is the render- perhaps, as the mention of fire implies another
ing in the older English versions (Tyndale's, Cran- method, in an oven, consisting simply of a hole dug
mer's, the Genevan). Stephen evidently refers in in the earth, well heated, and covered up (Burck-
that passage to the congregation of the Hebrews hardt, Notes on Bedouins, i. 240); the Paschal
assembled at Sinai, at the time of the promulgation lamb was roasted by the of these methods (Ex.
first
of the law. So nearly all the best critics (Bengel, 9; 2 Chr. xxxv. 13).
xii. 8, Boiling, however, was
Kuinoel, Olshausen, De Wette, Meyer, Lechler, the more usual method of cooking, both in the case
Alford). H. of sacrifices, other than the Paschal lamb (Lev. viii.
CONIAH. [Jkconiah.] 31), and for domestic use (Ex. xvi. 23), so much
CONONI'AH (VTpg'i! [whom Jehovah es- so that 7t£?2 = to cook generally, including even
tablishes] : Xcwevias ;
[Vat. in ver. 12 Xcofieyias ;]
roasting (Deut. xvi. 7). In this case the animal
was cut up, the right shoulder being first taken off
Alex. Xwxevtas- Chonenias), a Levite, ruler (~P33)
(hence the priest's joint, Lev. vii. 32), and the
of the offerings and tithes in the time of Hezekiah other joints in succession; the flesh was separated
(2 Chr. xxxi. 12, 13). [See Conaniah.]
from the bones and minced, and the bones them-
CONSECRATION. selves were broken up (Mic. iii. 31; the whole mass
[Priest.]
* CONVENIENT signifies "becoming, fit- was then thrown into a caldron (Ez. xxiv. 4, 5)
ting, appropriate" in several passages, e. g. Prov. filled with water (Ex. xii. 9), or, as we may infer
xxx. 8; Jer. xl. 4; Horn. i. 28; Eph. v. 4; Philem. from Ex. xxiii. 19, occasionally with milk, as is
ver. 8. It occurs once in the dedication of James's still usual among the Arabs (Hurckhardt, Notes,
translators. It is the rendering of b.vr\nov and i. 63), the prohibition "net to seethe a kid in his
mother's milk" having reference apparently to
kclQtikov in the N. T.. and was an ancient Latin
sense of the word. It belongs to the class of terms some heathen practice connected with the offering
of which Archbishop Whately remarks that " they of the first-fruits (Ex. 1. c. ; xxxiv. 26), which ren-
are much more likely to dered the kid so prepared unclean food (Deut. xiv.
perplex and bewilder the
reader, than those entirely out of use. 21). The caldron was boiled over a wood fire (Ez.
The latter
only leave him in darkness the others mislead him xxiv. 10); the scum which rose to the surface was
;
by a false light." See his Eicon's Essays: with from time to time removed, otherwise the meat
Aniwtatkms (Essay xxiv. p. 259, 5th ed. Boston, would turn out loathsome (6); salt or spices were
is;;). H. thrown in to season it (10); and when sufficiently
* CONVERSATION is never used in the boiled, the meat and the broth (p^O : £ft>jU(fc,
A. V. inordinary sense, but always denotes LXX.: jus, Vulg.), were served up separately
its
" course of life," " conduct." In the N. T. it com- (Judg. vi. 19), the broth being used with unleav-
monly represents the Greek ava(TTpo<p7i; once rp6- ened bread, and butter (Gen. xviii. 8), as a sauce
iros. In Phil. iii. 20, "our conversation is in for dipping morsels of bread into Hurckhardt's (
heaven." it is the rendering of noKireufMa. The Notes, i. 63). Sometimes the meat was so highly
probable meaning is well expressed by Wakefield's spiced that its flavor could hardly be distinguished
translation, " we are citizens of heaven." A.
such dishes were called 0^33? ISO (Gen. xxvii. 4
CONVOCATION (S"}pE, from S^H, vo- Prov. xxiii. 3). There is a striking similarity in
rare ; comp. Num. x. 2: Is. i. 13). This term is the culinary operations of the Hebrews and Eg pt-
applied invariably to meetings of a religious char- ians (Wilkinson's Anc. Egypt, ii. 374 ff.). Yeg-
490 coos CORAL
etables were usually boiled, and served up as pottage ten secret for rendering the metal harder and more
(Gen. xxv. 29; 2 K. iv. 38). Fish was also cooked elastic than we can make it.
(tX&vos otttov /xepos'- piscis assi ; Luke xxiv. 42), It has been maintained that the cutting-tools of
probably ln-oiled. The cooking was in early times the Egyptians, with which they worked the granite
performed by the mistress of the household (Gen. and porphyry of their monuments, were made of
xviii. 6); professional cooks (Q^nSlC) were after- bronze, in which copper was a chief ingredient.
The arguments on this point are found in Wilkin-
wards employed (1 Sam. viii. 13, ix. 23). The
son, iii. 249, &c., but they are not conclusive.
utensils required were — E3^ s
3 (xtn-^vroSes There seems no reason why the art of making iron
chytropodes), a cooking range, having places for two and excellent steel, which has been for ages prac-
or more pots, probably of earthenware (Lev. xi. 35); may
not have been equally known
ticed in India,
"ITIQ, TT7, Jin?)"}, pots probably of earthen- per, precious as gold" (cf. 1 Esdr. viii. 57; tr/ceurj
ware and high, but how differing from each other XaA/coC CTiAjSoj'Tos, Otd<popa, iiri8vix7)Ta iv XP V ~
cricp; arts JidgenHs; • vases of Corinthian brass,"
does not appear; and, lastly, nnb^, or iTITlbS, Syr.: "ex orichalco," Jun.), perhaps
similar to
dishes (2 K. ii. 20, xxi. 13; Prov. xix. 24, A. V. those of "bright brass" in 1 K. vii. 45; Dan. x. 0.
"bosom"). W. L. B. They may have been of orichalcum, like the Per-
sian or Indian vases found among the treasures of
CO'OS (Rec. Text, 6fc tt)v Kw«/; Lachm. [and Darius (Aristot. de Mirab. Auscult.). There were
Tisch.] with ABC [DE Sin.], K<D), Acts xxi. 1.
two kinds of this metal, one natural (Serv. ad jEn.
[Cos.]
xii. 87), which Pliny ill. X. xxxiv. 2. 2) says had
COPPER (i~lt»n:?. This word in the A. V. long been extinct in his time, but which Chardin
is always rendered » bra'ss," except in Ezr. viii. 27. alludes to as found in Sumatra under the name
See Bkass). This metal is usually found as pyrites Calmbac (Rosemn. /. c): the other artificial (iden-
(sulphuret of copper and iron), malachite (carb. of tified by some with jjAfKTpov, whence the mistaken
copper), or in the state of oxide, and occasionally spelling ««r/-chalcum), which Bochart {Hieroz. vi.
in a native state, principally in the New World. ch. 16, p. 871 tf.) considers to be the Hebrew
It
was almost exclusively used by the ancients for vpti?n, a word compounded (he says) of trn?
common purposes; for which its elastic and ductile
nature rendered it practically available. It is a
(copper) and Chald. sbbp
(? gold, Ez. i. 4, 27.
question whether in the earliest times iron was viii. 2); fjKeKrpov, LXX.; electrum, Vulg. (aAAo-
known (^e'Aas 5' ovk eo-Ke <rl8r]pos, Hes. Opp. tt tvttov xP v(Tl0V i Hesych.; to which Suid. adds.
Dies, 149; Lucr. v. 1285 ff.). In India, how- ixefiiy/xtvov vaXcc nal Aidiai). On this substance
ever, its manufacture has been practiced from a see Pausan. v. 12; Plin. xxxiii. 4, § 23. Gesenius
very ancient date by a process exceedingly simple. considers the xaA./coAi'/8a»w of Rev. i. 15 to be
and possibly a similar one was employed by the an-
cient Egyptians (Napier, Anc. Workers in Metal,
XoA/cJ»s \iirap6s 772 1? =
he differs from Bo- H ;
II. § 2. A.
{northern iron). Th -y could hardly have applied
copper to these purpo without \x ssessing some
;es CORAL (mtthVp, ranwth: /xerewpa; Symm.
judicious system of alloys, or perhaps some forgot- u\pr)\d; 'Pafx6d: sericum, excelsa) occurs only, as
CORBAN CORD 491
the somewbat doubtful rendering of the Hebrew but, with certain limitations, they were redeemable
ramdth, in Job xxviii. 18, " No mention shall be by money payments. By the latter, persons inter-
made of coral (ramoth, margin) or of pearls, for or were interdicted by their
dicted themselves,
the price of wisdom is above rubies;'' and from the use of certain things lawful in
in I!z. parents
xxvii. 16, where coral is enumerated amongst the themselves, as wine, either for a limited or an un-
wares which Syria brought to the markets of Tyre. limited period (Lev. xxvii.; Num. xxx. Judg. xiii. ;
The old versions fail to afford us any clew: the 7; Jer. xxxv. Joseph. Ant. iv. 4, § 4; B. J. ii. 15,
;
I. XX. gives merely the etymological meaning of the § 1 Acts xviii. 18, xxi. 23, 24).
; Upon these rubs
Hebrew term "lofty things;" the Vulg. in Ez. the traditionists enlarged, and laid down that a
(I. c.) reads "silk." Some have conjectured • rhi- man might interdict himself by vow, not only from
noceros skins," deriving the original word from using for himself, but from giving to another, or
reem (the unicorn of the A. V.), which word, how- receiving from him some particular object whether
ever, has nothing to do wit li this animal. [IJXI- of food or any other kind whatsoever. The thing
cokn.] Schultens {Qrmrnmt. in JuOum, 1. c.) thus interdicted was considered as Corban, and the
gives up the matter in despair, and leaves the word form of interdiction was virtually to this effect:
untranslated. Many of the Jewish rabbis under* ••
I fori iid myself to touch or be concerned in any-
stand "red coral" by rami /I/. Gescnius (flies. way with the thing forbidden, as if it were devoted
s. v.) conjectures "black coral" (?), assigning the bylaw," i. e. "let it be Corban." So far did they
red kind to /h ninim ("rubies," A. V.): see Ruby. carry the principle that they even held as binding
Miehaelis (Suppl, Lex. Hebr. p. 2218) translates the incomplete exclamations of anger, and called
rdmotk by Lapides gazellorum, i. e. L. bezoardid,
them m"T\ handles. A person might thus ex-
as if from rim. an Arabic name for some species of
empt himself from assisting or receiving assistance
gazelle. The Lapis bezoirdicw of Linnaeus de-
from some particular person or persons, as parents
notes the calcareous concretions sometimes found in
in distress; and in short from any inconvenient ob-
the stomach of the Indian gazelle, the Sasin (Anti-
ligation under plea of corban, though by a legal
Itipe ctrrcifipra, Pallas). This stone, which pos-
fictionhe was allowed to suspend the restriction in
sessed a strong aromatic odor, was formerly held in
certain cases. It was with practices of this sort
high repute as a talisman. The Arabian physi-
that our Lord found fault (Matt. xv. 5; Mark vii.
cians attributed valuable medicinal properties to
11), as annulling the spirit of the law.
these concretions. The opinion of Miehaelis, that
Theophrastus, quoted by Josephus, notices the
n't moth denotes these stones, is little else than con-
system, miscalling it a Phoenician custom, but in
jecture. On the whole, we see no reason to be dis-
" naming the word corban identifies it with Judaism.
satisfiedwith the rendering of the A. V. " (.'oral
Josephus calls the treasury in which offerings for
has decidedly the best claim of any other substances
the temple or its services were deposited, Kopfiavas,
to represent the ramoth. The natural upward
as in Matt, xxvii. 6. Origen's account of the cor-
form of growth of the Cerallium riibrum is well
ban-system is that children sometimes refused as-
suited to the etymology of the word. The word
sistance to parents on the ground that they had
rendered "price" in Job xxviii. 18, more properly
already contributed to the poor fund, from which
denotes "a drawing out:" and appears to have
they alleged their parents might be relieved (Jo-
reference to the manner in which coral and pearls
seph. B. J. ii. 9, § 4: Ap. i. 22; Mishna, [ed.] Su-
were obtained from the sea, either by diving or
renhus., de Votis, i. 4, ii. 2 Cappellus, Grotius,
;
by the Jews and other Orientals, it must be re- Esdr. v. 12. This name apparently answers to
membered that coral varies in price with us. Fine Zaccai in the lists of Ezra and Nehemiah.
compact specimens of the best tints may be worth
as much as £ 10 per oz., while inferior ones are
cord (b^ri, nt$, -vvp, nhv). of
perhaps not worth much more than a shilling per the various purposes to which cord, including under
lb. Pliny says (N. II. xxxii. 2) that the Indians that term rope and twisted thongs, was applied, the
valued coral as the Romans valued pearls. It is following are specially worthy of notice. (1.) For
possible that the Syrian traders, who as Jerome re- "liTD more
fastening a tent, in which sense is
marks (Rosenmiiller, Sclwl. in Kz. xxvii. 16), would
particularly used (e. g. Ex. xxxv. 18, xxxix. 40 Is.
'.n his day run all over the world " lucri cupiditate," ;
would also readily procure coral either from the place represented the principle of life (Job iv. 21.
Bed Sea or the Mediterranean, where it is abund- "Are not their tent-cords (A. V. "excellency")
Coral, Mr. King informs us, often torn away?"; Eccl. xii. 6). (2.) For leading or
antly found.
occurs in ancient Egyptian jewelry as beads, and binding animals, as a halter or rein (Ps. cxviii. 27
cut into charms. Hos. xi. 4), whence to " loosen the cord " (Job xxx.
W« II.
11) =
to free from authority. (3.) For yoking
CORBAN (7S*~I|7 [qferinff]: Sapov- oblatio; them either to a cart (Is. v. 18) or a plough (Job
xxxix. 10). (4.) For binding prisoners, more par-
in X. T. KopQav expl. by Swpov, and in Vulg. do-
iiiim used only in Lev. and Num., except in Ez. ticularly nh.V (Judg. xv. 13; Ps. ii. 3, exxix. 4;
:
xx. 28, xl. 43), an offering to God of any sort. Ez. iii. 25), whence the metaphorical expression
bloody or bloodless, but particularly in fulfillment "bands (5.) For bow-
of love'" (Hos. xi. 4).
of a vow. The law laid down rides for vows, (1) xi. made of catgut; such are spoken
strings (Ps. 2),
affirmative; (2) negative. By the former, persons,
animals, and property might be devoted to God, of in Judg. xvi. 7 (D^b D"HJ1^ A. V. " greeu
492 CORDS OF SHEOL CORINTH
withs ; " but more properly vevpal vypai, fresh or
thaginians called it yoi8 ~T2 (Dioscorid. iii. 64). =
moist bow -strings). (6.) For the ropes or " tack-
The etymology is uncertain, though it is not im-
lings " of a vessel (Is. xxxiii. 23). (7.) For meas-
possible that the striated appearance of the seed-ves-
uring ground, the full expression being V2n
sels may have suggested a name derived from ™f 12
Zech. ii. 1): hence to "cast a cord " =to assign a (Ex. xvi. 31; Num. In both passages the
xi. 7).
property (Mic. ii. 5 ), and cord or line became an manna is likened to coriander-seed as to form, and
expression for an inheritance (Josh. xvii. 14, xix. 9 in the former passage as to color also. W. D.
Ps. xvi. 6; Ez. xlvii. 13), and even for any denned
of Argob, Deut. iii.
district (e. g. the line, or tract,
CORINTH {YLSpivdos: [Corinth us]). This
city is alike remarkable for its distinctive geograph-
4). [Chebel.] (8.) For fishing and snaring
ical position, its eminence in Greek and Boman
[Fishing; Fowling; Hunting]. (9.) For at-
history, and its close connection with the early
taching articles of dress; as the wreathen chains
spread of Christianity.
(nbV), which were rather twisted cords, worn by its situation was so marked, that
Geographically
the bigh-priests (Ex. xxviii. 14, 22, 24, xxxix. 15, the name of Isthmus has been given to every
its
17). (10.) For fastening awnings (Esth. i. G). narrow neck of land between two seas. Thus it
(11.) For attaching to a plummet. The line and was "the bridge of the sea" (Bind. Nem. vi. 44)
plummet are emblematic of a regular rule (2 K. and " the gate of the Peloponnesus"' (Xen. Ages.
xxi. 13; Is. xxviii. 17); hence to destroy by line 2). No invading army could enter the Morea by
and plummet (Is. xxxiv. 11; Lam. ii. 8; Am. vii. land except by this way, and without forcing some
7) has been understood as =
regular, systematic of the defenses which have been raised from one sea'
destruction (ad normnm et Ubettnm, Gesen. Thes. to the other at various intervals between the great
p. 125): it may however be referred to the carpen- Persian war and the recent struggles of the Turks
ter's level, which can only be used on a flat surface with the modern Greeks, or with the Venetians.
(comp. Thenius, Comm. in 2 K. xxi. 13). (12.) But, besides this, the site of Corinth is distin-
For drawing water out of a well, or raising heavy guished by another conspicuous physical feature —
weights (Josh. ii. 15; Jer. xxxviii. 6, 13). To namely, the Acrocorinthus, a vast citadel of rock,
place a rope on the head (1 K. xx. 31 ) in place of which rises abruptly to the height of 2000 feet
the ordinary head-dress was a sign of abject sub- above the level of the sea, and the summit of which
mission. The materials of which cord was made is so extensive that it once contained a whole town.
varied according to the strength required; the The view from this eminence is one of the most cel-
strongest rope was probably made of strips of camel ebrated in the world. Besides the mountains of
hide, as still used by the Bedouins for drawing the Morea, it embraces those on the northern shore
water (Burckhardt's Notes, i. 40); the Egyptians of the Corinthian gulf, with the snowy heights of
twisted these strips together into thongs for sandals Parnassus conspicuous above the rest. To the
and other purposes (Wilkinson, Arte. Egypt, iii. east is the Saronic gulf, with its islands, and the
145). The finer sorts were made of flax (Is. xix. hills round Athens, the Acropolis itself being dis-
9). The fibre of the date-palm was also used (Wil- tinctly visible at a distance of 45 miles. Immedi-
kinson, iii. 210); and probably reeds and rushes ately below the Acrocorinthus, to the north, was
of various kinds, as implied in the origin of the the city of Corinth, on a table-land descending in
word a-^oiviov (l'lin. xix. 9), which is generally terraces to the low plain, which lies between Cen-
used by the LXX. as =
V^O, and more particu-
chreae, the harbor on the Saronic, and Leeha?um,
the harbor on the Corinthian gulf.
larly in the word "pE2S (Job. xli. 2), which pri- The situation of Corinth, and the possession of
marily means a reed in the Talmud (Erubhin, fol. these eastern and western harbors, are the secrets
;
58) bulrushes, osier, and flax are enumerated as the of her history. The earliest passage in her prog-
materials of which rope was made; in the Mishna ress to eminence was probably Phoenician. But
at the most remote period of which we have any
(Solah, i. § 6) the "H^D b^Pl is explained as
sure record we find the Greeks established here in
funis vimintus sett saligrms. In the N. T. the a position of wealth (Horn. II. ii. 570: Pind. <>l.
term a^oivia is applied to the whip which our xiii. 4), and military strength (Thucyd. i. 13).
Saviour made (John ii. 15), and to the ropes of a Some of the earliest efforts of Greek ship-building
ship (Acts xxvii. 32). Alford understands it in are connected with Corinth; and her colonies to
the former passage of the rushes on which the cat- the westward were among the first and most flour-
tle were littered; but the ordinary rendering cords ishing sent out from Greece. So too in the latest
seems more consistent with the use of the term passages of Greek history, in the struggles with
elsewhere. "v\ L. B. Macedonia and Rome, Corinth held a conspicuous
•
* CORDS OF SHEOL. [Snares of place. After the battle of Chseronea (b. c. 338)
Death, Amer. ed.] the Macedonian kings placed a garrison in the
Acrocorinthus. After the battle of Cynoscephal.-e
CO'RE (Kope, N. T. 6 K.: Core), Ecclus. xlv.
(b. c. 197) it was occupied by a Roman garrison.
18;Judell. [Kokah, 1.]
Corinth, however, was constituted the head of the
CORIANDER ("T2 : K 6piov. txrkmdnm). Achaean league. Here the Roman ambassadors
The plant called Coi ianclriini sativum is found in were maltreated: and the consequence was the ut-
Egypt, Persia, and India (Plin. xx. 82), and has a ter ruin and destruction of the city.
round tall stalk: it bears umbelliferous white or It is not the true Greek Corinth with which we
reddish flowers, from which arise globular, grayish, have to do in the life of St. Paul, but the Corinth
spicy seed-corns, marked with fine stria.'. It is which was rebuilt and established as a Roman col-
much cultivated in the south of F.urope, as its seeds ony. The distinction between the two must be
are used by confectioners and druggists. The Car- carefully remembered. A period of a hundred
CORINTH CORINTH 493
years intervened, during which the place was al- theus came from Macedonia and rejoined him ; and
most utterly desolate. The merchants of the about this time the two epistles to the Thessalo-
Isthmus retired to Delos. The presidency of the nians were written (probably A. D. 52 or 53). It
Isthmian games was given to the people of Sicyon. was at Corinth that the apostle first became ac-
Corinth seemed blotted from the map; till Julius quainted with Aquila and Priscilla and shortly
:
Caesar refouuded the city, which thenceforth was after his departure Apollos came to this city from
called Cokmi't Julin Corinthus. The new city was Ephesus (Acts xviii. 27).
hardly less distinguished than the old, and it ac- Corinth was a place of great mental activity, as
quired a fresh importance as the metropolis of the well as of commercial and manufacturing enter-
Roman province of AcHAiA, We find Oai.i.io, prise. Its wealth was so celebrated as to be pro-
brother of the philosopher Seneca, exercising the verbial; so were the vice and profligacy of its
functions of proconsul here (Achaia was a senato- inhabitants. The worship of Venus here was at-
rial province) during St. Paul's first residence at tended with shameful licentiousness. All these
Corinth, in the reign of Claudius. points are indirectly illustrated by passages in the
This residence continued for a year and six two epistles to the Corinthians, which were written
months, and the circumstances, which occurred (probably A. D. 57) the first from Ephesus, the
during the course of it, are related at some length second from Macedonia, shortly before the second
(Acts xviii. 1-18). St. Paul had recently passed visit to Corinth, which is briefly stated (Acts xx.
through Macedonia. He came to Corinth from 3) to have lasted three months. During this visit
Athens; shortly after his arrival Silas and Timo- (probably a. u. 58) the epistle to the Romans was
written. From the three epistles last mentioned, being used as the watchwords of restless factions.
compared with Acts xxiv. 17, we gather that St. Among the eminent Christians who lived at Cor-
Paul was much occupied at this time with a collec- inth were Stephanas (1 Cor. i. 16, xvi. 15, 17),
tion for the poor Christians at Jerusalem. Crispus (Acts xviii. 8; 1 Cor. i. 14), Caius (Rom.
There are good reasons for believing that when xvi. 23; 1 Cor. i. 14), and Erastus (Rom. xvi. 2-3;
St. Paul was at Ephesus (a. l). 57) he wrote to the 2 Tim. iv. 20). The epistles of Clement to the
(lorinthians an epistle which has not been preserved Corinthians are among the most interesting of the
(see «lo\v. p. 495); and it is almost certain that post-apostolic writings."
I Corinth is still an epis-
about the same time a short visit was paid to copal see. The cathedral church of St. Nicolas,
Corinth, of which no account is given in the Acts. " a very mean place for such an ecclesiastical dig-
It has been well observed that the great number nity," used in Turkish times to be in the Acrocor-
of Latin names of persons mentioned in the epistle inthus. The city has now shrunk to a wretched vil-
to the Romans is in harmony with what we know lage, on the old site, and bearing the old name,
of the colonial origin of a large part of the popu- which, however, is often corrupted into Goriko.
lation of Corinth. From Acts xviii. we may con- Pausanias, in describing the antiquities of Cor-
clude that there were many Jewish converts in the inth as they existed in his day, distinguishes clearly
Corinthian church, though it would appear (1 Cor. between those which belonged to the old Greek
xii. 2) that the Gentiles predominated. On the city, and those which were of Roman origin. Two
Dther hand it is evident from the whole tenor of
both epistles that the Judateing element was very a * Of the two epistles to the Corinthians ascribed
strong at Corinth. Party-spirit also was extremely to Clement of Rome, only the first is now regarded as
prevalent, the names of Paul, Peter, and Apollos genuiue by respectable scholars. A.
494 CORINTH CORINTHIANS
relics of Roman work are still one a gives us a more exact plan.
to be seen, In the immediate
heap of brick-work which may have been part of neighborhood of this sanctuary are the traces of
the baths erected by Hadrian, the other the remains the canal, which was begun and discontinued by
of an amphitheatre with subterranean arrangements Nero about the time of St. Paul's first visit to
for gladiators. Far more interesting are the ruins Corinth. J. S. II.
of the ancient Greek temple —
the "old columns,
which have looked down on the rise, the prosperity,
and the desolation of two [in fact, three] successive
Corinths." At the time of Wheler's visit in 1676
twelve columns were standing: before 171)5 they
were reduced to five; and further injury has very
recently been inflicted by an earthquake. It is
believed that this temple is the oldest of which any
remains are left- in Greece. The fountain of Pei-
Didrachm of Corinth (Attic talent). Obv., Head of
rene, "full of sweet and clear water," as it is de- Minerva, to right. Rev., Pegasus, to right below, ;
mercii el Mercaturm Histories ParUada, Berlin, This varied and highly characteristic letter was
1844. [The eminent archaeologist, Rangabes, has addressed not to any party, but to the whole body
a sketch of Corinth, its earlier and later history, of the large (Acts xviii. 8, 10) Judsso-Gentile (Acts
and its antiquities, in his 'EAArj^i/ca, ii. 287-314. xviii. 4) church of Corinth, and appears to have
-H.] been called forth, 1st, by the information the A] os-
This would be incomplete without some tle had received from members of the household of
article
notice of the Posidonium, or sanctuary of Neptune, Chloe (ch. i. 11) of the divisions that were existing
the scene of the Isthmian games, from which St. among them, which were of so grave a nature as
Paul borrows some of his most striking imagery to have already induced the Apostle to desire Tim-
in 1 Cor. and other epistles. [See GAMES, Amer. othy to visit Corinth (ch. iv. 17) after his journey
ed.] This sanctuary was a short distance to the to Macedonia (Acts xix. 22); 2dly, by the infor-
N. E. of Corinth, at the narrowest part of the Isth- mation he had received of a grievous case of incest
mus, near the harbor of Schcenus (now Kalamdki) (eh. v. 1), and of the defective state of the Corin-
on the Saronic gulf. The wall of the inclosure thian converts, not only in regard of general habits
can still be traced. It is of an irregular shape, (ch. vi. 1 ff.) and church discipline (ch. xi. 20 ft'.),
determined by the form of a natural platform at but, as it would also seem, of doctrine (ch. xv.);
the edge of a ravine. The fortifications of the 3dly, by the inquiries that had been specially ad-
Isthmus followed this ravine and abutted at the dressed to St. Paul by the church of Corinth on
east upon the inclosure of the sanctuary, which several matters relating to Christian practice.
thus served a military as well as a religious pur- The contents of this epistle are thus extremely
pose. The exact site of the temple is doubtful, varied, and in the present article almost preclude a
and none of the objects of interest remain, which more specific analysis than we here subjoin. The
Pausanias describes as seen by him within the in- Apostle opens with his usual salutation and with
closure: but to the south are the remains of the an expression of thankfulness for their general state
stadium, where the foot-races were run (1 Cor. ix. of Ihristian progress (ch. i. 1-9). He then at once
<
24); to the east are those of the theatre, which passes on to the lamentable divisions there were
was probably the scene of the pugilistic contests among them, and incidentally justifies his own con-
(ib. 23); and abundant on the shore are the small duct and mode of preaching (ch. i. 10-iv. 16),
green pine-trees (irevKai) which gave the fading concluding with a notice of the mission of Timothy,
wreath (H>. 25) to the victors in the games. An and of an intended authoritative visit on his own
inscription found here in 1676 (now removed to part (ch. iv. 17-21). The Apostle next deals with
Verona) affords a valuable illustration of the in- the case of incest that had taken place among them,
terest taken in these games in Roman times (Po- and had provoked no censure (ch. v. 1-8), noticing,
eckh, No. 1104). The French map of the Morea as he passes, some previous remarks he had made
does not include the Isthmus; so that, till recently. upon not keeping company with fornicators (ch. v.
Col. Leake's sketch (reproduced by Curtius) has 9-13). He then comments on their evil practice
been the only trustworthy representation of the of litigation before heathen tribunals (ch. vi. 1-8),
scene of the Isthmian games.But the ground has and again reverts to the plague-spot in Corinthian
been more minutely examined by Mr. (lark, who life, fornication and uncleanness (ch. vi. 9-20).
CORINTHIANS CORINTHIANS 495
The last subject naturally paves the wayan- went to Corinth (Acts xix. 1), where he preached,
for his
swers to their inquiries about marriage (ch. vii. 1- as we may perhaps infer from St. Paul's comments
24), and about the celibacy of virgins and widows on his own mode of preaching, in a manner marked
(ch. vii. 25-40). The Apostle next makes a transi- by unusual eloquence and persuasiveness (comp. ch.
tion to the subject of the lawfulness- of eating things ii. 1, 4). There is, however, no reason for con-
sacrificed to idols, and Christian freedom generally eluding that the substance of the teaching was in
(ch. viii.), which leads, not unnaturally, to a di- any respect different from that of St. Paul; for see
ii cm the manner in which he waived his ch. i. 18, xvi. 12. This circumstance of the visit
apostolic privileges, and performed his apostolic of Apollos, owing to the sensuous and carnal spirit
duties (ch. ix.). He then reverts to and concludes which marked the church of Corinth, appears to
the subject of the use of things offered to idols (ch. have formed the commencement of a gradual divis-
x.-xi. 1), and passes onward con- ion into two parties, the followers of St. Paul, and
to reprove his
verts tin- the followers of Apollos (comp. ch. iv. 0).
their behavior in the assemblies of the These
church, both in respect to women prophesying and divisions, however, were to be multiplied ; for, as it
praying with uncovered heads (ch. xi. 2-10), and would seem, shortly after the departure of Apollos,
also their great irregularities in the celebration of Judaizing teachers, supplied probably with letters
the Lord's Supper (ch. xi. 17—34). Then follow of commendation (2 Cor. iii. 1) from the church of
full and minute instructions on the exercise of spir- Jerusalem, appear to have come to Corinth and to
itual nifts (ch. xii.-xiv.), in which is included the hare preached the Gospel in a spirit of direct an-
noble panegyric of charity (ch. xiii.), and further a tagonism to St. Paul personally, in every way seek-
defense of the doctrine of the resurrection of the ing to depress his claims to be considered an Apostle
dead, about which doubts and difficulties appear to (1 Cor. xi. 2), and to exalt those of the Twelve,
have arisen in this unhappily divided church (ch. and perhaps especially of St. Peter (ch. i. 12). To
xv. ). The epistle closes with some directions con- this third party, which appears to have been charac-
cerning the contributions for the saints at Jerusa- terized by a spirit of excessive bitterness and faction,
lem (ch. xvi. 1-4), brief notices of his own intended we may perhaps add a fourth, that, under the name
movements (ch. xvi. 5-9), commendation to them of "the followers of Christ" (ch. i. 12), sought at
of Timothy and others (eh. xvi. 10-18), greetings first to separate themselves from the factious ad-
from the churches (ch. xvi. 19, 20), and an auto- herence to particular teachers, but eventually were
graph salutation and benediction (ch. xvi. 21-24). driven by antagonism into positions equally sec-
With regard genuineness and
to the authenticity tarian and inimical to the unity of the church. At
of this epistle no doubt has ever been entertained. this momentous period, before parties had become
The external evidences (Clem. Rom. ad Cur. cc. 47, consolidated, and had distinctly withdrawn from
49; Polycarp, "</ Phil. c. 11; Ignat. ad K}>h. c. communion with one another, the Apostle writes;
2; Irenoeus, Iker. iii. 11, 9; iv. 27, 3; Athenag. and in the outset of the epistle (ch. i.-iv. 21) we
de Resurr. [c. 18,] p. 01, ed. Col.; Clem. Alex. have his noble and impassioned protest against this
Pactag. i. 33 [?c. G, p. 42 f. or 117 f. ed. Potter] fourfold rending of the robe of Christ. This spirit
Tertull. de Prcescr. c. 33) are extremely distinct, of division appears, by the good providence of God,
and the character of the composition such, that if to have eventually yielded to his Apostle's rebuke,
any critic should hereafter be bold enough to ques- as it is noticeable that Clement of Pome, in his
tion the correctness of the ascription, he must be epistle to this church (ch. 47), alludes to these
prepared to extend it to all the epistles that bear evils as long past, and as but slight compared to
the name of the great Apostle. The baseless as- those which existed in his own time. For further
sumption of Bolten and Bertholdt that this epistle information, beside that contained in the writings
is a translation of an Aramaic original requires no of Neander, Davidson, Conybeare and Howson, and
confutation. See further testimonies in Lardner, others, the student may be referred to the special
'Mlity, ii. 30 if., 8vo, and Davidson, Introduc- treatises of Sehenkel, de Eccl. Cor. (Basel, 1838),
tion, ii. 253 ff. Kniewel, Eccl. Cor. Dissenskmes (Gedan. 1841),
Two special points deserve separate consideration Pecker, Partheiungen in die Gemtind* z. Km\
1. The. state ofparties at Corinth at the time (Altona, 1841), Rabiger, Krit. TJntersuch. (Bresl.
of the Apostle's writing. On this much has been 1847); but he cannot be too emphatically warned
written, and, it does not seem too much to say, more against that tendency to construct a definite history
ingenuity displayed than sound and sober criticism. out of the fewest possible facts, that marks most
The few facts supplied to us by the Acts of the of these discussions."
Apostles, and the notices in the epistle, appear to 2. The number of epistles written by St. Paul to
be as follows: —The 'orinthian church was planted the Corinthian church. This will probably remain
<
by the Apostle himself (I Cor. iii. 6), in his second a subject of controversy to the end of time. On
missionary journey, alter his departure from Athens the one side we have the a priori objection that
(Acts xviii. 1 tf.). He abode in the city a year and an epistle of St. Paul should have ever been lost to
a half (ch. xviii. 1 1), at first in the house of Aquila the church of Christ on the other we have certain
;
and Priscilla 'ch. xviii. 3). and afterwards, apparently expressions which seem inexplicable on any other
to mark emphatically the factious nature of the hypothesis. As it seems our duty here to express
conduct of the -lews, in the house of the proselyte an opinion, we may briefly say that the well-known
Justus. A short time after the Apostle had left words, eypa\f/a upiv iv T\j einaToXfj, fin auvava-
the city, the eloquent -lew of Alexandria, Apollos, piyvuadai ir6pi/ois (eh. v! 9), do certainly seem to
after having received, when at Ephesus, more exact point to some former epistolary communication to
instruction in the Gospel from Aquila and Priscilla, the church of Corinth — not from linguistic, but
« * See also Hilgeut'eld, Die Ciristus-Leute in Knr- hardly worth while to refer more fully to the copious
hnk, in his /.< is. fUeol. 1S05, viii. 241-266, literature on this very uncertain subject. For a brief
•uvl Beyschlag diristuspartei zu Korinth, review of the various hypotheses, see Holtmianu in
in tlie Thtol. stui. it. Krii. 1886, pp. 217-270. It is Buusen's Bibelwerk, viii. 434 ff. 1,1880). A.
496 CORINTHIANS CORINTHIANS
from simple exegetical considerations: two Corinthian epistles to each other and on the
for it does
seem impossible either to refer the definite ^
course of thought pursued in them is very good.
crvvavafxiyv. k. t. A. to what has preceded in ver. On the internal condition of the church at Corinth,
2 or ver. 6, or to conceive that the words refer to when Paul wrote his epistles to the Corinthians,
the command which the Apostle is now giving; for see Lechler's Das ojjost. u. das nacluqxst. Zeitalter,
the first time. The whole context seems in favor p. 385 ff. H.
of a former command given to the Corinthians, but CORINTHIANS, EPISTLE SECOND
interpreted by them so literally as here to require TO
THE, was written a few months subsequently
further explanation. not -right to suppress the
It is to the first, in the same year, —
and thus, if the
fact that the Greek commentators are of the con- dates assigned to the former epistle be correct, about
trary opinion, nor must we overlook the objection the autumn of A. d. 57 or 58, a short time previous
that no notice has been taken of the lost epistle by to the Apostle's three months' stay in Achaia (Acts
any writers of antiquity. Against this last objec- xx. 3). The place whence itwas written was
tion it may perhaps be urged that the letter might clearly not Ephesus (see ch. but Macedonia
i. 8),
have been so short, and so distinctly occupied with (ch. vii. 5, viii. 1, ix. 2). whither the Apostle went
specific directions to this particular church, as by way of Troas (ch. ii. 12), after waiting a short
never to have gained circulation beyond it. Our time in the latter place for the return of Titus (ch.
present epistles, it should be remembered, are not ii. 13). The Vatican MS., the bulk of later MSS.,
addressed exclusively to the Christians at Corinth and the old Syr. version, assign Philippi as the
(see 1 Cor. i. 2; 2 Cor. i. 1). A special treatise exact place whence it was written; but for this
on this subject (in opposition, however, to the view assertion we have no certain grounds to rely on
here taken), and the number of St. Paul's journeys that the bearers, however, were Titus and his asso-
to Corinth, has been written by Midler, De Tribus ciates (Luke?) is apparently substantiated by ch.-
Pauli /tin., cfc. (Basil, 1831 ).« viii. 23, ix. 3, 5.
The apocryphal letter of the church of Corinth The epistle was occasioned by the information
to St. Paul, and St. Paul's answer, existing Ln which the Apostle had received from Titus, and
Armenian, are worthless productions that deserve also, as it would certainly seem probable, from
no consideration, but may be alluded to only as Timothy, of the reception of the first epistle. It
perhaps affording some slight evidence of an early has indeed recently been doubted by Neander, De
belief that the Apostle had written to his converts Wette, and others, whether Timothy, who had been
more than twice. The original Armenian, with a definitely sent to Corinth (1 Cor. iv. 17) by way of
translation, will be found in Aucher, Arm. Gram- Macedonia (Acts xix. 22), really reached his destina-
mar, p. 143-161. tion (comp. 1 Cor. xvi. 10); and it has been urged
The editions of [commentaries on] these epistles that the mission of Timothy would hardly have
have been somewhat numerous. Among the best been left unnoticed in 2 for. xii. 17, 18 (see Riickert,
are those of Billroth (Leipz. 1833 [trans, in Edin. ounn. p. 409).
( To this, however, it has been
Cab. Libr.]), Riickert (Leipz. 1836-37), Olshausen replied, apparently convincingly, that as Timothy
(Konigsb. 1840), De Wette (Leipz. 1845 [3d Aufi is an associate in writing the epistle, any notice of
by Messner, 1855]), Osiander (Stuttg. 1847 [2d his own mission in the third person would have
Ep. 1858]), Meyer (1845 [4th Aufl. 1861, 2d Ep. seemed inappropriate. His visit was assumed as a
1862]), and in our own country, Peile (Lond. fact, and as one that naturally made him an asso-
1848), Alford (Lond. 1856 [4th ed. 1865]), and ciate with the Apostle in writing to the church he
Stanley (Lond. 1858 [3d ed. 1865]). C. J. E. had so lately visited.
* The following works should be added: Adalb. It is more difficult to assign the precise reason
Maier (Cath.), Comm. Ub. den ersten Brief Pauli for the mission of Titus. That he brought back
an die Korinther, 1857; Comm. iib. d. zweiten tidings of the reception which St. Paul's first epistle
Brief, 1865; Ewald, Die Sendschreiben des Ap. had met with seems perfectly clear (ch. vii. 6 ft'.),
Paulus, 1857; Neander, Ausleg'ung der beiden but whether he was specially sent to ascertain this,
Briefe an die Corinther (a posthumous work or whether to convey fresh directions, cannot be
edited by Beyschlag), 1859 Chr. Fr. Kling, Die
; ascertained. There is a show of plausibility in the
Korintherbriefe, inLange's Bibelwerk, 1861; supposition of Bleek (Stud. u. Krit. for 18:J0. p.
Charles Hodge, Exposition of the First Epistle to 625), followed more recently by Neander (Pflavz.
the Corinthians, New York, 1857, 12mo, and Ex- ii. J a it. p. 437), that the Apostle had made Titus
position of the Second Epistle, ditto; Chr. Words- the bearer of a letter couched in terms of decided
worth, in his Greek Testament, with Introduction severity, now lost, to which he is to be supposed to
and Notes, 4th ed., 1866; W. F. Besser, St. Pauli refer in ch. ii. 3 (compared with ver. 4, 9), vii. 8,
erster Brief an die Corinther (1862), and Zweiter 11 ff. ; but, as has been justly urged (see Meyer,
Brief (1863), in Bibelstunden fur die Gemeinde Einleit. p. 3), there is quite enough of severity in
a usgelegt, regarded in Germany as one of the best the first epistle (consider ch. iv. 18-21, v. 2 ff., vi.
specimens of a happy union of accurate exegesis 5-8, xi. 17) to call forth the Apostle's affectionate
and practical exposition and J. C. K. von Hofmann,
; anxiety. If it be desirable to hazard a conjecture
Erster Brief on die Korinther (1864), Zuoeiter on this mission of Titus, it would seem most natural
Brief (1866), in his Die heilige Schrift Neuen to suppose that the return of Timothy and the in-
Testaments zus:imim idiiin</i nd untersiicht, with telligence he conveyed might have been such as to
special reference to the development of the doctrinal make
the Apostle feel the necessity of at once
ideas. The article by HoltzmannHerzog's despatching to the contentious church one of his
(in
Real-EncyU. xix. 730-41) on the relation of the immediate followers, with instructions to support
a * Blcek also maintains the view that Paul wrote das N. Test. p. 402 ff. Neander also adopts the same
s.n epistle tothe Corinthians, which has been lost, be- opinion in the 4th ed. of his Gesch. der Pflanzung (1847),
tween his 1st and 2d epistles now extant. He state! and in his Ausleg. der Brr an die Cor. (p. 345), after
bis reasons at length for so thinking in his Bint, in having previously declared himself against it. 11
CORINTHIANS CORMORANT 497
and strengthen the effect of the epistle, and to bring however, only mentions one visit prior to that thne
back the most recent tidings of the spirit that was (Acts xviii. 1 ff); for the visit recorded in Acts
prevailing at Corinth. xx. 2, 3, is confessedly subsequent. If with Grotius
These tidings, as it wonld seem from our present and others we assume that in ch. xii. 14 rpWov
epistle, were mainly favorable; the better part of belongs to tTOificiis ex&), and riot to eKQeiv irpbs
the church were returning back to their spiritual v(j.as, we still have in ch. xiii. 1, the definite words
allegiance to their founder (ch. i. 18, 14, vii. 9, 15, rp'nov rouro epxo/J-ai, which seem totally to pre-
16), but there was still a faction, possibly of the clude any other meaning than this that the —
Judaizing members (comp. ch. xi. 22), that were Apostle had visited them ticice before, and was now
sharpened into even a more keen animosity against on the eve of going a third time. The ordinary
the Apostle personally ich. x. 1, 10), and more subterfuge that tpxofxat is here equivalent to
strenuously denied his claim to Apostleship. e-roijucos Z%o> i\9e7v (so actually A, the Arabic
The contents of this epistle are thus very varied, [Erp.], and the Coptic versions) is grammatically
but may perhaps be roughly divided into three indefensible, and would never have been thought
parts: —1st, the Apostle's account of the character of if the narrative of the Acts had not seemed to
of his spiritual labors, accompanied with notices of require it. We must assume then that the Apostle
his affectionate feelings towards his converts (ch. made a visit to Corinth which St. Luke was not
i.-vii.); 2dly, directions about the collections (ch. moved to record, and which, from its probably short
viii., ix.); 3dly, defense of his own apostolical duration, might easily have been omitted in a nar-
character (ch. x.-xiii. 10). A close analysis is rative that is more a general history of the church
scarcely compatible with the limits of the present in the lives of its chief teachers, than a chronicle
article, as in no one of the Apostle's epistles are the of annalistic detail. So Chrysostom and his fol-
changes more rapid and frequent. Now he thanks lowers, CEcumenius and Theophylact, and in recent
God for their general state (ch. i. 3 ff.); now he times, Miiller (De Tribus Pauli /tin. Basil. 1831),
glances to his purposed visit (ch. i. 15 ff); now he Anger {Rat. Temp. p. 70 ff), Wieseler (Chrunol.
alludes to the special directions in the first letter p. 239), and the majority of modern critics. It has
(ch. ii. 3 ff); again he returns to his own plans formed a further subject of question whether, on
(ch. ii. 12 ff), pleads his own apostolic dignity (ch. this supposition, the visit to Corinth is to be re
iii. 1 ff. ), dwells long upon the spirit and nature of garded only as the return there from a somewhat
his own labors (ch. iv. 1 ff), his own hopes (ch. v. lengthened excursion during the 18 months' stay at
1 ff), and his own sufferings (ch. vi. 1 ff), return- that city (Aiiger), or whether it is to be referred to
ing again to more specific declarations of his the period of the 3 years' residence at Ephesus. The
love towards his children in the faith (ch. vi. 11 latter has most supporters, and seems certainly most
ff), and a yet further declaration of his views natural see Wieseler, Chronol. 1. c, and Meyer,
;
p. 01, ed. Col.; Clem. Alex. Strom, iii. 94, iv. 101; by it. There is some difficulty in identifying the
[iii. c. 11, iv. c. 16. pp. 544, 608, ed. Potter;] nor can we be quite sat-
KarapdiCTTis of the LXX. ;
of such a kind that what has been said on this p. 68), Michaelis, Kosenmiiller, and others, that the
point in respect of the first epistle is here even still Solan goose, or gannet (Sula alba), is the bird men-
more applicable. The only doubts that modern tioned by Aristotle (Hist. An. ii. 12, § 15; ix. 13,
pseudo-criticism has been able to bring forward § 1) and the author of the Ixeutics (Oppian, ii. 2).
relate to the unity of the epistle, but are not such Col. H. Smith (Kitto's Cyc. art. Salach) has
as seem to deserve serious consideration (see Meyer, noticed that this bird (/coTap/SaKTijs) is described
Einkit. p. 7). as being of the size of a hawk or one of the smallei
The principal historical difficulty connected with gulls (d>s ol T&v \dpwv i\d(T<rov(i), whereas the
the epistle relates to the number of visits made by gannet is as large as a goose. The account given
the Apostle to the church of Corinth. The words in the Jxeutics (I. c.) of this bird is the fullest we
of this epistle (ch. xii. 14, xiii. 1, 2) seem distinctly possess and certainly the description, with the ex-
;
to imply that St. Paul had visited Corinth twia ception above noted, is well suited to the gannet,
before the time at which he now writes. St. Luke, whose habit of rising high into the air, and par-
32
498 CORN CORNELIUS
tially closing itswings, and then falling straight as Chr. xxxii. 28 as built by Hezekiah, were, perhaps,
an arrow on its prey, emerging again in a few sec- the consequence of the havoc made by the Assyr-
onds, is graphically described in the passage alluded ian armies (comp. 2 K. xix. 29); without such pro-
to. It is probable that the ancients sometimes con- tection the country in its exhausted state would
fused this bird with some species of tern hence the ; have been at the mercy of the desert marauders.
difficulty as to size. Col. H. Smith suggests the
Grain crops were liable to PP"^.1, "mildew,"
Caspian tern (Sterna Caspia) as the representative
of the KarappaKTris; which opinion is however in- and pDIJttJ, "blasting" (see 1 K. viii. 37), as
admissible, for the terns are known never to dive, well as of course to fire by accident or malice (Ex.
whereas the diving habits of the /corappo/cTrjs are xxii. 6; Judg. xv.
5); see further under Agricou-
expressly mentioned (KaraSvarai pexpts opyvias f) tuke. Some good general remarks will be found
Kal irAfov)- Modern ornithologists apply the term in Saalschutz, Archaol. chr Hebr. H. H.
cata?-actes to the different species of skua.s (lestr/'s),
the part more retired than the common chamber Cornelius in this respect was one of great interest,
where the guests were accommodated. It is at
and the fullness of the account of his reception into
present often kept i:i a dry well, and perhaps the
the church shows the importance which the first
"ground corn" of 2 Sam. xvii. 19 was meant to
Christians attached to it. The precise relation of
imply that the well was so used. From Solomon's
Cornelius to Judaism before he adopted the Chris-
time (2 Chr. ii. 10, 15), i. e. as agriculture became
tian faith is not perfectly clear. He had certainly
developed under a settled government, Palestine
embraced the pure theism of the 0. T. (evcrefirfs
was a corn-exporting country, and her grains were
Kal <po0ovij.fi/os rov OeoV), but was uncixcumcised,
largely taken by her commercial neighbor Tyre Ez. (
and may not openly have professed the Jewish be-
xxvii. 17; comp. Amos viii. 5). "Plenty of corn "
lief. Neander thinks that he belonged at least to
was part of Jacob's blessing (Gen. xxvii. 28 comp. ;
the class of proselytes of the gate. It appears that
Ps. lxv. 13). The " store-houses " mentioned 2
the Jews regarded him as belonging at this time,
N
word for grain in its final state as tit for food is "^7". ing cookery, is bp, and M^7pT : comp. the Arab.
• 't' '
.
apparently from the same word, *13, pure : comp. J^j", to fry. « Pounded wheat," mD'*'!, 2 Sam
son's revised trans., pp. 6*9-77). H. in Palestine was not deemed liable to the obliga-
tion. As regards Jews an evasion seems to have
CORNER. The HSS, or " corner," i. e. of
— Whatever
been sanctioned as follows : field was
the was not allowed (Lev. xix. 9) to be wholly
field,
consecrated to the Temple and its services, was
reaped. It formed a right of the poor to carry off
held exempt from the claim of the poor an owner ;
" within thy gates " being his expressive descrip- corners are sometimes formed of one angular stone
that was discontented " came unto him (1 Sam. cinn), a loud sounding instrument, made of the
xxii. 2, xxv. 13). Further, the position of the Le- horn of a ram or of a chamois (sometimes of an
vites, who had themselves a similar claim on the ox), and used by the ancient Hebrews for signals.
produce of the land, but no possession in its soil,
" Jubile" (Lev. xxv. 9).
would secure their influence as expounders, teach- for announcing the '5"^>
ers, and in part administrators of the law, in favor for proclaiming the new j-ear (Mishna, Bash Hash-
of such a claim. In the later period of the proph- skanah, iii. and iv.), for the purposes of war (Jer. iv.
ets their constant complaints concerning the de- 5, 19, coinp. Job xxxix. 25), as well as for the sen-
frauding the poor" (Is. x. 2: Amos v. 11, viii. 6) tinels placed at the watch-towers to give notice of
seem to show that such laws had lost their practi- the approach of an enemy (Ez. xxxiii. 4, 5). ""IDItt?
cal force. Still later, under the Scribes, minute
is generally rendered in the A. V. "trumpet," but
legislation fixed one-sixtieth as the portion of a
field which was to be left for the legal "corner;
" "cornet" (the more correct translation) is used in
2 Chr. xv. 14; Ps. xcviii. 6: Hos. v. 8; and 1 Chr.
but provided also (which seems hardly consistent)
xv. 28. It seems probable that in the two last in-
that two fields should not be so joined as to leave
stances the authors of the A. V. would also have
one corner only where two should fairly be reck-
preferred "trumpet," but for the difficulty of find-
oned. The proportion being thus fixed, all the
ing different English names in the same passage
grain might be reaped, and enough to satisfy the
for two things so nearly resembling each other in
regulation subsequently separated from the whole
crop. This " corner " was, like the gleaning, tithe- meaning as "IDItt?, buccina, and Chatzotzer&h,
free. Certain fruit-trees, e. y. nuts, pomegranates, " Cornet "
i"H!£"l2n, tuba. is also employed in
vines, and olivas, were deemed liable to the law of
the corner. Maimonides indeed lays down the
n The two latter passages, speaking of " taking bur- ing, seem to point to some special evasion of the har-
lens of wheat from the poor,'' and of ,! selling the vest laws.
500 CORNET CORNET
xxix. 1), or "a memorial of blowing of trumpets"
Dan. iii. 5, 7, 10, 15, for the Chaldee noun pp.,
Keren a horn).
(literally (n3?T"i;n P" ??,
1 Le v ^ xiii 24 )= and that rite «
- -
Oriental scholars for the most part consider sho- still observed by the Jews in their celebration of the
phar and keren to be one and the same musical same festival, which they. now call " the day of me-
instrument; but some Biblical critics regard sho-
morial " C|"H3-tn D^), and also "New Year"
phar and chatzdtzerah as belonging to the species
of keren, the general term for a horn. (Joel Brill, (n2ti?n tfSI). "
Some commentators," says
in preface to Mendelssohn's version of the Psalms. Kosenmuller, " have made this festival refer to the
Jahn distinguishes kertn, " the horn or crooked preservation of Isaac (Gen. xxii.), whence it is
trumpet," from chatzotzerah, the straight trumpet, sometimes called by the Jews, "the Binding of
" an instrument a cubit in length, hollow through-
Isaac " (pn^P iTlp?). But it is more probable
out, and at the larger extremity so shaped as to re-
semble the mouth of a short bill " {Archwolog. xcv. that the name of the festival is derived from the
usual kind of trumpets (rams' horns) then in use,
4, 5); but the generally received opinion is, that
keren is the crooked horn, and shdphdr the long and and that the object of the festival was the celebra-
tion of the new year and the exhortation to thanks-
straight one.
givings for the blessings experienced in the year
The silver trumpets (P|D? iYTlTl^r]), which just finished. The use of cornets by the priests
Moses was charged to furnish for the Israelites, in all the cities of the land, not in Jerusalem only
were to be used for the following purposes: for (where two silver trumpets were added, whilst the
the calling together of the assembly, for the jour- Levites chanted the 81st Psalm), was a suitable
neying of the camps, for sounding the alarm of means for that object " (Kosenmuller, Das alte wid
war, and for celebrating the sacrifices on festivals nine Morrgenland, vol. ii., No. 337, on Lev. xxiii.
and new moons (Num. x. 1-10). The divine com- 24).
mand through Moses was restricted to two trumpets Although the festival of the first day of the
only and these were to be sounded by the sons of seventh month is denominated by the Mishna " New
;
Aaron, the anointed priests of the sanctuary, and Year," and notwithstanding that it was observed
not by laymen. It should seem, however, that at as such by the Hebrews in the age of the second
a later period an impression prevailed, that " whilst temple, there is no reason whatever to believe that
the trumpets were suffered to be sounded only by it had such a name or character in the times of
the priests within, the sanctuary, they might be Moses. The Pentateuch fixes the vernal equinox
used by others, not of the priesthood, without the (the period of the institution of the Passover), as
gacred edifice." (Conrad Iken's Antiquitates He- the commencement of the Jewish year; but for
braicce, pars i. sec. vii. " Sacerdotum cum instru- more than twenty centuries the Jews have* dated
ments ipsorum.") In the age of Solomon the their new year from the autumnal equinox, which
"silver trumpets" were increased in number to takes place about the season when the festival of
120 (2 Chr. v. 12); and, independently of the ob- "the day of sounding the cornet" is held. Rab-
jects for which they had been first introduced, they binical tradition represents this festival as the anni-
were now employed in the orchestra of the temple versary of the creation of the world, but the state-
as an accompaniment to songs of thanksgiving and ment receives no support whatever from Scripture.
praise. On the contrary, Moses expressly declares that the
Yobel, vSY*, used sometimes for the " year of
month Abib (the Moon of the Spring) is to he
regarded by the Hebrews as the first month of the
Jubilee" (^? r H —
FQW, comp. Lev. xxv. 13, 15, year: " This month shall be unto you the begin-
with xxv. 38, 40), generally denotes the institution
ning (lt'S~l) of months; it shall be the first
of Jubilee, but in some instances it is spoken of as
a musical instrument, resembling in its object, (* H~0 month of the year to you" (Ex. xii. 2).
if not in its shape, the keren and the shophdr. (Munk, Palestine, p. 184 b.)
Gesenius pronounces yobel to be "an onomato- The intention of the appointment of the festival
poetic word, signifying jnbihim or a joyful sound, " of the Sounding of the Cornet," as well as the
and hence applied to the sound of a trumpet signal, duties of the sacred institution, appear to be set
words of the prophet, " Sound the
like n^Tin" ("alarm," Num. x. 5): and Dr. forth in the
1
Munk is of opinion that "le mot yobkl n'est cornet ("iQ^lt ) in Zion, sanctify the fast, proclaim
qu'une epithete " (Palestine, p. 45G a, note). Still the solemn assembly" (Joel ii. 15). Agreeably to
it is difficult, to divest yobel of the meaning of a the order in which this passage runs, the institution
sounding instrument in the following instances: of " the Festival of Sounding the Comet," seems
v2T n) to be the prelude and preparation for the awful
" When the trumpet (
,
soundeth long, they
Day of Atonement. The Divine command for that
shall come up to the mount " (Ex. xix. 13); "And
fast is connected with that for «' the Day of Sound-
it shall come to pass that when they make a long
ing the Cornet " by the conjunctive particle ?[M.
blast with the ram's horn " ( v31 s n pp.2, Josh,
" Likewise on the tenth day of this seventh month
vi. 5); "And let seven priests bear seven trumpets
Here
is the Day of Atonement " (Lev. xxiii. 27).
horns" (D s bn
V >
of rams' l
tTl^W, Josh. vi.
TTS (likewise) unites the festival " of the Day of
6).
Sounding the Cornet " with the solemnity of the
The sounding of the cornet ("lSltt? DV^H) Day of Atonement precisely as the same particle
"
was the distinguishing ritual feature of the festival connects the " Festival of Tabernacles with the ob-
" the fruit of the
appointed by Moses to be held on the first day of servance of the ceremonial of
the seventh month under the denomination of " a Hadar tree, the palm branches," &c. (Lev. xxiii.
day of blowing trumpets" (n^")^ D"l\ Num. 34-40). The word " solemn assembly " (i"HV2?)
COS COTTON 501
in the verse from Joel quoted above, applies to the ontory called Scandaruim: and perhaps it is to the
" town that reference is made in the Acts (I. a).
festival " Eighth day of Solemn Assembly
There a monograph on Cos by Kuster (De Co
is
(PT!$y WftV?) (Lev. xxiii. 3G), the closing rite
Insula, Halle, 1833), and a very useful paper on
of the festive cycle of Tishri (see Religious Dis- the subject by Col. Leake (in the Trans, of the
courses of Kev. Professor Marks, vol. i. pp. 291, Royal Soc. of Literature, vol. i., second series).
292). An account of the island will lie found in Clarke's
Besides the use of the cornet on the festival of Travels, vol. i., pp. 196-213, and vol. ii., pt.
ii., pt.
" blowing the trumpets," it is also sounded in the
ii., pp. but the best description is in Ross,
321-333 ;
synagogue at the close of the service for the day of Reiem nick Kos, Halicarnassus, u. s. w. (Halle,
atonement, and, amongst the Jews who adopt the 1852), with which his Reisen auf den Griech. lnseln
ritual of the Sephardim, on the seventh day of the should be compared, vol. ii. (1*8-13), pp. 86-92, vol.
feast of Tabernacles, known by the post-biblical de- H.
iii. (1845), pp. 126-139. J. S.
<
nomination of " the Great Hosannah " (H^V^n CO'SAM name that occurs
(Kaio-d/A Cosan, a
nowhere else either in the 0. T. or N. T., and is
n3"l). The sounds emitted from the cornet in
T ~ of doubtful etymology), son of Elmodam, and fifth
modem times are exceedingly harsh, although they
before Zorobabel, in the line of Joseph the hus-
produce a solemn effect. Gesenius derives the name [Genealogies of
band of Mary, Luke iii. 28.
"15*127 from "IStE =
Arab. yJUu, " to be bright, Christ.] A. H. C
* COTTAGE. In Is. xxiv. 20 the Hebrew
clear" (compare ITIDtt?, Ps. xvi. G).
a * Stanchio or Stanko, the present name of Cos, has hareer, " silk." The "P~TD, " sheets," marg.
JT^
,
still existing in his time in a temple in Rhodes, and Moses (I)eut. xvi. 18; comp. Ant. iv. 8, § 14), con-
that the minuteness of its fibre had provoked the sisted of seven judges, each of whom had two Le-
experiments of the curious. Cotton was manu- •vites as assessors; accordingly in the reform which
factured and worn extensively in Egypt, but extant he carried out in Galilee, he appointed seven judges
monuments give no proof of its growth, as in the lor the trial of minor offenses (B. ./. ii. 20, § 5).
case of flax, in that country (Wilkinson, lb. pp. The statement of Josephus is generally accepted as
116-139, and plate No. 350); indeed, had it been a correct but it should be noticed that these courts
;
general product, we could scarcely have missed find- were not always in existence; they may have been
ing some trace of it on the monumental details of instituted by himself on what he conceived to be
ancient Egyptian arts, trades, &c. but, especially,
; the true Mosaic model; a supposition which is ren-
when Pliny (a. D. 115) asserts that cotton was then dered probable by his further institution of a coun-
grown in Egypt, a statement confirmed by Julius cil of Seventy, which served as a court for capital
Pollux (a century later), we can hardly resist the offenses, altogether independent of the Sanhedrim
inference that, at least as a curiosity and as an ex- at Jerusalem ( Vit. § 14; B. J. ii. 20, § 5). The
periment, some plantations existed there. This is existence of local courts, however constituted, is
the more likely since we find the cotton-fr-ee (gos- clearly implied in the passages quoted from the N.
gypiwn arboreum, less usual than, and distinct from, T. and perhaps the judgment (Matt. v. 21) applies
;
the cotton plant, i/uss. herbac.) is mentioned still to them. (3.) avfj-fiovAiov (Acts xxv. 12), a kind
by Pliny as the only remarkable tree of the adja- of jury or privy council, consisting of a certain
cent Ethiopia and since Arabia, on its other side,
;
number of assessors {consiliarii, Suet. Tib. 33, 55),
appears to have known cotton c from time immemo- who assisted Roman governors in the administra-
rial, to grow it in abundance, and in parts to be tion of justice and other public matters.
highly favorable to that product. In India, how- W. L. B.
ever, we have the earliest records of the use of cot-
ton for dress of which, including the starching of
;
COURT, an open inclosure, applied in the A.
V. most commonly to the inclosures of the Taber-
it, some curious traces are found as early as 800 b.
nacle and the Temple. The Hebrew word invaria-
C, in the Institutes of Manu; also (it is said, on
the authority of Prof. Wilson) in the Rig- Veda, bly used for the former is Chatzer, *")^n, from a
105, v. 8. F»r these and some other curious an-
root, ~l~n, to surround (Gesen. p. 512). (See,
tiquities of the subject, see Koyle's Culture and
Commerce of Cotton in India, pp. 117-122. amongst others, Ex. xxvii. 9, to xl. 33 ; Lev. vi. 1G
Cotton is now both grown and manufactured in
Num. iii. 20, &c.) The same word is also most
frequently used for the "courts" of the Temple,
various parts of Syriaand Palestine, and, owing
probably to being less conductive of heat, seems
its
as 1 K. K. xxiii. 12; 2 Chr. xxxiii.
vi. 30, vii. 8; 2
preferred for turbans and shirts to linen; but there 5 ; Ps. In 2 Chr. iv. 9, and vi. 13,
xcii. 13, &c.
(Acts vii. 8), the omission of which was declared Ex. xxii. 27, Job xxiv. 7, xxvi. 6, xxxi. 19, Is. 1.
tantamount to a breach of the covenant (Gen. xvii. 3) it is translated "covering"
in the A. V.; in
)
the covenant of the priesthood, by zeal for God, his one (Ex. xxi. 10) it is translated "raiment," and
honor and service (Num. xxv. 12, 13 Deut. xxxiii. in one (Deut. xxii. 12) "vesture."
;
the expression " a covenant of Jehovah " (iTHSi lings) is to thee a penalty [satisfaction] for all which
(has happened) with thee and before all; and she
•"n*"^' * S am xx. 8, comp. Ez. xvii. 19), and an was convicted (had nothing to say in excuse). Com-
-
(IV) of the covenant was sometimes framed, such and 73 as referring to persons: " So it is to
(j)
as a gift (Gen. xxi. 30), or a pillar, or heap of thee a covering of the eyes (an expiatory gift) in
stones (Gen. xxxi. 52).
erected The marriage reference to
all icho are with thee (because all in
compact is called " the covenant of God," Prov. ii. the household shared their mistress's dishonor); so
17 (see Mai. ii. 14). The word covenant came to thou art righted (properly, proved, namely, to be
be applied to a sure ordinance, such as that of the the one who suffered wrong)."
shew-bread (Lev. xxiv. 8); and is used figuratively So the passage is understood by Tuch. He takes
in such expressions as a covenant with death (Is. exception,
however (after Schumann) to Ewald's
xxviii. 18), or with the wild beasts (Hos. ii. 18).
and Gesenius' s construction of the second iHS,
The phrases H^? ^?3?2, n^2 ^S, which should be construed as the one immediately
"lords or men of one's covenant," are employed
to denote confederacy ((Jen. xiv. 13, Ob. 7).
preceding it; for 73 HM") ^T^^ must not De
(£-), taking Hn^^ as the 2d pers. perf. (m), and COZ'BI 02T3 [deceptive, lying] : Xcto73i;
translates: " and nil this (I do, or, I give) that thou [Vat. -/Set;] Jos. Xoa-pia.: Cozhi), a Midianite
mayest be righted." woman, daughter of Zur, one of the chiefs of the
" nation (Num. xxv. 15, 18).
Lange, understanding by " covering of the face
a veil in the figurative sense, finds (with Le Clerc) * CRACKNELS
(in 1 Kings xiv. 3, A. V.),
a double meaning in the expression namely, a gift denotes crumb-cakes, " so called from the sharp
;
of atonement and reconciliation, which at the same noise made when breaking " (Eastwood & Wright's
time shall be as a veil to all eyes, by indicating the Bible Word-Booh, p. 134). They formed a part
relation of one married to a husband. of the present which the wife of Jeroboam carried
On these views it may be remarked, that the to the prophet Ahijah (comp. 1 Sam. ix. 7, 8 xvi. ;
form of the expression, " covering of the eyes," (not 20) when she went to learn from him the issue of
-of the face,") seems to be decisive against the her son's sickness. They were different from ordi-
supposition that a veil is meant, either as worn by nary loaves, for both are mentioned together in the
Sarah for concealing her person from the sight of above passage. Fiirst says they were perhaps small
others, or by them to restrict their sight. In the dried cakes, and pricked or pointed like biscuit,
former case, the expression should have been, " cov- such as common people carried with them on jour-
neys (Hebr. u. Chakl. WSrterb. ii. 53). Being
ering of the face" (D^pS). A " covering of the thus dry and hard, they would have the quality
eyes," in the literal sense, can mean nothing else expressed by the English name, but inferred only
than the repression of the improper use of the eyes, from the Hebrew. The queen took such cakes with
as of wanton looks. This, with reference to Sarah, her, because she wished to conceal her rank and
is inapposite, as no such fault is laid to her charge appear as an ordinary person. See Bunsen's Bibel-
and if understood of others (" a covering of the werk on 1 Kings xiv. 3. The Hebrew term is that
eyes to all who are with thee"), a veil cannot be in Josh. ix. 5, 12, usually understood there of bread
meant, for that is used for concealment, and not so old as to be dry and spotted with mould. But
for the purpose of obstructing the vision. The ob- the etymology is very obscure. See Eiirst's Con-
jection lies equally against the supposition of a veil cord, s. v., and Ges. Thes. ii. 909. H.
in a figurative sense, since this must conform to
the literal and proper use of the term. CRANE (DID or D^D, sus or sis [horse,
The only alternative remaining, is to take the from the fleetness of the swallow] :
xeKiScbv pull us
•vnd "lltt? in Lev. xxii. 28; Num. xviii. 17, where ° 1393&
506 CRATES CRETE
being expressive of happiness rather than of grief; a the Great and the final destruction of Jerusalem.
but it must be remembered that the ancients re- Gortyna seems to have been their chief residence;
garded the swallow as a mournful bird and it is for it is specially mentioned (1 Mace. xv. 23) in
;
worthy of remark that, according to Dr. Kennicott, the letters written by the Romans on behalf of the
in thirteen Codices of Jeremiah (I. c.) the word Jews, when Simon Maccabseus renewed the treaty
Isis occurs instead of sis : it is probable therefore which his brother Judas had made with Rome.
that the story of Procne, Tereus, &c, of Grecian [Goistyna.] See 1 Mace. x. 67. At a later pe-
mythology had its source in ancient Egyptian fa- riod Josephus says (Ant. xvii. 12, § 1, B. J. ii. 7,
ble, Isis, as the Egyptians say, having been changed § 1) that the Pseudo- Alexander, Herod's supposed
son, imposed upon the Jews of Crete, when on his
into a swaljow. The Hebrew word Deror ("1Y1?)
way And later still, Philo (Leg. ad Cai.
to Italy.
is noticed under the article Swallow. W. H. makes the Jewish envoys say to Caligula
§ 36)
CRA'TES (KpaTTjs: Vulg. translates prcelntus that all the more noted islands of the Mediterra-
est), governor of the Cyprians (6 iirl twv K.), who nean, including Crete, were full of Jews. Thus
was left in charge of the "castle" (rfjs aKpotri- the special mention of Cretans (Acts ii. 11) among
\eti)s) of Jerusalem ('?), during the absence of those who were in Jerusalem at the great Pentecost
Sostratus, in the reign of Antiochus Epiphanes (2 is just what we should expect.
Mace. iv. 29). No notice is given in the Acts of any more direct
CREDITOR. [Loan.] evangelization of Creteand no absolute proof can
;
140 miles between its extreme points of Cape Sal- sudden gale from the N. E. [Winds] coming
mone (Acts xxvii. 7) on the E., and Cape Criume- down from the high ground of Crete (/car' avTrjs),
topon beyond Phienice or Phoenix (ib. 12) on in the neighborhood of Mount Ida, drove the ship
the W. The breadth is comparatively small, the to the little island of Clauda (vv. 13-16), whence
narrowest part (called an isthmus by Strabo, x. 475) she drifted to Malta. It is impossible to say how
being near Phoenix. Though extremely bold and far this short stay at Fair Havens may have afforded
mountainous, this island has very fruitful valleys, opportunities for preaching the Gospel at Lasa?a or
and in early times it was celebrated for its hundred elsewhere.
cities (Virg. jEn. iii. 106). Crete has a conspic- The next point of connection between St. Paul
uous position in the mythology and earliest history and this island is found in the epistle to Titus. It
of Greece, but a comparatively unimportant one in is evident from Tit. i. 5, that the Apostle himself
its later history. It was reduced (b. c. 67 ) by the was here at no long interval of time before he wrote
Romans under Metellus, hence called Creticus, and the letter. We
believe this to have been between
united in one province with Cyrenaica, which was the first and second imprisonments. In the course
at no great distance (Strabo, x. 475) on the oppo- of the letter (Tit. i. 12) St. Paul adduces from
site coast of Africa [Cyrexe]. It is possible that Epimenides, a Cretan sage and poet (Belos av-fip,
in Tit. iii. 1, there may be an implied reference to
Plat. Legg. i. 642), a quotation in which the vices
a turbulent condition of the Cretan part of the of his countrymen are described in dark colors.
province, especially as regarded the Jewish resi- The truth of what is said by Epimenides is abun-
dents. dantly confirmed by the passages collected (iv. 10)
seems likely that a very early acquaintance
It in Meursius's great work on Crete (Meursii Opera,
took place between the Cretans and the Jews. The Florence, 1744, vol. iii.). He has also a chapter
story in Tacitus (Hist. v. 2), that the Jews were (iv. 4) on the early Christian history of the island.
themselves of Cretan origin, may be accounted for Titus was much honored here during the middle
by supposing a confusion between the Philistines ages. The cathedral of Megalo-Castron was dedi-
and the Jews, and by identifying the Cherethites cated to hirn and his name was the watchword of
:
a Unless perhaps the sbs may have reference more loud squealing may appear to some to be indicative of
particularly to some species of swift (Cypsehts), whose restless grief.
CRETES CRIB 507
second volume of the Museum of Classical Anti- was written to
him ss the " first bishop or overseer
quities (London, 1856). J. S. H. of the church of the Cretians." For the character
the ancient Cretans, see CRETE. H.
* Rangabes in his 'EAAtjj/iko (Hi. 453-579) has of
* CRE'TIANS. [Chutes.]
sketched the ancient history and the geographical
features of Crete (mountains, rivers, promontories,
* CRIB. This is the rendering (A. V.) of
and harbors, with an enumeration of the cities and D'DM, t. y. in Is. i. 3. The word denotes (from
villages), and (though some readjustment may be
necessary for the present time) furnishes valuable D3S, to fodder-) the place from which cattle and
statistics respecting the horses were accustomed to eat their food, but throws
population of the island at
different periods (Greeks monastic no light on the sort of structure provided for that
and Turks), its
establishments, products, exports, imports, and the purpose. It was, no doubt (for such usages in the
like. This author represents KaAot Ai/xeves as an East remain the same from age to age), a box or
insecure roadstead, to which vessels resorted only trough " built of small stones and mortar," or hol-
in great distress, in accordance with its reputa- lowed out of an entire block, such as the fanners
tion among seamen in Paul's time (Acts xxvii. 8). of the country use at the present time. Dr. Thom-
He supposes the Laswa which was near there to son mentions an incident connected with these con-
be the " Lisia " of the Peutinger Table, but says trivances which illustrates a Scripture passage. At
nothing of any place still known by that name Tiberias, as "the droves of cattle and donkeys
(Las.ua). He mentions the interesting fact that came down from the green hills " at night, " I hur-
Phoenix or Phoenice (Acts xxvii. 12) had its own ried after them and no sooner had we got
. . .
bishops at an early period, and that one of them within the walls than the droves began to disperse.
named Leon was present at the second Nicene Every ox knew perfectly well his owner, his house,
Council. He speaks of this Phoenix as near Lutro and the way to it, nor did he get bewildered for a
(\ourp6v), but evidently had no idea that they moment in the mazes of these narrow and crooked
were identical (see Phcenice). The opinion of so alleys. As for the asses, they walked straight to
eminent an archaeologist on these points deserves the door, and up to their master's crib. ... I fol-
to be considered. The more recent publications of lowed one company clear into their habitation, and
Capt. Spratt, R. N. (Sailing Directions for the saw each take his appropriate manger, and begin his
Island of Crete, and Travels and Researches in evening meal of dry tibn. Isaiah (i. 3, 4) says in all
Crete) have added largely to our knowledge of this they were wiser than their owners, who neither
the topography of the island. Mr. Smith has knew nor considered, but forsook the Lord, and
availed himself of these later discoveries, with good provoked the Holy One of Israel." Land and —
effect, in his admirable work on the Voyage and Book, ii. 97.
Shipwreck of St. Paul (3d ed. 1866). The "mangers" of the N. T. were probably like
One of the observations reported by navigators the "cribs" of the Old. The new Paris edition
is that on the south side of Crete a light southerly of Stephens's Thesaurus Greece Lingua; adopts
wind is often succeeded by a typhoon, which strikes the representation in Suicer's Thes. Eccles. ii. 1420,
down from the high mountains on the island, as that <pa.Ti>7) is " properly a hollow place in the stable
happened to Paul's vessel in going from Fair Ha- which contains the food of animals; " that "it is a
vens to Phcenice (Acts xxvii. 13, 14). It is said part of the stable, and each of the horses has his
that this fact favors the interpretation of t$a\e own (parvn or table, as it were, before him. Here
tear avrris (mentioned in the article above and (pdrv-n and Tpawe£a (crib and table) are used in-
adopted in several of the later English Commenta- terchangeably." But while the writers admit
ries) which refers aiirrjs to the island (down from that sense in Luke xiii. 15 (where the A. V. has
it) and not to the ship. ( Voyage and Shipwreck of " stall ") they regard the word as employed out of its
St. Paul, 3d ed. p. 99). It was true, no doubt, that proper signification in the passages relating to the
the wind in that instance came from the high land nativity of our Lord, and as " standing there by
on shore, but it does not follow that tear' aurrjs for a stable in which was a crib."
metonymy But
points out that circumstance. No proof has been such an exception to the usual meaning is the less
^iven that fSaWw, as said of winds, was actually necessary here, because the locality of the (pdrvrf
used thus with the genitive of the quarter whence may imply the stall, if for any reason that be re-
the wind came. Lechler's view (Der A]X>stel Ge- quired. Undoubtedly the true conception of the
schichten, p. 348, in Lange's Bibelwerk) seems to history is that the holy family, excluded from the
be more correct, that ourfjs refers to the vessel part of the caravanserai (KaraKv/jia) allotted to
which the wind struck and drove out to sea, with the part where the animals
travellers, repaired to
vavs as the mental antecedent, which (actually em- were, and the birth taking place there, the new-
ployed in ver. 41 ) could so easily take the place here born child was laid in one of the feeding-troughs
of Luke's usual irKoiov- This is the explanation within reach. They are not ill adapted to such a
also of Winer (V. Tea. Gram. § 47, 5, h) and of use; for Dr. Thomson states (Land and Book, ii.
Puttmann (Neuteit. dram. p. 127). It is known to 98) that "his own children have slept in them in
the writer that Prof. Sophocles of Harvard College his rude summer retreats on the mountains." The
interprets Luke here in the same manner. H. Arabic translation from the Vulgate by the Maro-
nite bishop Serkis en-Kurr (under Pope Urban
* CRETES (Kprjres: Creies), inhabitants of VIII.) adjusts the rendering to this view of the
Crete (.Acts ii. 11),where probably Jews and pros- word. Dr. Van Dyck says that he has no doubt
elytes aremeant (comp. 'Poiyuaibi —
lovSaioi re Ktxl of the correctness of such a translation." The
Kpoa-b.hvTOi in the previous verse) ; while for the writer found this to be a common use of <pdrm)
same term we have Cretians (A. V.) in Tit. i. 12, among the modern Greeks. Biel (Thes. Philol.
applied there to native Greeks. "Cretans " would iii. 534) states very correctly the Sept. usage, and
be a better rendering, says Trench (Auth. Vers. in accordance with the foregoing view. H.
p. 78. ed. 1859), in both passages. The subscrip-
tion to the Epistle to Titus (A. V.) states that it a * From a note of Dr. Van Dyck to the writer.
508 CRIMSON CROSS
CRIMSON. [Colors.] " summum jus, summa crux," Colum. i. 7 ; " quserere
* CRISPING-PINS. The Hebrew word malo crucem," Ter. Phorm. iii. 3, 11), and as a
so in
nickname for villains ("Quid ais, crux?" Plaut.
translated in Is. iii. 22, D^tS^n, charitim, de-
Pen. ii. 5, 17). Rarer terms are &Kpwv (Euseb.
notes the reticules, often, probably, elegant and viii. 8), cr&vis (?), and Gabalus (Varro ap. Non. ii.
highly ornamented, carried by the Hebrew ladies. 373; Macrinus ap. Capitol. Macr. 11). This last
In 2 K. v. 23, the only other passage in which it word
is derived from 722, "to complete."
occurs, it is rendered bugs. See Bag, 1. A. .
£v\ov (Deut. xxi. 22). The Fathers, in controversy, ardentes diadematum gemmas patibuli Salvatoris
used to quote the words 6 Kvpws ifiaaiAevcrev pictura condecorat" (Ep. ad Lvtam).
(airb rod £v\ov), from Ps. xiv. 10, or Ps. xcvi., We may tabulate thus the various descriptions
as a prophecy of the cross; but these words are of cross (Lips, de Cruce, i. ; Godwyn's Moses and
" adulterina et Christiana devotione addita though
;
'
'
Aaron) :
—
Genebrardus thought them a prophetic addition of Crux.
the LXX., and Agellius conjectures that they read
(Heaych. s. v. o-kSko^). coming out at the mouth Britan.), " the character of Venus," and more cor-
(Son. /:'/>. xiv.), a method of punishment called rectly (as by Lacroze) " the emblem of life." In-
dvaffKivSvKevffis, or infixio. The affixio consisted deed this was the old explanation {tp^vevQiiaav
merely of tying the. criminal to the stake {ad pedum (Tij/uacai ravTnv ypacp^v Zco)j iivipxofxivr), Sozo-
deUgare, Liv. xxvi. 13), from which he hung by men, Hist. Eccl. vii. 15; so too Kutinus (ii. 2:)),
his arms: the process is described in the little poem who says it was one of the " iepariKai vel sacer-
of Ausonius, Cupido cniri/i.riis. Trees were nat- dotales littene"). "The Egyptians thereby ex-
urally convenient for this purpose, and we read of pressed the powers and motion of the spirit of the
their being applied to such use in the .Mart yr- world, and the diffusion thereof upon the celestial
ologies. Tertullian too us (Apol. viii. lfi) that and elemental nature" (Sir T. Browne, Gard. <;/'
tells
to punish the priests of Saturn, Tiberius " in eisdem Cyrus). This too was the signification given to it
arboribus, obumbratricibus scclerum, votivis crucibus by the Christian converts in the army of Theodoshts,
explicuit" (cf. Tae. Germ, xii., " Proditores et trans- when they remarked it on the temple of Serapis,
fugas arboribus suspendunt "). How far the expres- according to the story mentioned in Suidas. The
sion "accursed tree" is applicable under this head same symbol has been aLso found among the Copts,
is examined under the word CRUCIFIXION. and (perhaps accidentally) among the Indians and
2. The crux decussata is cal'ed St. Andrew's Persians.
cross, although on no good grounds, since, accord- 4. The crux immissa (or Latin cross) differed
ing to some, he was killed with tiie sword; and from the former by the projection of the S6pu
Hippolytus says that he was crucified upright, " adinl/rjA.oj' (or Stipes) above the Kfpas iyKapmov, or
arborem olivae." It is in the shape of the Greek patibulum (Euseb. de V. Constant, i. 31). That
letter X (Jerome, in Jer. xxxi. X
" this was the kind of cross on which our Lord died
littera et in ;
figura crucem, et in numero decern demonstrat," is obvious (among other reasons) from the mention
Isidor. Orig. i. 3). Hence Just. Mart. (Di<d. c. of the " title," as placed abwe our Lord's head, and
Tryph. p. 200) quotes Plato's expression, ix'iafcvfrom the almost unanimous tradition it is repeat- ;
aorbv iv rip iravri, with reference to the cross. edly found on the coins and columns of Const an-
The Fathers, with their usual luxuriant imagination,
tine. Hence ancient and modern imagination has
discover types of this kind of cross in Jacob's been chiefly tasked to find symbols for this sort of
blessing of Joseph's sons, -^ipaiv ivt\Kkayp.ivais cross, and has been eminently successful. They
(cf. Tert. de Baptismo, viii.); in the anointing of
find it typified, for instance, in the attitude of
priests " decussatively "(Sir T. Browne, Garden Moses during the battle of Rephidim (Ex. xvii. 12),
of Cyrus); for the rabbis say that kings were saying that he was bidden by the Spirit, 'iva Trotijcrri
anointed " in forma corona?, sacerdotes autem tvttov arravpov Kal too /xtWovros izaffx^ 1 "
s
3 'PDD, i. e. ad formam Groeeorum" (Schcett- (Barnab. Ep. 12; Just. Mart. DM. c. Tryph. 89;
X habitus crucis, Tert. adv. Marc. iii. 18). Firmic.
gen's Hor. Hebr. et Talm. iv. ad J'.); and in the
Maternus (de Errore, xxi.) says (from the Tal-
crossing of the hands over the head of the goat on
mudistsV) that Moses made a cross of his rod, " ut
the day of expiation (Targ. Jonath. ad Lev. xvi.
facilius impetraret quod magnopere postularet,
21, &c).
crucem sibi fecit ex virga." He also fantastically
3. The crux commissa,or St. Anthony's cross
applies to the cross expressions in Hab. iii. 3-5; Is.
(so called from being embroidered on that saint's ix. Other supposed types are Jacob's ladder
6, &c.
cope, Mrs. Jameson's Sacred Art, i. xxxv.), was in
(Jer. Com. in Ps. xci. "Dominus innixus scala; ;
the shape of a T. Hence Lucian, in his amusing Christus crucifixus ostenditur," August. Serm. de
Ai'/ctj (pwvnii/Twv, jocosely derives irravpos from
Temp, lxxix. the paschal lamb, pierced by trans- ) ;
Tau {enrb t6vtou Kal r/p rtx v VfJ aTL T V novriptp verse spits
. . -
{(TxnixaTi^6fi.ivov 6/j.oioos r<p ax'hfiaTi
t^v wovvpdv iiroovv/jLiav cvveKdriv), and makes rov ffraupov oirrarat, Just. M. Dial. c. Tryph.
mankind accuse it bitterly for suggesting to tyrants and " the Hebrew Tenupha, or ceremony of
40) ;
As that letter happens to stand for 300, opportunity truer type (John iii. 14) is the elevation (i*^^S^p ,
was given for more elaborate trifling; thus the 300 Chald.) of the fiery serpent (Num. xxi. 8, 9). For
cubits of the ark are considered typical (Clem. Alex. some strange applications of texts to this figure see
Strom, vi. S. Paullin. Ep. ii.) and even Abraham's
; ; Cypr. Testim. ii. xx. ff. In Matt. v. 18, 'ixra tv
318 servants (!); since 318 is represented by t»tj, 1) jui'o Ktpaia is also made to represent a cross (1
they deduced rbv /xiv 'l-naovv iv to<s dvert ypdp- io-Ti rb bpQbv ^vXov Kal Kepaia rb wkdywv,
paaiv Kal iv ivl rbv ffTavp6v (Barnab. Ep. ix. Theophyl. in loc, Ac.). To the four a.Kpa of the
Clem. Alex. Strom, vi.; Ambros. Prol.inLi.de cross they also applied the ityos Kal @ddos Kal
Fide; Pearson (art. iv.) On the Creed, in whose irKdros Kal pr\Kos of Eph. iii. 18 (as Greg. Nyss.
notes these passages are quoted). and Aug. Ep. 120); and another of their fancies
A variety of this cross (the crux ansata, " crosses was that there was a mystical significance in this
with circles on their heads") is found "in _^ S6pv TfTpdirAevpov (Noun. In ./"A. xix. 18), be-
the sculptures from Khorsabad and the cause it pointed to the four corners of the world
'
|[
ivories from Nimroud. M. Lajard ( Obsei-va- ^ ("Quatuor hide plagas quadrati colligit orbis,"
'ions sur la Croix ansee) refers it to the Assyrian Sedul. iii. ). In all nature the sacred sign was found to
symbol of divinity, the winged figure in a circle; be indispensable (KaTavortaare iravra iv rep K6fffj.y
"
but Egyptian antiquaries quite reject the theory (I avev too ffx^f-o-ros tovtov SiotKelrat, Just. M.
(Layard's Nineveh, ii. 213, note). In the Egyptian Apol. i. 72), especially in such things as involve
510 CROSS CROSS
dignity, energy, or deliverance; as the actions of appear to be of oak. The legend to which he
digging, plowing, &c, the human face, the anten- alludes,
na of a ship in full sail, &c. " Aves quando volant " Pes crucis est cedrus, corpus tenet alta cupressue,
ad aethera signum crucis assumunt. Homo natans, Palma manus retinet, titulo laetatur oliva,"
vel orans, forma crucis visitur " (Jer. in Marc. xi.).
hardly needs refutation. It must not be overlooked
" Signa ipsa et cantabra et vexilla quid aliud quam
that crosses must have been of the meanest and
inauratae cruces sunt V
(Min. Fel. Oct. xxix.).
readiest materials, because they were used in such
Similar analogies are repeated in Firm. Matern. de
marvelous numbers. Thus we are told that Alex-
Errore, xxi. ; Tert. a/h. Nat. i. 12; Apol. 16; de
ander Jannaeus crucified 800 Jews (Joseph. Ant.
Coron. Mil. 3, and, in answer to the sneers of
14, § 2); and Varus 2000 (id. xvii. 10, § 10);
xiii.
those to whom the cross was "foolishness," were
and Hadrian 500 a -day; and Titus so many that
considered sufficient proof that " signo crucis aut
Xoipa T€ iveKftTrero rols cravpols Kal cravpol
ratio naturalis nititur aut vestra religioformatur"
rots o-difiao-iv (Joseph. B. J. vi. 28, where Ke-
(Min. Fel., &c). The types adduced from Script-
land rightly notices the strange retribution, " so
ure were valuable to silence the difficulties of the
that they who had nothing but crucify in their '
'
M. Tryph. 91, who (more suo) compares it to the noted by the fathers in John xix. 24 (Theophyl.
horn of a rhinoceros; sedilis excessvs, Tert. adv. ad he. and Tert. " Tunc Petrus ab altero cingitur
Nat. i. 12; " ubi requiescit qui clavis affigitur," cum cruci astringitur "). On the other side we
Iren. adv. Hceres. i. 12). This was to prevent the have the expression irpoo-n\ovcrdat, and numberless
weight of the body from tearing away the hands, authorities (Sen. de Vit. Beata, 19 Artemidor. ;
since it was impossible that it " should rest upon Oneirocr., in several passages; Apul. Met. iii. 60;
nothing but four great wounds " (Jer. Taj'lor, Life Plaut. Mostel. ii. 1, 13, et passim). That our
of Christ, iii. xv. 2, who erroneously quotes the Lord was nailed, according to prophecy, is certain
S6pv TerpdnXevpov of Nonnus). This projection (John xx. 25, 27, Ac; Zech. xii. 10; Ps. xxii. 16:
is probably alluded to in the famous lines of Mae- " Foderunt manus meas et pedes, quae propria
cenas (ap. Sen. Ep. 101): — atrocitas crucis," Tert. adv. Marc. iii. 19, &c;
" Vita dum superest bene est iipv^av, LXX. although the Jews vainly endeavor ;
calls it \tvKWfjia (Hist Keel. ii. 1), and Nicephorus vention" of the cross, Socrates (If. E. i. 17) only
a \ei>K^) aavis (B. Keel. viii. 29). But Nicquetus mentions the hand-nails; and that only two were
(Tit. Sand. Crucis, i. 6) says it was white with found is argued by AViner (s. v. Kreuzigtmg) from
red letters. the ra uev, to. 5e (instead of robs /ueV) in Theodor.
A common tradition assigns the perpetual shiver //. /<;. i. 17. Romish writers, however, generally
of the aspen to the fact of the cross having been follow Gregory of Tours (De Glor. Mart, vi.) in
formed of its wood. Lipsius, however (de Cruce, maintaining four, which may also be implied by the
iii. 13), thinks it was of oak, which was strong plural in Cypr. de Pussione ("clavis pedes . . .
enough, and common in Judaea. Few will attach terebrantibus " ), who also mentions three more,
any consequence to his other reason, that the relics used to nail on the title. Cyprian is a very good
CROSS CROWN 511
authority, because he had often been a witness of Bosius (de Cruce iriumphante et gloriosa, Ant-
executions. There is a monograph on the subject werp, 1617); Gretser (de Cruce Christi); and
by Corn. Curtius (de clams domimeis, Antw. 1670). Bartholinus (Hypomnemata de Cruce); very much
What has been said sufficiently disproves the may also be gleaned from the learned notes of
calumny against the Albigenses in the following Bishop Pearson (On the Creed, art. iv.). Other
very curious passage of Lucas Tudensis (ii. contra authorities are cited or alluded to in the article it-
Albig.): " Albigensis primi pinxerunt imaginem self. [Crucifixion.] F. W. F.
crucifixi uno clavo simul utrumque pedemconfigente,
et virginem Mariam Monoculam (!) utrumque ;
CROWN (rn£>3?)- This ornament, which
in derisionem : sed postea prior figura retenta est, is both ancient and universal, probably originated
et irrepsit in vulgarem faniam." (Quoted by Jer. from the fillets used to prevent the hair from being
On the supposed fate of the nails, dishevelled by the wind. Such fillets are still com-
Taylor, I. c.)
see Theodor. H. E. i. 17. Constantine fastened mon, and they may be seen on the sculptures of
Persepolis, Nineveh, and Egypt; they gradually
one as a <pv\a.KTi)piov on his horse's bridle, and
developed into turbans (Joseph. Ant. iii. 7, § 7),
one (Zonaras says some) on the head of the statue
which he intended to be the palladium of Constan- which by the addition of ornamental or precious
materials assumed the dignity of mitres or crowns.
tinople, and which the people used to surround with
lighted torches (Mosheim, Eccl. Hist. ii. 1, 3, and The use of them as ornaments probably was sug-
gested by the natural custom of encircling the head
notes). The clams pedis dextri is shown at Treves
with flowers in token of joy and triumph. (" Let
(Lips. ii. 9, note).
The story of the so-called " invention of the us crown ourselves with rosebuds," Wisd. ii. 8; 3
cross," A. D. 326, is too famous to be altogether Mace. vii. 16; Jud. xv. 13, and the classical writ-
ers,passim; Winer, s. v. Krauze). The first
passed over. Besides Socrates and Theodoret, it is
mentioned by Rufinus, Sozomen, Paulinus, Sulp. crown was said to have been woven for Pandora by
the Graces (comp. crityavos xapiroiv, Prov. iv. 9
Severus, and Chrysostom, so that Tillemont (Mem.
Ecc. vii.) says that nothing can be more certain;
= (TTecpavos raiv Trvev^aTiKwu x a-P lffP-a.TO>v, Lex.
day the supposed title, or rather fragments of it, Claud. Saturnius (" praestantissimus in hac materia
are shown to the people once a year in the church commentator "). Another tradition says that Nim-
of Sta. Croce in Gerusalemnie at Rome. On the rod was the first to wear a crown, the shape of which
capture of the true cross by Chosroes II., and its was suggested to him by a cloud
(Eutychius Alex-
heim, ii. 4, 5). On its subsequent worship (latria) Lev. viii. 9, so called from the Tetragrammaton in-
by the < 'hurch of Rome, see Jer. Taylor's Diss. scribed on it; Sopranes, de Re Vest. Jud., p. 441).
It had a second fillet of blue lace (e| vaudvQov
from Popery, i., ii. 7, 12; and on the use of the
sign in our Church, Hooker's Eccl. Pol. v. 65. ireTroiKi\/j.6i>os, the color being chosen as a type of
Some suppose an allusion to the custom in Ez. ix. heaven), and over a golden diadem ("1J3, Ex.
it
4 (Poli Synope. ad loc. ; Gesen. s. v. VI; signum xxix. 6), calyx like
"on which blossomed a golden
spec, cruciforme, Sixt. Sen. ii. 120). the flower of the doo-Kvafios " (Joseph. Ant. iii. 6).
Lipsius, de Cruce The gold band (V" ?* LXX. ireraKov, Orig. i\a<r-
1
Besides the noble monograph of
(from which we have largely borrowed, and whose ri)piov, Das Stirnblatt, Luther) was tied behind
wealth of erudition has supplied every succeeding with blue lace (embroidered with flowers), and be-
writer on the subject with abundant authorities), ing two fingers broad, bore the inscription (not in
there are works by Salmasius (de Cruce, Epp. 3); bas-relief as Abarbanel says) " Holiness to the
Kippingius (de Cruce et Cruciariis, Brem. 1671); Lord." (Comp. Rev. xvii. 5; Braunius, de Vest.
512 CROWN CROWN OF THORNS
ISacerd. 22; Maimon. de Apparatu TempK, ix.
ii.
n3"n3, the crown of priesthood; and J*T137Q,
1; Eeland, Antiq. ii. 10; Carpzov. Appur. Crit. p.
85; Joseph. B. J. v. 5, § 7; Philo, de Vit. Mods, the royal crowri, better than all, which is "IHD
iii. 519.) Some suppose that Josephus is describ-
ing a later crown given by Alexander the Great to
3110 DW, the crown of a good name (Carpzov.
Jaddua. (Jennings's Jew. Ant. p. 158.) The use Apparat. Critic, p. 60 Othonis Lex. Talm. s. v. ;
besides those mentioned; as "^S, the head-dress Quid. s.*'. o-recpauiKbi/ TfAecrfxa). [Diadem.]
of bridegrooms, Is. lxi. 10, LXX.; Bar. v.
The chief writers on crowns are Gaschalius (de
fxirpa,
Coronis libri x.) and Meursius (de Corona, Hafniae,
2; Ez. xxiv. 17 (toi'x&'A' ')' and of women, Is.
1671). For others, see Fabricius, Bibl. Ant. xiv.
iii. 20 (ijXTr\6Kiov^)\ iTT'pVj a head-dress of 13. F. W. F.
great splendor (Is. xxviii. 5); rP")y, a wreath of CROWN OF THORNS (ffr^avos e'| hitav-
flowers (crrecpavos), Prov. i. 9, iv. Qa>v, Matt, xxvii. 29).
9: such wreaths Our Lord was crowned
with thorns in mockery by the Roman soldiers.
were used on festal occasions (Is. xxviii. 1).
^1^2^, The object seems to have been insult, and not the
a common tiara or turban, Job xxix. 14; Is. iii. infliction of pain, as has generally been supposed.
23 (but LXX. SiirXois, depto-rpov). The words The Ehamnus or Spina Christi, although abundant
(as in the case of Inarus, Thuc. i. 30; Gen. xl. from the curse in Deut. xxi. 23. Among the Bo-
19), the Carthaginians (as in the case of Hanno, mans also the degradation was a part of the inflic-
&c., Val. Max. ii. 7 ; Sil. Ital. ii. 344), the Per- tion, since it was especially a servile supplicium
sians (Polycrates, &c, Herod, iii. 125, iv. 43 Esth. (Tac. //. iv. 11; .luv. vi. 218; Hor. Sat. i. 3, 8, &c;
;
Indians (id. ii. 18), (Winer, s. v. Kreuziyung,) only in the case of the vilest criminals, thieves,
Germans (possibly, Tac. Germ. 12), and very fre- &c. (Joseph. Ant. xvii. 10, § 10; B. J. v. 11, § 1;
quent from the earliest times (reste suspenditu, Liv. Paul. Sent. v. tit. xxiii. Lamprid. Alex. Bev. 23). ;
zov. Apparat. Crit. p. 591). The Hebrew words sults to which our Lord was subjected were illegal,
said to allude to it are i"w.Pl (sometimes with the and arose from the spontaneous petulance of the
brutal soldiery. But the punishment properly com-
addition of V??'"' 'V hence the Jews in polemics menced with scourging, after the criminal had been
>
adopted by Tarquin, as a pest mortem disgrace, to 14, § 9), nor yet the examination by torture (Acts
prevent the prevalence of suicide. It seems on the xxii. 24), but rather a scourging before the sentence,
whole that the Rabbis are correct in asserting that to excite pity and procure immunity from further
this exposure is intended in Scripture, since the punishment (Luke xxiii. 22; John xix. 1); and if
Mosaic capital punishments were four (namely, the this view be correct, the <ppayf\\<i>cras in Matt.
sword, Ex. xxi., strangling, tire, Lev. xx., and ston- xxvii. 26 is retrospective, as so great an anguish
ing, Deut. xxi.). Philo indeed says (de Leg. spec.) could hardly have been endured twice (see Poli
33
514 CRUCIFIXION CRUCIFIXION
Synopsis, ad loc). How severe it was is indicated (or pesca, the common drink of liornan soldiers,
in prophecy (Ps. xxxv. 15; Is. I. 6). Vosslus con- Spart. Hadr.; Plaut. Mil. Gl. iii. 2, 23), which
siders that it was partly legal, partly tentative was put on a hyssop-stalk and offered to our Lord
{Harm. Pass. v. 13). in mocking and contemptuous pity (Matt, xxvii.
The criminal carried cross, or at any 48; Luke xxiii. 36); this He tasted to allay the
his own
rate a part of it qui sero, &c. 9; Ar- agonies of thirst (John xix. 29).
(Plut. de iis
temid. Oneirocr. ii. 61; John xix. 17; " Patibulum Our Ixird was crucified between two " thieves " a
ferat per urbem, deinde afiigatur cruci," Plaut. Car- or " malefactors " (then so common in Palestine,
bnnar.). Hence the term Eurcif'er, =
crossbearer. Joseph. B. J. ii. 6, &c), according to prophecy (Is.
This was prefigured by Isaac carrying the wood in liii. 12); and was watched according to custom by
Gen. xxii. 6, where even the Jews notice the paral- a party of four soldiers (John xix. 23) with their
lel; and to this the fathers fantastically applied the centurion (/couo-rccS/a, Matt, xxvii. 66 " miles qui ;
expression in Is. ix. 6, " the government shall be cruces assurabat," Petr. Sat. iii. 6; Plut. Vit. Cleom.
upon'his shoulder.'' They were sometimes scourged c. 38 ), whose express office was to prevent the sur-
and goaded on the way (Plaut. Mostel. i. 1, 52). reption of the body. This was necessary from the
" In some old figures we see our Lord described lingering character of the death, which sometimes
with a table appendent to the fringe of his gar- did not supervene even for three days, and was at
ment, set full of nails and pointed iron " (Jer. last the result of gradual benumbing and starva-
Taylor, Life of Christ, iii. xv. 2. " Haerebas ligno tion (Euseb. viii. 8; Sen. Proc. 3). But for this
quod tuleras," Cypr. de Pas. p. 50). [Simon of guard, the persons might have been taken down
Cyrene.] and recovered, as was actually done in the case of
The place of execution was outside the city a friend of Josephus, though only one survived out
(" post urbem," Cic. Verr. v. 66; " extra portam," of three to which the same 8epaireia eV/jUcAeo-TOTTj
Plaut. Mil. Gl. ii. 4, 6 1 K. xxi. 13 Acts vii. was applied ( Vit. c. 75).
; ; Among the ConvuLsion-
58; Heb. xiii. 12; and in camps "extra vallum "), naires in the reign of Louis XV. women woidd be
often in some public road (Quinct. Duel. 275) or repeatedly crucified, and even remain on the cross
other conspicuous place like the Campus Martins three hours we are told of one who underwent it ;
(Cic. pro Rabirio), or some spot set apart for the 23 times (t'neijcl. Mctr. s. v. Cross); the pain con-
purpose (Tac. Ann. xv.). This might sometimes sisted almost entirely in the nailing, and not
be a hill ( Val. Max. vi. ) it is however merely tra- more than a basinful of blood was lost.
; Still we
dition to call Golgotha a hill ; in the Evangelists it cannot believe from the Martyrologies that Yictor-
is called tSttos [Calvary]. Arrived at the place inus (crucified head downwards) lived three days,
of execution, the sufferer was stripped naked (Ar- or Timotheus and Maura nine days. Fracture of
temid. Oneirocr. ii. 58), the dress being the per- the legs (Plaut. Paen. iv. 2, 64) was especially
quisite of the soldiers (Matt, xxvii. 35; Dig. xlviii. adopted by the Jews to hasten death (John xix.
2'), 6); possibly not even a cloth round the loins 31 ), and it was a mitigation of the punishment, as
was allowed him at least among the Jews the rule observed by Origen. But the unusual rapidity of
;
was "that a man should be stoned naked," where our Lord's death was due to the depth of his previ-
what follows shows that " naked " must not be taken ous agonies (which appears from his inability to
in its restricted sense. The cross was then driven bear his own cross far) and to his mental anguish
into the ground, so that the feet of the condemned (Schoettgen, Hot. Hebr. vi. 3; De Pass. Messwe),
were a foot or two above the earth (iri pictures of or may be sufficiently accounted for simply from
the crucifixion the cross is generally much too large peculiarities of constitution. There is no need to
and high), and he was lifted upon it ("agere," "ex- explain the "giving up the ghost" as a miracle
currere," "tollere," "ascenderc in crucem;" Pru- (Heb. v. 7?), or say with Cyprian, "Prevento car-
dent, irepl crTe<p; Plaut. Mostel. "Crticisahui;" Id. nificis officio, spiritum sponte dimisit" (adv. De-
Bacch. ii. 3. 128; avrjyov, i\yov, i\yov els IxKpov metr.). Still less can the common cavil of infidel-
re\os, Greg. Naz.), or else stretched upon it on the ity be thought noteworthy, since had our Lord
ground, and then lifted with it, to which there seems been in a swoon the piercing of his pericardium
to be an allusion in a lost prophecy quoted by Barna- (proved by the appearance of lymph and blood)
bas (Ep. 12), 'irav %vXov K\i8rj Ka\ ava<rrfj (Pear- would have insured death. (See Eschenbach,
son on Creed, Art. iv.). The former method was Ojntsc. Med. de •Servatore non apparenter sed
the commoner, for we often read (as in Esth. vii. vere nwrtuo, and Gruner de Morle Christi non
10, &c.) of the cross being erected beforehand in sipioptica, quoted by Jahn in the Arch. Bibl.)
terrorem. Before the nailing or binding took place Pilate expressly satisfied himself of the actual
(for which see Cross), a medicated cup was given death by questioning the centurion (Mark xv. 44);
out of kindness to confuse the senses and deaden and the omission of the breaking of the legs in this
the pangs of the sufferer (Prov. xxxi. 6), usually case was the fulfillment of a type (Ex. xii. 46).
of olvos iiTfivpfito-fievos or \e\t/3a.vu>/Aevos, as Other modes of hastening death were by lighting
among the Jews (Lightfoot, /lor. /Ithe. ad Matt. fires under the cross (hence the nicknames S>rr-
xxvii.), because myrrh was soporific. Our Ix>rd re- mendtii and Semaxii, Tert. Apotog. c. 50), or let-
fused it that his senses might be clear (Matt, xxvii. ting loose wild beasts on the crucified (Suet. N'er.
34; Mark xv. 23. Maimon. Sanked. xiii.). St. 49).
Generally the body was suffered to rot on the
Matt, calls it o|or/iero x°^ s (V5^)> an expres-
cross (Cic. Tusc. Q. i. 43; Sil. Ital. viii. 486), by
sion used in reference to Ps. lxix. 21, but not strictly the
action of sun and rain (Herod, iii. 12), or to be
accurate. This mercifully intended draught must devoured
by birds and beasts (Apul. de Aur. Asia.
not be confounded with the spongeful of vinegar
c. 6; Hor. Ep. i. 16, 48; Juv. xiv. 77). Sepulture
n * The malefactors ( K aKovpyoi) crucified with the but " robbers "
(Atjotoi)- The Greek makes a distinc-
Baviour were not -t thieves " (k\<=itt<ju) as in the A. V., tion bet veen the terms (John x. 8). See Thieves.
II.
CRUCIFIXION CRUCIFIXION 515
was generally therefore forbidden, though it might would have surely prevented the journey to
I feet
Emmaus. Influenced, it appears, by this consid-
be granted as a special favor or on grand occasions
(Ulp. 1. ix. De <>// Pascons.). eration, Dr. Paulus published an Essay in 1792,
But in consequence
asserting that the feet of persons crucified were not
of Deut. xxi. '22, 23, an express national exception
was made in favor of the Jews (Matt, nailed to the cross, but rather bound to it by cords.
xxvii. 58 cf. ;
death, and the kind of physical suffering endured, down freely. The point in question is one of con-
which we shall very briefly abridge from the treatise siderable interest and a brief survey of the evidence
of the physician Uichter (in Jahn's Arch. Bibl.). which relates to it is therefore inserted. (1.) The
These are,The unnatural position and violent
1. narrative of Luke seems to imply
(see xxiv. 39),
tension of the body, which cause a painful sensation that the feet, as well as the hands, of Jesus were
from the least motion. 2. The nails being driven nailed to the cross. For, according to this narra-
through parts of the hands and feet which are full tive, when the two disciples whom Christ had
of nerves and tendons (and yet at a distance from joined on their way to Emmaus had returned to
the heart) create the most exquisite anguish. 3. Jerusalem and were reporting to the eleven what
The exposure of so many wounds and lacerations thev had seen and heard, Jesus himself stood in
brings on inflammation, which tends to become the midst of the astonished group, saying " Peace :
gangrene, and every moment increases the poignancy be unto you " ; and then, for the double purpose
of suffering. 4. In the distended parts of the body of enabling them to identify fully his person, and
more blood flows through the arteries than can be ascertain that his body was real, he added " See :
which we may add, G. Burning and raging thirst. afforded evidence of his possessing a genuine body,
This accursed and awful mode of punishment as complete as could have been gained by touching
was happily abolished by Constantine (So/om. i. 8), his feet also. But if he wished to convince them
probably towards the end of his reign (see Lips. that they were looking once more upon their Lord,
de Cruce, iii. 15). although it is curious that we who had risen with his own body from the dead,
have no more definite account of the matter. " An it was natural for him to call their attention to
edict so honorable to Christianity," says Gibbon, those parts of his body which would enable them
" deserved a place in the Theodosian code, instead most surely to identify it, that is, to those which
of the indirectmention of it which seems to result bore the marks of his recent crucifixion. Hence
from the comparison of the 5th and 18th titles of the fact that he showed them his hands and his
the 9th book" (ii. 154, note) feet affords evidence that the marks of his peculiar
An
explanation of the other circumstances attend- death were visible in them both. (See Meyer,
ing the crucifixion belongs rather to a commentary Bleek, Alford, in he.) Moreover, the narrative of
than a dictionary. On the types and prophecies John (see xx. 19 ff. ), which probably describes the
of it, besides those adduced, see Cypr. Testim. ii. same meeting of Jesus with his disciples, confirms
20. On the resurrection of the saints, see Light- the interpretation now given to the words preserved
foot ad Mutt, 52 (there is a monograph by
xxvii. by Luke. For, John declares that Christ " showed
Gebaverius —
Dissert, de Resur. sanctorum cum unto them both (koI, repeated, Tisch.) his hands
Christo). On other concomitant prodigies, see and his side " evidently, as appears from the whole
;
Schoettgen, Hot. Hebr. et Talmud, vi. 3, 8. [Dark- tenor of the account, that they might identify
ness; Ck<>ss.] The chief authorities are quoted him beyond a doubt by the known marks of violence
in the article, and the ancient, ones are derived in on his body, and thus assure themselves of his
part from Lipsius of whose most interesting treatise,
; actual resurrection. That John does not mention
De Cruce, an enlarged and revised edition, with the feet of Christ, is surely no evidence that they
notes, would be very acceptable. On the points were not shown for the same purpose as his hands
in which our Lord's crucifixion differed from the and his side. (2.) Justin Martyr twice refers to
ordinary Jewish customs, see Othonis Lex. Rab- the nailing of Christ's feet as a fulfillment of the
biiiiriiiri. s. v. Supplicia; Bynoeus de Morte J. prophecy in Ps. xxii. 17. (See Ajwl. i. c. 35 Dial, ;
ChrisH; Vossius, II" cm. Passwms; Carpzov, Ap- c. Tryph. c. 97.) In the former passage he says:
parai. Crit. p. 591 ff. &c. [See also Friedlieb, " But the sentence, they pierced my hands and '
Stroud, Physical cause of the Death of Christ, hands and feet on the cross "; and in the latter:
Lond. 1847 and for very full references to the
:
'•
In the twenty-second Psalm David did thus
literature of every part of the subject, Hase, Lehtn typically speak of his cross and passion: 'They
Jesu, 5<> Aufl. Leipz. 1865. A.] —
F. W. F. pierced my hands and my feet.' For when they
* The question, whether the/ee< of Jesus were crucified him they pierced his hands and his feet
nailed to the cross, has a bearing on the reality of by driving nails into them." Justin distinctly
his death and resurrection; for, if they were, it affirms that the feet as well as the hands of Christ
cannot reasonably be supposed that, having been were nailed to the cross, and that by this act a
restored, without a miracle, from a merely apparent prediction of the 0. T. respecting him was fulfilled.
death, he was able to walk the same day many But he does not intimate that his crucifixion dif-
miles through a hilly country. The wounds of his fered in any respect from the same punishment
516 CRUCIFIXION CRUSE
as it was usually inflicted upon criminals. Had he method. The nailing of the feet of Jesus to the
recognized the nailing of his feet as a peculiarity. cross may therefore be said to rest on satisfactory
he would have been likely to call attention to it evidence; but whether a single nail was driven
as aggravating his suffering. He may have been through both feet, or they were fastened separately
misled by the Septuagint version as to the meaning to the cross, cannot be ascertained with any degree
of the verse quoted from the 22d Psalm, but he of certainty. Literature Paulus, in Memorab. iv. :
would hardly have ventured to appeal, without 36 ff. Comment, iii. 764 ff. ; Exeget. Haiidb. iii.
;
explanation, to its fulfillment in the manner of ii. 669 ff. ; Hug, in the Freib. Zeitschrift, iii. 167
( 'hrist's death, had it not been customary in his ff. v. 18 ff. vii. 141 ff. Biihr, in Hiiffel und Hey- ;
own day to nail the feet of persons crucified to the denreich's Zeitschrift, ii. ii., and in Tholuck's Liter.
cross. That he was acquainted with the process Anzeig. 1835, Nos. 1-6 "Winer, de Pedum Affixione, ;
tullian, who also lived before this kind of punish- Life of Christ, Amer. ed. p. 318, note; Andrews's
ment was prohibited, speaks of the nailing of the Life of our Lord, p. 537. A. H.
feet in crucifixion. (See Adv. Marc. iii. 19). He
refers to the twenty-second Psalm as " containing
CRUSE, a word employed in the A. V., appa-
rently without any special intention, to translate '
words show that Tertullian regarded nailing the with the idea of width comp. ampulla, from am-
;
hands and feet as a characteristic and most dread- pins). Some clew to the nature of this vessel is
ful feature of death by the cross. And it is not perhaps afforded by its mention as being full of
easy to believe that such writers as Justin Martyr water at the head of Saul when on his night expe-
and Tertullian were unacquainted with this method dition after David (1 Sam. xxvi. 11, 12, 16), and
of punishment, so frequent in their times, or that also of Elijah (1 K. In a similar case in
xix. 6).
they were likely, in refuting adversaries, to bring the present day this would be a globular vessel of
forward a passage from the 0. T. as prophetic of blue porous clay —
the ordinary Gaza pottery —
( 'hrist's death, the words of which were but half about 9 inches in diameter, with a neck of about 3
fulfilled in an ordinary crucifixion. (Compare inches long, a small handle below the neck, and
Winer, Renlw. i. G79.) (4.) A passage in Plautus opposite the handle a straight spout, with an orifice
(
Mostellaria, ii. 1 ) appears to favor the view that size of a straw, through which the water
about the
the feet were nailed to the cross. It is the language drunk or sucked. The form is common also in
is
of a slave on the approach of his master, against Spain, and will be familiar to many from pictures
whom he had committed many offenses during his of Spanish life. A similar globular vessel probably
absence. He cries out in fear of the punishment contained the oil of the widow of Zarephath (1 K.
which might be inflicted on himself: —
xvii. 12, 14, 16). For the "box" or "horn" in
" Ego dabo
which the consecrated oil was carried on special
ei talentum, primus qui in crucem excu-
occasions, see Oil.
currerit
Sed ea lege, ut affigantur bis pedes, bis brachia." 2. The noise which these vessels make when
emptied through the neck is suggestive of the
The unusual severity of punishment is here expressed
second term, Bakbuk, p^Slp?, probably like the
by the word bis ; the structure of the sentence does
not point to the nailing of the feet as peculiar. (5. Greek bombulos, PojxfiuAos, an onomatopoetic word.
Reference is made by several writers of the fifth This is
found but twice a "cruse of honey," 1 —
century to certain nails which the Empress Helena K. xiv. 3;
and an "earthen bottle," Jer. xix. 1.
3. Apparently very different from both these is
found with the true cross and sent to Constantine
her son. (Socrates, H. E. i. 17; Theodoret, H. E. the other term, Tzeldchdh, 7M1^"% (found also
i. 18; Sozomen, //. E. ii. 1; Kufinus, H. E. ii. 8;
Ambrose, Oratio de obitu Theodos. 47.) But the in the forms iTl"]/^ and HrT^), from a root
statements of these writers are apparently contra- (H7!S) signifying to sprinkle; or perhaps from
dictory, and certainly of little value. (6.) The fol-
lowing classical writers have also been referred to 77^2, to ring, the root of the word for cymbal.
on the point in question. Xenophon Ephesius (iv. This was probably a flat metal saucer of the form
2) asserts that in Egypt the hands and feet were still common in the East. It occurs 2 K. ii. 20,
simply bound to the cross, but this only proves "cruse;" xxi. 13, "dish;" 2 Chr. xxxv. 13,
that the Egyptian method of crucifixion differed "pans;" also Prov. xix. 24, xxvi. 15, where the
from the Roman. Lucan (Phar. vi. 543 ff. ) men- figure is obscured by the choice of the word
tions the nailing of the hands and the use of cords, "bosom." G.
but he does not aim to give a full account of cruci- * What is related of "the cruse of water"
fixion, and the cords may have been used to bind placed by Saul's " bolster " as he slept in the cave,
the body more firmly to the cross. (See Winer, which David so quietly removed without awaking
Realm, i. 678.) In the mock crucifixion of Amor, him (1 Sam. xxvi. 12), and of "the cruse of water
described by Ausonius (Idyl. viii. 56 ff.), the at the head" of Elijah as "he lay and slept be-
propria atrocia cmcis would have been out of neath a juniper-bush " (1 Kings xix. 5, 6), accords
place, and no one can be surprised that the victim's perfectly, says Thomson, with the habits of Eastern
hands and feet are represented as merely bound to life at this day. " No one ventures to travel over
the tree. And though the dialogue of Lucian the deserts there without his cruse of water and it ;
(Prometh. i. 2) speaks only of nailing the hands, is very common one at the bolster, so that
to place
it describes no proper crucifixion, and hence gives the owner can reach it during the night. The
no trustworthy evidence in respect to the usual Arabs eat their dinner in the evening, and it is
CRYSTAL CUCUMBERS 517
generally of such a nature as to create thirst, and Schneider with the Storm-petrel ( T/ialassidroma
the quantity of water which they drink is enormous. pelagica), the Procellaria pelagica of Liunseus.
The cruse is, therefore, in perpetual demand." The Scholiast on Aristophanes (Pfostm) describes
{Land and Book, ii. 21.) H. the cepphus as a light kind of gull. Suidas, under
the word Keircpos, says, " It is a bird like a gull,
CRYSTAL, the representative in the A. V. of
light of body, and sails over the waves." The
the Hebrew words zecticith (iTp^ST) and kerach notion held by the ancients that the cepphus lived
on the foam of the sea, may perhaps be traced to
(rnr?.).
the habit the petrels have of seeking their food,
1. Zecucith (ua\os' vitram) occurs only in Job
ifcc, in the midst of an agitated and frothy sea;
xxviii. 17, where wisdom is declared to be more
the folly ascribed to the bird, whence the Greek
valuable than " gold and the crystal." Notwith- verb
Keir<p6opai, " to be easily deceived " (see LXX.
standing the different interpretations of " rock in Prov. viii
22), may have some foundation in the
crystal," "glass," "adamant," &c, that have been
fact that these birds when on the nest will allow
assigned to this word, there can, we think, be very themselves to be taken by the hand. The etymol-
little doubt that " glass " is intended. The old ogy of the Hebrew word points to some "slender"
versions and paraphrases are in favor of this inter- bird. It is very improbable, however, that this
pretation. The Targum has zegougitha, by which diminutive bird, which would be literally but a
the Talmudists understand " glass-" The Syriac mouthful, is signified by the ihachaph ; and per-
has zagugitto ; the Arabic zujnj, i. e. "glass." haps therefore, as Mr. Tristram suggests to us,
Schultens (Comment, in Job. 1. c.) conjectures that some of the larger petrels, such as the Puffinus
the words zahab uzecueith (fP^D^ 2HT) are a cmereus and P. cmglorum (shearwater), which
he'ndiadys to denote " a valuable glass or crystal abound in the east of the Mediterranean and which
goblet," or "a glass vessel gilt with gold," such a are similar in their habits to the storm-petrel, may
one perhaps as that which Nero is reported to have be denoted by the Hebrew term." Of the Laridfe
broken to pieces in a fit of anger (Pliny, II. N. the Larus fmcus and the L. argentatus are two
xxxvii. 2). Cary (Job /. c.) translates the words common species of Palestine. W. H.
" golden glass; " and very aptly compares a passage
in Wilkinson (Anc. Egypt, ii. 61, ed. 185-4), who.
CUCUMBERS (CWE^i?, Ustehtufcm : oi
cucumeres). This word occurs once only,
speaking of the skill of the Egyptians in making ctIkvol:
in Num. xi. 5, as one of the good things of Egypt
glass, says "they had even the secret of introducing
for which the Israelites longed. There is no doubt
gold between two surfaces of glass, and in their
as to the meaning of the Hebrew word, which is
bottles a gold band alternates within a set of blue,
found with a slight variation in the Arabic, Syriac,
green, and other colors." It is very probable that
Ethiopic, &c, to denote the plant now under con-
the zecuciih of Job (I. c.) may denote such a work
sideration (see Celsius, Hierob. ii. 247). Egypt pro-
of art as is referred to in this quotation. [Glass.]
duces excellent cucumbers, melons, &c. [Melon],
2. Kerach (Kpi/ffraWos '
crystallum) occurs in
Cucumis chate being, according to Hasselquist
numerous passages in the 0. T. to denote "ice," the
(Trav. p. 258), the best of its tribe yet known.
"frost," &c. ; but once only (Ez. i. 22), as is gen-
This plant grows in the fertile earth around Cairo
erally understood, to signify " crystal: " " And the
after the inundation of the Nile, and not elsewhere
likeness of the firmament was as the color
which is somewhat sweet and
of the magnificent crystal." The ancients sup- in Egypt. The fruit,
cool, is eaten, says Hasselquist, by the grandees
posed rock-crystal to be merely ice congealed by
intense cold; whence the Greek word KpuaraWos,
and Europeans in Egypt as that from which they
least to apprehend. Prosper Alpinus (Plant.
from Kpvos, "cold" (see Pliny, N. II. xxxvii. 2). have
cucumber as
The similarity of appearance between ice and crystal JEgypt. xxxviii. p. 54) speaks of this
follows " The Egyptians use a certain kind of
:
caused no doubt the identity of the terms to express
these substances. The A. V., following the Vulg., cucumber which they call chate. This plant does
not differ from the common kind, except in size,
translates the epithet (STISH) " terrible " in color, and tenderness it has smaller, whiter, softer,
;
Ez. (I. c); the word would be better rendered and rounder leaves, and the fruit is longer and
"splendid." It has the same meaning as the greener than ours, with a smooth soft rind, and
Latin spectabilis. The Greek KpinrraWos occurs more easy of digestion." The account which
in Rev. iv. ii, xxii. 1. It may mean either "ice" Forskal (Fhr. jEgypt. p. 168) gives of the Cu-
or "crystal." Indeed there is no absolute necessity cumis chate, which he says is called by the Arabs
to depart from the usual signification of the Hebrew Abdellavi or Adjur, does not agree with what Has-
kerach in Ez. (/. <\). The upper vault of heaven selquist states with regard to the locality where it
may well be compared to " the astonishing bright- is grown, this plant being, according to the testi-
ness of ice" (see Harris, Nat. Hist, of Bible, art. mony of the first-named writer, " the commonest
Crystal). W. H. fruit in Egypt, planted over whole fields." The C.
CUBIT. [Measures.] chate is a variety only of the common melon (C.
melo) it was once cultivated in England and called
;
\dpos'- lanis). There does not appear to be any rather an insipid sort. Besides the Cucumis chate,
authority for this translation of the A. V.; the the common cucumber ( C. sativus), of which the
Heb. word occurs only in Lev. xi. 16; Deut. xiv. Arabs distinguish a number of varieties, is comnton
15, as the name of some unclean bird. Bochart in Egypt. This grows with the water-melons; the
(Hieroz. iii. 1) has attempted to show that shachaph poor people boil and eat it with vinegar; the richer
denotes the Cepphus. The (K(Tr<pos) of Aristotle
(Anim. Hist. viii. 5, § 7; ix. 23, § 4), Nicander a p. einereus and P. anglorum are both exposed
(Alexipharm. 165), and other Greek writers, has for sale as articles of food in the Arab markets on the
been, with sufficient reason we think, identified by coast.
518 CUMMIN 3UP-BEARER
people fillwith flesh and aromatics, and make a
it Egyptian cups were of various
kind of puddings, which, says Hasselquist (p. 257), shapes, either having handles oi
eat very well. " Both Cucumis ckate and C. without them. In Solomon's
gativus" says Mr. Tristram, "are now grown in time all his drinking vessels
great quantities in Palestine: on visiting the Arab were of gold, none of silver (1
school in Jerusalem (1858) I observed that the K. x. 21). Babylon is com-
dinner which the children brought with them to pared to a golden cup (Jer. Ii. 7).
school consisted, without exception, of a piece of Assyrian cups from Khorsa-
barley cake and a raw cucumber, which they eat bad and Nimroud may be seen
rind and all." figured in Layard (Nin. ii. 303,
The prophet Isaiah (i. 8) foretells the desolation 304; Nin. and Bab. 186, 190,
that was to come upon Judah and Jerusalem in 192), some perhaps of Phoeni-
these words: "The
daughter of Zion is left as a cian workmanship, from which
cottage in a vineyard, as a lodge in a garden of source both Solomon and the
cucumbers, as a besieged city." The cottage or Assyrian monarch possibly de-
lodge here spoken of is a rude temporary shelter, rived both their workmen and
erected in the open grounds where vines, cucum- the works themselves. The cups
bers, gourds, &c, are grown, in which some lonely- and other vessels brought to
man or boy is set to watch, either to guard the Assyrian cup with Babylon by Nebuchadnezzar
plants from robbers, or to scare away the foxes and handle. (Layard, "lay thus have been of Phceni-
jackals from the vines. Dr. Thomson (Land and ii. 303.) cian origin (Dan. v. 2).
Bool; ii. 11) well illustrates this passage of Script- On the bas-reliefs at Persep-
ure, and brings out its full force. The little wood- olis many figures are represented
cut which he gives of the lodge at Butaiha repre- bearing cups or vases which may
sents such a shelter as is alluded to above: by and fairly be taken as types of the
by, when the crop is gathered and the lodge for- vessels of that sort described in
saken, the " poles will fall down or lean every way, the book of Esther (Esth. i. 7
and the green boughs with which it is shaded will Assyrian drinking- Xiebuhr, Voynae, ii. 106; Char-
cup. (Layard, ii.
be scattered by the winds, leaving only a ragged dili) Voyages, vm. p. 268; PI.
sprawling wreck —
a most affecting type of utter lviii.). The great laver, or
desolation." " sea," was made with a rim like the rim of a cup
It is curious to observe that the custom of keep- " with flowers of lilies " (1 K. vii. 26), a form
( Cos),
ing off birds, &c, from fruit and corn by means of which the Persepolitan cups resemble (Jain, Arch.
a scarecrow is as old as the time of Baruch (vi. 70) § 144). The common form of modern Oriental cups
[or Epist. of Jer. 70] " As a scarecrow (itpoflaff- is represented in the accompanying drawing
: :
—
k6.vlov) in a garden of cucumbers keepeth
nothing, so are their gods of wood," &c.
W. H.
7 Cant. i. 5 (of the black hair-cloth of which the for it is said "Cush begat Nimrod " (Gen. x. 8; 1
;
tents of the real Bedoueen are still composed ). Chr. i. 10). If the name be older than his time
2. Mdsdc, TJDT2 the " hanging " for the door- he may have been called after a country allotted to
:
way of the tabernacle, Ex. xxvi. 36, 37, xxxv. 15, him. The following descendants of Cush are
enumerated: his sons, Seba, Havilah, Sabtah or
xxxvi. 37, xxxix. 38, xl. 5; Num. iii. 25, iv. 25:
Sabta, Raamah, and Sabtechah or Sabtecha; his
and also for the gate of the court round the tab-
grandsons, the sons of Raainah, Sheba and Dedan
ernacle, Ex. xxvii. 16, xxxv. 17, xxxviii. 18, xxxix.
40, xl. 33 Num. iii. 26, iv. 26. Amongst these and Nimrod, who, as mentioned after the rest,
;
Is. xxii. 8.
all passages except Gen. ii. 13. We may thus dis-
tinguish a primeval and a post-diluvian Cush. The
3. Dt'ik, p^T. There is nothing to guide us to former was encompassed by Gihon, the second river
the meaning of this word. It is found but once of Paradise. It would seem, therefore, to have been
(Is. xl. 22), in a passage founded on the metaphor somewhere to the northward of Assyria. It is
of a tent. G. possible that Cush is in this case a name of a pe-
riod later than that to which the history relates, but
CUSH (ti^S [see the word below]: Xovcri; it seems more probable that it was of the earliest
[Vat. Sin. -tref-] sEthiopis, and Chusi), a Benja- age, and that the African Cush was named from
mite mentioned only in the title to Ps. vii. There this older country. Most ancient nations thus
isevery reason to believe this title to be of great connected their own lands with Paradise, or with
antiquity (Ewald, Psalmen, p. 9). Cush was prob- primeval seats. In this manner the future Para-
ably a follower of Saul, the head of his tribe, and dise of the Egyptians was a sacred Egypt watered
had sought the friendship of David for the purpose by a sacred Nile; the Arabs have told of the ter-
520 CUSH CUSHI
restrial Paradise of Sheddad the son of 'A'd, as part of the north shore, and in the great islands.
sometimes seen in their deserts; the Greeks located These must have been sea-faring peoples, not wholly
the all-destroying floods of Ogyges and Deucalion unlike the modern Malays, who have similarly
in Greece and the Mexicans seem to have placed a spread on the shores of the Indian Ocean. They
;
similar deluge in America all carrying with them may be always traced where very massive architect-
;
their traditions and fixing them in the territories ural remains are seen, where the native language is
where they established themselves. The Cushan partly Turanian and partly Semitic, and where the
mentioned in Hah. (iii. 7) has heen thought to be native religion is partly cosmic or high nature-wor-
an Asiatic post-diluvian Gush, but it is most rea- ship, and partly fetishism or low nature-worship.
sonable to hold that Gushan-rishathaim is here in- These indications do not fail in any settlement of
tended [Cushan]. In the ancient Egyptian in- Cushites or Mizraites with which we are well ac-
scriptions Ethiopia above Egypt is termed Keesh or quainted. [Ethiopia.] R. S. P.
Kesh, and this territory probably perfectly corres- * U^S, as the name of a country, is translated
ponds to the African Gush of the Bible. The
in the A. V. "Ethiopia" or "Ethiopians," in all
<'ushites however had clearly a wider extension, like
the passages in which it occurs except Is. xi. 11.
the Ethiopians of the Greeks, but apparently with
A.
a more definite ethnic relation. The settlements
of the sons and descendants of Cush mentioned in CU'SHAN
flttfaS: AttiWes; [Sin.i E0i-
Gen. x. may be traced from Merou to Babylon, and oires'] ^Ethiopia, Hab. iii. 7), possibly the same
probably on to Nineveh. We have not alone the as Cushan-rishathaim (A. V. Chushan-) king of
African Cush, but Seba appears to correspond to Mesopotamia (Judg. iii. 8, 10). The order of
Meroe, other sons of Gush are to be traced in Ara- events alluded to by the prophet seems to favor this
bia [Arabia, Raamaii, &c], and Nimrod reigned supposition. First he appears to refer to for-
in Babylonia, and seems to have extended his rule mer acts of Divine favor (ver. 2); he then speaks
over Assyria. Thus the Cushites appear to have of the wonders at the giving of the Law, " God
spread along tracts extending from the higher Nile came from Teman, and the Holy One from Mount
to the Euphrates and Tigris. Philological and Paran " and he adds, " I saw the tents of Cushan
;
ethnological data lead to the same conclusion. in affliction: [and] the tent-curtains of the land
There are strong reasons for deriving the non- of Midian did tremble," as though referring to the
Semitic primitive language of Babylonia, variously fear of the enemies of Israel at the manifestations
called by scholars Gushite and Scythic, from an of God's favor for His people. Cushan-rishathaim.
ante-Semitic dialect of Ethiopia, and for supposing the first recorded oppressor of the days of the
two streams of migration from Africa into Asia in Judges, may have been already reigning at the time
very remote periods the one of Nigritians through of the entrance into Palestine.
; The Midianites,
the present Malayan region, the other and later one, certainly allied with the Moabites at that time,
of Cushites, "from Ethiopia properly so called, feared the Israelites and plotted against them (Num.
through Arabia, Babylonia, and Persia, to Western and it is noticeable that
xxii., xxiii., xxiv., xxv.);
India" (Genesis of the Earth, <fc, pp. 214, 215). Balaam was sent for from Aram (xxiii. 7), perhaps
Sir H. Rawlinson has brought forward remarkable the Aram-naharaim of the oppressor. Habakkuk
evidence tending to trace the early Babylonians to afterwards alludes to the crossing of Jordan or the
Ethiopia particularly the similarity of their mode
;
Red Sea, or both, (ver. 8-10, 15,) to the standing
of writing to the Egyptian," and the indication in still of the sun and moon (11), and apparently to
the traditions of Babylonia and Assyria of " a con- the destruction of the Canaanites (12, 13, 14).
nection in very early times between Ethiopia, There is far less reason for the supposition that
Southern Arabia, and the cities on the Lower Eu- Cushan here stands for an Asiatic Cush. [Chu-
phrates," the Cushite name of Nimrod himself as SHAN-RlSHATHAIM.] R. S. P.
a deified hero, being the same as that by which
Meroe is called in the Assyrian inscriptions (Raw-
CUSHI OttftB : Xovo-i [Vat. -<re«] Chmi), :
a Ideographic writing seems characteristic of Tu- partly or wholly, in spite of their after knowledge of
ranian nations at least such alone have kept to it
;
phonetic characters.
CUTHAH CUTTINGS 521
he was recognized a long distance off by the watch- forbidden, or was at least tolerated. The ground,
man. therefore, of the prohibition must be sought else-
where, and will Ve found in the superstitious or in-
CU'THAH or CUTH (n^JPIS, rVO human practices prevailing among heathen nations.
XovOd [Vat. Xouvda, Alex. Xoua], Xou0 [Alex, A notion apparently existed that self-inflicted bald-
omits] Joseph. Xovdos'- Oatha), one of the coun-
;
ness or mutilation had a propitiatory efficacy in
tries whence Shalmaneser introduced colonists into respect of the manes of the dead, perhaps as repre-
Samaria (2 Iv- xvii. 24, 30); these, intermixing senting, in a modified degree, the solemnity of
with the remnant of the ten tribes, were the pro- human or animal sacrifices. Herodotus (iv. 71)
genitors of the Samaritans, who were called Cu- describes the Scythian usage in the case of a de-
thaans by the Jews, and are so described in the
ceased king, for whose obsequies not fewer than six
Chaldee and Talmud (oj Kara ttjj' 'EPpaiwi' human victims, besides offerings of animals and
yKuiTTav Xovdaioi, Kara 8e r^v 'E\\r}vcov Sojua- other effects, were considered necessary. An ex-
peiYai, Joseph, Ant. is. 14, § 3). The position of treme case of funereal bloodshed is represented on
(
'uthah is undecided; Josephus speaks of a river of the occasion of the burial of Patroclus, when four
that name in Persia, and fixes the residence of the horses, two dogs, and twelve Trojan captives are
Cuthaeans in the interior of Persia and Media (Ant, offered up
(11. xxiii. 171, 176). Together with
ix. 14, § 3, x.!J, §7). Two localities have been human or animal sacrifices at funerals, and after
proposed, each of which corresponds in part, but these had gone out of use, the minor propitiatory
neither wholly, with Josephus' a account. For the
acts of self-laceration and depilation continued in
one we depend on the statements of Arabian geog- use (//. xxiii. 141 Od. iv. 197 ; Virg. JEn. iii. 67,
;
raphers, who speak of a district and town named Ku- with Senilis ad he. xii. 605; Eurip. Ale. 425;
tha, between the Tigris and Euphrates, after which Seneca, Bippol. v. 1176, 1193). Plutarch says
one of the canals (the fourth in Xen. Anab. i. 7) that some barbarians mutilate themselves (De Con-
was named; the town existed in the time of Abul- Apollon. p. 113, vol. vi. Keiske).
sol, nil He also
feda. and its site has been identified with the ruins says that Solon, by the advice of Epimenides, cur-
of Towibah immediately adjacent to Babylon (Ains- tailed the Athenian practice in this respect (Sokm.
worth's Assyria, p. 165; Knobel, Volhertafql, p. 12—21, vol. i. pp. 184, 194). Cicero quotes a law
252); the canal may be the river to which Jo- of the twelve tables to the same effect ; " mulieres
sephus refers. The other locality corresponds with genas ne radunto " (De Ley. ii. 23).
the statement that the Cuthaeans came from the Such being the ancient heathen practice it is not
interior of Persia and Media. They have been surprising that the Law should forbid similar prac-
identified with the Cossaei, a warlike tribe, who tices in every case in which they might be used or
occupied the mountain ranges dividing those two misconstrued in a propitiatory sense. " Ye shall
countries, and whose lawless habits made them a
terror even to the Persian emperors (Strab. xi. p. not make cuttings Jbr (propter) the dead 2723 ?
524, xvi. p. 744). They were never wholly subdued (Lev. xix. 28; Gesen. p. 731; Spencer de Ley.
until Alexander's expedition; and it therefore ap- Hebr. ii. xix. 404, 405).
pears doubtful whether Shalmaneser could have But the practice of self-mutilation as an act of
gained sufficient authority over them to effect the worship belonged also to heathen religious ceremo-
removal of any considerable number; their habits nies not funereal. The priests of Baal, a Syrian
would have made such a step highly expedient, if and also an Assyrian deity, cut themselves with
The connection between the Samar- "
practicable. knives to propitiate the god "after their manner
itans and the Sidonians, as stated in their letter to (1 K. xviii. 28). Herodotus says the Carians, who
Alexander the Great (Joseph. Ant. xi. 8, § 6, xii. resided in Europe, cut their foreheads with knives
5, § 5), and between the Sidonians and the Cuthae- at festivals of Isis; in this respect exceeding the
ans as expressed in the version of the Chaldee Egyptians, who beat themselves on these occasions
Paraphrast Pseudo-Jonathan in Gen. x. 19, who (Herod, ii. This shows that the practice was
61).
substitutes D^ITO and in the Tar- not then at least an Egyptian one. Lucian, speak-
for 7,Y7!J,
where a similar change is made, ing of the Syrian priestly attendants of this
mock
gum, 1 Chr. i. 13,
says, that using violent gestures they cut
is without doubt to be referred to the traditional deity,
their arms and tongues with swords (Lucian, Asi
belief that the original seat of the Phoenicians was
nus, c. 37, vol. ii. 102, Amst. de Dea Syr. ii. 658, ;
on the shores of the Persian Gulf (Herod, i. 1).
681; comp. Ez. viii. 14). Similar practices in the
W. L. B.
worship of Bellona are mentioned by Luean (Phnrs.
CUTTING OFF FROM THE PEOPLE. i. 560), and alluded to by ^Elius Lampridius
[Excommunication.] (Comm. by Tertullian (Apol. c. and
p. 209), 9),
CUTTINGS [IN THE FLESH] Lactantius (Div. Instit. i. c. 21, 29, Paris).
((1.) He-
nunip, s. /., tt-it£7, s. m., both from en»
rodotus, speaking of means used for allaying a
storm, uses the words ei/TOfxa iroievurts, which
(Buxtorf), WW (Gesen. p. 1395), CMS; (2.) may mean cutting the flesh, but more probably
and slaves bore tattooed marks to indicate allegi- mentioned in Ps. cl. 5, V72W ^b^b^, "loud
ance or adscription. This is evidently alluded to cymbals," cymbala bene sonantia, or casta gnettes,
in the Revelation of St. John (xiii. 16, xix. 20,
and i"T27 : Pri '"'V"^^?? "high-sounding cym-
xvii. 5),
x el P*> s T ^ s 8«J'«$ xal
xdpayfjia iir) ttjs
rwv
iirl though in a contrary
(XfTdtnrwv, and, bals," cymbala jubilationis. The former consisted
direction, by Ezekiel (ix. 4), by St. Paul (Gal. vi. of four small plates of brass or of some other hard
17), in the Revelation (vii. 3), and perhaps by metal; two plates were attached to each hand of
Isaiah (xliv. 5) and Zechariah (xiii. 6). Lucian, the performer, and were smote together to produce
speaking of the priests of the Syrian deity, says, a loud noise. The latter consisted of two larger
ari^ovrai irdvres, ol ftiv is Kapirovs, oi 5e is plates, one held in each hand, and struck together
aux^vas, i;al airb rot/Se airavres 'Aaavpioi cTiy- as an accompaniment to other instruments. Asaph,
fxaTocpopeovfft (de Dea Syr. [c. 59,] ii. p. 684). Heman, and Jeduthun, the renowned conductors
A tradition, mentioned by Jerome, was current of the music of the sanctuary, employed the " loud
among the Jews, that king Jehoiakim bore on his cymbals " possibly to beat time, and to give the
body marks of kind which were discovered
this signal to the choir when it was to take part in the
after his De Leg. Hebr. ii. xx.
death (Spencer, sacred chant. Lewis says —
but he does not sup-
410). Philo, quoted by Spencer, describes the port his statement by any authority that "there —
marks of tattooing impressed on those who submit- was allowed but one cymbal to be in choir at once."
ted to the process in their besotted love for idol- The use of cymbals was not necessarily restricted to
worship, as being made by branding {ai54]pq> ire- the worship of the Temple or to sacred occasions
Kvpaiixiva), Philo, de Monarch, i. 819; Spencer, p. they were employed for military purposes, as also
416). The Arabs, both men and women, are in by the Hebrew women as a musical accompaniment
the habit of tattooing their faces, and other parts to their national dances. The "loud cymbals"
of the body and the members of Brahminical sects
;
are the same with D^Ply—Q, A. V. "cymbals,"
in India are distinguished by marks on the fore-
performed on by the band which accompanied Da-
head, often erroneously supposed by Europeans to
vid when he brought up the ark of God from Kir-
be marks of caste (Niebuhr, Descr. de I' Arab. p.
jath-jearim (1 Chr. xiii. 8).
58; Voyages, i. 242; Wellsted, Arabia, ii. 206,
445 ; Olearius, Travels, p. 299 ; Elphinstone. India, Both kinds of cymbals are still common in the
i. 195). H. W. P. East in military music, and Niebuhr often refers to
them in his travels. " B y a chez les Orientaux,"
CY'AMON (KvafidiV- Ckelmon), a place says Munk, "deux especes: l'une se compose de
bois ou de fer creux et
deux petits morceaux de
named only in Jud. vii. 3, as lying in the plain
(av\<i>v, A. V. "valley") over against (aircvavri) ronds qu'on tient entre les doigts, et qui sont con-
If by " Esdrelom " we may understand nus sous le nom de
castagnettes l'autre est com- ;
Esdrelom.
Jezreel, this description answers to the situation of posed de deux
demi-spheres creus(?s en me"tal."
the modern village Tell Kaimon, on the eastern Lampe has written a copious dissertation on ancient
114; Van de Velde, i. 330). The place was known the subject.
to Eusebius (Ka/xfiwud) and Jerome ( Cimana), The cymbals used in modern orchestras and mil-
and is mentioned by them in the Onomasticon. itary bands, and which are called in Italian piatti,
They identify it with Camon, the burial-place of are two metal plates of the size and shape of sau-
Jair the Gileadite. Robinson suggests its identity cers, one of which is fixed, and the other is held by
with Joknkam. G. the performer in his left hand. These resemble
* This last remark may be misunderstood. Dr. very closely the "high-sounding cymbals" of old,
Robinson assents to the suggestion that Jokneam and they are used in a similar manner to mark the
may be Tell Kainum (iii. 114); but (see iii. 339, rhythm, especially in music of a loud and grand
CYPRESS CYPRUS 523
character. They are generally played by the person pios t<§ yevd, Acts iv. 36), for which the A. V.
who performs on the large side drum (also an in- substitutes "of the country of Cyprus." This ori-
strument of pure percussion); and whilst he holds gin of Barnabas appeal's to have been the provi-
one cymbal in his left hand, he strikes it against dential reason why the first missionaries went to
the other which is fixed to the drum, his right hand the particular fields of labor fust visited by them
remaining free to wield the drumstick, as the large (Cyprus and the southern parts of Asia Minor),
drum only struck on one side, and with one
is where Christianity won its earliest signal victories
stick. In practice the drum and the cymbals are among the heathen. H.
struck simultaneously, and an effect of percussion
is thus produced which powerfully marks the CY'PRUS (Kvirpos)- This island was in
time. early times in close commercial connection with
Phoenicia and there is little doubt that it is re-
The noun metzilloth, nivSB, found in Zech.
;
or plates of brasswhich the people of Palestine and The first notice of it in the N. T. is in Acts iv.
Syria attached to horses by way of ornament. (See 36, where it is mentioned as the native place of
Mendelssohn's Preface to Book of Psalms; Kimchi, Barnabas. In Acts xi. 19, 20, it appears promi-
Comment, in loc. I^ewis, Origines Ilebram, Lond. nently
;
in connection with the earliest spreading of
Christianity, first as receiving an impulse among its
1724, 17G-7 Forkel, Geschichte d. Musik ; Jahn,
;
Archaeology, Amer. ed., cap. v. § 96, 2; Munk, Jewish population from the persecution which drove
Palestine, p. 456; Esendier, Did. of Music, i. the disciples from Jerusalem, at the death of Ste-
chus Epiphanes), they were under the dominion of famous. The mountains also produced metals,
Ecypt, and were governed by a viceroy who was especially copper. This circumstance gives us an
possessed of ample powers, and is called in the in- interesting link between this island and Judoea.
scriptions tTTparriybs ical vavapxos Kal apx^p^os The copper mines were at one time farmed to
6 Kara vqcrov (comp. Boeckh, Corp. Insc. No. Herod the Great (Joseph. Ant. xvi. 4, § 5), and
tV
2624). Crates, one of these viceroys, was left by there is a Cyprian inscription (Boeckh, No. 2628)
Sostratus in command of the castle, or acropolis, which seems to refer to one of the Herods. The
of Jerusalem while he was summoned before the history of Cyprus is briefly as follows After be- :
—
king. W. A. VV. ing subject to the Egyptian king Amasis (Herod.
* Barnabas, who was Paul's associate in his first ii. 182) it became a part of the Persian empire (ib.
missionary journey, was a Cyprian by birth (Kvir- iii. 19, 91), and furnished ships against Greece in
524 CYRAMA CYRENE
the expedition of Xerxes (ib. vii. For a time the other. Its surface is a table-land descending
90).
it was subject to Greek influence, but again be- by terraces to the sea; and it was celebrated for its
came tributary to Persia. After the battle of Issus, climate and fertility. It is observable that the ex-
it joined Alexander, and after his death fell to the pression used in Acts ii. 10, " the parts of Libya
share of Ptolemy. In a desperate sea-fight off about (Kara) Cyrene," exactly corresponds with a
Salamis at the east end of Cyprus (b. c. 30G) phrase used by Dion Cassius (Aifivr) rj irepl Kvpr)-
the victory was won by Demetrius Polioreetes, — vr\v, liii. 12), and also with the language of Jose-
but the island was recovered by his rival, and after- phus ({) irpos Kvpy)vr)v Ai/3u7j; Ant. xvi. 6, § 1).
wards it remained in the power of the Ptolemies, [Libya.]
and was regarded as one of their most cherished The points to be noticed in reference to Cyrene
possessions. It became a Boman province (b. c. as connected with the N. T. are these, —
that,
08) under circumstances discreditable to Pome. though on the African coast, it was a Greek city;
that the Jews were settled there in large numbers
and that under the Romans it was politically con-
nected with Crete, from which it is separated by no
great space of sea. The Greek colonization of this
part of Africa under Battus began as early as b. e.
631 and it became celebrated not only for its com-
;
Luke's language is in the strictest sense correct. Creta-Cyrene. Under Constantine they were
Further confirmation is supplied by coins and in- again separated. [Ckete.J
scriptions, which mention other proconsuls of Cyprus
not very remote from the time of Sergius Paul-
us. The governor appears to have resided at Pa-
phos on the west (if the island. Under the Poman
empire a road connected the two towns of Paphos
and Salamis, as appears from the Pent. Table.
One of the most remarkable events in this part of
the history of Cyprus was a terrible insurrection of
the Jews in the reign of Trajan, which led to a
massacre, first of the ( ireek inhabitants, and then
of the insurgents themselves (Milman, Hist, of Jews, Tetradrachm (Attic talent) of Cyrene.
iii. Ill, 112). In the 9th century Cyprus fell into
Obv. Sacred silphium plant. Itev. KYPA. Head of
the power of the Saracens. In the 12th it was in
bearded Jupiter Amnion to the right.
the hands of the Crusaders, under our king Richard
I. Materials for the description of Cyprus are sup- The notices above given of the numbers and po-
plied by Pococke and Von Hammer. Put see espe- sition of the Jews in Cyrene (confirmed by Philo,
cially Engel's Ki/pros, Berlin, 1843, and Boss's who speaks of the diffusion of the Jews airb rod
Iteisen nach Kos, Ilalikarnassos, lihoilos, u. der irpbs Ai/Zuyv Karafiadixov /ue'xpt t&v bpiaiv Ai0i-
Insel Cypern, Halle, 1852. J. S. H. oirias, <idv. Flacc. p. 523) prepare us for the fre-
quent mention of the place in the N. T. in connec-
* CYRA'MA, 1 Esdr. v. 20, an incorrect form
tion with Christianity. Simon, who bore our
in the A. V. ed. 1611, and other early editions, for
Saviour's cross (Matt, xxvii. 32; Mark xv. 21;
ClKAMA. A.
Luke xxiii. 26), was a native of Cyrene. Jewish
CYRE'NE (Kvpyvr)), the principal city of that dwellers in Cyrenaica were in Jerusalem at Pente-
part of northern Africa, which was anciently called cost (Actsii. 10). They even gave their name to
Cyrenaica, and also (from its five chief cities,) Pen- one of the synagogues in Jerusalem (ib. vi. It).
tapolitaua. This district was that wide projecting Christian converts from Cyrene were among those
portion of the coast (corresponding to the modern who contributed actively to the formation of the
Tripoli), which was separated from the territory of Gentile church at Antioch (ib. xi. 20), and
first
Carthage on the one hand, and that of Egypt on among those who are specially mentioned as labor-
CYRENIAN CYRENIUS 525
tng at Antioch when Barnabas and Saul were sent by Augustus (Dion Cass. Iii. 23), that none should
3n their missionary journey Lucius of Cyrene (ib. bold an imperial province for less than three or
is
\\\\. 1), have been the first more than five 3'ears, Varus cannot have been gov-
traditionally said to
bishop of his native district. Other traditions con- ernor of Syria during the twelve years from B. C.
nect Mark with the first establishment of Chris- 6 to A. d. 6. Who then were the missing govern-
tianity in this part of Africa. ors? One of them has been found, L. Volusius
" legatus Syrise "
The antiquities of Cyrene have been illustrated Saturninus, whose name occurs as
in a series of recent works. See Delia Cella, lagyto on a coin of Antioch, A. D. 4 or 5.
I
But his pro-
da Tripoli, &c, Genoa, 1819; Pacho, Voyage dans consulate will not fill the whole time, and one or
In Ufarmarique, la Cyrenaique, &c, Paris, 1827- two governors must be supplied between Varus,
182!); Trige,i2ei Cyrenemee, Hafn. 1848: Beechey, ending 4 b. C, and Volusius, 4 or 5 a. d.
Expedition to explore the north coast of Africa, Just in that interval falls the census, of which it
&c, London, 1828; Barth, Wanderwigen dwch das is said in Luke ii. 2, that it irpdrv iyevero vye-
Punische u. Kyrendische Kiistenland, Berlin, 1849; jxovevovTos T/js 'Xvpias Kvpt\viov Could Quirinus .
Hamilton, Wanderings in North Africa, London, have been governor at any such time? From Jan.
1856. J. S. H. to Aug. B. c. 12 he was consul. Soon after that
he triumphed over the Homonadenses (" Mox ex-
* CYRE NIAN (YLvpnvulos: Cyrenmus), Mark
pugnatis per ( ilieiam Homonadensium castellis in-
xv. 21; Luke xxiii. 26; Acts vi. 9, a native or in-
signia triuniphi adeptus," Tac. Ann. iii. 48). Now
habitant of Cyrene, which see. The adjective
Zumpt applies the exhaustive process to the prov-
also occurs in the original, 2 Mace. ii. 23; Matt.
inces which could by any possibility have been un-
xxvii. 32; Acts xi. 20, xiii. 1. A.
der Quirinus at this time, and eliminates from the
CYRE'NIUS (Kvpfrios: [Cyrinus], Luke ii. inquiry Asia Pontus and Bithynia —and Gala- —
2). the literal English rendering in the A. V. of the tia. Cilicia only remains. But at this time, as he
Greek name, which is itself shows, that province had been reduced by successive
the Greek form of the
Roman name Quirinus diminutions, had been separated (Dion Cass, liv. 4)
(not Quirinius; see Meyer,
in foe. ; Suet. Tiber. 49; Tac. Ann. ii. 30, iii. 48). from Cyprus, and as is shown by the history of—
The full name is Publius Sulpicius Quirinus. He the misconduct of Piso soon afterwards, who was
was consul a. u. c. 742, b. c. 12, and made gov- charged with having, as ex-governor of Syria, at-
ernor of Syria after the banishment of Archelaus in tempted " repetere provinciam armis " (Tac. Ann.
a. d. 6 (Joseph. Ant. xvii. 13, § 5). He was sent iii. 12), because he had attacked Celenderis, a fort in
to make an enrolment of property in Syria, and Cilicia (ib. ii. 78-80) — attached to the province of
made accordingly, both there and in Judaea, a cen- Syria. This Zumpt also confirms by the accounts
sus or aiToypa<p'f) (Joseph. I. c, and xviii. 1, § 1). in Tacitus (Ann. vi. 55) of the Clitse, a
41, xii.
But this census seems in Luke (ii. 2) to be identi- seditious tribe of Cilioia Aspera, who on two occa-
fied with one which took place at the time of the sions were repressed by troops sent by the governors
birth of Christ, when Sentius Saturninua was gov- of Syria.
ernor of Syria. Hence has arisen a considerable Quirinus then appears to have been governor of
difficulty, which has been variously solved, either Syria at some time during this interval. But at
by supposing some corruption in the text of St. what time t We find him in the East (Tac. Ann.
Luke (a supposition which is not countenanced by iii. 48), as datus rector C. Ceseari Armenian obti-
any external critical evidence), or by giving some nemti ; and this cannot have been during his well-
unusual sense to his words, oi/'ttj ti airoypa^y] irpii- known governorship of Syria, which began in A. D.
tt) e-yeVfTO riye/JLOvevovTos ttjs "Zvpias Kvp-qvioV' 6; for (Jaius Csesar died in A. r>. 4. Zumpt, by
Many commentators and chronologists, e. g. Peri- arguments too long to be reproduced here, but very
zonms, Ussher, Petavius, Storr, Tholuck, Wieseler, striking and satisfactory, fixes the time of his first
would render this, " was made before Q. was gov- governorship at from B. c. 4 to B. c. 1, when he
ernor of Syria," by a usage otherwise confined to was succeeded by M. Lollius.
St. John among the Evangelists. But this is very It is true this does not quite remove our diffi-
improbable, both in itself and because thus there culty. But it brings it within such narrow limits,
would have been no adequate ground for inserting that any slight error in calculation, or even the lat-
the notice. itude allowed by the words -Kpum) iyeuero, might
An unexpected light has been thrown on the well cover it.
matter lately, which renders it only necessary to In the passage of Tacitus referred to more than
refer to summaries and criticisms of the various once (Ann. iii. 48), we learn that in A. d. 21, Tibe-
hypotheses, such as that in Winer, art. Quirinius. rius asked of the Senate the honor of a public
A. W. Zumpt, of Berlin, the nephew of the dis- funeral for Quirinus. The historian describes,
tinguished grammarian, in bis Commentatio de however, his memory as not being popular for
Syria /lot a nnoriiiii prorincia n Ctttart Augusta ltd other reasons (see Ann. iii. 22), and because of
T. Vespasianum, has shown it to be probable that his "sordida et praepotens senectus."
Quirinus was tivice governor of Syria. This he For the controversy respecting the census under
supports by the following considerations :
— Quirinus, as it stood before Zumpt's discovery,
In B. C. Sentius Saturninus succeeded
'.*
M. Ti- see Winer, ut supra ; Greswell, vol. i. Dissertation
tius in the province of Syria, and governed it three xii.; Browne's Ordo Sceclorum, Appendix, ii. 40
years. He was succeeded by T. Quintilius Varus ft'.; and Wieseler, Chronologische Synapse der vier
(Joseph. Ant. xvii. 5, § 2), who, as it appears, re- Evangelien, p. 109 ff. H. A.
mained governor up to the end of 4 b. c. Thence- * Was Cyrenius or Quirinius —
not Quirinus, as
forward we lose sight of him till he is appointed to many call him —
governor or hgatue Augusti pro
the command in Germany, in which he lost his life pratlore in Syria more than once ? A. W. Zumpt,
in a. r». 7. We also lose sight of the governors in his Comment, epigraph, ii. 71-150 (Berlin, 1854)
of Syria till the appointment of P. Sulpicius Qui- lias maintained this, and his conclusions have been
rinus, in A. d. 6. Now from the maxim acted on accepted by many. Quirinius, consul in the yeai
526 CYRIA CYRUS
12 b. c. = 742 t". C, and afterwards at tlie head
CYRUS (W~V2, or ttTHS,
of an army in Africa, —
perhaps as proconsul of the
i. e . Coresh: Kv-
province of Africa in 7 B. c. =
747 U. c. (comp. pos probably from the root contained in the Pers.
;
tween 2 b. c. =
752 u. c, and 2 A. d. Here he
cf. Gesen. T/ies. s. v.), the founder of the Persian
sent to Armenia, and visited Tiberius during his 107; Xen. Cyrop. i. 2, 1), the son of Mandant,
i.
Zumpt endeavors to make out on probable grounds, sians. The tyranny of Astyages had at that time
alienated a large faction of the Medes, and < 'yrus
in the capacity of governor of that province. This
headed a revolt which ended in the defeat and cap-
could have happened only after the departure of
ture of the Median king b. c. 559, near Pasargadae
Quintilius Varus from his Syrian administration.
(Murgh-Atlb, Strab. xv. p. 730). After consolidat-
Yarus followed C. Sentiua Saturninus, is known by
coins to have been governor in 748-750 u. C. =
ing the empire which lie thus gained, 'yrus entered
6-
on that career of conquest which has made him the
<
Gesch. Ass.
p. 232).
gone beyond a numbering of the population.
T. D. W.
* CYR'IA (Kvpia- domina). supposed by some a In an inscription he is described as "Son of Cam-
to be a proper name (2 John, ver. 1). See John, bvses, the powerful king " (Col. Rawlinson, on Herod
Second and Third Epistles of. H. i."l07).
CYRUS CYRUS 527
But while the position which Cyrus occupied the permanent effects which Persia has wrought
with regard to the nations of the world is strikingly upon the world can be better traced through the
significant, the personal relations to God's people, Jewish people than through any other channel.
with which he is invested in the Scriptures, are full The laws, the literature, the religion, the very ruins
the Captivity. The sway of a temporal prince was the material world, and in this way some prepara-
at length felt to be at best only a faint image of tion was made for the crowning doctrine of Chris-
that Messianic kingdom to which the prophets tianity.
pointed. The royal power had led to apostasy in 3. The organization of the outward Church was
Israel, and to idolatry in Judith and men looked connected with the purifying of doctrine, and
;
for some other outward form in which the law served as the form in which the truth might be
might be visibly realized. Dependence on Persia realized by the mass. Prayer —
public and private
excluded the hope of absolute political freedom and —
assumed a new importance. The prophetic work
offered a sure guarantee for the liberty of religious came to an end. The Scriptures were collected.
organization. The " law was fenced " by an oral tradition. Syn-
2. The Captivity which was the punishment of agogues were erected, and schools formed. Scribes
idolatry was also the limit of that sin. Thence- shared the respect of priests, if they did not super-
forth the Jews apprehended fully the spiritual na- sede them in popular regard.
a It seems unnecessary to enter into the question zar of the Bible has found advocates in Germany
of the identity of the Cyrus of Scripture and profane (Pressel, s. v. Cyrus in Herzog's Encyklop.). It is
history, though the opinion of the Duke of Manches- impossible that the great conqueror of Isaiah can be
ter that t!ie Cyrus of Herodotus is the \«buchadiiez- merely a satrap of Xerxes
528 DABAREH DAGON
4.Above all, the bond by which " the people Issachar and yet be on the border of Zebulun, be-
of God " was held together was at length felt to cause the two tribes had a conterminous boundary.
be religious and not local, nor even primarily na- Deburieh lies in the way of the traveller in going
tional. The Jews were incorporated in different from Nazareth to Tabor. Like other Galilean vil-
nations, and still looked to Jerusalem as the centre lages, it illustrates still ancient Scripture customs.
of their faith. The boundaries of Canaan were The writer, passing there, observed booths made of
passed and the beginnings of a Spiritual dispen-
; the branches of trees on the roofs of some of the
sation were already made when the "Dispersion" houses, occupied as an apartment of the house. Al-
was established among the kingdoms of the earth lusion is made to dwelling on the house-top in some
(cornp. Niebuhr's Gesch. Assurs uud Babels, p. 224 such way as this in Prov. xxi. 9. In this place, says
ft'.; Ewald, Gesoh. d. Vottes Israel, iv. 60 ft".; Mr. Bartlett (Footsteps of our Lord ami his Ajws-
.Tost, Gescli. d. Jwlenthums, i. 13 ff). [Disper- tles, p. 199, 3d ed.), "we established our bivouac at
sion of the Jews.] B. F. W. night-fall upon the roof of a house, amidst heaps
of corn just gathered from the surrounding plain."
It isa custom that reaches back to the age of the
Canaanites. liahab who dwelt at Jericho took the
D. two Hebrew spies and " brought them up to the
roof of the house and hid them with the stalks of
DABAREH (nn^^T [pasture] : Ae&3a \ the flax which she had laid in order upon the roof"
Alex. Ae/Spa0: Dabereth), Josh. xxi. 28. This (Josh. ii. 6). The flat roof furnishes a convenient
name is incorrectly spelt in the A. V., and should place for storing such products, because, exposed
be Daberath; which see. there to the sun, they ripen or become dry more
* The A. V. inherits the orthography from the speedily, and are also more secure from pillage. •
older English versions. The pronunciation of the [House.] One of the remoter branches of the
word without Metheg, as usually read in 1 Chr. vi. Kishon has its source near Deburieh (Bob. Phys.
57 (A. V. 72), would be Dovrath. H. Geogr. p. 188). H.
DABBA'SHETH (i"lt?
4
S^: Bai6dpa0a: DA'BRIA, one of the five swift scribes who
recorded the visions of Esdras (2 Esdr. xiv. 24;
Alex. AafSao-dai- Debbnseth), a town on the boun-
comp. 37, 42).
dary of Zebulun (Josh. xix. 11 only).
* The name
DACCKBI (AaKovfr; Alex. AaKovfti; [Aid.
is properly Dabbesheth (ntt'S^T),
Aa/co/3i':] Accuba), 1 Esdr. v. 28. [Akkub.]
the vowel being changed as above by the pause. It
signifies a hump (Gesen., Furst) as of a camel
DADDE US, or SADDEUS (1 Esdr. viii.
45, 4<i ), a name which answers
Greek Ao5- to the
(comp. xxx. 6), and points therefore to a hill or
Is.
Saiios [Vat.
AaaSatos, AoSaios], or AoASaiby
town on a hill. Josephus says that Gamala was so
[Alex.; Aid. Aa55a?os, AoSSaws'- Loddeusj, which
called for a similar reason (B. J. iv. 1, § 1). Hence
is itself a corruption of Iddo (Ezr. viii. 17), aris-
Knobel (Josua, p. 458) conjectures among other
possibilities thatDabbasheth may be the present ing out of the preceding word /2. [Ini>o.]
Jebdtha, on one of the hills which skirt the plain B. F. W.
of Esdraelon (Rob. Bibl. Res. ii. 344, 2d ed.) be-
But the position
* [Arms, I. 1.] DAGGER.
tween Mejeidel and Kaiiuuu.
alone, without an affinity in the names, woidd not DA'GON (^^""l, Aayaiv, a diminutive of tt,
bear out that conclusion. H. ajkh, used in a sense of endearment: of. Gesen.
DABERATH (with the article in Josh. Thee. s.
v.), apparently the masculine (1 Sam. v.
1 Chr. vi. 72, and in Josh. xxi. 28 (where the name Ant. xiii. 4, § 5). Traces of the worship of Da-
in the original is the same, though in the A. V. gon likewise appear in the names 'aphar-Dagon <
" Dabareh "), it is stated as belonging to Issachar. .5*V (near Jamnia), and Beth-
[Dabakeii.] It is no doubt the Dabaritta (Ao- Dagon in Judah (Josh.
(SapiTTuu Kwfxr)) mentioned by Josephus (B. J. ii. xv. 41) and Asher (Josh,
21, § 3). Under the name of Deburieh it still lies xix. 27). [Beth-Da-
at the western foot of Tabor ([Rob. Bibl. Res.] ii. gon.] Dagon was rep-
350). A tradition mentioned by Van de Velde (ii. resented with the face
374) makes this the scene of the miracle on the and hands of a man and
lunatic child performed by our Lord after his de- 3 — -# the tail of a fish (1
scent from the Mount of Transfiguration (Matt, Sam. v. 4).
xvii. 14). But this event probably took place far In the Babylonian
away." G. mythology the name
* For the scene of the Transfiguration, see Fish-god. From Khorsa- Dagon, Odakon ('ndd-
bad. (Layard.)
Herwox and Tabor. Daberath could belong to Koiv), is applied to a
a * Thomson thinks that DebUrieh or Debarieh may see no reason," says Dr. Van Dyck, one of the trans-
perpetuate the name of the heroine Deborah (Land lators of the modern Arabic Bible, "against consider-
and Book, 150) but the site of Daberath and of
ii. ; ing Z)fi )n>/i t
=
Daberath, in point of etymology as
Debtiridi being so evidently the same, it is most nat- well as position."
ural to regard them as forms of the same name- "I
DAISAN DAMARIS 529
being who "rose from the waters of ers]: AaKaaia;
fish-like Aa\aiaO Dalaia). The [Alex.
the Red Sea (Berosus, in Niebuhr, Gesch. As- sixth son of Elioenai, a descendant of the royal
family of Judah (1 Chr. iii. 24).
The form was a natural emblem of fruit province of Illyricum, subsequently to Tiberius's
fish-like
fuhiess, and as such was likely to be adopted by expedition, A. d. 9. St. Paul sent Titus there (2
seafaring tribes in the representation of their gods. Tim. iv. 10); he himself had preached the Gospel
in its immediate neighborhood (Rom. xv. 19), for
the boundaries of Illyricum and Dalmatia were not
well defined, and the two names were, at the time
St. Paul wrote, almost identical. [Illykioum.]
W. L. B.
nation of the whole secret of its great and enduring minarets above the trees
which embosom them, the
charm, that which it must have had when it was city of Damascus. On the right towers the snowy
overlooking the whole scene.
the solitary seat of civilization in Syria, and which height of Heruion,
it will have as long as the world lasts. The river Close behind are the sterile limestone mountains
—
is visible at the bottom, with its green banks,
rush- so that you stand literally between the living and
" (Stanley, 8. # P., p. 410). Another
ing through the cleft; it bursts forth, and as if in the dead
a moment scatters over the plain, through a circle writer mentions among
the produce of the plain in
" walnuts, pomegranates, figs, plums, apri-
of 30 miles, the same verdure which had hitherto question
Far and cots, citrons, pears, and apples " (Addison's Dam.
j
a * There is a river of considerable size a few hours 2 K. v. 12 (Ken). This river of course is a dtettnet
Ammana. See one from the RiraJa. C. Y. A. V.
to thenorth of Damascus still called
DAMASCUS DAMASCUS 5ol
reunite, bat greatly weakened in volume, at a little streets" K. xx. 31: coup. Xic. Dam. Fr. p. 31,
(1
distance beyond the town: and the Barada flows on ml /in.). He was succeeded by his boo, BEadad
i
towards the east in a single channel for about 15 IV. (the Benhadad II. of Scripture, and the Ben-
miles, when it separates, and pours its waters into idri of the Assyrian inscriptions), who came at the
j
t\v<> small and shallow lakes, which he upon the head of thirty-two subject kings against Ahab. and
verge of the desert. Two other streams, the Wady laid siege to Samaria (1 K. xx. 1). The attack
//. upon the north, and the Atoaj upon the
Ibon was unsuccessful; and was followed by wars, in
I
south, which flows direct from Hermon, increase!which victory declared itself unmistakably on the
the fertility of the Damascene plain, and contend Israelites and at last Benhadad was
side of the :
j
for the honor of representing the " Pharpar " of taken prisoner, and forced to submit to a treaty
i
Scripture. [PHARPAR.] whereby he gave up all that bis father had gained,
According to Josephus (Ant. i. G) Damascus was and submitted in his turn to the suzerainty of
founded by L'z. the son of Aram, and grandson of Ahab (ib. xx. 13-31). i
The terms of the treaty
Sheui. It is first mentioned in Scripture in con- were perhaps not observed. At any rate three
nection with Abraham, whose steward was a native years afterward war broke out afresh, through the
'
of the place (Gen. xv. 2). We may gather from claim of Ahab to the city of Bamoth-Gilea
j
the name of this person, as well as from the state- xxii. 1-4). The defeat and death of Ahab at that
ment of Josephua, which connects the city with the place (ib. 15-37) seems to have enabled the Syrians
Aramaeans, that it was a Semitic settlement. Ac- ot Damascus to resume the offensive. Their bands
cording to a tradition preserved inravaged the lands of Israel during the reign of Je-
the native
writer. Xicolaiis, Abraham stayed for horam; and they even undertook at this time a
some time at
Damascus, after leaving Charran and before enter- second siege of Samaria, which was frustrated
in*; the promised land, and during his stay was miraculously (3 K. vi. 24, vii. 6, 7). After this.
king of the place. "Abraham's name was," he we do not hear of any more attempts against the
even in his own day familiar in the mouths Israelite capital. The cuneiform inscriptions show
of the Damascenes, and a village was shown where that toward the close of his reign Benhadad was
he dwelt, which was called after him" (Fr. p. 30). exi>osed to the assaults of a great conqueror, who
This lastcircumstance would seem however to con- was bent on extending the dominion of Assyria
flict with the notion ofAbraham having been king. over Syria and Palestine. Three several attacks
since in that case he would have dwelt hi the capi- appear to have been made by this prince upon Ben-
tal. Not hiii!.' more is known of Damascus until hadad, who, though he had the support of the
the time of David, when "the Syrians of Damas- Phcenicians, the Hittites, and the Hamathites. was
cus came to succor Hadadezer, king of Zobah," unable to offer any effectual opposition to the As-
with whom David was at war (2 Sam. viii. 5; 1 syrian arms. His troops were worsted in several
L'hr. xviii. 5). On this occasion David "slew of engagements, and in one of them he lost as many
the Syrians 22,000 men:"' and in consequence of as 20.000 men. It may have been these circum-
this victorybecame completely master of the whole stances which encouraged Hazael. the servant of
territory, which he garrisoned with Israelites. Benhadad, to murder him. and seize the throne.
"David put garrisons in Syria of Damascus: and which Elisha had declared would certainly one day
the Syrians became servants to David, and brought be his (2 K. viii. 15). He may have thought that
gifts" i-' Sam. viii. 6). Xicolaiis of Damascus the Syrians would willingly acquiesce in the re-
said that the name of the kang who reigned at this moval of a ruler under whom they had sur!'
time was Hadad: and he ascribes to him a domin- many disasters. The change of rulers was not at
ion, not only over Damascus, but over " all Syria first productive of any advantage to the Syrians.
except Phoenicia" (Fr. p. 31). He noticed his Shortly after the accession of Hazael (about B. C.
attack upon David; and related that many battles 884), he was in his turn attacked by the Assyrians,
were fought between them, the last, wherein he who defeated him with great loss amid the
suffered defeat, being " upon the Euphrates." Ac- neases of Anti-Li! .anus. However, in his other wars
cording to this writer Hadad the First was suc- he was more fortunate. He repulsed an attack on
ceeded by a son who took the same name, as did Kanioth-iidead, made by Alwziah king of Judah
his descendants for ten generations. But this is ami .lehoram king of Israel in conjunction (2 K.
irreconcilable with Scripture. It appears that in viii. 28, 29); ravaged the whole Israelite territory
the reign of Solomon, a certain Iiezon, who had east of Jordan (ib. x. 32, 33): besieged and took
been a subject of Hadadezer. king of Zobah. and Oath [ib. xii. 17: eomp. Am. vi. 2i; threatened Je-
had escaped when David conquered Zobah, made rusalem, which only escaped by paving a heavy
himself master of Damascus and established his ransom (2 K. xii. 18): and established a species of
own rule there (1 K. xi. 23-25). He was "an ad- suzerainty over Israel, which he maintained to the
versary to Israel all the days of Solomon day of his death, and handed down to Benhadad.
and he abhorred Drael. and reigned over Syria." his'son (2 K. xiii. 3-7. and 22). This prince in
Afterwards the family of Hadad appeals to have the earlier part of his reiirn had the same good for-
recovered the throne, and a Benhadad. who is prob- tune as his father. Like him. he "oppressed Is-
ably Hadad III. of Ntcolaus, a irmndson of the an- rael," and added various cities of the Israelites to
tagonist of David, is found in league with Baasha, his own dominion (2 K. xiii. 25): but at hist a de-
king of Israel, against Asa <i K. xv. 19: 2 Clir. appeared (verse 5). and Joash, the son of
liverer
xvi. '',). and afterwards in league with Asa against Jehoahaz, •• beat Hazael thrice, and recovered the
Baasha (1 K. xv. 20). He made a successful in- cities of Israel " (verse 25). In the next reign still
vasion of the Israelite territory in the reiijn of that further advantages were gained by the Israelites.
kin:: and in the rei<_'n of Omri he not only cap- Jeroboam II. (about is. c. 830) is said to have
-
tured a number of Israelite cities which he added "recovered Damascus" (ib. 28), and though m.
to his own dominions, but even seems to have ex- this may not mean that he captured the city, it at
ercised a species of lordship over Samaria itself, in least implies that he obtained a certain influence
which he acquired the right of " making himself over it. The mention of this circumstance is fol-
532 DAMASCUS DAMASCUS
lowed by a long pause, during which we hear noth- the house of Herod, held his kingdom under the
ing of the Syrians, and must therefore conclude Komans (Joseph. Ant. Jud. xvi. 11, § 9). A littie
that their relations with the Israelites continued later it was reckoned to Decapolis (Flin. H. N. v.
peaceable. When they reappear nearly a century 16), after which it became a part of the province
later (about b. c. 742) it is as allies of Israel known as Phoenicia Libanesia (Hierocl. Synced, p.
against Judah (2 K. xv. 37). We
may suspect 717). It grew in magnificence under the Greek
that the chief cause of the union now established emperors, and when taken by the Mohammedan
between two powers which had been so long hostile, Arabs in A. d. 634, was one of the first cities of the
was the necessity of combining to resist the Assyr- eastern world. It is not necessary to trace its sub-
ians, who at the time were steadily pursuing a pol- sequent glories under the Caliphs, the Saracens, and
icy of encroachment in this quarter. Scripture the Turks. It may however be noticed that there
mentions the invasions of Ful (2 K. xv. 19 1 Chr. has scarcely been an interruption to its prosperity,
;
v. 26), and Tiglath-Pileser (2 K. xv. 29; 1 Chr. v. and that it is still a city of 150,000 inhabitants.
28); and there is reason to believe that almost Damascus has always been a great centre for
every Assyrian monarch of the period made war in trade. The difficulties and dangers of the moun-
this direction. It seems to have been during a tain passes to the west of Anti-Libanus made the
pause in the struggle that Kezin king of Damascus line of traffic between Egypt and Upper Syria fol-
and Pekah king of Israel resolved conjointly to at- low the circuitous route by Damascus rather than
tack Jerusalem, intending to depose Ahaz and set the direct one through Ccele-Syria, while the trade
up as king a creature of their own (Is. vii. 1-6; 2 of Tyre with Assyria and the East generally, passed
K. xvi. 5). Ahaz may have been already suspected naturally through Damascus on its way to Palmyra
of a friendly feeling towards Assyria, or the object and the Euphrates. Ezekiel, speaking of Tyre,
may simply have been to consolidate a power capa- says, " Damascus was thy merchant in the rniilli--
ble of effectually opposing the arms of that country. tude if the wares of thy making, for the multitude
In either case the attempt signally failed, and only if all riches ; in the wine of Helbon, and white
brought about more rapidly the evil against which wool." It would appear from this that Damascus
the two kings wished to guard. Jerusalem success- took manufactured goods from the Phoenicians, and
fully maintained itself against the combined attack supplied them in exchange with wool and wine.
but Elath, which had been formerly built by Aza- The former would be produced in abundance in
riah, king of Judah, in territory regarded as Syrian Ccele-Syria and the valleys of the Anti-Libanus
(2 K. xiv. 22), having been taken and retained by range, while the latter seems to have been grown
Kezin (ib. xvi. 6), Ahaz was induced to throw him- in the vicinity of Helbon, a village still famous for
self into the arms of Tiglath-Pileser, to ask aid the produce of its vines, 10 or 12 miles from Da-
from him, and to accept voluntarily the position of mascus to the northwest (Geograph. Jour. vol.
an Asssyrian feudatory (ib. xvi. 7, 8). The aid xxvi. p. 44). But the passage trade of Damascus
sought was given, with the important result that has probably been at all times more important than
Kezin was slain, the kingdom of Damascus brought its direct commerce. Its merchants must have
to an end, and the city itself destroyed, the inhab- profited largely by the caravans which continually
itants being carried captive into Assyria (ib. verse passed through it on their way to distant countries.
9; comp. Is. vii. 8 and Am. i. 5). It is uncertain whether in early times it had any
It was long before Damascus recovered from this important manufactures of its own. According
serious blow. Asand Amos had prophesied to some expositors, the passage in Amos iii. 12,
Isaiah
Damascus should which we translate "in Damascus on a couch"
in the day of her prosperity, that
be " taken away from being a city and be a ruinous (WjV pty^"!^), means really " on the damask
heap" (Is. xvii. 1), that "a fire should be sent
indicate that the Syrian city
into the house of Hazael. which should devour the couch," which would
had become famous for a textile fabric as early as
palaces of Benhadad" (Am. i. 4); so Jeremiah,
the eighth century b. c. There is no doubt that
writing about B. C. 600, declares "Damascus is
such a fabric gave rise to our own word, which has
waxed feeble and turneth herself to flee, and fear
counterpart in Arabic as well as in most of the
hath seized on her anguish and sorrows have its
;
taken her, as a woman in travail. How is the city languages of modern Europe; but it is questiona-
ble whether either this, or the peculiar method of
of praise not left, the city of my joy? " (Jer. xlix.
itself in a
24-5). We do not know at what time Damascus working in steel, which has impressed
similar way upon the speech of the world, was in-
was rebuilt but Strabo says that it was the most
;
the Seleucidas. From the monarchs of this house know it among themselves as " the Street of Ba-
it passed to the Romans, who became masters of it zaars " (Stanley, p. 412). The house of Judas
" Straight"
in the war between Pompey and Mithridates ( Mos. is shown, but it is not in the street
is also pointed
Choi-en. i. 14; comp. Joseph. Ant. Jud. xiv. 2, (Pococke, ii. 119). That of Ananias
§ 3; and App. Bell. Milhr. p. 244). At the time out. The scene of the conversion is confidently
of the Gospel history, and of the Apostle Paul, it said to be "an open green spot, surrounded by
formed a part of the kingdom of Aretas (2 Cor. trees," and used as the Christian burial-ground;
xi. 32), an Arabian prince, who, like the princes of but this spot is on the eastern side of the city,
DAMN DAN 533
whereas St. Paul must have approached from the Dan was own brother to Naphtali; and as the son
south or west. Again it appears to be certain that of Rachel's maid, in a closer relation with Rachel's
" four distinct spots have been pointed out at dif- sons, Joseph and Benjamin, than with the other
ferent times" (Stanley, p. 412) as the plate where members of the family. It may be Doticed that
"
the •• great fight suddenly shined from heaven there is a close affinity between his name and that
(Acts ix. 3)j so that little confidence can be placed of Dinah, the only daughter of Jacob whose name
in any of them. The point of the walls at which is preserved.
St. Paul was let down by a basket (Acts ix. 25; The records of Dan are unusually meagre. Of
2 Cor. xi. 33) is also shown; and, as this locality the patriarch himself no personal history is, unfor-
is free from objection, it may be accepted, if we tunately, preserved. Only one son is attributed to
think that the tradition, which has been so faith- him (Gen. xlvi. 23); but it may be observed that
"'
less or so uncertain in other cases, has any value " Ilushim is a plural form, as if the name, not
—
In the vicinity of Damascus certain places are able : whether as indicating that some of the de-
shown, traditionally connected with the prophet scendants of Dan are omitted in these lists, or from
Elisha; but these local legends are necessarily even other causes —
that when the people were numbered
more doubtful than those which have reference to in the wilderness of Sinai, this was, with the excep-
the comparatively recent age of the Apostles. tion of Judah, the most numerous of all the tribes,
(See Stanley's Sinai and Palestine ; Mauudrell's containing 62,700 men able to serve. The position
Journey to Damascus ; Addison's Damascus and of Dan during the march through the desert was
Palmyra ; Pococke's Travels ; and especially Por- on the north side of the tabernacle (Num. ii. 20).
ter's Fiot Tears in Damascus, and his account of Here, with his brother Naphtali, and Asher, the
the country round Damascus in the Geographical son of Zilpah, before him, was his station, the hind-
Journal, vol. xxvi.)" G. R. most of the long procession (ii. 31, x. 25). The
names of the " captain " (S^tW) of the tribe at
* DAMN, DAMNATION. These terms,
when the common English version was made, were this time, and of the " ruler " (the Hebrew word is
not restricted to their present meaning, but were the same as before), who was one of the spies (xiii.
used also in their primitive sense of condemn and 12), are preserved. So also is the name of one who
condemnation (comp. Pope's " damn with faint played a prominent part at that time,. " Aholiab the
praise"). This, often with the associated idea of son of Ahisamach, of the tribe of Dan," associated
punishment, is all that the Greek words which they with Bezaleel in the design and construction of the
represent properly signify. Damn is the rendering fittings of the tabernacle (Ex. xxxi. 6, &c). The
of Karanpivw, Mark xvi. 16 ; Rom. xiv. 23, " he numbers of this tribe were not subject to the vio-
that doubteth is damned (condemned) if he eat; " lent fluctuations which increased or diminished
and Kpivai, 2 Thess. ii. 12. Damnation is the ren- some of its brethren (comp. the figures given in
dering of Kpi/xa, literally "judgment," Matt, xxiii. Num. and xxvi.), and it arrived at the threshold
i.
14; Mark xii. 40; Luke xx. 47; Rom. iii. 8, xiii. of the Promised Land, and passed the ordeal of the
rites of Baal-peor (Num. xxv.) with an increase of
2, " they that resist shall receive to themselves
damnation'''' (punishment); 1 Cor. xi. 29, "he that 1700 on the earlier census/' The remaining notices
eateth and drinketh unworthily eateth and drinketh of the tribe before the passage of the Jordan are
damnation (condemnation, judgment) to himself; '' unimportant. It furnished a " prince" (Nasi,' 1 as
1 Tim. v. 12; — /cpi'tm, Matt, xxiii. 33; Mark iii.
before) to the apportionment of the land
and it ;
" destruction," 2 Pet. ii. 3. A. related tribes), at the ceremony of blessing and
cursing (Deut. xxvii. 13). After this nothing is
DAN. 1. (
.
§5 : Aoj'; Joseph. Aav, 6e6npi- heard of Dan till the specification of the inherit-
rov &v rtues eiTroifi/ Kara t^)i/ 'Ea\. "yXoirrav ance allotted to him (Josh. xix. 48). He was the
Dan). The fifth son of Jacob, and the first of last of the tribes to receive his portion, and that
Bilhah, Rachel's maid (Gen. xxx. 6). The origin portion, according to the record of Joshua strange —
of the name is given in the exclamation of Rachel as it appears in the face of the numbers just quoted
« * It is understood that Mr. Rogers, the English Reuben," &c, and therefore probably without that
consul at Damascus, has in preparation an elaborate limitation.
work on the manners and customs of the Syrians, <t This one word is rendered in the A. V. by
similar to that of Mr. Lane on Egypt. II. " prince," " ruler," " captain," " chief," and " gov-
t> Gcsenius has pointed out a slight difference be- ernor."
tween the two derivations the
; verb being active in e The enumeration of the tribes in this record is in
the latter and passive in the former (Tius. 833). the order of their topographical position, from S. to N.
This is quite in keeping with the uncertainty which It is remarkable that Dan is named after Naphtali and
attends many of these ancient paronomastic deriva- Asher, as if already associated with the' northern posi-
tions (compare Abel, Benjamin, and others). tion afterwards occupied by the city Dan. This is also
c The frequent variations in the LXX. forbid abso- the case in Judg. i. 34, and 1 Chr. xii. 35. The writer
lute reliance on these numbers and, in addition, it
; is not aware that any explanation has beeu offered of
should not be overlooked that the census in Num. i. this apparent anomaly.
s of fighting men, that of xxvi. of the " children of
534 DAN DAN
threemost powerful states of the whole confederacy. xviii. 1)."> They perhaps
furnish a reason for the
Of the towns enumerated as forming " the border '
'
from the corn-fields of the plain, with their deep Israel." may have
pointed out their settlement to
black soil, to the villages whose ruins still crown the notice of Jeroboam as a 6t place for his north-
the hills that skirt the lowland. True, the help ern sanctuary. But beyond the exceedingly obscure
of the great tribe so closely connected with Dan notice in Judg. xviii. 30, we have no information •-
land " all the inheritance of the Danites had not notorious only as the seat of a rival and a forbidden
fallen to them among the tribes of Israel " (Judg.
worship. Lastly, Dan is omitted from the list of
excuse for their rapacity, when the complaint was not time of Samuel (1 Sam. iv. 11), Ges:h. ii pt. 2, p.
true in fact (Richter und Ruth, p. 160). H. 233.
DAN DAN 535
those who were sealed by the Angel in the vision which existed between it and the
relation, if any,
of St. John (Kev. vii. 5-7). calf-worship afterwards instituted there by Jeroboam
The mention of this tribe in the ••blessings" of (1 K. xii. 29, 30). The latter is alluded to by Amos
Jacob and Moses must not be overlooked, but it is (viii. 14) in a passage which possibly preserves a
difficult to extract any satisfactory meaning from formula of invocation or adjuration in use among
them. Herder's interpretation as given by Prof. the worshippers; but the passage is very obscure.
Stanley will fitly close this notice. After the establishment of the Danites at Dan it
« It is doubtful whether the delineation of Dan became the acknowledged extremity of the country,
in Jacob's blessing relates to the original settlement and the formula "from Dan even to Beersheba"
on the western outskirts of Judah, or to the north- is frequent throughout the historical books (Judg.
ern outpost. Herder's explanation will apply xx. 1; 1 Sam. iii. 20: 2 Sam. iii. 10, xvii. 11,
almost equally to both. Dan,' the judge, shall
' ' xxiv. 2, 15; 1 K. iv. 25). In the later records the
judge his people; he, the sou of the concubine, no
" form is reversed, and becomes " from Beersheba
less than the sons of Leah he, the frontier tribe, no even to Dan" (1 Chr. xxi. 2; 2 Chr. xxx. 5).
;
less than those in the places of honor, shall be » as Dan was, with other northern cities, laid waste
one of the tribes of Israel.' Dan shall be a serpent by Benhadad (1 K. xv. 20; 2 Chr. xvi. 4), and this
'
by the way, an adder in the path," that is of the is the last mention of the place.
invading enemy by the north or by the west, that ' Various considerations would incline to the sus-
biteth the heels of the horse,' the indigenous serpent picion that Dan was a holy place of note from a far
biting the foreign horse unknown to Israelite war- earlier date than its conquest by the Danites. These
fare, '
so that his rider shall fall backwards.' And are: (1.) the extreme reluctance of the Orientals
his war-cry as from the frontier fortresses shall be —
apparent in numerous cases in the Bible to —
•
For Thy salvation, Lord, I have waited ° In initiate a sanctuary, or to adopt for worship any
!
'
the blessing of Moses the southern Dan is lost sight place which had not enjoyed a reputation for holi-
of. The northern Dan alone appears, with the ness from pre-historic times. (2.) The correspond-
same characteristics though under a different image ence of Dan with Beersheba in connection with
' a lion's whelp in the far north, as Judah in the the life of Abraham
' the origin of Beersheba also —
far south he shall leap from Bashan
: ' ' —
from the being, as has been noticed, enveloped in some
slopes of Hermon, where he is couched watching diversity of statement. (3. ) More particularly its
for his prey." incidental mention in the very clear and circum-
stantial narrative of Gen. xiv. 14, as if well known
2. C]1 AdV; Joseph. T b Aavof- Ban.) The
:
Its mention in
even at that very early period.
well-known city, so familiar as the most northern
Deut. xxxiv. 1 is also before the events related in
landmark of Palestine, in the common expression
Judg. xviii., though still many centuries later than
" from Dan even to Beersheba." The name of the
the time of Abraham. But the subject is very
place was originally Laish or Leshem (Josh. xix.
difficult, and we can hardly hope to arrive at more
47). Its inhabitants lived "after the manner of
than conjecture upon it.
the Zidonians," i. e. engaged in commerce, and
With regard to Gen. xiv. 14 three explanations
without defense. But it is nowhere said that they
suggest themselves. 1. That another place of the
were Phoenicians, though it may perhaps be inferred
same name is intended. (See Kalisch, ad loc. for
—
from the parentage of Huram his mother " of
" an ingenious suggestion of Dan-jaan; another is
the daughters of Dan," his father " a man of Tyre
disposed of by Prof. Stanley, S. $ P. p. 400.)
(2 Chr. ii. 14). Living thus "quiet and secure,"
Against this may be put the belief of Josephus
they fell an easy prey to the active and practiced
(comp. Ant. i. 10, § 1, with v. 3, § 1) and of
freebooters of the Danites. They conferred upon
Je-ome ( Ononwsl. Laisa, comp. with Qucesl. Htbr.
their new acquisition the name of their own tribe,
in Genedm, xiv. 14), who both unhesitatingly
" after the name of their father who was born unto
identify the Dan of the Danites, near Paneas, with
Israel" (Judg. xviii. 29; Josh. xix. 47), and Laisli
the Dan of Abraham. 2. That it is a prophetic
became Dan.
anticipation by the sacred historian of a name which
The locality of the town is specified with some
was not to exist till centuries later, just as Samson
minuteness. It was "far from Zidon," and " ir
has been held to be alluded to in the blessing of
the valley (pE3?, Emek) that is by (7) Beth Dan by Jacob. 3. That the passage originally
rehob," but as this latter place has not been identi- contained an older name, as Laish and that when ;
fied with certainty, the position of Dan must be that was superseded by Dan, the new name was
ascertained by other means. inserted in the MSS. this last is Ewald's (Gesch.
The graven image which the wandering Danites i. 73), and of the three is the most feasible, espe-
had stolen from Micah they set up in their new cially when we consider the characteristic, genuine
home, and a line of priests was established, which, air of the story in Judges, which fixes the origin
though belonging to the tribe of Levi and even of the name so circumstantially. Josephus (Ant.
descended from Moses, 6 was not of the family of v. 3, § 1) speaks positively of the situation of Laish
Aaron, and therefore not belonging to the regular as " not far from Mount Libanus and the springs
priesthood. To the form of this image and the of the lesser Jordan, near (/caret) the great plain
nature of the idolatry we have no clew, nor to the of the city of Sidon " (compare also Ant. viii. 8, §
a According to Jewish tradition, Jacob's blessing which they presume on that account to have been
on Dan is a prophetic allusion to Samson, the great written after the days of the Judges (Ewald, Gesch. i.
,r
Judge " of the tribe and the ejaculation with which
; 92). Jerome's observations (Q». in Gen.) on this pas-
it closes was that actually ottered by Samson when sage are very interesting.
brought into the temple ;it ilia. (See the Targum b Moses is doubtless the genuine reading of the
Ps. Jonathan on Gen. xlix. 16, 17 and the quotations ; name, which, by tlie insertion of an N, was changed
in Kalisch 's Genesis ad loc.) .Modern critics likewise by the Jews into Manasseh, as it stands in the A. V
see an allusion to Samson in the terms of the blessing, of Judg. xviii. 3(5. [Manasseh, 5-1
536 DAN DANCE
4); and this, as just said, he with the Moses, completely displaced and eclipsed the older
identifies
Dan in Gen. xiv. 14 (Ant. i. 10, § 1). In con- name. When, however, we bear in mind the en-
sonance with this are the notices of St. Jerome, tire obscurity of the place under its former appella-
who derives the word '-Jordan" from the names tion, the speedy change, the renown of its later
of its two sources. Dan, the westernmost and the name, and the circumstances under which it was
smaller of the two, he places at four miles from given, it can be no matter of surprise that a later
Faneas on the road to Tyre. In perfect agreement hand, instead of adding the explanatory phrase
with this is the position of Tell el- Kadi, a mound " which is Dan " or leaving the old and unknown
from the foot of which gushes out " one of the name Leshem, should directly substitute the one
largest fountains in the world," the main source of for the other. The solution seems equally obvious
the Jordan (Rob. iii. 390-393; Stanley, 394, 395). and simple, and the transaction itself almost un-
The Tell itself, from the plain by somewhat avoidable.
rising
steep terraces, has long, level top strewed with
its Keil, however, still insists with Kalisch and oth-
ruins, and is very probably the site of the town and ers on the first of the above solutions, namely, that
citadel of Dan. The spring is called el Ledddn, it was another Dan, the Dan-Jaan of 2 Sam. xxiv.
possibly a corruption of Dan (Rob. iii. 392), and 6, and belonging to Gilead (Deut. xxxiv. 1). They
the stream from the spring Nahr ed-Dhan (Wilson, say that Laish-Dan did not lie on either of the two
ii. 173), while the name, Tell el-Kadi, " the Judge's roads leading from the vale of Siddim or of the
mound," agrees in signification with the ancient 'ordan to Damascus whereas this Dan, supposed ;
name." Both Dr. Robinson and Prof. Stanley give to be "in northern Perea to the southwest of Da-
the exact agreement of the spot with the require- mascus " (Keil), "between Gilead and Sidon
ments of the story in Judg. xviii. —
"a good land (Kalisch), would be perfectly appropriate to the
and a large, where there is no want of anything passage. 6 The argument involves too many as-
that is on the earth" (Rob. iii. 396; Stanley, as sumptions to be of much weight. Yet on the other
above). G. hand it must be admitted that we cannot deny the
* Delitzsch accounts for the name of Dan in existence of another Dan without supposing an in-
Gen. xiv. 14, by his theory that the Pentateuch correct reading in 2 Sam. xxiv. 6 (the interchange
was completed by some of the companions and sur- i); a supposition countenanced by the
of 1 for
vivors of Moses. Murphy (Commentary on Gen-
Vulgate, though not so clearly by the Septuagint.
esis, p. 286, Amer. ed. ) argues from the mode of
S. C. B.
designation here employed that Dan was the origi-
nal name, current in Abraham's time. He sup- 3. ()^T : om. in LXX. [in most MSS. ; Comp.
poses that the recollection of its ancient name and Adv; Apparently the name
Aid. Afddu'-] Ban).
story attracted the Danites, and that after taking of a city, associated with Jason as one of the
and destroying the city, they displaced the inter- places in Southern Arabia from which the Phoeni-
mediate name, Leshem (according to Josh. xix. 47), cians obtained wrought iron, cassia, and calamus
by the original designation. But the conjecture Ewald conjectures that it is the
(Ei. xxvii. 19).
not only lacks foundation, but seems in conflict same Dedan in Gen. xxv. 3, but
as the Keturahite
with the narrative, which refers the origin of the his conjecture is without support, though it is
name to "the name of their father " Dan (Josh. adopted by Fiirst (Handw.). Others refer it to
xix. 47; Judg. xviii. 29). Ewald's suggestion (No. the tribe of Dan, for the Danites were skillful work-
3 above) is strongly countenanced by the character men, and both Aholiab (Ex. xxxv. 34) and Huram
of the narrative and the circumstances of the case. (2 Chr. ii. 13) belonged to this tribe. But for
The air of extreme antiquity which invests Gen. this view also there appears to be as little founda-
xiv. has been recognized even by such questioners tion, if we consider the connection in which the
as Ewald, Tuch, and Knobel; Ewald ascribing it name occurs. W. A. W.
to patriarchal times, and Tuch to a period prior to
the Israelitish invasion, except for this one name.
DANCE. As emotions of joy and sorrow
universally express themselves in movements and
Even the general phraseology of the chapter is pe- gestures
of the body, efforts have been made among
culiar. But the names of places have this peculiar- all nations,
but especially among those of the south
ity, that several of them were obsolete at the time
and east, in proportion as they seem to be more
of the conquest of Canaan, and are interpreted by
demonstrative, to reduce to measure and to strength-
other names appended thus, Bela which is Zoar
;
« This agreement in meaning of the modern name * A still more recent writer, Quarry ( Genesis and
b
with the ancient is so rare, that little dependence can itsAuthorship, p. 472. Lond. 1866), deems it after all a
oe placed on it. Indeed, Stanley (S. Sf P. p. 394, note) tenable position that the Dan of Abraham (Gen. xiv.
has shown grounds for at least questioning it. The 14) was a different one from that of the later Hebrew
modern names, when representatives of the ancient, history. Zeller (Zeller's Bibl. Wbrterb. p. 213) proposes
generally agree in sound, though often disagreeing in the same view. H.
meaning.
DANCE DANCE 537
cient vent in voice or in gesture singly.« Nor is character among her own seems to have {bit
sex,
there any more strongly popular element traceable that it was her part to lead such a demonstration
in the religion of the ancient Jews than the oppor- of triumph, or of welcome; so Miriam (Ex. xv. 20)
tunity so given to a prophet or prophetess to kin- and so Jephthah's daughter (Judg. xi. 34), and
dle .enthusiasm for Jehovah on momentous crises similarly there no doubt was, though none is men-
of national joy, and thus root the theocracy in their tioned, a chorus and dance of women led by Debo-
deepest feelings, more especially in those of the rah, as the song i«f the men by Barak (comp. Judg.
women, themselves most easily stirred, and most v. 1 with Ex. xv. 1, 20). Similarly, too. Judith
capable of exciting others. The dance was regarded (xv. 12, 13) leads her own song and dance of tri-
even by the Romans as the worship of the body, umph over Holofernes. There was no such leader
and thus had a place amongst sacred things " Sane :
the lower civilization of the Amalekites, the other sentiment of the occasion, and forming the burden
the looseness of conduct into which idolatry led the of the song. The " coming out " of the women to
Israelites (Ex. xxxii. 6; 1 Cor. x. 7; 1 Sam. xxx. do this (Judg. xi. 34; 1 Sam. xviii. 6; comp.
16). So among the Bedouins, native dances of "went out," Ex. xv. 20) is also a feature worthy
men are mentioned (Lynch, Bead Sea, p. 295; of note, and implies the object of meeting, attend-
Stanley, pp. 56, 466), and are probably an ancient ing upon, and conducting home. So Jephthah's
custom. The Hebrews, however, save in such mo- daughter met her father, the " women of all the
ments of temptation, seem to have left dancing to cities" came to meet and celebrate Saul and
the women. But more especially on such occasions David, and their host, but Miriam in the same
of triumph, any woman whose nearness of kin to way "goes out" before "Jehovah" the " man of
the champion of the moment gave her a public war," whose presence seems implied. This marks
among strangers and borderers, he (2 Sam. vi. 5- crowd, apparently as dancing in a ring. So Vin,
22) was himself choreyus ; and here too the women,
with their timbrels a (see especially v. 5, 19, 20, whence H7inZ2, means to turn. In modern
22), took an important share. This fact brings Oriental dances a woman leads off the dance, the
out more markedly the feelings of Said's daughter others then follow her with exact imitation of her
Michal, keeping aloof from the occasion, and " look- artistic and graceful attitudes. A parallelism of
ing through a window " at the scene. She should, movement is also incident to it (Saalschiitz, lb. p.
in accordance with the examples of Miriam, &c, 301). Possibly Miriam so led her countrywomen.
have herself led the female choir, and so come out The same writer thinks that in Cant. vi. 13, the
to meet the Ark, and her lord. She stays with D^3nSn nVrTO (A. V. » company of
words
the "household" (ver. 20), and "comes out to
two armies ") imply two rows of dancing girls, and
meet" him with reproaches, perhaps feeling that
that the address in the singular number, " return,
bis zeal was a rebuke to her apathy. It was before
return," and again in vii. 1 applies to the move-
"the handmaids," i. e. in leading that choir which
ments of the individual performer in a kind of
she should have led, that he had "uncovered"
contre-danse. The interpretation, however, does
himself; an unkingly exposure as she thought it,
not remove the obscurities of the passage.
which the dance rendered necessary b the wear-— Dancing also had its place among merely festive
ing merely the ephod or linen tunic. The occasion
amusements apart from any religious character (Jer.
was meant to be popularly viewed in connection
xxxi. 4, 13; Lam. v. 15; Mark vi. 22; Luke xv.
with David's subjugation of various enemies and
25). The accomplishments exhibited by Herodias's
accession to the throne of Israel (see 1 Chr. xii.
daughter seem, however, to show that Dean Trench's
2-3— xiii. 8);he accordingly thinks only of the honor
remark on the last-named passage that the dancers
of God who had so advanced him, and in that for-
were of course not the guests but hired performers
gets self (comp. Miiller, de Dnvide ant. Arc. Ugo-
is hardly to b» received with strictness; although
lini, xxxii.). From the mention of "damsels,"
the tendency of luxury in the East has no doubt
"timbrels," and "dances" (I's. lxviii. 25, cxlix.
been to reduce the estimation in which the pastime,
•3, cl. 4), as elements of religious worship, it may
as shared in, is there held. Children, of course,
perhaps be inferred that David's feeling led him to
always did and always will dance (Job xxi. 11;
incorporate in its rites that popular mode of festive
Matt. xi. 17; Luke vii. 32). Whilst in their
celebration. This does not seem to have survived
" dancing dervishes " the Turks seem to have
him, for as Saalschiitz remarks (Archdol. der Heir.
adopted into their system the enthusiastic raptures,
vol. i. p. 299), in the mention of religious revivals
at once martial and sacred, which (e. rj. in the
under Hezekiah and Josiah, no notice of them oc-
Koman Salii) seem indigenous in many southern
curs; and this, although the " words," the "writ-
and eastern races from the earliest times. For
ing," and the "commandment of David " on such
further remarks Spencer, de Saltat. ret. Hebr., may
subjects, are distinctly alluded to (2 Chr. xxix. 30,
be consulted (Ugolini, xxx.); and, for the Greek
xxxv. 4, 15). It is possible that the banishing
and Roman dances, see Diet, of Ant. art. Saltatio.
of this popular element, which found its vent no
H. H.
doubt in the idolatrous rites of Baal and Astarte
(as it certainly did in those of the golden calf, Ex. DANCE. By this word is rendered in the
xxxii. 19), made those efforts take a less firm hold A. V. the Hebrew term Machdl, Vintt, a musical
on the people than they might have done and that ;
instrument of percussion, supposed to have been
David's more comprehensive scheme might have
used by the Hebrews at an early period of their
retained some ties of feeling which were thus lost.
history. Some modern lexicographers, who regard
On the other hand was doubtless the peril of the
loose morality which commonly attended festive Machdl synonymous with Rated, "T1p"1 (Feci.
as
dances at heathen shrines. Certainly in later Ju- iii. 4), restrict its meaning to the exercise or amuse-
daism the dance was included among some relig- ment of dancing. But according to many scholars,
ious festivities, e. g. the feast of Tabernacles (Mish- it also signifies a musical instrument used for ac-
na, Succah, v. 3, 4), where, however, the performers companying the dance, and which the Hebrews
were men. This was probably a mere following therefore called by the same name as the dance itself.
the example of David in the letter. Also in the The Septuagint generally renders machdl x°p6s,
earlier period of the Judges the dances of the vir- "dancing: " occasionally, however, it gives a dif-
gins in Shiloh (Judg. xxi. 19-23) were certainly ferent meaning, as in Ps. xxx. 11 (Heb. Bible, ver.
part of a religious festivity. It seems also from this 12), where it is translated x a P«> "J°y>" ana "
m
last instance clear, and from the others probable, Jer. xxxi. 4 and 14, where it is rendered crvvaywyi'i,
that such dances were performed by maidens apart "assembly." The Semitic versions of the O. T.
from men, which gives an additional point to the almost invariably interpret the word as a musical
reproach of Michal. What the fashion or figure instrument.
of the dance was is a doubtful question ; nor is it On the joyous occasion when the Israelites escape
likely to have lacked such variety as would adapt it from their Egyptian pursuers, and reach the Ara-
bian shore of the Red Sea in safety, Miriam is
to the various occasions of its use. The word IOn
means to move in a ring, or round ; whence in Ps. represented as going forth striking the ?}F\, and
« The ?\F\ was clearly the women's instrument. out that it was not the act of dancing, but the dress
b Some commentators have been at pains to point the other. Comp. Ex. xxxii. 6, 25.
DANCE DANIEL 539
followed by her sisters in faith, who join in » with small bells attached to its border, and was played
timbrels and dances " (Ex. xv. 20). Here the sense at weddings and mer-
of the passage seems to be, agreeably to the Auth. ry-makings by wom-
Vers., that the Hebrew wonien came forth to dance, en, who accompanied
and to accompany their dance by a performance it with the voice. Ac-
on timbrels; and this is the view adopted by the corcfmg to the author
majority of the Latin and English commentators. of Shike Ilaggibbo-
Parkhurst and Adam Clarke do not share this rim, the machol had
opinion. According to the former, machol is tinkling metal plates
" some fistular wind-instrument of music, with fastened on wires, at
Musical Instruments. Dance, intervals, within the
fife, from 71*7, to make a
holes, as a flute, pipe, or (Mendelssohn.) c i r( .i e that formed the
hole or opening;" and the latter says, "I know instrument, like the modern tambourine according ;
one or two faces;" and the word iHwnOm Ethiopic "JAP, "to sing." D. W. M.
(Judg. xi. 34, A. V. "and with dances") ren-
is
DANIEL ( ^W*3? Uud ff
e °f God <
his repre-
sentative as such, or God (El) is judge], Dan. i.
dered by EULC, "songs." Gesenius, Fiirst, and
&c; Ezr. 2; Neh. x. 6; 1 Chr.
6, 7, 8, viii. iii. 1;
others, adopt fbr the most part the Septuagint and vK3^T, Ez. xiv. 14, 20; xxviii. 3), the name
rendering but Eosenmiiller, in his commentary of three (or four) persons in the Old Testament.
;
on Ex. xv. 20, observes that, on comparing the 1. The second son of David (Aa/j.vi-fi\; [Aid.]
passages in Judg. xi. 34, 1 Sam. xviii. 6, and Alex. Aa\ovta; [Comp. Aavii\\: -Daniel]), "born
Jer. xxxi. 4, and assigning a rational exegesis to unto him in Hebron," " of Abigail the Carmelitess "
their contexts, machol must mean in these instances (1 Chr. iii. 1). In the parallel passage, 2 Sam. iii.
some musical instrument, probably of the flute
kind, and principally played on by wonien. 3, he is called Chileab QfcOS, i. e. like his
In the grand Hallelujah Psalm (cl. ) which closes father ( ?) AaXovia)- For the Jewish explanation
:
that magnificent collection, the sacred poet exhorts of the origin of the two names see Patrick Bochart, ;
" This date has given rise to many objections, be- chadnezzar was not properly king. But some further
cause the fourth year of Jehoiakim is identified with difficulties remain, which appear, however, to have
the first of Nebuchadnezzar (Jer. xxv. 1). Various been satisfactorily removed by Niebuhr ( Gesch. Assur's,
solutions have been proposed (cf. Keil, Einl. § 133, 2) p. 86 ff.) The date in Jer. xlvi. 2, is not that of the
but the text of Daniel itself suggests the true explana- battle of Carchemish, but of the warning of the
tion. The second year of Nebuchadnezzar's reign (ii. prophet and the threats and promises in Jer. xxv.
;
I) falls after the completion of the three years' train- are consistent with the notion of a previous subjection
ing of Daniel which commenced with his captivity of Jerusalem to Nebuchadnezzar, which may have been
(i. 1, 5) ; and this is a clear indication that the expe- accomplished without resistance (cf. Niebuhr, a. a. O.
dition mentioned in i 1, was undertaken in the last ff. 368 ff.).
year of the reign of Nabopolassar, while as yet Nebu-
540 DANIEL DANIEL, THE BOOK OF
the wise men of Babylon " (ii. 48). He afterwards of Chaldsean wisdom, and placed at the head of the
interpreted the second dream of Nebuchadnezzar school of the Magi (Dan. ii. 48). He was thus
(iv.8-27), and the handwriting on the wall which enabled to preserve whatever was true in the tradi-
disturbed the feast of Belshazzar (v. 10-28), though tional teaching of the East, and to cast his revela-
he no longer held his official position among the tions into a form suited to their special character.
magi (Dan. v. 7, 8, 12), and probably lived at Susa But though engaged in the service of a heathen
(Dan. viii. 2; cf. Joseph. Ant. x. 11, § 7; Bochart, prince and familiar with Oriental learning, Daniel
Geogr. Sacr. iii. 14). At the accession of Darius was from the first distinguished by his strict ob-
[Darius] he was made first of the " three presi- servance of the Mosaic law (i. 8-16; cf. vi. 10, 11).
dents " of the empire (cf. 1 Esdr. iii. 9). and was In this way the third outward condition for his
delivered from the lions' den, into which he had work was satisfied, and at the close of the exile
been cast for his faithfulness to the rites of his he offered a pattern of holiness for the instruction
faith (vi. 10-23; cf. Bel & Dr. 29-42). At the of the Dispersion of after times. (Cf. Auberlen,
accession of Cyrus he stilj retained his prosperity Daniel, 24, &c.)
(vi. 28; cf. i. 21; Bel & Dr. 2); though he does The exact meaning of the name is disputed. The
not appear to have remained at Babylon (cf. Dan.
full form (vS*D"^) is probably more correct, and
i. 21), and in " the third year of Cyrus " (b. c.
in this the yod appears to be not merely formative,
534) he saw his last recorded vision on the banks
of the Tigris (x. 1, 4). According to the Moham- but a pronominal suffix (as rt2 s jTfS, ^S^l^)'
medan tradition Daniel returned to Juda?a, held
so that the sense will be God is my Judge (C. B.
the government of Syria, and finally died at Susa
Michaelis ap. Kosenmiiller, Schol. § 1). Others
( Rosen m tiller, Schvl. p. 5, n.), where his tomb is
interpret the word the Judge of God, and the use
still shown, and is visited by crowds of pilgrims.
of a yod formative is justified by the parallel of
In the prophecies of Ezekiel mention is made of
Melchizedek, &c. (Hitzig, § 2). This interpretation
Daniel as a pattern of righteousness (xiv. 14, 20)
is favored by the Chaldaean name, Belteshazzar
and wisdom (xxviii. 3); and since Daniel was still
young at that time (c. b. c. 588-584), some have (")?WtCJr?b3, i. 7, i. e. the prince of Bel: Theod.
thought that another prophet of the name must LXX. BaXratrap Vulg. Baltassar), which was
:
have lived at some earlier time (Bleek), perhaps given to Daniel at Babylon (Dan. i. 7), and con-
during the captivity of Nineveh (Ewald, Die tains a clear reference to his former name. Hitzig's
Propheten, ii. 560), whose fame was transferred to interpretation (" Pala tschaoara Ernahrer und =
his later namesake. Hitzig imagines ( Vorbemerk. Verzekrer ") has nothing to recommend it. Such
§ 3) that the Daniel of Ezekiel was purely a myth- changes have been common at all times and for ;
ical personage, whose prototype is to be sought the simple assumption of a foreign name compare
in Melchizedek, and that the character was bor- Gen. xli. 45; Ezr. i. 11, v. 14 (Sheshbazzar).
rowed by the author of the book of Daniel as suited Various apocryphal fragments attributed to
to his design. These suppositions are favored by Daniel are collected by Fabricius ( Cod. Pseud. V.
no internal probability, and are unsupported by any- T. i. 1124), but it is surprising that his fame in
direct evidence. The order of the names " Noah, later times seems to have been obscured (Hottinger,
Daniel, and Job " (Ez. xiv. 14) seems to suggest Hist. Orient, p. 92). Cf. Epiph. Vit. Dan. ii. p.
the idea that they represent the first and last his- 243, ed. Petav. Vit. Dan. ap. Fabric; Joseph.
;
Allusion has been made already to the com- xiv. 1 (LXX., not theodot.). B. F. W.
parison which may be instituted between Daniel
and Joseph, who stand at the beginning and the DANIEL, THE BOOK
OF, is the earliest
close of the divine history of the Jews, as represen- example of apocalyptic literature, and in a great
tatives of the true God in heathen courts (Auberlen, degree the model, according to which all later
Daniel, pp. 32, 33). In this respect the position of apocalypses were constructed. In this aspect it
Daniel must have exercised a powerful influence stands at the head of a series of writings in which
upon the form of the revelations conveyed through the deepest thoughts of the Jewish people found
him. And in turn the authority which he enjo}'ed expression after the close of the prophetic era. The
renders the course of the exile and the return book of Enoch [Enoch], the Jewish Sibyllines, and
clearly intelligible. By station, by education, and the fourth book of Ezra [2 Esdras], carry out
by character, he was peculiarly fitted to fulfill the with varied success and in different directions, the
work assigned to him. He was not only a resident great outlines of universal history which it con-
in a foreign land, like Jeremiah or Ezekiel, but the tains; and the " Revelation " of Daniel received at
minister of a foreign empire, and of successive last its just completion in the Revelation of St.
dynasties (Dan. ii. 48, vi. 28). His political ex- John. Without an inspired type it is difficult to
perience would naturally qualify him to give dis- conceive how the later writings could have been
tinct expression to the characteristics of nations in framed and whatever judgment be formed as to
;
themselves, and not only in their relation to God's the composition of the book, there can be no doubt
people. His intellectual advantages were as re- that it exercised a greater influence upon the early
markable as his civil dignity. Like the great law- Christian Church than any other writing of the
giver who was " trained in all the wisdom of the Old Testament, while in the Gospels it is specially
Egyptians," the great seer was trained in the secrets distinguished by the emphatic quotation of the
DANIEL, THE BOOK OF DANIEL, THE BOOK OP 541
Lord (Matt. xxiv. 15, rb p-qQtv Sia Aoci^jA. rod book was no late compilation, though he questioned
irpo<pi)TOv. d uvayivuxrKoov voe'iTW.
. . .)• .
the authenticity of some part of it (c. iii.-vii.
contemplated apart, each in its greatest vigor, in events of the life of Daniel. The remainder of
the most consummate art, and the most striking the book (viii.-xii.) traces in minuter detail the
predictions. The Babylonian exile supplied the fortunes of the people of God, as typical of the
outward training and the inward necessity for this fortunes of the Church in all ages. The second
last form of divine teaching; and the prophetic section is distinguished by a remarkable symmetry.
visions of Ezekiel form the connecting link between It opens with a view of the great kingdoms of the
the characteristic types of revelation and prophecy. earth revealed to a heathen sovereign, to whom
(Cf. Liicke, Versuch, i. 17 ff. Hitzig, Daniel, they appeared in their outward unity and splendor,
;
Vorbem. § 9; Hilgenfeld, Die jiid. Apolc, 1 ff.). and yet devoid of any true life (a metal colossus);
[Daniel.] it closes with a view of the same powers as seen by
marked by peculiar forms and corruptions than that ishment to which they were condemned for refusing
of Ezekiel. The Aramaic, like that of Ezra, is also to perform an idolatrous act at the command of
of an earlier form (cf. Maurer, Coimn. in Dan. p. Nebuchadnezzar (ch. iii.), answers to the deliver-
87 ) than exists in any other Chaldaic document, but ance of Daniel from that to which he was exposed
as the Targums —
the next most ancient specimens by continuing to serve his God in spite of the edict
of the language —
were not committed to writing of Darius (ch. vi. and in the same way the degra-
) ;
till about the Christian era, this fact cannot be dation, the repentance, and the restoration of
insisted on as a proof of remote antiquity. It is, Nebuchadnezzar (ch. iv.) forms a striking contrast
however, worthy of notice that J. D. Michaelis to the sacrilegious pride and death of Belshazzar
affirmed, on purely linguistic grounds, that the (ch. v. 22-311. The arrangement of the last section
542 DANIEL, THE BOOK OF DANIEL, THE BOOK OF
(viii.-xii.) is not equally distinct, though it offers 34), its predictions (Matt. xxiv. 15), and its doctrine
traces of a similar disposition. The description of of angels (Luke i. 19, 26). At a still earlier time
the progress of the Grecian power in ch. viii. is the same influence may be traced in the Apocrypha.
further developed in the last vision (x.-xii.), while The book of Baruch [Baeuch] exhibits so many
the last chapter appears to carry on the revelation coincidences with Daniel, that by some the two
to the first coming of Messiah in answer to the books have been assigned to the same author (cf.
prayer of Daniel. Fritzsche, Handb. zud. Apok. i. 173); and the first
4. The position which the book of Daniel occu- book of Maccabees represents Mattathias quoting
pies in the Hebrew Canon seems at first sight the marvelous deliverances recorded in Daniel,
remarkable. It is placed among the Holy writings together with those of earlier times (1 Mace. ii. 59,
(Kethuvim, ayi6ypacpa) between Esther and Ezra, 60), and elsewhere exhibits an acquaintance with
or immediately before Esther (cf. Hody, Be Bibl. the Greek version of the book (1 Mace. i. 54 Dan. =
text. p. 644, 645), and not among the prophets. ix. 27). The allusion to the guardian angels of
This collocation, however, is a natural consequence nations, which is introduced into the Alexandrine
of the right apprehension of the different functions translation of the Pentateuch (Deut. xxxii. 8;
of the prophet and seer. It is not, indeed, certain LXX.), and recurs in the Wisdom of Sirach
at what time the triple division of the Scriptures (Ecclus. xvii. 17), may have been derived from
which is preserved in the Hebrew Bibles was first Dan. x. 21, xii. 1, though this is uncertain, as the
made; but the characteristics of the classes show doctrine probably formed part of the common belief.
that it was not based on the supposed outward According to Josephus (Ant. xi. 8, § 4) the proph-
authority, but on the inward composition of the ecies of Daniel gained for the Jews the favor of
books [Canon]. Daniel, as the truth has been Alexander [Alexander the Great] and what- ;
well stated, had the spirit but not the work of a ever credit may be given to the details of his nar-
prophet and as his work was a new one, so was it rative, it at least shows the unquestioning belief in
;
carried out in a style of which the Old Testament the prophetic worth of the book which existed
offers no other example. His Apocalypse is as dis- among the Jews in his time.
tinct from the prophetic writings as the Apocalypse 7. The testimony of the Synagogue and the
of St. John from the apostolic epistles. The Church gave a clear expression to the judgment
heathen court is to the one seer what the isle of implied by the early and authoritative use of the
Patmos is to the other, a place of exile and isola- book, and pronounced it to contain authentic proph-
tion, where he stands alone with his God, and is ecies of Daniel, without contradiction, with one
not like the prophet active in the midst of a strug- exception, till modern times. Porphyry alone (t c.
gling nation (Auberlen, p. 34). a 305 A. d.) assailed the book, and devoted the 12th
5. The unity of the book in its present form, of his fifteen Discourses against Christians (Ao'701
notwithstanding the difference of language, is gen- Kara Xpiartavut') to a refutation of its claims to
erally acknowledged (De VVette, Kinl. § 256 Hit- be considered a prophecy. " The history," lie said,
;
zig, § 4).'' Still there is a remarkable difference in " is true up to the date of Antiochus Epiphanes,
its internal character. In the first seven chapters and false afterwards; therefore the book was written
Daniel is spoken of kistcn-ically (i. 8-21, ii. 14-411, in his time" (Hieron. Prcef. in linn.). The argu-
iv. 8-27, v. 13-29, vi. 2-28, vii. 1, 2): in the last ment of Porphyry is an exact anticipation of the
five he appears personally as the writer (vii. 15-28, position of many modern critics, and invohes a
viii. 1-ix. 22, x. 1-19, xii. 5). This peculiarity, twofold assumption, that the whole book ought to
however, is not without some precedents in the contain predictions of the same character, and that
writings of the earlier prophets (e. g. Is. vii. 3, xx. definite predictions are impossible. Externally the
2), and the seventh chapter prepares the way for book is as well attested as any book of Scripture,
the change for while Daniel is there spoken of in and there is nothing to show that Porphyry urged
;
the third person (vii. 1, 2), the substance of the any historical objections against it; but it brings
chapter is given in his words, in the first person the belief in miracle and prediction, in the divine
(vii. 2, 15, 28). The cause of the difference of power and foreknowledge as active among men, to
person is commonly supposed to lie in the nature a startling test, and according to the character of
of the case. The prophet narrates symbolic and this belief in the individual must be his judgment
representative events historically, for the event is upon the book.
its own witness; but revelations and visions need 8. The history of the assaults upon the prophetic
the personal attestation of those to whom they are worth of Daniel in modern times is full of interest.
communicated. It is, however, more probable that In the first instance doubts were raised as to the
the peculiarity arose from the manner in which the authorship of the opening chapters, i.—vii. (Spinoza,
book assumed its final shape (§ 11). Newton), which are perfectly compatible with the
6. Allusion has been made already to the influ- fullest recognition of their canonicity. Then the
ence which the book exercised upon the Christian variations in the LXX. suggested the belief that
Church. Apart from the general type of apoca- cc. iii. -vi. were a later interpolation (J. D.
lyptic composition which the apostolic writers Michaelis). As a next step the hist six chapters
derived from Daniel (2 Thess. ii. Rev. passim ; only were retained as a genuine book of Scripture
;
cf. Matt. xxvi. 64, xxi. 44?), the New Testament (Eiclihorn, 1st and 2d edits.); and at last the
incidentally acknowledges each of the characteristic whole book was rejected as the work of an im-
elements of the book, its miracles (Hebr. xi. 33, postor, who lived in the time of Antiochus Epiph-
« The Jewish doctors of later times were divided as b Eichhorn attributed ch. ii -vi., vii.-xii., to dif-
to the degree of the inspiration of Daniel. Abarbanel ferent authors and liertholdt supposed that each
;
maintained against Maimouides that he was endowed sectionwas the work of a distinct, writer, though he
with the highest prophetic power (Fabric. Cod. pseudep admitted that each successive writer was acquainted
V. T. i. 897, n.). with the composition of his predecessors, recognizing
in this way the unity of the book (Einl.).
DANIEL, THE BOOK OF DANIEL, THE BOOK OF 543
aues (Corrodi, 1783. llitzig fixes the date more often afterthoughts, the results and not the causes
exactly from 170 B. C. to the spring of 164 b. c). of the rejection of the book. Not only, it is said,
This last opinion has found, especially in Germany, is the book placed among the Hagiographa, but
To speak of an "aimless and lavish dis- the Exile, and forms a last step in the development
church.
of the ideas of Messiah (vii. 13, &c. ), of the resur-
play of wonders " is to disregard the representative
rection (xii. 2, 3), of the ministry of angels (viii.
significance of the different acts, and the relation
16, xii. 1, &c), of personal devotion (vi. 10, 11, i.
which they bore to the future fortunes of the people.
A new era was inaugurated by fresh signs. The 8), which formed the basis of later specidations,
Jews, now that they are left among the nations of but received no essential addition in the interval
God before the coming of our Lord.
the world, looked for some sure token that
was able to deliver them and work out His own Generally it may be said that while the book
purposes. The persecution of Antioehus completed presents in many respects a startling and excep-
the teaching of Daniel; and the people no longer tional character, yet it is far more difficult to
sought without, that which at length they had explain its composition in the Maccabsean period
found within. They had withstood the assault of than to connect the peculiarities which it exhibits
one typical enemy, and now they were prepared to with the exigencies of the Return. It appears as a
meet all. The close of special predictions coin- key to the later history and struggles of the Jews,
cided with the consolidation of the national faith. and not as a result from them. The peculiarities
[Antiixiius IV. Epiph.] of language, the acquaintance with Eastern man-
10. The general objections against the " legend- ners and history, which is seen more clearly as our
ary " miracles and specific predictions of Daniel are knowledge widens, the reception into the canon, the
strengthened by other objections in detail, which phenomena of the Alexandrine version., all point in
cannot, however, be regarded in themselves as of the same direction and a sounder system of inter- ;
any considerable weight. Some of these have been pretation, combined with a more worthy view of
already answered incidentally. Some still require the divine government of men and nations, will
a short notice, though it is evident that they are probably do much to remove those undefined doubts
« The special prophecies of Balaam (Num. xxiv. 24) parallel to those of Daniel, both from their particu-
and Isaiah (xliv., xlv.) centre in Daniel (cf. Dan. xi larity, and from the position which the prophet occu-
30); and the predictions of Balaam ofer a remarkable pied (cf. Delitzsch, p. 273).
544 DANIEL, THE BOOK OF DANIEL, THE BOOK OF
as to the inspired character of the Revelation which though it still finds numerous advocates (Hofmann,
naturally arise at first in the minds of thoughtful Auberlen, Keil, Havernick, Hengstenberg, and most
students. English commentators). It originated at a time
11. But while all historical evidence supports when the triumphant advent of Messiah was the
the canonicity of the book of Daniel, it does not object of immediate expectation, and the Roman
and author-
follow that the recognition of the unity empire appeared to be the last in the series of
ity of the book is necessarily connected with the earthly kingdoms. The long interval of conflict
belief that the whole is to be assigned to the author- which has followed the first Advent formed no place
ship of Daniel. According to the Jewish tradition in the anticipations of the first Christians, and in
(Bava Bathra, f. 146) '-the books of Ezekiel, the succeeding ages the Roman period has been unnat-
twelve minor prophets, Daniel, and Esther were urally prolonged to meet the requirements of a
written (i. e. drawn up in their present form) by the theory which took its rise in a state of thought
men of the great synagogue," and in the case of which experience has proved false. It is a still
Daniel the tradition is supported by strong internal more fatal objection to this interpretation that it
evidence. The manner in which Daniel is spoken destroys the great idea of a cyclic development of
of (i. 17, 19, 20, v. 11, 12; the title in ix.-23, xii. history which lies at the basis of all prophecy.
is different) suggests the notion of another writer; Great periods (aluves) appear to be marked out in
and if Daniel wrote the passages in question, they the fortunes of mankind which answer to another,
cannot be satisfactorily explained by 1 Cor. xv. 10; so that that divine utterance which receives its first
2 Cor. xi. 5, 6, xii. 2 (Keil, § 136), or by the con- fulfillment in one period, receives a further and more
sciousness of the typical position which he occupied complete fulfillment in the corresponding part of
(Auberlen, p. 37). The substantial authorship of some later period. Thus the first coming of Christ
a book of Scripture does not involve the subor- formed the close of the last age, as His second
dinate work of arrangement and revision and it is coming will form the close of the present one. The
;
scarcely conceivable that a writer would purposely one event is the type and, as it were, the spring
write one book in two languages, though there may of the other. This is acknowledged with regard to
have been an obvious reason why he should treat the other prophecies, and yet the same truth is not
in separate records of events of general history in applied to the revelations of Daniel, which appear
the vernacular dialect, and of the special fortunes then first to gain their full significance when the;-
of God's people in Hebrew. At the return we may are seen to contain an outline of all history in the
suppose that these records of Daniel were brought history of the nations which ruled the world before
into one whole, with the addition of an introduction Christ's coming. The first Advent is as much a
and a fuller narrative, when the other sacred writ- fulfillment of the visions of Daniel as of those of
ings received their final revision. The visions them- the other prophets. The four empires precede the
selves would be necessarily preserved in their orig- coming of Messiah and pass away before him. At
inal form, and thus the later chapters (vii.-xii.) the same time their spirit survives (cf. vii. 12), and
exhibit no traces of any subsequent recension, with the forms of national existence which were devel-
the exception, perhaps, of two introductory verses, oped on the plains of Mesopotamia again reproduce
vii. 1, x. 1. themselves in later history. According to this view
12. The interpretation of Daniel has hitherto the empires of Daniel can be no other than those
proved an inexhaustible field for the ingenuity of of the Babylonians, Medes, Persians, and Greeks,
commentators, and the certain results are com- who all placed the centre of their power at Babylon,
paratively few. According to the traditional view, and appear to have exhibited on one stage the great
which appears as early as the fourth book of Ezra types of national life. The Roman power was at
[2 Esdkas] and the epistle of Barnabas (c. 4), the its height when Christ came, but the Egyptian
four empires described in cc. ii. vii. are the Baby- kingdom, the last relic of the empire of Alexander,
lonian, the Medo-Persian, the Greek, and the had just been destroyed, and thus the " stone cut
Roman. With nearly equal consent it has been without hands struck the feet of the image," and
supposed that there is a change of subject in the Christianity destroyed for ever the real supremacy
eleventh chapter (xi. 31 ff.), by which the seer of heathen dominion. But this first fulfillment of
passes from the persecutions of Antiochus to the the vision was only inchoative, and the correlatives
times of Antichrist. A careful comparison of the of the four empires must be sought in post-Christian
language of the prophecy with the history of the history. The corresponding symbolism of Babylon
Syrian kings must, however, convince every candid and Rome is striking at first sight, and other
student of the text that the latter hypothesis is parallels may be drawn. The Byzantine empire,
wholly unfounded and arbitrary. The whole of the for instance, "inferior "to the Roman (Dan. ii.
eleventh chapter forms a history of the struggles of 39) may be compared with that of the Medes. The
the Jewish church with the Greek powers up to Teutonic races with their divided empire recall the
the death of its great adversary (xi. 45). This con- image of Persia (vii. 6). Nor is it difficult to see
flict, indeed, has a typical import, and foreshows in the growing might of the northern powers, a
in its characteristic outlines the abiding and final future kingdom which may rival in terrible energy
conflict of the people of God and the powers of evil, the conquests of Alexander. Without insisting on
so that the true work of the interpreter must be such details as these, which still require careful
to determine historically the nature of each event examination, it appears that the true interpretation
signalized in the prophetic picture, that he may of Daniel is to be sought in the recognition of the
draw from the past the lesson of the future. The principle which they involve. In this way the
traditional interpretation of "the four empires" book remains a " prophecy," while it is also a
seems to spring from the same error as the other, " revelation " and its most special predictions
;
the parallel case of Ezra, by the danger which English, 1852-3), wrote on Daniel; and Kosenmul-
would have existed in such a case of confusing the ler enumerates nearly fifty other special commenta-
changes. At an early time the LXX. version was the Prophecies, &c, Lond. 1733; M. F. Roos, Ausl.
supplanted in the Greek Bibles by that of Theodo- d. Weissag. Dan. u. s. w. Leipz. 1771) opened the
tion," anil in the time of Jerome the version of way to a truer understanding of Daniel; but the
Theodotion was generally "read by the Churches" edition of Bertholdt (Daniel, aus dem Ilebr.-Aram.
((. Rujin. ii. 33 Prief. in Comm. " Illud quoque
; neu ubersetzt und erklart, u. s. w. Erlangen, 1800-
lectorem admoneo, Danielem non juxta LXX. inter- grave faults, marks the begin-
8), in spite of all its
pretes sed juxta . Theodotionem ecclesias leg-
. . ning of a new era in the study of the book. Ber-
ere" . .). This change, for which Jerome was
. tholdt was decidedly unfavorable to its authen-
unable to account (" hoc cur accident nescio," Prof. ticity; and he was followed on the same side by
in Vers. Dan.), may have been made in conse- von Lengerke (Das Buck Dan. verd. u. ausgel.
quence of the objections which were urged against Konigsb. 1835), Maurer (Comm. Gramm. Crit. ii.
the corrupt LXX. text in controversy with Jews Lips. 1838), and Hitzig (Kurzrjef. Exeg. Ilandb.
and heathen. The LXX. version was certainly [x.] Leipz. 1850), whose commentary is among the
very unfaithful (Hieron. /. c); and the influence worst specimens of supercilious criticism which his
of Origen, who preferred the translation of Theo- school has produced. On the other side the com-
dotion (Hieron. in Dun. iv. 6), was probably effect- mentary of Havemick ( Comm. lib. d. B. Dan.
ual in bringing about the substitution (cf. Credner, Hamb. 1832) is the most complete, though it leaves
Beitr. ii. 250 ). In the course of time, however, much to be desired.
ft". Auberlen (Der Proph. Dan.
the version of Theodotion was interpolated from u. d. Offenbarung Joh. u. s. w., 2te Aufl. Basel,
the LXX., so that it is now impossible to recover 1857, translated into English from the 1st ed. by
the original text. [Daniel, Apocryphal ad- A. Saphir, 1856) has thrown considerable light up-
ditions xo.j Meanwhile the original LXX. on the general construction and relations of the
translation passed entirely out of use, and it was book. Cf. Hofmann, Weissag. u. Erfiillung, i.
supposed to have been lost till the last century, 270 ff. The question of the authenticity of the
when it was published at Home from a Codex Chi- book is discussed in most of the later commenta-
sianus (Daniel secundum LXX. .... Romse, ries; and specially by Hengstenberg (Die Authentie
1772, ed. P. de Magistris), together with that of d. Dan. . enoiesen, 1831, translated by E. B.
. .
Theodotion, and several illustrative essays. It has Pratten, Edinb.), Havemick (Neue krit. Unter-
since been published several times (ed. Michaelis, such. Hamb. 1838), Delitzsch (Herzog's ReaUEn-
Gotting. 1774; ed. Segaar, 1775; Halm, 1845), and cykl. s. v. 1854), Keil (Lehrb. d. Einl. in d. A. T.
lastly by Teschendorf in the second edition of his Frankf. 1853), Davidson (Introduction to the O. T.
Septuagint. Another recension of the text is con- ii. Lond. 1850), who maintain the affirmative; and
tained in the Syro-Hexaplaric version at Milan (ed. by Bleek (Berl. Theolog. Zeitschr. iii. 1822), Ber-
Bugatus, 1788), but a critical comparison of the tholdt (Einleit. Erlang. 1814), Liicke ( Versuch
several recensions is still required. eitier vollstand. Einl. u. s. w. 2te Aufl. Bonn, 1852),
14. The commentaries on Daniel are very numer- De Wette (Einleit. 7te Aufl. Berl. 1852), who deny
ous. The Hebrew commentaries of R. Saadijah its authenticity. Cf. Ewald, Die Proph. d. Alt.
Haggaon (t 942), Rashi (t c. 1105), and Aben Ezra Bund. ii. 559 ff. Among English works may be
(t c. 1167), are printed in the great Rabbinic Bibles mentioned the Essays of T. R. Birks, The four
of Bomberg and Basle. That of Abarbanel (t c. prophetic Empires, &c, 1844, and The two later
1507) ha3 been printed separately several times Visions of Daniel, &c, 1846; of E. B. Elliott, Ha-
(Amstelod. 1G47, 4to); and others are quoted by rm Apocalyptical, 1844; of S. P. Tregelles, Remarks
Rosenmuller, Scholia, pp. 39, 40. Among the pa- on the prophetic Visions of Daniel, 1852; and the
tristic commentaries the most important are those Commentary of Stuart (Boston, 1850).
of Jerome (vol. v. ed. Migne), who noticed espe- B. F. W.
cially the objections of Porphyry, Theodoret (ii. * Among the more recent works on the Book of
1053 ed. Schulze), and Ephrem Syrus ( Op. Syr. Daniel the following may be mentioned
ft', : —Reichel,
ii., Romae, 1740). Considerable fragments remain Die 70 Jahreswochen, Dan. ix. 24-27, in the Theol.
of the commentaries of Hippolytus (collected in Stud. u. Krit. 1858, pp. 735-752 Bleek, Die mes
;
Migne's edition, Paris, 1857), and Polychronius sian. Weissagungen im Buche Daniel, in the Jahrb
(Mai, Script. Vet. Nov. Coll. vol. i.); and Mai has f. deutsche Theol. 1860, v. 45-101, and Einl. in
published (I. c.) a catena on Daniel, containing dasAIte Test. Berl. 1860, pp. 577-611; Ziindel.
fragments of Apollinarius, Athanasius, Basil, Euse- Krit. Untersuckungen Sber die Abfassungszeit d.
bius, and many others. The chief reformers, Lu- Buches Daniel, Basel, 1861, maintaining the gen-
ther (Auslegung d. Propk. Dan. 1530-1546; Op. uineness of the book; Niebuhr, M. von, Gesch. As
Germ. vi. ed. Walch), CEcolampadius (In Dan. sitr's it. BabeFs, p. 99 ff., vindicating the authenticity
lihri duo, Basil. 1530), Melancbthon (Comm. in of its historical traditions; Walter, J. C, Genuine -
xxiv. 15, compared with 1 Mace i. 54. The same of his argument (after Beu Ezra and Maitland)lies in
truth is also implied In the interpretation of " the the proof that the Roman was not the fourth empire.
seveuty sevens," as springing out of the " seventy " a The version bears in the tetraplar text the singu-
(years) of Jeremiah. On this there are some good
"1^37 > 3 the term
remarks Browne's Ordo Saclorum, though his in- lar title to Eip aypvTrvo'; Aavir/\.
in
terpretation of the four empires as signifying the which Daniel applies to the angels, " watchers " (Dan,
Babylonian, Grecian. Roman, and some future empire iv. 13, 17, 23). Cf. Daniel sec. LXX. 125 ff.
1863; comp. his Jiidische Apokalyptik, pp. 19-50; of our Fathers; " and a similar arrangement occurs
Davidson, Introd. to the 0. T. iii. 158-231 (Lond. in other Greek and Latin Psalters.
1863); The Book of Daniel as viewed by Ilippoly- (6.) The two other pieces appear more distinctly
tus, Porphyry, and others, an art. in the Jown. of as appendices, and offer no semblance of forming
Sac. Lit. for Jan. 1864; Fuller, J. M., Authenticity part of the original text. The History of Susanna
of ike Bunk of Dmiel, Camb. (Eng.) 1864; Pusey, (or The Judgment of Daniel) is generally found at
E. B., Dmiel the Prophet: Nine Lectures .... the beginning of the book (Gr. MSS. Vet. Lot. )
with Copious Notes, "a contribution," he tells us, though it also occurs after the 12th chapter ( Vulg.
" against the tide of scepticism which the publica- ed. Compl.). The History of Bel and the Dragon
tion of the Essays and Reviews let loose " Tre-
' ' ; is placed at the end of the book and in the LXX. ;
gelles, Remarks on the Prophetic Visions in Daniel, version it bears a special heading as upart of the
and a Defence of the Authenticity of the Book, 5th prophecy of Habrtklaik'' (J K -n-po<pvTeias 'A/u£a-
ed., Lond. 1864; Desprez, P. S., Daniel: or, The Kov/j. viod 'Inaov «k ttjst (pvAris Aei/i).
A]X>calypse of the 0. T. ; with an Introd. by Row- 2. The additions are found in both the Greek
land Williams, Lond. 1864; Perowne, J. J. $., Dr. texts — the
LXX. and Theodotion, in the Old
Pusey on Daniel the Prophet, in the Contemp. Re- Latin and Vulgate, and in the existing Syriac and
view for Jan. 1866 Bosanquet, Messiah the Prince,
; Arabic versions. On the other hand there is no
or the Inspiration of the Prophecies of Daniel, evidence that they ever formed part of the Hebrew
Lond. 1866. See also Rawlinson's Historical Ev- text, and they were originally wanting in the Syriac
idences (Bampton Lectures), Lect. V. (Polychronius, ap. Mai, Script. Vett. Nov. Coll. i.
In this country, besides the elaborate commen- 113, says of the hymn expressly ov Keirai iv ro?s
tary of Prof. Stuart, we have: Chase, Irah, Re- efSpaiKols % iv rots ffvptaicoh PtPxiois). l'rom
marks on the Book of Daniel, in the Christian. Re- theLXX. and Vulgate the fragments passed into
new for March, 1842, reprinted separately, Boston, common use, and they are commonly quoted by
1844; Folsom, N. S., Crit. and Hist. Int'eip. of the reek and Latin fathers as parts of Daniel (Clem.
( J
Book of Daniel, Boston, 1842; The Prophecies of Alex. Eel. proph.i.; Orig. Ep. ml AJ'ric; Ter-
Daniel, an art. in the New Enylander for April, tull. de Pudic. 17, &c), but rejected by those who
1843; Barnes, Notes, Critical, Illustrative, and adhered to the Hebrew canon. Jerome in particu-
Practiced, em the Book of Daniel, New York, 1853, lar called attention to their absence from the He-
considered one of the best of his commentaries; brew Bible (Praif. in Dan.), and instead of any
Palfrey, Lectures on the Jewish Scriptures and An- commentary of his own adds shortly Origen's re-
tiquities, iv. 389-455 (Bost. 1852); Herman, H. marks " on the fables of Bel and Susanna " ( Comrn.
M., The Genidneness of Daniel, in the Meth. in Dan. xiii. 1). In a similar manner he notices
Quar. Rev. for Oct. 1854; Noyes, G. R., New shortly the Song of the Three Children, " lest he
Transl. of the Hebrew Prophets, vol. ii., 3d ed., should seem to have overlooked it" (Comm. in
Boston, 1866. The American scholars named Dan. iii. 23).
above (except Barnes) differ from the majority of Various conjectures have been made as to the
3.
English commentators in finding no place for the It has been supposed that
origin of the additions.
Roman empire or the Pope in their exposition of they were derived from Aramaic originals (Welte,
the visions of Daniel. Herbst's End. ii. 3, Kap. 8, gives the arguments at
Among the writers here referred to, the follow- length), but the intricate evidence is wholly insuffi-
ing impugn the genuineness of the book: Bleek, cient to establish the point. The character of the
Baxmann, Davidson (in opposition to his earlier additions themselves indicates rather the hand of
view), Hilgenfeld, Desprez, Lowland Williams, Pal- an Alexandrine writer; and it is not unlikely that
frey, Noyes. So Milnian, Hist, of the Jews, i. the translator of Daniel wrought up traditions
457, note, new Amer. edition. A. which were already currei.t, and appended them to
his work (cf. Fritzsche, /•'<//. Handb. zu den Apok.
DANIEL, APOCRYPHAL ADDI- i. 121). The abruptness of the narrative in Dan-
TIONS TO. The Greek translations of Daniel, ielfurnished an occasion for the introduction of the
like that of Esther, contain several pieces which are prayer and hymn; and the story of the Dragon
not found in the original text. The most impor- seems like a strange exaggeration of the record of
tant of these additions are contained in the Apoc- the deliverance of Daniel (Dan. vi.), which may
rypha of the English Bible under the titles of The naturally have formed the basis of different legends.
Song the three Holy Children, The History of
qf Nor is it difficult to see in the History of Susanna
Susanna, and The History of . . . Bel and the a pointed allusion to the name of the prophet,
Dragon. though the narrative may not be wholly fictitious.
1. (a.) The first of these pieces is incorporated 4. The LXX. appears to be the original source
into the narrative of Daniel. After the three con- from which all the existing recensions of the frag-
fessors were thrown into the furnace (Dan. iii. 23), ments were derived (cf. Hody, de Bibl. teat. p.
Azarias is represented praying to God for deliv- 583). Theodotion seems to have done little more
erance (Song of Three Children, 3-22); and in than transcribe the LXX. text with improvements
answer the angel of the Lord shields them from the in style and language, which are considerably
fire which consumes their enemies (23-27), where- greater in the appended narratives than in the
upon " the three, as out of one mouth," raise a tri- Song incorporated into the canonical text. Thus
umphant song (29-68), of which a chief part (35- while the History of Susanna and Bel and the
66)* has been used as a hymn (Benedirite) in the Dragon contain large additions which complete and
DANITES DAPHNE 54i
embellish the story (e. 15-18; 20,
g. Hist. Sus. vv. northern limit of the nation, was too important a
21; 24-27; 46, 47; 49, 50; Bit and Drag. vv. 1, place to escape mention in such a list as that in
9-13; Eichh. pp. 431 ft'.), the text of the Song is the text. Dr. Schultz, the late Prussian Consul at
little more than a repetition of that of the LXX. Jerusalem, discovered an ancient site called Daman
(cf. De Magistris, Daniel, &c, pp. 234 Eichh. ft". ; or Danyal, in the mountains above Klmn-tu-Na-
-
Einl. in d, Apok. Schrift. p. 422 ft .). The Poly- kura, south of Tyre, which he proposes to identify
glott-Syriac, Arabic, and Latin versions are derived with Dan-jaan (Van de Velde, Memoir, p. 306),
'•
from Theodotion; and the Hexaplar-Syriac from but this requires confirmation. <
character of the country about Tel el Kadi. Fiirst * Besides the famous description in Gibbon's
(flandir,iii, clinch, p. 303) compares Dan-jaan with
referred to above, an account of
23d chapter,
Baal-jaan, a Phoenician divinity whose name is Daphne and be found in K. O.worship will
its
found on coins. Thenius suggests that Jaan was Antiquitatilw Auiivch-
Miiller's dissertations De
originally Laish, the / having fallen away, and IV enis (Gotting. 1829), p. 41 ff. A remarkable Greek
inscription of the date 183 b. C, relating to the
having been substituted for W
(Exeo. JIandb. on worship of Apollo and Artemis at Daphne, was dis-
X mi. p. 257)." There seems no reason for doubt- covered in 1858, in a garden on the ancient site of
ing that the well-known Dan is intended. We the place, by the Rev. Homer B. Morgan, an Amer-
have no record of any other Dan in the north, and ican missionary in Syria, and published, with ;*
even if this writ' not tin- case, Dan, as the accepted translation, by Prof. James Hadley hi the Journal
of the American Oriental Society, vi. 550-555,
« Not a bad specimen of the wild and gratuitous comp. vii. p. xliv. The inscription-stone itself is
suggestions which sometimes occur even in these gen- now in the Library of Yale College, New Haven.
3rally careful Manuals.
548 DARA DARIUS
period than about the time of Cyrus. Camty'ses, or
DA'RA (3PH [contracted for the word be-
Darius Hystaspis, and it is more probable that they
low] : AapoS ;
[Vat.] Alex. Aapa ;
Comp. Ao- are not anterior to the reign of Xerxes, or even
Syr. Pesh. *»»»: Arab. electa that of Artaxerxes Longimanus. There are, how-
paSe: :
the designation extends to the others. [Ethan.] That the Greeks derived their distinctive appella-
tion of the coin from this proper name cannot be
In 1 Chr. ii. 6, however, the same four names occur
doubted; but the difference of the Hebrew forms
again as "sons of Zerach," of the great family of
Pharez in the tribe of Judali, with the slight dif- of the former from that of the latter tTV""!"^,
ference that Darda appears as Dara. The identity renders this a questionable derivation. Gesenius
of these persons with those in 1 K. iv. has been suggests the ancient Persian word Dara (Hundw.
greatly debated (see the arguments on both sides s. v.), "king; " but (in his Thes. s. v.) inclines to
ill Burlington, i. 206-8); but there cannot be connect the Hebrew names of the coin and that of
much reasonable doubt that they are the same. Darius. In favor of the derivation from Dara, it
1. A great number of Hebrew MSS. read Darda must be noted that the figure borne by these coins
in Chr. (Davidson, Hebr. Text, p. 210), in which is not that of any one king, but of the king of
they are followed by the Targum and the Syriac Persia in an abstract sense, and that on the same
and Arabic versions. [Dara.] principle the coinswould rather be called regal coins
2. The son of Zerach would be without diffi- than Darics. The silver Darics mentioned by Plu-
culty called in Hebrew the Ezrachite, the change tarch (Cim. p. 10) are probably the Persian silver
depending merely on the position of a vowel point. pieces similar in types to the gold Darics, but
[Ezrahite.] And farther, the change is actually weighing a drachm and a third of the same stan-
made by the Targum Jonathan, which in Kings dard. See Money and Diet, of Ant. art. Daricus.
has "son of Zerach." K. S. P.
The word "son" is used in Hebrew so often
3.
to denote a descendant beyond the first generation,
that no stress can be laid on the "son of Mahol,"
as compared with "son of Zerach." Eor instance,
of the five "sons of Judah " in 1 Chr. iv. 1, the
fust was really Judah's son, the second his grand-
son, the third his great-grandson, and the fourth
Besides there is Daric. Obv. King
: of Persia to the right, kneeling,
and fifth still later descendants.
bearing bow and javelin. Rev. Irregular incuse
great plausibility in the conjecture that " Bene
:
square.
Mahol" means "sons of the choir;" in which case
1
ii. viii. 27; Neh. vii. 70, 71, 72; 1 Chr. xxix.
69, the analogy of the Persian darvesh, "restraint:"
7), a gold coin current in Palestine in the period Sanskr. dhdii, "firmly holding" (Gesen. Thes. s.
after the return from Babylon. That the Hebrew v.). Hesychius gives a double derivation Aapeios :
word is, in the Bible, the name of a coin and not Hepffwv 6 <pp6vifJ.os- virb 8e Qpvywv <-ki cop.
virb
of a weight appears from its similarity to the GreekOthers have regarded the word as another form of
the modern Persian dara, darab, "a king;" but
appellation of the only piece to which it could refer.
The mentions in Ezr. and Neh. show that the coin this sense of dara is not justified by usage, and it
was current in Palestine under Cyrus and Arta- is rather the epithet of a king (the holder, re-
xerxes Lon<nmanus. At these times there was no strainer, as above) than the title itself (Ges. I. c).
large issue of gold money except by the Persian Three kings bearing this name are
mentioned in
kincs, who struck the coin known to the Greeks as the 0. T.
the (TTa.T hop Aaptix6s, or Aaoeii<6s. The Darics
1. Darius the Mede ("H^H 1, Dan. xi. 1
which have been discovered are thick pieces of pure
gold, of archaic style, bear'ng on the obverse the Chald. HS-TO 1, vi. 1), "the son of Ahasuerus
T
figure of a king with bow ond javelin, or bow and of the seed of the Medes " (ix. 1), who succeeded to
dagger, and on the reverse an irregular incuse
full weight is
Their about 128 grains troy,(b3|7) the Babylonian kingdom on the death of
square.
years old (Dan.
or a than that of an Attic stater, and is Belshazzar, being then sixty-two
little less
0nl y one .vear
most probably that of an early didrachm of the v. 31 (LXX. 'Apra^vs), «• *)
but
Phoenician talent They mvst have been the com- of his reign is mentioned (Dan. ix. 1, xi. 1);
the Jews. Daniel
mon gold pieces of the Persian empire. The oldest that was of great importance
for
to the highest dignity
that have seen cannot be referred to an earlier was advanced by the king
we
DARIUS DARIUS 549
(Dan. vi. 1 ft'.), probably in consequence murder of Evil-merodach (Belshazzar) b. C.
of his the
former services (cf. Dan. v. 17); and after his 559, one year only remains for this Median suprem-
miraculous deliverance, Darius issued a decree en- acy before the victory of Cyrus B. c. 558, in exact
joining throughout his dominions "reverence for accordance with the notices in Daniel (Xiebuhr,
the God of Daniel " (Dan. vi. 25 ft'.) I. <•.), and the apparent incompleteness of the polit-
The extreme obscurity of the Babylonian annals ical arrangements which Darius " purposed " to
ported by many recent critics (Bertholdt; Nun as probable as that there is any confusion of the
Lengerke; Haveruick; Hengstenberg Auberlen, two monarchs in the book of Daniel.
;
D (fuel und d. Ojfenbarung, p. 16 ft". ) is more The chronological difficulties which have been
deserving of notice. According to this he was raised (Hawlinson, Herodotus, i. 418) against the
(Cyaxares II.) "the son and successor of Asty- identification of Darius with Astyages on the as-
ages " (Joseph. /. c. ijv ' harvayovs vi6s, irepov sumption that the events in Dan. v. relate to the
5e irapa tois "EWtjctiv eVaAeiTo 61'Ofi.a), who is taking of Babylon by Cyrus (n. c. 538), in which
commonly regarded as the last king of .Media. It case he would have ascended the throne at seven
is supposed that the reign of this Cyaxares has years of age, are entirely set aside by the view of
been neglected by historians from the fact that Marcus Xiebuhr, which has been adopted above;
through his indolence and luxury he yielded the and this coincidence serves to confirm the general
real exercise of power to his nephew Cyrus, who truth of the hypothesis.
married his daughter, and so after his death re- 2. Darius the sou of Hystaspes (Vashtaspa),
ceived the crown by direct succession (Xen. Cyrop. the fifth in descent from Achaemenes, the founder
i. 5, § 2, iv. 5, § 8, viii. 5, § 19). But it appears to of the Perso-Aryan dynasty, was, according to the
be a fatal objection to this hypothesis that the only popular legend (Herod, i. 209, 210), already marked
direct evidence for the existence of a second ( y- out for empire during the reign of Cyrus. Upon
axares is that of Xenophon's romance (cf. Xiebuhr, the usurpation of the Magian Smerdis [Ar-
Gtsch. Ass. u. Bab. p. 61). The title Cyrus taxekxes], he conspired with six other Persian
[filius] Cyaxaris, which has been quoted from an chiefs to overthrow the impostor, and on the suc-
inscription (Auberlen, Daniel u. d. Offenbarung, cess of the plot was placed upon the throne b. c.
p. 18), is eithera false reading or certainly a false 521. He devoted himself to the internal organiza-
translation (Xiebuhr, Gesch. Ass. u. Bab. 214, n. tion of his kingdom, which had been impeded by
4); and the passage of ./Eschylus (Pers. 766 f.) the wars of Cyrus and Cambyses, and the confusion
is inconsistent with the character assigned to Cy- of the reign of Smerdis. His designs of foreign
axares II. On the other hand, Herodotus expressly conquest were interrupted by a revolt of the Baby-
states that "Astyages" was the last king of the lonians, under a pretender who bore the royal name
Medes, that he was conquered by Cyrus, and that of Xabukudrassar (Xiebuhr, Gesch. Ass. u. Bab.
he died without leaving any male issue (Herod, i. p. 94), which was at length put down, and punished
a It is most worthy of notice that .Xschylus char- of Babylonia, p. 30, n.) shows that the foundation of
acterizes Cyaxares (I as Mrj6o? ... 6 jrpajTos riyefiiav
) the Median empire was really due to Huwakhshatrn
orpaTou, while Sir H. Rawlinson (Notes on the History (Cyaxares), in spite of the history of Herodotus
550 DARKNESS DATHEMA
encouraged their countrymen to resume the work and the Evangelist's testimony to similar phenom-
of restoration (Ezr. v. 1 ff.), and when their pro- ena of a coincident darkness and earthquake, taken
ceedings came to the king's knowledge he confirmed in connection with the near agreement of time,
the decree of Cyrus by a new edict, and the temple gives a probability to the supposition that the for-
was finished in four years (b. c. 516, Ezr. vi. 15), mer speaks of the same circumstances as the latter.
though it was apparently used before that time Wieseler (Chron. Synop. p. 388), however, and De
(Zech. vii. 2, 3). Wette (Comm. on Matt.) consider the year of
Phlegon's eclipse an impossible one for the cruci-
3. Darius the Persian (Neh. xii. 22, f fixion, and reject that explanation of the darkness.
"'CH?'!!') may be identified with Darius II. No- The argument from the duration (3 hours) is also
of great force for an eclipse seldom lasts in great
thus (Ochus), king of Persia b. c. 424-3—405-4,
;
The pamphlet of
who defends at length the integrity of the passage. still preternatural (jb. p. 138).
[Nehemiah.] B. F. W. Whiston above quoted, and two by Dr. Sykes,
Dissertation on the Eclipse mentioned by Phlegon,
4. (AopeTos; [Sin.] Alex. Aaptos Arius).
and Defence of same, Lond. 1733 and 1734, may
Areus, king of the Lacedaemonians (1 Mace. xii. 7).
be consulted as regards the statement of Phlegon.
[Areus.]
Darkness is also, as in the expression, " land of
DARKNESS (T^n, fem form rDtpn, darkness," used for the state of the dead (Job x.
.
and with much variation in the vowel points <tk6- 21, 22); and frequently figuratively, for ignorance
:
tos), is spoken of as encompassing the actual pres- and unbelief, as the privation of spiritual light
ence of (iod, as that out of which He speaks, the (Johni. 5; iii. 19). H. H.
envelope, as it were, of Divine glory (Ex. xx. 21;
1 K. viii. 12). The cloud symbol of His guidance
DARKON
(ft|7"}-T [bearer, Fiirst] Aap- :
He limits iraaav t))v yriv to Judoea. Dean Alford Maspha (Mizpeh) (35). The reading of the Pe-
(ad be though without stating his reason, prefers shito, Ramtha, points to Ramoth-Gilead, which can
),
the wider interpretation of all the earth's surface hardly fail to be the